A Wish Come Trueby frontdoor6
Chapters
1. The wishes
This first Fanfic so there might be so fault's but
Just read it and see how you like it.
This story's main character is me (just to let you know) same age and same name. I do not own MLP FIM or the song's I will use in the story, when you read a chapter with a song in it I'll tell you who really owns it at the end of the chapter.
Chapter 1: The wishes
My name is Matt, I'm a 16 year old British male. It was a peaceful day in England as usual; I was walking down the garden with a bucket full of chicken feed as I entered the chicken pen, all the chicken's where waiting for me to pour the food out. Upon walking out, I went to too the second feeding tray where a runt cockerel ate alone. I liked this cockerel because we are so much alike; we eat alone, we wonder the area in circle's and being completely alone.
I mean, I had a good life, a loving family and everyone in the neighbourhood liked me but there are times where I wished my life could be better. I mean, my school life sucks, I don't have a girlfriend (hell, I haven't even been on one date) and I'm nearly 17 and I don't have a job, but I'm grateful for what I have.
I walked back up to my house and went inside. My Mum, Dad and sister where gone and I had the entire house to myself. "When the gang's away, I will play." I said in a happy tone. I walked into the front room and closed the curtains, I turned on the TV and put on one of recorded episodes of My Little Pony Friendship is Magic. I loved this program and only my family knew about it, if I could have the perfect life I would have it there.
That night: 11:22 PM
I was in my room, sitting on my stool listening to songs on my IPod. But instead of focusing on the music I was staring out the window looking up at the stars deep in thought about the show.
I then saw a star in the sky; it shined brighter than any star I've seen before, than a crazy idea hit me.
"I must be out my mind." I muttered to myself, I then let loose a big sigh and decided to get it out of my system.
I looked up at the star "I wish I could live in Equestria." I said with my hands wrapped together.
"I can't believe I just did that. I mean, it's not like its real or anything, even though I wish it was." I muttered to myself, I then shut the curtains and went to sleep on my bed. Unknown to me, the star I wished upon started to sparkle even brighter.
Meanwhile: Equestria/ Ponyville
The bright stars filled the night skies of Ponyville and all the houses were dark, excepted for the library. Were the young unicorn pony Twilight Sparkle paced back and forth in the living room.
"Twilight, it's the middle of the night! What are you doing?" A half-asleep Spike moaned as he stormed down stairs.
She turned to face Spike with a worried look on her face "Because Spike, I have a lot of work to do. I have to make a to-do-list for tomorrow, make a schedule for the next day and finish a report for the Princess. I have no time to lose."
Spike rolled his eyes "you seriously need to relax and get a life."
Twilight gave him a slight glare "okay one, I DO relax, I go to the day spa every Thursday with Rarity. And two, what do you mean get a life?"
"I mean, you need to stop focusing on to-do-list's and schedules and have some fun." Spike said hoping shed agree.
"I DO have fun." Twilight protested. "Remember last Saturday at Applejack's birthday party!"
"You call that fun, I call that a massacre. I mean, you basically attacked that piñata." Spike argued.
Twilight rolled her eyes and turned back to her work "I don't have time for this Spike, I'm very busy."
But Spike kept trying to think of idea's until he came up with one which (somewhere deep inside himself) he knew she was going to disagree with.
"Why not try and find a coltfriend?" he suggested.
Twilight turned from her work to face Spike with a confused look on her face "What?"
"You know! …like a colt to date. Because, not only will it get you to take a break from all the studying. But, it'll give you the chance to be with the one colt that'll make you happier than you already are. I mean, you do deserve it. " Spike said kindly.
Twilight let a small smile crawl on her face "Awww Spike, its sweet of you to think that. But, I'm far too busy to have a relationship right now. Besides, there's nopony I like here anyway."
"Don't knock it till you try it Twilight." Spike said walking back towards the stairs.
Twilight smirked slightly "How would you know? You've never had a girlfriend before."
"I'm working on it." Spike protested walking up the stairs.
Twilight's smirk grew larger "I know, I've read your love poems to Rarity."
Spike went wide-eyed and froze on the stairs. He then span around to face Twilight "YOU READ MY POEMS."
"Yeah, by the way, under your pillow is NOT a good hiding spot." Twilight said turning back to her work again.
Spike's blushed until his face was completely red, he then let out a small grunt and marched back upstairs and into their room "I've gotta hide those in a different spot." he thought as he curled up into his basket to sleep.
When Spike was back to sleep, Twilight was left alone with her work. But thoughts of what Spike said began the flow through her mind like an ocean, cursing her to stop her work.
"In a way, He's kinda right; it would be nice to have a coltfriend. I mean, I have my friends and I'd never think less of them. But it would be nice to have somepony to share Those Feelings with." Twilight said to herself.
She suddenly lost interest in her work and decided to go up to bed. After climbing the stairs and entering her's and Spike's room, she climbed into bed and looked out the window. "But like I told him, there's nopony I like here…. unless I haven't met him yet." Twilight wondered.
She then looked up to the night sky to see a star that shined brighter than any other she'd ever seen before.
"Well, here goes nothing." Twilight thought as she took a deep breath.
"I wish I could meet the perfect colt for me." Twilight said in a silent voice.
She then got under her covers and went to sleep; feeling that wishing on a star was pointless.
While she slept, the star began to shine brighter. But this one was different; this time the star shot off like a shooting star and disappeared in the sky.
To be continued
Well, what do you think? Don't worry, this story will get better. TRUST ME, and remember to review and check out my profile to learn a bit more about me, and next chapter will be up soon.
Goodnight everypony
2. Arriving in Equestria
Glad to know that people like me story so far.
So anyway here's chapter 2
Chapter 2: Arriving in Equestria
England
It was a worm morning and I was in the back garden burning rubbish when my sister Jess came waking up to me.
"Hey douche, what'cha doin'." Jess said in a playful tone.
"What's it look like I'm doin'? I'm burning rubbish wench." I answered not bothering to face her. (Douche and wench are our favourite name's to call each other).
"Hey Matt, did you hear those wired noises last night? It sounded like someone was having trouble sleeping." Jess asked with a that was wired look on her face.
I knew what she was talking about; I was having trouble sleeping because of all my thoughts building up inside my head. "Yeah sorry, that was me. I couldn't sleep, I was thinking."
"About what?" Jess asked
I could tell by the tone of her voice that she was truly interested. I let out a big sigh "Jess… can I ask you something personal?"
Jess turned to a better angle to face me "Yeah, go ahead."
I turned my head to face her "Do you ever wish you could live somewhere but you know you could never live there? You know, like it didn't exist."
Her face of interest turned into a face of confusion "I'm not shore. Why do you ask?"
I turned away from her "Ah, not important. Just asking silly questions."
The fire then died out and we both made out way back to the house. But suddenly, Jess stopped and looked up at the sky.
"Whow, look at that star!" Jess said as she pointed to the bright star.
That's weird, is that the same star from last night? "Stars aren't supposed to be out in the day, are they?"
I looked at Jess and she only shrugged, we both looked back up at the sky only to notice something up there.
"What's that." Jess asked pointing slightly to the left, I looked at what she was pointing at and saw what looked like a shooting star appear out of nowhere, heading towards the other star .
Until the shooting star merged itself to the other star creating a bigger star witch made it twice as bright.
We both stood there, watching in wonder of what was going on. Until the star started to get bigger and bigger by the second as if it was coming right at us.
WITCH IT WAS.
Our faces quickly had a look of fright as the star came hurdling towards us. We ran back up the garden to avoid being hit.
The star was now close to the ground, me and Jess dived to the ground as the star rushed past us. But before it hit the ground, it stopped in mid-air, hovering in place.
Me and jess got up from the ground and stared in awe. "What the hell is that thing." I asked slowly walking towards it.
The star then separated back into two single stars and then started to rotate around, going faster and faster till they formed a white circle. The circle then grew larger until it was big enough to jump through.
Lightning then began to squirm around the centre of the circle. Suddenly, there was a flash of light and the centre of the circle had an image that looked like a swirling vortex.
I suddenly felt myself being pulled towards it. I tried to back away but the suction began to get stronger by the second.
"JESS, HELP." I yelled, I reach out for her as I was starting to get pulled into the vortex.
She grabbed my hand and tried to pull me back. I suddenly felt my legs lift off the ground and being pulled towards the vortex.
Fear filled my body as if felt my hand start to slip from Jess' until it fully slipped out and Jess fell backwards onto the ground.
I yelled in horror as I was sucked through the vortex.
Jess then got up from the ground. But before she could follow me, the vortex closed and turned back into a single star. The star then faded until it completely disappeared.
"MATT." Jess screamed in despair. Tears formed in her eyes, wondering what happened to her little brother. She then ran back to the house to inform our parents.
As I flew through the vortex, my body felt strange like I was being twisted like a rubber band.
I found the strength to look forward to where I was going; I couldn't see anything but the vortex stretch on and on. Until another white circle appeared in front of me, I fell through it and I crashed into the hard earth.
I didn't have the chance to see where I was as my world turned to black.
Meanwhile: Ponyville café
Twilight, Rarity and Rainbow Dash where sitting at their table eating their breakfast orders.
But Twilight wasn't eating; she was too busy staring at a happy couple laughing and nuzzling each other on the other table.
"Hey Twilight, you alright? You haven't eaten your food." Rainbow Dash said snapping Twilight out her trance.
"Oh…..yeah, just a little tired that's all." Twilight said hoping they'd fall for her excuse.
"Twilight darling, I've known you too long to know when you fibbing. It's not good to keep things bottled up, now please tell us what's wrong." Rarity asked in her well-mannered way.
"Well….okay, but please don't tell anypony about this." Twilight begged with her hooves together.
"Whatever you say won't leave this café." Rainbow Dash declared with Rarity nodding in agreement.
"Well…do you think I should get a coltfriend?" Twilight asked nervously.
Rainbow Dash and Rarity looked at each other and then back to Twilight. "Well, that's up to you dear." Rarity answered sweetly.
"Yeah Twilight, if you see a colt you like you just go after'em." Rainbow Dash said in her cool tone.
"That's just the problem; there is nopony in Ponyville that I like, and if there is a colt for me out there, how the hoof am I supposed to find him." Twilight wined as she slammed her head down on the table.
Rarity got off her seat, went over to Twilight and placed a hoof on her shoulder.
"Don't worry darling, your colt's out there somewhere." Rarity said hoping to cheer her up.
"Year, like my perfect colt's just going to walk into the library today." Twilight said sarcastically as she got up and walked back to the library.
Once she was gone Rarity went back to her seat.
"I hope she'll be alright." Rarity said in a concerned voice
"Don't worry; like they always say, there's somepony out the for everypony." Rainbow Dash said as she went back to eating her food.
But Rarity's concern never left her.
Meanwhile: outside Sweet Apple Aches
I groaned as I began to come too.
"Ahh, my head….. if feels like a wall fell on me…..TWICE." I moaned as I rubbed my head, but there was something weird about my hand, it felt hard and I couldn't feel my fingers.
I opened my eyes to see my hand was a hoof, I then looked all over my body to see that my other hand and feet were hooves as well. I wobbled as I slowly stood up; I then saw a small pond and again wobbled as I walked over to it, because it was hard to walk on four legs.
When I finally reached the pond I looked at my reflection to see I was a light green pegasus with a brown spiky main (about the same as Doctor Hooves' main) and my same blue eyes.
"Oh-my-god, I'm a pony and not just a pony, a Pegasus pony…COOL." I cheered in delight.
I look around my surroundings and recognised it. "No way…..NO WAY, I'm in Equestria. its real, its actually real…or is this a dream?"
I saw a nearby tree and charged at it and hit my head on it, witch left me in a daze. I shook my head and snapped out of it.
"Looks like it's not a dream…..BUT, just to be sure." I then raised my right hoof and whammed it into my manhood.
"HOLY….ok…this isn't a dream." I struggled to say in a high pitch voice.
After recovering from my act, I looked down the road to see a farm that I easily recognised.
"Hey, it's Sweet Apple Aches. Guess I'm meeting Applejack first." I then galloped down the road whistling the show's theme.
To be continued
WOW, that took a while. Anyway hoped you liked it and next chapter will be up soon.
Goodnight everypony
3. First day
Okay, I just want to let everypony know that there's a reason for all the typos, you see I have Asperger's syndrome so I have a bit of trouble with reading and spelling. So don't be surprised if this chapter and future ones have typos as well, I hope everypony can forgive me for not telling you sooner.
So anyway, please enjoy
Chapter 3: First day
I continued down the road until I came to the entrance of Sweet Apple Aches. I entered the farmland to find nopony insight.
"Wired….. the place is deserted." I was about to leave until I heard a somepony yelling from the apple tree fields.
"Come on Winona, these apples ain't gonna pick themselves up." Yelled a female voice.
I entered the fields and saw a dog with an apple in its mouth; I recognised the dog as Winona, Applejacks pet. Winona then noticed me, dropped the apple and ran towards me.
When she got close enough, she tackled me to the ground and started licking my face. I couldn't help but chuckle.
"Ha Ha, okay girl, Ha Ha, calm down Ha Ha Ha." I laughed as Winona licked me.
"TARNATION WINONA, what have I told ya'll not to jump on ponies" Applejack yelled as she pulled Winona off of me.
Applejack helped me back up. "Sorry about that, names Applejack, and you?" She asked shaking my hoof really fast.
"M-M-M-Matthew." I said while she shook my hoof, when she let go my hoof was throbbing.
"Well nice to meet cha Matt, ya new in town?" Applejack asked.
"Just arrived, so….witch way is town?" I asked. She pointed her hoof to the road.
"Just further down the road, sugar cube. I'd love to give ya'll the tour, but I'm far too busy apple buckin'. You can always ask my friend Twilight, she lives in the library in town. It shouldn't be too hard, just look for the big house that looks like a tree." Applejack suggested.
"I'll do that, thanks. Hope we hang out some more." I said as I continued to walk.
"Same here." I heard her yell behind me.
Ponyville
After walking a while down the road, I finally made it to Ponyville and it was bigger and better than I imagined.
The young fillies and colts were running around playing, the market was packed and even some of the ponies stopped and said hello to me.
After a walking through Ponyville, I found the library. I stopped in front of the door. "Okay Matt remember, play it dumb, you're a pony, you don't know who Twilight is, you don't know who her friends are and you don't know what their like." I said to myself before knocking on the door.
The door opened to reveal Spike. "Can I help you?"
"Yeah, I'm looking for someone…..I mean, somepony named Twilight. I was told I could find her here." I told the small purple dragon.
"Yeah she's here, come on in I'll get her." Spike said as he turned to go back inside with me following behind.
I looked around the library and noticed it was bigger in person than it was on the show.
"TWILIGHT, SOMEPONYS HERE TO SEE YOU." Spike yelled up the stairs.
I was so busy looking around the library that I didn't see the wet patch on the floor in front of me and I slipped slightly.
"Careful, I'm mopping the floor." Spike said as he resumed mopping.
At that moment, Twilight was already halfway down the stairs. She looked over to me "Hello, can I help-AHH."
She couldn't finish her sentence as she slid on the wet floor and was quickly sliding towards me.
I rushed forward. "I've gottcha." I said as I caught her in my hooves.
She pushed herself up from my chest and looked me in the eyes.
"You okay?" I asked. I got no answer as she kept looking at me as if she was in a trance.
"Errr….hello." I said trying to snap her out of it.
She shook her head, "Oh…..yeah sorry." She said sheepishly. She pushed herself off of me, "I'm Twilight Sparkle, what's your name?" She asked as she held out her hoof.
"Matthew, but you can call me Matt." I answered as I shook her hoof. As I did, little sparks began to form around Twilights horn.
"Errr, I think there's something up with you horn." I said in concern.
She looked up at her horn and tapped it with her hoof, "Sorry, that's never happened before." The sparks then stopped.
There was a moments silence between us until I decided to break the silence. "Anyway, I'm new in Ponyville and I ran into one of your friends Applejack, she said you could give me a tour and I was just wondering if you could!".
A small smile appeared on her face. "Of cause, but first can I ask you something?"
"Sure." I answered.
"Can I have my hoof back?" she asked nervously.
I looked down to see I was still holding her hoof. I blushed slightly and let go. Awkward!
"We….better get going." Twilight suggested slightly blushing herself.
"Yeah, we don't want to keep it too late." I quickly said, trying to drawn to awkwardness.
We both said goodbye to Spike and made our way into town. Along the way, not only did I notice a few ponies eyeing me but I noticed Twilight turn to look at me at some points and when I turn to look at her she'd quickly turn away.
We walked to Sugar Cube Corner and upon arriving there I saw a pink pony up ahead. Oh no.
"Hey Pinkie Pie." Twilight yelled out. Pinkie Pie turned to face us with a big smile on her face.
"Het twilight, how's it hang-(GASP)" Pinkie Pie didn't finish her sentence as she gasped loudly when she noticed me, she then ran right up to us until she was right in my face.
"Are you a new pony, ooh I love new ponies it always a new opportunity to make a new friend and throw a party, where you from? What's your name? (GASP) wait here!" Pinkie Pie said as she sprang off.
Should've seen that coming. "What the friv just happened?" I asked very confused.
"Pinkie Pie just happened." Twilight answered.
A second later, Pinkie Pie returned with a waggon attached to her back.
I was almost afraid to ask but, "What's that." I asked nervously.
"This is my welcome waggon. I show it to all new ponies, wanna hear the song that comes with it?" Pinkie Pie asked with a big smile on her face.
I didn't want to upset her so. "Fine, let's hear it" I said.
Twilight then looked a little nervous. "Errr Matt, I don't think that's a good…" Twilight didn't have time to finish her sentence as Pinkie Pie pressed the red button on the waggon.
Suddenly, the waggon turned into a big accordion player with confetti cannons, flags, trumpets and what looked like an oven in the middle. The machine started to play music and Pinkie Pie started to sing.
"Welcome! Welcome! Welcome!
A fine welcome to you
Welcome! Welcome! Welcome!
I say how do you do?
Welcome! Welcome! Welcome!
I say hip hip hurray
Welcome! Welcome! Welcome!
To Ponyville today."
"Wait for it!" Pinkie Pie said
Suddenly, confetti burst on of the oven and some sort of yellow goo burst out of the cannons.
As the goo got closer to ground, Twilight moved to the side and the goo landed on me and Pinkie Pie, covering us both.
Pinkie pie licked the goo of herself. "Oops, I guess I put the confetti in the oven and the cake in the confetti cannons."
"Again" I added
"How did you know" Pinkie asked with a smile still on the face.
Nice going Matt, "Errr….lucky guess." I said hoping she'd buy it.
Pinkie then looked at me suspiciously, but then the smile returned to her face "Oki Doki loki."
"Pinkie, aren't you late for something?" Twilight asked hoping she was.
"OH HAY STACK'S, YOUR RIGHT." Pinkie said in shock and then sprang off.
Twilight then walked back over to me, I was still covered in cake.
"Sorry about that, Pinkie's just a little…..over hyper." Twilight said with a sheepish smile.
"Don't be, I liked the music, but the cake I could have lived without." I said wiping the cake out my eyes.
Twilight's horn then started to glow. "Here, let me take care of that!"
The next second, all the cake disappeared off of me until I was completely clean. "Thanks" I said.
Twilight had a warm smile on her face. "Don't mention it. Hey I just remembered, all my friends are at the café, you have to meet them. Follow me."
We both started to walk towards the café side by side.
When we finally made it to the café, I saw the rest of the main 6 on a table together talking; they then noticed us and invited us over.
When we walked over to them, Rarity was the first to notice me. "Who's your friend Twilight." she asked.
"This is Matthew." Twilight then turned to me "Matt, this is Rarity, Rainbow Dash, Fluttershy and Applejack." She said pointing at each of her friends.
"Howdy Matt." Applejack called out waving her hoof.
"Hey Applejack." I said back to her waving my hoof back.
We then joined them on the table and we all got to talking.
"So Matthew, where you from?" Rainbow Dash asked.
Think Matt, think. "Errr….Manehatten." I answered quickly.
Rainbow Dash suddenly got a grin on her face "Really, I hear you can learn cool flying moves there."
"Yeah you can, I learnt a lot there." I said while taking a sip of my drink.
"Well then, show us what you got!" Rainbow Dash asked I delight.
I put down my drink and walked to an open space. "OK. All I have to do is flap my wings and fly." I thought nervously.
I then flapped my wings and I started hovering in the air. But, the hovering didn't last as I fell to the ground with a hard thud.
"Errr…are you sure you learned moves in Manehatten?" Rainbow Dash asked trying not to laugh.
I then got up from the ground and went back to the table "Ok I'll admit it, I don't exactly know how to fly."
There was a moments silence before Rainbow Dash burst out laughing. "How can you not know how to fly, you have to be in your teen years and you don't know how to fly."
I blushed a little in embracement. "Well I just need practice that's all." I protested.
Rainbow Dash then stopped laughing. "Well, I'm not doing anything tomorrow so I can teach you."
I smiled a little. "Thanks Dash, I'll be there."
She then grinned again. "Yeah, it'll be funny to watch you fall on your face some more." She then laughed a little.
I just smiled and shook my head.
While I was talking to the others, Rarity leaned over to Twilight and started whispering to her.
"Twilight he's a charm, what was it you said before? Like my perfect colt's just going to walk into the library today, what an ironic twist." Rarity said with a smirk on her face.
Twilight nearly spat her drink out but covered her mouth; she then swallowed her drink so she could speak. "He's not my coltfriend, we just met." She protested while blushing slightly.
"Well Twilight you should try. I mean, he's a nice pony, he's funny, kind and has a delightful accent." Rarity said
"Look, I just met him and I don't want to scare him off by trying to start a relationship with him too soon." Twilight argued.
"Too soon? So you DO like him." Rarity said with a grin.
Twilight's face went completely red and she leaned closer to Rarity "Well….kinda, but I don't want to come on too strong." Twilight said in a quiet voice.
Rarity nodded. "OK, here's what you do, take it slow, be nice whenever you can and be yourself."
"Twilight had doubts for a second but decided to accept it "OK, I'll try."
2 hours later, we all said our goodnights and I walked Twilight back to the library. When we got there, she opened the door and turned to me.
"Today was fun Matt, I'm glad my friends like you." She said with a warm smile.
"Yeah, I like them too. Their just as I imagined"
Twilight then gave me a confused look "Huh?"
CRAP. "I mean….their just as I imagined ponies would be like in Ponyville…..cool and fun to be around." I said with a nervous smile.
Today was a good day, and I don't think there's anything that can ruin it.
Twilight's smile returned "Oh ok, so where are you staying in Ponyville?"
DAMN IT.
"Well, I…..Errr…..well to be honest I don't exactly have a place to stay." I confessed.
A look of concern came on her face. "You're homeless? Well I have a guest room; you can stay there if you like?"
I was surprised by her offer. "You'd let me stay with you? Even though we just met."
Twilight then gave me a warm smile. "Sure, you seem like a nice pony and...you're nice to be around." She said blushing slightly
I didn't notice her blushing but I gave her a warm smile. "Thanks Twi." We both then entered the library and went upstairs to find Spike asleep in his basket. Twilight then opened the guest room door.
"This is the guest room; I hope you like it and feel free to read any of the books." Twilight said as I entered the room.
The guest room was big; it had a pile of pillows in the corner to sit on, three large book shelves and a large bed with a window. "I like it, thanks Twi."
"Well, goodnight Matt, see you in the morning." Twilight said as she left the room.
"Goodnight Twi." I said back. She then shut the door, leaving me alone. I then went over to one of the book shelves and pulled out a book called Daring Doo and the jade horse shoe.
I then lied down on the bed and started to read the book. Ending a good day.
Sorry it took so long, you would not believe the distractions.
Anyway, I want to let everypony know that I finally have Mortal Kombat 9 and if anypony wants to challenge me on PlayStation Network just tell me what your PSN user name is so I can recognise you and what time you want to fight.
Some of you might recognize the song from the episode A Friend in Deed, which I do not own.
As always, goodnight everypony and next chapter will be up soon.
P.S. everypony knows that the Matt in the story is me, Right? So if any pony wants to see what my/my characters pony form looks like, just look at my avatar and I'll add the cutie mark in future chapters.
4. Flying lesson
HI everypony, I'm glad so many people like my story so far, that's really all I've got to say at this point so let's just get right to it.
Enjoy
Chapter 4: Flying lesson
The next morning, I awoke to see the book was in my face, I must have fallen asleep while reading again.
I pushed the book off my face and let out a big yawn. When my vision cleared more, I was at first a bit confused where I was but then I remembered I was in the library's guest room.
I got out of bed and walked out of the door into the next room. Twilight and Spike weren't in their beds; I figured they were down stairs so I went down the stairs and into the kitchen, that's when I saw Twilight sitting on the table and Spike cooking breakfast.
"Morning Matt, how was your sleep?" Twilight asked
"It was nice, the bed was really comfy." I said while sitting at the table.
I suddenly felt a bunch of irritating itches all over my body and I was wheezing every time I breathed. Oh no not here too.
I was scratching all over. So bad in fact, that some of my coat was falling out.
Twilight then got a concerned look on her face, "are you ok?"
"Sorry, I suffer from Eczema and Asthma, it's terrible." I explained while still scratching.
Twilight the tapped her chin and then she walked out of the room, a few seconds later she returned with a book called curing spells.
"Hold still Matt, this might tingle" Twilight said as she flipped through the pages, she then stopped to read the page and then her horn started to glow.
I saw a purple glow form around me and I felt tingly, the glow then faded away and I felt nothing, which was exactly the point.
All the itches were gone and I could breathe clearly. I couldn't believe it, after 16 years of scratching and coughing, I was finally cured.
"I don't believe it, I've been trying to ease my diseases for years but you managed to do it in mere seconds, Twilight your amazing." I cheered as I gave her a warm hug.
She blushed as I did and hugged me back "you welcome."
My eyes shot open when I realized how awkward this must be and then broke the hug.
"Well…I...Errr….should get going, Rainbow Dash said she'd teach me how to fly today." I said as I got off the table and headed towards the door.
"Oh….do you have to go?" Twilight asked a little disappointed.
I turned back to face her, "Yeah, I'm really excited about flying. Don't worry, I'll be back later."
Twilight's ears lowered slightly "Ok, do you need anything before you go?"
I turned back to her "well, there is one thing. Where's the bathroom?"
Twilight then pointed to a door and I ran through it. "That's the closet." Twilight yelled.
I ran out the closet to see another door next to it, "I knew that." I said as I ran through the bathroom door.
Twilight let out a slight giggle.
Later: Fields outside Ponyville
A while later, I headed to the open field where Rainbow Dash said she'd meet me. I saw her with Fluttershy waiting for me so I went down to them.
"Hey Dash, whys Fluttershy here?"
"Oh, I..I'm here to teach you how to fly too, if it's alright with you?" Fluttershy said in her quiet voice.
I nodded my head, "sure it is."
We all then headed to a high cliff above a lake. "Ok, now the first thing you have to learn about flying is to find your inspiration and when you do, let it into your heart and when you feel it's rhythm, you fly." Rainbow Dash said while hovering over the cliff.
"How do I find my inspiration, I don't even think I have one" I said.
Rainbow dash then landed in front of me. "Well, you better find it soon because the only thing that's stopping you from falling into that lake is flying." She said as she walked behind me.
"WHOW WAIT! You want me to jump of the cliff?" I said in shock.
"No need." Rainbow Dash said with a deceitful grin.
"No need? What do you mean no-AHHH." I didn't finish my sentence as Rainbow Dash kicked me off the cliff.
I flapped my wings as hard as I could, I hovered in the air for a few seconds but it didn't last as I plummeted down to the lake below and landed with a big splash.
We tried it three more times which all ended in disaster. First I fell into the lake again, then I did manage to get into the air only to crash into a tree and finally I managed to get in the air again only to land in a prickle bush. After plucking all the thorns out my ass, I decided to call it a day and go back home to the library.
That night: Library
By time I reached the library, it was already dark out and all of Ponyville was asleep. I entered the library to find the living room was empty, I closed and locked the front door and went into the next room to find Twilight asleep with her head on a desk.
"Why is she sleeping on a desk? Did she stay up waiting for me? Why would she do that?" I forgot all my questions when I noticed Twilight shiver a bit.
"She must freezing, the poor thing." I thought to myself as I looked around to find a blanket on the floor.
I walked over to the blanket, picked it up with my mouth and carefully covered Twilight with it.
I then left to go upstairs to bed. As I walked upstairs, Twilight opened her eyes slightly and noticed the blanket covering her, she saw me going upstairs and smiled warmly, she then put her head back down and went back to sleep with a smile on her face.
The next morning, we were all at the kitchen table eating breakfast, I wasn't sure about most of the food here yet so I just ate sliced apple.
Twilight decided to break the silence. "So Matt, are you going to try and fly with Rainbow Dash again today?"
I let out a big sigh. "I don't really see a point anymore; I'll just end up falling into a lake, smacking into a tree or crashing into a prickle bush again." I then lowered my head in depression.
Twilight tapped her chin and a smile came on her face, she left the kitchen and then returned holding up what looked liked a necklace with her magic.
I felt the necklace fall onto my shoulders; I looked down to see a small purple diamond attached to a silver chain that went around my neck.
"It's my good luck charm; it helped me pass a magic test once, maybe it'll help you with you flying lesson." Twilight said with a confident smile.
I looked up to face Twilight. "Thanks Twi, I promise I'll take care of it."
Later: The cliff
I soon left the library and headed back to the cliff to find Rainbow Dash and Fluttershy waiting for me.
I walked over to them and Rainbow Dash's deceitful grin returned. "Ready to fly again Matt".
I smirked at her. "You bet. And this time, I'm jumping."
Fluttershy had a concerned look on her face. "Oh, I hope you'll find your inspiration Matt." She said in worry.
"I hope so too" I said under my breath.
I walked to the edge of the cliff and closed my eyes. "Come on Matt focus, inspiration." I said to myself.
I opened my eyes and looked down at Twilights necklace, I held the diamond in my hoof and thought about how nice Twilights been to me since I got here. I then felt my heart beat faster and my eyes shot open when I understood the situation.
I then closed my eyes again, flapped my wings and jumped off the cliff.
When I opened my eyes, I was surprised to see that I was high above the ground, soaring through the air.
"I'm flying, I don't believe this. This is too cool." I cheered as I turned back towards the cliff.
When I got back to the cliff, I saw that Fluttershy and Rainbow Dash were looking up at me.
Fluttershy had a cheerful smile while Rainbow Dashes mouth was hanging open.
"Who falling on their face now, Dash? Haha" I yelled down to her and then flew off towards Ponyville.
I flew through the streets of Ponyville and started doing a few stunts while doing it, catching the attention of some ponies.
Later that evening: Library
I landed outside the library and walked through the door to see Twilight reading a book, she looked up from her book to see me.
"Twilight guess what! I flew, I actually flew; I found my inspiration." I cheered.
Twilight's smile grew. "Matt that's great, what was it?"
Crap, how do I tell her the SHE was my inspiration?
"Errr well….my inspiration was…..HEY, here's you necklace back. It really helped." I quickly said taking the necklace off, trying to change the subject.
She then forgot about her previous question. She gave me a sweet smile "Keep it! You need it more than I do."
"Really, thanks Twi" I said warmly.
We then looked into each other's eyes. But the moment was interrupted by the sound of falling books.
We looked over to see Spike appear out of a pile of books "Sorry" he said sheepishly.
Twilight giggled and then turned back to me. "Well, I'm kinda tired so I'm going to bed. Goodnight Matt."
As I watched her go upstairs, I felt like calling for her to come back but decided to let her rest.
"Goodnight Twi." I said kindly.
She's so good to me. Tomorrow, I'm going to find a way to repay her. But how?
So how'd you like it? Hoped you enjoyed it and as always next chapter will be up soon.
Goodnight everypony.
5. Getting a Job
I'm glad everypony likes the romance parts of the story.
So here's the next chapter enjoy.
Chapter 5: Getting a Job
"Ok, I have to find a way to get some money so I can buy Twilight something nice to say thanks for everything she's done for me." I thought to myself as I wondered through the streets of Ponyville.
I continued walking until I found a wall with help wanted posters all over it. I walked over to them and started reading them.
After a few minutes of reading, I didn't find anything I fancied until I found one for Sweet Apple Arches.
It said they were looking for somepony to deliver orders throughout Ponyville.
I then decided to accept it and started flying towards Sweet Apple Arches.
After a short flight, I landed on the farm land to see Applejack and Big Macintosh putting stuff like apple pies and apple fitters in a cart.
I walked over to them. "Hey Applejack, I hear your lookin' for a delivery pony."
She turned to face me. "Matt? You interested in being our new delivery pony?"
I nodded. "Yeah, it's not the worst job in the world and I need the money FAST."
She raised an eyebrow. "Why?"
"Because…I…want to buy something for Twilight and I'm completely broke." I explained a little embarrassed.
Applejack grinned. "Ah, gettin' cosy with Twilight are we? Well we're always willing to help out a friend, right Big Macintosh?"
Big Macintosh turned to her "Eeyup." He responded.
Big Mac then attached the cart to my back. "Ok Matt, all ya gotta go is deliver the orders to these addresses in Ponyville, collect the money and come back when the cart's empty and then you'll get paid, alright?" Applejack explained to me as she gave me a note with addresses on it.
I nodded "Sure thing AJ." I then set off towards Ponyville.
Meanwhile: Ponyville library
Twilight was writing a letter to Princess Celestia
Dear Princess Celestia
I am pleased to inform you that a new pony has arrived in Ponyville, his name is Matthew and he is a very kind pony. I can't explain it, but he's not like other colt's I've met, I feel warm and safe around him and I don't know why. Please write back if you have any answers for this.
Your faithful student: Twilight Sparkle.
Twilight then gave Spike the letter to burn. Once he did, it shot off towards Canterlot.
"Are you sure you should go to the princess about this? I mean you should know the answer already." Spike said.
Twilight was pacing a little. "I know Spike; I just want to be sure."
A few minutes later, Spike burped up a letter. Twilight then picked up the letter with her magic, unrolled it and started reading it.
Dear Twilight Sparkle.
I believe you obviously like this colt so why don't you ask him to the Ponyville dance this Saturday, I'm glad you found a colt you like and I look forward to meeting this Matthew at the dance.
Till then, you mentor: Princess Celestia.
Twilight's eyes widened a little "(gasp) the dance, I completely forgot. Oh, what am I going to do?".
"Here's a thought, ask Matt to go with you!" Spike said with his arms crossed.
Twilight turned to face Spike. "What? Just like that. But, what if he says no? What if he doesn't like me back?
"Well, you're not going know until you ask." Spike said as he went into the other room, leaving Twilight alone to think.
Later that afternoon: road to Sweet Apple Arches
It was a long and tiresome day; I had to go from place to place all around Ponyville, but finally, I was heading back to Sweet Apple Archers with an empty cart.
When I entered the farm, I saw Applejack waiting for me and I walked over to her.
"All delivery's made Applejack." I said in victory as I gave her the bag of money.
She smiled and gave me another bag. "Nice goin' Matt. Here's you pay, 100 bits."
100 BITS! Job's better than I thought.
"WHOW, thanks AJ." I said still surprised by the payment.
She gave me a kind smile. "Don't mention it sugar cube, just be here tomorra for the next batch OK."
"You got it." I said as I trotted back towards Ponyville.
Ponyville Streets
When I got back into Ponyville, I was looking around the shops for a gift for Twilight.
"100 bits, imagine what I can buy with that. I could buy her a new necklace with more diamonds or I could buy her a new dress or maybe-" my train of thought was cut off when I noticed a book store.
In the window was a book called Rarest stories of Equestria history. Spike mentioned that Twilight had been trying to buy this book but she never had the money to get it.
My decision was made. I went inside the store and I saw the salespony behind the counter, I walked over to him. "Excuse me, how much is the book in the window?" I asked as polite as I could.
"That old thing? 200 bits." He answered.
"200 BITS, how can it be that much?" I asked in shock.
"Sir, this is a one-of-a-kind book and it has the word Rarest on the cover, I'm afraid it 200 bits or no deal." He said crossing his hooves.
I let out an annoyed sigh. "Fine, I'll be back tomorrow." I then left the store in a huff.
"200 bits, I can't believe it." I thought angrily as i stormed away from the store, suddenly I heard somepony yelling. "HELP, SOMEPONY HELP ME."
I ran back to the book store to see the salespony outside his store.
"What's up? Royal guard finally catch ya with you outrageous prises?" I said in smart ass tone.
He gave me a small glare. "No, there's some kind of monsters in my store, you have to get them out."
Time to take this to my advantage. "Ok, I'll get them out under one condition."
"Anything, name it." He begged
I then grew a smirk on my face "you sell me the book for 100 bits and they're as good as gone."
The salespony hesitated but after hearing a crash in his store he gave in. "FINE FINE, just get them out of there."
I then entered the store to see the Diamond Dogs looking around the shop.
"This doesn't look like a gem bank." Rover said.
"Did you read the map wrong AGAIN Spot?" Fido asked in an annoyed tone.
Spot flipped the map in different ways. "Woops, I think we turned right when we should have turned left." Spot said sheepishly.
"OH, THAT'S THE THIRD TIME TODAY YOU IDIOT." Fido yelled.
"I'm not the idiot; you're the one who gave me the map so you're the idiot." Spot argued.
"Look, if it makes you feel any better your both idiots. I have an idea, let steal the books and sell them; they may be worth a few gems." Rover said deviously.
"I don't think so Diamond Mutts." I said as I jumped in.
The dogs looked at me and burst out laughing.
"The little pony thinks he's tough" Fido said while laughing.
Rover then stopped laughing. "Yeah, what are you going to do pony? Beat us up?"
A smirk came on my face. "Kinda" I then shot towards Rover and hit him in the gut, sending him crashing into a wall.
Fido ran towards me and tried to grab me, but I leaped between his open legs and used my hind legs to kick him in the ass, making him tumble over.
Spot tried to land a few punches on me, but I had my hoof on his forehead so he couldn't reach me. When he realized it was no use, he smiled sheepishly.
I then grabbed him and through him into Rover, who was just starting to get back up.
Fido ran over to where his friends were and they look at me in fear.
"This pony's crazy." Spot said while quivering.
"Forget the books, LETS JUST GET OUT OF HERE." Rover yelled as he jumped back into the tunnel were they came out from, with Fido and Spot following.
"AND DON'T COME BACK" I yelled down the tunnel.
I then came out of the store in victory and walked towards the book store salespony.
"Dogs are gone, now about that book." I said with a smirk.
The salespony sighed in annoyance before he went into the store and came back out with the book in his mouth.
He then gave me the book and I gave him the bag of money and then I walked away with the book in my mouth.
Later that evening I returned to the library. I walked in and shut the door; I then sat down and hid the book behind my back.
"Twilight, I'm home and I have something for ya." I yelled hoping Twilight was home.
Twilight then came out from the other room and came up to me. "Matt, I'm so glad your back; I need to ask you something."
"Can I show you what I have first?" I asked.
She sat down in front of me. "What is it?"
"Well, I just wanted to say thanks for being so nice to me since I got here. SO." I then pulled the book from behind my back and showed it to Twilight.
She read the title of the book and gasped. "Matt, I've been trying to get this book for ages, how did you afford it?"
"I got a job working for Applejack and trust me! she pays BIG." I said with a pleased smile.
She picked up the book with her magic and pulled me into a big hug. "Matt, this is so sweet, thank you."
My eyes went wide as she planted a kiss on my cheek. She then went into the next room to read her new book.
I was still sat on the floor, paralyzed by the kiss. I placed a hoof on the cheek she kissed. "Wow" was my only response.
I then walked into the guest room in a daze, laid down on the bed and let myself drift off to sleep.
Now how was that? There's going to be a dance coming up soon and I think we all know what might happen. Hope you enjoyed this chapter.
Goodnight everypony
6. Talent and a new friend
Nothing much to say really but enjoy the chapter.
Chapter 6: Talent and a new friend
After having breakfast with Twilight and Spike. And after delivering the orders for Applejack, I decided to wonder around Ponyville to see what I could spend my money on.
I then came across a large tent, my curiosity got the better of me and I went inside.
When I entered the tent, I couldn't believe what I saw. It was an arcade with all types of video games.
"I didn't know they had one of these." I said to myself in delight.
I walked around and looked at all the games they had. They had the Claw, Air hockey, shooting games and all sorts.
Something then caught my eye, a game called Attack of the zombie ponies. I then put the money in the slot and started to play
An hour later, I was still playing until the lights in the tent went dim and a spot light shun on the stage at the front of the tent.
A light blue pony with a black tie then walked on stage and started talking to us.
"Well everypony, it's time for our gaming contest; whoever's interested in participating in our event should wright their name down and put in this box" the announcer said as he pointed to a box with a slot on top of it.
I then wrote my name on a piece of paper and put it in the box.
Afterword's, the announcer pulled four pieces of paper out of the box and called out the names that were written on them.
One of them was mine followed by three more ponies. Another Pegasus only brown, a yellow earth pony and a red unicorn.
"First off are the basketball hoops, whoever gets the highest scoring wins and whoever gets the lowest score will be kick out of the competition. So, ready, set, GO." The announcer said as we started.
In the basketball hoops game there were four rows for us each to stand in, there was a net wall between each one so our balls wouldn't roll away.
I managed to get all my ball's in the net, the Pegasus and the earth pony only got half their ball's in their net's but the unicorn used his magic to get all his ball's in his net.
"Ooh sorry, magic is not allowed. I'm afraid you're disqualified," the announcer said to the unicorn, the unicorn then left the arcade in a depressed way.
"Next up is laser tag, whoever's the first to get hit three." The announcer said as we walked through an entrance leading to another tent only this on was much darker. We were then given plastic chest plates and plastic hand guns, and then the game began.
I was running around the maze-like tent trying to find the other players but I could not find them.
I then heard hoof steps behind me; I spun around to see the brown Pegasus pointing his gun at me. But before he could hit me, I ran behind a wall and he followed me.
When he came around the corner, he couldn't see me. I then jump from behind another wall and shot him in the back.
The brown Pegasus spun around and shot me in the front, I then ran off with him chasing me.
I then hid behind a corner and he ran past me. Ha, the old hide behind a corner and he runs past me trick, classic.
I then saw the yellow earth pony and I shot him from behind. As I did, the earth pony noticed me and shot me.
I then ran away before he could get another chance to do it again.
As I ran, I found the Pegasus and shot him again. I then sprang off with him following me.
There was a moment when I thought I lost him, when he suddenly jumped in front of me pointing his gun at me.
But before he could shoot me, the earth pony ran up behind the Pegasus and shot him, hitting the Pegasus for the third time.
The light's suddenly came on and a light pick mare escorted us back out.
When we got back through to the other tent, the announcer came up to us and looked at the brown Pegasus. "I'm sorry young Pegasus, but I'm afraid you're out of the competition."
The brown Pegasus then left the arcade in disappointment.
It was just me and the yellow earth pony now.
"Ok. Now it's time for the last game of the competition. Air hockey." The announcer said as he guided us to an air hockey table.
The announcer put the puck on the table and we started to play.
We played for a while; we were both at 11 points, and whoever got the next point wins.
We were both hitting the puck like crazy until I gave it one last hit and the puck went into the earth pony's goal.
The earth pony then walked out the arcade, hanging his head.
I had won the competition. "Congratulations young Pegasus, you have beaten all the other competitors and won each round, but now it's time for the special bounce match." The announcer said to me.
"Bounce match?" I thought.
The announcer then pointed to the stage. "Against the one-and-only game champion Analog
A large orange earth pony (about Big Macintosh's size) with an arcade game machine for a cutie mark emerged from behind the curtains.
The announcer then walked on stage. "And one of you lucky ponies will walk away with the grand prize."
He then pulled open another pair of curtains revelling a blue parrot with red and green feathers on its wing and tail in a cage.
"A parrot? We're playing for a parrot?" I thought.
We were then guided to the zombie pony game I was playing before. I guessed this was the last round.
I looked up at Analog. "So, you want the parrot too, huh?" I said with a small smile.
He looked down at me. "No, I just like beating challengers who think they stand a chance against me."
"Well, good luck to you too." I said in a sarcastic tone.
Analog rolled his eyes. "Good luck's for wimps, good luck to you thought."
"Well!" I said under my breath.
The announcer then stud in front of the game. "Ok, this is the last game, whoever gains the highest points wins."
Analog then walked over to the machine and started playing.
An hour later, he was at the last boss fight and everypony was cheering him on. But I didn't last as he finally got a game over.
"WOW, it looks like Analog has beat his own record. The young Pegasus is going to have to do some serious playing to beat that." The announcer said.
I then walked in front of the machine. "LOOK OUT." I yelled as I started playing.
Another hour later, I was on the last boss and I was doing well. Everypony was cheering me on and Analog was bighting his hoof in worry.
I then hit the boss one last time and I won the game, all the ponies burst out cheering.
The announce walked over to me. "Amazing, this young Pegasus has beaten Analog, he is now the new game champion." All the ponies cheered louder.
Analog grunted and stormed out the arcade.
"Here's you prize young pony." The announcer said as he gave me the cage with the parrot inside.
"Well, well, well, it looks like you have two prizes today." The announce said as he pointed to my flank.
I look at my flank to see a cutie mark that looked like a video game controller.
"Oh my god, I have a cutie mark, I can't wait to show Twilight." I said to myself in delight.
I then picked up the cage in my mouth and left the arcade.
While I was walking back to the library, I noticed a pony nailing something to a wall.
I walked over to see what it was and it was an advertisement for something called The Ponyville Dance that's going to happen tomorrow night.
"A dance? Maybe Twilight would like to go with me? I should ask her when I get back to the library." I thought to myself.
I then continued on the road to the library.
When I got there, I walked through the door and shut it behind me. I set the cage down, "Twilight, I'm home." I called out.
Twilight then came down the stairs. "Matt, you've been gone for hours, where've you been?"
"At the arcade, I entered a contest, beat this guy call Analog and won this parrot, which frankly I don't get." I answered.
Twilight's then had a look of surprise on her face. "You beat Analog? He's the best gamer in Ponyville."
I grinned. "WAS, and look what else I got." I then turned to show her my cutie mark.
She then had a small smile on her face "Matt, you have a cutie mark."
"I know, right" I said in excitement but the got serious "Anyway Twilight, I want to ask you something."
"Yeah, me too." She said back.
"Will you go to the dance with me?" We both said at the same time.
Our eyes went wide by the coincidence.
"Sure." I said with a small smile.
Twilight's smile grew large. "REALLY….I mean, really." She said slightly blushing.
I nodded my head. There was a moments silence between us until I broke it.
"Well, I'd best get this guy in my room." I said as I grabbed the cage with my mouth and went upstairs.
I walked through the guest room door and shut it behind me. I then placed the cage on a table.
"Well, that was easier than I thought." I said in a surprised tone.
"Easy yet super awkward." The parrot said to me.
I nodded in agreement. WAIT A MINUTE.
"WHOW, did you just say something?" I asked in shock.
The parrot crossed his wings. "Yeah, what? You've never met a talking parrot before!"
"Errr…no" I said a little calmer.
"Then this is a very special moment, I'm glad I was here to share it with you." He said with a smirk on his face.
I smirked back, "You've got a lot of cheek and I like that. So do you have a name?"
He struck a pose. "Yeah, name's Jeff."
I raised an eyebrow. "Jeff the talking parrot!"
He crossed his wings again. "You got hay in your ears or somethin'?"
"Jeff the INSULTING talking parrot." I added.
Jeff rolled his eyes "Look, I've been in this cage for 2 days, I'm hungry and I feel cramped. I'm a little on edge right now so if you could just open the cage and let me out! We can start over."
I gave it a deep thought and decided to let him out. I opened the cage and Jeff stepped out and spread his wing out.
I could tell Jeff was more than happy to be out the cage. "Ahh, that feels so much better, I hate being in small spaces. So what's your name?" He said as he stuck out his wing
"Matthew." I answered while shaking his wing with my hoof.
Jeff then smiled. "Nice name. So anyway, thanks for getting me out of that jam back there, who knows what the big orange pony might have done to me."
I smiled back "Well, you're safe with me and you're welcome to stay for as long as you want."
Jeff then flew onto my back. "Thanks dude, you're one cool cat." I smiled at his comment.
I then walked out the guest room door with Jeff on my back. This could be the start of a beautiful friendship.
I know, this chapter might be lame. But I promise you that the next chapter will be much better because it's the dance. Hope you enjoyed it though.
Goodnight everypony.
7. The Ponyville Dance
Well, according to my readers the last chapter went better than I thought, I'm glad everypony liked it, in the song I'm using in this chapter I had the change some of the lyrics so they'd fit the story.
So here's the next chapter
Chapter 7: The dance
Tonight was the big night of the Ponyville dance and everypony was running around all over preparing for it.
Some ponies were preparing the town square, which is where the dance is being held. They were hanging up lanterns, getting the stereos plugged in and preparing tables.
Twilight was at Rarity's Boutique with Pinkie Pie trying to find the perfect dress for the dance.
"I knew you could do it, I knew you could ask him." Rarity cheered as she measured Twilight's hind-legs.
Twilight turned her head to face her. "Well, he asked too, at the same time."
Rarity's smile grew. "Oh, it's destiny. I knew he was the colt for you."
Twilight turned her head away and let a small smile on her face. "I know, we've been getting closer every day. I just hope I don't do anything to embarrass him or me at the dance."
Pinkie Pie came up to them. "Yeah, like if you step on his hoof or you forget the dance moves. Ooh, or if you step on his Hoof twice-" Pinkie was cut off by Rarity sticking her hoof in her mouth.
"That's not really helpful Pinkie." Rarity said as she removed her hoof from Pinkies mouth.
Rarity could see that Twilight was really nervous about tonight. She walked up to Twilight and placed a hoof on her shoulder.
"Don't worry dear; I'm sure everything will be fine. I'm going to make you a dress so fabulous that it'll make him faint on sight of you." Rarity said in a confident tone.
Twilight gave her a sweet smile. "Thanks Rarity, I really appreciate this."
Rarity waved a hoof. "Don't mention it darling, anything for romance."
Streets of Ponyville
I was making my deliveries with Jeff on my back; I was so lost in thought about tonight that I wasn't even listening to Jeff talking about his life before he was captured.
"And that's when I learned not to wash in a bird bath when the waters yellow and to top it off…..Matt? Are ya even listenin'?" Jeff said as he flew up on top of my head and tapped it with his foot.
I snapped out of my train of thought. "What?...oh yeah…yellow water. Very interesting."
Jeff rolled his eyes. "Dude, you seriously need to chillax. You got this, you're gonna go there, dance with Twilight and HAVE FUN."
"But what if something go's wrong?" I said in a worried tone.
Jeff then hovered in front of my face. "Nothin' will go wrong as long as you keep focused and don't screw up."
"Okay, I'll try. I just want this night to be perfect for her." I said slightly calmer.
Jeff flew back onto my head. "Atta pony. Now, there's a few things you have to do before you go."
I raised an eye brow. "Like what."
"Well first off. Bathe, you smell like somepony dragged you out of a pile of garbage and then threw you back in. and second. Outfits, we need to get you something that says I'm a love pony."
I let out a small sigh. "Okay, I'll go to Rarity's Boutique after I'm finished this job."
Jeff crossed his wings. "Aaaaand."
"And bathe." I said in an annoyed tone.
"Tonight's gonna rock, bro." Jeff yelled
After work, we reached the Boutique. When we entered it, we saw Rarity drawing new dress designs.
"Hey Rarity." I called out.
Rarity turned to see us and came up to us. "Hello Matt, what brings you here? Shouldn't you be getting ready for tonight?"
I walked passed her and looked around the store. "Yeah, but I don't have anything to wear. Can you make me something?" I asked.
Rarity's eyes twinkled at the opportunity. "Oh, I have just the thing. You are going to look smashing."
She then lifted a folded suit with her magic and pushed me behind some curtains with her following behind.
Behind the curtains, she started forcing the outfit on me.
"OW, careful. Ah too tight, too tight. HaHa stop it that tickles." I yelled from behind the curtains.
Rarity walked out and opened the curtains, letting me see myself in the light.
I looked down to see I was wearing a black tuxedo with a white under shirt and a black bow tie.
Rarity's smile grew as she pushed a mirror in front of me. "Now what did I tell you? Smashing Right?"
I had to admit, I looked pretty damn good.
"Yeah I like it, thanks Rarity. So how much is it?" I asked still looking at myself in the mirror.
Rarity waved her hoof. "Darling, for you it's free."
I was surprised by this and turned to her. "Really? Why?"
"Because, you're my new friend and I just know you'll show Twilight a good time." Rarity said with a small smile.
I smiled back. "Thanks Rarity, I will."
Jeff then flew in front of Rarity. "So, you got anything for me sunshine?"
Rarity tapped he chin. "I think I have an idea." Her horn then glowed and she made a small bow tie out of black fabric and tied it around Jeff's neck.
Jeff looked in the mirror and frowned. "That's….great."
Me and Rarity both laughed at his comment.
That night: at the dance
I walked into the town square with Jeff and Spike on my back. Spike was wearing a black tuxedo as well.
Jeff and Spike got off my back and I looked around for Twilight but I couldn't see her.
"Where is she? I hope she's alright." I said in a worried tone.
Spike patted my shoulder. "Don't worry; she said she'd be here."
A few minutes later, I saw Rarity, Applejack, Pinkie Pie, Fluttershy and Rainbow Dash walk into the town square.
I walked up to them hoping to see Twilight but I still couldn't see her.
Rarity then came up beside me, "Matthew, may I present….your date."
With that, Rainbow Dash and Applejack stepped apart, revealing Twilight in a dark purple glittery dress with a diamond necklace.
My jaw dropped at the sight of her and Rarity closed it with her hoof.
Twilight walked up to me. "Twilight…..wow….you look…..wow," I said with my eyes wide.
She blushed slightly and gave me a sweet smile. "Thanks, you don't look bad yourself."
I blushed myself and looked down at my suit, "Thanks, so would you like to dance."
"Not yet. First, I want to introduce you to someone close to me." She said as she walked passed me with me following.
We walked to the other side of the spare and my eyes widened at what I saw.
Princess Celestia sitting a some sort of throne with two of her guards at each side.
She noticed us, got up and walked up to us. "Twilight. It's good to see you. And this must be the famous Matthew you told me about."
I quickly bowed down. "Yes you majesty, it is an honour to meet you." I said as plight as I could.
She raised a hoof. "The honour is all mine, I was hoping Twilight would find a colt she'd like. So Matt, how did you come to Ponyville?"
I then stood back up. "Well, I just…..decided to drop in." literally.
Celestia gave me a warm smile. "Ok then. Now, you two go on; I don't want to keep you away from the dance floor."
With that, me and Twilight walked into the middle of the town square and started dancing together.
We danced for an hour and we were really enjoying it until we heard somepony tap the mike, we turn to see DJ-Pon3 holding a microphone to her mouth.
"Ok everypony, were going to slow things down a bit so grab that special somepony and pull them in close, REAL close." She said as she pressed a button on the stereo.
Slow dance music then started to play. Me and Twilight looked deep in each other's eyes as we got closer to each other and slowly started moving back and forth.
Twilight then got closer to me, laid her head on my shoulder and closed her eyes.
At first, I was surprised by her actions but then smiled down at her and closed my eyes as we continued dancing.
Another hour had passed and we wear still dancing. Rarity then leaned over to Applejack and started whispering to her. "I think I have a way to make things go faster."
Applejack raised an eye brow "How?"
Rarity then pulled Applejack and the others closer to her and started whispering to them.
A minute late, they all got on stage, each standing next to a microphone on a stand and Pinkie whispered something to DJ, who then she pressed another button on the stereo and the music changed.
Me and Twilight noticed the change and looked up to see our friends on stage preparing to sing.
All: "Kiss the girl (kiss the girl)
Rarity: "There you see her
Sitting there across the way
She don't got a lot to say
But there's something about her
And ya don't know why
But cha dyin' to try you wanna
Kiss the girl
Rarity and Applejack: Yes you want her
Rarity: look at her ya know ya do
Rarity and Fluttershy: It's possible she wants ya too
There is one way to ask her
Rarity: It don't take a word
Not a single word
All: go on and
Kiss the girl (kiss the girl)
Rarity: Shalalalala
My oh my
Looks like the boys to shy
Ain't gonna kiss the girl
Shalalalala
Ain't that sad
It's such a shame too bad
You're gonna miss the girl
Go on and
Kiss the girl (kiss the girl)"
Me and Twilight looked deep in each other's eyes and stated dancing to the music.
Rarity: Now's your moment
Rarity and Rainbow Dash: Dancing underneath the moon
Boy you better do it soon
No time will be better
Rarity: She don't say a word
And she won't say a word until you
Kiss the girl (kiss the girl)
Shalalalala
My oh my
Looks like the boy's too shy
Ain't gonna kiss the girl
Shalalalala
Ain't that sad
It's such a shame too bad
You're gonna miss the girl
Shalalalala
Don't be scared
You better be prepared
Go on and kiss the girl
Shalalalala
Don't stop now
Don't try to hide it how
You wanna kiss the girl
Go on and kiss the girl (kiss the girl)"
As the others kept singing, our eyes never left each other. I felt strange, like I was being pulled closer to her and I notice that she was getting closer to me.
All: go on and
Rarity: kiss the girl
Shalalalala
My oh my
Looks like the boys too shy
Ain't gonna
Rarity and Fluttershy: Kiss the girl
Rarity: Shalalalala
Ain't that sad
It's such a shame too bad
Rainbow Dash: Ya gonna miss the girl
All: Lalalala, Lalalala
Rarity: Go on and kiss the girl
Pinkie Pie: Go on and kiss that girl
All: Lalalala, Lalalala
Go on and kiss the girl
Rarity: Go on and kiss the girl
Kiss the girl
Go on and kiss the girl"
The crowd burst out into cheers except for me and Twilight. As we were getting closer to each other, we closed our eyes and got ready to feel each other's kiss
Just as our lips were about to connect, our eyes shot open to see everypony was looking at us.
"Maybe, we should take this somewhere more private?" Twilight whispered to me.
I nodded and we both walked off into Ponyville.
"I don't think that work." Applejack said.
Rarity waved a hoof. "Of cause it did, they just want a little privacy and we owe it to them to let them have it.
They all nodded in agreement and watch us walk away until we were out of sight.
After a long walk, me and Twilight were outside of Ponyville and we found a bench next to a tree.
We sat down on it and we avoided eye contact. But it didn't last long as we turned to face each other.
As we stared deep in each other's eyes, we leaned closer and closed our eyes. Until finally, our lips met in a passionate kiss.
We kissed for a few minutes then we broke the kiss and smiled at each other.
"Matt, this has been the best night of my life." Twilight said sweetly as she laid herself on my side with her head on my shoulder.
I smiled down at her and rapped my hoof around her, "Mine too" I replied.
And we enjoyed each other's comfort as we gazed at the big moon in front of us.
That took a while to type. I really hope you enjoyed this chapter.
The song is the Ashley Tisdale version of Kiss the girl from the little mermaid. I do not own any of them
Next chapter will be up soon, Goodnight everypony.
8. Called to Canterlot
I'm so glad everypony liked the last chapter; I did put a lot of effort into it, again thanks.
So here's the next chapter.
Chapter 8: Called to Canterlot
It's been 3 days since the dance and me and Twilight are now officially dating.
Twilight has become more confident with her passionate side, as have I.
While our relationship was growing, Jeff and Spike have been hanging out more including Spike's pet phoenix Peewee, who can also talk now, thanks to Jeff.
It was a calm morning; I entered the kitchen to see Spike, Jeff and Peewee eating breakfast.
"Mornin' guys, where's Twilight?" I asked as I sat down at the table.
Spike looked up from his food. "Still upstairs. Why? Missing your girlfriend already?" they all snickered.
I was about to say something when Twilight walked into the kitchen. "Morning handsome." She said as she kissed my cheek.
"Mornin' gorgeous." I said as I kissed her back.
Spike poked a finger in his mouth with a look of discussed on his face.
As Twilight walked over to the fridge, Jeff came up next to me. "Well, I can see you two are getting along well. Next thing we know, we'll be hearing wedding bells and the sound of little hooves running around." He said with a smirk.
I turned my head to face him, "Whow slow down Jeff, we just started dating a few days ago."
Jeff crossed his wings. "Yeah I know, you kept me up all night after the dance telling me about how magical it was."
I rolled my eyes "Look, we've agreed to take this relationship slow and that's what we're going to do." I then turned away from him and took a sip of my drink.
There was a moment's silence, until we heard a sound. It sounded like someone was about to throw up.
"Guy's, I think there's something wrong with Spike." Peewee said in a concerned tone.
We looked over to Spike to see that his cheeks were inflated and he was holding his stomach. "I think he's gonna be sick. Quick, somepony get a bucket!" Jeff said.
I then got up and walked behind Spike. "Wait a second." I raised my left hoof and slapped Spike on the back.
Spike let out a large burp and fire came out his mouth along with a scroll.
"A letter from the princess?" Twilight said as she picked up to scroll and unravelled it with her magic. She then read what the letter said.
"It's for you Matt" she said as she hovered the scroll in front of me, the letter said.
Dear Matthew
I would like you to see me in the throne room at Canterlot castle as soon as possible; I need to talk to you alone.
Princess Celestia.
I then looked pass the letter to see Twilight. "The princess says she wants to talk to me alone."
Twilight got a concerned look on her face. "What for?"
"It doesn't say, but I'm about to find out." I then headed towards the front door with Twilight following.
"Are you sure you want to go alone?" she asked with a worried tone.
I turned to face her. "She said I had to. Don't worry Twi, I'll be back as soon as I can." I then gave Twilight a small kiss on the lips. I walked out the door and took off towards Canterlot.
Canterlot
It was a long flight, but I finally landed in the middle of Canterlot and started making my way towards the castle.
It was amazing; everywhere I looked there were high class ponies, fancy shops and massive buildings.
I was so caught up in the sights that I didn't see where I was going and bumped into a high class pony.
I shook my head out of its daze and looked at who I bumped into. "Oh sorry, I didn't see you."
The class pony brushed the dust of herself. "I say, it's rude to not watch were you going." She said in a posh tone.
I raised an eye brow. "Hey, I said I was sorry."
She then looked up and down my body. "Yes, I heard you the first time. Now if you'll excuse me, I can't waste my time talking to a Pegasus of….your class."
I gave her a slight glare. "What's that supposed to mean?"
She then started pointing at different parts of my body and criticizing them. "Well first off. Your mane is atrocious, have you ever heard of a comb? I can tell you didn't bathe this morning, you smell foul. And just look at your cutie mark. I mean, what is it anyway? Some sort of device? Well whatever it is, I just know it's not civilized.
She then walked passed me with her nose in the air and I continued walking towards the castle. "Yeah well, at least I don't waste my fortune betting on Wonderbolt races. Yeah, that's what I should've said." I mumbled under my breath.
I finally reached the castle and I walked up to the front doors but was stopped by a royal guard's wing.
"I'm afraid you can't go in there sir" the guard said a deep voice.
"The princess asked me to see her" I said as I showed him the letter. "Very well, follow me." He said as he opened the doors and walked inside with me following.
We walked down a large hall way with a lot of things in it, portraits of past rulers, priceless vases and there was even a bust of Celestia's head.
The guard open the big double doors leading to the throne room. Inside was a large room with large windows and at the end of the room was Princess Celestia sitting on her throne.
The guard stepped forward. "Your majesty, I believe you summoned this young Pegasus."
She looked down at me. "Yes thank you, you may go now guard."
With that the guard walked out the doors and shut them behind him.
I turned to face the princess only to be surprised to see her right in front of me. "WHOW, how'd you do that?"
She lowered her head down to my level. "There's alot of things I can do and a lot of thing that I know, secret things."
I raided an eye brow. "Like what?" I was becoming nervous.
"I know what you are Matt, I know where your truly from." She said in a serious tone.
Oh no. "How do you know?" I asked in a nervous tone.
She gave me a sweet smile. "I've always know. And I must say, you have been doing well for yourself since you came to Equestria, especially towards Twilight."
I then frowned and lowered my head. "I…..I'm sorry, I didn't mean to lie to her, I just wanted everypony to like me and I thought-"
I was cut off by Celestia. "You thought that if everypony knew that you're not a pony they wouldn't like you."
My head shot up to her. "YES, that's exactly it. But, now I feel bad about doing it, I don't know what to do."
"You can tell her the truth!" she said in her sweet voice.
"But what if she resents me for lying, she'll dump me and kick me out the library, I don't want to lose her." I said in a worried tone.
Celestia placed a hoof on my shoulder. "Twilight is an understanding and caring pony, I doubt she would do something like that, especially to the only colt she's ever liked."
I still frowned. "I just want her to know that I truly care about her and I'm willing to do anything to make her happy, I'd even give up my old life to be with her." I lowered my head again.
Celestia raised an eye brow. "Really? Don't you want to return to your family back on your home world?
"Well…..I'm not saying I don't love them. But back home I had nothing, no friends, no job, no girlfriend, nothing. But here I have all those things and….I want to keep them." I said calmly.
Celestia then went into deep thought and then smiled, "Matt, I'm going to make you a deal but you have to promise that whichever choice you make, Twilight will know the truth by the end of the day." I nodded in agreement.
"Matt, you have two choices. You can ether say your goodbyes to all your friends and return to your home world. Or become a pony permanently and stay here with Twilight. If you choose to stay as a pony, you can never be a human again." She said in a calm voice.
What do I do? Can I just leave my family just like that? I want to stay with Twilight but I don't want to hurt my family. Well….back home I was going to leave home eventually, guess it's going to happen sooner than we thought.
"I choose to stay here with Twilight." I said
"Very well." Celestia said as her horn began to glow yellow. Suddenly I started to glow yellow and with a white flash, the glow disappeared.
"There, you are now a pony permanently." Celestia said
As I look at my body I couldn't help but think of my family. "I will miss them. But, I'm better here and I have to move on." I thought with a small tear in my eye.
I forced a small smile on my face "Thank you princess, I'll tell Twilight the truth. But, first I need a moment to myself." I then walked out the throne room.
"Or maybe, you don't have to." Celestia said as her horn started glowing again and she disappeared in a flash.
Ponyville: Park
I was next to the fountain looking in the water, thinking about what to do next.
"Well that's it; I can never be a human again. If Twilight kicks me out, I'm right back where I started." I said to myself.
"Well, I wouldn't blame her if she did." Said a familiar voice.
"Who said that?" I said as I looked around. "Down here genius." Said the voice.
I looked down to see my reflection in the water with an angry look on his face.
I raised an eye brow. "Now, I KNOW you didn't say that"
"Yes I did, I'm your conscience and don't you think this lie has gone on long enough?" my conscience said.
"Yes, but how do I tell her. I mean, I can't just walk into the library and say Hey Twilight, just want you to know I'm not a real pony and I've been lying to you since we met." I said in a frustrated tone.
"Look Matt; like the princess said, Twilight is an understanding and caring pony. I'm sure she'll forgive you." My conscience said in a calm voice.
I let out a big sigh. "Yeah, your right. I'll go and tell her now….hello?" I looked down to see that my reflection was following my actions again. Guess that means he's gone.
I then headed off back to Ponyville.
Library
I walked up to the front door and took a deep breath. "Here go's"
I walked through the door, shut it behind me and looked around for Twilight.
"Twilight, I'm home. Listen, there's something I need to tell you." I called out.
I walked into the next room, not only did I find Twilight but I saw Celestia next to her.
"Twilight, what's the princess doing here?" I asked nervously.
Twilight turned to Celestia. "Go on, tell him" Celestia said.
Twilight then walked up to me with a small smile on her face. "I know Matt, I know everything now. She said sweetly.
My eyes widened and I was silence for a moment, my ears then lowered. "Twilight, I'm so sorry for lying. I just wanted everypony to like me and I didn't think anypony would-" my sentence was stopped by Twilight placing her hoof on my mouth.
Twilight then gave me a warm smile. "Matt, I don't care what you use to be. I just care that you're you." She then took her hoof off my mouth.
"So, you're not mad that I lied about myself?" I asked calmly.
"No, I'm sure if I was in your position I'd make up stuff too." Her smile grew and all the presser was taken off me.
"But, I do have one question. You gave up you old life to stay here, why?" Twilight asked.
I moved closer to her. "I'd give up a hundred lives if it meant being with you."
Twilight then started to get tears in her eyes; I saw this and gently wiped them with my hoof.
I then smiled. "And hey, it's not like your dating a different species of something. I mean, I am a real pony now so it's ok."
"I know…..Hey Matt, can I ask you something." She asked.
I tilted my head. "What is it?"
"I don't know what a human is or what their worlds like, can you tell me sometime." She asked with a smile.
I smiled back. "Sure I can, but you have to promise me somethin'!"
"What is it?" she asked curiously.
I then had a serious look on my face. "You have to promise you won't treat me any different than how you've been treating me since I got here.
She gave me a warm smile "Deal" we then shared a warm hug and Celestia smiled at the sight. "Well, I'll leave you two alone." With that, her horn glowed and she disappeared in a flash.
I walked Twilight to bed and said goodnight to her. But as I was about to go in my room, I heard a noise behind me.
I turned to see Twilight shivering slightly "Are you ok Twi?"
She looked at me. "It's cold tonight. Matt, feel free to say no but do you mind…..sleeping next to me tonight. You know, to keep me warm." She blushed slightly.
I blushed as well. "Errr, no, Not at all.
She then budged over to make room on the bed and I climbed in with her. Twilight then nuzzled up to me and laid her head on my chest. "Goodnight Matt."
I smiled and wrapped my hoof around her "Goodnight Twi." We then fell asleep in each other's warmth.
There you go, Twilight knows now and she's alright with it. Hope you enjoyed this chapter and next one will be up soon.
Goodnight everypony.
9. Bad kitty bug bat thing
I'm glad so many people are enjoying my story so far,
Chapter 9: Bad kitty-bug-bat-thing
As the sun rose in Ponyville, I was starting to wake up. I rolled over on the bed and felt something.
I opened my eyes to see Twilight right in front of me. She was asleep, but her nose was touching mine.
I slowly moved of the bed, trying not to wake her. As it turned around, Jeff appeared in front of me with his wings crossed and a smirk on his face.
"Ok, I know what you're thinkin' and this isn't what it looks like" I quickly said.
"Oh really, looks to me like you slept with Twilight last night." Jeff said with his smirk growing bigger.
"Nothing happened last night; she was cold and she wanted me to keep her warm, that it." I said as I was getting embarrassed.
"Is that what she told you?" he asked still smirking.
I rolled my eyes. "Whatever dude, I know what happened." I then walked passed him and went down stairs.
"Well, somepony woke up on the wrong side of the love bed." Jeff said as he followed me.
That afternoon: The Ponyville market
Me, Twilight, Spike and Jeff where in the market shopping for fruit and vegetables, Peewee decided to stay at home today. I (being a gentlecolt) offered to carry all the bags.
I had two in my mouth, and two in each side of my saddlebags, not to mention Jeff and Peewee were on my back. They were heavy but I wasn't going to make Twilight carry anything, it was my way of saying thanks for understanding my situation yesterday.
As we were walking. We saw Fluttershy and Applejack selling apples up ahead, so we walked over to them.
When we reached them. Applejack waved her hoof "Howdy Twilight, Matt. What's crackin'?"
I spat the bags out my mouth. "Well right now, my spine." I said as I struggled to stand.
Twilight turned to me. "Are you sure you don't want me to carry anything?" she had a sound of concern in her voice.
I waved a hoof. "No no, I've got them. No girlfriend of mine is going to bust her back."
She put a hoof on my shoulder. "Matt, that's sweet of you. But, I won't bust my back because I can just levitate the bags with my magic. Plus, if I don't the only one who'll bust their back is you."
I didn't have time to say anything as my strength gave in and I collapsed to the ground.
Twilight then detached the saddlebags off of me and helped me back up.
"So, what can I do ya for?" Applejack said.
"We're just buying apples, how much is a full bag?" I asked.
She pulled a bag of apples out of her wagon. "3 bits." She answered.
I got the money out my saddlebag and gave it to her and she gave me the bag.
Fluttershy then walked up to Twilight. "So, do you have any plans for tonight?" she asked
"What kind of plans?" Twilight asked as she titled her head.
Applejack then joins up with them. "Ya know, special plan with a certain somepony."
Twilight suddenly got what they were saying. "Oh, no not tonight. But tomorrow night we're going out for a dinner date." She said with a smile.
"Oh, that's wonderful and so romantic. I wish I had somepony like that." Fluttershy said.
Applejack nodded. "Yeah, we could all do with somepony in our lives."
"Don't worry girls, you'll find your colts eventually. I mean, I use to think I wouldn't find somepony until I met Matt." Twilight said with a sweet smile.
Applejack and Fluttershy smiled and nodded.
Suddenly, we all heard a girl scream. I turned my head to face Jeff on my back. "Jeff, what's wrong."
He glared down at me. "Dude that wasn't me."
Suddenly, ponies started running passed us in fear. I looked in the direction they were running from and my eyes widened at what I saw.
A manticore with glowing red eyes was rampaging through the streets.
"Is that a manticore? But I thought they only stayed in the Ever Free Forest. What's one doing here?" I asked in a shocked tone.
Twilight turned to me. "I don't know, but its terrorising Ponyville. Fluttershy, go see if you can calm it down."
Fluttershy nodded and flew towards the manticore. Once she reached it, she started talking to it.
"Now now, calm down little pussy cat. It's alright, I won't hurt-OHF." Fluttershy was interrupted as the manticore whacked her with its paw, sending her crashing to the ground.
"FLUTTERSHY." We all screamed out.
Fluttershy slowly leaned up and froze in fear as she saw the manticore about to slam its paw down on her.
"Oh no you don't you miss matched sack of crap." I yelled as I flew off towards the manticore, picking up more and more speed with every flap.
And before the manticore could slam down on Fluttershy, I punched my hoof into its jaw, making it stumble back slightly.
I turned to Fluttershy. "Are you okay." I asked as I helped her up.
"Yeah. I'm fine, thank you. But why couldn't I calm it down?" she asked me.
"I don't know, but there'll be time to wonder later. Right now you and the others have to get out of here." I said as I turned to face the manticore, who was getting back up.
"What about you?" she asked in a concerned voice.
I turned my head to face her. "I'll hold it off, now go." With that, Fluttershy galloped towards Twilight and the others.
When Fluttershy reached them, Twilight had a worried look on her face. "What's Matt doing?"
Fluttershy looked at her. "He said he would buy us time and hold off the manticore."
Twilight's eyes widened. "HE'S WHAT?" she screamed.
Twilight turned to Applejack. "We have to help him; he can't fight that thing on his own." Applejack then nodded in agreement.
"Come on ya'll, he needs our help." Applejack said as she turned to the others and then ran towards me with Twilight following.
Spike and Jeff looked at each other. "Let's kick some manticore butt." Jeff said before he flew off toward the fight with Spike following.
As the manticore slowly approached me, I was preparing to fight when Twilight and the others appeared beside me. "I thought I told you to run."
Twilight turned her head to me. "You're not doing this alone Matt."
"Yeah, if you're fightin' then we're with ya all the way." Applejack said with a confident smile.
I gave them a loving smile for this, I've never had friend that stuck by me like this. I'm so lucky to have them by my side.
The moment was ruined by the manticore letting out a loud roar as it charged towards us. We then charged towards it.
As we were getting closer to the manticore. It raised its front paws in the air and as it was about to slam them down on us, the others split apart from me and I rolled between its back legs.
The manticore spun around, grabbed me by surprise and held me up; it formed a fist with its other paw. But before it could punch me a watermelon slatted in its face.
Spike was throwing watermelons in the air and Applejack was bucking them with her hind-legs.
Two more watermelons hit its face, forcing it to lose its grip on me and I fell to the ground.
The manticore roared and charged towards Applejack and Spike. With a flash of light, Twilight appeared between Applejack and Spike, her horn then glowed and they all disappeared in a flash. Causing the manticore to crash into a house.
With a flash, Twilight, Applejack and Spike reappeared beside me.
The manticore shook the dust of its face and spun around to face us. It then charged at us again.
"Everypony scatter." I yelled before we split up around the manticore.
The manticore stopped charging and looked in different directions, trying to see which one of us would charge at it first.
The manticore then felt something at its back leg; it turned it head to see Fluttershy kicking its back leg. She saw it give her a fearsome growl and she let out a small scream, galloped off and hid behind Applejack's wagon while covering her eyes with her hooves.
The manticore walked up to the wagon, grabbed it and threw in the air. The wagon landed on a roof of a nearby house and dangled off it slightly.
The manticore raised one of its paws and formed a fist. But before it could throw it down on Fluttershy, Jeff landed on its nose, bit down on its whiskers and yanked them out.
The manticore roared out in pain and whacked Jeff off its nose, Jeff then crashed to the ground next to Fluttershy.
I then saw the wagon on the roof and got a crazy idea. I galloped up to the house and positioned myself under the wagon.
As the manticore was about to hit Fluttershy and Jeff, I picked up a rock and threw it at the manticore.
The rock hit it on the back of the head, it spun around to face me. "COME ON." I yelled encouraging it to come at me.
The manticore then charged towards me, I waited until the perfect moment before I jumped out the way, causing it to crash into the house. The vibrations on the house caused the wagon to fall off the roof and hit the manticore right on the head, knocking it unconscious.
I slowly approached the manticore and it started to wake up. I was about to get ready to fight again until I looked at its eyes.
Its eyes weren't glowing red anymore; they were back to its normal eyes. It then started looking around as if it didn't know where it was.
Twilight and the others then came up beside me. "What's it doing?" Spike asked.
I didn't take my sight of the manticore. "I don't know…..Fluttershy, it looks a little calmer now, see if you can talk to it!" with that, Fluttershy walked up to the manticore and started stroking it.
"There's a good kitty. Did that big mean wagon hurt your little head." She said in a sweet voice, the manticore then started purring. This was getting stranger by the second.
Afterwards, Fluttershy was taking the manticore back towards the Ever Free Forest.
Me and Twilight turned to each other, "I don't get it, why did Fluttershy's skills work now when they didn't work before? And what was with the glowing red eyes? I mean what was wrong with it?" I asked.
"It was under mind control." A familiar voice said behind us.
We turned around to see Celestia with a serious look on her face.
"Mind control? You mean somepony was controlling that thing?" I said
She nodded. "Yes, but that's just it; nopony, not even I can cast a mind control spell that powerful. So the question is….who could?" she said with a serious look.
Me and Twilight looked at each other in wonder.
Meanwhile: Far away dark mountains
Four silhouetted alicorn figures with glowing red eyes were watching us in a large green pool.
"Grrrr, they made me lose control of that beast. I can't believe it." A male voice said.
"How could you have lost that battle? You were up against small ponies." A female voice said.
"It was that Pegasus, he interfered with our plan. He must be punished." A second male voice said in an angry tone.
"Calm yourselves, he will perish just like everypony else, but remember our real target." A third deep male voice said.
"Yes, soon we shall strike and have our revenge." The female voice said.
"But what about those ponies? We can't proceed with them interfering, we have to find a way to keep them out of the way!" the first male voice said.
"Allow me to take care of them; they won't stand a chance against me." The second male voice said.
"NO, we cannot reveal ourselves just yet, but maybe we don't have to be the ones to distract them. I have somepony in mind who can keep them occupied, somepony tricky, deceitful…..and very cruel." The third deep voice said as he gave an evil grin.
Now how was that? Something's going down in Equestria.
Hope you enjoyed this chapter and next chapter will be up soon.
Goodnight everypony.
10. Dinner date and a return
Welcome back Bronies and I hope you enjoy this chapter.
Chapter 10: Dinner date and an evil return
It was a peaceful sunny day in Ponyville and I was walking through the streets with Jeff on my back as I was looking for the perfect restaurant for my dinner date with Twilight tonight.
As I was walking around, other ponies kept looking at me and started whispering to each other. I was worried that it had something to do with me fighting that manticore yesterday.
I then saw Rainbow Dash up ahead; she noticed me and zoomed right up to my face. "Matt, is it true?" she asked in an excited tone.
I raid an eye brow nervously. "Is what true?"
"That you and the others fought off a manticore yesterday." Her smile grew bigger.
"Is that why everypony's looking at me like they are doing?" I asked.
"Yeah." She said in an even more excited tone
"Then yes, we did." I asked nervously.
She threw herself back in the air. "Oh yeah, I knew it. That is so awesome. How did you do it? Did it fight back? How big was it? Come on, give me the dete's!"
"I made a wagon fall on its head, yes it did fight back and it was the size as a regular manticore." I answered in order.
Rainbow Dash waved a hoof. "Is that all? I would have easily sent it crying back to its manticore mommy." She said as she was punching the air.
I rolled my eyes. "I bet you could but it wasn't its fault, the princess said its mind was being controlled by some mysterious source and that it takes a power far greater than her's to control the mind of something like a manticore. Doesn't that worry you?"
She tapped her chin. "Hmmm…no." with that she took off into the sky's
I shook my head and then kept on walking. "Don't worry Matt; the bad stuff is over now. We don't have to worry about something like a mind controlled manticore for a while." Jeff said with a sound of confidence in his voice.
I turned my head to face him. "I know Jeff, but it just has me on edge. I mean, what if they send something other than a manticore next time? Like Cerberus or a dragon."
Jeff flew off my back and I stopped as he landed in front of me. "I don't know, but that's not important right now; what is important is gettin' everything ready for your date with Twilight tonight." He said.
I let out a small sigh. "Your right Jeff, I have to calm down and relax; for Twilight's sake."
Jeff nodded and flew back onto my back and I started walking again.
After a while of searching, I finally found a nice looking restaurant. I walked inside to see the place packed with ponies.
I walked up to the register to see a tall pony with a mall thin mustache and a combed mane standing behind it.
"Welcome monsieur, may I help you?" he said in a French like ascent.
I gave him a small smile. "Yes, I would like to book a table for two tonight at nine 'o'clock please."
He then looked into the register, I was afraid that they would be all booked up tonight.
"We have a few tables' open tonight at that time, what type of table would you like monsieur?" he asked.
I smiled as my worry's faded. "Hmmm, what's the most romantic table you have?" I asked.
He looked down at me and then walked around the register table. "Follow me!" he said as he walked passed me with me following.
We walked through the restaurant until we came upon a pair of double doors, the French pony then opened the doors revealing a large beautiful garden.
In the middle of the garden was a gazebo with a single table in the middle. It was perfect.
"Spunky." Jeff exclaimed
"How much is it." I asked.
The French pony looked at me. "For that table, 100 bits"
It's my lucky day. I reached into my saddleback and pulled out a bag of money, I then gave him the bag.
"Will that be all monsieur?" he asked me
"Just one more thing, how much is it for somepony to play romantic music to us?" I asked with a smile.
"That would be 56 bits." He answered.
I reached into my saddlebag but I couldn't find any more bags of money. Damn, how could I be out of money already?
I turned to him. "Looks like I'll have to do without the music." I said in a disappointed tone.
"Very well, we shall hold this table for you until you return tonight." He said as we both walked back into the restaurant.
I walked out the front door of the restaurant with a small frown on my face.
"Aw man, my plan is ruined." I said. Jeff then flew off my back and started hovering next to me.
"Do you really need music on your date?" he asked.
I stopped walking and turned my head to face him. "Yes Jeff, everypony knows that the three most important things about dinner dates are a good table, a beautiful view and beautiful music in the background. I have two of those and I can't get the last one."
Jeff then landed in front of me. "If you're so desperate for music why don't you just ask me?"
I raised an eye brow at him. "You want to play music on my date?"
He nodded. "Yeah dude, I know how to set the mood."
"Oh really?" I said with a smirk.
Jeff smirked back "Yeah and if I don't play good, I'll stop riding on your back for a week."
"Deal." I said as I shook his wing with my hoof.
Jeff then got on my back and I set off towards the library.
That night 9 'o' clock: the restraint
Me and Twilight entered the restaurant and walked up to the register to find the French pony behind it.
The French pony recognized me and walked from behind the register. "Welcome back monsieur and this must be your date. Please follow me."
We then followed him through the restaurant and he opened the double doors revealing the beautiful garden.
Twilight gasped at the beauty that she was seeing in front of her. "Surprise." I said with a smile.
We then walked into the gazebo and I pulled the chair back, allowing Twilight to sit down on it. After I pushed her in, I sat down on the other side of the table.
The French pony then gave us menus. "Would you like to order?"
Twilight looked through the menu and then put it down. "I would like to have the grass and daisy salad please." She said kindly.
The French pony turned to me; I didn't understand much of the food so I just went with an easy option. "Errr…I'll l have the same thing please." I said kindly.
He nodded, took the menus and walked back into the restraint.
Twilight turned to look at me. "Matt, how did you manage to do all this?" She asked with a smile.
I smiled back. "I'll always try my best to get the best for you Twilight and it gets better, I got us somepony to play music for us."
Twilight's smile grew. "Really? Who?"
"Errr…..Jeff." I said as I smiled sheepishly.
She then had a confused look on her face. "Jeff? But Jeff's not even here."
Suddenly, Jeff crashed in the middle of the table. I narrowed my eyes. "Now he's here."
"Sorry about that, we had to rush here." he said as he brushed the dust off his feathers.
"We?" Me and Twilight said at the same time.
Suddenly, Spike fell in the middle of the table.
"Spike? How did you even do that?" Twilight asked in shock.
Spike pulled his head up. "That's not important." He answered.
Spike, who was holding a small guitar and Jeff then got off the table and stood in front of the table with us facing them.
"This song goes out to you two." Jeff said.
He then started to whistle in a rhythm and Spike started playing the guitar softly as Jeff then started to sing.
Jeff: "Wasn't really thinking, wasn't looking, wasn't searching for an answer
In the moonlight
When I saw your face
Saw you looking at me; saw you peeking out from under moon beams
Through the palm tree's
Swaying in the breeze
I know
I'm feeling so much more than ever before
And so
I'm giving more to you
Then I thought I could do
Don't know how it happened, don't know why, but you don't really need a reason
When the stars shine
Just to fall in love
Made to love each other, made to be together for a life time
In the sunshine
Flying in the sky
I know
I'm feeling so much more than ever before
And so
I'm giving more to you
Then I thought I could do"
As Jeff was whistling again and Spike kept playing his guitar, me and Twilight looked into each other's eyes and smiled as we thought about the words of the song.
Jeff: "Now I know love is real
So when sky high
As the angels dry
Letting you and I
Fly love."
Me and Twilight then clapped both our hooves together as Jeff and Spike did a playful bow.
After a short wait, two waiters came to the table with our orders; they placed the food in front of us. I looked down at the bowl of grass and daisy's, I hesitated at first but then I saw Twilight give me a sweet smile which melted my heart.
Usually I don't like trying new foods, but if it meant making Twilight happy I was willing to do anything.
I slowly lowered my head to the bowl and took a bite out the salad. My eyes then shot open at the taste, "Mmmm….this is good."
Twilight's smile grew "I'm glad you like it."
With that we both went back to our food and enjoyed the rest of the night, Jeff and Spike decided to give us some privacy and then left the restaurant to go back to the library.
After we finished our food and left the restaurant, me and Twilight where on the road back to the library.
Suddenly, I felt a drop of water on my head and then another until it started to rain. Me and Twilight ran to the library as the rain came down heavier and heavier.
When we reached the library, we ran through the door and I shut it behind us. We were both soaked and out of breath.
I looked over to Twilight and my eyes grew slightly, my face burned red as I stared at her wet fur and dripping mane.
She looked over to me with a confused look on her face. "What are you looking at?" she asked.
I snapped back to reality. "Err nothing; I was just wondering…..where are the towels?"
She pointed to the bathroom door. "They should be in the bathroom."
I nodded, "Alright, I'll get them; you get the fire place going." She nodded and walked into the next room.
I then walked into the bathroom and only saw one towel; I grabbed it with my mouth and walked out the bathroom.
As I walked into the next room, I saw Twilight sitting in front of the flames of the fire place, I was stunned by how beautiful she looked in the glow of the fire.
I walked over to her and covered her with the towel and sat next to her. She then noticed I wasn't wearing a towel, "Where's your towel?"
I turned my head to her, "There was only one. It's ok, you can have it, I'm not that cold." I turned my head back to the fire.
She smiled warmly and I felt half the towel wrap around me, I looked to Twilight to see that we were wrapped together in the same towel.
She then nuzzled her head into my shoulder with a smile; I smiled down at her and closed my eyes as we shared each other's warmth.
Spike and Jeff then walked through the door and saw us together; they looked at each other and smiled as they backed out the room.
Twilight looked up to me, "I really enjoyed tonight Matt."
I looked down to her and smiled. "So did I."
We then moved closer until we were locked in a passionate kiss. We then broke the kiss and went back to sharing each other's warmth.
Meanwhile: Canterlot gardens
The night was quiet and the guards were patrolling the grounds. Two of them were patrolling the gardens.
Suddenly. Two bolts of fire burst from the ground, one was black and the other was dark purple. The guards put the wings in front of their face to shield them from the heat.
When the flames faded and disappeared, two of the silhouetted alicorns stood in their place.
The guards charged at them, the alicorns horn's then glowed and the guards were sent flying back crashing into the ground, knocking them unconscious.
The alicorns then started walking through the gardens. "Are you sure we can trust him?" the male alicorn said.
The second alicorn turned its head to face the other. "No, but I trust our brothers decision." The female alicorn said.
"Our brother has been a bit paranoid lately, let's hope he knows what he's doing bring this freak into this" the male alicorn said
They continued walking until they came to the goal. "Here he is." The female alicorn said
They both glared their as at the sight of Discord's statue with a horrified look still on his face.
The two alicorns horn's then glowed and the statue started to glow as well until it stared cracking.
It continued to crack until it burst apart and Discord collapsed to the ground. He then started to slowly get up.
"Wha….what happened?" Discord said as he held his head, he looked at the two alicorns. "Who are you?"
"Our names are not important; we have a job for you Discord." The female alicorn said
Discord got up off the ground, crossed his arms and raised an eye brow. "What kind of job?"
"Do you remember the unicorn know as Twilight Sparkle?" the female alicorn asked.
The memories came flooding back to Discord. "Yes, she and her little friends turned me back to stone, I take it this job involves her?"
"Not just her. You see, she has been busy since you've been gone. She has a coltfriend, Matthew I think his name is." The male alicorn said.
Discord stroked his beard. "Really? Weird name, but who's complaining. So what do you want me to do?"
The two alicorns grinned evilly.
So how did you like that?
The song used in the chapter was called Fly love by Jamie Foxx from the animated movie Rio. I don't own anything.
Next chapter will be up soon. Goodnight everypony.
11. Meeting chaos
Chapter 11: Meeting chaos
As the sun rose in Ponyville, I was still asleep in Twilight's bed. As I started to wake up, I felt around the side of the bed for Twilight but I couldn't feel her.
I opened my eyes to see that she wasn't in bed, witch disappointed me.
I got up out of bed and headed down stairs where I saw Twilight reading a book. I walked up behind her and covered her eyes with my hooves. "Guess who?" I said playfully.
Twilight giggled. "Matt, I'm reading something." I removed my hooves from her eyes and she turned around to face me.
My heat melted at the sweet smile she was giving me. "You're the most beautiful girl I've ever met Twilight." I said sweetly.
Twilight blushed and came closer to me. "And you're the sweetest, most handsome colt I've ever met." She said sweetly.
We both smiled at each other lovingly before we moved into a passionate kiss.
Jeff then came into the room holding a cup of coffee and a newspaper under his other wing, he then noticed us. "Oh, get a room you two! It's too early"
Me and Twilight broke the kiss and looked at Jeff. "Good morning to you too, grumpy." I said with a smirk.
Jeff just rolled his eyes and walked passed us.
Me and Twilight then moved into another kiss until I felt something hard hit the back of my head, forcing me to pull away from Twilight.
I rubbed the back of my head and looked behind me to see a book lying on the floor. "Jeff, was that really necessary?" I said in an annoyed tone.
He turned to face me. "That wasn't me dude."
I then glared at him. "Well, you're the only one there and I'm pretty shore that it didn't throw itself."
Suddenly, the book case behind Jeff started to shake and a book came flying out of it. It flew towards me and Twilight, we both ducked and the book hit the wall behind us, I looked over to the book. "Then again."
Suddenly, more books started to fly out of all the book cases, with some of them hitting me and Twilight.
We ran to the table, tipped it over and used it as a shield. "What the friv is going on" I yelled.
"I don't know, but we have to stop this before the entire library is turned upside down. If only I could get my overpowering spell book." Twilight said.
"What does it look like?" I asked.
"It's the book with three stars on the cover." Twilight answered.
Jeff then flew on top of the table. "You guys have to do somethin' before-." Jeff was interrupted by a book whacking into him and smacking him against the wall.
I looked down to the book to see it had three stars on the cover. "Nice work Jeff."
I picked up the book as Jeff got up from the ground. "Thanks….what'd I do?" he said I a daze.
I gave the book to Twilight and she started flipping through the pages until she stopped. She read the page she was on and her horn started to glow.
And with a bright flash from her horn, the books stopped in mid-air before they all fell to the ground. Me and Twilight were finally able to come out from behind the table.
At that moment, Spike and Peewee came into the room. "Guys hurry, there's something going on at-." Spike stopped in the middle of his sentence and looked around the room. "Whow, what happened here?"
I shrugged. "I don't know, Twilight what do you think happened?" I asked as I turned to face Twilight.
She just shrugged to me and I turned back to face Spike, "Anyway, what did you want to say Spike?"
"Oh yeah, I was looking out the window and saw something going on at Sugar Cube Corner, you should check it out!" Spike said.
Me and Twilight nodded to each other and we galloped out the door with Jeff on my back and Spike running behind us with Peewee on his shoulder.
Sugar Cube Corner
When we reached Sugar Cube Corner, we looked at the cake-like building to see that it didn't look like anything had happened. We then walked into the shop and our eyes widened.
There was cake and pie splattered everywhere, on the floor, on the walls and on the ceiling.
"Ok, everypony split up and see if you can find anypony." I said turning to everypony.
We all split up to different parts of the shop to find anypony that may still be here.
"Pinkie? Mrs Cake, Mr Cake, anypony home?" I yelled out throughout the house, until I heard mumbling coming from behind me.
I turned around, but all that was in front of me was a wall with a large blob of cake stuck to it. Suddenly, I heard the mumbling again and the big blob of cake on the wall was shaking.
"AHHH, THE CAKES ALIVE; WE'RE ALL DOOMED." Jeff yelled.
The blob of cake then peeled off the wall and fell on the floor, leaving a clear patch in the shape of Pinkie Pie on the wall. Pinkie Pie then got up out of the cake.
I turned my head to face Jeff. "It's just Pinkie."
Jeff looked towards Pinkie. "Oh…AHHH, IT'S PINKIE; WE'RE ALL DOOMED."
I rolled my eyes and walked towards Pinkie. "Pinkie, what happened here?"
"Well, I was just here getting ready to open the shop when all the cakes and pies were suddenly flying everywhere and splattering everywhere. I mean, it would have been fun if it weren't for the splattering everywhere part." Pinkie said with her eye wide.
"Where's Mr and Mrs Cake?" I asked. Pinkie started looking around the room. "They were here with me when it started."
Jeff then felt something drip on his head; he put his wing on his head and then looked at his wing to see some more cake. He then looked up. "Sweet Celestia."
Me and Pinkie then looked up and our eyes widened at what we saw. It was Mr and Mrs Cake stuck to the ceiling with doe covering the bodies and the mouths.
"AHHHHH." We all yelled out. Twilight then galloped into the room. "What's wrong? Why are you all-AHHH." She yelled once she saw the state Mr and Mrs Cake were in.
"How did they get up there? How do we get them down?" Twilight asked in a panic like tone.
"Don't worry, I'll get them down." I said before I flew up to them. I grabbed onto Mr Cake and tried to rip him off the ceiling but he just kept slapping back into place.
I grabbed him again and gave him a powerful tug but when he slapped back into place it took me along with it and half my face got stuck to the doe.
I tried to rip myself off but the cake was too sticky and my head kept being pulled back to the doe.
"Matt, are you stuck?" Twilight yelled up to me.
I tried pulling off again "No." I answered. I was then snapped back onto the doe. "Yes" I admitted.
Twilight rolled her eyes and her horn started to glow. I then felt her magic grab on to me and started pulling me off the ceiling, the doe then tore off my face and I was quickly pulled to the floor with a hard thud.
Twilight came up to me and helped me up "Sorry." She said with a sheepish smile.
I rubbed my head. "Don't worry, I'm alright. But how are we going to get them down?"
"I've got it." Twilight said as her horn started to glow again.
Suddenly, Applejack burst into the shop. "Twilight, Matt, you have ta come quick I need your help."
Twilight didn't turn away from her task. "Just a moment Applejack, I just have to-."
"There's no time for a moment, you guys have to come right now." Applejack interrupted before she pulled us out of the shop with Spike, Jeff, Peewee and Pinkie Pie following.
Mr and Mrs Cake looked at each other and let out a large sigh through their nostrils.
Sweet Apple Arches
We galloped on the road that lead to Sweet Apple Arches and when we got there our mouths dropped at what we saw.
The barn was floating in mid-air and the apple trees had come to life and they were using their branches as arms and throwing apples at Big Macintosh, Applebloom and Granny Smith who were standing behind a wagon with pans on their heads as helmets.
"This has to be the weirdest thing I've ever seen." I said with my eyes wide open.
Jeff turned his head to face me. "Yeah, first books attacked us, then we found a cake covered Pinkie Pie and now this?"
"I don't know what happened, I was working in the apple fields and when I came back everything was like this." Applejack said.
"Well why are we still standing here? Let's get down there and do this." I said before I galloped into the farm land with everypony following me.
We galloped up to the three farm ponies and kept our heads down to avoid the apples being thrown by the trees.
Granny Smith turned her head to face us. "Applejack, you brought your friends. Good, we need all the help we can get" she then grabbed a bunch of pans.
"Here, put these on. They'll protect ya heads." Granny Smith said as she placed pans on our heads. Which felt kinda weird.
We then started picking up apples and threw them back at the trees; I was having trouble throwing them because I was still having trouble picking up with hooves.
"Come on sonny, my grand pappy could throw better then you and he was half blind." Granny Smith shouted behind me, which startled me and I started throwing faster.
We had been throwing apples for an hour and the trees weren't backing down. We managed to hit some of the trees but they just kept picking the apples back up and threw them back at us.
"THAT'S IT." Twilight yelled before he horn glowed and a wave of magic spread throughout the farm land with a bright glow.
When the light faded, we opened our eyes to see that the trees had returned to normal and the barn was back on the ground. "Nice one Twi." I said with a smile.
The three farm ponies examined the farm. "Now what in Equestria was that all about?" Applebloom asked.
Spike walked up to her. "We don't know, but a lot of weird things have been happening today."
Applejack then looked around the farm. "Well it looks like it all over now." She then turned to me and Twilight. "Thank ya'all kindly, we're all mighty grateful for your help, ain't we Big Mac?" she said as she turned head to Big Macintosh.
"Eeyup." Big Macintosh responded
Granny Smith then walked in front of us. "Yeah we owe you one and you need to work on your throw errr…what was your name again sonny?" She asked as she looked at me.
"Matthew." I answered
"What was that?" she asked holding a hoof behind her ear.
"Matthew." I said a little louder.
"WHAT?" she asked again.
"MATTHEW." I shouted.
She grabbed my hoof a shook it. "Well nice to meet cha Batthew."
"Batthew?" I said raising an eye brow.
"Nah, Big Macintosh helps me with the bath, don't cha Big Mac." She said turning her head to Big Mac.
"Eeyup." He admitted with a frown.
I slowly backed away. "Ok well, we have to get going. We have to clean the library."
"Yeah, we have to start cleanin' up our selves, see ya'all later." Applejack said as she waved her hoof.
We all said goodbye and left Sweet Apple Arches. On the way back, Pinkie Pie went in the direction back to Sugar Cube Corner. "I'd better get back to the shop, I just remembered we left Mr and Mrs Cake stuck to the ceiling."
"Ok, bye Pinkie." Twilight said waving her hoof. With that, Pinkie Pie galloped away back to the shop. We all then started walking back to the library.
Library
When we got back to the library, we opened the door and frowned at the sight of the books still scattered on the ground.
We all let out a big sigh before we went to work on cleaning up the library.
It was night time by time we finished cleaning the library. We were all so exhausted that we all collapsed "This has to be the weirdest day of my life." I said lying on the floor.
Twilight tried to turn her head to face me. "I know, I can't explain it."
I leaned up off the floor. "Well, something's going on around here. I'm going to go open a window and get some air in here."
I then walked to the window, opened it and stuck my head out to breath the fresh air. Suddenly, something caught my eye, a tall hooded figure walking through the streets.
"What the hell is that? I've never seen anything like that here." I thought to myself as I brought my head back in.
I then walked towards the door and opened it. "I'll be back in a minute Twi."
She gave me with a confused look. "Where are you going?"
I turned my head to face her. "I just need to check something out, don't worry I'll be back." I then walked out the door and closed it behind me.
I saw the hooded figure walk further away from the library and I started to follow it.
Filed outside of Ponyville
I followed the figure to an open field outside of Ponyville and I saw it standing in the middle, facing away from me.
I walked up to it and there was silence between us, I was about to break the silence before the figure beat me to it.
"You must be Matthew! I must say you don't look how I imagined you." The figure said not turning to face me.
I raised an eye brow. "And you are?"
"Oh just a wondering soul, returning to where it all started, trying to find some good fun….like the kind I caused today." The figure said turning slightly.
My eyes widened slightly. "That was you? But why would…..wait! I know your voice." No…it can't be him.
The figure then turned around, grabbed his cloak and ripped it off, revealing himself.
"Discord" I said in a scared tone.
"Oh, so you've heard of me! Good, because I've heard a lot about you, even your little relationship with Twilight. To be honest, I can't see why anypony would date her, she's sooooo boring." Discord said as he lied on his back in the air.
"Don't you dare talk that way about her." I said in an angry tone.
Discord clapped his hands. "Oh good, you're getting angry. Anger builds energy and you're all going to need it for what I have planned for you."
I raised and eye brow with an angered look still on my face. "What plans?"
With a flash of light, Discord suddenly appeared beside me. "Well you see, I have a game in mind and you, Twilight and her friends are going to play."
"And if we refuse?" I asked.
Discord placed his arm around me. "Well, then you'll have to live with me living in Canterlot Castle."
I pushed his arm off me. "What do you mean Discord?"
Discord then hovered in the air and rotated around me. "That's where the games being held and Celestia is the prise."
I didn't take my eyes off him as he rotated. "You'll never hold her captive, she see you coming a mile away."
Discord stopped and chuckled. "Oh Matthew, it's already done and she's waiting for you to save her."
I gasped as my eyes widened in horror.
Discord waved his talon hand. "Now run along Matthew, you have a game to be ready for." He then snapped his fingers and he disappeared in a white flash.
"Oh, and tell Twilight I said Hi." Discords voice echoed in the air.
I then galloped back to Ponyville to tell Twilight about this shocking news.
Library
I galloped through the door of the library, slammed the door behind me and lowered my head to try and catch my breath.
Twilight and Spike walked up to me with concerned looks on their faces. "Matt, what's wrong? You look like you've seen a ghost." Twilight said.
I brought my head back up and looked at her. "More like a spirit."
She gave me a confused look. "What do you mean?"
"Let's just say…Discord says Hi." I said.
"DISCORD?" Twilight and Spike yelled in horror with the eyes wide open.
There you go, Discord's causing trouble again. Can Matt, Twilight and their friends stop him?
Find out next chapter, which is coming soon.
Goodnight everypony.
12. Castle Discord
In the song in this chapter I had to change some lyrics so they'd match the story.
Chapter 12: Castle Discord
Rarity, Fluttershy, Rainbow Dash, Pinkie Pie and Applejack all galloped into the library with Jeff leading the way.
"Guys…..I got….the others…..like you asked." Jeff said trying to catch his breath.
I walked up to him. "Thanks Jeff, go take a lie down buddy."
He stuck one of his feathers up to make a thumbs up and walked towards the stairs.
Applejack then came up to me. "Jeff told us the news. Is it true? Is he really back?"
I nodded. "Yeah, Me and Twilight already have a plan set up in the other room, follow me!" I then walked over to the next room with the others following me.
We walked into the next room to see Twilight pacing back and forth, she then noticed us come in. "Good, you're all here. Let's get started."
Everypony then sat on the floor facing the wall and I walked over to the wall and pulled down a diagram of the castle.
I turned to face everypony and pointed at the diagram. "Ok, we all know that Discord has returned and has taken over Canterlot castle. He claims that he's holding Princess Celestia captive and that the only way to help her is if we play some kind of game he's holding at the castle."
Everypony nodded to say they understood.
I nodded back. "Ok, here's what we're gonna do. We're gonna take the train to Canterlot, get inside the castle, open the castle vault, get the Elements of Harmony, make our way to the throne room; Discord would most likely be there, hopefully the Princess is with him and use the Elements to defeat Discord and save the Princess. Are ya with me?"
"YEAH." They all yelled.
"Then let's do this thing." I said before we all galloped out of the room.
"Spike, Jeff, Peewee, you stay here ok!" I said face them.
"Should we come with you?" Jeff asked.
I put a hoof up. "No, he only wants us. If he sees you he'll properly do who knows what to you."
Spike, Jeff and Peewee gulped hard.
Me, Twilight and the others then galloped out the library and headed towards the train station.
Meanwhile: Far away dark mountains
One of the silhouetted alicorns was alone in what apparently was a throne room with four thrones; each throne was next to each other. He was sitting on the throne with the alicorn skull on the top.
Suddenly, a bolt of black flames burst out the ground and when the flames cleared, one of the other alicorns stood in its place.
The alicorn kneeled. "Brother, I have grave news." A male voice said.
The other alicorn looked down from his throne. "What is it brother." A dark male voice said.
"It's Discord; he's taken Canterlot castle and hold Celestia captive. Her student and her friends are on their way to Canterlot and that green Pegasus is with them." The male voice said.
The alicorn on the throne glared down at the other. "That fool, he was supposed to lead them AWAY from Canterlot; not make them go there, he'll ruin everything." The dark male voice said in an angry tone.
The second alicorn got up from kneeling and looked up at the other. "I will go and put an end to this outrageous act."
"Be sure that you do." The dark voice said darkly.
Black flames then formed around the other alicorn and when the flames cleared, the alicorn was gone. Leaving the other alicorn alone on his throne.
Canterlot: Train station
The train had finally reached the Canterlot train station and we all galloped off the train.
"Come on, we have to get to the castle before Discord can do any more damage." I said before galloping ahead with the others following me.
We galloped through Canterlot until we reached the castle grounds; we then slowed our speed and looked around the castle.
Nothing had changed on the outside, except there were no guards standing at the door or anywhere outside the castle.
Twilight walked up beside me. "This isn't right. The guards are never gone."
"Then where do you think they are?" I asked not looking away from the castle.
"I don't know, I just hope the Princess is alright." Twilight said in a worried tone.
I turned my head to see the worried look on her face. I placed my hoof on her shoulder, she looked at me and I gave her a warm smile. "Don't worry Twilight! We'll save her, I promise."
She then gave me a warm smile back.
"How sentimental, you two really do make a cute couple." Discord's voice echoed in the air, startling Me and Twilight. The others came up to us and we were looking around for Discord.
Suddenly, a light flashed in front of the main doors and Discord was standing there.
"Twilight Sparkle and friends…..we meet again." Discord said while pressing his fingers together.
Rainbow Dash leaned closer to Applejack. "Aww man, it really is him." She whispered to Applejack.
Twilight stepped forward. "What have you done with the Princess?" she demanded.
Discord stuck his hand out and looked at the back of it. "Oh she's safe…..for now. All you have to do is play my game and she's yours."
Twilight growled and I stepped forward. "What is this game anyway Discord?"
In a flash of light, Discord appeared beside me with his elbow lying on my back. "You'll like it, it's an easy one. All you have to do is make your way through the castle until you reach the throne room, if you can make it to the throne room the Princess is yours, if not…well, I win."
With that, he snapped his fingers and he disappeared in a bright flash.
I turned to face everypony. "Well…..I guess we're going in."
Everypony nodded and we walked towards the main doors. When we opened them, we were shocked to see that the hallway inside had grown longer than it used to be. It's getting weird already.
As we walked further and further down the hallway, we noticed that I the room kept getting smaller as we got further until we were reduced to crawling until we finally reached the now small double doors.
I pushed open the doors and crawled out through them with everypony following me.
I looked around the room to see that we were in the room with the big stairs. We then walked up the stairs and turned left to the doors that lead to the room that the Elements were kept in.
We then walked through the doors and we saw the vault at the end of the room. As we walked towards the vault, Twilight stuck her hoof out in front of me to stop me from walking.
"Twilight what's-" I couldn't finish my sentence as she pointed to the ground, I looked down to see seven rows of tiles on the floor in front of us, each tile had a letter on it.
"What's this supposed to be?" I asked.
"This is your first test in the game, the object is to solve the riddle and jump on the letters that spell the word and you can only jump on one tile in each row in order to get across. But be warned, if you guess incorrectly…well, you'll find out. Now; here's the riddle. In my life that I must bare, my bloodline I must share, what am I?" Discord's voice echoed in the room.
"What the hay's that supposed to mean?" Rainbow Dash asked in an annoyed tone.
We all stood in silence as we thought hard about the riddle, until finally I got it.
I walked up to the tiles "The riddle says that in his life he has to share his bloodline and you share your bloodline with a relative so the answer is sibling." I said.
I then stepped on the tile with the letter S on it and nothing happened. I continued jumping from tile to tile, spelling the word until I jumped on the last tile on the last row and with a flash of light, the tiles disappeared and everypony was able to come over to me.
"Smashing work Matthew, but why would Discord choose a word such as sibling as an answer?" Rarity asked.
I shrugged. "I don't know, he's properly trying to confuse us."
She nodded slightly and we continued to walk towards the vault. When we reached it, I looked at the small hole in the middle of the vault doors.
"So, how do we open this thing?" I asked looking back at the others. Twilight then walked up to the vault doors and stuck her horn in the small hole.
She pulled her horn out and the vault doors began to open. I had to cover my eyes with my hoof to block out the bright light coming from the vault.
The light finally cleared and I was able to put my hoof back down and open my eyes to see the vault wide open and the box inside it.
I walked up beside Twilight. "I thought only the Princess could open the vault." I said raising an eye brow.
She turned her head to face me. "Yeah, but she entrusted me with the spell in case of emergencies."
Twilight's horn then glowed and the box levitated towards us. She placed the box on the floor and we all gathered around it.
Twilight's horn glowed again and the lid of the box lifted, revealing the Elements of Harmony.
My eyes widened in awe at the sight of the most powerful magic in Equestria. "Wow…..the Elements of Harmony….I can't believe I'm actually looking at them." I thought.
Twilight's horn glowed again and the Elements rose out the box and Twilight placed the tiara on her head while she placed the necklaces on the others.
Soon they all were wearing their Elements and we then headed back out the room.
When we walked back into the room with the stairs, we were shocked to see that the room had disappeared and all we could see was stars in a dark environment. It was as if we were standing in mid-space.
We saw another door floating a short distance away from us and we slowly made our way over to it. Afraid that we might make a wrong step and fall to nowhere.
As we walked, Twilight leaned her head closer to me. "This is weird; Discord didn't do anything like this last time."
I turned my head to face her. "He didn't have a castle to mess with last time."
We reached the door and I pushed in open. To our relief, the next room was a hallway back in the castle but there were doors everywhere, even on the ceiling.
All our jaws dropped at the sight, but we then walked further down the hall way and stopped in the middle.
"Now what?" Fluttershy asked.
"It's simple my dear, each door leads somewhere but only one door leads to the next room. Your job is to find the right door and you'll be one step closer to finding the Princess." Discord's voice echoed in the air.
I then turned to face everypony. "Ok, here's the plan. Twilight, you, Applejack, Rarity and Pinkie Pie search the doors down here and Me, Rainbow Dash and Fluttershy will search the doors on the ceiling. Which is very confusing but then again with Discord, what isn't?"
They all nodded and we all split up to start searching the doors.
Rarity opened one of the doors to see a brick wall. Pinkie Pie opened a different door to see a wall of water and a fish swim bye and Rainbow Dash opened a different door and was shocked to see a railroad track and a train coming right towards her, she screamed as she slammed the door shut.
She then looked at me. "This is gonna be harder than we thought." I nodded in agreement.
A few minutes later, we had already checked 27 doors and we still hadn't found the right one.
"This is getting ridicules, we're never gonna find that stupid door." I said as I was about to open another door.
I opened it and to my surprise, it was the door to the next room and I saw the next door at the end of it.
"Hey, I found it." I said before I walked through the door.
But before anypony else could follow me through, the door slammed shut behind me.
I spun around and started banging on the door with my hooves. "Hey, open up! Discord, open this door!" I yelled.
On the other side of the door, Twilight was banging on the door with her hooves trying to open it. Suddenly, the door began to move. The girls looked around to room to see that all the doors were moving.
Suddenly, the doors quickened their speed until they were shuffling around the room. The doors finally came to a stop but they were moving fast that Twilight and the others lost sight of the right door and now they'd have to find it again.
On the other side of the door, I was still banging on it until I heard a flash behind me. I turned around to see Discord lying on his back in the air.
"Oh Matthew, has anypony ever told you to hold doors open for ladies?" Discord said looking down at me.
I walked towards him and stooped a few inches away from him. "Open the door Discord." I demanded.
Discord lowered himself to the floor and stood in front of me. "Hey, what's the rush?"
I pointed a hoof at him. "You know pretty damn well what the rush is."
Discord crossed his arms. "Oh yes, you want to save Celestia. (Sigh) why can't you ponies ever see things my way?"
"Forgive us for not being ones for chaos Discord." I said with a glare in my eyes.
With a flash of light, Discord appeared beside me again. "And that's the problem, just think of how much fun we could have if I was in charge and everypony accepted things my way."
I glared at him again. "And what's your idea of fun? Taking away our wings and horns and plunging Equestria in eternal chaos?"
Discord placed his lion hand on his chest. "And do things the easy way?...Matthew my boy I'm so disappointed in you, where's the fun in that?"
With a flash of light, Discord disappeared from my side and reappeared a few feet away from me. He snapped his fingers and an electric guitar appeared in his hands and he started playing it. After playing a few notes, a microphone on a stand appeared; he pulled it to his mouth and started to sing.
Discord: "You can be a goody two-shoes 'till the end of your days
You can listen to them say crime never pays
You can follow every law and be the big black bat
But why would you want to? Huh!
Where's the fun in that?
Where's the fun in thaaaaaaat?
So, smile, darn you, smile
Everypony loves to grin
Follow my lead, recite my creed
And smile, darn you, smile
Don't listen to the dullets say that life is a bore
Those fuddy-duddies spoil my fun!
That's why I strive to eradicate gloom
It's from that itch, I made the switch
And chose my nom de plume
Discord!
There's the fun in that, HaHaHaHaHa
There's the fun in thaaaaaaat
So, smile, darn you, smile
Everypony ought to laugh
And so with glee, I do decree
Just smile, darn you, smile."
With a flash of light, Discord disappeared and reappeared beside my with his arm wrapped around me.
Discord: "So, when living gets a little rough
And you find it hard to cope
I'm the gent with just the stuff
To fill you full of hope."
Discord then flew a few feet in front of me again.
Discord: "Just smile, darn you, smile
Everypony needs a clown
Now with one stroke, the final joke
Just smile, darn you
Smile, darn you, smile
Everypony loves to grin
Follow my lead, recite my creed
And smiiiiiile, HA!
Darn you, smiiiiiiiiiiiiile."
Discord then threw himself back laughing "HAHAHAHA, oh I love it." He whipped a tear from his eye.
I stomped my hoof down. "Enough stalling Discord. Open the door, let my friends in and tell me how to get to the Princess, NOW."
Discord gave me a slight glare. "(Huff), no wonder Twilight likes you, you're so boring. But maybe I can fix that."
Suddenly, Discord was close up to my face and his eyes started to show multiple colours.
I quickly looked away with my hoof over my eyes. "Oh no Discord, I know what you're trying to do and I'm not going down that easy."
Discord's eyes returned to normal. "You're not as dumb as you look, you know that?"
Discord's eyes then shot open with a look of fear on his face. I looked up to him "What?" I asked.
I then noticed that he wasn't looking at me but something behind me, I turned around slowly to see a silhouetted alicorn. I couldn't see who it was as I was too busy looking into the pair of glowing red eyes looking down at me.
As its eyes glow brighter, I started to go lightheaded and I closed my eyes until my mind went completely black.
When I opened my eye, they were glowing just as red.
The alicorn looked towards Discord. "This isn't what we wanted you to do Discord. We needed you to lead them away from here, not lead them here." a male voice said
Discord raised his talon hand. "Don't worry, I have everything under control. Soon, I'll be on Celestia's throne and you will have your revenge Celesta."
The alicorn glared at him. "You had better be right Discord, because if you come even close to defeated and I have to help you get away, my brother will not be pleased."
Discord nodded slightly and the alicorn looked down at me.
"Destroy the Elements of Harmony." He said.
I didn't know why, but at that moment I had the desire to do it. "Y….yes my master."
Black flames then formed around the alicorn and when the flames cleared, the alicorn was gone and I walked back to the door.
On the other side of the door, Twilight and the others were still opening different doors until I kicked the door open and everypony spun around to face me.
Twilight had a look of relief on her face when she saw me. "Matt, thank Celestia you're alright, I was so wor-" Twilight stopped her sentence when she saw my eyes.
"Matt, what's wrong with your eyes? Their red." Twilight said in a concerned tone.
"Must destroy the Elements of Harmony." I said darkly.
Twilight and the others gasped loudly at what I said.
I then charged towards the girls with intention to rip the Elements off each of them and destroy them. When I got close to them, I pounced towards them but as I was about to reach them they all split up.
I glared up to see Rainbow Dash and I flew up to her. When I reached her, I grabbed her and tried to pry the necklace off of her.
"Get off me." She yelled before she rose me up and slammed me against the ceiling, I then fell to the floor.
I got up off the floor and I saw Applejack ahead of me. I growled and galloped towards her; she then turned around and was prepared to buck. "Sorry 'bout this sugar cube."
When I got close, she bucked her legs out but I caught them. I then spun her around by her legs and threw her on the ground.
She looked up at me in fight as I approached her. But as I was about to reach her, I was tackled by somepony and fell to the ground.
I looked up to see Rarity glaring at me. "Matthew stop this, this isn't you."
I glared back. "This is my task and I will complete it." I then got up at shot at Rarity; I grabbed her and threw her across the room where she crashed to the floor next to Twilight and Pinkie Pie.
Twilight helped her up and they all watched me casing Fluttershy.
"What's wrong with him? Why is he doing this?" Rarity asked in a concerned tone.
"Yeah, his eyes are as red as ketchup or maybe an apple or maybe-" Pinkie Pie was cut off by Rarity putting her hoof over her mouth.
Twilight looked at them. "He must be under mind control. That manticore that attacked us had glowing red eyes just like Matts."
"Well how do we snap him out of it?" Rarity asked
"I've got an idea, it may not work but it's worth a try." Twilight said before she charged towards me.
I was just about to catch Fluttershy until Twilight tackled me and we both fell to the ground. As we did, Twilight's tiara fell off her head and slid across the room.
Me and Twilight both eyed the tiara and I got up and tried to gallop towards it but Twilight grabbed my back leg, which tripped me up.
As I was getting back up, Twilight galloped towards the tiara and managed to get to it before I could.
As she was putting it back on, I tackled her to the ground and pined her down by the hooves with her back on the ground so she was facing me.
I chuckled evilly. "You'll never defeat my master, soon we will rule all of Equestria and there's nothing you can do about it."
Twilight tried to get out of my grip but she couldn't, she then stopped struggling and looked up at me. "There is one thing I can do."
I raised an eye brow. "And what would that be?"
She then shot her head up and pushed her lips against mine, my eyes widened in surprise at the sudden act but I then closed them and started kissing back.
Suddenly, the darkness in my mind cleared away and my thoughts returned to me. After we broke the kiss, I opened my eyes and they were back to their blue selves again. I looked down to see Twilight looking up at me smiling. "T…Twilight?" I said weakly.
Twilight's smile grew. "Matt, you're back."
I then got up off Twilight and help her back up. "Twilight…I...I'm sorry, I saw you I saw you all, I wanted to stop but…..I couldn't…I'm so sorry."
I lowered my head and I felt a hoof on my shoulder, I looked up to see Twilight smiling sweetly at me, I smiled back and we shared a warm hug.
Everypony then came up to us. "Matt, what happened to ya?" Applejack asked.
I turned to her. "I don't know, I was in the next room with Discord and…..I saw a pair of glowing red eyes and…..I don't remember."
Rarity raised an eye brow. "Glowing red eyes? Discord doesn't have red eyes."
I shook my head. "It wasn't Discord, it was….something else."
"Like what?" Fluttershy asked.
I put a hoof up. "There'll be time to think about it later, right now we have to get to the throne room." With that everypony nodded and we headed to the door.
Lucky for us, the door I came out from was still open and we went through it, we then walked across the other room until we came to the door.
I pushed it open to see the hallway with all the portraits and vases. And at the end of the hallway was the door to the throne room.
We walked through the hallway until we came to the door. I turned around to face the others. "Ok, this is it, Discord and the Princess should be right behind this door, you all ready?"
They all nodded, "Right then." I said as I turned to the door and pushed it open.
We walked through the door to see Discord on the throne, he snapped his fingers and the door behind us disappeared.
We all stopped in the middle of the room and glared at Discord. "Congratulations, you made it." Discord said with a grin.
I stepped forward. "Where's Princess Celestia." I demanded.
Discord pointed upward and we all looked up and our eyes went wide as we saw Princess Celestia trapped in some kind of yellow orb made of magic floating in the air.
Twilight glared at Discord. "Let her go." She demanded.
Discord laid his head on his hand. "Oh must we rush things? You just got here."
I glared harder at him. "Game's over Discord, you lose….again."
I stepped to the side to let Twilight and the others get a good shot. "Girls, I think you know what to do."
Twilight and the others then stepped forward and they began to rise in the air and started to glow.
As they did, a bolt of black flames burst out in front of them and when the flames cleared the silhouetted alicorn stood in its place.
I tried to see who it was but the light coming off the Element was too bright for me to see.
The alicorns horn the glowed and then storm clouds formed on the ceiling, lights formed in the clouds until they shot a bolt of lightning towards the girls and hit them.
The girls were sent fly across the room and were smacked against the wall, I the galloped up to Twilight to see if she was alright.
While I was with Twilight, the alicorn turned to Discord. "You've failed Discord, I suggest you leave…now." He said darkly.
Discord gulped hard. "Well…..this was getting boring anyway." He then chuckled sheepishly.
The alicorn gave Discord one last glare before black flames formed around him and when the flames cleared, the alicorn was gone.
As I helped Twilight back up, we looked at Discord to see him snap his fingers and with a flash of light, he disappear.
Another flash came from behind us; we turned around to see the door was back. "There, you win. The rest of the castle is back to normal. But don't celebrate too much, I'll be back." Discord's voice echoed in the air.
Suddenly, the orb that Celestia was in disappeared and she fell to the ground.
We all galloped up to her and help her up. "Don't worry, I'm fine." She said in her calm voice.
I looked up to her. "Princess, I'm sorry we didn't get here sooner."
She looked down at me with a smile. "Don't be, you came and faced every obstacle that Discord threw at you. And I must say Matthew, you century have proven yourself to be most helpful to your friends and me."
"Thank you Princess, but Discord got away and I think there may be something else happening that we don't know about." I said in a slightly worried way.
Twilight looked at me with a confused look on her face. "Like what."
"Like that alicorn who just blasted you and the others away, how is it possible that his magic was stronger than the Element?" I said before looking up at Celestia.
"I don't know, but I fear that this has gone far beyond Discord, I fear that darker forces are at work here and soon they will reveal themselves." She said in a determined voice.
We all looked at each other with worried looks on our faces.
Meanwhile: Far away dark mountains
Discord crashed into a wall and fell the ground coughing; one of the silhouetted alicorns slowly approached him and lifted him up with its magic.
"Discord you useless fool, you nearly ruined everything. If Celestia or any of those ponies saw my brother, they'd would grow suspicious and double to security around the castle." A dark male voice said angrily.
He then let Discord go and he fell to the ground. "Don't worry, next time I'll keep them in Ponyville and let you do your stuff." Discord said sheepishly.
The alicorn gave Discord a hard glare. "Pray you don't fail me again Discord, now get out of my sight." The alicorn said.
With that, Discord snapped his fingers and he disappeared in a flash of light.
The alicorn then walked over to the large green pool and was watching us with Celestia in the throne room.
"They have proven to be more irritable then I thought, but soon I will have all their heads mounted on my wall." The alicorn said evilly.
I hope you enjoyed this chapter.
The song used in the chapter is called Where's the fun in that? from the animated TV series Batman the brave and the bold, I do not own anything.
If you want to listen to the song and still enjoy MLP clips, a fan made a video on YouTube with Discord clips and this song playing in the back ground, the video is called Discord – where' the fun in that?. Go check it out. I do not own anything.
Goodnight everypony.
13. Way to Rarity's Heart
Chapter 13: Way to Rarity's heart
Ponyville: library
It's been 2 day's since Discord's attack on the castle.
I was lying on the bed in the quest room, looking up at the ceiling with my front hooves behind my head.
I was thinking about that mysterious alicorn that was at the castle. Who was he? Why did he help Discord? How was his magic stronger than the Elements themselves?
My train of thought was cut off by Jeff bursting through the door. "Jeff, I really just want to be alone and think right now."
Jeff flew towards me and landed beside me. "I know, you're still worried about that alicorn thing, but this is important you have to check this out." Jeff said as he tried to push me off the bed.
I rolled off the bed as Jeff was trying to push and he fell on the bed. He got up and started flapping in the air.
"Ok now that's out the way, follow me." Jeff said before he flew towards the door.
I let out a small sigh and followed him out the door. He led me up to the room with the balcony outside.
"Ok Jeff we're here, what is it?" I asked in a non-satisfied tone.
"Look." He said as he pointed to the balcony, I looked out to the balcony to see Spike leaning on the barrier.
I raised an eye brow. "What's he doing out there?"
I walked out onto the balcony and up to Spike. I then tapped him on the shoulder and he let out a small yell as he spun around fast.
When Spike saw that it was me, he put his hand to his chest and relaxed. "Oh Matt, it's just you."
I raised an eye brow as I looked down at him. "Yeah it's me, what are you doing?"
He shifted his eyes left and right. "I was…errr….nothing."
I gave him a suspicious look. "Yeah, a whole lot of nothin'. What are you looking at out there?"
I then tried to get passed Spike but he was trying to push me back. After a short struggle, I finally got passed Spike and I looked down to Ponyville to see Rarity walking through the street's carrying bags filled with different types of fabrics.
"Rarity?...Oh yeah, I forgot about Spike's crush on her." I thought before I turned to Spike.
Spike crossed his arms and turned to face the other way. "So now you know too, I know…..silly right?"
I walked up to him and placed my hoof on his shoulder, he turned around to face me. I smiled down at him. "Not at all, I understand what you're going through."
He gently pushed my hoof off his shoulder. "How could you know what I'm going through?"
"Because I felt the same after I met Twilight. You get feelings you can't explain, you think about her all the time and you keep feeling both nervous and happy around her." I said.
Spike then had a surprised look on his face. "That's…exactly how I feel. But every time I try to show my romantic side, I always get so nervous and embarrassed and then I mess it up."
Spike then sat on the ground and wrapped his arms around his knees so he was in a rocking position.
I tapped my chin. "Poor guy, he really likes her but he's too embarrassed to make a move. But maybe I can help him with that." I thought with a smirk on my face.
I walked up and placed myself beside him and wrapped my hoof around him. "Spike my friend, heaven's light has shined upon you once again…..for it has brought you…..to me."
Spike raised an eye brow. "Riiiiight, so how does that help me?"
"Spike, I'm gonna teach you how to be more confident so you can express your feelings to Rarity without any trouble." I said with a confident tone.
"How are you gonna do that?" Spike asked.
"I just gonna give you some romantic advice and when I'm done, Rarity will be falling for you in no time." I said.
Spike thought hard about it while rubbing his chin until he let out a small sigh. "Ok Matt…..I'll give it a try."
My smile grew. "Cool, so where's Twilight?"
"She's gone to Fluttershy's place for some reason." Spike answered.
"Excellent, that gives us time alone. Now let's get down stairs and get this thing started." I said before lowered myself to let Spike climb on my back. Once he was on my back, we headed to the stairs.
Once down stairs, Spike was sitting on a chair and I was standing in front of him with a chalk board behind me.
I pointed at the chalk board. "Alright Spike, welcome to your first lesson on expressing your feelings. Let's start off with something easy, practise talking. If you want a girl to like you then you have to know how to talk to her."
I then walked over to a shelf where Twilight keeps photographs of her and her friends. I grabbed a picture of Rarity and gave it to Spike. "Now, talk to the picture as if you were talking to the real Rarity." I said.
Spike looked down at the picture and gulped. "Well, Emm…..hello Rarity, you're looking….beautiful today…I mean, when aren't you?"
I gave a small smile. "Good good, keep it up!"
Spike then felt less nervous. "And your mane is so shiny and smooth. If there was an award for best hair in Equestria, you'd win it for sure."
"You've had a lot of time to come up with all this, haven't you?" I asked in a slight impressed tone.
Spike smiled and blushed slightly. "Well yeah, I've had a crush on her for a while."
"You can say that again." I said under my breath.
Spike raised an eye brow. "What was that?"
"Errr, I said it's time for the next lesson. Asking out, this is one of the hardest parts in a crush life. So you're going practise this on the picture, and go." I said.
Spike looks down at the picture again. "Emmm…Rarity….you know I r-really like you a lot and I know this great restaurant….so I was thinking…would you like to go with me there…and talk and stuff….if you want."
My smile grew bigger. "Well done Spike, I don't know why you're so nervous you're a natural. Now, time for the final lesson."
Me and Spike then walked up to a round table, Spike sat down at the table and I placed a candle in the middle of the table.
"Now, it's time for the date lesson." I said raising a hoof.
Spike looked at me with an unconfident look on his face. "What's this got to do with expressing my feeling?"
"Look, in moments like these it's always important to keep a cool head, you don't want to screw up on your first date do you?" I asked.
Spike turned his head back towards the table and crossed his arms. "No."
I gave him a quick nod. "Good, now for this next part we're not going to use the picture…well in a way we are, but this lesson requires you to keep your cool while on a date with a living pony."
"So, you're gonna put the picture over your face and pretend to be Rarity or something?" Spike asked raising an eye brow.
"Not quite." I said while smirking.
8 minutes later
Jeff was sitting on the other side of the table with the picture of Rarity over his face, I couldn't see his face but I knew he was pissed.
I then placed a hoof on Spike's back. "Ok Spike, just act as though you're on your date with the beautiful Rarity…even though it's just Jeff."
"You know, I don't need this." Jeff said with his face still covered by the picture.
I just shook my head and went back to Spike. "Now, show us what'cha got."
Spike then took a sip from his drink, put the cup down and looked at the picture. "You look lovely tonight Rarity." He said with water pouring out his mouth.
I gave him an awkward look. "That was wrong, wasn't it?" Spike said not even bothering to turn to me.
I gave Spike some paper towels so he could clean up the water. "Ya think? Let's try again, Jeff ya ready?"
I didn't get an answer; all I got was snoring coming from where Jeff was.
"Is he sleeping?" Spike asked.
I walked up to Jeff. "Jeff wake up." I said as I pushed him slightly.
"Wha?...Is the date over?" Jeff asked in a tired tone.
"No, you fell asleep." I said in a slightly irritated tone.
"Well can you blame me? The guy could put Pinkie to sleep." Jeff said witch made Spike frown.
I walked over to Spike. "Don't listen to him Spike, you'll get the hang of it. You just need a bit more practise."
Spike got off his chair and stood in front of me. "What's the point? I've been doing things for Rarity ever since I met her and she's never even thought about going out with me."
I tapped my chin. "Maybe there's another way to get Rarity to like you."
Spike sat on the floor. "Fat chance, once Rarity sees it's me she'll just turn me down."
Spike's frown grew bigger as I was trying to think of something else. Until I got an idea. "Wait, what if she doesn't see you and still learn of your romantic side."
Spike looked up to me with a confused look on his face. "What do you mean Matt?"
"I mean you can be anonymous, you can send romantic things to her but not let her know it's from you." I said in an excited tone.
Spike raised an eye brow. "Do you really think that'll work?"
I smirked. "Only one way to find out, wait here." I said before I galloped out the front door and into Ponyville.
10 minutes later
Spike was sitting on the chair by the table with Jeff, who had now taken the picture off his face. They were both waiting for me to come back.
I then burst through the door with a bookey of roses in my mouth. I walked up to Spike and laid them on the floor.
Spike raised an eye brow. "What are those for?"
"They're for Rarity, we're gonna take them to her place and you're gonna place them on the door step, ring the doorbell and run away. Easy as that." I said.
Jeff crossed his wings. "Matt, that's never gonna work."
I waved a hoof. "Sure it will, we just need something on it to seal the deal, something that says I admire you from a far." I tapped my chin and tried to think of something.
Spike raised a hand slightly. "Well…Emm…I have these love poem's upstairs and-"
"Well why didn't you say so? Let's see'em." I said cutting Spike off.
Spike then headed up the stairs. After a few minutes, he came back down the stairs with pieces of paper in his hands.
He walked up to me and held out on of the sheets. "Here they are Matt."
I grabbed the paper in my mouth and took it over to the table to lay it down to read it.
Once I reached the table, I laid the paper down and started reading it. After reading the poem, I turned my head to face Spike. "Spike this is really good, did you come up with this by yourself?"
Spike smiled and blushed slightly. "Well…yeah."
I was amazed by how he could wright something like this by himself; I then gave him a big smile. "Well, we've definitely found our anonymous message. Now, let's get over there and do this thing."
Spike then had a nervous look on his face. "You mean, right now? As in…right NOW, right now?"
I walked behind him. "Yes right NOW, right now let's go." I then suck my head through his legs and scooped him up onto my back, grabbed the roses in my mouth and galloped out the door.
After we were gone, Jeff was just sitting on the table. "I'll just wait here then."
Rarity's Boutique
Me and Spike were hiding behind a bush in front of Rarity's place, watching Rarity walk inside and shut the door behind her.
I turned my head to Spike. "Ok Spike, she's inside. Now take to roses, go over there, place the roses on her doorstep, ring the doorbell and run back here before she answers it."
Spike picked up the roses. "Oh is that all?" he said sarcastically.
"We're about to find out no GO." I said as I pushed him out the bush. He then made his way towards the Boutique.
Once he reached the door step he gulped, placed the roses by the door, rang the doorbell and ran as fast as he could back to the bush.
"You do it?" I asked as I poked my head out the bush. "GET DOWN." Spike yelled as he jumped over the bush while tackling me to the ground.
The moment we hit the ground, Rarity opened the door and looked around for whoever rang her bell. She then noticed the bookey of roses on the ground.
"I wonder who could have sent these." She asked herself as she picked the bookey up with her magic and went back inside with the door shutting behind her.
Me and Spike then got up off the ground and looked to the door to see the roses were gone. "Nice, she's taken them. Now let's get out of here before somepony sees us."
"I'm with you on that." Spike said before he climbed up on my back. Once he was on my back, I galloped off back towards the library.
Meanwhile, Rarity was sitting on her big red chair smelling the roses. She then pulled the roses away from her nose. "These are lovely, who could have sent them?"
She the noticed the note attached to the roses, picked it up with her magic and hovered it in front of her face and stared reading it.
A poem to Rarity.
There are times of when I feel so lonely, and I need the concert of a beautiful pony.
The light of the sun cannot compare, to the glow and shine within your hair.
All the diamonds in the world will weep, over the sparkle within your eyes I meet.
In all the days that I'll live through, my heart will always belong to you.
Rarity was stunned by the poem's words. "That was the most beautiful thing I've ever read, who could have written something so heart-warming." She thought. She looked at the bottom of the note only to find the words From your secret admirer.
Rarity's eyes widened slightly with a small smile on her face. "A secret admirer? I have a secret admirer."
She then got off the chair and jumped up and down on the spot while screaming in an excited way.
Library
Me and Spike burst through the front door and slammed it behind us; I was breathing heavily trying to catch my breath.
"Well…..that was…..fun" I said between breaths.
"Do you think she liked it?" Spike asked before climbing off my back, I then turned around and sat down in front of him.
"I don't know, but me and Twilight are going to see her and the others tomorrow at the café, so I can ask her then."
Spike then grew a big smile on his face. "I just can't believe I actually did this. I mean, I never had the guts to do something like this but I did and it's all thanks to you, thanks Matt." With that, he gave me a tight hug around my hips.
I smiled down at him and returned the hug. "Don't mention it buddy." We then heard a fake cough from somepony beside us.
We looked down to see Jeff with his wings crossed and an eye brow raised. "So, how was Rarity?...Not that I would know or anything."
Me and Spike looked at each other and then back at Jeff with sheepish smiles on our faces.
Meanwhile: Far away dark mountains
One of the silhouetted alicorns was in the throne room sitting on its throne.
Then another silhouetted alicorn entered the throne room with Discord by its side, the alicorn then kneeled down to the other.
"Brother, I have brought you Discord like you asked." the male voice said.
The other alicorn then came down from his throne and walked up to Discord.
"So what's this all about?" Discord asked in a not so interested tone.
"Well Discord, I've been giving it some thought and found a way that you can redeem yourself after your little blunder at the castle." The dark male voice said.
"Hey, we all make mistakes." Discord said.
The alicorn gave him a slight glare. "I can't afford mistakes Discord…..and I can't afford interruptions ether so that is why you're here."
Discord raised an eye brow. "What do you mean?"
The alicorn turned around and walked over to the large green pool. "I have noticed lately that the green Pegasus Emm….Matthew I believe his name is, and his friends have become somewhat of a nuisance and….I think they're too dangerous to my plans to be kept alive….so, you're going to go back to Ponyville, find this Matthew and kill him and any other pony who stands in your way." The dark male voiced alicorn said turning his head to face Discord.
"WHAT?" Discord yelled with his eyes wide open.
The second alicorn took a step forward. "With all due respect Brother, why not send me to kill him? I will crush him and all of Ponyville with just one hoof." The second male alicorn said.
The other alicorn raised a hoof. "No, we cannot reveal ourselves just yet, but everypony has already seen Discord so he will be the one to kill him."
Discord then had a nervous look on his face. "Well….then we're going to have a problem because….I only make harmless chaos. I don't actually kill anypony….it's just not me."
The alicorn the approached Discord slowly. Discord was so full of fear that he fell to his knees and lowered his ears.
The alicorn then lowered his head so he was glaring down at Discord. "You will make it you…..or we will take away the two things that are most close to you."
Discord was shaking slightly. "L…like what?"
The alicorn grinned evilly. "Well…first, we'll take away half your magic and your name. After that you'll no longer be known as the spirit of chaos and disharmony; you'll be known as the spirit of NOTHING. And they all count as one of the things we'll take."
Discord gulped hard. "Th…then what's the second?"
"The second…is." The alicorn then leaned in to Discord's ear and whispered something to him that made Discord's eyes shoot open in horror, the alicorn then pulled away from Discord.
"You wouldn't, you can't." Discord said in a horrified tone.
"I would and I can, but you can prevent this from happening as long as you do exactly as I say exactly how I say it….are we clear?" the dark voiced male alicorn said.
Discord then lowered his head "Yes….we're clear." He said in an upset tone.
The alicorn grinned evilly again. "Good…..now go, you have a job to do."
With that, Discord got up off the ground and snapped his fingers. In a flash of light, Discord was gone.
The second alicorn then walked up to the other. "That fool is now under our control, but I still think you should have let me go. What if Discord tries to bail out?" the male alicorn said.
The other alicorn then turned around to face his throne. "Then you and our sister will have the pleasure of punishing him if he does, but you're going to make sure he doesn't disappoint me." The alicorn said as he walked back to his throne.
The second alicorn nodded his head. "As you wish brother." With that, red flame formed around the alicorn and when the flames faded, the alicorn was gone.
The alicorn on the throne then gave an evil smile and chuckled evilly.
Hope you enjoyed this chapter, remember to review.
And next chapter will be up soon.
Goodnight everypony.
14. Let's Rumble
Warning: long chapter
Chapter 14: Let's Rumble
It was a calm day in Ponyville; everypony was walking around enjoying the hot sun.
Me and Twilight were on our way to the café to meet up with the others.
"Wow, what a gorgeous day." Twilight said as we were still walking.
"Yeah, but there's something more gorgeous here." I said.
Twilight turned her head to face my. "What?"
I turned my head to her. "You" I said with a smirk on my face.
Twilight blushed slightly "Matt, you're such a flatterer." She said as she nudged up next to me.
My smirk grew bigger. "Yeah, the one thing you should know about me; I'm a sweet talker."
We continued to walk to the café with us by each other's side.
When we reached the café, we saw Rarity, Applejack, Fluttershy, Rainbow Dash and Pinkie Pie on a large table. We walked up to the table and joined them.
"Howdy Twilight, Matt, glad ya made it." Applejack said.
"On a day like this, wouldn't miss it." I said.
Rarity stuck out a hoof. "I took the liberty of ordering your drinks, their all on me today."
I looked down on the table to see two drinks for me and Twilight; I pulled them closer to us. "Thanks Rarity, what's the occasion?" I asked before I put the straw that was in the drink in my mouth.
Rarity placed her hoof on her chest. "Well it turns out, I have a secret admirer. He sent me a lovely bookey of roses and a wonderful poem with it. (Dreamy sigh) I've never read something so romantic in my life." She said in a dreamy tone.
I then had a large smirk on my face. "She liked it; I should tell Spike when we get back to the library." I thought.
Fluttershy turned her head to Rarity with a smile on her face. "Oh, how romantic."
Rarity turned to Fluttershy. "Oh it was, I simply must find the one who sent it. I wonder what kind of colt he is, a Pegasus? A unicorn?"
"I wouldn't count on it." I mumbled while laying my head on my hoof.
Rarity turned her head to me. "What was that darling?"
I quickly sat up. "Errrr, nothing." I then quickly put the straw back in my mouth.
Suddenly, we saw a bunch of ponies run passed the café. "What's going on?" Twilight asked.
"I don't know, but I'm gonna find out." Rainbow Dash said before she got out her chair and flew off to go where the other ponies where going.
We all looked at each other before we all got off our seats and followed her.
We followed the ponies to the town hall where there was a large stage set up with everypony standing in front of it.
We walked over and joined the crowd. After a few minutes, the mayor of Ponyville walked up to the middle of the stage.
The mayor then walked up to the microphone and leaned her head towards it. "Good morning Ponyville, we have a very special guest here today to award the seven young ponies who stopped the villainous Discord and saved the castle."
We all then grew surprised by this. "That's us, that's us." Pinkie Pie cheered as she jumped up and down on the spot.
The mayor then stuck her hoof out. "And now fillies and gentlecolts, presenting the one who gives us the sun. Princess Celestia." With that, there was a white flash of light and Princess Celestia appeared on stage and waved at the crowd.
Once everypony saw the princess, they all cheered and repeatedly stomped their hooves on the ground, we also started stomping.
The mayor moved aside from the microphone to allow Celestia to go in front of it. Once Celestia was in front of the microphone, she leaded he head towards it.
"Greetings Ponyville, It is so nice to see you all again and now to the awards. Twilight, Matthew, would you and your friends like to come up on stage?" Celestia said as she looked at us.
Me and the others then walked around the crowd until we came up to the stage. After we got up on stage, we all stood next to Celestia.
Celestia gave us a quick nod before she turned back to the microphone. "I have come here today to thank my student, her coltfriend and her friends for standing up to Discord, saving the castle and rescuing me in the proses. So that is why I am awarding them these special medals."
Celestia's horn glowed and with a flash of light, seven gold medals appeared hovering in front of us. Each one had one of our cutie marks on it.
Celestia then levitated six of the medals towards us and placed them around Twilight's and the others necks, I was wondering why Celestia didn't give me mine.
Celestia then looked at me. "Matthew, would you mind coming here to receive your medal? I want to say something." With that, I walked up to Celestia.
She then turned back to the microphone. "For this medal, I would personally like to thank Twilight's coltfriend Matthew. Because even though he first meat Discord on the night he took over the castle. He didn't show any fear of Discord and kept going until he was defeated. And that is why I award him this medal for his strong bravery."
The crowd then cheered and repeatedly stomped their hooves on the ground; I looked over to the others to see their smiling faces. But nopony's smile was larger than Twilight's; I gave her a large smile back before turning my head back to Celestia.
Celestia then levitated the medal towards me and I lowered my head slightly so she could put it on. Suddenly, there was a big flash of light behind Celestia; which caused her to turn around fast and drop the medal before I shot my head up to see what was happening.
When the light cleared, Discord was standing on the stage a few feet away from Celestia. "DISCORD" me, Twilight and Celestia yelled.
"What are you doing here?" Celestia demanded.
"I have a business to attend to…with Matthew." Discord said with a glare as he approached us.
Celestia stepped in front of him and spread out her wings to block his way. "You will not go near him, Twilight or any of their friends." She said in a commanding voice.
Discord glared harder. "For once, this doesn't involve YOU. Now get out of my way."
Celestia glared up at Discord. "Never."
Discord then had a look of anger on his face. "Have it your way." With that, he snapped his fingers.
Celestia then felt her hooves grow cold and looked down to see ice rise up her legs. She turned her head around to see her hind-legs were already frozen and the ice moving across her body.
The ice covered her entire body until it came to a stop at her neck so her head was left unfrozen.
"Now, if you'll excuse me?" Discord said as her walked around Celestia and towards me.
As he walked closer to me, I took a few steps back. "What do you want Discord?" I asked with a glare.
Discord glared down at me. "It's not what I want….it's what HE wants."
I raised an eye brow. "Who's HE?"
"Pray you don't live long enough to find out….in fact, I'll make sure you don't." Discord said as he began to hover in the air.
I took a few more steps back. "Excuse me?" I a slightly worried tone.
Discord just kept glaring down at me "I'm sorry Matt, but I have to do this." With that, sparks of electricity began to form on the palm of his hands. My eyes slowly grew wide at this slight.
Discord then stuck out his talon hand and shot a bolt of electricity at me, I quickly jump out the way and the bolt hit the stage, leaving a burnt mark on the wood.
Discord growled before he shot my bolts at me, but I kept dodging them, which made more burnt marks.
Once he stopped, I finally had a chance to speak. "ARE YOU CRAZY?" I yelled up to him.
He raised an eye brow, I then looked at Twilight and the others to see they also had an eye brow raised.
I turned back to Discord and held a hoof up. "Ok, poor question. But what are you doing?"
"I'm sorry, but I have no choice. You…must…die." Discord said before he flew down at me.
As he caught me off guard, he grabbed me as he continued to fly forward while holding me out in front of him.
He flapped his wings harder as we came up to a house and slammed me into the wall.
I collapsed to the ground and tried to get up but Discord walked up to my side and used his dragon leg to kick me in the side which caused me to flip over on my back coughing.
Discord then walked up to my head and lifted his deer leg over it. As he forced it down, I quickly rolled out the way; forcing Discord to miss my head and stomp on the ground.
I quickly got up and glared at Discord, he glared back before we started slowly walking in a circle; never taking our eyes off each other.
Rainbow Dash then flew up next to me while glaring at Discord. "Don't worry Matt; I'll help you take down this creep."
I turned my head to face her. "No Rainbow Dash, help Celestia out that mess. I'll take care of Discord."
Applejack stepped forward. "No can do sugar cube, I already told ya you're not doing things like this alone."
As the others came closer, I saw the determination in their eyes and I nodded. "Ok, but Applejack; you and Rainbow Dash have to get the Princess out of that ice and we will take care of Discord."
Applejack and Rainbow Dash nodded and headed back to the stage to help Celestia. I then turned back to face Discord's glare had grown harder.
Twilight and Pinkie Pie stood on my right side while Rarity and Fluttershy stood on my left while we all glared at Discord.
"I have no time for you." Discord growled before he raised his glowing lion hand. Suddenly, Twilight and the others started glowing and they levitated up into the air.
Discord pushed his hand forward and Twilight and the others were sent flying backwards, crashing to the ground.
My eyes went wide before I galloped over to Twilight. When I reached her, I help her back up. "Are you ok?" I asked in a concerned tone.
"Yeah, I'm fine." Twilight answered as she rubbed her head.
I spun my head back towards Discord while gritting my teeth. "Alright Discord, you want me? Come get me you freak of nature."
With that, Discord growled as he flew into the air and shot off towards me with his body moving like a snake.
I then charged towards him. As we got closer to each other, I flew up high in the air and Discord shot under me.
He turned his head to see me as he continued flying forward; I pointed my hoof to tell him to turn around. Which he did and yelled in terror as he crashed into a fruit stand.
After a few seconds, he got up out of the wreckage and wiped the splattered fruit off his face before he snapped his figures and disappeared in a flash of light.
I quickly looked left and right to try and find him but he was not where in sight. It was all silent and my tension was building every minute.
Suddenly, I heard a flash behind me and I turned around fast to see Discord throwing a punch down at me. I quickly dodged the punch, grabbed his arm and pulled him down.
As he was coming down, I pushed my free hoof up to his head and punched him in the jaw, causing him to stumble back a bit. As he held his jaw, I turned my body around and used my hind-legs to buck him in the stomach.
As he bent over hold his stomach with a pained look on his face, I climbed up on top of his head and held on to his antlers. He then leaned strait up, "Get off of me." He growled as he swung his head around like a mad bull.
Discord then back up to a house and threw his head back, causing me to hit the wall behind me and lose my grip on his antlers.
He spun around to face me before he grabbed me by the throat with his lion hand and held me up against the wall. I was gasping for air as I was holding on to his arm to try and make him let go but he was too strong.
As he chuckled evilly, I kicked my right hind-leg up and it whacked him in the jaw, forcing him to lose his grip on my neck and I fell to the floor.
Before Discord could recover, I flew a few inches in the air and shot myself forward with great strength so I was pushing Discord through the air as I flew.
I continued to the fly while pushing Discord until we came to the stage and we crashed into the side of the stage, breaking some of the wood. As Discord was grunting as he tried to get back up, I quickly grabbed the end of his tail and flew up into the air, pulling Discord up with me.
It took a large amount of strength but I managed to get Discord high up in the air and started spinning him around in circles above me.
I then finally let go of his tail, sending him flying towards the town hall and crashing through roof.
Everypony who had been watching started cheering for me as I landed back on stage. As I stood on stage, I saw that Applejack and Rainbow Dash were still trying to break Celestia out of the ice. Twilight and the others then galloped up on stage and towards me.
"Matt, are you alright?" Twilight asked with a concerned voice as she examined my body.
I gave her a small smile. "A bruise or two but I'll live, that is unless Discord comes back out." We then looked towards the town hall's main doors.
I then started walking towards them. "Matthew, what are you doing?" Rarity asked.
I turned my head to face her. "I'm going to end this before somepony gets hurt."
Applejack turned away from the Princess and to me. "Matt, you don't have to do that. You already beat him, it's over."
I turned my head back to the doors. "If I can knock him unconscious, it'll buy you guys some time to get the Elements to turn him back to stone. So I'm going in."
I then continued to walk towards the doors. "Be careful Matt." Twilight said in a worried tone.
As I reached the doors, I took a deep breath before I place my hoof on the doors. "DISCORD." I yelled as I pushed the doors which caused them to swing open.
I got no response as the main hall was dark and silent; I then slowly walked further inside, looking left and right for Discord.
"Discord, I know you're here. Come on out." I yelled. Suddenly, the main doors behind me slammed shut which caused me to flinch.
"Well well Matthew, you have a lot more fight in you then I anticipated." Discord's voice echoed through the hall.
I glared. "Come out and I'll show you a lot more." I continued to walk further down the hall.
There was a moment of silence before I decided to break it. "Why are you doing this Discord? I never thought you to be the type that kills." I said.
"You think I want to do this?...you think this was my decision?...I'm the victim here, you're the one who's caused all the trouble." Discord's voice echoed through the hall.
"I haven't done anything to anypony." I yelled out in anger.
"Oh, but you have Matthew. You and your friends interfered with matters that weren't yours and now I'm forced to end it." Discord's voice echoed.
I kept looking around for him. "If you don't want to do this, then why don't you…oh I don't know, STOP." I yelled.
"Because I have no choice, it's a matter of life and death." Discord's voice yelled.
I raised an eye brow in confusion. "Life and death? What the hell do you mean by that?"
"Enough questions…..lets finish this." Discord's voice said darkly.
Suddenly, there was a flash of light behind me. I spun fast just to have Discord grab me by the mane, toss me up in the air and as I came down; he punched me which sent me flying across the hall and crashing to the floor.
After a few seconds, I picked myself off the ground and charged towards Discord. As I did, electricity formed around his palms again and he shot bolts at me again.
I dodged all the bolts of electricity he shot at me as I continued to charge at him until I finally reached him and head-butted him in the stomach which caused him to fly backwards and crash to the floor.
Discord then got off the ground and shot towards me. Meanwhile as me and Discord were fighting, a small cloud of black smoke seeped through the wall, we didn't notice it come in.
The cloud the formed the shape of a small alicorn with red glowing eyes. It watched us fight for a minute before turning its head towards the curtains attached to a nearby window. The smoke alicorns horn glowed and a spark flash on the curtains causing them to catch fire.
The smoke alicorn chuckled slightly before disappearing in the wind. The flames began to spread up the curtains and on the wall.
Meanwhile, I grabbed Discord by the waist and flew up to the ceiling with great speed and whammed in into the ceiling. I then threw him to the ground and dived down after him and whammed myself into him causing us the crash to the floor, Discord first.
I got up off Discord and looked down at him to see he was unconscious. After I turned around to head back to the doors, Discord's eyes shot open before he got up off the ground and pounced me to the ground while wrapping his hands around my neck.
Discord snarled down at me as his grip on my neck got tighter, it was starting to get harder to breathe through his grip until something caught his eye which made him loosen his grip.
I saw the look of fear on his face and I turned my head to where he was looking to see the entire left wall burning in roaring fire, my eyes went wide at the sight of this.
With Discord's grip getting looser, I placed my hind-legs on his chest and pushed him off of me. I then galloped towards the door.
Discord glared as I was galloping away from him and snapped his fingers, part of the fire then moved like a snake and made a line of fire in my path. The flames then grew high so they were blocking my path as I quickly came to a stop.
I turned around to face Discord. "This ends here." he said as he slowly approached me. I got in a fighting position. "Bring it!" I growled.
We gave each other sharp glares before I charged towards him. As I got closer to him, he spun around and whacked me to the side with his tail and I fell to the ground.
I leaned up to see Discord approaching me. I then felt something hot on my hoof and I looked down to see glowing hot embers, apparently they can't burn me through my hoof. Then a cruel idea came to mind.
As Discord got closer, I scoop up some of the embers and threw them at Discord's face. The embers hit him in the face and some of them hit him in the eyes.
Discord yelled in pain while covering his eyes with his hands. I took this opportunity to strike.
I flew up In front of his face and started punching him in the face, forcing him to remove his hands from his face. I then swung my hoof up as fast as I could and hit him in the jaw. Sending him flying up onto the balcony.
At this point, the fire had spread all over the main hall and the air was full of smoke. I tried to make my way to the doors but I was choking on the smoke filled air and fell to the floor coughing.
Meanwhile outside the main hall, the ponies were trying to put out the fire with buckets of water but it was no use. Twilight and her friends all watched in horror as the main hall burned. Celestia was still trapped in the ice and was squirming her head around trying to break out.
Twilight had her mouth covered with one of her hooves with a worried look on her face; she even had tears forming up in her eyes.
Rarity came up beside her and placed a hoof on Twilight's shoulder as they continued to watch the fire.
Back inside the main hall in the room with the balcony, Discord groaned as he rubbing his head while he got up off the ground.
He opened his eyes to see the room was also on fire. Before he could do anything to get out, two bolt of fire burst out the floor in front of him; one was black and the other was dark purple. When the flames faded, two of the silhouetted alicorns were standing in their place.
"W…what are you two doing here?" Discord asked nervously.
One of the alicorns glared. "Our brother has grown impatient with you Discord, your time is up." A male voice said.
Discord gave them a frustrated look. "I wasn't on a timer."
"Oh….did we forget to tell you? You had twenty four hours to kill Matthew." A female voice said evilly.
"Then I have the rest of the day to do it." Discord said in a frustrated tone.
"We also forgot to mention that the timer started the minute you left our throne room." The male alicorn said before he chuckled darkly.
Discord's face turned to anger. "That's not fair."
"You would know what's unfair wouldn't you? Given your reputation as a trickster after all. Now…..say goodbye to your name." the male alicorn said before both their horns started glowing.
Discord's eyes widened in horror as he glowed white and kneeled to the ground in pain. Once the glow faded, Discord was panting heavily.
"You know Discord; it's not a total loss. In fact, our brother saw your efforts and decided to not take away the second thing he said he would take. Instead, he wanted us…..to kill YOU." The female alicorn yelled before her horn glowed.
A large long thick plank of burnt wood on the ceiling then glowed and broke off the ceiling; the alicorn then levitated the plank above Discord.
The alicorns horn then stopped glowing as did the glowing on the debris and fell; Discord had a look of horror as it fell on top of him.
The female alicorn then walked up to Discord unconscious body and looked down at him. "Let's finish him."
"No, I have a better idea. Let's leave him here to die." The male alicorn said.
"I like the way you think brother." The female alicorn said before they both disappeared in two bolts of black and dark purple flames.
A few seconds later, Discord began to come too. Once he was fully awake, he tried to pull himself out from under the plank of wood but he was stuck.
Meanwhile, I got up off the floor and weakly looked over to the door. I started to gallop towards it.
"HELP….I'M STUCK." Discord's voice yelled from the high room. I skidded to a halt and looked up at the balcony.
"Discord's still up there? Why hasn't he got out yet?" I thought as I looked back to the door, I then looked back up to the balcony.
"Grrrr, I gonna kick myself for this later." I thought before I took off into the air and flew up to the balcony.
Once I reached the balcony, I flew into the room and started looking around for Discord. "Discord, where are ya?" I yelled through the crackling fire.
"Matthew…over here." Discord's voice said from across the room. I looked in the direction his voice came from and saw him under the plank of wood.
I then landed in front of him and he looked up at me. "Am I glad to see you, I thought you already left." Discord said with a small smile.
I glared down at him. "Can't really say the feelings mutual." I said. Discord then frowned and I let out a big sigh.
"Alright Discord, you have to help me lift this off of you. Ready? One, two, THREE." With that, we both pushed up at the plank of wood but it wouldn't move.
Discord then stopped pushing and looked up at me. "Matthew…..get yourself out, leave me here."
I stopped pushing and looked down at him with a confused face. "What? You've been trying to kill me all day and now you want me to save myself and leave you to die…..why?"
"Because I no longer need to kill you and…..I'm useless to the world now, I've lost my name." He said with his ears down.
I raised an eye brow. "What do you mean you lost your name?"
"I mean, I'm no longer the spir-" Discord was interrupted by something crashing through the roof. I looked up and I was surprised to see Rainbow Dash flying towards us.
"Rainbow Dash, down here." I yelled while waving a hoof. She saw me and flew down to me. She then landed next to me.
"Rainbow, help me lift this thing!" I said as I grabbed the plank again, Rainbow Dash nodded and grabbed the other side before we stared pushing up.
With mine, Rainbow Dashes and Discord's strength combined, we were able to lift the plank off of Discord and toss it aside.
Discord then tried to get back up but he just collapsed back on the floor. The building started to make creaking noises as the fires grew bigger.
"Come on, we have to get out of here." Rainbow Dash yelled. I nodded and placed Discord's lion arm over me. "Rainbow, help me fly him out!" I said.
Rainbow Dash nodded and placed Discord's talon arm over her before we flapped our wings as hard as we could and lifted off towards the hold in the roof that Rainbow Dash made.
Once we got out of the burning town hall while carrying Discord, the town hall collapsed to the ground causing many ponies to scream in terror.
We then landed back down to the stage where Twilight and the others were waiting for us. "MATT." Twilight cheered as she galloped towards me with a big smile on her face.
Once she reached me, she wrapped her hooves around my neck and started repeatedly kissing my cheek ignoring the fact that I was covered in soot.
She then took her hooves off my neck and took a step back so she could see my face better; she then had a worried look on her face. "Are you hurt? Any broken bones? Are you burnt anywhere?"
I let out a small chuckle. "I'm fine Twi. Trust me; it'll take a lot more than that to kill me." We then smiled warmly at each other before we locked each other in a warm hug.
As we broke the hug, I turned my head to face Rainbow Dash. "Thanks Rainbow Dash, I owe ya one." She then walked up to me.
"Matt, you have to be ether the craziest pony in Equestria…or the bravest." Rainbow Dash said with a smile before she gave me a playful nudge on the shoulder with her hoof.
We then heard groaning behind us and we turned around to see Discord picking himself up off the ground while coughing.
He looked up to see us looking down at him with serious faces. Discord then gave me a confused yet surprised look. "You saved me…..why?"
"I'm not the kind who leave ponies to die." I said.
Discord then got up from the ground. "Well…I quest I should say thank you, huh?"
I then gave him a slight glare. "Just because I saved you doesn't mean I like you Discord." He then frowned slightly.
Twilight then stepped forward. "Free the Princess now Discord." She snapped.
Discord the put his hands up. "Ok Ok, keep your horn on!" with that, he snapped his fingers and the ice on Celestia started cracking until it all fell to pieces, freeing Celestia.
Twilight then galloped up to Celestia. "Princess, are you ok?" Celestia smiled down at her. "Yes, I'm fine."
Celestia then turned her attention to Discord. "And now to deal with you." She said with a glare as she approached him.
Discord then fell to his knees. "Ok let's all calm down for a minute, I have a very good reason why I did this today."
I stomped a hoof down. "Not interested." Celestia then stepped forward. "Wait, I want to hear what he has to say."
Me and Twilight then looked up at her with a confused look on our faces. "What?" we both said at the same time.
Celestia didn't take her eyes of Discord. "Very well Discord, tell us why you attacked Matthew!"
Discord then had a pleased look on his face. "Well the truth is, I was being blackmailed by this alicorn. He said if I didn't kill Matthew he'd take away half my magic and my name, so I had no choice. But I was tricked and now half my magic is gone and I'm not the spirit of chaos and disharmony anymore…I just the spirit of nothing now." Discord said in an upset tone while looking down at the floor. "I can't tell her what the second thing he threatened to take away was…not yet." Discord thought.
"Oh come on." I thought angrily.
Celestia raised an eye brow. "How do I know you're telling the truth?"
Discord got up of his knees and walked closer to Celestia. "Because my name was the only thing that made me want to cause endless chaos. Without it; I don't feel the desire to do it. That's why I've decide to change and help you take down this alicorn for betraying me."
"You've gotta be joking." I said out loud in an unconvinced tone.
Discord stroked his beard with a thinking look on his face before he look back to Celestia. "I'll prove it." He then looked around until he looked at the destroyed town hall.
He had a smirk on his face as he snapped his fingers. Suddenly, there was a big flash of light which faced us to cover our eyes. When the light faded, we opened our eyes only to be shocked to see the town hall was fully repaired.
Discord turned his attention back to Celestia. "Now, is that something the old Discord would do?...look Celestia, I know I've done bad in the past and I understand why you all hate me for it, but I beg of you to just give me one chance to earn your forgiveness."
There was a moment silence before Pinkie Pie burst out into tears.
Celestia then went into deep thought as she paced left and right until she came to a stop and turned her head back to Discord. "Alright Discord, you get one chance but if you show any signs that you're still your old self, you'll have to deal with me."
"YES." Discord yelled as he bent his talon arm down.
I then stepped forward. "Princess you can't be serious; this is Discord we're talking about. You know, the one who tried to over throw you, the one who causes endless chaos and let's not forget the one who tried to kill me today, how do we know he's safe to be around?" I said in a frustrated tone.
Celestia tapped her chin before giving Discord a serious look. "Alright I've come up with a decision. Discord, I can't say I trust you just yet and seeing as how you owe your life to Matthew anyway, you'll be staying with him and Twilight until I am fully convinced." She said as she turned around to walk away.
"What." Me and Discord said at the same time. I then walked back up to Celestia as she continued to walk away. "Princess, you can't really expect us to let Discord live with us; do you?"
Celestia turned her head to face me as we walked. "Don't worry Matthew, if he does anything just let me know and I'll handle him." With that, her horn glowed and she disappeared in a flash of light.
"OOOOOH." I moaned before Discord came up beside me. "I guess this means we're going to spend a lot of time together." He said with a smile.
I growled as I glared at him.
That night: The library
Twilight walked through the front door with me behind her with an annoyed look on my face with Discord walking behind me.
After I walked through the door, my eyes shifted to the right as I grinned deceptively before I kicked the door shut in Discord's face with one of my hind-legs.
I just snickered before Discord reopened the door and walked through while rubbing his nose. "I doubt that was the wind." He said with a small glare.
The library was quiet, which must mean Spike, Jeff and Peewee were asleep. Good thing too, I didn't want them going to sleep knowing Discord was here.
Discord then looked around the room. "So, where do I sleep?"
Twilight tapped her chin before looking up to Discord. "Well, there's a guest room where Matthew use to sleep, maybe you can-"
"Oh no way, he's not sleeping up stairs while we're there." I said in an assertive tone.
Discord then crossed his arms. "Fine, I'll just make my own bed." Discord then snapped his fingers and a cloud appeared hovering in the middle of the room. Discord then flew up to it, laid back on it, snapped his fingers again before an eye mask appeared over his eye and put his hands behind his head before drifting off to sleep.
Me and Twilight looked at each other before she turned to go upstairs; I shook my head and followed her.
Once up stairs, I laid down on the bed and rolled myself on my side so I was facing off the bed. Twilight then laid down next to me and looked up to the ceiling. "Well this is surly a weird turn of events." She said still look up at the ceiling.
I huffed and Twilight turned her head to me. "Matt what's wrong? Why are you so frustrated by this?" she asked.
I let out a sigh and rolled myself to the other side so I was facing her. "I'm sorry Twi; I just can't stop thinking Discord's up to something. I don't trust him." I said calmly.
"I know how you feel Matt, but if the Princess is giving him a chance then so am I, will you please do the same?...for me." She asked sweetly while placing he hoof on my shoulder.
I thought about it for a second and made my decision. "Ok, I'll try to get along with him….but if he does anything bad I'm reporting him to the Princess. If not….I'll accept that he's changed." I said as calmly as I could.
Twilight then gave me a warm smile. "Thanks Matt." She said sweetly before leaning her head towards me and giving me a kiss on the cheek before rolling to her side so she was facing away from me.
I then rolled to my back and looked up at the ceiling before closing my eyes and going to sleep, trying not to worry about Discord.
Meanwhile: Far away dark mountains
The two silhouetted alicorns entered the throne room and kneeled before the alicorn on the throne.
"Brother, the deed is done….Discord is dead." The female alicorn said.
The alicorn on the throne glared down at them. "Oh really?" his dark male voice said before his horn glowed and the two alicorns were lifted off the ground and thrown to the ground next to the large green pool.
The alicorns then picked themselves up off the ground and looked into the pool to see Discord asleep in the library. "If Discord is dead then why is he staying in the same home as Matthew? who is also still alive." The alicorn on the throne said darkly.
The two alicorns turned to face the alicorn on the throne with fear in their eyes. "Please forgive us brother; we will not fail you again. We will go there right now and destroy Discord and Matthew." The male alicorn said.
The alicorn on the throne stomped his hoof down. "No, you will do nothing until I say so, now leave me." the alicorns dark voice growled.
The two alicorns lowered their heads "Yes brother." They both said as the backed out the throne room, leaving the alicorn alone.
The alicorn then walked up to the pool and looked into it. "Discord has joined them, this was…..unexpected. I'll have to come up with something more…drastic….and I think I know what that is." The alicorns dark voice said as he glared into the pool.
Sorry it took so long, but as you can see it's a long chapter. I think only a few will be like this but don't worry! I'm not giving up on this story.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
Goodnight everypony.
15. Day with Discord
Chapter 15: Day with Discord
As the sun rose up in Ponyville, I groaned as I woke up. I then let out a large yawn before I leaned up on the bed and looked to my side to see that Twilight wasn't next to me. I then began to worry that Discord might have done something to her, so I leaped out of bed and galloped down stairs.
I then galloped into the kitchen and exhaled in relief when I saw Twilight sitting at the table with Jeff, Spike and Peewee.
Twilight then looked at me with a slightly concerned look. "Are you ok? Matt."
I finally calmed down; I gave her a small smile. "Yeah I'm fine, I just thought that-" I didn't finish my sentence as there was a flash of light and Discord appeared sitting on a chair next to the table. "Never mind!" I groaned.
I then walked over to the table and sat down by it; not taking my eyes off Discord.
After we ate our breakfast, I got up and headed towards the door to the next door. "Ok, I'm going to make my delivery's Twilight, I'll be back soon. Come on Jeff!"
"Comin'." As said Jeff before he flew off the table and landed on my back.
Twilight the placed her hoof under her chin and had thinking look on her face before her horn glowed. She disappeared in a flash of light and reappeared in front of me. "Matt, I want you to do something for me today. Ok?" She said with a slight desperate look.
"Sure Twi, what is it?" I asked as sweetly as I could because I could see in her eyes that she really wanted me to do something for her.
"I want you to take Discord with you." Twilight said.
My eyes widened. "What?...he is not coming with me out there." I said in an assertive tone before I walked passed Twilight.
Twilight's horn then glowed again and she disappeared in a flash of light and reappeared in front of me again. "Come on Matt! You said you would give him a chance and try to get along with him."
"Yeah but not out in public." I said with a serious look on my face.
Twilight then placed her hoof on my chest and looked at me with begging eyes. "Please….I trust the Princess' decision and I just want you to do the same, at least try! Please"
I looked into her eyes and saw that she really wanted me to do this and trust Celestia's decision. I let out a small sigh. "Ok….he can come. As long as he doesn't cause any trouble that could get me fired."
Twilight then gave me a sweet smile before she hugged me. "Thanks Matt." She said while still hugging me. I smiled and returned the hug.
We then broke the hug and I turned my head to the kitchen entrance. "Discord, you're coming with me to work." I yelled. Discord then poked his head around the kitchen entrance with a smile on his face. "Yay, day trip." He cheered.
We then walked towards the front door. Once we reached the door, I opened the door and turned my head to Twilight who was standing next to me.
Twilight had a sweet smile on her face. "Try to have a good day!" she said. I nodded "I'll try." I said before we shared a kiss on the lips.
"Oh come on." Jeff thought as he rolled his eyes.
After we broke the kiss, I walked out the door with Discord fallowing me. Discord then hovered up beside me with a smirk on his face. "Did you tell the girl you love her?"
"Don't push it!" I said aggressively through my teeth.
I then took off into the sky with Jeff and Discord flying behind.
Sweet Apple Aches
After a few minutes of flying, Me, Jeff and Discord finally landed in Sweet Apple Arches. I looked towards the barn to see Applejack with my delivery cart and we all walked over to her.
When we reached Applejack, I waved my hoof slightly. "Hey Applejack, everything set for me to go?"
Applejack then noticed Discord behind me. "Errrr Matt, ya do know who's behind ya right?" she said with a raised eye brow.
I narrowed my eyes. "Don't remind me!" I groaned.
"Ok well, I'll get cha'all saddled up. I don't have much time." Applejack said as she quickly strapped the cart to my back. I gave her a confused look. "Why? What's going on?"
Applejack had a panicked look on her face. "Caterpillar's Matt, they're eating at our apple's; they've already eaten have our west field." Applejack the pointed at the fields.
We all turned our heads to the field to see the apples on the apple trees being devoured by huge caterpillars.
"Whow, those are some big bugs." Jeff said.
"If we don't do somethin' soon, we'll lose our apple supply and we'll fall back on our budget for this month." Applejack said in a panicked voice.
Discord rubbed his chin until a large smirk crawled onto his face. He then cracked the joints in his fingers. "I'll take care of them."
Applejack glared up at Discord. "Oh no, you're no usin' any of your magic stuff on my apples." She said assertively.
Discord put his talon hand up. "Don't worry Applejack; I have no interest in harming your apples, trust me!"
Applejack then looked down at the ground with a raised eye brow while she was thinking; she then looked back up at Discord and nodded.
Discord then turned his attention to the apple trees and snapped his fingers. With a flash of light, all the caterpillar's turned into butterflies and they all flew out of the apple field. Discord then snapped his fingers again and with a flash of light, all the devoured apples returned on the trees as if they were never touched. Discord then snapped his fingers one last time and the apples levitated off the trees and placed themselves into the baskets below the trees.
Applejack's eyes were wide open with a big smile on her face. "Boy howdy, I have to admit that was mighty handy. Thank ya kindly Discord."
Discord turned his head to face Applejack with a smile on his face. "You quite welcome Applejack; glad to know somepony believes I've changed."
I glared at him. "Shouldn't we be going?" I asked in an irritated tone before I turned around and headed out the farm with Discord following behind.
Fluttershy's cottage
After making a few deliveries, my final delivery was for Fluttershy. As we approached Fluttershy's cottage, we saw her and the Cutie Mark Crusaders outside looking up at the roof of the cottage.
I walked up behind Fluttershy and looked up to see what she was looking at. "What'cha lookin' at?"
Fluttershy let out a small squeal as she spun around fast to face me. "Oh Matt, it's just you."
I nodded "Yeah, I brought your order of apples." I said before I got the bag of apples out the cart and placed them in front of Fluttershy "Oh, thank you Matt." She said in her quiet voice.
She then looked behind me to see Discord giving her a slight wave. "(GASP) Discord!" she said in a scared tone before she laid on the ground and covered her eyes with her hooves while shaking.
"This is just embarrassing." Jeff said with an eye brow raised.
I then lowered my head down to her. "It's ok Fluttershy he's with me, though I wish he wasn't." Fluttershy then uncovered her eyes and I put my hoof out. she placed her hoof on mine and I helped her stand back up,
"So what's wrong?" I asked with a raised eye brow.
She turned her head back to her house. "Do you see those squirrels up on the roof?" she asked. We looked up at the roof to see a small group of squirrels. "Yeah, what about'em." Jeff answered.
Fluttershy didn't turn her head away from the squirrels. "Well, they all have stomach problems and I was trying to give them their medicine but they wouldn't take it and ran out the window and up on the roof and I can't get them to come down." She said in a concerned tone.
I then came up next to her. "Why not fly up there to get them?"
Fluttershy turned her head to face me. "I've tried, but every time I get close to them they throw acorns at me."
I raised an eye brow. "Acorns?" Fluttershy then nodded.
"We'll get them down." Sweetie Belle said as she, Applebloom and Scootaloo galloped up to the cottage.
Sweetie Belle then stood next to the wall of the cottage before Applebloom jumped on top of her and Scootaloo jumped on top of Applebloom so they were forming a tower.
As Scootaloo tried to grab the edge of the roof, Sweetie Belles legs were shaking because of the weight of her two friends pushing down on her until she finally lost her balance and collapsed to the ground causing Applebloom and Scootaloo to fall with her.
"Maybe squirrel catching's not our special talent after all." Applebloom said as she stood back up while rubbing her head.
"Gee, what gave you that idea?" Scootaloo said sarcastically.
As the Crusaders walked back over to us, I decided to get this over with and flew into the air and towards the roof. When I reached the roof, I slowly flew towards the squirrels. "Ok little squirrels, it's time to take your meds so why don't you just come down nice and cal-OW." I was interrupted by something hard hitting me on the head and catching it in my hoof.
I looked at my hoof to see an acorn in the middle of it. "An acorn? Is that the best you go- AHHHH." I yelled in terror as a swarm of acorns crashed stormed at me causing me to fall to the ground.
I was looking up at the sky with my eyes narrow while there was a pile of acorns covering my body. "That didn't work." I said in an obvious tone.
Jeff then flew down to the back of my head. "What's the matter Matt, this whole thing drivin' you nuts, HAHAHAH."
We were all silent while Jeff was laughing at his crap joke, Jeff laughter then faded once he realized nopony else was laughing. "Wow…tough group." He said finally giving up.
I then pushed all the acorns off of me, stood back up and glared up at the squirrels. "That was a cheap shot." I yelled up to the squirrels while shaking a hoof before one of the squirrels threw another acorn at my head. I didn't react as I just stood there glaring while the squirrels burst out laughing in high pitched squeaks.
I then turned around and stormed back to Fluttershy. Jeff then flew towards us and landed on my back.
Discord then stepped forward. "I might be able to get them to come down."
We turned our heads to face Discord. "And how are you planning to do that? They're armed and loaded." I said with a raised eye brow.
Discord then placed his lion hand on his chest. "I can speak to them." He said with a smirk on his face.
"You're gonna speak squirrel? This I have to see." I said with an amused smile before sitting on the ground; getting ready to watch this goofy act.
Discord then disappeared in a flash of light and then reappeared on the roof. The squirrels were about to throw more acorns before Discord leaned down to them.
"Squeaky, squeaking, squeaker, squeaky." Discord said in squirrel talk. The squirrels then lowered their acorns and had curious looks on their faces. One of the squirrels the started squeaking to Discord.
"HaHa, squeaker, squeaking, squeaker." Discord said.
Me, Jeff, Fluttershy and the Crusaders had confused looks on our faces as we watched Discord talk to the squirrels. I then moved my head closer to Fluttershy without looking away from Discord. "What the friv is he sayin'?"
Fluttershy did the same with her head. "I have no idea."
I then let out a frustrated sigh. "This is a waste of time. Talking to the squirrels….that has to be the most ridiculous thing I've ever-." I stop in my sentence as I saw the squirrels climb down from the roof and run towards Fluttershy. Soon the squirrels were all on Fluttershy's back.
"You are kidding me." I groaned under my breath with my eyes wide open.
A large smile came on Fluttershy's face as she looked at the squirrels on her back. "Oh, they'll let me give them their medicine, this is wonderful."
With a flash of light Discord appeared in front of us with a smirk on his face. "Thank you so much Discord." Fluttershy said.
Discord smiled. "Don't mention it dear Fluttershy, it's my way of saying sorry for what I did to you when we first met."
Fluttershy then smiled warmly. "Wow, you really have changed."
The smirk returned on Discord's face as he crossed his arms and looked down at me with a raised eye brow. I just rolled my eyes.
The Crusaders then walked up to Discord with large smiles on their faces. "That was awesome Discord." Scootaloo said.
"Maybe we can get our cutie marks being squirrel speakers." Applebloom said in excited tone.
"Yeah, can you teach us how to do that? Discord." Sweetie Belle asked. Their smiles then grew bigger.
Discord smiled down at them. "Of course I can." I then made a fake cough sound and Discord then frowned slightly. "But I'm afraid I can't right now, I have a busy day with Matt today."
The Crusaders then looked at the ground in disappointment. "Awww,"
Discord gave them a warm smile and leaned down to them. "Don't worry young ponies, I'll be back later." The Crusaders grew small smiles before Discord walked passed them and headed back to Ponyville.
I let out a small sigh before following him. Fluttershy and the Crusaders waved us goodbye and I waved back before continuing to follow Discord.
That afternoon: Ponyville streets
After returning the empty cart to Applejack and collecting my pay, I was trying to calm myself by taking a walk through the streets of Ponyville with Jeff on my back and Discord hovering behind me.
I looked around to see other ponies giving me strange looks while whispering to each other. "Oh no, thanks to Discord noponys going in to trust me anymore." I thought in a worried tone.
As we kept walking, Jeff turned his head to Discord. "So Discord, now that you only have half your magic what magic can you do now?"
Discord tapped his chin. "Well, I can't take away a wings and horns anymore; I can't make houses hover in the air; in fact I can't alter reality at all. All my magic's good for now is pulling harmless pranks."
While still walking, I then turned my head around to face him. "Yeah but you may want to ease down on the pranks." Discord gave me a confused look. "Why?"
I then gave him a serious look. "Because I don't share you're your sense of humor with your kind of pranks." As I kept walking, I suddenly bumped into something which made me fall back on my flank.
I rubbed my head as I got back up and opened my eyes to see a brown earth pony with a cart of pies attached to his back. "Sorry." I said.
The pony gave me a glare. "Why don't you watch where you're going kid!" he said aggressively.
I glared back slightly. "Kid? I'm not a kid, I'm 16." I protested.
He then rolled his eyes. "Whatever, just stay out of my way." He then walked passed me while pulling the cart behind him.
I glared sharply at him as he walked away. "Ass hole." I growled under my breath.
Discord glared at the pony before a large grin crawled on his face. "Hey Matt, remember those pranks I mentioned a minute ago?" he said in a sly voice.
I gave him a suspicious look while nodding. Discord then snapped his fingers and a banana peel appeared on the ground in front of the brown pony. The pony kept walking until he stepped on the peel and slipped backwards onto his cart.
When he fell on his cart, all the pie fling in the air. The pony's eyes shot open at the sight of the pies hurling down to him until all the pies splattered on him; covering him in pie.
Discord and Jeff burst out laughing. At first I didn't find it funny, but then I thought about how much of an ass that pony was and the look on his face when the pies fell on him. I then felt the thought tickled me and I started laughing slightly.
I covered my mouth with my hoof; trying to hold back the laughter but it was no use as I joined Discord and Jeff in laughing. "Ok HaHaHa, I have to admit THAT was funny HaHaHa." I said while laughing.
Discord whipped a tear off his eye and looked at me. "See! Now was that so bad?"
I gave him a small smile. "Guess not." I then let out a small chuckle.
Discord then came up beside me. "Come on! Let's see if we can prank any other ponies." he said in an excited tone.
I shook my head while smiling before looking back up to him. "Fine, I guess there's nothing wrong with a bit of a laugh."
We all then set out to find ponies to prank.
Later that evening: Fields outside of Ponyville
Me, Jeff and Discord were lying on the grass next to each other watching the sun set after a day of pranking ponies. The ponies we pranked didn't take the pranks hardly, In fact they laughed with us about it.
As we looked up at the sky, I rolled my head to Discord with a smile. "I have to admit Discord, that was fun."
Discord then looked at me. "Yeah, even with half my magic gone I can still have tons of fun." He then looked back up at the sky.
I then gave him a curious look. "So what did you mean when you said your name was gone?"
Discord didn't look away from the sky. "Well it works like this; there are hundreds of spirits out there with their own names."
I smirked slightly. "There's more of you?…oh goody."
Discord didn't react. "Anyway, each one has a responsibility and the spirit of life is the one who chooses which spirit gets a curtain responsibility, he's the one who chose me to be the spirit of chaos and disharmony. Before I was chosen, I was the Discord you see now. But after I was chosen, I felt the uncontrollable desire to cause Chaos which turned me into the Discord everypony feared and the one who tried to kill you. Now that the name has been taken away from me I don't feet those desires anymore and I have my free will back."
"So you don't want to kill me anymore?" I asked.
Discord shook his head. "No, but I had no choice. That alicorn threatened to take something very important away from me."
"Yeah and it looks like he did." I said.
Discord's ears lowered slightly. "Actually, to tell the truth…..my name and magic wasn't what he meant."
I gave him another curious look. "Then what were you talking about?"
Discord rolled his head to me. "Matt, can you keep a secret?"
I nodded. "Pinkie swear?" Discord said with a begging look.
I rolled my eyes. "Fine. Cross my heart, hope to fly, stick a cupcake in my eye." I said as I placed my hoof over my eye.
Discord then took a deep breath. "Ok, he said if I didn't kill you he'd…..kill Celestia."
My eyes widened slightly. "Kill Celestia? But nopony can kill her; she's the most powerful pony in Equestria."
Discord gave me a serious look. "Trust me Matt, I may not remember much about him but he is one bad pony, he is more than a match for Celestia. That's why I had to try and kill you. ….to save Celestia. And when I failed, he decided to spare Celestia and kill me instead. That's why I was under that plank, he left me to die."
I then raised an eye brow. "But you've been trying to overthrow her for years."
"Yes, but I never tried to kill her. That's just barbaric. Anyway, all I want to do with her now is show her that I'm sorry for everything I've done in the past and try to start over." Discord said in an honest voice.
"You really have changed…..haven't you?" I said with slight guilt.
Discord nodded slightly. I then leaned up from the grass with the feeling of guilt flowing through my body. "Great, now I feel like an ass hole." I said while looking down at the grass.
I then turned my head to Discord with a guilty look. "Discord I'm sorry for not believing you, I should have known when you help Applejack and Fluttershy. It's just that I found it hard to believe that somepony whose been bad for so long could change their ways just like that."
Discord then smiled warmly. "You don't have to be sorry Matt; I don't blame you for not trusting me. After all I did try to kill you, to be honest I never expected you to believe me at all."
My ears lowered. "Well….maybe we should start over and try to forget all this?"
Discord then gave me a small smile before he stuck out his lion hand. "Friends?" he said with a kind voice.
I looked up at him and smiled slightly and placing my hoof in his hand before we shook up and down. "Friends." I said back.
We then laid back on the grass and enjoyed the rest of the sun set.
That night: Library
Twilight was lying on the bed reading a book while I was pacing back and forth telling her about how much I was wrong about Discord. "I have to admit Twilight; you were right about giving Discord a chance. Now I really believe he's changed."
Twilight looked up from her book and gave me a large smile. "That's great Matt, so you finally feel comfortable with Discord staying here?"
I stopped pacing and looked at her with a smile. "Yep, I feel as though I shouldn't have been so stiff around Discord and should have just accepted the fact that he changed."
Twilight raised an eye brow with the smile still on her face. "So what you're saying is…you learned something today?"
I was completely surprised by the fact that she was right. "Yeah, I guess I did."
Twilight then climbed off the bed and walked up to me. "Then why don't you wright this as a friendship report to the Princess? I'm sure she'll be glad to hear it."
My eyes widened in surprise. "You want me to wright a friendship report?"
She gave me a sweet look. "Of course Matt, I would be glad to see you wright your first report to the Princess."
I smiled nervously. "Well….alright then." I then turned my head to Spike who was standing across the room. "Ready Spike?"
He nodded. "You got it." He then pulled out a quill and paper and prepared to start writing."
I then took a deep breath before I spoke the letter.
"Dear Princess Celestia.
Today I learned that you should never hold a grudge. Because holding on to all that hatred and anger can not only hurt others around you, but can also hurt yourself and make you feel really bad. So when somepony who's done something bad to you in the past claims they've changed, you should give them a chance to prove themselves before you disbelieve them. Because you might discover they're telling the truth and make a new friend.
P.S. I'm pleased to say that Discord is the one who taught me this valuable lesson and that he has finally gained my trust and my friendship.
Your friend: Matthew."
Once Spike noticed I was done, he rolled up the letter and burnt it with his fire breath until it became a small cloud of smoke which shot out the window and up to Canterlot.
Twilight then gave me a kiss on the cheek and when she pulled away she gave me a warm smile. "I'm so proud of you Matt."
I smiled back slightly blushing. "Thanks Twi, I wonder what the Princess will think of my report."
At that moment, Spike made a loud burping sound and a small cloud of smoke came out his mouth and formed into a scroll. "Oh, speak of the devil." I said.
Twilight then lifted the scroll up with her magic and unrolled it before reading it.
Dear Matthew.
I'm so glad you have learned to except Discord as a friend, but I still need to be more convinced before I can decide what to do with him. Until then, I would like him to remain with you until I can truly trust him.
Your friend: Princess Celestia.
Twilight then put down the letter and we looked at each other with slightly concerned looks.
Twilight then smiled. "Don't worry, she'll believe Discord eventually."
I smiled as I nodded slightly. "Yeah, looks like he's staying with us for a while anyway. Maybe we can show her that he's changed somehow."
Twilight still smiled before letting out a yawn. "Maybe….but we'll think of a way tomorrow. Right now; it's late and we should get our sleep! Come on." She then turned around a walked back to the bed.
I smiled before following her. "Right behind you, beautiful."
Twilight then climbed on the bed, got under the covers and closed her eyes to go to sleep. I was about to join her but not before looking down stairs to see Discord sleeping in his cloud hammock.
I smiled warmly down at him before climbing into bed with Twilight. I then rested my head on the soft pillow before closing my eyes and let myself drift off into a calm sleep.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
Next chapter will be up soon.
16. Birth of the Bronies
I had to change some of the lyrics in the song I used for this chapter.
warning: long chapter.
Chapter 16: Birth of the Bronies
It's been 3 days since Discord gained my trust and through those days most of the ponies in Ponyville have gotten use to him being around, some of them even say hello to him now and then.
So far, he's getting a good reputation in Ponyville. I just hope that the Princess can notice and finally forgive him for all he's done in the past.
Ponyville streets
Jeff was flying through the streets with a bored look on his face. "Man….today is just dull; hope something interesting shows up soon." Jeff thought.
He flew past a poster board where something caught his eye. He then flew back to the board to see what it was.
Once he returned to the board, his eyes widened in amazement at the poster for a talent show. "If that ain't a sign I don't know what is." He said to himself in excitement.
He then grabbed the poster with his beak and tore it off the poster and flew as fast as he could to the café where Me and the others where.
The Ponyville café
Me, Twilight, Spike, Applejack, Rainbow Dash, Pinkie Pie, Fluttershy and Discord were sitting on a large table with each of us having a drink.
Discord looked at his drink and raised his eye brow. "So what do you call this again?" he asked before looking at Twilight
"…..a cup of coffee." Twilight answered awkwardly.
Discord looked back down at his coffee and took a sip, his eyes suddenly shot wide open and he did a spit-take on the ground before fanning his tongue. "WATER! WATER!" He cried.
I quickly gave him my cup of water and he jugged it all down his throat. Once he drunk all the water, he put the cup down and panted heavily. "Ok….that was hot."
"Sorry there Discord, we thought you knew." Applejack said with a sorry look.
Discord raised his talon hand. "It's ok, but what do I do with this coffee? Give it to Pinkie Pie?"
"NOOO." We all yelled with our eyes wide open.
A few minutes later, Rarity walked up to the table with a large cheerful smile on her face. We all looked at her to see she was wearing a sliver necklace and 2 silver hair clips with a gold flower on each of them.
"Wow Rarity, wear did you get that necklace and hair clips." Fluttershy asked with a small smile.
"Aren't they marvellous? My secret admirer sent them to me last night with another lovely poem, I simply adore them." She said as she sat down with us.
Me and Spike gave each other a sly smirk, trying not to let the others see us.
Spike then scooted his chair to get closer to Rarity. "So, it looks like you really like this guy. Huh?"
Rarity looked down at Spike. "I'm not sure. I mean, I haven't even met this colt yet."
"But what if he's not a colt. What if he's something like Errrr….a donkey? Or a Minotaur? Or something completely not pony." Spike asked nervously.
Rarity rubbed her chin with her hoof. "Well, I've never thought about that…..I would have to say it wouldn't matter what he is, because it's not what's on the outside that matters…it's what's on the inside that counts. And through what I've read in his poems, he has a sweet and passionate soul and that's what I'm attracted too."
Spike then had a large smile on his face before scooting his chair back to me. Once he got back to me, I gave him a playful pat on the back before leaning my head down to him. "This is good, now we know that it won't bother her that it's you." I whispered to him
He then raised his head up to mine. "Yeah, just of few more anonymous gifts and I'll try to tell her that it's me." he whispered.
Rainbow Dash noticed us whispering to each other. "And what are you two talking about?" she asked with an eye brow raised.
Me and Spike shot our heads away from each other. "Nothin'." We both said at the same time.
Rainbow Dash gave us a suspicious look before taking a sip of her drink.
A few minutes later, we all heard the sound of flapping getting louder and louder.
We looked in the direction it was coming from and saw Jeff flying towards us with a poster in his beak.
When he was close to us, he was so exhausted that he lost control of his flight pattern and started falling towards the table.
Discord noticed this and snapped his fingers. Suddenly, a pillow appeared in a flash of light on the table and Jeff crashed on the soft pillow.
"Jeff, what's up bird?" I said looking down at the panting parrot on the table.
Jeff got up off the pillow in a daze before shaking the daze off and took the poster out his beak. "Guys, guess what I found!" he said in an excited tone.
I looked at the poster he was holding in his wing and raised an eye brow. "An old wrinkly piece of paper?" I said in an unsatisfied tone.
Jeff looked at the poster to see he was holding it the wrong way; he then spun it around to show us it was an advertisement for an upcoming talent show.
"The Ponyville talent show?" I said with a raised eye brow.
"Yeah dude, we should totally enter." Jeff said in an excited tone.
Rainbow Dash let out a small laugh. "And what would be your talent? Flying through hoops? Or seeing how many times you can make a mess on a statue?" she said before she let out another small laugh.
Jeff gave her a sharp look. "No. it's going to be something cool, something we can all do, but what?" Jeff started rubbing under his beak as he paced back and forth.
"How about we perform a magic act." Spike suggested.
Jeff shook his head. "Nah, to obvious." He then continued to pace.
"A flying show?" I suggested.
"Sorry, I did that last year. It wouldn't be as interesting now." Rainbow Dash stated.
Jeff quickened his pacing until he came to a quick stop. "I GOT IT, we can sing…or better yet, we can form a band." He said in an excited tone.
We all looked at him with confused looks. "A band?" Twilight asked.
Jeff turned his head to face her. "Yeah Think about it!...we could make an awesome band."
"Well that does sound like a good idea….but, it's just not my type of thing, ya know!" Applejack confessed.
Rarity nodded in agreement. "I'm afraid I must agree with Applejack. A band is simply not lady like."
"Erh, I just don't want to do it." Rainbow Dash added in an uninterested tone.
Pinkie Pie, Fluttershy and Twilight nodded in agreement.
Jeff crossed his wings. "Fine, you girls do what you want. It'll just have to be a boy band instead, with Me, Matt, Spike, Discord and even Peewee."
"Yeah, we're not interested ether." I admitted. Discord and Spike nodded in agreement.
Jeff was about to say something until he came up with an idea. "Ok….looks like there's no convincing you, I just feel bad that Spike won't get to eat all those diamonds." Jeff then had a mischievous grin on his face
Spike suddenly went wide-eyed and leaded closer to Jeff. "What diamonds?"
Jeff then turned his attention to Spike. "Oh yeah, you know the expression they'll shower you with diamonds? Well for a band they do it for real. All those fresh….mouth-watering….delicious….diamonds."
Spike was lost in fantasy as his drool made a small puddle on the table, he then snapped back to reality and wiped the drool off his mouth with his arm. "I'm in." he said quickly.
Jeff's gin grew bigger. "And not to mention all the adoring fans who will love us."
Discord suddenly got curious to what Jeff was saying and raised an eye brow. "I'm listening." He said in a curious voice.
Jeff turned his head to face Discord. "Yeah, if you were in a band you would be loved by hundreds…even thousands. And with all those fans, maybe it will attract the Princess' attention and you can show her that you can be trusted."
Discord rubbed his chin with his talon hand while he thought about what Jeff said until he made his decision. "Very well, I'll join your little band."
Jeff had a smirk on his face as he turned to face me.
"Oh no Jeff, I know what you're doing and I'm not going to be pulled into this by your smooth talk like you did with them." I said as I crossed my arms.
"Hey, I was just thinking about creativity. I mean, you're so creative and we could use that in the band. Plus, it would be a shame to put that talented mind of yours to waste, right?" Jeff said in a sly tone.
I then uncrossed my arms and looked at him curiously. "You really think I'm creative?"
Jeff grinned. "Dude, your cutie mark shouldn't even be a game controller. It should be a…whatever a creative cutie mark is."
I then tapped my chin with my hoof before letting out a small sigh. "Alright, I guess I've got nothing to lose anyway."
"Except your dignity and the show itself." A female voice said behind me.
We all looked in the direction the voice came from and our eyes shot wide open in shock to who we saw. "TRIXIE." We all yelled out.
Jeff had a confused look on his face. "Wait! How's Trixie?"
Trixie then walked towards us. "I'm Trixie, The great and powerful Trixie." She said while raising a hoof in the air.
"Also known as, The not so great and powerful fraud." I added.
Trixie huffed at my comment. "Make all the comments you want, I'm still going to show you want a true show is."
"What are you doing here anyway Trixie?" Rainbow Dash asked while glaring at the blue unicorn.
Trixie gave her devious grin. "Oh noting much, I'm just here to win the talent show. And when I do, all of Ponyville will once again see that I am truly great and powerful."
I rolled my eyes. "That will never work."
Trixie came up to me with a glare. "Bet it will and who are you anyway? I didn't see you last time I was here."
"Name's Matthew, I arrived here last month." I said while glaring back.
Trixie raised an eye brow. "Wired name."
"Why does everypony keep saying that?" I thought in an irritated way.
Trixie then turned her attention to Twilight. "Oh, I remember you. The unicorn who bested that Ursa Minor and ran me out of town, Twilight...Is it?" she said with an eye brow raised.
"Yes, Twilight Sparkle. And I didn't run you out of town, I was just trying to protect Ponyville and it would have never happened if you didn't fill everypony's heads with lies." Twilight argued.
Trixie just grunted. "Whatever, you're still going to lose at the show."
Jeff flew up to her face. "Oh no we're not, because you're the one who's gonna lose after we win with our band."
Trixie let out a small laugh. "A band? That's your big performance? Please, that's nothing compared to my act. And I promise it will be something magnificent." She said in a snobby tone.
"Hope it's a disappearing act." I said under my breath.
Trixie glared at me. "I heard that." She snapped.
"You were supposed to." I snapped back.
As Me and Trixie glared sharply at each other, Jeff flew in between us. "Ok let's all just calm it down and settle this at the show. Come on Matt, we're going home!"
Trixie then gave me a smirk. "You should listen to your pet, Matt."
Jeff suddenly went wide-eye and he looked as though he was about to burst in anger. He then looked towards Trixie. "Did you just call me a PET?...I AM NOT A PET." He yelled before shooting towards Trixie.
I quickly grabbed his tail feathers with my mouth to try and hold him back. "Whow Jeff. Calm down bird, she's not worth it." I said through my teeth while Jeff was hopelessly flapping to try and reach Trixie.
After a few seconds, Jeff finally calmed down and I let him go. He then flew onto my back and I turned my head to Twilight. "Come on Twi, we better get back to the library." With that, Twilight got up off her seat and we walked away from the table.
As we walked away, Trixie smirked again. "What? No threat? No confident speech? Fine, just go along home with your pet and your geek of a girlfriend!"
I then stopped in my tracks and gritted my teeth before turning back to face Trixie. "What did you say? Because I couldn't hear you from all the way over there."
Trixie grinned. "I said; go home with your pet and geek of a girlfriend."
At that moment, anger boiled inside me and I pushed my face up to Trixie's. "Listen here ya big fake. You can insult me, you can insult my friend, but when you insult Twilight…that's when I get mad….We are gonna crush you at the show and send you crying home." I yelled.
Trixie raised an eye brow. "Care to make a little wager?"
I gave her a sharp look. "You're on. If we win, you have to admit that you're not as powerful as you say you are and you have to apologise to Twilight."
Trixie nodded in agreement. "And WHEN I win, you have to call me the most powerful and talented unicorn in Ponyville." Trixie then held her hoof out.
I hesitated for a second before I grabbed her hoof and shook it. "Deal." I said while we glared at each other.
I then let go of Trixie's hoof and walked back to Twilight and Jeff before we walked back to the library with Spike and Discord following us.
Later: The library
Me, Discord, Peewee and Spike were sitting at the large table in the main room watching Jeff walk back and forth while he was running through the plan.
"Now….the talent show's coming in 2 days, which gives us enough time to at least learn a song for the show. But we need to know who's good at what and where they belong in a band. So….who's good at playing the drums?" Jeff asked as he looked at us.
We all looked at each other; wondering who was going to answer him. Until Discord raised his lion hand. "Emmm, I've had some experience with that kind of activity."
Jeff smiled slightly. "Good, then you can be our drummer. Get on the drum set and show us what you got!"
"Errr Jeff, we don't have and drum set, we don't have any kind of instruments and we're broke so we can't buy any." I said.
Jeff face-wing in frustration. "AH MAN, we forgot to buy instruments, how can we form a band without instruments? You tell me!"
Discord had a grin on his face as he rubbed his chin. "Perhaps, I can be of assistance." With that, he snapped his fingers and with a flash of light, a red drum set with cymbals, a white electric guitar with blue lightning bolts on it, some speakers and some microphones appeared in the middle of the room.
"Alright Discord! Now let's see what you got." Jeff said in delight.
With that, Discord walked up to the drum set and picked up the drum sticks. He then swallowed hard before playing some beats on the drums and so far he was really good. After playing on the drums for a few minutes, he stopped and looked at us to see the surprised look on our faces.
"Dude….that was awesome, you are definitely our drummer." Jeff said in delight.
Discord just smiled and spun the drum sticks around in his fingers.
Jeff then turned around to face the rest of us. "Alright, I think Spike should be our guitarist because he's pretty good with a normal guitar. Plus besides from Discord, he's the only one with fingers and can actually hold that thing. So Spike let's see how you do."
With that, Spike walked up to the electric guitar and picked it up. After a small hesitation, he started playing some notes on the guitar and we were surprised to find out he was better on this guitar then he was on the other one.
After he was done, we all applause for him before Jeff stepped forward. "Now that's what I'm talkin' about. Now, we need somepony to wright the songs and I think that job should belong to Matt because of his creativity, what do ya say Matt?"
I thought about it for a moment before agreeing to it. "I think I can come up with something."
Jeff's smile grew larger. "Great, you get started and I'll think of something for Peewee to do." With that, I nodded and grabbed some paper and a pen and started wrighting. It was hard because I hand to hold the pen in my mouth.
Jeff examined Peewee for a moment "You're a smart phoenix….you can be our tech guy. You job is simple, you just check the equipment to see if they're all workin' and you can even adjust the lights for the show."
Peewee gave him a confused look. "How do I do that?"
Jeff smirked. "Don't worry, I'll show you the basics." Peewee then smiled and nodded "Ok, I'll do it."
I tuned my head to Jeff with an eye brow raised. "So Jeff, what will you be doing?"
Jeff turned his head to me with a smirk on his face. "Me? I'm gonna be the main singer."
"Why do you get to be the main singer?" I asked.
Jeff crossed his wings and raised his eye brow. "Do you wanna sing?"
"…Yeah, you can sing." I said before going back to wrighting the song.
Jeff then flew back on the table and turned to face all of us. "Ok, we are almost ready to start practising to beat that no good Trixie, all we need now….is a band name."
We all opened our mouths to suggest but we lost our thoughts. "Huuuuuh." We all said as we thought.
Suddenly, an idea came into my head. "Hey Jeff, how about the Bronies?"
Everypony gave me a confused look. "Who or what are Bronies?" Spike asked.
"Bronies are another word for male ponies. In fact, where I came from that was the name given to boys who liked…" I then remembered not to tell them about where I truly came from. "Never mind." I quickly said.
Jeff rubbed the bottom of his beak. "Hmmm, another name for mail ponies huh? Well we are a boy band…and it does sound kinda catchy. Yeah, I like it….from this day forward we shall be known as….the Bronies."
"YEAH." We all yelled out.
"Now let's get to work and crush Trixie!" Jeff yelled before they all got to practising while I wrote.
2 days later: Talent show
Today was the day of the talent show and we were all nervous about going up on stage. Discord and Spike had been practising well and have gotten very good. Peewee had learned how to work the lights and was ready to go. It didn't take me long to wright a song; to tell the truth, I just wrote one that I already knew from England and told them that I made it up. Jeff has been practising his singing and we all agreed that he was perfect for the job.
Some acts had already been up. The first was a young male Pegasus trying to spin plates which didn't end well. The second was two female earth ponies playing oboes which were super boring and the last act that was up there was Snips and Snails doing a magic act which ended with Snails eating the carrots again.
Me, Twilight, the guys and the rest of the girls were back stage waiting to go on. "Where the hell is Jeff? We'll be going on any minute and he's still not here." I said as I paced back and forth.
Twilight walked up to me and I stopped pacing. "Matt, calm down! I'm sure he'll be here. After all he started the band, why wouldn't he show up?"
"Because he knows you're gonna lose." A familiar female voice said across the room. We all turned our heads to see Trixie walking up to us.
"I think your pet was right not to show up, this would be embarrassing for him." Trixie said in a snobby tone.
"The only one who's gonna be embarrassed tonight is you." I said while glaring at Trixie.
We then heard Miss Cheerilee's voice on stage. "And now everypony, please give a round of applause too…The great and powerful Trixie." The crowd then cheered before Trixie walked out onto stage with her head up high.
After an hour of watching Trixie's magic act, we all had our mouths hanging at the show we saw. There was fireworks and everything, even a large blue dancing fire hawk.
Trixie then bowed and walked off stage. "Oh you are toast." Rainbow Dash mumbled.
"What was that Rainbow?" Discord asked with a raised eye brow. "Oh…nothing." Rainbow Dash said with a sheepish smile.
At the moment, Jeff shot through the curtains and crashed right in front of us. "Jeff…where have you been? We're on next." I said while looking down at him.
He got up and made some sort of wheezing noise. "What's wrong with ya? Are you out of breath or something?" I asked.
Jeff shook his head and pointed in his mouth. We all looked at him with confused faces until Twilight spoke up. "Oh no, I think he's trying to tell us he's lost his voice." Jeff nodded fast.
My eyes widened. "What? But he's the main singer, how are we gonna go up there without a singer?"
Jeff then pointed at me. I didn't know what he was doing at first but then I understood. "ME? You want me to sing, but…I can't sing." I yelled with a frightened look.
"Matt I don't think we have a choice here." Spike said.
I turned my head to Spike. "No I mean, I really can't sing. I'm a terrible singer." I admitted. I then felt something tapping on my hoof and looked down to see Jeff tapping his beak on my hoof. He then looked up at me with big begging eyes
I then let out a small sigh. "Fine, I'll do it. But don't say I didn't warn ya….that is, when you get your voice back of cause."
Jeff then glared at me before we heard Cheerilee's voice again. "And now, please welcome the new band in Ponyville….The Bronies."
With that, we all walked up on stage. Once we all got into positions, Discord snapped his fingers and the drum set appeared in front of him, the electric guitar appeared in Spike's hands and a microphone on a stand appeared in front of me.
I looked up at the spot lights to see Peewee was ready to begin. I gulped hard before leaning into the mic. "Errr...hello, we are the Bronies and we hope you enjoy our song tonight." I said nervously.
I then nodded to Spike and he started playing some notes on his guitar before Discord tapped his drum sticks together. The then leaned back into the mic and started to sing.
Me: "You're insecure….don't know what for
You're turning heads when you walk through the do-o-or
Don't need make up….to cover up
Being the way that you are is eno-o-ugh."
Me and Spike: "Everypony else in the room can see it
Everypony else but youuuu."
Me, Spike and Discord: "Baby you light up my world like nopony else
The way that you flip your hair gets me overwhelmed
But when you smile at the ground it ain't hard to tell
You don't know (oh oh)
You don't know you're beautiful!
If only you saw what I can see
You'll understand why I want you so desperately
Right now I'm looking at you and I can't believe
You don't know (oh oh)
You don't know you're beautiful (oh oh)
That's what makes you beautiful."
Spike then played more notes on the guitar.
Me: "So c-come on
You got it wrong
To prove I'm right I put you in a so-o-ong."
Spike: "I don't know why
You're being shy
And turn away when I look into your eye eye eyes."
Me and Spike: "Everypony else in the room can see it
Everypony else but youuuu."
Me, Spike and Discord: "Baby you light up my world like nopony else
The way that you flip your hair gets me overwhelmed
But when you smile at the ground it ain't hard to tell
You don't know (oh oh)
You don't know you're beautiful!
If only you saw what I can see
You'll understand why I want you so desperately
Right now I'm looking at you and I can't believe
You don't know (oh oh)
You don't know you're beautiful (oh oh)
That's what makes you beautiful
Na-na-na-naa-na-na-naaa-na-na
Naa-na-na-na-naa-na-na
Na-na-na-naa-na-na-naaa-na-na
Naa-na-na-na-naa-na-na."
Me: "Baby you light up my world like nopony else
The way that you flip your hair gets me overwhelmed
But when you smile at the ground it ain't hard to tell."
Spike and Discord: "You don't know (oh oh)"
Me, Spike and Discord: "You don't know you're beautiful
Baby you light up my world like nopony else
The way that you flip your hair gets me overwhelmed
But when you smile at the ground it ain't hard to tell
You don't know (oh oh)
You don't know you're beautiful!
If only you saw what I can see
You'll understand why I want you so desperately
Right now I'm looking at you and I can't believe
You don't know (oh oh)
You don't know you're beautiful (oh oh)
You don't know you're beautiful (oh oh)
That's what makes you beautiful!"
The crowd burst into cheers, the sound of hooves stomping the ground filled the air. I looked over to Twilight to see she was stomping her hooves on the floor with a large smile on her face.
Me, Spike and Discord waved to the crowd before walking back stage. Once we were back stage, Twilight wrapped her hooves around the back of my neck and pulled me into a warm hug. "That was incredible; I thought you said you couldn't sing." Twilight said while she hugged me.
"Did you really think I was that good?" I asked. We then broke the hug and Twilight looked me deep in the eyes. "Of cause you were, just listen to that crowd!" Twilight said as she pointed to the stage.
I listened to the crowd and they were cheering like crazy. I couldn't believe that they actually liked my singing that much. I then turned my attention back to Twilight. "Thanks Twi, but they're not just cheering for me. They're cheering for all three of us." I then turned my head to face Spike and Discord to see their smiling faces.
We the heard Cheerilee's voice on stage again. "Ok now the votes are in and the winner is….The Bronies."
"YES." I, Discord and Spike yelled before walking back on stage to the cheering crowd.
Cheerilee then pulled a big gold trophy across the stage and placed it in front of us. Discord then grabbed the trophy by the handles and held it up high while Me and Spike just waved; the cheers from the crowd then grew louder.
An hour after the show, all the crowd had left and Me and the others were standing next to the stage with Twilight and the girls complimenting us on our song.
"That was totally awesome guys." Rainbow Dash said in an excited tone.
"I know right, we rocked the house." Spike said with a big smile on his face.
"Awww, my little Spiky-wiky is a little rock star." Rarity said while rubbing Spike's head.
We all kept talking until we noticed Trixie walk up to us. "Well, I believe you have something to say." I said with a smirk.
Trixie had a frustrated look on her face before letting out a loud sigh. "Fine, I'm not as powerful as I said I was. Happy?"
I raised my eye brow and crossed my hooves. Trixie let out another loud sigh before turning her head to Twilight. "I'm sorry I called you a geek Twilight."
Now that I was satisfied, I smiled and uncrossed my hooves. Trixie then came closer to me. "You may have won now, but you haven't heard the last of the great and powerful Trixie." Trixie then raised her front hooves up and slammed them on the ground; creating a poof of smoke. When the smoke cleared, we saw Trixie running away from us before she disappeared in the distance.
"The girl's a broke record." I said as I watched Trixie run away.
Twilight then giggled at my comment before everypony started laughing. Applejack then let out a large yawn. "I think it's time we hit the hay."
I turned my head to face her. "I hear that AJ. Come on Twi, let's get back to the library." With that, she nodded and we all said our goodnights to everypony.
Me, Twilight, Spike, Jeff, Peewee and Discord then headed back to the library to get some sleep and end the day.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
I hope you're looking forward to the next chapter because I'm going to reveal one of the silhouetted alicorns. Name first, appearance later.
the song used in the chapter is call What makes you beautiful played by One direction. I do not own any thing.
Please remember to review! And next chapter will be up soon.
Hey guys, some guy named Rocketman1965 sent me this message, it sounds urgent so please read.
Greetings to the fine folk that moderate our site.
I, along with many, have been writing and posting on your fine site for years now, some of the better examples of up and coming writers out there are are now suddenly finding some of the stories we've come to love at risk of being removed without the chance to even rectify our errors.
For some, that means the permanent loss of a story. While I don't have anything that (I believe) violates your terms of use, there are those out there that are never able to recover a story in it's original form, this is something I find to be almost worthy of a legal action, as while we cannot claim ownership of a character, the stories are OURS and simply destroying them is something that is inexcusable.
It's quite easy to simply add an MA rating, additional filters or even a simple requirement for a free membership to read the stories presented here, and would cut down on hateful anonymous reviews and posts at the same time, so I have to question as to why such a thing, in all this time, simply wasn't added.
If you're worried about falsification of a registration then have an appropriate disclaimer and then there can be no dispute, you took your steps and the PARENTS didn't monitor their children, if that is even your concern. If it is more of a personal view or desire then please at least let people know and give them a chance to remove a story that you and yours find offensive, most people on the site are actually rather cordial when it comes to such requests.
While I cannot say for sure if this letter will even reach those that may be willing to listen, of if it's more akin to a wide spectrum purge in preparation for something bigger, please understand that you are going to be looseing a LARGE number of your writers, and thus your income from a lack of readers if there is not some level of action taken to help with this situation.
For those that may agree with this, please fell free to sign on and send this to the support server, maybe we can get some movement on this.
pass this on to as many people as possible friends writers even random people.
To be honest, i'm worried that whoever's deleting storys might delete mine.
I will be crushed if that happens, please help!
But lets just look forward to the next chapter. sorry for the long read.
17. Darkness rises part 1
To protect this story from being deleted, I change my rating to T rated. But it's still going to be a fun read, trust me.
In the song in this chapter, I had to change some of the lyrics so they'd match the story.
I would like to thank Najee for suggesting I change my rating because he may have saved my story.
Chapter 17: Darkness rises (part 1)
Far away dark mountains
One of the silhouetted alicorns was on his throne looking down at the other three who were kneeling before him. The three alicorns then rose up to hear what the other alicorn had to say.
"Brothers…sister….as we all know, the boy know as Matthew has interfered with our plans too many time. That is why I have come up with a decision. It is a risky one, but desperate times call for desperate measures. I'm sending one of you to Ponyville tonight to drive that foolish boy out of there so we can take Canterlot." The alicorns dark voice said.
The other three alicorns looked at each other and then back to the alicorn on the throne.
The alicorn the looked down at one of the male alicorns. "Thorn...everypony in Ponyville will be gathering around to watch the comets tonight….you are going to crash that party." The alicorn said darkly.
"Yes Brother, I will prepare myself for it." The alicorn (now known as Thorn) said before turning around and walked towards the entrance to the next room.
The alicorn got off his throne and walked down the small set of stairs and then towards Thorn. "Wait Thorn!...You can't just go there and force him to leave…otherwise he would come back. You must make him leave by his own decision."
Thorn raised an eye brow. "How do I do that?...scare him off?"
The alicorn shook his head. "No, there's an easier way…You see, I know that Matthew carries a great secret and we can use it as a weapon to turn all of Ponyville against him." He said darkly.
"And what is this….secret?" Thorn asked in a curious tone.
The alicorn then grinned evilly.
Meanwhile: Ponyville library
Discord was in the bathroom in front of the mirror with three combs hovering in in the air while they were combing his main, eye brows and beard while he was brushing his teeth. Not to mention the nervous look on his face.
I walked past the bathroom with Jeff on my back and caught sight of Discord in the corner of our eyes. I then walked backwards back to the bathroom entrance and we both watched Discord with confused looks.
I then entered the bathroom and stood behind Discord. "Hey Discord, what'cha doin'?" I asked.
Discord yelled as he spun around fast. "Oh Matt, it's just you….I'm getting ready for tonight." Discord then turned around back to the mirror.
"Why? You got a date?" Jeff asked with a smirk on his face.
"No, Princess Celestia is coming to the comets tonight and I want to make a good impression to show her that I've truly changed." Discord said before he poured mouth-wash in his mouth and swilled it around.
Jeff's smirk grew bigger. "So it is a date."
Discord's eyes shot wide open before he did a spit-take and got mouth wash all over the mirror. He choked for a moment before turning around to face us. "What?...don't be absurd, why would the princess go on a date with me? She hates me."
"She doesn't hate you, she just….don't trust you, but we're gonna change that tonight." I said; trying to build his confidence.
Discord crossed his arms. "And how do you suppose we do that?...say please?"
"Not exactly, we just need to find a way to prove to her that you've changed. The question is how." I said as I tapped my chin with my hoof.
Jeff then crossed his wings while he had a sly look on his face "I think I can help with that." He then flew up to the window and opened it.
"Where you goin'?" I asked as I walked towards him.
Jeff turned his head to face me. "I'm gonna call in an old friend to help Discord, you just go hang out with Twilight and Discord will stay here until I come back."
Me and Discord looked at each other before looking back at Jeff and nodded in agreement. Jeff then flew out the window; I looked out the window to see that he was flying up towards Canterlot.
"Wonder what he's up too." I thought before walking out the bathroom; leaving Discord alone to prepare.
That night: Ponyville streets
Everypony in town was excited for the show and they were galloping to the open field to get a good spot to view the show.
Me, Twilight and Spike with Peewee on his shoulder were calmly walking towards the field. We were excited for the show too, but we just liked walking together.
As we were walking, two female pegasi came up in front of us, one was light blue with a dark blue mane and the other was yellow with a pink mane. They both had an excited look on their faces. I raised an eye brow. "Can we help you?"
The two pegasi let out a small scream. "Oh my gosh, he spoke to us." The blue Pegasus said while she looked at her friend.
"I know, right?" the yellow Pegasus said. I was getting rather confused.
The blue Pegasus looked back at me. "Anyway, we saw you and your band play at the talent show the other day and you were all SO cool. Can we get your autograph?"
The blue Pegasus then reached into her saddle bag and pulled out a sheet of paper and an ink pad and placed them on the ground in front of me.
I raised my hoof and pushed it down on the ink pad before lifting it off and pushed it down on the paper. When I lifted my hoof, there was an ink hoof print on the paper and the two pegasi's smiles grew larger.
The yellow Pegasus then looked towards Spike and Peewee. "Oh look! It's that adorable dragon who was playing the guitar, can we get your autograph too?" she said in an excited voice.
Spike then walked up to the paper and ink pad. He then pushed his hand on the ink pad before lifting it off the ink pad and pushed it down on the paper, when he lifted his hand, there was an ink hand print on the paper.
Peewee then raised his wing. "I was in the band too."
The yellow Pegasus raised her eye brow. "I didn't see you up on stage."
"Oh, I was doing the lights." Peewee said before giving them a sheepish smile.
The two pegasi looked at each other before looking back at Peewee. "Fine." They both said at the same time.
Peewee then flew down from Spike's shoulder and did the same as what we did; only he used his foot so it left an ink bird foot print on the paper.
The blue Pegasus then started looking around us before looking back at me. "Where's Discord?" she asked in a curious voice.
"He'll be coming down soon, he's just getting ready." I said.
The blue Pegasus smile. "Ok, well see ya. We're looking forward to your next show." She and he friend then turned around and started following the other ponies to the field.
We then continued to walk towards the field. As we walked, Twilight was looking at me with a smirk on her face. I saw her in the corner of my eye and I turned my head to face her. "What?" I asked with a smile.
"Looks like somepony's starting to become famous." Twilight said.
I gave her a concerned look. "Does it bother you? Because if it does, I can try and get them to stop."
Twilight shook her head. "You don't have to do that, I think it's pretty exciting that you're a singer now."
My ears lowered as I frowned. "Oh….so…you like me more because I'm a singer?"
Twilight looked at me in shock. "Matt, why would you think such a thing? I like you for you….not because you're a singer. I liked you before you were a singer and even if you weren't I'd still like you. I want you to promise me that you'll never think something like that again."
I gave her a small smile. "I promise, can you forgive me?"
She gave me a warm smile. "I already have….ya big green handsome lump." She said playfully.
I gave her a warm smile before I turned my attention back on the track to the field.
Once we reached to field, we found an open spot and we sat down in it by each other's side. Spike and Peewee saw us together and decided to give us some privacy before walking off to find somewhere else to sit.
I felt a lump in my throat as I thought about how good Twilight's been to me and how I felt about her. I turned my head slowly to see Twilight was looking up at the sky; waiting for the comets to come.
"Errr….Twi." I said quietly. She turned her head to face me and her sparkling eyes met mine. "Yeah Matt."
I then took her right hoof in my hoof and we looked deep into each other's eyes. "Twi….you know that I like you a lot and well…..I need to tell you something…..something important."
"Yes?" Twilight said as a smile grew on her face.
I gulped hard. "Well Twi…..I…errr….I.." She was waiting for me to say it before something caught her eye.
"Matt, look!" she said as she pointed her hoof; telling me to turn around. I turned around to see that Celestia had arrived.
"Come on! Let's go see her." Twilight said before she took her hoof away from mine and walked past me.
When she was far enough away, I stomped my hoof on the ground. "Idiot, you left it too late. Why can you not just spit it out?" I whispered to myself.
Twilight looked back at me. "Are you coming?" she asked.
I nodded and got up to follow her to see Celestia. Once we were close enough, Celestia noticed us and smiled. "Twilight, Matthew, I figured you two would be here."
"You figured correctly, your highness." I said with a smirk.
Celestia giggled at my response. "Well I can certainly tell that you're in a good mood tonight, which is good because I want to introduce you to somepony."
I tilted my head. "Really?...Who?"
"Matthew, may I present my sister…Princess Luna." Celestia said before she stepped to aside to reveal Luna (Who had the same appearance as she did in Luna Eclipsed).
Twilight smiled in surprisement. "Princess Luna, I haven't seen you since Nightmare Night."
Luna walked up to us. "Yes, I would have come back sooner but I've had to remain in solitude for some time now."
Twilight had a confused look on her face. "Why? What's happened?"
"There has been a threat made against me, I fear that somepony out there is trying to steal my magic to control the night for themselves. With my sister here, this is the only time I have to come out before going back into hiding." Luna explained.
"Why not just fight whoever it is off?" Twilight asked.
"I may be a princess but I'm not as strong as my sister. Plus, I've already tried brutal force, I once got a message from this mysterious pony and I sent three of my best guards after him." Luna said.
Twilight moved closer to her. "And then what? Did they return?"
"In a way, yes….but they didn't return to my castle; I was told they had been sent to the hospital so I rushed over there to see what condition they were in, they were gravely injured. Two of them died and the other is too shook up to tell me what happened. Every time I ask him, he freaks out and starts babbling about some sort of monster." Luna explained with her ears hanging low.
I was shock by this news. "Whow, whatever attacked them must have been one bad ass."
Luna looked at me and raised an eye brow. Twilight then came up beside me. "Oh yeah. Luna, this is Matthew. He's my coltfriend."
Luna then came up to me as well. "So this is the Matthew my sister has been telling me so much about in her letters. You have certainly gained a great reputation while you've been living in Ponyville…..despite your weird name."
"Again with the name." I thought while I just nodded my head with a smile.
"So….if you're Twilight Sparkle's coltfriend, then I have just one thing to asked." Luna said as she moved her face up to mine.
"Yeah." I said nervously.
Luna then had a small smile on her face. "Do you have a brother?"
Once I realized where she was going with this, I chuckled. "No sorry, just a sister and she's very VERY far away."
Luna frowned slightly. "Dang."
"So Princess, have you come to watch the comets with us?" Twilight asked.
Luna turned her head to face her. "Yes, but I'm also here to see if these rumours about Discord claiming to have turned over a new leaf were true."
"Where is he anyway?" Celestia asked with a curious voice.
I looked around for him but couldn't see him. "He said he'd be here. He's been stressin' out about coming here though."
Celestia raised an eye brow. "Stressing about what?"
I rubbed the back of my neck with my hoof. "Well….he's been really nervous about seeing you again because he wants to prove to you that he's changed."
"I didn't think he would get that nervous about it." Celestia said in a calming voice.
"Yeah, but he can't prove he's changed if he doesn't show up." Luna said.
"Ok, if he doesn't show up in the next few minutes I'm gonna go look for-" I was cut off from my sentence by the sound of some sort of music.
We all looked in the direction it was coming from and saw a crowd of ponies before we walked towards them. Once we got to them, we made our way to the front of the crowd and were surprised to see Sapphire Shores with Jeff on her back and some female pop ponies behind her.
"Good evening my little ponies, and welcome to the midnight comet show. Now I'd like to present…the new friend to all ponies, DISCORD." Sapphire called out to everypony
"HIT IT!" Jeff yelled before the music changed to a different track.
As the music was playing, Discord appeared in the streets in a flash of light. He breathed in the fresh air and exhaled before walking towards us. Sapphire and her female backup singers then started singing.
Sapphire Shores: "See him walkin' down the street (ho) with a merry gleam in his eyes (ho)
He's loved by everypony in this town (he's loved by this town)
Look at him now; you'd never know he was once the kind of guy (ho)
Who tried to bring an empire down (an empire down)
He lost his groove, he lost his way
When he fell in with an alicorn (yeah)
Who wanted to take over the world (take over the world)
But then he did a full 1-80
Said vamoose to the shady pony
Now he'll teach your kids to talk like a squirrel."
Discord: "Squeakity, squeaken."
Cutie mark crusaders: "Squeak, squeak, squeaken."
Sapphire Shores: "And though he spread such joy (such joy)
Everywhere he goes
Looks like this town's fly guy
Will be the last to know."
A group of ponies then joined Discord and Sapphire and started dancing in the same rhythm as they were. Celestia was tapping her hoof along with the music.
Sapphire and backup singers: "There is nothing to prove
Don't have to approve
The way that you move
Don't have to be smart, or be rich, or be smooth (don't have to be)
Don't have to make art
That could hang in the louvre
If you just go with your heart
Then you'll be true to your groove (true to your groove, true to your groove)
Oh, you should be true to your groove (true to your groove, true to your groove)
Oh, you should be true to your groove (true to your groove, true to your groove)
Yeah, you should be true to your."
Sapphire shores: "Oh, you should be true to your groove."
The crowd cheered as they gathered around Discord and started cheering his name.
Celestia then walked up the crowd; which then separated to allow Celestia to reach Discord. Once Celestia was in front of Discord, she gave him a small smile. "Well Discord, I see you have made a lot of progress since I last saw you. Next thing you know, ponies will be asking you for your autograph."
At the moment, the two female pegasi walked up to Discord. "Discord, can we get your autograph?" the blue Pegasus asked in an excited tone before she pulled out the sheet of paper with our prints on it.
Discord smiled, snapped his fingers and with a small flash of light a quill appeared in his talon hand. He the leaned over and wrote a fancy written D on the sheet.
"Thanks." The yellow Pegasus said as her friend put the paper back in her saddle bag and they both walked away; finally satisfied.
Celestia looked back at Discord to see the smirk on his face. "Well that was ironic. Anyway Discord, after seeing all this excitement over you I finally see that you have changed and I've also received word that you haven't caused any type of chaos since you started living with Twilight and Matthew; which has resulted to many ponies being able to trust you…and if they trust you,… then so can I."
Discord then had a large smile on his face. "Thank you Cele….I mean, Princess." He said as he bowed slightly.
Celestia then tapped her chin with her hoof. "Discord….would you mind joining me to watch the comet show?"
Discord's smile grew bigger. "I'd be delighted, Princess."
"Please…call me Celestia." She said as they both walked to the field to find a nice spot to watch the show.
Meanwhile, Jeff came up to Me and Twilight. "So…what'd ya think?" he said with a smirk on his face.
"How did you get Sapphire Shores to perform for Discord?" I asked curiously.
"Me and Sapphire go way back, she owed me one after I saved one of her shows by singing for her when she had a saw throat." Jeff explained. "Now, where are we sittin'?"
"Well actually Jeff, I was hoping you would sit with Spike and Peewee while Me and Twilight have some privacy."
"Oh….ok…well, I'll see you two later." Jeff said as he took off into the air and flew towards Spike and Peewee's spot.
Me and Twilight then headed back to our spot.
14 minutes later, everypony in Ponyville was sitting on their own blankets in the field waiting for the comets to come. Me and Twilight were sitting on our blanket looking up at the sky.
I took the spare time I had before the show to look around the field. On my right, I saw the rest of the main 6 sharing a single blanket and Spike, Jeff and Peewee on a blanket next to them. I then turned to my left to see Celestia sitting between Discord and Luna.
Suddenly, a light in the sky caught my eye and I looked up to see the comets were starting to shoot through the night sky.
As more comets were shooting by, Twilight rested her head on my shoulder while still looking up at the show. "So, what was it you wanted to say before Matt?" she asked quietly.
I then remembered what I was going to tell her before and bit my bottom lip. "Twi…I want you to look me in the eyes when I say this!"
Twilight then lifted her head off my shoulder and we looked into each other's eyes. "Twi….I want to tell you that I….I….I lo-" I couldn't finish my sentence as a large bolt of black fire suddenly burst from the ground a few feet in front of us.
Everypony got up in fright from the bolt of fire. The heat from it was so intense that it caused us to take a few steps back, Twilight covered her face with her right hoof and I was covering my face with my wing.
When I felt the heat die down, I lifted my wing off my eyes and was shocked at what I saw. It was an alicorn but this time I could see him clearly.
He was a large black alicorn (slightly taller than Celestia) with glowing red eyes, large black feathered wings and a long sharp horn. He had a sliver metal armoured vest covering the front half of his body and his front legs had silver metal greaves with spikes on them. His mane and tail were formed completely out of black flames mixed with small white flames and his cutie mark was a white ball of fire with a black crown in the middle.
We all had terrified looks on our faces as we backed away from the black alicorn.
The alicorn then chuckled darkly. "Well, isn't this a lovely sight? The beautiful comets….the cool night breeze….everypony all wrapped up in the warmth of their loved ones…..it all makes me want to incinerate every last one of you and reduce this entire town to rubble. Lucky for you all, you have been proven to be useful in my plan to bring about the new age….with a new ruler."
Celestia stepped forward. "You'll have to deal with me first." She said with a glare in her eyes.
The alicorn turned his head in her direction. "Oh….Princess Celestia!...it is an honour to finally meet you. Allow me to introduce myself! I am Thorn, the alicorn of darkness and I regret to say that your rule has come to an end." Thorn said as he smiled evilly.
"My sister's rule will never come to an end." Luna protested in anger.
Thorn raised an eye brow. "Ah, Princess Luna….or is it Nightmare Moon? I forget, Hahahaha."
Luna growled at what he had said.
Thorn then started to walk towards the two Princesses. "To be truthful Luna, I do admire you the most….especially due to your power over the night and the moon itself."
Luna's eyes widened in shock. "It was you….you're the one who's been trying to steal my magic….you're the one who killed my guards."
Thorn stopped a few feet away from them "Only the first one was right. I had nothing to do with the death of your guards. But I do know who did it."
"Who did it?" Luna demanded.
Thorn grinned. "That's my little secret."
Celestia stomped a hoof on the ground. "What is it that you want Thorn?" she growled.
"What do I want? Well that's very simple, EQUESTRIA. Now it's your choice….remove yourself from the throne…or I'll remove you myself. " Thorn said with a glare.
Celestia spread her wings out. "I will not let you take Equestria for your selfish dark desires." She said in a confident tone.
Thorn growled in anger. "Fine, have it your way." Suddenly, Thorn quickly pointed his horn in Celestia's direction and shot out a bolt of black lightning towards her.
Celestia found herself caught off guard and couldn't pull out a spell fast enough to stop it, so she shielded her face with her wing and waited for the blow to come. As the bolt was about to hit Celestia, Discord pushed her out the way; causing her to collapse to the ground and the bolt of lightning hit him instead.
Discord yelled in pain as the black electricity flowed through his body. Once it stopped, Discord fell backwards to the ground with a hard thud.
"DISCORD." I yelled out before we all galloped over to him. Celestia picked herself up off the ground and galloped over to Discord. Once she reached him, she lowered herself down to him and put her ear against his chest.
"Princess….is…is he-" I tried to say in a worried tone. Celestia then exhaled in relief. "No…he's still alive, just barely…his heart beat is slow."
I tuned my head to Thorn to see his ginning face and then turned it back to face Celestia. "Princess…you and Luna take Discord back to the castle to try and heal him; we'll take care of this guy." I said with a serious face.
Celestia looked down at the unconscious Discord and nodded in agreement. Her horn then glowed yellow and she, Luna and Discord disappeared in a flash of light.
Me, Twilight, Jeff, Spike, Peewee and the rest of the main 6 then turned our attention to Thorn. "You're gonna pay for doing that you bastard." I growled in anger.
Thorn's grin grew bigger. "Ah, Matthew….we meet again."
I raised an eye brow. "What do you mean? I've never met you before."
Thorn took a few steps closer. "Oh but we have, remember? We first met at the castle."
Suddenly, I knew what he was talking about and my eyes grew. "It was you….you're the alicorn that hypnotized me…you force me to fight my friends…you're the one who overpowered the Elements."
"And the one who started the main hall fire and tried to kill Discord in the process." Thorn added.
I glared at him again. "I was wondering how that fire started. But that's enough talk, let's just get this over so we can see if Discord's ok."
Twilight and the others nodded before they joined at my side.
Thorn the started laughing quietly but his laughter grew louder each second. "Haha, I wouldn't do that if I were you…. I know your secret Matthew…your deepest secret."
I suddenly got nervous. "I…I don't know what you're talking about."
Thorn then walked up to me. "I think you know exactly what I'm talking about. Don't you?"
"Matt, what does he mean?" Applejack asked.
Thorn smirked. "What?...they don't know? Hahaha, go on! Tell them."
I remained silent as I looked up into his blood red eye until I frowned and hung my head. "You didn't do any of those things you said….you're not from Manehatten; you're not even from Equestria, ARE YOU?" Thorn yelled loud enough for everypony to hear.
"No." I said quietly. "What was that? I don't think we heard you." Thorn said.
"No." I said loud enough for everypony to hear and they all gave me confused faces.
"It looks like they want an explanation….so give them one." Thorn demanded. I remained silent.
Thorn glared down at me. "Fine, I'll just have to force it out of you." With that, his horn glowed white and I suddenly heard somepony screaming behind me. I turned around to see Twilight was glowing white while lying on the ground screaming in pain while the others were trying to help her.
My eyes widened in horror before I turned my head back to Thorn. "No…ok, I'll tell them…just, please let her go." I cried.
Thorn's grin returned as his horn stopped glowing and the glow disappeared from Twilight and she stopped screaming but was breathing heavily.
I tried to gallop too her but I felt myself lift off the ground until I was hovering in the air. I looked back at Thorn to see his horn was glowing again. "TELL THEM." Thorn yelled.
As I hovered in the air, I looked around at everypony to see that they were looking at me with suspicious looks on their faces; even Jeff, Spike, Peewee and the rest of the main 6 were giving me suspicious looks while they were helping Twilight.
I finally gave in and hung my head. "I'm not a real pony….I'm not from Equestria…everything I said about my past was a lie…I'm…I'm actually a creature call a human, they're hairless, intelligent creatures that walk on two legs….they're just like you only they do things a lot differently in their lives then you do…I was brought here by some sort of vortex and as I was being suck through it, I was turned into a pony and a few weeks ago the Princess made me a pony permanently….and I lied to you all ever since we met." A tear then ran down my cheek.
"And your girlfriend knew of this?" Thorn asked while looking at Twilight.
"No, she didn't." I said hoping he'd believe me.
"YOU'RE LYING AGAIN, tell the truth!" Thorn yelled
I turned my head to face him. "I am, she doesn't know anything." Thorn then pulled me closer to him and smacked me across the face with is hoof.
"THE TRUTH." Thorn demanded. I shook my head and he pulled his hoof back again.
Twilight quickly stepped forward. "Yes, I did know. Please don't hurt him." She begged.
My eyes widened. "TWILIGHT NO. I don't want you to lose your friends too"
Thorn then looked back up to me. "You lied to your friends and then made your girlfriend lie to them. You're nothing but a fake and a coward."
I let my head hang lower. "Now listen you little runt! You have no friends anymore….nopony here wants you around now that they know what you really are. So you might as well just leave and if I see you in this town again you'll see how cruel I can really be." Thorn yelled before he slammed me on the ground.
I picked myself up off the ground and looked around at all the shocked and devastated faces around me. With my head hanging, I walked towards Twilight and the others.
Once I reached them, I looked up to see their devastated faces with tears in their eyes. I then looked at Twilight who had tears pouring down her face. "Twilight….I….I'm so sorry." I then turned my head to the rest of them. "I'm sorry to all of you."
I then walked passed them and started walking down the road to leave Ponyville with tears pouring down my cheeks.
Twilight and the others watched me go until I was out of sight. "We can't just let him go like this, not after everything we've been through and all he's done for us." Twilight said.
Applejack turned her head to her. "I know." She said quietly.
"Then by all means, let's go after him." Rarity said. Jeff, Spike, Peewee and the rest of the main 6 nodded in agreement.
"I'm afraid I cannot allow that." Thorn's voice said from behind them. They turned around to see Thorn hovering in the air.
"If you go…you'll miss the MAIN EVENT." Thorn yelled before his eyes glowed brighter.
Twilight looked around to see that everypony's eyes were turning as red as his. "Quick, cover your eyes." She said as she covered her eyes with her hoof. The rest of the main 6, Spike, Jeff and Peewee then did the same.
After a few minutes, Twilight and the others removed their hooves, hands and wing from their eyes to see the horror before them.
Everypony in Ponyville was under Thorn's mind control spell with the eyes blood red. "Hahahaha, glorious isn't it? And pretty soon…Celestia will fall by the hooves of her own subjects and Equestria will be MINE. HAHAHAHAHA." As Thorn laughed evilly, the mind controlled ponies join in with the evil laugh.
Twilight and the others had the same horrified expression on their faces.
To be continued
Hope you enjoyed this chapter.
The song used in this chapter is call be true to your groove from the Disney movie Kronk's new groove. I do not own anything.
Please remember to review.
Next chapter will be up soon.
18. Darkness rises part 2
I am so very sorry for the long wait; I hate it when I take too long. I don't want any of you to think I'm giving up because I'm not.
I would also like to apologise for any bad grammar that may have been on my previous chapters. It may be because I'm British and the laptop I'm using may have a British spell check. So that may be why some of the words are miss-spelt or it may just be me. I don't know.
Enjoy the chapter.
Chapter 18: Darkness rises (part 2)
Twilight, Spike, Jeff, Peewee and the rest of the main 6 backed away as the mind controlled ponies approached them. Thorn was still laughing evilly as he hovered above his new army.
Thorn then looked down at Twilight and the others "Why so frightened? You're going to be part of something marvellous…the end of Celestia and the birth of the new age of darkness. Imagine the look on Celestia's face when her most faithful student and her friends burst into her throne room and attack her…..oh, it'll be priceless. Hahaha."
Twilight and the others gasped in horror before turning around and galloped away.
"GET THEM!" Thorn commanded before three earth ponies galloped after them.
As Twilight and the others were galloping through the streets of Ponyville, Rarity turned her head around to see the three red eyed ponies chasing them. Rarity gasped before turning her head back around. "We seem to have a problem."
As they kept galloping, Jeff saw a wagon full of apples up ahead and got an idea. "Peewee, you're with me, come on!" Jeff said before he and Peewee flew on ahead of the others and landed behind the wagon.
After Twilight and the others galloped passed the wagon, Jeff and Peewee use every ounce of their strength to lift up the side of the wagon until it tipped over and spilled apples all over the ground.
As the three ponies galloped through the apple covered ground, they stepped on a few of the apples and lost their balance which ended with them falling to the ground with hard thuds.
"Yeah, don't mess with the birds." Jeff cheered before he and Peewee followed Twilight and the others. After Jeff and Peewee caught up with them, they all headed for Sweet Apple Arches.
Meanwhile, the three ponies got up off the ground and continued to chase them.
Sweet Apple Arches
After a short gallop, they reached the farm and jumped into a hay stack to hide in. "Do we really need to hide in this filthy hay stack? What's wrong with the barn?" Rarity asked.
"Because, that's the first place they'll check." Applejack answered in a slightly irritated tine.
"Still, we could have found something more suitable to hide in." Rarity said. Applejack gave her an annoyed look "Then why don'cha just get out and find somewhere else to hide?" she snapped.
Rarity gave her an angry look. "Well I nev-" Rarity was cut off by Twilight covering her mouth with her hoof. "Shshsh, I hear something." She whispered.
Twilight then looked through the hey with one eye to see the three ponies entering the farm. "Oh no, they're out there…we're trapped." Twilight whispered.
They all looked at each other with worried faces until Spike had an idea to get rid of the ponies. He got out from the back of the hay stack (so the ponies couldn't see him) before he looked around on the ground until he found a rock.
Spike then picked up the rock and threw it towards the bar. The rock hit the barn; creating a loud bag noise which got the three ponies' attention. The three ponies then galloped towards the barn to investigate; allowing Twilight and the others to quietly step out of the hay stack and gallop back to Ponyville without being seen.
Ponyville streets
After a long gallop, Twilight and the others finally came to a stop behind one of the houses and tried to catch their breath
Applejack looked down at Spike. "That….was some pretty smart….thinkin' back there Spike." She said between breaths with a smile.
Spike looked up to her. "Thanks." He said while panting.
Jeff finally caught his breath and stepped forward. "Ok, is everypony here?" he then looked around at everypony. "Ok, we've got…Applejack, Pinkie pie, Rarity, Fluttershy, Rainbow Dash, Spike, Peewee and…..wait!...where's Twilight?"
Everypony looked around for her but couldn't find her. Applejack then walked around the house and to the streets of Ponyville before looking around for Twilight.
She was then surprised to see Twilight galloping down the street towards the dirt road. Spike, Jeff, Peewee and the rest of the main 6 then walked up beside Applejack and also saw Twilight galloping away before they all sprung off after her.
As they were galloping after Twilight, Rainbow Dash flew ahead of the others through the air before finally catching up with Twilight and landed in front of her; causing Twilight to skid to a stop.
"Where are you going?" Rainbow Dash asked.
Twilight gave her a serious look. "I'm going to find Matt." At that moment, the others finally caught up to them.
"But…he's probably already left Ponyville. Who knows where he could be by now." Fluttershy said as she walked up beside Twilight.
Twilight then continued to walk to the dirt road. "I don't care if I have to search all of Equestria…I'm gonna find him."
Rainbow Dash then pounced in front of Twilight; causing her to stop again. "Why are you so eager to go after him?" Rainbow Dash asked in a slightly aggressive tone.
"Because, he's my coltfriend and I care about him…and he cares about us." Twilight answered.
"Oh yeah?...well if he cares about us so much why did he lie to us and why is he leaving?" Rainbow Dash said with a slight glare.
"He lied to us because he thought that if we all knew what he really was, we wouldn't like him…and the only reason he's leaving is because he thinks everypony hates him for not being honest." Twilight explained with tears forming in her eyes.
Everypony then looked at each other before looking back at Twilight. "I can't lose him….I just can't." Twilight said with her head hanging and a single tear tripping off her face.
Applejack then walked up to Twilight and placed her hoof on her shoulder. Twilight turned her head to see Applejack had a sweet smile on her face. "Does he really mean that much to ya sugar cube?" Twilight slowly nodded.
Applejack's smile grew. "Alright then…we're gonna go after him and bring him back." She said in a confident tone.
Everypony accepted Rainbow nodded in agreement. Rainbow Dash then crossed her hooves. "Fine…he's just lucky he's cool."
Twilight then had tears in her eyes as a large smile came on her face. "Thank you….thank you all so much."
Rarity then walked up to her. "Your quite welcome darling. Now come on! We have to catch up with Matt." With that, they all galloped towards the dirt road leading out of Ponyville.
Meanwhile: field outside of Ponyville
All the ponies just stood in rows while Thorn looked upon them. "Glorious….just glorious." He said with an evil smile.
The three ponies then entered back into the field and bowed to Thorn. "They got away?" Thorn said while still looking at his army.
"We are afraid so…lord Thorn." One of the ponies said while looking up at Thorn.
Thorn then looked down at them and growled as his horn began to glow. The three ponies were then lifted off the ground and were sent flying backwards until they crashed to the ground; knocking them all unconscious.
"Idiots….no matter; those ponies will never stop me. Oh, they can try but they will fail." Thorn said to himself before turning his attention to his army.
"My minions….the time has come for Celestia to fall and for me to rise. Quickly!..To Canterlot." Thorn yelled out to the hypnotized ponies before they all started marching into town with Thorn leading the way.
Meanwhile: On the road out of Ponyville
Liar….traitor….fake….coward. These were all the word running through my mind as I walked away from Ponyville with tears pouring down my face. The further I got away from Ponyville the more I felt my heart break.
"I just lost everything…my friends…my new home...even the only girl I ever loved….and it's all because I was too much of a coward to tell them the truth. I just wish I could see Twilight one more time….look deep into her beautiful eyes….and tell her straight up how I feel about her." I thought as I slowly kept walking.
"MATT." A familiar voice yelled from behind me. I turned around to see Twilight galloping up the road.
"Twilight?" I said as I squinted my eyes to see her better in the distance. When Twilight finally reached me, she was hanging her head while breathing heavily.
Twilight then pulled her head up and looked me deep in my eyes. "Matt….please….don't go." She said between breaths with begging eyes.
"Twilight, did you not see what happened back there?...everypony knows and I can tell by the looks on their faces that they all hate me now….they'll never forgive me." I said in an upset tone with my ears down.
More tears started forming in my eyes before I hung my head. "You deserve better than me Twilight….I'm nothing but a lying fake…a disgrace to ponies everywhere." I then felt Twilight place her hoof under my chin before she raised my head back up so she could look in my eyes.
"You're not a disgrace, you're a caring and loving pony….and even if I searched all of Equestria for a hundred years, I'd never find anypony better than you. You're the best thing that's ever happened to me Matt." She said with a sweet smile while a tear rolled down her cheek.
"Really?" I said quietly.
"Really." She said back before she leaned her head towards me, closed her eyes and pressed her lips against mine. I then closed my eyes and started kissing back.
After a few seconds, we broke the kiss and smiled warmly at each other. I then wiped the tear gently off her face with my hoof as we continued to stare into each other's eyes.
At that moment, Spike, Jeff, Peewee and the rest of the main 6 finally reached us. They all had sweet smiles on their faces once they saw Me and Twilight staring dreamily at each other. "Awww, aren't they just adorable together?" Rarity said sweetly.
Me and Twilight snapped out of our trance and turned to look at them. I then felt a cold shiver run down my spine as I feared that they were here to say they would never forgive me for lying to them for. I then felt a hoof on my shoulder and turned my head to see Twilight's sweet smile.
I then took a deep breath before I walked up to the others. I looked at them all to see they were waiting for me to speak. There was a moment silence before I decided to break it. "What are you guy's doin' here?"
"We're here to tell you that you don't have to go." Fluttershy said.
I was slightly surprised that they didn't want me to go. "But…I lied to you all about everything…how can you not hate me?" I said with my ears slightly low.
"How could we hate you darling?" Rarity said in her sweetest voice.
"Because Thorn was right….I'm nothing but a fake and a coward….I don't deserve your friendship." I said with my ears hanging low.
Applejack stomped her hoof down on the ground. "Now that's not true sugar cube. He just said all those things to get in your head."
"You really shouldn't bring yourself down like that sweetie. Think of how much good you've done for Ponyville!" Rarity said.
"Like what?" I said in a depressed tone.
"Like your job. Nopony I know can deliver apple supplies as good as you can…and let's not forget how you took that manticore." Applejack said.
Jeff then flew onto my back and I turned my around head to face him. "Yeah, and If it weren't for you I'd probably still be in that cage with that Analog guy. You basically saved my life."
"And Discord would still have control over the castle if you hadn't stood up to him and you helped Discord prove to everypony that he's changed." Fluttershy said with a small smile.
"And you helped me become more confident. If it weren't for you, I would've never had the guts to….you know!" Spike whispered but everypony still heard him.
Rainbow Dash looked down at him. "Had the guts to do what?" she asked with a raised eye row.
Spike blushed until his face was completely red. "Errr…..nothing."
Rainbow Dash gave him a surreptitious look before looking back at me.
"And most importantly, you came to Twilight when she felt lonely and you changed her world for the better…and if that's not good, I don't know what is." Rarity said with a sweet smile.
I then turned my head to see Twilight with a warm smile on her face before I smiled back.
"Yeah, so what if you're not a pony, so what if you lied to us about yourself, so what if you've just been forced to tell your deepest darkest secret to of al of Ponyvi-" Pinkie Pie couldn't finish her sentence as Rarity covered her mouth with her hoof again.
Applejack stepped forward. "What she was tryin' to say was, so what if you told a little tall tale. You're still the best colt we've ever met."
"But….I'm not a real colt." I said with my ears still down.
Applejack stomped down her hoof again. "Oh who gives a flyin' feather? You're our friend Matt and nothin' gonna come between us. Not your past, not Thorn, not anythin'." She said in an assertive voice.
I then grew curious about what they saying and my hopes sparked up. "You mean….you forgive me?"
"But of cause Matt, we never thought any less of you." Rarity said sweetly.
"There was never anything to forgive." Fluttershy said with a smile.
"Yeah, you're the bestest best colt we've ever met." Pinkie Pie in a happy tone.
Rainbow Dash then walked up in front of me. "Fine….I forgive you. But I just want to do one thing." With that she shot her hoof towards me and stopped it right in front of my face which made me flinch.
She then gave me a playful smile. "Two for flinching." She said before she playfully hit my shoulder twice with her hoof.
"And please…don't think badly of Twilight. I trusted her to keep my secret and you all know that losing a friends trust is the fastest way to lose a friend." I said.
"Forever." Pinkie Pie said quietly.
"We don't think badly of her darling, and we don't think badly of you ether. We just want you to come back." Rarity said with a sweet smile.
I was stunned by what I was hearing, I lied to all of them and they still like me. I then felt a lump in my throat as I felt warm inside, nopony could asked for a better group of friends.
With tears forming in my eyes, I sat on the ground and opened my arms and everypony (including Rainbow Dash) came up to me and we all shared a group hug.
"You guys are the best, you know that?" I said with a tear rolling down my cheek.
Everypony remained silent as we all continued hugging each other.
We all then broke the hug and I started realizing what I was doing and couldn't believe myself. "What am I doing? I'm running away from my new home and friends because I was too afraid that they wouldn't like me anymore because of what I use to be? Thorn was right…I am a coward." I said to myself out loud.
Twilight came up to my lift side and placed her hoof on my shoulder, I turned my head to her to see a warm smile on her face. I then smiled back as I placed my hoof on top of her's.
"Ok, hate to interrupt the special moment here but Thorn's still got all of Ponyville under his control and he's probably half way to Canterlot by now. So what are we going to do?" Peewee asked.
I then got a serious look on my face. "I'll tell you what we're gonna do, we're not gonna let Thorn win. We're gonna beat him to Canterlot, get the Elements and use them against him."
"But Matt, the Elements have now effect on him. Remember what happened back at the castle?" Fluttershy said with a slight concerned look.
I placed my hoof on her shoulder. "I know, but what else do we have? We have to try….who's with me?"
"We are." Applejack said before everypony nodded in agreement.
I nodded back before walking up to Twilight. "Twi….we can't all fly up there and it'll take too long to get the hot-air balloon or catch a train. So I need you to teleport us there."
Twilight's eyes grew wide. "But….I can't….I'm not powerful enough to teleport that far. What if I mess up and we end up somewhere like a remote desert or something?"
I then placed both my hooves on her shoulders and looked her in the eyes. "You have to try. I know you can do it, I believe in you."
Twilight looked deep into my eyes before she nodded slightly and everypony gathered up to us. Me and Twilight then locked each other in a hug with our eyes shut tight as Twilight's horn began to glow. We all then disappeared in a flash of light.
Canterlot Castel: Outside Celestia's bedroom
Celestia and Luna were in the hallway outside Celestia's bedroom. Luna was sitting by the wall calmly while Celestia was pacing back and forth with a worried look on her face.
Luna then watched her sister pace and decided to break the silence. "Sister….are you alright?"
Celestia stopped pacing and looked towards her sister. "I'm so worried about Discord. The doctor's been in there for almost an hour and he hasn't said anything about Discord's condition. I mean, what if?...what if he?" Celestia didn't finish her sentence. Instead, she laid her hoof over her eyes.
Luna then walked up to Celestia and placed her hoof on her shoulder. Celesta then removed her hoof and looked down at Luna. "It'll be ok sister. If it'll make you feel any better? I now see that Discord has changed." Luna said with a sweet look on her face.
Celestia's eyes widened slightly. "You do?"
Luna nodded. "Yes, he saved your life. The old Discord would've never done something like that. So now I believe him."
Celestia smiled down at Luna. Suddenly, there was a bright flash behind them and they turned around fast to see Me and Twilight hugging with the Spike, Jeff, Peewee and the rest of the main 6 beside us.
I opened my eyes to see we were in a hallway in the castle before Me and Twilight broke the hug and we all looked around our surroundings. "Twi you did it." I cheered.
"Yeah….I guess I did." Twilight said quietly. She then stumbled slightly and I caught her in my hooves.
"Are you alright?" I asked in a concerned tone.
"Yeah, I'm just a little dizzy." She said quietly while rubbing her head with her hoof.
"Twilight? Matthew?" a familiar voice said across the room. Me and Twilight looked in the direction the voice came from to see Celestia and Luna looking at us with confused looks on their faces.
Me, Twilight and the others then galloped up to them. "Princess…how's Discord doin'?" Applejack asked in a worried tone.
Celestia gave me a slight upset look. "He's….still unconscious. The doctor's in my room taking care of him. Anyway, what's wrong?"
"Princess, we have to hurry! Thorn's put all of Ponyville under his mind control spell and they're on their way here, they'll be here any minute….but we have a plan." I said.
Celestia gave me a curious look. "What do you plan to do?"
"We're gonna use the Elements against him. If we defeat him, maybe everypony will be snapped out of his spell." I explained.
Celestia thought about it for a second before she nodded. "Follow me!" with that, she walked passed us and down the rest of the hallway with all of us following behind.
After a long walk through the castle, we finally came to the castle vault where the Elements were kept. Celestia then walked up to the vault and stuck her horn into the small hole in the middle.
The vault then glowed before it started to open revealing the small box floating in mid-air inside the vault. Celestia's horn then glowed before the box started to glow and levitate out of the vault. She then hovered the box in front of us.
The box lid then opened; revealing the Elements of Harmony. The Elements then levitated out of the box and the tiara placed itself on Twilight's head while the five necklaces placed themselves around the necks of the rest of the main 6.
Celestia then walked up to us. "Are you sure this is going to work? I saw what happened last time you used the Elements."
"I don't know, but we have to try. Otherwise there might be no way of stopping Thorn." I said while looking up at her.
Suddenly, one of Celestia's guards burst through the door and galloped up to us. "Your highness, there's an unknown army of ponies heading this way…and there's a large alicorn leading them."
Twilight then stepped forward. "Then we'd better get going."
"You're all doing a noble and brave act this day and I'm proud of you all." Celestia said in a calm tone.
"Yes, good luck to you all." Luna said with a small smile.
I gave them a confident smile and nodded before turning my attention back to Twilight and the others. "Ok, remember….we're going to do this together, right?"
Everypony nodded in agreement.
I then turned my head to face Twilight. "Ok then, Twi….can you teleport us in Thorn's path?" she gave me a small nod before her horn glowed and we all disappeared in a flash of light with Celestia and Luna watching us go.
Dirt road near Canterlot
Thorn was walking up the dirt road towards Canterlot with his mind-controlled army marching behind him. "We're almost there, soon the throne to Equestria will be mine…and there's nopony who can sto-" Thorn's train of thought was broken when a bright flash of light appeared a few feet in front of him which caused him and his army to come to a halt.
When the light faded, Me, Twilight and the others were standing on the dirt road blocking Thorn's path while giving him sharp glares.
Once Thorn saw it was us, he grinned evilly. "Matthew….I'm surprised to see you're still here."
"You'll have to do better than that to get rid of me." I said while still glaring at him.
Applejack stepped forward. "That's right, we don't care what Matt used to be. He's our friend and we're gonna stick by him."
"How touching, you all forgave him and now you're all here to try and stop me….good, it just gives me the opportunity to kill you all right here. I know, let's start with the boy who started it all." Thorn said darkly.
Twilight stepped forward. "You'll have to get through me first." She said confidently.
Thorn then glared at her. "My pleasure." With that, his horn glowed violently white and a bolt of black lightning burst out his horn and shot towards Twilight.
I went wide-eyed at the sight of this before I pushed Twilight out the way and the bolt hit my arm which caused me to yell out in pain "MATT." Twilight screamed before she got up off the ground and galloped up to me while everypony else had a shocked look on their faces.
Me and Twilight looked down at my arm to see it was slightly blackened with black smoke coming off it. And it stung like hell.
Thorn then grinned again. "You haven't experienced true pain yet." With that, his horn started to glow white again.
I then noticed that I was starting to glow white before I felt a shooting pain in my head. I fell to the ground yelling in pain while everypony came up to me with worried looks on their faces.
The pain was unbearable, I felt like my brain was on fire. But I knew that if we lost, Equestria will become a hellish nightmare. So I fought the pain and weakly picked myself up off the ground.
Thorn then had a look of wonder on his face before his horn glowed bright and the pain in my head got worse. I grunted while trying to fight the excruciating pain but I didn't back down and started walking towards Thorn one hoof at a time.
Thorn gave me a sharp glare before his horn glowed even more violently. I was in so much pain and I was fighting it back so much that I felt like I was going to collapse out of exhaustion but I didn't stop slowly moving towards Thorn.
Thorn's horn then stopped glowing and all the pain in my head finally went away, I then lowered my head while panting.
Thorn kept glaring down at me. "How is it possible? Nopony can take that much pain and still stand. How are you capable to resist my spell?"
I then forced my head up to face him. "Because….I have a purpose….to protect my home….and my friends…and as long as I live and breathe….I will NOT let you hurt them." I said between breaths while glaring at him.
An evil smile then appeared on Thorn's face. "Then I'll have to take care of that, won't I?" Thorn's horn then stated to glow violently again.
I then tensed myself up, closed my eyes and waited for Thorn to strike me down. After a few seconds, the blow never came and I opened my eyes to see Thorn's horn wasn't glowing anymore and he had his eyes wide open.
At that moment, I noticed a glow behind me and I turned around to see the Elements had lifted themselves off Twilight and the others and were now hovering in mid-air.
I then walked up beside Twilight. "What's going on?" I asked quietly.
"I don't know, I've never seen them do this before." She whispered as we continued to watch the Elements float in the air.
Suddenly, the Elements formed a circle and started to rotate, they then started to go faster until small sparks started to flicker in the middle of the rotating Elements. And with a small flash of light, three green crystals appeared floating in the middle of the Elements.
The Elements then stopped rotating and returned to Twilight and the rest of the main 6. The three green crystals then hovered towards me. I stared at them in wonder until they shot themselves onto my chest.
I looked down at my chest to see a blinding glow which forced me to close my eyes. When the glow died down, Twilight and the others gasped loudly at what they saw.
I opened my eyes and looked down at my body to see I was wearing a golden metal armoured vest with a large green crystal in the shape of my cutie mark attached to the chest area with wavy carvings around it.
My eyes were wide with amazement at the sight of what I was wearing. "What the hell is this thing?" I said slightly frightened.
Twilight walked up to me. "I can't believe it….I think it's….a seventh Element."
"That's not possible…there's no such thing as a seventh Element." Thorn said darkly with a glare in his eyes.
I then turned around to face Thorn. "Well apparently there is….and I'M WEARING IT." I yelled in amazement.
Thorn growled viciously. "It doesn't matter; you will all still die tonight." With that, Thorn's horn glowed violently and another bolt of black lightning burst out his horn and shot towards us.
Suddenly, the green crystal on my armoured vest start to glow green and a green shield appeared in front of me and deflected the bolt up into the sky. "WHAT?" Thorn yelled in anger.
I was stunned by what I just saw and looked back down at my armoured vest. Thorn then shot more bolts at me and the green crystal glowed again before another green shield appeared in front of me and deflected the bolts in multiple directions. One of the bolts even reflected off the shield and hit the ground next to Thorn's hoof which made him flinch.
After a moment in thought, I finally understood what to do. I turned around to face Twilight. "Twi, I know what we need to do. You and the others need to use the Elements now."
Twilight gave me a worried look. "Are you sure Matt? What if it doesn't work?"
I then placed my hoof on her shoulder and gave her a trusting smile. "This Element will help us, trust me!" Twilight looked deep into my eyes before she smiled and nodded.
I then looked towards Spike, Jeff and Peewee. "You three better stand back, I could get rough."
Spike, Jeff and Peewee nodded in agreement before they took a few steps backwards. The rest of the main 6 then gathered up to Me and Twilight.
"Everypony ready?" I said while looking at everypony's concerned faces. They all nodded.
"Then let's do this thing." I said in a confident tone before I turned around to face Thorn.
Me, Twilight and the rest of the main 6 then closed our eyes before each of our Elements started to glow. Twilight and the others then levitated off the ground and hovered in mid-air while I stayed on the ground in front of them.
Thorn then chuckled evilly. "Oh, you have to be joking. That's your big plan?...to use the Elements on me?...Hahaha." as Thorn laughed, all the male-controlled ponies laughed with him.
Thorn then stopped laughing and his horn glowed again. At that moment, black thunder clouds started to form above him and a bolt of lightning shot out towards us. Just as it was about to hit us, I opened my eyes to reveal them to be glowing white before a green forcefield formed around Me and the others.
The bolt hit the field but it couldn't break through to us. Thorn saw this and growled in anger before his horn glowed brighter; causing the lighting to come out the clouds more violently.
As the bolt tried to push its way through the field, Twilight opened her white glowing eyes before a rainbow beam shot up from the Elements, broke through the field and dove down towards Thorn.
"NOOOOO." Thorn yelled in terror before the beam slammed down on top of him; causing the clouds to disappear. Suddenly, a rainbow sonic wave burst out around where Thorn was standing and created a cloud of dust.
The forcefield disappeared before my eyes returned to normal. I groaned and rubbed my head before I turned around to see Twilight and the others float to the ground with their eyes closed.
I walked up to Twilight with a concerned look on my face. "Twi…are you alright?" she opened her eye and smile sweetly at me. "Yeah, I'm fine." I smile back at her while the others watched us.
"Why can't they just admit it?" Rarity said to herself while smiling at us.
Spike, Jeff and Peewee then ran up to all of us. "Wow, that was….you where….and the forcefield….so cool." Spike said in an excited tone.
I smiled down at him. "Thanks buddy."
The dust then started to clear and we all looked to where Thorn was. Once the dust cleared, we were all shocked by what we saw. Thorn was lying on the ground not moving while all the ponies were standing behind him with all their eyes back to normal and confused looks on their faces.
"What…what happened?" the Mayor said in a confused tone.
I then became nervous again before I felt somepony's hoof wrap around my arm. I look turned my head to see Twilight with a warm smile on her face.
I smiled back before I turned my head back to everypony and gulped hard. I then approached everypony while they were looking at me with confused faces. "Matthew?...what's happening here?" the Mayor asked me.
I held my hoof up. "Look! Before you or anypony else says anything, I want to say I'm sorry for lying to everypony. I just wanted everypony to accept me and think of me as a friend and I hope you can all forgive me for it….I'm truly sorry." I said with my ears low.
"Well, that's very noble of you Matt but we have no idea what ya talkin' about." Big Macintosh said with an eye brow raised.
I then gave them a confused look. "What do you mean? Don't you remember what I said back in the field?"
Everypony shook their heads. I was shocked by this; they don't remember me telling them that I wasn't a pony. "THAT'S GREAT….I mean, Thorn's spell must of erased your recent memory….oh well." I said.
Miss Cheerilee stuck her hoof out. "Wait Matt! What did you mean when you said you lied?" she said with a raised eye brow.
Think Matt! Think. I then came up with something to say. "Emmm…I lied to you about….Jeff eating all the cupcakes in Sugar Cube Corner. That was really me….sorry."
Everypony looked at each other in confusion before turning their heads back to me. "Well…err…just..don't do it again." The Mayor said. I then saluted to her. "You got it."
With that, everypony turned around and headed back towards Ponyville. Twilight then walked up beside me and I turned my head to see she had a smirk on her face. "Jeff eating all the cupcakes?"
I smirked back. "It was the only thing I could think of." She then shook her head while smiling.
My smirk then faded away once I remembered Thorn was still here. I looked over to where he was and saw him still lying on the floor. I then slowly walked over to his body and once I reached it, I carefully poked his hip with my hoof.
Suddenly, Thorn's eyes shot open and he smacked me away with his wing. Thorn then got back on his hooves with a shape glare in his eyes while he was growling and bearing his teeth.
I backed away as he slowly approached me with hate burning in his eyes. "You miserable little runt, I'll make you pay for this." He growled.
My eye widened at the sight of his horn glowing again. "And now boy….YOU…WILL…" Thorn couldn't finish his sentence before a light started shining on half of his face; causing him to shut one of his eyes and shield his face with wing. We looked to see where the light was coming from and saw the sun rising up from the horizon.
Suddenly, Thorn's wing started to give of smoke while making a sizzling noise. Thorn looked at his wing and yelled in horror before he looked around his entire body to see it was doing the same.
He then looked back at me and glared. "This isn't over Matthew." With that, his horn glowed again and a bolt of black flames formed around him and when the flames disappeared, Thorn was gone.
I was still looking at where thorn was while breathing heavily. I then turned around and walked back to Twilight and the others.
Once I reached them, I hung my head. "He got away."
"But he's gonna come back….I know he will." Rainbow Dash said while glaring at the ground.
I then placed my hoof on her shoulder and she looked up at me. "And we'll be ready." Everypony else then nodded in agreement.
Suddenly, a thought returned to my mine and I gasped. "Aw man Discord, we have to see if he's alright." Twilight nodded before her horn started to glow and we all disappeared in a flash of light.
Canterlot Castle: Outside Celestia's bedroom
Luna was staring out the window to see that the sun was now high in the sky while Celestia was once again pacing back and forth. They then noticed a flash of light and when the light faded, Me, Twilight and the others were standing at the end of the hallway.
We then saw the two princesses and galloped up to them. "Princess…we did it…everypony's-"
"Back to normal." Celestia interrupted.
I then gave her an awkward look. "Yeah….and guess what-"
"You've discovered a seventh Element." Celestia interrupted again.
I raised my eye brow. "Right…and-"
"Thorn got away." Celestia interrupted for the last time. I looked at her wide-eyed in amazement. "You're good…..but anyway, how's Discord doin'?"
Celestia gave me an upset look. "The doctor hasn't come out yet…frankly, I starting to fear the worst." We all looked at her with devastation in our eyes.
At that moment, we all heard a door creek open and we all looked at the door to Celestia's room to see a light brown pony with a doctor's cote walk towards us.
Celestia turned her body all the way around to face him properly. "How is he doctor?" the doctor let out a small sigh. "He's still alive…but I hate to tell you this your highness but….he is gravely wounded. Most ponies don't survive an electrical shock like that…if he doesn't wake up soon, I'm afraid we've lost him."
We all then galloped passed the doctor and into the bedroom to see Discord lying on the bed with his eyes closed and bandages wrapped around his chest. We all gathered around the bed with worried looks on our faces.
Celestia leaned her head closer to Discord. " Please…don't die Discord. I've only now realized how much you've truly changed and I'm sorry for not seeing it sooner. I promise to make it up to you….just please wake up…please." Celestia then closed her eyes and a tear rolled down her cheek and dripped onto Discord's face.
Twilight nuzzled her head into my shoulder before I wrapped my hoof around her to comfort her while still looking at Discord. I could feel her tears running down onto my shoulder.
Just then, we all heard a slight grunting sound and Twilight removed her head off my should and we all looked towards the bed to see Discord's head moving on the pillow. After a second, Discord's eyes started to open and our frowns turned into cheerful smiles.
Discord's eyes where now fully open and he leaned his head up off the pillow and looked at us. There was a moment silence before Discord broke it. "Ok…that hurt."
We all then burst out into cheers and walked up closer to Discord. "Welcome back buddy." I said cheerfully.
"Thanks….where've I been? OW." Discord yelled as he tried to lean up off the bed. Celestia then placed her hoof on him and gently laid him back down. "Don't try to get up Discord. You got hurt pretty bad." She said in her calm voice.
Discord looked up at Celestia and smiled. "Well…at least it was worth it." After hearing this, Celestia smiled back down to him. "By the way….thank you….for saving me. I owe you my life Discord."
Discord placed his talon hand on her hoof. "You owe me nothing, my dear Celestia." He said quietly.
I then noticed that they were looking in each other's eyes before I suddenly knew where they were going with this and smiled. Celestia then removed her hoof off of Discord and walked towards the door. "Come now everypony, we should leave him to rest."
With that we all followed her out of the room; leaving Discord to rest his head back on the pillow and close his eyes.
In the hallway, we gave the Elements to Luna before her horn glowed and she disappeared with the Elements. Twilight was about to teleport us back to Ponyville before Celestia tapped her hoof on my shoulder and I turned around to face her. "I know what you're wondering Matt…you're wondering what that new Element was and why it chose you."
I nodded. "Yeah. It made shields and stuff like that."
"There's only one Element that has that kind of power…The Element of bravery. It is said that the Element will give itself to the one pony with the bravest heart. And aberrantly, that pony is you." I gave her a confused look.
"When you confessed the truth about yourself, you were afraid that everypony would resent you for lying but in the end you faced your fears and stood up against Thorn and you were willing to give your life to protect your friends. That's why the Element chose you." Celestia explained with a warm smile.
I was amazed by this news; I'm now one of the Elements of Harmony. I couldn't believe it.
"By the way, the Element doesn't just make shields for protecting. After you master the Elements power, the shields can be used as weapons in combat." Celestia said.
My eye's widened. "Whow really?...that's cool."
Celestia giggled at my comment. "Yes, it's very cool. But if you're going to use these powers against foes like Thorn, then you need to learn to control these powers. That's why I've authorised Luna to teach you. Do you feel up to it?"
I turned my head to face Twilight to see she was nodding her head with a large smile on her face. I then turned my head back to Celestia and nodded. "Ok, I'll do it."
Celestia's smile grew bigger. "Very well, your first lesson with start in a few days. I'll send you a letter when it's time to begin."
"Thanks Princess." I said before turning back to Everypony to see the large smiles on their faces before Twilight's horn glowed and we all disappeared in a flash of light; leaving Celestia alone in the hallway before she turned around to go back into her room to tend to Discord.
Meanwhile: Far away dark mountains
A bolt of black flame burst out the ground and Thorn collapsed though them and onto the ground while panting. He looked at his wing to see it had stopped smoking and exhaled in relief.
"I take it your plan failed." A dark voice said across the room. Thorn looked up to see one of the other silhouetted alicorns sitting on the throne glaring down at him.
Thorn got up off the ground and bowed to the alicorn. "My brother, I have grave news….there is a seventh Element…and Matthew represents it."
The alicorn growled viciously before his horn glowed and Thorn was lifted off the ground and pinned to the wall. The alicorn flew down to him and glared sharply at him. "A seventh Element? How could you let this happen? What was its power?" he yelled.
"Brother…please..." Thorn begged. "You dare beg for mercy from ME YOU COWARD? I asked you what does the Element do?" the alicorn yelled louder.
"It…it creates shields brother…my powers couldn't break through them." Thorn said with slight fear in his voice,
The alicorn hummed slightly before dropping Thorn to the floor. "The Element of bravery….the one Element that's strong enough to fight us…and you say Matthew controls this Element now?...this could mean trouble for our plan." He said darkly
Thorn got up off the ground. "Brother…let me destroy Matthew and this Element….give me a second chance, I beg of you."
The alicorn raised his eye brow. "And why should I give you a second chance after you've already failed me once?"
Thorn then glared sharply. "Because now I have a new purpose in my plan….to get revenge on that little green runt and his friends…even if I have to destroy all of Ponyville and Canterlot, I will see Matthew die."
Again, sorry for the long wait and hope you enjoyed this chapter.
By the way, I've been waiting to introduce one of the mysterious alicorns for a while now so please tell me what you think about Thorn.
Please remember to review.
Next chapter will be up soon.
19. Element training
Chapter 19: Element training
It's been 4 days since Thorn tried to take Canterlot and so far he hasn't come back, but we're still prepared for it.
Discord was still in Celestia's care in the castle and I've had to wear bandages around my arm after Thorn zapped it with his magic. It's taken a few days, but my arm has finally healed and the bandages are being removed.
Ponyville library
I was sitting on the edge of mine and Twilight's bed with my wrapped arm sticking out while Twilight was gently unwrapping my bandages with her magic.
"Hold still Matt, it's almost off." Twilight said in a calm tone.
"I'm just worried what my arm looks like now, it was burnt really badly." I said in a slight worried tone.
Finally, all the bandages came off my arm and too my surprise, my arm looked completely normal. No bruises, no scars, no wound what so ever. "See, nothing there. Feel better now?" Twilight asked with a smile.
I got down off the bed and bent my arm a few times. "Still feels a bit stiff."
Twilight then came closer to me. "Want me to kiss it better?" she asked with a sweet smile.
I gave her a sweet smile back. "I'd like that." She then lifted up my arm and gave it a small kiss.
A sly smirk then grew on my face. "You know Twi. There's….another part of me that hurts as well."
Twilight was confused for a second before she realized what I was doing and giggled. "Oh really?...and what exactly would that part be?"
I then leaned my head closer to her with the smirk still on my face. "Take a wild guess!" Twilight giggled again before we shared a deep kiss on the lips.
We kissed for a few minutes before we broke the kiss and stared into each other's eyes. "Feel better?" Twilight asked with a smile.
"Much." I answered before we pressed our noses together while staring into each other's eyes dreamily.
At that moment, Spike came up the stairs with Jeff on his shoulder and they both saw Me and Twilight. "Ah dude come on! I prefer you two kissin' then doin' that." Jeff said as he covered his eyes with his wing.
Me and Twilight then separated and turned our heads to face them. "How is it you always walk in when me and Twilight are having a privet moment?" I asked with an eye brow raised and a small smile.
Jeff moved his wing away from his eyes. "Trust me dude! It's startin' to bug my too. I mean, what's next? Lovey-dovey names? Next time I'll just knock before I enter a door or yell up the stairs or somethin'."
Spike then walked up to us with a scroll in his hand. "Anyway Matt, this came for you."
Twilight then levitated the scroll out of his hand a hovered it in front of us before unravelling it with her magic. The letter said.
Dear Matthew.
I am pleased to say that the Canterlot training hall is ready and my sister Luna is prepared to train you to control the powers of the Element of bravery. When you're ready, please report to the castle and I will escort you there.
Sincerely: Princess Celestia.
Twilight then grew a smile on her face. "Well Matt, it sounds like their finally ready to start your training. Are you ready?"
I gave her a small frown. "What's wrong Matt? Don't you want to learn how to use the Element?" Twilight asked with a concerned look on her face.
"I do, it's just….I don't have to go if you don't want me to. If you want? I can tell Celestia to hold it till another time and I can spend the day with you." I said in a calm tone.
Twilight gave me a sweet smile. "Matt that's sweet, but it's important and you need to learn how to use the Elements powers. I'll be fine here, don't worry!"
I hung my head. "Well….if you put it like that."
Twilight then placed her hoof under my chin a raised my head back up so I was looking at her. "Hey…it'll be fine. I'll be here when you get back, then we can spend the rest of the day together. Ok?" She said with a warm smile.
I gave her a small Smile. "Ok Twi, I'll go."
Twilight nodded. "Good, now do you want me to pack something to eat while you're there?" said asked sweetly.
"A few apples would be nice." I answered before she smiled and walked towards the stairs
I stared at her dreamily as she went down the stairs. "I'm telling you guys, she's the one." I said in a dreamed voice.
Jeff then flew onto my back and I turned my head to face him. "Well, why don'cha tell her then?" he asked in a curious tone.
"I was going to at the comet show but that Thorn guy showed up and killed the mood. I've haven't had a chance to tell her since." I said in a slightly irritated tone.
"Well, Thorn isn't here now. Here's your chance." Spike said as her pointed to the stairs.
My eyes widened slightly. "What just like that? What if she doesn't feel the same about me?" I asked in a curious tone.
Jeff flew off my back and landed on the floor in front of me. "Are you crazy? She's nuts about you. Look! All you have to do is go down there, look deep into her purple eyes and say those three simple words that I know are just dying to come out of that big mouth of yours."
I gave him a thankful look. "Look Jeff, I appreciate you trying to help me and all but I think I should just leave it 'till the right moment." I said in a calm voice.
Jeff rolled his eyes. "Fine, it's your love life. You do what you think is right!"
I smiled down at him. "Thanks Jeff. Well, I'll see you guys later." I said before walking passed them and went down the stairs.
"Even though I'm an expert on romance because I have a wife and two eggs at home." Jeff yelled down to me.
Spike looked down at him with a suspicious look. "No you don't. Just yesterday, I saw you flirting with two female pigeons at Fluttershy's-OW."
Spike couldn't finish his sentence before Jeff stomped his talons down on his foot. "Shut up, he doesn't know that." He whispered loudly in an angry tone.
"Yes I do." I said with a smirk as I continued to walk down the stairs. "D'OH!" I heard Jeff yell from the top of the stairs.
Once I was down the stairs, Twilight came into the room while levitating my saddle bags in front of her with her magic. She came up to me and placed the saddle bags on my back.
I looked at both of my saddle bags to see they were full of apples. I turned my head back to Twilight and smiled. "Thanks Twi, are you sure you want me to go?"
She gave me a sweet smile. "I wish we could spend the day together but this is just too important to pass up."
I nodded slightly. "I know…maybe when I get back; we can go to that restaurant we like tonight? You know! Just the two of us." I said with hopes that she'd say yes.
Her smile grew. "I'd love to." She said as we looked deep into each other's eyes.
There was a moment silence before I broke it. "Twilight I…I.."
"Yes." Twilight said as she leaned her head closer to me with her eyes sparkling.
I leaned my head slightly closer to her "I….I want to tell you that….I…I'm gonna miss you while I'm gone today."
Twilight's ears lowered slightly. "Oh..right….well..I'm gonna miss you too." She said with a small smile.
We then leaned our heads closer to each other before we shared a passionate kiss. "Tell her tonight at the restaurant Matt." I thought as we continued kissing.
We then broke the kiss and walked towards the front door. Once we reached the front door, Twilight opened it with her magic and I walked through the door way before turning back to face Twilight.
I was about to say something before I noticed Jeff and Spike standing behind Twilight. I then had an idea which put a large deceptive grin on my face.
I walked up to Twilight and whispered into her ear. She was confused at first but after hearing my plan, she giggled slightly.
I then pulled away from Twilight and looked into her eyes. "Have a nice day….my precious little egg-head." I said playfully.
"You too….my big handsome green lump." Twilight said playfully while fluttering her eyes.
"AHHH." Both Spike and Jeff cried out in disgust. "OH COME ON!...LOVEY-DOVEY NAMES? You're just doing this on purpose now." Jeff yelled in annoyance.
Me and Twilight laughed over their complaining before I turned around and started walking away from the front door. "See ya later, Twi." I said while still laughing a bit.
"See ya Matt." Twilight said as she waved goodbye.
I then flew up into the sky and up towards Canterlot with Twilight watching me from the door way.
Canterlot Castel
After a long flight, I finally landed in the castle grounds. I looked towards the front double doors to see two guards standing in front of them.
I walked up to them. "Keep up the good work fellas." I said as I tried to walk between them. Suddenly, they both spread one of their wings in front of me and blocked my path.
"You're not allowed in there without authorization sir." One of the guards said to me.
"Oh not this again." I thought as I rolled my eyes in frustration. "Look guys! Princess Celestia sent me a letter saying that she'd take me to see Princess Luna so she could teach me how to control the powers of the Element of bravery, so I really need to get in there or else Princess Celestia's going to come out here and I'll be in trouble for keeping her waiting while you two will be in BIG trouble for making me keep her waiting. Get it?" I said with my arms crossed.
The two guards looked at each other before looking back at me. "You represent the Element of bravery?." One of the guards asked me before I nodded.
"Her majesty informed us that a Pegasus would show up to attend a lesson with Princess Luna. We just didn't expect you to be so….young." the guard said with a raised eye brow.
I smiled. "Yeah I know, I can't believe it ether. But seriously, I really need to see Princess Celestia right now." I said hoping they would allow me to go in.
The guard nodded. "Understood, follow me please." He said before they both turned around to the double doors, opened them and walked inside the castle with me following behind.
When then walked down the long hallway until we came to another pair of double doors, the guards opened the doors with their magic revealing the large room with the big stairs. As we walked towards the stairs, I looked up at the top of the stairs to see Princess Celestia smiling down at us.
We then stopped at the bottom of the stairs. "Your majesty, this young Pegasus claims he represents the Element of bravery. Is this the Pegasus of which you spoke of before? The guard asked.
Celestia nodded. "Yes he is, you two may go now." She said in a calm voice.
With that, the two guards bowed before they turned around and walked out the room; leaving Me alone with Celestia.
I then walked up the stairs until I reached Celestia. "Matthew, I'm so glad that you could make it. Are you excited about your first lesson?" she asked with a smile.
"I'm a bit nervous." I admitted.
"I understand how you feel, just keep a cool mind and remain calm and you should be fine. Now, shall we get going?" Celestia said as she walking towards the pair of double doors on the right side of the room with me following beside her.
After a long walk around the castle, we were finally walking down the hallway that lead to the training hall. As we were walking, Celestia noticed that I was looking down at the floor in deep thought. "Is there something troubling you Matt?"
My train of thought was broken and I turned my head to face her. "What?...no…I was just…trying to think of a way to do something at home. That's all." I said before turning my attention back to the floor.
Celestia smiled down at me. "You're trying to find a way to tell Twilight how you feel about her."
My eyes widened slightly and I turned my head back up to Celestia. "How did you-" I couldn't finish my sentence as Celestia cut me off.
"I can tell when it comes to these kind of things Matt; I can see it in your eyes. With each passing day, your relationship with Twilight grows bigger and you feel the desire to be by her side every second of the day. But now you realize how you feel about her and you don't know how to tell her." Celestia said in her understanding voice.
I was amazed that she knew how I felt. "Yeah, that's exactly how it feels like. But I don't know if I have the courage to-"
Celestia cut me off again. "Matthew…do you love Twilight?" she asked.
"…..yes….I do." I said in a slightly quiet tone.
Celestia's smile grew. "Well when you get a chance alone with her, tell her. I'm more than sure she feels the same way about you. I mean, why wouldn't she?"
I tried to think of a reason but couldn't think of one. "I don't know."
"Exactly, so have confidence Matt! Everything will be fine. Now let's keep moving! We're keeping my sister waiting." Celestia said sweetly as we continued to walk down the hallway until we reached the pair of double doors.
Celestia's horn then glowed and the doors opened revealing a large stone room with stone tiles forming a large circle on the floor in the middle of the room.
I looked in the middle of the room to see Luna standing in the middle of the circle with a book hovering in front of her face. Luna then noticed me and Celestia standing in the door way and lowered the book. "Ah Matthew, I was beginning to wonder if you were going to show up."
I stepped forward with a smirk on my face. "Yeah, I wanted to stay with Twilight but she convinced me to come and she did make it sound important so….here I am."
She smiled to me. "Here you are."
Celestia smiled. "Well Matthew, I can see that you're all settled here. So if you'll both excuse me? I need to go tend to Discord." With that she turned around and headed towards the door.
"How is he, by the way?" I asked before she left.
Celestia turned her head around to face me. "Oh he's fine, still in needs to be in bed but he's fine."
"That's good, say Hi to him for me!" I said with a smile.
Celestia smiled and nodded before walked out the double doors and shut them behind her with her magic; leaving me alone with Luna.
I then walked over to the wall, took off my saddle back and placed it on the floor next to the wall so it was out of the way. I then walked back to Luna. "So Princess…how do we start this thing?"
Luna smiled. "Well first you need to put on the Element."
I stuck my hoof out. "No problem. I'll just…put on the…errr." I looked around the room to find my Element but I couldn't see it anywhere. "Errr Princess…the Element's not in here. Was I supposed to bring it here?" I asked curiously.
Luna shook her head. "No, this is your first lesson. You see Matthew; this Element can be used in combat. So unlike the other Elements, you can summon it and it'll appear on your body within a few seconds."
I raised an eye brow. "Huh?"
Luna let out a small sigh. "You can summon it to come to you, that way you won't have to go all the way to the vault to get it.
I then understood what she meant. "Oooooh right, why didn't you say so?"
Luna rolled her eyes. "Anyway here's how it works, close your eyes, clear your mind of everything but the Element and imagine wearing it."
I then closed my eyes tightly and imagined myself wearing the Element. After a minute, I could see a light shining through my eye lids but I didn't open my eyes to see what it was. When the light faded, I opened my eyes and looked down at my chest to see I was wearing the golden armoured vest with my crystal version cutie mark in the middle of it.
"Whow…I did it." I cheered in amazement.
Luna smiled. "Yes, and on the first try too. I'm very impressed. Now your next task is to create a forcefield to protect yourself from incoming magic attacks. For instance, I'm going to shoot some of my magic at you and need to defend yourself." She said as she took a few steps backwards.
"Wait…what?" I said in a shocked voice.
"Heads up." Luna said as she pointed her glowing horn at me before shooting a dark blue beam of magic towards me. As the beam shot towards me, I quickly shut my eyes and grunted as I tried to make a shield appear.
Suddenly, the green crystal on my armoured vest started to glow until a large green shield appeared in front of me and deflected Luna's beam; which ended up hitting the wall and making a hole in it.
I then opened my eyes to see that I succeeded. "Oh yeah, that's what Mattie's talkin' about." I cheered before the shield disappeared revealing Luna with a confused look on her face.
Once I saw her face, I blushed out of embarrassment. "I mean….yay, I did it." I said with a sheepish smile.
Luna's confused face turned into a small smile. "It's alright to enjoy your victory. And I do have to admit, your progress is moving faster than I expected."
I smiled back at her before looking over to the wall with the hole in it. "Ooh, sorry about the wall. I should probably watch my aim in the future."
Luna waved a hoof. "No need to be sorry Matthew, the room will repair itself."
I gave her a confused look before turning my attention back to the wall and my eyes widened in surprise by what I saw. The rubble on the floor levitated off the ground and placed itself back on the wall, now it looked as though the wall was never damaged.
"Whow…did you see that?" I said in amazement as I pointed to the wall. Luna stepped closer to me. "Yes, you see Matthew. When this room was being built, my sister knew that it would take a lot of damage during the training sessions so she enchanted it to repair itself after taking damage. It's quite a handy spell if you ask me.
I nodded in agreement. "Yeah it is. Now should we get on to the next task?" I can't believe I just said that.
Luna nodded. "Yes of cause. Now your next task is to create smaller shields that you can use in combat against your foes. So I'm going to make you a target to practises on." With that, Luna's horn glowed and a pony training dummy appeared in a flash of light.
"Now Matthew, place your front hooves together and open them slowly while imagining a round shield growing wide between your hooves." Luna explained.
With that, I sat down on the floor, put my front hooves together and slowly reopened them. As I opened them, a small green disc appeared between them; the more I opened my hooves, the wider the disc grew until it was a large green disc."
I then held the disc like a plate on my hoof. "Whow….this is weird and awesome at the same time. Now what do I do?" I asked while staring wide-eyed at the disc.
Luna pointed at the training dummy. "Now you throw it at the dummy as hard as you can."
With that, I looked at the dummy, held the disc in my arm like a discus and spun around a few times before I stopped and threw the disc towards the dummy only of it to miss and smash like glass against the wall.
"Oh…that was wrong wasn't it? Let me try that again." I said before I made another green disc in my hooves and threw it at the dummy only for it to jet again miss and smash against the wall.
"Come on Matthew! You can do it." Luna said in a confident tone.
"I know I'm doing something wrong, maybe I'm throwing it wrong, I should try throwing it like a Frisbee." I thought before I made another green disc in my hooves and closed one eye to get a better aim.
Once I got a good aim, I threw the disc like a Frisbee with great force and it shot towards the dummy. The disc the sliced through the dummy; cutting it in half.
My eye widened in amazement. "Whow hold on! Is that gonna happen if I throw it at a real pony? I don't want to kill anypony."
Luna stepped forward. "Don't worry Matthew! The discs only cut through certain objects. They're not capable of cutting through live ponies no matter how weak they are." She explained with a small smile.
"Well that's a relief. Anyway, what's next?" I asked curiously.
"Well you've proven you can hit a still target, but how are you with a moving target?" she asked with a smirk.
"Errr…moving?" I asked nervously.
Luna's horn then glowed and three more pony training dummies appeared on the other side of the room. The dummies then started to glow and when the glow faded from them; they slowly started to walk towards me.
"Oh crap." Was my only response.
Meanwhile: Celestia's bedroom
Discord was lying on the bed with the bandages still wrapped around his chest while reading a newspaper. "Oooh, there's a sale at Sugar Cube Corner." He said in a slightly surprised tone.
At that moment, Celestia walked into the room. "Evening Discord, how do you feel?" she asked in a sweet voice.
Discord turned his attention to Celestia and smile. "Much better, I still can't sit up but the doctor says that I should make a full recovery in the next two days."
Celestia smiled as she walked up to the bed. "Good. By the way, have you read what the paper says about you and Matt?" she asked before her horn glowed and the pages of the newspaper flipped until they came to a stop on a certain page.
Discord then read what the paper had to say. "New Element discovered by a young Pegasus named Matthew and his friends when a mysterious alicorn named Thorn attempted to take the throne while Discord suffers after committing a selfless act by saving Princess Celestia from an unknown doom. Well I'm glad they mentioned that, if that doesn't get ponies to believe I've changed; I don't know what will."
Celestia then looked down at the floor with a sad look on her face. Discord noticed this. "Is something wrong Celestia?" he asked with a concerned voice.
Celestia looked at Discord. "Nothing it's just….I feel like it's my fault you got hurt. If had only seen that bolt coming then maybe this wouldn't have happened." She then hung her head again.
Discord then placed his lion hand under Celestia's chin and raised her head back up so he could look in her eyes. "I don't blame you Celestia. There was no way I was going to let somepony like Thorn hurt you."
"How do you know him anyway?" Celestia asked curiously.
Discord rubbed the back of his head. "I don't remember much but I think he's the one who freed me…and I think he's the one who started that fire in the main hall and tried to kill me in the process."
"You said that an alicorn threatened to take away your name and half your magic if you didn't kill Matthew, was it Thorn who threatened you?" Celestia asked.
Discord rubbed his chin. "I think so, I don't really remember. But…to be truthful Celestia, my name and magic wasn't the only think he threatened to take away." He said as he started to become nervous.
"Really?...what else did he say he'd take away?" Celestia asked.
"He….he threatened to….kill you if I didn't do as he said. And I couldn't live with myself knowing that you died because of my failure, that's why I tried to kill Matthew…I didn't want to but he said if I didn't he'd come after you so I had no choice." Discord admitted.
Celestia was surprised by this truth. "But….that was before you turned to good. Back then you spent years trying to take my throne."
"To overthrow you, not kill you. Even if I was still evil; I would never kill anypony. That day, I was forced against my will to try and kill Matthew….and I'm sorry for everything I've done in the past…to you and to Matthew. I just hope you find it in your heart to forgive me." Discord said with a look of sorrow on his face.
Celestia was both shocked and surprised by what she had just heard. Discord was forced to try and do something he'd never do to try and protect her. "Oh Discord, that must have been terrible…forced to do something you didn't want to do…to protect me. But…why?...do you care about me that much?"
Discord looked deep into her eyes and decided to tell her the truth. "Yes….I do."
"Discord…I.." Celestia was interrupted by the sound of a knock on the door. She looked back at the door to see one of her guards standing by the doorway.
"Your highness, you requested me to tell you when it was time to return to the training hall?" The guard said with a raised eye brow.
"Yes, I'll go now." Celestia said. The guard then nodded and left the room before Celestia turned her head back to Discord.
"Well….I'll come back later Discord. Try to get some rest while I'm gone! Ok?" Celestia said with a sweet smile.
Discord then had a slight disappointed look on his face. "Oh…must you go?"
"Yes….I need to tell Matthew that he's done training for today. Don't worry! I'll be back soon." Celestia said before turning around and walked out the door before shutting it behind her with her magic; leaving Discord alone in the room.
He let out a small sigh before he laid his head on the pillow and let himself drift off to sleep.
Castle training hall
I had my back against the wall as the dummies came closer to me. I've been trying to beat these things for the last few minutes but I keep missing them with my shield discs.
They were standing in a row as they walked towards me; I took this opportunity to strike and made a green disc in each of my front hooves before I threw both of them at the dummies on the left and right.
The discs then cut through the two dummies and they fell to the floor; leaving only the middle one left.
I grinned as I made another green disc in my hooves and threw it towards the last dummy. To my surprise, the dummy ducked and dodged the disc which flew across the rest of the room and smashed against the wall.
The dummy then got up and pounced on my, I tried to push it off me but it had a tight grip on me. Suddenly, the green crystal on my armoured vest glowed and a green forcefield shot around me and pushed the dummy off me.
I then had an idea on how to beat this thing. I made another green disc, held it in my mouth, made the forcefield disappear and used the disc to slice through the dummy's neck and chest. The dummy stood there for a second before it fell apart into three separate pieces.
The green disc in my mouth then disappeared in a small flash and I took this time to take a breather and calm down.
Luna then walked up beside me while levitating a paper towel in front of her. She then levitated the paper towel to me and I took it in my hoof before I used it to wipe the sweat off my head.
"You did well today Matthew, how about we take a break?" Luna suggested with a smile.
I nodded. "Yeah, I'm starving." I said before I walked over to my saddle bag, grabbed it in my mouth and brought it back to Luna. Luna's horn then glowed and with a flash of light; a round stone table appeared and me and Luna sat by it.
I placed my saddle bag on the table and pulled out an apple and started eating it. "You know Princess….you're a pretty alright teacher….ever thought about teaching a class?" I said while chewing.
Luna shook her head. "No, most ponies don't usually want me to teach them anything. In fact, I'm surprised you actually accepted it."
I gave her a confused look. "Why?"
Luna frowned slightly. "Because….most ponies find me….frightening. I mean, who would want to be taught by…Nightmare Moon?" she then hung her head.
I couldn't help but feel sorry for her, she still thinks badly of herself for that. I then decided to try and cheer her up. I placed my hoof on her shoulder. "Princess, you shouldn't beat yourself up over that. You're not Nightmare Moon anymore; you're Princess Luna, the Princess of the night. Don't you think it's time to forget all that?"
Luna raised her head back up and looked at me. "I was trapped on the moon for a thousand years, how am I supposed to forget something like that?" she asked with her ears slightly low.
"Ok I admit, being stuck on the moon for a thousand years may have been a bit…extreme. But that's all behind you now Princess, it's time to move on and forgive yourself." I said trying to lift her spirits.
Luna gave me a slight suspicious look. "Do you know how it feels to have others call you behind your back? I mean sure, the ponies in Ponyville like me now but what about the ponies here in Canterlot? I can tell their all still unsure of me."
"Well, I do know what it's like to be called by others. Trust me, where I came from others use to call me names all the time. But I didn't care what they said because I knew what they said about me wasn't true." I said.
Luna then started taking interest in what I was saying. "Look Princess, the Canterlot ponies can call you a lot of things. But no matter what bad names they call you, you shouldn't listen to what they say because you know that none of it is true. You should listen to what your friends and family say about you. For instance, I'm your friend and I think you're a good hearted pony and a pretty damn good teacher. A smart farm pony said something to me when she discovered my deep secret; she said Who gives a flyin' feather about what you used to be, we're your friends and nothin' gonna come between us, not your past, not anythin'." I said quoting Applejack with a smile.
Luna then smiled warmly. "You speak with such wisdom, how do you do it?"
I shrugged. "I don't know. I just say what sounds good, I guess."
"You're not like other colts I've meat, you're….understanding." Luna said with the smile still on her face.
I smiled at her. "Thanks." I then reached into the saddle bag and pulled out another apple. "Want one?" I asked as I held the apple out to her.
Luna smiled warmly again and took the apple off my hoof with her magic before taking a bite out of it.
After we ate the apples, we both heard a knock on the door and we turned around to see Celestia walk into the room. "Evening you two, how was the lesson?" she asked with a smile.
"It went well; I learned how to throw small shield discs at enemies and….actually, that's basically it." I said with a smirk.
Celestia's smile grew. "That's good. Anyway, you lessons have finished for today Matthew. You can go home now."
I then smiled, grabbed my saddle bag and headed for the door where Celestia was. "See ya Princess Luna. Thanks for today, you rock." I then walked out the door while Celestia walked up to Luna.
Luna had a confused look on her face. "I…rock? Sister, what is the meaning of that phrase?"
Celestia rubbed her chin. "Well…it's kinda like saying that you're good…and cool or something like that. Either way, it was a compliment." She said with a smile.
"He thinks I'm….cool?" Luna asked before she looked out the door and watched me walk further down the hallway.
Luna's confused face then turned into a small smile as she blushed.
That night: the restaurant
Me and Twilight were sitting on our usual table; the one in the gazebo in the garden. Our food had just arrived but I didn't notice as I was too busy staring at Twilight dreamily.
Twilight then noticed I was staring at her and she giggled. "What are you looking at?"
"You just look so beautiful tonight Twi. I can't stop looking at you." I said in a dreamed tone.
"Matt, I didn't dress up tonight. I look the same as I always do." She said with an amused smile.
It was true, she wasn't wearing a dress and she had no make-up on, but that didn't change anything. "Still." Was my only response.
Twilight blushed. "You're such a flatterer Matt. By the way, you haven't told me how your lesson with Luna went yet."
I then snapped out of my daze. "Oh, it went well. I learned a new shield attack and I helped Luna with a problem and I think I did pretty well with that one. If I do say so myself."
Twilight gave me a curious look. "Really? What was her problem?"
"Well, she still feels bad about that whole Nightmare Moon thing so I cheered her up by telling her to not listen to the bad things that ponies say about her because she knows they're not true and listen to what her friends and family say about her. And to show her that I was her friend, I shared my apples with her." I explained.
Twilight gave me a large proud smile. "Oh that was nice of you. So does she feel better?"
"I think so, I'll ask her in our next lesson." I said before I lowered my head down to my drink, put my mouth around the straw and took a sip of my drink.
Twilight smiled warmly. "I'm proud of you Matt; this could really mean a lot to Luna."
I then raised my head back up and looked at her. "I know, she did seem to cheer up when I told her all that. Anyway, should we get eating?"
Twilight looked down at her food. "Yeah, I'm starving." She then lowered her head down and took a bite out of her grass and daisy salad.
As I watch her eat, I was in deep thought. "Ok Matt, now's a good time to tell her how you feel. No distractions this time." I thought.
I was about to say something before Twilight cut me off. "Matt, can I tell you something?"
I decided to let her go first. "Sure Twi, what is it?"
Twilight then started tapping her front hooves together with a nervous look on her face. "Errr Matt, we've been dating for a while now and I think it's time we faced a big obstacle in our relationship, please don't freak out but…."
"Is she going to say it first?" I wondered. "Yes." I said with a smile growing on my face.
"I got a letter earlier today from my parents and they're coming to the library tomorrow." She finished.
My eyes then went wide as I was stunned in shock. "Matt? Are you ok?" Twilight asked nervously.
I then snapped out of my shock. "Oh…yeah, I look forward to meeting them." I said with a forced smile.
Twilight then exhaled in relief. "Thank goodness, just don't worry ok! I'm sure they'll love you." She said sweetly.
My forced smile then turned into a small one. "Alright Twi, now…lets enjoy the rest of the night! Alright?"
"Ok Matt, we'll plan what to do tomorrow." She said with a warm smile before going back to eating her food.
As I started to eat my food, I still couldn't help but feel a bit worried about meeting Twilight's parents tomorrow.
Hope you enjoyed this chapter.
Note: Feel free to say no, but if any of you want to make fan art of my story? Feel free to do so. This is just a suggestion, not a request.
Please remember to review.
Next chapter will be up soon.
20. Meeting her parents
Chapter 20: Meeting her parents
Today was the day that I was going to meet Twilight's parents and I must say; I'm feeling pretty calm about it….Oh who am I kidding? I'M FREAKING OUT.
Canterlot Castle: training hall
I was trying to throw my green shield discs at a target on the wall but I was having trouble because my mind was too busy thinking about how I was going to impress Twilight's parents.
I then decided to worry about that later and focus on my training. I then threw another green disc at the target and it hit the bulls-eye which activated a switch that made two more targets on stands pop up on the other side of the room.
I spun around fast and made two green discs in my hooves before I threw them at the same time. They hurled across the room until they sliced right through the targets; cutting them in half.
While I was doing that, Luna was staring at me dreamily "Wow….he's so…athletic…and I can't believe I've never noticed how much his coat shines when he makes those shield discs appear. And he's just so….so…"
"Hey Princess, I've hit all the targets. Should we take a break before I go?" I asked breaking Luna's train of thought.
Luna then snapped back into reality. "What?...oh yes, lets!" she said before her horn glowed and the round stone table appeared in the middle of the room.
Me and Luna then sat by it and I placed my saddle bag on the table before reaching into it and pulled out two apples for us both.
As I was chewing on the chunk of apple, I noticed Luna wasn't eating her apple but instead, looking at me with a smile on her face.
I gave her a confused look. "Princess, are you ok? You're not eating." I asked with a slight concerned tone.
"Oh please forgive me! I was….just wondering if you were alright. I've noticed that you seemed a bit off today." Luna said as an excuse.
"Sorry, my mind's been elsewhere today. I'm just nervous about meeting Twilight's parents this afternoon." I explained.
Luna raised her eye brow in surprise. "You're meeting Twilight Sparkle's parents? That's should be nice." She said with a small smile.
My ears lowered slightly. "Yeah, except I have no idea how I'm going to impress them. I mean, if I make a bad example they'll probably say I'm no good enough for Twilight and….I don't even want to think about what they might do." I then dug my head into my hooves in worry.
Luna tapped her chin with her hoof before she came up with an idea. "Why not do something fancy like…making them dinner or something?"
I then realized it wasn't a bad idea and I raised my head out of my hooves. "Wait a minute, that's it. I'll make them dinner; I always was good at cooking anyway. Luna you're a genius….oh I mean, Princess you're a genius." I said with a sheepish smile.
Luna smiled and blushed slightly. "It's alright; you can call me Luna if you wish."
I smiled back. "Ok…Luna. Well, gotta get goin' so here; have the rest of my apples as a thank you present." I then grabbed my saddle bag and poured the rest of my apples on the table in front of Luna. "See ya, and thanks again." I said as I got up and galloped out the training hall.
While Luna watched me go, she sighed dreamily.
That afternoon: Ponyville library
I was standing next to the bathroom waiting for whoever was to come out. Spike then walked up behind me with Peewee on his shoulder. "Hey Matt, what are you doing?"
I turned my head to face him. "Waiting for whoever's in the bathroom to come out, they've taking forever." I said in a slight irritated tone.
Spike crossed his arms. "It must be Twilight, she always hogs the bathroom."
Peewee nodded in agreement. "Yeah. One time, she was in there for a whole hour just to comb her mane."
"Excuse me, that was because I was wanted to make sure I looked my best for my spare day with Rarity." Twilight said as she walked up behind Spike and Peewee.
I then rolled my eyes. "Oh no. If you're here, then that means only one thing. Jeff's the one hogging the bathroom, figures." I said in annoyance.
We all then heard somepony whistling behind Twilight and we all looked to see Jeff walk towards us holding a scrub-brush in his wing and a towel wrapped around his waist.
He then noticed us and face winged himself. "Ah man, there's always a line."
I then got confused. "Wait! If you're there….then who's in the bathroom?"
We all then heard the toilet flush and we looked at the door to see Pinkie Pie walk out the bathroom with a towel wrapped around the top of her head.
"Pinkie? What are you doing in our bathroom?" Twilight asked with a raised eye brow.
Pinkie Pie smiled. "Oh funny story. You see, I really needed a bath because I spent all day playing in the dirt but my drain was clogged and your house was the closest one to mine so I came in and took a bath but then I really needed to use the toilet because earlier today I drank 20 cups of chocolate milk and the toilet was right there so I used it, and when I came out, you asked me what I was doing in your bathroom so I told you I really need a bath because-"
"Yeah, we were here for that part Pinkie." I said cutting her off.
"So you just came in here without telling us?" Twilight asked.
"Oh, was I supposed to tell you before I went in?" Pinkie asked in a curious tone.
"It would make us feel a little more comfortable with it, yeah." Jeff said with his eye narrow.
"Anyway Pinkie, I hate to sound rude but you have to leave now." I said as I pointed to the door to the front room.
"Okie dokie lokie." Pinkie Pie said cheerfully before she hopped into the next room, we then heard the front door open and close; telling us that Pinkie had left.
"Well, that was kinda awkward." Twilight said with a raised eye brow.
"Yeah. Anyway, I'd better take my shower. Don't want to smell when I meet your parents." I said before I walked into the bathroom and locked the door behind me. Twilight, Spike and Peewee then walked into the other room to prepare everything for when Twilight's parents arrive.
Jeff continued to wait outside the bathroom. "Save me some hot water dude!" Jeff yelled through the door.
Once in the bathroom, I walked up to the shower and turned the shower nob to turn on the water. Once the water stared shooting out the shower head, I stepped into the shower and closed the shower curtains.
It took a few seconds to get use to the temperature of the water but I managed to get right under the warm shooting water and started scrubbing myself with soap and a sponge.
20 minutes later, I stepped out of the shower and shook the water off my body until I was completely dry.
I then unlocked the bathroom door and walked out. "It's about time." Jeff said as he walked passed me and into the bathroom.
I walked into the dining room to see that everything was all set for dinner. The large table was ready with plates, glasses and candles. Twilight was standing next to the table lighting the candles with her magic.
I then walked up beside her and she turned her head to face me. "Well, everything's all set. Now we just need to wait for them to arrive. This is gonna be great." She said with a smile.
I smiled back. "Yeah…great." My smile then turned into a frown as I became nervous again and looked down at the floor.
Twilight noticed and placed her hoof on my shoulder. I then looked at her to see her sweet smile. "Everything's gonna be fine Matt, just be yourself."
My ears then lowered. "But that's just it, what if they don't like me for myself? I mean for instance, your talent is being good at magic while mine's just being good at video games. What if they see that talent as a waste of time and say I'm not good enough for you?"
Twilight gave me an honest look. "Oh come on Matt! My parents aren't that strict, I'm sure they'll like you of you. The one thing that'll show them you're a good coltfriend is honesty."
"I know Twi…don't worry! I'm not gonna make up stuff to be accepted. I almost lost you once that way; I don't plan on doing it again." I said while looking into her eyes.
Twilight continued to smile warmly at me. Me and Twilight looked deep into each other's eyes until we heard a knock on the front door. We both walked into the front room and looked towards the front door.
Twilight then walked up to the door and opened it with her magic, revealing her parents with smiles on their faces.
"Mom, Dad." Twilight greeted as they all shared a hug.
"Twilight, how are you sweetie?" Twilight's mum said as she hugged Twilight.
They all then broke the hug. "I'm fine, I'm so glad you both made it here." Twilight said in a happy tone.
"We're never too busy to visit our little angel." Twilight's dad said with a smile.
"Sooo…where's this coltfriend of yours? You never stop mentioning him in your letters." Twilight's mum said with a small grin.
Twilight then stepped to the side to let her parents get a good sight of me. "Mom, Dad, this is my coltfriend Matthew." Twilight said as she pointed at me.
I waved my hoof slightly. "Hello." I said before I laughed nervously.
Twilight's parents then walked up to me. Once they were right in front of me, Twilight's dad held out his hoof and I grabbed it with mine before we started shaking them up and down. "Hello Matthew, I'm Crescent and this is my wife Star Sparkle. It's nice to finally meet you." he said with a smile.
I smiled back. "The pleasure's all mine sir."
We then let go of each other's hooves and Star tapped her chin while looking at me with a wondering face. "Matthew?...wasn't that the name of the pony from the newspaper yesterday honey?"
Crescent thought for a moment. "Yeah it was. You're that Matthew? The one who discovered the seventh Element with his friends?" he asked me.
"Errr yeah…and Twilight and the rest of our friends were the ones who discovered it with me." I said getting nervous again.
"You're the Element of bravery?" Star asked me with a suspicious look.
"Yeah." I said with a nervous look.
The two were silent for a moment before they both smiled. "That means you're the one who saved the Princess and all of Canterlot from that awful Thorn character. You're a real hero." Star said with a large smile.
I smiled as I blushed in embarrassment. "Well…I wouldn't really call myself a hero."
"You're a hero to me." Twilight said sweetly as she walked up to me.
I couldn't help but feel heart warmed by her comment. "Thanks Twi. Anyway, should we go into the dining room? Dinner will be ready soon." I said with a warm smile.
They all nodded in agreement before we all headed towards the dining room. Once we entered the next room, Crescent and Stars jaws dropped in awe at the beautiful sight of the large dinner table.
Crescent and Star sat down on the chairs next to each other by the table while I pulled Twilight's chair for her to sit down in. once she sat down on the chair, I gently pushed her to the table before I walked over to the door that lead to the kitchen.
"Well, he's certainly a gentlecolt." Star complimented.
"Yeah, he's a sweet heart. And….I just know he's the one." Twilight said quietly as she watched me walk into the kitchen.
Crescent and Star looked at each other and then back at Twilight with warm smiles on their faces. "Well if you feel that way about him, then you should tell him." Star said.
Twilight then had an unsure look on her face. "I don't know if I can. I don't want to come on too strong…and what if he doesn't feel the same way about me?" she said in a worried tone.
Star gave her a sweet smile. "It's ok to be nervous about telling a colt how you truly feel. In fact, on the night your father told me he loved me; he was so nervous that when he finally said it, he nearly fainted."
Twilight and Star couldn't help but let out a small laugh. "Really?" Twilight asked while still laughing.
Star stopped laughing and nodded. "Yes…and when he calmed down, I told him I loved him back and one thing lead to another and….here we are."
"You see Twilight! If you keep something as powerful as love trapped inside, it could make you sick. And if you don't tell him soon, you could lose him." Crescent said.
Twilight then became slightly worried until she made her decision. "Ok…the next time we have some privacy, I'll try to tell him."
Crescent gave her a warm smile. "That's my girl."
Hearing this made Twilight smile back warmly.
Meanwhile, I was in the kitchen putting the food on the plates. We were having the same as always, grass and daisy salad only it was cooked this time. Since there were four plates, I had to stick my wings flat out and balance one plate on each while I balanced one on my back and one on the top of my head.
I slowly re-entered the dining room and Twilight looked over to me and saw that I was struggling. "Errr, let me help you there Matt!" she said with a sweet smile.
Her horn then glowed and all the plates levitated off me and placed themselves on the table in front of Twilight, Star, Crescent and an empty space next to Twilight.
I then walked around the table to the empty space and sat down on the chair so I was next to Twilight. We all then started eating the salads.
"Mmmm, this is delicious. Did you make this Matthew?" Star asked.
"Yeah, I always had a talent for cooking back where I came from." I answered with a smile.
Crescent looked up from his food to face me. "Oh, is cooking your special talent?"
My smile then faded. "Errr…well…not exactly."
Star gave me a curious look. "Really? Then what is your talent?"
I hesitated for a second before turning my head to Twilight and she gave me a warm smile as she nodded.
"Errr…I'm…kind of a video game champion so…I have a game controller as a cutie mark." I said nervously.
Crescent and Star were silent for a second before Crescent smile. "Really? I was kind of a video game player myself when I was you age."
I gave him a slight shocked look. "Really?"
Star smiled and waved her hoof. "Oh we both were. In fact, we had most of our dates at the arcade. I spent so much of my parents money and they kept getting so angry when I did."
Crescent turned his head to face Star. "My parents were the same, we then decided to stop going there and find a different talent…and we did." Crescent and Star then showed me their cutie marks.
"So….there's nothing wrong with video games being my special talent?" I asked with a hopeful smile.
"Of cause there isn't, why would you think there would be?" Star asked with a raised eye brow.
I waved a hoof. "No reason, it's cool now. How about we finish our food!"
Crescent and star then decided to drop the subject and we all went back to eating our salads.
After we finished eating, we were all lounging on the chairs with full stomachs. "That was wonderful. Matthew, you didn't do all this just for us did you?" Star asked while rubbing her stomach.
"Well, you are Twilight's parents and you deserve the best." I said with an honest smile.
Crescent and Star then looked at each other with warm smiles before looking back to me with the smiles still on their faces. I smiled warmly back.
Twilight then got off her seat before her horn started to glow and all the empty plates levitated off the table and hovered in front of her as she walked towards the kitchen. "Matt, can you help me in the kitchen?"
"Sure Twi." I said before I got off the chair and followed Twilight into the kitchen.
Once in the kitchen, Me and Twilight started washing the dishes. "Twi this is going great." I cheered quietly.
"I know, they really like you. Now we just need to make sure nothing embarrassing happens and tonight will be perfect." Twilight said as she washed the dishes with her magic.
I smirked. "And what embarrassing thing do you think might happen?"
"I don't know…anything really." She answered while focusing on the dishes.
My smirk changed into a devious grin. "You mean like…making you laugh so loud that your parents would hear it from the other room?"
Twilight turned her head to face me. "And how are you going to do that?" she asked with a raised eye brow.
I then turned my head around to face my wings, grabbed one of my feathers with my mouth, plucked it out and slowly walked towards Twilight while pointing the feather at her.
"Matt…no…don't even think about it." Twilight said with a giggly smile as she backed away.
As I got closer to her, she turned around and galloped away. I then started chasing her around the kitchen. I eventually caught up with her and stared tickling her side.
"Hahaha…Matt..stop..hahaha." Twilight laughed as we continued galloping around the kitchen.
I then tackled her to the floor and pinned her down by the hooves before I started tickling her chest, which made her laugh uncontrollably loud.
I then stopped to let Twilight calm down. Once she did, we looked deep into each other's eyes as we smiled sweetly at each other.
"Awww, that's so cute." A voice said across the room. Me and Twilight then looked in the direction the voice came from to see Crescent and Star smiling at us from the door way.
I then quickly got off Twilight and spat the feather out my mouth. "Errr…we were just…I was…oh boy." I said nervously while Twilight got up off the floor.
"Twilight, would you go back in the dining room with your mother please! I want to speak with Matthew for a moment." Crescent said as he approached us.
I gulped hard as Twilight walked passed her father and went back into the dining room with Star; leave me alone in the kitchen with Crescent.
I then became worried. "Ok it's not what it looks like, we were just playing. I wasn't trying anything." I said in a slight scared tone.
Crescent raised his hoof. "Matt calm down, I wasn't suspecting you of anything. I know you were just tickling her….and I must say, you two make an adorable couple." he said with a warm smile.
All my worry then faded away and I gave a small smile. "Really?"
Crescent nodded. "Yes, I've never seen her so happy. She truly does have a heart for you…and I know that you have a heart for her. She's told us how you saved her from that Thorn guy by taking that bolt of magic that burnt your arm."
I then gave him an honest look. "And I'd do it a thousand times again if it meant keeping her safe….I'd never forgive myself if something happened to her."
Crescent grinned slightly. "Sounds to me like you're in love with her."
I blushed slightly and looked down at the floor. "I….I…"
I was cut off by the feeling of a hoof on my shoulder. I looked up to see Crescent smiling warmly at me. "It's ok if you're in love with her Matt, me and Star think you're perfect for her. You just need to tell her how you feel."
"I do love her but….does she feel the same about me?" I said with my ears low.
Crescent chuckled. "You know Matt! You remind me of myself when I was your age, I was unsure if Star loved me as much as I loved her. But I knew I had to find out the truth, so I told her and she told me she loved me back…and that's what you need to do."
"I know…but how?" I asked.
Crescent came closer to me. "Here's what you do!...you take her somewhere private, look her deep in the eyes and tell her. Trust me! If you tell her, it'll make her be happier than ever."
I raised an eye brow. "How can you be so sure?"
Crescent gave me a warm smile. "Because she feels the same way, it's obvious she does. I'm surprised you can't see it."
I then thought hard about it and it did seem likely that she did feel the same way. Her kindness towards me, the sadness she felt when I almost left Ponyville, how she comforts me when I'm sad or worried. It all lead to it.
I then made my decision. "Ok, I'll tell her….tonight."
Crescent smiled. "Good, I think it's time for me and Star to leave anyway." He then turned around and walked towards the door.
I tilted my head. "Really? You don't have to g-"
"No, it's getting late and you and Twilight have a lot to talk about." Crescent said; cutting me off.
I didn't want to argue with him so I decided to leave it and follow him back into the dining room.
Once back in the dining room, Crescent told Star that it was time for them to go and they both walked out of the dining room and towards the front door with Me and Twilight following behind.
When we reached the front door, Crescent opened the door with his magic before he and Star turned around to face us. "Well Matthew, it was nice meeting and I wish you two the best." Crescent said.
"It's been nice meeting you too." I said as I shook his hoof.
Crescent then let go of my hoof and turned his attention to Twilight. "Goodbye Twilight, be a good girl ok!" he said with a warm smile.
"I will, come visit again soon." Twilight said sweetly as she hugged him and Star.
They all then broke the hug and Crescent and Star walked out the front door. Me and Twilight walked to the door way and waved them off. "Bye Mom, bye Dad." Twilight yelled as she waved.
"Bye sweet-heart." Star yelled back as she looked back while continuing to walk away with Crescent.
Crescent looked back at us. "Bye angel. And Matthew, remember what we talked about!" he said before he winked at me with a smile.
I gave him a small nod. We then watched Crescent and Star walk away further into Ponyville until they were out of sight. Once they were, Me and Twilight walked back into the library and I closed the door behind us.
Me and Twilight then looked at each other. "Well that went way better than I thought." I said cheerfully.
Twilight nodded. "I told you they would like you. By the way, what did you and my Dad talk about in the kitchen?"
"Oh…that….errr..I'll tell you later." I answered.
"Oh…ok." Twilight said before she walked away into the other room.
"How the friv am I gonna do this?" I thought nervously.
That night
Spike, Jeff and Peewee had already gone to bed and were fast asleep. Me and Twilight were the only ones still up.
"Ok Matt, you can do this. Just go in there, look her in the eyes and tell her how you feel. This time, nothings gonna stop me." I said to myself as I approached the door to the room with the fireplace.
Once I reached the door, I slowly opened it to see Twilight lying down in front of the fire place reading a book while enjoying the warmth of the fire.
I gulped hard before I walked into the room and up to Twilight. I then tapped her shoulder which caused her to flinch in fright.
"Matt….you scared me." she said holding her hoof against her heart.
"Sorry…errr Twilight, can I speak to you?" I asked nervously.
Twilight gave me a sweet smile. "Sure Matt, what is it?"
I then lied down next to her and took a deep breath. "Twilight…I…we've been together for a while now and…I want to tell you that I….I.."
As I was trying to say it, I looked at the sweet look on her face and my heart melted until I couldn't hold it anymore. "I…I love you Twilight."
She looked at me in surprise. "What?"
"I love you…I've loved you for a while now but I've never had the guts to tell you." I admitted.
Twilight was silent for a second and I was starting to worry until a warm smile came on her face. "Matt….I love you too."
I looked at her in surprise and shock. "Really?" I asked quietly.
Twilight nodded. "Yeah…ever since that night at the Ponyville dance…I knew you were the one." She said sweetly.
I couldn't believe what I just heard, she loves me...she actually loves me. I smiled warmly back before we moved in slowly and share a deep passionate kiss.
After a few minutes, we broke the kiss and looked deep into each other's eye while feeling the love we shared.
Twilight then nudged closer to me and rested her head on my shoulder before she closed her eyes.
I looked at her and smiled lovingly before I rested my head against hers and closed my eyes. While I had my eyes closed, I couldn't help but shed one tear of happiness before we both fell asleep in each other's warmth and love.
Meanwhile: Luna's castle
Luna was in her bedroom; lying on her bed while looking up at the ceiling in deep thought.
"Why do I feel so different around Matthew? Why do I always feel happier around him? I mean, he's a nice colt. We've only recently met and he doesn't care about what I did when I was Nightmare Moon. He's the first pony to not become afraid when we first meet. Twilight Sparkle is a very lucky pony to have a coltfriend as good as him….so why can't I stop thinking about him?" Luna thought.
Luna's eyes then went wide once she realized what she was feeling. She then leaned up on the bed with her eyes still wide. "Oh no…I think I've…got a crush on Matthew." She said to herself in a shocked voice.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
Please remember to review.
Next chapter will be up soon.
21. Sweet and elite
This chapter is based in the episode Sweet and elite. I do not own this episode. I've added and changed some things.
I'll be making a few episode chapters and they'll all be part of the story's plot.
Warning: long chapter.
Chapter 21: Sweet and elite
It's been a day since I confessed my feelings to Twilight and since then we've been feeling closer than ever before. My heart melts every time I look into her beautiful eyes. I've never been happier in my life.
During that time, Rarity's been planning to stay in Canterlot for a few days and she wanted me to come with her to help her.
With Twilight's birthday coming up soon, I didn't think I was right for me to go but she insisted. Given Twilight's kind and thoughtful ways, she suggested I go with Rarity and I just couldn't say no to her loving face.
Twilight had already sent a letter to Princess Celestia telling her that we were coming and she's given us a room at the castle to stay in while we're there.
Me, Twilight, Rarity and the rest of the main 6 said our goodbyes at the train station. I was carrying all the luggage and DAMN…how many bags does Rarity need?
While we were at the station, I promised Twilight that I'd be back in time for her birthday and that I'd get her a present for her from Canterlot. We then shared a loving goodbye before me and Rarity got on the train and set off to Canterlot.
After arriving in Canterlot and reaching the castle grounds, we met up with Princess Celestia and she led us to our suite.
While Celestia and Rarity were climbing the stairs of the tower where our suite was, Me and a bell-hop pony were each carrying half the luggage on our back. We were both struggling but we pulled through.
Once we reached the top of the tower, Rarity and Celestia entered the room with Me and the bell-hop pony following behind.
Once Rarity saw the room, her eye's widened as she gasped slightly. "Here? We get to stay here?" she said in delight.
"Twilight Sparkle said you were both coming to Canterlot for a visit and asked if I might accommodate you." Celestia said as Rarity marvelled at the room.
"Thank you so much Princess." Rarity said as Opal got comfy on the bed.
"You're very welcome." Celestia said with a smile.
Rarity then shot right up to Celestia. "No really, this is so nice of you."
"It's nothing, really." Celestia claimed.
Rarity shook her head slightly "Oh but it isn't nothing, it's everything. I-I just don't know what to say but thank you..thank you."
Rarity then got down the Celestia's front hooves and started kissing them repeatedly. "Thank you…thank you..thank you, thank you, thank you…." She said between kisses.
"Rarity, try to show some dignity." I said while trying to keep myself standing.
Rarity then stopped kissing Celestia's hooves. "You're very wellc-"
"Thank you." Rarity said; interrupting Celestia with a large smile on her face.
The bell-hop pony then moaned beside me, Rarity and Celestia then turned their heads to face us. "Your luggage madmazel." He said as we both struggled to keep ourselves standing.
"I'll leave you to get settled." Celestia said as she walked towards us.
"Your highness." The bell-hop pony said as he tried to bow. "Say hi to Discord for me!" I said.
Celestia looked down at me with a smile. "I will, enjoy your stay you two." She said as she walked passed me and out the door.
Once Celestia left, Rarity jumped out the door. "Thank you." she yelled down to Celestia.
"Errr…where would you like us to put these?" the bell-hop pony asked with a forced smile.
"Yeah, these things are starting to get a little too…HERE WE GO." I yelled as we both lost our strength and fell to the floor with all the bags falling on top of us.
I was completely buried in the luggage. "That's perfect." I heard Rarity say from under the luggage.
20 minutes later: Celestia's bedroom
Celestia entered her bedroom to see Discord was getting off the bed. The sight of this made her smile. "I'm glad to see you're feeling better Discord."
Discord then stretched his arms up. "Yep, I feel like a new spirit. It's taken a few days but I'm finally back in the game."
Celestia smiled warmly. "I glad to hear that, does this mean you'll be returning to Ponyville to stay with Twilight and Matthew?"
Discord's ears lowered. "Oh…yeah, about that…I don't really want to go back. I mean, Matt and Twilight are my friends but with their relationship growing; they'll be focusing a lot on each other and I think I'll just get in the way."
Celestia gave him a curious look. "Oh?...then where will you live?"
Discord then walked closer to Celestia. "That's what I want to ask you….I want to stay here in the castle..with you."
Celestia gave him a confused look. "You want to stay here with me?"
Discord's eyes shot open once he realized how it sounds. "Oh I don't mean here as in…this room. I mean, in a separate room. Dah, I don't mean in a separate room with you. You can have this room back and I can have my own room. Although, it would be nice if you visit my room sometimes. Errr…not that you have to….I mean…oh dear." Discord then blushed from embarrassment.
Celestia couldn't help but giggle. "Discord…I'd be delighted if you stayed here." she said with a sweet smile.
A small smile then came on to Discord's face. "You would?"
Celestia nodded. "Yes, you can stay in one of the quest rooms down the hall. I'll show you to it." She then turned around and walked out the door with Discord following behind with a warm smile on his face.
A few minutes later: Canterlot café
Me, Rarity and Opal were sitting by a table in the café. Rarity was wearing a large pink hat while admiring the sights. While she had a cup of coffee, I had a simple glass of water with a straw because I didn't like coffee.
The streets were filled with rich looking ponies, everything looked so civilized and posh. It sucked.
"Matt, Opal, do you know what I love about Canterlot?" Rarity asked me.
"No what? I asked as she took a sip of her coffee. "Everything." She answered.
"I may have been born in Ponyville but I…am a Canterlot pony at heart." She added.
"I could never be a Canterlot pony, they're far too snobby for my ta-" I stopped talking once I saw that she was looking at me with narrow eyes.
"I not saying you're snobby. If you lived here, you'd be the least snobbiest pony here. Besides from Celestia, she's not snobby. If you lived here, you both would be the least snobbiest." I said trying to make up for my earlier comment.
"Good save Matt. Anyway, I know that we're here to pick up some fabrics for the shop. But Twilight was such a dear to get me that suite at the castle; I simply must make her something to express my gratitude." Rarity said as she thought about what to make.
She then noticed a pony in a well-made dress walk by and she got an idea. "Oh…an outfit for her birthday party this weekend, perfect. And Matt, you can make it your present to her." Rarity suggested.
I tapped my chin as a smile came on my face. "Yeah, that could work. Why buy a present when we can simply make it." I said in a cheerful tone.
"That's right, don't you just love it here Opalescence?" Rarity asked. Opal did nothing but stare at her.
As Me and Rarity took a sip of our drinks, two shadows casted over our table which caught our attention. We both looked to where who was forming the shadows to see two smart looking unicorn ponies standing next to our table looking at us.
Rarity quickly put her cup down but the coffee left some foam on her nose. I noticed and made a fake coughing nose which got Rarity's attention. Once she was looking at me, I pointed at my nose.
She knew I was trying to tell her something so she looked down at her nose to see the foam and quickly wiped it off.
"Please excuse our interruption! I'm Jet Set and this is my wife Upper Crust. We saw you from across the café and just had to find out.." Jet Set then stopped talking.
"Where did you get that simply marvellous chapeau?" Uppercrust finished.
I raised an eye brow. "Chapeau?...must be talkin' about her hat. It's the only thing she has." I thought.
Rarity then tilted her hat a bit. "Huh this old thing? Oh it's just something I-"
"RARITY." I voice suddenly yelled from above Rarity as drops of water dripped on her hat.
We both looked up to see a pony with buck-teeth washing a window with a brush in his mouth. From the sound of it, he had some sort of hillbilly accent.
"HAY RARITY." He yelled before a rope on the strap keeping him up snapped and he fell but the second rope was attached to his leg so when he fell; he was dangling upside down in front of Rarity.
"Who the friv is this hillbilly?" I said to myself with an eye brow raised.
"It's me, Hayseed Turnip Truck. We met at the big how-down at Ponyville last fall." Hayseed said as he continued to dangle upside down.
"Hayseed what-now?" I said chuckling slightly.
"Oh…yes. Of cause….how are you?" Rarity asked with a forced smile.
"Good, real good." Hayseed answered in a cheerful way before the rope on his leg snapped and he fell to the ground.
Me and Rarity then heard Jet Set and Upper Crust make a critical hum. "You're from…Ponyville?" Jet Set asked with a raised eye brow.
"Well ye-yes but err." Rarity tried to explain before Hayseed wrapped his are behind her.
"She sure is, she's a real big-time fancy pants dressmaker there. Probably made that real purty thing she's got on her head." Hayseed said as he rubbed Rarity's head which caused her hat to shake.
"I thought it looked a little…country." Upper Crust said to Jet Set in an unimpressed tone.
"I told you it wasn't something you could get here in Canterlot dear." Jet Set said
"Hmph!" they both said as they shot their chins up and walked away with their eyes closed.
"Well aren't they a pocket full of sunshine" I said in an angry way as I watched them go. Rarity was bighting down on her lower lip with tears slightly forming in her eyes as also watched them go.
"Well they seemed real nice." Hayseed said as he waved his hoof fast.
Rarity then let out a disappointed sigh.
Later: Our suite
Me and Rarity walked into our suite and Rarity sat down in the middle of the room before she closed the door with her magic.
I could tell by the look on her face that she was upset. I let out a small sigh before I walked up and sat down beside her. "Hey…don't listen to them alright!...what do they know about fashion? Besides from the fact that they don't have it." I said in a comforting voice before chuckling slightly
I soon stopped chuckling once I realized it wasn't helping. Rarity then had a slightly angered look on her face and she got up and walked towards her designing table.
"Looked a little country." Rarity said before she used her magic to lift her hat off her head and place it on the bed. "Not something you can get here in Canterlot." She said as she levitated a sheet of paper on her designing table and her designing glassed over her eyes.
"I'll show you something worthy of Canterlot." She said in an assertive tone as she started drawing a new design. After a short while, she finished her design.
I walked over to her and looked at it. It did look like something somepony would wear in Canterlot and it wasn't bad ether. "Is that Twilight's dress?" I asked while looking at it in amazement.
Rarity turned her head to face my. "Yes, this will show those high class ponies that ponies from Ponyville aren't as country as they think we are."
I then looked at her and a smirk came on my face. "Then what are we waiting for? Let's do this!" I said before we high-hooved.
Later: Canterlot streets
Me and Rarity (with Opal in a cat carrier on her side) had been galloping around everywhere to collect fabrics and other things to help make Twilight's dress.
Me and Rarity were now quickly on our way back to the suite with bags filled with fabrics and stuff hovering around Rarity. "I have to get started right away, this new design is very ambitious and I've already written to Twilight to let her know she'll have something beyond fabulous to wear to her party and I've mentioned that it'll be your gift to her." She said while trotting along with me trotting behind her.
I then came up beside her. "Yeah thanks. Knowing you handy work, she's gonna love it. This is gonna be awes-UMF." I couldn't finish my sentence as we both bumped into somepony which caused us to fall backwards and Rarity to lose focus on levitating her bags.
I then got up off the ground and rubbed my head before I looked at the pony we bumped into and noticed he had one of our bags over his head.
The white female unicorn with a light pink mane and tail who was next to him then pulled the bag off his head; revealing a smart looking white male unicorn with a blue mane and mustache.
"(Gasp)…Fancypants." Rarity gasped.
"Who's Fancypants?" I asked.
Rarity then quickly placed both her front hooves on my face and turned my head to face him. "That's Fancypants."
"I say, that's…one way to make a good introduction." Fancypants said in his posh voice as he brushed the dust off himself.
"Oh goodness…I am so sorry. I-I didn't see you there, I-I've just got so many bags and I was trying to get back to my sweet at the castle and…" Rarity tried to explain as we picked up the bags.
"You're..staying at the castle?" Fancypants asked as he levitated his monocle to his eye with his magic.
"The Princess invited me and my friend Matthew here to stay in one of her suites." Rarity said as we both continued to pick up the bags.
"You know the Princess?" Fancypants asked before he turned his head to face the female unicorn.
"Hmm, a pony with expensive taste I see." She said as she looked at one of our bags before she levitated it over to us before she wrapped her arms around Fancypants.
"Oh it's for an ensemble I'm making for a friend, her birthdays in a few days." Rarity said as she accidently shoved Opal in one of her bags.
"And…did you say your friends name was…Matthew?" Fancypants asked before he looked at me.
"Yeah…I'm Matthew." I answered with a raised eye brow.
"Tell me my boy! You wouldn't by any chance be the Matthew who saved Canterlot from being attacked by that Thorn character, are you?" he asked me.
I was surprised he knew that. "Yeah that was me, how'd you know about that?"
He smiled at me. "The newspaper travels in many different places Matthew…and I must say, your story intrigues me. Nopony in all of Equestria ever believed there would be a seventh Element; they said it was just an ancient myth. You and your friend probably made the biggest discovery of the century."
I smiled back. "Oh…thanks."
"Anyway we must be going, and I'm really sorry we bumped in to you." Rarity said as we both trotted passed Fancypants.
"I'm not." I heard Fancypants say behind me. Me and Rarity then turned around to face him.
Fancypants chuckled slightly. "You two…are obviously ponies worth bumping into."
Me and Rarity then smiled in delight. "Listen! I have a VIP box reserved at the Wonderbolts derby this afternoon. Would you…would you both be so kind as to join me and a few of my companions there hm?" Fancypants asked with a small smile.
"Us?" Rarity asked holding her hoof under her mouth.
"But of cause my dear." Fancypants answered.
"Well I-I'm..err..I..sure." Rarity answered in a stuttering tone.
Fancypants was preparing to walk away. "We'd love to see you both there errr..err."
"Rarity." Rarity finished.
"Rarity." Fancypants repeated as he walked away. The female unicorn then noticed he was leaving and shot off after him.
I looked at Rarity to see she had a large smile on her face. I gave her a slightly confused look. "But…Rarity, what about Twilight's dress?"
Rarity turned her head to face me. "Don't worry Matthew! We'll figure something out. Now come along! We have a lot to do." She said as she turned and trotted away with the bags hovering around her. I then started following her back to the suite.
Our suite
Rarity was pacing back and forth while I was leaning against the wall watching her.
"Pro, seeing the derby from a VIP box is a once in a lifetime opportunity. Con, going to the derby cuts into the amount of time I have to finish Twilight's outfit. Pro, Fancypants is the most important pony in Canterlot. His stamp of approval could mean big things for me here. Con, Twilight's party might not be a sophisticated as the derby. But that doesn't mean I should put all of my energy into creating her birthday ensemble. My Ponyville friends will appreciate my hard work more than anypony….I'd hate to let them down." Rarity said as she though hard about it.
She then finally came up with a decision. "And I won't." she said as she walked into the next room.
"Matthew, we're going to the Wonderbolts as guests of Fancypants." Rarity said as she came back into the room wearing a pink hat with a flower and two large feathers on it.
Rarity then let out a scream of excitement while trotting on the spot. My eyes then went wide with worry. "What?...B-but Rarity, Twilight's birthday's in a few days. It usually takes you more than a few days to finish a design, how are you gonna get it done in time?"
Rarity raised her hoof. "Matthew, I promise you that the dress will be ready for Twilight's birthday. I'm just asking to do this one little thing and then I'll get started."
I thought about it for a moment before letting out a small sigh. "Fine ok, we'll go."
Rarity then locked me in a tight hug which made me choke. "Thank you Matthew, how can I ever repay you?" she said as she hugged me.
"By not squeezing me in half." I said struggling to breath.
"Deal." She said as she quickly let go of me. Once she did I gasped for air.
That afternoon: Wonderbolts derby
We arrived at the Wonderbolts derby and the stadium was packed with ponies.
"Pardon me, 'scuse me, 'scuse me." Rarity said to the ponies we passed as we climbed the stairs to the VIP box. Once we reached the top, I noticed Jet Set and Upper Crust staring at us in a slightly angered way. As we walked passed them, I stuck my tongue out at them but they turned around fast and I quickly pulled my tongue back in my mouth and continued to follow Rarity.
We reached the stairs that led to the VIP bow; the entrance had a purple rope across it and a royal guard standing next to it.
We walked in front of the guard and while Rarity was beating her eyes at him, I smiled nervously at him. The guard gave us an examining look.
At that moment, Fancypants came down the stairs and noticed us. "Rarity, Matthew, jolly good to see you. So glad you both could make it." He said as the guard unhooked the purple rope and moved it aside with his magic; allowing us the go through and up the stairs with Fancypants. Jet Set and Upper Crust mouths hug wide open at the sight of this.
Once we reached the top, our eyes went wide at the sight of other high class ponies approaching us. But it turned out they were only walking up to Fancypants and started talking to him.
"Everypony, this is Rarity and Matthew…they're staying at Canterlot castle." Fancypants said which made them all go wide-eyed before they all looked at us to see us. They all then started muttering to each other.
"Fillies and gentlecolts, welcome to the Wonderbolts derby…the competitors are taking their place at the starting line and the race will begin momentarily." We heard the announcer say.
"I'll be rooting for Rabid Fire, of cause. He's sure to take home the grand prize." Fancypants said before the high class ponies nodded in agreement.
"I don't think he has a chance against Fleetfoot." Rarity said causing the high class ponies to gasp slightly as they turned to face us.
Rarity then had a nervous smile grow on her face.
"I think Spitfire might win, if you ask me." I said causing everypony to then look at me.
"But nopony's asking me so….yeah." I said nervously shifting my eyes. Suddenly, the race horn blew and we all walked up to the barrier to watch the race.
Down by the tracks, the Wonderbolts were all in a line waiting to star. Once the referee blew his whistle, they all shot off. We all watched in awe as they kept flying around and around on the tracks.
"And it's Fleetfoot by a nose." The announcer cheered.
Rarity then jumped up and cheered. "Damn it, I never could win a horse race." I thought.
"Bravo Rarity. I say, how did you know Fleetfoot would be victorious?" Fancypants asked as he came up to us.
"My friend Rainbow Dash talks about her all the time. She says that what Fleetfoot lacks in size, she makes up for it in speed." Rarity answered with a small smile.
"And…who is this..Rainbow Dash?" a female high class pony asked.
"Errr." Was all Rarity said. I wondered why I was taking her a while to tell them who Rainbow Dash was. She then gulped hard. "Why…she's…she's the Wonderbolts…trainer, of cause." She said before giving them a nervous smile.
"Yeah, she's the Wonderbolts trai-wait what? Rarity, what ya talkin' abou-" I couldn't finish my sentence as Rarity shoved her hoof in my mouth.
Fancypants and the other ponies were silent for a moment. "Staying at Canterlot castle and she knows the Pegasus training the Wonderbolts. I told you all this was an important pony." Fancypants said breaking the silence. The high class ponies then agreed with him.
Rarity turned her head to face me and saw the annoyed look on my face before she took her hoof out my mouth. She then dabbed her cheeks with a handkerchief.
"Three cheers for Rarity and Matthew! My new favourite party guests" Fancypants said as he raised rarity's hoof up with his own.
"Hip hip, hooray! Hip hip, hooray! Hip hip, hooray." The high class ponies cheered.
As they did and Rarity winked in delight, all I could do was put on a forced smile but I was still upset with Rarity for actually lying.
Later: Canterlot streets
Me, Rarity and three of the high class ponies were walking down the streets of Canterlot. While we were, Rarity had been entertaining the ponies with unfunny jokes. But for some reason, they found them funny. I was starting to get of my nerves.
"And then I said, please! That isn't a hat darling, that's a natural disaster that somehow landed on top of your head." Rarity said before the high class ponies laughed in a posh way.
"Oh, I think I'm gonna puke." I thought while rolling my eyes.
"Oh you are a delight Rarity, an absolute delight. You and Matthew simply must attend my art gallery opening this evening." One of the female high class ponies said before laughing in a posh way.
"Oh…I-I'd love to but I-" Rarity couldn't finish her sentence as a male high class pony interrupted her.
"And let's not forget my charity auction tomorrow morning!" he said.
"That sounds wonderful but I-" Rarity was once again interrupted by the second female high class pony who turned Rarity's head with her hoof to face her.
"And of cause, there's a seat for you two at my dinner party tomorrow night." She said.
"I'm flattered…really. It's just I have a project a really need to get started on and err-" Rarity said.
"We really don't have time for things like auctions and dinner parties." I finished before we started to walk away from the high class ponies.
One of the female high class ponies the showed up to us. "Oh but Rarity, I may as well close down the whole gallery if you both can't attend." She said in a devastated tone.
"My auction is for charity dear, for charity." The male high class pony said cutting the other pony off.
"And my dinner party will be a disaster if you two don't come." The second female high class pony said cutting in between the two others.
They all looked at us with begging eyes. I was about the refuse the offers again until Rarity cut me off. "Of cause we'll be there." She said with a forced smile.
The three high class ponies rejoiced in delight. I was shocked at Rarity for saying that. What about the dress? What about Twilight's birthday?
I couldn't help but quietly groaned in frustration over this.
Later: Our suite
"Looks like we'll be spending a few more days here Matthew." Rarity said as she put a pink ribbon around one of her dress forms while going through her jewellery box.
"Turns out bumping into Fancypants like that was the best thing that's ever happened to Me." she said as she levitated a necklace in front of her neck while looking in the mirror.
I then walked up beside Rarity. "Yeah, he's a nice guy and all but we've been here for two days and you haven't even started on Twilight's dress." I said in a worried tone.
Rarity turned her head to face me. "Don't worry Matt! Finishing Twilight's dress in time for her birthday party is still my top priority….but we can't possibly disappoint the Canterlot elite by rejecting their invitations now, can we?"
I looked down at the ground and thought about it. "I…guess not." I said in an unsure voice.
Rarity nodded. "That's right, so does this mean you're coming?"
I nodded slightly. "Fine, I'll go."
"Good, now let's enjoy this while we can!" she then levitated a tiara out of the box with her magic and lifted it high up in the air. It did some flips before she brought it back down and placed it on her head.
Rarity: "I'll be the toast of the town, the girl on the go
I'm the type of pony everypony, everypony should know
I'll be the one to watch, the girl in the flow
I'm the type of pony everypony, everypony should know."
Art gallery
"Becoming as popular as popular can be
Making my mark, making my mark in high society."
The next morning: Charity auction
"I'm the belle of the ball, the star of the show, yeah
I'm the type of pony everypony, everypony should know."
That night: Dinner party
"See how they hang on every word that I speak
My approving glance is what they all seek
I'm the crème de la crème, not just another Jane Doe
I'm the type of pony everypony, everypony should know."
Other parties all around Canterlot
"At home, at the opera, on a fancy yacht
Becoming the talk, the talk of all of Canterlot
I'm the crème de la crème, not just another Jane Doe, yeah
I'm the type of pony everypony, everypony should know."
That night: Our suite
"Because I'm the type of pony
Yes, I'm the type of pony
Yes, I'm the type of pony everypony should know."
The next day: our suite
We were getting ready to leave and go back to Ponyville. I couldn't help but worry about what Twilight would think about her dress. With all the parties lately, Rarity hasn't made much of it.
It was just a short cream coloured dress with a pink ribbon around it. Twilight's expecting something fancy.
Me and the bell-hop pony were once again each carrying half the luggage on our backs and we were struggling to stand. "Oh I hope I haven't forgotten anything." Rarity said as she looked around the room.
"Me…..too." The bell-hop pony said as he struggled to stand.
"We better get going! I must get back to Ponyville with enough time to finish Twilight's ensemble." Rarity stated as she pulled Opal off the bed with her magic and shoved her in her cat carrier.
"It's about time too." I said as I tried to follow her towards the door.
Just then, a letter came through the mail slot. "For me?" Rarity said curiously before she levitated the letter off the floor and hovered it in front of her face as she read it.
"Dearest Rarity and Matthew, your presents is requested at the Canterlot Garden party tomorrow afternoon. Yours Jet Set and Upper Crust." Rarity then gasped in delight.
"The Canterlot Garden party! Why, next to the Grand Galloping Gala that is the premier event in Canterlot." Rarity said before she let out an excited scream.
Her excited smile then turned into a concerned frown. "Ooh, but if I go I'll miss Twilight's birthday. But if I don't go, my new reputation in Canterlot as a very important pony might be ruined. I might never be invited to another high society event again. Friend's birthday? Very important pony?"
I watched as she held her breath while she thought hard. I was hoping she was going to make the right decision. "It's just too important."
"What?" I said to in a slightly devastated tone.
Rarity then picked up a sheet of paper and a quill with her magic and took a deep breath before she started wrighting a letter. "My dear Twilight, I am afraid I won't be able to make it to your birthday party tomorrow because….BECAUSE POOR OPAL IS QUITE ILL. And she is in no condition to make the long journey back to Ponyville. I do hope you understand, your friend Rarity."
"I suppose this means you don't need me to bring down your bags?" the bell-hop pony asked once Rarity finished wrighting her letter.
"No." Rarity answered with a smile.
I looked at the bell-hop pony to see he had a relived smile on his face. "But, I will need some help unpacking them." she added.
At that moment, Me and the bell-hop pony lost our strength again and collapsed to the floor with the bags falling on top of us.
I pulled myself out from underneath the bags and saw Rarity walk into the next room. I stood back up and I felt devastated. She would sooner go to a garden party then go to her friend's birthday party? At that moment, all my devastation turned to anger. "That's it; I'm putting my hoof down on this." I said to myself in an angered voice.
The next day
Rarity trotted into the main room wearing a yellow dress and flowers on her tale. "What do you think? Too much?" she asked Opal.
Opal did nothing but lick under her leg. "You're right, too little." Rarity said before placing a large yellow hat with pick flowers and light blue ribbons on her head with her magic.
"Garden party, here we come. Come along Matthew." Rarity said calling out to me. She then noticed that I wasn't in the room with her. "Matthew?"
I then stormed in from one of the other rooms while holding a brown suitcase in my mouth. Rarity noticed this and gave me a confused look. "Matt? What are you doing? What's with the suitcase?" she asked me as I walked over to her.
I then placed the suitcase down so I could speak. "I'm going back to Ponyville. I promised Twilight that I'd be there for her birthday and that's what I'm gonna do." I answered in an assertive tone.
Rarity then gave me a shocked look. "What? But Matt, this is our big chance to be like Canterlot ponies."
I gave her a serious look. "I already told you Rarity, I could never be a Canterlot pony. Because I live in Ponyville, all our friends are there and their happiness is more important than anything, or has your new found popularity made you forget that?"
Hearing what I said made Rarity go wide-eyed in shock. There was a moment silence between us until Rarity broke it. "Oh…Matthew…have you felt this way all this time?" she asked before I nodded.
"Then why didn't you say anything?" Rarity asked as she came closer to me.
"Because I know you've been waiting for an opportunity like this for a long time and I didn't want to ruin it for you so I just….went along with it. But its gone way too far for me now, I'm sorry Rarity but….Twilight's my girlfriend and this is the first birthday we'll share in our time together. Again…I'm sorry." I said with my ears low.
I then picked up the suitcase in my mouth and walked passed Rarity who had a slightly upset look on her face as she watch me walk towards the door.
Once I reached the door, I placed my hoof on it to open it. "Matthew." I heard Rarity say behind me.
I then turned around to see Rarity with an understanding smile on her face. "I understand Matt; this is a very important day for you and Twilight. So…you can go and I hope that….you can find a way to forgive me!"
I then put the suitcase down so I could speak again. "Yeah well…I don't hold a grudge against my friends. How 'bout we have a nice talk when you come to Ponyville?" I asked with a warm smile.
She smiled warmly back. "I'd like that."
I then nodded. "Ok then, well….see ya Rarity. I'll be sure to give Twilight you regar-AHH." I yelled after I opened the door to see Twilight and the rest of the main 6 standing behind it.
"SURPRISE." They all yelled. The sudden sight of her friends showing up here at this particular time caused Rarity to gasp and faint.
My eyes were wide in surprise. "Twilight….w-what are you doin' here?"
She stepped forward. "When I heard that Rarity couldn't make it, I asked Pinkie if we could move my party here." she explained with a joyful smile.
She then noticed the suitcase next to my hooves. "What's with the suitcase?" she asked curiously.
I looked down at the suitcase. "Oh that? I errr….was on my way to your party in Ponyville, I did promise I'd be there."
Twilight smiled. "Oh…well there's no need for that now, we're all here for the party."
I looked around and noticed something. "Where's Spike, Jeff and Peewee?" I asked.
"Oh, when the library was all set up for my party, Spike ate all the cupcakes and got a really bad stomach-ache. He had to stay behind with Jeff and Peewee who offered to take care of him while we came here." Twilight explained.
"Oh, well, we'll find a way to make it up to him." i said with a smile.
At that moment, we all heard Rarity start to wake up and we all gathered around her.
"Did you see her fall? She was like swoosh, right before she hit the ground, shoom, she- hi again." Pinkie Pie said to Rarity as she fully woke up.
Rarity then stood back up. "W-what are you?…how did you?…why are you?" she said in a confused tone.
"Listen to her! She so excited to see us she can hardly talk." Applejack said.
"What I mean to say is, what are you all doing here?" Rarity asked nervously.
"When I got your letter saying you were stuck in Canterlot, I asked Pinkie Pie if it wouldn't be too much trouble to move my birthday party here, so you wouldn't have to miss it." Twilight explained.
Pinkie Pie the leaned in closer to Rarity. "Balloons are super easy to pack." She said before she opened a suitcase and balloons burst out of it.
"Wow, first you get me and Matthew a suite at Canterlot castle and now this. I don't know what to say, Twilight." Rarity said with a warm-hearted look on her face.
Rainbow Dash then flew up to her face. "How about you start by saying what you're doing in that fancy get-up." She said giving Rarity a suspicious look.
"This? Err…well I…I always put on something a little fancy when…Opal's feeling under the weather haha, cheers her right up." Rarity said hoping they'd fall for it.
I then quietly face hooved myself.
Fluttershy then walked up to Rarity with a concerned look on her face. "Oh poor Opal, where is the sick darling?" she asked sweetly.
Fluttershy tried to look through the door but Rarity blocked her view. "Oh errr…she's…hold on a minute! Matthew can you come help me?" Rarity asked.
"Rarity, I was about to ask you the same thing." I said as I walked into the suite with Rarity before slamming the door behind me.
Once I did, I turned to Rarity with my eyes narrow. "Got anymore bright ideas?"
"Relax Matt, I have an idea." Rarity said before she levitated Opal off the bed and walked towards the bathroom with her. "I am so sorry about this." She said as she entered the bathroom.
I then heard the shower running and Opal screeching. "Oh my." I said with my hoof over my mouth.
Rarity then walked out of the bathroom with a completely soaked Opal hovering in front of her. She then placed Opal back on the bed before walking back to the door.
"You do know she's never going to forget that, right?" I said as Rarity place her hoof on the door.
"Yes, I do." Rarity answered before she reopened the door to see our friends waiting for us. "She's resting on the bed." She told them.
Fluttershy then shot passed Rarity and up to Opal. Fluttershy then picked her up while she was flapping in the air. "Poor baby, she looks awful." Fluttershy said as she hugged Opal tightly.
I looked up at Opal to see her growling down at us. While feeling slightly scared, I quickly pointed at Rarity who was standing next to me.
"Is…that my dress?" Twilight asked as she examined the dress.
"Yes." Me and Rarity answered nervously.
"It so simple, so practical, so ME. It's the perfect dress for my birthday party. I love it, thank you Matt." Twilight cheered as she pulled me into a warm hug before she gave me a loving kiss on the cheek that made me blush.
I then smiled and hugged back. "Awww." Everypony in the room said as they watched us.
Rarity then exhaled in relief. "You don't know how glad I am to hear you say that." She said before she waved her tale against the old design of Twilight's dress; causing it to blow off the table and land in the bin.
Early that night: outside the ball room
We were all walking down a hall outside the castle towards the castle ballroom.
Twilight had her new dress on and it actually looked good on her.
"When I told the Princess that I was moving the party to Canterlot, she was kind enough to offer us the Canterlot castle ball room." Twilight said before she opened the double doors revealing the ball room. The entire room was decorated with party decorations.
"Isn't it fancy pants?" Pinkie Pie asked with a large smile.
"Fancypants, where?" Rarity asked as she hid behind Rainbow Dash in fright. She then noticed they were all string at her in confusion.
"Err…I mean, where did you find the time to put up all these decorations? Haha." Rarity asked as she walked out from behind Rainbow Dash and into the ball room; hoping they didn't notice her frightened act.
"Oh I never leave home without my party cannon." Pinkie Pie said as she pulled a cannon out of nowhere.
I raised an eye brow. "Your party what?" I asked nervously.
"Here, I'll show you." Pinkie said before she pushed down on the flint and decorations shot out of the cannon; leaving a trail of confetti in the air. The decorations were set perfectly as they landed on a table. "Ta-da." Pinkie cheered.
Twilight then walked over to the window. "I thought about having my birthday outside. But they're having another party on the castle grounds today."
Me and Rarity looked out the window and went wide-eyed in fear after discovering that it was the garden party that we were invited to earlier. Me and Rarity hid behind the wall next to the window; hoping nopony saw us.
Pinkie Pie then slowly rose up between us. "LETS PARTY!" she yelled before pulling us both away from the window.
The party was wild. The gramophone was play jazzy music; it was actually a good tune. First we repeatedly threw Twilight up in the air, caught her and threw her up again.
Then we had some cake but Rainbow Dash threw some in Fluttershy's and Applejack's face. As she was laughing, we all gave her devious grins before throwing cake at her before we all burst out laughing.
Then we all danced the conga with Twilight in the front, followed by me, followed by Fluttershy, followed by Applejack, followed by Rainbow Dash and finally Rarity at the back.
As we did, Rarity looked out the window to the other party. "Errr…no reason I can't at least make an appearance." She said.
As we danced passed the window, Rarity somehow made it outside to the other party without any of us knowing.
Rarity walked through the entrance of the garden. "I'm here." she announced.
At that moment, Upper Crust walked up to Rarity. "Darling, I'm so glad made it." She said.
Fancypants then walked up to Rarity. "Rarity, so happy to see you here." he greeted.
"I wouldn't have missed this for the world." Rarity stated.
Fancypants then looked around before looking back at Rarity. "And…where's Matthew?" he asked.
"He…errr…couldn't attend, he had an important errand to run." Rarity said; hoping he'd believe her.
"Oh….well, let's hope he gets back soon. The night is still young, after all." Fancypants said. At that moment, Fancy Pants started sniffing the air.
"I say, what is that sent you're wearing? It smells like (sniff, sniff) is that…cake frosting?" he asked in a confused tone.
Rarity eyes widened before she came up with something. "Yes, I always like to dap a little frosting behind my ears before I go out, hahaha. After all, who doesn't like the smell of cake frosting?" she said nervously.
"I know I do." Fancypants said before Upper Crust nodded in agreement.
Rarity the exhaled in relief. "Well, all this talk about cake has made me hungry. Think I'll go and see what on the old dirt table, if you'll excuse me?" she said before she shot off into the garden.
A while later, Rarity returned to our party and we started playing piñata. I was trying to hit the same one Twilight was trying to hit while Rarity took off her blind fold and slowly backed away into the other party.
All night, Rarity kept going back and forth to each party. And each time, she came up with a different excuse to leave…until. "Err…what's with the croquet mallet?" Rainbow Dash asked with a raised eye brow while holding a balloon in her hooves.
"What croquet mallet?" Rarity muffled with the croquet mallet in her mouth.
"Duh, the one in your mouth!" Rainbow Dash said.
Rarity looked down at her mouth and dropped the mallet. "Haha, oh…that croquet mallet…I…well I. you know, the truth is…the truth is." Rarity tried to come up with something before Twilight cutted in.
"Were you at that other party in the garden?" Twilight asked with wide eyes.
"Busted." I thought as I bit down on my bottom lip.
"I…I..err." was all Rarity could say.
"Rarity, I'm surprised at you." Twilight stated.
Rarity then shot down to Twilight's front hooves. "Twilight, let me explain!...I."
"I hadn't realized you were such a savvy business pony." Twilight said with a small smile.
"You must understand!...I." Rarity tried to explain before Twilight cutted in again.
"All those ponies look so posh and with the Grand Galloping Gala coming up, I bet you could totally get some of them to buy your dresses. Very smart, what do you think Matt?" Twilight asked as she looked over to me.
"Oh…yeah, totally. Good idea, hahaha." I said as I laughed sheepishly.
"Woo, why yes, I-I didn't want you to think I was being rude so that's exactly the reason I didn't tell you. The one and only reason." Rarity said before laughing nervously.
Twilight smiled. "Oh well, you didn't have to do that. You should totally go over there and mingle!"
Rarity went wide-eye in surprise before giving Twilight a sweet smile. "Twilight, you really are the best friend a pony could ever ask for." Rarity then gave Twilight a loving hug. "I don't know why I ever thought you wouldn't understand."
"Understand what?" Twilight asked as Rarity continued hugging her.
Rarity's eyes then shot open. "Nothing." She answered quickly.
"See you girls later!" Rarity said as she let go of Twilight.
I then raised my eye brow. "Hey!" I moaned. Rarity then turned her head to face me. "Oh, and Matt. Of cause." She said with a sheepish smile before shooting off towards the door.
As Rarity trotted towards the door, Rainbow Dash flew up behind her. "Hey, wait up!" she called.
Rarity stopped and turned her head around to face her. "We're your friends, I'm sure they won't mind if we checked out the party too." Rainbow Dash said before she turned to us.
"Come on you guys! Let's show'em how to party Ponyville style." Rainbow Dash said.
I raised my hoof. "Err Rainbow, I don't think that's such a good i-" I couldn't finish my sentence as they all shot passed me and out the door. "-dea." I finished with my eyes narrow.
"Oh no." Rarity said with fear in her voice before shooting off after them.
"This…will not end well." I stated with my eyes still narrow before galloping after her.
When we came to the entrance of the garden, we watched in worry at the sight of our friends partying like crazy in the garden with all the high class ponies looked at them strangely.
Rainbow Dash was trying to hit a croquet ball with the mallet but ended up accidently letting go of the mallet as she swung it and it flew across the garden and knocked a wig off a high class mares head. I was surprised the mare didn't even notice.
Fluttershy was feeding some birds with bird seed above some high class ponies and got bird seed and feathers all over them
Pinkie Pie shoved her face in a cake and stated eating it like a pig.
Applejack was pulling flowers from the ground thinking that a garden party meant actual gardening. "How come ya'all aren't doin' any gardenin'? this is a garden party, isn't it?" she asked.
And Twilight was dancing funny dance moves to the music of the gramophone which made some of the high class ponies back away from her. I couldn't help but chuckle at her dance moves.
"Can you believe what that pony is wearing?" Jet Set said to me and Rarity.
"It's just so plain." Upper Crust added. I couldn't help but growl slightly at them for their comments about Twilight.
"Haha, yeah." Rarity said nervously.
As Twilight was dancing, Fancypants walked up to her and she stopped dancing to face him. "Excuse me! Might I ask where you got your…ensemble?" he asked as he used his magic to hover his monocle in front of Twilight's dress before placing it back over his eye.
Twilight smiled. "Why yes, yes you may. A very, very close friend of mine from Ponyville made it for me. And my sweet-hearted coltfriend who's also from Ponyville gave it to me as a present."
At that moment, Rarity did a spit-take before she galloped over to them. I noticed that Rarity accidently spat her drink all over Jet Set and Upper Crust. I then walked up to them. "Sorry." I said with a sheepish smile before galloping off after Rarity.
"Ponyville? You don't say?" Fancypants said with a raised eye brow.
"I do say, their names are-" Twilight couldn't finish her sentence as Rarity cutted in.
"Fancypants, come with me! I'd like to show you…this, errr, thing that's over there. On the other side of the room." Rarity said trying to get Fancypants to come with her.
Fancypants raised his hoof. "In a moment my dear, this lovely filly from Ponyville was just about to tell me who made her…charming dress and who gave it to her."
Rarity waved her hoof. "That dress? Oh come now! Who cares? It's just a plain old-"
"Oh don't be so modest! This dress you and Matt made is beautiful." Twilight said cutting in.
From hearing that, all the high class ponies gasped in shock as they all looked at me and Rarity. "We all think so." Twilight added.
Fancypants turned his head to face us. "You two know these ponies?" he asked us.
We were both silent as we saw Twilight and the others give us confused looks. Seeing Twilight's face like that made me want to say the truth but before I could, Rarity turned around and walked towards the high class ponies.
I watched her thinking she was going to choose them over us until she spoke. "Yes, yes we do know them. They may not be as sophisticated as some of you Canterlot ponies, but they are my best friends and they are without a doubt…the most important ponies I know."
I then gave Rarity a proud smile and she smiled sweetly back.
"Important ponies? These ruffians?" Jet Set asked. "Don't make me laugh!" Upper Crust said before she and Jet Set laughed in a snobby way.
I then stepped forward. "Hey, watch it! The unicorn in the plain dress happens to be my girlfriend." I said in an angered voice.
The high class ponies then gasped again. "Yeah, I said it. She's my girlfriend and I love her with all my heart. And if you have a problem with it? You can just go jump in a muddy ditch." I snapped before I turned around and walked towards Twilight.
Jet Set gave me a sharp glare. "Fine, and you can just go back to Ponyville with your ruffian friends!" he and Upper Crust then laughed again which mad me grit my teeth.
When I walked up to Twilight's side, Fancypants turned his head to the high class ponies. "I for one, find them charmingly rustic."
After hearing that, Jet Set and Upper Crust stopped laughing and the other high class ponies gasped.
Fancypants then walked up to Twilight. "I think the dress you made for your friend is lovely and I find it absolutely adorable that you gave it to her as a present." He said to me and Rarity.
We both had a surprised look on our faces. "I dare say, every mare in Canterlot will be wanting one." Fancypants added.
Rarity had a large smile on her face before Upper Crust came up to her side. "Oh, I'd like to place my order right now." She said.
Jet Set then came up to Rarity's other side. "I think you should get two." He suggested. Rarity then shot off from between the two; causing them the bump their heads together.
Fancypants gave them an awkward look. "Er, yes, now then. How about you introduce me to your friends?" he asked Rarity.
"My pleasure!" she answered.
The next day: our suite
We were yet again preparing to leave and go back to Ponyville; Rarity was starting to wright a friendship report the Princess Celestia.
She grabbed a quill with her magic and started wright on a sheet of paper. "Dear Princess Celestia, I wanted to tell you about the important lesson I learned during my visit."
"Now that, I would like to hear." A voice said behind her. She turned around to see Princess Celestia smiling down at her.
Rarity smiled back and continued tell her what she learned. "I learned that no matter where you go in life, you should never forget that you are the product of your home and your friends. And that is something always to be proud of, no matter what." She finished.
Celestia's smile grew. "A very valuable lesson to have learned."
"It certainly is." A voice said across the room. Rarity and Celestia turned their heads to see Me and the bell-hop pony each once again carrying half the luggage on our backs.
"But, might I ask that we hurry things up a bit?" the bell-hop pony asked.
"Yeah, this is the third time we've done this and to be honest, we're not getting any better." I said trying to keep myself up.
"OH NO." the bell-hop pony yelled as he lost his strength and collapsed to the floor with the luggage falling on top of him.
"OH, HERE WE GO AGAIN." I yelled as I did the same.
Rarity and Celestia then smiled sheepishly at each other.
That night: Canterlot castle guest room
After escorting me and Rarity to the train station to catch the train that took us back to Ponyville, Celestia walked down the hallway towards to the guest room to check on Discord.
She entered the room to see Discord adjusting his bed sheets. "I see you're getting settled well." She said with a warm smile.
Discord turned around to face Celestia and smiled back. "Oh yes, a little tweaking here and there and it'll be home sweet home."
Celestia then stepped forward. "So is there anything you need before I go to my room?" she asked.
Discord then gave her a nervous look. "Errr, yes, there is actually. You see! I want to be useful to you and pull some weight around here so…are there any jobs that are available?"
Celestia was surprised at his request for a moment before she tapped her chin. "Well…there is one; we need somepony to be our new bell ringer."
Discord smiled. "Ah yes, bell ringer….what's that?" he asked with a confused look.
"It's when somepony rings the castle bells in the morning to for all of Canterlot to hear. We've been needing one for some time now." Celestia explained.
Discord's smile returned. "I'll do it, at least it's something."
Celestia smiled and nodded. "Very well Discord, I'll show you where the bells are tomorrow." She then turned around to walk out the door.
At that moment, Discord stuck out his talon hand. "Celestia wait!"
Celestia then turned around to face Discord with a curious face. "Yes Discord."
Discord had a nervous look on his face. "Errr….are…there any activity's happening this week? Any at all?"
Celestia gave him thought about it for a moment. "Well, there is a bonfire happening in the Canterlot square this Thursday, we do it in memory of the ponies that have died over the years. Why?" she asked curiously.
"Well…errr…would you like, if it's not too much trouble…to go with me?" Discord asked nervously.
Celestia gave him a confused look. "You mean, like a…date?"
Discord's eye went wide. "Oh, you don't have to call it a date if you don't want to! We can call it a simple night out…as friends." Discord then smiled sheepishly.
Celestia then gave him a sweet smile. "I'd sooner call it a date."
Discord then had a surprised look on his face. "Really, then does this mean you'll go with me?"
Celestia nodded. "Of cause Discord, I'll have a seat ready for you on my balcony where we'll be watching the fire. Sound good?"
Discord gave her a sweet smile. "Sounds wonderful."
With that, Celestia turned around and walked out the door before shutting it behind her; leaving Discord alone in a stunned position.
Discord was silent for a moment before he bent down his lion arm. "YES, HAHAHA." He cheered in joy.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter, sorry for the long read.
You're probably noticed I followed Rarity instead of myself at the party scene. The reason for this is, I couldn't think of anything to do with myself in the party. Remember, I don't own this episode.
Please remember to review.
Next chapter will be up soon.
22. Date with Celestia
I had to change some of the lyrics in the song I used in this chapter so it would fit the story.
Chapter 22: Date with Celestia
It's been 2 days since I came back from Canterlot with Rarity and my back still hurts from carrying her luggage. I'm just glad I'm back home at the library with the pony I love.
Discord is doing well at the castle as the new bell ringer; I've even heard that ponies in Canterlot get up early in the morning to listen to the smoothing rhythm of the castle bells.
Discord's informed us that he won't be living in Ponyville anymore but it won't mean the end of the band. He's asked us to send him a letter when the band needs him and he'll come over strait away to be our drummer.
Ponyville streets
I was trotting through the streets in a really happy mood with Jeff on my back, I was trotting so much that Jeff was having trouble keeping his balance on my back and he was starting to feel unwell.
"Dude… take it easy…with the trotting!...or else we'll be seeing my breakfast on your back." Jeff said with his wing over his beak.
I then snapped back into reality and turned my head to face Jeff. "Oh, sorry buddy." I then stopped trotting and started walking normally.
Jeff took a few deep breaths before he finally calmed down. "Ok, what's happenin' with you today? You're acting more…joyful than usual." He asked me with his wings crossed.
I gave him a small smile. "Sorry Jeff, I can't help it, I'm in love. I mean, I've never felt this way before. Back home no girl would even think about dating me. Twilight is the first girl to ever have feelings for me."
Jeff then flew off my back and landed in front of my with a raised eye brow. "Look! I know you and Twilight love each other and trust me! I'm happy for you both, but don't you think you're taking this a little too far?"
I gave him a confused look. "What do you mean?"
"Well, you just spent the last hour trottin' through the streets like a love-struck idiot." Jeff stated.
I thought about it for a moment and realized he was right. I blushed from embarrassment. "Ooh, guess I should calm it down. Huh?" I asked sheepishly.
"Ya think?" Jeff said before he flew back onto my back. "Now come on! We have to get back to…err…what is it we're doin' again?" he asked as I started walking again.
"I'm going to book me and Twilight our table at that restaurant we like for tonight." I answered.
"Again? What is it like the fifth time this month?" Jeff asked as he flew off my back and hovered in front of my face.
"Hey, what can I say? That place is awesome. We have our own private table that's in a beautiful garden for the romantic mood, we're always welcome there and the food is just so good." I explained with a small smile.
Jeff rolled his eyes before returning on my back. "Whatever dude, you do what want! Just don't ask me to sing for you again."
I smirked. "Deal." I said as I continued to walk further down the streets.
The restaurant
I saw the restaurant up ahead and walked towards the door. "Right, all we have to do is go in, book the table for night and then we can go-AW DAMN IT." I yelled in shock.
Jeff went wide-eyed and repeatedly turned his head left and right. "What? What? What is it? Did you step in dog do-do?"
I gave him a discussed look. "What? No. look at the sign on the door!" I said as I pointed at the door.
Jeff then flew up onto my head and squinted his eye as he leaned closer to the door the read the sign. It said. "Closed for two weeks, will be back soon."
After he read the note, Jeff jumped down off my head and looked up at me. "So?"
I raised my eye brow while looking down at him. "So?...Jeff, the place is closed. Where am I supposed to take Twilight for our date?" I asked in a worried tone.
"Dude relax, it's not like you two already planned to have the date here." Jeff said with a small smirk.
I went wide-eye and shifted them left and right. Jeff's smirk then faded away and he face-winged himself. "Aww man, you already did, didn't you? Dude, you're supposed to get a place to go…before..you ask the girl out."
I raised my eye brow again. "What if she said no?"
"Hello…SHE'S IN LOVE WITH YOU…why would she say no?" Jeff yelled in frustration.
I opened my mouth to say something until I thought about what he said. "Good point." I admitted.
Jeff then rubbed his eyes. "Ok just chillax! I'm sure there's other places you can have your date." He said trying to make things better.
I rolled my eyes. "Yeah, like there's anywhere better to go. (Small sigh) let's just go home! Maybe me and Twilight can have a romantic dinner at the library." I said in a disappointed tone before I turned around and walked away with my ears hanging low.
Jeff then shook his head before he flew towards me and landed back on my back.
Library
I walked up to the library and stopped at the door; I let out another sigh before I pushed the door open and walked into the library.
Once inside, I shut the door behind me and saw Twilight by the book shelves organizing some books. Jeff then flew off my back and went up the stairs.
She noticed me and smiled warmly. "Oh good, you're home. I have some news." She said in a joyful tone as she walked up to me.
"Twi, can I tell you something first?" I asked with my ears still low.
She then noticed the slightly upset look on my face and gave me a concerned look. "What is it Matt?"
I then took another deep breath before I looked in her eyes. "We can't go to that restaurant we were planning on going to tonight, it's closed." I admitted.
She gave me a shocked look. "You're kidding! For how long?"
"Two weeks, I'm sorry Twi." I said with my head hanging slightly.
Twilight then gave me an honest look. "Matt, you don't have to be sorry! It's not your fault. And I know something else we can do tonight."
I rose my head back up and gave her a curious look. "Really? What?"
"Follow me!" Twilight said before she turned around and walked over to a table with me following behind. Once we reached the table, she pointed at a poster on the table and I looked down at it and started reading it.
"A bonfire in Canterlot square tonight?" I said as I read the poster.
Twilight nodded. "Yeah, they do it to honour the memory of all the ponies who have died over the years. I've never been to one and I was thinking that we could go. Think about it! The cool night breeze, the warmth of the fire, it could be nice."
I rubbed my chin as I thought about it until I made a decision. "Well…I do like bonfires. And we don't really have anything better to do so…yeah, we can go." I said with a smile.
Twilight then had a large smile on her face. "Ok, then we're gonna need some things to take with us. The fire's going to last a while so we're gonna need some food. What do we have in the kitchen?"
"I'll go check." I said before I walked into the kitchen and opened the fridge only to see nothing. I closed the fridge and walked over the cupboards only to once again see nothing.
I closed the cupboards and went back into the main room. "We don't have any food. The kitchen's completely empty." I told Twilight.
"I'm gonna have to go buy some more." Twilight said before I nodded in agreement.
Twilight tuned my head to the stairs. "Spike, Jeff, Peewee. I'm going shopping, I'll be back soon." Twilight called up to them.
"OK." Spike yelled down to her.
Twilight then grabbed her saddle bags "I'll be back soon Matt." She said before planting a kiss on my cheek.
She then walked to the front door, opened it with her magic and walked out of the library before shutting the door behind her.
A few seconds later, Discord appeared in a flash of light in the middle of the main room.
"Matt, I need your help…fast." He yelled with a worried look on his face.
I was startled by Discord sudden appearance and I held my hoof to my heart. "Discord, what have I said about jumping up like that?"
Discord then lowered his head down to my level. "Matt, this is no time to take things easy. I need help."
Spike, Jeff and Peewee then came down the stairs and noticed Discord in the middle of the room. "Discord? What're you doing here?" Spike aske with a raised eye brow.
I turned my head to face them. "I was about to ask him the same thing."
Discord still had a worried look on his face. "Enough with the talking, I need serious help."
"Huh, we all know that." Jeff said under his breath before Peewee smacked him behind the head with his wing. After which, Jeff gave him a sharp glare.
I then looked back up to Discord. "What's wrong?"
Discord looked down at me. "Well….I…have a date tonight with…Princess Celestia." He answered in a nervous tone. I then went wide-eyed and my jaw dropped in shock, I was completely speechless.
"Princess Celestia? How'd you get her to go on a date with you?" Jeff asked in a surprised voice.
Discord put his hands on his head. "I don't know, I just asked he and she said yes but I don't know if this date's gonna go well." Discord then started pacing back and forth.
"Why do you think it won't go well?" Peewee asked curiously as he flew up to Discord's face.
"Because, she might not like me. I mean, I used to be her worst enemy. How can two worst enemies who just became friends start dating?" Discord said in a worried tone.
I then stepped forward. "Discord, if she didn't like you then why do you think she said yes in the first place?"
Discord was about to say something before he gave it some thought and tapped his chin. "I…I don't know."
Peewee then flew up onto Discord's shoulder. "It's because she likes you. Trust us! You've got nothing to worry about."
"Yeah, ever since you came to our side she's taken a likin' to you. I mean, those royal high class ponies certainly aren't her type." Jeff added.
Spike then stepped closer to Discord. "And those guys are a dime a dozen. But you…your one of a kind." Spike said before he walked to the window and looked up at Canterlot before he started to sing.
Spike: "Look!...Canterlot. The kingdom of lovers is glowing this evening….(sigh)
True that's because there's a fire
But still, there's l'amour…
Somewhere out there in the night
Her heart is also…a light
And I know the guy she just might be burning fooooor….
A guy…like you
She's never known, D
A guy like you, a girl does not meet every daaaay
You've got a look
That's all your own, D
Could there be two?" With Jeff and Peewee: "Like you? No way."
Spike: "Those other guys…that she could dangle
All look the same from every boring point of vieeeeew
You're a surprise…from every angle
Mon Dieu above, she's gotta love, a guy like you."
Jeff: "A guy like you
Gets extra credit
Because it true you got a...certain something moooore." Spike: "you're aces, D."
Peewee: "You see that face…you don't forget it."
All three: "Want something new?" Spike: "that's you." All three: "For suuuure."
Peewee: "We all have gaped…at some Adonis."
Jeff: "But then we crave a meal more nourishing to cheeeew."
Spike: "And since you're shaped….in a bazar way."
All three: "No question of, she's gotta love, a guy like you…."
Peewee: "Call me a hopeless romantic but Discord, I feel it."
Jeff: "She wants you so, any moment she'll walk through that doooor."
All three: "Fooooor
A guy so swell, a guy like you
With all you bring to her
A fool can tell, it's like she fell for you-know-whoooo
You ring the bell, you're the bell ringerrrrr
When she wants oo-la-la
Then she wants you la-la
She will discover, guy
You're one heck of a guy
Who wouldn't love a guy…like… youuuu?"
Spike: "You got a lot, the rest have not
She's gotta love a guy like you."
The moment they stopped singing, we heard the front door open and we all looked to the door to see Twilight with her saddle bags all filled up.
She then noticed Discord and Spike, Jeff and Peewee in some sort of pose. "Errr…what's going on here? And why is Discord here?" she asked with a raised eye brow.
Spike, Jeff and Peewee then looked at each other before they quickly got out of the pose. "Nothin'." They all said with sheepish smiles as they held their hands and wings behind their backs.
Twilight was silent for a moment before she turned her head to me. "Matt, what's going on?"
"Errr…well…Discord came here the moment you left and he's kinda stressed out because…apparently….he has a date tonight." I said nervously.
"With who?" Twilight asked as she walked up to me.
"Errr…Princess Celestia." I answered with a sheepish smile.
Twilight's eyes then went wide. "Princess Celestia? As in…the ruler of all of Equestria?" she asked before I slowly nodded.
She then looked up at Discord with a surprised look. "How did you get Princess Celestia to go on a date with you?"
Discord's narrowed his eyes. "I asked her and she said yes. We're going to watch the bonfire together. What am I gonna do?" he asked as he started stressing again.
Twilight raised her hoof. "Relax Discord, all you have to do is be yourself and think of a nice conversation to have with her." She said with a sweet smile.
"A conversation about what?" Discord asked with a raised eye brow.
Twilight then tapped her chin. "Well…anything, your hobbies, your interests, what you did when you were young, that sort of stuff."
I then walked up beside Twilight while still looking up at Discord. "Yeah, just be polite, nice and understanding. Then you'll be fine." I said with a confident smile.
"Unless you screw up and make a fool of yourself." Jeff said with his eyes narrow.
"JEFF." We all yelled out while giving him angered looks.
"What?" he said as he shrugged.
Discord then let out a nervous sigh
That night: Canterlot square
After a long train ride, Me and Twilight arrived at Canterlot square next to the castle to see a large pyramid of wood in the centre with a barrier surrounding it so nopony would get hurt from the fire. It looked like every pony in Canterlot was here sitting around behind the barrier.
As we were walking towards it, I noticed Discord wasn't following us and I rolled my eyes before I turned around and walked around the corner of a nearby building and saw Discord with his back against the wall.
"Come on!" I said before I grabbed his tail in my mouth and pulled him around the corner and towards Twilight.
Once I was back by her side, Discord grabbed his tail with his talon hand and pulled it out my mouth while giving me an annoyed look. "I can walk, you know!" he said.
He then walked passed us and Me and Twilight just looked at each other before we followed him.
Discord then looked up to see Princess Celestia looking down at the square from a balcony attached to the castle. Discord then gulped hard and just stood there.
Me and Twilight walked up beside him and I gave him a warm smile. "Hey, it'll be alight. Remember what we told you and you'll be fine."
Discord then looked down at me and smiled warmly back. "Ok Matt…thanks."
I raised my hoof. "Don't mention it! Now go up there and enjoy yourself." I said before I gave him a playful push forward.
He then gulped again before he snapped his fingers and disappeared in a flash of light. I then noticed a flash of light up on the balcony that Celestia was on and I looked up to it to see Discord standing next to Celestia.
Once we were sure Discord was settled, Me and Twilight walked up to the barrier and I laid a blanket on the ground before we laid down on top of it and waited for the fire to start.
While we were getting comfy, Luna came around the corner of a building to the square and gasped at the sight of Me and Twilight by the barrier before she shot back around the corner; hoping we didn't see her.
"What's Matthew doing here? I can't go out there. What if he sees me and I make a fool of myself? Oh enough of this Luna! He's with Twilight Sparkle and you shouldn't even feel this way about him." Luna said to herself.
Luna then poked her head back around the corner to see me smiling while lying next to Twilight. Luna then blushed slightly. "Well…no reason I can't say hello." She said to herself with a small smile.
Luna then looked at her reflection in the window of the building and stroked her rippling sparkly mane with her hoof until she was satisfied with her appearance. Once she was, she came back around the corner and walked towards us.
We didn't notice her beside until she mad a fake cough sound, we then turned our heads to her and we both smiled at the sight of her. "Princess Luna, are you here to see the fire too?" Twilight asked.
"Oh….yes, I've come to see the fire…it's just finding a spot to sit that's the trouble. Hahaha." Luna laughed nervously.
"Well you can sit with us, can't she Twi?" I suggested as I turned my head to Twilight. She then nodded. "Sure, we have room on the blanket." She said with a smile.
Luna then smiled warmly. "You….don't mind?"
I shook my head. "Cause not, get yourself comfy!" I said before as we both scooted up along the blanket to make room for Luna to lye down on it.
Luna gave us a sweet smile as she laid down next to me. We then look forward at the pile of wood and continued to wait. Luna then looked at me from the corner of her eye and moved slightly closer to me but me and Twilight didn't notice.
A few minutes later, I saw a royal guard climb over the barrier with a lit touch in his mouth, he walked over to the pile of, threw the touch onto it and it quickly burst into flames before the royal guard walked back over to the barrier.
We all watched in awe at the sight of the grand fire that burned in front of us. Twilight then rested her head on my shoulder, I looked at her and smiled warmly before I wrapped my wing around her to pull her closer to me and keep her worm.
Unknown to me, Luna saw this and her ears lowered in sadness before she looked down at the ground. Me and Twilight then heard a small whimper and looked at Luna and noticed the sad look on her face.
"Princess, are you ok?" Twilight asked in a concerned voice. "Yeah, you look a little down." I added.
Luna then raised her head back up to face us with her ears still low. "Oh….it's nothing….really." she said with a small forced smile before she looked back at the fire.
Me and Twilight then looked at each other before we also looked back at the fire.
Meanwhile up on the balcony, Discord was trying to avoid eye contact with Celestia until he could think of something to say. He then thought of something and slowly turned his head to Celestia. "Errr…Celestia." He said nervously.
"Hmm." Celestia hummed as she turned her head to face Discord with a smile on her face.
He fiddled with his fingers as he became more nervous. "Errr…tell me…Celestia! Do you like…practical jokes?" he asked before he smiled sheepishly.
"Practical jokes? Is that all I could come up with? She isn't interested in those type of things." Discord thought.
Celestia then tapped her chin as she thought about it. "Hmm. Well, I do like to pull some. In fact, I have a vile of disappearing ink in my room. I accidently used it to wright a letter once." She said with a smile before she let out a small laugh.
Discord then became less nervous and gave her a small smile. "Really?" he chuckled slightly.
Celestia nodded. "Yes, I really felt sheepish after that." She and Discord found this humorous and they both laughed.
Once they both calmed down, they looked back down at the fire and there was a moment silence between them until Discord broke it. "Well…this is a nice place to have a date."
Celestia kept her sight on the fire. "I guess, I haven't really been on a date for a while."
Discord turned his attention to her with a raised eye brow. "Really, when was your last one?" he asked curiously.
Celestia turned her head to face him before looking down at the ground. "Oh….it was centuries ago."
Discord then gave her a surprised look. "Centuries? But how could you have not had a date for that long? You're a beautiful and charming mare that any stallion would be lucky to date."
Celestia then gave him a surprised look before Discord's eyes widened once he realized what he just said. "I mean, in a perfectible type of way. Don't get me wrong! You are beautiful and charming, no doubt about it….I mean…errr." Discord then started to sweat as he blushed from embarrassment.
Celestia couldn't help but giggle as she tried to hide her blushing face. "Well, believe it or not! It's true. And the last stallion I liked didn't really go well." She then frowned slightly as she looked down at the floor.
Discord noticed her frown and gave her a concerned look. "Why? What happened?" he asked.
Celestia didn't take her eyes off the floor. "I…I don't know if I should talk about it."
Discord the placed his lion hand under her chin and gently raised her head so he could look in her eyes. Once he did, he gave her a sweet smile. "Trust me! It's better if you get things off your chest. If you get upset about it! I'll be here to comfort you."
Once she heard that, she gave him a warm smile before she took a deep breath and began to talk about her past. "It was a long, long time ago, even back before me and Luna were princesses. We were teenagers in an academy taught by Star Swell the Bearded and I was second best in the class while Luna was third best. And the first best in the class…was the alicorn that I had a large crush on…his name was Grimerd. He was handsome, strong and was almost more powerful than Star Swell. But one day, we discovered why he was so good at magic. It turned out, he was using forbidden magic to make himself stronger and he was expelled from the academy, he then blamed us for it. 3 months later, Grimerd attacked the academy with his heart filled with anger and hatred. He battled against Star Sweet and almost killed him, but the royal guard overpowered Grimerd and took him to the princess who ruled back then. The princess banished Grimerd from Canterlot and was never to return."
When Celestia stopped there, Discord gave her a concerned look. "That must have been very hard for you." he said quietly.
Celestia then frowned. "If only that was all that happened to him."
Discord raised an eye brow. "Why? What else happened to him?"
Celestia then continued her story. "Many years after Grimerd was banished, after me and Luna were crowned the new princesses, Grimerd returned to Canterlot with more powers than ever. It turned out, he stole back his book on forbidden magic before he was banished and spent his years of banishment learning new and more deadly spells. Me and Luna knew that if we fought him in Canterlot, many ponies would get hurt or killed. So we teleported ourselves and Grimerd to the mountains far, far away from Canterlot, the land was dark and filled with lava pits. It was a long and deadly battle, but me and Luna combined our magic and used them to defeat Grimerd. After we shot a number of beams of magic at him, he lost his strength and fell down into one of the lava pits below us; he was incinerated beneath the waves of lava." Celestia then finish.
Discord had a surprised look on his face. "I've always regretted that day, Discord. I've never talked about it since." Celestia said quietly with her head hanging, a tear then ran down her cheek.
Discord noticed this and placed his talon hand on Celestia's shoulder. "Hey…its ok…that was a long time ago…you can't blame yourself for what happened to him!" he said sweetly.
Celestia then wiped the tear from her cheek. "I..I know, but I'm not sure if I did the right thing. I mean, there may have been a way to bring him back to the light. I sometimes feel like some of my subjects feel badly of me for not trying hard enough." She said still looking at the ground.
"Celestia, listen!...I don't think any less of you for what happened. And from what you just told me, it sounded like there was no way to bring him back to the light. If you want my opinion? I think you and Luna saved all of Equestria from a terrible fate…and I will never ever think badly of you for anything." Discord said trying to make her feel better.
Celestia then raised her head up to look into Discord's eyes and smiled weakly before she wrapped her hooves around the back of his neck and pulled him into a warm hug. "Thank you, Discord." She whispered as she nuzzled her head in his neck.
Discord looked down at Celestia and smiled warmly before hugging back. "Anytime, Celestia." He said sweetly.
An hour and a half later, the fire died down and everypony was starting to get up and leave the square to go home. I looked at Twilight to see she had fallen asleep on my shoulder; I smiled sweetly at her before I stated nudging her with my hoof. "Twilight!...Twi!...wake up!" I said quietly as I did.
She then opened her eyes slightly and leaned up off my shoulder before she let out a large yawn. She then looked at me with her eyes half shut. "Matt?...is the bonfire over?" she asked quietly.
I nodded. "Yeah, we should get home and get some sleep!" I whispered to her.
She then rubbed one of her eyes with her hoof. "Yeah, you're right, we should go and…(yawn)…get some…sleep." she said as she started to doze off again.
I smiled sweetly at her. "Do you want me to carry you?" I asked quietly, she nodded.
She then climbed onto my back and wrapped the arms around my neck before she rested her head on the back of my neck and closed her eyes.
I then got up with Twilight on my back and Luna smiled warmly at me. "She's very lucky to have a coltfriend like you, Matthew." She whispered.
I smiled back. "And I'm lucky to have a girlfriend like her." I whispered. Hearing this made Luna's ears lower slightly but she tried to keep her small smile up.
"Well, goodnight Luna. It's been nice seeing you again, you should visit sometime!" I said as I walked passed her.
Once I was passed her, Luna quickly got up off the blanket and tried to think of a way to call me back to her. She then came up with something. "Errr….Matthew." she called.
I turned my head around to face her with a curious look on my face. "Errr…listen! The train station might be closed at this time so….would you like me to get you and Twilight Sparkle home? You know! As a friendly offer." Luna asked with a nervous smile.
I then smiled back. "Would you? That would be helpful."
Luna then shot up beside me. "EXCELENT….I mean, very well." Luna said with a sheepish smile before her horn started to glow dark blue and all three of us disappeared in a flash of light.
Ponyville library
In a flash of light, we reappeared in the main room of the library. I turned my head to look at Twilight on my back to see she was still asleep and I smiled at her again.
I then looked at Luna. "Thanks Luna, you're a life saver." I said with a warm smile.
Luna smiled before she blushed slightly and kicked the floor with one of her front hooves. I didn't notice her blushing face as I walked towards the stairs.
"Goodnight Luna." I said as I started to walk up the stairs with Twilight still on my back. Luna smiled warmly as she watched me go up. "Goodnight Matthew."
Luna's horn then glowed again and she disappeared in a flash of light.
Once I reached the top of the stairs, I walked over to Twilight's side of the bed and aligned myself with it.
I gently leaned my body to the bed before Twilight slowly rolled off my back and onto the bed. Once she was on, I pulled the covers over her and walked around to my side of the bed.
I climbed into the bed before I pulled the covers over. I then nudged closer to Twilight and planted a small kiss on her cheek. "Goodnight Twi, I love you." I whispered trying not to wake her up.
I then rested my head on the pillow and placed my arm on Twilight's hip before I let myself drift off into a peaceful sleep.
Meanwhile: Outside Celestia's bedroom
Discord and Celestia walked down the hallway towards Celestia's bedroom. Once they reached the door, Celestia turned her head to face Discord. "Thank you for that lovely evening, Discord."
Discord the raised his talon hand. "Please!...the honour is all mine. If you'd like to do it again sometime? I'm free for….well…just about every day, really."
Celestia giggled. "I'd love to do this again, say….next Tuesday?"
Discord gave her a warm smile. "I'd like that. Well…goodnight Celestia." He said before he walked back up the hallway.
As he was walking, he was caught by surprise by Celestia pulling him back by the shoulder and planting a small kiss on his cheek. "Goodnight Discord" she said sweetly before she removed her hoof from his shoulder and walked into her room. She then closed the door behind her; leaving Discord stunned in the hallway.
He stood there with a surprised look before a large smile slowly grew on his face. He then placed his talon hand on the cheek she kissed and started walking towards his room with a dazed look on his face. "Best…night…ever." He thought in a joyful tone.
Hope you enjoyed this chapter.
Note: If anyone's interested in my story being read on YouTube, please email TrueSoul116 and tell him about my story and where to find it, his email address is TS116FR(At sign)yahoo .com (space not necessary) and you can send him a message from your Hotmail or Yahoo account. Please ask other readers to do the same to get a higher number of requests. The higher the number, the more chance he'll read it and put it on YouTube.
If you do? Please send me a PM saying that you sent him your request so I will know that you've done it. If you have any trouble sending your request? Please tell me and I will help. Thank you."
The song used in the chapter is called a guy like you from the Disney movie The hunchback of Notre dome.
I would like to thank Mike101 for being the first to recommend my story to be read on YouTube.
Please remember to review.
Next chapter will be up soon and I hope you're looking forward to it because Thorn is coming back for revenge.
23. Thorn strikes back part 1
Chapter 23: Thorn strikes back (part 1)
Luna's castle
Two days after the bonfire party. It was a cool night, Luna's full moon was high up in the black starry sky and her royal guards were patrolling around outside the castle. Two guards were standing outside the large double gate in front of the castle grounds with sharp looks in their eyes.
Suddenly, they noticed a large cloaked hooded pony figure walking towards them with his head facing the ground. When the hooded figure reached them, one of the guards stood on front of him. "You're not allowed in the castle grounds, sire. Please turn around and go back." The guard said in a calm tone.
The hooded figure didn't say anything before walked around the guard and continued to walk towards the gate. Both guards then leaped in front of him and stuck their wings out to block the hooded figures path. "Hey, didn't you hear me? You're not allowed inside." The guard said aggressively.
The hooded figure continued to be silent as he slowly raised his head up revealing a pair of glowing blood red eyes.
Once they saw those eyes, the two guards had a slight look of fear grow on their faces before the hooded figures horn glowed white. A white glow then appeared around the two guards and they slowly lifted off the ground until they were both hovering in mid-air.
Before they knew it, they were both pushed back with great force through the gate; breaking it wide open. After they crashed to the ground and became unconscious, the hooded figure walked through the gate way and headed towards the front double doors of the castle.
However, the sound of the crash caught the attention of the other guards patrolling above the walls of the castle; including the captain of the guards. He looked down at the hooded. "INTRUDER, get the crossbows ready!" the captain yelled.
As the hooded figure continued to walk further up the castle grounds, he stopped between two large stone towers. On top of each tower was a giant metal crossbow pointing down at the hooded figure with a guard standing next to it; waiting to pull a lever to fire it.
"I warn you only once, turn back now! Or we'll be forced to fire." The captain yelled down to the hooded figure, the figure remained silent. The captain glared down at him. "Very well, FIRE THE CROSSBOWS!"
With that, the guard on each tower pull back on the lever and the two crossbows each fired a giant metal arrow down at the hooded figure. Just as the arrows were about to hit him, his horn glowed white and the arrows stopped and hovered in mid-air.
The guards eyes widened in shock at the sight of this. At that moment, the arrows then slowly rotated around until they each faced the towers they came from. The arrows then shot back up to the crossbows and crash into the top of each tower; destroying them and the crossbows.
The hooded figure then continued to walk towards the front doors of the castle. While on the walls of the castle, one of the guards walked up beside the captain. "Sire, he's still coming."
The captain turned his head to face the guard. "He won't get far, ready the archers!" he commanded. The guard nodded before he turned around and galloped away to do as he was told.
As the hooded figure got closer to the front door, a large number of guards with crossbows in their hooves all appeared from on top of a wall above the front doors. The archer guard each pointed their crossbows down at the hooded figure and prepared to fire.
The captain of the guards then came up beside the long row of archer guards and glared down at the hooded figure. "FIRE!" he yelled before the archer guards fired their crossbows at the hooded figure.
As the large number of small arrows shot down toward the hooded figure, his horn glowed again and the arrows stopped in mid-air. The arrows slowly rotated around until they were facing up at the archer guards.
The captain's eyes shot wide open once he realized what was about to happen. "GET DOWN!" he yelled before he ducked down. The arrows the shot back up to the archer guards and while a few of them were lucky enough to dodge them, a few guards got badly hit.
Once the arrows were all gone, the captain stood back up and looked in horror at some of his injured guards. One of the guards that didn't get hit then walked up to the captain. "Sire, what do we do now?" he asked.
The captain placed his hoof on the guards shoulder. "Go to the lobby and cut this guy off with the other guards! I'll warn the princess." He said with a serious look. The guard then nodded in agreement before he and the captain galloped inside the castle.
Once the hooded figure finally reached the front doors, he used his magic to push them open to see a large number of guards standing all around the lobby with sharp glares in their eyes.
"Keep him away from the throne room! Don't let him near the Princess!" the captain yelled from the top of the large stairs before he galloped into the throne room and slammed the door behind him.
As the guards slowly hovered towards the hooded figure with spears in their hooves, the hooded figure chuckled darkly before he spread out his black feathered wings with his horn glowing white. The guards then charged at the figure with their spears.
Meanwhile in the throne room, Luna was sitting on her throne when she saw the captain galloping towards her. Luna then got off her throne and approached the captain. Once they were close enough to each other, the captain bowed. "Captain Midnight, what's happening out there?" Luna asked with a serious look on her face.
Captain Midnight got up from his bow and gave Luna a concerned look. "Your highness, there's an intruder in the lobby. We have to evacuate the castle, now."
Luna looked down at the floor and tapped her chin with her hoof before she looked back up at the captain. "Understood, get the guards ready to move out before-" Luna was then cut off by the sound of her guards screaming in terror and pain behind the throne room doors.
Luna and Captain Midnight continued to listen to the horrible screaming; only imagining what kind of horror could be happening in the lobby. Suddenly, the screaming stopped and everything was silent.
"Get behind me, Princess!" Captain Midnight ordered before Luna took a few steps back behind him.
There was a moment silence until the throne room doors swung open and the hooded figure walked into throne room before the doors slammed shut behind him. Once the hooded figure was close enough in, he threw his head back and his hood came off; revealing himself to be Thorn with a devilish smile on his face.
"Thorn!" Luna growled with a glare in her eyes.
Thorn began to approach Luna and Captain Midnight. "Princess Luna!...so nice to see you again, it's been too long." He said with an evil grin before his horn glowed white and his hooded cloak burst into black flames and disappeared from his body.
"Not long enough, Thorn." Luna stated while continuing to glare at him.
"Yes, I could tell by the warm welcome that you gave me on my way in. by the way…you need new guards." Thorn said before he chuckled darkly.
Luna growled. "You sick, twisted-minded monster." She said with an angered look.
"Now, is that anyway for a girl your age to talk? I thought the Princess Sisters were all about kindness and giving help to those who need it." Thorn said as he got closer to Luna.
"We only give it to those who deserve it." Luna stated proudly.
Thorn's smile then turned into an angered growl. "Then I'll just have to take what I deserve." With that, his horn glowed violently white and Luna took a few steps back with a look of shock on her face.
At that moment, Captain Midnight stepped in front of Luna. "You will not lay a hoof on her." He said while glaring up at Thorn.
"You've got some guts…let's see what they look like!" Thorn said darkly with an evil smile. Captain Midnight then leaped forward at him but Thorn's horn then glowed white and Midnight stopped in mid-air.
Thorn grinned before he shot his head left and Midnight was thrown into the left wall with a large crash. With Midnight still in his magic lock, Thorn shot his head right and Midnight was pulled off the wall and thrown into the right wall with a larger crash.
Thorn then tilted his head up and Midnight shot up into the ceiling; causing the ceiling to crack. Thorn gave one last grin before his horn stopped glowing and the white glow around Midnight disappeared before he fell to the floor with a hard thud.
While Midnight was lying on the floor badly injured, Thorn looked up at the cracked ceiling before he shot a large bolt of black lightning at the centre of the cracks and they grew bigger as the ceiling started to crumble. As Midnight tried to stand back up, a large amount of rubble fell down from the ceiling and crashed on top of Midnight.
The second it did, Midnight's helmet slid across the floor and stopped in front of Thorn's front hooves. Thorn looked down at the helmet and chuckled evilly as he crushed it with his hoof before he walked around the pile of rubble.
Luna had a shocked and frightened look as Thorn slowly approached her. "This has been a most disappointing night, Luna. I was expecting more of a challenge…but all you had to throw at me was your pathetic excuse for royal guards that I easily crushed like insects. And once I'm through with you…I'll do the same to Matthew for what he did to me." Thorn said with hatred burning in his eyes.
Luna growled as anger burned in her eyes. "I won't let you hurt him." She said before pointed her horn at Thorn and shot a beam of dark blue magic at him. The beam hit his armoured chest and he stumbled back a few steps.
"Hahaha, so you do have some fight in you. Good, maybe tonight will be interesting after all." Thorn said as he slowly walked towards Luna.
Luna had a shocked look on her face. "How…how are you so strong? Most ponies are usually knocked out cold by my powers."
Thorn laughed. "Hahaha, your castle is too dark, Princess. Darkness fuels my powers and strength. Right now…I'm the most powerful pony here." he said as he continued to walk towards her.
As Luna backed away from him, she shot another dark blue beam of magic at him but he dodged it and shot a bolt of black lightning at Luna.
Luna tried to stop the blot by shooting another beam of magic at it but the bolt was too strong and pushed through her beam before it hit Luna; sending her crashing into her throne and knocking her unconscious.
Thorn then walked up to Luna's unconscious body and smiled evilly to see that he gave her a black eye. "You may be week Luna, but you're powers over the night are strong. Which is exactly why I want them." he said darkly as he slightly stroked Luna's main.
Thorn's horn then glowed white and Luna was lifted off the throne and placed on his back. Meanwhile, Midnight was trying to crawl out from under the pile rubble.
When Midnight was half way out, he looked at the throne to see Thorn facing the other way with Luna unconscious on his back. "Soon, your powers will be mine…and I'll make sure your precious sister watches when I drain your powers from you." Thorn said darkly before he disappeared with Luna in a bolt of black flames.
Midnight couldn't keep his head up anymore and let it hit the ground as he became unconscious.
That morning: Ponyville library
I groaned as I began to wake up and slowly opened my eyes to see I was facing off the bed, I then rolled over in the bed to face the other way to see Twilight facing me with her eyes closed. I guessed she was still asleep.
I smiled warmly at her before I carefully got out of the bed; trying not to wake her. Once I was out of bed, I groaned as I stretched my arms up in the air until I felt more loose. I then walked over to the window and pulled open the curtains.
To my surprise, it was still dark out and the moon was still high up in the sky. I then got confused and looked at the clock to see it was nearly one 'o'clock in the afternoon, which made me even more confused.
At that moment, I heard a small groaning noise behind me and I turned around to see Twilight lean up on the bed before she let out a large yawn. I then walked up to her and she smiled once she saw me. "Good morning." She said weakly as she rubbed one of her eyes with her hoof.
"Morin' Twi." I said sweetly before I planted a small kiss on her lips. Once Twilight was fully awake, she looked around the room to see that nopony else was up. "Is everypony still asleep?" she asked with a smile.
I nodded. "Yeah. By the way, is it usually dark at this time of day?" I asked.
Twilight raised her eye brow at me. "Huh? What do you mean?" she asked curiously.
I pointed to the window. "Well look! It's nearly the afternoon and its pitch black out there." I said before Twilight got out of the bed and walked towards the window. Once she reached it, she looked out and saw the night sky and the full moon above her.
"That's not right; the sun should have been up ages ago." Twilight stated with a confused look on her face.
I then walked up beside her. "Isn't Luna the one who lowers the moon at this time so Celestia can raise the sun?" I asked.
Twilight nodded while continuing to look out the window. "Yeah, this doesn't make any scenes. Luna's never been late lowering the moon before."
"Maybe she's being distracted. You know! With other royal things." I said trying to think of a reason why Luna would be late.
Twilight turned her head to face me. "I don't think so, raising and lowering the moon is Luna's top duty as Princess of the night. Celestia wouldn't allow her to be distracted from that."
As we continued to wonder why Luna was so late to lower the moon, we both suddenly heard a loud knocking on the front door of the library down the stairs. We then went down the stairs and walked up to the front door before we opened it; revealing the rest of the main 6 behind it.
"Guys? What are you all doing here?" I asked curiously.
"Twilight, Matthew, have you both by any chance noticed something rather…strange…about today?" Rarity asked.
"Like the fact that it's still night time?" Rainbow Dash added as she hovered above Rarity.
Twilight stepped forward. "Yeah, we have noticed it. We think that Luna may have forgot or something."
"Wait! Wait! Wait! I thought we were coming over here for a slumber party." Pinkie Pie said with a raised eye brow.
Applejack turned her head to face her. "No sugar cube, we're here about the extra night time thing."
"So I brought these pillows for nothing?" Pinkie Pie yelled as she pulled a bunch of multi coloured pillows out of nowhere and hit Fluttershy in the face with one; causing a small cloud of feathers and a dazed look on Fluttershy's face.
We all stared at Pinkie Pie with awkward looks for a second before we went back to the main subject. "Anyway, we don't know why this is happening." I said.
"What if something's wrong? What if something happened to Luna?" Rarity said with a concerned look.
"Oh, I hope she's alright." Fluttershy said in a worried tone.
"Maybe we should ask Princess Celestia? She might know somethin' about this." Applejack said before we all nodded in agreement.
"I think she already knows." A voice said from behind me. Me and Twilight turned our heads around to see Spike with a scroll in his hand.
"What's that letter say?" Twilight asked before Spike unravelled the scroll and started to read it.
"Dear Twilight and Matthew.
I'm sure you've already noticed that the sky is still dark and the moon is still high in the sky, I do not know why this is happening. I've tried to wright to Luna but she won't wright back. I am starting to worry, that's why I want you two and your friends to go to Luna's castle and investigate. Proceed with caution! There may be something wrong there.
P.S. Remember Matthew! If something happens, summon your Element to defend yourself and your friends." Spike then finished reading.
Once he finished, I turned my head to face Twilight. "Luna's castle? Does anypony even know where that is?" I asked with a raised eye brow.
"I've never been there, but Celestia once told where it was. She said it was in dark lands on the other side of the mountains." Twilight told me.
Applejack stepped forward. "Well, how the hay are we supposed to get there?" she asked.
Twilight shrugged. I then rubbed my chin with my hoof as I tried to think of a way to get there. "Well, Twilight probably can't teleport us that fart. We can't take the train, they probably won't run while it dark."
I then thought of something. "Wait a minute! Don't we have a hot-air balloon?" I asked as I looked at Twilight. She nodded. "Yeah, it's in the fields outside Ponyville."
"Alright, here's the plan. We're gonna use the hot-air balloon to get to Luna's castle and find out why she's not lowering the moon." I said in a confident tone.
Rainbow Dash then flew up in front of me. "Whow wait! So you're tell me that we're gonna take the hot-air balloon to a place we've never even been to before, where who-knows-what could be waiting for us there? That's your plan?" she asked with a raised eye brow.
"….Yep." I answered while nodding my head slightly.
Rainbow Dash was silent for a moment before a she smirked. "Then what are we doing standing around here? Let's do this!" she said before she turned around and shot off in the air towards the felids.
I then looked down at Spike. "Spike, you stay here and watch the library! If Jeff and Peewee wake up before we get back, tell them where we've gone. Ok?"
He smiled and stuck his thumb up. "Will do."
I then turned my attention back to Twilight and the others. "Alright, let's go!" I said before we all galloped into to streets and headed towards the felids. Spike then walked back into the library and shut the door behind him.
Moments later: Felids outside Ponyville
After a while of galloping through the streets, we finally reached the open fields. I looked ahead to see Rainbow Dash standing next to the already inflated hot-air balloon which was held to the ground by a short rope.
Once we reached the balloon, I tuned my head to face everypony. "Everypony ready?" I asked before Twilight and the others nodded.
"Then let's go!" I said in a confident voice before I jumped into the balloon basket with everypony jumping in after me. Once we were all settled in the basket, Applejack went up to the edge of the basket before she untied the rope holding the balloon down and the balloon lifted off the ground. As we started to go, I had a confident smile on my face.
After a while, my smile faded away once I realized how slow we were going. I look down from the basket to see we were still close to the ground and I narrowed my eyes. "Well….this is embarrassing." I said out loud.
Everypony noticed the situation and looked at each other awkwardly. Rainbow Dash rolled her eyes. "I'm on it." She said before she grabbed a rope that was in the basket with us and tied one end of the rope to the edge of the basket and the other end around her waist.
She then flew out of the basket and hovered in front of the balloon. I stuck my hoof out. "Ok Rainbow, just don't go too fa-WHOW." I yelled as Rainbow Dash shot off with great speed; pulling the balloon through the air with all of us inside it.
Later that evening: Luna's castle
After a long flight, Rainbow Dash was still pulling the balloon along through the sky as we got closer to the castle. Once we reached it, Rainbow Dash dove down to the front gate; pulling the balloon down with her before she landed in front of the gate with the balloon landing behind her.
Rainbow Dash turned her head around to face us. "How you guy's doing back there?" she asked. We all pulled ourselves up from inside the basket with faces that looked like we were going to be sick. "We have to…go back…I think I…dropped a lung back there." I said between breaths. Rainbow Dash then gave us a sheepish smile.
Once we all calmed down and felt better, we got out of the basket and walked up to the gate. Our mouths hung open at the sight of the wide open gate. "Looks like something broke right through it, the entire thing's wrecked." Twilight said as she looked at one of the bent gate doors.
"Or somepony really wanted to get in." I said with a suspicious look. After a moment, we all walked into the castle grounds and headed towards the front double doors of the castle.
As we did, we all looked at the destruction around the castle grounds. We noticed the two destroyed guard towers and looked up at both of them; wondering what could do something like this. "This is getting scary." Fluttershy said quietly in a frightened voice.
Rarity gave her a concerned look. "It's alright dear, we'll be alright." She said sweetly trying to calm her down.
We then reached the front doors but they were shut. I walked up to them before I opened them slightly and looked through the small gap. I then gasped in horror at the sight of the large number of Luna's dead guards lying all around the lobby.
I quickly shut the doors before I tuned my head to face Fluttershy. "Fluttershy, cover your eyes!" I said.
Fluttershy gave me a concerned look. "Why? What's in there?" she asked silently.
"Just do it and don't open them 'till I tell you to, ok?" I said with a serious voice. Fluttershy then covered her eyes with one of her wings.
Twilight gave me a curious look. "Matt, what's behind the door?" she asked. I remained silent as I turned my head back to the door before I took a deep breath and pushed the doors wide open.
Everypony excepted for Fluttershy screamed in horror once they saw the lobby filled with dead guards. Fluttershy tried to move her wing away from her eyes but Rarity placed her hoof on it to keep it over her eyes.
We then slowly walked inside and head towards the stairs while looking around at the carnage that surrounded us. Rarity was helping Fluttershy along because she couldn't see with her wing over her eyes.
As we walked closer to the stairs, I looked around at all the dead guards. It was horrible, there were bodies on the floor and up along the stairs. There were even small puddles of blood under some of the bodies. I almost didn't want to know what happened here.
Once we reached the stairs, we walked up them and avoided touching the bodies as we did. When we finally reached the top, I pushed open the throne room doors revealing the big empty throne room with a large pile of rubble in the middle of it.
"She's not here." Rainbow Dash said out loud. We then walked into the throne room before I shut the doors behind me. I then turned my head to Fluttershy. "Ok Fluttershy, you can look now!"
Fluttershy then removed her wing from her eyes. "Thanks Matt, what was it that you didn't want me to see?" she asked in a calm voice.
"Errr…best not to know just yet." I answered. Fluttershy nodded to tell me she understood.
I then noticed the pile of rubble and walked up to it. Twilight and the others walked up beside me. "What could have done this?" I asked myself."
"Maybe it was a dragon, aren't they able to do something like this?" Pinkie Pie asked.
I turned my head to face her and shook my head. "I don't think this was a dragon's work, there's only a broken gate, wrecked towers, dead guards and this one pile of rubble. A dragon would have just destroyed the whole castle. No, what ever did this had an intention." I answered.
"The question is, what was that intention?" Twilight said.
I didn't respond before I started to walk around the pile of rubble to see Luna's largely cracked throne. I gave it a suspicious look before I began to walk towards it.
As I walked past the rubble, I suddenly felt something grab hold of my hind-legs. I turned my head around and yelled in fright at the sight of one of the guards under the pile of rubble with his front hooves wrapped around my leg. "WHOW, GET OFF!" I yelled as I pulled my leg out of his grasp. "Help…me!" he said weakly.
I quickly nodded before I looked over the pile of rubble to see Twilight. "Twilight, there's somepony still alive over here. Help me get him out!" I yelled over to her.
Twilight and the rest of the main 6 then galloped around to me and saw the weak guard under the rubble. Twilight lowered herself down to him. "Hold still, I'll get you out." She said in a confident voice.
Twilight then stood back up before her horn glowed and all the pieces of rubble lifted of the guard and flew across the room before they crashed to the floor.
The guard then rolled over onto his back before I sat down next to him and leaned him up in my arms. "Ok….y-you'll be alright, mate. We'll get you to a hospital." I said as I examined his body to see what kind of damage there was.
He shook his head. "N..no…you have t-to find P-Princess Luna…he…he's insane." The guard said weakly.
"Who? What happened here?" Twilight asked while standing beside him.
"I…I'm Midnight Gaze…c-captain of the Princess's royal guards…w-we were attacked…by a-an alicorn….he killed everypony w-who stood up against him. I…I tried to stop him…but…he was too strong…too powerful….I failed…now, she's gone…taken…the Princess…y-you have to save her." Midnight said weakly before he grunted in pain.
"Who took her?" I asked. "He…he said that he was going to drain her powers over the night a-and the moon…with…he sister watching…" Midnight said.
"WHO?" I asked louder. Midnight then placed his hoof on my shoulder and pulled me down to him. He put his mouth to my ear. "Th…Th…Thorn." He answered weakly. My eyes then widened in shock before I pulled my head away from his.
Midnight then quietly gasped a few times before his eyes slowly closed and his hood fell off my shoulder as he died in my arms.
Twilight held her hoof to her mouth with an upset look on her face. I then slowly laid Midnight's body back on the floor and hung my head to take a moment to calm down.
I took a deep breath before I stood back up. "What did he say, sugar cube?" Applejack asked quietly. I raised my head back up and turned to face her.
"He…he said that…it was Thorn, and he took Luna." I answered.
Rainbow Dash then stepped forward. "Wait a minute! Thorn?...you mean, that big black alicorn who hypnotized all of Ponyville and tried to take over Canterlot?...THAT THORN?" She yelled with a shocked look on her face.
I slowly nodded. "Yeah, he's taken Luna to drain her powers and make them his own. That's why he's done this."
"Well, what do we do?" Pinkie Pie asked with a concerned look. "What can we do? We don't even know where he's taken her." Rarity added.
Twilight looked at me. "Did Midnight mention where Thorn might be?"
I thought about it for a second before I remembered something. "He said he was going to drain Luna's powers with her sister watching…but…Celestia is Luna's sister…so that means he's going to…"
My eyes then widened once I realized where Thorn was going. "Oh no….Celestia. He's going to Canterlot."
Twilight and the others eyes widened in shock.
Meanwhile: Canterlot castle
Celestia was in the throne room with Discord, she was pacing left and right with a worried look on her face.
Discord saw this and stepped forward. "Don't worry, Celestia! Luna will be alright. She's a powerful pony." He said trying to calm Celestia down.
Celestia stopped pacing and turned her head to face Discord. "I know Discord, but something like this has never happened before. What if something happened to her?" she said getting more worried.
Discord then walked up to her and placed his talon hand on her shoulder. "If something's wrong, Matthew, Twilight and their friends will tell us and we'll all handle it. Trust me! Luna will be back." He said in a confident tone.
Celestia gave him a small smile. Suddenly, a sound caught both their attention. "Hey, you can't be here. This is a restrict-AHHH." Somepony yelled from outside the throne room doors. Suddenly, two of Celestia's guard burst through the doors and crashed to the floor; knocking them unconscious.
Celestia and Discord then looked towards the door way and were shocked to see Thorn walk in. "Thorn?" they both said in slight shock.
"Princess Celestia, we meet again. You know! We didn't get a proper meeting last time. What with you running back to this castle like the coward you are." Thorn said with a glare as he slowly walked towards them.
Discord stepped forward. "Well, you didn't really give her a perfect reason to stay after you BLASTED ME." he yelled in anger.
Thorn looked at Discord. "Discord…I'm surprised you're still alive. I'd thought my lighting would have been strong enough to finally finish what I intended to during that fire in the main hall of Ponyville and end your pathetic life." He said darkly.
Discord smirked. "Guess I'm not as weak as you thought I was."
"That…or I didn't give you a strong enough dose. Allow me to try it again!" Thorn yelled before he quickly pointed his horn at Discord and shot a bolt of black lightning at him.
Lightning then formed in Discord's palms before he stuck his hands out and shot a bolt of yellow lightning out of each of his hands. Thorn and Discord's bolts then connected and fought each other.
Thorn and Discord had their teeth gritted as they tried to force the bolts to shoot out stronger. Thorn's bolt then slowly pushed Discord's bolt back until it finally reached Discord's hands.
Discord couldn't keep his bolts up any longer and Thorn's bolt shot into him; sending him flying across the room and crashing into the wall. Celestia's eyes widened in shock before she galloped up to Discord's side. "Discord, are you ok?"
Discord slowly opened his eyes and groaned. "C-Celestia…go…save yourself…don't worry about me!" he said weakly.
"I'm not leaving you." Celestia said with a serious look.
Thorn heard this and raised his eye brow before he laughed. "Hahaha, you can't be serious. You actually have feeling for that creature? He's nothing but a fool who's lived a pointless life."
Celestia stepped in front of Discord and glared at Thorn. "He's not a fool; he's a true and loyal friend to me and my subject. And I will defend him." Celestia then flew up into the air before she shot a yellow beam of magic down at Thorn.
Thorn then jumped out the way of the beam and it hit the floor. "I wouldn't do that Princess! That is, if you want your sister to remain healthy?" he said with a devious grin.
Celestia's glare then faded and she lowered down to the floor. Once she touched the floor, she gave him an angered look. "What have you done with her?" Celestia yelled.
"Why don't you ask her yourself?" Thorn said before his horn glowed white and with a large flash of light, Luna appeared lying down in a cage with black spikey bars.
"LUNA." Celestia yelled in shock. Luna opened her eyes and tried to stand up but then fell back to the floor. Thorn noticed that Celestia was distracted and smiled evilly before he shot another bolt of black lightning at her.
"CELESTIA, LOOK OUT!" Discord yelled still lying on the floor next to the wall. But the bolt hit her and sent her flying back before she crashed next to Discord. Discord pulled himself closer to her and placed his talon hand on her cheek.
"Celestia, wake up! Please." Discord begged. Celestia then slowly opened her eyes and groaned.
Thorn then stepped forward. "Then again, you two do make an adorable couple….too bad it won't last." He growled before his glowed white.
Suddenly, black chains burst out the wall and wrapped themselves around different parts of Discord and Celestia's bodies before they pulled them both up high against the wall. Discord and Celestia struggled to get loose but the chins were too strong and tight.
Thorn chuckled as he approached Celestia's throne. Once he reached it, he sat down on it before he breathed in through his nose and exhale through his mouth. "Yes…this place will do nicely. It's the perfect place to suck the power out of your precious sister." Thorn said darkly. Celestia gritted her teeth as she struggled harder to get loose from the chains.
Thorn then looked around the room. "Although, this castle could use a little….REDACERATING." He stated before his horn glowed viciously white.
Suddenly, a large shadow started spreading from behind Thorn. It spread around the throne room until it was completely black, it also spread throughout the entire castle until it was completely black inside and out.
When the shadow faded, the colours of the castle and the throne room were dimmer, the walls were covered in cracks and the plants around the castle and in the gardens were now dead. Dark clouds then formed above the castle and started to thunder.
Thorn had an evil satisfied look on his face. "There, that's better isn't it. Now it's a castle worthy of my taste." Celestia and Discord had horrified looks on their faces and Luna started to open her eyes again.
Thorn then smiled darkly. "All…hale…King Thorn. AH-HAHAHAH." Thorn laughed evilly as black lightning struck from the black clouds swirling above the castle.
To be continued
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
Please remember to review.
Next chapter will be up soon.
24. Thorn strikes back part 2
I had to change some of the lyrics of the song I used in this chapter.
Chapter 24: Thorn strikes back (part 2)
Luna's castle
"Come on guys! We have to get back to Ponyville before something bad happens." I yelled as we all galloped out the throne room and down the stairs. We decided to leave the dead guards where they were because we didn't have time to bury them.
I was surprised by how Fluttershy took little notice of the bodies. As we galloped past them, she just looked around at them with a devastated look and tried not to react too strongly.
We galloped out the lobby and down the castle grounds until we came back to the broken main gate. Once we reached it, we galloped up to the hot-air balloon and I stopped next to the basket. "Come on! Everypony in the basket, quickly." I ordered.
Twilight, Applejack, Rarity, Pinkie Pie and Fluttershy then jumped into the basket before I jumped in with them. Meanwhile, Rainbow Dash tied the rope that was still attached to the basket around the waste.
Once she had the rope tied around her, I gave her a nervous look. "Ok Rainbow, just remember to start of slow before yo-WHOW." I yelled as Rainbow Dash once again shot off into the sky with great speed; pulling the balloon with us in it along with her.
Meanwhile: Canterlot castle
As Discord and Celestia were still chained to the wall, Thorn watched from the throne in amusement at the sight of Luna bucking her hind-legs against the black spikey bars of the cage she was in. she then spun around and shot a small beam of dark blue magic from her horn, but it had no effect on the cage bars.
"There's no use in trying to break out Luna, that cage is enchanted with my own special hex. Something I whipped up just for you." Thorn chuckled. Luna looked up at him and growled.
Celestia glared down at him from the wall. "Thorn. As the ruler of Equestria and the Princess of the sun, I demand you to release me, Discord and Luna from these imprisonments and return my castle to its former state." She demanded.
Thorn looked up at her with a devilish smile. "Oh, no need to worry Celestia! I'll let her go….after I claim what's rightfully mine." He said darkly before he got up off the throne and walked towards the centre of the throne room.
As he did, Luna backed up as far as she could until she hit the back of the cage.
Once Thorn was standing in the middle of the room, His horn glowed white and a large round stone table appeared in flash of light front of him. His horn continued to glow until there was a smaller flash and a large purple crystal floating in a glass case appeared in the middle of the stone table.
Thorn then turned his head to face Luna and a large deceitful grin grew on his face. Luna had a wondering look on her face as she looked at the strange crystal.
"Don't be afraid Luna! This won't hurt a bit." Thorn said before his horn glowed again and the glass case lifted off the crystal.
The crystal then shot a purple beam towards Luna and she screamed in pain once it made contact with her. "More like…A LOT. Hahaha." Thorn laughed evilly as Luna continued to scream in pain while Celestia and Discord watched her suffering in horror.
Meanwhile: fields outside Ponyville
After another long flight, we finally made it back to Ponyville. Rainbow Dash dove down to the ground while pulling the balloon with us in it down with her.
Once she landed with the balloon landing behind her, we all once again pulled ourselves up from inside the basket with a sick looks on our faces. "Well, there goes my other lung." I said before I climbed out of the basket with Twilight and the others climbing out after me.
Once we all calmed down, I walked up to everypony. "Alright, has everypony taken a breather?" I asked. Pinkie Pie then jumped in front of me. "Silly dilly, I don't need a breather. I can already breath real good." She said before she breathed in and out deeply with her mouth wide open.
I gave her an awkward look. "Ok, not what I meant. But that's not the case here."
Rarity stepped forward. "Yes, we must get to Canterlot castle before that ruffian Thorn and warn Princess Celestia."
I nodded to her. "Exactly, we don't have much time so let's get going." I said. Everypony then nodded before we all galloped into Ponyville.
Ponyville streets
We were all galloping as fast as we could through the streets until I noticed something and slowed down until I came to a stop.
Twilight and the others stopped behind me before Twilight walked up beside me. "Matt, is something wrong?" she asked in concerned voice.
I turned my head to face her. "Yeah, does it seem a bit….quiet to you?" I asked. Twilight and the others then looked around Ponyville to see that there was nopony in sight.
Fluttershy then quivered. "It's so quiet and dark, I don't like it. Where is everypony?"
"Yeah, this town's more deserted then a ghost town." Applejack said as she looked around at the lifeless town.
As we kept looking around for any sign of life, we heard a small voice up ahead. "Twilight, Matthew." It yelled.
We all looked ahead to see a small figure with two others running towards us. After a short while, the figure came more into view until we saw that it was Spike with Jeff and Peewee flying above him.
Once they reached us, Spike put his hands on his knees as he panted hard. Jeff and Peewee landed on the ground and collapsed while panting. "Twilight…Matt…you have to…do something…woo." Spike said between breaths as he wiped the sweat of his forehead.
"Spike, Jeff, Peewee, what's going on? Where is everypony?" I asked in a worried tone.
"Hiding." Peewee answered. "Yeah, we've been stuck inside the library since you guys left. We saw your balloon and flew over here as fast as we could." Jeff added as he continued to lie on the ground.
Fluttershy walked up to Jeff and Peewee and picked them up in her hooves before resting them like babies in her arms. "Oh, you poor things. You must be exhausted!" she said sweetly.
As she held them, Jeff looked at Peewee. "I don't know what's happening right now, but I think I like it." Peewee then nodded in agreement.
I rolled my eyes before I looked back down at Spike. "Spike, what's happened that's caused everypony to hide?"
"That." Spike answered as he pointed up towards Canterlot. We all looked up and gasped in shock at the sight of the city shrouded in darkness and black thunder clouds swirling above it.
"What's happening up there?" Twilight asked as she continued to stare up at Canterlot.
"….We're too late, Thorn's already beat us there." I said while looking up at Canterlot in devastation.
Rainbow Dash walked up beside me. "Well, what are we gonna do Matt?"
I thought for a moment. "We need to know what's going on up there." I said. "How? The castle is all the way up there and we're down here." Applejack said as she stepped forward.
I then looked at Jeff still in Fluttershy's arms. "Jeff."
Jeff looked at me. "What?"
"I need you to fly up there and see what's happening in the castle. Then come back and tell us what you've seen. Alright?" I said to him.
Jeff then stood up in Fluttershy's arms and moaned. "More flyin'? This is more flappin' then I've done all weak." He said before he took off into the air.
"Be careful Jeff." I yelled up to him. He turned his head around while he was still flying. "I'm always carful." He yelled down before he crashed into chimney.
I rolled my eyes as he pushed himself of the chimney and looked down at us. "I'm ok." He yelled down with a sheepish smile before he flew around the chimney and headed up to Canterlot.
We all then looked at each other before we started walking feather down the streets with Peewee now on Fluttershy's back.
A short while later: Canterlot castle
Jeff continued to fly towards the castle until he finally reached it. Once he did, he saw the throne room through a glass window and landed on the stone windowsill outside the castle.
He then looked through the glass to see Princess Celestia and Discord chained up against the wall and Thorn standing next to a large stone table with a large purple crystal in the middle of it. He then noticed that the crystal was shooting a beam at Luna who was curled up on the floor. "Dang, what's he doin' to her?" Jeff asked himself.
While Jeff was watching from outside, Luna was making small grunting noises as the crystal was sucked the magic out of her. Thorn stepped close to the cage. "Relax Luna! The crystal is almost full and then your powers will be gone and you'll be weaker than ever. Then I'll take them for my own." He said before he chuckled devilishly.
"You….won't get away with this Thorn….Matthew, Twilight and their friends….will come and….stop you." Luna said weakly.
Thorn then chuckled slightly. "Oh Princess, you really don't get it do you? I'm hoping Matthew will come. Because once he comes through those doors, he'll be dead before he even gets a chance to flinch." He growled.
"No." Luna said under her breath with a frightened look on her face while Jeff had a shocked look. Thorn laughed slightly at her devastation.
After hearing this, Discord tried to pull himself loose. "When I get a hold of you Thorn." He yelled in anger.
Thorn turned around and looked up a Discord with a smirk on his face. "I'm sooo worried. Hahaha."
Suddenly, Thorn's smirk faded once he heard a strange humming noise from behind him. He turned around slowly to see the beam on the crystal had stopped. The crystal hovered in the middle of the table while glowing black.
Thorn walked over to it and marvelled at it. "This is it….this is it….after years of planning….years of failed attempts…it's mine." He said to himself with a large smile on his face.
The crystal then hovered towards Thorn until it shot into his chest and he closed his eyes as he let out a small yell. He then started to glow black; he glowed darker and darker until his body was completely black. The glow then faded away.
Once it did, Thorn opened his eyes and looked down at his chest to see he was wearing a sliver metal necklace with the dark purple crystal in the middle of it.
Thorn then smiled evilly as he looked at his hoof to see it was glowing purple. "Hahaha, yes…YES…its mine. I can feel the power inside me. It feels magnificent. Hahaha."
Luna, Celestia and Discord were wide-eyed in horror and shock knowing that Thorn was more powerful now.
Thorn's horn then glowed and bolts of black electricity shot around everywhere. "It's mine, it's finally mine. The power…of the night. The power…of the moon. The power…of the DARKNESS." Thorn yelled in delight.
"You…monster." Luna said weakly with a sharp glare.
Thorn's evil smile grew. "The power of the Princess of the night…is mine…all mine." He said darkly before he started to sing.
Thorn: "You may not like my new found power
But I think it's totally hot…
And you may hate the way I use it
But am I concerned?...I'm not…
'Cause the power to create is mine
And the power to change…oh joy…
The power to rearrange all life
And the power to destroooooy, hahahaha….
Now I give the orders and you're gonna take'em
Thing's gonna be the way that I make'em
I'll be the one who gets every break
You gotta love it!...Haaaa-ha
You gotta love it!...
Every day's gonna be a vacation
Now I'm the king of gratification
I'll do whatever I want every day
You gotta love it!...Woo-ho
You gotta love it!...
I'll take aim at any target
I'll stake claim to every wealth…
And I think I'll fill the cup of power
And drink it to my health…
Hey, I wanna wish up every pony
Everything anyone can consume
And thousands of life times all in one room
You gotta love it!...Ha-ha yeah
You gotta love it!...Oooooh
You gotta loooove this pooower of mine!"
As Thorn was singing, more bolts of black lightning shot out of his horn like crazy. One shot towards the window and Jeff ducked down as it shot through the glass and over his head.
He then walked along the windowsill until he was behind a wall; he poked his head around the wall and continued to watch Thorn.
Thorn: "I'll take aim at any target
I'll stake claim to every wealth
And I think I'll fill the cup of power
And drink it to my health…
I wanna wish up every pony
Everything anyone can consume
And thousands of life times all in one room
You gotta love it!...yeah
You gotta love it…Oooh
You gotta love…this pooower…of MIIIIINE!
Zow! Rock and roll…hahaha."
Once Thorn finished singing, Jeff had an worried look on his face. "I Gotta tell Matt." He said under his breath before he stepped on one of the bricks on the windowsill. However once he did, the brick broke off and smash on the ground.
Thorn's ear twitched as he heard the smash and spun his head around to see Jeff behind the window. "Errr….hi." Jeff said as he waved before he laughed sheepishly.
Thorn growled. "Well, if it isn't Matthew's little pet…or should I say…SCOUT. Let's see if you can talk without a beak, shall we?" he said before he shot a bolt of black lightning towards Jeff.
"Time to go." Jeff quickly said before turned around and flew off before the bolt smashed through the window and hit Jeff through his tail feathers. "YOW." He yelled as it did.
As Jeff flew back down to Ponyville, Thorn watched him and a devious smile then crawled on his face. "Hmm, this must mean Matthew and his friends know I'm here. Good, then they'll be coming. And when they do….I will make Matthew suffer greatly before I rip the life out of him." Thorn said darkly before he chuckled again.
Luna couldn't help but let her ears lower as she shed a single tear out of devastation with a worried look on her face.
A short while later: Ponyville streets
We were all sitting in the streets waiting for Jeff to come back and tell us watch he saw up there, me and Twilight were pacing back and forth with concerned looks on our faces.
"He's been up there for too long." I said in a worried tone.
Twilight then walked up to me and placed her hoof on my shoulder. "He'll be ok Matt, he always was one for quick getaways when he got in trouble." She said in a confident tone.
I was still worried. "Yeah, but what if somethin' happened to him? What if he-" I was cut off by the sound of flapping behind me.
I turned around to see Jeff falling to towards us while yelling, Rainbow Dash saw this before she leaped forward and caught him on her back. We all galloped up to them.
"Jeff, what wrong? What did you see up there?" Applejack asked with a concerned tone.
Jeff took a few deep breaths before he jumped off Rainbow Dash's back and started to explain. "Ok, it's definitely Thorn up there and he's got-"
He couldn't finish his sentence as I cut in. "Your tail's on fire." I said as I pointed at his tail feathers.
He looked behind him to see smoke coming up from his tail feathers. He yelled fight before he beat his tail with his wings until it stopped smoking.
Rarity then stepped closer to him. "Wait! You saw Thorn? What's he doing?" Rarity asked.
Jeff then turned his attention to her. "He was in the throne room, he has Luna locked in some sort of cage, Celestia and Discord are chained to the wall, there was this weirdo glowing crystal thingy and for some reason there was some singing." He answered.
"Ew, singing? At this hour?" Pinkie Pie said with a raised eye brow.
"Yeah, but it had a catchy tune to it." Jeff added.
"Alright, singing matter aside. What was he doing?" I asked slightly frustrated.
Jeff then looked up at me. "Oh right, its Luna man. He's finally got her powers over the night and now he's more powerful than ever."
Twilight's eyes widened. "Of cause, Thorn's power must come from the darkness. If he has control over the night, that means the night can last as long as he wants it to. As long as it's dark, he'll be fully powered." She said in a slightly shocked tone.
"Great, it's Nightmare Moon all over again." Rainbow Dash stated in an annoyed tone.
"Yeah, except this guy's way worse." Applejack added.
Twilight turned her head to face me. "So, what's the plan?"
I thought for a moment before I came up with something. "Ok here it is. We have to get up there, get Luna her powers back and free Celestia so she can raise the sun. That might be the only way to weaken Thorn." Everypony then nodded in agreement.
Jeff then flew up in front of me. "No dice dude, he knows you're all comin'. He said the second you step through the throne room doors, you're dead."
We all were stunned by this; I looked up at darkness surrounding Canterlot before I started to walk away. "Where are you going?" Twilight asked curiously.
I stopped and turned my head around to face her. "I'm going up there to stop Thorn, go back to the library with the others! You'll be safe there" I answered.
Twilight eyes widened. "Are you crazy? You're not going up there alone!" she protested.
"I'm the one he wants, Twilight. I can't let you get involved in his revenge against me." I said before I continued to walk away from her.
Twilight's horn glowed and she disappeared and reappeared in front of me in a flash of light. "And I'm not letting go up there to get yourself killed." She argued.
"Twilight, move!" I said in a loud voice. "No." She said back louder.
I then flapped my wings and took off into the air above her, but as I did, I felt something grab my tail and pull my back to the ground. I turned around to see Twilight had a magic hold on my tail.
"Matt. If you go up there, you are going to die." Twilight shouted.
"Better me then you and the Princesses." I shouted as I pulled myself out of her magic hold.
Everypony was wide-eyed in shock at what I just said, especially Twilight. "Matt, how could you say something like that? We love you, I love you." Twilight said.
"I know, I love you too. And that's exactly why I have to go there alone. Thorn wants to make me suffer, and he knows that killing you will make me suffer more than anything. He may be insane but he's smart." I said. Twilight just stared at me in silence.
"I can't lose you Twilight; Thorn tried to hurt you last time, if he sees you there he'll try it again. I'll never forgive myself if you got hurt or worse." I said before I hung my head slightly.
Everypony looked at each other in surprise before they continued to watch us. Twilight then walked up to me before she placed her hoof under my chin and raised my head back up.
We looked into each other's eyes before Twilight pressed her lips against mine. After a few seconds, we broke the kiss and she gave me an understanding look. "I can't lose you ether, Matt. You're the only colt I've ever loved."
I then gave her a warm smile before we shared a loving hug. "And you're the only girl I've ever loved." I said quietly as I hugged her.
There was a moment silence before Applejack tapped her chin. "Well…maybe we don't have'ta go through the throne room doors, why don't we'all just go through the window or somethin'?"
Jeff turned his head to face her. "Nah, he saw me watching through the window before I left. He'll probably be expecting somethin' like that now."
"And even if we tried, he'll see us coming a mile away. We'll never even reach the castle without him knowing." Rainbow Dash added as she hovered in the air.
"Oh, we can't go through the castle, we can't go through the window. What else can we do?" Fluttershy asked.
Rarity stepped forward. "I dare say we're in quite the big jamb. No matter what we do, he'll always be one step ahead of us." she said with her ears low.
Me and Twilight then separated and looked at the worried looks on our friends faces. I looked down at the ground as I tried to come up with an idea until I came up with one. "If we can't get to the throne room by going into the castle, why don't we going into the throne room from underneath the castle?"
Everypony then looked at me with confused faces. "What? You mean we should dig our way into the throne room?" Twilight asked with a raised eye brow.
Rarity walked up to me. "But digging is so….filthy." she said with an uncomfortable look.
"I know where you're goin' with this, sugar cube. But tunnel diggin' isn't really our speciality, ya know!" Applejack added.
I then gave her a smirk. "Who said we were the ones who were gonna dig? We need experts on digging tunnels, ones that'll dig a thousand tunnels just to get what they want….and I think I know just the guys." I said before I galloped past between Applejack and Rarity.
"Where're you going?" Twilight asked with a confused look on her face.
I turned my head around to see her. "To get us some help from very unlikely sources." I answered as I continued to gallop down the streets until I was out of sight.
A short time later: Dirt lands near Ponyville
After a short gallop, I finally reached the dirt lands. I walked along the grassless dirt looking around for any sign of life and for what I was looking for.
After looking around a bit, I finally found what I was looking for. A large deep hole in the ground. I walked up to it and looked down it to see nothing but darkness.
I gulped hard. "Right then." I said to myself before I closed my eyes, jumped down the hole and slid down the tunnel.
After a long slide, I finally hit the bottom with a hard thud. "Ah, so much for a soft landing." I groaned before I got up off the ground rubbing my head with my hoof.
After that, I looked around to see a large number of tunnels in front of me. "Hello? Diamond Dogs? Anypony here?" I called out.
I waited for an answer but there was only silence. Suddenly, I heard a noise above me and I felt a small amount of dirt fall on my head. I looked up and a Diamond Dag guard fell down from the dirt ceiling and landed on my back before he pulled a rope reins with a muzzle around my snout.
"Hey, get off!" I yelled as I started bucking around trying to throw the guard off. At that moment, another guard fell down in front of me with a spear in its hands.
The guard pointed the sharp end of his spear in front of my face and I went wide-eyed. "Ok, ok…you win. Listen! I'm looking for three Dogs; one of them is slightly tall, green eyes and wears a small gem around his neck. While the other two are his friends and followers."
The two guards remained silent before the one with the spear pulled the spear away from me, turned around and started walking towards one of the tunnels. I then felt the guard on my back kick me in the side; telling me to start moving, so I gave the guard a sharp glare before I started following the other guard down the tunnel.
After a while of forced walking, we finally arrived in a large room-like part of the tunnel. I looked around and recognized it as the same place where forced Rarity to mine for gems.
I then noticed the three original Diamond Dogs standing with their backs turned in the middle of the room. They heard us coming and turned around. Rover then walked up to the guard with the spear. "Dog, why have you brought this pony here? Don't you remember what happened last time we brought a pony down here?" he said before he shivered with a slightly frightened look on his face.
"We found him in the caves, he says he wants to talk to you." the guard answered. Rover then looked at me and walked up in front of me. The other guard then climbed off me and took the muzzle off my snout.
Rover then leaned down to my face and rubbed his chin. "Hmmm, don't I know you? You look familiar." He asked with a suspicious look.
I then smiled sheepishly. "Errr…yeah, you see…you probably don't remember me, but there was this book store and I was-"
Rover's eyes then widened slightly. "You, you're that crazy green pony that hurt us." he said with a small glare in his eyes.
"AHH, he's come to finish the job." Spot yelled in fear before he hid behind Fido. "Don't let him near us." Fido yelled.
I held my hoof up. "Alright, let's all just calm down for a minute. Yes, I'm the pony that beat you up. No, I'm not here to finish the job."
"Then why are you here?" Rover asked with a raised eye brow.
I looked up at him. "I need you and those other three to help me and my friends dig into Canterlot castle."
Rover was silent for a moment before he, Spot and Fido burst out into laughing. "Hahaha, do you hear that, Dogs? The pony needs our help to break into the pony Princess' castle." Rover said before he laughed again.
Spot stepped forward. "Yes, the pony is looking for some serious trouble if he's wanting to break into her castle."
"Ok, we don't want to break in. we want to sneak in. and right now, the only pony who's in trouble is Celestia." I said.
Fido walked up beside Rover. "How is the pony Princess in trouble?" he asked.
I looked at him. "There's an alicorn called Thorn up in the castle right now and he's keeping her captive. We need your digging skills to save her."
Rover glared down at me. "And what makes you think we're going to help you after what you did to us?"
"Because…if you don't, you won't get your reward." I said with a smirk growing on my face.
They then had a look of curiosity on their faces. "Reward? What kind of reward?" Fido asked curiously.
I smirked at him. "Well, the Princess is rich and I'm very popular with her. If you help, I could throw in a good word for you and she may be generous enough to say….give you as many gems as you can fit in your pockets." I said in a sly voice.
Spot then shot up in front of me with an excited look on his face. "GEMS? Just for digging one tunnel?"
I nodded. "Yep, I heard she has a whole vault filled with gems, diamonds, you name it! It's in there." Spot and Fido then looked at each other's with large smiles on their faces.
Rover then grabbed them by their tails and pulled them back to him. "We already dig for gems. And why would the pony Princess give us her gems anyway? We don't do anything for her." He snarled.
I stepped forward. "Yeah, but I'm sure she would give you something to show her gratitude. I mean, if you do this, you won't just be saving her life; you'll be saving the lives of Discord and her sister Luna." I explained.
Rover, Spot and Fido then had surprised looks on their faces. "Did you say….Discord?" Rover asked curiously.
"Yeah, why? Do you know him?" I asked curiously with a raised eye brow.
"Back where we came from, Discord was one of our idols." Fido answered.
"We worshiped him like a god, but now you say he's in the castle being held captive?" Rover asked.
I then thought up a sly idea. "Yeah, he is…but, you already said you didn't want to help so I think I'll just go and find somepony else to dig for us." I said before I turned around and walked away from the three Diamond dogs.
As I did, I looked back through the corner of my eye and grinned. "3, 2, 1." I counted under my breath before I heard Rover from behind me. "PONY." He yelled.
I then wiped the grin off my face and turned around to face him. "Did you call me?" I asked knowing that he did.
Rover walked up to me. "If we agree to help you, we want something in return." He stated.
"Name it!" I said. Rover then walked closer to me. "If we help, we want those gems you mentioned AND an audience with Discord." Rover stated.
The smirk returned to my face. "I think that can be arranged."
A delighted smile then appeared on Rover's face. "Yes, we finally get to meet the spirit of chaos and disharmony." He said to himself.
I raised my hoof. "Errr…ex-spirit of chaos and disharmony. He's not technically a spirit anymore."
Rover's smiled then turned into a shocked frown "What? How?" Fido asked in a shocked tone.
"He was stripped of his name by that Thorn guy I mentioned before. Now he has no name and only half his magic." I explained.
After hearing this, Rover's shocked face turned into an angered one. "This is unacceptable, nopony out masters lord Discord. Nopony." He yelled in anger.
Spot and Fido then walked up beside him. "Yes, nopony messes with Discord and gets away with it." Fido stated.
"So does this mean we have a deal?" I asked with a hopeful smile.
They all looked at each other and nodded before they looked back at me. "Deal." They all said.
I stuck my hoof out in front of Rover. "Trues?"
Rover then grabbed my hoof and shook it up and down. "Trues." He repeated.
We then let each other go. "Right then, we have to get to the surface and regroup with Twilight and the others." I said. The Diamond Dogs then nodded before we I galloped back into the tunnel with the Diamond Dogs following behind.
After a short while, we came to the tunnel that I fell down through and I flew back up it with the Diamond Dogs climbing behind me. I was surprised by how quick they could climb up a long tunnel.
After which, we finally made it to the surface and I looked at my coat to see I was covered in dirt. I then shook myself and all the dirt came off me like dust. I then turned my head around to the Diamond Dogs. "Come on! We have to hurry." I said. They then nodded before we all headed towards Ponyville.
Ponyville streets
After a short gallop, I looked ahead to see Twilight with Jeff on her back and the others waiting for me in the streets. Once I saw them, I galloped fast towards then.
Twilight then noticed me and she galloped up to me with the others behind her. "Hey guys, miss me?" I asked in a playful tone.
"Matt, where'd you go? Canterlot's getting darker by the minute." Twilight said with a worried look on her face.
"I know, but don't worry! I got us some help." I said before I stepped to the side to reveal the Diamond Dogs standing a few feet behind me.
Everypony then gasped in shock. "Matt, don't you know who those guys are. They're those dog things that kidnapped Rarity one time." Spike said in a shocked tone.
Once they heard that name, the Diamond Dogs turned their heads to see Rarity looking at them in shock. "AHHH, it's the winey pony." Rover yelled in terror.
"Ahh, keep her away! Keep her away!" Fido yelled as he took a few steps back.
"This is just a nightmare, any minute now I'll wake up on my rocks next to my stuffed bear Mr Nuggles." Spot cried with his hands over his eyes.
Rover and Fido then looked down at him with confused looks before looking back at us. "You never said SHE would be here. We're not doing this if she's involved." Rover stated with a small glare.
I stepped closer to them. "Oh come on! Can't you just let it go?" I asked in a frustrated tone.
"No, she's too much trouble to be around." Fido stated.
I then let out an annoyed sigh before I turned my head to Rarity. "Rarity, can you help me here?" she then nodded and walked up to the Diamond Dogs.
Once she did, she was silent for a moment before she pretended to frown. "Awww, why won't you help us? Do you hate us? We really need you're heeeelp. Please, please, pleeeease dig for us. We can't do it without you, PLEEEESE." Rarity wined loudly.
Rover, Spot and Fido had their hands to their ears as Rarity continued wining until Rover couldn't take it anymore. "ENOUGH, alright, alright we'll help you. Just make her stop." He yelled.
I then walked up beside Rarity. "Alright Rarity, you can stop now." I said while facing her. She then stopped wining and Rover, Spot and Fido removed their hands from their ears.
I then took a step forward. "OK, so you're gonna dig under the castle and into the throne room with no funny business, right?" the three dogs then nodded fast.
I nodded back. "Good, then let's all get to the train station to catch a train Canterlot. Thorn might not be expecting that."
Pinkie Pie then walked up beside me. "But, I thought you said that the trains won't run in this amount of darkness." She said with a raised eye brow.
I turned my head to face her. "Well, we're just gonna have to drive it ourselves." I said in a slight confident tone.
Everypony then looked at me in surprise. I then turned around to Twilight and the rest of the main 6. "Alright, let's go!" I said before I started walking down the street with before Twilight, the rest of the main 6, Spike and the Diamond Dogs began to follow behind me.
As we got closer to the train station, Twilight walked up beside me as we continued to walk. "How did you get the Diamond Dogs to agree to help us anyway?" she asked curiously.
I turned my head to face her. "Oh…I just said that they would probably get a big reward if they helped us."
Twilight raised her eye brow. "And what kind of reward would that be?"
"Errr…you know!...gems and…an audience with Discord." I said nervously.
Twilight then had a slight confused look on her face. "I understand the gems part, but why would they want to meet Discord?" she asked.
"Ah, something about him being their idol once and worshiping him like a god. But that's not important, what is important is the fact that their actually helping us. Trust me Twi; this is all going to work out." I said giving her a confident smile.
She then smiled back at me. "OK, Matt. I trust you." she said sweetly.
We then continued to walk until we finally reached the train station to see it was abandoned too. There wasn't anypony in sight.
We saw the Friendship Express on the tracks and we all got into the front cart. While everypony sat down on the seats, Me, Twilight and Applejack walked into the engine room and I looked at the controls while rubbing my chin.
"You do know how to start this thing, right sugar cube?" Applejack asked with a nervous look on her face.
I turned my head to face her. "Errr…yeah…you just…twist this thing…and then press that…and then…pull down on this thing." I said before I pull down on a chain and a loud whistle blew which caused us all to cover our ears in pain.
Once the whistle stopped, Twilight and Applejack looked at me with annoyed faces and I smiled sheepishly. Fido then came into the engine room. "What was that?" he asked annoyed tone.
I turned around to face him. "Sorry, just trying start the train."
Fido then rolled his eyes. "That was the whistle, move aside pony! You have the train intelligents of a gerbil." He said before he pushed me aside and pulled back on a lever. The train then started to move forward up the tracks.
We were now going faster up the mountain towards Canterlot. I looked up at Fido. "How do you know how a train works?" I asked curiously.
Fido looked down at me. "When you've worked in a mine you entire life, you learn a few things about engines."
Me, Twilight and Applejack then looked at each other before we walked into the front cart to regroup with the others and leave Fido to drive the train.
We then sat down on the seats. I couldn't shake the thought of what might happen when we get to Canterlot. Now that Thorn has Luna's magic, who knows what he can do. He could be watching us right now, learning our plan and preparing for it. The whole thought made my face pale with slight fear.
Rover then noticed my worried look. "Errr…pony, your face is white. Why is this?" he asked curiously.
I snapped out of my thought and turned my head to him. "Huh? Oh, I'm just worried about what'll happen when we get there. And my names Matthew by the way."
Spot then turned his head to me and gave me a confused look. "Matthew? That's a weird name."
I narrowed in annoyance my eyes. "So I've heard." I said before I looked back at the floor.
"Rover." I heard a voice say.
I looked back up to look at Rover. "What was that?" I asked him with a raised eye brow.
"That's my name, Rover. And this is Spot and that's Fido." Rover said as he pointed to Spot who was sitting next to him and Fido in the engine room.
I gave him a small smile. "Ok Rover, so are you and your friends getting ready to dig that tunnel? Because you need to dig fast."
Rover nodded. "Yes, we're ready. We'll teach this Thorn guy not to mess with lord Discord."
I then gave him a proud nod before I leaned back on my seat and waited for us to stop in Canterlot.
Canterlot: Train station
After a long train ride, we finally made it to Canterlot. We all galloped out the train and headed towards the castle.
As we did, we noticed something and came to a stop. We looked around the city to see that there was nopony in sight, just like Ponyville. "Wow, I've never see these streets so empty." I said.
Spot looked around at the city. "So this is the pony city? It's so big, so colourful with so much air. How can you ponies stand to live here?" he asked with an inconvertible look.
Applejack turned her head to face him. "You get used to it." She said with her eyes narrow.
We then noticed a pair of high class ponies walk by with suitcases in their mouths. I then walked up to them. "Excuse me! Where are you going?" I asked.
The male high class pony placed his suitcase on the ground before he spoke to me. "Where do you think? We're getting out of here while we're still alive."
The female high class pony then placed her suitcase on the ground before she spoke. "Everypony in Canterlot is leaving, the castle's been overrun. We don't want to be around for whatever's going to happen here."
The male high class pony then turned his head to her. "Come along dear, we have to go NOW." He yelled before he and the female high class pony grabbed their suitcases and galloped away.
I then looked ahead to see the castle gates up the road. "The castles right over there, come on! We're nearly there." I said before I galloped towards the gates with the others following.
Once we reached them, I rammed right through them; swinging them wide open. Twilight and the others followed.
We then looked at the castle to see it in its dark state. It wasn't as colourful as it used to be and there were cracks and dead plants everywhere. The Diamond Dogs look at the castle in fright. "We're…going to go in there? In that creepy dark castle?" Spot asked quivering slightly.
Jeff turned his head to face him. "Trust me, it's worse on the inside. Especially with Thorn in there, the guy so evil he can bite your head off."
The Diamond Dogs then gulped hard. I looked down at Jeff. "Jeff, no helping."
He looked up at me. "Not lying." Was his only response.
I rolled my eyes before walked in up in front of everypony to get their attention. Once I had it, I explain the plan. "Ok, we all know the plan. We dig a tunnel under the castle and come up through the throne room floor. Once we do, I'll use the Element of Bravery to break Luna out then I'll break Celestia and Discord free. Then we'll get Luna her magic so she can lower the moon and Celestia can raise the sun; weakening Thorn and giving us the chance to catch him. Any questions?"
Everypony was silent before Fido raised his hand. "Yes Fido?" I said pointing at him.
"Errr…do I have time to pee?" Fido asked sheepishly.
I face-hooved myself in frustration. "Oh for the love of…fine, go! But be quick." I said in annoyance before he shot of and dove into a nearby bush.
I then turned my head to the others. "Ok while he's doing that. Rover and Spot, start digging!" I ordered.
Rover and Spot then walked up to where I was standing and started digging through the ground. Rainbow Dash then walked up beside me. "But, what about Thorn? He'll be waiting for us in the throne room. What if he sees us coming through the floor?"
My eyes then widened. "CRAP, you're right. We need to get him out of the throne room before we dig our way in!"
Applejack then stepped forward. "How in the hay are we gonna do that?" she asked with a raised eye brow.
"We're gonna need a distraction, something they'll keep him out of the throne room until we free the Princesses and Discord." Twilight said.
"But what kind of distraction?" Fluttershy asked curiously.
At that moment, Fido came back and stood next to the hole Rover and Spot made. Rover and Spot then poked their heads up from inside the hole. "I think I know a way to distract him." Rover said.
I looked down at him curiously. "Really? How?" I asked.
Rover then looked at Spot and Fido with a devious smile. They gave him nervous looks. "Errr…why are you looking at us like that?" Fido asked.
A short time later: Canterlot castle lobby
Thorn was standing in front of a large Green ball of fire hovering in the middle of the lobby.
"Yes brother, I now possess Princess Luna's magic over the night itself. I feel more powerful than ever before. And soon my rule with shroud Equestria in eternal chaos." Thorn said evilly.
"Your rule Thorn? Surly, you mean mine. Remember who your superior is!" A dark male voice said inside the fire.
Thorn's evil smile faded. "O-of cause…brother. And after I kill Celestia I'll-" Thorn was cut off by the dark voice.
"You will do no such thing Thorn, I am the one who will kill Celestia. Understand?" The voice said loudly as the flames on the fire grew larger.
Thorn took a few steps back with a slightly frightened look on his face. "Y-yes brother, Celestia will not be harmed until you arrive."
The flames then lowered. "Good…and what of Matthew? Has he showed up yet?" the voice growled.
"No sign of him yet, but I know he's coming. And when he does, I will personally take care of him myself. He'll pay for what he did to me." Thorn said in an angered tone.
"Don't underestimate him Thorn! He may be a pathetic little creature, but he's proven himself to be a worthy opponent. Especially now he has control of the Element of Bravery." The voice said.
Thorn growled. "That doesn't matter to me; I will kill Matthew and destroy that useless Element along with him."
"You had better Thorn! Otherwise don't bother coming back here…or else I'll kill you myself." The voice said darkly before the floating fire ball died down until there was nothing left.
Once the green fire ball was gone, Thorn growled in anger. "Pompous windbag, thinking he can order me around. I the magic over the night now, I should be the one making the orders, not him."
Thorn's angered look turned into a deceitful smile. "No matter. Once I've dealt with Matthew and his friends, I'll go after him next and take his throne for myself." He then chuckled darkly.
Suddenly, there was a loud knock on the main double doors. Thorn looked at them in frustration. "What? Who dares interrupt me?" he then walked up to the doors and used his magic to pull them wide open.
Thorn looked down to see Spot and Fido standing in front of him with nervous looks on their faces. "Who or what are you?" he growled.
"Oh, we're Diamond Dogs and we're here to serve you as our new master. Hahaha." Fido laughed nervously.
"Yes, we're definitely not here to distract you or anything." Spot said before Fido smacked him across the head.
Thorn raised his eye brow. "Hmmm…I could use some servants. But what makes you worthy to serve me?"
Fido then thought fast. "Oh, we do lots of things. Stealing, rampaging, kidnapping, stealing."
"You said stealing twist." Thorn pointed out.
Fido and Spot shifted their eyes at each other before looking back at Thorn. "We…like stealing." Spot said.
Thorn was silent before an impressed smile came on his face. "Interesting, maybe you are useful to me."
Fido and Spot nodded fast. "Yes, and we're good at digging." Fido added.
"Yes, especially when we're digging a tunnel under a castle." Spot said before Fido smacked him across the head again.
Thorn then gave then suspicious looks while they smiled nervously and started to sweat.
Meanwhile: Throne room
After a while of digging, we finally reached the surface under the throne room, but there was a stone tile blocking the way up. I slowly lifted it up I looked through the gap to see that Thorn wasn't there.
I then lifted the stone tile and placed it aside before I climbed out the tunnel with Rover climbing out behind me. I then saw Twilight climbing up after him and I helped her up.
After that, I looked around the throne room and saw Luna sitting in the middle of a black spikey gage with her head hanging. I walked up to the cage and tapped the bars with my hoof.
She looked up and a surprised look came on her face. "Matthew, what are you doing here?"
"We're busting you out of there and stopping Thorn." I said in a confident tone before I noticed something about her. "Luna, did he give you that black eye?"
She nodded and I felt anger boil inside me. "I'm gonna punch him in the throat." I growled before I started pulling on the bars.
Luna walked up to the bars and gave me a worried look. "Matthew, you shouldn't be here. Thorn's going to kill you if he sees you."
"Don't worry! We've got him distracted. Hopefully those Diamond Dogs can keep him occupied." I said as I pulled harder on the bars. I then lost my grip and as I fell back, one of the spikes scratched my arm.
After I fell back, I held onto my arm in pain. "Ah, shit." I yelled before I looked at my arm to see it was bleeding slightly. Twilight walked up to me with a concerned look on her face "Are you ok?"
I turned my head to face her. "Don't worry Twi, it's just a scratch." I then shook off the pain and closed my eyes.
Suddenly, I could see a light through my eye lids and when the light faded, I opened my eyes and looked down at my chest to see I was wearing the Element of Bravery.
I then walked up to the cage. "Ok Luna, stand back!" I said before Luna took a few steps back. I then placed my front hooves together and a green shield disc appeared in between my hooves as I opened them.
I then held the disc in one hoof and quickly sliced right through the bars. After a second, the bars fell off the cage and Luna walked out. She then smiled warmly at me. "…Thank you Matthew."
I smiled back. "Don't mention it."
As Twilight and Rover walked up beside me, the rest of the main 6, Spike, Jeff and Peewee came up through the tunnel and noticed us. "Yee-haa, ya'all did it. Ya freed the Princess." Applejack cheered.
"But where's Princess Celestia and Discord?" Rarity asked.
Jeff then landed in front of her. "Up there." He said as he pointed to the wall. We all looked up and gasped at the sight of Celestia and Discord chained up against the wall.
Twilight galloped up close to them. "Princess Celestia, are you alright?" she yelled up to her.
"Twilight, you need to get us down! Quickly." Celestia said as she tried to push herself loose. I then walked up beside Twilight and made two shield discs in my front hooves before I threw them up towards Celestia and Discord.
The discs then hit the chains; cutting through them. And Celestia and Discord fell to the floor and landed on their feet. They both took deep breaths before they finally calmed down. "Thank you Matthew, I was starting to cramp up there." Discord said as he stretched his arms out.
Rover then walked up to Discord with a large smile on his face. "Oooh, lord Discord. It is an honour to finally meet you." he then bowed repeatedly at Discord's feet.
Discord gave him a confused look. "Errr…who's the dog?"
I held my hoof up. "I'll explain later, right now we need to get you three out of here." I said. Celestia and Discord then looked at each other before they looked back at me and nodded in agreement.
We all then regrouped with the others by Luna's cage and as we were about to walk towards the doors, Twilight gasped loudly and tackled me to the ground before a bolt of black lightning shot past above us.
Me and Twilight got up and looked where the bolt came from to see Thorn standing in the doorway with an angered look on his face and Spot and Fido hovering beside him. "I should have known you would try something as devious as this. But seriously Matthew, Diamond Dogs? Tunnels? You disappoint me." Thorn said before he threw Spot and Fido towards us and they crashed to the floor in front of us.
I then glared at Thorn. "Give it up Thorn! There's 16 of us and only one of you."
Thorn then grinned evilly as he walked closer to us. "Then I'll just have to fix that, won't I?" his horn then glowed white and Twilight, the rest of the main 6, Spike, Jeff, Peewee, Celestia, Discord, Luna and the Diamond Dogs disappeared in a flash of light and reappeared behind the throne room doors.
"WHAT THE?" Twilight yelled in surprise before Thorn's horn glowed again and the throne room doors slammed shut. Thorn then used his black lightning to weld the doors shut before he shot his head around to me.
As I took a few steps back, I looked at the tunnel and leaped towards it but a bolt of black lighting shot into me; sending me flying back and crashing into the wall.
Thorn then walked up to the hole and his horn glowed. Suddenly, black thorny vines covered up the hole; blocking the tunnel.
After I picked myself up, I looked at Thorn who was giving me a devilish smile. I then glared at him before I created two shield discs in my two front hooves.
Thorn raised his eye brow. "Oh…so it's a fight you want huh? Well then…let's see if your precious Element con withstand the full power of the darkness." He then flapped his wings and hovered in mid-air in the middle of the room.
"Prepare to die, runt!" Thorn growled as black lightning began to form around his horn.
I then flapped my wings and shot towards him before I threw both discs at him; beginning the battle.
To be continued
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
The song used in the chapter is called you gotta love it from the cartoon movie Swan Princess 2. I do not own anything.
To Mike101, I would like to apologize for any annoyance that I may have placed upon you during our PM talks. I hope you can forgive me.
To my readers, I would like to recommend a story for you to read and review. It's called MLP: Nightmare Unicorns by the FanFic author Najee. It's a good story.
Please remember to review.
Next chapter will be up soon.
25. Thorn strikes back part 3
Sorry it has taken so long.
I've noticed in some of my reviews that some of you are asking for more conflict in Matt and Twilight's relationship. I understand this and there will be more conflict, but only in future chapters.
Warning: Long chapter.
Chapter 25: Thorn strikes back (part 3)
The two shield discs shot towards Thorn with great speed. As they were about to hit him, Thorn used both his wings to shield himself. The two discs then smashed against his wings.
While he wasn't looking, I flapped my wings harder and shot towards him. As I did, I pulled my hoof back and caught him off guard by punching him hard in the jaw as he removed his wings from his face; sending him flying back and crashing against the throne room doors.
"How did that happen? I didn't hit him that hard." I thought before I looked at my hoof to see it was glowing green. I then looked at the green crystal on my Element to see it too was glowing green.
"Whow, the Element must have some sort of effect on my attacks….cool." I said to myself before I noticed Thorn was getting back up. I then repeatedly created green shield discs in my hooves and threw them at Thorn.
Thorn was quick, he kept using his left wing to block himself from my discs until he got slow and one of them smashed in his face; temporarily blinding him. I took this opportunity and shot towards him with both my arms stuck out in front of me. My hooves started to glow green as I got closer to him.
Thorn's sight returned and his eyes widened at the sight of me flying towards him. He growled as his horn glowed and I felt myself move faster towards him. I stopped flapping my wings but I just kept going. Thorn then stepped out the way and I crashed against the doors.
Meanwhile behind the door, Twilight and the others flinched at the sudden pound against the doors. Twilight galloped up to them and tried to push them open. "I…can't open them…we have to…get in there…and help Matt." She grunted as she pushed harder.
Twilight then accepted that it was no use and stepped away from the doors. She then turned her head to face Princess Celestia. "Princess, can't you do something? Can you teleport us back in there?" she asked with a worried look on her face.
Celestia then closed her eye and her horn glowed, her horn then started flickering and stopped glowing. "Something's wrong, my horn won't work." She said.
Twilight's eyes widened in shock. "What? But that's not possible. Isn't it?"
Celestia turned her head to face Discord. "Discord, can you get us back in there?"
Discord gave her an unsure look. "I'll try." He then snapped his fingers and nothing happened. He then tried again repeatedly but all failed.
Twilight then closed her eyes and her horn glowed only to fail also. "Why is this happening? We can't use our magic." Twilight said as she tapped her horn with her hoof.
Celestia gave her a serious look. "Thorn must have put some sort of hex on the castle when he took over. It must be blocking our magic so we would be powerless to fight him."
Discord walked up beside her. "That would explain why we couldn't get ourselves down from that wall."
Spike then stepped forward. "Then we have to get out of here, maybe your magic will work if were outside then castle.
Luna looked down at him. "Won't Thorn be expecting something like that?"
Celestia walked up to her. We have to try. Come along everypony! There's no time to lose." she then galloped down the hallway.
Spike climbed up onto Twilight's back before she, Discord and Luna followed Celestia with the main 6 following behind. Jeff and Peewee flew onto Fido's shoulders before he, Rover and Spot ran after them.
Meanwhile, Thorn was using his magic to throw me around the room like a rag-doll, slamming me against the walls, ceiling and floor. Thorn smiled evilly as he watched my pain. He then pulled me in front of him and his smile grew before he pushed me away with great force; sending me crashing into the throne before I fell down from it and rolled down to small flock of stairs in front of it.
"This is a poor excuse for a battle, stand up and fight you meddling runt." Thorn ordered in an angered tone.
I grunted as I weakly stood back up and glared at Thorn. Once I got my strength back, I placed both my front hooves together and opened them; creating a green shield disc in both hooves. I then threw them towards Thorn only for them to shoot strait past him.
Thorn then gave me an unimpressed look. "Now that was just pathetic."
I then grinned as the two discs rotated around and smashed against the back of Thorn's head; causing him to face the floor as he yell in pain. He then gave me a sharp glare before he flapped his wings and flew up to the ceiling. I then flapped my wings and flew up until I was at the same level he was.
We then shot towards each other. Once we made contact, we both started throwing punches and kicks at each other while trying to keep ourselves in the air. I got a lucky hit as I punched his in the jaw which caused him to fly backwards a bit before he growled and flew back to me. He then bucked me in the chest with one of his hind-legs; causing me to wrap me arms around my chest while grunting in pain.
As I was trying to shake off the pain, Thorn's horn glowed and a bolt of black lighting shot out of it and hit me; sending me crashing into the wall. Thorn smiled evilly at this.
I shook off the daze and pushed myself off the wall before I shot towards Thorn with my left arm bent back ready to punch. My hoof started to glow green as I got closer to Thorn.
Once close enough, I pushed my glowing hoof out in front of me only to have Thorn grab it with both of his front hooves and start spinning me around in circles. As he spun me around faster and faster, I grabbed his arm with my other hoof before both my front hooves started glowing green.
I then spread my wings out and caught onto the air until I was in control and started spinning Thorn around. We both spun around with great speed before I noticed that Thorn's grip on my hoof was loose, I then forced myself to spin him around faster before I let him go.
Thorn crashed through the window causing it the fall to pieces. I flew up to the smashed window and looked down at the castle grounds to see that Thorn wasn't on there; I flew down and landed on the ground before looked around for him.
Thunder struck from the dark clouds above me as I slowly walked through the dead garden-like area; keeping my guard up for any type of strike. I heard a dark chuckle in the wind which caused me turn my head in different directions to see where it was coming from. It was quiet; the only sound I could hear was the thunder clouds and my heavy breathing.
Suddenly, I heard I loud growl and I turned around fast to see Thorn pounce down onto me and pinned me to the ground by stomping his hoof down on my throat; causing me to choke as he pressed down harder. As I stared to gasp for air, I looked at Thorn's smiling face to see he had a cut on his left cheek which must have come from the broken glass.
It started to get hard to breathe before I whacked one of my hide-legs against Thorn's stomach; causing him to grunt and remove his hoof from my throat. Once free, I threw my hoof up and punched him across the face before I quickly got back up and galloped towards the castle.
Thorn rubbed his cheek as he saw me go and growled in anger. He then galloped after me while flapping his large wings to make himself go faster. As I looked ahead to see a wooden door that lead back inside the castle, I looked behind me to see Thorn galloping towards me fast so I galloped harder.
Once I reached the door, I burst through it and slammed the door behind me just as Thorn was about to reach it. I held myself back against the door as Thorn pounded on it, the door started to crack with each pound that was forced upon it until the pounding stopped.
It was silent for a moment and I rested my head back against the door while panting. Suddenly, Thorn's horn stabbed through part of the door beside me which made me yell out in fright. He pulled his horn out and stabbed it through another part of the door above my head.
He continued to stab his horn through the door until his horn stabbed through a part next to my side which made a big cut on it. "AH, FUCK." I yelled in pain. I don't usually like to swear, but this really hurt.
I pushed myself off the door and held my hoof against my side. I removed my hoof to see the nasty cut on my side, blood started to run down from it and drip on the floor.
Just then, Thorn broke through the door and steam shot out his nostril's as he grunted in anger. As I tried to shake of the pain in my side, Thorn grabbed me behind my neck with his jaws and threw me back outside. I hit the ground hard before I started to pull myself along the ground.
Thorn laughed as he slowly approached me. "Is this it? This is the best you can give me? I've had stronger opponents in my sleep." he said with a snarl.
I picked myself up and turned around to face Thorn. He glared at me as his horn glowed before a bolt of black lightning burst out from it and shot towards me. I stuck my hoof out and a green forcefield formed around me and protected me from the bolt.
Thorn then came closer to me with the lightning still shooting from his horn and it got harder to keep the shield up. As Thorn got closer, the shield started to crack. I knew the shield wasn't going to last so I quickly lowered the shield and jumped out the way of the black bolt.
Thorn growled before he shot another bolt towards me. I quickly created a green shield disc in my hooves and held it up in front of me. The bolt then hit it and reflected back at Thorn.
Thorn went wide-eyed in surprise before the bolt hit him; sending him flying toward the main gates of the castle. He smashed through them and crashed to the ground.
I took a few second to catch my breath before I walked towards him. "How's that Thorn? It's not so pointless now, is it?" I yelled over to him.
He got up off the ground and grinned as he held his hoof against his chest. "Maybe not….but you're still just one little pony. And you will die tonight." He said darkly.
"I wouldn't count on it, Twilight and the others will be here any minute. Then we're really gonna kick your ass." I said as I stopped a few feet away from him.
Thorn's grin grew. "We'll see."
At that moment, Twilight and the others appeared at the top of the stairs in the lobby. Twilight looked out the doorway to see me and Thorn. "Matt, over here." she yelled.
I turned around to see her at the top of the stairs. "Twilight, could you lend me a hoof out here?" I yelled back.
Luna then walked up beside Twilight. "Matthew, you must destroy the dark crystal! It holds my powers over the night. If you smash it, maybe the powers will return to me."
I was surprised that it was that easy to get her powers back. "Oh is that it? That sounds easy."
"It's around Thorn's neck." Luna yelled back.
I narrowed my eyes. "Oh, that sounds difficult."
Twilight then noticed Thorn coming up behind me and she went wide-eyed. "Matt, behind you." she yelled.
I turned around to see Thorn leap towards me. Before he reached me, I pulled my hoof back before I pushed it up and punched Thorn in the chin; sending him falling back against the ground.
Twilight and the others galloped down the stairs and headed towards the doorway. Thorn leaned up and noticed this. "Oh no you don't." he growled before his horn glowed white and the main doors slammed shut before Twilight or any of the others could get out.
I looked back at Thorn to see him get back up and glare at me. "Nopony interferes with this fight…or your death." He said darkly before black lightning began to form around his horn which caused me to take a few steps back.
Meanwhile: Castle lobby
Twilight and Luna tried to push the doors open but it wouldn't open and they gave up. "It's no use, we can't open it." Luna stated.
"Well what are we gonna do? We need to get out there before something terrible happens to Matt." Twilight said in a worried tone.
Jeff then flew onto Twilight's back. "I say we ram it down."
Twilight turned her head around to face him. "But this is a royal castle; we can't just go breaking doors down."
Jeff crossed his wings. "You got a better idea?" Twilight and Luna just looked at each other as they thought about it.
Celestia then stepped forward. "As extreme as that sounds, he has a point. We have to get out of the castle." She then looked around and saw a statue of a royal alicorn by the wall. She then looked at the Diamond Dogs. "Dogs, can you lift up that statue over there?"
They looked at the statue before they looked back at Celestia and nodded. "Yes, we can lift up statue. We knock down door for pony Princess." Rover said as he, Spot and Fido walked up to the statue before they pushed it over.
Rover and Fido then walked over to each side of the statue and placed their hands underneath it while Spot grabbed it by the stand. They then lifted the statue up and carried it back to where Celestia was standing before they readied themselves to charge at the door.
"Ready? 1, 2, 3." Rover yelled before they charged towards the door with the top of the statue pointing at the door. They rammed the statue into the door only to make a dent in the doors.
"Try in again." Rarity said. The Diamond Dogs then walked backwards and once again charged at the door. They rammed into the door and made the dent bigger.
They did this 5 more times and the doors still wouldn't open. Suddenly, there was a cold wind and a slight moaning in it which got everypony to look around. "What's that noise?" Spike asked in a frightened tone.
Celestia had a sharp look on her face as she examined the room. "What in Equestria is that?" Applejack asked from across the room. Celestia looked at her to see she was pointing towards a wall.
Celestia looked at the wall to see a large shadow moving down the wall. They all took a few steps back as the shadow moved along the floor and stop in the middle.
Twilight and the others watched in silence as the shadow slowly rose from the floor and formed itself in the shape of an alicorn that was identical to Thorn's appearance with glowing red eyes. Twilight and the others were wide-eyed in shock at the sight of this.
At that moment, two more large shadows moved down the wall and along the floor until they were beside the shadow alicorn. They then did the same thing until they were both in the shape of an alicorn as well.
"What do we do now?" Fluttershy asked in a frightened tone as she hid behind Celestia's legs. Twilight stepped forward while glaring at the shadow alicorns. "We fight our way out."
Everypony looked at each other and nodded before they faced the shadow alicorns with sharp glares before they all charged at them. The three shadow alicorns then charged towards Twilight and the others.
Meanwhile: Canterlot streets
Me and Thorn had taken our fight to the abandoned streets of Canterlot. At this point, I was badly bruised, my mane, tail and feathers were all ruffled and I had a black eye. Thorn had a few bruises and some small cuts on his body. Our fight has caused a lot of damage around Canterlot, buildings had massive holes in them and giant pieces of rubble were everywhere.
I was taking cover behind a large part of rubble while Thorn was shooting bolts of black lightning at me from his horn from down the street. "Stop being a coward boy! Come out and fight me!" Thorn yelled as he shot another bolt of black lightning out his horn.
The blot hit the rubble and I covered my face with my hoof as part of it blew off. I then created a green shield disc in my front hooves and threw it like a Frisbee to the side, it then rotated around and smashed across thorn's face; causing him to stop attacking.
I took this opportunity to jump over the rubble and charge towards Thorn. Once close enough, I punched towards him with one hoof ready to punch. He looked up at me and gasped.
As I threw my hoof forward, Thorn disappeared in a poof of black smoke. I fanned away the smoke in front of my face and I heard a loud poof behind me, I then felt something hard hit me behind my head and I turned around to see another cloud of black smoke. "I don't like where this is going." I said to myself.
Suddenly, Thorn appeared in a poof of black smoke beside me and punched his hoof across my face before he disappeared in another poof of black smoke. He continued to disappear and reappeared all around me and punch me in different parts of my body.
"This is getting ridicules." I yelled before everything went silent and I waited with a sharp look in my eyes. Suddenly, I heard a loud poof behind me and I quickly turned around to see Thorn throw his hoof at me. I dodged his punch and my left hoof glowed green as I threw it up and punched Thorn in the jaw; sending him flying back down the streets and crashing into a building.
I flew up to the hole in the building and tried to see through the cloud of dust inside. Suddenly, a pair of red eyes shot open in the dust cloud and a bolt of black lightning shot out and stuck me in the chest; sending me flying back and crashing into a lamp post causing it to fall over.
Thorn stepped out of the dust cloud and flew towards me while growling. I was lying on my back on the ground before I leaned up and rubbed my head. I then opened my eyes to see Thorn coming towards me; I started pushing myself backwards until I felt one of my front hooves hit something.
I turned my head around to see my hoof next to the stand of the fallen lamp post. I then smirked and rolled over back on my hooves.
I then grabbed the end of the lamp post and grunted as I tried to pick it up. The crystal on my Element started to glow green before both my front hooves started to glow green as well. I felt myself pick up the end of the lamp post and I turned my head around to see Thorn coming closer.
I was waiting for the perfect time to strike until it finally came. "Batter up." I said before I swung the lamp post around and it smacked into Thorn; sending him crashing into a building on the other side of the street. "He's out of there." I yelled as I tossed the lamp post away.
Thorn pushed himself off the wall and landed on his hooves on the ground with his head facing the ground. He then slowly lifted his head up and looked at me with hatred in his eyes. The then walked into the centre of the streets on bared his teeth.
We both glared at each other. "Why are you really fighting me Matthew?...for them?...they don't care about you. They left you here to die, to be killed by me. They've abandoned you." Thorn said darkly.
I stomped my hoof on the ground. "That's a lie, they love me. They're my friends, Twilight is my girlfriend and she loves me more than anypony." I protested.
Thorn laughed. "Hahaha, you little fool. She doesn't love you; she only said that so you wouldn't leave her. Ever since she learned what you truly were, she just wanted around so she could study you….like a rat. Hahaha." He chuckled evilly.
I then looked down at the ground. "All my life I wanted only one thing, to have true friends. Every time I made one, they always ended up moving away or leaving me for someone else. And then I came here…and I thought I found the perfect place where nopony would do that to me."
Thorn's smile grew. I then looked back up at Thorn. "And you know what?...I was right. Ever since I arrived here, I've made many friends and I know for certain that they'll never abandon me for nothing or nopony. I know that Twilight loves me, she doesn't care what I use to be and she never did. I know her better than anypony and she would never use me or anypony like that. She's not the liar Thorn, you are." I said in an angered tone.
Thorn's smiled turned into an angered growl. "You think you're so special, do you boy? You think just because you're an off-worlder and that you're the Element of Bravery, you think you can stand a chance against me and my power. Well…let me show you what true power is!"
Thorn's horn then glowed white and black flames shot out of it like a flamethrower. Thorn rotated his head around and the flames surrounded him until they created a tornado of black fire with him inside.
I tried to look through the flames but I could only see Thorn's silhouette inside. But something was happening, his figure started to grow and his body was shifting as if he was changing into something else. As he grew, so did the fire tornado until it was almost the size of a real one.
Suddenly, a pair of big white glowing eyes shot open inside the fire on looked down at me. The flames then cleared and the fire tornado died down, my eyes widened to see that Thorn had transformed himself into a black one-headed hydra (About the same size as a real on) with glowing white eyes and a white underbelly. "All this talk about friendship and love, it really does bring out the worst in me." Thorn said in a thundering voice before he let out a loud hiss.
My jaw dropped. "Oh….I didn't know you could do that." I said as I looked up at him. Thorn then shot his head down at me with his jaw open wide.
Meanwhile: Castle lobby
The shadow alicorns were tough, no matter how many strikes Twilight or any of the others threw at them they always ended up dodging or blocking them. And their punches were hard; Discord and Rainbow Dash had already been sent crashing against the wall after being hit by them.
Applejack pounced on one of the shadow alicorns from behind and wrapped her arms around its neck as it tried to throw her off. The shadow alicorn then managed to flip Applejack over its head and she hit her back against the ground in front of it.
The shadow alicorn then raised both its front hooves up above Applejack's head to stomp down on her. Applejack saw this and gasped before she rolled over to the side; causing the alicorn to miss and stomp his hooves on the ground.
Applejack then got back on her hooves and bared her teeth at the alicorn before she spun around and bucked it in the side with her hide-hooves. Once her hooves hit the alicorn, it disappeared in a cloud of black smoke and the smoke vanished in the air.
"Hey, it only takes one hit to beat'em." Applejack yelled out for everypony to hear.
Luna turned he head to look in Applejack's direction while a shadow alicorn was walking up to her. "That sounds easy, except they keep avoiding our attacks." She said before she turned her attention to the alicorn in front of her and threw her front hoof forward only for the alicorn to dodge it and pounce on top of Luna.
As Luna tried to push the shadow alicorn off her, Discord noticed her struggling and flew over to help her. Once he reached Luna, Discord swung his tail around and it wrapped around the alicorns neck. He then lifted it off Luna and slammed it against the floor; causing it to vanish in the air.
Discord held his talon hand down to Luna and she grabbed it with her front hoof. Discord then helped her back on her hooves and looked down at her. "Are you alright Luna?"
Luna looked up at him and nodded. "Yes, I'm fine." She said with a small smile.
"Err…guy's, little help!" a voice said from across the room. Discord and Luna looked in the direction the voice came from to see Spike being chased by the last shadow alicorn.
Spike was too busy looking back at the alicorn to watch where he was running and bumped into something which made him fall back on his butt. He looked up to see the Rover, Spot and Fido each hitting one fists against their other hand.
"You mess with the dragon, you mess with us smoky pony." Rover said while glaring at the alicorn behind Spike. The Diamond Dogs then charged towards the alicorn and once they reached it, Rover threw a punch forward only for the alicorn to dodge it and punch its hoof across Rover's face; causing him fall to the ground.
Fido then came up from behind the shadow alicorn and caught it in a head-lock, the alicorn tried to throw Fido off but he was too strong. The shadow alicorn then spread its wings out and started to flap them before it lifted off the floor with Fido on its back with his arm wrapped around its neck.
Then with one strong flap, the alicorn shot upwards and slammed Fido against the ceiling; causing him to lose his grip and fall off the alicorns back. Fido then fell to the floor with a hard thud and the alicorn lowered itself back down to the floor.
The shadow alicorn then looked down at a quivering Spot with a frightened look on his face in front of it. The alicorn then took one step forward. "I surrender, I surrender." Spot yelled in fright with his hands high in the air.
The alicorns horn glowed white and Spot tensed himself up for whatever was going to come out. At that moment, Celestia walked up from behind the shadow alicorn. "Excuse me!" she said in an angered tone as she tapped it on the shoulder.
The shadow alicorn turned its head around to face Celestia only to receive a hard punch across the face by her hoof; causing it to vanish in the air. Celestia then shook the slight pain off her hoof.
Discord then walked up beside her with a surprised look on his face. "Nice move Celestia."
Celestia turned her head to face him and smiled. "Thank you Discord. Usually, I abhor the use of physical violence. But for these things I had to make an acceptation."
Discord just gave her an understanding smile before Celestia looked down at Spot. She walked up to him and lowered her head down to his level. "Are you alright?" she asked.
Spot looked up at her with wide eye. "Y-You saved me, pony Princess. Why?" He asked as Rover and Fido walked up to his side and looked at Celestia.
Celestia gave him a small smile. "Because I'm the Princess, my duties rely on caring and protecting all creatures. You Diamond Dogs may not be ponies, but this is still your home and you deserve the same amount of respect."
The Diamond Dogs then smiled at her before all three of them bowed their heads to her. "Thank you, pony Princess." They all said.
Celestia smiled and raised her hoof. "Please, call me Princess Celestia!"
The Diamond Dogs looked up to her. "Yes…Princess Celestia." Rover said with a humble smile.
Discord then walked up beside Celestia and looked at The Diamond Dogs. "Did we do good, lord Discord?" Fido asked with a nervous smile.
"Yes, you did good….well; you tried your best at least. But now that those things are gone, can you continue bashing the doors open?" Discord asked as he pointed at the statue lying on the floor next to the door.
The Diamond Dogs looked at it before they looked back up at Discord and nodded. They all then walked ran up to the statue and picked it up again.
Twilight then stepped forward. "Maybe if we all do it together, then maybe we can hit it harder and have a better chance of knocking it down."
"That's good thinkin' there Twilight. Come on ya'all, let's help do this thing." Applejack said as she walked past Twilight and up to The Diamond Dogs holding up the statue. Once she reached them, she stood behind Rover (who was holding up the statue from the side) and stood up on her hide-legs and placed one of her front hooves under the statue and the other on top.
Twilight, the rest of the main 6, Celestia, Luna and Discord then did the same. Twilight, Rarity, Rainbow Dash, Luna and Fido were holding the statue up on the left side. While Applejack, Pinkie Pie, Celestia, Discord and Rover were holding it up on the right. Fluttershy and Spot were holding it up from the back and Spike was holding it up from underneath.
Jeff and Peewee then landed on the statue as it was being held up by everypony. They then went back as far as they could while pointing the head of the statue at the door. Twilight looked at everypony. "Ready? 1, 2, 3."
They all the charged towards the door with the head of the statue sticking out in front of them. they then rammed it into the door and it worked, the doors cracked and swung wide open.
After see their success, Jeff and Peewee shared a high-wing. "Oh yeah, Thorn's got nothin' on us. Not him or his shadow duplicates, I was gonna throw down on those fools. Too bad there were only three of them right?" Jeff said.
"Emm…excuse me!" Fluttershy said quietly. Everypony then looked at her to see the frightened look on her and Spot's face.
"Fluttershy, what's wrong sweetie?" Rarity asked in a concerned tone. Fluttershy and Spot the pointed at the door way. Everypony then turned their head to looked out the door way and gasped loudly at the sight of a large number of shadow alicorns in the castle grounds.
Twilight and the others were wide-eyed with their mouths hung wide open. There was a moment silence. "Oh…he has way more." Jeff said breaking the silence.
Meanwhile: Canterlot streets
I was flying as fast as I could threw the streets while being chased by Thorn in his new hydra form. I made sharp turns around buildings only to have Thorn take a short cut by smashing his way through the corners of them.
When he got close, he stuck his neck out and snapped his jaws right behind me. I sometimes had to pull my hide-legs in to avoid them being bit off as I flew.
Suddenly, I saw a thin alley way between two buildings up ahead; I flapped my wings harder to pick up more speed. Thorn was closing in behind me with his mouth open wide until I flew into the alley and Thorn crashed into the buildings.
I looked back and laughed. "Haha, what's the matter Thorn? Too fat to fit through the-UMF." I didn't have time to finish my sentence as I smacked into a wall in the ally. I peeled myself off the wall and rubbed my head.
I opened my eyes to see I hit a dead-end in the alley. I turned around to see Thorn trying to force his head into the alley to reach me, the walls of the buildings crumbled as he pulled his head out and pushed it back in. then for some reason after a small number of tries, he pulled his head out and let out a loud roar before he walked away.
I took this time to take some deep breaths because it looked like he gave up. Suddenly, Thorn reappeared from out of nowhere and stuck his foot out into alley and it headed towards me. His leg was thinner so it could go in further.
Then his foot stopped right in front of me. I pushed myself back as far as I could against the wall as his claws tried to grab me; his claws were almost close enough to scratch against body.
The walls of the alley started to crumble again and Thorn's claw was getting closer to me. I was pretty sure it wouldn't be long until his sharp claws rip me apart until I heard something that sounded like a jet above me.
I looked up to see three lines of smoke in the sky, one of them had lightning in it. Whatever was making them then shot down towards me, I squinted my eyes to see it was three of the Wonderbolts. Once they flew down into the alley, two of them pulled up and flew strait towards Thorn.
Thorn saw this and ducked down before the two Wonderbolt's flew past over his head. Thorn turned his head around to see them fly upwards and let out loud roar. While he was distracted, Me and the other Wonderbolt (who I recognized to be Spitfire) then flew towards Thorn while his head was turned and flew past his head. He then noticed that I was flying away from him and he roared loudly again before he charged after us.
Me and Spitfire then took a sharp turn around another building before we noticed another alley. We then flew into it and held our backs against the wall so Thorn wouldn't see us if he went past. Thorn the came to the corner and looked around.
Thorn growled with a glare in his eyes. "Hide you little runt! I'll find you. Even if I have to tear this entire city apart." He yelled in a thundering voice before he walked around the corner and past the alley.
Me and Spitfire then exhaled before I tuned my head to face her. "Spitfire, you shouldn't be here. What are you doing?" I asked.
Spitfire turned her head to face me and lifted her goggles off her eyes. "Saving your skin, kid. We're gonna get you somewhere safe."
"It doesn't matter where you take me, he'll follow. He's after me; you all need to get out of here before you get hurt." I said with concern in my eyes.
Spitfire shook her head before she put her goggles back on. "No can do, kid. We have a job to do and if this creep's after you then you're in real danger."
I was about to say something before the other two Wonderbolts flew down into the alley and hovered in front of us. I looked at them to see that one of them was a male while the other was a female (I recognized them both as Soarin' and Fleetfoot). "Where's the hydra?" Spitfire asked.
Soarin' came closer to her. "We lost it, it just vanished." he answered.
Spitfire raised her eye brow. "It's a hydra, how could you have lost sight of a hydra? That thing was huge." She said.
"Well, we don't know. We can't find it anywhere." Soarin' argued.
Spitfire and Soarin' then broke out into an argument while me and Fleetfoot just watched; I turned my head to face Fleetfoot. "Are they always like this?" I asked with narrow eyes.
Fleetfoot turned her head to face me and nodded before we both looked back at the arguing pegasi. I then walked towards them. "Alright, that's enough." I said as I stepped between the two.
"How about this? We try and take this guy together." I suggested. Spitfire then rubbed her chin with her hoof while she looked down at the ground before she looked back up to me.
"Ok kid, you can help us. But watch your back! This things most likely to come after you." Spitfire said before she walked over to the alley entrance. "Believe me! I know." I said as I followed her.
Spitfire then stuck her head out the alley way before she looked left and right. She then looked back at us. "Ok, I don't see it. Let's go!" she said before we all walked out of the alley and around the corner. As we continued to walk, it was quiet. We looked in different directions for any sign of Thorn but we couldn't see him.
Spitfire then turned her head to look at me. "So…why's this thing after you? Did you steal its egg or something?" she asked with a smirk.
I turned my head to face her as we kept walking. "Oh...no. to tell the truth, this thing isn't a hydra."
Spitfire raised her eye brow at me. "Ok I admit I haven't seen one like this before, but I think I know a hydra when I see one."
"Oh, he's a hydra now. But he's really a black alicorn who turned into a hydra. He's kinda mad at me for something that happened a while back." I said to her.
"He holds a grudge huh? Well, stick with us kid and we'll have your back." Spitfire said in a confident tone.
Fleetfoot then walked up between us. "Yeah, if we ever find this guy. Otherwise we'll just have to accept that he's long go-" she didn't have time to finish her sentence as we heard a loud crumbling sound behind us.
We turned around to see Thorn smashing his way through one of the buildings on the right side of the street. He then noticed us and growled. "There you are." He said darkly before he charged towards us.
Spitfire then looked at Soarin' and Fleetfoot. "Wonderbolts, let's do this!" she said before they all shot off in the air and headed toward Thorn.
Thorn saw this and grinned evilly before he opened his mouth wide and black fire came shooting out of it. Spitfire gasped in shock. "Spit up!" she yelled before they all went in different directions and the fire hit the ground.
"Oh come on! Hydra's can't breathe fire." I yelled in annoyance.
Spitfire and the others were now flying all around Thorn like a swarm of flies. Thorn tied to smack them away with his claw but he missed every time and he was getting annoyed about it. "I've had just about enough of this nonsense." He growled before he stared breathing black fire at them.
Spitfire and the others then flew up high in the sky above Thorn before they shot down towards him in a small V shape. Thorn then glared his eyes at them and got in a position to strike.
Once the Wonderbolts got close enough, Thorn swung his long tail up and the tip wrapped around the Wonderbolts; holding them in a tight grip. Thorn then brought them closer to his face and he let out a loud hiss in their faces as the grip in his tail got tighter.
I saw this and glared up at Thorn before I created a green shield disc in my front hooves. "Hey Thorn." I yelled before threw the disc up towards Thorn's head.
The disc then smashed against his cheek and he slowly looked down at me. "You want me? Come get me, you son of a bitch." I yelled up to him.
Thorn then growled before he used his tail to toss the Wonderbolts aside; causing them to crash against a wall of a building and fall to the ground; knocking them all unconscious. Thorn then stomped his way towards me.
I felt the ground shake with each step he took. I turned around and tried to fly away but as I started to fly, Thorn grabbed me in his claws and brought me up to his face before he laughed. "Hahaha, you little fool. What did you possibly hope to achieve this night? Did you really believe you could beat the most powerful pony in all of Equestria?" He said in a thundering voice as his grip on me got tighter.
I tried to get loose but he had a really tight grip, I couldn't push myself out or move my legs. "You know boy, it didn't have to be this way. You should've left Ponyville when I gave you the chance, but you came back and humiliated me. It's because of you this has happened, the death of Luna's guards and their captain, Luna's kidnapping and suffering, the destruction of Canterlot, all of it. Everything that's happened tonight is because of you; it's all…your…FAULT. If you hadn't interfered with my plans in the first place, maybe none of this would have happened." Thorn said in a dark voice.
I thought about it and in a way…he was kinda right. He was doing this for revenge against me because of what happened a few weeks ago. But then I thought about what would have happened if I didn't stop him back then, Celestia would probably be gone and he would be on the throne with everypony in Ponyville under his control. I then looked into Thorn's giant glowing white eyes.
"You may be right Thorn, but there's one thing I do know. On the night I stopped you, I made a promise. I said I would protect my home and my friends from ponies like you And I'm not going to go back on that promise now." I said in a determined voice before I created a shield disc in my front hooves and slammed the edge down against Thorn's finger only for it to have no effect.
I did it a number of times and it didn't make a single scratch. Thorn laughed in amusement at my failed attempts to get him to loosen his grip on me. Suddenly, I noticed something glowing under my chin and I looked down to see the green crystal on my Element was glowing.
I then noticed that the shield disc in my hoof was glowing as well before small blades appeared around the disc, it then spun around quickly on my hoof until it was like a buzz-saw. I looked at Thorn's finger before I looked back at the green saw-like disc. "Oh, this is gonna get messy." I thought before I lifted the saw as high as I could and slammed it down on Thorn's finger; causing it to cut deep into the side of his finger.
Thorn went wide-eyed and roared in pain as he released me from his grip and I fell to the ground. Before I could hit the ground, I caught the wind in my wings and landed softly on my hooves. I looked up at Thorn to see he had his claw clenched in pain.
He then opened his claw to see a large split in the side of his finger and blood running down from it. He then looked down at me and growled in anger. "You miserable little runt, I'll make you suffer for that." He roared before he breathed black fire down at me.
I closed my eyes and covered my face with my wing as the fire got closed. Suddenly, the green crystal on my Element glowed and a green force-field formed around me. The black fire slammed on top of the force-field but it didn't break it. I opened my eyes to see I was safe as the fire was covering the entire outside of the force-field.
The fire then stopped and Thorn growled in frustration when he saw that I was protected. The force-field disappeared; leaving me standing in the middle of a round clear patch on the ground while all around it was soot covered ground.
Thorn the hissed as he shot his head down towards me with his mouth wide open. I then got ready to jump out the way before and when the time was right, I jumped backwards; causing Thorn to smash his head against the ground and I flew up the back of his neck.
He turned his head around and hissed as I flew above his back. Suddenly as I flew pasted his tail, it flung up and the tip wrapped around my leg before it slammed me to the ground. It then pulled me up and threw me high into the air. As I fell back down, I looked down to see Thorn's wide mouth beneath me.
I yelled in terror as I fell into his mouth and his jaws snapped shut. His tongue was trying to force me down his throat until I saw his uvula. A devious smile then came on my face before I let the tongue push me back and I grabbed onto the uvula.
Thorn then started choking violently as I hit his uvula with my hoof. His mouth opened wide as he choked harder. Then with one strong choke, I was forced off Thorn's uvula and shot out of his mouth. I then slashed against the ground in a ball of saliva.
I leaned up in the large puddle of saliva and lifted my arms up to see strings of Thorn's saliva dripping from them. "Ew…that ain't right." I said in disgust before I stood up and shook it all off.
I then looked up at Thorn to see he was rubbing his throat with his claws with his eyes shut tight. His eyes then shot open and looked down at me in anger before he began to walk towards me. As he did, I started to back away. "I can't keep this up, he's too big. There has to be some way of slowing him down." I thought.
Suddenly, I heard a loud lighting strike behind me. I turned my head around and looked up to the sky to see lightning was shooting from the dark swirling clouds above the castle and striking the metal pole on the tip of the highest tower on the castle. At that moment, I plan formed in my head.
I turned my head back around to face Thorn and flew up into the air. "Come on Thorn! Are you too slow that you can't catch a runt like me?" I yelled to him before I flew off towards the castle. Thorn then roared before he charged after me.
Meanwhile: Castle grounds
It was a struggling battle, no matter how many shadow alicorns Twilight and the others beat, more would just appear. Due to them being outside the castle, Twilight, Celestia and Discord could now use their magic.
Twilight was shooting purple beams out her horn while stand next to Luna who was bucking her hind-legs at any shadow alicorn that came close.
Meanwhile, Celestia and Discord were sanding back-to-back. Celestia was shooting yellow beams from her horn while Discord was shooting yellow lighting from his hands.
Meanwhile, Applejack and Rarity were bucking their hind-legs at any shadow alicorn that came up to them. Fluttershy was curled up behind them with her hooves over her eyes while quivering.
Meanwhile, Pinkie Pie was hopping from one shadow alicorn to the next. Every time she hopped off one, Rainbow Dash shot right through it in the air with great speed; causing each shadow alicorn to vanish in the air.
Meanwhile, the Diamond Dogs were punching any shadow alicorn that came close. Spike was standing next to them while breathing his green fire at the shadow alicorns.
Jeff and Peewee were diving down from the sky towards the alicorns and when they got close, they would pull up and shoot themselves through a small number of alicorns; causing them to vanish in the air.
While Spike was breathing his fire at some incoming shadow alicorns, one came up behind him and it lifted its front hooves up above Spike. Fido noticed this and ran up behind the alicorn before he threw his fist against the back of its head; causing it to vanish in the air. Spike turned around to see the black smoke clear and Fido looking down at him.
Spike smiled up to him. "Thanks." He said. Fido smiled down at him before he picked Spike up and placed him on his shoulders. "Don't mention is, little dragon!" he said before he went back to punching the alicorns while Spike breathed fire at them.
Celestia and Discord were still shooting beams and bolts of lightning at the alicorns as they got closer to the two. Suddenly, one of the alicorns appeared out of the ground in front of Celestia and tried to push her down to the ground but she fought back.
Discord didn't notice this as he was too busy fighting off other shadow alicorns. Suddenly, he noticed one of the shadow alicorns preparing to fire a bolt of black lightning from his horn. But it wasn't pointing at him, it was pointing at Celestia while she was pushing back on the alicorn.
Discord snapped his fingers and he disappeared in a flash of light and reappeared beside Celestia. He then wrapped his arms around her before he snapped his fingers again and in a flash of light, they both disappeared just as the other alicorn shot the bolt out of its horn. It then struck against alicorn that tried to push Celestia down and vanished in the air.
Celestia and Discord then reappeared on the other side of the castle grounds and Discord gave Celestia a concerned look. "Are you alright? Did it hurt you?" he asked.
Celestia then gave him a warm smile. "No, I'm fine." Discord then smiled warmly back at her before they both turned their attention back at the shadow alicorns and resumed shooting their beams and lightning bolts at them.
As Applejack and Rarity bucked away at the alicorns, Fluttershy uncovered her eyes and got up off the ground before she tried to gallop away. She then stopped once she saw a number of shadow alicorns in front of her.
Fluttershy backed away slowly with a frightened look on her face as the shadow alicorns slowly approached her. Suddenly, Fluttershy looked past the alicorns in front of her to see a number of alicorns surrounding Jeff and Peewee.
At that moment, Fluttershy glared at the alicorns before she charged towards them, she then rammed her way through them until she reached the two helpless birds and used her hind-legs to buck every shadow alicorn around them; causing them all to vanish in the air.
The black fog cleared and Fluttershy was breathing heavily with an angered look on her face. "Nopony hurts these poor innocent birds, Nopony." She stated loudly.
Fluttershy's face then turned from an angered one to a dazed one and she placed her hoof on her head. "Oooh…what just happened? I blacked out for a minute there." She said in her quiet voice before she looked down at Jeff and Peewee who were staring at her with wide eyes and their beaks hanging.
"What?" Fluttershy asked curiously. "Nothin'." Jeff and Peewee answered at the same time.
Meanwhile, Applejack and Rarity were still fighting off the shadow alicorns until two of them tackled down Applejack from behind; Rarity noticed that she Applejack was struggling to get them off so she galloped over to her. But before Rarity could reach her, another shadow alicorn tackled her to the ground and tried to force its front hooves down on her while she was trying keep them from stomping down on her face.
Spike was fighting off some shadow alicorns while standing on Fido's back until he heard Rarity struggling. He turned around and saw her lying on her back on the ground with a shadow alicorn on top of her trying to force its hooves past hers. "Hey." He yelled before he jumped of Fido's back and ran towards her.
Once he reached them, he glared at the shadow alicorn before he tapped one of its hind-legs with his finger. The shadow alicorn turned its head around and looked down at the small dragon glaring at it. "Get your filthy foggy hooves off her!" Spike growled before he took a deep breath and released a large amount of green fire at the shadow alicorn; causing it to vanish in the air.
Rarity then got back onto her hooves and walked up to Spike. "Thanks Spike." She said with a thankful smile.
Spike smiled back. "No problem. Come on! Let's beat these guys." He said in a confident voice before Rarity's horn glowed blue. Spike was then levitated off the ground and placed on her back. They smiled at each other before Rarity galloped away to continue fighting with Spike on her back.
After a short while, there was now a large number of shadow alicorns and everypony was finding it difficult to fight them off. Twilight, Celestia, Luna and Discord were surrounded while the others were becoming out numbered. Celestia saw how everypony was struggling and she stepped forward with an angered look on her face. "I've had just about enough of this." She said before her horn glowed brightly yellow.
Celestia's horn then started to glowed brighter causing Twilight, Luna and Discord to shield their eyes with their arms. Suddenly, a large explosion of light burst from her horn and covered the entire castle grounds in light.
The light then faded and Twilight, Luna and Discord removed their arms from their eyes to see that all the shadow alicorns were gone and everypony was looking around with confused faces. Applejack got up back on her hooves and looked at Celestia. "Whow, that was some mighty quick thinkin' there, Princess." She said with a smile.
The Diamond Dogs looked around at the clear castle grounds. "Ooh, pretty light make black ponies go away." Spot said in amazement.
Twilight then noticed Celestia standing still with her body tensed. She walked up beside her. "Princess? Are you ok?"
Celestia didn't look down at her; she just continued to look forward as Discord and Luna walked up behind her. "Yes….I'm just a little…" Celestia couldn't finish her sentence as she stumbled slightly.
Discord caught her in his arms and gave her a concerned look. Everypony noticed this and galloped up to them "Sorry…using that amount of magic…really takes it out of me." Celestia said weakly.
Discord gave her a warm smile. "You did a really good job, Celestia. I'm proud of you." he said sweetly. Celestia then smiled warmly up at him before she got up out of Discord's arms and tried to get her balance back.
Rainbow Dash then leaped forward with a large smile on her face. "That was awesome. You, Discord and Luna with your magic, Spike with his fire breath, me with my awesome flying and did you see Fluttershy when she was protecting Jeff and Peewee? We totally threw down." She said in an excited voice.
Pinkie Pie then hopped up in front of her with a smile. "Yeah we threw down." She said before she and Rainbow Dash shared a high-hoof.
Twilight then gasped once she remembered that they could use their magic now. She then turned her head to face Celestia. "Princess, we can use our magic. Now we can teleport ourselves back to the throne room and help Matt."
Rarity then walked up to her. "I don't think that'll be necessary anymore, Twilight." She said.
Twilight raised her eye brow. "How come?" she asked curiously.
"Because he's right over there." Rarity said as she pointed towards the castle's main gates. Everypony looked at the gate way to see me flying towards them through the streets.
I flew towards the castle while flapping my wings as hard as I could to gain more speed. Once I flew past the gateway, I landed in front of everypony. "Hey….how you all doin'?" I said as I panted.
Twilight then walked up to me and gasped once she saw all the cuts, bruises and black eye. "Matt…what happened to you?" she asked in shock as she gently stroked my wounds.
I then gave her a concerned look. "Twilight, you all have to get out of the castle grounds quickly."
Luna raised her eye brow. "Why? What's wrong?" she asked.
"THAT." I yelled as I pointed back towards the streets. Twilight and the others looked into the streets to see Thorn charging towards the castle.
"Is that a Hydra? But what happened to Thorn?" Twilight asked me with wide eyes.
I turned my head to face her. "Yeah…funny thing about that. Thorn is the Hydra." I answered. "WHAT?" Twilight yelled in shock.
Thorn then smashed his way through the gateway and he let out a loud hiss as he raised his head up high. "Aw, look at that! They're all here together as one. Good, now I can kill you all at the same time and spare me the trouble of coming after you all." He said in a thundering voice.
I then leaned my head closer to Twilight. "Twi, I've got a plan. It's risky but I have to try." I whispered to her without taking my eyes off Thorn.
"What kind of plan?" she whispered back.
"Just be sure to clear the castle grounds before the lightning strikes the tower." I whispered. "Huh?" Twilight said with a confused look on her face.
I didn't answer; instead I flew up along the wall of the castle until I was up higher than Thorn could stretch his neck. "Hey, dick neck." I yelled before I created a green shield disc in my front hooves and threw it down towards Thorn. Thorn looked up only to have the disc smash against his face. However his head was too big to feel any real pain from it.
"Why don't you come and get me if you want me so bad? Unless you're afraid of heights." I yelled down to him before I continued to fly up the castle.
Thorn hissed. "Oh so you want to take this to new heights, do you boy? Very well, I'll play your little game." He said before he walked over to the castle. Twilight and the others cleared the way as Thorn stomped past them and stopped in front of the castle walks.
Thorn then lifted his leg before pressed his foot against the wall and dug his sharp claws into it. He then used his jaw to grab a higher part of the castle so he could lift his other foot up and attach it to the wall. He continued to do this until he was able to climb the rest of the way without the use of his jaw.
Twilight and the others watch me fly up the castle while being chased by Thorn with worried looks on their faces.
As I flew higher up, I looked back to see Thorn was right behind me climbing the castle as fast as he could. Seeing how he only had two legs in his Hydra form, it wasn't very fast but he was still coming. Sometimes part of the ledges crumbled under his foot as he took a step closer and he'd have to hook his foot on to another part of the ledge before he continued to climb after me.
I finally reached the tip of the highest tower on the castle and hovered in mid-air as I looked at the metal pole which was much bigger up close. The wind blew strongly in my face as the dark clouds swirled around above me and I heard them thunder, I looked down the tower to see Thorn starting to climb it. He must have been heavy for the tower to hold because there was a loud cracking sound as he climbed up. The crack went around the tower so it looked like the top half would fall off at any moment.
I looked back up at the clouds. "Come on! COME ON!" I yelled before I looked back down to see Thorn was gone. I turned my head in different directions to catch any sight of him but I couldn't see him anywhere. Suddenly, Thorn's giant tail quickly wrapped around me from behind and it turned me around to see Thorn hiss loudly right in my face.
He climbed to the tip and grabbed the metal pole with one of his feet while the other one was attached onto the lower wall of the tower. His tail grip on me got tighter as Thorn held me up to his face and laughed.
"Hahaha, poor little Matthew. Come so far just to die here." she said darkly. I looked up into the clouds to see lights begin to flash in the clouds.
"You never stood a chance against me, boy. I'm more powerful than Celestia, I'm more powerful than Luna and I'm more powerful than you. You're just a boy living in a world where he doesn't belong. You're weak and useless, I am strong and powerful….so tell me runt!...how are you going to beat me this time?" Thorn asked with an evil smile.
As his grip got tighter, I looked back up at the clouds and saw lightning forming in the centre. I then looked back at Thorn and gave him a devious smile. "I may already have." I said before I created a shield disc in my front hooves and threw it towards Thorn's face. The disc then smash in Thorn's left eye and he closed it as he let out a small yell in pain.
This caused him to loosen his grip on me and I was able to push myself out and fly to a safe distance away from Thorn. Once I did, I turned around and hovered in mid-air before I looked up to the dark clouds. Suddenly, a large bolt of lightning shot down from the clouds and struck the metal pole. The lightning spread down the pole and up Thorn's leg until his entire body was cover in electricity. Thorn yelled loudly in pain as he was powerfully shocked until the metal pole broke off the tip of the tower and the lightning stopped.
Once he stopped feeling the pain of the shock, he looked in his claw to see the broken metal pole before he started to lose his grip on the tower with his other claw. I flew up to his face. "See ya, you overgrown bastard." I said before Thorn finally lost his grip and fell back off the tower. He yelled in terror as he fell.
In the castle grounds, Twilight and the others gasped as they saw Thorn falling down towards them. Celestia then closed her eyes and her horn glowed yellow before she, Twilight and the others disappeared in a flash of light. Once they were gone, Thorn hit the ground with a large crash.
I looked down at the castle grounds to see his unconscious body lying on the smashed ground. Suddenly, I heard a loud cracking sound behind me and I turned around to see the top half of the tower broke and started to tip over. "Holy SHIT." I yelled before I flew out of the way. The top half of the tower then tipped over and fell down past me. I watched as it fell.
Thorn then slowly opened his eyes before they shot open and he yelled in fright at the sight of the tower half fall down towards him. Before he could have the chance to get up, the tower half crash on top of him; burying him in rubble.
I then flew back down to the ground and landed in front of the giant pile of rubble. After a few seconds of waiting, nothing happened and I took a single deep breath as I thought it was over. Suddenly, I heard a rumbling sound and a few rocks from the rubble pile burst in front of me; knocking me down on my back.
As I tried to get up, I felt something push me back down and I opened my eyes to see Thorn back in his alicorn form with one of his front hooves on top of my chest. He grunted in anger with his teeth baring, the black and white flames in his fiery mane were large like wild fire and he had some more bruises on his body.
"I'll admit Matthew, you had me pretty fooled leading me up there into that little trap of yours. Very clever, I like that in a miserable little colt like you." Thorn said as he placed his other hoof on my throat and pushed down on it. "But your luck is about to run out, boy. I still control the night, the power is mine, the castle is mine, this entire city is mine. I am the alicorn of darkness, I am king, do you hear me? KING." He yelled as he pushed down harder.
It got harder to breathe before I glared up at Thorn. "Yeah…a false king." I said before threw one of my front hooves up and it punched Thorn in his snout; causing him to stumble slightly and raise his hoof off my throat. I then pushed his other hoof off my chest and rolled over back on my hooves before I took off into the sky.
Thorn saw this and growled before he took off after me. I flapped my wings as hard and fast as I could until I was high in the sky above Canterlot. I looked back to see Thorn was still after me but he was further down. I then stopped and hovered in mid-air getting ready to face him.
Thorn noticed this and stopped where he was. Even though we were a long distance away, we still glared at each other. "The game ends here, Matthew." Thorn yelled up to me before raised his wings before made one hard flap and shot up towards me. I then made one hard flap before I dove down towards him.
As we got closer, my eye watered with the wind pushing against my face. I stuck my front hooves out in front of me as I got dove faster. Suddenly, I felt as though I was breaking through the wind and I felt like I was going to explode in the speed. "Little runt." Thorn growled to himself.
"Bastard." I said to myself before I was diving down faster than ever before. I then heard a loud humming sound and before I knew it, BOOM. I shot down like a bullet creating green sonic wave which spread out across the sky, I looked behind me to see I was leaving a green trail behind me. I then turned my attention back to Thorn and I closed my eyes with my front hooves still sticking out in front of me.
Thorn came to a sudden stop and his eyes widened as I shot down towards him. "Oh no." he said to himself before I rammed right into his chest and we both shot down back towards Canterlot while still leaving a green trail behind me. After a fast fall, we both crashed landed like a comet in the Canterlot Sculpture Gardens.
I slowly opened my eyes and stood up slowly from the small crater that I was in, my legs were shaking from the intense speed I just experienced. I tried to spread out my wings but I felt a shooting pain in my left one. I looked at it to see it was bent slightly, I then realized it was broken.
I suddenly heard the sound of racks moving and I looked forward to see Thorn raised up from another small crater while small rocks rolled off his back. "You….will not…win…boy….I won't allow it." He said in an angered tone as he stumbled out of the crater. He then heard a cracking sound and he looked down at the purple crystal on his silver metal necklace and it fell apart to the ground.
"No…my power…my power." Thorn said in despair as he tried to gather all the pieces of the broke crystal as they started to glow black. He then realized it was useless before he gave me a hatful look with his eyes burning with rage. He then yelled in anger as he galloped towards me before he pounced.
Meanwhile: Castle grounds
Twilight and the others returned to the castle grounds to see the giant pile of rubble. "Where are they?" Spike asked.
"I don't know Spike, we didn't see." Twilight answered as she looked around for any sign of me.
Celestia looked around in devastation at the sight of her half destroyed city before she hung her head. She then felt a hand touch her shoulder and she looked up to see Discord with a concerned look on his face. Celestia then buried her head into his chest before Discord wrapped his arms around her to comfort her.
Twilight noticed this and was about to go over to them until she noticed something about Luna. "Princess Luna…you're…glowing."
Celestia then pulled her head out of Discord's chest and looked at Luna to see she was glowing dark blue. "Sister…what's…what's happening to me?" Luna asked curiously.
Everypony then walked up to Luna as they wondered what was happening. "He did it, he smashed the crystal. This must be your magic returning to you." Celestia said.
Twilight smiled. "That means you can lower than moon so Princess Celestia can raise the sun."
Celestia nodded. "Yes Twilight. Come sister! We must hurry. Everypony stand back." She said before Twilight and the others took a few steps back.
Celestia and Luna then walked up to each other and closed their eyes before they flapped their wings and lifted off the ground. They then stopped in mid-air and connected the tips of their horns together before they started to glow. Celestia and Luna then opened their eyes to reveal they were glowing white. The two Princesses then started to glow brightly which caused Twilight and the others to shield their eyes.
Meanwhile: Canterlot Sculpture Gardens
I grunted loudly as Thorn threw me against one of the statues in the garden. Thorn slowly approached me with a sharp killing glare in his eyes. As I tried to stand back up, his horn glowed white and I felt a sharp stinging pain in my head; caused me to drop to the ground. Suddenly, black chains burst out of both sides of the statue and wrapped themselves around me before they pulled me up against the statue.
Thorn then smiled evilly as he came closer. A black chain then slivered down the statue and wrapped itself around my snout before I pull it up; forcing my head to face upwards. I then noticed the night sky was lighting up and then I saw the sun rise beyond in the horizon.
Once he reached me, Thorn pointed the sharp tip of his horn at my neck and slowly moved it closer. Thorn chuckled darkly with a demented look in his eyes as he moved his horn closer to my throat. He was too caught up in his demented state to notice the land becoming brighter or the fact that his body was smoking while making a sizzling sound.
"Any last words?...runt." Thorn asked with the tip of his horn touching my throat. I looked up at the sky to see the sun was now high up in the sky before I gave Thorn a smirk. "Yeah…good morning." I said.
"Huh?" Thorn said with a confused look on his face. The confusion caused him to snap out of his demented state and notice the bright lands around him. He then turned around and looked at the sky to see the sun and after a few seconds, he let out a few painful grunts as he became weaker. As he did, the black chains around me turned into black smoke and I fell down from the statue and landed on my hooves. I then looked up at the top of the castle to see the black clouds disappear.
Thorn tried to make his horn glow but at this point, he was too weak and he stumbled slightly. He then turned back around only to receive a hard punch across the face by my hoof. "That was for Luna's guards and Midnight." I said while glaring at him.
Thorn rubbed his face with his hoof before he looked at me. "What…do you hope…to accomplish here?...what do you…hope to prove anyway?" he said between grunts.
"Is that what you think this is about Thorn? To prove you're wrong about me? Well I have news for you, you are wrong. Because I'm not doing this to prove anything, I'm doing this because it's right." I said before he tried to punch me with his hoof only to miss and receive another punch in the face. "That was for Luna."
At this point, Thorn was now kneeling on the ground panting as more smoke escaped from his body. I then grabbed him by the horn and forced him to look up at me. "And this…is because I just don't like you." I said before I spun around and bucked him in the face with my hind-legs; causing him to fall backwards and land on his back. I looked at him to see he wasn't moving.
I breathed heavily as I started to walk away. Suddenly, I heard a loud yell behind me and I spun around to see Thorn throwing his hoof towards me. By his surprised, I grabbed his hoof in mine and glared at him. "Y-You…can't defeat me…you're nothing but a pathetic human." Thorn said weakly.
"…not anymore." I said before the green crystal on my Element started to glow and I lifted off the ground without the use of my wings. I closed my eyes as I floated in front of Thorn with his hoof still in my grasp, there was a small humming sound coming from the green crystal before the humming got louder. My eyes then shot open revealing them to be glowing white before a large green beam shot out from the crystal on my Element and struck right into Thorn; causing him to shoot across the gardens as he yelled in terror.
The beam continued to shoot out of my Element as it pushed Thorn further away. He was now heading towards a statue of a pony with a stone spear in it hooves.
The beam then stopped but Thorn kept going until the stone spear stabbed into his back and out through his armoured chest. Thorn let out a loud grunt before he gasped in horror and pain. He tried to pull himself off the spear but he couldn't.
I was wide-eyed as I saw him in this state. Blood started to drip from his mouth and run from his wound until it was dripping from his leg. Thorn looked at me with wide-eyes as he let out a few small gasps before his eyes closed and his head and limbs hung as he died on the spear. Suddenly, Thorn's flesh started to dissolve like acid until he was nothing but bones.
Thorn's bones then fell off the spear as they turned to dust and blew away in the wind. All that was left of him was his metal armoured vest and metal greaves lying on the ground in front of the statue.
I was stunned by what I just saw until I felt light headed from exhaustion. I then lost all feeling in my body and I collapsed to the ground as I became unconscious. Meanwhile, the last three silhouetted alicorns watch everything from the roofs of the castle.
They stood there for a second before two of them disappeared in bolts of dark purple and red fire. The last one growled with its teeth bared before it disappeared in a bolt of green fire.
2 days later: Ponyville hospital
I opened my eyes to the sound of a loud beeping noise and I rubbed my head as I leaned up slightly. I looked around to see I was in a bed in what looked like a medical room. I then saw that the loud beeping was a heat meter wired up to me. I then heard the door open and I looked to see a doctor pony walk in.
"Oh good, you're awake Mr…Matthew, is it?" The doctor asked as he held his clipboard up to his face with his magic. "Yeah…that's me, ahh." I said as I tried to lean up more.
The doctor then placed his hoof on me and gently placed me back down on the bed. "Slow down, Matthew! You're still in quite a bad state." He said.
I then looked around my body to see I had bandages in some places like my broken wing. "I don't know what exactly happened up there in Canterlot, but whatever it was it must have been bad." The doctor said as he adjusted his glasses with his hoof.
"Worse." I said as I rubbed my head again. "Yes. In fact, a young pony named Twilight Sparkle has been very worried about you. She's spent every night here since you arrived and she said she wouldn't leave until she knew you were ok." The doctor said.
I was touched that Twilight would actually do something like that. "Really? Is she here?" I asked.
"Yes. She, some others and surprising enough, Princess Celestia and Luna are here too. Would you like me to send them in?" the doctor asked with a small smile.
I smiled back. "Yes, thank you." I said kindly before he left the room. After a few minutes, Twilight, the rest of the main 6, Celestia, Luna, Discord, Spike, Jeff and Peewee and the Diamond Dogs all came in to the room.
Twilight walked up beside the bed and I was confused by the angry look she was giving me. "What?" I asked.
"That was a really stupid thing you did up there Matt, you could've died. You had me worried sick." Twilight said in an angered voice.
"Sorry Twilight, it seemed like the best thing to do at the time. I couldn't think of another way." I said with a nervous look.
Twilight then let out a small sigh before she gently wrapped her arms around my neck until we were sharing a small hug. "The guards found you in the Sculpture Gardens. When they brought you back, I thought you were dead…. While I was staying here…I had a nightmare. That your heart meter went flat and…" she couldn't finish her sentence as she started to softly cry in my shoulder.
I ignored the pain as I hugged her tighter. "It's ok Twi…shhh…its ok, I'm here…the nightmare's over." I said softly.
"But what about Thorn?" Luna asked curiously.
Me and Twilight broke the hug and my ears lowered. "He's…I think he's…"
"Dead." Celestia said cutting me off. Everypony looked at her in shock. "Thorn's dead. We don't have to worry about him anymore." She finished.
"Princess…I…I didn't mean to…I mean, I didn't know that statue was-" I couldn't finish my sentence as Celestia cutted in.
"It's alright Matthew; I know it was an accident. But to be honest, I didn't see any other way to beat him." Celestia said in an honest voice.
"But what about Canterlot? Your castle?" I said in a concerned voice.
Celestia raised her hoof. "All taken care of, the castle returned to normal and its being repaired along with all of Canterlot. Everything is back to the way it was before." She said with a smile. I smiled back.
We then heard the door open again and we all looked to see Spitfire, Soarin' and Fleet Foot. Rainbow Dash gasped in excitement. "Hey kid, you're looking good. Well…not good but better." Spitfire said.
I smiled at her. "Thanks, are you guys ok?" I asked.
"Yeah, we're fine. Just a few bruises but nothing we can't take. Anyway after that guy took us out, we woke up just in time to see you pull off that cool Sonic Rainboom." Spitfire said.
Rainbow Dash looked at me in amazement. "You did a Sonic Rainboom?"
"He sure did, and we were just wondering if you'd like to hang with us some time." Spitfire said.
I was slightly shocked by this offer. I looked at Rainbow Dash to see her nodding her head fast before I looked back at Spitfire. "Can I bring a friend?" I asked. Rainbow Dash's jaw then dropped in surprise.
"Sure." Spitfire answered. "Then I'm there and so is Rainbow Dash." I said.
Rainbow Dash then shot up to the bed and hugged me tightly. "Thank you, thank you, thank you, thank you." she said repeatedly in excitement.
"OW, OW, OW." I yelled in pain by her hug. She then let me go and gave me a sheepish smile. "Sorry." She said.
At that moment, the doctor pony came back into the room with a nurse pony. "Alright everypony, Matthew needs to get his sleep now. Nurse, please give the patient his sleeping pills!"
The nurse then nodded before she used her magic to hover two small pills and a glass of water in front of me. I opened my mouth so the pill would go in and then I grabbed the glass in my hooves and drunk the water with the pill going down with it. The doctor and nurse then left the room.
"Come on ya'all! Let's let the poor guy rest!" Applejack said before she, the rest of the main 6, Spike, Jeff, Peewee and the Wonderbolts left the room.
"Get well soon Matt." Rarity said as she left.
The Diamond Dogs then started to follow them. Rover then turned around to me. "By the way, Lord Discord saw us put in a lot of strong effort in fighting those shadow ponies and he says we can become his personal assistants in the castle, that's better than any amount of gems."
"That's good, but doesn't that mean you'll have to stay in Canterlot?" I asked.
Rover, Spot and Fido's smiles then faded. "Oh horse feathers." Spot exclaimed to himself as he, Rover and Fido left the room.
"Don't worry Matthew! You'll be back on your hooves in no time." Celestia said before she turned and walked out the door. "And don't worry about Canterlot Matthew! We'll take care of it; you just worry about getting better." Discord said before he followed Celestia.
I then turned my head to face Twilight as I started to feel the pills effects. She gave me a small kiss on the lips. "I'll be back tomorrow to check on you, ok?" she said with a sweet smile.
I nodded slowly before I closed my eyes and drifted off into a deep sleep. "Sleep well Matt! I love you." Twilight said quietly before she and Luna walked out of the room and Twilight used her magic to shut the door behind them.
After a minute, Luna poked her head through the door and quietly walked up to the bed. She smiled warmly down at me as I slept. "You came when I needed help the most, you brought my magic back to me and you saved Canterlot from a terrible fate." She said quietly.
Luna then looked back at the door to check if anypony was there. Once she was sure there wasn't, she looked back down at me and planted a small kiss on my cheek.
"You're my hero, Matthew." Luna whispered before she walked towards the door. Once she walked through doorway, she used her magic to shut the door behind her; leaving me to sleep in peace.
Meanwhile: Far away dark mountains
One of the silhouetted alicorns sat on his throne while the other two stood in front of the thrones looking up at him. "Thorn's death was….unfortunate…but we must move on. Our brother would not want us to waste our time grieving over him while we could be doing so much more…Like planning a way to deal with the one responsible for his demise." The alicorn on the throne said in a dark voice.
"Yes brother." The two other alicorns said at the same time.
"Good, now go. I have an important matter to attend to." The dark voice said before the other two alicorns bowed and walked out of the throne room.
The alicorn on the throne then got up and walked towards the throne at the end of the row. The throne which was completely black.
"Your death may have been unexpected, Thorn. But that doesn't mean it wasn't caused by your own foolishness." The alicorn said before his horn glowed green and a green lightning bolt shot out and struck Thorn's throne; causing it to fall to pieces.
The alicorn the walked down from the thrones and up to the large green pool. He looked into the water and saw me sleeping in the hospital bed.
"We will not be bested by somepony like you…you have made yourself a very powerful enemy, young Matthew." The alicorn growled before he raised his front hooves up and slammed them down in the water; creating a loud splash and destroying the vision of me in the water.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter and I hope there was enough action for you.
To those who are confused about Thorn's Hydra form, in the show Hydra's have no arms. Just two legs. This would explain why he was grabbing things with his feet.
I'm going to take a small break from wrighting but don't worry! This story will continue.
Please remember to review!
Next chapter will be up next month.
26. Unsure hero
Hey everypony, I'm back.
I'm sorry that the last chapter was a long read, it was an important part of the story you see and I wanted it to have enough perfect detail.
Chapter 26: Unsure hero
It's been 4 days since I came out of the hospital and the word of my victory over Thorn has spread around.
I've been getting a huge reputation in Ponyville. Everypony in town thinks I'm some sort of hero and they praise me like one, even some of the high-class ponies in Canterlot like me….SOME of them.
Princess Celestia has already sent me and Twilight a letter saying that Canterlot has been fully repaired along with her castle (thanks to their skills in magic) and everything looks exactly how it all did before.
Ponyville streets
I was walking through the streets with Jeff on my back while pulling my delivery cart behind me, I was also wearing my saddle bags so I could carry the money I received. I still had some bandages wrapped around my body; my left wing was held down by the bandages because it was still slightly broken. Only my right wing could move freely.
It was crazy; ponies all around kept waving to me with large smiles on their faces while saying hello.
There was a group of male ponies who cheered loudly as I walked by; they shouted stuff like "Whoo Matt, you rock." And "Yeah, you kicked Thorn's flank." I only waved to them before I continued walking.
There was even a group of female ponies that giggled in excitement as I walked passed them. I couldn't help smile nervously before I covered my face with my free wing and did a fast-walk to walk away faster.
Once I was far enough away, I slowed back down before I removed my wing from my face and let out a loud sigh, I then kept walking towards the next location for my next delivery. "Haha, this is the life Matt. Everypony thinks we're awesome….oh I mean, they think…you're…awesome. I mean, I only fought off a bunch of shadow ponies, but you….you're the one who took on the big-boss, you're the one who saved Canterlot." Jeff said in a pleased voice.
I remained silent as I kept walking. "Hey, cheer up dude! Battle's over, you won. Come on big fella; let's hear your hero cry!" Jeff said with a confident smile.
"Yay." I responded quietly.
Jeff raised his eye brow. "I said hero cry. Not Fluttershy impression. You can do better than that, can't cha?"
"Yay." I repeated with a louder voice.
Jeff then climbed up on top of my head and looked down at my face to see a small frown. "Wow, you're really bummed about somethin'. What to tell your old-pal Jeff what's buggin' ya?"
I could tell by the sound of his voice that he was slightly concerned about me so I let out a small sigh before I spoke. "It's just…I don't think I deserve all this. I mean, I killed somepony. I've never done something like that before…and to actually do it for the first time, it was just….I don't know the word for it." I said with my ears low.
Jeff then climbed down from my head onto my snout so he could look me in the eyes. "Dude, calm down! It was an accident. You didn't mean to kill Thorn, it just…you know! Happened."
"It's still my fault he's dead." I said.
Jeff then shook his head slightly. "Look, Celestia said there was no other way to beat him anyway. And if you want somepony else's opinion, I say the guy deserved it. He was pure evil and you did all of Equestria a favour."
"Thorn may have deserved to die Jeff, but that doesn't mean he had to. I mean, we may have been able to catch him or something." I said while thinking of a way we could have done that.
"Matt, there was no other way. You're not a bad pony for what you did and we're gonna find a way to make you see that." Jeff said with an honest smile.
I smiled warmly at him even though he was on my snout. "Thanks Jeff. But this isn't important right now; I have a job to do. Where's the next delivery going?"
Jeff then flew off my snout and into the delivery cart behind me. I watched as he reached into the cart and pulled out a clip-board with a check-list on it before he looked it over. "Let's see!...err…looks like Ponyville schoolhouse. We're supposed to deliver two big bags of apples for their lunch period."
"Ok then, guess we're on our way to school." I said before I looked back to the road and started walking my way to the schoolhouse.
Meanwhile: Luna's castle
Luna's castle had also been repaired and the bodies of Midnight and his fellow guards had been buried in a cemetery not far from the castle.
Behind her castle, Luna had a large garden. It had dark blue roses on dark green bushes. It had a stone path that went all around it and in the middle of the garden was a large water fountain with a large statue of Luna in the middle, water squirted out from the statues horn and landed the big water-filled pond surrounding the statue.
Luna (With her black eye now gone) was lying on the grass in front of the fountain looking down at her reflection in the water. "I don't know what I should do. Ever since Matthew saved me, my sister and possible all of Equestria, I feel…I don't know how I feel. I can't stop thinking about him; when he stood up against Thorn, he was so…brave. I've never seen such bravery from such in a colt." she thought.
Luna then stood up and walked towards the stone path. Once she reached it, she decided to take a walk through the gardens while she thought about it. "Matthew has shown me kindness, understanding, friendship; he's the only colt who didn't becoming scared when we he first met me and he brought my magic back to me when it was stolen by Thorn. But that don't explain why I feel the desire to be around him." She thought.
Luna's thoughts continued to flow through her mind as she kept walking. "I mean ever since the night Thorn died, I can't eat, I can't sleep and I keep thinking about Matthew and how much kindness he's show me since we met. If feel woozy in my stomach and my heart beats faster every time I see his face in my mind. Why is this happening to me? I need somewhere else to think straight and clear my head." She thought in a frustrated tone.
Her horn then glowed and she disappeared in a flash of light.
Ponyville schoolhouse
I carried the two big bags of apples in my mouth, they were both heavy but I could handle it.
I then placed them in front of Miss Cheerilee who was standing in the front doorway of the school with a small bag of money lying next to her. "Here you go Miss Cheerilee, hope the kid's like'em." I said with a small smile.
"Oh, I'm sure they will. Here's your pay." Cheerilee said before she pushed the small bag towards me. Jeff then flew down and grabbed it in his talons before he flew back onto my back and shoved the small bag into one of my saddle bags.
As I watched him place the bag in my saddle bag, I felt something poke me on my shoulder and I turned my head back to Cheerilee to see she had another small bag in her mouth, she placed it in front of my hooves.
Me and Jeff looked at the bag in confusion. "Errr…Miss Cheerilee, you already paid. Why are you giving me this?" I asked her curiously.
"It's for you, it's a small tip. The schools way of saying thank you for saving Canterlot and ridding Equestria of that awful pony." Cheerilee said.
I was slightly shocked by this; I've never got a tip from anypony while I've been working for Applejack. "Oh…you know about that? I-It was an accident, I didn't mean to…you know!...there was a statue with a spear and…Thorn just...if I'd known it was there then, maybe-" I tried to explain before Cheerilee cut in.
"Matt, you don't have to explain. I know it was an accident, I know you'd never do something like that on purpose" Cheerilee said with an understanding smile.
"I know, it's just; everypony in town is cheering me on for not only stopping Thorn, but also causing his death. I mean, why is everypony so happy that I basically killed somepony?" I asked with my ears low.
Cheerilee placed her hoof on my shoulder. "Matthew, I know what goes on around Ponyville. And when we all found out that Thorn had died and that you were the one who fought him, everypony was shocked including me. In a way, it's bad that somepony died that night. But Thorn was a pony who wanted to bring endless destruction to us all. We're just…glad he can't hurt us anymore. Understand?"
I let out a small sigh before I nodded my head. Cheerilee then smiled warmly at me. "Good, now you go and finish your job, then go back to the library and try to cheer up. It wasn't your fault. Remember that!"
I then gave her a small smile. "Ok. Thanks Miss Cheerilee. This was my…last delivery for the day anyway. I'll just…return Applejack's cart and then I'll go home and take a break." I said before Jeff flew down and picked up the small bag of money in his talons. He then flew back up onto my back before I turned around and walked away from the school with Cheerilee waving me off.
Later: Sweet Apple Arches
I entered the farm land to see Applejack by the front doors of the barn. I then then headed towards her. Once Applejack noticed me, she smiled and walked up to me. "Howdy there hero boy, is it that time of the day already?" she said before she detached the cart from my back and she then pulled saddle bags full of money off my back with her mouth.
"Applejack, please don't call me that!" I asked in a polite voice with a small frown.
Applejack noticed the discomfort in my voice and placed the saddle bags down on the ground so she could speak. "Is somethin' wrong, sugar cube?" she asked with a concerned look.
"No, no it's nothing. I'll…get over it." I said with my ears slightly low.
Applejack gave me a sweet smile. "Come on Matt! You can tell me anythin'. Us here at Sweet Apple Arches are always here to help with any problem. Right Big Macintosh?" she said as she turned her head to the left.
I looked in the direction she was facing to see Big Macintosh standing next to a haystack while holing a pitchfork in his mouth. "Eeyup." He muffled before he stabbed the fork end of the pitchfork into the haystack which made a rustling stabbing sound.
The moment I saw the pitchfork stab into the haystack, my eyes widened as I suddenly experienced a flash-back. I once again witnessed the stone spear stab into Thorn's back and burst out through his chest. Once the flash-back was over, my eyes were still wide as my legs started shaking slightly.
Applejack turned her head back to me and noticed the odd look on my face. "Err…Matt…are ya ok? Your face looks a little pale."
"Emm….gotta go." I quickly said before I shot off out of the farm; causing Jeff to fall off my back and land with a thud on the ground.
"Matt wait! You forgot your pay." Applejack yelled out to me. But I didn't hear her as I was too busy galloping out of the farm as fast as I could.
Applejack then walked up to Jeff. "You ok there Jeff?" she asked as she used her hoof to help him back up.
Jeff rubbed his head with one of his wings. "Yeah, I'll live. I'm a bit worried about Matt though. Well, I'd better catch up with him."
"Hold on! You'd better take Matt's pay with ya." Applejack said before she walked into the bar and came back out with a bag of money in her mouth. She then placed it on the ground in front of Jeff and he flew up on top of it and grabbed it in his talons.
"Thanks AJ. See ya." Jeff said before he flew off after me with the bag of money in his talons. Applejack couldn't help but let out a worried sigh.
Meanwhile: Fields outside of Ponyville
Luna had come here to get away from her castle and clear her head of things. But the more she tried to forget about things, the more they kept coming back. She was lying on her back on the soft grass looking up at the clear blue skies.
"I've been out here for nearly a full hour now and my head is still filled with questions and thoughts. Why do I feel suddenly more attracted to Matthew, is it because of what he did? Is it because I like him so? Why can't I sleep or eat? Aww…there's so many questions in my head that I'm starting to get a headache." Luna said to herself.
In a way, Luna knew the answer. She just didn't want to admit it. "I guess what I feared is true….I've fallen in love with Matthew. I can't believe this; I'm in love with the hero of Canterlot, I'm such a school filly." She said to herself before she leaned up from the grass and rubbed her eyes with her hooves.
At that moment, she decided to accept the truth. Once she did, all the stressful feelings suddenly went away and she removed her hooves from her eyes before growing a small smile on her face. "I…I'm in love."
She then stood up on her hooves and giggled in excitement. "I feel so….joyful now. I feel like I've seen a light at the end of a very long and dark tunnel, I haven't felt this way for thousands of years…..I simply must tell him straight away." She said to herself before she galloped off towards town.
Meanwhile: Library
I galloped towards the library as fast as I could to run off my thoughts. I though burst through the front door of the library and quickly slammed it behind me before I rested my back against it.
Suddenly, I felt a hard pound against the door and I hear a loud voice yelling "OW." I then pushed off against the door and turned around to open it. I grabbed the nob with my hoof before I pulled the door open.
I was confused to see that there wasn't anypony there. At that moment, I noticed Jeff was stuck against the door with his wings spread out and his beak pointing upwards with a small bag of money in his talons. He must have smacked against the door when I slammed it.
"Oops, sorry." I said sheepishly before I grabbed his tail feathers with my mouth and peeled him off the door. I then placed him on the ground and he got up onto his feet with a dazed look on his face.
"Are you ok? Why didn't you slow down when I closed the door?" I asked curiously.
Jeff then shook off the daze and gave me an annoyed look. "I was flying so fast because you sprang off and forgot you pay from Applejack." He said in an annoyed tone as he held up the bag with on talon.
I saw the bag and my face went red from embarrassment. "Oh…yeah, that….silly me, haha." I laughed awkwardly.
Jeff then rolled his eyes before he put the bag down. "Hey Matt, come down here for a moment!" he asked with what seemed to be a calm voice. I then lowered my head down to him.
Suddenly, he grabbed my head with his wings and pulled me closer to him before he looked me in the eyes. "Listen Matt! You can't go on like this. Nopony is mad at you for what happened to Canterlot, the castle or Thorn. GET OVER IT!" Jeff yelled before he released my head from his grip and I pulled it back up.
I was slightly surprised by Jeff's sudden demanding attitude; I just stared at him as he stormed his way into the library. Twilight then entered from the next room to see Jeff go up the stairs by jumping up from one step up to the other.
I then picked up the bag of money in my mouth and closed the front door again before I walked over to the large wooden table on the other side of the room. Twilight then walked up to me. "What's going on Matt? I heard Jeff yelling so I came in to see what all the fuss was about."
I then placed the bag of money on the table and let out a small sigh. "Yeah, he's…kinda annoyed at me today. Can't say I blame him, I have been freaking out all day."
Twilight raised an eye brow. "What about?" She asked curiously.
"Well….I've been feeling kinda…troubled lately about what happened that night at Canterlot….you know!...the night when….it happened." I said nervously.
Twilight suddenly realized what I meant. "Oh…you still feel bad about that? Matt you probably saved hundreds of lives that night. I know it was an accident and you feel that something else could have been done. But even if we did capture Thorn, we would never be able to hold him forever. He would have broken out and he'd still be a threat to Equestria." She said trying to make me feel better.
"I know Twilight, it's just….he died because of me….because of my last attack….I was trying to just knock him out but instead….(Sigh)….I feel like….I'm a killer." I said with my head hanging.
Twilight then came closer to me before she nuzzled her head against my neck. "Oh Matt, I never knew you felt so strongly about this…but you're not a killer, it wasn't your fault .it may have been just…..a cruel fate." She said trying to make me feel better.
As I felt her soft mane against my neck, I couldn't help but rub her back with my hoof. "I know Twi; I just can't shake the bad feeling."
At that moment, we heard a knock on the door and we separated. Twilight walked up to the door and used her magic to open it; revealing Rarity standing on the other side. "Hey Rarity, what are you doing here?" she asked curiously.
Rarity then walked through the doorway. "I was in my Boutique when I noticed Matthew running down the street. He looked as though he was troubled so I came to check on the poor dear." She said with concern in her voice.
I then walked up to her. "It's alright Rarity; I'm just not feeling like myself today."
Rarity then came closer to me. "I'd say it's more than just that. Something's bothering you, I know it. Maybe I can help, what is it?"
"It's….complicated." I said in a depressed tone.
Rarity was silent for a moment before a small smile came on her face. "Sounds like somepony needs to relax. Lucky for you, I know the perfect place. We can go there right now."
I gave her an unsure look. "I don't know Rarity, I just got here and I think I should just stay here for a bit."
Rarity placed her hoof on my shoulder. "I promise it'll make you feel so much better, it'll take the stress right out of you. Now come along!" she said walked towards the door.
I then let out a small sigh before I decided to go along with it. Rarity then opened the front door with her magic before she walked through the doorway with me following behind. Once I walked through the doorway, I turned around to face Twilight who was standing by the doorway. "Well, I guess I'm going with Rarity to…where ever she's taking me. See ya Twi, I'll be back soon."
"If what she says is true and it will help you relax, you stay there as long as you need to." Twilight said with a kind voice.
I smiled at her. "Thanks Twi."
Twilight then planted a small kiss on my cheek. "Just explain the problem to Rarity and she might give you some good advice on how to handle it, she's very good at that." She said with a small smile.
"I will." I said before I turned around and started following Rarity. "Love you." I heard Twilight say from behind me.
"Love you too, Twi." I responded back to her as I kept following Rarity to this mysterious place.
Once I was out of sight, Twilight still felt a bit concerned about me and tried to think of a way to help me. She then got an idea. "Spike, where are you? I need you to take a letter." She said as she walked back into the library and closed the door behind her.
Unknown to us, Luna was watching us from behind a nearby house. She saw everything we just did and she grew a look of sadness on her face. "Oh….of cause….he's with Twilight Sparkle, I forgot about that." She said to herself before she walked away while looking down at the ground.
As she walked through the streets of Ponyville, she couldn't help but talk to herself. "The only colt I've ever had strong feelings for, and he's with another pony. Twilight Sparkle is lucky to have a colt like him, but how am I supposed to tell Matthew my feelings now? I can't just keep it secret all my life. Having a colt like Matthew….has always been my dream." She said to herself as she walked towards Ponyville Park.
Once Luna entered the park, she admired the beautiful gardens around her. But while she was, she couldn't help but think about how she and Twilight could have the same feelings for the same colt. After going deep into the park where nopony could see or hear her, she started to sing.
Luna: "Somewhere in my heart…
Somewhere deep inside, there's a dreeeam…
That's worth dreamin'…
Every now and theeeen
I get a glimpse of where…he and I could flyyyy…
But you and I,I,I,I,I,I…share
One dream, one hope
We're heading down the saaaame road
Even though we don't know where it leeeeeads…
We fooollow…the saaame star
I'm in love, like youuuu are
'Till he reaches out for you or meeeee….we share…
One dreeeeem…
I imagine what would beeee
A magical place is waiting for meeee…
It's still out there
Our vision is the same
Even though we see the world through different eyes…
You and I,I,I,I,I,I,I,…share
One dream, one hope
We're heading down the saaaame road
Even though we don't know where it leeeeeads…
We fooollow…the saaame star
I'm in love, like youuuu are
'Till he reaches out for you or meeeee….we share…
One dreeeeem…
One dream, one hope
We're heading down the saaaame road
Even though we don't know where it leeeeeads…
We fooollow…the saaame star
I'm in love, like youuuu are
'Till he reaches out for you or meeeee….we share…
One dreeeeem…
One dreeeeem."
Once Luna finished singing, she sat down on the grass and looked up at the sky. Luna then used her magic to pick a flower from the ground and held it close to her while thinking of what could be. "If only he wasn't with Twilight Sparkle, then I'd held him in my hooves forever." She said to herself slightly sad before she continued to look up at the sky as the small amount of clouds floated by.
Meanwhile: Day Spa
For some reason, I somehow knew Rarity was going to bring me here. In all my days I've spent in Ponyville, I've never been here. It was actually roomier then how it appeared on the show.
While Rarity was getting a back massage from one of the Spa Ponies, I was in the hot-tub leaning back against the side of it. I had to take my bandages off before I got in but the warm bubbling water somehow made my injured wing feel slightly better.
I already explained the situation I was in to Rarity and she was now thinking of a way to help me. "Hmm…sounds like you feel guilty about what happened to Thorn that night in Canterlot."
"I do Rarity; I'm the one who caused his death. I mean, sure I hated the guy but I never wanted to actually kill him. Not to mention all the damage our fight made in Canterlot and the castle. I still can't believe the Princess wasn't mad at me for destroying a part of her castle." I said as I rested my elbows on the side of the hot-tub.
The Spa Pony then stopped massaging Rarity's back and started filing her horn. "Darling, you shouldn't beat yourself up about what happened. It was just a nasty accident and I'm sure it wasn't personal; you should really let it go and move on with your life! Be happy that the monster is gone and nopony was badly injured. Oh, except for you of cause. You were in that hospital for five days, but it was for a good cause and we're all proud of you."
I then placed my arms back in the water and sunk my body down until my chin was touching the water. "Then why do I feel so ashamed of myself?" I said in a slightly sad tone.
Rarity then gave me a small smile. "You just need to relax and get it out your head. Just lean back and let the hot-tub bubble your stress away."
I then took her advice and raised my body slightly up before I rested my head against the side of the hot-tub. I then closed my eyes as I felt the warmth of the water and the ticklish bubbles rushing up against body. As I did, I thought about what Rarity said.
"In a way, she's right. I should be happy that Thorn's gone and I know for sure it wasn't personal. But I just can't stop thinking about how I actually ended somepony's life. Sure, he was an evil psychopath who would have killed us all if I didn't stop him but that's all I had to do, stop him, not kill him." I thought before I let out a quiet sigh. I then decided to try and enjoy the feeling of the smoothing water in hot-tub.
Later that afternoon: Library
I walked back to the library alone with my bandages back on and my thoughts still haunting my head. I approached the front door and opened it. I was then surprised to see Princess Celestia with Twilight in the front room.
"Princess? What are you doing here?" I asked as I walked through the doorway and closed the door behind me.
Celestia then walked up to me. "Twilight sent me a letter saying that you feel responsible for Thorn's death and that it was troubling you. Is this true?" she asked.
I was slightly surprised that Celestia was here because of this. I then looked at Twilight. "I was thinking that she could help you understand that you don't have to blame yourself." Twilight said.
I then looked back up at Celestia and my ears lowered slightly. "Yeah, it's true…I don't know what to do Princess; I can't get it out my head."
Celestia then turned her head around and looked down at Twilight. "Twilight, can I speak to Matthew alone please?" she asked in a calm voice.
Twilight nodded. "Of cause Princess." She said before she walked into the other room and closed the door behind her; leaving me alone with the Princess in the front room.
Celestia then lowered her head down to me and gave me a sweet smile. "Now, do you want to tell me what's bothering you?" she asked in a kind voice.
I hesitated for a second before I let out a sigh and started to explain. "I don't understand it Princess, I feel like it's my fault Thorn died that night in Canterlot. My friends keep telling me that it's not my fault or it was an accident, but that doesn't change the fact that my last attack caused his death. I mean, I've never killed anyone before. How am I supposed to live with myself knowing that I'm the reason for Thorn's dead?"
Celestia then gave me a slight frown. "Believe me Matthew! It's something you never get used to."
I raised my eye brow in confusion. "What? You mean, you know what it's like? But, you've never killed anyone in your life."
Celestia then sat down in front of me. "That's…not entirely true….Matthew, I'm going to tell you something that only Luna and Discord know about."
I then sat down while still looking up at her. "Ok, sure."
Celestia then took a deep breath before she spoke. "It all started many, many years ago before Luna and I were even Princesses."
A few minutes later, Celestia told me clearly about what happened between her and Grimerd. How she and Luna had to finish him before he could cause any harm to the ponies of Canterlot or Ponyville. I was stunned in shock by this tragic story. "Princess….I…I never knew. I'm so sorry." I said with sorrow in my voice.
"It's ok Matthew, true, I do feel bad about what happened but I got over it a long time ago. Do you know why?...because I accepted that I did what was needed to protect my subjects. Grimerd was far too powerful to be kept alive so…I had no choice. I know Thorn's death wasn't intentional but what's done is done and you need to accept that you did what was needed to protect not only all the ponies in the land, but to protect your friends….your family. I mean, why else did you risk your own life fighting him?" Celestia asked.
"I…I did it because…" I didn't know how to finish my sentence until Celestia finished it for me. "You did it because it was the right thing to do, like fighting Grimerd to the death was the right thing for me and Luna to do. But that's why we don't beat ourselves up about it, because we brought so much good to the land." Celestia explained, I was suddenly starting to understand.
Celestia then looked out the window and walked up to it. "Come and see this Matthew!" she said with a small smile. I then walked up to the window and looked out of it to see a small family of ponies.
Celestia then smiled as she looked at the ponies. "See that family?...Well they probably wouldn't be here if it weren't for you. If Thorn was still alive, they'd all still be threatened and scared. But because he's dead, you've made a bright future for not only them, but for all ponies in both Ponyville and Canterlot. I know how you feel Matthew; I felt the same way after Grimerd died. But once I realized how much pain he would have caused to my subjects, I knew what I did was right. Terrible, but right."
Celestia then looked down at me and wrapped her wing around me. "I know it's haunting at first, but if you see things the way I just told you, then you'll know you did the right thing and the pain will go away. Understand now?"
I gave it some thought and I suddenly realized that she was right; I did everything that night because it was the right thing to do. True, it wasn't intentional but it did bring hope to the ponies of this town. At first I thought they were cheering me on because I killed the enemy, but now I see that they were cheering me on because I gave them a future without Thorn trying to kill everypony. And all the buildings in Canterlot and Celestia's castle have been rebuilt, so there's no need to blame myself for that anymore.
I then looked up at Celestia. "I…I do…I get it now…if I hadn't fought Thorn as much as possible…he probably wouldn't be dead…and everypony here would still be in terrible danger. In a way…you could say I...I.."
"Saved them all…like a hero would." Celestia cutted in with a smile.
I then chuckled slightly. "Haha…now I know why everypony keeps calling me that." I then smiled warmly up to Celestia. "Thank you Princess…thank you so much." I said before I stood up on my hind-legs and wrapped my arms around her slim neck; locking her in a hug and catching her by surprise. I then realized what I was doing before I quickly released her and placed my front hooves back on the floor. "Sorry…I should've asked first."
Celestia then smiled and giggled slightly. "It's quite alright, you're just happy to finally be relieved of your tormenting thoughts. And I'm very happy to have helped." She said in her calm voice.
I then smiled warmly up at her. "Yeah…Thanks again."
"It's really Twilight you should thank; she's the one who let me know that you were in trouble." Celestia said before she turned her head to the door that Twilight left through. "Twilight, you can come back in now!" she called.
Twilight then opened the door and came back into the room. "Is everything alright now? Does Matt feel better?" she asked curiously.
Celestia nodded. "Yes, everything has been taken care of and Matthew feels much better now. Don't you Matthew?"
I then looked at Twilight. "Yep...much better." I repeated while giving her a sweet look.
"Well then, I'd better get back to the castle before Discord starts wondering where I am. I'm glad I was able to help you think positive about yourself, Matthew. I hope to see you both again soon." Celestia said.
Me and Twilight just waved as Celestia's horn glowed yellow and she disappeared in a flash of light.
Once she was gone, I walked up to Twilight with a warm smile on my face. "Thanks for telling her about my problem Twi, she really helped me get over it."
Twilight smiled back. "Of cause Matt, you know I'm always here for you and I'll always help you no matter what."
I felt heart-warmed by this until I couldn't hold back any longer. I wrapped my arms around the back of her neck and pulled her into a loving hug. "I love you Twilight." I said quietly.
Twilight smiled sweetly at me before she wrapped her arms around my back. "I love you too Matt." She responded sweetly.
We continued hugging for a few minutes before we separated. I then yawned slightly. "Well…it's getting late. We should get to bed; I've had a hard day."
Twilight nodded. "I bet you have." She said before we both walked up the stairs to go to bed.
The next day: Day Spa
Me, Twilight, the rest of the main 6, Spike, Jeff and Peewee were all relaxing in the Day Spa and because I felt much better, I felt more relaxed now.
Once again, I was in the hot-tub. Only this time, Twilight was in it with me. She was resting herself against the left side of my body with my arm wrapped around her to hold her close to me.
Rarity was having a hooficure, Fluttershy was getting her hooves polished, Rainbow Dash and Pinkie Pie were in the hot-tub with us but they stayed on the other side of it and Applejack was getting a back massage.
Spike, Jeff and Peewee were each lying on a relaxation bed with the hands and wings behind the heads. They each had cucumber slices over their eyes.
"You were right Rarity, this does bubble the stress away." I said while enjoying the water.
"Didn't I tell you it would? So now are you going to stop beating yourself up about what happened?" Rarity asked as a Spa Pony was filing her hoof.
"Yeah, thanks to Celestia…and a very special pony…I understand that what happened had to be done." I said.
At that moment, two ponies (one female and one male) walked passed us and noticed me in the hot-tub. "Oh my gosh, is that the pony who-" the female pony said before I interrupted.
"Saved Canterlot and defeated Thorn?...yeah, that's me…and I kicked his ass." I said in a proud voice.
The two ponies then looked at each other in excitment before they looked back at me. "Hey, do you wanna hang out some time?" the male pony asked.
I shook my head. "Sorry, I already have plans." I said before I went back to relaxing in the water with Twilight by my side. The two ponies then walked away until they were out of the room.
Twilight then placed one of her front hooves on my chest. "Now that's the Matt I know and love." She said with a smirk before she rested her head on my shoulder.
Suddenly, Spike leaned up from his relaxation bed and his cheeks looked inflated while he had both his hands over his mouth. I noticed this and raised an eye brow. "Spike, I know you don't like hearing that type of stuff. But you don't have to be so dramatic." I said assuming he was going to be sick.
Suddenly, Spike let out a loud burp and a small amount of smoke came out. The smoke then turned into a scroll in a small flash of light. "A letter from the Princess?" I said, Twilight heard me and leaned up off my side before we both got out of the hot-tub with Rainbow Dash and Pinkie Pie doing the same.
We all then walked up to Spike as he took the cucumbers off his eyes and picked up the scroll. "What's it say Spike?" Twilight asked curiously.
Spike then unravelled the scroll before he started reading it.
"Dear Twilight and Matthew
I was going to give you these in person, but I've been distracted lately so I've sent them in this letter. You all fought bravely during Thorn's takeover and as a reward for all your effort, both of you and your friends are invited to the Grand Galloping Gala coming in two weeks. I hope you can all attend to liven the place up again, see you all very soon.
Yours, Princess Celestia."
After Spike finished reading, he unravelled the rest of the scroll to find 10 golden tickets. He then held them up to show us all. "Ten tickets to the Grand Galloping Gala."
We all grew smiles of excitement. "Whow, the Grand Galloping Gala? As in that big party up in Canterlot?" I said in excitement.
Twilight turned her head to face me and nodded. "Yeah, and there's enough tickets for all of us. We can all go."
"Oooh, yes." Spike yelled as he threw his arms in the air. His eyes the widened slightly before he crossed his arms and made an uninterested look on his face. "Oh, I have to go there again?"
I then trapped him in a head-lock in one of my arms and gave him a playful noogie with my other hoof. "Oh, you can try to hide it Spike. But we all know you want to go." I then released him and he rubbed his head with his hand while giving me a slight annoyed look.
"I hope it goes better this time, last time was a disaster." Rainbow Dash stated.
Rarity rolled her eyes. "Please, don't remind me!"
"About what? About how rude that Prince guy was to you? Or about how nopony would buy Applejack's apple supplies? Oh, oh, or about how Fluttershy couldn't get a single animal to like her? Or about how Twilight couldn't get any time with the Prin-" Pinkie Pie couldn't finish her sentence due to Twilight shoving her hoof into her mouth.
Once she was sure Pinkie won't continue, Twilight removed her hoof from Pinkie's mouth. Applejack then stepped forward. "Don't ya'all worry! I'm pretty sure everythin' will go much smoother this time."
Twilight nodded. "I hope so; I'm already getting excited about it." She said before she turned her head to face me. "What about you Matt?"
I gave her a small smile. "Yeah, I'm looking forward to it."
As Twilight and the rest of the main 6 started talking amongst themselves about the Gala, I didn't take my eyes off Twilight. I thought about how she went through the trouble of calling Celestia to the library just to help me feel better about myself. I mean, Celestia wouldn't have known about my problem if Twilight hadn't sent that letter to her. Twilight truly loves me, and I love her more than anything.
"And I know exactly what I'm going to do there." I said quietly to myself as I watched Twilight talk to the others about the Gala.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
The song used in this chapter is called One dream from the cartoon movie Tom Sawyer (2000). I don't own anything.
Note: To those who know the song, I used the soundtrack version and I'm well aware that the song is a duet. However, I only had Luna sing it because Twilight is still unaware of Luna's crush on Matt. And if I had both of them sing it, it wouldn't have made sense.
P.S. the songs in this story are better if you listen to the song while you read them. These songs call all be found on YouTube.
Please remember to review!
Next chapter will be up soon.
27. Cloud race
Ok, to those who are wondering why I haven't done any chapters about past events like Rarity's secret admirer or the band, don't worry! I have everything planned out and they will be mentioned again in future chapters.
Warning: Long chapter.
Chapter 27: Cloud race
It's been 3 days since Celestia convinced me that what happened in Canterlot was a good thing for Equestria. We were all excited about going to the Grand Galloping Gala, especially me. I couldn't wait for it.
But today, I was going to go to Cloudsdale for the first time with Rainbow Dash, we were going to finally for fill Spitfire's offer and hang out with the Wonderbolts up there. Spitfire said she'd be waiting for us with Fleetfoot and Soarin'.
Skies above Ponyville
Now with my wing finally healed, I was able to take to the skies once again. I was so glad to finally fly again, there's no point in being a Pegasus when you can't fly.
I was following Rainbow Dash towards Cloudsdale. While she was flying, Rainbow Dash practiced a few air stunts so she could show them off to the Wonderbolts. She was more excited about this then I was. She did flips, long dives; she even flew around a cloud which made it spin.
I just continued flying while watching her. "Hey Rainbow, shouldn't you save those moves for the Wonderbolts? You might get tired if you do them now." I called out while she continued to pull off her stunts.
Rainbow Dash then stopped before she flew up to me with a smirk on her face. "What's wrong Matt? Jealous?"
I smirked back. "Ha, no. I was just giving you some friendly advice so you don't screw up in front of the Wonderbolts. I have my own stunts." I said with pride.
Rainbow Dash laughed. "Haha, oh really? Then show me some! So me what stunts the hero of Canterlot can pull off!" she said before she flew to the side to let me past.
My eyes grew slightly and I became nervous. "Errr…" as I tried to come up with an excuse, Rainbow Dash's smirk just grew in amusement. I then narrowed my eyes and crossed my arms. "Ok, I lied about the stunt thing, I have nothing. But that doesn't mean I'm jealous of your flying, I bet I could beat you in a race hooves down."
Rainbow Dash then came straight up to my face with a grin. "Wanna prove that, fly boy?"
I grinned back. "As a matter of fact, I do."
"Then let's do it! First one to Cloudsdale is the winner." Rainbow Dash said before she flew beside me and we both got in a ready position in the air.
We both grinned deviously at each other before we look back forward. "Ready, set….GO!" Rainbow Dash yelled before we shot off like bullets.
We flapped our wings fast as we shot past a number of small clouds. The wind blew hard in my face as I flew as fast as I could, Rainbow Dash was still beside me as we kept racing, meaning I was doing better than I expected; seeing how she's the fastest flyer in Ponyville and all. We made sharp turns around clouds and we did long dives only to pull back up to the clouds.
We were now flying straight and Rainbow Dash was staring to take the lead, she looked back at me with a smirk. "Come on Matt! You're gonna have to do better than that if you want to beat me."
I smirked back. "You mean, like this?" I said before I zoomed past Rainbow Dash; which caught her by surprise. She then flew faster to try and take back the lead.
I was now far in the lead, I couldn't believe I was actually beating Rainbow Dash in a flying race. I looked back at her with a large smirk on my face as I continued to fly forward with great speed. "Well isn't this a twist, looks like old Mattie's about to out fly the great-OHF." I couldn't finish my sentence as I flew straight into a thick cloud and got the front-half of my body stuck inside; leaving my hind-legs and tail dangling out the cloud.
I tried to use my hind-legs to push myself out but I wouldn't budge. "Oh terrific." I exclaimed in an annoyed tone.
Rainbow Dash then flew up to the cloud I was stuck in while laughing her head off. "Hahaha, hey Matt, you're supposed to avoid the clouds when you're flying in a race. Hahaha." She laughed.
"Ha-ha-ha, very funny, laugh it up! And while you're at it, pull me out of this thing!" I said while kicking my hide-legs.
"OK Matt! This is not time to get your head in the clouds….Hahahaha." Rainbow Dash laughed again.
"RAINBOW, GET ME OUT OF HERE! This stuff is starting to get up my nose." I yelled in an irritated tone as I kicked my legs harder.
Rainbow Dash then stopped laughing. "Alright, just stop kicking and I'll have you out of there in a jiffy." She said as she flew up behind me. I then stopped kicking and she grabbed my tale with her mouth and tugged back on it.
It took 3 more tugs before I finally came out the cloud with a 'pop'. I turned around to face Rainbow Dash. "Thanks Rainbow." I said with a smile.
Rainbow Dash was biting down on her lower lip until she burst out laughing. I was confused. "What?" I asked.
"Your..hahaha..face..hahaha." Rainbow Dash laughed with her eyes watering while pointing at my face with her hoof.
I looked at the end of my snout to see I had a cloud beard; I quickly bushed it off and blushed from embarrassment. Rainbow Dash was still laughing and I gave her an annoyed look. "Not funny." I said.
"It's pretty funny from over here." she said finally calming down. Once she was fully calm, she flew closer to me. "Come on! We're almost at Cloudsdale." She said before she flew past me and headed in the direction towards Cloudsdale with me following behind.
Cloudsdale
After a short flight, I could finally see Cloudsdale up ahead. My eyes were wide with amazement at the sight of the cloud-made city with the rainbow river and waterfall in front of me.
We then landed on the soft surface and I felt the ground under my hooves. "Wow, the ground up here is so…plush. This place is awesome." I said as I looked around.
Rainbow Dash turned her head to face me. "Well, you are in the greatest city in the sky."
"Damn right, so can you show me around? This is kinda my first time up here." I asked.
Rainbow Dash nodded. "Sure, I'll give you the grand tour. Follow me!" she said before she turned around and walked away into the city with me following behind.
Rainbow Dash showed me all around Cloudsdale; we even went to the place where they made the different weather like rainbows, snowflakes and rain. It was amazing how these Pegasi could actually make and control the weather here. Suddenly, a thought hit me. "Wait a minute! I'm a Pegasus, that means I can control the weather too. That is so cool." I thought.
After we finished the tour, we decided to finally meet up with the Wonderbolts on the other side of Cloudsdale and we took off into the air to get there faster.
Cloudsdale Stadium
After a short flight through the city, we finally saw the Wonderbolts in the cloud-made stadium standing on the balcony. It was the same stadium where Rainbow Dash once saved Rarity and won the best flyers competition.
We then landed in front of the Wonderbolts and Spitfire smiled at us. "Well, looks like you two finally made it. What took ya?"
Rainbow Dash stepped forward nervously. "Yeah sorry we're late; I was showing Matt around Cloudsdale, it's his first time up here."
Spitfire then looked at me and smiled. "Hey kid, looks like you finally healed up after that whole fiasco that happened in Canterlot." She said.
I smiled back. "Yeah, but that's all in the past now. So what are we doing?" I asked curiously.
Spitfire then smirked. "We're gonna see if your flying can match ours. We're gonna show you what we can do and then you're gonna show us what you can do. Now everypony stand along the edge of the balcony!" with that, we all stood along the edge of the balcony. I was standing between Rainbow Dash and Spitfire while Soarin' and Fleetfoot were standing beside each other.
Spitfire then turned her head to me and Rainbow Dash with a smirk on her face. "Ok, I'll go first. Check this out!" she said before she shot off into the sky and showed off her stunts. She was incredible, she did flips and she shot through a row of clouds; leaving each one with a large hole in the middle of it.
She then stopped in mid-air as we stomped out hooves on the cloud surface to applause her. "And now, I'm gonna show you a new move of mine called Lightning Landing." She then flew up to a black lightning cloud and flew around it. She picked up more and more speed with second that passed by until lightning started to seep out the cloud and form around her body. She continued to fly around the black cloud really fast with her body covered in lightning; she now looked like a lightning ball rotating around the cloud with great speed.
Soarin' lead his head towards us. "You may want to move." He said before he and Fleetfoot took a few steps back. We were both confused by this.
Spitfire was still flying around the black cloud while covered in lightning until she suddenly shot down towards us. We both quickly moved out the way before she crashed on the balcony; creating a small lightning explosion with a bright flash. When the light faded, me and Rainbow Dash were shocked to see that Spitfire wasn't hurt and she didn't have any soot or burnt marks on her suit. She was just standing straight up with a large grin on her face as if she didn't do anything.
My mouth was hanging open. "WHOW…how did…how could…how'd you do that? You look as though you never did anything." I said in amazement.
Spitfire giggled. "Years of practice, kid. Took me years to get use to that landing, I use to collapse every time I did that move. But now I don't." she said.
Rainbow Dash stepped forward with a large smile on her face. "That was so awesome." She said with excitement.
Spitfire looked at her. "Thanks Rainbow Dash." she then turned her head to face Fleetfoot. "Fleetfoot, you're up." With that, Fleetfoot walked up to the edge of the balcony and took off into the sky.
After I while, Fleetfoot, Soarin' and Rainbow Dash all showed off their best stunts. Spitfire was rather impressed by Rainbow Dash's moves. It was finally my turn and I was hovering in the middle of the stadium. However, there was one little problem. "I don't know what to do."
Rainbow Dash groaned as she face-hooved herself. Spitfire then stepped forward. "How about you pull off that Sonic Rainboom you did once before?" she called out from the balcony.
"Oh ok, but I don't call it a Sonic Rainboom because I gives off a green sonic wave instead of a rainbow one. That's why I call it…a Sonic Greenboom."
Spitfire and the others looked at me with raised eye brows. "Oh….cool." Rainbow Dash called out with a fake smile.
I then flew up high in the sky to prepare to preform it. While I was, Rainbow Dash looked at Spitfire. "Don't tell him I said this, but I think that names kinda lame." She said before Spitfire nodded in agreement.
Meanwhile, I was still flying upwards. After I got as high as I could, I stopped and looked down to see I was high above the stadium. "Ok Matt, just do what you did last time! Dive really fast and you should pull it off." I said to myself before I took a deep breath and dived down.
As I dived, I began to pick up more and more speed. My eyes began to water as the wind blew hard in my face, I was sure I was going to perform a Sonic Greenboom again. Suddenly, something fast flew straight in front of me; causing me to lose my flight pattern and fall down to the stadium. I plummeted through the empty air of the stadium's stage arena and Rainbow Dash dove after me.
I flapped my wings to try and catch the air but I couldn't, the ground was getting closer as I continued to fall until Rainbow Dash swooped in and caught me on her back. She flew me back up to the stadium balcony with Spitfire and the others and I got off her back. Soarin' then walked up to me. "Whow, what a wipe-out. Are you alright?" he asked in a concerned voice.
I nodded slightly. "Yeah, I'm cool. Something nearly hit me up there." I then looked in the direction that mysterious creature was heading and saw 3 figures heading into Cloudsdale. I growled. "Come on guys! I want to give who ever those guys were a piece of my mind." I said before I took off towards the city with Rainbow Dash and the others following behind.
Cloudsdale streets
I spotted the 3 figures land somewhere in the city and we all noticed a crowd of pegasi all watching the 3 figures in wonder. We landed near the crowd and we were shocked to see that the 3 figures were not pegasi, they were griffons.
They wore black and dark blue uniforms with the initials SG (which were gold) on each of their chests. They had each had brown feathered wings. They weren't wearing anything over their heads and all they had on their faces were a pair of dark purple goggles with yellow glass lenses (the same type of goggles the Shadowbolts wore). By the looks of it, there were two males and one female. The males wear slightly taller than the female. The female then stepped forward to the crowd and we all listened in.
"Ponies of Cloudsdale, we are the Soaring Griffons and we have been traveling around Equestria challenging every town and city's best flyer to a race to prove which species is truly the best flyer, Pegasi or griffons. I am the best flyer in my team and so far, I've won against every pegasi we've challenged in every town and city we've been to. Now we've come here and I personally challenge your best flyer Spitfire to a race. This will be the ultimate test to prove once and for all that griffons are the top flyers in Equestria instead of a small pathetic group of prissy ponies." the female griffon announced.
Everypony started mumbling to themselves about this sudden challenge. At the moment, Rainbow Dash stepped forward. "That's a load of trash talk, if you've come all the way here to challenge Spitfire to a race; you've basically come here to embarrass yourself." She yelled with a glare.
The female griffon then turned her head to face us before she walked over to us. Once she reached us, she grinned deviously. "Well, well, well, look who it is! Rainbow Dash. It's been some time."
Rainbow Dash looked at me with a confused look on her face and I shrugged before she turned her head back to the female griffon. "Errr…do I know you?" she asked in a confused tone.
The female griffon huffed. "Huh, you always were slow Rainbow. Maybe this will shed some light." She said before she grabbed her goggles with one talon claw and lifted them up; revealing her eyes.
Our eyes widened once we recognized her. "Gilda?" We said in surprise at the same time.
Gilda placed her goggles back over her eyes. "Yeah, it's me. How do you like the suite Rainbow? Pretty cool huh?" she said as she flexed her chest.
Rainbow Dash was still in shock. "But….what're you doing here?" she asked.
"I already told ya, I'm here to challenge Spitfire to a race and prove that she's not as cool as she thinks." Gilda stated.
"But why?" Rainbow Dash asked.
Gilda glared. "Because the time I spent in Ponyville showed me something, it showed me that a bunch of dweeby ponies don't deserve the title of best flyers in Equestria. So I found the fastest griffons in the land and formed my own personal team." At that moment, the two male griffons landed beside her. "Meet Jet and Bane! My team followers. You told me to find some new cool friends someplace else….so I did." Gilda said before Jet and Bane growled at us.
Jet and Bane had the same type of feather hair style as Gilda; however the large feathers sticking out of their foreheads were shorter than hers. Their wings had brown feathers like Gilda, only their wings were slightly bigger than hers. Bane was large and muscly while Jet was scrawny but he looked strong enough to hold out in a fight.
I stepped forward. "It doesn't matter what type of team you have, it'll take more than fancy suits and ignorant personalities to beat somepony like Spitfire." I protested; gaining the attention of Gilda, Jet and Bane.
Gilda looked at me closer before she turned her head to face Rainbow Dash. "Who's the dork? Your coltfriend? Hahaha." She snickered.
Rainbow Dash glared at her. "No, he's not."
"Yeah, I already have a girlfriend and it ain't her. And who the hell are you callin' dork? My name's Matthew, you pompous bird-brain bitch." I said with anger.
Gilda gave me a death look. "What did you just call me?" she yelled in my face with an angered tone.
Rainbow Dash then stepped between us; causing me to take a few steps back. "Better watch who you're talkin' to Gilda! This is the guy who saved Canterlot from an evil alicorn named Thorn. Perhaps you've heard of him." She said with a smirk.
I then stepped out from behind Rainbow Dash so Gilda could see me properly. "Oh yeah, I've heard of you. You're the so-called hero of Canterlot everypony's been yappin' on about for the last few days. Personally, I don't see what the big deal is. I could have beaten that Thorn guy with one talon tided behind my back." Gilda said with an unimpressed voice.
"Oh yeah? Can you pull off a Sonic Rainboom with one talon tided behind your back?" Rainbow Dash asked.
I then tapped her shoulder and she turned her head around to face me. "Err…Sonic Greenboom." I whispered.
Rainbow Dash narrowed her eyes and turned her head back to Gilda. "I mean, a Sonic Greenboom." She groaned.
Gilda's cheeks inflated before she, Jet and Bane burst out laughing. "Hahaha, Sonic Greenboom? That's what you call it? Hahaha, that has to be the lamest name in the history of lame. Haha." Gilda and her team continued to laugh.
"Yeah well, it's like a Sonic Rainboom and it only takes a skilled flyer to pull one of those off. That's probably why you've never been able to do it." I snapped.
Gilda suddenly stopped laughing with her eyes wide, Jet and Bane stopped laughing and looked at Gilda. There was a moments silence before Jet and Bane stepped back with slightly frightened looks on their faces. Suddenly, Gilda's wide-eyed expression turning into a rageful growl of anger and hatred.
Gilda suddenly grabbed me by the neck with her claw and pulled me close to her face. "Are you saying I'm not a skilled flyer? You little twerp" she growled.
I only glared straight in her goggled-covered eyes. "The Wonderbolts could out fly you any day of week." I said.
Gilda then let go of me. "Is that so? Fine, then let's see if they can out fly us! Forget about racing against just that wimp Spitfire! Instead, we're gonna race against all three of the Wonderbolts. I'll show you who the skilled flyer truly is." She scoffed.
I raised my eye brow in confusion. "Errr…you wanna what-now?" I said.
"You heard me, my team against hers, all the way around Cloudsdale. Winner gets officially named best flyers in Cloudsdale. That is, unless they're scared of losing." Gilda said with a mean grin.
"You'll never beat the Wonderbolts, they're the fastest flyers in all of Equestria, you and your team are just a bunch of loud-mouths who talk complete crap." I said.
"Oh yeah, come to the race tomorrow and you'll see for yourself that we can outfly these losers anytime, anywhere." Gilda said.
"Fine, I will be there, only to see the look on your face when they win." I said with a smirk which made Gilda growl.
"Alright then, the racing clouds tomorrow afternoon, BE THERE!" Gilda yelled; causing most of the Pegasi around me to flinch in fight. Gilda then turned around to face Jet and Bane. "Soaring Griffons, take off!" she commanded before she, Jet and Bane took off into the sky and flew into the city until they were out of sight.
Rainbow Dash then walked up beside me and I turned my head to face her. "Well, somepony has some anger issues." I said.
Rainbow Dash nodded. "You're telling me, Gilda always did have an anger problem. And if you think that was bad, you should've heard what she said to my friends when Pinkie Pie tried to throw her a welcome party."
I put my hoof up. "I..err..I know what she said at the party and I totally agree with you, it was rude and uncalled for."
"That's what I thought." Rainbow Dash said in surprise.
Spitfire then walked up to us. "Well, if we're gonna race this Gilda gal, then we need to prepare ourselves for tomorrow. Sorry guys but we're gonna have to cut the day short so we can get ready."
Rainbow Dash nodded. "No biggy! We understand. We'll be here tomorrow so we can watch the race, you're totally gonna make Gilda look like such a lame-o when you win." She snickered.
I smirked. "Yeah you will. And when you do, Gilda will be so humiliated that she'll fly out of here as fast as she can and we won't have to worry about her or her crony's anymore."
"Ok well, we should probably get started on warming up. Do you two want to stay in Cloudsdale for a little longer?" Spitfire asked.
I shook my head. "Nah, we'll head on home. We'll be back tomorrow for the race." I said.
Spitfire gave me a small smile. "Ok then, see ya guys tomorrow." She said before me and Rainbow Dash took off into the sky and headed back to Ponyville.
The next day: Cloudsdale streets
Me and Rainbow Dash arrived in Cloudsdale to see a large crowd of pegasi all preparing to head out and watch the race. Near the crowd we saw Spitfire pacing back and forth with Soarin' and Fleetfoot sitting down near her.
We landed in front of Spitfire and we both noticed the worried look on her face. "Hey Spitfire, what's up? Are you nervous or something?" I asked in a concerned voice.
Spitfire shook her head. "No, worse. Soarin' and Fleetfoot can't compete in the race; they both have one wing broken.
"WHAT?" Me and Rainbow Dash yelled in shock at the same time. We then looked at Soarin' and Fleetfoot to see their suits were ripped; they both had a slightly bent wing that was bandaged up and the lenses in their goggles were cracked. "What happened to you guys?" Rainbow Dash asked in a shocked tone.
"We got jumped last night, we couldn't see who it was, it was too dark and they were too fast. We can't fly like this" Soarin' explained.
"But what about the race? You have to fly." Rainbow Dash said.
"Sorry, but the doc said we had to stay off our wings for a few days." Soarin' said.
"Grr…who would do something like this anyway?" Spitfire asked in an angered tone.
I then noticed Gilda, Jet and Bane in the crowd with a few pegasi talking to them. I glared sharply. "I have a few wild ideas who it may have been." I said before I marched over to them with Rainbow Dash and Spitfire following behind me.
Gilda noticed me walking up to her and she glared at me. "Hey Gilda, see Soarin' and Fleetfoot over there?" I said in an angry tone as I pointed my hoof back at Soarin' and Fleetfoot.
Gilda looked at them to see the state they were in before she looked back at me. "Yeah, so?" she scoffed.
"They said they got jumped last night and I think it's kinda weird how they both have a broken wing. You wouldn't know anything about this, would you?" I asked give her a suspicious look.
"Are you suspecting that we did it? We were nowhere near those losers last night." Gilda argued before a deceitful grin grew on her face. "But now it looks like Spitfire's gonna have to fly the race by herself. Three against one, that should make thing mighty interesting in the race. The crowds gonna love it."
I growled slightly. "Why you little-" I was cut off by Spitfire grabbing my tail with her mouth and pulling me back.
She then released my tail and I turned my head around to face her. "She's right kid. Without Soarin' and Fleetfoot to compete alongside me, I'll have to race for my team by myself."
Gilda then grinned deviously before Rainbow Dash stepped forward. "No you won't, because Matt and I are gonna help you by flying for them." She said in an assertive tone.
"What?" Me and Spitfire said at the same time before Gilda laughed.
"You're kidding right? You honestly think you can fill in for them? Don't make me laugh! You don't have what it takes to stand in for'em." Gilda scoffed.
"Oh yeah, well I've pulled off a Sonic Rainboom twice and Matt's pulled one off and he's not even half as good as me." Rainbow Dash stated.
I turned my head to her with narrow eyes. "Thanks' Rainbow, I feel the love." I said sarcastically.
"Grrr…fine, fill in for those losers! It won't matter anyway, we're still gonna blow you out of the sky and win this thing." Gilda stated with a glare.
"That's what you think." Rainbow Dash said as Gilda, Jet and Bane turned around and walked away. As they did, Jet and Bane stopped and looked back at us. They then smiled evilly before they continued to walk away.
"I really don't like those guys." Spitfire stated as she walked up beside Rainbow Dash.
I then walked up beside them. "I bet they did have something to do with what happened to Soarin' and Fleetfoot, they're just keeping it to themselves to look innocent. Well we'll show them what happens when they mess with us. We race…eminently." I yelled as I stuck one of my front hooves up in the air.
Spitfire turned her head to face me. "Err kid…the race doesn't start for another half-hour."
I felt the awkward moment. "Oh…then, we race….in half-an-hour." I said with my hoof still in the air. Rainbow Dash and Spitfire rolled their eyes before they walked away to prepare for the race.
I then noticed them leaving. "Hey, wait for me!" I said before I started following them.
Meanwhile: Rarity's boutique
Spike poked his head out from a bush a few feet away from the front door of Rarity's shop; He looked around to see if there was anypony watching him. Once he was sure there wasn't, he walked out the bush and tiptoed over to the front door with a dark blue metal box in his hands. The box was medium size and had a white diamond on each side of it.
Once he reached the door, he placed the box on the ground in front of the door and knocked on it. But as he turned around to walk away, the door opened slightly and Spike froze on the spot.
Spike then turned his head around to the door and was relieved to see there was nopony there. He then looked down at the box and started thinking. "Hmm…maybe I could leave it inside the house, I don't think Rarity's home." He thought.
Spike then picked up the box and opened the door all the way so he could walk inside the shop. Once inside, he looked around and saw the large round show stand that ponies stand up on when they're wearing one of Rarity's new dresses.
Spike walked over to it before he opened the lid of the blue box to reveal it was full of light blue sapphire gems that Rarity's been looking for to finish one of her newest designs, Spike smiled with drool dripped from his mouth as he stared at the sparkling gems inside the box. "Oooh…these look so delicious…" he said to himself before he shook his head and wiped the drool off his mouth.
"No, I can't eat any these. Rarity's wanted these for some time." Spike said to himself before he closed the lid and placed the box on the stand. "There, now for the finishing touch." He said as he held up a sheet of paper in his hand and moved it towards the box.
"Spike?" a female voice said behind him; startling him. He turned his head around to see Rarity behind him across the room.
Spike quickly turned the rest of his body around and hid the paper behind his back. "Oh…hey Rarity…I was just, errr…your front door was open and…" Spike couldn't finish his sentence as Rarity interrupted.
"What's that box?" Rarity asked curiously as she walked over to Spike.
Spike then looked back at the box. "Oh, this box?...I..errr…I saw it outside in front of your door…and I thought someone would try to take it if it was left out there, so I thought I'd bring it in for you…you know…so nopony would take it…haha." he laughed nervously hoping she'd buy it.
Rarity was silent for a second before a sweet smile appeared on her face. "Oh Spike, that's so sweet of you. Thank you, you're such a gentlecolt." She said as she rubbed Spike's head with her hoof; causing him to blush.
Rarity then removed her hoof from Spike's head before she looked at the blue box on the stand. "I wonder what it could be." She said as she walked around Spike and up to the box. Spike watched her as he slowly backed towards the exit.
Rarity looked down at the box in confusion. "I didn't order anything, why would somepony leave it at my door?" she asked out loud.
Spike stopped walking backwards. "…no idea. I mean, who just leaves a box in front of your door and then runs away?" Spike said with a nervous smile.
Rarity turned her head around to face Spike. "Oh Spike, I'm sure there's a perfectly good reason why whoever left this couldn't stay and give it to me in person. Maybe whoever it was had something more important to do." She then turned her head back to the box and her horn glowed blue.
The box lip then glowed blue and it opened to reveal the gems, Rarity let out a small gasp of surprise before a she smiled. "I don't believe it…blue sapphire gems?...I've been looking everywhere for these, now I can finally finish my latest design."
Suddenly, a thought came to Rarity which made her gasped loudly in excitement with a large smile. "It was him; my secret admirer brought these here for me, I just know it was him. Oh, no wonder he left them at my door and went away. That's the whole point of the word secret….but how did he know I needed sapphire gems?" she asked curiously before she turned around to face Spike.
At that moment, Spike became nervous. "Oh horse feathers, how do I explain this one? Think Spike! Think!" he thought as he stared to sweat. "Err…lucky guess." He said with a nervous smile.
Rarity raised her eye brow in confusion "But, that doesn't explain how he would-" she tried to say before Spike interrupted.
"Excuse me! I think I hear my laundry calling me. I'm glad you got your gems and I hope you find out who this guy is, see ya." Spike quickly said before he ran to the doorway. As he did, the sheet of paper slipped out of his hand, but he didn't notice as he was too focused on getting out as fast as he could.
After Spike had ran out the doorway and disappeared into the streets, Rarity was left in her shop in confusion. She then noticed the sheet of paper on the floor and looked at it in wonder before her horn glowed blue. At that moment, the sheet of paper then glowed blue before it levitated off the ground and hovered towards Rarity. Once it reached her, it hovered in front of Rarity's face so she could read it.
The more Rarity read through it, the more she came to realize it was a poem. The type of poem she would get along with a new gift from her admirer. Once Rarity finished reading it, she lowered the paper slightly and just stared at thin air.
"This….this is a poem…it sounds like something my…my admirer would wright. But why would Spike have one of his…" Rarity said to herself before her eyes widened slightly. She then looked back at the blue box of gems; thinking about how her admirer would know she needed them.
Suddenly, it hit her and her eyes widened all the way. Rarity then turned her head back around and looked down at the poem which was still held up by her magic, she then looked out the doorway to see the empty streets of Ponyville.
"….Spike?..." she whispered to herself as she continued to stand in the middle of her shop in shock and wonder.
That afternoon: racing clouds near Cloudsdale
In the middle of the Equestria skies, hundreds of pegasi sat on large clouds as they waited for the big race to begin. The clouds they sat on looked similar to audience seats that you would see in a stadium. Between those clouds was a cloud that had a checkered banner on it and under the banner was the starting line for the race.
Me, Rainbow Dash and Spitfire were along the starting line warming up so we were ready to begin. Rainbow Dash was doing sit-ups with her front hooves behind her head.
Spitfire was doing stretches
And I was doing push ups but I wasn't using my front hooves to push up, I was using my wings to push up while my front hooves were behind my back
Once we all finished our warm up, we all stood up straight along the starting line. I turned my head to face Spitfire beside me. "So, ready to do this?" I asked.
Spitfire turned her head to face me with a smile. "Yep, don't worry kid! If there's one thing I know, it's racing. Oh, and you're gonna need these." She said before she pulled out a pair of goggles (which looked just like hers) from her suite and placed them on top of my head.
"Thanks Spitfire." I said with a thankful smiled before I used my right hoof to pull the goggles lower until they were over my eyes. Spitfire then gave Rainbow Dash the same type of goggles and she did the same, now we were all wearing goggles over our eyes and we were ready to go.
At that moment, the announcer flew up onto a small cloud above us. He was a light blue Pegasus with a white mane and tail; he was wearing black shades over his eyes and a head-set microphone on his head. "Fillies and gentlecolts, welcome to the race of a life time! One which will prove which team gets to be named the best flyers in Cloudsdale. Now let's hear it for the Wonderbolts!" the announcer yelled.
Everypony then cheered and stomped their hooves on the cloud surface they were standing on.
"Unfortunately, two of the Wonderbolt members were unable to partake in the race, but two other pegasi have volunteered to race for them. So let's hear it for Rainbow Dash and…Matthew?...that's a weird name." the announcer said.
While everypony once again cheered, I groaned slightly in annoyance. "Should have seen that coming." I thought.
"And now, let's meet the team they're flying against! The Soaring Griffons." The announcer yelled before Gilda, Jet and Bane flew down from the sky and landed on the same cloud we were on before they then walked up to the starting line. Gilda then gave us a sharp glare before I glared back.
"Alright racers, listen up! you are to fly through all the ring clouds that have been placed all around Cloudsdale, any racer who misses at least one ring is out of the race completely, so watch where you're flying out there! If all members of a team miss a ring and are taken out of the race, the other team will automatically win. The finish line is on a cloud stage in Cloudsdale, the first one to pass it wins. It is possible that all the members of a team might pass the finish line together, but if any one member of a team passes the finish line first while the others are still somewhere behind, they and their team are officially named…the best flyers in Cloudsdale." the announcer said before the crowd let out a small cheer.
Once the cheering stopped, the announcer looked down at us. "So Wonderbolts, are you ready?"
Spitfire looked up at him with a confident smile. "As ready as we'll ever be."
The announcer then looked over to Gilda and her team. "Soaring Griffons, are you ready?"
"Yeah, yeah, just call it already!" Gilda yelled aggressively before we all got in a ready position.
The announcer just shook his head at Gilda's response before he spoke again. "Ok racers, ready…set…"
Gilda turned her head to me. "Don't slip up out there…dork!" she said coldly. I turned my head to her. "Wouldn't dream of it…skank." I said coldly back.
"…GO!" the announcer yelled at the top of his voice before we all shot off towards the first cloud ring. Once we passed through it, we flew towards the next one and the one after that.
We were all flying as fast as we could, our wings beat harder and harder with every passing minute. At this point, Spitfire and Bane were fighting to take the lead, me and Jet were behind them trying to pass each other, and Rainbow Dash was coming close behind them with Gilda following behind.
After we flew though a number of cloud rings, Gilda got tired of being way behind and flapped her wings to go faster. She the managed to come up behind Rainbow Dash and grabbed her tail with her claw. "Coming though." Gilda said with a devious grin before she gave Rainbow Dash's tail a hard tug; causing Rainbow Dash to be pulled backwards which allowed Gilda to fly a head of her.
"HEY." Rainbow Dash yelled in anger before Gilda gave her a teasing salute and shot off; leaving Rainbow Dash behind with hatred in her eyes as she tried to catch back up with Gilda.
Meanwhile, I was still struggling to fly with Jet ramming himself into the right side of my body. I grew annoyed at this and rammed him back. Suddenly, Gilda appeared on my left side and she rammed herself into me. They both started ramming into my sides one after the other, not only was it annoying, it hurt a bit too.
As we flew though more and more cloud rings, Gilda and Jet were still ramming into me. "I don't get it, they can easily pass me right now and try and take the lead, why are they still trying to throw me off?" I thought to myself.
At that moment, Rainbow Dash managed to catch up with Gilda and she grabbed her shoulders with her hooves. Gilda turned her head around to face Rainbow Dash to see the smirk on her face, she then pulled back on Gilda and leaped over her while still keeping he flight balance; causing Gilda to fall back behind Rainbow Dash.
With Rainbow Dash now by my right side, she gave me a smile and I smiled back, the friendly moment was ruined when Jet once again rammed himself into my right side and I glared at him before I rammed myself into him for a change. Rainbow Dash let out a small growled before she flipped in drill style over to my other side and slammed all her hooves down on top of Jet; pushing him down and causing him to fall behind.
Rainbow Dash looked at me with a smirk on her face before we shared a high-hoof; the small victory was cut short by Gilda suddenly grabbing hold of me and Jet grabbing hold of Rainbow Dash. As we tried to shake out of their grip, they both flew us further apart. As Jet was forcing his claw upon my face and pushing my head away from him, I suddenly noticed we were quickly approaching another cloud ring. But in the state that Jet was holding me in, I was going to crash into the ring itself. I tried to wiggle out of Jet's grip but he had me too tight, I then decided to do something I would regret later, I managed to elbow him right in the face and he let go of me.
As we were getting closer to the ring, I noticed that Gilda was holding Rainbow Dash in the same state as Jet held me and I flew over to them and rammed into Gilda's back; causing her to let out a small grunt and let go of Rainbow Dash. I quickly pulled Rainbow Dash towards me to avoid crashing into the ring before we finally passed through it. We were both breathing heavily as we continued to fly as fast as we could, if we had hit the ring it would mean we would be out of the race and Spitfire would be the only member left.
As we tried to relax, Gilda and Jet took this opportunity to shoot past us. I gave them an angered look as I watched them go ahead of us. "Hey, watch it will ya! You nearly made us crash back there." I yelled before we both flapped our wings harder to catch up.
Meanwhile, Spitfire and Bane were practically wrestling each other for the lead. Most of the time, Bane would try to throw punches at Spitfire only to miss by her quick dodging. At that moment, Gilda and Jet flew up beside her and Jet gave her a devious grin. Jet and Bane then prepared to ram themselves in both of Spitfire's sides. As they attempted, Spitfire flew upwards; Causing Jet and Bane to ram into each other with a loud grunt coming from the two.
Spitfire then dove down from above them until she was in the lead. Gilda then turned her head to Jet and gave him a nod; he then nodded back before he tried to catch up with Spitfire. Once Jet was close enough, he leaded behind her and wrapped his arms around her; causing her wings to become trapped between them and unable to flap. The only thing keeping her up was Jet flying.
Suddenly, we were coming up to a sharp turn but neither Spitfire nor Jet noticed due to Spitfire fighting to get loose of Jet's grip which distracted him. I may have been a bit far behind, but I still noticed this. "Spitfire, look out! There's a turn." I yelled loudly.
Spitfire and Jet looked forward and were surprised by the sudden turn coming closer to them, Jet tried to turn but it was too late. He lost his flight pattern and flew off the turn with Spitfire still in his grasped. Luckily, the pegasi of Cloudsdale placed soft clouds all around the sky for this sort of thing and they both crashed on one safely. But unfortunately, this meant they were both out of the race.
We all managed to get around the turn without any problems, but me and Rainbow Dash were still concerned about Spitfire. As I continued to fly fast, I looked back to see Spitfire and Jet lean up from the cloud. I had the strong urge to go back and check on her, but that would mean I would be out and Rainbow Dash would be alone in the race.
I then felt a hoof on my shoulder and I turned my head around to see Rainbow Dash with a confident smile. "Come on! Let's win this for her!" She said. I smiled back and nodded before we both shot off to catch up with Gilda and Bane.
Half-an-hour later, we were still all in the race and we had already passed a large number of cloud rings and sharp turns, we were getting closer to Cloudsdale and the finish line. At this point, me and Gilda were in the lead while Rainbow Dash and Bane were not far behind us.
We were all struggling to get ahead of the other, Rainbow Dash and Bane kept ramming into each other which almost caused Rainbow Dash to be flung out the race. Bane then suddenly flew right in front of Rainbow Dash and to her surprise, he kicked her right in the face; causing her to let out a loud grunt and fall behind a bit. She then shook off the pain and gave Bane a hatful look. "Hey, what's the big idea?"
Bane then turned his head around to face her before a devilish smile appeared on his face. Rainbow Dash then realized what he was doing and gasped slightly before Bane shot off towards me and Gilda with Rainbow Dash following behind.
Gilda and I were trying to take the lead while giving each other sharp glares. For some reason, Gilda then gave me a deceitful grin and I felt something hard hit my back. I looked up to see Bane flying above me and he pushed himself down and hit me again with both his talon claws.
Suddenly, we were coming up to another cloud ring and Bane grabbed both my sides and threw my aside; causing me to lose control of my flight a bit. Once I got back in control, my eyes widened at the sight of the ring coming closer and I quickly flew back into place; allowing me to fly through the ring and avoid crashing into it. I then look a deep breath before I noticed Gilda and Bane ahead of me.
I saw them grinning at each other before they shared a high-five or a high-talon or whatever you call it. I then realized what they were up to. "They're trying to make us crash." I said to myself before Rainbow Dash shot passed me, I then flapped my wings harder to catch up.
Rainbow Dash and I finally caught up with the two Griffons and we were determined to take the lead from them. I once again had to try and tackle my way through Bane and he was putting up a rough fight. Rainbow Dash was just trying to out-fly Gilda by pushing herself forward.
After a hard struggle, I finally got ahead of Bane. As I was concentrating on my flying, Bane flew high above me and grinned as he bared his sharp talons. I was too busy flying to take any notice but Rainbow Dash saw him and knew he was going fly down and claw at my back. Suddenly, Gilda flew passed her and took the lead.
Rainbow Dash noticed this also and kept looking back and forth from Gilda to Bane as she tried to make a decision. After a second, she finally made one. Rainbow Dash then flew up to Bane and tackled him just as he was about to strike at me.
They were both forced off the race track and crashed softly on another cloud; automatically taking them both out of the race.
As I continued to fly, I looked back to see Rainbow Dash quickly get up back on her hooves. "It's all you now Matt, don't let me slow you down! Go win this thing!" she yelled.
I nodded and turned my attention back to where I was flying and flapped my wings harder to catch up to Gilda who was far in the lead. As Rainbow Dash watched me go, Bane got up and growled in anger before he grabbed a big chunk of cloud in his talons and flew off.
I quickly caught up with Gilda and I flew up beside her, she noticed me and growled. "You just don't know when to quit. Do ya, dweeb?"
I turned my head to face her and smirked. "It'll take a lot more than this to slow me down, Gilda."
"Yeah?...well you're starting to get on my nerves." Gilda said in an annoyed tone.
"Yeah, I have an act for that…..later!" I said before I shot off into the lead; leaving Gilda in surprise before she flapped her wings harder to catch up.
After a while of flying through another set of cloud rings, me and Gilda were once again side-by-side. I was on the right and Gilda was on the left. Gilda tried to throw me off my flight pattern by pushing me, ramming into me and even trying to strike me with her claws. But I just kept pushing back and dodging her claws.
As we were fighting for the lead, Bane flew up along the right side of the race track with the chunk of cloud still in his talons. He let out a devious chuckle before he threw the chunk of cloud towards us. As we continued to fight, Gilda punched me across the face; causing my head to turn and I then noticed the cloud heading towards me.
"Whow." I said out loud before I came to a sudden holt, which led to the cloud accidently hitting Gilda instead of me; causing her to fall back a bit. I then took this opportunity to take the lead from her, Gilda saw me go passed her and she gave Bane a sharp glare before she flew off after me.
With Gilda now behind me and not ramming into me, I could now focus on where I was going. I saw Cloudsdale up ahead but I also saw the cloud rings going downwards, meaning I was supposed to dive down them. As I flew faster towards them, Gilda caught me by surprise by shooting past me and diving down the cloud rings.
I then followed her by diving down the rings also. I could see the last cloud ring at the bottom; it was hovering just above the earth ground. But I feared it may have been too late for me as Gilda had already flew through it and was making her way back up to Cloudsdale.
I then made one big flap to speed me up and dive faster, I suddenly felt like I was breaking through the wind. I didn't have any problems with watery-eyes because of the goggles I had on which protected them. I picked up more and more speed, I was sure that I was going to shoot right past the ring and crash to the ground. I was now coming up to the ring.
And as soon as I hit it, the was a loud BOOM and a large green sonic wave spread out across the air above the ground as I shot back up to the sky while leaving a green trail behind me. I looked down to see the trail coming from behind me and the sonic wave spread out across the land. At that moment, I knew that I performed a Sonic Greenboom and I was proud.
I turned my attention back to the sky to see I was coming up behind Gilda with great speed, I then shot past her; catching her by surprise and throwing her off the flight pattern which lead to her crashing up into a cloud.
With the green trail still coming from behind me, I finally reached Cloudsdale and flew towards the cloud stage with the finish line with the checkered banner and a crowd of pegasi in front of the stage. I shot through the banner and all my hooves skidded across the stage as I landed while standing up straight. I breathed heavily before I heard a loud cheering coming from the crowd.
I looked at the crowd and stared at them for a moment before I waved to them humbly. At that moment, Rainbow Dash and Spitfire finally made it and landed on the stage beside me. The announcer from before then walked up to me, grabbed my left hoof with his and held it up high. "The Wonderbolts win, they have earned the name of Best flyers in Cloudsdale." he said loudly before everypony cheered as loud as they could.
Gilda then finally landed on the stage while breathing heavily and saw us in our victory, she then growled before Bane and Jet landed behind her. Gilda turned around and walked up to Bane. "What did you think you were doing? You almost made me crash, you overgrown doofus." She yelled before she slapped Bane across the face with the back of her claw.
Bane rubbed his cheek as he and Jet quivered in fight. "You losers should be scared or I'll do to you what you two did to Soarin' and Fleetfoot." Gilda said out loud; causing the crowd to gasp loudly.
Spitfire gave her an angered look. "So it was you, I should have known."
"Told you so." I added.
Gilda then huffed before she walked up to us. I then stepped forward to her.
Gilda glared at me. "I don't get it, how were you able to beat me? Rainbow Dash and Spitfire I understand, but how could a scrawny little dork like you manage to not only beat me, but to pull off a Sonic Rainboom as well?"
I smirked and spread my wings out. "All in the wings, baby." I said as I flapped them slightly.
Gilda gave me an irritated look. "What?...all in the-…are you serious?...I don't believe...GRRR, WHATEVER. Cloudsdale is a lame city anyway; I didn't even want to be the best flyer for a city full of a bunch of pathetic little dweeby ponies, I only raced so I could have the chance to humiliate you, Spitfire and Rainbow Dash."
She then grabbed my neck in one claw and pulled me close to her face. "But mark my words, dork!...I won't forget this day for a while. So you'd best watch your back!" she then pushed me away.
I remained silent as Gilda turned around to face Bane and Jet. "Come on, you two idiots!...we're leaving." She said aggressively before she, Jet and Bane took off into the sky and disappeared into the clouds.
"What…a…bitch." I said with my eyes narrow before I turned around to face Rainbow Dash and Spitfire. "Well we showed her, didn't we?" I said.
"Yeah we did, and we all got the name Best flyers in Cloudsdale." Spitfire added.
I let out a small chuckle before I shook my head slightly. "Nah, that title goes to the real Wonderbolts…not us." I said.
Spitfire gave me a confused look. "But, you were the one who crossed the finish line first. You two flew in the race instead of Soarin' and Fleetfoot."
"Hey, we just flew for them. The title basically belongs to them, we just filled their horseshoes." I said with a smirk.
Spitfire then smiled at me. "Oh…very honourable. Thanks ki-…I mean, Matt."
I smiled warmly at her. "I suppose you'll want these back now?" Rainbow Dash said as she pointed to the goggles on her head.
Spitfire turned her head to face her with a smile before she shook her head. "Nah, you keep'em! You both deserve it. There's plenty more where those came from."
Me and Rainbow Dash were surprised by this and looked at each other before we looked back at Spitfire. "Oh thanks Spitfire." I said.
"Well, I think it's safe to say it's time for us to go home. I need a break from flying for a bit." I said before I turned my head to face Rainbow Dash. She nodded. "Yeah, I could use a break right about now."
Spitfire nodded. "Aright then, see you two some other time. We should totally hang out more often."
"Yeah we should, well see ya Spitfire, take care of Soarin' and Fleetfoot alright?" I said as me and Rainbow Dash started walking away.
"Don't worry! I will." Spitfire said before she turned her attention to the crowd of pegasi and waved to them.
As Rainbow Dash and I walked off the stage and headed towards the edge of Cloudsdale, Rainbow Dash turned her head to me. "Gotta admit Matt, you were pretty awesome out there. I even saw that Sonic Rainboom you pulled off."
"Err…that's Sonic Greenboom." I corrected.
Rainbow Dash rolled her eyes. "Ok Matt, sorry to say this but that name is really lame." She said with narrow eyes.
I looked at her with a raised eye brow. "Please, the only thing that was lame was your flying back there. I mean, were you even trying to win, or were you amusing yourself by pretending to be slow and then shooting to the finish line before anyone else could?" I asked with a smirk.
We then reached the edge of Cloudsdale and Rainbow Dash grinned at me. "Maybe I was, maybe I wasn't. Shall we find out?"
I grinned back. "Oh, still got a bit of flying in you huh?" Rainbow Dash then nodded.
"Fine then, first one back to Ponyville wins. We go on 3! Ready?" I asked as I got in a ready position.
Rainbow Dash then got in the same position that I was in. "Ready." She answered.
I then looked forward at the sky. "Alright….3." I quickly yelled before I shot off; catching Rainbow Dash by surprise. "Hey." She yelled before she shot off after me.
While I was flying, Rainbow Dash flew up beside me. "What happened to 1 and 2?" she asked with an amused grin.
I turned my head to face her with a smirk on my face. "Screw 1 and 2! Race ya to the café, last one there has to pay." I said before I flew off ahead of her.
Rainbow Dash then let out a small laugh. "You're so on." she said before she flapped her wings harder to catch up.
Later: Ponyville café
After a long fast flight, I landed in front of the café while breathing heavily. I looked back to see that Rainbow Dash wasn't behind me, I figured she fell behind.
I then smiled proudly. "Ha, two races won in one day. I am on fire." I said to myself before I turned my attention to the café tables and my eyes widened in shock and surprise to see Rainbow Dash sitting by one of tables with a drink in front of her.
She smirked at me. "Well, it's about time you got here. Don't you know it's rude to keep a girl waiting?"
My mouth was hanging wide open. "How did…you were…I was…you didn't…" I tried to say before Rainbow Dash interrupted.
"Oh shut up and take a seat, will ya! And by the way….you're paying for the orders." Rainbow Dash said with an amused smile.
"Aw-oooh." I groaned with my ears slightly low before I walked over the same table that she was sat by and sat by the other side of it. Rainbow Dash laughed slightly in amusement at the sight of this.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
To my readers: To those who are aware, there are some spelling mistakes in some of my past chapters. I just want everypony to know that I have found and fixed some of those mistakes and I will continue to fix other mistakes when I find them.
Please remember to review!
Next chapter will be up soon.
28. Helping the CMC
I'd like to thank the author Najee for giving me the idea for this chapter. This chapter was written for him.
Note to Najee: Hope you enjoy this Brony Bro :D
Chapter 28: Helping the CMC
It's been 2 days since I won the race in Cloudsdale and unfortunately had to pay for the orders Rainbow Dash and I made at the café. Our drinks cost one bit for each, I was fine with that but Rainbow Dash then ordered a large smoothie which cost me another 4 bits.
….4 bits for one freakin' smoothie, it was a damn rip-off.
Ponyville streets
I walking through Ponyville streets with Jeff on my back, I had already finished my deliveries for Applejack and she gave me my usual pay of 100 bits.
Foe the last few days, I'd been saving up for something very special that I was planning to give to Twilight at the Grand Galloping Gala coming next week; I bought it yesterday and hid it somewhere safe in the library where Twilight wouldn't find it.
I smiled as I looked around Ponyville; it was so beautiful when it was really warm and sunny. I breathed in the fresh air through my nostrils before I exhaled through my mouth. "Relaxing day, isn't it Jeff?" I asked as I kept walking.
Jeff was lying face up on my back with his wings behind his head. "Totally dude, I love it when it's this hot. Can you believe it's almost here? The Grand Galloping Gala in all its glory. I gotta tell ya Matt, I'm pretty excited about this. I've never been to a pony gala before….actually; I've never been to any type gala at all. What's it like?" Jeff asked as he continued to look up at the sky.
"Well….it like a big party, only it doesn't play have wild music like disco or anything like that. It's more like a party with fancy dining, VIP sections for honoured guests and posh music, every high-class pony in Canterlot attends it. If you look at it a certain way, it's kinda like a royal ball." I explained the best I could.
Jeff leaned up to look at the back of my head. "Wow, that sounds….really boring. And we're goin'? I mean, we don't like that stuff." she said with a confused look.
I stopped walking and turned my head around to face Jeff. "I know it sounds boring dude, but it's really a very big and popular party. Everypony in town wants to go, but they can't because they don't have tickets. You, me, Twilight and the others are the only ones here who're going." I said before a smirk came on my face.
Besides…when we get there and get settled into the party, it won't be boring for long." I said before I turned my attention back on the path and continued walking.
Jeff raised his eye brow and got up on his feet. "What do ya mean?" he asked curiously.
I looked back at him with the smirk still on my face. "Because we've been ask by the Princess to liven the place up once we get there, it said so in the letter the Princess sent. Remember? The one that came with our tickets.
"Oh yeah, so how do we plan to do that?" Jeff asked curiously.
I tuned my head back to the path while still walking. "Don't you worry about that! I have everything planned. Haha, those high-class ponies are in for a real surprise when we step in."
Jeff raised his eye brow. "Yeah, except you haven't filled me in on any of your plans. How am I supposed to help liven things up when you won't tell me how we're gonna do it?" she said in irritated tone.
"Jeff, we have a week to plan things. We'll go through the plans together, but to be honest, I'm trying to plan more on what I'm going do with Twilight there. I'm going to do something special but I have no idea how I'm going to do it." I said with a slightly worried tone.
"Dose this involve what you bought yesterday? Because I saw you hiding something in the quest room." Jeff said.
I started to walk a bit slower. "Well….kinda, it's something I want to surprise her with. So don't tell her where it is, ok?" I asked in a calm voice.
Jeff then flew off my back and landed in front of me; which made me to stop in my path. "Why dude? What is it? And why do you want to keep it a big secret from Twilight?" he asked as he crossed his wings.
I hesitated to tell him what I was planning; it was a big thing that I didn't really want anypony to know about yet. "I'll tell you, but you have to promise you won't tell anypony about it, especially Twilight." I said in a firm voice.
"Yeah dude, I promise." Jeff said in a normal voice.
"Pinkie promise?" I said still in a firm voice.
Jeff rolled his eyes. "Fine….cross my heart, hope to fly, stick a cupcake in my eye." He sang in a groaning voice as he covered his right eye with his right wing.
I then believed he was true to his word, nopony can break a Pinkie promise. Plus, he's one of my best friends and I trust him. I took a deep breath and prepared to tell him. "Well, when Twilight and I are at the gala…I'm gonna-"
"LOOK OUT!" a female voice yelled; interrupting me.
The moment I turned my head to the direction the voice came from, something ramming into my side and knocking me over onto my back. "Whow, you ok dude?" Jeff asked.
I leaned up while rubbing my head with my hoof. "Yeah, I'm fine. What hit me?" I asked before I searched around for what or who knocked me down. I was then surprised to see Applebloom get up off the ground while rubbing her head, next to her was a wooden skateboard that was lying upside down on the ground and she was wearing a red skateboard helmet.
I got back up onto my hooves and looked down at her. "Applebloom?...are you alright?" I asked in a slightly concerned tone.
"Yeah, I'm alright. Sorry 'bout that Matt." Applebloom said as she looked up at me.
"It's ok." I said before I walked over to her skateboard and used my hoof to flip it over back onto its wheels. I then looked back at Applebloom. "What are you doing anyway?" I asked with a raised eye brow.
Applebloom then walked over to her skateboard and stood up on it. "We're tryin' to see if we could get our cutie marks bein' perfection skateboarders." She explained before the skateboard started shifting back and forth; making it difficult for Applebloom to keep her balance.
"Whow, whow, whoooow." She cried as the skateboard shifted forward and she fell backwards. I quickly caught her on my snout before she could hit the ground; I then gently pushed her back on her hooves.
"Emm, we?" I asked curiously. Before she could answer, I heard a sound behind me that sounded like more skateboards rolling along the ground. I turned my head around to see Sweetie Belle and Scootaloo coming this way on skateboards. However, they were both wobbling on them. They were both wearing skateboard helmets; Sweetie Belle had a light velvet helmet while Scootaloo had a dark blue helmet.
Once they reached us, Scootaloo stumbled off the skateboard but managed to keep herself from falling over while Sweetie Belle continued to slowly move towards me on her skateboard. "Err…I don't think I know how to stop. Little help!...please?" she said as she slowly rolled along past me.
My sight never left her; causing my head to slowly turn as I watched her slowly go by. I didn't worry about being fast enough to stop her because she was going so slow, I just placed of my left hoof on the back of the skateboard and it came to a gentle stop before Sweetie Belle stepped off it.
Sweetie Belle then turned around to look up at me. "Thanks Matt." She said in her sweet little voice. I just smiled warmly down at her. "No problem." I responded.
Scootaloo and Applebloom then walked up to Sweetie Belle. "So much for getting our cutie marks as skateboarders, huh?" Scootaloo said with a slight disappointed look.
Sweetie Belle nodded in agreement. "Yeah, skateboarding probably isn't the best thing for us; it's too wobbly and difficult."
"Not to mention, painful." Applebloom added.
"Girls, you shouldn't push yourselves into doing something dangerous just to get your cutie marks. Don't you think it's better to wait for your talent to come instead of going through all this? Trust me! Your marks will come eventually; you just need to be a little patient before they do. Ya get me?" I said with an honest face.
Applebloom looked up at me. "That's what everypony keeps telling us, but we really want our cutie marks Matt. We're tired of being called blank flanks at school." She said as she looked down at the ground with her ears slightly low.
I couldn't help but feel bad for her and I placed my hoof on her shoulder. "Aww, who calls you something as insensitive as that?" I asked.
Applebloom looked back up at me. "Diamond Tiara and Silver Spoon." She answered with slight sadness in her eyes.
"Oh, that figures." I said in an unsurprised voice. "But you know there's other ways to get your cutie marks besides falling off skateboards, maybe you should try something a little safer." I suggested.
Scootaloo then smiled. "Yeah, maybe we should try wrestling." She said in an excited tone.
"Or house building." Sweetie Belle added.
"Or mountain climbin'." Applebloom added.
I was slightly frightened by these suggestions because I was concerned for their safety. "Whow, those are NOT what I had in mind. I meant something like cooking, or art, or something like that. You know, something not so dangerous." I said hoping they'd agree.
Applebloom tapped her chin with her hoof as she thought about it. "Well….I guess we could try bakin' at Sugar Cube Corner…"
"Hey, maybe Matt could help us get our cutie marks." Sweetie Belle said in excitement.
Scootaloo turned her head to face Sweetie Belle with a large smile on her face. "Yeah, what better pony to help us than the hero of Canterlot?"
A smile then grew on Applebloom's face. "Hey yeah, good thinkin' there Sweetie Belle." She then looked up at me. "You'd you say Matt? Can you come with us?" she said with an excited smile.
My eyes widened slightly in surprise, I wasn't expecting them to want me to go with them. "Oh…err…sorry girls….I'm kinda busy today, I have a lot of planning to do for the Grand Galloping Gala coming soon. I'm really sorry."
Sweetie Belle and Scootaloo then walked up beside Applebloom and they all looked at me with big puppy dog eyes. "Pleeeeese." They said at the same time.
Somehow, I couldn't say no to those eyes. "Oooh…what the hay? I'll help." I said with a small smile.
Their eyes then returned to normal as they all smiled in delight and excitement. "Great, so should we start headin' over to Sugar Cube Corner?" Applebloom asked.
I put my hoof up. "Hold on! We have to go to the library first; I need to pick up some stuff."
"Oh….ok, but let's make it fast!" Scootaloo said before she, Applebloom and Sweetie Belle walked past me and headed to the library. Jeff flew back onto my back and I started following the girls.
Later: library
After arriving at the library, Applebloom, Sweetie Belle and Scootaloo were waiting for me in the front room while I was getting supplies for our day. They passed the time by reading some of the books, they each had a book and Applebloom and Sweetie Belle were taking interest in theirs while Scootaloo wasn't, she was holding up the book she had in one hoof while resting her cheek against the other with a board look on her face.
Meanwhile, I was in the other room placing items that we might need in to my saddle bag. I had already placed inside some apples, a flashlight (in case we stay out too late) and a set of rain-coats (in case it starts to rain or if one of the girls get cold).
Twilight then came into the room with Jeff on her back, she then noticed me packing my saddle bag. She walked up beside me. "Matt, what are you going?" she asked with a confused look on her face.
I turned my head to face her and smiled. "Applebloom and her friends want me to spend the day with them to help them get their cutie marks; I'm just packing stuff we might need while we're out." I explained.
Twilight raised her eye brow in confusion. "That's nice, but how does you being with them help them earn their cutie marks?" She asked.
I shrugged. "I don't know, they wanted me to come with them, I said I was busy, they gave me the big adorable eyes look, I caved in and here I am." I said before I went back to packing my saddle bag. "Huh, what else can I pack in here?" I asked myself while rubbing my chin with my hoof.
Twilight just simply rolled her eyes. "When will these three learn that they have to just be patient and their cutie marks will appear when they're ready?"
I looked back at her and smiled. "I know Twi, but let's play along with them! Who knows, I might end up enjoying myself today." I said before I fastened up my saddle bag and picked it up with my mouth, I then placed it onto my back.
"Alright Matt, you go hang out with the girls, just don't let them do anything dangerous!...you know what they're like." Twilight joked with a smile.
"Don't worry! I won't." I said before I looked at Jeff on her back. "Coming Jeff?" I asked.
"No thanks, I have a lot of things to do today, important things." Jeff said as he crossed his wings.
I looked at him with narrow eyes. "No you don't."
Jeff was silent for a moment before he let out an annoyed sigh. "Ok, I don't. I just don't want to go, all right?" Jeff said as he crossed his wings.
I just rolled my eyes. "Fine, have it your way! I'm going." I said before I walked passed Twilight and Jeff.
I entered the front room and once Scootaloo noticed me, she couldn't put the book down fast enough before she shot up in front of me. Applebloom and Sweetie Belle then joined her. "Alright, so was it Sugar Cube Corner first?" I asked.
Applebloom nodded. "Yeah, you said we should try our luck out on cookin'!"
Sweetie Belle turned her head to face her. "So what are we waiting for? Let's get going!" she said before they all galloped to the door, I smiling in amusement before I followed them calmly.
Once we reached the door, Applebloom opened it and she galloped out the doorway with Sweetie Belle and Scootaloo galloping behind in excitement. I stopped at the doorway and Twilight walked up beside me with Jeff still on her back.
I turned my head to face her. "I'll see ya later Twi. Don't worry; I'll look after the girls."
Twilight nodded. "Ok Matt, be back soon! Alright?"
I gave her a small smile. "Ok, love ya Twi."
Twilight smiled warmly at me. "I Love you too, Matt." She said before she gave me a small kiss on my cheek.
"Awwww." Applebloom and Sweetie Belle said with big smiles as they watched us. "Eeeewww." Scootaloo moaned in disgust.
"I know how you feel Scoot; it gets me like that every time." Jeff said with narrow eyes.
"Can we just go to Sugar Cube Corner already? It feels like we've been here forever." Scootaloo said in a slightly frustrated tone.
I looked down at her and chuckled slightly. "Ok, little miss pushy. We can go now if all of you are ready."
Applebloom, Sweetie Belle and Scootaloo then grew large smiles. "CUTIE MARK CRUSADERS QUEST WITH MATTHEW, YAY." They all yelled together before they shot off into town.
My eyes widened slightly as this caught me by surprise, I turned my head to face Twilight. "Well, I guess I'm going. I'll be back later Twi." I said before I galloped after the Crusaders. "Hey, wait for me!" I yelled.
Twilight just shook her head in amusement before she walked back into the inside the library and closed the door behind her.
Sugar Cube Corner
After finally catching up with the girls, we all arrived at Sugar Cube Corner.
We all then walked inside. While the Crusaders looked around the shop; admiring all the delicious looking food, I walked up to the counter to see there was nopony behind it. I stood in front of the counter and looked around before I used my hoof to ring the small bell on the counter.
At that moment, Miss Cake walked in through the swinging doors before she noticed me in front of the counter. She then walked up to the counter with a smile on her face. "Oh, well hello Matthew. Can I help you?" she asked politely.
I nodded. "Yeah, is Pinkie Pie here?" I asked.
"Yes, I think she's in the kitchen. If you want to see her, feel free to go in." Miss Cake said kindly.
I smiled at this. "Alright thanks." I said before I turned my head around to see Applebloom, Sweetie Belle and Scootaloo still admiring the food. "Come on you three! We're going in the kitchen." I said before I walked around the counter. "Thanks again, Miss Cake. Say hi to Mr Cake for me!"
"Oh I will." Miss Cake said as she watched me go passed her.
"Comin'." Applebloom said as she, Sweetie Belle and Scootaloo followed me towards the kitchen. Once we were in the kitchen, I looked around to see that nopony was here. "Wired, Miss Cake said Pinkie was in here. Guess we'll have to wait for her." I said before we all sat down at the kitchen table.
Applebloom, Sweetie Belle and Scootaloo then then started talking amongst themselves "Did you see all that food back there? Cupcakes, ginger-bread ponies, it all looks awesome." Scootaloo said.
"I know, I still can't believe Pinkie Pie actually lives here, she's so lucky." Sweetie Belle said.
Applebloom then looked at her with a raised eye brow. "Speakin' of which, where is Pinkie Pie anyway? She should have been here by now" she asked as she looked around the shop.
I started to think that myself so I looked around as well. "Huh, I don't know, she's usually here. In fact, this is usually the time were she jumps out of nowhere and yells-"
"SURPRISE." A happy toned voice yelled behind me; causing me to let out a loud yelp in fright. I held my hoof to my heart as I turned my head around to see Pinkie Pie laughing loudly.
"Damn it Pinkie, what are you trying to do? Give me a heart attack? Because I don't need one of those." I said in a slightly angered tone.
Pinkie Pie then stopped laughing but the smile was still on her face. "Sorry Mattie, I couldn't resist. You were there, the opportunity came up, and I took it. I hope I didn't scare you too much."
I then tried to calm down by taking deep breaths. "It's ok Pinkie…..I'm alright…." I said between breaths before I finally calmed down. "So anyway, can I ask you something Pinkie?" I said.
Pinkie Pie's smile grew. "Sure Mattie, I love questions. Especially when they're questions in a knock-knock joke." She said while jumping up and down on the spot.
"Ok, well the girls want to try and earn their cutie marks by cooking something. Do you mind if we try to make something here?" I asked.
Pinkie's smiled then grew even larger. "Sure, I can even help. Wait here! I'll get a cook book! She said before she shot out of the kitchen. After a few seconds, she shot back in with a book in her mouth.
She then placed it down on the table before she used her hoof to flip through the pages until she stopped on a page with cupcakes on it. "Oh, oh, let's make these!" she said in excitement.
We all looked at the page before Applebloom looked at Pinkie Pie. "Didn't I try to make cupcakes once before?" she asked.
Pinkie Pie nodded. "Yep, but there's always time for a second try, right?"
Applebloom then looked back down at the book before she made her decision. "Well…I guess there's no harm in tryin' it again." she said with a voice that sounded like she was unsure.
"Hmm…yeah, I'm alright with doing it." I said.
"Ok, wait here again! I'm gonna get you guys some chef hats." Pinkie Pie said before she shot out of the room again.
"Chef hats?...yeah, I can already see this going bad." I thought with narrow eyes.
A few minutes later, me and the Crusaders were standing in a line with chef hats on our heads. "I can't believe I'm wearing this thing." I thought with an unexcited look on my face.
Pinkie Pie walked left and right in front of us while talking like a general would do, mostly because she was acting like one. "Alright team; we have a mission in this kitchen. It is important that we stick to the task and stay focused, there is no room for weakness in this kitchen, and there is no room for failure." She said in a firm voice.
I then looked at her with a raised eye brow. "Pinkie, we're just making cupcakes. What's with the army talk?" I asked.
Pinkie Pie suddenly pushed her face against mine. "There's no room for questions either, Mister." She said as I was forced to look into her big blue eyes. She then pulled her face away and continued pacing; leaving me a bit stunned and….slightly frightened. I then shook it off and continued watching Pinkie Pie.
"So team; are you ready?" Pinkie Pie asked as she stopped pacing. We all then nodded. "Alright then, dismiss!" she said before we all split up to different parts of the kitchen to begin.
Applebloom read the recipe, Sweetie Belle collected the ingredients when they were needed and Scootaloo poured the mixer into the paper cases. Unfortunately, it was a messy job. I didn't blame them of cause, but the girls didn't really know how to work things right or to be careful.
When Applebloom put the bowl of batter under the mixer, she left it on full-blast and batter flung out of the bowl; making a mess on the table the machine was on.
Sweetie Belle sometimes made a mess when she was gathered the ingredients, like when she had to drag a sack of flour over to the others. She grabbed the sack with her mouth and dragged it over. However, she didn't notice that some flour was leaking out from a hole in the back of the sack.
And after they made the batter and placed the paper cases on the 12 cup cake tray, Scootaloo tried to pore it in with the bowl in her hooves, but she sometimes missed the paper cases and accidently spilled some batter onto the tray.
Meanwhile, I was sitting by the kitchen table with Pinkie Pie, I thought that the girls would want to try doing things themselves, seeing how they wanted to earn their cutie marks by themselves. So I just watch and waited to help the girls when they ask me to.
After a few minutes, the Crusaders were all staring at the oven while waiting for their cupcakes to cook. It wasn't long until the oven made a ping noise; the girls smiled in excitement before Applebloom pulled down the oven door and grabbed an oven-mitt in her mouth. She then reached into the oven and pulled out the hot tray of steaming cupcakes.
However, the cupcakes looked black and crusty. Applebloom placed them on the floor and she, Sweetie Belle and Scootaloo looked down at them in disappointment. "Oh, not again." Applebloom said.
I then walked up to them. "Hey, it alright girls, they…don't look that bad….anyway, it's not how they look, it's how they taste that matters, right?" I said hoping to liven up their spirits.
Sweetie Belle then grew a confident smile. "Yeah, Matt's right. Here, I'll go first." She said before she leaded her to the burnt cupcakes and took a bite out of one.
"So, how are they?" Scootaloo asked curiously before Sweetie Belle's eyes widened and she held her hoof against her mouth as if she was trying to hold back vomit. "They're…fine…one second!" she said before she shot past me and out the back door before she made a puking sound.
She then walked back in with an ill look on her face. "Like I said…fine…" she said before she held her stomach while groaning.
Applebloom and Scootaloo then looked at each other. "Maybe cookin' isn't right for us after all." Applebloom said. Scootaloo nodded in agreement before she and Applebloom too their chef hats off and placed them aside.
"What are you talking about?" I heard Pinkie say behind me, I turned my head around to see her eating the burnt cupcakes. "These are great, do you mind coming back and making more sometime?" she asked before she went back to eating the cupcakes.
"Err...I think we're gonna lay off cooking for a while. Let's try something else!" Scootaloo said as she walked past Sweetie Belle and out the door with Applebloom following. "Yeah, I kinda figured we wouldn't be any good at it." she added.
I then followed them with Sweetie Belle behind me with sick look on her face; leaving Pinkie Pie who was still eating the burnt cupcakes with a smile on her face.
Ponyville Streets
We were now walking through the streets looking for something else to do, Sweetie Belle looked a little better but she says her stomach still feels bad. Being caring, I decided to watch over her for the rest of the day in case she felt sick again.
"Well that didn't go as well as I expected." Scootaloo said with her head handing as we walked.
"I know, I mean, how hard can it be to make simple cupcakes?" Sweetie Belle added with her head hanging also.
I then walked up beside them. "Don't worry, girls! I'm sure there's plenty of other things to do around tow-UNF." I couldn't finish my sentence as I bumped into something which caused me to stumble back a bit with my eyes closed.
I shook my head before I opened my eyes to see a bunch of envelopes lightly falling to the ground around me like snow. I then noticed a grey pony sitting on the ground in front of me with a light brown mailbag over its head.
I then walked up to the pony. "Oh, sorry about that. Let me get that off!" I said before I grabbed the top of the bag with my mouth and pulled it off the pony's head. I then looked at the pony and I recognized her as Derpy who was looking at me….at least I think she was looking at me; it was hard to tell with those crossed-eyes.
I was slightly surprised to see her now; I've never seen her while I've been living here. I then hooked the handle of the mailbag onto my hoof so I could speak. "Oh, it's you….Derpy, right?" I asked.
Derpy then got back onto her hooves. "Yep, that's me…" she said before I gave her mailbag back to her. She then grabbed the handle with her mouth before she threw the handle over her head and it landed on her shoulder so she was wearing it right.
I smiled. "Well, it's nice to meet you. I'm Matthew, I don't know if you've hear of-"
"Of cause I've heard of you, who hasn't?" Derpy interrupted. She then took my hoof in both of her's and shook it up and down really fast. "I can't believe I'm finally meeting you, I'm your biggest fan, Matthew."
I gave her a small smile. "Really? That's cool; you've got quite a grip." I said while looking down at her hooves still shaking mine.
"Oh, sorry." Derpy said before she released my hoof. "No problem, let me help you pick up these letters!" I said before I lowered my head down and started to pick up the fallen letters one by one.
Derpy smiled. "Wow, you're just as nice as they say you are."
I couldn't help but chuckle at her comment. "Well, I do try." I muffled while holding a few letters in my mouth. Applebloom, Sweetie Belle and Scootaloo started to help pick up the letters and place them into Derpy's bag. "There you go, Derpy. Sorry for the bump." I said.
Derpy just kept smiling. "That's ok; I hit my head on stuff lots of times." She said.
I then got an idea on how to help Derpy and the girls. "Hey Derpy, do you want help delivering those? The girls here want to earn their cutie marks in….well, pretty much anything."
Derpy then nodded. "Sure, that would be awesome."
I then turned my head to face the Crusaders with a smile. "What do you think, girls? Want to see if you can get cutie mark being mail-ponies?"
Applebloom, Sweetie Belle and Scootaloo then looked at each other with large smiles. "CUTIE MARK CRUSADERS MAIL CALL, YAY." They yelled.
After that, I rubbed the inside of my left ear with my left hoof in slight pain. "I'll take that as a yes."
Meanwhile: Library
Twilight was lying on a cushion on the floor while using her magic to hover a book in front of her. While she was reading, Jeff and Peewee were playing chess on the table across the room.
The room was quiet, the only sounds that were heard was Twilight turning the ages of her book and the two birds moving their chess pieces. Jeff then looked over to Twilight. "Sooo…this is what you do all day? Sit around reading books?" he asked in a bored tone.
Twilight didn't take her eyes off the book. "….Yep…" she answered.
"You just study all day?...nothing else?" Jeff asked with the same tone.
"….Nope…" Twilight answered with her eyes still glued to the book.
Jeff then let out a bored sigh before he looked back at the chess board. "It's your move, Peewee." He said.
(Seeing how he was small.) Peewee walked onto the board and picked up one of his bishops and took one of Jeff's pieces; leaving Peewee with a smirk and Jeff wide-eyed. "That's a good move...I can't believe it, I'm losing to a baby bird." Jeff said out loud.
Suddenly, there was a knock on the door that got all their attention. Twilight placed the book down, got up off the cushion and walked towards the door. Once she got there, she used her magic to open the door to reveal Rarity.
Twilight smiled. "Oh, hi Rarity. I'm surprised to see you here, what's up?"
Rarity had a slight nervous look on her face. "Well, there is something rather….up." she said as she walked through the doorway; passing Twilight.
Twilight then gave her a concerned look once she noticed the sound of her voice and closed the door. "Is something wrong?" she asked.
Rarity walked to the centre of the room and looked around. "Em, well there's nothing wrong per say. I'd just call it a curious thought."
Twilight raised her eye brow in confusion. "Oh? Well, can I help in any way?"
Rarity turned around to face her. "Oh no, I just need to see Spike. Is he here by any chance?"
Twilight shook her head slightly. "No, he went out to buy new scrolls. We keep running out for some reason and I don't know why."
Jeff then looked over to the two ponies. "Really Twilight? You don't know why? Are you bein' serious?" she said with a raised eye brow.
Twilight then looked over to him with a slightly irritated look. "Shouldn't you be focusing on your game?" she said. Jeff then groaned before he turned his attention back to the chess board in front of him.
Twilight then turned her attention back to Rarity. "Why do you want to see Spike?" she asked curiously.
Rarity then grew nervous. "I…err…I just wanted to know if he's….err…" Rarity was trying to think of something to say before she came up with something. "If he's going to accompany us at the Grand Galloping Gala." She said.
Twilight gave her a confused look. "Yeah, a cause he's going. He has a ticket, remember?"
Rarity then laughed nervously. "Oh, of cause. It's been bothering me all day, you see. I wouldn't want to leave the little sweetie here all alone, after all. But I feel better now that I know he's coming."
Twilight then came closer to her with a serious look. "That's not the only thing that was bothering you, is it?"
Rarity then looked at the ground before she let out a sigh; she then looked back up to Twilight with her ears slightly low. "Twilight, I want to tell you something, but you have to promise not to tell anypony!"
Twilight nodded. "Sure Rarity, I promise."
Rarity gave her a slight serious look. "Pinkie promise?"
Twilight nodded again. "Cross my heart, hope to fly, stick a cupcake in my eye." She said as she covered her eye with one of her front hooves; without poking her eye this time.
Rarity then took a deep breath before she spoke. "I…I think I know who my secret admirer is. You know, the one who's been sending me all those gifts and poems."
Twilight then grew a large smile. "That's great Rarity, who is it? Is it somepony I know?" she asked.
Rarity's eyes went slightly wide. "Oh no, what do I tell her? I can't tell her I suspect Spike, she'll probably think that would be just weird. Calm yourself, Rarity! Just say something that won't give it away!" she thought as she started to sweat.
"Well….sort of, but that's just the point, I don't really know if this…errr…boy is my admirer, it's just a hunch that I have. I don't know what to do Twilight, should I wait for him to tell me up front? Or ask him myself? Because if I do ask him and he says he's not my admirer, not only will it embarrass me, it'll embarrass poor little Spi-….I mean, the poor dear also. Oh Twilight, what ever should I do?" Rarity asked; hoping Twilight didn't hear her almost say Spike's name.
Twilight thought about it for a moment before she spoke. "Well, I think you should give it a shot and ask him. But if you're really unsure, maybe you should wait a little longer until you have enough evidence that proves he's your admirer."
Rarity then walked over to the table that Jeff and Peewee were on and looked down at their game. "Hmm…maybe I should do that; I wouldn't want to go jumping to conclusions about something like this."
Twilight gave her a small smile. "Exactly, and don't worry! I'm sure the truth will come eventually. And who knows, maybe he'll step up and tell you himself." She said hoping to make it easier for her.
Rarity then turned her head around to face her. "You're absolutely right, Twilight. I just need to be patient until I find out for sure who he is, or until he tells me himself. Either way, I'll find out who he is."
Rarity then looked back down at Jeff and Peewee's chess board before her horn glowed and one of Peewee's pieces moved to a different square. "Check-mate." She said with a giggly smile before she trotted towards the front door; leaving Peewee with a joyed smile and Jeff with his beak hanging wide.
"Thank you ever so much, Twilight. I feel much better now." Rarity said as she trotted out the doorway and into the streets.
Twilight then walked over to the doorway and watched Rarity go. "You're welcome." She called as she watched Rarity disappear into the streets. "I guess." she said to herself with a raised eye brow before she used her magic to close the door.
As Twilight walked back over to her cushion to continue reading her book, Jeff was still stunned by his sudden loss. "How the hay did this happen?" He asked out loud.
Peewee chuckled. "Guess I was just lucky, huh?"
"But you didn't make the move; it was…." Jeff then decided to give it up and admit defeat "Ah, to heck with it! Chess is a dull game anyway, let's play something else!" he groaned with his wings crossed.
Twilight heard this and giggled silently in amusement before she used her magic to turn to the next page of her book.
Meanwhile: Fluttershy's cottage
After Derpy had gotten us all our own mailbags and delivered a few letters to a small number of houses, Me, Derpy and the Crusaders approached Fluttershy's cottage.
Once we got close enough, we all stopped and Derpy shoved her head into her mailbag and pulled out a few letters in her mouth. She then walked across the bridge and up to the cottage. "Hey Derpy, wait up! I might as well see Fluttershy while we're here." I said before I looked down at the Crusaders. "You three stay here! I'll be back in a minute." I said before I followed Derpy.
The Crusaders the sat down on the ground and each of them let out a big sigh. "Oh, this is so boring." Scootaloo moaned.
Applebloom looked over to her. "I know, remember when I once said I would do anythin' to get my cutie mark? Well I take that back now."
"Come on girls, it's not that bad. Sure, it's not the most interesting thing in the world, but it's better than sitting around doing nothing." Sweetie Belle stated.
"But we are sittin' around doin' nothin', how are we supposed to earn our cutie marks like this?" Applebloom asked.
Sweetie Belle then lowered her head and shook her mailbag off her body. Once it fell off, she looked down at it. "Maybe we can go to the other houses and deliver their letters while Matt and Derpy finish up here." She suggested.
Scootaloo then nodded. "Yeah, let's do that! If we're gonna earn our cutie marks, we have to do things ourselves." She said before she and Applebloom lowered their heads and their mailbags fell to the ground as well. They each then shoved their faces into their bags and searched around in them.
Meanwhile, Derpy opened Fluttershy's mailbox with her hoof before she placed the letters inside and closed the mailbox, she then pushed her hoof on the mailbox flag until it was pointing upwards. Once she was done with that, I then walked up to the door of Fluttershy's cottage and knocked on it.
After a few seconds, the door opened to reveal Fluttershy, she then smiled once she saw it was me. "Hello Matt, what brings you by?" she asked kindly.
I then smiled back. "Nothing, just thought I'd say hi while dropping off your mail."
Fluttershy then looked over to her mailbox to see the mail flag up and Derpy standing next to it. "Hi Fluttershy." Derpy said as she waved her hoof.
Fluttershy then looked back to me with a raised eye brow. "But Matt, I thought you delivered supplies for Applejack." She then gasped slightly before she gave me a concerned look. "Oh no, did you get fired? Did you quit? What happened?"
I chuckled slightly. "Fluttershy, calm down! I didn't get fired and I didn't quit, I still work for Applejack. I'm just helping Applebloom, Sweetie Belle and Scootaloo earn their cutie marks by delivering mail."
Once Fluttershy heard those names, she giggled slightly. "Well, you'd better be careful! Those girls can be quite the hoof full. Believe me!"
While I was talking to Fluttershy, the Crusaders were still looking through their bags. "Find any letters for the next house, Applebloom?" Sweetie Belle asked.
"No, keep lookin'!" Applebloom responded before she went back to digging through her mailbag.
"Ah-ha." Scootaloo said before she pulled her head out of her bag with a letter in her mouth. "Found one." She muffled. Just then, the wind blew hard and the letter slipped out of her mouth and blew away in the wind.
Applebloom and Sweetie Belle tried to catch it, but they weren't fast enough. "Hey, get back her, you!" Applebloom called before she, Sweetie Belle and Scootaloo chased after it. The letter was blown past Fluttershy's chicken pen and straight into the Ever Free Forest. And without hesitation, the girls went in after it.
Meanwhile, I was still with Fluttershy. "So you haven't had any problems with the girls yet?" Fluttershy asked curiously.
I shook my head. "Nope, no problem at all. I know the girls can sometimes be a hoof full, but today they're being little angels." I said.
I then turned my head around and looked across the bridge, only to see that the girls were gone. "Oh, where'd the little monsters go now?" I yelled in frustrated tone.
Fluttershy then looked at the spot I was looking at. "Where are they?" she asked in a worried tone.
"I don't know, they were there a minute ago." I answered.
"Err; is this a bad time to tell you that I saw the girls chase one of the letters into the Ever Free Forest?" Derpy said.
"THEY WHAT?" me and Fluttershy yelled in shock. "Derpy, why didn't you say anything sooner?" I asked.
"I didn't want to be rude." Derpy answered.
I then face-hooved myself before I looked back at Fluttershy. "I have to go after them before something bad happens to them, stay here in case they come back!" i said to her, Fluttershy then nodded.
I then turned my head to face Derpy. "Derpy, you stay here and….be Derpy!" I said before she nodded, I still couldn't tell if she was looking at me with those crossed eyes of hers.
I then quickly turned around and galloped away, I galloped across the bridge and headed towards the chicken pen were the path to the forest was. "Be careful, Matt! The forest is really dangerous." I heard Fluttershy call out.
I turned my head around while I was continuing to gallop forward. "I'm always careful." I called back with a smirk, but my words were proven wrong when I accidently galloped into a small tree. "I'm ok." I said in a daze.
I then shook off the daze and galloped around the tree, past the chicken pen and up to the entrance of the Ever Free Forest. I looked at the forest in awe before I took a deep breath and galloped into the darkness.
Later:inside the Ever Free Forest
Even in the day, it was dark inside the Ever Free Forest. I'm not going to lie; I was creeped out by not only the darkness, but the weird sounds. I heard twigs snap even though there wasn't any in my path, owl's hooting and what sounded like moaning in the wind. I was also stunned by the trees, the hollows formed faces. It was as if they were watching me, this truly was the most terrifying place in Ponyville.
But that wasn't going to stop me from bring the girls home safely. I spent what felt like an hour searching for the Crusaders but I didn't find any sign of them, I was starting to fear the worst.
I tried shouting their names but I didn't get any response. "Oh this is bad, this is very bad. I can't find them anywhere. I wish there was an easier way to do this." I thought. At that moment, I realized something. "Duh, I'm a Pegasus; I'll just fly above the forest to look for them." I said to myself.
I then flapped my wings and took off into the air. Once high enough, I flew along above the forest while looking down at it to see if I could find the girls. After a few minutes, still nothing.
Just then, I saw what looked like a hut up ahead. I figured it must be Zecora's hut, seeing how she's the only one who lives in this forest. I then flew down to it and landed in front of the window. I looked through it and I was relieved to see Applebloom, Sweetie Belle and Scootaloo inside.
I then galloped over to the front door and burst through it; surprising the girls and Zecora. "This gets old more and more, for ponies keep bursting through my door." She said.
I ignored he comment and walked up to the girls. "Girls, are you alright? Are you hurt in anyway?" I asked in concern.
Applebloom looked at me in confusion. "No, we're fine. What's got you so huffed up?"
I then exhaled in relief. "All of you do me a favour, never do that again! You all had me worried sick." I said in a firm voice.
The girls then hung their heads in sadness. "We're sorry, Matt." Applebloom said. "Yeah, sorry." Scootaloo added.
"We were trying to catch a letter that blew away in the wind but….we kinda lost it." Sweetie Belle said.
"Not to mention, we lost our way back to town. But I knew how to find Zecora's place, so we all came here until somepony came lookin' for us." Applebloom explained.
After hearing this, I calmed down and shook my head. I then smiled before I sat down and opened my arms to let the girls in for a hug, the girls then gave me small smiles before they walked up to me and we all shared a warm group hug. "I'm just glad you're all safe." I said calmly.
We then broke the hug and Zecora walked up to us, she then looked at me as if she was examining my face. "My dear pony, you gave me such a fright. For you are not a familiar sight." She said to me.
I then realized what she meant and I smiled sheepishly. "Oh, sorry if I startled you when I barged in like that." I then stuck my hoof out to her. "I'm Matthew, but most ponies call me Matt."
Zecora didn't shake my hoof; instead a small smile grew on her face. "Your name is Matthew, you say? Oh, how long I've waited for this day."
I then placed my hoof back on the floor. "What? You've heard of me too?" I asked in surprise.
Zecora nodded slightly. "Your victory in Canterlot is very well known, when you stopped the evil Thorn from stealing the royal throne. For it was that night which began your fame, despite the fact of your weird name."
Once I heard that, I narrowed my eyes in annoyance. "Great, now even Zecora's saying that." I thought. I then forgot about that and calmed myself down before I spoke. "Well, I was just doing what was right." I then looked out of the window and noticed the sun going lower; I then turned my head around to face the Crusaders. "It's getting dark; we'd better head back to town."
Zecora then nodded in agreement. "Yes, it's time for you to head home. For it is at night when the dangerous creatures roam."
I then walked towards the door with Applebloom, Sweetie Belle and Scootaloo following behind. "See ya, Zecora. You should come into town some time." Applebloom said as we left the hut.
As we walked away, Zecora walked up to her doorway to see us off. "Remember, young fillies. To earn your cutie mark, you must take things slow and steady. Then you will get your marks when you are ready."
"We will…" the girls groaned before I stopped in front of them.
I then lowered my body down to them. "We'll get there faster if I fly us there, climb on my back!" I said before the girls climbed onto my back and I took off into the skies above the trees with Zecora waving us goodbye.
Streets of Ponyville
After a short flight, I landed back in Ponyville and the Crusaders climbed off my back. I then looked down at them with a serious look. "Now girls, I don't want you doing that again, you could have gotten yourselves hurt. What would I do if that happened?"
"We know, Matt. And we're mighty sorry; we promise we won't go into the forest unless we have somepony with us." Applebloom said.
I then gave her a proud smile and ruffled the top of her head with my hoof. "Good, now I think it's time we all call it a day."
Applebloom and Scootaloo then let out small sighs before they nodded in agreement. Just then, they heard a groan from Sweetie Belle. I looked over to her to see she had a sickly look on her face with her arms wrapped around her stomach. "Sweetie Belle, are you alright?" I asked in concern.
She looked up at me. "I…I think those bad cupcakes are…coming back on me." she answered weakly before she placed her left hoof over her mouth.
I then walked up to her. "That ain't good. Come on, Sweetie! I'll take you to Rarity's." I said before I lowered myself down to let Sweetie Belle climb on my back. Once she was on, I carefully started making my way to Rarity's boutique with Applebloom and Scootaloo following behind.
Meanwhile: Canterlot Castle
Celestia was in the ballroom watching her maids put up decorations for the Grand Galloping Gala. Just then, Luna walked in and sat beside her sister. "You wanted to see me, Sister?"
Celestia looked down at her with a smile. "Yes, I wanted to ask you if you would join us at the Gala this year."
Luna was slightly surprised by this offer. "You want me to come?...well…I'm not sure."
"It would mean a lot to me if you came. Everypony's excited about it, even Twilight, Matthew and their friends are excited about coming." Celestia said.
Once Luna heard what she said, her eyes widened slightly. "Matthew? You mean...he's coming to the Gala?"
Celestia nodded, Luna secretly grew excited but her face didn't show it. She then smiled up at Celestia. "You know, maybe I will come. Seeing is how they're all going to be here, I might as well join them, it'll be like a friend reunion."
Celestia's smile grew. "That's great news, Luna. I look forward to seeing you here."
"Yes…well, I must go. I have to raise the moon before it gets too late." Luna said as she backed away towards the door while Celestia continued to watch her maids decorate.
As Luna walked down the long hallway, she couldn't help but smile in excitement. "This is wonderful; Matthew's going to the Gala. It'll be the perfect place to tell him how I feel." She thought as she trotted down towards the castle lobby.
That night: Library
After taking Sweetie Belle to Rarity's place and escorting Scootaloo and Applebloom back to their homes, I got back to the library and I was beyond ready for bed.
I went up the stairs to see Spike in his basket and Twilight sleeping on our bed; I quietly walked up to the bed and got in under the covers beside Twilight. At that moment, she slowly opened her eyes and saw me next to her. "Where have you been all day?" she asked in a sleepy voice.
"Hmm…you know…helping the girls get their cutie marks, no luck by the way….met Zecora for the first time….cooked with Pinkie Pie." I said with my eyes closed as I tried to sleep.
Twilight closed her eyes again and yawned. "That sounds good…what else did you do?" she asked as she slowly drifted back to sleep.
As I started drifting to sleep as well, I thought about what else I did today and a shocking fact hit me like a lightning bolt and my eyes shot wide open. "Holy crap, I forgot Derpy." I said out loud.
Meanwhile: Fluttershy's cottage
Derpy was still sitting beside Fluttershy's mailbox waiting for me to come back; she then looked left and right. "Matt?...girls?...anypony?" she called.
Just then, Fluttershy opened her door to see Derpy. She let out a large yawn before she spoke. "Derpy, what are you still doing here? It's the middle of the night."
Derpy then turned her head it face her. "Waiting for Matt to come back." She answered.
Fluttershy then raised her eye row in confusion. "But…Matt's probably gone home by…." She then decided to not try and she let out a small sight. "Would you like to spend the night here, Derpy?"
Derpy then grew a large smile. "Yeah, that'd be great." She said before she trotted past Fluttershy and into her cottage. Fluttershy then let out another sigh before she gently closed her front door and went back to bed with Derpy as her guest.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
Note to readers: Hey everypony, I'm gonna make a contest for all of you. Whoever sends my 205th review, they will win the right to know what the next villain song will be. Guest reviews can't win because quests don't have profiles so I can't send PM's or reply to their reviews, so sorry to the guest readers. Good luck.
Please remember to review!
Next chapter will be up soon. If not soon, then the 25th of September. Depends on how quick it's done.
29. At the Gala
Hey everypony, guess what! It's the 25th of September and It's my Birthday today :D
I'm now 17, somepony call Pinkie Pie! XD
I've managed to get this chapter done in time for this day, I'm glad too.
I had to change some of the lyrics in both of the songs I used in this chapter so they would match the story.
This is the first chapter in the story to have 2 songs.
Warning: Long chapter.
Chapter 29: At the Gala
It's been a weak since I assisted the Cutie Mark Crusaders, and it was finally time for the Grand Galloping Gala.
Of cause, I had to apologize to Derpy for what happened. But she said she wasn't upset with me and she's still my biggest fan.
Road towards Canterlot
It was a cool night; the cloudless sky was filled with bright stars and Luna's full moon shined down on us.
Twilight had used her magic to make a carriage out of an apple, and Rarity had no problem using her charm to persuade two colts to pull the carriage for us.
I was sitting in the carriage with Twilight and the rest of the main 6. I was wearing the same tuxedo that I wore to the Ponyville dance, and Twilight and the others were wearing their original Gala dresses. And if I may say, they all looked stunningly beautiful, especially Twilight.
Peewee was sitting beside me and he was wearing a small black bow tie, Jeff was wearing a black bow tie as well but he was outside with Spike.
Spike was wearing a tuxedo as well; he was once again outside sitting on the driver's seat as our coachman, or in this case a coach-dragon. Jeff was sitting beside him, but they kept arguing over who should drive; which eventually lead to the two fighting, but we just ignored it.
I had what I bought for Twilight hidden in my tux pocket, I quietly patted it with my hoof as I listened to Twilight and the others talk about the Gala.
"This is gonna be so much fun." Pinkie Pie said with excitement.
"Yeah, but I hope this goes better than last time. I didn't sell much back then; all I sold was an apple-pie and two apple-fritters." Applejack stated.
Rarity gave her an honest smile. "Not to worry, Applejack. We'll each bye something from your stand when we're ready. Right?" she said before we all nodded.
"Well, I know my time here will go better. Since the race in Cloudsdale, I've become more connected with the Wonderbolts. They're bound to hang out with me this year." Rainbow Dash said.
"And I'm sure the Princess will find some time for us to spend together. We never got to talk much last time." Twilight added.
As the girls talked amongst themselves, I was staying quiet while feeling nervous about my plans with Twilight. "How am I gonna do this? We'll have to go somewhere private so we can be alone, of cause. But it's how I'm gonna get her alone which is the problem, she'll probably want to spend some time with Celestia first. I'll have to wait for the right time, I guess." I thought.
Suddenly, I felt the carriage come to a stop; meaning we had arrived at Canterlot. The carriage door opened; revealing Spike behind it before he stepped aside to let us out, Jeff was on his shoulder. Twilight and the others were the first to exit the carriage before I followed with Peewee on my back.
Once I was out of the carriage, I looked at the castle as fireworks shot out from the roofs and exploded high in the sky. "Whow, this is even better than how it was in the show." I said quietly to myself.
Applejack then started walking down the path towards the castle before she looked back at us. "Come on, ya'all! We got a party to get to." She said in an excited tone before she continued walking.
Everypony began to follow her accept for Twilight; I walked up beside Twilight and she turned her head to see the smirk on my face. "Shall we?" I said.
Twilight then giggled slightly. "We shall." She said before we both followed the others by each other's side.
Canterlotcastle grounds
As Twilight and I walked through the main gates of the castle, we saw that Rover, Fido and Spot were standing beside the front double doors of the castle. They apparently were in charge of checking the tickets before anypony entered, they were each wearing a red bell-hop hat and I couldn't help but snicker at the sight of them.
The rest of the main 6, Spike, Jeff and Peewee give their tickets to Rover and they walked inside the castle. Me and Twilight then walked up to Rover before he looked down at me with a raised eye brow. "Oh, it's you again."
"Yeah, it's me." I said before I looked up at his hat. "Hey nice hat, you like a douche." I said with a smirk.
Rover then gave me a small glare as he crossed him arms. "Nice tux, you look like a penguin."
I narrowed my eyes at him once I heard that. "Touché." I commented. We then gave Rover our tickets and he let us pass into the castle.
"Why are we wearing these things again?" Spot asked as he pointed up to his hat.
"Lord Discord says we're supposed to look fancy." Rover groaned in annoyance before he returned his focus back to his duty.
Meanwhile: Luna's room in the castle
In one of the high towers of the castle, Luna was in her room. When Luna would have to stay the night in Canterlot, she would sleep in the quest rooms that Celestia kept just for her. It was Luna's own personal room at the castle.
Luna was standing in front of a large round mirror that hung up on the wall while using her magic to levitate a different dress on each side of her. One of them was a glittery dark blue dress, while the other was a glittery gold dress.
She hovered the dark blue dress in front of her and looked in the mirror to see how she would look in it; she then moved it aside and hovered the gold dress in front of her. "Which one? Which one?" she said out loud to herself.
"Well, I never thought I'd see something like this." A voice said behind Luna which caused her to drop the dresses; she turned around to see Celestia standing by the doorway.
Luna grew slightly worried that she had been there the whole time she was getting ready. "Sister…err…how long have you been standing there?" she asked.
Celestia grinned before she walked up to Luna. "Long enough….I must say sister, there have been many Galas in the past and I've never seen you this eager to attend one. Why is this one so special that you must dress up for it? Is there something about it you're not telling me?" she asked with the grin still on her face.
Luna then became nervous and blushed as she started to sweat slightly. "Well…I just feel that I should look my best for tonight, I didn't attend most of the Galas in the past and I want to make a good impression for my subjects." She said hoping Celestia would believe her.
Celestia's grin then turned into a warm smile. "Well then, I shouldn't keep you distracted. I'll leave you to get ready." She said before she turned around and walked towards the door. Once she reached the door way, she looked back at Luna.
"I'll see you down in the Ballroom." Celestia said before she walked out the room and used her magic to close the door behind her; leaving Luna alone in the room.
Luna then exhaled in relief that Celestia didn't figure out why she really wanted to dress up for the Gala, she looked back at her mirror before she used her magic to levitate the glittery dark blue dress up off the floor and hover it in front of her. She looked at herself closely and was finally satisfied.
"I hope Matthew likes this one." She said to herself before she walked behind the moveable screen next to her mirror, so she could get dressed without being seen by anypony who might enter her room unannounced.
Meanwhile: Castle lobby
Me and Twilight entered the lobby to see the room had a bunch of high-class ponies in fancy outfits wondering around and talking to each other, Me and Twilight then walked up to the long set of stairs and looked up to see Celestia standing at the very top of them. We then walked up to her to greet her.
Once Celestia noticed us, she smiled in delight. "Twilight, Matthew, I'm so glad to see you both could make it."
I then smiled back. "It's nice to see you too, Princess. We've been looking forward to this night for some time."
"I hope we get some time to catch up of things, Princess. We never got the chance to talk last time." Twilight said.
Celestia giggled as the memories of that night came back to her. "Not to worry, Twilight. I'm sure we'll get to talk once I've finished greeting the other guests." She said before she looked around the room.
Celestia then looked back down at us with a raised eye brow. "Where are all your friends? I hope they made it."
I then raised my hoof up. "Don't worry, Princess! They're around somewhere."
Celestia's smile then returned. "Wonderful, I hope you can all liven up the place like last time."
I then grinned. "Oh, I have something that'll do that. But it'll have to wait until later." I said before Celestia nodded, I Then looked around the room. "Speaking of guys who can liven things up, where's Discord?" I asked.
"….I don't really know, I haven't seen him since earlier today." Celestia said. Suddenly, there was a flash of light and Discord appeared beside Celestia.
"No need to worry, I'm here." Discord said, he was wearing a black tuxedo coat and a black bow tie like I was.
"Hello Discord, we haven't seen you in some time, how've you been?" Twilight asked.
Discord smiled down at me. "I've been great; those Diamond Dogs have proven to be very helpful assistance. Thanks to that whole worshiping me thing, they'll do anything I ask."
"That's cool, Discord! Anyway, we should go see what the others are up to, we'll see you two later." I said before Twilight and I walked back down the stairs and out into the gardens.
Once we were gone, Discord turned his head to face Celestia with a smirk. "So Celestia, would you like to explore the Gala a bit? I'll be more than happy to be your escort" he said.
"I can't, Discord. I have to stay here and greet the guests." Celestia said.
Discord then gave her an honest smile. "Oh come on, Celestia! You work so hard every day, you deserve a night to have fun."
"I'm not sure, Discord. What about the rest of the guests? They'll be expecting someone to greet them when they come in." Celestia said.
Discord then grinned. "Not to worry, I've got that covered." He then snapped his fingers and Spot appeared in a flash of light.
Spot looked around in confusion. "Wha-…how'd I get here?" he asked.
Spot then noticed Discord in front of him. "Spot, I have a very important task for you." he then pointed to where Celestia was standing with his lion hand. "I want you to stand in that very spot. When a new guest comes up the stairs, shake their hoof and politely say hello! Can you do that?" he asked as he crossed his arms.
Spot then saluted up to Discord. "Yes, Lord Discord. I will stand here all night if I have to."
Celestia then rubbed her chin with her hoof. "Well…if he can handle it, then I guess there's no harm in finishing early." She then placed her hoof back on the floor. "Very well, Discord! I'll join you in the Gala."
"Wonderful." Discord cheered before he and Celestia went down the stairs side-by-side; leaving Spot at the top of the stairs.
At that moment, two high-class ponies walked up the stairs and approached Spot. The male high-class pony then held his hoof out before Spot grabbed it and shook it. "Hello." He said as a green fog flowed out of his mouth.
The high-class ponies the sniffed the air and gagged in sickness before they galloped back down the stairs.
Spot was confused until he breathed on his hand and sniffed it. "Well…that solves that mystery." He said to himself.
Meanwhile: Castle gardens
Me and Twilight had found Rarity, Spike, Jeff, Peewee and Applejack in the gardens. Like last time, Applejack was standing behind her apple booth. We had already joined up with them and Jeff was on my back while Peewee was on Spike's shoulder.
"So Applejack, is your sale going better than last time?" Twilight asked.
Applejack nodded. "Yep, I've already sold two apple-fritters, one apple-pie and one apple-dumplin'. I don't know why, but I'm doin' so much better this year." She said with joy.
I smiled at her. "Good for you, Applejack! By the way, can I have one of those bottles of apple-juice?" I asked. I don't normally drink apple-juice, but there wasn't really much to drink and I wanted to help Applejack.
"'cause ya can, Matt. That'll be two bits." Applejack said. I then reach my snout into my pocket and pull out two coins in my mouth, I then placed them in the wooden bucket beside the booth and Applejack gave me a yellow glass bottle with a picture of an apple on it.
I managed to get the cap off before I placed my mouth around the top of the bottle and tilted my head up; causing the juice inside to pour into my mouth and down my throat, I continued to do this until the bottle was empty.
Once the bottle was empty, I place it on the ground before took my mouth of the bottle head and tasted the flavour.
After a second, I realised that it actually tasted good. I smiled in amazement. "Hmm…that was kinda good." I said.
"Well I'm glad ya liked it, Matt." Applejack said with a smile.
While we were talking, Rarity looked down at Spike beside her. "Alright, Twilight said that I should ask him whether or not he's my admirer…even though she still has no idea that I suspect Spike. Maybe this is the best time to ask him, but should I ask him up front? I should probably steer the answer out of him somehow." She thought.
"Emm…So Spike, what have you been up to lately? I mean, I haven't seen you since you ran out of my shop in a hurry." Rarity said hoping he wouldn't grow suspicious of her question.
Spike then looked up at her and became stunned in what to say. Lately he was secretly working on a new poem for her. But he couldn't say that, because then she would know that he was her admirer. "I've…err…I've been…err…"
Jeff then noticed his situation and grew a devious grin; he then flew down and landed beside Spike. "Go on, Spike! Tell the lovely lady what you've been doin'!" he said tapping his elbow into Spike's arm.
Spike then turned his head to Jeff and gave him a small glare, he then turned his attention back to Rarity. "Well…I've been doing a lot of things…things like…errr."
As Spike was beginning to sweat, Rarity was still waiting for an answer. I then also noticed Spike's situation and thought of a way to steal Rarity's attention. "Hey, Rarity." I quickly said; causing her to turn her head to face me.
I opened my mouth to say something before I got stumped. "Oh crap, now what do I say?" I thought.
I then came up with something. "Hey err…you know who I really hope isn't here?...those two high-class ponies we met when we were staying in the castle. What were their names again?" I said before I started tapping my head with my hoof as I thought hard.
After a second, their names returned to me. "Jet Set and Uppercrust, that was their names." I said to Rarity.
Rarity then nodded in agreement. "Oh yes, even though I respect their high society ways, I too hope they're not here. We could do without their criticism ruining our night." She said.
Just then, Rarity's eyes widened as she gasped loudly, I was confused by this until I turned my head around to see what she was looking at. I was then surprised to see Prince Blueblood walking towards us with his eyes closed and his nose up, I was already sick just looking at him.
"Speaking of ponies we don't like." I groaned; causing Twilight and the others to become curious before they then turned around to also see Blueblood.
I then looked back to Rarity to see her turn her face away with her nose up high and her eyes closed. "Just ignore him!...and maybe he'll go away." She said.
Anger boiled inside Spike as he glared at Blueblood while Jeff looked at him with a raised eye brow. "Who's this Yahoo?"
I looked down at Jeff. "That's Prince Blueblood, he's Celestia's nephew. Except he's nothing like her, he's rude and spoiled. To put it in better words, he's a complete asshole." I said before I turned my attention back on Blueblood.
"Oh." Was Jeff's only response before he continued to watch Blueblood come closer.
Blueblood then stopped beside us and observed Applejack's booth. "Oh, is this waggon of peasant food here again? The Gala is certainly going downhill." He said; causing Applejack the grit her teeth while giving him a hatful look.
Blueblood then noticed Rarity with her head faced away from him, but he didn't turn his head away from her. "Miss Rarity!" He greeted maturely.
"….Prince Blueblood!..." Rarity greeted back with her head still facing away from him.
We all just watched as Blueblood walked up in front of Rarity. "Miss Rarity, I would just want to apologize for what happened last year." He said.
Rarity then grew curious of what he was saying and turned her head back forward to face him. "Oh?..."
I too was starting to grow curious. "I understand that there was some minor…behaviour…problems between us. But as mature ponies, I'm sure we can forget all about it and move on." Blueblood said.
Rarity then let out a small sigh as she looked down at the ground. "Well…I suppose, it did happen a while ago."
"Is Blueblood actually apologizing to Rarity for how he treated her at the last Gala? I never thought I'd see him do something like this." I thought as I watched them.
"And I'm sure you didn't mean to allow your rudeness to ruin our night." Blueblood said.
"Like I said, complete asshole." I thought as my hatred for Blueblood returned and I gave him another sharp glare.
Twilight, Applejack, Jeff and Peewee had shocked looks on their faces, while Spike was grinding his teeth in anger with his fists clenched.
Once she heard what Blueblood said, Rarity's left eye twitched slightly before her stunned look turned into and angered one. "My rudeness?...MY RUDENESS? How in any way was I rude that night?" she yelled in anger.
"Well you did yell at me before you got cake all over my newly groomed coat." Blueblood argued.
"Only because YOUR spoiled behaviour caused me to blow my fuse, especially when you used me as a shield and got cake all over my fabulous dress. Do you know how hard it was to clean this? If anypony was rude that night, it was you." Rarity snapped.
Blueblood gave her a slightly angered look. "Well, you wanted me to do things for you. Open doors, pay for peasant food, and other things. I'm royalty; you should do those things for me."
Rarity scoffed. "Well I never. You sire, Are the most spoiled, self-centred Prince I've ever had the misfortune to meet in all my life."
"And it's that type of attitude that proves you don't belong in Canterlot." Blueblood snapped.
We all gasped loudly at what we just heard, Rarity's angered look faded into a small frown. "W-What?"
"Canterlot ponies are civilised in high-society, you are nothing like that. I've heard how you were once accepted as a popular pony, but I call that dumb-luck. If you ask me, you don't deserve to be a Canterlot pony at all." Blueblood stated.
Rarity just stood there in silence with a shocked look on her face. I couldn't stand by and watch this happen, so I walked up behind Blueblood. "Hey buddy! I was going to stay out of this, but you just crossed the line. Rarity's more of a Canterlot pony then you'll ever be." I said in a firm voice.
Blueblood turned his head around to look at me before he raised his eye brow. "I wasn't speaking to you."
"I don't care, Rarity's my friend and I'm not going to just stand by while you say all these horrible things to her." I said while still glaring at him.
Blueblood rolled his eyes. "I don't have time for this; I'm going away for some peace and quiet." He said before he walked away with his nose in the air.
"Dick!" I growled under my breath before I decided to forget about him and focused on Rarity, I looked at her to see her ears were down slightly.
I walked up to her and placed my hoof on her shoulder. "Hey…are you alright?..." I asked in a quiet voice.
Rarity didn't answer, Twilight then walked up to us. "Rarity?" she said in a concerned voice.
"I-I'm fine…can we please go inside to the Ballroom now?" Rarity asked.
Twilight gave her a sweet smile. "Of cause we can, come on!" she said sweetly as she walked up beside Rarity before they both walked away.
"Wait! I'll come with ya." I said before I grabbed my empty apple juices bottle in my mouth and followed them.
We all then headed towards the double-doors that lead inside to the Ballroom, I threw my empty bottle into a trash can along the way. Unknown to us, one of Rarity's glass slippers fell off her hoof and was left behind.
"Rarity looks mighty down, so I think I'll just wrap this up and join'em." Applejack said before she walked around to the front of her booth and kicked it with one of her front hooves, the booth then closed up until it became a box on wheel-stands.
Applejack then walked to one side of it and started to gently push it with her head as she followed us. Applejack then stopped and looked back at Spike, Jeff and Peewee. "Ya'all comin'?"
Spike put his hand up. "We'll catch up." he said with a small smile. Applejack then nodded before she continued to follow us while pushing her booth.
Jeff then looked at Spike with a confused look. "Soooo, why aren't we goin' with'em?" he asked.
Spike then looked over across the gardens to see Blueblood (who was talking to a group of high-class ponies) and glared sharply. "Because I want to have a word with a curtain spoiled Prince."
Jeff then went wide-eyed in shock. "Spike, don't do something you're gonna regret!"
Spike ignored Jeff as he started storming over to Blueblood, Jeff then grabbed Spike's tail in his wings in an attempt to stop him, but ended up being dragged along by the angered dragon.
"Spike, wait!...I understand that you're mad, but you're a small dude, and he's a big royal dude. Who knows what he's allowed to do to you." Jeff warned, soil piled up against his talons as he was being dragged.
Spike finally reached behind Blueblood and poked his finger into one of his hind-legs. "Hey, Prince guy." Spike said aggressively.
Blueblood then turned his head around and looked down at Spike; he then turned the rest of his body around to get a better angle. "Do I know you?"
"No, but I have a bone to pick with you. How dare you say all those terrible things to Rarity." Spike said while glaring up at him.
Meanwhile, Rarity came back into the gardens while looking at the ground. "Now, I must have left it somewhere." She said to herself.
Rarity then saw her glass slipper up ahead and she walked up to it. "Ah, here it is." She said before she slipped her hoof into the slipper. "How do these things keep falling off?" she asked herself.
At that moment, she heard voices from across the gardens and looked over to see Spike in front of Blueblood. "What is he doing?" she asked herself before she listened in on them.
"Little dragon, I don't know why you care so much for Miss Rarity. But if you ask me-" Blueblood said before he was interrupted by Spike.
"I wasn't asking you anything, and you're wrong about Rarity. I don't care who you are, or what you think of her. To me, she's the sweetest, kindest, most beautiful pony in all of Equestria, and she deserves to be a Canterlot pony more then you ever will. If she was my date for the Gala, I'd treat her like the princess she is. I'd do anything for her. I wouldn't treat her the way you did, and I certainly wouldn't use her as a shield to protect myself from incoming cake." Spike said in a firm voice.
Rarity was some-what touched by Spike's words and continued watching him stand up for her.
Blueblood gave Spike a slightly shocked look. "This is ridicules." He stated.
"No, what's ridicules is your behaviour towards other ponies besides yourself. You're a selfish, self-centred jerk, and a disgrace to Princes everywhere. Now, you're gonna go find Rarity and apologize to her!" Spike ordered.
"Who are you to order me to do something? I'm not afraid of you." Blueblood stated.
Spike crossed his arms. "Oh really, then maybe I should tell Princess Celestia about how you've been speaking to Rarity tonight. Remember? Your aunt."
Blueblood then started to pay attention to what Spike was saying. "Because you know, Rarity is friends with the Princess. I bet she wouldn't be happy when I tell her what you said to Rarity." Spike said with a devious smirk.
Blueblood then grew slightly frightened. "You…wouldn't actually do that…would you?" he asked.
Spike then tapped his chin. "Hmm…depends, are you gonna apologize to Rarity, and admit to her that she does deserve to be a Canterlot pony if she wants to?"
Blueblood nodded. "V-Very well, I'll apologise to Miss Rarity when I see her again." he said in defeat before he let out a sigh. "Well played, dragon."
Spike smile in satisfaction. "I know." He said proudly before he turned around and walked away from Blueblood.
Jeff and Peewee then came up beside Spike. "Nice move, Spike. If only Rarity could see you now." Peewee said.
"Yeah, you rocked, dude. I didn't know you had it in ya to stand up to a Prince." Jeff added.
"Well, nopony upsets Rarity the way he did. I stood up to him for her." Spike said.
Peewee then flew up and landed on Spike's shoulder. "Well I'm proud of you; it takes a lot of guts to talk to a Prince like that. And I bet the others would be proud too."
Spike then gave him a small smile. "Yeah…anyway, we should join up with the others! They'll be wondering where we are." He said before he ran off towards the Ballroom with Peewee on his shoulder and Jeff flying behind.
As they left, Rarity stepped out from behind a bush (which she had been hiding behind to avoid being seen by Spike). She had a stunned look on her face as she watched Spike disappear into the castle.
"I…don't believe it…Spike just stood up for me against Prince Blueblood. He yelled right in his face, he could have gotten in a lot of trouble for that…and he was willing to take the punishment…for me?" Rarity said to herself.
A sweet smile then grew on Rarity's as she continued. "He said all those things about me…I've never heard anypony say such loving things about me before." Rarity's eyes then widened slightly.
"Then…it must be true, Spike is my secret admirer..." Rarity said to herself as she became more stunned by this shocking fact. "I…I don't know what to do, should I tell him I know? Should I talk to him about it?" she asked to herself.
Rarity had no idea on what to do next; she had just learned that one of her closest friends has a crush on her. Sure she liked Spike, but she had never thought of him as anything more than a friend…until now. She didn't have anything wrong with Spike having a crush on her; it just seemed like a huge surprise for her. She then made her final decision.
"Maybe I should just…keep this to myself and see where it leads." She said to herself before she slowly walked towards the Ballroom while looking down at the ground in thought about what she was going to do next.
Later: Castle Ballroom
It got later into the night and Me, Twilight, the rest of the main 6, Spike, Jeff and Peewee were all together in the Ballroom.
For some reason, Blueblood had apologized to Rarity for what he said before and was now somewhere else in the castle; which was good, because I didn't want to see that dick for the rest of the night.
There weren't many other ponies with us though. In fact, the Ballroom was half empty. I counted them all and there were only 19 other ponies in the room, they were all in small groups around the room so there was a large amount of space to walk around in.
Me, Twilight and the others were in different parts around the room.
Rainbow Dash had been invited to the VIP section to hang out with Spitfire and the other Wonderbolts. And as I could see, they were actually hanging out this time. Must have had something to do with the cloud race we were in.
Applejack decided to sell her supplies on a large empty table next to the refreshment tables on the other side of the room; she had already sold a few of her supplies, including another apple-pie to Soarin'….what is it with this guy and pie?
Pinkie Pie had been trying to do what she did last time, she was trying to make the other quests party like how we would back in Ponyville. This didn't approve to most of them.
After many failed attempts to get the animals to like her, Fluttershy decided to give up and join us. She felt as though she didn't have the chance to be with Twilight and the others last time, so this time she was going to spend the night with us.
Rarity was now feeling much better and she was enjoying herself. For some reason though, she kept staring down at Spike. She also quickly turned away every time he looked up at her.
After Rarity, Fluttershy, Spike and Peewee left, Me and Twilight were left alone in the centre of the room; Jeff was on Twilight's back.
As we looked around the Ballroom, there were many failure faces that we recognized in the room. Like Hoity Toity, Photo Finish, Sapphire Shores and Fancypants with Fleur de Lis by his side. We had already spoken to Fancypants and he was glad to see us again.
Twilight then looked over to the doorway that lead to the next and smiled in delight to see Celestia and Discord walk into the room. Twilight then started walking towards them before I noticed her walking away from me and I started following her.
Once we reached them, Celestia smiled down at us. "Well, I was wondering where you two disappeared too. How do you like the Gala so far?" she asked.
"It's great, Princess. It's going much better than last year." Twilight said with a large smile.
Discord snickered. "I bet it has, Celestia told me about what happen last year. I can't believe Fluttershy actually went crazy with anger because all the animals kept running away from her."
I chuckled. "Yeah, that was kinda crazy." I said.
Jeff looked at me with a raised eye brow. "Wait! Fluttershy went crazy here last year? Why doesn't anypony tell me these things?"
Jeff then walked up along Twilight's back until he was on top of her head. "Come on, Twi. Tell me what happened! And don't skip out on the details!" he said as he patted her head with his foot.
I just rolled my eyes. "Want me to get you some Punch, Twi?" I asked.
Twilight then turned her head to face me. "Oh Matt, you don't have to do that for me."
I smiled at her and held my hoof up. "No, it's alright, I'll get some." I said.
Twilight then gave me a sweet smile. "Well, ok then. I'll be waiting for you here."
As Twilight began to tell Jeff about what happened last year, I walked away from them to find the Punch bowl. After looking around the room for a minute, I saw the Punch bowl on the refreshment table next to Applejack's table.
As I walked up to the table, I saw Fluttershy talking to Applejack. But instead of focusing on them, I focused on the Punch bowl in front of me. It was made out of glass, the Punch inside was red and it had a metal ladle dipped in it.
I then pulled a glass cup towards me before I grabbed the handle of the ladle with my mouth and pulled it out of the bowl; creating ripples in the Punch filled bowl.
After I poured the small amount of Punch into the glass cup, I was about to put the ladle back before I looked into the bowl noticed something in the rippling water.
There was two bright red blurs in the water. As the ripples cleared, they were starting to come into focus. Once the ripples were gone, I saw that the two blurs were two glowing red eyes looking evilly at me.
"Maaattheeew!" a dark male voice said in a ghostly whisper.
I flinched back as I let out a small but loud yell of fright; causing the ladle to drop out of my mouth and onto the floor. My yell attracted the attention of some of the ponies in the room, including Applejack and Fluttershy. "Errr…you alright, sugar cube?" Applejack asked with a concerned look.
I looked at her for a quick moment before I looked back into the Punch bowl to see there was nothing there, the water was completely normal. "Emm…Matt?" I heard Fluttershy say.
I didn't take my eyes off the water. "Yeah, I'm fine…I thought I just saw….never mind." I said before I grabbed the small glass of Punch with one of my front hooves and managed to walk away on only three legs. Applejack and Fluttershy were still worried about me.
Once I saw Twilight up ahead, I noticed Spike and Peewee standing beside Twilight. They must have joined us while I was gone. I walked up to Twilight and held the drink out to her. "Here you go, Twi." I said with a smile.
Despite my smile, the thought of what I just saw haunted my mind. Those terrifying eyes, that dark voice, Maybe I was seeing things…I hope I was. The thought of it made me tremble in fright which made my arm tremble; causing me to shake the glass slightly.
Twilight turned her head to face me and looked down at her drink; she used her magic to take it before she noticed my hoof shaking. She then looked at me with a concerned look. "Matt, are you ok?" She asked.
I snapped out of my train of thought and nodded my head. "Yeah, I'm alright." I said.
Twilight raised her eye brow. "Then why are you sha-"
"Hey, so where's Luna? Is she joining us?" I quickly asked interrupting Twilight, also trying to change the subject.
Celestia looked around the room. "I know she's here, I just don't know where. I haven't seen her since I checked up on her in her room when the Gala started."
"I hope we see her soon, it's getting late." Twilight said.
At that moment, something caught Discord's eye and he turned his head to look across the room. His eyes widened slightly. "Err…you guys may want to see this." He said without taking his eyes away from whatever caught his eye.
Twilight, Celestia, Spike, Jeff and Peewee all turned their heads in the direction that Discord was facing and they gasped. I was curious about what they were looking at so I turned my head to see what all the fuss was about.
My eyes widened slightly to see Luna walking across the room towards us. She was wearing a dark blue glittery dress, her shoes were a brighter sliver, and her neck piece was also silver instead of black. (Much like Celestia's mane), the fringe of Luna's mane covered her left eye.
"She's….beautiful." Twilight said in awe.
"Yeah…she is." I said in agreement with my eyes wide at the sight of Luna.
Luna then finally reached us and Celestia stepped forward. "Luna, you look so beautiful." She said.
Luna gave her a warm smile. "Thank you, sister." She said before she looked over to me. "Matthew, what do you think?" she said as she showed off her dress.
"You look amazing, Luna. What's the occasion?" I asked.
Luna's eyes widened slightly as she became nervous. "What do I tell him? I can't say I dressed up tonight to impress him. Think Luna!" she thought before she came up with something.
"Err…the Gala, of cause. I just thought I'd dress for it…you don't mind, do you?" Luna asked as she nervously rubbed her left hoof against her right arm.
"Of cause not, I think that dress really suits you." I said with a warm smile; causing Luna to blush deeply.
As Luna was starting to settle in with the group, I heard a noise from across the room and I looked over to it to see Pinkie Pie doing what she did last year, she was lifting other ponies onto her back and tossing them into the air to try and get them into the party mood.
Discord saw this and he laughed. "Haha, oh Pinkie Pie, you always know how to crack me up. Hahaha." He laughed while holding his stomach.
Discord then calmed down and looked down at us. "At least somepony is trying to make this Gala more interesting. No offence, but this party is really dull. I mean, just listen to the music!"
We all took his word and listened to the music being played by the musicians on the large stage on the other side of the room, they were playing fancy high-class music. "Not that I have a huge problem with it, but it could be a little better and livelier." Discord stated as he crossed his arms.
Celestia took a moment to think before she leaned her head closer to Discord. "Agreed." She whispered to him before she pulled her head back.
At that moment, Celestia looked down at me and a grin grew on her face, she the lowered her head down to me. "You know, Matthew. This could be a good time to…liven things up a bit." she said in a sly voice.
"Twilight once sent me a letter saying that you had something planned to do so." Celestia said.
I then smirked up at her. "Oh we have something planned, but it depends on when you want us to do it."
"Well, now's good." Celestia said while smirking back.
I then looked over to Jeff who was still on Twilight's back and we both grinned at each other, I then looked down at Spike. "Ready, Spike?" I asked.
Spike nodded. "You bet." He answered. Jeff then flew onto my back before we all made our way towards the stage. Twilight, Luna, Peewee, Celestia and Discord watched us in wonder as we walked away.
Once we got to the stage, we climbed onto it and I saw the musician pony who I recognized as Octavia playing her Cello. I then walked up to her and she noticed me, she stopped playing as I whispered in her ear. "Hey, can we borrow the stage for a minute?" I asked politely.
Octavia then looked at me for a moment before she nodded, she and all the other musicians then walked off the stage with their instalments before I walked up to the microphone on a stand.
I then tapped it with my hoof; causing a loud betting noise which attracted the attention of the rest of the main 6 and every high-class pony in the room, Rainbow Dash even took interest and came out from the VIP section to see what was going on.
She and the rest of the main 6 all gathered up with Twilight, Luna and the others as they all watched us on stage with wonder.
Jeff then flew up onto my head and leaded his head towards the mike. "Alright everypony, listen up! We're gonna liven things up a bit to get this party really started." He announced. The high-class ponies watched us with wide eyes while Twilight and the others watched us with interest.
Spike the found a Bongo-drum set and pulled it closer to him before he started beating them in a rhythm with his hands. I heard this and I instantly knew we were about to start. "Alright everypony…let's get this party STARTED!" I yelled.
"Party in the Ipanema, baby." Jeff said before Spike beat his Bongos harder and we started to sing.
Jeff: "I wanna party….I wanna samba…
I wanna party….I wanna samba…
I wanna party….and live my life." Me: "My life."
Jeff: "I wanna party." Me: "Party."
Me and Jeff: "And flyyyyyy."
Twilight and the others grew small smiles of excitement as they listened to us.
Jeff: "I'm gonna fly, fly just like a bird."
Me: "But you are a bird."
Jeff: "Oh yeah, you're right, so let me fly just like a rocket, then. (OK)"
Me: "Fly so high where I need to come down for oxygen. (HEY)"
Jeff: "'Cause once we started, baby. Ain't no, ain't no stoppin' then. (HEY)"
Discord was too focused on the music to notice that his dragon foot was tapping along with the beat.
Me: "'Cause I just wanna live my life and party. (HEY)"
Jeff: "All I want is to be free and rock my body. (OK)"
Me: "Been around the world, and I wanna live my life….in Ponyville….'cause in Ponyville….in Ponyville I realize."
Me and Jeff: "I wanna party. (PARTY)
I wanna samba. (PARTY)
I wanna party (PARTY)
And flyyyyyy."
Suddenly, Discord started to dance uncontrollably; causing him to become slightly confused and worried. Celestia saw this and let out a small laugh. "Discord, what are you doing?"
"I have no idea, what sorcery is this?" Discord asked as his body continued to dance. As he did, Celestia watched him and an impressed smile grew on her face.
"Discord you're….actually not bad….in fact, you're rather good." Celestia said as she eyed Discord's dance moves.
Jeff: "I that samba, samba master, master, master, master, master
Push out sound from a ghetto blaster, blaster, blaster, blaster, blaster
You dance fast, but I dance faster, faster, faster, faster, faster
You too slow, you need to catch up, you can dance and dance."
Celestia's smile then grew as she joined in with Discord and started dancing gracefully along with the music; Discord saw this and was slightly surprised by her sudden actions. His surprise faded as he smiled and continued dancing.
Soon Celestia and Discord were dancing together; causing Twilight and Luna to watch them wide-eyed with astonishment.
Me and Jeff: "I wanna party (PARTY)
I wanna samba (PARTY)
I wanna party (PARTY)
I wanna samba (PARTY)
I wanna party (PARTY)
And live my life (MY LIFE)
I wanna party (PARTY)
And flyyyyyy."
As we stopped singing for a moment, Celestia and Discord started dancing faster until Celestia jumped up into the air and slowly flapped her wings to keep herself hovering in mid-air. Once she was in the air, she started singing her own verses.
Celestia: "Fly-ya-la-ya-la-ya-la-yaaaaaaah
Fly-ya-la-ya-la-ya-la-ya-la-ya-la-ya-la-ya-la-yaaaaaaah."
The high-class ponies in the room all watched Celestia and heard her sing. They figured that if she approved of the music, then they should too. So once the music stopped, all the high-class ponies cheered as they stomped their hooves on the floor.
Me and Jeff just stood on the stage with smiles on our faces while breathing heavily; I for one couldn't believe that the high-class ponies were actually applauding us.
I looked over to Twilight and the others to see they were stomping their hooves on the floor too, Twilight and Luna were stomping their hooves down harder than anyone else.
Celestia then lowered herself down until her hooves were back on the floor in front of Discord, Discord was stunned by Celestia's beautiful singing and he stared into her eyes with his mouth hanging slightly.
Celestia just stood there with a sweet smile on her face while staring up at Discord. "That was beautiful, Celestia." Discord said.
Celestia blushed slightly. "Thank you, Discord. I…don't know what came over me, I just…felt like I needed to do it." She said.
They were both lost in each other's eyes until Celestia snapped back into reality and turned away.
"I…err…I need to get some air…it's a bit stuffy in here." Celestia said before she walked towards the doors that lead outside into the gardens. As she did, she couldn't help but look down at the floor and think about how awkward that moment was, how strange she felt when she was looking into Discord's eyes.
Celestia then shook her head to shake the thought out before she returned her attention to the doors. As she disappeared out the doorway and into the gardens, Discord was left to wonder about what just happen between them.
Later that night
It got later and we were all still in the Ballroom. Octavia and the other musicians had returned back on stage and continued to play high-class music.
Celestia had come back inside and informed Discord that he didn't do anything wrong which caused her to leave.
Spike, Jeff and Peewee had gone to Joe's Donut Shop for a while, Spike was excited about that.
I was sitting by one of the tables by myself while watching Twilight talk amongst the rest of the main 6, I was trying to plan on how to get Twilight alone so I could talk to her, but nothing came to mind.
Unknown to me, Luna was staring at me from across the room. "Ok Luna, he's alone. Just go over there and talk to him! Try to stare the conversation to the point where you can tell him your feelings!" Luna thought before she took a deep breath and walked towards me.
Once Luna reached me, she reached for my shoulder with her hoof, she hesitated for a moment before she tapped my shoulder. I then turned my head to see Luna standing next to me and I smiled. "Hey, Luna." I greeted.
Luna gave me a small smile. "Hello Matthew." She greeted back before her smiling face turned into a serious one. "Listen…emm…can I talk to you about something?"
"Sure Luna, what's up?" I asked before I budged aside to allow her to sit down, Luna then sat down beside me and slowly rubbed one of her front hooves up and down on the floor, she was looking down at her hooves with a nervous look on her face.
I noticed this and gave her a concerned look. "Are you alright?"
Luna then raised her head up and gave me a small smile as she nodded. "Yes, I'm just a little nervous."
I gave her a confused look. "Why? What is it you want to talk to me about?" I asked curiously.
Luna then looked into my eyes as she came closer to me. "Matthew…I…I don't really know how to tell you this …and I hope you won't think strangely of me but…I…err…I…" Luna didn't have time to answer as Pinkie Pie suddenly popped but between us.
"Hey, what're you two talking about?" she asked with a large smile.
Luna then lost her courage and answered her. "Nothing…it…wasn't important." She said while looking down at the floor in disappointment.
"Oh, ok." Pinkie Pie said before she turned her head to face me. "What're you doing way over here anyway, Mattie? Twilight and the others are over there." she said before she grabbed my hoof with hers and quickly pulled me away from the table.
"I'll speak to you later, Luna." I called as Pinkie Pie continued to pull me further away from her.
"Oh…alright." Luna responded. Once I was far enough away, Luna quietly stomped one hoof on the floor in frustration. "So close, I'll have to try again later." She said to herself.
After joining the group and talking to them for a while, I was still trying to think of someplace private for me and Twilight to talk. I then noticed Celestia across the room with Discord and I decided to ask her, I left the group and walked towards her. Once I reached her, I cleared my throat. "Emm…Princess." I said quietly.
Celestia then turned her head to face me and smiled down at me. "Yes, Matthew."
"Err…by any chance, is there someplace me and Twilight can go to have some privacy? I need to talk to her about something." I said.
Celestia raised her eye brow. "What is it you want to talk about with her?" she asked curiously.
I became nervous and I hesitated to tell her before I decided to do so. I didn't want to say it out loud, so I raised my hoof up and moved it in a way of telling her to lower her head down, which she did. Once she was low enough, I brought my mouth to her ear and whispered into it.
After Celestia heard what I said, she let out a small gasp of surprise. She then pulled her head away and looked at me with a small smile growing on her face. "Really?" she asked before I nodded.
Celestia then rubbed her chin with her hoof before an idea came to her mind. "I think I have the perfect place. There's going to be a shooting-star show in a few minutes, you and Twilight can watch it from the balcony above the gardens."
I smiled in delight. "That's perfect. Thank you, Princess."
"It's my pleasure." Celestia said with a warm smile, I then turned around and walked back Twilight and the others.
Once I reached them, I walked up beside Twilight. "Hey Twi, can I ask you somethin'?" I asked as I tapped her shoulder; causing her to turn her head to face me.
"Sure, Matt. What is it?" Twilight asked with a smile.
I rubbed the back of my head with my hoof. "Err…would you like to see the shooting-star show outside with me? The Princess has given us the balcony above the gardens; we can watch it from there." I said hoping she'd say yes.
Twilight's smile then grew. "Yeah, I'd love to. Is it starting now?" she asked.
"If we go now, we might be there before it starts." I said.
Twilight nodded before she turned her head to face the rest of the main 6. "Do you all mind if we go?"
Rarity shook her head with a smile. "Not at all, dear. You go and have fun with Matt! We'll be here when you get back."
Twilight gave her a thankful smile before we both headed towards Celestia. "Wait! Why don't we go with them?" Pinkie Pie suggested.
Applejack turned her head to face her. "I think they want to have some time alone, Pinkie Pie…you know…alone, alone." She said clearly.
Pinkie Pie then got what she was saying. "Oooooh, got'cha." She said with a playful wink before she giggled. Applejack just smirked in amusement at Pinkie Pie before she and the rest of the main 6 continued to watch us leave.
Me and Twilight then approached Celestia and she agreed to show us to the balcony that she mentioned to me. As we left the Ballroom, Luna watched us from the table that we were sat by earlier. "Drat, he left before I could talk to him. I guess I could talk to him during the shooting-star show…no, Twilight Sparkle is with him, I can't tell him my feelings while he's by her side." She said to herself.
Luna then though up an idea before she got up and walked out the doorway and into the gardens.
Later: Castle Gardens
Me and Twilight were sitting in a balcony on the castle, overlooking the gardens below us. Down in the gardens where some of the other quests sitting on cushions while looking up at the night sky; waiting for the show to start.
Unknown to us, Luna was down in the gardens with them, she was sitting in a spot where we couldn't see her. "All I have to do is follow them around until Matthew is alone, then I'll talk to him." She thought as she looked up at us.
As Twilight and I looked up at the sky, I couldn't help but become nervous. "Ok, this is it…this is what you've been waiting for all night…just don't screw it up!" I thought as I shifted my eyes to look at Twilight sitting beside me.
Just then, I noticed a light in the sky and I looked up to see a bunch of shooting-stars were shooting across the sky in different directions, it was a beautiful sight.
As we both watched in awe at them, I felt a lump in my throat as I prepared to make my move with Twilight. "Beautiful…isn't it?" Twilight asked not taking her eyes off the sky.
"Yep…beautiful." I responded while doing the same. At that moment, we both quickly turned to face each other. "There's something I want-…" we both said to each other at the same time.
I then chuckled slight. "Ok…you first." I said kindly.
Twilight gave me a sweet smile. "Matt, I just wanted to tell you that…the last few months we've spent together…have been the best months of my life. Before I met you, I felt so…alone. I mean, I had my friends and I love them, but I never had somepony to have special feelings with. And when I met you…when I first looked into your eyes…I saw a spark, and now that we're together…I don't feel so alone…you know what I mean?"
I felt heart-warmed by her words and I couldn't help but smile warmly at her. "I didn't know you felt that way about me, Twi."
"Of cause I do, I love you…before we met; I wasn't interested in dating anypony, there wasn't even anyone in Ponyville that I liked in that way. But then you came into my life and everything changed, you've made my life happier. It's like when I first went to Ponyville and met my friends, I use to think that friendship wasn't important until I met them, and now I realize that I was wrong…just like how I was wrong to think that having somepony to love wasn't important." Twilight said.
I understood how she felt, I felt as though she had changed my life just as much as I changed hers.
I remained silent as Twilight looked back up at the stars; my sight never left her as she smiled warmly up at the sky. Twilight was silent for a moment before she started to sing about her feelings.
Twilight: "All those days…watching from the windows…
All those years…outside looking in…
All that time…never even knowing just how blind I've been…
Now I'm here…blinking in the starlight…
Now I'm here…suddenly, I see…
Standing here…it's all so clear…I'm where I'm meant to beeeee
And at last, I see the liiiiiight
And it's like…the fog has lifted
And at last, I see the liiiiiight
And it's like the sky is new…
And it's warm, and real, and briiiiight
And the world has somehow shifted…"
Twilight then turned her head to face me with a loving smile.
"All at once…everything looks different…
Now that I…see youuuu."
Once Twilight stopped singing, a heart-warmed smile began to grow on my face. "Twilight…I understand what you mean. And you say I've made your life better, when actually…you've made my life better. I was alone too, Twi…and now thanks to you, I'm not alone anymore either." I said; causing a warm smile to appear on Twilight's face.
It was true; she had changed my life for the better. I wished to come to this world to have the perfect life, but I got so much more…and I loved it. As we looked deeply into each other's eyes, I felt the urge to sing too.
Me: "All those days…chasing down a day-dream
All those years…living in a blur…
All that time…never truly seeing things…the way they were
Now you're here…shining in the starlight…
Now you're here…suddenly, I know…
If you're here…it's crystal clear…I'm where I'm meant to goooooo."
Me and Twilight: "And at last, I see the liiiiiight."
Me: "And it's like…the fog has lifted."
Me and Twilight: "And at last, I see the liiiiiight."
Twilight: "And it's like…the sky is neeeeew."
Me and Twilight: "And it's warm, and real, and briiiiight
And the world has somehow shifteeeed…
All at once…everything is different…now that I see youuuu…
Now that I…see youuuu…"
We had stopped singing and everypony down in the gardens had turned away from the stars to watch us up on the balcony, they had heard the whole thing. There was no applause, which was good because that would probably ruin the moment.
With a loving smile, Twilight came closer to me and rested her head on my shoulder with her eyes closed. I smiled at her as I stroked my hoof though her soft mane. I felt warm in her comfort, both physically and emotionally.
Luna was looking up at us with her ears slightly down, she then shook it off and looked back up at the sky to continue to watch the show.
Later, the show had ended and the guests were starting to leave to go back inside. Twilight was about to head out until I stopped her. "Err…Twilight, can I talk to you?"
"Sure, Matt. What is it?" she asked as she sat back down.
I felt a lump in my throat as I stared at her, she was glowing in the light of the full moon and her eyes sparkled like stars. I gulped hard before I began to speak. "Twilight…we've been together for a long time now and we've been through a lot together…and I want you to know that you're the most important thing in my life."
Twilight gave me a sweet smile. "You're the most important thing in my life too, Matt. But why are you telling me this?" she asked.
I then became nervous. "Because…the more time we spend together, the more I realize…I want us to be together. I didn't tell you this but…remember when I first learned how to fly and I found my inspiration? Well…my inspiration…was you, Twi."
Twilight looked at me with slight surprise. "Really?"
I nodded before I turned my head around and looked down at my pocket before I looked back into her eyes. "I love you, Twilight. You're everything I've ever dreamed of, and…I want to be with you for the rest of my life…so…that's why I want to ask you something."
Twilight looked at me with wonder as I reached my left hoof into my pocket and pulled out a small dark blue box, she let out a small gasp as her eyes widened slightly. "…Matt?..." she whispered while eyeing the box.
I then held the box out in front of her on the palm of my hoof as I managed to get down on one knee.
I managed to use my other hoof to pull open the small lid of the box; revealing a small gold ring with three small white diamonds going along it. Twilight held her hoof in front of her mouth as she looked down at the ring.
"Twilight Sparkle…will you marry me?" I asked with a hopeful smile.
Twilight took her hoof away from her mouth as she remained silent; I then became worried that she was going to refuse until I saw a smile slowly grow on her face.
"Yes…Yes I will." Twilight answered in a joyful tone.
Once I heard her say that, I smiled greatly with joy before I stood back up on only three hooves. I then grabbed the ring with my mouth before I pulled it out of the box and gently placed it on Twilight's horn.
I felt overjoyed, I tried to hold back from crying as Twilight leaped into my arms and we shared a large loving hug as tears of joy rolled down our faces.
We then pulled our heads back so we could look into each other's eyes before we shared a deep kiss of love.
Unknown to us, Luna had watched and heard the whole thing and she had a devastated look on her face. Her ears were down in sadness and her eyes began to water, she then sniffed a few times. "I…was too late…I didn't even get the chance to tell him how I feel." She said to herself.
Luna hung her head in sadness, her horn then glowed and her dress disappeared off her body in a flash of light. she then walked back inside the Ballroom with tears in her eyes.
Later: Ballroom
The Gala was over and the guests were leaving.
Me and Twilight had already informed the others about our engagement and they were more than overjoyed. In fact, Rarity was so happy that she actually screamed in delight and Pinkie Pie was already getting excited about throwing a celebration party.
Jeff and Peewee were surprised at first, but then they felt proud and happy for me. Due to the late time, Spike had fallen asleep. Twilight had placed him on her back and was prepared to take him home.
We all said our goodbyes to Discord before he left to inform the Diamond Dogs that they don't have to stand by the doors anymore.
We said our goodbyes to Celestia as we began to leave the castle to go back to our carriage to take us back to Ponyville.
After the others left, Me and Twilight stopped to talk to Celestia. "We had a great time tonight, Princess…it'll be one I'll never forget." I said.
Celestia gave us a warm smile. "I'm so glad you enjoyed your selves and congratulations on your engagement." She said kindly.
We gave her a thankful smile before I looked around the room. "Hey, where's Luna? I wanted to say goodnight to her." I said.
Celestia began to wonder that too and looked around. "Hmm…I saw her come in from the gardens; she must have gone back up to her room."
"Well, can you tell her we said goodnight?" I asked.
Celestia nodded before we walked past her to leave. "Goodnight, Princess." Twilight said as we left. "Yeah, goodnight." I added.
"Goodnight, you two. And again, congratulations." Celestia responded as she watched us leave until we were gone.
Later: Ponyville library
After another long carriage ride, we finally returned to Ponyville and we all went back to our own homes to rest.
Twilight had placed Spike in in his basket to sleep in comfort with Jeff and Peewee sleeping beside him.
Me and Twilight were still awake; we had taken off our Gala outfits and placed them in the closet, Twilight had taken the ring off her horn and placed it on the wooden counter beside the bed.
We were both now lying in our bed, under the covers with our heads on the pillows. We stared into each other's eyes as we thought about the future we would have together.
"I can't believe we're actually engaged." Twilight said in a giggly tone.
"I know, I can't believe it ether…I don't think I've ever been this happy before in my life." I said sweetly.
Twilight gave me a warm smile. "Me nether."
We then moved in closer before we shared a passionate kiss on the lips, we then broke the kiss and we smiled lovingly at each other. "Goodnight, Matt…I love you." Twilight said before she closed her eyes to sleep.
"Goodnight, Twi…I love you too." I said before I did the same as she did.
I closed my eyes and slowly drifted off to sleep, ending what I named…my best night ever.
Hope you enjoyed this chapter.
Here are the songs I used, in order.
1: Hot wings (I wanna party), from the animated movie Rio. Sung by Jamie Foxx, Will-I-am and Anne Hathaway. I do not own anything.
2: I see the light, from the animated Disney movie Tangled. I do not own anything.
Please remember to review! I hope I get a Happy Birthday message from some of you, that would mean a lot to me.
Next chapter will be up soon.
30. Tears of the moon
Hey everypony, I'm sorry the Luna part in my last chapter made you all upset. I want everypony to know that I care for Luna too; she's like one of my favourite characters. I don't want to upset anyone.
So I made a decision, I went back and removed the last Luna scene from the last chapter. I'm sorry, but it was upsetting too many readers.
Anyway, to make up for it, I've wrote this. Enjoy!
Chapter 30: Tears of the moon
It's been 1 day since the Grand Galloping Gala, and Twilight and I were preparing to plan our wedding. Twilight's been making check-lists in order to do it; I loved it when she acted all nerdy.
Ponyville café
I had just finished delivering apple supplies around Ponyville, now Me and Jeff were taking a moment to relax at the café.
As we sat down by a table waiting for our orders, we got to talking. "I still can't believe it, you're gettin' married." Jeff said with a proud smile.
I nodded in agreement. "I know, Jeff. I can't believe it either; this is going to be a big step of me, maybe the biggest step of my life."
Jeff then looked down at the table. "Well, you know. Life's full of big steps. But if you want to do it, then that's fine." He said in a slight depressed tone with a small smile.
I noticed the odd sound in his voice and gave him a concerned look. "Jeff, are you ok? You sound a little….down."
Jeff then looked back up at me. "Yeah, I'm fine. It's just….this whole marriage thing."
I then raised my eye brow. "What's wrong with me getting married?" I asked curiously.
Jeff went wide-eyed and quickly put his wings up. "Nothing, nothing at all. I'm glad you're marrying Twilight, I'm happy for ya, dude." He said before he looked back down.
"It's just…you'll probably be so busy with your married life that…we won't have time to hang out anymore." He said.
I understood how he felt; I couldn't help but feel bad for him. "Aww, Jeff…Don't think that! Of cause we'll have time to hang out after I'm married; you're one of my best friends. I'll always have time for you and Twilight." I said in a sweet way.
Jeff then looked back up at me. "Promise?" he asked.
I chuckled slightly at his question, because I knew where this would lead. "Cross my heart, hope to fly, stick a cup cake in my eye." I chanted as I placed my left hoof over my left eye.
Jeff then gave me a warm smile. "Thanks dude. And don't think I'm not happy about this marriage thing! Because I am. I'll be right there at your wedding with a smile on my face, I promise."
Jeff then narrowed his eyes. "And don't ask me to Pinkie Promise! I do Pinkie Promise, but I hate doing the chant." He said.
I gave him a small nod. "Fair enough." I said.
At that moment, the waiter came to our table while holding up a metal tray on his hoof, the metal tray had to glasses of water on it. The waiter placed the tray on our table before he left.
Jeff smiled before he grabbed one of the glasses with his wing and held it up. "To your future with Twilight, who knows what'll happen?" he said proudly.
I then managed to grab the other glass with my hoof before I held it up too. "And to whatever happens next in our lives." I added.
Me and Jeff then clanked our drinks together before we both took a sip out of them. We then placed our drinks back down on the table before Jeff titled his head to look behind me.
"What's taking them so long with our orders? HEY, we've been here for almost an hour, where's our food?" Jeff yelled over to the waiter.
Meanwhile: Luna's castle gardens
Luna was lying in front of her fountain in her gardens; she looked down at the water with a depressed look on her face. She was slowly swirled the tip of her right hoof in circles in the water while resting her chin on the other.
As Luna looked at her reflection, she talked to herself. "Well, that's it. Matthew's getting married…I should have told him my feelings when I had the chance. But I can't tell him now; it'll just be too awkward for him. It's not like he'd share my feelings, he loves Twilight Sparkle."
Luna the shook her head to try shake off her sadness. "No, you should be happy for them, Luna. Matthew has been with Twilight Sparkle before you even met him, you should have known something like this would happen. Now, I forbid you from being upset about this any longer." She said to her reflection.
Luna's strong act then faded as her thoughts returned to her, her ears then lowered. "Oh…who am I fooling? I love him, but he doesn't love me….why would he? After everything I did as Nightmare Moon...this can't possibly get any worse." She said to herself.
Suddenly, there was a flash of light and Discord appeared behind Luna. "Oh Luna, there you are." He said with a smiled.
Luna didn't turn around as she narrowed her eyes. "I spoke to soon." She groaned under her breath.
Discord then walked closer to Luna. "I've been wondering where you ran off to after the Gala. Celestia went up to your room the next morning, but you weren't there. We searched all around Ponyville, you weren't there either. I then figured that if you weren't in Canterlot, and you weren't in Ponyville, then you must be at your castle. So I told Celestia that I'd check, and here I am." he explained.
Luna continued to look at her reflection in the water with an irritated look on her face. "Forgive me for not informing my sister of my where-abouts! I just needed to be alone for a while."
"By the way, I don't know if you've heard, but Matthew and Twilight are getting married. Matthew proposed to her at the Gala." Discord said with a cheerful smile.
"Yes, Discord. I am well aware of their engagement." Luna said as she glared down at the water.
Discord didn't notice the sound in her voice and continued. "I mean, I always knew those two would seal-the-deal eventually. But now that it's happening, I don't know what to say."
Discord then wrapped his arm around Luna. "You know what we should do? We should celebrate. I'll get us started."
Discord then released Luna before snapped his fingers.
With a flash of light, a sombrero appeared on his head and a trumpet in his lion hand. He then held the trumpets mouthpiece to his mouth before he started playing Mexican music.
As Discord played, Luna's frustration grew. All she wanted was to be alone with her thoughts, not to be reminded of what she believed was the tragedy of her life by this annoying spirit.
Luna growled louder and louder before she turned her head to face Discord and stood up onto her hooves. "ENOUGH!" she yelled in her royal Canterlot voice.
Discord then stopped playing and removed the trumpets mouthpiece off his mouth. "But I feel like celebrating." He stated with an innocent voice.
"WELL, I DO NOT." Luna snapped using her royal voice again.
Discord gave her a small frown before he snapped his fingers and his sombrero and trumpet disappeared in a flash of light, Discord then crossed his arms as he looked down at Luna with a raised eye brow. "What's got your tail in a twist?"
"Nothing, just LEAVE ME BE!" Luna yelled with the wind in her royal voice blowing hard; causing Discord to skid back a bit.
Discord was slightly stunned by Luna's sudden anger, he watched as she sat back down in front of the fountain and continued to look down at her reflection in the water, Luna then closed her eyes and a tear ran down her cheek.
Discord then realized that she was upset about something, he slowly walked up to her. "Emm…Luna…are you alright?" he asked in concern, Luna didn't answer.
Discord then snapped his fingers and a white handkerchief appeared in his talon hand, he held in in front of Luna and she noticed it. Luna looked up at Discord to so a friendly smile on his face.
Luna sniffed as she smiled back before she used her magic to lift the handkerchief out of his hand and used it to wipe the tear off her cheek.
Discord then sat down beside Luna before he wrapped his talon arm around her. "Something's bothering you; do you want to tell me what it is? Maybe I could help." He said kindly.
Luna then gave Discord the handkerchief back. "N-No, thank you. I appreciate your concern, Discord. But…all I want is to be alone for a moment…please…" she said as she turned her head away from Discord.
Discord then let out a small sigh. "…As you wish." He said before he stood back up and walked away.
Luna then looked back into the water again before she heard the sound of fingers snapping and a flash of light came from behind her; telling her that Discord had left.
Leaving Luna alone in the gardens with her thoughts.
Meanwhile: Ponyville café
Me and Jeff had finally got our food; I was having a few apples while Jeff was having hay-fries with a small cup of dipping sauce at the side.
"Mm…it's about time we ate…right, Jeff?" I asked as I chewed a chunk of apples.
Jeff gapped some of the hay-fries and shoved them into his mouth before he chewed them in satisfaction. "Yeah…I was so hungry…I could've eaten a…"
Before Jeff could finish, he noticed that I was looking at him with narrow eyes, because I knew how that sentence was going to end.
"Errr…never mind, I was just really hungry." Jeff said before he gave me a sheepish smile.
I then gave him a smirk. "Nice save, Jeff." I said before we both went back to eating.
After we finished our food and paid the bill, Jeff and I were about to leave until we heard the sound of someone running. It was getting louder.
Me and Jeff looking in the direction the sound was coming from to see Spike running towards us with a scroll in his hand. Once he reached us, he put his hands on his knees as he panted in exhaustion.
I got up from my place and walk up to Spike, I then placed my right hoof on his back. "Whow, calm down, little buddy!...what's got you all worked up?" I asked.
Spike finally caught his breath before he began to speak. "Sorry, I've been running around all over Ponyville trying to find you. I just got this urgent message from the Princess." He explained as he showed me the scroll in his hand.
I raised my eye brow. "Why give it to me? Why not show it to Twilight?" I asked.
"Two reasons. One, Twilight's not at the library, she went to Fluttershy's cottage for a while. And two…it's for you." Spike explained.
I was slightly surprised by this news. "For me? What's it say?" I asked.
Spike then unrolled the scroll before he read it to me.
"Dear Matthew
I apologize for troubling you at this time, but this is important. Discord went to check on Luna in her castle, and he tells me that something seems to be bothering her. He says that she was so upset and frustrated, that she yelled at him with her Royal Canterlot voice. Matthew, you have a good connection with her, so I'm asking you if you would go and talk to her. I would go myself, but I'm too busy with royal business. Please, I'm worried about her.
Yours, Princess Celestia."
After Spike finished reading the letter, he looked up at me with a worried look. "I wonder what's wrong with Princess Luna." He said.
"That's what I want to know; I should go and see what's up with her." I said before I turned around and walked away from Jeff and Spike.
I then stopped and looked back at them. "Spike, send a letter to Celestia saying that I'm on my way Luna's castle to talk to her!"
"Sure thing, Matt. but what about Twilight? Shouldn't she know about this?" Spike asked.
I nodded. "Yeah, tell her about the letter and that I'm going to try and help Luna! I'll be back later." I said before I turned my head forward.
I then took off into the sky and flew in the direction towards Luna's castle.
Later that evening: Luna's castle
It was a long flight and I was very tired, but the thought of Luna needing my help kept me going.
I was glad when I finally saw Luna's castle up ahead, I landed in front of the castle gates where two of Luna's guards stood in place.
"Here I am, Luna's castle. Damn, I haven't been here since that whole issue with Thorn." I thought.
I looked up at the tall castle gates as I thought about that night; I still remember the twisted state the gates were in after Thorn had smashed through them. I then shook off the memory and walked towards the guards.
One of the guards stepped forward. "State your name and business!" he ordered in a frim voice.
I stopped in front of him. "My name's Matthew, I was sent by Princess Celestia to talk to Princess Luna." I explained.
The two guards looked at each other before they looked back at me. "Go on ahead!" one of the guards said as he used his magic to open one of the gate doors.
"Thanks." I said as I walked past between the two guards and into the castle grounds.
When I got to the front double-doors of the castle, I was told by a guard that Luna was in her gardens and he escorted me there. As we walked through the castle to reach the gardens, I saw that Luna's security had doubled, most likely to prevent another attack.
I also had a few flash backs of that night. The destroyed towers, the broken doors, the dead guards, all the memories rushed through my head. I didn't want to remember that horror, so I tried my best to block out the thoughts.
After a short travel through the castle, the guard and I reached a pair of double-doors. The guard walked up to the double-doors before he opened them with his magic; revealing the castles gardens.
I looked at the garden in awe at its beauty, it was full of blue flowers and the leaves on the trees sparkled like stars. If it was this beautiful in the day, I couldn't imagine how it would look in the night.
As I looked around, I suddenly noticed Luna sitting in front of a water fountain with a statue of herself in the middle of the pool. Even though her back was turned to me, I could tell she was upset with something.
I looked at her in wonder before the guard turned his head to face me. "She's been down there all day, we've tried to talk to her, but she keeps sending us away. Do you think you can try?" he asked.
I turned my head to face him. "I'll try." I answered.
The guard then nodded before he turned around and walked back into the castle. I then turned my attention back to Luna before I began to walk towards her.
As I got closer, I could the sound of her sniffing her nose with her head hanging. I grew more and more concerned about her.
I then stopped a few feet away from her. "L-Luna?" I said quietly.
Luna's eyes shot open. "That voice." She thought as she quickly raised her head up and turned her head around to see me.
"Matthew!...(sniff)…w-what are you doing?" Luna asked in surprise, she then wiped away the small amount of tears in her eyes with her hoof.
I walked closer to her. "Celestia sent me a message; it said that you were upset with something and that you yelled at Discord because of it. Do you want to talk about it?" I asked kindly.
Luna turned her head away from me before she looked back down at the water. "No, I'm not upset…I just need so time alone, that's all."
I then walked up beside her and sat down with her. "Luna, I can tell something's bothering you. Why don't you want to talk about it with me?" I asked.
Luna didn't look at me. "I…I don't know if I can." She said with slight sadness.
I then wrapped my arm around her. "Luna, I'm here for you, you know you can tell me anything. Please, I want to help you." I said sweetly.
Luna turned her head slightly to look at me; she then took a quiet deep breath before she spoke. "Matthew…I want to tell you something, something I wanted to tell you at the Gala." She said.
"Ok, what is it?" I asked.
"First, how much do you care about me?" Luna asked.
I was starting to wonder why she was asking these type of questions. "I care a lot about you, Luna. You're one of my best friends, that's why I'm here to help." I said.
Luna's ears lowered slightly. "And that's all we'll ever be?...Friends?"
I gave her a confused look as I took my arm off her. "What do you mean by that?" I asked curiously.
Luna then turned her head away and looked back down at her reflection. "It does not matter now." She answered.
I thought long and hard about what she just said. "What did she mean by that's all we'll be? It sounds familiar, like something someone would say to someone who they imagined could be more to them than just-…" I thought before it hit me.
I gave Luna a wondering look. "Luna…do you…like me?" I asked.
Luna closed her eyes tight as she let out a sigh. "It…may be…different than that." She said.
"What do you mean?" I asked.
Luna then opened her eyes before she turned her head to face me; she looked deep into my eyes before she spoke. "I…I…(mumble)."
I could hear what she said. "What'd you say?" I asked.
"I said, I…(mumble)." Luna mumbled again.
"Come again!" I said as I held my right hoof behind my right ear to try and hear her better.
Luna then quickly stood to her hooves as she continued to look into my eyes. "I said, I…I…I love you. There, I said it." she said loudly.
I was stunned and shocked by this sudden news. "W-What?" was all I could say.
"I love you, Matthew. I have for a while now, I would have told you sooner, but I knew that you were in love with Twilight Sparkle and I didn't want to ruin anything between the two of you. I tried to tell you at the Gala, but there were so many distractions that I never got the chance." Luna explained clearly.
I was still surprised by the fact that she loved me; the question in my head though was…why? "Luna…of all the colts in the world, why would you love me? Somepony like you could do so much better." I said.
Luna then came closer to me; causing me to stand to my hooves. "No, I could not. Ever since I re-joined my sister on the throne, ponies have been scared of me, they'd run away the moment they'd see me."
"But, all that's changed now. All the ponies in Ponyville aren't scared of you anymore, and I'm sure the ponies in Canterlot will come around eventually, your sister is their ruler after all." I stated.
Luna let out a groan. "I know, I know, but that's not what I mean. Want I mean is, you're the first colt I've ever met who didn't run away the first time they saw me. It was as if…you didn't know who I was or what I did when I was Nightmare Moon…but you did, you knew exactly who I was and you knew exactly what I did. And yet, you still weren't afraid."
I raised my eye brow. "Is that the reason you're in love with me?" I asked nervously.
Luna then looked down at the ground. "That is not the only reason." She stated.
"So, what're the other reasons?" I asked.
Luna then looked back up at me. "Matthew, you're the first colt that's ever show me two things….compassion and understanding. When I was training you how to use your Element, You understood that I felt bad about what I did as Nightmare Moon. You didn't care about what I did, you didn't see me as Nightmare Moon, you saw me as who I am now. Before Ponyville's fear of me was put to rest, only my sister, Twilight Sparkle and her friends have shown me such care. Yet, I was still in the darkness because of how badly I felt about myself. But you…you helped me see differently about myself, you showed me a light that vanquished the darkness. And at that moment…I gained a crush on you and I kept it a secret." She explained.
I was stunned by what she was saying; she was saying that I helped her to stop blaming herself about the whole Nightmare Moon thing. "This is my fault. I must have given her the wrong message when I talked to her." I thought before Luna continued.
"I wanted to tell you my feelings, I really did. But…you were with Twilight Sparkle and…I didn't want to cause a problem, so I kept it to myself for a while. But then there was that night when Thorn kidnapped my and took away my magic, I was so frightened. I prayed for you to come and help me, and you did. You defeated Thorn, saved Canterlot, and brought my magic back to me. That night, you were my hero. And a few days after that, I grew more attached to you…that's when I realized that…I loved you." Luna explained.
The stunned feeling was starting to fade. Once I was calmer, I spoke. "Luna…why didn't you say anything sooner?" I asked.
Luna then sat back down as she continued to look in my eyes. "I was going to tell you at the Gala…but I couldn't."
I then remembered that she wanted to tell me something in private before Pinkie Pie interrupted her. "Wait, is this what you wanted to tell me at the Gala before Pinkie Pie showed up between us?" I asked before Luna nodded.
"When you left the Ballroom with Twilight Sparkle, I decided to follow you until I could get another chance alone with you. I followed you to the shooting-star show, you two were up on the balcony while I was down in the gardens. But…all my chances of expressing my feelings to you vanished when I overheard your proposal to Twilight Sparkle." Luna said before her ears dropped in sadness.
"I…I felt terrible after that…I couldn't stay in the Gala, I just went back up to my room." Luna said with her eyes shut.
The moment I heard her say that, I felt like I was the cause of her sadness. No, I knew I was the cause of her sadness. I'm the reason she's upset today, I'm the reason she yelled at Discord, I'm the reason I was standing there right now talking to her.
"Oh no…what've I done to her? I should have known, she's been acting so differently lately, now I know why. I didn't know, how could I have known? Shit, I'm such a clueless, insensitive, bastard." I thought.
As Luna kept her eyes shut tight with her head hanging, I came closer beside her. "Luna, are you saying that my best night ever…was your worst night ever?" I asked as I felt more upset for her.
"Uh-hm." Luna hummed as she slowly nodded while keeping her eyes shut.
I then felt even worse about myself. "Oh Luna, come here sweet-heart!" I said sweetly as I hugged her tight.
Luna nuzzled her head against the side of my neck as she hugged back; I made the hug as warm and loving as possible. As we hugged, I started to feel the side of my neck get wet. I figured that she was letting out tears and they were soaking into my fur. "Luna, please don't cry! I can't stand it when a girl cries. I'm sorry, I didn't know. I'm so sorry."
I continued to hug Luna tightly, letting her know how sorry I was. After a good seven minutes of hugging, we both slowly pulled away and looked at each other. "Matthew…I…I apologize if I've brought any pressure on you, I just wanted you to know my feelings for you…but I don't know what to do about it." Luna said.
"I have a suggestion, but you're probably not going to like it. Luna...you'll have to try and move on!" I said.
Luna looked at me with a slightly shocked look. "W-What?" was all she said.
I looked into her eyes with sorrow. "I'm so sorry, Luna. But…I'm with Twilight, I-I love her; I can't abandon her after everything we've done together, after all the kindness and love she's given me."
Luna's ears were still down; she looked at me with slight sadness. "I know but…you're the only colt I've ever loved."
I felt my heart grow heavy before I placed my hooves on her shoulders. "Trust me, Luna! This is harder for me. Your colt is out there somewhere, but…it's just not me. I care a lot about you, Luna, but I'm in love with Twilight. We can still be friends but that's all we can be, friends….I'm so sorry, Luna." I said as sweetly as I could before I removed my hooves from her shoulders.
There was a moments silence before Luna spoke. "Y-You are correct, Matthew. You are in love with Twilight Sparkle, and it was foolish of me to think that we could be together when I knew you were with her. I understand now, and I'm sorry." She said before she wiped her tears away with her hoof.
Even though she said that, I knew she was still somewhat upset. "Luna, I hope I haven't ruined anything between us. I mean, I care about you. I would never want to hurt you in any way."
Luna turned her head away from me. "No, you're right…I should move on. I just…need a moment alone to calm down, so…please go back to Ponyville!" she said.
I knew she wasn't mad at me; she just needed time to think. But I still felt concerned about her. "Are you sure, Luna? Do you want me to spend the night to comfort you?" I asked trying to be helpful to her feelings.
Luna turned her head to face me. "N-No, I'll be fine. It just takes a little time to get over something like this." She stated.
I didn't want to leave her like this, but I didn't want to argue with her either. I could tell she was in no mood to argue, so I nodded. "Alright, Luna. I'll leave you to think." I said.
Before I left her, I placed my hoof on her shoulder. She looked at me and I gave her an honest smile. "It'll be ok, Luna. I'll still see you, and we'll hang out a lot when I see you again." I said.
Luna smiled sweetly back. "I'd like that."
I then removed my hoof from her shoulder before I began to walk back towards the castle. As Luna watched me walk away, a small frown came on her face before she let out a sigh.
That night: Ponyville library
Spike, Jeff and Peewee were all asleep in Spike's basket, and Twilight was down stairs in the bathroom getting ready to join me in the bed.
While I was lying in the bed, I was looking up at the ceiling in deep thought about Luna.
"I hope she's alright. She said she was goin' to be fine, but…she could've just been saying that to get me to leave. I just feel as though I could have done better, like I could have done something to make her feel better before I left." I thought as I tapped both my front hooves together.
At that moment, Twilight came up the stairs and walked over to the other side of the bed. After she got into bed beside me, she turned her head to face me to see the worried look on my face. "Matt, are you ok, sweetie?" she asked in concern.
I then snapped out of my train of thought and turned my head to face her. "Well…not really. I'm a bit worried about Luna." I admitted.
"Yeah, Spike told me that you got a letter from the Princess saying that she was upset with something. What was she upset about?" Twilight asked.
I wasn't sure if I should tell, I already felt like a bad guy for letting Luna down. But, I'd probably be an even bigger bad guy if I didn't tell her. "Promise you won't get mad at her!"
Twilight nodded. "Of course not, Luna is Celestia's sister, I'd never get mad at her." She stated.
After hearing this, I took a deep breath before I spoke. "Well…I went to check on her like Celestia asked me to, I then found Luna in her gardens and we started talking. That's when she told me what was bothering her."
"What was it?" Twilight asked.
I looked deep into Twilight's eyes, I almost didn't want to say it, but I had to. "She said that…she's…she's had a crush for a while, and…she said that ever since that whole Thorn thing…her crush evolved into love, so…she was saying that…she loved me." I said hoping Twilight wouldn't get upset.
Twilight stared at me in silence before she spoke. "She…loves you?...W-Why does she love you?" she asked in a shocked voice.
I threw my head back on the pillow before I placed my hooves on my eyes. "It's all my fault, Twi. I caused this to happen."
Twilight looked at me with a raised eye brow. "What? What do you mean? How is it your fault?" she asked.
I removed my hooves from my eyes. "It was when she was training me to use my Element. She told me that she felt bad about what happened when she was Nightmare Moon; she said that the ponies were still sacred of her; I did my best to comfort her, I told her that I didn't care about what she did and to ignore any comments from other ponies. She may've got the wrong idea about it, and that's how she got a crush on me."
"But…how did her crush turn to love?" Twilight asked as she started to calm down.
"She loves me because I saved her from Thorn and stopped him from taking over Canterlot. I helped her when she needed me most. Now she's upset because she overheard us at the Gala, she heard me propose to you and it devastated her." I said.
"So…what'd you tell her?" Twilight asked.
I looked in her eyes before I let out a sigh. "I told her…that I loved you and…she needed to move on and find another colt who'd make her happy. I did my best to let her down easy but it was hard to do…"
"And what did she say to that?" Twilight asked.
"She said that she understood and that she was going to move on…but I still feel as though I've broken her heart. Twilight…am I a bad pony?" I asked as I sat up on the bed.
Twilight shook her head. "No, of course not. Matt, these kind of things are always hard to do. It's like breaking up with your girlfriend of coltfriend, you can't do it without upsetting the other."
"I know, Twi. But I still feel like…pardon my language!... I feel like complete and utter bull-crap." I said before I dropped face first down on my pillow.
I then felt Twilight rub my back with her hoof. "Oh Matt…if it will make you feel any better, how about tomorrow we go to her castle and try to straighten this out a little more with her? You know, just to talk with her."
I then pulled my head up out from the pillow before I looked at Twilight. "Are you sure? I don't know if she want to see us right now." I said.
"Look, you're upset, Luna's upset. The only way to fully settle this is to have a good conversation about it with her, I'm sure we'll handle it somehow." Twilight said with a confident smile.
I then smiled back. "Ok, Twi. We'll talk to her tomorrow." I said as I turned my body over so I was lying on my back again.
I then gave Twilight a small kiss on her cheek before she lied down and turned her body so she was lying on her right side. "Goodnight, Matt." she said before she closed her eyes.
"Goodnight, Twi." I said before I lied my head down on the pillow and closed my eyes to sleep. However, I still felt slightly worried about Luna.
Meanwhile: Luna's castle gardens
Luna was now in the middle of her gardens sitting on a bench; she was trying to calm herself by enjoying her beautiful surroundings while looking up at her full moon.
She was in deep thought about what I said to her earlier today. "Matthew is right, I should move on. It's not like I had a chance with him anyway, I should have known better then to think he would love me when he loves Twilight Sparkle." She said out loud to herself before she hung her head.
"I just wish I knew how it felt to have a coltfriend who loves me." Luna said in slight depression.
"Oh poor, poor Princess Luna." A female voice echoed in the wind; causing Luna to gasp in fright before she jumped off the bench.
"So alone in the world, never having somepony to love. It makes me so sad that I shed a tear every time I think about it, you really do get to me sometimes, Princess." The voice ached again.
Luna turned her head left and right as fast as she could to find the source of the voice. "Who are you? How did you get in here?" she yelled in the air.
"Oh Luna, I've always been here. I've been watching you all day." The voice echoed again.
"SHOW YOURSELF!" Luna demanded.
"…as you wish, my dear." The voice echoed before a large bolt of dark-purple flames appeared a few feet away from Luna.
Luna covered her face with her wing to block out the heat from the flames. When Luna felt the heat die down, she removed her wing and her eyes widened at what she saw.
She saw a silhouetted female alicorn with glowing red eyes standing a few feet away from her, her mane and tail were formed completely out of dark-purple flames. "There, maybe now we talk face-to-face." She said.
Luna growled at her as her horn glowed blue. "What do you alicorns always what with me?" she yelled.
The alicorn held one of her front hooves to her chest. "I want nothing with you, except to make you happy," she stated with a grin.
The glow on Luna's horn then faded away as she looked at the alicorn with a raised eye brow. "What do you mean? And who are you anyway?" she asked with a surreptitious look.
The alicorn began to walk over to her. "Oh yes, where are my manners? I am Zelga, a pleasure to finally meet you, Princess." The alicorn (now known as Zelga) said as she held her hoof out to Luna.
Luna looked at Zelga's hoof before she looked up into her red eyes; Zelga then took her hoof away and placed it back on the ground. "Not the shaking type, hmm? No matter, no matter, we know each other enough already."
Luna watched as Zelga walked over to the bench and sat down on it, Zelga then looked at Luna before she patter her hoof on the bench. "Care to sit down, dear?" she asked.
Luna gave her a distrustful look. "I'd rather stand, if you don't mind." She said in a firm voice.
"Oh, I understand completely why you wouldn't trust me. Why would you after what my dear old brother did to you, he did go a bit overboard with that one, didn't he?" Zelga said before she giggled.
Luna gave Zelga a confused look as she thought about what she just said. Once Luna figured it out, he eyes widened. "Wait! Are you saying that…Thorn was your brother?"
Zelga then grinned. "…Maybe."
Once Luna heard that, she growled loudly with her teeth bearing. She got in a fighting position as her horn glowed brightly. "I knew there was something familiar about your flaming mane and tail, leave my castle NOW!" she demanded.
"Oh, but Luna. All I want to do is to help you with your little problem; don't you want to know what I have planned?" Zelga asked with an innocent look on her face.
"I am not interested." Luna stated with a sharp glare in her eyes.
Zelga then smirked. "Really? Even if I mentioned that my plan will bring your deepest desire to life?...to grant you what you've wished for so many long weeks?"
Luna's glare then faded as her horn stopped glowing, she wondered what she was talking about. "Explain your words!" she said.
Zelga smiled. "Come here! Sit with me! We have much to discuss." She said as she patted her hoof on the bench again.
This time, Luna walked over to the bench and sat down beside Zelga. Once she was satisfied, Zelga spread out one of her large feathered wings and wrapped it around Luna.
Zelga's horn then glowed purple and two black chalices appeared in a flash of light, they were both hovering in mid-air front of them. One of the chalices hovered towards Zelga while the other hovered towards Luan.
Zelga's chalice hovered in front of her mouth before she took the first sip of her drink; she then looked down at Luna. "Thirsty?" she asked.
Luna looked into her chalice to see red bubbling water inside, it smelled foul; causing Luna to cover her mouth with her hoof. "No, thank you." Luna said.
"Very well." Zelga said before Luna's chalice disappeared in a flash of light, Zelga took another sip of her drink before she spoke.
"Now, where was I? Ah yes, I have a solution to your little…Matthew problem." Zelga said with a devious grin.
Luna turned her head to face Zelga with her eyes slightly wide. "I…don't know what you're talking about." She said as her eyes shifted.
Zelga giggled. "Oh Luna, you don't have to hide your feelings from me. I already know your feelings for young Matthew; I can sense it in your heart. You wonder what it would be like if he loved you, if he hugged you during a rain storm…if he kissed you." she whispered in Luna's ear.
As Zelga took her mouth away from Luna's ear, Luna stared into thin air as she thought deeply about it. "I…have wondered those things." she admitted.
Zelga then wrapped her arms around Luna. "Oh, sweet-heart. It's so upsetting, to love somepony who loves another."
Luna didn't know why, but she had the urge to rest her head on Zelga's warm coat; which she eventually did.
Zelga smiled before she released Luna from her hug, she then lowered her head down to Luna. "What if I told you I could make your wonders a reality?" she said before Luna looked at her; giving Zelga her full attention.
Zelga grinned as her horn glowed purple. Suddenly, there was a small flash of light and a small brown scroll appeared. It hovered towards Luna and stopped in front of her face. "W-What is this?" she asked.
The scroll then unrolled itself to reveal a recipe; Luna then read it to discover it was a recipe for a potion. "A potion? What kind of potion?" Luna asked.
"…A love potion, all you have to do is make it. And when you're done, have Matthew drink it. Then he'll instantly fall in love with the first girl he sees, you just have to make sure that girl is you." Zelga explained with a sly voice.
Luna then placed her hoof on the scroll before she gently pushed it away. "No, no, I could never use a potion like that on Matthew. I am curious about what it would feel like to have a coltfriend, but I'm not that desperate." She stated.
"Oh, no worries. The effects of the potion aren't permanent, they're only temporary. They'll last an hour, at least. And don't worry about Matthew! Once the effects have worn off, he'll have no memory about what happened. To him, it'll be as if it never happened. It's a win-win, Luna. You can have an hour with him without harming your friendship with anyone. As long as you don't let anyone know you did it, that is" Zelga explained with a generous smile.
Luna remained silent as she looked back at the scroll floating in front of her. "Well, what do you say, Luna? Go on with your life without knowing what it feels like to have a colt love you, or make the potion and experience what you've wanted for long." Zelga said.
Luna thought long and hard about it. "In a way, that does make sense. If I use the potion on Matthew, he won't remember anything once the effects ware off. I can have some time with him without losing him as a friend…but it all sounds so devious, would I really do such a thing to him? Would I make him feel fake love for me? All these questions and decisions are twisting my mind." She thought.
Zelga continued to wait for an answer, but there wasn't one. Zelga smiled before she used her magic to roll the scroll back up and placed it beside Luna on the bench.
Luna still remained silent as she looked down at the ground in front of her, Zelga's horn glowed purple before there was a small flash of light. When the light faded, there was a black rose floating in mid-air beside Luna's head.
The rose then hovered towards closer to Luna before it placed itself behind her ear; Zelga then wrapped her arm around Luna as she smiled down at her. "I'll let you think it over." She said before she planted a sweet kiss above Luna's forehead; Luna only reacted by turning her head to face Zelga.
Zelga then removed her arm from Luna before she hovered her chalice towards her mouth again.
Zelga then took one last gulp of her drink before her chalice disappeared in a flash of light.
Zelga then got up off the bench and started to walk away. Luna wanted to say something to her, but she couldn't find the words. She just sat there and watched her walk away.
Zelga then stopped in her tracks before she turned her head around to look at Luna. "We'll be in-touch, and go on inside your castle! We wouldn't want you to catch a cold now, do we?" She said with a grin before she winked at Luna.
Zelga's horn then glowed purple again, and a large bolt of dark-purple flames formed around her. When the flames cleared, Zelga was gone.
Luna just sat there on the bench, alone and puzzled, she looked down beside her to see the scroll.
A feel rushed through her body as she looked at it, she didn't know if it meant that this was the answer to her problems, or if it meant that she would do a dark deed just to for-fill her desires.
She then moved her eyes upward to try and see the rose on her ear, he horn glowed and the rose lifted off her ear and hovered in front of her. She held up her hoof and placed the rose on its palm so she cloud look at it better.
Luna didn't know what her next move would be, would she make the potion, or would she forget about such an idea? She looked back and forth from the rose to the scroll as she thought about Zelga's kindness.
"Why is she trying to help me? I thought she'd be angry after what happened to Thorn. Could she be different to him? Is she kind of like the good sibling? These are a lot of risky questions, but the riskiest question is….can I trust her?" Luna said out loud to herself.
Luna then used her magic to place the rose back behind her ear before she looked back down at the scroll; she gave it one last thought until she made her ultimate decision. "I'll think about it." She said.
Luna's horn glowed before the scroll lifted up to her and placed itself in her neck-piece.
Luna let out a sigh of shame before she got up off the bench and started walking towards the entrance to her castle.
I hope you like the chapter.
Trust me when I tell you this, it was more upsetting for me to write, then it was for you to read.
Don't worry about Luna! She'll be back and you will be surprised by what she gets later on in the story.
I tried to make this chapter as friendly as possible to Luna, so please don't think badly of me!
Note to readers: I'm having a bit of trouble with something and I could use your help. I don't know where Matt and Twilight's wedding should take place.
The choices are Ponyville, or Canterlot. Please tell me in your review where you think the wedding should be! Thanks.
Please remember to review!
Next chapter will be up soon.
31. School's not out
Hey everypony, I'm so glad you all liked my last chapter.
I'd like to thank you all for sticking by me through the story so far.
By the way, I decided to have Matt and Twilight's wedding in Ponyville. I got a lot of people saying they would like to see it there.
I know a lot of you said Canterlot and that it's a romantic place for a wedding, I understand that and they were all very good points. But a Ponyville wedding is a different turn, don't you think?
Chapter 31: School's not out
It's been 3 days since Luna confessed her feelings to me. The day after she did, Me and Twilight went over to her castle to check on her.
We had a good long conversation about it and Luna seemed very calm about it, she kept saying that she was fine and that she had already moved on.
Once she made it clear to us, we left her castle and went back to Ponyville. We were glad Luna felt better, now we could stop worrying and focus on our wedding
Ponyville Library
Me and Twilight were in the front room of the library. We were both sitting by the table, we sat beside each other as we tried to plan our wedding.
There was a sheet of paper lying in front of us on the table; we were using it to write down the plans. Twilight used her magic to hover a pencil over the paper before she read out what we'd written so far.
"Alright, so we've already booked the gazebo for our altar, the outside of town hall for our reception party area, and Princess Celestia was kind enough to give us a room at her castle for our honeymoon. Isn't this great?" Twilight asked me with a large smile.
I smiled back as I nodded in agreement. "Yeah, it's coming to together nicely. Just think, Twilight! Soon we'll be like a big whole family. You, me, Spike, Jeff and Peewee."
Twilight gave me a sweet smile. "Matt, we're already a family, and that includes you." she said sweetly.
I smiled warmly at her. "Thanks, Twi…I love you."
"I love you too, Matt. And I always will, no matter what." Twilight said.
We then leaned in closer to each other before we kissed passionately; we were so lost in our kiss that we didn't hear the door on the other side of the room open. Spike then walked in to see us kissing.
He then quickly placed his hands over his eyes. "Ahh…look, I'm really happy for you two. But can you please do that somewhere else!" he said.
Me and Twilight heard him; causing us to snap out of our trace. We then broke the kiss before we looked over to Spike. "Sorry, Spike. We were just having a moment." I said as I smiled sheepishly at him.
Spike then removed his hands from his eyes before he walked over to us. Once he reached us, he looked at the sheet of paper on the table "What're you guys doing anyway?" he asked.
"Oh, we were just going over our plans for the wedding. We've made a lot of progress with them." Twilight told him.
Spike smiled. "That's great, Twilight. I'm glad it's going well. Anyway, I just came in to remind a certain somepony about his certain job." He said as he looked at me with a raised eye brow.
I gave him a confused look. "Why is he looking at me like that? And is he talking about my job with Applejack?...wait a minute!" I thought as I became worried.
"What time is it?" I asked out loud before I looked up at the clock on the wall, I then saw that it was nearly 12PM.
"DAMN, I'm nearly late. I've been so busy with the wedding planning that I forgot all about it, I have to go." I quickly said before I rushed past the table and up the stairs.
I then grabbed my saddle bag with my mouth before I threw it onto my back. I then rushed back down the stairs and up to Twilight.
"Sorry that I have to go like this, but I'm gonna be late. I'll see you later, love ya." I quickly said before I gave Twilight a quick peck on the lips before I galloped towards the front door.
"Love you too, Matt. Have a nice day!" Twilight called as she watched me gallop across the room.
"I'll try." I responded before I finally reached the front door. I then used one of my front hooves to grab the doorknob before I quickly opened the door and galloped out the library.
As I galloped farther away from the library, I started to flap my wings before I took off into the air and flew in the direction towards Sweet Apple Arches.
Meanwhile, Twilight and Spike watched me fly away from the doorway. Spike then turned his head to look up at Twilight.
"Huh, you two are the perfect match alright; he freaks out when he's late just like you." Spike said before he walked back into the library.
Twilight just rolled her eyes and she followed him as she closed the front door with her magic.
Sweet Apple Arches
After a short flight, I landed in front of Sweet Apple Arches and galloped into the farm land.
Up ahead, I saw Applejack in front of the barn with my delivery cart beside her.
As I got closer to her, Applejack noticed me. "There ya are, I was startin' to wonder if ya'all were comin'." She said.
I then stopped in front of her and panted from exhaustion. "…Sorry, Applejack…I was a bit busy and I…kinda lost track of time…" I said between breaths.
Applejack raised her eye brow. "What were ya doin'?" she asked.
After I caught my breath, I answered her. "I was busy with Twilight, we were planning our wedding and I got a little caught up with it." I said.
Applejack then smiled. "I understand, plannin' a weddin' takes a lot of thinkin'. Besides, ya made it on time, so there's no need to worry. Now, let's get'cha strapped up and ready to go!" she said.
I nodded before I turned around to let her strap the cart onto me.
Applejack then grabbed the shafts of the cart before she pulled it over to me; she then attached the shafts onto my back. Now I was ready to go.
"Alright, ya'all set. I'll see ya when ya get back." Applejack said.
I turned my head to face her. "Thanks, Applejack. See ya later." I said before I started walking towards the farms exit while pulling the cart along behind me.
Applejack waved me off as she watched me walk away.
Once I made it out of the farm, I headed towards town to begin my deliveries.
Later: Ponyville Schoolhouse
After making a number of deliveries, I finally came to my last delivery at the Schoolhouse.
I pulled my cart up to the school before I unfastened the straps so the carts shafts weren't attached to my back anymore; causing the cart to tilt forward until the shafts touched the ground.
I then walked around to the cart before I reached my head into it and pulled out a large sack of apples, which was heavy. "Damn, how many apples do these kids need?" I thought.
I dragged the sack over to the front door of the school before I let go of the sack and knocked on the door.
After a few minutes, the door opened to reveal Miss Cheerilee behind it. Once she saw it was me, she smiled. "Why hello, Matthew. What brings you by?" she asked kindly.
I used all my strength to lift the sack up before I placed it down in front of her. "I've brought your lunch deliveries, Miss Cheerilee." I answered.
Cheerilee looked down at the sack and smiled. "Oh yes, of course. Just bring it in and I'll get your pay." She said.
I nodded. "Sure thing." I said before I grabbed the top of the sack with my mouth and Cheerilee walked back into the school with me following behind while dragging the sack with me.
As I entered the Schoolhouse, I looked around at the class room, it was much bigger then it was on the show. I then looked at the fillies and colts; they were each sitting on wooden stools in front of a wooden desk talking amongst each other.
There were a few kids I recognized, like Applebloom, Sweetie Belle, Scootaloo, Sips, Snails, and unfortunately Diamond Tiara and Silver Spoon.
Cheerilee then stopped in front of her desk which was in front of the chalk board before she turned around to face me. "Wait there and I'll get your pay from my desk." She said.
I then placed the sack down in front of me so I could speak. "Alright." I said before Cheerilee walked around behind her desk and started searching through the drawers.
As I waited for Cheerilee to find the money, Applebloom noticed me and smiled. "Hey, it's Matt." she said; catching the attention of Sweetie Belle and Scootaloo before they looked over to me.
The three fillies then jumped off from their stools before they walked over to me. Once they were close enough, I noticed them and smiled down at them. "Hey girls, I haven't seen you in a while. How've ya been?" I asked.
"We've been fine." Scootaloo answered.
I then looked at Sweetie Belle. "Hey, Sweetie. I'm glad to see you're feeling better. I was worried about you for a while." I said as I tussled Sweetie's mane with my hoof.
I then removed my hoof before she smiled up at me. "Thanks, Matt. But I don't think I'll be cooking my own food for a while. Ooooh…I can still taste them." she groaned as she held her stomach.
Even though it was a while ago now, I still felt bad for her. "Yeah, sorry you got sick." I said.
Sweetie Belle gave me a sweet smile. "It's ok, I'm much better now."
I gave her a warm smile "I'm glad to hear that. Anyway, any luck gettin' your cutie marks?" I asked.
Applebloom, Sweetie Belle and Scootaloo then looked down at the floor. "No." they all said in disappointment at the same time.
I gave then a small smile. "Aww its ok, girls. You'll get your cutie marks eventually."
They then looked back up at me. "Well, enough about us! I hear you're gonna marry Twilight, is it true?" Sweetie Belle asked.
I nodded. "Yep, I can't wait. Soon we'll be together forever." I said.
"Awwww." Applebloom and Sweetie Belle said with large smiles, Scootaloo just pointed her hoof in her mouth in disgust.
Meanwhile, Snips was listening in on our conversation. "Did she say 'Matt'?...as in, Matthew?" he asked himself.
Snips didn't take his eyes away as he reached his hoof over to the next desk where Snails was sitting. "Snails!...Snails! Did you hear what she said that guy's name was?" he asked.
Snips didn't get an answer; instead he got the sound of snoring. He looked over to Snails' desk to see him sleeping with his head lying on the desk.
"SNAILS!" Snips yelled in a winey voice, causing Snails to wake up and shoot his head up off the desk.
"DAH, oh, I'm awake." Snails said as he sifted his eye back and forth.
Snips rolled his eyes. "Never mind that! Look over there!" he said in excitement as he pointed at me.
Snail's the looked over to me, but his attention was suddenly taken by the sack of apples behind me. "Mmm…food." He said as he drooled slightly.
Snips face-hooved himself. "Not the sack, the delivery-pony. I think that's Matthew."
Snails then turned his attention to me. "No way." He said in amazement.
At that moment, Snips and Snails jumped up off the stools and walked over to me and the girls.
Once they reached us, they looked up at me. "Oh my gosh, oh my gosh, oh my GOSH. Are you Matthew? As in, the one who saved Canterlot?" Snips asked in excitement.
I gave him a small smile. "Err…yeah, that's me." I answered.
Snips and Snails then looked at each other in excitement before they looked back up at me. "Oh, this is so cool. I can't believe we're actually meeting you." Snips said.
"Yeah, you were awesome when you fought that Thorn guy up in Canterlot. What was the fight like? Did he nearly kill you?" Snails asked.
I looked down at them with a raised eye. "The fight was the darkest, nastiest experience of my life….and yes, he nearly killed me, but the sun rose up before he could do it." I said.
Snips and Snails stared at me with the mouths open in amazement. "…Awesome." They both said at the same time.
I was slightly confused by this attention from them. "Err…thanks, but it's not that big of a deal anymore, it was just something that'll likely be forgotten eventually." I stated.
Snips and Snails then gasped loudly with their eyes wide opened. "Likely be forgotten? There's not a pony in Ponyville who'd forget that battle." Snips said.
Applebloom nodded. "Yeah, even Granny Smith wouldn't forget somethin' like that. And that's sayin' somethin'." She said.
"That battle was legendary; no one ever expected a pony like you to defeat a pony as evil as Thorn. Snails stated.
I still didn't understand, but I decided to just go along with it. "Well, you know…I was just doing what was right, I guess."
"Yeah, one of the parts of the battle I liked was when you grabbed Thorn by his horn before you spun around and bucked him right in the jaw." Snips said.
I then grew slightly worried. "You haven't been doing that to other ponies, have you?" I asked.
Snips quickly shook his head. "No, I'd never do that. But…can you show me how you did a buck like that? I've been trying to do it, but it doesn't feel right."
Snips then bent his hind-legs up before he bucked then out; it looked kinda slow and weak. "See, I don't think I'm doing it right." He said.
I wasn't sure if I should teach him a move like that, but he said he wouldn't use it in a fight. "If I show you how to do it, will you promise not to use it to hurt anypony?" I said in a firm voice.
Snips quickly nodded in excitement.
"Alright, what you need to do is add a little more thrust to it. Imagine you're trying to knock down an entire tree and you need to use all the strength you got to do it." I said before I bent my hind-legs up.
"Once you've got in position, you focus all your strength into your legs. Before you release them in one…big…BUCK." I said before I shot my hind-legs out.
Unknown to me, the sack of apples were still behind me. My strong buck accidently pushed the sack over and the apples spilled out onto the floor. I heard to sound of the apples falling before I placed my hind-legs back on the floor and looked behind me to see the mess I made.
"…Oops." Was all I said.
Just then, Cheerilee brought her head up from out of her desk drawers with a small brown bag in her mouth. She then started to walk back around the desk to reach me.
"Here you are, Matthew." Cheerilee muffled.
Suddenly, she stepped on one of the apples on the floor and started to lose her balance. As she started wobbling around, her other hoof stepped on another apple. Soon enough, she was wobbling around the spot like there was no floor for her to stand on.
Eventually, Cheerilee slipped over and the apples splattered underneath her as she landed on them. However, it was not over for her. The apple gunk underneath her was slippery, eventually causing her to slide towards the kids desks.
The other kids watched her with shocked faces as Cheerilee slid passed them with great speed, until she crashed against the back wall with a loud crash and smash sound.
Me, the girls, Snips and Snails just stood there with our eyes wide and our mouths hanging. We were all stunned.
"…Oooh…that's gonna leave a mark." Scootaloo stated.
Moments later
Apparently, the crash had broken one of Cheerilee's hind-legs. We managed to get a medical-carriage to take her to the hospital. I felt so guilty about this.
Two medical ponies carried Cheerilee out of the school on a Stretcher. Which was on wheels because they couldn't carry it, instead they pushed it along with their heads.
As they stopped behind the carriage, I walked up beside Cheerilee and looked down at her as she lay on the Stretcher. "Miss Cheerilee, I'm so sorry. It was all my fault, I didn't mean for that to happen." I said.
Cheerilee lifted her head up and smiled. "It's ok, Matt. I know it was an accident, but I guess I won't be teaching today." She said.
Cheerilee then turned her head to face all the kids who were standing outside the school. "Alright, my little ponies. I'm afraid school will have to be cancelled for today." She announced.
Even though they didn't react, I knew they were thrilled about this news.
I looked back down at Cheerilee. "Cheerilee, if there's anything you want me to do while you're gone, just let me know!"
"Well…there is one thing." Cheerilee said.
"What is it?" I asked.
"Oh, it's nothing. It'll be too much to place on you." Cheerilee stated.
"Miss Cheerilee, please! I want to help you, just tell me what you want me to do!" I said calmly.
"Well you see, I won't be able to teach for a while, and I need someone to fill in for me…so…do you think you could do it?" Cheerilee asked.
My eyes then widened before my left one twitched slightly. "W-W-What?" I stuttered.
"Please, it's only for a few days. Besides, you're the only pony I can get at such short notice. Please, Matthew." Cheerilee begged.
I looked into her eyes to see that she was really desperate, and I just couldn't say no to a cry-for-help like that. "(Sigh)…fine." I groaned.
Cheerilee smiled in delight. "Oh, thank you, Matthew. You don't know how much this means to me."
"Yeah, well…I'll do my best." I said in an unexcited tone.
At that moment, the two medical ponies managed to use their front hooves to lift the Cheerilee's Stretcher up before they placed her in the back of the carriage.
"Thanks again, Matthew. I appreciate this very much." Cheerilee said.
The medical ponies then climbed into the carriage with her before they closed the back doors, the pony in front of the carriage then started pulled it away before taking it down the path that lead to the hospital; leaving me alone with all the kids.
There was a moment silence, until. "School's out early." Snails cheered before the rest of the kids galloped into the town while cheering.
I looked behind me to see that only Applebloom, Sweetie Belle and Scootaloo were still here. I gave them a small smile. "Come on, girls! I'll walk you all home." I said.
I then started to walk into town with the three fillies following behind. However, I couldn't help but think about what I was going to do tomorrow. "What am I going to do? I can't teach these kids, I don't have any experience as a teacher. Plus, I hate school, I always have. The last thing I want to do is be a teacher." I thought with worry.
My thoughts kept bothering me as I took Applebloom, Sweetie Belle and Scootaloo to each of their homes.
The next day: Library
We soon got a message from the hospital about Cheerilee's condition; it said that she wouldn't be able to teach the school for a few weeks, which kinda made things harder for me.
I was sitting in front of Twilight's large mirror with Twilight standing behind me while using her magic to try and tie a small black bow-tie around my neck.
"Twilight, I don't know if I can do this." I said nervously.
"Well, what can we do, Matt? Miss Cheerilee can't teach until her leg heals, and somepony needs to step in for her." Twilight said before she finished tying the bow-tie.
I got up and turned around to face her. "Oooh, why can't you do it? I mean, you are smarter than me. Imagine what you could teach these kids!" I said.
Twilight gave me a small smile. "Matt, its sweet of you to think that. But Miss Cheerilee asked you to do it, and it's kinda your fault she's hurt in the first place, so you basically owe her." She said.
"It was an accident; you know I didn't mean to hurt her." I argued.
Twilight then placed her hoof on my shoulder. "Of course I do, but she left the school in your hooves. Besides, it's just for a few weeks. You can cope until then, right?"
"But what about my job working for Applejack? I can't deliver her supplies if I'm teaching at the Schoolhouse." I said.
Twilight then removed her hoof from my shoulder. "Don't worry about that! I told Applejack about what happened and she's agreed to let you stay off while you're filling in for Miss Cheerilee. She said that Big Macintosh is more than willing to deliver the supplies while you're gone."
I let out a small groan as I hung my head slightly; Twilight then placed her hoof under my chin before she slowly lifted my head up to look in my eyes. She gave me a sweet smile. "You'll be fine, Matt. I think what you're doing is a great thing."
I gave her a small smile before I took a quiet deep breath and exhaled. "Ok…I'm ready." I said.
Me and Twilight then walked down stairs and up towards the front door of the library. Once we reached it, I turned my head to face Twilight beside me.
"See ya, Twi. I love you." I said before we shared a small kiss on the lips.
"Love you too, Matt." Twilight said sweetly before she used her magic to open the front door, I then walked out of the library.
"Good luck." I heard Twilight say kindly before she closed the door behind me.
I let out a small sigh before I walked into town and started heading to the Schoolhouse.
Later: Schoolhouse
It was early in the day and I had already set myself behind Cheerilee's desk.
All the kids were outside on the playground while they were waiting for the bell to ring which will tell them to come inside to start the day.
I was so nervous; I tried to calm myself by focusing on something else. For the last few minutes, I was trying to balance a pencil on the palm of my hoof, which wasn't as easy as it sounded.
Yet, I was still nervous. Every time I dropped the pencil, I was reminded where I was and what I was about to do. I picked up the pencil in my mouth before I placed it down on the desk. "Damn, I'm so nervous. I just know I'm gonna do something wrong." I thought.
I then noticed a red apple sitting on the left side of the desk; I managed to pick it up with my hoof as I looked at it. "Why doesn't Cheerilee ever eat these things? Maybe this will calm my nerves." I thought.
"Hold up, this is Cheerilee's apple, should I take it?" I asked myself. I gave it some thought before I made my decision.
"Ehh, I can get her another one. I do work for Applejack after all." I said.
I then took a bite out of the apple and I thought calming thoughts as I tasted the flavour.
Suddenly, there was a loud ringing noise which caused me to flinch in fright. I then recognized the sound as the school bell ringing, I knew it just a few seconds before the kids would come in and I'd have to start the lesson.
I placed the apple back down on the desk before I stroked my hoof though my mane to make it look a little better. I then put on a fake smile.
At that moment, the front door opened and the kids came in. I was relieved to see that Applebloom, Sweetie Belle and Scootaloo had come in; I know they would help me if I mess up.
After all the fillies and colts sat down behind each of their desks, I got up and walked around the desk so I could start. "Ok, umm…good morning, kids. My name is Matthew and I'll be your substitute-teacher until Miss Cheerilee comes back."
At that moment, I saw a small pink hoof rise up. I looked to see it belonged to Diamond Tiara. "Err, yes, Diamond Tiara?" I asked.
Diamond Tiara lowered her hoof. "Aren't you the pony who caused Miss Cheerilee to break her leg in the first place?" she asked with a raised eye brow.
My fake smile then faded. "Well…yeah, but it was an accident. Plus, she asked me to fill in for her." I answered.
I then turned my attention to the rest of the kids. "I guess we should get started, huh? So, can anypony tell me where-"
I was interrupted my Diamond Tiara raising her hoof again. "Diamond Tiara?" I asked.
Diamond Tiara lowered her hoof back down. "I've heard of you, and I have a question….do you have any teaching experience?" she asked.
I began to sweat slightly before my fake smile returned. "Yeah, sure I do. I wouldn't be here if I didn't." I lied.
I once again turned to the rest of the kids. "Anyway, can anypony tell me where Miss Cheerilee left you off before…emm, the incident?"
"Oh, Miss Cheerilee was gonna let us go out into the playground and let us learn about…errr…air and stuff." Snips said in a suspicious voice.
I knew very well that he was trying to trick me. "Riiiiight."
I then turned to the other kids. "Anypony I can trust?" I asked; Snips groaned in failure.
Some of the kids all raised their hooves; I looked around until I saw Sweetie Belle. "Sweetie Belle!" I said as I pointed my hoof at her.
Sweetie Belle then lowered her hoof. "Miss Cheerilee was teaching us about geography, we have to read these textbooks." She said as she pointed to a big blue book on her desk.
I looked around to see that the other kids had the same type of book on their desks. "…Oh, ok then." I said.
I then walked back around behind my desk before I sat down, I looked down to see a blue book in front of me, it was the same type of book as the kids had.
I picked it up with my hooves before I opened it, the kids then did the same. "Alright, kids. Turn to page….errr." I said in confusion.
I flipped through the pages and didn't understand any of it; geography was never my best subject. In fact, I hated it all together.
I then decided to take things in a different direction.
"Alright, new plan. This is too hard, throw the books away." I said before I tossed the book behind me and it hit the chalkboard
The kids just sat there while staring at me with their books still in their hooves. "Go on, throw them away!" I said.
All the kids then did as I said and tossed the books behind them, the books all piled up in the back of the room.
I then walked back around to the front of my desk. "Alright, did Miss Cheerilee leave you any other kind of work to do?" I asked.
The room was silent before Applebloom raised her hoof. "Yeah, Applebloom?" I asked.
Applebloom then lowered her hoof. "Well…we did start readin' up on Pony History once before, but we never got around to finishin' it." she said.
I smiled. "Oh good, you guys do that and I'll see what I can do back here." I said before I started searching around my desk for something to work on.
As the kids jumped off the stools to get their history books, Diamond Tiara and Silver Spoon started whispering to each other.
"This guy is so lame, he can't even think up a subject for us to learn." Diamond Tiara said with a cold smirk.
"I know. This guy may be a hero, but he's certainly not teacher material. I'll give him at least three days before he cracks and runs home crying." Silver Spoon said with a mean smile.
"Three days? I'll give him the next ten minutes." Diamond Tiara said before they both snickered.
Unknown to them, Applebloom, Sweetie Bella and Scootaloo were listening in on them. They glared sharply at the mean fillies before Scootaloo let out a small grunt through her nostrils.
One hour later
While the kids read their history books quietly, I leaned back as far as I could go on my chair while staring up at the ceiling. I was bored out of my mind.
Even though this started an hour ago, it felt like forever. The only sound in the room was the ticking of the clock hanging up on the wall.
"When is that damn bell gonna ring? I hate all this waiting." I thought before I placed my hooves over my eyes in frustration. I then tried to entertain myself by looking through Cheerilee's desk drawers.
There were a lot of sheets of paper in one of them, so I decided to leave that one and shut the drawer. I then opened one of the other ones to see a first-aid kit, I figured Cheerilee kept it here in case any of the kids got hurt. I then closed that drawer.
I opened the next one to see a clip-board, and the last one was empty. Now that I think about it, it wasn't very entertaining after all. I then closed the drawers before I resumed leaning back on my chair and looking up at the ceiling in boredom.
After a few short minutes, the bell rang and all the kids placed their books down. I looked up at the clock and smiled in delight. "Finally." I said under my breath.
I walked back around to the front of my desk as I looked at the kids. "Alright, kids. Time for recess, have fun!" I said.
All the kids then jumped off their stools before they walked towards the front door. Once they reached it, they all walked outside into the playground. I then followed them.
Once I got settled on the playground, I sat quietly on the grass as I watched the kids play in the yard.
Applebloom, Sweetie Belle and Scootaloo were sitting by the bench as they wrote down new ideas on how they could get their cutie marks.
Snips and Snails were playing hide-and-seek with some of the other kids. However, Snails wasn't a good hider. He was hiding his head in the ground like an Ostrich.
Diamond Tiara and Silver Spoon were just reading their magazines that they brought in their saddlebags.
I got a little board of just sitting there, so I got up and walked over towards Applebloom, Sweetie Belle and Scootaloo to see what they had thought up to get their cutie marks.
Once I reached them, I hovered my head over them and looked down at their notes. "…What'cha doing, girls?" I asked; causing the girls to jump with fright.
Once they saw it was me, they calmed down. "Matt…ya done went and scared the daylights out of me." Applebloom said.
I smiled sheepishly. "Sorry…so, have you three thought up any ideas on how to get your cutie marks?" I asked.
The girls smiled before Scootaloo picked up their note-pad and showed it to me.
"Yeah, we've got tons of new ideas. First, we're gonna go over to the lake to see if we're good a scuba-diving. If that doesn't work, we're gonna try to be chimney-sweeps. And if that doesn't work, we're gonna-" Scootaloo said before I interrupted.
"That's all very good, girls. But this is recess, you should be having fun." I said before I got an idea.
"Hey maybe if you play some kind of game, you might find you have a talent in it." I suggested.
The girls then looked at each other before they looked back up to me. "Do you think that'll work?" Sweetie Belle asked.
"Could do, you won't know unless you find out." I said.
Scootaloo then grew a smirk on her face. "Ok, Matt. we'll play something…how about…tag?"
At that moment, Scootaloo quickly poked my chest with her hoof. "Tag, you're it." she called before she, Applebloom and Sweetie Belle galloped off in different directions.
I was surprised by the sudden act. "They want me to play with them? Didn't see that coming." I thought.
I then smirked as I let out a small chuckle. "Alright then, I'll play along." I said before I galloped off after Sweetie Belle.
I was inches away from her; she was fast for a little filly. Once I got close enough, I touched her back with my hoof. "You're it." I called.
I then turned around and galloped away from Sweetie Belle, she giggled before she started galloping after me. Sweetie Belle found it a bit hard to keep up with me, so she went after Scootaloo.
I watched as Scootaloo galloped as fast as she could away from Sweetie Belle, who was getting closer to her. Sweetie Belle then tagged Scootaloo before they changed positions. Now Scootaloo was chasing Sweetie Belle.
The funny thing is, I don't really like games like tag. But there was something about these three fillies that made me actually want to do it.
It was as if I was like a father who wanted to play with his daughters just to see them smile.
Sweetie Belle was actually out-running Scootaloo, Scootaloo was starting to tire out until she saw Applebloom. She grinned before she stopped chasing Sweetie Belle and went after Applebloom.
Applebloom noticed her before she started galloping faster, it wasn't long before Scootaloo reached her and tagged her. Now Applebloom was chasing Scootaloo.
However, Scootaloo was a fast runner. Applebloom put all her strength and effort into her own running, now they were running really fast…a little too fast.
I began to grow concerned for them. "Err…girls, you might want to slow down a bit. You're both going a bit too fast." I said as I watched them gallop past me.
As she ran as fast as she could, Applebloom looked back at me. "Don't worry, Matt! I run around the farm all the time and not once did I ever fa-AHHH."
Applebloom couldn't finish her sentence as she tripped over and hit the grass covered ground with a hard thud, I gasped before I galloped over to her.
Once I reached her, I gave her a concerned look as she slowly got up. "Applebloom, are you alright?" I asked in worry.
Applebloom then sat on the ground before she looked at the knee of her left leg; it had a small cut with dirt covering around it. Applebloom held her knee with her front hooves.
As Sweetie Belle and Scootaloo came over to us, I looked at her injury before I looked at the sadness in Applebloom's eyes. "It's alright, Applebloom, It's just a scratch. Come on! I'll take you back inside to get that patched up." I said sweetly.
I then lowered my body down to her level so she could climb up onto my back. Once she was on, I headed back inside to take care of her; leaving Sweetie Belle and Scootaloo watching us with concern.
Once inside, Applebloom was sitting on a stool while continuing to hold her knee in pain. I walked round to the back of my desk and opened the drawer which had the first-aid kit in it.
I took it out with my mouth and placed in on my desk before I opened it; revealing all sorts of medical things.
I then saw wet-wipes in a small plastic bag; I knew I could use those to clean the dirt from her knee. I opened the bag before I took one out with my mouth and walked over to Applebloom.
Once I was in front of her, I lifted my hoof and placed the wet-wipe on it so I could talk. "Ok, Applebloom. Just hold still so I can clean your knee!" I said.
Applebloom then removed her hooves from her knee before I slowly moved the wet-wipe towards it. I gently touched her knee with the wet-wipe before I slowly rubbed it; causing Applebloom to make a small whimpering sound.
I knew it must sting a little, but I could see that the dirt and the tiny amount of blood were clearing away as I wiped her knee.
Once her knee was clean, I pulled the dirty wet-wipe away from her. I then threw the wet-wipe in the bin next to the desk before I walked back to the open first-aid kit. I then saw a bottle of disinfectant and a small plastic bag of cotton-buds.
I knew it was going to sting her, but I didn't want her to get ill either. So I opened the bag and took out a cotton-bud, I then opened the disinfectant lid with my mouth before I held the cotton-bud on top of the bottle with my hoof.
I then managed the grab the bottle with my other hoof before I tipped the bottle over while still holding the cotton-bud on the top; I shook the bottle a few times to get some of the disinfectant onto the cotton-bud.
Once I knew it absorbed some, I stood the bottle back up before I walked back over to Applebloom while holding the cotton-bud on the palm of my hoof.
I gave her an honest look. "Ok, Applebloom. This might sting a bit, but it'll help." I said calmly.
Applebloom remained silent as she nodded; she then closed her eyes tight and prepared to feel whatever was coming.
I slowly moved the damp cotton-bud towards her injured knee before I carefully started dabbing the disinfectant on her wound.
Applebloom held her breath as she flinched slightly. "It's alright, Applebloom. Just relax and it'll be done before you know it." I said trying to calm her down.
Applebloom looked at me before she exhaled her breath, she then relaxed her leg; allowing me to continue, which I did.
After I few more dabs with the cotton-bud, I was done and her injury was covered with runny liquid. I gave her a proud smile. "See, that wasn't so bad. Now I'll just put a band-aid on it and we'll be done." I said.
I then threw the cotton-bud in the bin before I looked back into the first aid kit. I easily saw the box of band-aids and I took one out with my mouth before I walked back over to Applebloom.
Once I reached her, I held the band-aid on my hoof as I used my mouth to peel off the peelings before I moved it towards Applebloom's knee.
I stuck the band-aid carefully over Applebloom's wound before I gave it a gentle pat to make sure it was stuck on right. "All done." I said.
Applebloom then looked at her knee and smiled, something I really wanted to see from her at this point. She then looked at me with a sweet smile. "Thanks, Matt. I feel kinda better now." She said before she wrapped her small arms around my neck and gave me a soft hug.
I was surprised by this sudden embrace; I then smiled warmly before I hugged her back. "It's alright, Applebloom." I said quietly as I stroked the back of her head with my hoof.
The hug felt soft and warm, I began to realise why Cheerilee liked her job so much. She didn't do it just to teach kids, she did it so she could spend time with them and make them happy. I felt as though…I now wanted to be here with all these kids.
Me and Applebloom then broke the hug before I smiled down at her. "Hey, there's still a few minutes of recess left. Wanna go back outside?" I asked.
Applebloom nodded. "Yeah, I'll probably take things a little slower this time." She said before she walked past me.
I chuckled. "Yeah, that may be the best idea." I joked before I followed her back out into the playground.
Many minutes later
Once again, all the kids were quietly reading their history books while I was sitting behind my desk waiting for the next bell to ring.
I was also bored again. "This is starting to get dull…(bored sigh)…what can I do to pass the time?" I thought.
I then looked over to the book-shelf across the room and I grew curious. "Hmm…maybe there's an interesting book I can read." I said to myself before I got up and walked towards the book-shelf.
Once I reached the book-shelf, I looked threw the row of books to see if there were any I might like. I then saw a book that said the words Myths & Legends on the spine, I then shrugged. "I always did like these kind of books." I said.
I then grabbed the book with my mouth before I pulled it out from the row of books and brought it back to my desk. I placed it down on my desk before I sat back down behind it.
I then grabbed the book with my hooves before I opened it and started flipping through the pages.
See how this world already contained mythical creatures, there wasn't much about them in the book. It was more about lands and cities that may or may-not be real. Some creatures were mentioned, but I've never heard of creatures like them.
As I continued flipping, I found a page with a picture of a giant, shiny, blue castle. "Oh, what's this?" I asked myself.
I read the title of the page and gave it a confused look. "The Crystal Empire?" I said before I read through it, though I wasn't taking much interest.
"Let's see!...Crystal Ponies…blah, blah, blah…evil king…blah, blah, blah…mysteriously disappeared and hasn't been seen for at least a thousand years." I read.
I then smiled in amusement. "Yeah right, what's next? Atlantis?" I joked before I turned over to the next page.
As I turned threw many pages, I found one which had a picture of a dark scary looking mountain. I then read the title of the page. "Mount Forbidden…well, this is more like it." I said before I started reading the story.
"For many, many years, even before Celestia and Luna claimed their thrones, a giant mountain has casted a dark shadow in Equestria. Ponies would only talk of the mountain is whispers, because they believed it was the only dark point in the land at that time. All ponies where forbidden to go into the land for their safety, hence the name.
The mountain is surrounded by dead land covered in sharp rocks and deep trenches, which also have sharp rocks at the bottom.
There is a cloud of thick fog that spreads a bit beyond the lands edge; ponies who have gone in the fog have claimed to have heard whispers in it, voices crying out for help and mercy. Mercy from what, we do not know.
Nopony has ever dared to climb or even go near the dead lands; even the birds don't fly over it. If any pony has attempted to explore the darkened land, they have never returned to tell of their discoveries. Ever they've fallen to the sharp rocks that cover the land, had got stuck and died there, or they have been devoured by any kind of creature that would live there. But nopony has the slightest idea what kind of creature would even want to live there.
The land is uninhabited, though ponies who live near the mountain have claimed to have seen a mysterious green glow coming from the caves inside the mountain at night. It is uncertain if this confirms any intelligent life living within the walls of the mountain, but many are willing to believe.
Some call it Cursed, some call it The Underworld Come to Life, but most ponies call it…The Land of Evil."
*RIIIIIIIIIIING*
I jumped back on my stool in fright as the lunch bell rang; my frightened act attracted the attention of the kids. "Matt, are you ok?" Scootaloo asked.
I looked at her before I placed the book down. "Huh? Oh…yeah, I'm alright. Time for lunch, everypony." I said.
As the kids all went outside to eat in the warm sun, I looked down at the book. "Whow…that's a powerful book, I actually have chills." I chuckled.
I then took the book back to the book-shelf before I placed it back; I then headed towards the door to join the kids.
Once I reached the doorway, I felt a cold shiver down my spine as I thought about what I just read. I looked back at the book-shelf and gave the book a surreptitious look. I then decided to forget about it and I continued walking into the playground.
The kids were all sat by benches as they ate their lunch which Big Macintosh brought before, looks like he really is filling in for me. I was eating alone in silent as I ate my apples.
I tried to block it out, but the thought of the story in that book kept creeping up in my mind. "That story was kinda creepy, all the dark stuff it said about that place, it sounded like hell. Oh, what am I thinking? It was a book about myths and legends, they're not all real, most of the stories in that book are probably make-believe." I thought.
Just then, I felt a hoof tap my right side. I turned my head to see a small white colt with large light brown spots on his coat; he had an apple in his mouth. "What's up, little fella?" I asked.
The young colt placed his apple down on the ground before he spoke. "Excuse me, Mr Matthew! But can I sit next to you while I eat? There's no room left on the benches." He said in a British voice, which surprised me.
After hearing the sound of his voice, I knew straight away that he was Pipsqueak. I just didn't recognize him without the pirate costume.
I smiled down at him. "Ok then." I said before I moved over across the bench to give him some room to sit beside me, I then took a bite out of my apple.
Pipsqueak then picked up his apple before he sat beside me; he then started to eat his apple. As we both ate, I looked down at him before I swallowed a chewed up chuck of my apple. "So…you're British too, huh?" I said.
Pip looked at me before he swallowed his chuck of apple. "I guess so, but your British voice sounds different to mine."
"Oh, that's because I'm from the North-West of Britain, your voice sounds more like…Cockney." I said.
"Oh." Pip said before we both went back to eating, it didn't last long before Pip turned his head back to face me.
"So, are you really the pony who fought Thorn and saved Canterlot?" Pip asked curiously.
I then looked down at him before I swallowed the chuck of apple. "Yeah, I am." I answered.
Pip smiled in amazement. "Wow, you saved Princess Luna that night. She's my favourite Princess ever."
I chuckled. "Believe me, Pip. I know." I said.
Pip gave me a confused look. "How do you know my name?" he asked.
My eyes widened slightly. "Errr…my fiancé, Twilight, told me about you. She said that you dressed up like a pirate for Nightmare Night last year." I said hoping he'd believe me.
Pip then smiled again. "Oh, alright then." He said before we both went back to eating our apples once again.
Once again, Pip looked up at me. "Thanks, by the way, for letting me sit with you. Sometimes, nopony would let me sit next to them."
I looked down at him with a raised eye brow. "Why, can't you sit with those friends who were with you on Nightmare Night?"
"Yeah, but all the seats on their bench are taken." Pip said.
"Well, don't worry! When you have nowhere to sit, you can sit next to me." I stated with a smile.
Pip smiled warmly up at me. "Thanks, Mr Matthew." He said.
We then continued eating for the rest of lunch.
Many minutes later
It was finally getting to that time; it'll be time for the kids to go home any minute now.
As I sat behind my desk, I looked up at the tickling clock to see it wasn't long before the bell would ring; the kids were spending these last few minutes talking amongst each other.
I then got up off my stool and walked around to the front of my desk so I was in front of the kids. I then cleared my throat. "Emm…excuse me, kids! Can I say somethin'?" I said.
The kids then went silent as they looked at me. Once I saw that all the kids were looking at me, I spoke. "Ok, I just want to say that…I've really enjoyed being your teacher today. I really proud of all of you for being so good with me, you all really made my first day easy. Thank you."
All the kids had proud smiles on their faces, except for Diamond Tiara and Silver Spoon who both had unsatisfied looks on their faces with their arms crossed.
I looked back up at the clock to see that it was a minute away before they bell; I then looked back at the kids. "Well, it's been a good day. Again, I'm very proud of you all and I hope you've enjoyed today."
"Yeah right." Diamond Tiara said under her breath before I continued.
"So, get all your things, put them in your saddle bags and I'll see you all tomorrow…bye." I said with a small wave.
"Wait, Matt? What about the campin' trip?" Applebloom asked out loud.
I gave her a confused look. "Camping trip? What camping trip?" I asked curiously.
"Miss Cheerilee was gonna take us on a camping trip in two weeks, she said it would be a good way to learn about nature and how to survive in it." Sweetie Belle explained.
"Well…what do you want me to say about it?" I asked.
"You're supposed to tell us what to bring for the trip. You know, stuff like that." Scootaloo said.
I got the idea now, and I quickly thought up something. "Oh right…errr…bring your own sleeping-bag or tent, whatever fits you! Bring a flashlight…err…you know, things you might need when you're camping. Can everypony do that?" I asked.
At that moment, all the kids nodded. I was glad they could all bring their own things; I wouldn't have any idea on how to get the things for them. Suddenly, the bell rang.
"Ok, I guess we're all settled with the camping thing. Enjoy the rest of your day! I hope to see you all tomorrow." I said.
With that, all the kids jumped off their stools before they grabbed their saddle bags and headed towards the exit. I was the first one to walk out.
I stood by the schools entrance as I watched the kids walked past me. Snips and Snails came out and stopped before they looked up at me. "Hey Matt, that was a really easy day. Why can't all school days be like this?" Snips asked.
I shrugged. "It's school, it's supposed to be boring." I joked before we both shared a chuckle.
"See you tomorrow, Matt." Snails said before he and Snails continued to walk out of the school.
Diamond Tiara and Silver Spoon came out next and looked up at me. "Those lessons were a waste of time; all we did was sit at our desks while reading history books." Diamond Tiara complained.
"It's my first day, what did you expect? Plus, they were history books, so you technically learned something." I stated.
Diamond Tiara let out a loud groan before she and Silver Spoon continued to walk away.
Pipsqueak then came out. "Thanks for today, Mr Matthew. And thanks for letting me sit with you during lunch." He said kindly.
I smiled warmly down at him. "No problem, Pip. Maybe you can sit next to me tomorrow."
Pip grew a large smile. "Really?" he said in excitement.
I chuckled. "Really, kid." I said before I tussled his mane with my hoof. Pip then also continued to walk away.
After the other fillies and colts left, Applebloom, Sweetie Belle and Scootaloo were the last ones out. They smiled up at me. "Not bad for your first day, Matt." Scootaloo said with a smirk.
"Thanks, Scootaloo. Was I really good? I'm not so sure." I said with an unsure look on my face.
"Trust us! You were fine. It'll take a few days to get the hang of it, but you'll get there." Sweetie Belle said with confidence.
As Scootaloo and Sweetie Belle left, Applebloom walked up to me with a sweet smile. "Thanks for fixin' my knee before, Matt. I owe ya one." She stated.
I smiled down at her. "You don't owe me anything; just take it easy when you're playing rough! Ok?"
"Don't worry! I will. See ya tomorrow, Matt." Applebloom said as she walked away to follow the others.
Once the kids were out of sight, I locked up the school and started making my way to the library.
"Well, today went better than I thought. It might get harder eventually, but I think I'll manage somehow. I might go see Cheerilee and ask if she has some pointers on how to do this job right. I'll see her sometime later, right now I just want to get home to Twilight and rest." I thought as I walked into the streets of Ponyville.
That night: Library
We all had already gone to bed and were asleep, everyone except me.
I was sitting up on the bed with a book in my hooves; I had the bed-side table lamp on so I could see. I couldn't believe it really, I was up reading while Twilight was sleeping, crazy.
I was reading up on how to camp, I never when camping that much back in England.
Just then, Twilight rolled her body over to face me. The glow from the lamp caused Twilight to slowly wake up to see me reading. She leaned up slightly and rubbed one of her eye with her hoof.
"Matt…(yawn)…it's the middle of the night, don't you think you should stop reading and go to sleep?" Twilight asked.
An awkward look then came on her face. "Wow, that sounded wired coming from me. Anyway, why are you reading so late?"
I turned my head to face Twilight before I showed her the cover so she could see the title; it said 'How to camp in the wilderness'.
"I have to know how to camp before the camping trip with the kids; Cheerilee was apparently going to take them out camping to learn about nature and stuff." I explained.
"Matt, I'm glad you feel more confinable about this teaching thing, and I'm glad you're taking an interest in what you're doing with them, but do you really need to read the book now? I mean, when is this camping trip anyway?" Twilight asked.
"Err…two weeks." I answered with a sheepish smile, Twilight then looked at me with narrow eyes.
"Fine, I'll read it tomorrow." I said groaned before I closed the book and placed it down on the counter beside the lamp, I then turned the lamp off.
I gave Twilight a small kiss on the cheek before I laid down on the bed and rested my head on the pillow. Twilight then rested her head on her pillow before she closed her eyes. "Goodnight, Matt."
"Goodnight, Twilight." I said quietly before I closed my eyes to sleep.
Meanwhile: Mount Forbidden
The leader alicorn was sitting in front of the large green pool; he had his eyes closed as he breathed silently through his nose. He looked like he was in deep thought.
At that moment, Zelga came into the room.
Without her even saying a word, the alicorn growled as he slowly opened his blood red eyes. "Zelga…this had better be important, I was trying to find some peace." He said.
Zelga bowed her head. "Apologies, brother. But I have news about our little puppet." She said with a devious grin.
The alicorn slowly turned his head to face her. "You have given Luna the potion scroll?" he asked.
"…Yes, brother." Zelga answered.
The alicorn chuckled darkly. "And…she's plans to make it and use it on Matthew?"
Zelga hesitated for a second before she answered. "She…hasn't decided yet." She admitted.
The alicorn's grin then faded. "That's disappointing; maybe your plan isn't as good as you thought." he said in a cold voice.
"N-No, brother. I-It will work, I promise you." Zelga said in a slightly frightened voice.
"It had better, because if it doesn't…I won't be pleased." He growled with a snarl.
"Trust me, brother!...Luna's in a mid-life crises right now, she's miserable. Her only option to help herself is to use the potion." Zelga stated.
The alicorn grinned as he stood up on his hooves, his wings made a sound that sounded like bits of metal tapping together as he stood.
"Hahaha. Soon...Luna will make the potion; Matthew will drink it and fall deeply in love with her. Little does the dear Princess know is that the love potion is very strong. Once Matthew drinks it, he will be so in love with Luna that he won't care what happens to Ponyville or Canterlot, he won't even notice us as we destroy the very town he loves." Zelga said with a wicked smile.
"And when the potion wares off, he will see all the destruction that he let happen, He'll be so ashamed with himself. I wouldn't be surprised if he ended his own life to get away from the pain. Haha." The alicorn laughed with a dark voice.
The alicorn then walked up to Zelga as if he was going to walk pasted her. He stopped beside her and turned his head to face her.
"Pray she doesn't disappoint me, Zelga! Because if she does, you fail me. And nopony fails me…and lives." He threatened before he continued walking past her; leaving Zelga in a frighten stun.
As the leader alicorn walked out of the room, the other male alicorn came out from the shadows and walked up to Zelga.
His mane and tail were formed completely out of red flames.
"Why do we let him do this? We're his siblings and he treats us like useless filth. Why, if I was in-charge I'd-" the alicorn said before he was interrupted.
"Be dead in a few days, there's a reason he's the leader and you are not. We do exactly as he says, no arguments!" Zelga stated in a growl.
The alicorn growled with his teeth bearing. "Why can't you admit our brother is unfit to be leader? Thorn is dead because he decided Thorn should go through with his plan alone. We should have done it together."
"You seem to forget who our brother is and what he can do, do you really desire to disagree with his rule over this mountain? With his orders?" Zelga asked with a glare.
"…N-No…" the alicorn growled while looking down at the floor.
Zelga nodded. "Good…now be a good boy and listen to your superiors! I need to attend to our little…secret weapon." She said in a sly voice as she rubbed the alicorn's chin with her hoof.
Zelga then removed her hoof before she turned and walked towards the exit that lead to the stone hallway; leaving the alicorn alone.
He glared sharply before he walked over to the green pool; he looked at his reflection as the water bubbled.
"Very well, stay in our brother's shadow! But mark my words, dear sister! His rule…will come to an end…and when it does, mine will begin." He said deviously under his breath.
He grinned as he chuckled, his chuckle soon turned into a loudly evil laugh.
The water from the green pool started to glow brighter and brighter every second; creating a green glow that could be see through-out the caves of the mountain along with the sound of the evil laughter.
Hope you liked the chapter.
I'm so excited for the first episode of season 3 on November 10th. Let's look at the summary again, shall we?
"A magical empire has suddenly appeared in the arctic north of Equestria, and Princess Celestia needs Twilight Sparkle and her friends to find a way to protect it. While her friends try to keep the Crystal Ponies occupied at the Crystal Fair, Twilight Sparkle searches for the hidden Crystal Heart that is the key to keeping their empire safe from harm."
Awesome stuff XD
Anyway, I want to know how you're gonna watch it. So I've set up a vote on my profile.
The choices are.
:I'm watching it on the day it airs.
Or :I have to watch it on YouTube.
Also, I wouldn't expect my next chapter to come out before the episode airs, I'm gonna focus on that right now. Don't worry! This story will continue.
The next chapter might come out before then, depends on how fast it's done.
Please remember to review!
Next chapter will be up in November or sooner.
Happy Nightmare Night, everypony.
32. Camp Spring
Sorry it's took so long, I've been ill lately. Stuff that involve scratching, painfully bad skin, and a blood test. It's kinda an ugly story.
Anyway, the votes are in. 11 people like watching new episodes on YouTube, while 4 people like to watch them when they air for the first time.
I get why you like it on YouTube, but remember everypony! The shows popularity grows by the number of people who watch it on TV. If we want to see a Season 4, we need to get as many people watching the new episodes on TV as possible.
I can't do this, because I live in Britain and we don't get The Hub. So I have to watch new episodes on YouTube.
So here's something you can do. Watch each new episode on TV when it airs, then watch it as many times as you want on YouTube.
This is a suggestion, but it will help Season 3 become as popular as the last 2 seasons.
Anyway, enjoy the chapter! (Warning: long chapter…again)
Chapter 32: Camp Spring
It's been 2 weeks since I started filling in for Miss Cheerilee after she broke her leg in an accident…mostly caused by me.
Cheerilee is out of the hospital, but she's wearing a cast on her leg in a wheelchair. She's still not fit to teach again yet, but she's getting better.
Over those weeks, the kids and I have grown a connection. They really like me teaching them, and I'm enjoying it more than I thought I would.
Ponyville Schoolhouse
It was nearly the end of the day, I was teaching the kids about animals and how different types survive their environment.
I was standing in front of the calk-board with a picture of different animals drawn on it with calk. All the kids watch me as I talked.
"Ok, lizards are cold-blooded, so they need to stay in a hot environment to stay alive. Creatures like frogs are amphibian, meaning they can stay underwater longer than normal animals can. Any questions?" I asked the kids.
The room was silent until Applebloom raised her hoof. "Yeah, Applebloom?" I asked.
"Yeah, I've got a question about my pigs. One time, two pigs went into their pen and the female stayed in there for months. And when she finally came out, there was a smaller pig with her. How'd that happen?" Applebloom asked innocently.
I knew exactly how it happened, but I couldn't tell her about stuff like that just yet. I stared at her in silence before I spoke. "Errr….sorry, that's a different class."
"This is the only class." Silver Spoon stated with a raised eye brow.
I rolled my eyes before I looked over to her. "Different school, then." I responded.
I then looked back at Applebloom. "Sorry, Applebloom. But that's probably a question you should ask your sister or brother. I don't think I'm allowed to tell you those kind of things." I said.
Applebloom then nodded in agreement.
Just then, the bell rang and it was time for me and the kids to go home. "Alright, kids. As always, enjoy the rest of your day and remember to gather all your things for the camping trip tomorrow!" I announced.
All the kids then jumped off their stools before they made their way over to the exit, with me following them.
Later: Ponyville Streets
After saying goodbye to the kids and locking up the school, I was carrying Applebloom back to Sweet Apple Arches. These days, she liked it when I did.
It was peaceful in the streets, there weren't many ponies walking around as usual. It was nice to have a quiet day for a change.
Just then, I heard Applebloom yawn from my back. A smile came on my face as I felt her lie her head down on my mane. "Tired, Applebloom?" I asked.
Applebloom raised her head up off my mane and yawned again. "Yeah, today kinda wore me out." She said with a sleepy look in her eyes.
I knew how she felt, school use to tire me out all the time back in England. I turned my head around to face her and gave her a sweet smile. "Well, you take a short nap! I'll handle getting you home."
Applebloom smiled warmly at me. "Thanks, Matt." she said before she laid her head back down on my mane and closed her eyes.
As she fell asleep, I continued walking to Sweet Apple Arches.
Sweet Apple Arches
Later that evening, I arrived at Sweet Apple Arches and Applebloom was fast asleep on my back.
I walked up to the front door of the Apple Family's house and knocked on the door with my hoof.
After a few seconds, the door opened to reveal Applejack. Once she saw it was me, she smiled. "Well howdy there, Matt. bringin' back Applebloom as usual?" She asked.
I nodded. "Yeah, she fell asleep on the way here." I said before I turned my body around so she could see Applebloom sleeping on my back.
Applejack smiled sweetly at her sleeping sister. "Aww…ain't that just the cutest thing?" she said before she walked up to her.
Applejack then gently poked Applebloom with her hoof. "Applebloom…wake up." she said quietly.
Applebloom then slowly blinked her eyes open before she yawned. She then noticed Applejack before she turned her head to face me. "Matt?...are we here already?...that was fast."
I smiled at her. "You fell asleep, maybe you should take a nap." I suggested.
Applebloom slowly nodded before she slipped off my back and passed Applejack to go inside her house. "Remember to get your things ready for tomorrow!" I called.
Applebloom looked back at me as she approached the first step of the stairs. "I will, thanks for bringin' me home again, Matt." she said with a kind smile before she made her way up the stairs.
Once she was upstairs, Applejack gave me a thankful smile. "Thanks for that, Matt. I don't know why, but she likes it when you walk her home these days."
I shrugged. "I don't get it either, but I like doing it. She's been like this ever since my first day, it might have something to do with me helping her when she hurt her knee."
"I figured as much. Matt, I want ya to do somethin' for me when ya'all on this campin' trip." Applejack said seriously.
"Ok, what is it?" I asked curiously.
"I want ya to take good care of my sister and her friends! Campin' can have its dangerous moments; I'm depending on ya to protect my sister." Applejack said in a firm voice.
I gave Applejack a serious look. "I'll protect her like she was my own daughter." I said.
"Thanks, Matt. I'll make sure she has all her things ready for tomorrow." Applejack said calmly with a smile.
I smiled back. "Ok, see ya tomorrow, Applejack." I said before I turned around and started making my way towards the farms exit.
"See ya, Matt." I headed Applejack call from behind me as I kept walking.
I then walked out of the farm before I flapped my wings and took off into the sky; I flew back to the library to spend the rest of the day with Twilight.
The next day: Schoolhouse
Luckily, it was a warm sunny day for our trip. I was standing in the playground with all the kids as we waited for the right time to go.
All the kids had saddle-bags and camping-bags on their backs as they talked amongst each other. I also had my saddle-bag and I had a camping-bag.
It was nearly time to go. Just then, I felt a small hoof tap my left front leg. I turned my head to see Pipsqueak standing beside me. "Err, Mr Matthew, can I ask you something?" he asked politely.
I smiled down at him. "Sure, what is it, Pip?"
He rubbed his hoof against the ground with an unsure look on his face. "Are you sure a camping trip is safe? What if one of us gets lost in the woods, or something?" he asked with slight worry.
I gave him a warm smile as I placed my hoof on his shoulder. "Don't worry, Pip! I'll look after all of you." I said calmly.
"…Ok, Mr Matthew. I trust you." Pip said with a small smile.
"Thanks, Pip. Now go and join your friends! It's almost time to go." I said before Pip walked away to join up with a small group of other kids.
After a few minutes, it was finally time to go to the train station. "Alright, everypony. It's time to go, everyone form a group and stay close to me." I called.
With that, all the kids gathered up around me. They all looked excited, the only ones who weren't showing much excitement were Diamond Tiara and Silver Spoon, I wasn't very surprised.
Once I saw that everyone was together, I knew we were finally ready. "Alright, let's get going." I said cheerfully.
"YAAAAY." Most of the kids cheered as we began to walk out of the school grounds.
Once we were out of the school grounds, we headed into town to go to the train station.
A few minutes later: Ponyville Train station
After a short walk, we all reached the train station. I was glad that the kids behaved themselves on the way here, they always were good.
"This is gonna be awesome, I've been waiting for this day for a long time." Scootaloo said.
"Yeah, I'm so excited. What're you gonna do there, Scootaloo?" Sweetie Belle asked.
"I've brought my scuba-diving suit so I can go diving in the lake, who knows what could be at the bottom." Scootaloo said.
"I'm gonna see what kind of things I can find in the woods, there's so many things you can find in there." Sweetie Belle said.
"Well, I can't wait for it to get dark. Things always get better at night, like when we tell the ghost stories during the camp fire." Applebloom said.
"G-Ghost stories?...I don't know, I kinda get scared when someone tells a ghost story." Sweetie Belle said in a slightly frightened voice.
"Oh come on, Sweetie Belle! They're just stories, they're not real." Scootaloo stated with her arm around Sweetie Belle's shoulders.
Applebloom walked up to them with a comforting smile. "Yeah, there ain't nothin' to be afraid of." She stated.
"That's what you think, but all forests have some sort of danger." A voice said coldly.
The girls looked in the direction the voice came from to see Diamond Tiara with a mean smirk on her face.
"What are you talking about, Diamond Tiara?" Scootaloo asked with a glare.
Diamond Tiara walked up to them. "Look at you three! You think camping is fun? HA, more like a disaster waiting to happen. Don't you know that every year many ponies go missing during camping trips?"
"T-That's not true, you're makin' that up." Applebloom said.
Diamond Tiara turned her head to face her. "No, I'm not. And you don't even want to know about the wild-life."
"W-What?" Sweetie Belle asked with slight fear.
Diamond Tiara grew a small devious grin. "Oh, nothing much. Just bears, Timber-wolves, bees, all sorts of creatures. And do you know the one thing they like to eat more than anything?"
The girls silently shook their heads with their eyes wide open.
Diamond Tiara's grin grew. "They like to eat…little camping fillies."
Suddenly, Silver Spoon jumped up behind the girls. "BOO!" she yelled; causing the girls to scream loudly.
I heard the scream and quickly looked over to see what was happening, I walked over to them. "What's going on over here?" I asked.
Applebloom and Scootaloo looked frightened, but Sweetie Belle was quivering as if she's seen a ghost.
"Diamond Tiara was sayin' the animals in the forest were gonna eat us, then Silver Spoon jumped out of nowhere and scared the day-lights out of us." Applebloom explained.
After hearing this, I looked down at Diamond Tiara with a firm look. "…What? We were just playing." Diamond Tiara stated.
"Really? Sounds like you were trying to scare them. I'll let you off this time, but if you or Silver Spoon so much as jump out of a bush to scare anyone, you'll both get detention for a week. Am I clear?" I said in a serious voice.
Diamond Tiara then looked down at the ground in annoyance before she let out a loud sigh. "Yes, Mr Matthew." She groaned.
"Good, now both of you go re-join with the group and stay where I can see you!" I said before Diamond Tiara and Silver Spoon walked away to do as I said.
Once they were taken care of, I walked over to the girls. "Hey, you three alright?" I asked with concern.
Sweetie Belle gave me an unsure look. "Matt, I don't know if I can do this anymore. What if something bad does happen?"
I gave her a confident look. "Don't worry! I'll look after you, I'll look after all of you. Just try to have a good time! Alright?" I said in a calming voice.
The girls then looked at each other before they looked back at me, they then nodded. I was glad they chose to try.
I smiled down at them. "Ok, now let's get back to the group! The train will be here any minute."
With that, I the girls walked passed me to re-join the group with me following behind. However, after seeing the worry in Sweetie Belle's eyes, I knew for curtain that I would have to do more than my best to make sure that nothing happens to any of them in any way.
After a few minutes, the Friendship Express finally arrived at the station. "Ok, kids. Let's go!" I said before they cheered in excitement.
We all got in one of the train cars and we all took our seats. I sat by the window because I get a bit travel-sick sometimes; Pip was sitting next to me.
Of cause, the Cutie Mark Crusaders were sitting together. Diamond Tiara and Silver Spoon were sitting as far back away from everyone as possible. They all started talking amongst each other as we waited for the train to start moving.
Just then, I felt Pip tap my hip and I turned my head to look down at him. "Mr Matthew, where are we going again?" he asked.
"We're going to the Spring Forest; it's like a park for ponies to camp in. There should be some park rangers waiting for us at the station there." I explained.
"Do you think we'll see some wild-life there?" Pip asked curiously.
I shrugged. "Probably, it is a forest after all." I said.
"I hope there aren't any dangerous animals there." Pip said.
I gave him a trustful smile. "I wouldn't worry about that, Pip. I'm sure most of the animals there are friendly. If there are dangerous ones, they won't bother us if we leave them alone."
Pip smiled as he nodded. "Ok, Mr Matthew. So when does the train leave?" he asked.
"It should be any time now, I'll check my watch." I said before I looked down at my arm.
Pip gave me a confused look. "Errr…you're not wearing a watch, Mr Matthew." He said.
He was right, I wasn't wearing a watch, I was just looking down and the fair on my arm. "…Oh yeah." I said with a sheepish smile before I put my arm down.
Just then, I felt the train start to vibrate beneath me before it slowly started to move. All the kids had excited smiles as they sat in their seats.
I heard the whistle from the engine car as we began to pick up speed. In a matter of seconds, we were going full speed and we were on our way to the camp.
Meanwhile: Ponyville Streets
Twilight was walking through the streets with Jeff on her back. They were heading back to the library after visited Cheerilee in her home to check on her.
"I'm glad that Cheerilee's getting better, it won't be long before she can teach again." Twilight said with a pleased smile.
"Yeah, she's doin' good…despite from the fact that she's in a wheelchair." Jeff said.
Twilight turned her head around to face Jeff with a firm look. "I thought I told you not to stare." She said.
"I wasn't staring…it was just easily noticeable, that's all." Jeff stated with his wings crossed
Twilight then rolled her eyes before she turned her attention back on where she was walking.
Suddenly, something fell out of the sky and crash landed right in front of Twilight; making her let out a small yelled as she flinched backwards.
After a second, Twilight saw that it was Derpy who crashed in front of her. She had her mail-bag around her. "Derpy, are you ok?" Twilight asked.
Derpy then got up from the ground and shook the dust off her body; she then smiled with her eyes still crossed. "Yeah, I'm fine. I'm just making my mail deliveries, like usual."
"Oh really? That's nice. How've your deliveries been today?" Twilight asked.
"Fine, just fine." Derpy answered as she nodded.
"That's great, Derpy. Well, I'd better get going. I have a lot of work to do back at the library." Twilight said before she walked passed Derpy; who just stood there with her eyes crossed.
As Twilight walked away from her, she heard Derpy call behind her. "Wait!" she yelled.
Twilight and Jeff turned their heads around to face Derpy as she walked up to them. Derpy then shoved her head into her mail-bag and pulled out a letter in her mouth.
Twilight looked at it in wonder. "What's that for?" she asked as her horn glowed and the letter floated out of Derpy's mouth and hovered in front of her face.
"It's a letter for you. I was gonna deliver it to you place, but I think it's better if I give it to you now while you're here." Derpy said.
Twilight gave Derpy a smile. "Oh…thanks, Derpy."
Derpy saluted to Twilight with a smile. "No problem. Well, I'd better get back to work. Say hi to Matt for me, will ya?"
Twilight nodded. "I will. And again, thanks."
"Ok, see ya." Derpy said before she turned around and walked away from Twilight.
Once she was gone, Twilight returned her attention to the letter in front of her. Jeff climbed onto of her head and looked down at it. "What's it say?" he asked.
Twilight then used her magic to open the envelope and the letter lifted out of it. Twilight then started to read it.
"Dear: Twilight and Matthew.
Come to Sugar Cube Corner tonight at eight o'clock! We have a special surprise for you. You may bring Jeff and Peewee if you wish, Spike will already be there.
P.S. Pinkie says hi.
Signed: Rarity."
Jeff had a wondering look on his face."I wonder what the surprise is."
Twilight looked up at him. "I don't know, but knowing my friends, it'll be something worth it." She said.
"But the letter says they want you and Matt there, he's not here until tomorrow." Jeff stated.
"Well, we'll just have to explain that to them." Twilight said as she hovered the letter up to Jeff and he held on to it. He then walked down off her head and back onto her back.
Twilight then turned around and began to walk back to the library again. "Now, I really need to get home. Those reports aren't gonna do themselves."
"If you use your magic, they will." Jeff said before he let out a small chuckle.
Twilight just rolled her eyes again. "How Matt puts up with you, I'll never know."
Jeff smirked. "You get used to it, doll-face."
Twilight turned her head to face Jeff with her eyes narrowed. "Don't call me doll-face!"
"You got it, sweet-cheeks." Jeff said with an even bigger smirk.
Twilight let out a loud groan as she turned her head back around. As she kept walking, something suddenly caught Jeff's eye up ahead.
"Dove, dove, total dove." He said as he pointed forward.
Twilight looked at what he was pointing at to see a female white dove flying towards them.
Jeff lied his back down against the back of Twilight's neck with his wings behind his head to make him look cool.
"So yeah, I totally saved those baby chicks from that vulture. I sent him cryin' home to his momma." Jeff said out loud; hoping the dove heard him.
However, the dove took no notice and flew straight passed them. Jeff leaned back up and let out a small sigh. "Well, that was a swing-and-a-miss." He said.
Twilight shook her head with an amused smile before she kept walking back to the library.
Later that day: Spring Forest station
After a long train ride, the Friendship Express finally arrived at the station in front of the Spring Forest.
Once the train came to a complete stop, we all got off the train. I turned around to face all the kids. "Alright, kids. Everyone stay together so I don't lose any of you!" I said.
Once the kids did as I said, I looked around the station platform to see an Earth pony wearing a red park ranger uniform. "Huh, that must be the guy." I thought.
I then walked over to him with all the kids following behind. Once we reached him, he smiled at us. "You must be the campers from Ponyville that I was told about, welcome to the Spring Forest, one of the most peaceful camping grounds in all of Equestria."
I smiled at him. "Thanks, so where should we set up our tents?" I asked.
The park ranger then pointed into the forest. "Just follow the path up the hill! There'll be a large open space in the middle of the forest with a blue flag stuck in the ground, that'll be your camping sight." He explained.
I nodded. "Easy enough, thanks." I said before I turned my head around to face the kids. "Alright, kids. I know where we're going, follow me!" I said.
I then began to walk towards the trees with the kids following behind, the park ranger waved to us as we left the station.
It wasn't long before we were walking through the forest. It wasn't creepy like the Ever Free Forest, so none of the kids were frightened.
"Err…Mr Matthew, are you sure you know where we're going?" Twist asked.
I turned my head around to look down at her. "Pretty sure, that guy said to follow the path until we reached a big open space. It shouldn't be too hard to find, just keep your eyes open for a blue flag in the ground!" I said as I looked around.
After what seemed like an hour of walking, we finally made it to the end of the path. There, we found our camp sight.
It was a large open area with no trees or bushes in it, the only trees that were seen were the ones surrounding the area. There was more than enough room to set all our tents up, the only thing inside the area was a pile of burnt logs covered in soot and ash; apparently someone used this area before us.
I then noticed the blue flag on a small pole stuck up in the middle of the burnt logs. I walked over to it and pulled it out the ground before I placed it on the ground. I then turned around to face the kids.
"Ok, everypony get out your tents and set them up! Don't set them up near the fire, set them up near the trees! And if anypony wants me to help them with their tent, just ask." I announced.
With that, we all took our camping-bags off our backs and pulled out our tents. Some of the kids like Pip and Scootaloo asked me to help them at some point, which I did.
When we were done, I had my tent up. It was a large green tent big enough for two.
I then looked around to see how the kids were getting on, was interested in how everyone's tents looked different.
Applebloom, Sweetie Belle and Scootaloo were sharing a large dark blue tent with their Cutie Mark Crusaders symbol on the front.
Twist's tent had red and white stripes going across it.
Diamond Tiara and Silver Spoon were also sharing a pink tent which looked like a small castle.
And Snips & Snails also shared a tent, although it looked as though they had made it themselves, it was covered in stitches and different coloured fabric.
Once they were done, the kids wondered around the camp site to admire their surroundings. They looked excited and ready to start.
I then stepped forward. "Alright, kids. We're only here for one day, so what do you want to do first?" I asked out loud.
At that moment, Applebloom came up to me. "Oh, oh, let's go explore in the woods!" she suggested.
Suddenly, Sweetie Belle came up beside her. "No, let's go animal watching!"
And finally, Scootaloo came up beside her. "No way, let's go fishing!"
I then rubbed my chin as I thought about what to do, I then got an idea. "How about we go with Scootaloo's idea and go fishing?" I said hoping they'd agree.
The girls then looked at each other before they nodded and looked back up at me. "Ok, that'll be fun too." Applebloom said.
I smiled in delight before I looked out to the other kids around the camp. "Attention, kids! Me and the girls are gonna go fishing, anyone who's interested is welcome to come. If not, you're allowed to stay behind, but stay in the camp site at all times! Ok?" I announced.
Some of the kids (including Snips, Snails, Pip and Twist) smiled as they came over to join our group. Some of the kids like Diamond Tiara and Silver Spoon just stayed sat on a small log.
"Eww, the last thing I'm gonna do is go out into the disgusting forest. And we're certainly not gonna go near some icky lake with a bunch of smelly fish swimming in it." Diamond Tiara said out loud.
"Yeah, I'm staying here with her." Silver Spoon stated as she and Diamond Tiara crossed their arms.
I let out a silent sigh. "Fine, suit yourself! But stay in the camp like I said!" I said in a serious voice.
"Don't worry! We're not going anywhere." Diamond Tiara said.
She and Silver Spoon then reached into their saddle-bags which were lying by the log they were sitting on and they each pulled out a magazine before they started reading them.
Once I saw that all the kids who were staying behind were settled, I looked down at the small group in front of me. "Well, it looks like we're all ready. Now everypony stay close to me and don't go wondering off!" I said.
The kids then nodded to tell me they understood. I then walked over to my tent before I went inside, I was thinking about doing a bit of fishing while I was here, so I brought my own fishing-pole in my bag.
It was a put-together pole, meaning it could fold up so I could carry it around without poking anyone. It was in a small black bag with straps so I could carry it on my back.
After I found it, I came out of the tent with the black bag on my back. "Alright, let's go!" I said before we all started walking towards a path in the woods.
There was a wooden sign beside the path with an arrow on it with the word 'Lake' painted next to it, We all began to follow the path to find the lake.
Later: The lake
We had managed to find the lake easily; I took the black bag off my bag and got out my folded-up fishing-pole.
I spent a few minutes putting it together because it was difficult to do that with no fingers. But finally, I got it together and my fishing-pole was ready.
I stood next to the lake where I could see the water perfectly before I turned around to face the few kids. "Ok, so has anyone ever gone fishing before?" I asked.
Nopony raised their hoof before Applebloom raised hers, I smiled down at her. "Oh good, so do you know what we have to do next?"
Applebloom gave me a confused look. "Why are ya askin' me? Have you ever gone fishin' before?" she asked.
I nodded. "I have, I'm just asking you." I explained.
"Oh…well, first we need to put bait on the hook." Applebloom said as she pointed at the hook dangling on the fishing line.
I nodded. "Very good, Applebloom. So who can tell me what we can use as bait?" I asked.
At that moment, Scootaloo came up to me. "Oh, I've got something that'll work." She said with one of her hooves behind her back, she was holding something.
She moved her hoof around from her back to show me a shiny red apple. I looked at it in confusion. "Err…that's an apple. Fish don't eat apples, they eat things like worms."
Scootaloo nodded. "Yeah, I know. There's a worm in the apple." She said; causing some of the kids to laugh slightly.
I couldn't help but let out a small chuckle. "Haha, very funny, Scootaloo. But seriously, I don't think it's gonna work like that."
Scootaloo smirked up at me. "Bet you it will."
I smirked back. "You're on. If it works, you get to reel in the fish." I said as I placed the fishing-pole down in front of her.
Scootaloo then picked the hook up with her hoof before she attached the apple onto it, she then picked the pole up in her hooves before she held the pole back and swung it forward; casting the apple into the water.
While Scootaloo focused all her concentration on the bobber floating on the water-surface, Applebloom turned her head to face her. "I think I have to agree with Matt, I've never heard of a fish that goes for an apple with a worm in it." she said in an unsure voice.
After a few short minutes, nothing happened. I was about to tell Scootaloo to pull the line back before the bobber started to bob. Suddenly, the bobber went under the water and the fishing-pole bent.
"WHOW." Scootaloo yelled as she used all her strength to hold the pole back.
I watched her in full surprise by the fact that a fish actually took the apple bait. "…Well, how 'bout that. It worked." I said.
As the fishing line pulled harder, so did Scootaloo. Applebloom and Sweetie Belle had to grab hold of her to keep her from being pulled into the water.
I then walked up beside the struggling fillies. "Need some help?" I asked.
"…Yeah…h-hurry! I don't know if I can hold on any longer." Scootaloo said as she pulled back on the pole with all her might.
I nodded before I held on to the pole handle with Scootaloo and started to pull back with her, this fish was really putting up a fight. Suddenly, Scootaloo's hooves gave in and they slipped off the pole; now I was the only one pulling back on the pole.
As I tried to pull back, I was slowly being pulled towards the water. I tried to take a few steps back, but the soil beneath my hooves was slightly wet and slippery from being near the water. It wasn't long before I slipped and fell straight into the water with a big splash.
I swam back up and spat out the water that was in my mouth with disgust, luckily the water wasn't so deep. I heard the kids laugh loudly as I kept myself floating in the water. "Not funny, guys." I said.
"Hahaha, it's pretty funny from here, hahaha." Snips laughed.
I blushed brightly as I felt embarrassment take over. But after thinking about how silly I must look, I started to laugh along with them. Now we were all sharing loud laughter.
But as I tried to swim back to land, I felt something around my leg. I dunked my head under the water to see the fishing line tied around my leg, the line was starting to straighten as if it was being pulled by something. I knew exactly what was coming next.
I brought my head back up from the water with my eyes wide open. "…Oh crap." I said under my breath.
Suddenly, the line straightened completely and I yelled loudly as I was pulled along the water-surface. The kids watched me with wide eyes as I was pulled away from them.
I was in this mess for a short time; my yells were sometimes muffled by the water splashing hard in my face. I was starting to wonder if I'd ever stop.
Just then, I saw something up ahead. As I was pulled closer to it, I saw that it was a long tree branch sticking out from a tree on the land. I saw this as my one chance to stop this joy-ride.
Once I was close enough to it, I grabbed onto the branch and wrapped my arms around it to hold on better. However, the fish at the other end of the line continued to swim. My leg was forced to straighten and the branch I was held onto started to bend.
I held on as hard as I could and tried to pull my leg back, but this fish was determined to keep going. I didn't know what would happen; I figured the branch would snap at any moment now.
Then something unexpected happened, the branch was stronger than I thought it was. It flung me out of the water and I flew back to the land before I crash-landed on the ground. The fish must've been overpowered because it landed in front of me and flapped around.
I looked at it to see it was a big grey fish. "Ha, got'cha." I said with a smirk.
At that moment, the kids galloped out from the bushes and looked at me with concerned faces. "Mr Matthew, are you ok?" Pip asked.
I weakly got up off the ground and groaned as I rubbed my head with my hoof. "I think that's enough fishing for one day." I said before I fell back down to the ground.
Meanwhile: Sugar Cube Corner
It was 8:00 and Celestia's sun was starting to lower.
Twilight walked up in front of Sugar Cube Corner with Jeff and Peewee on her back. "What do you think they wanted us here for?" Peewee asked.
Twilight shrugged. "No idea, the letter just said to come here at eight o'clock."
"Well, let's go inside and see what all the secrecy's about!" Jeff said.
Twilight then walked up to the front door before she pushed on it with her hoof, the door slowly opened for her to see that all the lights were off, the room was completely dark.
Twilight walked inside and looked around in the darkness before the light's shot on and the rest of the main 6 and Spike jumped out. "SURPRISE." They yelled.
Twilight was surprised, she looked around the room to see it was decorated with white balloons and multi-coloured confetti. She had no idea what this was for. "What's all this for?" she asked.
Pinkie Pie then shot up beside her and wrapped her arm around her. "You big silly, this is your celebration party."
"My what?" Twilight asked in confusion.
"Darling, don't you remember? We said we'd throw you a party to celebrate your engagement to Matthew." Rarity explained with a warm smile.
Twilight then remembered what she was talking about. "Oh yeah, I forgot about that. That was weeks ago, I thought you decided not to throw it."
Pinkie Pie gasped loudly. "Decided not to throw it? Are you crazy? I'd never miss the opportunity to throw a party, especially when it's one for you and Mattie."
Pinkie Pie then looked behind Twilight before a wondering look came on her face. "Hey, where is Mattie anyway? OH, is he playing hide-and-seek? I'll seek." She yelled in excitement.
Pinkie Pie then started looking around the room. She looked under the couch, she looked in a jar, and she even looked under Jeff's tail feathers.
"HEY, what're ya doin'?" Jeff yelled was he covered his rear with his wings.
"I was looking under your tail for Mattie." Pinkie explained indecently.
"Trust me! I'd know if he was under there." Jeff stated in an irritated tone.
Twilight then turned her head to face Pinkie Pie. "Pinkie, Matt's not here. He's taken the kids at the school on a camping trip; he won't be back until tomorrow."
"But this party was for you and Matt, how is it supposed to be a party for both of you if he's not here?" Rainbow Dash asked.
Twilight turned her head to face her. "Don't worry, Rainbow! We can just throw another party for him when he gets back." She said.
Pinkie Pie then grew a large excited smile. "You mean I get to throw the same party twice? (Excited squeal) I better reload my party cannon." She said before she shot off into the next room. After a second, she shot back in.
"So Twi, how's Matt been anyway? Has he had any problems with guilt over Thorn's death or somethin'?" Applejack asked.
Twilight shook her head. "No, no problems what-so-ever." She said as she shifted her eyes left and right.
Pinkie Pie then gave her a suspicious look. "She's lying."
Fluttershy then looked at her with a raised eye brow. "How do you know?"
"I can tell in the sound of her voice. Plus, you only shift your eyes around when you're trying to hide something." Pinkie Pie said.
Fluttershy then walked up beside Twilight. "Twilight, is there something wrong? Do you want to tell us?" she said in her gentle voice.
"There's nothing wrong." Twilight protested.
"Twilight!" Applejack said in a firm voice.
Twilight looked around to see the wonder and concern on their faces. "Well…Matt's not been sleeping well lately. He keeps tossing and turning in his sleep, she mumbles things that I can't understand. Sometimes, I get so worried that I have to wake him up to get him to calm down."
"It sounds like he's having rather nasty nightmares." Rarity said.
"I don't think it's anything serious, but it's happened three nights in a row. What should I do?" Twilight asked.
"Nightmares come and go, Twilight. Trust me! He'll be back to his old goofy self in no-time." Rainbow Dash said with confidence.
"I hope you're right, Rainbow." Twilight said still feeling worried.
"Well, enough with all this talk about Thorn and nightmares! Let's get this here party started!" Applejack said as she stood on her hind-legs and kicked her front-legs in the air cheerfully.
Pinkie then ran over to the gramophone before she threw a record disc in it and music started playing. With that, Twilight and the others started dancing to the music as their party began.
Later that day, Twilight and the others were taking a break by sitting on the floor and talking. "This was the best party ever." Pinkie Pie said.
"That's what you said about the last party you threw, and the one before that, and the one before that, and so on." Spike stated.
"To me, every party is the best." Pinkie Pie said with a large smile.
After a moment, Twilight spoke. "So, do any of you think marriage will be hard? I mean, I don't know much about a married life."
"Neither do we, Twilight. We're not exactly the right ponies to ask that question to." Rarity stated.
Just then, Mr and Mrs Cake came into the room with a tray of drinks in Mrs Cake's mouth. "Would any of you like some refreshment?" Mr Cake asked.
Twilight and the others all nodded to them before Mrs Cake placed the tray down on a small table in front of them. They each took a cup.
Twilight used her magic to hold her cup before she looked over to Mr and Mrs Cake. "Emm…can I ask you two a personal question?" she asked politely.
Mr Cake turned his head to face her. "Of cause you can, Twilight. What is it?" he asked as Mrs Cake became curious in what she wanted to say.
"What's it like to be married? I mean, is it hard?" Twilight asked.
Mrs Cake stepped forward. "Well…not always. True, there are some hard times in a married life, but they're worth it if you're with the one you love."
"She's right, Twilight. I know marriage is a big step in your life, but if it means being with the one you love forever, it's a step defiantly worth taking." Mr Cake said kindly.
"Don't worry, dearie! I know how you feel. Before I married Mr Cake, I also wondered if a married life would be hard. And you know what; it isn't as hard as I thought. What I said was right; there will be times where things seem hard. But in the end, everything works out. And I'm sure you and Matthew will have a great life together." Mrs Cake said.
Twilight gave them both a thankful smile. "Thank you, both of you. I just needed to know that."
"Any time, Twilight." Mr Cake said before he and Mrs Cake went back into the kitchen.
After they left, Rarity looked over to Twilight. "So Twilight, what would you like your dress to be like? Something ravishing? Something original?"
Twilight gave her a confused look. "What're you talking about, Rarity?"
"Twilight, you don't really expect me to sit by and not do anything while you prepare for your wedding, do you? You simply must let me design your gown for you." Rarity said.
Twilight gave her a sweet smile. "Aww, Rarity. I appreciate the offer, but I don't want to put a burden on you."
Rarity put her hoof up. "Nonsense, it won't be a burden, I'm more than happy to make your dress. I mean really, when'll be the next time I get the chance to make a wedding dress for one of my friends?"
Twilight didn't have to think long before she made her decision. "Alright Rarity, you can make my dress. Knowing your skills, I bet it'll be beautiful." She said with a smile; causing Rarity to smile with excitement.
"Well, that's my dress taken care of. Now I just need to find someone to make all the food." Twilight said out-loud.
"Well shucks, Twilight. If ya'all need someone to make the food, why not ask me? Me and my family make tons of apple treats all the time." Applejack said.
Twilight looked over to her. "But Applejack, that'll mean you'll have to cook lots of food. I don't want you to work that hard for me."
Applejack waved her hoof. "It's fine with me, I like a good challenge." She stated.
"Oh, and I can ask my bird friends to sing the music. I'm sure they'll be more than happy to do it." Fluttershy said with a small smile.
Just then, Pinkie Pie appeared beside her. "And don't forget the party after the wedding! I'll throw you and Mattie the best reception ever." She said as she jumped up and down on the spot.
"Are you all sure you want to do this for us?" Twilight asked.
Everyone then nodded. "Trust us, Twilight! We're all wantin' to do it, we're your friends and we want ya to have the perfect weddin'. Plus, we're doin' it for nothin', those fancy weddin' organizers would want ya'all to pay for it." Applejack said with a smirk.
Twilight smiled warmly at her friends. "Thank you, thank you all so much. I don't know how I can repay you."
"You don't have to do anything, sweetie. Just focus on the planning, and let us do the rest!" Rarity said while smiling warmly back at her.
With that settled, they all went back to partying. "Who's ready to play pin-the-tail-on-the-pony?" Pinkie Pie yelled with excitement before everyone else raised their hooves.
They all then got up and walked towards the wall with a large picture of a pony attached to it with a small fury purple tail pinned to the side of the picture.
That night: Camp Spring camp site
After a long day of different camping activities, we were all sitting around the camp fire enjoying the warmth and the beautiful starry night sky above us.
We'd done a lot of things today, the kids convinced me to throw the big fish back in the water, which I did.
We went to see what kind of animals there were, we saw many different types. Like Racoons, squirrels, and different birds.
And finally, we all had a swim in a near-by swimming hole. We really enjoyed that, even Diamond Tiara and Silver Spoon.
Good thing there wasn't a breeze in the wind, we were still wet. We were all wearing towels while sitting in front of the fire. Scootaloo had brought some marshmallows and we were roasting them over the fire with clean sticks.
"Roasting marshmallows remind me of going camping with my Mom and Dad." Sweetie Belle said as she used her stick to hold her marshmallow above the flames.
"Did you ever go camping with your family, Mr Matthew?" Pip asked.
I looked down at him. "I never went camping back where I'm from, but I did use to roast marshmallows over a candle. Me and my sister use to do it all the time when we were young." I said.
Applebloom looked up at me with surprise. "I never knew ya had a sister, what's her name?"
I looked over to her. "Her name was Jess, she was my older sister."
"So, where is she now?" Sweetie Belle asked; causing all the other kids to look at me with interest.
"She's…back home, very far away." I said with slight sadness.
"Do ya miss her?" Applebloom asked curiously.
I looked down at her. "Yeah, I miss my family. But I'd miss Twilight more if I left her, I love her so much. If I went back, I'd probably go into a deep depression. True, I miss my family and I'd like to see them again, but I want to stay here with Twilight and my friends."
"Did you fight bad guys back there too?" Snips asked with a large smile.
"Do video games count?" I asked.
Snips narrowed his eyes. "No."
"Then, no, I didn't. But I wanted to; I wanted to become a policeman." I said.
Sweetie Belle gave me a confused look. "What's a policeman?" she asked.
"Oh, it's like a guard…only with a uniform instead of armour. They don't have spears either, but they have other things to defend themselves with." I explained.
"If they don't have armour, what's to stop them from getting hurt?" Scootaloo asked.
"Errr…you know what, forget I said anything! Let's just get back to roasting these marshmallows!" I said before I looked back at my marshmallow in the fire.
I then lifted my stick up and the marshmallow came out of the fire to reveal it had caught fire; I went wide-eyes before I shook the stick up and down to put it out. Once it was out, the marshmallow was completely burnt. "Well, that didn't go well. Ahh, don't like these things anyway." I said.
Snails then put his hoof up. "Oh, oh, can I have it? please." He quickly asked.
I gave him a strange look before I passed my stick over to him. "Errr…sure." I said.
Snails then took the stick and ate the burnt marshmallow with delight.
"Ooookkkk…so, anyone got any ghost stories?" I asked hoping someone did.
With that, Scootaloo quickly stuck her hoof up. "I've got one, I've got one." She said before she took out a flashlight and turned it on, she shun it up to her face to make her look more scary.
"This is the tale of a pony called Ripper; he was picked on by everypony in town. But after he had a tragic accident, the ones who picked on him soon wished they didn't." Scootaloo started with a spooky voice.
After a while, Scootaloo was coming to the end of her story. To me, it wasn't that scary. But to some of the other kids, it was.
"And as she sat in the darkness, the only sound she could hear was her own breathing. Just then, she heard a faint creaking noise. She turned around slowly…and just behind her…was RIPPER." Scootaloo yelled; causing some of the kids to scream loudly.
Scootaloo burst out laughing; she had to drop the flashlight to hold onto her stomach. "HAHAHA, you should totally see your faces! Hahaha." She laughed.
It didn't take long for the scared kids to finally calm down; they were all taking deep breaths. "Nice story, Scootaloo. That was a scary one." Sweetie Belle said.
"Thanks, I always try to keep things interesting." Scootaloo stated.
Applebloom then looked up at me. "You got any, Matt?" she asked.
I shook my head. "No…well, I could have one, but I'd be way to scary and gruesome for you." I said.
"Oh, come on, Matt! We can take it." Scootaloo said in a brave voice.
I looked over to her. "Trust me! The stories I know are very mature. I do know a scary camp story; it involves an undead guy with a machete and a hockey-mask. But like I said, it's too scary for you."
"Ok then, so has anyone else got one?" Scootaloo asked to the others.
At that moment, Diamond Tiara stuck her hoof up. "Oh, I have one. And I know it'll scare all of you because…it's a true story." She said with a menacing smile; causing some of the kids to grew frightened looks.
Diamond Tiara then took the flashlight and shines it under her face.
"A long time ago, a mean pony who was the cause of hundreds of disappearances throughout Equestria, was sent to a maximum prison which was rumoured to be inescapable. But one dark night, he managed to escape and disappeared into the nearest forest.
Though the prison guards tried to hunt him down, they couldn't find him, some of the guards didn't even report back to the prison.
After months of searching, they finally gave up and accepted that the pony would be long-gone…but they were wrong.
Over the years, many campers went into that forest, and only a few have come out. And ponies still go in that forest today, and they don't all come out.
And do you know what the name of that forest was?...it was called…THE SPRING FORSET."
Once they heard the name of the same forest we were in, the frightened kids all screamed their heads off. Snips was so scared that he fainted off the log he was sitting on. Diamond Tiara just laughed at them. "You ponies are way too easy to scare."
I just shook my head in silence. "With all these scary stories, these kids are never gonna sleep tonight." I thought.
After a few minutes, everyone calmed down. "Ok, I think I've heard enough scary stories for one night. Can we do something else, please?" Sweetie Belle begged.
I gave her a concerted look; I then gently wrapped my arm around her. "Hey, hey, calm down! It was just a story, she only said it was real to scare you." I said softly.
Sweetie Belle gave me a warm smile. Suddenly, Applebloom screamed. I quickly looked over to her. "What is it?" I asked.
"It's Silver Spoon, she's gone." Applebloom yelled as she pointed over to the empty space next to Diamond Tiara.
Once I saw this, I became worried that something had happened to her. "Where'd she go?" I asked with worry.
"It's the kidnapper pony, he's real, he's gonna get us all." Twist yelled in fright.
I looked around at the kids to see that they were all quivering with fright, Sweetie Belle held me as tight as she could around my waist for protection. "Alright, everypony calm down! I'm sure there's a reason why she's not here."
"Like what? She decided to take a walk in the dark woods? She'd never go in there. At least, not without me." Diamond Tiara said.
I looked over to her. "Look, there're many reasons to why she might not be here. We just need to wait here, and if she doesn't show up soon, we'll report it in to the ranger." I said.
With that, the kids started to calm down. The place was silent for a moment before. "BOO." A female voice yelled behind me and the girls; causing them to scream.
I turned around quickly to see Silver Spoon laughing before she walked around the camp to join up with Diamond Tiara, who was also laughing. "Nice one, Silver Spoon. That work just how we wanted it to." She said.
"Wait! You mean to tell me you set that whole thing up just to scare us?" I asked slightly angry.
The two fillies then nodded. "Yeah, and you all fell for it. Hahaha." Silver Spoon laughed.
At that moment, I became angry and I stood up off the log. "That's it, I told you two that if you scared anyone like that on this trip, you'd both get detention. So now, I'm givin' it to you. Detention for a week, both of you!"
Diamond Tiara and Silver Spoon looked at me with open mouths. "What? That's not fair, we didn't do anything bad." Diamond Tiara argued.
"Wanna make it two weeks?" I said with a firm look.
Diamond Tiara and Silver Spoon then went silent as they looked down at the ground, I could hear faint groans from the angered fillies. "No." they answered.
"Good, now you two get in your tent! I think it's time to sleep anyway." I said as I pointed my hoof to their tent.
I watched as Diamond Tiara and Silver Spoon walked towards their tent. "You had me dead worried, Silver Spoon. I thought something happened to you. I'm not happy about what you did." I said to them.
Once they entered their tents, I looked at the other kids. "Sorry, kids. It's time for bed now, I hope you all enjoyed today, and goodnight."
As I made my way towards my tent, all the kids did the same. Snips was still passed-out, so Snails had to drag him to their tent.
Later that night
Everypony was sound asleep in their tents. However in my tent, I was tossing and turning in my sleep. I was having another nightmare.
I was standing in a place I've never seen before; there was a thick cloud of freezing fog around me. The only warm air I could get was the air coming out of my mouth as I breathed, it would quickly mix with the fog and turn cold.
I slowly walked through the fog, minding my steps each time I lifted my hoof. I couldn't see through the fog and I was worried that I would trip on something.
Just then, the wall of fog in front of me split open; revealing a giant black mountain full of caves. There was a ghostly green glow shining inside each cave. It was in that moment, I knew where I was.
"Mount forbidden…no, it's not real. This isn't real…" I said to myself.
"Oh, but it is…it's nothing but real." A dark familiar voice whispered behind me; causing me to freeze in fear.
I slowly turned around to see a pair of glowing red eyes in the fog, the eyes came closer before the fog started to form into a face which I thought I'd never see again.
"Thorn…no, you're dead. I saw you die." I said in horror.
"You killed me, you're the reason I'm trapped here in this fog. I will see to it that you will pay, and I'll be here waiting for you to join me…and when you do, I'll make you suffer even then." Thorn yelled before he pounced towards me.
I fell back onto my back as Thorn landed on me and pinned me down, his fog-like horn glowed and a beam shot down towards my face. Everything went black.
"Matt?...Matt, are you awake?" a soft female voice echoed in the darkness.
My eyes shot open and I looked around my surroundings to see I was back in my tent. I breathed heavily as I felt my heart pound against my chest. I took one last deep breath as I calmed down.
"Matt?" the female voice said again, I turned in the direction it came from to see Sweetie Belle standing at the entrance to my tent.
"Sweetie Belle…what're you doing? Aren't you supposed to be asleep?" I asked as I rubbed my left eye with my hoof.
Sweetie Belle then came closer to me. "Yeah, but I can't sleep. Diamond Tiara's story's really scared me, can…can I sleep with you tonight?" she asked sweetly.
I looked into her eyes to see she was frightened; I then gave her a warm smile. "Sure, there's a spare pillow and blanket in my bag." I said.
Sweetie Belle then gave me a small smile before she walked over to my saddle-bag and pulled out the pillow and blanket. She then set up her bed beside mine before she laid her head on the pillow.
"Goodnight, Matt. And thanks." She said kindly.
"No problem, Goodnight." I said before I laid my head back down on my pillow and closed my eyes.
After a few minutes of trying to sleep again, I felt something strange beneath my blanket. It felt as though something was crawling up along the blanket.
As I started to wonder what it was, Sweetie Belle's head emerged from the blanket and laid down on my pillow beside my head. I felt her small body snuggle up against mine and I looked at her.
She had a smile on her face while her eyes were closed. I didn't know what to think; she had gotten out of her own bed and joined me in mine. Does she feel safer with me? Does she want me to keep her warm? All these questions went through my head.
I couldn't help but smile warmly at her as I wrapped my wing around her and pulled her closer. I then planted a small kiss on her for-head. "Goodnight, Sweetie Belle." I whispered.
I closed my eyes and soon went to sleep. And with Sweetie Belle sleeping safely beside me, I somehow knew I wasn't going to have a nightmare again.
The next day: Ponyville Schoolhouse
After another long train ride, we were finally back in Ponyville.
I was standing in front of my desk looking at all the kids sitting behind their desks waiting to go home. "Well, did everyone enjoy our trip?" I asked.
Everypony then nodded. "Great, now one final thing before we all go home. I'd like to say that despite Diamond Tiara and Silver Spoon's little prank, I think you all behaved yourselves really well while we were there, I'm proud of all of-"
I couldn't finish my sentence as I heard the door open, I looked over to the door to see Cheerilee walk in. "Miss Cheerilee?...Your leg, it's better." I said in surprise.
Cheerilee walked up to me with a smile. "Yes, it is. I just got out of the wheelchair this morning. Now I can come back and teach again." she cheered.
Even though I felt happy that she was better, I felt kinda sad that this would mean I would have to go. "Oh…t-that's great, Miss Cheerilee. I'm happy for you." I said with a forced smile.
"Matthew, I can't thank you enough for filling in for me. Is there anything I can do to repay you?" Cheerilee asked with a thankful smile.
"…Can I say one last thing to the kids?" I asked.
"Of course you can, Matt. go right ahead!" Cheerilee said as she took a few steps back to give me room.
I then turned my attention to the kids before I spoke. "Well…it looks like I won't be teaching you anymore. But hey, you got Miss Cheerilee back, how great's that?" I said.
All the kids then smiled in delight that their teacher had come back; I smiled back before I looked back at Cheerilee. "Well…I'll just be going then. Everyone's glad to see you back, Miss Cheerilee." I said trying to act happy.
Cheerilee noticed the odd sound in my voice. "Are you ok, Matt?" she asked with slight concern.
I quickly nodded. "Yeah, I'm fine. I'll just…leave you to take care of the kids." I said before I walked passed her.
Cheerilee watched me as I walked passed her and towards the door. But just as I was about to walk out of the school, I felt a hoof touch one of my hind-legs. I turned around to see Applebloom with a small frown.
I turned around to face her better before I spoke. "Don't worry, Applebloom! You'll see me around town; this isn't a goodbye forever thing." I said.
"I know…we're just gonna miss ya and all." Applebloom said as Sweetie Belle and Scootaloo walked up beside her.
I lowered my head down to them. "You girls know that Miss Cheerilee is the best teacher in town, you had her way before me."
"Yeah, Miss Cheerilee's the best teacher we could ever ask for…but you're the best substitute we've ever had." Sweetie Belle said with a warm smile.
I felt heart-warmed by what she said and I smiled warmly back, the three girls then came closer to me before we all shared a nice hug. "…I'll miss you too." I whispered.
Cheerilee watched us with a sweet smile before she rubbed her chin with her hoof, her smile then grew as she gained an idea. "Umm…Matthew, I think I may have a proposal for you."
I broke my hug with the girls before I looked over to her with wonder.
"You see, I have lots of paperwork to do at my house, and sometimes I can't do them because I'm too busty teaching the kids. So whenever I'm busy at home or I'm ill, can I count on you to fill in for me in those times?" Cheerilee asked.
Applebloom, Sweetie Belle and Scootaloo looked up at me with large smiles. I was surprise by this offer; she wanted me to be her backup teacher when she's unable to come. I smiled at her. "Yeah…I'd like that." I answered.
Cheerilee nodded. "It's settled then, you can be my backup teach whenever I'm busy at home."
Applebloom, Sweetie Belle and Scootaloo had cheerful smiles as they hugged me again, I hugged them back.
Suddenly, the school bell rang and all the kids jumped off their stools and made their way towards the door. "Ok, kids. Enjoy you're weekend! I look forward to seeing you all again on Monday." Cheerilee said as she watched the kids leave.
"Yeah, see ya then, Miss Cheerilee. See ya, Matt." Applebloom said as she and the others walked passed us and out the door.
Later: Ponyville streets
After all the kids were gone and the school was locked up, me and Cheerilee were walking through the streets of town together.
"Well, it looks like somepony's taken my place while I was gone." Cheerilee joked with a smirk.
I quickly looked over to her. "Oh, no…I'd never do that. They're all glad you're back, Cheerilee. I know they are, it's probably just-"
"Matt, calm down! I was teasing you; I saw how much they love you, you've done a great job with them. Now I'm really glad I asked you to fill in for me." Cheerilee said.
"Thanks, Cheerilee. It's funny though. At first, I thought I wouldn't like it because I didn't like school back home. But after my first day, I started to enjoy it, I enjoyed being with them." I said.
"That's exactly how I felt after my first day, that's how I got my cutie mark. When I realised how much I loved teaching, my smiling flowers appeared." Cheerilee said as she looked back at her cutie mark.
"Yeah…well, I'd better get home to Twilight. I've missed her while I was at that camp. See ya some other time, Cheerilee." I said as I began to walk away from her.
Cheerilee waved me off. "Bye, Matthew. I'll see you later, and thanks again." I heard her say.
"No problem." I said loudly as I began to gallop towards the library so I could get there faster and see Twilight again.
Meanwhile: Far away village
In a village far away from Ponyville, a forger was working hard. He was a grey unicorn pony.
He pulled a hot piece of metal out of the fire and placed it on an anvil before he used his magic to lift his large hammer and hammered it hard.
Once he stopped, he wiped the sweat of his head before he turned around to get another object to hammer. Once he turned back to the anvil, he was surprised by the sight of the silhouetted alicorn with the fiery red mane and tail standing on the other side.
"AH…oh, it's just you. What're you trying to do? Make me jump out my skin?" the forger said in annoyance.
"Not quite…I'm here for…it." the alicorn said with shifty eyes.
"…It?...don't know what you're talking about." The forger said.
The alicorn glared at him. "Oh, I believe you do. The artefact…where is it?" he asked aggressively.
The forger remained silent, the alicorn the smacked him across the face with his hoof. "WHERE?" he yelled.
The forger rubbed his cheek as it stung. "Urr…what makes you think I know? I've haven't seen that thing is years."
"You had position of it once; I need to know who you gave it to and where I can find them. And you're going to tell me, one way, or the other." The alicorn growled.
The forger glared up at him. "I'm not saying anything to the likes of you, you don't scare me as much as your brother does." He said.
The alicorn glared harder before his horn glowed red. Just then, the chains hung up on the walls shot towards the forger and wrapped around his limbs. As he struggled, chains wrapped around his head and pulled it down onto the anvil.
The alicorn then used his magic to pick up the forger's largest hammer and hovered it above his head. "Don't worry! I'm sure if I bash your head open, all sorts of secrets will dump out." he said darkly.
The forger's eyes widened in fright as the alicorn raised the hammer up. "WAIT! WAIT! Ok, I don't know where it is, but I think I know how you can find it."
The alicorn raised his eye brow before he dropped the hammer on the floor and released the forger. After taking a few deep breaths, he spoke. "I've heard that there's this spell…one that helps you find things that are lost. But it's not as easy as normal spells."
"Yes…I am familiar with it. My brother's book holds that spell, but it requires a magic far greater than any other." The alicorn said before he thought deeply.
"I believe…I may know just what needs to be done." The alicorn said before he turned around a walked towards the exit.
"So…does this mean I'm off some kinda hook?" the forger asked nervously.
The alicorn then stopped in his tracks before he smiled deviously. His horn glowed red again and the chains once again wrapped around the forger's limbs and pulled him up against the wall.
"HEY, w-what're you doing? Let me go!" the forger yelled in fright.
The alicorn turned around to face him. "Oh, I can't do that. You didn't expect me to let you go with knowledge of my plan, did you?" he asked in a sly voice.
The forger gave him a confused look. "W…What knowledge? What plan?"
"…My plan to overthrow my brother, of course." The alicorn said darkly.
The forge looked at him with wide eye. "B-But, I didn't know anything about that."
"Well, now you do. And from my point of view, you now know way too much." The alicorn said as his horn glowed brightly.
"No…no, please…don't! NOO." The forger yelled in horror.
With that, a large bolt of red lightning shot out of the alicorn's horn and struck the helpless forger; killing him.
The room was then silent, the chains untied themselves and the forger's lifeless body fell to the floor. "Too bad…he made such good armour." The alicorn said.
He then walked out of the forger's shop before he turned around and his horn glowed again, red flames then shot out of his horn like a flamethrower and ignited the entire shop. He stood there as he watched it burn.
"I must convince my brother to agree to use the spell to find the artefact. But one problem, the spell requires a great amount of magic to do it. And I know exactly what we need. And once my brother finally locates the artefact, I just need to get it before he can…then he'll be like clay in my hooves for me to mould." The alicorn said with an evil smile.
His horn then glowed again before a bolt of red flames formed around him. When the flames cleared, he was gone; leaving the former forger's shop to continue to burn to the ground.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
Looks like one of the alicorn's has plans for the leader, and it must be bothersome to only know him as the alicorn. So that's why I'm giving you all a vote to know his name early.
The choices are.
1: Learn the traitor alicorn's name in the next chapter.
Or 2: Wait until later in the story.
And don't just tell me in a review, go on my profile and vote!
Please remember to review!
Next chapter will be up soon.
33. Family matter part 1
Hey everypony, I'm really proud of how fast I've done this chapter. I've had a good day at collage today, so I hope you like this chapter and make my day even better. :D
Ok, votes are once again in. And we have an obvious winner. The traitor alicorn's name will be revealed in this chapter at some point.
I had to change some lyrics in the song I used in this chapter so they'd make sense.
Anyway, enjoy the chapter! It's one some of you have been waiting for.
(Warning: long chapter.)
Chapter 33: Family matter (part 1)
It's been a week since Miss Cheerilee returned to teach the kids again.
Twilight was happy when I returned from the camping trip, but she wanted me to do one thing if I ever went far away again…she told me to never leave her with Jeff again.
Afterwards, Me and Twilight went to Sugar Cube Corner where I was caught off guard by a surprise party to celebrate our engagement. Which of course, was hosted by Pinkie Pie.
I was slightly upset that I wouldn't be teaching the kids as often anymore, but at least I didn't have to wear that bow-tie anymore either.
Ponyville library
It was night time in Ponyville and everyone in town was fast asleep, including Me and Twilight.
However, I was having another nightmare and I was tossing and turning in the bed.
I was in the Ever Free Forest, it was darker than usual and all the tree branches looked like claws ready to grab me. I breathed silently as I walked slowly through the forest, shifting my eyes in all directions to watch out for danger.
Suddenly, I heard a twig snap behind me and I spun around fast. I looked closely into the darkness in the trees before I saw a shadowed figure move from behind one tree to the other.
I knew it was getting closer, so I did the one thing I could think of in that time of panic. I ran.
I galloped through the forest as fast as I could. I tried to flap my wings and fly away, but for some reason my body felt really heavy and I couldn't even lift off the ground. So I kept running.
As I ran through the trees, I kept looking back to see the shadowed figure still lurking in the darkness, I galloped my legs as fast as I could to get away. As I did, tips of low tree branches and bushes scratched against my coat, it felt as if I was being clawed by sharp nails. Some of them left small cuts on my body which started to bleed.
I also tripped over a curved log and fell into a puddle of mud, I quickly got up and continued galloping with the shadowed figure still following closely behind.
I finally ran out of the other side of the forest covered in mud and a small amount of my own blood, I breathed heavily as I began to tire out from running so much.
But suddenly, I was forced to stop running by coming up to a cliff. I looked down from the ledge to see a deep chasm with nothing but a cloud of fog at the bottom.
I then heard a crushing noise behind me, I sounded as if a tree was being forced to fall over. I turned around to see two trees fiercely bent apart to reveal a silhouetted alicorn standing between them with glowing red eyes.
A first, I thought it was Thorn again. But then I looked closer and saw that it was a female with a familiar figure. The silhouetted figure looked like Nightmare Moon.
"Nightmare Moon?...Luna?" I asked as I slowly backed away.
She didn't say anything, she just grinned evilly as she began to walk closer to me. I backed away more before one of my hind-legs slipped of the edge of the cliff and the rest of me fell.
I held myself on the edge of the cliff with my front arms as my legs dangled, I felt myself become heavier as I tried to pull myself back up. Until, the mysterious female alicorn came up to me and looked down at me.
I couldn't see if it was Nightmare Moon, she only had the same figure as her, but I couldn't see her face, and her mane and tail looked more like fire than ripples.
"Luna…if that's you…please, snap out of it! Don't let it control you again!" I said while struggling to keep myself up on the edge.
Just then, the alicorn's horn glowed purple. My eyes widened before a purple bolt of lightning shot down and struck me; forcing me to let go and fall off the cliff.
Hopelessly flapping my wings, I yelled in fright as I fell down the cliff and into the thick fog below. And then everything went dark.
"Matt, wake up! Please, wake up!" a familiar female voice said with worry.
My eyes shot open and I quickly leaned up on the bed breathing heavily, I looked around to see I was in the library and I calmed down.
I then turned my head to the side of the bed to see Twilight also leaned up on the bed; she was looking at me with worry in her eyes. "Are you ok? You were whimpering in your sleep again." she said.
I then slowly rubbed my face with my hooves as I exhaled loudly. "Yeah…I'm fine…it was nothing." I said before I removed my hooves and looked down at the covers covering my legs.
"You were having a nightmare again, weren't you? That's the third one this week. Matt, I'm really starting to worry about this." Twilight said in a concerned tone.
I then turned my head to face her. "Don't worry, Twi! They're just nightmares…I'm sure they'll go eventually." I said.
"That's like what Rainbow Dash said last week. Yet night after night, I always wake up to see you rolling around in the bed with a scared look on your face. If this keeps up, you'll soon be afraid to even try to sleep." she said.
"Look, I know it's getting kinda strange, but-" I was then cut off by Twilight.
"It's getting more than strange, Matt. Nopony has ever had nightmares for this long before, especially when it happens almost every night. I think we should tell the Princess about this." Twilight said.
"Are you sure, Twi? What if it's just a case of normal bad dreams? Then we would've bothered the Princess for nothing." I said.
"Matt, when it first started, I also thought it was nothing. But now that it's happening almost every night, I'm starting to think it's a bit more serious than that. Also, doesn't it bother you that your nightmares always involve some dark pony trying to kill you?" Twilight asked with a raised eye brow.
I thought about what she said and she was right, my nightmares always had a silhouetted alicorn chasing me through some dark land…namely, Thorn. "Well…yeah, it's a coincidence. But that doesn't mean that-"
"And what about that Mount Forbidden place you told me about? Most of your nightmares involve you being there; doesn't that strike you as a bit strange too?" Twilight asked.
I then held my hoof up. "Ok, I get it. Now you put it that way, it does seem a bit odd….so what should we do?" I asked.
"I'll write a letter to the princess tomorrow, but it's too late to do that right now, so let's just try and go back to sleep!" Twilight said.
We then laid back down on the bed with our heads on the pillows, I nudged up closer to Twilight and wrapped my arms around her. I figured I would have less chance of having another nightmare if I was closer to her.
We both then went back to sleep in each other's warmth and comfort.
Then next day: Ponyville streets
With Cheerilee teaching again, I got my delivering job back. I was walking through the streets pulling my delivery cart behind me with Jeff on my back.
However, I was really sleepy due to last night's problems. I kept dozing off at some points; I forced my eyes to stay open when they really wanted to shut. In fact I was so sleepy; I was even falling asleep while walking.
And to make matters worse, my job was only halfway done. I still had a few more deliveries to make.
"So Matt, I heard you've been having bad nightmares lately. Wanna tell old Jeff about it?" Jeff asked but I didn't answer, he raised his eyes brow. "…Matt?"
He then climbed on top of my head and looked down at my face to see my head was hanging with my eyes closed. Jeff rolled his eyes in annoyance. "Oh, not again! MATT, wake up!" he yelled as he stomped his foot on my head.
My eyes shot opened and I lifted my head up. "WHAT?...oh sorry, Jeff. I'm…err…kinda sleepy today." I said as I kept walking.
"I know, this is the third time you've fallen asleep today. Dude, if this keeps up, Applejack's gonna find out and you'll be in trouble. You know how she is about her business, she'll probably fire you." Jeff said.
I shook my head slightly. "I doubt she'd do that." I stated. I then gave it some thought and Applejack does act more serious when it comes to her farm work. "…Well, just to be safe, I probably should find something to wake me up." I said.
Jeff then looked around before he saw a wooden bucket of water sitting beside a nearby well, he then grinned. "I'm on it." he stated before he flew off my head.
He flew over to the bucket before he grabbed the handle with his talons and carried it back to me.
Once he was close enough to me, he swung the bucket back and forth before he swung it forward and let go of the handle.
The water in the bucket came out and splashed on top of me, followed by the actual bucket hitting me on top of my head. "OW." I yelled as I rubbed my soaking head with my hoof.
I glared up at Jeff. "Damn it, Jeff. What was that for?" I yelled in an irritated tone.
Jeff then landed in front of me and crossed his wings. "Well, you said find something to wake you up, so I did. Throwing a bucket of water over your head wakes you up when you're sleepy."
I then face-hooved myself before I looked down at him with an annoyed look. "Jeff…when someone says throw a bucket of water over them, they mean the water in the bucket, not the whole bucket." I said loudly.
"Now ya tell me." Jeff said as he turned around and walked away.
I groaned in annoyance before I followed him to continue my job. Despite the small pain now on my head, I was now more awake because of the water. I could now continue my work without falling asleep.
Later that day: Library
After finally finishing my work, I returned back to the library to have a rest.
"I don't know about you, Jeff. But I'm so taking a long shower; I need one to calm my nerves." I said in an exhausted voice.
"Yeah, I'm probably gonna take a bird-nap." Jeff said as he laid back against the back of my neck and closed his eyes.
I turned my head around to look at him. "You can take your bird-nap, just not on me!" I said.
Jeff then leaned back up and crossed his wings. "Fine." He groaned.
I then walked up to the front door and pushed it open with my hoof before I walked inside; I looked around the room to see no one was in the room. I then closed the front door.
"Twi?...I'm home, you here?" I called, I got no answer.
Jeff also looked around. "Weird, she was here when we left."
Just then, I heard another door open and I looked in the direction the noise came from to see Twilight walk in from the other room. I smiled warmly at her. "Hey Twi, I was starting to wonder if you were gone for a moment there?"
I looked closer at the expression on Twilight's face, she looked troubled…more troubled then usual. "Twi, is everything ok?" I asked.
Twilight then came closer to me. "Matt…while you were gone, some ponies came to the house…they're in the other room." she said.
I leaned my head to look behind her but I couldn't see into the other room. "Really, who are they?" I asked calmly.
Twilight then placed her hooves on my shoulders. "Matt, wait!...it's gonna be a bit of a shock."
"Twilight, you're starting to worry me. Who's in there? Are they trying to hurt you?" I asked with concern.
Twilight shook her head. "No, they're not. You should probably go in and see them…they've been waiting for you." she said as she removed her hooves from my shoulders and stepped to the side to let me pass.
I looked at the door to the next room in wonder before I slowly walked towards it. Once I reached it, I slowly placed my hoof on the door and gently pushed it open.
As the door opened more and more, I soon saw three unfamiliar ponies each sitting on a chair.
One was a large light blue male Earth pony with glasses and a bold head; he had a small amount of dark hair at the back of his head though. He had a shaved beard, and blue eyes.
The second was a white female Earth pony with short dark brown hair; she had blue eyes as well.
And the last was a light velvet female unicorn pony with long dark brown hair, she too had blue eyes.
I looked at them with confusion. "I'm sorry, can I help you three?" I asked.
They looked at me with wide eyes before the unicorn got up and walked up to me, I was starting to get uncomfortable with the way she was looking at me. She was looking at me dead in the eyes. "Emm…do you mind stepping back? You're a bit too close." I said.
She looked at me as if she'd seen a ghost. "…Matt?...is that you?" she asked in what was surprisingly enough, a British voice.
I looked at her with surprise. "How do you know my name?" I asked.
"Matt…i-it's me…don't you remember?" she asked. Her voice sounded so familiar, I just couldn't put my hoof on it.
I then looked closer at her and I looked into her eyes. It then hit me like a ton of bricks, the voice, those eyes, it all pointed to one person. My eyes grew widener. "…J-…Jess?" I said.
She then nodded. I couldn't believe it…Jess, my older sister, was here. I was frozen with complete shock, tears started to form in both our eyes before we moved closer and shared a large hug.
We both hugged each other tightly before I opened my eyes and looked at the other two ponies now standing behind Jess. We broke the hug and they came closer. I looked at the white Earth pony. "…Mum?" I said; she nodded.
I then looked at the large light blue Earth pony. "…Dad." I didn't even have to make it sound like a question. He nodded too.
We all took a moment before ,Me, my mother and my Dad shared a large tight hug. I could hear my mother trying to hold back from crying. I hugged her tighter as a tear rolled down my cheek. "We thought you were lost." I heard her say.
"It's alright…I'm here." I whispered.
Jess then joined in our hug, now we were sharing a large family hug. I was reunited with my family that I hadn't seen is months.
Twilight stood by the doorway with a warm smile on her face. However, there was something about this that made her wonder what would happen next.
After a few minutes, we broke the hug and wiped the tears out of our eyes. "I-I can't believe you're all here…how'd you get here?"
Jess then stepped forward. "After you disappeared, we had the police looking for you. I wanted to tell them you fell through some sort of hole in the air, but no one would ever believe me. But I knew what I saw…I missed you, we all did…we wanted to see you again so bad, that I did something that I didn't believe would work."
"And what was that?" I asked curiously.
"…I wished on a star…I wished for that thing to open again and take us to wherever you were…the next morning, we were in the living room. Then that black hole thing opened again in the middle of the room and we were all sucked into it. When we woke up, we were lying and on a road not far from here, we also found out we were turned to ponies. I knew that wherever we were, you'd be here because I wished to be where you were." Jess explained.
"Then what happened?" I asked.
"Well, it was morning. We found some sort of farm near the road and we saw this…orange pony with a cowboy hat. I recognized her though; she was a character in that show you like. We asked about you, she said she knew you and that you lived in the library in town with someone named Twilight." Jess explained.
I then turned my head around to look at Twilight who was still standing in the door way. Jess then continued. "We came here this morning and Twilight said you were busy working, so we decided to stay and wait for you to come back."
I then looked back at them with sorrow in my eyes. "Look…I'm sorry I was gone for so long…if there was any way to contact you, you know I would've-"
I was cut off by my mother. "It's alright, Matt…what matters is you're safe…" she said sweetly before she hugged me again. I hugged her back.
After a few seconds, I broke the hug and looked back at Twilight. I smiled warmly at her before I held my hoof out to her, Twilight smiled warmly before she took my hoof and came closer. I looked back at my family. "Guys, this is Twilight Sparkle. She let me stay with her when I first arrived." I said.
Twilight smiled nervously at them. "Hello, it's nice to meet you all." She said.
"Oh, it's nice to meet you too." My mother greeted kindly.
Jess looked closer at Twilight. "Hey, isn't she one of the main characters from your show? I recognize her." She said.
I shifted my eyes left and right nervously; Twilight looked at me with confusion. "Matt, what's she talking about?" she asked.
"Oh, it's nothing, Twi. Excuse me for a second!" I said before I quickly walked over to the other side of the room while gently pushing my family to come with me. Once we were on the other side, I started to whisper to them. "Ok, here's the thing. Please don't talk about the show around anyone here!" I said calmly.
"Why?" my Dad asked.
"Because none of them know about it, they have no idea that back home they're characters in a TV show. So could you all please keep the show on the down-low?" I said, they all then nodded in agreement.
"Alright, but Matt, how is this place real? How are we here?" Jess asked.
I shrugged. "I don't know, but it is. I know it's strange, but it's real. And let me tell you this, everyone in this world is as real as the world itself." I said.
They all looked at each other before they looked back at me, I then turned around and walked back up to Twilight. "Is everything alright?" she asked.
I nodded. "Yeah, everything's fine, sweet-heart." I said sweetly.
Jess gave me a confused look. "…Sweet-heart?..." Her eyes then widened as if something was wrong. "Matt…what exactly have you been doing while you've been here?" she asked.
Me and Twilight then looked at each other before I looked back at them with a serious look. "…There's…something I need to tell you." I said.
Meanwhile: Rarity's boutique
Rarity was working on a new design for Twilight's wedding dress, the floor was covered in scrunched up paper with old designs of the dress drawn on them.
Her mane had small strings of hair sticking out of it, she was putting every ounce of her concentration into her work,
She drew the design slowly with a pencil that she was holding with her magic. "Careful…carful…" she repeated to herself.
Suddenly, WHAM, the front door swung open and Pinkie Pie came rushing in with an excited look on her face. "Rarity, guess what! Guess what! Guess what!" she yelled.
Rarity was over startled and dropped her pencil, she shot Pinkie Pie an annoyed look. "Pinkie, freeze!" she snapped.
Pinkie Pie then stopped frozen on the spot just in front of Rarity. Rarity then looked back at her design with worry to see that nothing went wrong, she then exhaled in relief.
She then looked back at Pinkie Pie. "Pinkie, you nearly made me ruin my design. This had better be important." She said firmly.
Pinkie then muffled something with her lips closed tight; Rarity looked at her with confusion. "Excuse me?"
Pinkie muffled something again, Rarity then realised why she was doing this and rolled her eyes. "You can un-freeze now."
Pinkie Pie then smiled. "Thanks. Anyway, I just heard some great exciting news." She cheered.
"Oh? What is it?" Rarity asked curiously.
"Well Applejack told Fluttershy, who told Bon Bon, who told Cheerilee, who told Derpy, who told Mr Waddle, (big inhale) who told Mayor Mare, who told Rainbow Dash, who told me…Matt's family's in town." Pinkie said with a large smile.
Once Rarity heard that, she grew a cheerful smile. "Really, Matthew's family here? Where?"
"At Twilight's place, we should go over there and say hello." Pinkie said while jumping up and down on the spot.
"Oh no, Pinkie. I can't, I have a lot of work to do if I'm ever going to finish Twilight's dress. It must look fabulous for her when she sees it, and it's hard enough as it is." Rarity said as she turned her attention back on her work.
"Come on, Rarity! Your design isn't gonna go anywhere, and we've never met Mattie's family before, aren't you curious to find out what they're like?" Pinkie asked.
Rarity then gave it some thought before she made her decision. "Well…I guess there's nothing wrong with taking a little break, especially when it's to meet Matthew's family." She said.
Pinkie Pie nodded. "Yeah, so you're in?" she asked with a large smile.
Rarity smiled as she let out a sigh. "Very well, I'm in."
"Yay, but first we have to get the others, they'll want to see this." Pinkie Pie stated cheerfully as she and Rarity walked towards the door to leave the boutique.
Later that evening: Library
Me, Twilight and my family were in the living room. Spike, Jeff and Peewee had already introduced themselves to my family, they were startled by the fact Jeff could talk.
However, I had to point out they were in a world filled with talking ponies, so a talking parrot shouldn't be too shocking.
After a long nervous talk, I told my family everything about what happened after I arrived here. How I had a job working for Applejack, how I was a substitute teacher at the schoolhouse, even the dance where Twilight and I first kissed. And believe me, they were more than shocked to find out that I was engaged to Twilight.
Me and Twilight chose it best not to tell them about the incident with Thorn, we didn't want them to freak out about me nearly getting killed by a blood-thirsty alicorn.
Jess was pacing around the room trying to think about all this, none of them look very happy about this.
"So let me get this straight, Twilight let you stay in her home, you two started to like each other, and now you say you're in love with her and want to marry her?" Jess asked with a shocked look.
I smiled nervously. "Err…yeah." I said.
"…I don't know what to say, I don't even know what to think." Jess stated loudly.
"Matt, you're too young to get married. You don't know that much about a married life." My mother said calmly.
I nodded my head. "Yeah, I do. And don't worry about the age thing! In this world, we are old enough to get married. There's loads of married ponies our age." I stated.
"Well what about bills? How are you going to pay them?" my Dad asked.
"Never had any so far. Plus, if we do get some, I have my pay from my job at Applejack's farm." I said.
"And how much does it pay?" My mother asked.
"One hundred bits per-day, and I work there five days a week." I said with a cheeky smirk.
My family looked at me in surprise. "Really, you get paid that much. That Applejack person must be loaded." Jess said.
"Well, she does own her own business with her family. So yeah, she would have a lot of money." I said calmly.
"Well, what about school? You need to be at school to learn how to live your own life." My Dad said.
"Dad, I live here and it's been easy. I've got a job, I've got a house, I've got everything I need to live my own life. And also, I work as a substitute teacher at the schoolhouse down the road and the kids say I'm the best substitute they've ever had." I explained.
"What about your eczema and asthma? You need to have your inhaler and your cream. If you don't have your cream, your skin will get itchy and dry, then it'll get raw and you'll be in a lot of pain. And if you don't have your inhaler, you'll get really wheezy and you could have an asthma attack." My mother stated.
I gave her a pleased smile. "That's the best part, Mum. I'm cured." I cheered.
She gave me a confused look. "You're cured? You can't be cured, you've had them all your life, they don't just disappear."
"They do if you use magic like Twilight did a while back. She used her magic to cure my diseases, have you noticed I haven't scratched once while I've been sitting here?" I asked with a proud smile.
My mother then thought about it and her eyes widened slightly. "No…you haven't, have you?...oh my god, I think you really are cured, but how?" she asked in shock.
"One thing you should know about Twilight, never underestimate her magic skills." I said with a smirk.
"You have an answer for everything, don't you?" Jess said with a raised eye brow.
I shrugged. "Pretty much." I said.
"Well how about this one, what about us? We haven't seen you in months and you've been here the whole time building your own life without us in it." Jess said loudly.
"Jess, there's no need to shout." My mother said calmly.
Jess then turned her head to face her. "Yeah, but he-"
"Let us talk to him!" my Dad said firmly. Jess then sat down on a nearby chair and crossed her arms.
After a moment of silence, my mother spoke. "Matt…we don't know what's happened; we don't know how we're here. All we know is that you've obviously formed your own life together and you like it. Believe me, I'm happy for you…it's just…it's a lot to take in and we don't know what we should do about it." She said.
I then thought of a suggestion, but I was afraid they wouldn't agree to it. "Well…you could always…let me continue it." I said nervously.
They all looked at me with silent stares; I was beginning to worry what they would say next. "You mean you want us to let you stay here with these ponies?" my Dad said.
I didn't say anything, I just nodded. The moment was once again silent; I was worried that they would refuse. "But Matt, what about back home in England? Don't you miss things there?" my mother asked.
I looked at her. "I do miss things but…I have so many things here that I didn't have back home." I said calmly.
"Like what?" Jess asked.
"I didn't have any real friends back home, but here everypony in town is my friend. I didn't have a job, but here I have one that pays really well….And I didn't have a girlfriend back home, let alone a fiancée. Twilight is everything I wanted in a girl, she loves me and I love her. She's the only girl who's ever liked me, I…don't want to leave her." I said with slight sadness.
Twilight kept looking over to my parents with worry in her eyes; she was worried that I would have to go back with them and leave her.
My mother then got up off her chair and sat down beside me, I saw slight sadness in her eyes. "Matt…I don't know…you're our son, we love you…you know we'd do anything to make you happy…but…"
I couldn't help but notice she was having trouble saying what she wanted, so I quickly locked her in a hug and she hugged back. At that moment, my Dad got up and stood in front of me.
"Matt…I know you've grown to love this world and Twilight…I know you don't want to lose it all, but do you want to know what I think you should do?" my Dad said calmly.
I looked at him, my body temperature raised as I began to worry about what he might say. "I think you should-"
My Dad was interrupted by the front door opening; revealing the rest of the main 6 behind it. "Hi, Mattie." Pinkie Pie yelled cheerfully.
They all then entered the library and my family looked at them with wonder. "Who're these girls?" my mother asked.
"These are my closest friends here." I said as I walked up to them and introduced them. "This is Applejack, this is Rarity, Fluttershy, Pinkie Pie and Rainbow Dash." I said as I pointed to each one.
Applejack walked up to my Dad and shook his hoof fast. "You must be Matt's daddy, I'm glad to finally meet ya'all." She said with a friendly smile before she let go of his hoof.
"Emm…nice to see you too." My Dad said awkwardly.
Jess then gave me a smirk. "So…these girls are your friends, hmm? Well you've diffidently had some good company while you've been here; I bet you've enjoyed it too."
I knew what she meant and I blushed deeply. "Hey, I'm a one-girl kinda guy. I mean, I love them as friends, but I don't love them as in I'm in love with them." I quickly protested.
Jess still had her smirk. "I know, I was just messin' with ya."
"You know I don't like being teased." I said in a winey voice, Jess laughed.
"Matthew, who's this you're talking to?" Rarity asked as she walked up to us.
"This is my sister, Jess." I said to her.
Rarity smiled at her. "Oh, what a lovely name. And I just love what you've done with your hair." She complimented as she pointed at Jess's hair.
Jess gave her a thankful smile. "Thanks, I like yours too." She said; causing Rarity to smile proudly.
I smiled at this. "I can see you two are gonna get along nicely." I said.
While Rarity was talking to Jess, my mother walked over to the rest. Fluttershy then made the first move. "H-Hello, I'm Fluttershy. Are you Matthew's mom?" she asked with a small smile.
My mother smiled at her. "Yes, I am." she then noticed the shy look on Fluttershy's face. "Are you alright, did I do something?"
Fluttershy shook her head. "Oh no, I'm just really shy when it comes to…first meetings." She said shyly.
My Dad then walked up beside my mother and Pinkie Pie looked at him. "Oh, you must be Mattie's dad. It's great to meet you, it's always great to meet new ponies." she said loudly with excitement.
My mother and Dad didn't know exactly how to respond to her, so I came in to help them. "Sorry, this is Pinkie Pie, she's kinda over hyper most of the time." I explained.
My Dad looked down at me. "It looks like you got some interesting friends here, Matt. You've really got something here."
I was about to say something before I was interrupted by Applejack wrapping her arm around me. "He sure has, and we're lucky to have such a hard workin' sport like him as our friend. He's the best delivery pony Sweet Apple Arches could ask for, he always focuses on his work and does it with smile." She said.
"And he's an awesome flyer, you should've seen him when he won a big race in Cloudsdale. He was totally cool, and he performed a Sonic Rainboom to shoot passed the finish line." Rainbow Dash added.
"And he is just a dear when it comes to the care of the colts and fillies of the school. Sweetie Belle told me how you let her sleep beside you when she was scared at that camping trip you went on." Rarity added.
Jess looked at me with a raised eye brow. "Since when did you like little kids that much?" she asked.
I remembered back home how I didn't like little kids because of how immature they were. I definitely didn't teach at my school, but I did observe all the trouble little kids got into when they misbehaved. The thing that annoyed me about them was the fact they always tried to fight back against the teachers, they also swore at them and sometimes tried to hurt them. They made me so mad when they did that.
I looked over to Jess. "These kids are different than the ones back home, the ones I knew back home were pain in the ass, these kids are not." I stated.
"And since when did you want to teach anyway? Last time I checked, you hated school all together." Jess said.
"Hey, it wasn't really my choice. I was making my deliveries to the school, Miss Cheerilee had an accident…which mostly was my fault, she couldn't find anyone else on short notice, so I had to fill in for her. And you what? It wasn't as bad as I thought it would be, I liked being with those kids." I said.
Jess just looked at me with surprise before I looked up at me Dad. "Anyway, Dad, you were saying something about what we should do next…you said I should-…and that was it." I said.
Everyone looked over to us with wonder, especially Twilight. My Dad sighed before he spoke. "Matt…usually I would say you'd have to come back home, but after seeing how happy you are here and all the friends you have, I want you to stay happy. That's why I'm giving you the choice on what you want to do…you should make your own choice…that's what I was going to say before." He explained.
I was really surprised by this; he was giving me the chance to stay here with Twilight. Now there was only one problem, how to choose. If I choose to go home, I break Twilight's heart. If I choose to stay, I break their hearts. I really wanted to stay with Twilight, but I didn't know how to tell my family that.
I kept looking back and forth from my friends to my family, breathing heavily as I began to sweat. At that moment, I snapped. "I need a minute." I said before I shot out of the library and flew off into town.
Twilight's mouth hung open before she looked down at the floor with sadness; Rarity came up beside her and hugged her softly.
My mother then noticed her and gave her a concerned look. "Are you alright?" she asked.
Twilight looked at her. "…Matt doesn't know what to choose…if he chooses to go home, I'll lose him…I don't want to lose him…I…I love him." She said.
Jess walked up to her. "You really do, don't you?" Twilight nodded.
Twilight, my family, and all our friends stood there in silent as they looked out of the doorway into town.
Later: Road outside Ponyville
I was sitting on the bench next to the tree beside the road outside Ponyville, it was the same bench Me and Twilight sat on when we first kissed after the Ponyville dance.
I hanged my head as tear by tear rolled down both my cheeks, the soil beneath the bench had small wets spots because of my slow dripping tears falling down from my face.
I didn't know what to do, no matter what I would choose, someone will have a broken heart by the end of the day. But who will I choose? And whose heart will I break?
I didn't want to go back to the library after running away like that, I just wanted to stay on that bench for the rest of the day and avoid it all.
Just then, I felt someone sit beside me. I opened my eyes and turned my head to see Twilight with a sweet smile on her face, her eyes were slightly red and her bottom eye-lids were wet.
"Twilight…(sniff)…w-what're you doing here?" I asked wiping away my tears with my hoof.
"I came to check on you, I thought I'd find you here." Twilight said calmly with a smile.
I smiled back before we sat there in silence, Twilight then broke it. "Remember this place?" she asked.
"…How could I forget?...this is the same bench we sat on when we first kiss after the dance…we're even sat in the same places…that's the night that started something new and wonderful in my life." I said.
I looked at the warm smile on Twilight's beautiful face before I noticed the red in her eyes. "Twilight, have you been crying?" I asked with concern.
Twilight then wiped whatever tears she had left away with her hoof before she spoke. "Oh…yeah, I just…made a hard decision." She said with slight sadness.
I budged up closer to her. "What was it?" I asked quietly.
Twilight then looked me straight in the eyes. "Matt, I want you to know that…whatever you choose…I…I'll support you all the way…so if you want to go back with your family…I…I'll understand." She said with tears forming in her eyes.
I felt devastated; I wrapped my arm around her and wiped away her tears gently with my hoof. "Twilight…why would I want to leave you? I love you, you're the best thing that's ever happened to me…" I said quietly.
"So…you want to stay with me?..." Twilight asked.
"Of course I do, I just…don't know how I can tell them…I don't want to upset them, I don't want them to think that I don't like living with them, I love them." I explained.
"Well…if you do decide to go back with them, I want you to know that…no matter where you go, or how far you are…I will always love you, Matt." Twilight said with a warm smile that I knew she was forcing to stay up.
I smiled warmly back, Twilight moved closer to me and placed her hoof on my chest. As we looked deep in each other's eyes, Twilight started to sing.
Twilight: "Angel in disguise…Stories in your eyes…
Love for every true heart that you seeee…
Was it just a lucky daaaay…that you turned and looked my waaaay?
Or is it heaven right before my very eyes?
You showed me all new things…a shimmer of moonbeams…
I was blind, but now you've helped me seeee…
I was lost, but now I'm foooound
Your happiness surroooounds
And now I find that my dreams can come truuuuuue
'Cause I'm gonna love you…for the rest of my life
I'm holding you safe here…in this heart of miiiiine
I can't live without you…'cause my soul would die
You know I'm telling the truth…
I'll spend the rest of my life…loving youuuu….
I didn't start this way…it happened just one day
You smiled at me, and I saw ya differentlyyyyyy…
Now I would travel just to beeee…a part of you as weeee
Begin a life that's sure to never eeeeeend
'Cause I'm gonna love you…for the rest of my life
I'm holding you safe here…in this heart of miiiiine…
I can't live without you…'cause my soul would die
You know I'm telling the truth…
I'll spend the rest of my life…loving youuuu…
The rest of my life, babe…
Loving you…"
I was more than heart warmed by her song. I had truly found the love of my life, and she loved me just as much, he song made that clear.
We moved closer and held each other in loving warmth. At that moment, I thought about what would happen if I left her and my heart broke like a sensitive stick. Me and Twilight then looked into each other's eyes before we shared a loving passionate kiss.
My heart melted as we kissed, I could feel her cold leftover tears on her mouth. We then broke the kiss before we went back to cuddling each other.
Unknown to us, my family were standing a few feet behind us, they had seen and heard everything. They each had a sad look on their faces, especially my mother who was on the brink of crying.
They all looked at each other before they quietly turned around and walked back towards town. "Whow…I know Matt said he loved her, but I didn't know he loved her this much." Jess said.
My mother managed to get a hold of herself before she spoke. "We…we can't take him away from this, taking him away from that Twilight girl will leave him in a total mess."
"Well…what should we do?" Jess asked.
"…We'll wait for him back at the library, then we'll tell him what we think he should do." my Dad said as they kept walking back to town.
Meanwhile, I was still holding Twilight as tight as I could. I didn't want to let go; I wanted to hold her forever. And in that moment, I made my final decision. "I'll…I'll tell them." I said.
Twilight broke our cuddling and looked at me with wide eyes. "What?" she whispered.
"I'll tell them I want to stay…I'll try and let them down as easy as I can, but I'm not losing you, I can't lose you, not after everything we've done together." I stated.
"Will they listen? I mean, what if they decide against your choice?" Twilight said in a worried tone.
"They said it was my choice to make, they wouldn't tell me that if they were gonna do that." I said.
"…Ok, Matt, I trust you. I just hope they'll understand." Twilight said softly.
I looked down at the ground with my ears low. "So do I, Twi." I said quietly.
Twilight then came closer beside me and laid her head on my shoulder, I then wrapped my wing around her and pulled her closer as I thought about what I was gonna say to my family.
That night: Library
After a few long moments of thinking, we returned to the library.
I stopped in front of the front door and I didn't know if I could go any further, I then felt a hoof on my shoulder and I turned my head to see Twilight with a sweet smile on her face. "…We'll go in together." She said.
I smiled warmly back as I nodded; I then looked back at the door before I took a deep breath and pushed the door open with my hoof.
The door slowly opened to reveal my family and all our friends sitting in the living room, they all looked at us in silence as we entered the room and closed the door behind us. I looked over to my family before I walked over to them.
I didn't know where to go from there, I felt as though the words I wanted to say were stuck at the back of my throat. But after building enough confidence, I finally spoke. "Guys I…I know that you all love me…and I know you'd like me to go back with you…but…I…I don't know how to say it, but I-"
"Matt, it's alright…we know you want to stay with Twilight…you obviously love her, and she loves you…we don't think badly of you, we know you were happy living with us. But you'll be heartbroken if you left Twilight, won't you?" my Dad said.
I remained silent as I nodded.
"We love you, Matt. And we want you to be happy. So if being here with Twilight and your new friends makes you happy…then we'll understand if you want to stay." My mother said in an understanding voice.
I was surprised how they understood my feelings without me even telling them, I then looked at Jess. "Jess…how do you feel about me staying here?" I asked.
"It's your life; it's none of my business." Jess answered with a shrug.
I then looked at Twilight and my friends for a few seconds before I looked back at my family, I already made my decision, now I just had to tell them. "I…I want…I want to stay here…with Twilight…I'm sorry…" I said with tears forming in my eyes again.
My mother walked up to me and hugged me tightly. "It's alright…shhh…it's alright, Matt…we understand, we know you love them…calm down." My mother said sweetly.
I hugged her back. "I…I don't want you to think I'm not grateful for everything I had back home, I loved living with you…it's just I love Twilight, I've never met anyone like her…she's…she's" I tried to say.
"We know, we know…we'll let you stay, but on one condition. We get to visit you now and then, ok?" my mother said while continuing to hug me.
"…ok, I'm alright with that…" I said.
Me and my mother then broke the hug before Twilight stepped forward. "So, does this mean Matt can stay?" she asked with a smile growing on her face.
My mother then nodded to her. "Yes, it does." She answered.
Twilight, the rest of the main 6, Spike, Jeff and Peewee then smiled largely before Pinkie Pie shot up to me and hugged me tightly. "YAY, you get to stay with us." she cheered.
Her hug grew tighter and I felt like I was getting crushed. "Pinkie…choking, not breathing…" I managed to get out, Pinkie then released me and I inhaled loudly. She smiled sheepishly.
Just then, all the others ran up and formed a group hug around me with large smiles on their faces, my family smiled at this sight.
We all then broke our friendly group hug and I looked at Twilight, the sweet overjoyed smile on her face made me feel warm inside.
Our friends took a few steps back to give us room, there was a moment silence. "Well…she's your fiancée, isn't she? Kiss her already!" Jess said with a pleased smile.
I looked over to her before I looked back into Twilight's eyes, she placed her hoof at the back of my head before I leaned my head closer and we kissed deeply.
My family smiled warmly at me and my mother wiped a tear from her eye, it was a tear of happiness.
"Awww." Rarity said out loud as she smiled at the sight of us.
Me and Twilight then broke the kiss and smiled sweetly at each other, Applejack then turned her head to face the rest of the main 6. "Come on, ya'all! Let's give them all some privacy." She said as she walked towards the door.
The rest of the main 6 then followed her. But just then, someone wrapped their arms around my neck and hugged me from behind.
At first I thought it was Pinkie again, until I turned my head around to see it was Fluttershy. "I'm so glad you're staying, Matt." she said sweetly.
I just smiled at Fluttershy as she released me from her hug and calmly walked out of the library to catch up with the others, she shut the door behind her; leaving Me, Twilight, my family, Spike, Jeff and Peewee alone in the library.
I then looked at my family and gave them a thankful smiled. "Thank you, thank you so much for this. It means a lot to me." I said kindly.
"It's alright, buddy. But there's one thing we need to take care of." My Dad said in a serious voice.
"What is it?" I asked curiously.
"Well, you might want to live in this world, but we don't really want to. We want to go back home to England, we can't restart a life here, we have responsibilities back home." My Dad explained.
"Yeah, I have to go back to University soon." Jess added.
I then nodded to tell them that I understood. "Alright, I understand. Well, you can always visit anytime you want to, we'll always welcome you." I said.
"Hold on, Matt! We don't know how to get back; you need to show us how to open that…portal thing." Jess stated.
My eyes then widened slightly. "…You're…asking me to re-open it?" I asked, Jess nodded.
"…Oh dear, we have a problem. You see…I don't really know how to re-open it." I said before I smiled sheepishly.
They all looked at me with wide eyes. "…What?" Jess asked.
I became worried. "I don't know how it works, I've never thought about it until now." I stated.
"You mean we're all stuck here as ponies?" My Dad asked loudly.
I thought hard about it until I got an idea. "Wait, Princess Celestia might be able to send you back. She said she could do that once before." I said.
"Who?" my mother asked in confusion.
"Princess Celestia, she and her sister, Princess Luna, rule all of Equestria together. She's also my teacher. And I'm sure if anyone could send you home, it's her." Twilight explained.
"Well, can you call this…Princess Celestia and ask her to send us back?" Jess asked in what sounded like a frustrated tone.
"We can't right now, it's too late and she'll probably be asleep. But I can write a letter to her tomorrow, you can stay with us for tonight." Twilight suggested with a kind smile.
My family looked at each other before they looked back at us. "Well we don't really have much of a choice, do we?" my Dad said with his arms crossed.
"Doesn't look like it." I said normally.
My Dad then let out a sigh. "Ok, so where do we sleep?" he asked.
"Well, there's a guest room upstairs, but it only has one bed. Jess could sleep there." Twilight suggested.
"And what about us?" my mother asked.
"Well, I could use a spell to make a bed built for two appear. It'll have to go in the other room, there's more room in there." Twilight said before she walked over into the other room.
We all followed her and we watched as she closed her eyes and her horn glowed. With a large flash of light, a large bed built for two appeared on the other side of the room.
My mother and Dad's eyes widened with their mouths hanging. "How…did she…" my mother trailed off.
"Amazing, isn't she?" I asked with a large smirk, Twilight then walked out of the room.
"Ok, your room is ready." Twilight said with a smile.
My mother smiled back at her. "Well, umm…thanks, Twilight. You're good." She said; causing Twilight to blush slightly.
My mother then walked up to me. "I know you've had a hard day, Matt. But remember, we understand and we're not upset with you. Goodnight, Matt." she said sweetly before she kissed my forehead and walked into the other room.
My Dad then walked up to me. "Goodnight, Matt." he said with a proud smile as her rubbed my back. He then walking into the other room to join my mother and closed the door behind him.
"Well, I'm gonna head up to bed. See you all in the morning." Spike said as he made his way up the stairs with Jeff and Peewee following behind.
After a few minutes, Me, Twilight and Jess went up the stairs and showed Jess to the guest room. Jess looked around the room and saw the bed, she liked it.
"Goodnight, Jess." I said as I stared to shut the door.
Jess turned around to face me. "Wait, where're you sleeping?" she asked,
"With Twilight in her bed, why?" I asked curiously.
"You sleep with her?" Jess asked with a raised eye brow.
I knew what she thought and I rolled my eyes. "It's not what you think. Besides, she's my fiancée, it's not that surprising." I stated before I closed the door to leave Jess to settle in her room.
"Well, goodnight to you too." Jess joked to herself before she walked over to the bed and lied down on it to relax.
After that, Me and Twilight got into our bed. I looked over to Spike's basket to see he, Jeff and Peewee were already asleep under the covers.
I smiled at this before I laid my head on the pillow and pulled the covers over us, I then turned my head to face Twilight lying beside me, she gave me a sweet smile. "Goodnight, Matt. I love you…I love you so much."
"I love you too, Twi. And I always will, and nothing will ever change that." I said sweetly.
We then shared one last loving kiss before we broke it and closed our eyes. We then fell asleep in each other's warmth and love.
Meanwhile: Mount Forbidden
The leader alicorn sat on his throne looking down at Zelga and his last brother.
"So brother, you tell me the location spell is the only way to find the location of the artefact?" the leader asked with a raised eye brow.
The other male alicorn bowed his head. "Yes brother, the forger we once intrusted it with had no information on who he gave it to. At this point, it could be anywhere in Equestria." He stated.
"And just...what were you doing asking the forge about it?" the leader asked with a small glare.
The alicorn became worried. "Well…you see, I was…errr…trying to get it back, of course. I know how important it is to our cause…how important it is to you. Haha, I was merely trying to serve you, my lord." He said as he bowed lower.
The alicorn then got off his throne and quickly shot right up to the alicorn's face in an instant; causing him to go wide-eyed with fright.
"If I wanted it back, I would have kept it instead of forcing other ponies to keep it hidden. You know exactly why I did that, because…I don't trust you with it. Ever make a move without my authorisation again, it'll be the last move you'll ever make…am I clear, Rage?" the leader said darkly.
The alicorn (now known as Rage) nodded his head. "Yes, my brother…crystal clear, even." He said nervously.
At that moment, Zelga stepped in. "To be honest, brother. Even though Rage's actions were…suspicious, he makes a valiant point on this matter. The artefact is the key that holds everything together, if we have any chance of finding it, maybe the spell…should be considered." She said.
The leader looked at her with a raised eye brow. "The spell requires a magic far greater than even Celestia's. I would do it myself, but my powers won't let me use the spell to find the artefact. It'll let me find anything else, but just not that. We need something else, and then we need someone to perform the spell. So…any of you two have any ideas?"
Zelga and Rage were silent. After a moment, Rage spoke. "I…have something in mind, though it's very risky…not to mention, difficult." He said; causing the leader to look back at him.
"Well, Rage. I'm sure we're all curious to find out what you have to suggest." He said in a dark voice.
Rage then leaned his head closer to the leaders and started whispering in his ear. After hearing his plan, Rage pulled his head back and the leader looked at him with dark look. "Are you curtain that will work, Rage?"
"I'm am, bother. You said we needed a power far beyond Celestia's, they have more power than she could ever have." Rage stated with a serious look.
The leader then growled slightly before he made his decision. "Very well, Rage. We shall make it our next operation." He stated, Rage then nodded.
"Perfect, everything is going just as I planned." Rage thought with an evil grin on his face.
The leader then turned his head to face Zelga. "Zelga, this operation will require…our secret weapon. You must tell…him...he is the only one capable to pull it off without us having to reveal ourselves." He said darkly.
"I will inform him at once, brother." Zelga said with a bow before she flapped her large feathered wings and flew out the mountain.
The leader then turned to face Rage. "…Well, don't you have work to do?" he snapped aggressively.
Rage then turned around and walked towards the cave, growling under his breath with his teeth grinding together; leaving the leader alicorn alone in the throne room.
The leader then turned around and flew back onto his throne before his horn glowed green, a large book on a stone table then lifted up and hovered towards him.
Once in front of him, he then used his magic to open it and flip through the pages before his found the page he wanted.
"…A power far beyond Celestia's, hmm?...haha, these will do." the leader said darkly to himself as he looked at the page that had a picture of all six of the Elements of Harmony on it.
Hope you liked the chapter.
The song used in this chapter is called I'm gonna love you from the cartoon Disney movie The Hunchback of Notre Dame 2. I don't own anything.
I don't know if it matters to you that the song's sung by Jennifer Love Hewitt, but it's probably just nice to know.
Note to guest: To the guest who asked if I take OCs, I don't take OCs like the ones you described. The character you described resembles one of my future OCs too much; I'm not saying which one, I have many in mind. So sorry, and I hope you can forgive me.
Please remember to review!
Next chapter will be up soon.
34. Family matter part 2
I don't really know what to say here…I usually have something, but I can't think of anything…so…I don't know.
Well anyway, on with the chapter and I hope you enjoy it.
Chapter 34: Family matter (part 2)
Morning: Ponyville library
The sun light shun through the widows of the library as the night turned to day.
I was still asleep in the bed until I slowly blinked my eyes open, I then leaned up on the bed and rubbed my eyes with my hooves before I removed them and looked down at the empty space beside me.
Twilight wasn't in bed with me; I wondered where she was before I looked up at the clock hanging on the wall. It said the time was 11:56 PM; it was almost time for me to go to work.
"Crap, how long did I sleep for? I'm not gonna have time to have breakfast at this rate." I said to myself before I got out of the bed and walked down the stairs.
Once down stairs, I walked into the kitchen to find Twilight, Spike, Jeff, Peewee, and my family sitting by the table eating.
At first, I didn't recognise my family because of their pony forms. But after remembering yesterday's events, it all came back to me and I felt sheepish for forgetting.
Twilight was eating a daisy and daffodil sandwich, Spike was eating gem-stones, Jeff and Peewee were eating different fruits, and my family were also eating flower sandwiches; which surprised me a lot.
My mother then noticed me and she smiled. "Morning, sweet-heart." She greeted.
I smiled back. "Mornin'." I greeted back as I walked over to the table and sat down beside Twilight.
I smiled warmly at her. "Mornin', Twi." I greeted kindly.
"Morning, Matt." Twilight said before we shared a quick kiss, I then looked at my family to see the smirks on their faces. I knew they were smirking because they saw me kiss Twilight, but I didn't worry about that and focused on the plate of sliced apple that was placed on the table in front of me by Twilight.
Before eating, I looked at my mother eating her sandwich. "You do know there's flowers and grass in that, right?" I asked expecting her to freak over it.
She swallowed the food in her mouth and spoke. "Yeah, I do. Twilight offered us them this morning, and since we haven't eaten since we arrived, it was the best thing to do. At first, I thought it would taste horrible, but it's actually pretty good. It must be because we're ponies or something like that." She explained.
I smiled in delight. "Well, I'm glad you all like them." I said before I started eating my apple slices.
As I began to eat, my Dad spoke. "So, what should we do until you can call that Princess…what's-her-name, and ask her if she can send us back home to England?" he asked.
Twilight turned her head to face him. "You mean Princess Celestia, and I already sent a letter to her this morning. She said she's too busy to do anything right now, but she'll come to the library sometime this afternoon. Besides, Matt has to go to work." She explained.
Jess looked at her in surprise. "Wait, you mean we'll actually have to see the Princess? I thought she'd just open that vortex thing from wherever she is." She said.
I turned my head to face her. "Don't worry, Jess! She's really nice. Besides, you'll be with us, I'm sure it'll be fine." I said with confidence.
Jess gave me an unsure look. "But Matt, we don't know how to act in front of royalty. The only connection we've ever had with royalty back home was when you got that letter from the Queen when you were little." She said.
"Just act natural and polite. Trust me, you'll like her." I said with an honest look.
Jess then nodded. "Alright, Matt." she said.
"So how long does your job take?" my mother asked curiously.
I turned my head to face her. "I should be done sometime later in the afternoon, it depends on how many deliveries I have to make. Don't worry, it doesn't take me long." I stated.
"Well, what should we do in the meantime?" my Dad asked.
"Maybe I could show you two around town, and Jess could go with Matt. If Matt is gonna stay, don't you think it's best if you knew the town better?" Twilight suggested with a hopeful smile.
"Well…I guess so, if it's alright with you if you." My mother said.
Twilight nodded. "Oh, it's no problem at all. You're Matt's parents and we want you to feel comfortable around us." she stated.
My mother smiled kindly at her. "Well thanks, Twilight. We'd like to look around your town; we didn't get a good look at it yesterday."
I was happy that they were accepting all this so well, I looked over to Jess. "So Jess, do you want to come to work with me? It's a good way to look around town." I said hoping she'd say yes.
Jess then shrugged. "Alright, yeah. I need to learn more about this place anyway." She said.
I smiled at her. "Cool, so after I'm done with work, we'll all come back here and wait for the Princess, deal?" I said to everyone, they all nodded.
"Good, now let's finish eating before I have to go." I said before we all continued eating our breakfast.
Later that day: Ponyville streets
After collecting my delivery cart from Applejack, I was now walking through the streets with Jess by my side and Jeff on my back.
Only, there was an extra twist this time. Applejack had come along with us to make the deliveries. "So…why did you want to come along again?" I asked with a confused look.
Applejack turned her head to face me. "Because I want to get to know ya sister a bit more. Plus, it's my supply cart and I'm ya boss. And if I want to make the deliveries with ya, I can." She said with a large smirk.
"Cheeky, isn't she? She's a lot like you." Jess said out loud; causing Applejack and Jeff to snicker.
I blushed slightly from embarrassment before I decided to try and change the subject. "Err…Jeff, where's our next delivery?" I asked.
Jeff flew off my back and into the supply cart; he pulled out a clip-board and looked at the paper on it. "Looks like the next ones at Fluttershy's cottage." he said.
I turned my head around to him. "Thanks, Jeff." I said before Jeff placed the clip board back in the cart and flew back onto my back.
Jess looked at me with a raised eye brow. "So, you work as a delivery…err…pony, with your pet talking parrot helping you?"
After hearing that, Jeff shot her a sharp glare. "I'm not a pet, I'm a civilised bird. Just because I live with ponies and I'm smaller than them, does that suddenly make me their pet?" he yelled; causing Jess to step away from him.
I looked at Jess. "Yeah, he's kinda touchy when someone calls him that." I mentioned.
"Really, I had no idea." Jess said sarcastically still eyeing the offended Jeff with wide eyes.
After a moment, Jess and Jeff calmed down. Applejack had started walking beside Jess and began talking to her. "So Jess, this place ya go to…University…what's it like?"
"Well it's like school, only you basically live in it. You get your own room and everything; my friends live right next door to my room, so I have lots of company." Jess explained.
"What about your family? If ya live at the school, does that mean ya don't see them anymore?" Applejack asked with a raised eye brow.
"Well, I do. But only once a month, I had to go back to Uni after Matt disappeared. I tried to convince them to let me stay and look for him, but Uni is a very important thing and they wouldn't let me." Jess explained.
Applejack rolled her eyes. "Some ponies! When will they learn that things like family are more important than school stuff?"
Jess gave her a surprised look. "That's what I said. But did they listen? No."
As they kept on talking, Me and Jeff just kept walking with narrow eyes. "…You know they're gonna be talking like this for the next few hours, right?" I said.
"Yep, it's gonna be a long day." Jeff stated.
We both let out loud sighs as we kept walking towards Fluttershy's cottage with Jess and Applejack continuing to talk behind us.
Meanwhile: Ponyville market
After leaving Peewee in-charge of the library, Twilight and Spike were giving my parents a tour of the town. They had already taken them to see the Town Hall, Rarity's boutique, and Twilight's favourite quill and book store.
They were now entering the market and it was busy, as usual. Sales-ponies were behind their stalls while other ponies buying groceries and other items.
While my mother and Dad were looking around at one of the stalls, Twilight watched them a few feet behind them with a worried look on her face. Spike was standing beside her and noticed the look on her face before he spoke. "Hey, you ok?" he asked.
Twilight broke from her train of thought and looked down at Spike. "Huh?...oh sorry, Spike. I was just thinking about how I was gonna talk to Matt's parents." She explained.
"What's there to worry about? You spoke to them yesterday." Spike said.
"I know, I'm just scared that…they may not like me. You know, because Matt wants to stay because of me." Twilight explained before she looked back at my parents with another worried look.
"Well…maybe you should go over there and talk to them. If you think about it, it's really the only thing you can do." Spike said with an honest voice.
Twilight then gave Spike and uncertain look before she sighed. "You right, Spike. I'll talk to at least one of them when I can." She said.
Twilight and Spike then turned their attention back on my parents. At that moment, my Dad walked off to look at a different stall; leaving my mother alone at the previous stall.
Spike looked up at Twilight. "Well if you want to talk to Matt's mom, this is a better time than ever. It's ok, Twilight, she seems like a nice pony." He said in a comforting tone.
Twilight then gulped hard. "Well…here goes." She said to herself before she started to walk over to my mother.
Twilight then stood beside my mother as she looked down at the fruit on the stall. "So…how do you like the market?" Twilight asked trying to start a conversation.
My mother turned her head to face Twilight, she then smiled at her. "I like it, it's very peaceful here, I can see why Matt likes it here so much." She said.
Twilight's ears then lowered slightly. "Yeah, about that…I need to talk to you about something." she said with a small frown.
My mother gave her full attention. "What's wrong, Twilight?" she asked curiously.
Twilight hesitated to talk until she finally managed to do so. "I just want you to know that…I know how difficult this must be for you to let your son go like this."
My mother then let out a sigh. "Yeah, it's hard. But this is what he wants, he wants to stay here." she said.
"I know, and…I'll understand if you don't like me because of his choices." Twilight said while looking down at the ground with slight sadness.
My mother gave her a slightly shocked look. "Don't be daffed! Of course I like you, Twilight. Why wouldn't I?"
Twilight looked back up at her. "Because…Matt wants to stay because he loves this world and me. If there's anyone you have to blame, it's me." she stated.
My mother gave her a sweet smile. "Twilight, why would I hate you for making Matt happy? We're not like those parents who hate whoever our children marry; we're glad Matt's finally found someone. Even if you're a pony, you're still a very nice and lovely girl."
Twilight started to grow more comfortable. "You really think so?" she asked.
My mother nodded. "To be honest, Twilight. I was hoping Matt would find a girl like you eventually, he was sort of depressed back home for some reason, I figured he was feeling lonely. I tried to convince him to go out and find someone, but he kept saying he didn't want to."
"Really, how come?" Twilight asked.
My mother shrugged. "He was very shy about those sort of things, how was he when he first asked you on a date?" she asked.
"…He was a little shy, he didn't have much trouble asking, but he was still kinda nervous." Twilight stated.
My mother then returned to what she was saying. "Anyway, the point is…you make Matt really happy, I've never seen him like this before. Now Matt and Jess say that the star they wished upon granted them their wishes, but it was you who granted mine. I wanted Matt to find someone special so he could be happier than he was before, and he found you."
A sweet smile then grew on Twilight's face as she heard what my mother was saying; my mother then placed her hoof on Twilight's shoulder. "I like you, Twilight. True, it's hard to believe Matt's going to live here from now on. But if he's happy, I'm happy too." She said kindly.
Twilight smiled warmly at this news. "I'm so glad you think so, and I also know how strange it must be to know your son's getting married."
My mother nodded. "Yeah, that was a bit of a shocker. But if you ask me, I've only known you since yesterday and I couldn't ask for anyone better than you to be my daughter-in-law." She said sweetly.
Twilight felt heart-warmed by what she just said, all her worries about my parents disliking her had now disappeared.
"And don't worry! My husband feels the same way." My mother stated.
Twilight nodded. "That's good to know… and thank you, I feel better now you've told me all that."
My mother smiled at her. Just then, my Dad came back over and noticed them together. "What're you two talking about?" he asked curiously.
Twilight and my mother looked over to him. "Nothing, sir. I was just making sure of something." Twilight stated with a small smile.
My Dad continued to wonder what they were talking about while he was gone, but he decided to drop it and change the subject. "Alright then, so Twilight, do you think you can take us to see that farm where Matt works?" he asked politely.
Twilight nodded. "Sure, follow me!" she said before she walked passed my Dad and walked towards the streets of town. My mother and Dad then started to follow her.
Meanwhile: Fluttershy's cottage
After arriving at Fluttershy's cottage, I gave Fluttershy her bag of fruit and vegetables that she ordered and she took them inside her house.
While Me and Applejack were standing in front of the doorway waiting for Fluttershy to come back with my pay, Jess was looking at Fluttershy's different animals in her garden.
Jess watched as bunnies and squirrels gathered around her, different types of birds were singing on a near-by tree, Jess loved it.
"Aww, these animals are so cute. The surprising thing is they're not afraid, it's as if they know it's safe to be around me." Jess said as she gently stroked a bunny's head with her hoof.
I looked over to her and smiled in amusement. "Yeah, Fluttershy's a natural when it comes to animals. Just watch out for the seal! He's gets excited when he sees a new face." I said.
Jess gave me a confused look. "Seal? I don't see a se-UNF." She couldn't finish her sentence as a black seal jumped onto her back; it then clapped its flippers while barking.
Me and Jeff (who was on my back) burst out laughing as Jess struggled to keep herself standing with the seal on her back. "Haha, hey Jess, I think you made a new friend." I said before laughing again.
"Shut up, you! Get this thing off me!" Jess yelled as her body began to lower to the ground with the weight.
At that moment, Fluttershy came back to the doorway with a small bag of money in her mouth. She then noticed the state Jess was in and gasped; dropping the bag on the floor.
Fluttershy then flew over to Jess and the seal, she then crossed her arms and gave the seal a firm look while hovering in the air.
"Now, Mr Seal. That's not how we say hello; it's very impolite to jump on new ponies. Now get off her and say you're sorry!" Fluttershy said firmly.
The seal then climbed off Jess's back and made a quiet bark before it waddled away.
Jess was glad to be relieved from the weight of the seal; Fluttershy landed next to her and helped her to stand up straight. "He says he's sorry." Fluttershy stated with a sheepish smile.
Jess turned her head to face Fluttershy. "Thanks…you're names Fluttershy, right?"
Fluttershy looked down at the ground and rubbed her hoof softly around in circles in the dirt. "Oh yes, I am. Sorry we didn't get to talk much yesterday, but I could see you had more important things to do, what-with Matt and all." She said in her shy voice.
Jess gave her a small smile. "Hey, don't worry about it! Here, let's start with our names. Hi, I'm Jess." She said as she held her hoof out to Fluttershy.
Fluttershy looked nervously down at her hoof before she slowly grabbed it with her own. "I-I'm Fluttershy." She said quietly as they shook hooves.
They then released each other's hooves. "You've got a lot of animals here, is it hard taking care of them all." Jess said.
Fluttershy shook her head. "Oh no, it's not hard at all, I love taking care of all my animal friends. They all mean the world to me, especially my pet bunny, Angel."
"Angel?" Jess said with a confused look.
Just then, Fluttershy's pet bunny Angel, hopped up to Jess and Fluttershy and they looked down at him. He crossed his arms and patted his foot on the ground with an impatient look; he then rubbed his stomach with a sickly look.
"That's so wired; it actually looks as though he's trying to tell you something." Jess said while looking down at the preforming bunny.
Fluttershy turned her head to face her. "He is, he's trying to say he's hungry. I'd better feed him, can we talk more later?" she asked.
Jess gave her an unsure look. "I don't know, if that Princess of yours can re-open the portal, I'll be going home. I don't really know if we'll see each other again after that."
Fluttershy then frowned slightly. "Oh…ok." She said quietly.
Jess then placed her hoof on her back. "Hey, it's ok. We said we'd visit sometimes, maybe we can spend time together then." She said sweetly.
Fluttershy then gave her a kind smile. "Ok, I'd like that." She said.
I then walked up them, Jeff was holding the small bag of money in his wings. Fluttershy then came up to me with a thankful smile. "Thanks for the fruit and vegetables, Matt. I just know the animals are gonna love them."
"No problem, Fluttershy." I said smiling at her.
Just then, Fluttershy felt something tug down on her tail. She turned her head around and looked down at the tip of her tail to see Angel pulling it; he then stopped and looked up at her with an impatient look.
I then noticed him. "What's up with him?" I asked with a raised eye brow.
Fluttershy turned her head back around to face me. "That's his way of telling me he's hungry, I'd better go back to the house and feed him." She explained.
"Ok, Fluttershy. I'll see you later then." I said before Applejack walked up behind me while pulling my delivery cart behind her.
Applejack then unattached the cart from her back and re-attached it to mine.
"Goodbye, Matt. I'll see you later." Fluttershy said before she grabbed Angel in her arms and flew back towards her cottage.
Once she went back inside and closed the door, we all began to walk back towards town. I then turned my head to face Jess. "So, how do you like Fluttershy?" I asked.
Jess looked at me. "She's…nice, I just find it strange how she can take care of all those animals by herself." She said.
"Well, that's her special talent, to take special care of all animals no matter how big or small. Sometimes she can tame really dangerous creatures, like a Manticore." I explained.
Jess gave me a confused look. "A Manti-what?"
"Not important right now. What is important is that we get back on task, I still have a few more deliveries to make." I stated before I walked on ahead towards town.
Jess watched as I walked away from her, she then looked at Applejack with a raised eye brow.
Applejack narrowed her eyes. "Yeah, he gets like that about his work." She stated before she started to follow me.
Jess watched as we both walked back to town. "This place has really changed Matt. Back home, all he'd ever do was sit around playing his video games or go on the lap-top. But here, it's like he's a whole new person." She thought.
Jess then shrugged. "Well, at least he's not so grumpy anymore." She said to herself before she galloped after us to catch up.
Meanwhile: Luna's castle
Princess Luna was sitting on her throne; she was using her magic to make the small scroll float in front of her, the same scroll that Zelga had given her a while ago.
She had already read it 34 times already. She continued to read it over and over again, trying to find a positive reason to make the potion.
The more she thought about it, the more her heart grew heavy with worry.
"I don't know what to do. If I make the potion and use on Matthew, I'll get to experience a romantic connection with him for an hour. But if anyone were to find out I did it, it could possibly cost me my friendship with Matthew and Twilight Sparkle. Not to mention, my sister would be most disappointed and ashamed….oh, this is giving me a headache all over again." Luna said out-loud to herself as she held her hoof against her forehead in frustration.
Luna then removed her hoof and returned her attention to the scroll floating in front of her.
She then gave it a different thought. "Am I really that desperate to know what it's like? Would I really risk our friendship for my own selfish desires?...maybe…maybe I should just accept that Matthew doesn't-" Luna was cut off by one of her guards entering the throne room.
The guard walked up to Luna and bowed before looking up at her. "Your highness, your sister is here and requests to see you." he stated.
Luna was surprised by this news. "Send her in!" she ordered. The guard nodded before he walked back out of the throne room.
"I wonder why my sister came to me, she usually requests for me to come to her." Luna thought.
After a few minutes, Princess Celestia walked into the throne room and up to her little sister. Luna smiled warmly down at her before she placed the scroll on her thrones arm and walked down the small stairs to reach Celestia.
Once together, they both embraced each other with a loving hug. "Sister, it's been so long since I last saw you. I haven't seen you since the Gala." Celestia said.
"I know, my sister. I've just had a lot on my mind lately." Luna claimed.
The two sisters then separated from their hug and smiled at each other. "So why did you come here? You usually send a letter asking me to come to you." Luna said.
"I know, Luna. But I didn't want to trouble you, so I came myself." Celestia stated with a smile.
Luna then raised her eye brow. "So, nothing is wrong? You just came here to visit me?"
"Well…that wasn't the only reason I came to you." Celestia said.
Luna gave her a wondering look, Celestia then sat down in front of her. "You see, Matthew's family has come to Equestria."
Luna went wide-eyed at this news, she also became worried. "Matthew's family? B-But they are from another world, correct? That is the one thing you told me about Matthew's past. A-Are they here to take him back? Is he leaving Equestria?" she asked growing more worried by the second.
Celestia raised her hoof. "Calm down, my sister! Matthew's family has chosen to let him stay in this world with Twilight, but they wish to return to their home. Which is why I need your help."
Luna was relieved by this news, but was confused by why she needed her. "Me? Why do you require my help?"
"I've found a way to re-open the portal that brought them here, but it'll require both our strengths to make it work. Also, to give them a way that allows them to come back whenever they wish." Celestia explained.
Luna wasn't sure at first, but she couldn't refuse to something like this. "I understand, sister. We will return to Canterlot at once and help Matthew's family." She said.
Celestia smiled proudly down at her. "I'm so glad to hear you say that, my sister."
Luna smiled up at her warmly before Celestia got up and walked towards the throne rooms exit, Luna was about to follow her before she looked back at the scroll on the thrones arm.
"…I'll sort it out later." Luna said under her breath before she followed her sister out of the throne room.
Later that afternoon: Ponyville library
After finally finishing my work, I returned to the library with Jess and Jeff. Applejack had gone back to Sweet Apple Arches with her empty delivery cart.
Twilight and Spike had finished giving my parents the tour of the town and was also back at the library.
We were all now in the kitchen talking about our day. "So, how do you guys like the town?" I asked.
"It's really good, we saw the farm where you work, the market, the Town Hall, and the Day Spa. I'd like to go in there sometimes and see what it's like." My mother said.
Once Jess heard what she said, she looked at me. "You have a Day Spa here?" she asked.
I nodded. "Yeah, that's Rarity's favourite spot in town. I go there all the time to go in the hot-tub." I said.
Jess's eyes widened with surprise. "They have a hot-tub? Oh, I'm definitely going there when I get the chance." She stated.
"I'll take you some other time. Right now, we have to focus on helping you guys home." I said.
"So when's this Princess of yours going to show up anyway?" my Dad asked.
I was starting to wonder that myself. "It should be any minute now, she said this afternoon, right?" I asked looking at Twilight, she just shrugged.
Just then, we saw a flash of light come from the living room and we got up to see what it was.
Me, Twilight, and my family walked into the living room and my family's eyes widened with awe at the sight of Princess Celestia and Luna standing in the middle of the room.
Me and Twilight bowed our heads, I looked over to my family to see they were just standing there with blank expressions on their faces. They then snapped out of it and looked at me. "Bow down!" I whispered.
My family then got the idea and bowed their heads.
We then raised our heads back up, I then walked up to Celestia before I turned around to face my family. "Guys, this is Princess Celestia. She's the ruler of Equestria and Twilight's teacher." I said.
Celestia looked down at me. "Thank you for the introduction, Matthew." She said with a small smile.
Celestia then looked at my family and smiled down at them. "It is very good to finally meet all of you, I've been wondering if you'd all ever come here." she said.
My family were silent, until Jess broke it. "Tall, isn't she?" she said looking up at Celestia's length.
I then became worried that she may have offended Celestia and I looked up at her. "Sorry, she's never met royalty before." I said.
Celestia looked down at me. "It's quite already; I get that reaction a lot in my travels." She stated.
Just then, I noticed Luna standing beside her. Not only was I surprised, I was nervous because I wasn't sure if she still felt upset with me about what happened between us a while back.
"Luna? What're you doing here?" I asked nervously.
"My sister requested for me to accompany here to meet your family, she needs me to help her open to portal to send them home." Luna explained.
Jess stepped forward. "Wait, you mean you can actually open the thing again?" she asked.
Celestia looked at her and nodded. "Yes, I've found a spell which will allow Luna and I to temporarily open the portal that will send you back to your world." She explained.
"Temporarily? You mean…if we go back, we can't come back?" My mother asked with worry rising in her body.
Celestia shook her head. "Not necessarily, there is a way for you to return to Equestria when you wish. However, nothing like this has ever happened before. If we do this, you all must swear to follow the rules I will place upon you." she said in a serious voice.
My family looked at each other before they looked back up at her and nodded in agreement.
With that, Celestia's horn glowed and there was a small flash of light. When the light cleared, there was a small round golden amulet floating in front of Celestia, it had a small white crystal in the middle of it.
We all stared at it with wonder. "What's that for?" Jess asked.
"This amulet will allow whoever wears it to open the portal whenever they choose. For now, it's powerless, but Luna will summon the power of the star and place it into the amulet. The power of world travel…in one little necklace." Celestia explained.
"That's the part I don't get, how's it possible that we all got here just by wishing on an ordinary star?" Jess asked.
Luna then stepped forward. "I believe I can explain that. I have studied my stars for many years; they are a mysterious and powerful magic. Not to mention, unpredictable. Many of us wish upon them for our own desires to come true, but they do not answer to wishes of greed."
"What do you mean?" I asked curiously.
"The stars only answer to wishes of pure heart. When you and your sister wished upon one of them, they were wishes from your hearts." Luna explained.
Celestia then looked down at me. "She's right. You felt lonely back in your world; you spent many days hoping to find true friends and love. When you wished to come here, the star sensed all your feelings and decided to grant your wish." She explained.
I was surprised by this news; Twilight had a look on her face that told me she found all this fascinating.
Celestia then looked at Jess. "And you wished upon that star to find your brother, the star sensed your sadness and also granted your wish." She explained.
"So…that's how all this happened? How we were brought here?" I asked.
Celestia looked at me and nodded. "Yes, it is. Only by wishing with your heart did your wishes come true, the stars will never grant a wish of greed or selfishness."
"But my wish was selfish, I wished to come here to have the perfect life." I stated with my ears slightly low.
"Maybe, but your wish also helped grant another. If your wish helps another's come true, the star sees it as a selfless act." Celestia explained with a smile growing on her face.
I began to wonder who she was talking about. "Really, who?" I asked.
Celestia then gently placed her hoof on my cheek before she slowly turned my head around to face Twilight, I was surprised by this. "…Twilight? My wish helped her?" I said.
"Yes, she wished to find the perfect colt. Her wish would help you find love, so the star saw her wish as a selfless act too." Celestia explained.
"…But in the end…we made our wishes come true on our own. The stars only brought us together, the rest we did ourselves." Twilight said with a warm smile on her face.
"Precisely. In a way, you both granted each other's wishes." Celestia stated with a smile.
I didn't know what to think, I walked up to Twilight and we smiled lovingly at each other. She was more than right. I use to think that star granted my wish, when it was really Twilight who made it come true.
The moment was then broke by my Dad. "So anyway, you were saying something about some rules." He said.
Celestia then looked back at him. "Oh yes…(clears throat)…if I am to intrust you with this sort of power, there are rules that must be followed. Rule one; never let anyone in your world know that ours exists! For if someone with selfish desires were to come here, it could mean disaster for us."
I then looked at my family and nodded. "She's right, the last thing we need is guys in suits putting everypony in cages for study."
My mother nodded. "We understand, we won't tell anyone about you. But what about members of our family, can they know?" she asked.
"Only if they can be trusted to follow these rules." Celestia said with a raised eye brow.
My mother nodded before Celestia continued. "Rule two, keep the amulet safe and hidden! We wouldn't want it to get lost or fall in the wrong hooves…or hands. Because without this amulet, there's no hope of you to returning to Equestria."
My family nodded to tell her they understood.
"And finally, rule three. When in this world, keep the amulet with you at all times! We don't want any of the ponies here to use it and get themselves lost in your world, especially the ones who are up to no-good." Celestia said.
"What do you mean up to no-good?" my Dad asked.
"Let's just say, there are ponies and creatures out there that aren't so friendly." Celestia stated.
My family then looked at each other before they looked back up to Celestia and nodded.
Once Celestia knew they understood everything, she nodded back. "Very well then, we shall allow you to have access to this power." Celestia said.
Celestia then turned her head to face Luna before she nodded down at her, Luna nodded back before she closed her eyes and her horn glowed.
While Luna's horn continued to glow, there was a bright light shining through the window. Just then, a ball of light seeped through the window and floated towards Luna.
We all stared at it with wide-eyes as it hovered in mid-air. "What's that?" Twilight whispered.
"The power of a star, this will be placed into the crystal on the amulet. With it, you will have the ability to open the portal and go home." Celestia explained.
With the amulet still floating in the air, the ball of light hovered towards it and it touched the small white crystal on the amulet. Then there was a large flash of light; causing us to shield our eyes with our arms.
Once the light faded, we removed our arms to see the ball of light was gone but the amulet was glowing white.
"It is done." Luna stated.
Celestia walked over beside Luna and smiled down at her. "Thank you, Luna. And well done." She said with a proud smile, Luna smiled warmly up at her.
Celestia's horn glowed and the amulet hovered towards my family, Jess then grabbed it with her hoof and watched as the small white crystal glowed. "So…now what?" she asked.
"Well, we can open the portal and send you home. Or you can stay a little longer, it's your choice." Celestia stated.
They looked up at her before my mother looked over to me. "Matt…we'd love to stay a little longer, but we have responsibilities back home. Jess has Uni, and you Dad and I have work. You understand, don't you?"
I nodded. "Yeah, I get ya. Just remember that you can visit any time you want to! Twilight and I will always welcome you." I said.
My mother walked up to me and smiled warmly at me. "I know." She said before we shared a hug.
My mother then broke the hug and my Dad walked over to us. "Matt…even though we're far away, remember that we all love you very much! And behave yourself, alright?"
I nodded. "I will." I said before we hugged too.
After we separated, my Dad smirked at me. "And don't go doing anything naughty with Twilight." He whispered, only it was loud enough for Twilight to hear.
I blushed brightly. "Daaaad." I whispered loudly while Twilight giggled with her hoof over her mouth.
My Dad chuckled. "Oh, I'm just messing with ya." He said.
Then finally, Jess came up to me and hugged tightly. "We're gonna miss you, you know that?" she said.
I hugged back. "I know, I'll miss you too." I said.
After hugging for a few seconds, we broke the hug. Jess put the amulet around her neck before she and my parents turned around to face the two Princesses. "Alright, we're ready." My Dad stated.
Celestia nodded. "Very well."
With that, Celestia and Luna turned around to face a clear wall before their horns glowed brightly, both their horns then shot out a beam and it hit the wall.
As the beams continued to shoot out their horns, they began to cross until they formed one whole beam of yellow and blue. As it continued to shoot against the wall, the portal began to spread open. Once the beams stopped, the portal was completely open and there was a loud blowing wind noise.
Celestia turned around to face us. "The portal is open; it will send you back to your home. It won't last long though, so you have to go in fast." She yelled over the loud blowing noise.
My mother then quickly turned to me and hugged me. "We love you, sweet-heart." She said.
I hugged her back. "I love you too, Mum." I said.
No one had time to take turns, so my Dad and Jess joined our hug and we were now sharing another family hug.
We all then broke it before my family turned to face the portal on the wall, Celestia and Luan stepped aside to let them pass.
My family then slowly walked up to the portal, they all looked back at me and I gave them a small wave. They smiled warmly as they waved back. "We'll see each other again, we promise." My Dad yelled over the loud noise.
"I know." I yelled back.
With that, my family turned to face the portal again before they each took a deep breath and jumped into it. Once inside, they shot off into the deep centre of the portal until they couldn't be seen anymore.
The portal then began to close; it shrunk down until it became a tiny dot on the wall and disappeared; leaving the wall looking normal as if it didn't happen.
The room was silent; all I could hear was my own breathing as I thought about what happened to them. I looked over to Celestia. "Are you…are you sure it sent them back?" I asked.
Celestia gave me a calm smile. "Would you like to find out?" she asked.
I wondered what she meant by that, I nodded. "Then take my hoof!" she said as she held her hoof out to me.
I then walked up to her and took her hoof in mine, Celestia's horn then glowed and we both disappeared in a flash of light.
Meanwhile: England/my house
The back garden of my house was quiet; the only sound there was were the birds singing and the chickens clucking in their pen.
Suddenly, the portal opened in mid-air above the grass and my family flew out of it.
They each hit the grass covered ground with a hard thud. "Ahh…if we're gonna do that often, we need to work on the landing!" Jess groaned on the ground.
They all then got up off the ground and looked at themselves to see they weren't ponies anymore; they were back in their human forms. "Hey, we're human again." Jess said.
"Thank god, it's hard work walking on four legs." My Dad stated as he rubbed his head.
Jess then felt something dangle against her chest; she looked down to see she was still wearing the amulet. She grabbed it in her hand and held it up to look at it better.
"I promise I'll keep it safe, and we'll never let anyone else know." Jess said under her breath.
Jess then looked at our mother and Dad, they all then watched as the portal closed.
They all took a moment to think about what just happened, they had just travelled to another world, another universe, and I was still there. But knowing where I was and who I was with, they knew it I would be alright.
And they knew it wasn't goodbye forever, they had the amulet and they could use it to re-open the portal and come back any time they wanted.
After finally feeling comfortable with it all, they all looked behind them to see our house. They all then walked towards it to get inside.
Once inside, Jess went upstairs to her room and grabbed a small box with a lock on it. She opened it and placed the amulet inside, she then closed the box and locked it with a small key.
For safe keeping, she placed the box and its key in one of her drawers which no one opens often. She then closed the drawer and took another moment to think about what's happened.
Just then, our mother came to the doorway of her room. She saw Jess on her knees looking down at the drawer she had placed the box in. "Hey…it'll be alright, we'll see him again." she said softly.
Jess turned her head around to face her. "I know…it's just…it'll be so different without him." She said trying to keep a smile up.
Our mother smiled in amusement. "We said the same thing about you when you first left to go to Uni." She stated.
Jess let out a small chuckle at that, she then got up off her knees and walked up to our mother. "…I'm gonna miss him." She said.
Our mother then wrapped her arms around Jess and hugged her. "I know, we'll miss him too. But he's with Twilight now, he's happy. And besides, we can always go back, right?"
Jess hugged back and nodded her head on our mother's shoulder.
Our mother gently patted her back before they separated. "Come on, I'll make us some dinner." She said before she turned around and walked towards the stairs.
Jess took one last look at the drawer that she put the box in. "Your secret's safe with us, I'll make sure of that." Jess said under her breath before she began to follow our mother back down stairs.
Meanwhile: Equestria/Celestia's bedroom
Celestia had taken me to her bedroom. In it, she had a large round mirror hanging on the wall, but it wasn't any ordinary mirror.
This mirror had the power to see things that are happening in other places, even things happening in other worlds. Celestia and I had been standing in front of it watching my family's every move since they got back home. With this, I knew they made it back safely.
However, I never knew living apart from my family could be so painful. True, I would've had to move out and get my own home eventually. But I didn't expect it to happen so fast.
I stood there with a small amount of tears in my eyes; Celestia looked down at me with a concerned look. "I know it hurts, but you will see them again, Matthew." She said sweetly.
I used my arm to wipe the tears away. "I-I know…its ok, I'm alright now." I said trying to be strong.
Celestia's horn glowed and a tissue appeared in a flash of light, she then used her magic to hover it in front of me. I took it in my hoof and wiped the rest of my tears away before I blew my nose into it.
I looked up at Celestia with a thankful smile. "Thanks."
"You're welcome." Celestia said with a smile before she threw the used tissue in a bin.
After pulling myself together, I let out a small sigh before I looked back up to Celestia. "Well, I'd better get back home to Twilight. I…I really need a rest, it's been a hard day." I said.
Celestia gave me an understanding smile. "Of course." She said before her horn glowed.
I then disappeared in a flash of light; leaving Celestia alone in her room.
Ponyville Library
With a flash of light, I then reappeared inside the library and I felt dizzy. "Whow…I should really work on getting use to that." I said to myself as I wobbled left and right slightly.
After shaking off my dizzy state, I looked around and saw Twilight sitting in the kitchen with Spike, Jeff and Peewee. She noticed me before she got up and walked up to me.
"So did they make it back?" Twilight asked.
I nodded. "Yeah, they're fine." I said.
"Good, are you ok? I know how hard this must be for you, do you want to talk?" Twilight asked with a concerned voice.
I shook my head. "No thanks, Twi. All I want right now is to have a minute to relax." I said calmly.
Twilight nodded. "Ok, Matt. You go have a lie down! I'll check up on you later." She said.
I gave her a small smile before I walked towards the stair, I then walked up to our bed and I crawled up on top it before I laid my head on the pillow. I didn't bother getting under the covers; I just lied there looking up at the ceiling trying to relax my body.
Meanwhile: Luna's castle
After returning to her castle, Luna was now in her throne room pacing back and forth in deep thought.
"This was too close, what if Matthew was ordered to return to his world by his parents? I would have never seen him again, then I would never know what it's like to have the colt of my dreams love me. Even if I decided to use the potion, it would have been too late." Luna said to herself.
Luna then looked at her throne to see the scroll was still on the arm of the throne, Luna's horn glowed before the scroll lifted off the arm and hovered towards her.
Once in front of her, she used her magic to unroll the scroll and read it again. After a few minutes, Luna finally made her ultimate choice.
"Today was too much of a risk; I cannot allow it to happen again. I must know what it's like, I need to know what it's like. I…I love Matthew, I…I just want to know what it would be like if he loved me in return." Luna said out-loud to herself.
Luna felt strongly about her choice, even though a wave of guilt repeatedly flowed across her body. She hung her head with her ears down.
But she thought that this would help her move on, all she wanted was one hour with the colt she loved and then she'd give it all up like it never happened. If she had any chance at freedom from her own feelings, it had to be done.
That night: Ponyville library
At last, it was finally time to end the day and get some peaceful sleep.
Spike, Jeff and Peewee were already in their basket fast asleep.
I was also already in bed under the covers, Twilight had just come up the stairs and crawled into bed with me. Twilight looked at me and saw how I was just looking up at the ceiling; she wondered if I had even noticed her beside me.
Twilight then waved her hoof in front of my eyes and I jumped as I snapped out of my train of thought; slightly startling Twilight.
I turned my head to face her. "Oh sorry, Twi. I was miles away." I said.
"Still worried about your family?" Twilight asked.
I turned my attention back up at the ceiling. "Not as much as I was before, but…you know how it is." I said.
"Yeah…but hey, it'll be alright. We'll see them again; they said they'd visit a few times. We'll invite them to our wedding, that way they'll be here to see us get married." Twilight said with a sweet smile.
I turned my head to face her again and I smiled at her. "Yeah, we'll do that. I just wish they would've stayed a bit longer." I said quietly.
"I know you do, I wish they did too" Twilight said softly before she planted a small kiss on my cheek. "But just try and get some sleep! You've had a hard day; you might feel better in the morning." She said.
I nodded. "Ok Twi." I said before I laid my head on the pillow, Twilight then did the same.
"Goodnight, Twi. I love you." I said before I closed my eyes and relaxed.
"Goodnight, Matt. I love you too." I heard Twilight say.
We both then drifted off to sleep, knowing that somewhere out there, my family would be going to sleep in their own beds thinking the same thing about us.
This is a new thing in all our lives, both my birth family and my pony family have been brought together and have accepted each other into their lives in friendship and harmony.
In other words…Two worlds, one family.
I hope you enjoyed the chapter.
Note to Gianmarco: I know you're not the one who sends those insulting reviews, but can you please stop whoever it is! You said it was your younger brother, right? He's doing it to insult the show, right? I'm not upset by it and it's no big deal, but I don't like what he sends, so please tell him to stop!
Please remember to review!
Next chapter will be up soon.
35. Don't stick it to the pony
Hey everypony.
I know what some of you are thinking, Matt's a brave guy and he isn't scared of anything. Hell, he even took on a murderous, blood-thirsty alicorn and saved Canterlot. At this point, it seems he isn't scared of anything. Does he have at least one flaw?
Well, he will now. Because I am scared of something, something that I shouldn't be scared of anymore, but I am. And this chapter is gonna be about my fear.
To explain a little better, one of my readers once asked if Matt had any flaws like some of the main 6 do. I took that into consideration and came up with something.
So anyway, on with the chapter and enjoy!
Chapter 35: Don't stick it to the pony
It's been two days since my family returned to the human world. It's been hard, but I've finally gotten over it and things are back to normal.
But I did make one mistake on the night they went back, I forgot to tell Princess Celestia about my recent nightmares. It must have been because of all the commotion with my family.
Once I realised that I forgot, I felt so stupid. However, I haven't had a nightmare for the last few days, so they may have stopped and now there was no need to inform the Princess about them.
Ponyville streets
It was a chilly day today; the pegasi were flying in the sky covering the bright blue sky with dark clouds; meaning it was going to rain soon. I would be up there helping them, but I had to do my delivery job for Applejack.
Also, the sun was going down. Soon, the sky would be dark and filled with rain clouds. There wouldn't even be stars or moonlight to brighten the way for those who worked late.
Unfortunately for me, I was still in the streets making my deliveries. Jeff was with me, he wasn't comfortable with stormy weather, he says it's terrible weather for flying and that he nearly crashed once in a storm.
"Whow…look at that sky! Have I ever told you how much I hated rain storms?" Jeff said as he stared up at the dark clouds.
I turned my head around to face him. "Yeah, you have. But we shouldn't focus on the sky right now, we should keep our focus on the job so we can get home before the storm actually begins." I said.
Jeff then looked at me and nodded. "You're right, dude. Anything to get the hay out of here, I'm not dealin' with this stuff again." he stated.
Jeff then flew off my back and into the cart; he reached into it and pulled out the clip-board.
"Ok…the next delivery is at-AHH." He yelled as a big force of wind blew in our faces; forcing us to close our eyes tightly.
Once the wind stopped, Jeff looked over to me. "Dude, this thing's gettin' worse by the minute. Maybe we should leave it, return Applejack's cart, and go home." He yelled over the wind.
I shook my head. "We can't do that, Jeff. Applejack will have both our asses if we do, we have to finish the job." I yelled back.
Jeff gave me a small glare. "I don't care if Applejack will have my beak, I'm not stayin' out here waitin' to be struck by lightnin' or somethin' like that." He stated with his wings crossed.
I rolled my eyes. "Fine, you go home. Just tell me where I need to go next!" I said.
Jeff then looked back at the clip-board and read it. "The next place is Town Hall, can I go now?" He asked.
I let out a loud sigh. "Yes, you can go." I said as I pointed in the direction to the library.
"Jeff, out." Jeff yelled before he shot off in the air towards the library. I don't think I've ever seen him fly so fast, he must really not like rain storms.
Suddenly, I heard the clouds thunder above me and I began to get back to work. The sooner I got it done, the sooner I could go home. I forced myself to walk through the powerful wind as I headed towards the Town Hall.
That night: Library
Today had to be the longest working day I've had since I came here, I had so many deliveries to make that by the time I was finished, it was night time.
And to make things worse, it was now raining heavily all over town. I galloped as fast as I could towards the library. The freezing cold rain showered over my body, not to mention the cold wind blowing harder every minute.
But finally, I reached the library and burst through the front door to enter the warmth. I then slammed the door behind me to not allow any rain or cold wind to come inside.
I stood there panting, trying to catch my breath. My hooves were muddy, my coat was soaked, and my mane was flat and dripping like crazy. I felt so cold, I was staring to shiver.
I didn't want to move, I was worried that I'd feel a cold breeze if I did. I just wanted to stand there and wait until I got warm.
Just then, Twilight came into the room. "Matt, where've you been? This storm is really bad, I was getting wor-(GASP)" she gasped loudly at the sight of my soaked, messy state.
Twilight quickly galloped up to me with a worried look on her face. "Matt, are you ok? What happened to you?" She said.
"I-I-I'm…f-fine, T-Twilight." I said as I continued to shiver on the spot.
Twilight then placed her hoof on my cheek and felt how cold it was, it was freezing. Twilight then pulled her hoof away. "Matt, you're freezing. We have to get you warm, I'm giving you a nice hot shower." She stated.
"I-I-I'm fine…T-Twilight…r-really." I said still shivering.
Twilight then gave me a firm look. "No exceptions, Matt. You're having a shower to get you warm and to clean all that mud off your hooves." She said.
With that, her horn glowed and I felt myself lift off the ground and hovered me towards the bathroom, Twilight followed me as she kept her spell going.
Once in the bathroom, Twilight placed me down on the floor before she walked over to the shower. She used her magic to turn the water on and kept sticking her hoof under the falling water to check the temperature.
Once it was warm enough, Twilight looked over to me with a sweet smile. "Ok, Matt. it's nice and hot now, go on in."
I still shivered as I walked over to her, I then stepped into the shower and got under the water.
I took deep breaths through my nostrils as I felt the coldness melt off my body with the warm water, the mud on my hooves began the wash away and run down the drain along with the water.
Then something unexpected happened, Twilight stepped into the shower with me and used her magic to start scrubbing the rain and mud off my back with a sponge.
I couldn't help but blush at this, Twilight was in the shower with me. I shuttered as I felt the sponge rub slowly up and down my back. "How does that feel, Matt?" I heard her ask.
"…Amazing." I said as I closed my eyes closed, I sat down to enjoy the feeling. It truly was amazing, the feeling of the hot water warming my frozen body, and the felling of the girl I loved scrubbing my back.
At one point, Twilight held the sponge up against the shower hose so it could absorb more water. Once she saw the sponge was full of hot water, she hovered it over my head and used her magic to twist it; releasing the collected warm water over my head, it felt so good.
I then saw the sponge hover beside me and I grabbed it with my hoof before I turned around to face Twilight, she looked so beautiful with her mane all flat and wet. "My turn." I said softly.
Twilight giggled before she turned her back to me and sat down, I then started to scrub her by rubbing the sponge around in circles on her back.
My face burned as I blushed deeply, I couldn't believe I was actually doing this with Twilight. I did the same as she did and collected water in the sponge before I released it above her head.
After I had scrubbed Twilight for a few minutes, she turned around to face me and we looked into each other's eyes. As I looked at the loving smile on her face, I couldn't help but lean forward to her and we shared a deep kiss.
We continued to kiss as the shower water continued to rain down on us, we then broke the kiss before I wrapped my arms around her and held her close to me as we felt each other's love.
And hour later, after drying off from the shower, I was now lying in front of the fireplace with a towel wrapped around me as I watched the flames.
Unfortunately, I found out that I had returned to the library too late and I had caught a cold. My nose was slightly blocked and I was sniffing a lot.
Twilight then walked into the room with a towel over her body, she was using her magic to hovering two mugs of coffee beside her. One of the mugs was velvet and the other was green.
Once Twilight reached me, she lied down beside me and hovered the green mug over to me. I looked at it and sniffed my nose again; I then grabbed it with my hoof and looked inside at the steaming light-brown liquid inside it.
I didn't normally drink coffee, but seeing the sweet look on Twilight's face made me want to try it for her, I smiled back before I looked back down at my mug.
I took a deep breath before I took a sip of it, the coffee felt warm and flavourful. I wasn't so fond of the warmth, but the flavour tasted nice.
After I swallowed the coffee, I smiled warmly at Twilight. "Thanks, Twi." I said.
Twilight smiled warmly back. Just then, I sneezed loudly and sniffed my nose again. Twilight gave me a look of pity before she nudged up next to me so we'd share our body heat.
We smiled as we looked at each other lovingly. "…I love you, Matt." Twilight said.
"I love you too, Twi." I responded before I leaned forward to kiss her, only for her to stop me by placing her hoof on my lips.
"Err…Matt, your cold…." Twilight said trying to explain.
Twilight then removed her hoof and I knew what she was saying; she was worried that I would give her a cold too. "Oh yeah, sorry. I forgot." I said before I chuckled slightly.
Even though I understood completely, I was kinda disappointed that I wouldn't be able to kiss her until my cold went away. But my disappointment was lifted by Twilight kissing my cheek.
We then smiled sweetly at each other again before Twilight laid her head on my shoulder.
We both lied there enjoying the warmth of the fire and the comfort we shared, the only sound that could be heard was the fire crackling and the sniffing noises I was making.
The next morning
The sun rose in Ponyville, I slowly opened my eyes to see I was in my bed.
As I leaned up on the bed, I felt a pounding pain in my forehead and I held my hoof against it. I tried to sniff my nose only to feel it was slightly more blocked inside, I could barely breathe in through one of my nostrils.
Just then, I felt a tickling feeling in my nose and I sneezed loudly. I was so dizzy and I felt as though I was going to puke.
I managed to climb out of bed before I slowly walked towards the stairs. Once I reached them, I started to walk down them. However, I sneezed once again and I nearly fell down the stairs.
Once down stairs, I walked into the kitchen to see Twilight, Spike, Jeff and Peewee eating their breakfast. "T…T-Twilight…" I said weakly.
Twilight then turned her head to face me before she gasped loudly, I was surprised by her sudden gasp. "Twi…w-what's wro-…ooooh." I groaned as I felt the ponding pain in my forehead again.
Twilight then rushed up to me with a worried look. "Matt…you look terrible, are you feeling ok?"
I wondered what she meant by that. "W-What do you mean I look terrible?" I asked weakly.
Twilight's horn glowed before a hand mirror appeared in a flash of light, she then held it in front of me and I was shocked at what I saw.
My face was slightly pale, I had black around my eyes which were slightly blood-shot, my nose was red, and my mane was ruffled. "Oooh…shit, I do look terrible." I said.
With a flash of light, the mirror disappeared and Twilight placed her hoof on my forehead, she then pulled it away. "Oh no, you're burning up. You're cold must've gone worse over-night."
I was figured the same thing, I felt really terrible. But I didn't want her to worry so much about me, I wanted to be strong for her and try to fight it. My ears lowered as I felt my throat sting. "I-It's alright, Twi. Don't worry about me, I'm fine."
Twilight raised her eye brow. "You're most certainly not fine, you can barely stand. You cold's gone worse, I think you need to see a doctor." She said.
I wanted to reject and tell her not to worry, but another pounding pain in my forehead convinced me that she was right, as usual.
"O-Ok, Twilight…we'll go after breakfa-…brea-…(AH-TUE)." I sneezed loudly while covering my mouth with my hooves, sneezing that hard made my head spin.
I placed my hooves back on the floor and Twilight gave me a concerned look.
"We're not going after anything, we're going right now!" she said in a serious voice before she helped me walk towards the front door.
As I walked towards the door while sniffling my nose, Twilight looked back at Spike, Jeff and Peewee. "Can you guys watch the library while we're gone?" she asked.
Spike nodded. "Sure, Twilight. We can do that." He said.
"Thanks, guys. We'll be back later." Twilight stated before she and I walked out the library and closed the door behind us, we both then set off towards the hospital.
Later: Ponyville hospital
After arriving at the hospital, Twilight and I were waiting in the waiting-room for the doctor to call us in.
I kept wishing he'd call us in already, my cold felt as though it was getting worse by the minute. The headache I had wasn't coming and going anymore, it was now staying and making me suffer.
I kept sniffing and sneezing, which wasn't helping me or Twilight feel better about it at all. In fact, I think Twilight grew more concerned with how worse I was getting.
As we waited, the rest of the main 6 quickly entered the waiting-room and rushed up to us. "We came as soon as we heard." Applejack stated with a worried look on her face.
Twilight gave her a wondering look. "How'd you all know we were here?" she asked.
"We went over to your place and you weren't in, then Spike told us that you brought Matt here because he was sick." Rainbow Dash explained as she hovered in mid-air.
Twilight looked up at her. "He is, I'm so worried about him. I mean, just look at him!" she said before she turned her head to look at me sitting beside her.
They all then looked at the state I was in, they all then gave me concerned looks. Fluttershy came up to me. "Oh, you poor thing." she said sweetly as she stroked my mane.
Suddenly, Pinkie Pie shot up beside her and looked right at my pale face. "Ooh, how's his face turning a different colour like that? Is he must be part-chameleon? That would explain why his coat's green all the time." She said with a smile.
They all looked at her with awkward looks before they looked back at me. "Sweetie, you look dreadful." Rarity stated.
Applejack nodded while looking at me. "She's right, you're not lookin' so good there, sugar cube. And I can't help but feel it's my fault you're in this mess."
Rarity looked at her with a raised eye brow. "How come it's your fault? What happened to him?" she asked.
Applejack turned her head to face her. "Matt was out in the storm yesterday doin' his work. If I had only known that storm was comin', I would've given him the day off and this wouldn't have happened." She explained.
Rainbow Dash then flew up to her. "No, it's kinda more my fault. I knew that storm was scheduled to happen, I should've told you before it started." She said with slight sorrow.
After hearing all this, I raised my hoof. "It's no one's fault, I don't blame anyone. Anyway, it's more my own fault. Jeff wanted to go home, but I chose to stay out there and finish the job. Jeff went home and kept wor-…wor-…(AH-TUE)" I sneezed again with my hooves over my mouth.
"Don't talk, Matt. Try and keep your strength." Twilight said as she wrapped her arm around me and pulled me closer to her for comfort, everyone sat down in front of us and waited for the doctor to come.
Just then, the doctor Unicorn pony walked in the room though the double-doors, he then used his magic to hover a clip-board in front of him and looked at it. "Alright…Mr Matthew, you're next." He announced.
With that, Twilight and I got up and walked towards him with the rest of the main 6 following behind.
Once the doctor noticed us, he turned around and walked out the double-doors with all of us following behind.
He took us to his medical room and I was sitting on the edge of a medical bed, Twilight was sat on the floor in front of the bed.
"It's been a while since I last saw you, Mr Matthew. But I must say, I was hoping to see you again under different circumstances than this." The doctor said as he came over to me with a stethoscope around his neck.
I then sniffed my nose loudly again. "Yeah, me too. So can you help me?" I asked.
"Well, I'll certainly try. First, I need to check your heart rate." The doctor stated before his horn glowed and the chest-piece of his stethoscope hovered up and placed itself against my chest, it felt cold.
The doctor used his magic to place the ear-pieces in his ears and listened carefully.
"Ah-huh…ah-huh…hmm…alright, I believe I've figured out the problem." The doctor stated as he took the chest-piece away and the ear-pieces out his ear.
"You seem to have caught a bad feather. If you feel cold, that'll be the illness getting worse. Speaking roughly, I'd say it'll get worse though out the day." The doctor explained as he walked over to his drawers and started searching through them.
Twilight gave me a worried look before she looked back at the doctor. "You can cure him, right?" she asked.
The doctor waved his hoof as he continued to search through his drawers. "Of course I can, we just need to insert the medicine into him." He explained.
I raised my eye brow. "And how are you gonna do that? Do I drink it, or something?" I asked, I didn't get an answer.
"Ah, here it is." The doctor said as he used his magic to pull out an empty medium sized syringe with a short needle on it.
Once I saw it, my eyes widened as I felt fear shoot up along my body. If there was any ounce of green left on my face, it was now gone as my face went completely pale with fright. My heart raced as I thought of what the doctor was planning to do. "…That's a big needle." I said in a high-pitched voice.
The doctor walked over to a table which had a lot of medicine vials on it, he dipped the needle into one and sucked up the medicine until the syringe was full. "Don't worry, Mr Matthew! This won't hurt a bit." he said.
"Says him, I remember when I first had one of these when I was little, it was horrible. And don't get me started on the blood tests I use to have when I was ill! Sure, I had numbing cream to make my arm numb before they'd stick it in me, but I don't have any here. Oh crap, this is gonna hurt." I thought as my breathing grew heavier and heavier.
Twilight then walked up to the doctor and looked at the syringe in wonder. "So what will this do the help Matt? I'm kinda curious." She said.
The doctor gave her a small smile before he started explaining it to her. I then looked at the others to see they weren't looking at me; they were all focusing on what the doctor was saying. At that moment, I grew a devious and tricky idea.
"No way am I gonna sit here and let this guy stick that thing in me. Maybe if I'm real quiet, I can sneak out of here without them seeing me." I thought.
I then slowly and quietly slid off the bed and crept towards the door, I had to stop a few times because I thought one of my friends was gonna turn around. But eventually, I made it to the door and slipped out the room. I then galloped down the hall towards the exit.
"But anyway, we should get this over with. Alright, Mr Matthew, just relax and this will be over in no ti-" the doctor didn't finish his sentence as he noticed my absence.
Twilight and the others turned around and saw I was missing. "Err…where'd he go?" Applejack asked.
"I don't know, but I'm gonna find out." Twilight said with a firm look in her eyes.
An hour later: clouds above Ponyville
Above the streets of Ponyville, I was hiding up on top of a small cloud.
I kept thinking to myself how I could have done that, how I just ran away because of a needle. "I can't believe I just did that, I'm such a coward, running away from a simple little needle." I said to myself as I lied on my stomach on the cloud.
I then thought of the pain I would've experienced if I did stay. I wasn't sure if it would hurt or not, but I wasn't willing to take risks, not after remembering my past injections.
"On second thought, I'd rather be sick then purposely stabbed any day. I've had colds in the past, and they went away easily. This one is no different to the re-(COUGH, COUGH)" I couldn't finish my sentence as I coughed loudly.
I could tell this was what the doctor was talking about when he said the cold would grow worse through the day. By now, my green coat was completely white and the brown in my mane & tail had become dim, my eyes had also become more blood shot.
But I didn't care, I was willing to put up with anything to stay the hell away from that needle.
"MATT!" an angry female voice yelled from below me.
I peeked down from the cloud to see Twilight and the rest of the main 6 all looking up at me with angry looks. "Matt, you get down here right now!" Twilight yelled up to me.
I curled myself up on the cloud, hoping they'd think I wasn't there and go away. "Matthew, we know you're up there. We can see your tail dangling off the edge of the cloud." I heard Rarity say.
I looked back at my tail to see she was right, I then pulled in my tail and pretended I wasn't there. However, Twilight and the others saw me pull my tail in.
"I take it he's not going to make this easy." Rarity stated with narrow eyes.
"I'll get him down." Twilight said before her horn glowed.
Suddenly, the cloud beneath me turned completely black before it started to rain. As rain fell down from the cloud, I felt myself sink within the cloud and I struggled to stay on it.
After a second, I sunk through the cloud and fell down to the ground yelling loudly with my eyes closed. Just before I could hit the ground, I felt something stop.
I then opened my eyes to see I was being held upside down in Twilight's magic, my face was right in front of hers as she gave me a firm look.
I smiled nervously. "Haha…hey, sweetie." I said.
"Don't hey, sweetie me! I want to know why you ran off like that when we were about to give you your medicine." Twilight said in a firm voice.
I didn't blame her for being angry, I acted like a total wimp back there. But I couldn't tell them I was afraid of needles, they'd never stop laughing if I did. I thought as I was still held upside down.
"Well?" Twilight said, snapping me out of my thoughts.
"Ok, I'll tell you. Can you at least put me down first?" I asked.
Twilight then flipped me back around before she placed me gently on the ground on my hooves. "Now what happened back there?" Twilight asked still giving me a firm look.
I quickly thought about what I was going to tell her. "Well…you see…I needed to go to the bathroom…I couldn't go through something like that with a full bladder." I lied.
"What do you mean by something like that?" Twilight asked with a raised eye brow.
Just then, Pinkie Pie cutted in. "Yeah, and you could've used the bathroom there, you know." She said.
"Well…I..err…" I said trying to think of something to say.
Before I could, Rainbow Dash flew up to my face with a suspecting look. "And if you were going to the bathroom, how is it you ended up on that cloud?" she said looking me dead in the eyes.
I backed away from her as I began to sweat from nervousness. "Well, I was…I…I can't tell you." I said with my head hanging slightly.
"Tell us what? Why are you acting so weird all of a sudden?" Rainbow Dash asked, Twilight and the rest of the main 6 all eyed me as they waited for an answer.
"Look, I just can't. You'd all probably think I'm some sort of wimp if I di-(COUGH, COUGH, COUGH)" I coughed loudly again; causing me to kneel to the ground.
Twilight's firm look turned into a concerned one as she rushed up to me and helped me back up. "Matt, you're getting worse. We have to get you back to the hospital and give you that shot." She said slightly calmer.
Once I heard that, my eyes shot open and I flew up in the air. "No way, I'm not going back there. That doctor ain't poking me with anything." I stated before I shot off away from them; surprising them all.
"AFTER'IM!" Applejack yelled before they all galloped after me, Rainbow Dash flew off like a bullet to try and catch me.
I flapped as hard as I could to get away, but Twilight and the others were surprisingly catching up with me. I tried to flap harder with all the strength I had left.
As they galloped through the streets, Twilight and the others had determined looks on their faces. Applejack then looked ahead and noticed something.
She saw a lasso hanging from a hook on the side of one of the houses; she then gained an idea and grinned. As Applejack galloped past the lasso, she grabbed it with her mouth and turned her attention back up to me.
Applejack then galloped ahead of the others before she started twirling the lasso around above her head.
Once she was close enough and gained a good shot, she tossed the lasso up towards me and it wrapped around my waist.
I felt it tighten around my waist and I let out a loud gagging noise. I turned my head around and looked down to see the other end of the lasso was being held in Applejack's mouth. I then turned my head back around and continued flying through the streets.
Suddenly, Applejack stopped galloping and tugged back hard on the lasso; forcing me to come to a sudden stop. I gagged loudly as I felt the tight rope pull back against my waist.
"We got'cha now." Applejack muffled with her teeth holding the rope tight, she then started to pull me down to her.
I felt myself being pulled back towards the ground, but I couldn't give up now. I started to flap my wings hard again and the rope between me and Applejack straightened tightly.
Applejack togged back harder as I tried to keep flying, I eventually felt myself start to slowly move in the air. Applejack tried to fight it, but she was started to get dragged along the ground; causing soil to gather in front of her front hooves.
Eventually, Applejack was starting to lift off the ground, but she wouldn't let go of the rope.
I then finally managed to shoot off through the air and Applejack flew off the ground. I was now pulling Applejack behind me through the air.
Applejack's eyes were forced to squint as the wind blew hard in her face, she rocked left and right as she kept hold of the rope.
Meanwhile, Twilight and the others were still galloping behind. Twilight looked up in shock at the sight of Applejack being pulled behind me through the air.
"Why is Matt acting like this? He was fine this morning. Whatever it is, it has to be something to do with the hospital; he's really determined to stay away from there." Twilight thought as she kept galloping.
As I kept flying as fast as I could, I looked behind me to see that Applejack was still holding onto the rope for dear life and determination with her eyes shut tight.
I had to give her credit, it was impressive how she could hold on for this long, I can't even hold on to Rainbow Dash for this long without crashing or giving up. Applejack was one pretty strong pony.
I then turned my attention back to where I was flying; I then saw something up ahead.
It was a female Earth pony walking across the street while pulling a cart filled with hay along behind her. I then looked back at Applejack before I grinned as I thought of an idea, I then shot off towards the hay filled cart with Applejack flying behind.
I then shot passed the cart right above the hay pile; gaining the attention of the Earth pony.
Applejack managed to open one of her eyes and saw the hay pile coming up in front of her, her eyes shot open in shock before she safely crashed inside it; causing her to let go of the rope.
As I kept flying, I turned my head around to look back at the hay stack she was now stuck in. "Sorry." I yelled before I turned my head back around and focused on my flying.
The Earth pony noticed Applejack crash in her hay pile. "HEY!" she said loudly with annoyance.
Applejack's head then popped out from the tip of the hay pile, she had hay in her mouth and hay sticking out from under her hat.
Applejack then spat out the hay in her mouth. "Yeah…lots of hay." She responded with her eyes in a daze.
The Earth pony just rolled her eyes, Applejack then shook off her daze to see Twilight and the others gallop up to her. "Applejack, are you alright?" Fluttershy asked with concern.
Applejack nodded. "Yeah, I'm fine." She answered before she turned her head around to see me flying away fast. "Woow…he really doesn't wanna go back to that hospital." She stated.
"I don't know what's at the hospital that's got him so spooked, but it must be something serious if he doesn't want to go back. But we need to catch him and take him back, or else his cold's just gonna get worse." Twilight said.
Rainbow Dash then took off into the air. "I'll get him." She stated before she shot off after me.
Twilight and the others then went around the cart before galloping off after her, Applejack jumped out of the hay pile before she followed them; leaving the Earth pony with a confused look. "What…just happened?" she asked herself.
Meanwhile, I was still flying as fast as I could around Ponyville. I looked behind me to see Twilight and the others were far behind, I exhaled it relief.
"Sorry, guys. But the last thing I'm gonna do is let that doctor stick a needle in m-AHH." I yelled as something tackled me from above.
I managed to turn my head around to see it was Rainbow Dash who had tackled me, she was trying to wrap her arms around me, but I fought back and tried to throw her off.
"Matt…this…has gone on long enough, why won't…ah…you tell us why you won't go back to the hospital?" Rainbow Dash said as we both struggled against each other.
"Because I CAN'T." I yelled.
We made many twists and turns as we wrestled through the air around town, there were times were we nearly crashed into houses but luckily avoided them.
All the ponies in town watched us with wide-eyes as we shot over their heads, Twilight and the rest of the main 6 tried their best not to lose us.
As we continued this dangerous act, we didn't notice the Town Hall coming up ahead.
We tossed and turned in the air before Rainbow Dash pushed her hoof against my cheek to try and keep my head away while she attempted to grab hold of me.
With my left eyes covered by her hoof, I could only see through my right eye. It then shot wider once I saw the Town Hall coming up ahead fast.
"R-Rainbow!" I yelled, Rainbow Dash then looked ahead and went wide-eyed with shock as it look like we were gonna crash into the building.
Rainbow Dash acted fast, she pushed me away and we both caught a different wind; allowing us to fly around the Town Hall and miss it all together.
Once I was around the Town Hall, I looked around to see that Rainbow Dash had suddenly vanished. I looked all around for her but I couldn't see her anywhere. "This isn't right, I can't have lost her that easily." I said to myself.
As I began to think I was in the clear, Rainbow Dash suddenly shot down from nowhere onto my back and covered my eyes with her front hooves. I couldn't see a thing, I started to fly uncontrollably.
"Rainbow Dash, get off! I can't see." I yelled as I started flying in different directions like crazy, but she didn't listen and kept her hooves over my eyes. I decided it was best for me to slow down slightly, but we were still going rather fast.
However, I was slow enough for Twilight and the others to finally catch up. They saw what Rainbow Dash was doing and watched as I swirled in the air with her on my back.
"Ok, I'm tired of this now. Time to put a stop to this once and for all." Rainbow Dash thought as she grew tired of all this fuss.
She then spread out her wings and tried to take control of our flight pattern, but my wing movement mixed with hers caused us to start moving around uncontrollably.
As my vision was darkened, I felt myself bobbing up and down and leaning left and right in the air. I had no idea where I was going or why I couldn't control my flying.
It got to the point where Rainbow Dash and I started wobbling until we finally lost control and was forced to split apart as we fell out the sky.
Twilight and the others gasped loudly as they saw us fall.
And to make things even worse, Rainbow Dash and I crash landed in a mud filled ditch.
Due to the recent heavy rain, the mud we had crashed in was wet and sloppy. Also, it had made the mud very cold.
As I sat up out of the sloppiness, I felt the cold mud against my body and I wrapped my arms around myself as I began to shiver. I then felt my nose tickle before I let out another loud sneeze, I was colder than ever.
Behind me, Rainbow Dash got up from the mud with a dazed look. "Ha…got ya now, you…you…" she didn't finish her sentence as she fell back down into the mud.
At that moment, Twilight and the others rushed up to the ledge of the ditch and looked down at us. "Matt, are you ok?" Twilight asked in concern.
I looked up to her. "Y-Yeah…(sniff)…I-I think so…" I said weakly.
Twilight then exhaled. "That's good to hear….because you're in big trouble." She said in a sudden firm voice.
My ears lowered and I looked down at the mess I was in, my coat was stained with mud. "I know." I said quietly.
Twilight's horn then glowed before Rainbow Dash and I lifted out of the ditch and was placed down in front of her, I continued to hold myself as I shivered like crazy.
Rainbow Dash then woke back up and sat up, she groaned as she rubbed her head with her hoof. "Did…did we get him?" she asked.
Rarity walked up to her, but kept a safe distance to stay away from the mud on Rainbow's coat. "Yes, we did. Now we can get some answers straight from the pony's mouth." She said as she looked over to me.
"Yeah, let's start with why ya ran out of the hospital!" Applejack said as she gave me a sharp look in the eye, I felt so small in her gaze.
"I already told you, I can't tell you why I left the ho-…ho-…(AH-TUE, AH-TUE, COUGH, COOOOOUGH)" I coughed louder than ever, it hurt my chest so much that I was forced to my knees and hold myself up with my front hooves.
Twilight's firm look changed into a look of pure worry, she had never seen me cough or sneeze that loudly since I grew sick. She rushed to my side and helped me back up.
"Matt, please. You're getting sicker by the minute; I can't stand to see you in this state any longer. Please…please tell us what's wrong! We just want to help you." Twilight said.
I looked in her eyes to see how upset and worried she was about this, seeing it made me want to hold her as tight as I could and tell her how sorry I was for putting her through all this. I looked around to see the rest of my friends had the same look.
As I sniffed my nose once last time before I let out a small sigh. "I don't want to go back because…because…I'm afraid." I admitted with my ears low.
Twilight and the others looked at each other in confusion; they then looked back to me. "Afraid? You're afraid of the hospital?" Pinkie Pie asked with a surprised tone.
I looked at her. "No, I'm not afraid of the hospital." I stated.
"The doctor?" Fluttershy asked.
I turned my head to face her. "No, not him either." I stated.
"The magazines you read while in the waiting room?...because if so, I wouldn't blame you. I myself find them rather…gloomy." Rarity said.
I turned my head to face her. "As much as I agree with you on that, I'm not scared of the magazines. I'm scared of…OF NEEDLES." I yelled in despair before I hid my face in my hooves.
Twilight and the others were silent; they all looked at each other before they looked back at me. "Needles? As in, the injection the doctor was gonna give you?" Twilight asked in a calm voice.
I kept my hooves over my face as I nodded slightly.
They were all silent before Rainbow Dash burst out laughing. "HAHAHA, is that it? That's the reason you ran away? HAHAHA, you big chicken, HAHAHA." She laughed loudly, this didn't make me feel any better about myself.
Rainbow Dash was then forced to stop laughing by Applejack grabbing her tail and tugging her back down onto the ground. Applejack then gave her a firm look before she walked over to me.
Applejack sat beside me before she placed her hoof on my back. "Matt, how could you be scared as somethin' as simple and small as a needle? It's just a tiny prick." She stated.
I then removed my hooves and looked at her. "Maybe to you, but I've had past experiences with needles. I had blood tests where they stick a needle in your arm and suck out some of your blood, do you know how uncomfortable that feels?" I asked.
"But this isn't a blood test, this is a small shot which will cure your cold which by the way, is getting more worse the more we wait here." Rarity said with narrow eyes.
"She's right, Matt. The more time we waste, the sicker you'll become. You really need to come back and have that shot." Twilight said.
"I…I just don't like the idea of having a needle stuck into me on purpose." I said as I looked down at the ground.
"Come on, Mattie! You're the guy who took on Thorn and saved the day, you knew he was gonna hurt you at some point, you didn't seem scared then." Pinkie Pie said.
I looked at her. "Those were risks, I didn't see them coming and I tried to prevent him from hurting me. With something like a needle, you have to sit there knowing they're gonna stick it in you." I explained.
"Matt, look at me." I heard Twilight say.
I then turned my head to face her and look into her beautiful eyes. "I know you're afraid to get hurt, but if you don't stand up to your fear, your cold's gonna get worse and you'll feel more pain then any needle can make." she said with an honest voice.
She was right, I was gonna get worse if I didn't go back. But remembering the feeling of the needle in my arm sent shivers up my spine. "I…I don't know, Twilight." I said.
"I promise you…it won't hurt as much as you think it will, you just have to trust me." Twilight said before she placed her hoof on mine. "…Don't you trust me?" she asked.
I looked into her eyes, I saw the sadness and the worry deep inside them. I felt like such a coward for everything I had done today, I acted like such a school colt. I was ashamed of myself, and there was only one way to redeem myself.
"I…I do trust you, Twilight…I'll go back, I'll go back for you." I said.
Twilight then gave me a sweet smile before she slowly wrapped her arms around me and hugged me; not caring if mud was getting on her gorgeous clean coat. "I'll help you through it, we'll beat it together." I heard her say.
I then hugged her tighter as the rest of the main 6 watched us with warm smiles.
Later: Ponyville hospital
After getting myself cleaned up, we returning to the hospital and I was now once again sitting on the bed in the doctor's medical room. Only this time, Twilight was sitting next to me on the bed.
I breathed heavily as I watched the doctor stick the needle tip into the vial of medication, I then felt a hoof touch mine. I turned my head to see Twilight with an honest look. "It'll be ok." She whispered.
I smiled warmly at her before I took a deep breath.
"Alright, let's try this again, shall we?" the doctor said as he walked up to me with the full syringe hovering beside him.
I looked at it with a slightly frightened look before I closed my eyes tight and stuck my arm out to the doctor. "Alright, nice and easy." I heard the doctor say as he gently took my arm with his hoof.
I tensed us as I waited to feel the needle poke through my skin, I closed my eyes tighter as I whimpered silently.
"Ok, all done, Mr Matthew." I heard the doctor say, my eyes shot wide open in surprise and shock. I looked at my arm to see a small dap of blood seeping out of it.
"Wait…that's it?" I asked the doctor as he walked across the room.
The doctor then returned to me. "That's it." he repeated before he placed a small band-aid over the small dot on my arms.
"See, you barely felt it." Twilight said with a pleased smile.
I blushed from embarrassment, the moment felt so awkward as I thought about all the trouble I caused to avoid nothing but a harmless poke.
"Well…I feel like a total idiot right now." I said out loud.
Twilight giggled before she jumped off the bed and walked towards the door. "Come on, you big green lump. Let's go home, we should've been back hours ago." She said.
I then looked at the doctor. "Emm…thanks, I guess." I said as I rubbed the back of my head with my hoof.
He smiled. "You're welcome. And don't worry! You're cold should be cured by tomorrow afternoon." He stated.
I nodded. "Ok, thanks again. bye." I said before I jumped off the bed and followed Twilight out the door to leave the hospital and go home.
The next day: Library
It was late in the afternoon and the doctor was right, my cold had gone completely.
My coat was light green again, my mane and tail were fully brown again, and my eyes weren't blood shot anymore. It felt good to be my own colour again.
Twilight was glad I was better, I could tell she was really worried about me when I was ill. Which of course, made me feel worse about running away and making things worse for both of us.
But with Twilight's help, I was able to overcome my fears and I was now back to my old self. I told Twilight this and she pointed out that I may have learned a lesson about friendship.
Once I realised she was right, I asked Spike to take a letter.
Me and Spike were now sitting in the kitchen, Spike was holding a quill and scroll as he waited for me to tell him what to write. I cleared my throat before I began.
"Dear, Princess Celestia.
I've recently learned that ponies have strong fears that they may do almost anything to avoid, even the bravest of ponies can be afraid of the smallest of things. But with your friends by your side, they can help you learn how to conquer your fears and master them. And you should never be afraid to admit your fears to your friends, because if they don't know, they can't help.
Your friend, Matthew."
Once I was finished, Spike rolled up the scroll before he breathed his green fire on it. It turned into a small cloud of smoke before it flew out the window and shot up towards Canterlot.
Once the letter was sent, Twilight came into the kitchen and came up beside me. "Did you write the letter for the Princess?" she asked with a smile.
I turned my head to face her and nodded. "Yeah…and…I'm sorry for all the trouble I caused yesterday, Twilight. I was…acting like a total coward. I don't know why the Element of Bravery chose me, how can I represent the Element if I'm scared of a little needle? I don't think I deserve it, Twi." I said with my ears low.
Twilight then wrapped her arm around me. "Oh, Matt. Of course you deserve it. It's ok to be afraid of something, everyone has to a fear of something, even you. You're brave against so many other things, like the night you risked your own life to stop Thorn. Times like that are what make you worthy of representing the Element, you don't have to brave against every little thing. You may have wings, but you're no chicken." She said kindly.
I smiled warmly at her for what she said. "So you forgive me?" I asked.
Twilight then hugged me warmly. "Of course I do, I'm just so happy you're not sick anymore." She said.
I wrapped my arms around her and hugged back. "Thanks, Twi…I love you." I said.
"I love you too, Matt." Twilight said as we continued hugging, Spike smiled warmly at the sight of us.
After a few minutes, we broke the hug and Twilight smirked at me. "But seriously, I didn't think of you as one to be scared of needles."
I smiled sheepishly. "Yeah, kinda silly now that I think about it." I said as I rubbed the back of my head with my hoof.
Twilight giggled. "Yeah, sort of funny too. I mean…the brave Matthew, fearless in the face of danger, yet petrified in the face of a tiny needle."
I chuckled. "Hey, that does sound a little funny." I said, Twilight and I then started laughing harder at the thought of it.
Just then, something caught Twilight's eye which made her look down at the floor with fright. I noticed this before I turned around and looked down at what she was staring at.
It was a small door mouse scurrying across the kitchen floor, it looked up at us and let out a small squeak.
"AHHH, MOUSE! MOUSE! MOUSE!" Twilight screamed as she backed away quickly.
I looked at her with a raised eye brow. "Twilight, it's just a tiny mouse, Fluttershy has loads of them." I stated.
"I don't care, get rid of it! MAKE IT GO AWAY! AHH." Twilight screamed loudly as she galloped out of the kitchen, I heard her hooves clop against the stairs as she ran upstairs. I then heard a door slam shut, she must've gone in the guest room.
I looked back down at the mouse to see it scurry towards a broom stick leaning against the wall, the top of the broom was leaning against a window.
The mouse climb up a broom until it reached the window sill and scratched its tiny paws against the glass, I walked over to it before I pushed the window open. The mouse then jumped out the window and scurried off towards town.
Me and Spike could still hear Twilight's hooves as they clopped stomped against the guest room floor.
I thought about how awkward this was, I was afraid of needles, and now it turns out Twilight was afraid of mice. I looked at Spike with a large smirk. "Twilight never fails to amuse me." I said.
Spike chuckled. "I know, right." he answered with a smirk.
With a smirk still on my face, I walked out of the kitchen and up the stairs. I walked up the guest room door and knocked on it. "Twilight, the mouse is gone, you can come out now." I said through the door.
The door the slowly opened and Twilight stuck her head out. "Are you sure?" she asked with fright in her eyes.
I gave her an honest smile. "I'm sure, come on out." I said.
Twilight then opened the door completely and walked out the guest room, she looked down at the floor and blushed from embarrassment. "Well that was…kinda awkward, wasn't it?" she asked with a sheepish smile.
I chuckled before I smiled at her. "Yep, but just remember all that stuff you said to me. It's normal to be afraid." I said.
Twilight let out a small sigh. "You're right, now I know how you felt when you saw that needle. You're worst fears can really get to you, huh?" she said.
I cocked my head. "Twilight, needles are my old worst fear. I have a new one now." I said.
"Really, what is it?" Twilight asked curiously.
I then took Twilight's hoof in mine and smiled sweetly at her. "…Losing you…and our friends." I said.
Twilight then gave me a sweet smile before she leaped onto me and wrapped her arms around me, I was surprised by this before I smiled warmly again and hugged her back.
After a few minutes, we broke the hug and smiled lovingly at each other. "Wanna cuddle for a while?" I asked.
Twilight giggled. "I'd like that." She answered.
Me and Twilight then walked over to our bed before we climbed up onto it, we both then lied down on it before we wrapped our arms around each other.
Twilight then rested her head on my chest and closed her eyes as I gently stroked her soft mane with my hoof.
I managed to kiss her forehead before I rested my head on the pillow behind me and closed my eyes. We both relaxed as we lied there and enjoyed each other's cuddle.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
BTW, I don't really act like this when I have to have an injection. That was written just for fun and to add more thrill to it. True, I'm frightened of them, but I don't run away.
I really hope this chapter hasn't made you look at this Matt differently than you normally do, because it wasn't supposed to.
P.S. Just to let the rest of you MLP fans know, the complete first season of the show is now out on DVD exclusively on . I've already ordered one.
Please remember to review!
The next chapter will be up soon, merry Christmas to you all :D
36. Secret of my Excess
Hey everypony, I'm back once again.
This chapter is based in the episode Secret of my Excess,I've added and changed some things. I do not own this episode.
You know what's funny about this? This is my 36th chapter, and this is the 36th episode in the series. What a coincidence.
Warning: Long chapter.
Chapter 36: Secret of my Excess
It's been 4 days since my incident with the needle and I was feeling much better now.
And to make things better, it was nearly Spike's birthday. Once Twilight told me about this, I was really surprised. However, I was also pretty worried because I had no idea what to get him for a present. I needed to think, and think fast.
I decided to go to Canterlot with Jeff and ask the Diamond Dogs to help me dig up some very special gem stones for Spike, we went back to their old mine and they managed to dig up a whole collection of Yellow Sparkle Rubies.
According to Twilight's book on gemstones, Yellow Sparkle Rubies were one of the rarest, most valuable gems in Equestria, not to mention one of the most nutritious and healthy snacks towards dragons like Spike.
I knew he'd love to eat these as his birthday dinner, these would be perfect as my present to him next week.
Ponyville library
With the Diamond Dogs heading back up to Canterlot, I was now walking up to the front door of the library with both my saddle-bags filled with Yellow Sparkle Rubies, Jeff on my back.
"Now I'll have to be very careful to make sure Spike doesn't see these, it'll ruin the surprise if he does. I'll go in, sneak up the stairs, and hide them in a place he'll never look." I said out loud as I approached the door.
"Yeah, and say your present's from both of us. I…kinda don't have anythin', and I don't have any money to get somethin'…so, think you can lend a parrot a hoof?" Jeff asked before a large smile came on his face.
I rolled my eyes. "Fine, the rubies can be from both of us." I said.
"Thanks, dude. This party for Spike is gonna be awesome." Jeff cheered loudly.
Once I reached the front door of the library, I opened it and I saw that the front room floor was covered with books, it looked as though every book that were once on the shelves was now on the floor.
I looked at the mess with wide eyes, I then saw Twilight using her magic to place the books back up on the shelves. She turned around and noticed me.
"Oh good, you're home. Now you can help me organize these books." Twilight said before she continued to stack books on the shelves.
"I'll be in the kitchen." Jeff said before he flew off my back and into the kitchen.
I then walked towards Twilight. "What happen here? Did Discord make our books come to life again?" I asked as I walked up behind Twilight.
Twilight then turned around again to face me. "No, I just had a little mishap with the books." She explained.
I smirked at her with a raised eye brow. "Let me guess, re-shelving day?"
Twilight nodded. "Yeah, these books get so mixed up after they're used." She said, Twilight then noticed my full saddle-bags. "What's in your bags?" she asked curiously.
I turned my head around to face my bags before I looked back at Twilight, I then lean my head closer to hers. "Don't tell Spike, but these bags are filled with my present for his birthday." I whispered.
"Really, what is it?" Twilight asked in a whisper.
I then used my left wing to open the saddle-bag on my left side; revealing the many Yellow Sparkle Rubies inside. "I read in one of the books that dragons love eating these kind of gems, I figured the best gift could be something he'd enjoy eating." I said.
Twilight gave me a giggly smile. "That's very thoughtful of you, Matt. But I think he beat you to that idea." She said as she pointed her hoof to something behind me.
I turned my head around to see Spike standing across the room eyeing a large red ruby in his hands, it looked like an upside down heart. He was rubbing it with his figure as he stared at it with hunger in his eyes.
"What's that thing?" I asked pointing at the ruby.
"It's a Fire Ruby, it's a very rare gem. Spike says it's his birthday present to himself and he's gonna eat it as his birthday dinner." Twilight explained.
I felt so beaten by this, my present to Spike had been out-matched by that large shiny ruby in his claws. I almost felt embarrassed due to the irony in it all. "Oh…well so much for my present." I said.
"Don't worry, Matt. You can still give him you're present, I'm sure he'll love them. And don't worry about him liking that ruby better than yours! You know Spike, he'll chow down on any gem, ruby, or diamond he gets no matter how big or small." Twilight stated with a confident smile.
I turned my head around to face her and smiled at her. "Ok, Twi. Who knows, maybe he'll eat mine for a second dinner or something." I said.
Twilight nodded. "Exactly, now can you please help me stack these books? Remember to place each book in their proper place." She said before she continued to put books up on the shelves.
"Sure thing, Twi." I said before I grabbed my saddle-bags with my mouth and placed them on the floor, I then started to help Twilight stack the books back up on the shelves.
Just then. "Hellooooo!" A female voice came from behind the front door of the library, the door knob then glowed light blue before the door opened and Rarity slid her head in. "Anypony home? Twilight? Matthew?" she asked.
I looked over to her and smile. But before I could say anything, she suddenly gasped loudly at the sight of Spike's Fire Ruby.
She walked over to him and eyed the ruby. "Is that a Fire Ruby?...That must be at least twenty carats. No inclusions, pristine facets…" She said with awe as she saw her reflection in the shiny ruby.
"And totally delicious." Spike added.
I raised my eye brow. "Looks like a plain old gem to me." I said; causing Rarity to gasp loudly at me.
Suddenly, she shot right up to my face. "Just an old gem? This happens to be one of the rarest gems even know, and all you can call it is…a plain old gem?" she said loudly in my face.
I was slightly frightened by her volume and the way she looked me dead in the eyes. "Well…I…errr…" I said nervously.
Before I could say anything else, Twilight looked at us with an irritated look in her eyes. "Urr…if you guys don't mind?" she said.
Rarity then snapped out of her seemingly offended state and looked over to Twilight. "Oh, urr, of course." She then started walking over to Twilight; allowing me to exhale in relief that she had forgotten what I said.
"I just came to see if you had any books on historical fashion." Rarity stated before she looked back at Spike rubbing the ruby with his finger before he sucked the ruby's flavour off it.
Rarity then went back over to Spike with his back turned to her. "Did you say desirous?" she asked with confusion.
Spike then turned around to face her with a smile. "Sure did, next week's my birthday, and this is my birthday dinner." He said as he walked away from her.
"Oh, now he's just rubbing it in." I thought as I groaned in my mouth while continuing to stack up the fallen books.
Rarity had a look of despair on her face as she watched Spike walk away, she held her hoof up in a position that looked as though she wanted to say something. Also, he ears were low, so something must be bothering her.
Rarity's looked then changed as Twilight hovered a book in front of her face as she continued to focus all her attention on the books. "Start with this one!" Twilight said as she walked passed Rarity.
Rarity then smiled with delight as she took the book with her magic before she opened it. "Thanks, Twilight. I've got a feeling ruffled taffeta capes are going to make a huge comeback this season, and I want to be ahead of the game." She stated as Twilight just continued to organise the books.
I overheard this and took some interest in why she wanted to know this stuff, I walked over to her before I looked in the book she was reading. "So…how come you want to know about these cape things? Planning on making some as a new design?" I asked.
Rarity turned her head to face me. "I'm thinking about it, but I need something truly international to get me going, I'm hoping this book will have something that'll inspire me." She stated.
I nodded to say I understood. "Alright then." I then looked in the book to try and help her. "Hmm…oh, here's something. Apparently, some of these cape things were worn by famous fashion models back in the day. That's pretty cool, huh?" I asked Rarity with a hopeful smile.
Rarity gave me an unsure look. "Well yes, that is pretty...cool. But it's not the type of insertion I was looking…for." She said as she kept looking back at Spike kneeling in front of a case while rubbing his ruby.
Rarity then bit her own arm with a worried look on her face, I noticed this and wondered what was wrong. "Rarity, are you feeling alright? You look kinda worried about something." I said.
I didn't get an answer as Rarity turned herself around to face Spike better, she watched as he gently placed the ruby into the case in front of him. "I hope it's as tasty as it is beautiful, Spike." She said; earning Spike's attention.
"I've never seen anything quite so stunning before." Rarity said with a sweet smile, he smile then changed to a small frown as she looked down at the floor.
I gave what was going on here my full attention, it seemed that Rarity was more fond of the ruby than I thought she was. Spike picked the ruby up out of the case and looked at it. "Gosh…you really like it, huh?" he asked.
Rarity then looked up to him. "Like it? it's…magnificent." She said swaying her mane before beating her beautiful eye-lashes at Spike.
Spike blinked his eyes a few times before a heart-struck smile came on his face, but his smile went away as he looked down at his ruby in his hands. I could tell he was thinking about something, I just sat there and watched what was going on between these two.
"Then you should have it, this beautiful gem was meant to be with you." Spike said as he placed his ruby on the palm of Rarity's hoof.
I was surprised by Spike's generous act, I was also pretty proud of him. I could tell he had his heart set on eating that ruby, but he just selflessly gave it to Rarity. He could have just kept it for himself, but he didn't.
Rarity looked as surprised as I was, she used her magic to hold the ruby up in mid-air as she looked at it. "I don't know what to say." She said as she gave him a thankful smile.
Spike bit his bottom lip as he watched the ruby hover in front of him, he quickly closed his eyes and stuck his hand out in front of it to try and resist it.
Spike then placed his hands behind his back as he rocked back and forth on his feet, Rarity trotted around him with a large smile as the ruby hovered in front of her. "This is so thoughtful. Oh, my little Spikey-Wikey." She said.
Just then, something mind-blowing happened. While Spike had his back turned, Rarity leaned in and planted a kiss on Spike's cheek; leaving a lipstick kiss mark on his cheek and a look of full surprise on his face.
My mouth hung wide open with surprise at this, Rarity had never kissed Spike in any way before. The surprisement I got from seeing Spike give Rarity his ruby was overpowered by the surprisement I felt now.
As Rarity made her way towards the front door with the ruby hovering beside her, Spike stood there frozen before he fainted backwards.
"Thank you so much." Rarity said with joy as she hopped passed Twilight before she left the library.
After she had left, Twilight looked over to Spike with a proud smile. "Wow, Spike. That's one of the kindest, most generous things you've ever done. I've never seen Rarity so happy." She stated.
After my surprise had worn off, I walked over to Spike with a smirk on my face. Spike was lying on the floor with a dazed look on his face. "Yeah dude, you're totally in the ball-park now. How's it feel, lover-boy?" I asked.
Spike lifted his head up off the floor and rubbed the cheek Rarity kissed. "I will never wash this cheek again." he said while blushing before he sighed lovingly.
I chucked at this. "I'll take that as an 'it feels good'." I said before I decided to leave him for a bit and walked over to Twilight to help her to finish stacking the books.
One week later
The day had finally come, it was Spike's birthday and we were all decorating the library in birthday decorations.
Twilight used her magic to place a large table beside the wall before she lowered a punch-bowl and small glasses onto it, Peewee was busy checking to food on the other tables to see if everything was organized.
Me and Jeff were busty blowing up the balloons, it was hard because I had to use a lot of breath to blow them all up. After I had blown my 16th balloon, I panted with exhaustion. "Whow…this is harder than it looks." I said.
Twilight looked over to me. "Then why don't you use the pump that came with the balloons?" she suggested.
I looked at her with a raised eye brow. "There's a pump?" I asked.
Twilight rolled her eyes before she looked up at Spike, he was at the top of a ladder hanging up some decorations. "Just about finished, Spike? Everypony will be here soon." She said with a smile.
Spike the finished what he was doing. "There, perfect. Everything looks perfect." He said as he climbed down the stairs.
Everything did look perfect, the entire front room of the library looked like a big birthday party. I then watched as Twilight walked over to Spike with a wash cloth floating in front of her. "Not quite everything." She said.
Spike then grabbed the wash cloth and gave it a confused look. "A wash cloth? I don't get it." he stated.
Twilight then looked at him with a raised eye brow. At that moment, he got what she was saying and dropped the cloth. "Ah, no way, Twilight. I said I wasn't gonna wash the cheek that Rarity kissed, and I meant it." he said before he crossed his arms and turned his head; revealing the dirty patch on his cheek that covered the lipstick mark that Rarity's kiss had left.
Twilight then lifted the wash cloth up with her magic before she tapped her hoof on the floor with a grin on her face, as if she was planning to charge at him.
Me and Jeff knew she was going to do exactly that, Jeff looked over to Spike with wide eyes. "Spike, RUN!" he yelled.
Spike then quickly sprang across the library to get away from Twilight, Twilight went after him. "It's over, Spike. I'm cleaning that cheek." She stated strongly.
As Spike kept trying to run away, Twilight used her magic to teleporting him back in front of her, but he just kept running away only to be teleporting right back to her. "Twi (Flash)….(Flash) stop it!(Flash)" Spike said as he kept disappearing and reappearing.
"Never." Twilight stated as she kept bringing him back to her only for him to keep running.
But when Spike disappeared again, Pinkie Pie appeared in front of Twilight instead with a party hooter in her mouth, she then blew it.
"Hey, where'd Spike go?" I asked as I started to worry about him. Just then, Spike reappeared across the room and I exhaled in relief.
Pinkie Pie the shot over to Spike. "Happy birthday." She cheered as she threw confetti over him.
While Spike admired the confetti raining down on him, Twilight took this as her opportunity to clean his dirty cheek. She quickly pushed the wash cloth on his face and cleaned the dirt off his cheek, she grinned in victory while Spike frown in disappointment.
"Tough luck, little bro." I said as I walked over to him.
"Party time, WOO-HOO!" Pinkie Pie cheered as the rest of the main 6 came in the room; they each had a present in their mouths. Except for Rainbow Dash, who was holding a weight with a ripped tied around it in her arms.
I looked down at Spike with a large smile. "Hey, Spike. Look at all those presents for you." I said as I pointed my hoof at our friends.
Spike then looked over to them and saw the presents they had. "Are those…for me?" he asked.
"You bet they are, birthday boy." Applejack stated cheerfully as she threw her present to Spike into his hands while walking passed him.
Fluttershy then came over to him and placed her present on top of Applejack's. "Happy birthday, Spike." She said kindly before walking passed him.
Rarity then stacked her present on top of the others before Pinkie Pie did the same, Spike looked as though he was having trouble keeping hold of them all. And it didn't make things easier when Rainbow Dash dropped her weight present on top of the stack of presents in Spike's hands.
Spike struggled to keep them up before he finally fell over; dropping all his presents. Spike leaned up and rubbed his head before he looked at his presents in wonder and confusion.
I looked at the others to see them look at each other in confusion too, I also starting to wonder why Spike wasn't very thrilled with his presents. "Don't you know you get presents on your birthday?" Rainbow Dash asked as she hovered in mid-air.
Spike then got up to his feet. "Well, actually this is my first birthday in Ponyville. I usually just get one present…from Twilight…a book!" he explained with a groan as he narrowed his eyes.
I couldn't help but chuckle at that. "Really, a book? Ha, that's so like her." I stated.
Unknown to any of us, Twilight was about to walk over to Spike with a book hovering behind her, it had a ribbon tied around it. She looked back at it before she quickly hid it behind her back and backed away with a sheepish smile.
I then remembered my present for Spike, I quickly flew upstairs and grabbed the ruby filled saddle-bags, I had tied a green ribbon around them to make them look like presents.
I quickly flew back down and landed in front of Spike before I placed the saddle-bags down in front of him. "By the way, these are my present to you. Happy birthday, dude." I said with a warm smile.
Spike looked down at the saddle-bags before he opened them; revealing the Yellow Sparkle Rubies to him. Spike was wide-eyed with surprise.
"Are these…Yellow Sparkle Rubies? Oooh, these are one of the most delicious gems in Equestria." Spike said with a large smile.
I was so glad he liked them, I've been worried that he wouldn't since last week. "I'm glad you like them, Spike. I figured you would." I said.
Spike then took one of the rubies out of one of the bags before he threw it in his mouth and chewed it, he smiled with satisfaction as he munched on the ruby.
Once Spike swallowed it, he looked up to me with a thankful smile. "These are delicious, thanks Matt." he said before he leaped up to me and hugged me around my neck.
I smiled warmly as I hugged him back. Twilight, Peewee, and the rest of the main 6 all smiled sweetly as they saw this. "Hey…those were from both of us, you know." Jeff cutted in; ruining the bonding moment.
We then broke the hug and looked over to him. "Oh right…thanks, Jeff. You wanna hug too?" Spike asked.
Jeff put his wing up. "Nah, I'm ok." He stated calmly.
Spike then looked back up to me with a warm smile. "Anyway, thanks again for the rubies." He said before he looked at the others. "Thank you all for your presents, I'm sure I'll love whatever they are." He said, we all smiled at him.
"Speaking of presents." Rarity said before he horn glowed and a bright purple cape came out from behind her back. "This is from my new line of taffeta capes. I'm going to make one for each of you, except for Matthew because these are for girls." She stated as the others looked at the cape in awe.
"Awww." I said in disappointment.
"Not to worry, though. I have something else in mind for you." Rarity stated.
I then smiled at her. "Oh." I said before I looked at the cape she had showed off. "I guess you found the insertion you were looking for, huh?" I asked.
Rarity nodded. "Yes, I've been inspired by the generosity of my little Spikey-Wikey, who gave me this beautiful Fire Ruby, one of the kindest acts I've ever experienced." She stated.
Apparently, Rarity had attached the Fire Ruby in the middle of a golden necklace and was now wearing it around her neck, the ruby was placed on it upside down so it now looked like an actual heart. Spike stared at it as he drooled, I guess he didn't quite get over it yet.
Rarity then leaned down and nuzzled her head against Spike's, Spike closed his eyes and nuzzled back. As he did, he opened one of his eyes to look over to me.
I smiled proudly as I winked at him, telling him he did a good job.
Later that day
Spike had opened all his presents and was very happy with the things he got. Especially the blanket he got from Applejack, he's thanked her 14 times already.
Spike held to blanket up to look at it again. "Applejack, I can't thank you enough for this great blanket. I really needed a new one." He said as he walked up to her and hugged her tightly.
"I guess that makes it fifteen times he's thanked her now?" Jeff asked with his wings crossed, he was stood on my back with a party hat on.
I was wearing a green party hat, I turned my head around to face him and nodded. "Yep, that's the number so far." I said before I turned my attention back on Spike.
Applejack gave him a modest smile. "C'mon, Spike. You've already thanked me fifteen times, I'm startin' to get a little embarrassed." She claimed as she gently pushed him off her, Spike smiled at her sheepishly.
"I know I keep thanking you guys, but I'm just so grateful. I wish this party could last forever." Spike stated.
Meanwhile, Pinkie Pie was bouncing up and down on a blue balloon, she over-heard what Spike said before the balloon popped under her hooves.
"Duh." Pinkie Pie said before she shot up between Me and Twilight and pushed us away to see Spike.
"The party can't last forever 'cause you have to go to Sugar Cube Corner, 'cause the Cakes said they have a special surprise for you. 'Cause it's your birthday." Pinkie Pie cheered again.
Spike smiled largely with excitement at this news. "NO WAY!" he cheered before he shot towards the front door.
Pinkie watched as he left. "I said the party couldn't last forever, but it doesn't need to end right now!" She yelled over to him, but it was too late as Spike ran out the library and shut the door behind him.
The room was silent as we stared at the door Spike had left through. "Well, he's gone." I said.
"Does this mean the party's over?" Rainbow Dash asked as she walked over to me.
I turned my head to face her before I shrugged. "I guess." I said.
"Well then , I guess I better head back to the farm. I've got a lot of work to do today, thanks for the party though." Applejack said as started to head towards the door.
Rarity then started to follow her. "I agree with Applejack, I have to get home if I'm ever going to get started on making these capes. Tell Spikey-Wikey to have a marvellous birthday for me, will you?" She asked.
Twilight nodded. "Sure thing, Rarity. We'll tell him when he gets back." She stated.
Fluttershy, Pinkie Pie and Rainbow Dash then said their goodbyes as they followed them out of the library. They closed the door behind them; leaving Me, Twilight, Jeff and Peewee alone in the messy library.
Twilight then looked at me. "So, should we get started on cleaning this place up?" she asked.
I then thought about it for a moment. "We could do that…or we could take a walk through town and enjoy the peaceful weather." I suggested hoping she'd agree.
Twilight looked around at the mess in the library as she rubbed her chin with her hoof, she then looked at me with a smirk. "Alright, we'll clean it up when we get back."
I smirked back. "It's a date then." I said as I walked over to her.
Jeff then flew off my back to join Peewee on the food table. "You guys go on, I'm gonna stay here and chill in the peace and quiet." He said before he lied down on the table with his wings behind his head.
Peewee stepped forward. "Don't worry, I'll watch the library and him." He said.
"Alright, Peewee. We'll be back soon." I stated as Twilight and I walked out the library and closed the door behind us.
Later: Ponyville streets
Twilight and I were walking through town enjoying the fresh air and sunshine. "Well, today's gone well, hasn't it?" I asked with a smile.
Twilight turned her head to face me with a smile. "Yeah, it has. Spike's never had a birthday as good as this one before, he was so happy." She said.
"Yeah…I wonder where he went anyway." I said as I wondered where Spike had gone to after he left the library.
As we entered Ponyville square, my wonder ended as I saw Spike up ahead with a fancy white hat on his head while holding a rubber ball in his tale.
He appeared to be talking to the female Earth pony I knew as Junebug, she was carrying two baskets on her back which were filled with flowers.
"There he is." I said as I pointed to him.
Twilight looked in the direction I was pointing in and saw Spike. "What's he doing with Junebug?" she asked before she trotted off towards him, I then followed behind.
Once we were close enough, we over-heard what Spike and Junebug were saying. "Aren't you gonna give me somethin'? You know, like a birthday present?" Spike asked as Junebug was walking away from him.
Junebug stopped and turned around to face him. "Um…I…I don't have anything." She stated innocently with a smile.
Spike then pointed to her baskets of flowers. "Well, how about those flowers? I'll take those." He said looking as though he was about to grab them.
Me and Twilight were shocked at what we were seeing. "Spike!" Twilight yelled before she used her magic to grab his ear and pull him away.
She gave Spike a firm look before she stepped in front of him and smiled at Junebug. "Sorry, Junebug. I think Spike might've gotten a little carried away." She explained.
"Yeah, sorry about that." I added kindly.
Junebug just smile at us. "Um…no problem. Urr, happy birthday, Spike." She said as she walked away from us.
Once she was gone, we both gave Spike a firm look. "What're you doing? You're out here demanding gifts now?" Twilight said.
"Yeah, buddy. That's not right, that's just being greedy." I stated calmly.
Spike rubbed his head before he looked at the ball wrapped in his tale, he quickly let it go of it and he shook his head fast before he stopped.
"Wow…you're right, Matt. I don't know what got into me, thanks for snapping me out of it." Spike said as he took the hat off his head.
"Look, I know your birthday can be exciting. I know, I was once so excited for my birthday that I stayed up all night for the day to come. But that doesn't mean you should go around asking everypony for gifts." I stated.
Spike looked down at the ground. "I know, I better go give Cheerilee her hat back." He said.
Our firm looks then turned into small smiles. "Don't worry, little bro. Just calm down a bit, alright?" I said, Spike then nodded.
"Yeah, it's no problem. See you at home later?" Twilight asked with a smile as we walked passed him.
"Sounds good, bye." Spike said as he waved us off.
Once Twilight and I were back in the streets, Twilight turned her head to face me. "I still can't believe he was actually doing that, what was Spike thinking?" she asked in slight shock.
I looked at her and shrugged. "He's just a kid, kids are like that on their birthdays. Trust me, he'll come back to the library and by tomorrow, we'll have forgotten all about it." I stated with confidence.
We both then decided to drop the conversation and continued walking through the streets and enjoyed the rest of the sunny day.
The next morning: Library
The sun rose up in Ponyville and shined through the windows of the library, Me and Twilight were still asleep in our bed.
We started to slowly wake up as the sunlight sun though our eye lids.
We both then woke up completely and Twilight leaned up on the bed before she stretched her arms up. "Wow, what a rough night sleep. I had the weirdest dream." She said.
I leaned up on the bed too and smirked at her. "Was it about me?" I joked.
Twilight turned her head to face me and giggled. "Maybe."
I chuckled before I moved up to the end of the bed to wake up Spike. "Spike, it's time to wak-HOLY HELL FIRE!" I yelled in shock at what I saw.
Spike's basket was covered with different kinds of random objects, the pile was slightly moving up and down with snoring sounds coming from within it. Spike must've been sleeping under it.
Spike must've gotten this stuff from the other ponies in town. I was astonished by this, especially after he told us he wouldn't ask anyone for anymore presents. I was also rather disappointed in him because he lied to us.
Twilight came over to me and saw what I saw, she then jumped off the bed and walked up to the pile of objects with a look of anger on her face.
"I can't believe you, Spike. Where'd you this…(gasp)" Twilight gasped after she used her magic to lift up some of the objects to reveal something truly surprising which caused her to drop the objects she lifted.
Spike was lying in his basket asleep with the hat on his head and the rubber ball in his hand, but he definitely didn't look the same. Apparently, he had grown in size over night. His body and limbs were long and thin, and his face looked so different. He looked like how he would if he was a teenager, he was even too big to fit in his basket.
Spike opened his eyes and looked up at us before he yawned with a hiss. Me and Twilight were now more shocked than ever, we had never seen Spike like this before, my mouth hung wide open as I looked at him.
Spike the sat up in his basket. "What happened?" he asked as he rubbed his head. Twilight took a step back from him with a worried look on her face.
"…Oh crap. Hey, where's Jeff and Peewee?" I asked looking around the basket for them.
Just then, we heard muffling coming from where Spike was sitting, he heard this and stood up completely to reveal Jeff and Peewee squished into the cushion in the basket. "…Thanks…" Jeff groaned with his eyes wide open.
A few minutes later, we took immediate action in trying to find out how Spike ended up like this.
It was strange, yesterday he was his original baby dragon size, now he's as big as a teenager. Dragons don't just grow like that, there had to be some explanation for this.
Me and Twilight searched through many books to find the answer, but there wasn't many books about dragons or how their species worked.
Twilight was even reading 3 books at once to try and find something. I was just looking through one, but I had 2 in a stack sitting beside me.
Jeff and Peewee couldn't take their eyes off Spike, they just found it so freaky that it's weirdly fascinating to them.
"What's happening to me, guys?" Spike asked with a loud worried voice as he tried to pull the hat off his head, which he must have been wearing when he grew because it was stuck on his head.
"I don't know, think back to last night, did something happen?" Twilight asked as she continued to search through the books.
Spike finally managed to pull the hat off his head, Spike was about to say something before Jeff cutted in. "Yeah, something happened. He grew large and nearly squished me and Peewee, does that answer your question?" he asked in an irritated tone.
Twilight turned her head around and gave him a small glare, I then looked down at him. "Jeff, now's not the time for your attitude." I said, Jeff then huffed as he crossed his wings.
I then looked at Spike. "Anyway, what were you about to say, Spike?" I asked calmly.
Spike looked down at his body to examine the new changes, he then looked at his hand before he started to look around the room in a strange way, like he was in some sort of trance. He suddenly started drooling with a large smile on his face.
Twilight then looked at him once she noticed he wasn't answering, she walked up in front of him. "Spike?" she said.
But Spike didn't answer, he just kept eyeing the room. "What did you do after we saw you?" Twilight asked; snapping him out of his trance.
Spike then smacked the side of his head with his hand to make him focus. "I went to talk tooo…." But it didn't work as he drifted for his sentence and he stared at an Earth globe across the room, he walked towards it like he couldn't resist doing so.
I was starting to wonder why he was acting like this, I was also worried. "Spike, are you feeling alright?" I asked.
Spike didn't answer again as he stared wide-eyed right at the globe while spinning it with his finger.
"SPIKE!" Twilight yelled to try and gain back his attention, her horn then glowed before the globe Spike was staring at lifted off the floor; causing Spike to fall forward onto the floor.
Twilight then walked up to him. "You went to talk to who?" she asked.
Spike then got up off the floor before he looked up at the floating globe. "Oh, umm…I don't remember. Hey, can I have that globe? You're not using it, right?" he said.
"Huh?" Twilight said in confusion as Spike grabbed the globe out of the air.
I watched as Spike crawled up the wall with the globe wrapped in his tail, he climbed back up to his basket with all the random objects before he placed the globe with them.
"Whow…never seen him move like that before." I said out loud.
Once the globe was added to the pile, Spike reached over to a shelf and pulled out a book. "What about this book?" he asked.
"Why can we never have a normal day?" Peewee asked with narrow eyes.
Twilight's horn then glowed before she teleported the both of us up to Spike, I appeared in front of him while Twilight appeared on top of the Earth globe.
Twilight used her magic to grab the book Spike was holding and tried to pull it out of his hand. "Spike, I'm worried about you. You're usually not so…grabby." She said before she managed to pry the book out of his hand.
"Yeah, Spike. What's wrong with you today, you're not acting like yourself." I said with concern.
I didn't get an answer as Spike walked around the pile before reaching up and grabbing the book that Twilight took off him.
"My arms aren't usually (Voice drops) this long either." Spike said as his voice suddenly dropped lower, he quickly covered his mouth in shock.
I was beyond surprised by the sudden changes Spike was experiencing, it was like he was growing older by the minute. First he has the body of a teen, now his voice has changed. "Whow…dragons hit puberty fast." I thought.
"Spike…say something again." I said as I listened closely.
Spike then removed his hands from his mouth. "…Hello.." he said in his new deep voice, he then covered his mouth again.
"…That's so weird." I said as I became freaked out by all of this.
Spike took his hands away from his mouth again and looked up at Twilight. "What's happening to me?" he asked in a freaked out tone.
Twilight then looked at him closely as she rubbed her chin with her hoof, I then stepped in. "Well, if we can't figure it out, maybe someone else can. Maybe we should take him to see a doctor." I suggested.
Twilight then looked down at me. "I guess that could work, although I'm not sure if a doctor will know anything about this. This may be a part of a dragon's life style." She said.
I looked up to her. "Do we have any other options?" I asked.
Twilight then rubbed her chin again as she thought about it. "I guess not. Ok, we'll take him to a doctor."
With that, Twilight's horn glowed and she teleported the both of us and Spike back down the stairs. "Come on, Spike." She said as she made her way towards the front door.
I turned my head to face Spike to see he was beside me anymore, I looked around for him until I saw him eyeing another book in his hands.
I walked over to him with an annoyed look before I smacked the book out of his hands, I then flew around him and pushed him towards the door with my front hooves.
"Alright, I'm going." Spike said in as I continued to push him towards the door to follow Twilight.
Jeff and Peewee watched us go. "Err, ok…we'll just…wait here…I guess." Jeff called in awkwardness.
Later that day: Zecora's hut
The trip to the doctors wasn't very helpful, the guy didn't even know Spike was a dragon until Spike breathed fire in his face. He was alright afterwards, but he couldn't help us.
We even decided to take Spike to a vet, she wasn't much help either. She claimed to have never seen a real live dragon before, therefore she couldn't help us.
We then finally took him to see someone who's dealt with the supernatural before, Zecora.
We were now at her hut, she examined Spike in certain ways. She listened closely as she tapped his head with her hoof before she swung a watch in front of him.
Spike wasn't hypnotized by it however, instead he tried to grab it the best he could.
Zecora then took the watch away. "He is starting to mature. Of this fact, I am quite sure." She said.
Twilight then rubbed her head in confusion. "Mature? So he's just…growing up?" she asked.
I then looked at her. "You might've been right, Twi. Maybe this is part of a dragon's life style, it's kind of a better excuse." I stated.
Twilight then looked at me. "But that doesn't explain why he keeps grabbing things." she said before she noticed Spike was holding a vase in his hands, she then used her magic to pry it off him.
Zecora walked over to her brew-pot and looked in the steaming water. "A dragon's heart is prone to greed, a steady diet to make growth speed." She said as she sprinkled some green dust in the pot.
Me and Twilight walked over to the pot and looked into the water. "Then, the resulting bigger size only makes their hunger rise." Zecora stated.
We looked in the pot to see the green dust form into the shape of Spike, it showed him growing bigger with more and more random objects swirling around him. It then showed him becoming some sort of monster with a hunger for greed.
"If this trait should go unchecked, if Spike continues to collect more growth will certainly occur, he is going to turn into a monster." Zecora stated.
Me and Twilight gasped at this, Spike would grow with every object he would collect no matter what it was. He's gonna become an unstoppable monster he if we didn't do something fast.
"You mean…the more things a dragon collects, the bigger and greedier he gets? But how do we stop him before he's completely out of control." Twilight asked.
While she was talking to Zecora about the matter, I heard strange noises behind me. I turned around to see Spike gathering up all of Zecora's stuff. "Err…guys…" I said trying to get their attention.
But they didn't pay attention to me. "If his monstrous ways you wish to impede, you must prevent him from practicing greed." Zecora stated.
I continued to watch as Spike collected every last thing in the hut before he ran out the door with them. "That…may be a problem now." I said.
Twilight turned her head to face me. "How come?" she asked.
"He's gone." I said with narrow eyes.
Twilight and Zecora then looked around the hut to see that everything was gone, Spike even managed to take the brew-pot without them even knowing.
Zecora gave us a look that told us she wasn't very happy.
We both smiled nervously at her before Twilight laughed nervously, she continued to smile as she leaned her head to me. "Why didn't you say anything?" she asked.
"I tried to." I claimed while still smiling.
We then stopped smiling and quickly headed towards the door. "Don't worry, Zecora. We'll get your stuff back and help Spike before he becomes an unstoppable monster." I said as we left and closed the door.
I then stopped and opened the door again. "Hopefully." I said to Zecora before I closed the door again.
Twilight and I then galloped back towards town to find Spike fast.
Ponyville streets
Once back in town, Me and Twilight slit up and searched all over town for Spike.
We galloped all over town looking for Spike, we didn't think it would be this hard to find a dragon that grabbed everything he saw.
Me and Twilight then regrouped and we looked around in worry. "This is ridiculous, how hard can it be to find him? He should stick out like a sore hoof in this town." I said loudly.
"Calm down, Matt. He's around here somewhere." Twilight said as she looked around for him.
Just then. "Get away from her, you brute!" A female voice yelled from around the bend of a house.
We quickly galloped around the house to see Spike and the Cutie Mark Crusaders fighting over Scootaloo's scooter. "SPIKE WANT!" Spike yelled in a deeper voice.
"You're not getting my scooter." Scootaloo said as she tried to pull it out of Spike's grasp.
"Grr…SPIKE WANT!" Spike yelled again, I could see on his face that he was getting angry.
I started to panic. "Ok, ok, what're we gonna do, Twi?" I asked as I panicky trotted on the spot.
Twilight looked left and right before she saw a broom leaned against a house, she grinned as she gained an idea. Her horn glowed and the broom levitated over to us.
I looked at the broom before I realised what she was planning, I looked back at Twilight with a smile. "Yeah, yeah, that's good thinkin' you have there." I said.
Twilight smiled at me before she turned her attention back to Spike. "Hey, Spike." She said loud enough for him to hear.
Spike turned his head to face Twilight with a glare before she dangled the broom in front of him, he looked at it with awe. "Check out this amazing broom." Twilight said.
Twilight brought the broom back over to us before Spike finally released the scooter; causing the three fillies to fall backwards.
"SPIKE…WAAAAAANT!" Spike yelled loudly as he grew even bigger.
My mouth dropped at this. "Twi, I hope you know what you're doing." I said backing away.
Spike then got down on his hands and charged towards us.
Me and Twilight quickly sprang away from him with the broom in front of us, Spike chased after us with determination to get the broom.
A few minutes later, we managed to lore Spike back to the library and we quickly got inside with Spike not far behind us.
"Come on, big boy. Look at this incredible broom." Twilight said as she waved the broom around in mid-air in front of the doorway.
"Do we really need to encourage him? We already got his attention." I said as we both stood beside a door that led to the other room.
Twilight quickly pulled the broom away as Spike tried to make a grab for it, only for him to get stuck in the doorway. He finally managed to pull himself through which caused him to roll across the floor before stopping on his feet.
Spike saw us with the broom across the room. "SPIIIKE…WAAAAANT!" he yelled again as I opened the door and Twilight threw the broom into the other room, Spike followed it and I slammed the door behind him.
Me and Twilight then quickly placed ourselves against the door to prevent him from coming back out, he was now trapped. "Ha, got ya now!" I yelled in victory.
Suddenly, Spike pounded against the door to try and break out. "Fight all you want, we're not letting you out." Twilight said in a firm voice.
"Yeah, what she said." I added.
Just then, the pounding stopped and I looked at Twilight with worry. "Why did he stop?" I asked almost afraid to ask.
We then stepped away from the door before Twilight opened it with her magic, we walked in to see that Spike had taken down all the books and piled then together, he was sitting on top of the pile.
"Oh, Spike. I just re-shelved this room." Twilight said as she lifted pile of books off the ground with her magic; causing Spike fell off and hit the floor. Twilight hovered the books through the doorway placed down beside us.
Once they were in the same room we were in, I slammed the door shut again so Spike couldn't get out. Me and Twilight then took a minute to breath.
Just then, Jeff and Peewee flew over to us as if they didn't know what was happening. "You fix Spike's problem?" Jeff asked.
Suddenly, we heard a loud crash in the room Spike was in. "Guess not." Jeff said with narrow eyes.
I then looked at Twilight. "...We should just walk away…right now." I said trying not to think what the sound was.
Twilight didn't think the same way, she opened the door with her magic again and we went wide-eyed at what we saw.
Spike had smashed through the wall and was now somewhere back in town, Spike had escaped.
"Oh, this day just keeps getting better." I groaned before Twilight and I galloped towards the front door to go find him before he can cause any more damage.
Jeff and Peewee watched us with wide eyes, Peewee turned his head to face Jeff. "Shouldn't we help them?" he asked.
Jeff then looked at him before he waved his wing. "Nah, they can handle it. Let's go get some food from the kitchen, I'm starvin'." He said.
The two birds then flew towards the kitchen.
Sweet Apple Aches
We knew we had to get help, we couldn't handle Spike on our own. We figured Applejack might be able to help.
We rushed into the apple tree fields of Sweet Apple Arches to see Spike had already been here, all the apples and leaves were missing from all the trees.
We then saw Applejack up ahead and we rushed towards her. Once we reached her, we the stopped in front of her. "Applejack, help! Spike's running wild and we need you to lasso him." Twilight said.
Applejack stared at us with wide eyes before she laughed. "Haha, oh that's a good one, Twilight. Sweet little Spike running wild, ha, what a laugh." She said, we both looked at her with annoyed looks.
Just then, I heard stomping behind me. I turned around to see Spike running this way with his arms full with apples and leaves, I turned my head back to Applejack. "Oh yeah? How's this for a laugh?" I said.
Twilight and Applejack watched as Spike ran passed us with leaves floating off behind him, two of the leaves landed on Applejack's face which made her look as though she had a leaf mustache.
"Matt…get my rope." Applejack said as she glared at Spike.
After fetching her rope, we were now galloping after Spike, Twilight held one end of the rope in her mouth while Applejack held the other end in hers. I flew on ahead to try and slow Spike down.
I then notice Spike drop on apple on the ground, I gained an idea before I flew down and picked it up. I then shot off ahead of Spike and stopped in his path.
"Hey, you forgot one." I said before I dropped the apple on the ground.
Once Spike reached me, he looked down at the apple before he leaned down to pick it up.
Suddenly, I looked up in surprise to see Twilight and Applejack leaping towards me. They fell passed me but the rope they held on to caught me and pulled me down with them.
We then hit a tree, we hopelessly spun around it until the rope we had tied around us, we were now tied to the tree. Applejack gave me an annoyed look. "Great plan makin' him duck, Matt." she said.
"Hey, the rope was your thing." I stated.
Spike then noticed us before he roared in our faces and stormed off; leaving us tied to the tree.
As we struggled to get loose, I stopped and narrowed my eyes. "Hey Applejack, remember the other day when I said we should find a way to bring us closer?" I asked.
Applejack looked at me and nodded. "Yeah."
"I just wanna say….this is not what I meant." I said as I shook my head.
Applejack rolled her eyes before we continued to struggle. Twilight then stopped. "It's no use, there's only one thing we can do." she said.
Applejack and I looked at her before we nodded, we then threw our heads up and yelled. "HEEEELP!"
After a second, Rainbow Dash noticed us as she was flying by and flew down before she stopped in front of us in mid-air.
As we stared up at her, she tried to hold back from laughing before she couldn't hold it anymore. She fell back on the ground laughing her head off. "HAHAHA, don't tell me, you…you tied yourselves up?" she said before she continued laughing.
Applejack gave her an annoyed look as Twilight and I continued to struggle. "Get us out of here right now." Applejack said.
Just then, we heard a load scream. "What was that?" I asked with worry.
Rainbow Dash then stopped laughing before she got up off the ground and into mid-air. "Sounded like Fluttershy to me." she said.
I then looked at her. "Then what're you waiting for, Thanksgiving? Get us out of here." I said as I struggled again.
Rainbow Dash then flew over to us. "Alright, mister pushy." She said as she untied the rope and Me, Twilight and Applejack fell from the tree and landed on our hooves.
I then turned my head to face Twilight. "Come on." I said before we all galloped towards Fluttershy's cottage with Rainbow Dash following us through the air.
Later: Sugar Cube Corner
After finding Fluttershy who was hiding up a tree, she claimed that Spike had stolen her chicken coop and placed all his collected objects inside it. He must be using it as some sort of box to place them in so he wouldn't have to carry them.
I for one, was impressed by his smart act, but Twilight didn't think it was so good, especially when it meant he could now carry more random objects.
Just then, we heard another scream, we easily recognised the scream as Pinkie Pie and rushed towards Sugar Cube Corner with Fluttershy now with us.
Once we got there, we saw Pinkie Pie on top of shelf cupboard throwing cake at Spike who looked slightly bigger.
However, Spike was grabbing the cakes Pinkie was throwing to him and placing them in Fluttershy's chicken coop which he held upside down and was now full of objects.
We had to stop her quick. "Pinkie Pie, stop giving him cake." Twilight said up to Pinkie Pie.
Pinkie Pie then looked down at us with two cakes in her hooves. "I'm not giving him cake, I'm assaulting him with cake." She stated, she then threw the two cakes at Spike before reaching down to get more.
But before she could get any more, Spike reached over and grabbed all the cakes off the shelves; causing Pinkie to fall off the cupboard and onto the floor.
We looked down at Pinkie Pie to see if she was alright before she stood back up. "How dare you take the cake!" she yelled while shaking her front hooves like fists.
We all then looked over to Spike as he growled. Just then, he stopped and looked down at his body as he grew even larger. He grew so big, that he broke the roof clear off Sugar Cube Corner.
I mouth dropped at the sight of this, Spike then saw something that caught his eye before he wrapped his tail around the chicken coop and walked away on his hands and legs.
"Damn, he's getting bigger by the minute." I said loudly.
Twilight then turned her head to face the others. "He's completely out of control, who knows where he'll go next." She said before she, Fluttershy, and Rainbow Dash rushed out of the shop.
I looked back to see Pinkie looking up at her missing roof with her mouth hanging open, Applejack was dragging her along by her tail and went passed me.
I followed them as I tried to calm Pinkie down. "Ok, Pinkie. Maintain…I know your roof is missing…but we'll get it fixed, right after we help Spike." I said as Applejack dragged Pinkie out of the shop with me behind them.
Ponyville streets
It wasn't long before everypony in town was screaming and galloping around, they obviously knew Spike was on a rampage.
However, they didn't actually know it was Spike, they must've thought it was a random dragon that came out of no-where.
Me, Twilight and the others galloped through town trying to find Spike before he might get someone hurt.
After a few minutes of unsuccessful searching, Rainbow Dash grew frustrated. "Grr…this town is too big, how are we gonna find him like this?" she asked.
Just then, we heard a loud thundering roar behind us and we turned around.
My mouth dropped again to see that Spike had grown to the size of a fully grown dragon, his spines were longer, his neck was long and slender, and he just…didn't look like himself anymore.
Zecora was right, he had become a greedy monster.
"Sweet Celestia…is that what Spike really looks like when he's grown up?" I asked as I back away.
"I still can't believe that is Spike." Applejack commented, Fluttershy was quivering with fear at the sight of him.
I looked closer at his arm to see her was holding the Ponyville Water-tower upside down and using it to carry his collected objects. We then heard a female scream coming from him.
"What was that?" I thought before I looked around him and was shocked to see that Spike was holding Rarity in his tail, she pounded his tail with her hooves trying to make him let go, she was wearing one of the capes she mentioned yesterday.
"HOLY CRAP, HE HAS RAITY!" I yelled at the top of my voice, Twilight and the others looked at his tail and gasped as they saw her.
Rainbow Dash then took action. "I'll get her down, c'mon Fluttershy!" she said before she shot up to Spike.
"Oooh." Fluttershy whimpered as she slowly followed her.
I then looked over to Twilight. "What do we do? There's no way to stop him by hoof, he's way too big now." I said.
Twilight looked at me with a worried look. "I don't know what to do, I wasn't prepared for anything like this." She stated.
"Well, we can't just stand here and do nothin'." Applejack said.
I looked back up to Spike to see that Rainbow Dash's plan didn't work. Spike was now trying to whack Rainbow Dash and Fluttershy with his tail, I could only imagine how Rarity felt while he was doing it.
Just then, Rarity's cape caught Rainbow Dash and Fluttershy and ripped off. They both then plummeted down and slashed into the river below, they both popped out of the water with the ripped cape floating beside them.
I saw this before glaring up at Spike. "Alright, I'm going up there." I said as I flapped my wings and hovered in the air.
Twilight gave me a worried look. "Be careful, Matt." she said.
I looked down at her with a smirk. "Hey…it's me, remember?" I said before I looked back up at Spike and shot up to him.
Twilight watched as I flew up to the rampaging Spike, the worried look didn't leave her face.
I flew up until I was right in front of Spike's face. "Come on, little buddy. Snap out of it! It's Matt, remember?" I said calmly to try and gain his trust.
Spike then looked at me with a raised eye brow, there was a moment where I thought he was starting to remember. I smiled as he reached his large hand out to me, I then reached my hoof out to touch him.
Suddenly, my hope vanished as he pulled his hand away and smacked me with it; sending me crash landing to the ground and skidding across it. I then stopped in front of Twilight and the others.
"Well…that didn't work." I groaned.
At that moment, the Wonderbolts came and started attacking Spike. Spike was now trying to whack them away.
Twilight looked down at me with concern. "Matt, are you ok?" she asked.
"…peachy…what's Spike doing now?" I asked in a groan as I looked up at her.
Twilight then turned her head to face another direction before she looked back down at me. "Climbing a high mountain." She answered.
My eyes shot open at this news before I leaned up off the ground to see Spike was halfway up a mountain, he held the upside down water tower out in front of him and the Wonderbolts shot right into it.
Spike then jabbed the water tower into a mountain and trapped the Wonderbolts inside it, Spike roared with victory.
I panicked once I saw this, I've seen something like this in a movie, and it didn't end well for the giant monster. I quickly got up off the ground and faced the others. "We have to get closer." I said.
"Quick, to the bridge. We can get a better view from there." Twilight said before we all galloped towards the bridge.
Meanwhile, Spike was still roaring in his small victory over the Wonderbolts. "Oh, be quiet." Rarity said in a strong tone; gaining Spike's attention.
"You've got nothing to be proud of. Steal every pony's things, terrorise the town, and use me as a weapon against my own friends. Which, as horrible as it is, I can almost understand because you're a dragon and all. But this." Rarity said before she ripped off the rest of her cape and levitated it in the air with her magic.
"This is a crime against fashion." She snapped in anger.
Spike glared at Rarity before he noticed the Fire Ruby she was still wearing around her neck, he stared at it in awe.
Rarity wondered what he was looking at before she looked down at her ruby and instantly knew, she then covered it with her hooves. "Oh no, you're not getting this gemstone." She said.
Spike raised his eye brow as he cocked his head.
"This was given to me by my dear friend, Spikey-Wikey. The kindest, sweetest, most generous dragon ever. And it is too precious to me to give to a greedy old beast like you." Rarity said coldly.
Spike glared down at her before he looked closer at the ruby and experienced a flashback, he saw himself giving Rarity the Fire Ruby and earning a kiss from her. Once it ended, he shook his head and thought about what he was doing with a look of guilt on his face.
"Oh what now? I suppose you'll be eating me, or something?" Rarity said with her back turned away from Spike.
Suddenly, Spike's entire body started to shake before (SHRUNK) he rapidly shrunk back to his normal baby dragon size; leaving both him and Rarity in mid-air.
Rarity looked over to him from the corner of her eye before she went wide-eyed in shock. "Spike? You're the rampaging dragon?" she said loudly.
Before he could answer, they both plummeted to the earth screaming.
Meanwhile, we were all on the bridge looking up at them. I saw that Spike had shrunk back to size.
Pinkie Pie was looking up at them with binoculars before she took them off. "Somepony do something!" she yelled.
With that, Rainbow Dash flew up in front of the bridge with her chest out. "On it." she said before pulling Fluttershy to her.
I watched as they swooped down and grabbed the floating ripped cape in the river before they shot up towards Spike and Rarity with each end of the cape in their mouths.
I began to sweat with worry. "Please make it, please make it, please make it." I said under my breath.
Meanwhile, Spike looked at Rarity as they fell. "Rarity, I need to tell you something, just in case we don't make it." he said.
Rarity gave him her full attention.
Spike hesitated to say what he wanted to say before he found the courage to do so. "I've always sort of had a crush-" but Spike couldn't finish his sentence as Rarity placed her hoof on his lips.
Rarity smiled sweetly at him as tears forming in her eyes; implying that she already knew. Spike smiled back.
Meanwhile, I watched breathing heavily as they got closer to the ground. But just then, Rainbow Dash and Fluttershy caught them in the cape in the nick-of-time.
I smiled with relief as I watched them carry Spike and Rarity back over to the bridge and placed them softly down in front of us.
Rainbow Dash had a proud smile with Fluttershy's mouth hung open, she then smiled before she hovered in the air. "We did it, I can't believe we did it." Fluttershy cheered.
Just then, I heard a metal creaking noise and I looked up at the mountain to see the water tower fall off the mountain and the Wonderbolts were free.
They quivered with fear before they put on a heroic pose and took off into the sky.
"Well, they weren't much help, were they?" I said while watching them leave.
I then looked over to Rainbow Dash. "Good timing, by the way." I complimented.
"All in a day's work." Rainbow Dash said with pride.
I smiled at her. "Yeah…but I'm just glad that Spike's back to normal. Right Spike?" I asked, but I didn't get an answer.
I looked at the spot where I last saw Spike but he wasn't there. "Spike?" I said looking around for him.
I then saw his sitting on the barrier of the bridge looking with guilt at all the destruction he made.
"Oh Spike." I said under my breath before I walked over to him, I then sat beside him and watched as he stared at one of his giant dragon footprints, he held his hand over it to see the size difference.
I then wrapped my arm around Spike to comfort him. "Hey…it's alright…you couldn't help it. You just weren't yourself, that's all." I said softy trying to make him feel better, but it didn't work.
Spike looked as though he was going to cry, until. "Spike, I just have to tell you how absolutely proud I am of you." Rarity said from behind us with a smile.
We both turned our heads around to face her. "Proud of…me?" Spike asked with confusion.
"Yes, it was you who stopped…w-well you, from destroying Ponyville….you're my hero Spikey-Wikey." Rarity said sweetly.
Spike smiled back at her with tears forming in his eyes, I gave him a proud smile.
Just then, Rarity surprised Spike by giving him another kiss on the cheek, Spike smiled at her with embarrassment.
As Rarity walked back over to the others, I smirked down at Spike before I tapped him with my elbow. "You never cease to impress the ladies, huh Spike?" I teased.
Spike looked at me and blushed deeply. "Matt, stoooop." He said in a quiet whine.
I chuckled as I got off the barrier and back on the bridge. "I'm just speaking the truth." I said smirking still.
Spike stood up on the barrier. "Matt, I'm serious. You're embarrassing me." he said.
My chuckle turned into a small laugh, I then stopped and smiled warmly at him. "It's good to have you back, little bro." I said.
Spike smiled warmly back at me before he jumped onto my back, I then walked across the bridge to join up with the others with Spike.
Later that day: Rarity's boutique
After everyone had calmed down from Spike's rampage, we all went to Rarity's boutique to see the new line of capes that she had finally finished.
She brought them out and gave Twilight and the others their own capes, of course Rarity's cape was now fixed.
They all looked wonderful in their capes, Twilight's made her look really good and attractive.
Meanwhile, I had a cape too, but it wasn't a taffeta cape like the ones Twilight and the others had, it was an awesome looking black vampire cape, I liked it.
I was with Spike and listened as he wrote his letter to Princess Celestia.
"Dear, Princess Celestia
Today I learned a great lesson about friendship. Well, you might think that it would feel good to get lots and lots of stuff, but it doesn't feel nearly as good as giving something special to somepony you really care about. But I learned that it's truly better to give than receive, and the kindness and generosity are what lead to true friendship. And that's more valuable than anything in the world."
Spike then finished the letter before signing his name. "Well…almost anything." He said as he looked at the lipstick kiss mark on his cheek that he had somehow framed.
I raised my eye brow at the sight of it, it was the first time I saw it. "You actually framed that thing?" I asked in awkwardness.
Spike looked up at me. "What?...it's a kiss from Rarity, of course I'm gonna frame it, it's valuable to me." he stated.
I rolled my eyes. "Can you spell obsessed?" I asked sarcastically.
Spike gave me a confused look. "Err…how many chances do I get?" he asked innocently.
I then placed my hoof on my face and shook my head, I then removed my hoof and gave him a small smile. "Never mind." I said calmly.
Just then, we heard flapping and we looked in the direction it was coming from to see Jeff and Peewee flying towards us.
They then landed in front of us. "Hey guys, how's things?" Peewee asked.
I smiled down at him. "Great, Spike's back to normal and so is everything else." I said.
Jeff then grew a proud smile. "Awesome, Spike's back to normal. We did a good job." He said.
I raised my eye brow. "We?...you and Peewee didn't do anything to help, where were you guys the whole time?" I asked.
Jeff and Peewee then looked at each other before looking back up to me. "Well…nothin', b-but we watched the library while you were dealing with Spike. That counts as somethin', right?" Jeff asked hoping it did.
Me and Spike looked at each other with narrow eyes before we both groaned in annoyance and walked away from them to join up with Twilight and the others.
Jeff and Peewee watched us go. "Hey, where're you two goin'? Where's the thanks for our good deed?" Jeff called before he and Peewee flew after us.
Me and Spike ignored them as we kept walking towards Twilight and the others, Spike would send his letter to the Princess later.
Today was a crazy day. Spike grew giant and greedy, all of Ponyville was nearly destroy, and to top it off…Rarity has left Spike to wonder if she might be aware of his crush on her.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter and sorry for the long read.
See what I did there? In a previous chapter, Rarity found out that Spike was her secret admirer who was sending her all those gifts and poems. And now, she admits to Spike that she knows…sort of.
Please remember to review!
Next chapter will be up soon, merry Christmas :D
37. Bonding with Spike
MERRY CHRISTMAS, EVERYPONY :D
I've been saving this chapter for this day, that's the reason I haven't updated in a while.
I'm glad you all enjoyed the last chapter, I was worried no one would read it because it was too long, I should probably explain why I write long chapters instead of slitting them into parts.
You see, I want you to feel as though each new chapter of the story is like a new episode of the show.
That's why some are so long, because I write each chapter like an episode of the show itself. And as we all know, not every episode of the show is slit into parts.
My parted-chapters were slit into parts because they were important chapters in the story, I hope you understand.
But enough of me babbling on like an idiot, time for the chapter, enjoy!
Chapter 37: Bonding with Spike
It's been 3 days since Spike went on a greedy rampage, everypony in town was busy rebuilding their homes after claiming back their stolen belongings from the cave that Spike put them in.
Luckily, no one knew that the dragon who terrorised the town was Spike. Only the rest of the main 6 knew and they promised to keep it a secret from the towns-folk, so we weren't worried about any angry-mobs coming by.
However, Spike felt really guilty for letting himself get carried away like that and nearly destroying his own home. Even though we told him it wasn't his fault and that none of us were mad at him, he still felt ashamed of himself.
He's also hasn't seen Rarity since it happened. He told me that she may know he has crush on her, he must be nervous about seeing her.
Ponyville library
It was a nice sunny day in Ponyville, most of the ponies were rebuilding their houses after Spike wrecked them when he was giant.
I was down stairs in the library. Of course, I wasn't wearing the vampire cape that Rarity made for me anymore, it was in my wardrobe for safety.
I walked across the front room and into the other room to see Twilight sitting on a stool in front of a desk, I figured she was studying. I looked over to the clear patch on the wall, I randomly thought back to when Spike smashed through it to escape the library.
After Spike returned to normal, Twilight used her magic to make the dragon shaped hole in the wall disappear, now it looked as though it never happened.
I then shook off the thought and looked back over to Twilight, she had her back turned to me so she must've noticed me come in.
I walked up behind Twilight and looked down at her work on the desk, she was using her magic to write with a quill. She was also hovering a book beside her, she kept looking back and forth from the book to her work.
"So what you doin'?" I asked curiously.
Twilight was only slightly surprised by me, she turned her head around to face me and smiled. "Oh, just a bit of extra studying, it shouldn't take me much longer now." She stated.
I nodded. "Ok, cool." I said before Twilight turned her attention back to her work.
As I watched her work, a thought came to me. "I wonder where Spike is, I haven't seen him all day." I thought as I looked around the room for him, it proved to be a pointless act because he wasn't in the room.
I then turned my head back to Twilight. "So where's Spike? I haven't seen him today." I said to her.
Twilight turned her head to face me and gave me a troubled look. "He's…kinda been on the roof lately. You know, the balcony on top of the library where the telescope is." She explained.
My ears lowered slightly at this news, Spike had been spending the last few days up on that balcony and we barely see him half the day. "Again? What does he do up there anyway?" I asked.
Twilight shrugged. "I don't know, but I'm really worried about him. He might still feel bad about what happened when he….you know…he took it kinda hard." she stated.
"Should I…should I go up and talk to him? Maybe I could take him out somewhere, we could have a little fun to cheer him up." I suggested.
Twilight then gave me a small smile. "That's a good idea, a little time out of the library should help him." she said.
I smiled back. "Yeah, I hate seeing the little guy so down. I'll go up and talk to him." I said before I turned around and walked towards the door.
"Thanks, Matt." Twilight said sweetly as she watched me leave the room, she then turned her attention back to her work.
After leaving the room, I walked up the flock of stairs that lead to the very top of the library. I continued to walk up the stairs until I came to a door.
I then pushed opened the door and walked into the room. In the centre of the room, there was a long ladder that reached up to a wooden hatch on the ceiling.
Seeing is how I had wings, I didn't need to use the ladder and flew up to the hatch. I pushed it open and looked around to see I had reached the balcony on top of the library.
And standing by the wooden barrier of the balcony, was Spike who was looking through the telescope which was attached to the barrier.
I quietly walked up beside him and looked out at Ponyville, you could really see a lot from the top of the library. I could see everypony walking around in the streets while others were busy repairing their houses.
I then looked down at Spike to see he hadn't noticed me, I then tapped his shoulder with my hoof. "Hey buddy." I said.
Spike jumped in fright at this and quickly turned his head to face me. Once he saw it was me, he exhaled to calm down. "Oh…it's just you, you scared me there." he said.
"Sorry, Spike. What're you doing up here?" I asked.
Spike looked down at the wooden floor and sighed. "Just looking to see how everypony's doing with rebuilding their homes…you know, after I wrecked them." he said slightly sad.
I then wrapped my arm around him to comfort him. "Come on, little bro. It wasn't your fault, you were in a mental state, it happens to everyone." I stated.
Spike looked up at me with a raised eye brow. "Do they turn into a giant destructive monster?" he asked with his arms crossed.
"Well umm…no, not really." I answered; causing Spike to frown. "But I'm gonna help you feel better, we're gonna go out into town and have some fun." I said cheerfully.
Spike gave me an unsure look. "I'm not so sure if that's a good idea, Matt. I think a dragon is the last thing everypony wants to see right now, especially when I was the dragon who nearly destroyed the town." He said.
"But no one knows it was you, they didn't recognise you when you were giant and no one saw you shrink back to normal. It's safe to go out there…you just have to trust me." I said holding him closer.
Spike looked away and twiddled his fingers as he thought about it, he then looked back up to me and I gave him a trustful smile. Spike smiled back before he sighed. "Alright, Matt. We'll go into town." He said.
I smiled with delight at this. "Alright, that's my dragon. Let's go." I said before we both walked over to the hatch and went back down into the library.
Once we made it down to my room, I grabbed my saddle-bags and placed them onto my back before we went down stairs and into the living room. Twilight, Jeff and Peewee were already in there.
Me and Spike then walked up to Twilight. "Hey Twi, Matt's convinced me to go out into town with him." Spike said.
Twilight smiled at this news. "That's great, Spike. If you ask me, I think it'll do you some good to get out of the house for a bit. You haven't stepped food outside since the incident." She said.
Spike rubbed the back of his head with his hand. "Yeah, I know." He said before he looked down at the floor with a worried look.
I noticed this and placed my hoof on his shoulder, he turned his head around to see the warm smile on my face. "It'll be fine, Spike. I'll be with you all the way." I said with a comforting voice.
Spike then smiled up. "Ok Matt, I trust you….lets go." He said.
With that, I lowered my body down to him and he climbed onto my back. I then looked at Twilight.
"We'll be back later, Twi. Love ya." I said sweetly.
Twilight gave me a sweet smile. "Love ya too, Matt." she said.
I then gave her a small kiss on the cheek before I made my way towards the front door.
Just then, Jeff flew over to us and landed on top of my head. "Wait, can I come too? I wanna get out for a bit as-well." He said.
I then looked up at him and smiled. "Sure, Jeff. You can come." I said.
"Sweet!" Jeff said cheerfully before I continued to walk towards the door.
"You boys be careful, alright?" I heard Twilight call from behind me.
"Yeah, we'll watch ourselves." I called back without turning my head around, I walked out of the front door with Spike and Jeff before I closed the door behind me; leaving Twilight alone with Peewee.
Twilight then turned her head to face Peewee, he looked up at her. "So, what should we do while they're gone?" he asked.
"Well, I'm still trying to study in the other room, wanna help?" Twilight asked with a hopeful smile.
Peewee was silent, he kept looking back and forth from Twilight to the door to the next room. He then made his decision. "Sure." He said before he flew onto her back.
Twilight smiled at him before she walked towards the other room to continue her studies.
Meanwhile, I was halfway into town with Spike riding on my back. "So where do you want to go first, Spike? It's your choice." I said.
Jeff was still on top of my head as he looked down at my face with a raised eye brow. "Hey, why does he get to choose where we're goin'?" he asked.
I looked up at him. "Because we're out here to cheer him up." I stated.
Jeff was still confused until her realised what I meant, he then rolled his eyes. "Is he still mopin' about that whole rampagin' dragon thing?" he asked.
I nodded. "Yeah, I want to help him feel better, so this trip into town is for him." I said.
"Fine." Jeff said before he turned around to face Spike. "So Spike, where do ya wanna go?" he asked as he crossed his wings.
Spike then rubbed his chin as he thought about it. "Well…I've heard there're some new supplies at Sugar Cube Corner, I was kinda hoping to see them at some time." he said.
I turned my head around to face him and smiled. "Alright buddy, we'll go to Sugar Cube Corner and check out these new supplies. That sound good?"
Spike smiled largely as he nodded, my smile grew. "Alright then." I said before I turned my head back around.
I continued to walk through the streets towards Sugar Cube Corner.
Meanwhile: Luna's castle
Luna was in a large dark room made of stone bricks, she called it her Brew Room and it's where she creates her magic potions.
In the centre of the room was a large wooded table, it had loads of things on it like Test-tubes and flasks. But in the middle of the table was a medium sized black brew pot.
Luna was sitting in front of the table looking into the brew pot, she watched as the steaming red water inside it swirled around.
Ever since Luna decided to create the potion, she had been out collecting the ingredients needed to make it until she was finally ready. Now she was halfway through making it. However, she didn't feel proud of herself for making this decision.
Luna used her magic to hover the small brown scroll in front of her as she read the instructions.
"Let's see…three red glow gems." Luna read before she hovered three glowing red gems off the table and over the pot before dropping them in, the gems disintegrated in the boiling red water.
Luna then looked back at the scroll. "One Phoenix feather." She read before she lifted a long orange phoenix feather off the table and dropped it in the pot, the feather burning in the water which then changed from red to orange.
Just then, there was a flash of light and Discord appeared on the other side of the room, Luna didn't notice as she was too focused on her brew.
Discord was about to say something before he noticed what Luna was doing.
"One vial of rain water." Luna read before she hovered a small vial of rain water over the pot and pored it into the boiling water, the water then turned from orange to blue.
Discord raised his eye brow. "What're you doing?" he asked.
Luna went wide-eyed before she quickly turned around to face Discord. Once she saw it was him, she exhaled. "It is just you, Discord. Please tell me, what business brings you here?" she asked after calming down.
Discord then walked over to her. "Well I haven't seen you in some time, so I was just come over to check on you. You know, to see if you were alright." He explained while trying to look passed Luna only for her to block his sight by moving her head left and right.
"Well as you can see, I am perfectly fine. So if you'll excuse me, I have some very important work to get back to." Luna stated as she kept Discord from seeing the brew.
But Discord didn't listen, he kept trying to look passed Luna until he managed to see the brew pot with steam flowing out of it. "What is it you're doing down here anyway?" He asked.
Luna became nervous before she spread her wings out as far as she could to black Discord's sight. "It is nothing." She stated.
Discord gave her a suspicious look before he snapped his fingers and disappeared in a flash of light, he then reappeared on the other side of the table and looked down at the pot and potion ingredients.
Luna spun around to face him as she became more nervous.
"It certainly doesn't look like nothing, what's going on here?" Discord asked as he crossed his arms.
Luna shifted her eyes back and forth as she tried to think of something. "What should I tell him? I cannot tell him I'm making a love potion, he would tell my sister and she would grow suspicious." She thought as Discord waited for an answer.
Just then, Luna thought of something. "It's a new potion I'm working on." she answered.
Discord gave her a confused look. "A potion? What kind of potion?" he asked curiously.
"I call it a strength Potion. You see, this potion increases the drinkers health and strength for the rest of the year. So the effects are temporary, but effective." Luna explained hoping he'd believe her.
Discord stood there in silence, he just stared down at Luna with those big yellow eyes of his. Luna stared up at him sweating slightly with a large nervous smile on her face.
But eventually, Discoed smiled down at her. "That's actually not a bad idea." He said.
After hearing this, Luna calmed down and exhaled. "Really, you think so?" she asked with a small smile.
Discord then looked down into the brew pot. "Oh yes, most definitely. I myself would like to become strong and healthy for the year." He stated.
"Well…umm…I am pleased that you like the idea, Discord." Luna said.
Discord then disappeared in a flash of light and reappeared in front of Luna. "How long will it be until it's ready?" he asked slightly excited.
Luna's smile then faded. "Err…a few months maybe, I have to do a lot of studying and research to be sure I make it correctly. We wouldn't want any rather nasty accidents, would we?" she said.
"Well, that is a concern. Yeah, you hit the books and study more about this potion you're making. And remember to tell me when you're finished, I want the first vial of this potion when it's done." Discord said before he snapped his fingers and a small white card appeared in his talon fingers.
Discord then held it out to Luna. "My card." He said with a grin.
Luna's horn glowed before the white card lifted out of his fingers and she looked at it, she then gave him slightly annoyed look as she sighed.
"This is a photograph of you and Pinkie Pie squirting the citizens of Ponyville with squirt-guns." Luna said as she turning the picture around to Discord to show she was right.
Discord looked down at it. "Sorry, wrong card." He said before he took the picture back and held it up in front of him.
Discord then chuckled. "But you have to admit, that day was kinda funny. Haha, just look at the reaction on everypony's faces. Haha, good times." He said.
Luna just rolled her eyes.
Discord then tapped his chin with his finger. "Now that I think about it, I don't even have a card. Oh well, you know where to find me when you're done." He said as he walked away from Luna with his arms winging back and forth.
Luna watched as he walked away. "Yes, I do. Please, give my sister my regards." She said kindly.
Discord didn't turn his head around as he waved his lion arm. "I will, I will." He said before he stopped walking and turned his body around to face Luna.
Discord gave her a playful wink before he snapped his fingers and disappeared in another flash of light; leaving Luna alone with her bubbling brew pot.
Luna then relaxed. "Thank goodness, I thought he'd never leave." She thought before she turned around to face the brew pot.
"Now where was I?" Luna said to herself before she went back to working on the potion.
She read the next part of the scroll before she hovered a large wooden pole into the bubbling water and gently rotated it around.
Meanwhile: Sugar Cube Corner
Me, Spike and Jeff arrived at Sugar Cube Corner, I looked up at the shop to see that the roof was already fully rebuilt.
We then walked into the shop and saw that no one was in front of the counter, so we were alone in the room.
I stopped in the middle of the room and looked around. "So where're these new supplies you mentioned, Spike?" I asked.
Spike looked around as well before he saw the new supplies in a glass case on the other side of the room, he smiled and pointed to them. "They're over there." he said before he jumped off my back and walked towards them.
I then followed him until we reached the case, Jeff jumped off my head and joined Spike. They both looked at the new cakes with awe as they drooled slightly. "They look so good, can we get some?" Spike asked.
I smiled at him. "Sure, I brought my money. Besides, this day is for you, so you can get whichever cake you want." I said.
Spike then looked up at me. "Matt, you don't have to do that. I don't want you to spend your money on me." he said humbly.
I smiled as I placed my hoof on his shoulder. "Hey, this day is all about you. I want you to have the best day ever, so tell me which cake you want and I'll get it." I stated kindly.
Spike gave me a large excited smile before he looked back into the glass case and searched for a cake he'd like, Spike then saw a cupcake with shiny purple frosting on it. "Oh, how about that one?" he said while pointing at it.
I looked to where Spike was pointing and saw the cupcake, I looked back to him and smiled. "Sure thing, Spike. Wait here, I'll go to the counter and ask for it." I said.
I then turned around and walked up to the counter, I tapped the table bell with my hoof and waited for someone to come.
After a few minutes, Mr Cake came out from the kitchen and walked up to the counter. He then smiled at me. "Hello, Matthew. What can I do ya for?" he asked politely.
I smiled back at him. "Hi, Mr Cake. Umm, can I buy one of those new cupcakes from that case over there?" I asked while pointing my hoof over to the glass case where Spike and Jeff were standing in front of.
Mr Cake looked in the direction I was pointing in and smiled. "Sure, in fact you're the first one to buy our new supplies. Do you know what that means?" he asked with a smile.
I shrugged. "No, what?" I asked.
"I'll explain. You see, we like to play a game every time we get new supplies. We haven't sold any yet because they just arrived this morning, and whoever's the first to buy one of the new supplies gets it free of charge." Mr Cake explained.
I was surprised by this, this meant I could get Spike the cupcake and I wouldn't have to pay for it, I couldn't believe my luck. "Really?...Well, that was lucky." I said.
Mr Cake nodded. "Yes it was, now let me get you that cupcake you wanted." He said before he came around the counter and walked towards the case with me following.
Once we reached it, Spike stepped out of the way to let Mr Cake get to the case. "Now which one did you want?" he asked.
Spike then pointed to the cupcake with purple frosting. "That one, please." He said politely.
Mr Cake nodded before he opened the case lid before he grabbed the cupcake with his hoof and brought it out. Mr Cake then closed the lid before he held the cupcake down to Spike. "Here you go, Spike. I hope you enjoy it." He said with a kind smile.
Spike took the cupcake and looked at it with a large smile. "Oh I will, thanks Mr Cake." He said.
"It's my pleasure, Spike." Mr Cake said.
With that, we made our way towards the exit to leave the shop. I looked back at Mr Cake and waved to him. "Thanks again, Mr Cake." I said.
Mr Cake waved back. "You're welcome, Matt. I hope you come back soon." He said as he watched us leave.
After we left the shop, Spike walked beside me as he looked down at the cupcake in his hands. He took a bite out of the top and smiled with satisfaction as he chewed.
"Mmm…this is delicious. Thanks, Matt." Spike muffled with a full mouth.
I smiled down at him. "No problem, Spike. I'm glad you like it, and Mr Cake said it was free because we were the first to buy one of the new supplies." I said.
Spike turned his head around to face me with a surprised look. "Really? That means I got my cupcake while you got to keep your money, how great is that?" he cheered.
I nodded. "Yeah, so where should we go now? The arcade?" I suggested.
Jeff's eyes then widened before he rushed to the top of my head and looked down at my face. "NO! No way, I have too many bad memories about that place, I ain't goin' back there." He said loudly.
I looked up at him with confusion. "Why? Is it because you were put in a cage and used as I prise there?" I asked.
Jeff gave me a small glare. "Did you have to bring that all back up?" he asked.
At that moment, Spike stepped in. "It's ok guys, I didn't really wanna go to the arcade anyway. I was kinda hoping we'd drop by Fluttershy's house and help her with the animals or something." he said with a small smile.
I looked down at him. "Ok, that sounds good. What do you think, Jeff?" I asked looking up at him on my head.
Jeff then rubbed the bottom of his beak as he thought about it. "Hmm…ok, I'm cool with it. Fluttershy gives a mean back rub anyway, and I have some new knots for her." He said as he rubbed his back.
"Ok then, let's go." I said before we made our way towards Fluttershy's cottage while Spike ate the rest of his cupcake along the way.
Later: Fluttershy's cottage
After a short walk, we had arrived at Fluttershy's cottage. Spike had finished his cupcake and was now licking the last bit of flavour off his fingers.
"Enjoy your cupcake, Spike?" I asked as I walked beside him.
Spike looked up at me. "Yeah, I loved it. I can still taste it in my mouth." He said before he licked his fingers again.
As we arrived in front of the cottage, I looked over to the chicken pen to see Fluttershy standing inside it.
There was a bucket of grain sitting on the ground beside her, she reached her wing into the bucket and scooped up some grain in her feathers before she sprinkled in onto the ground, her chickens were pecking the grain around her.
"There's Fluttershy, she in the chicken pen." I said, Spike and Jeff looked over to the chicken and saw Fluttershy, we all then headed towards the chicken pen to meet up with her.
Once we reached the chicken pen, me and Spike stood on the other side of the pens fence while Jeff flew off my back and landed down on top of it.
"Hi, Fluttershy." I said loud enough for her to hear me.
My loudness must have been a bit too much for her, because she let out a small eep as she flinched in fright. She then looked over to us and relaxed. "Oh, hello Matt. What brings you here?" she asked in her quiet voice.
"I'm trying to help Spike feel better about what happened when he…you know." I explained.
Fluttershy nodded. "Oh yes, I remember." She said.
"Yeah, and he was wondering if we could help with the animals or something, do you have anything we could do to help?" I asked.
Fluttershy wasn't expecting something like this to happen today, she gave us a slightly surprised look before she thought about it. "Well…umm…I guess you could help me feed the other chickens I have around here…but can you handle chickens?" she asked.
"Are you kidding? I had chickens back in England, I know how them." I said with an amused smirk.
"You had chickens? Did you live on a farm?" Fluttershy asked curiously.
Back in England, I didn't live on a farm, but I lived around farms and there were always some animals to look at. I remember going to visit some sheep while I was walking my black-lab dog called Harvey, I always use to give them dog treats. There was also a large white horse that liked dog treats too, it always use to come up to the fence to get some whenever it saw me.
"Urr…I lived on farm land, there were a lot of farms where I lived, but I didn't live on one. My chicken pen was in my back garden." I stated.
Fluttershy then smiled. "Well, I guess you could do it then. Oh and by the way, an old friend is here for a visit." She said.
"Really, who is it?" Spike asked.
"Philomena." Fluttershy answered.
The sound of that name rang like a bell in my mind, I remembered that phoenix in an instant.
Philomena was Princess Celestia's pet phoenix, she was also a mischievous bird. She and Fluttershy go way back, Fluttershy thought Philomena was ill when she was shedding her feathers and did everything she could to help her, even thought it was meaningless.
Phoenixes shed their feathers because they grow old. Once they lose all their feathers, they burst into flames and rise up from the ashes as a beautifully fresh phoenix. I figured they could live forever with that kind of power.
I gave Fluttershy a surprised look. "Philomena's back?" I asked with a smile.
Fluttershy raised her eye brow. "How do you know Philomena? She's only been in Ponyville once and you weren't here back then." She said.
I then gave her a sly smirk. "I have my ways, so where is she?" I asked.
Fluttershy looked around to try and find her. "She was here a moment ago." She stated.
"Wait, wait, wait, who's Philomena?" Jeff asked curiously.
I then looked at him on the fence. "She's Princess Celestia's pet phoenix, she's also kind of a drama queen." I answered.
"P-P-Phoenix?...S-S-She?..." Jeff stuttered.
Just then, we noticed a large bird shaped shadow fly passed beneath us, Fluttershy noticed it too and looked up at the sky. "Oh, here she is now." She said with a smile.
Me, Spike and Jeff then looked up to the sky to see the beautiful orange, yellow, and red feathered phoenix that I recognized as Philomena, she looked as though he had just renewed herself and was a now fresh phoenix.
I watched in awe as she flew gracefully in the sky. "She's beautiful." I said out loud.
Jeff watched her with wide eyes and his beak hanging open. "…She sure is..." she whispered to himself.
After a moment, Philomena dove down and landed on the fence beside Jeff who continued to stare up at her with more than just awe. Philomena was so much taller than Jeff.
Fluttershy walked up to the fence and smiled up at Philomena, she then looked at me. "Philomena here has been helping me find all my bird friends so they can all eat their food together. Isn't that right, Philomena?"
Philomena then let out a caw with a proud smile. "Whow…she has the bird voice of an angel." Jeff thought.
"Princess Celestia was right, Philomena is a sight, I've never seen a real live phoenix before." I said.
Jeff then looked over to me. "A sight? S-She's more than a sight, she's like super ho-…." He then stopped as he thought about what he was saying.
We all stared at him, including Philomena, waiting for what he would say next. "I mean…she's like super…nice lookin', I mean look at those fiery feathers. I wish I had some like that, these plain old feathers get so dull." He said as he spread his wings out and looked at his feathers.
The moment felt kinda wired at this time. "Okaaay…anyway, do you mind if we help with the chickens?" I asked as I looked back at Fluttershy.
Fluttershy smiled. "Sure, there should be some spare gain buckets over there by the gate." she said as she pointed towards the gate.
Me and Spike then turned our heads to see three buckets of grain sitting by the gate.
I looked back at Fluttershy with a smile. "Ok, thanks Fluttershy." I said before we both walked over to the buckets.
"Just spread some grain around the garden and the birds should come." Fluttershy said as her eyes followed us.
Once me and Spike reached the buckets, Spike picked one up by the handle with his hand, while I picked the other one up by the handle with my mouth.
I then looked over to Jeff who just stood there looking dreamily up at Philomena. "You comin', Jeff?" I muffled with the bucket handle in my mouth.
Jeff snapped out of his trance and turned around to face me. "Huh?...oh…nah, I'm good here. You two just go and have fun." He said as normally as possible.
Me and Spike looked at each other before we looked back over to him. "Ok then." I said before we walked away from the chicken pen with the buckets of grain.
Once we were gone, Jeff looked up at Philomena while she wasn't looking. In his eyes, the sunlight sun beautifully over the female phoenix while her feathers flowed in the gentle breeze.
Jeff stared up at her with his beak hanging slightly. "Whow…I don't think I've ever seen a bird more-" He was cut off from his thought when Philomena turned her head to look down at him.
Jeff was stunned as he stared at her eyes, he laughed nervously before he quickly turned away. Philomena didn't take notice to his strange behaviour and continued to watch us.
"I think we just made a connection." Jeff thought with excitement as he smiled.
Meanwhile, me and Spike were standing in the gardens just next to the chicken pen, we placed the buckets down on the ground before we started throwing the grain on the ground.
I did as Fluttershy was doing earlier, I scooped up some grain in my wing feathers and threw them on the ground. Spike reached his hand into the bucket and grabbed a handful of grain before he too threw it on the ground.
After a few minutes, some chickens and random birds came over to us and started eating the grain. The birds were comfortable with us standing there, some even flew up onto my back while others flew onto Spike's shoulders, Spike hand-fed those birds.
Even though this activity wasn't all that exciting, I could tell that Spike was enjoying it. And that was all I wanted.
"So Spike, how's today been for you so far?" I asked as I threw more grain on the ground.
Spike turned his head to face me. "It's great, Matt. I had a delicious cupcake, saw Philomena again, and now I'm feeding a bunch of birds. I don't know how this day could get better." He said before he threw more grain on the ground.
I then smirked at him. "What if I told you we were gonna go to your favourite donut shop after this?" I said.
Spike gave me an excited look with a large smile. "No way, but that's all the way up in Canterlot." He said.
"If it meant making this your best day ever, I'd go to Fillydelphia." I stated with a warm smile.
Spike smiled warmly back at me. "Wow Matt, I never knew you cared about me that much." He said.
"Of course I do, little buddy. You're one of my best friends, I couldn't stand to see you all sad like you were earlier. I want you to have a good day today, and if you want to go up to your donut shop in Canterlot, then we're going there." I said kindly.
Spike gave me a thankful smile. "Thanks, Matt…I'd like that." He said, we both smiled at each other.
Just then, Spike looked up at something. "Hey, that's one scary looking bird." He said as he pointed at something behind me.
I then turned around and looked up at a tree branch to see a large black crow with red eyes, it stared down at us with what appeared to be a sharp glare.
The crows gaze was enough to frighten away the birds on my back and the one on Spike's shoulders.
"You're right, it does look kinda…mean." I said as I stared up at the dark crow. We just stood there frozen in the crows gaze, wondering what it was thinking and what it would do next.
Spike was the first to act, he slowly reached into his bucket and pulled out a handful of grain. He then slowly held his grain filled hand up to the crow. "Emm…want some, little fella?" he asked nervously.
The crow was still for a moment before it spread out its wings and let out a loud caw, it then shot down towards Spike. Spike reacted in fright by dropping the grain and running away.
Before the crow could chase him, I stepped in front of it and started swinging my hoof at it to shoo it away. "Hey beat it, you crazy animal." I said aggressively.
Somehow, the crow was quick. It dodged every swing of my hoof, I'd never seen a bird move so fast.
I then swung my hoof at it again, only for it to scratch me across my arm with its sharp talons. I let out a small yell of pain as I pulled my arm back, the crow then flew into my face and cawed loudly as it tried to scratch my face.
I grew tired of this annoying battle. "GET THE HELL LOST!" I yelled before I finally managed to grab the crows tail feathers with my mouth and threw it hard against the tree it was on.
It then landed on the ground by the tree and wasn't moving, the smack against the tree must have been hard because it had a large scratch on its beak.
I panted slightly before I lifted my arm up and saw three scratch marks with blood starting seeping out of them, they also started to sting.
Spike then came up behind me with a concerned look. "Are you ok?" he asked.
I turned around to face him with my arms still up. "Yeah, it's just a few scratches…damn crow, how can a bird be that fast?" I asked.
Spike shrugged. "I don't know, I've never seen a bird move that fast before. It's like it knew your every move before you even made them."
I didn't respond because I was too busy thinking about what happened while looking at my injured arm. Why did the crow attack? What did we do to make it attack? It was like…it was possessed.
Just then, Fluttershy came over to us. "Are you two ok over here, I heard a loud racket." He said.
I then turned my head to face her. "I bet there was, one of your crows swooped down and attacked us for no reason, it scratched my arm." I said loudly.
Fluttershy gave me a shocked. "A crow? B-But I don't have a crow, crows usually stay in the Ever Free Forest, they never come here. Are you sure it was a crow?" she asked.
Spike then stepped forward. "Yeah, we're more than sure. It's right over there." he said as he pointed to the tree.
Fluttershy then looked over to the tree before she looked back at us. "Where? I don't see any crow." She claimed.
Me and Spike quickly looked over to the tree to see the crow wasn't on the ground anymore. "It's gone." I said shock.
Spike quickly looked back up to Fluttershy. "The crow was right there by that tree, honest." He said, I looked back to her as well.
"Don't worry, guys. I believe you both, it's just weird how a crow would randomly attack like that." Fluttershy said.
"Yeah, but what freaks me out the most is the fact that demon bird is still out there." I said as I looked around the sky to try and spot the crow.
Fluttershy then looked down at my arms and saw the scratches, she let out a small gasp. "Matt, your arm's bleeding." She said.
I lifted my arm again to see that a small string of blood was now slowly running down my arm, Fluttershy looked closer at it. "Oh you poor thing, let me get you a bandage." She said sweetly.
Fluttershy then trotted back towards her cottage; leaving me and Spike in the garden still slightly shook up from the crows attack.
Meanwhile, Jeff was still trying to avoid eye contact with Philomena. He kept his head turned away from her as he breathed nervously. "Come on, dude…you've talked to a lot of girls in the past…how's this one any different?" he thought.
Jeff then slowly turned his head around to face Philomena before he was once again lost in her beauty, he smiled dreamily up at her as his wings hung numb-lick.
"Ok we get it, she's hot. Just talk to her, bird." Jeff's thoughts said; snapping him out of it.
He then shook off his trance state before he cleared his throat. "Umm…Philomena, right?..." he said looking up at her.
Philomena looked down at Jeff with a curious look, he gulped hard as she stared down at him. "Errr…it's nice to meet you, I-I'm Jeff…maybe Celestia's mentioned me." he said as he held his wing out to her.
Philomena cocked her head in confusion, Jeff's nervous smile faded. "Ok, maybe not. But I should probably tell you about me, I'm Matt's…err…bird buddy. I helped him fight off Thorn when he took over the castle." He explained.
Philomena gave him a surprised look before she took his wing with hers and shook it up and down, she let out a small happy squawk as she did. Jeff smiled greatly as he had hold of her wing.
But it didn't last as Philomena released his wing, which disappointed Jeff. He then looked up at her and smiled. "Ok so far, so good. You've made a good first move, now make your second on….DANG, what is my second move?" he yelled in his mind.
Jeff stood there completely stumped, Philomena didn't feel very comfortable with the random silences. Jeff had to think fast before he loses her attention, he said the first thing about her that came to his mind.
"So…you've got petty feathers…groom much?" Jeff asked nervously.
Philomena looked down at her feathers before looking back at Jeff, she squawks a few times.
"Am I hittin' on you? No, no, I'd never hit on you, why would I?" Jeff asked nervously; gaining a slightly offended look from Philomena.
Jeff quickly realized what he just said and tried to fix it. "I didn't mean that to say you're not attractive, you're a very attractive bird. But you don't look like type that wants to go out right now, especially with a bird as lame as you."
Philomena gave Jeff an angered look as she cawed loudly, Jeff realised what he said and almost slipped himself.
"I MEAN ME, a bird as lame as me, not you. You're not lame at all, you're one of the guys." He said, he then face-winged himself once he realised the mistake he made again.
Philomena growled as she glared directly into Jeff's eyes, he laughed nervously. "Haha, So…I take it you don't wanna go out with me?" Jeff said nervously.
Philomena responded by spinning around and slapping Jeff across the face with her tail feathers; casing him stumble off the fence and into a mud puddle in the chicken pen below.
Jeff picked himself up in a daze before he shook it off and looked up at the offended phoenix.
Philomena glared down at him before she turned around and huffed with her head up high, she then took off into the sky; leaving Jeff in his muddy state.
Jeff rubbed the cheek she slapped while watching her go. "Well…that didn't go as well as I hoped." he said.
Jeff then heard a noise behind him before he turned his head around to see a chicken staring at him, he gave it a small glare. "What're you lookin' at, chucky?" he said aggressively.
Jeff then grabbed a chunk of mud in his wing and threw it into the chickens face; making it cry out in fright before it ran away with mud on its face.
Later: Ponyville streets
After feeding the birds at Fluttershy's place, we were now in the streets walking towards the train station to catch a train to Canterlot.
Fluttershy had wrapped a bandage around my injured arm and it didn't hurt as much anymore.
Spike was walking beside me while Jeff sat on my back. For some reason, we found him in a mud puddle and Fluttershy cleaned him up. We couldn't say goodbye to Philomena because she was gone when we found Jeff.
But the weirdest thing is the fact that Jeff hasn't said a word since we left Fluttershy's place, he was just sitting on my back being quieter than he's ever been, it was kinda worrying.
I turned my head around to face him as I kept walking. "Hey Jeff, do you know where Philomena went? We didn't see her again when we finished." I said.
Jeff then looked at me. "Philomena?...err…I think she said somethin' about goin' back to Canterlot for royal business or somethin'." He lied.
I gave him a confused look. "Royal business? What royal business could a phoenix have?" I asked.
"Well, she is Celestia's pet. I'm sure the Princess needs her to…keep her company." He said.
I raised my eye brow at him. "Company?...with her guards, Discord, and the Diamond Dogs up there with her in the castle?" I said.
"Look I…I just…I don't know, can we drop the conversation about Philomena now? I don't feel very good, I have a woozy stomach." Jeff said in a slightly annoyed tone as he held his stomach.
Spike looked up at him with a concerned look. "Maybe you should go back to the library and take a nap or something." he suggested.
Jeff looked down at him and nodded. "Yeah…yeah, that's probably the best idea. Enjoy the rest of your day, guys. See ya." He said before he flew off my back and headed towards the library.
Spike then looked at me. "I hope he's alright, he's been acting strange since we left Fluttershy's place." He said.
"I know Jeff, he'll take a nap, wake up later in the day, eat a big hot meal, and he'll be right back to normal." I said with confidence.
Spike then climbed onto my back. "I hope you're right, Matt. Jeff may be annoying sometimes, but he's a good friend."
I smiled at him. "I know he is. Now come on, we don't wanna miss the train." I said before I continued walking to the station.
Later that day: Canterlot/Joe's donut shop
After a short train ride, we arrived in Canterlot and went to Joe's donut shop. Where of course, I met Joe the baker for the first time.
I've only seen him in the show near the end of The Best Night Ever. He was a nice guy, cool too, I liked him.
Me and Spike were sitting by one of the round tables with the cushion seats around it, Spike had a plate full of his favourite donuts and he had already eaten 4 of them. And we've only been there for 10 minutes, the kid loves his donuts.
Spike was now starting his 5th donut, I just watched him with an amused smile. "You sure can keep your donuts down, you could eat donuts for Equestria." I commented.
Spike then gave me a confused look as he chewed the chuck of donut in his mouth. "What's that mean?" he muffled.
"Ah, nothin'. Something I use to say back in England, it's not important. But seriously, you really eat those donuts." I said.
"That's why this is my favourite donut shop, the donuts here are delicious." Spike said.
At that moment, Joe walked up to us while using his magic to hover a cup of hot co-co beside him. "That's because I always do my best to make sure each donut is perfect down to the last detail." He stated proudly as he placed the cup down on the table for Spike.
Spike smiled at him. "And you never fail." He said.
"Thanks Spike, let me know if you want any more." Joe said before he walked back to the counter.
Spike then took another bite out of his donut before he looked back to me. "Wanna try a donut, Matt? They're really good." He said.
I shook my head. "No thanks, I'm fine. You enjoy them, and if you want more, just ask and I'll get them for ya." I said kindly.
After a minute, Spike finished his donut before he sighed and looked at me again. "Matt, I know why you're doing all this for me, I know what today's been about. You're trying to make me feel better after what I did when I became greedy and huge, but the question I wanna ask is…why?"
I then gave him a caring look. "Because I want to help you, Spike. I told you at Fluttershy's place, I don't like it when you're upset. You're my friend Spike, I care a lot about you. I just wanted you to be happy again." I stated.
"So you took me out into town and offered to spend your own money to buy me things that I liked to make me feel better? You did all of this to make me happy again? To have what you call, the best day ever?" Spike said with a raised eye brow.
I nodded. "Yeah…h-hasn't it been?" I asked slightly worried that he had not enjoyed the day as much as I thought he had.
Spike was silent for a moment until he smiled warmly up at me. "Of course it has, I have had the best day ever." He stated cheerfully.
I was relieved by this news. "That's great, Spike. I knew you would. I mean with the cupcake, the bird feeding, and finally a trip to your favo-"
"What're you talking about? It hasn't been my best day ever because of all those things. I don't care about the cupcake, the bird feeding, or even these donuts…it's been my best day, because you've show how much you care about me." Spike said with a warm smile.
I smiled warmly back at Spike. "I mean yeah, Twilight cares a lot about me too, she's like my big sister and she loves me. But I've always wondered what it'd be like…if I had a brother too. And you're…kinda like…my big brother." Spike said as he rubbed the back of his head.
I felt heart warmed by this, Spike saw me as a brother figure. I too have wondered what it would be like to have a brother, and I also saw Spike as a brother, he was like my little brother figure.
I moved closer to him and wrapped my wing around him to pull him closer to me. "You're like a brother to me too, Spike, a little one….and….I love you like one. You're like the brother I never had…and I'll always be here for you." I said sweetly.
With that, Spike wrapped his arms around me as he hugged me, I then hugged back. "I'm so glad Twilight's marrying you." he said as he hugged me tight.
I smiled down at him before we broke the hug. "I should probably finish these donuts and then we'll head on home, we don't wanna get back too late. Right, buddy?" Spike said.
"Buddy? Oh, we're not friends." I said.
Spike's smiled then went away as he wondered what I meant by that, I then gave him a loving smile as I placed my hoof on his shoulder. "We're brothers." I said.
Spike's smile returned before we shared another brotherly hug. "And by the way…I love you like a brother too." Spike said as we hugged.
The moment was too touching for me to handle, small tears of happiness formed in my eyes as I hugged my 'little brother'
That night: Ponyville library
After another short train ride, Spike and I returned to Ponyville and had finally arrived back at the library.
Spike was so tired on the way back that he had fallen asleep on the train. Not wanting to disturb him, I carefully carried him back to the library. He snored soundly as he curled up on my back.
After I quietly entered the library and closed the door behind me, I tip-hooved up the stairs to see Twilight lying on her stomach on the bed, she was reading a book with the bed-side table lamp on.
As I walked towards Spike's basket, Twilight noticed me. "Matt, there you are. When you said you were taking Spike out for the day, I didn't actually think you meant the whole day." she said with a raised eye brow.
I smiled at her. "Yeah…anyway look, Spike fell asleep on my back on the way home." I said as I turned my body to show Spike sleeping on my back.
Twilight smiled sweetly. "Aww, that's so adorable. You should put him to bed in his basket." She said.
I nodded before I looked down at his basket to see Jeff and Peewee sound asleep in it, I looked back at Twilight. "A little help, please."
With that, Twilight's horn glowed and Spike gently lifted off my back and was placed softly in the basket with Jeff and Peewee. Spike, Jeff and Peewee now had their heads on the pillow.
Twilight then used her magic to lift up the blue blanket and tucked them in.
I watched Spike as he slept in his basket, he looked so peaceful under his covers and his head on the soft pillow. It made me so desperate to relax in my own bed with Twilight, so I did.
As I walked towards my side of the bed, Spike slowly woke up. "Huh?...Matt?...we're are we?" he asked half asleep.
I tuned my head around to face him. "We're back in the library. You should go back to sleep, you're very tired." I said kindly.
Spike then nodded. "Alright, Matt. Goodnight, big bro." he said before he lied back down in his basket.
I smiled warmly at him. "Goodnight, little bro." I said before I turned my head back around and continued to walk to the bed.
Once I reached it, Twilight jumped off so we could both get under the covers. When we were in the bed, Twilight looked at me. "Did he just call you his big bro?" she asked.
In looked at her and nodded. "Yeah, we had a bit of a touching moment today. I'll tell you all about it tomorrow, I'm kinda tired." I said.
Twilight then nodded. "Ok, Matt. I look forward to hearing it. Goodnight, love you." she said before she lied her head down on her pillow.
"Love you too, Twi. Goodnight." I said before I did the same and lied my head down on my pillow.
As I drifted to sleep, I couldn't help but think about my day with Spike and how much stronger our connection has now grown.
But unknown to me, the black crow from earlier was standing outside the window, it glared sharply at me as I slept before it turned around and flew away into the night.
Meanwhile: Luna's castle
Luna had spent the whole day in her Brew Room, she worked as hard as she could to make sure the potion was 100% perfect and to make sure it wouldn't cause any unwanted problems.
The bubbling water in the brew pot was now a dark red colour, it swirled around in the pot as Luna used her magic to rotated the large wooden pole around in the thick liquid.
Luna then lifted the wooden pole out and placed it down on the table before she read the last part of the scroll. "Now for the finale ingredient to complete it." She said to herself.
Luna levitated a group of small green leaves in front of her, she used her magic to then pluck one of the leaves off and hover it above the pot. "One mistletoe leaf." She said.
With that, Luna dropped the mistletoe leaf into the bubbling water and it disintegrated inside it. The water in the pot then turned from red to pink before releasing a puff of pink steam.
Luna watched in awe as the pink steam rose up in the air and formed into the shape of a heart, it then vanished in the air.
After that, Luna looked down at the small fire under the pot and put it out by waving one of her wings at it; causing the water to stop bubbling.
Luna looked down at the sparkling pink water before her horn glowed and a test-tube hovered over to her, she then dove it down into the potion and scooped up enough of it to fill the test-tube.
Luna lifted the test-tube out of it to see it was full of the pink love potion, she then hovered a cork over to the test-tube before she shoved the cork into the top to make sure none of the potion could spill out of it.
With that final act, it was done, the love potion was finished.
Luna held it in front of her with her magic as she stared at it, the potion inside the test-tube started to glow. Despite being proud of her victory over creating the potion, Luna felt a wave of guilt as she thought about what she would do next.
Luna's ears lowered as she hung her head and sighed, she then looked back up at the pink glowing test-tube in front of her.
"Just one hour…that's it, just an hour. Then I will move on and let Matthew carry on his life with Twilight Sparkle…no one will ever have to know." Luna said to herself.
Luna continued to stand there in the dark room staring at the love potion she had made.
But the question that rattled her mind was…will the plan work? Or fail and risk losing her friendship with the ponies she cares for most?
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
Don't worry about Luna, she'll get something surprising in the next chapter, trust me.
In the next chapter, I'll tell you my top 10 best presents that I will get today. The present that will be number 1 will be my favourite, what will it be? We'll find out in the next chapter.
Plus, I may take a little break from writing to play my new games. But don't worry, this story will continue. I'm even halfway through completing chapter 38.
Please remember to review!
Merry Christmas everypony and I hope you enjoy your day, I wish the best to you all :D
Next chapter will be up soon.
38. Luna's love potion
HAPPY NEW YEAR! Welcome back, everypony :D
As I promised, I will now tell you my top 10 Christmas presents I got for Christmas.
10: A Bud Abbott & Lou Costello (DVD)
9: Predator, 2 film collection (DVD)
8: Transformers Dark of the Moon (DVD)
7: Men in black 3 (DVD)
6: Skyrim (PS3)
5: Assassins Creed 3 (PS3)
4: Skylanders giants, plus figures (Xbox 360)
3: Prototype 2 (PS3)
2: Batman Arkham city, GOTY edition (Xbox 360)
And finally my favourite present. 1: My little pony friendship is magic, Season 1 (DVD)
Feel free to tell me your favourite present in your review, now on with the chapter.
Chapter 38: Luna's love potion
It's been 2 days since I gained a brotherly bone with Spike, we've been doing a lot of things together recently. Alongside Jeff, Spike's been coming with me to work so he could help.
I can tell by the look on her face that Twilight was happy about our new bond, she even wrote a friendship report to Princess Celestia saying how the best of friends can become closer like a family.
To be perfectly honest, I couldn't ask for a better little brother than Spike. I truly did have a heart for this little dragon.
Jeff on the other hoof, hasn't been acting himself lately. He's taken a huge sudden interest in phoenixes, he's even started to read a book about them, which shocked me and Twilight because we've never seen him even pick up a book before
Luna's castle
It was the middle of the night, Luna was in her bed quarters lying on her stomach on her bed. She just lied there staring at the test-tube full of the glowing pink love potion lying in front of her.
"I still cannot believe I went along with it, I have created the thing that could cause my friendship with Matthew to collapse into pieces…I'm starting to wonder if this was such a good idea after all." Luna thought as she continued to stare at the pink test-tube.
Luna then thought about how lonely her life has been without anyone to love, how she wondered what it would feel like to gain a kiss from the colt she loved.
Luna smiled weakly. "Although, it would be nice to have a little personal time with Matthew. He won't remember anything once the potions effects ware off anyway, he'll never know I did anything. I get to have some time with him, and I get to keep my friendship with him. It's perfect." She cheered in her mind.
Luna then jumped off the bed and picked up the potion with her magic, she walked over to her make-up desk and opened a drawer.
Luna looked in the drawer to see the black rose that Zelga had given her the same night she gave her the potion recipe.
Luna gently placed the potion beside the black rose and closed the drawer.
"I cannot do it now, it is far too late. Tomorrow afternoon will possibly be the right time to go." Luna said to herself as she turned around and walked back over to her bed.
Luna then crawled into her bed and used her magic to pull the covers over her, she rested her head on the soft blue billow and closed her eyes to sleep.
As she drifted into her sleep, she thought about the potion and what she was going to do tomorrow. She didn't know whether to be excited about discovering what love feels like, or ashamed for going through with this plan.
These questions would trouble her until she would fall asleep and get lost in her dreams.
Meanwhile: Ponyville library
While everyone was asleep in the library, I was in the guest room lying on my stomach on the bed while reading another Daring Do book.
It was very interesting and exciting, this Ahuizotl guy was a right piece of work.
Just then, I heard the door on the other side of the room creek open. I turned away from the book to see Twilight walk into the room with a sweet smile on her face, I smiled back at her. "Hey, Twi. What're you doing?" I asked.
Twilight walked up to the bed. "I was just coming in the check on you. Although I wasn't expecting to find you in here, you haven't been in this room in a long time." She said.
"Yeah well, I wanted to have a little read of this book and it was kinda hard to do that with Spike and the others snoring away." I said with a smile.
Twilight raised her eye brow. "Having a little late-night read, huh? You're becoming more like me every day." She said with a smirk.
"Oh, fantastic." I joked sarcastically.
Twilight understood my joke and giggled. "Mind if I join you?" she asked.
My smiled grew before I moved over a bit for her to climb onto the bed with me. "Sure, Twi." I said.
Twilight then climbed onto the bed and lied down on her stomach beside me, we both moved as closely as we could together to share our comfort. I wrapped one of my wings around her and pulled her even closer.
These days, my love for Twilight felt stronger. It wasn't long now before our wedding day, all our friends in Ponyville were talking about it.
"So what is this book you're reading anyway?" Twilight asked as she looked down at the book lying in front of us.
"It's a Daring Do book. This one's really cool, it has all these intense booby-trap moments and this Ahuizotl guy is one really tricky ass-hole, he's causing all this trouble just to stop Daring from getting this…." I trailed off from my sentence when I noticed Twilight staring at me dreamily.
I smiled as I chuckled. "What? Did I say something?" I asked.
"I was just looking at your eyes, they're just so…blue." Twilight said.
I smirked at her. "Well you have the most beautiful eyes I've ever seen. You're the cutest, smartest, and most beautiful girl in all of Equestria." I said sweetly.
Twilight smiled as she blushed, she turned her head away to hide it. "You're just saying things now. You're joking again, right?" She said still blushing.
I smiled as I placed my hoof on her cheek and slowly turned her head back around so I could look into her eyes, I shook my head. "No, I wasn't joking. You know why?...because it's the truth." I said with a warm smile.
We both smiled lovingly at each other before we moved in closer and shared a passionate kiss, my heart started to pound at the feeling of it.
After a few more seconds, me and Twilight separated and smiled at each other.
However, this time was different. Once we looking back into each other's eyes, we were both overwhelmed by a feeling that was pulling us back towards each other. I couldn't explain it, I had never felt this way before, it was like I couldn't stop my head from moving towards Twilight's face.
We stared wide-eyed at each other. "I…err…maybe we should slow down a bit…I think we're getting a bit too carr-"
"Matt." Twilight said interrupting me.
"…Yeah?…" I said in a faint whisper.
Twilight then gave me a loving look with a small smile. "Stop talking." She said with her snout right in front of mine.
With that, we connected into a deep kiss again. We both blushed deeply as we thought about where this might lead.
After two minutes, we sat up on the bed as we continued to kiss. We started to move faster, the feeling was over incredible.
Suddenly, I felt Twilight move backwards. I didn't want to separate from this great feeling so I moved with her to stay connected.
Twilight lied her back on the bed with her head on the pillow, I was on top of her as we kept kissing lovingly. I had to admit, this was the best kiss me and Twilight had ever shared.
Our tails managed to wrap together as I tried my best to keep my wings from flapping like crazy. Twilight wrapped her arms around the back of my head to keep me in place, not like I wanted to go anywhere.
But finally, me and Twilight broke the kiss to breathe. "Matt…I love you…" Twilight said between breaths.
"I love you too…Twi." I said also between breaths.
It wasn't long before we caught our breath and continued to kiss with extreme passion. As we did, we rolled over on the bed so Twilight was now on top of me with my arms around her head and her hooves on my chest.
As we kissed, Twilight felt a sudden urge in her mind. One of her hooves began to move its away down my body.
I felt this before my eyes shot open and I quickly pulled away, Twilight opened my eyes too as she wondered what she did that caused me to stop. "What's wrong?...did I do something?" she asked.
I didn't answer as I looked down my flat body to see her hoof on my stomach, she looked down and saw where her hoof was and quickly removed it.
"Sorry, Matt…I don't know what got into me." Twilight said as she wondered how her hoof got there.
I then looked back up at Twilight. "Twi…maybe we should stop now." I said.
Twilight gave me a wondering look. "Stop?...but why? Weren't you enjoying it?" she asked indecently.
"Of course I was, it was the best kiss you and I have ever had. It's just I know where your hoof was going and…I think we're moving a bit too fast." I said.
Twilight thought about it for a minute and blushed hard once she realised what I meant. "Oh…so, you don't want to…do it…with me?" she asked slightly upset.
I leaned up on the bed which forced Twilight to step off me, I then pulled her into a hug. "…Don't be silly, of course I want to do it with you…it's just I don't feel ready for that stage yet, especially when we're not even married yet." I said.
Twilight then hugged me back. "So when do you think you'll be ready?" she asked.
"…I think it'll feel more right if we do it sometime after we're married…I'll be ready then." I said softly.
I then felt Twilight nod on my shoulder. "Ok Matt, we'll do it after we're married…if you want to, that is." She said.
"Trust me, I'll want to." I said.
Me and Twilight then separated and smiled at each other. "Well…we should probably get to bed, it's kinda late." Twilight said.
"Or…we could just stay in here for tonight. You know, where we can be alone." I said with a sly smiled as I lied back down on the bed.
Twilight knew what I meant and giggled. "Alight then." She said before she lied down with me.
We cuddled each other as we closed our eyes to sleep. We didn't even need the cover over us, our combined body heat was enough to warm us through-out the rest of the night.
The next day
It was early in the afternoon and while I was out with Jeff and Spike making my deliveries around town, Twilight and Peewee stayed at the library.
Peewee watched from a table as Twilight trotted around the room with a cheerful smile on her face, she was humming to herself as she used her magic to organize some books.
"You're in a cheerful mood today, aren't you?" Peewee asked as Twilight trotted passed him.
Twilight didn't face him as she continued to re-shelf some books. "Sorry Peewee, I just feel so lively today. Matt and I had a really good night, it was so…enchanting." She said with a twinkle in her eyes.
Peewee raised his eye brow. "Enchanting…right, so I guess you two finally…you know…" he said.
Though Twilight was still in her love-struck state, she realised what Peewee was saying and her eyes shot wide open; causing her to lose her focus and drop some books onto the floor.
Twilight then turned her head around to face Peewee and blushed. "Oh no, we haven't reached that stage…yet…we nearly did, but we decided to wait until after we're married."
Peewee then gave her a proud smile. "Good move, Twilight. I know you two might feel tempted, but the best time to do it is sometime after you're married, it just feels right that way."
Twilight gave him a small smile. "Yeah, that's kinda like what Matt said last night. He said he wanted to do it, but he didn't feel ready." She said.
"Well don't worry, Twilight. You two will get your chance, it's not like he gave you a precise no, it's just…not time yet." Peewee said trying to help her.
Twilight gave him a thankful smile. "Thanks, Peewee. But I'm ok with the decision we made, I didn't really feel ready for it either. I was probably just rushing things. Anyway, can you help me with the books in the other room? Just until Spike gets back." she said.
Peewee smiled before he flew off the table and landed on Twilight's back. "I'd be happy to." He said.
Twilight returned the smiled before she walked into the other room with Peewee and closed the door behind her.
Meanwhile outside the library, there was a flash of light and Luna appeared in front of the front door. She looked around and was thankful to see that no one noticed her arrival.
Luna was wearing a dark blue saddle-bag with her moon cutie mark symbol on the on it, she was keeping the potion inside it. "Alright, nice and easy." She said to herself as she approached the door.
Once she was close enough, Luna's horn glowed and the front door of the library slowly opened, she was doing it very careful to make sure she wasn't noticed by anyone who may be inside.
Once the door was wide enough, Luna poked her head inside and looked around the front room to see that no one was inside. "No one is here, they must have gone out into the town. This is the perfect time to plant the potion in a place where Matthew can see it." she said to herself.
With that, Luna slowly opened the door all the way and walked into the library. She looked around the front room to find a place to plant the potion, that's when she saw the table with the wooden horse head standing in the middle of it.
Luna walked up to it and saw that despite the horse head, the table had much more room to spare. "This will do nicely." She thought.
Luna then turned her head around and looked down at her saddle-bag, he horn glowed before the saddle-bag unfastened itself and the potion lifted out of it.
Luna looked back at the table, there was a small flash of light on the side of the table and a small glass cup appeared. The potion then hovered over to the glass before the cork on top of it glowed and popped off; allowing pink steam to escape from the test-tube.
Luna gave the potion one last look before she let out a sigh. "…I am sorry, Matthew…" she whispered to herself with shame.
Luna then took a deep breath before she closed her eyes tightly and looked away from the potion, she didn't want to see her doings.
As she did, the test-tube hovered above the glass before it slowly leaned over and the potion poured out into the glass until the test-tube was empty and the glass was full.
Luna turned her head back around and opened her eyes to see the deep was done, she then tapped her chin with her hoof as she thought about what was missing. "Hmm…how do I get him to drink this without actually having to ask him?" she asked herself.
After a second, Luna got an idea. Her horn glowed again and a small sheet of paper and a quill appeared in front of her, she used her magic to write something onto the paper before she placed the paper beside the potion on the table. She then made the quill disappear.
And with that final act, she was satisfied.
Luna smiled weakly. "Perfect, now I must leave before anyone returns." She said before she made her way towards the door and slipped out of the library.
"Well that went better than I had exsp-" Luna stopped in her sentence as she heard voices coming towards her.
"Oooh, how much further?" she heard Spike's voice say as he came around the corner with Me and Jeff walking with him.
Luna began to worry. "Oh no, it is Matthew…I cannot let him see me." she said to herself before she looked around for a place to hide.
Luna then looked up at the library, she spread out her wings and gave one hard flap before she shot up the library.
Luna flew up and (seeing how the library was a big tree) hid within the leaves. She stuck her hooves through the leaves and spread them apart so she could looked down at us.
I walked towards the library with Spike walking beside me and Jeff on my back, we were glad to finally be back at the library.
Spike saw the library up ahead and smiled. "Finally, we're home. I need a rest, today was a long day." he said as he walked beside me.
I looked down at him. "Yeah, I could use a rest myself. How about you, Jeff?" I asked, I didn't get an answer. "Jeff?" I said as I turned my head around to see Jeff was asleep on my back while snoring.
"Well, that answers that question." I said before I turned my head back around and kept walking towards the library.
Once I reached the front door, I pushed it opened and walked inside with Spike before I closed the door, not knowing that Luna was watching me from above.
"Alright, I'll just stay here and wait until he drinks it. I'll check on him every few minutes to make sure." Luna said to herself as she continued to hide in the leaves.
Meanwhile, I walked up the stairs while Spike went into the kitchen. Once I got to the top of the stairs, I looked around to see that Twilight wasn't up here, she must've been in another part of the library.
I walked up to the right side of my bed before I leaned my body against it, Jeff then rolled off my body and onto the soft bed without waking up.
With him taken care of, I smiled down at him before I turned around and walked away from the bed.
I then walked back down the stairs to try and find Twilight, I got to the bottom of the stairs and was about to begin my search for Twilight before something caught my attention.
There was a small glass of thick pink liquid sitting on the table that had the large wooden horse head standing in the middle of it, I wondered what it could be before I walked over to it to investigate.
Upon reaching it, I noticed a note lying beside the glass. I looked down into the glass before I turned my attention to the note and started reading it.
"Dearest Matthew.
In honour of your brave actions and helping me to move on, I reward you with this early wedding gift. You may have noticed the glass of liquid sitting before you, this is a potion which will keep you very strong and healthy through the rest of the year. I hope this is to your liking.
Sincerely yours: Princess Luna."
After I finished reading, I looked at the potion with wonder. Would it really keep me healthy for the rest of the year? "Well….she did say it was an early present." I said to myself.
I brought my nose above the potion and gave it a good sniff, the aroma from the potion smelled like sweet strawberries and fresh rain water, it smelled wonderful.
After smelling it a few more times, I was ready to drink. "Bottoms up, I guess." I said before grabbed it with both front hooves before I placed the edge of the glass on my mouth and slowly leaned the bottom of the glass upwards.
But just before the pink liquid could touch my upper lip. "Matt, is that you?" Twilight voice called from the other room.
I then removed the glass from my mouth and looked over to the door to the other room. "Yeah, I'm home." I said loud enough for her to hear me.
"Oh good, could you come in here and help me with some books? Peewee's trying to help by carrying them one by one up to their shelves and I don't think he can do it for much longer." Twilight's voice called again.
"She's right, my talons aren't strong enough to carry these things…I can't hold…any…AHH." Peewee's voice cried before I hear a hard thud on the floor. "I'm ok." He called.
After hearing this, I figured I should go in and help them. So I placed the potion back down on the table.
"Coming." I called as I walked over to the door to the other room and went inside, I closed the door behind me before I saw Twilight on the other side of the room with a bunch of books floating around her.
I looked around for Peewee, but I couldn't see him. "Where's Peewee?" I asked while looking at Twilight.
"I'm under here." a voice muffed, I looked down to see an open book lying open on the floor. I flipped the book over with my hoof to find Peewee lying on his back.
"Thanks." Peewee said as he leaned up off the floor.
I smiled down at him. "How about you let us do the work? Take the load off for a while." I suggested.
"Yeah, I think I'll do that." Peewee said, I then stuck out one of my wings and lowered it down for him to climb up onto my back.
Once Peewee was on my back, I folded my wing back up and walked over to Twilight to begin helping her.
Meanwhile, Jeff slowly woke up and leaned up on the bed before he stretched his wings up. "Umm…that was a good bird nap." He said.
As Jeff stood up on the bed, he noticed his mouth was dry and he didn't like it. "Ah…dry mouth, I should get a drink or somethin' to wet my whistle." he thought before he flew off the bed and down the stairs.
As Jeff flew across the living room, something caught his attention. He saw the potion sitting on the table and swooped down to it before landing beside it on the table.
Jeff eyed the potion with wonder. "Well this is new, I wonder what this is." He said to himself as he walked up to the glass.
Jeff then took a whiff of the potion. To him, it smelt like spring-time fresh air and sweet mangos. Obviously the potion smelled differently to whoever smelled it. Jeff smiled at this smell.
"Whow, this stuff smells good. Where'd this come from anyway?" Jeff asked himself.
Just then, Jeff noticed the note lying on the table before he picked it up in his wings. He then held it up in front of him before he started reading it in mumbles.
"Dearest Matthew…(Mumbles)…blah, blah, blah, whatever." Jeff said before he threw the note down on the table and grabbed the glass with his wings. "As long as it's drinkable, it's cool with me." he stated.
With that, Jeff held the glass up before opened his beak wide and tipped the glass; causing the potion to pour out into his mouth and he drank every last drop before it was all gone.
Just then, the door slowly opened and Luna poked her head through.
"I should check if Matthew has drunk the potion yet, I don't want to risk the chance of him seeing another female other than me." Luna thought before she looked to where she left the potion and gasped at what she saw.
Jeff was gulping down the last bit of the potion, Luna slammed the door wide open. "NO! Don't drink that!" she yelled.
But it was too late, Jeff drunk the last drop before he placed the empty glass back down on the table and let out a loud belch. He then noticed Luna standing in the doorway before his eyes widened.
In Jeff's eyes, small lights twinkled around Luna's body like small stars. Jeff's wide-eyed stare soon turned into a dreamily one. "You know, Luna…I've never noticed how beautiful your mane was…" he said.
"…Oh dear…" was all Luna could respond.
Luna then walked further into the library as she tried to think of a way to fix this. "This is bad, this wasn't supposed to happen. I can't just leave him like this for a whole hour, Matthew will find him and easily discover his odd behaviour. And he'll surely mention my name and Matthew will become suspicious…I have to do something about this." She thought.
"Listen, you must get a hold of yourself….errr….Jeff, correct?" Luna asked.
"Jeff, bird-brain, feather head, call me whatever you like." Jeff said as he looked at her dreamily.
"Yes, well…young Jeff, you have to come with me." Luna said.
A large smirk then grew on Jeff's face. "Takin' me somewhere private already, huh? Ain't we goin' a bit fast here?" he asked.
Luna knew what he meant and almost gagged at the very thought. "No, that is not what I meant. I need to keep you away from Matthew for an hour, you are under the influence of a love potion, I don't think you even know what you are doing." she stated.
"Why so serious? You really need to have some fun, Lulu." Jeff said with a smirk.
"…What did you just call me?" Luna asked with a raised eye brow.
"It's cute right? Just like you." Jeff said before he flapped his wings and flew up into the air. Once he was in mid-air, he started to hover towards Luna.
Luna became both worried and nervous by the sight of this. "W-What are you doing?" she asked.
"Just gettin' a better view of those sparklin' eyes of yours." Jeff said as he came closer to Luna.
The closer Jeff came, the more uncomfortable Luna felt. She didn't want to know what he was going to do if he got any closer, so she ran under him and galloped across the library.
Jeff turned around to see Luna on the other side of the room before he grinned. "Oh, baby-girl wants to play hard-to-get? Ok, I'll play." He stated before he shot towards her.
Meanwhile, I was stacking the last few books on the shelves while Twilight did the same on the other side of the room.
I then stacked the last book I had before I examined my work. "Perfect, all the books are back where they belong." I said proudly.
Twilight used her magic to stack her last book before she turned her head around to face me. "And about time too, I thought we'd never get it done." She said.
Just then, Peewee flew onto Twilight's back. "Well it's done now, no thanks to Spike or Jeff." He stated with his wings crossed.
I nodded in agreement. "Yeah, where are those two anyway?" I asked.
At that moment, Spike burst through the door. We all looked over to him. "Well I did ask." I said to out loud.
Spiked seemed to have a panicky look on his face. "Guys, you gotta come in here quick." He said loudly.
"Why? What's going on?" Twilight asked curiously.
"Well, I was walking into the living room when I saw Jeff and-" Spike couldn't finish his sentence as we all heard a loud crash in the front room. Spike then narrow eyes. "I think it's best if you see it for yourselves." He stated.
With that, we all walked towards him to see what was going on in the front room. Once we reached the doorway, I was surprised by what I saw.
I saw Jeff flying in font of Luna who was using her magic to swing a chair at him, Jeff quickly dodged every swing but he just kept trying to reach her. "Away! Away, you foul bird." Luna yelled.
"Oh c'mon, sweetness. This is no way for a first date to go down." Jeff said as he dodged a number of Luna's swings.
Our mouths hung at the sight of this before I decided to step in. "Luna? Jeff? What's going on in here?" I yelled.
Luna heard me and turned her head to face me, her eyes widened as she tried to think of an excuse for what was happening. "Oh…hello, Matthew…err…I can explain." She said.
Luna was so focused on what she was trying to say, that she lost the focus she had on the chair and it fell to the floor; allowing Jeff to finally reach her.
Luna was caught off guard by Jeff wrapping his wings around her neck. Luna shoved her hoof between him and her neck before she tried to push him off, but he had a tight grip.
Twilight then turned her head to face me. "What's Jeff doing? Doesn't he know who she is?" she asked with panic.
I turned my head to face her. "Well, what do I do?" I asked.
"Help her!" Twilight answered loudly.
I nodded before I rushed over to the struggling Luna and grabbed Jeff with my hooves, I then tried to pry him off Luna while she was continued to trying and push him off. "Come on, Jeff. Let go already." I said.
After a few seconds, Jeff couldn't hang on anymore and released Luna; causing me to fall back onto my ass with Jeff in my hooves.
Jeff started to flap his wings and kick his legs as he tried to break free from them. "Let go of me! I know what you're after, you want her for yourself. You can't have her, you hear me? SHE'S MINE!" Jeff yelled in anger.
I was both shocked and confused by what he said. "Jeff, what the hell are you talking about? I'm not after Luna, what's gotten into you?" I asked.
"Love, that's what's gotten into me." Jeff yelled before he bit my hoof; causing me to yell in pain. He kept biting down until I couldn't take it anymore and released him.
Now free, Jeff quickly flew towards Luna with a determined smile.
But before he could reach Luna, a force suddenly stopped him inches away from her face. Jeff turned his head around to see Twilight walk towards him with her horn glowing, she must've had him in her magic lock.
Jeff squirmed in mid-air as he tried to break free from her magic. "Let me go! I want Luna, I need Luna!" he yelled.
"Well she doesn't want you, so give up." Twilight said in a firm voice.
Jeff gave her a glare. "Never." He stated before he continued to squirm in the air.
While Twilight was handling Jeff, I looked down at my hoof no mark or blood. I shook off the last of the pain before I join up with Twilight and looked up at Jeff. "What's wrong with him, he's never been like this before." I stated.
Luna then stepped forward. "It isn't his fault, he cannot control himself….he's…he's under the influence of a love potion." she stated.
I looked at her with confusion. "Love potion? Where'd he get love potion from?...and how come you're here?" I asked.
Luna's ears then lowered as she bit her bottom lip nervously, he plan had gone horribly wrong.
But she couldn't lie anymore, Jeff was under the spell and we wanted an explanation. Luna hung her head as she let out a sigh. "I'm here because…I planted the love potion in this room, I'm the reason Jeff drank it." she admitted.
Me and Twilight were surprised by this. "You?...but why? Why would you leave love potion here?" I asked.
Luna hesitated to answer, but the game was up and she had lost. "Because…it was meant for you…I…I tried to use a love potion on you." she admitting with her head still hanging.
I was shocked, but my face didn't show it. I couldn't believe what she had just told me, she tried to use love potion on me. Twilight was as shocked as I was, I could only imagine how she felt about this.
"You…tried to use a love potion on Matt?…Luna, why would you do this? He's my fiancé." Twilight stated.
Luna looked over to her. "I know, but I can explain everything. Just give me a chance, please." She begged.
The look on Luna's face told me that she was upset by this, I didn't want to upset her any further so I nodded. "Ok…ok, we'll talk in a minute. Right now, we have to figure out how to fix Jeff." I said calmly.
"He'll be fine, the effects of the potion are temporary. Just lock him up for an hour and he should return to normal." Luna stated.
I nodded to say I understood, I then turned my head to face Twilight. "Take Jeff upstairs and lock him in the guest room, that should hold him until he turns back to normal." I said.
Twilight nodded before she turned around and walked towards the stairs with Jeff floating behind her. "Hey, where're you takin' me? Luna's over there." Jeff said as he pointed at Luna.
As she approached the stairs, Twilight turned her head around to Jeff. "You're not seeing Luna, you're getting a time-out." She said in a firm voice before she turned her head back around and went up the stairs.
"Stop hatin' our love!" Jeff said as Twilight reached the top of the stairs and headed towards the guest room.
While Twilight dealt with Jeff, I turned my head back around to face Luna who had a look of shame on her face. I still couldn't believe she had tried something so…devious.
"So…I take it that potion you left the note with was the love potion…what the note said was a lie to get me to drink it." I said, Luna could only nod in sadness.
"Luna…why did you do something like this? Do you know what that potion could've done to me? The damage it would've caused between me and Twilight?" I said.
Luna quickly looked in my eyes. "I know, but I could not help it…the worry was too much for me to bare." She stated.
"What worry?" I asked.
"The worry of…failing to discover how it would feel if the colt I loved felt the same way about me." Luna stated while looking down at the floor.
I was slightly confused before I remembered how she felt about me a while back, this must mean she still felt love for me. "Wait…you mean, you're still in love me? But I thought you said you moved on after we talked about this." I said.
"I tried to, I really did. But it made me so sad, I felt lonely again. I gained the idea to use a love potion on you for an hour, but I couldn't decide whether to do it or not. But after I heard that your family came, I thought they would take you away, I would never know how it would feel to be loved if they did. I then realised that I could not allow the risk to rise up again, so I decided to use the love potion on you while I still could." Luna explained.
"Luna, a love potion wouldn't have made any difference. Yeah, it would've made me love you, but it would've been fake love. What's the point in discovering how love feels if it's fake?" I asked.
"You don't know what it is like to be somepony like me, you don't know how lonely I've been. In these times, I would settle for any type of love, fake or real." Luna stated strongly.
I didn't know what to do at this point, this was going far beyond my capabilities. I didn't know how to help Luna from here, until I thought about who else could help instead. "Luna…I want to help you, but I don't know how…maybe we should bring Celestia into this, she might know what to do." I said.
Luna's eyes widened slightly in fright, she was frightened of what her older sister might say if she found out. But being a mature Princess, she decided that it was for the best. "I think that is a good idea." She said quietly.
I nodded before I turned my head around to face Spike who was still standing in the doorway to the other room. "Spike, take a letter to the Princess." I said.
With that, Spike grabbed a sheet of paper and a quill. I began to tell him what to write while Luna prepared for her sisters arrival.
Later that day
After sending a message to Princess Celestia telling her what Luna had done and why she did it, it wasn't long before she came to the library. Though, she wasn't very pleased about the news.
Me and Twilight were still in the living room, Celestia and Luna were talking in the other room with the door shut so they could have so privacy. "Luna, I can't say I'm not disappointed. A love potion? We were raised better than that, little sister." Celestia said quite calmly.
Luna looked at the ground as she thought about what she had done. "I know, big sister. And you have every right to be disappointed in me, it's just…I…I've had feeling for Matthew for a while now and I just wanted-"
"I know you have feelings for Matthew, I've known for some time now." Celestia stated as she interrupted Luna.
Luna was more than surprised by this news. "You mean, you have known all this time? But why didn't you say anything?" she asked.
"I didn't say anything because I was hoping you would discover for yourself that Matthew was in love with Twilight and nothing could change that, I was hoping you'd decide to move on and find someone else…but it seems I was wrong." Celestia said.
Hearing this made Luna feel worse about her actions which caused her ears to drop. "I'm sorry I let you down." She said.
"You don't need to be sorry, Luna. I just never expected you to cause all this trouble over your feelings, what is it about Matthew that you love?" Celestia asked.
"Matthew made me feel as though the things I did as Nightmare Moon did not matter, he is the first colt to ever show me care and understanding. When we first met, he was not afraid of me like the other colts were. And after he rescued us from Thorn…I…I fell in love with him, I just want to know what it is like to have a colt love me." Luna explained.
Celestia understood her situation, but didn't know her next move. She let out a small sigh. "Wait here, sister." She said before she turned around and walked towards the door.
Celestia used her magic to open it before she walked into the living room to join Me and Twilight before she closed the door behind her, she then looked at us.
"Is she alright?" I asked with concern.
"Luna's fine, she's just upset with what she did. And there's another situation, in all our years together I've never seen her like this before, she is truly in love with you." Celestia said to me.
Twilight then stepped forward. "Well what can we do? Matt and I are engaged and our wedding is a few weeks away, Luna can't keep chasing Matt for the rest of our lives." She said.
"You're right, Twilight. She can't. I'm thinking she needs to hear the right words from the right pony's mouth." Celestia stated before she turned her head to look down at me.
Once she did, I instantly knew she was talking about me. "Wait, you want me to talk to her? But I already talked to her about this a while ago, nothing changed."
"I understand, but you need to try to again. She'll listen to you, it's the only chance you have." Celestia stated.
I gave it some thought before I realised she was right, I nodded before Celestia stepped aside and I walked towards the door. I slowly opened it and poked my head through to see Luna looking at the floor.
I let out a small sigh before I walked into the room and closed the door, I then walked up to Luna and sat down in front of her. Luna kept her eyes on the floor.
"Are you here to say you hate me now? To say our friendship is over and you never wish to speak to me again?" Luna asked in sadness.
"Luna, I could never hate you. I mean…yeah, what you did was wrong, but it wasn't your fault…I understand why you did this." I said.
Luna then looked at me. "You do?" she asked.
I nodded. "Yeah, you feel lonely. You were on that moon for so long that you're tired of being alone…you just want someone to love you." I said.
"Yes, that's exactly how I feel." Luna stated.
"But I…I can't be with you." I said, my words made my own heart ache.
Luna frowned. "Because of what I did as Nightmare Moon, yes?" she said.
I shook my head. "No, because I'm in love with Twilight. I've told you before, I don't care about what you did as Nightmare Moon. You need to stop beating yourself up about that, forget the past…and forget me." I said.
"But…but I love you." Luna said with tears forming in her eyes.
I didn't want to say anymore as I felt pain in my heart, I then wrapped my arms around her and hugged her warmly. "I know…but I promise you…even if you don't find a stallion, you're not alone." I said.
Luna then pulled away and looked at me with a confused look. "How can you say I'm not alone? I don't have anyone to love and to love me in return." She said.
"Luna, you don't need a boy to be happy. Look around you, you have a wonderful sister and loyal friends that all love you…including me. You're not alone, Luna…we're with you, and that's all you need." I said sweetly.
Luna looked at me as she thought about my words. "You mean…I do not need a coltfriend to be happy? I just need my family?" she asked.
I nodded. "Yeah, exactly. As long as your family's with you…you'll never be alone." I said.
Luna gave it some thought, that's when she realised the obvious. She did have all she needed, Celestia loved her, her subjects are no longer afraid of her, and she had the best anyone could ask for. Yes, having a coltfriend would be a great experience, but no one should rush into relationships the minute they gain a crush.
Luna looked at me with a small smile. "You are right, Matthew. I don't need a coltfriend straight away to be happy…I just need my family…my sister." She said.
"And us, we're part of your family too…and you and Celestia are a part of mine." I said with a warm smile.
Luna smiled largely before she grabbed me and pulled me into a tight hug, I was surprised before I smiled and hugged back. "Thank you, Matthew."
"No problem." I said as I hugged her.
We then separated and Luna gave me a look of sorrow. "Oh, how could I have let myself do something like this? I let my feeling take me over, and for what? To ruin the bond between you and Twilight Sparkle? I'm so sorry, I cannot believe I did this to you." she said.
"Hey, it wasn't your fault. You just wanted to know how it feels to have a coltfriend, every mare feels that way eventually in their lives." I said.
"You are correct…and yet, I still don't know how it feels…unless…" Luna said as she looked at me with slightly wide eyes.
"Unless what?" I asked curiously.
Luna then placed her hoof on my shoulder. "Matthew, I'm going to ask a strong request from you…but it will allow me to feel what it is like to have a coltfriend so I can finally be able to move on without wondering anymore."
I wondered what she had in mind. "Ok, what is it?" I asked.
Luna blushed slightly as she gave me a nervous look. "Can I…can I…kiss you?"
Once I heard that, my eyes shot wide open with surprise. "Errr…excuse me?" I asked while standing there stunned.
Luna looked at me with begging eyes. "Please, just one quick kiss. That way, I'll know what it's like to be kissed by the pony I love…I'll finally be able to stop wondering how it feels and move on…please." She said.
I didn't know what to do. If I kiss her, it's basically cheating on Twilight. But if I didn't, I'd upset Luna…what do I do?
Luna waited for an answer while I continued to stand there fully stunned by her request, I then shook it off and became nervous. "Err…I…err…one moment." I said before I rushed back to the door and went into the front room to see Twilight and Celestia; leaving Luna alone in the other room.
Twilight and Celestia looked at me with curiosity. "What did you say to her? Is she alright?" Twilight asked.
I didn't know how to tell them about Luna's request, but I had to say something. "Err…yes and no." I said.
Celestia gave me a confused look. "Yes and no? What do you mean?" she asked.
I turned my head to face her. "It turns out Luna did this because she felt alone in the world, I told her that she's never alone as long as we're with her. She said that I was right and realised what she did was wrong, she's ready to move on. But she wants me to do something before she does." I explained.
"What does she want you to do?" Twilight asked curiously.
I turned my head to face Twilight. "She said that she also did this to discover what it's like to have a coltfriend. I told her that she didn't need to do something like this to get a coltfriend and she agrees with me, but she still wants to know what it's like so she can move on without having to wonder anymore." I explained.
Twilight raised her eye brow. "How're we gonna do that?" she asked.
I hesitated to tell her, but we had to talk this over to help Luna. "Luna's already answered that…she's asked me if I…could kiss her." I answered nervously.
Twilight and Celestia went wide-eyed. "What?!" they both said in shock.
I quickly reacted. "Her idea, not mine." I protested.
Twilight had a shocked look on her face. "Well…d-did you?" she asked.
I looked at her and shook my head. "No, I didn't. She says she wants to know what it's like to kiss the pony she loves, she wants me to kiss her so she wouldn't have to wonder how it feels anymore, then she'd be able to move on without any problems." I explained.
"Well, what are you going to do?" Celestia asked.
I looked up to her. "I don't know. If I kiss her, it's like cheating on Twilight. If I don't, Luna will be upset because she'd have to wait until she finds another colt just to know what it's like to be kissed. Oh, I don't know what to do, I can't do this kinda thing." I said as I began to stress.
Twilight and Celestia looked at each other before they walked over to the other side of the room. I watched as they silently talked to each other, I became nervous about what they were talking about.
After a minute, Twilight and Celestia came back over to me. "We've talked in over and we've decided what you should do." Celestia stated.
I looked up at her with silence before Twilight came up to me and brought her mouth to my left ear, she whispered something that surprised me. She pulled away and looked in my eyes. "Are you sure?" I asked.
Twilight nodded with an understanding smile. "It's the right thing to do." she said.
I gave her a weak smile before I turned around to the door, I took a deep breath before I opened it and walked back into the room with Luna. I saw Luna sitting in the centre of the room exactly where I left her.
I closed the door behind me before I walked up to Luna and sat in front of her again, we looked at each other with silence before Luna gave me a small frown.
"You cannot, can you? (sight)…I understand, it was far too much to ask…it is alright, I-I'll just wait until I find the right stall-" Luna couldn't finish her sentence because I gently placed my hoof on her lips to silence her.
I gave her a small smile. "Luna…I want you to know that I'll help you anyway I can to move on, I'll help you find the right stallion for you…if that's what you want." I said.
Luna gave me a small nod with my hoof still on her lips.
I nodded back. "Alright, that's what I'll do. But you have to promise me you'll never try to use a love potion on anyone ever again, ok?" I said in a serious voice, Luna nodded again.
My smiled returned. "Good…and I understand how desperate you must be to experience your first kiss. So just for tonight…this is all I can give you." I said before I moved my hoof from her lips to the bottom of her chin.
Luna stared into my eyes as she felt my hoof gently pull her head towards my face, she knew what I was doing and closed her eyes while I closed mine.
After a second, I felt her lips connect with mine as we shared a deep kiss, I made it as passionate as I could for Luna.
To me, the kiss was nice but it felt plain. But for Luna, fireworks exploded in her mind. The ripples in her mane flowed faster as we continued to kiss.
After another minute of passionate kissing, we separated and Luna slowly opened her eyes before she smiled sweetly at me. "That was…the most magical experience of my life." She said quietly.
"Don't get used to it. Remember, that was just to let you know what it feels like. That was a one-time thing between you and me, ok?" I said.
Luna nodded with the smile still on her face. "Of course, I completely understand…wow, so that's what it feels like to be kissed?" she asked in quiet amazement.
I smiled. "Nice, isn't it?" I said.
"Very much so, yes. And do not fret, I will no longer come between you and Twilight. I will move on for real this time, and find my own stallion inside of chased after someone else's. Thanks to you, I do not have to wonder what it's like anymore…thank you." she said with a thankful smile.
I was glad to hear this form her. "Glad to hear that, Luna. And you're welcome. Now come on, we'd best go back into the living room with Twilight and Celestia." I said.
Luna nodded before we both headed over to the door and went into the front room. Once we entered the front room, Twilight and Celestia came over to us. "Did you do it?" Twilight asked.
I silently nodded, Twilight then turned her head to face Luna. "So how was your first kiss, Princess?" she asked.
"Oh it was amaz-…I mean it was highly acceptable, an enjoyable act that I hope to one day experience again with another stallion. And Twilight Sparkle, I am dearly sorry for any trouble I most likely placed on you and Matthew. I just…couldn't control myself. I won't interfere any longer." Luna said.
Twilight gave her an understanding smile. "It's alright, Princess." She said.
At that moment, Celestia came over to us and looked down at Luna. "Now with that out of the way, I think it's best if we make our leave. It is nearly time for you to raise the moon, little sister." She said.
Luna smiled up at her. "Of course, big sister. Just spear me a moment to consult with Matthew." She said, Celestia nodded.
Luna then turned her head to face me. "Matthew…I want to show you my gratitude somehow, and that is why I have come up with an idea for your real early wedding gift. Come to my castle in three days, it will be ready for you by then." She stated.
I wondered what she had in mind, I was beginning to grow curious. "Ok, I'll be there." I said.
With that, Luna smiled before she and Celestia walked into the centre of the living room and turned to face us. Luna gave us both a warm smile. "You two truly are the most perfect couple I've ever seen, and you belong together." She said.
Me and Twilight gave her a thankful smile before their horns glowed and they both disappeared in a flash of light; leaving me and Twilight alone in the living room.
The room was silent before I turned my head to face Twilight, she was looking at the ground and she softly kicked one of her front hooves on the floor.
I knew why she was doing this, she must have been upset because I kissed someone other than her. I came closer to her and wrapped my arm around her. "Hey…this didn't change how I feel about you, you're still the most amazing girl I've ever met." I said kindly.
Twilight turned her head to face me. "What was it like?...to kiss someone else?...d-did you like it?" she asked.
"Well…it was nice…but it could never compare with the feeling I get every time I kiss you. When I kissed Luna, it felt kinda plain and ordinary. But when I kiss you…I feel true magic in my mind…you're the only girl I am and forever will be in love with." I said sweetly.
Twilight gave me a warm smile. "Really?"
I nodded. "I've told you this before, but I'm gonna say it again…I love you, Twilight. And nothing…and I mean nothing…will ever, ever change that." I said.
Twilight continued to smile as she pulled me into a loving hug. "…I love you too, Matt…and nothing will change that for me either." She said.
Just then, the moment was interrupted by the sound of something thumping on a door upstairs. We broke the hug and went up to investigate.
The thumping was coming from the guest room door, I walked up to it and opened it. Jeff walked out with an irritated look. "What the hay is goin' on? First I drink some weird juice and black out, now I find myself lock in a room with no clue of what happened. What happened to me?" he asked loudly.
Me and Twilight smirked at each other before we looked back down at Jeff. "Trust me, Jeff…it's been one crazy day." I stated while continuing to smirk.
That night: Luna's castle
With her desires finally fulfilled, Luna was able to relax. She was up in her room, she stood out on her balcony as she enjoyed the fresh air.
Luna looked out at her beautiful sparkling garden in the night, smiling as the gentle breeze blew in her face and cool her down. She inhaled though her nose before she exhaled though her mouth. "Ahh…freedom." She said to herself.
She then turned her attention up to her stars. Due to her cheerful mood, she had made the starry skies a beautiful sight.
"This is a joyful day…not only did I receive a kiss from the colt I have admired for so long, but I am finally over him. Now I can allow him to continue his life with Twilight Sparkle without me getting in the way, I am finally free of my feelings." She thought.
Just then, Luna thought of something that made her blood boil. "But I have one final act to complete." She said out loud.
Luna turned around and walked back into her room. Once inside, Luna walked up to her make-up desk and used her magic to open the drawer that contained both the potion recipe and the black rose.
Luna used her magic to pick them up out of the drawer before she glared at them, the very sight of them made her feel disgusted.
Luna then walked over to her fireplace where small flames flowed up through the gaps between the lumps of coal, she gave the scroll and black rose a death glare. "Haunt me no longer." She growled.
With that, Luna tossed both the scroll and the rose into the fireplace and watched as they both began to catch fire and burn.
Luna watched with a firm look as the dark objects were being destroyed, she gave it a hard nod as she grunted. "That's the end of that." She said to herself.
Luna then turned around and walked back out onto her balcony so she could continue to enjoy the night.
Meanwhile, the scroll was now completely black as it started to fall apart into ash. The rose burned slowly, it shrivelled up as it started to catch fire and released a dark black smoke.
Meanwhile: Mount Forbidden
Zelga and Rage watched this happen in a vision that was being showed in the water of the large green pool, Rage watched with a raised eye brow while Zelga watched with worry.
The leader could see the vision from up on his throne, he didn't look amused at all. He was silent, but Zelga could tell he was angered by this.
The vision then disappeared in the water, Rage and Zelga looked up at the leader. The leader let out a small growl.
Zelga was frozen in his gaze, her plan had failed, there-for she had failed. "Brother…l-let me expla-"
She was cut off by the leader sticking his hoof up before his horn glowing green, there was a metal board next to the green pool, it slid over pool and sealed it up; allowing her to cross over it.
Zelga cleared her throat before she crossed the metal board and approached her fearful brother. "Let me explain…t-this was just a…a hiccup, i-it won't happen again…I swear." She said.
The leader just sat on his throne silently, it made Zelga become more paranoid. "…I know it won't…I'll make sure." He said darkly.
Zelga's breathing became heavy as she started to back away slowly.
"Your plan has failed, sister. And if you may recall, I said if your plan fails you, you fail me. And like I also said, no one fails me…and lives." The leader said darkly before his horn glowed again.
Suddenly, two strings of rusty chains shot down from the ceiling and they each wrapped around Zelga's neck. They then hoisted Zelga up off the floor and she gasped as she dangled from the chains.
The chains grip around Zelga's neck began to tighten, she gripped onto them with her front hooves as she tried to loosen the grip. But the chains kept getting tighter as Zelga gasped for air.
Rage then stepped forward. "Brother, this is madness. Release her!" he demanded.
The leader gave him a sharp glare. "You dare order me?!" he yelled before he shot Rage with a beam of magic from his horn; causing Rage to fly back and crash against the wall.
Zelga was struggling for air, she had to think of a way to get her brother to release her. "Brother…please…let me..(gasp)…try again…I won't f-fail you again…" she gasped.
The chains grip loosened which allowed Zelga a sort amount of air, the leader looked at her with a raised eye brow. "And why should I do that, Zelga?" he asked.
"Because…w-we still have our secret weapon…let me assist him…let me take care of him like I have been doing for so many years…he won't fail…I won't let him…" Zelga said with determination.
The leader was silent before he grinned and chuckled. "Hahaha…you were always one to make quick ideas for quick escapes…very well." He stated before the chains released Zelga and she fell to the floor.
Zelga coughed before she gasped in as much air as she could, she laid on the floor as the leader approached her.
"You will look after the boy and make sure he does his job right...because this is your last chance. Fail me again, and I'll save Matthew the trouble and end you myself…am I clear?" the leader growled.
Zelga could only nodded as she breathed deeply on the dirty ground.
"Good, and by the way…the next time Matthew sleeps…be sure to give him a rather nasty nightmare for me." the leader growled.
Zelga smiled nervously as she nodded again.
The leader smiled evilly. "Good, now leave me." he ordered aggressively, Zelga got up off the ground and rushed out of the throne room as fast as she could.
The leader then turned his attention to Rage as he picked himself up of the floor, Rage groaned before the leader walked up in front of him and picked him up with his magic.
The leader glared sharply and him. "You forget you place, Rage. Order me like that again…it will be your last words." He said darkly before he threw Rage hard against the wall again and he dropped to the floor.
The leader turned around and walked back to his throne. "Now join up with Zelga and leave me." he ordered.
Rage got up and glared at his leader as he growled under his breath. "…As you wish, brother…" he said before he walked over to the door and left the throne room.
As Rage walked through the stone hallway, he mumbled to himself. "The second I get the chance…he's as dead as Thorn." He growled with anger burning in his eyes.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
So how did you like Luna's gift from Matt? Didn't see that coming, did you?
Now what could Luna have for Matt? We'll have to wait until the next chapter.
BTW, have you heard the news about the new MLP episode on the 19th called 'Keep calm and Flutter on'? Sounds like Discord's coming back. Let's see the summary.
"Princess Celestia tasks the ponies with reforming Discord, a mischievous spirit of disharmony, but Fluttershy is the only one willing to give him a chance."
I, for one, can't wait to see this episode. Discord is my favourite villain in the show, and it looks like he may become a good guy….huh, kinda like in my story. Funny how the world works, aye?
Please remember to review!
Next chapter will be up soon.
39. Chapter 39: The magic within
Hey everypony, I'm back again.
Man, I am so excited about seeing the new episode next Saturday. I wish I didn't have to put up with collage before it comes, I really want to see it. let's look at the new summary for it.
"Princess Celestia has decided that the rambunctious Discord needs to be tamed and commissions the ponies for the job; Fluttershy believes that Discord deserves a second chance but she faces opposition as she is the only one who thinks so."
I hope they'll release clips and stuff during the week before Saturday, just something to give us while we wait.
Anyway, enjoy the chapter.
Chapter 39: The magic within
It's been 3 days since Luna tried to use the love potion on me. And as promised, I was preparing to go to Luna's castle to see this mysterious present she wants to give to me.
Of course, we had to explain to Jeff about what happened. And trust me, he was shocked once we did. He even vowed that whenever he was thirsty, he'd stick to water from now on.
I've also been having bad nightmares again, it was weird. One night, I'd have a nightmare. The next night, I wouldn't. And then the night after that, I'd have another one. It's as if they were being turned on and off like a light-bulb.
Ponyville library
I had just finished taking a shower, I walked out of the bathroom feeling refreshed and clean. I needed to appear good for when I visit Luna, she was still a princess after all.
I walked into the living room to find Twilight standing by the front door with my saddle-bags sitting on the floor beside her.
I walked up to her and smile. "Ok, Twi. I'm all clean and ready to go." I said.
Twilight smiled back. "Good, now I've packed you some things to use while you're there. Apples in case you get hungry, a scarf in case you get cold, and other stuff." She said.
After hearing this, I smirked at her. "You're always taking care of me, aren't cha?"
Twilight smirked back. "Well that's because you're always getting yourself into trouble, you probably wouldn't last a day without me." she said.
I then caught her by surprise by wrapping my arm around her back and quickly pulling her up to me, I continued to smirk as I looked straight into her eyes. "…You don't know how right you are…I don't know how I'd live without you, Twi." I said sweetly.
Twilight smiled warmly, she responded by leaning her head forward and kissing me deeply. I kept hold of her as I kissed back.
After a few seconds, Twilight broke the kiss but I kept my arm around her. "Alright, now you should get going. You don't want to be late for your meeting with the Princess." She said.
I still had the smirk on my face. "Oh…I think she can wait a little longer." I said before I started kissing Twilight's cheek.
Twilight giggled as she tried to push me away. "Matt, hehe, not now…you're gonna be late, we'll have some private time later, hehe." She giggled.
I teased her by continuing to kiss her cheek lovingly, Twilight kept her amused smile before her horn glowed and my arm was forced to release her. I smirked at her again. "Spoil-sport." I joked.
Twilight smirked back before she hovered the saddle-bags onto my back. "Get out of here, you big green lump." She joked as she pointed at the door.
I chuckled at her demand. "Yes, ma'am." I said before I walked up to the door, I grabbed the nod with my hoof and pulled the door open before I walked out of the library.
Twilight watched from the doorway as I walked further away from the library to have enough room to take off. "Hey!" Twilight called.
I turned my head around to see her in the doorway, she smiled warmly at me. "I love you." she said.
I smiled warmly back. "Love you too, Twi." I said before I turned my head back around and looked up at the clear blue sky above me.
I then flapped my wings and took off into the sky. Once I was high in the air, I turned around to look down at Twilight who was still standing in the doorway. I waved down to her and she waved back.
With that done, I turned back around and flew off in the direction towards Luna's castle.
Twilight continued to watch me until she couldn't see me anymore, she turned the around and walked back into the library before she closed the front door.
Later that day: Luna's castle
After a long and tiring flight, I finally arrived at Luna's castle. I landed in front of the main gates where, once again, two guards stood and looked at me.
After coming here a number of times, I knew the drill at this point. They'd ask me what my intentions were and I'd have to explain why I was here, I was about to explain before one of the guards cut me off before I could even speak.
"Young Matthew, it's been a while since you last came here. The Princess informed us that you were coming, I'll escort you inside while my partner informs the Princess of your arrival." One of the guards said before they both used their magic to open the gates, I was surprised by their understanding.
As he said, one guard rushed towards the castle while the other stayed with me. He looked at me again. "This way." He said before he walked in the castle grounds with me following behind.
Meanwhile, the guard went inside the castle and rushed up the stairs that led to the throne room.
Luna was standing in the centre of her throne room with three guards standing before her, she was instructing them on their duties.
"And that is why I have called you three here, you are my best guards and I am putting you in charge of all the groups until my new caption arrives in a few months. Am I clear?" Luna said with a serious voice.
"Yes, your highness." The three guards said strongly at the same time.
At that moment, the guard from the gates opened one of the double-doors and walked towards Luna. The three guards turned around to see him before they separated to let him approach Luna. Once in front of her, he bowed his head.
The guard then brought his head back up to look Luna in the face. "Your highness, I'm here to inform you that Matthew has arrived." he said to her.
After hearing this, Luna smiled. "Thank you, show him in. The rest of you, you know your duties, dismiss." She said.
With that, the guards gave one last bow before they did as she said and walked away from her. Luna then remembered something important before turned her attention to one of the guards. "Oh wait, you." she said pointing at the guard.
The guard she was pointing at then stopped walking and turned around to face her. "Yes, your highness?" he asked.
"I have a task for you, go down to the forgery and ask if Matthew's gift is ready." Luna said.
The guard bowed again. "Of course, your highness." He said before he turned around and followed the other guards out of the throne room and closed the doors behind him; leaving Luna alone in the room while she waited.
Meanwhile, Me and the guard entered the castle lobby and went up the stairs towards the throne room. On the way, three other guards walked down passed us before the guard that I recognized from the gates stopped in front of us. "Her majesty will see you now." He said.
"Thank you." my escort said before we both continued to walk up the stairs.
Once we reached the top of the stairs, the guard walked up to the double-doors to the throne room and opened one of them. "Go right in." he said to me.
"Thanks." I said politely before I walked passed him and into the throne room, he closed the door behind me.
Upon entering the throne room, I noticed Luna standing in the middle of the room. She smiled once she saw me. "Matthew, I am so glad you could make it here." she said.
I smiled back and I walked up to her, I took my saddles-bags off my back and placed them on the floor before I sat down in front of her. "Hi Luna…how've ya been?" I asked.
Luna kept her smile as she let out a small sigh. "It has not been very easy…but I am handling the situation. I haven't met any stallions I like yet." She said.
"Well I believe that, it's only been three days. You need to take your time, Luna. Don't find the stallion, let him find you. If you go rushing these things, you'll wind up in a bad relationship with the wrong guy. Trust me, I've seen it happen before." I stated.
Luna then nodded. "Yes, of course…let him find me, I understand." She said.
I smiled warmly at her. "Trust me, Luna. Your stallion's coming, I know he is. There's someone out there for everypony, remember that." I said, Luna nodded.
With that out of the way, Luna cleared her throat. "Anyway, I bet you are wondering what your gift is, it is something truly marvellous." She stated.
Upon hearing this, I became even more curious and excited. I nodded. "Yeah, what is it?" I asked.
Luna then smirked. "You will see, we just need to wait until it is ready." She said before she sat down on the floor.
"…ready?..." I thought with confusion, I then shook off the thought as we both started to make small talk while we waited for this mysterious present to show up.
After a few minutes, we heard the double-doors open and I turned my head around to see a guard walk in. "Your highness…it is done." He stated.
Luna smiled. "Thank you, guard. Bring it in." she said.
I watched as the guard turned around and walked out of the throne room. A second after he left, two forger unicorns came in, one of them was hovering a big red metal box in front of him as they approached us.
"Place it here, please." Luna said as she pointed her hoof down at the space between us.
Once the forgers reached us, they did as they were told and placed the metal box down between me and Luna. Luna smiled with satisfaction before she looked at the forgers. "Thank you, that will be all." She said.
The forgers bowed before they walked back over to the doors and left the throne room, Luna used her magic to close the doors to give us some privacy.
I looked down at the red box with wonder. "What's in there?" I asked.
Luna smiled at me. "Something no other Pegasus has ever had before, it is my finest creation yet." She said.
Luna then used her magic to open the metal lid and there was a bright glowing light inside the box, I couldn't see the source of the glowing because it was so bright.
"Matthew, I present to you…The Horned Helmet!" Luna said as she used her magic to life a shiny golden helmet out of the box and it floated in front of me.
The helmet was made of shiny gold metal, it looked a lot like one of the helmets Celestia's guards wear, except it didn't have the plume brush on top of it like their helmets did.
But that was nothing, what really got my attention about it was the green crystal poking out of the fore-head area. In a way, it resembled a unicorn horn. Luna used her magic to slowly rotate it in the air to show the whole thing off.
"It was forged from the finest metal in Equestria, it is virtually indestructible. Never denting, never rusting…the perfect helmet for none-magical beings." Luna explained as she kept her eyes on the helmet.
I stared at it with awe, I felt the same feeling I had when I first laid my eyes on the Elements of Harmony. "Wh-…what does it do?" I asked.
"See the crystal on the helmet's fore-head? That crystal will be the power behind your helmet, all it needs is some magic from your Element and you will be able to use that magic for your own advantages." Luna stated.
I was confused for a moment before I realised what she meant by all this, I looked at her. "You mean…when I put this on…I'll have the magic abilities of a unicorn?" I asked.
Luna looked at me before she nodded. "Yes…you will have both flight and magic by your side when you wear this helmet. This is my gift to you."
I was surprised by what I was hearing, I would be able to use magic like a unicorn, like Twilight. I would basically become an alicorn with this thing, with powers even my Element can't give me. I smiled at her. "Luna…this is a great gift, thank you so much…I like it…but you said it needed magic, how do we do that?" I asked.
"I have already figured that out, you need to power it with the magic from your Element. And once that is done, the Helmet will answer to no one else but you, just in case the wrong ponies get their hooves on it." Luna said.
I nodded before I took a few steps back, I closed my eyes and thought about the Element on my body. With a bright flash of light, my Element appeared on my body.
I opened my eyes and looked down at my golden armoured vest. "It's been a while since I last saw you." I said to it.
Luna looked back up at the floating helmet before she turned it around so the crystal horn was facing me, Luna looked back at me. "Are you ready?" she asked.
I nodded. "Yep." I answered.
"Just focus your mind, imagine the Element's power flowing into the crystal." Luna said softly.
I closed my eyes and did as she said, I heard a small humming sound coming from my chest.
While I did that, the green crystal (in the shape of my cutie mark) on the chest area of my Element began to glow before a small beam shot out of the middle and connected with the tip of the crystal horn on the helmet.
This continued for a few minutes before the beam stopped and my crystal cutie mark stopped glowing, I opened my eyes to see the crystal horn on the helmet glowing green before the glow faded away.
Luna then walked up to me with the helmet floating beside her. "It is done…here, it is yours." She said before she hovered the helmet in front of me.
I took it in my front hooves and examined the helmet. When I turned it around to look at the back, I noticed a slightly wide slit going up along the middle and ending near the fore-head.
"What's this slit for?" I asked Luna.
"It is for your hair to poke through, we would not want the helmet to flatten your mane, would we?" Luna said before she let out a small laugh.
I chuckled. "Haha, guess not." I said.
After examining it for a bit, I was finally ready to try it on. I lifted it up before I lowered it down onto my head, it was surprisingly light for its size.
And Luna was right, my mane poked through the slit at the back, which made the helmet feel easier to wear.
"For a helmet, this thing's kinda comfy." I said with a pleased voice.
Luna smiled. "I am so glad you like it, now for the test." She said before her horn glowed.
I wondered what Luna was doing before there was a small flash of light between us, I looked down to see three coloured rocks on the floor. Once was red, and the other one was yellow. I was confused by this.
Just then, there was another flash and I looked up to see a big brown book in front of me. The book opened on a certain page, I read the title of the page to see the words Levitation Spell. The book was obviously a spell book.
"This will be a simple levitation spell, I want you to stack these rocks on top of each other in precise order. First yellow, then red. Think you can do it?" Luna asked with a raised eye brow.
I turned my attention back down to the rocks before I looked back up at the book, I gulped. "I'll try."
I then read the spell for levitation and it was easy enough to understand, but was it possible to do it? I didn't know. But if unicorns like Twilight could do it, so could I.
I looked back down at the rocks before Luna took the book away, she took a few steps back to give me room.
I closed my eyes tight and did as the book said, I just had focus power into the horn while imagining the rock lifting up.
I grunted as I tried to use magic for the first time ever, it felt as though my brain was pushing against my skull.
But even though it was a rough feelings, it made some progress. The crystal horn on my helmet began to glow slightly, the red rock began to glow as well before it lifted up off the floor.
As I tried to hover the rock above the yellow rock, I gave in and it fell back to the floor. I breathed heavily. "It's harder than I thought…how do you do this without even grunting?" I asked as I forced my head up to face Luna.
"Do not put so much pressure into it, we do it without pushing ourselves. Try again, but relax your mind." Luna said.
I took a few more breaths before I looked back down to the rocks, I closed my eyes and did as she said. I relaxed and focused power into the horn while imagining the rock lifting up again.
My crystal horn glowed easier this time, the red rock began to glowed before it slowly lifted off the ground. It floated towards the yellow rock before it stopped right above it.
I opened one of my eyes to see I was doing it, I slowly opened the other while trying to keep the rock floating. I made it lower down slowly before it touched the yellow rock and I released it from my magic.
The rock didn't fall off and I smiled with joy. "Hey, I did it." I cheered.
Luna walked up to me and smiled. "Yes, you did…I knew you could. But that was only step one, there are many more spell for you to learn. I cannot teach you many, but I will teach you some beginner spells. You can learn the rest with Twilight Sparkle, who better to teach you than her?"
I nodded. "Alright, so what spells am I learning today?" I asked.
"You have seemed to have mastered the levitation spell, now you need to learn Teleportation, Illumination, and finally the Attack spell." Luna stated.
I gave her a small smile before a worrying thought hit me. "Ok…so I guess that means I'll have to-"
Luna cut me off by hovering the spell book in front of me. "Read the spell book to learn theses spells? Yes." She said.
I took the book in my front hooves before I let out a winey groan, Luna heard this and giggled in amusement.
Meanwhile: Rarity's boutique
Rarity was in deep focus on Twilight's wedding gown, she was wearing her designer-glasses over her eyes while a measuring-tape hung from the back of her neck. She also had a basket full of flowers and stuff sitting beside her.
Her horn glowed before a number of white bows floated up from the basket, she pictured in her mind how the dress would look if she put the bows on it.
"Hmmm…no, no, that'll never do." Rarity said to herself before she tossed the bows aside.
Her horn glowed again before two yellow roses floated out of the basket, she once again pictured how they'd look on the dress.
Rarity smiled with delight as she gained an idea, she then placed the roses onto the dress. "Perfect." She exclaimed.
Just before Rarity could continue, there was a knock on her. Rarity turned her head to look at the door. "One second, please." She said.
Rarity used her magic to close the two large red curtains to hide the dress, she then trotted over to the door to answer it.
Once Rarity reached it, she used her magic to open it. "Hello." She said kindly before she noticed that no one was there, she looked around in confusion. "Hello?"
"Down here." A deep voice said.
Rarity looked down to see Jeff standing in front of her, she gave him a kind smile. "Why hello, Jeff. What brings you here? You don't usually come here by yourself." She stated.
Jeff looked nervous, he rubbed the ground with his talons. "I just wanted to talk to ya about somethin'…I kinda need some advice about somethin' important."
Rarity rubbed her chin with her hoof. "Some advice, hmm?...come on in." she said.
With that, Jeff walked into her home before Rarity closed the door.
They both walked up to the big red couch, Jeff flew up onto it before Rarity sat down beside him. "So what's on your mind, dear?" she asked.
"Well…it's kinda embarrassing to say…but I need some help with romance problems." Jeff said.
Rarity raised her eyes brow. "Romance problems?" she repeated.
Just then, Rarity knew where he was going with this and grinned. "Jeff…is there a special little bird-lady you have your eyes on?" she said with excitement growing inside her.
Jeff blushed slightly. "Well…(sigh) yeah, I kinda met her a few days ago." He said.
Rarity smiled with full delight. "Oh that is wonderful news, what type of bird is she? What's her name?" she asked.
Jeff then rubbed the back of his neck with his wing. "Err…yeah, about that…I kinda made a bad move, and I need help on how to fix it." he explained.
Rarity's excitement faded as confusion took over her. "Why? What did you do?" she asked.
"You best get comfy, because this is gonna be a long story." Jeff stated.
Rarity understood this and narrowed her eyes. "We're going to need tea." She stated.
A few minutes later, Jeff and Rarity were now in the kitchen by the round table in the corner of the room, Rarity was sitting on a chair by it while Jeff was standing on it.
Like Rarity said, she had a cup of tea sitting on the table in front of her. Jeff had one too, although he was too much into his crisis state to mention he didn't like the stuff.
Jeff had explained his situation to Rarity, he told her that the girl he had a crush on was Philomena and what happened between them in Fluttershy's garden.
After hearing the whole story, Rarity had only one response. "You're in some deep hot water, my friend." She said.
Jeff then let out a loud groan as he fell back onto his back. "I know, I wanna know how I can make things right with her." he said.
"Well, to be perfectly honest. I think you should start by apologizing to Philomena and tell her it was a miss-understanding, but I don't exactly know why you came to me about this, what can I do?" Rarity asked.
Jeff then stood back up onto his feet and looked up at her. "Because you're in to all that high-society stuff. Matt says Philomena is the pet of Princess Celestia, I need to know how to look good for royalty." He said in a stressed tone.
Rarity gave him an unsure look. "I don't know, Jeff. Philomena is a bird of royalty, and you're just…err…You're just so…"
Rarity stared down at Jeff as she looked at his dirty ruffled feathers and mud stained talons, she was even uncomfortable with having him on her kitchen table.
Rarity noticed that he was still waiting for her to finish her sentence and quickly spoke. "Anyway, I think you should try and apologise to her first. And if she does accept it, try and take things slow before you start building a relationship with her." She said.
Jeff wasn't so sure he could handle it, it seemed difficult to him. But if doing all that meant Philomena would like him a little better, he was willing to do it.
He looked up to her and nodded. "Alright, I'll do it. So when do I go?" Jeff asked.
"I wouldn't go today, it hasn't been that long since you both last met. She probably still holds a grudge, I know I would. I'd go after a week or so, just in case." Rarity stated.
Jeff nodded. "Fare enough, so do I buy her somethin' in the meantime? You know, somethin' to give to her when I do see her again." he asked.
"That's a good idea, but I know exactly what you should do before you meet Philomena again." Rarity said.
"Really, what?" Jeff asked.
Rarity's eyes then went narrow. "Take a shower, you're filthy…I mean, you'd want to look clean and shiny for Philomena, wouldn't you?" she asked with a small smile.
Jeff then looked down at his dirty feathers. "Hmm…you may be on to somethin', I do look a little…messed up." he said.
Rarity smiled again and waved her hoof. "Not to worry, I'll clean you up in a jiffy. Just follow me." she said as she got off her chair and walked into the front room.
Jeff followed her by flying behind.
Once they were in the front room, Rarity stopped and looked up at Jeff. "Could you wait here for a moment, darling? I just need to take care of something in the kitchen." she said.
Jeff landed on the floor beside her. "Yeah, sure thing." he said.
With that, Rarity went back into the kitchen and used her magic to quickly bring a spray-bottle and a cleaning-cloth out of the cupboard.
Rarity rushed to the kitchen table and sprayed the spot were Jeff was standing, she then scrubbed the spot as fast as she could with the cloth.
Once Rarity was finished, she lifted up the cleaning-cloth and smiled as she saw the spot sparkle without a speck of dirt on it. "Much better." She said to herself.
"Rarity, are you comin'?" Jeff called from the front room.
"Oh, coming." Rarity called back before she placed the spray-bottle and cleaning-cloth back in the cupboard.
Rarity then trotted back into the front room with a satisfied smile before she re-joined Jeff, the two then headed towards the bathroom where Jeff would get clean.
Something Rarity definitely wanted him to be while he was in her boutique.
Meanwhile: Luna's castle
After leaning Teleportation and Illumination, I was now learning the Attack spell. I was still wearing my Element and Horned Helmet, so I was ready for battle.
Luna was impressed by how fast I had learned the spells, I have the book to thank for that, even if the thing's the size of a cinder-block.
Like my training with my Element, I was using live pony-dummies to practise on.
There were three in the throne room with me, one red, one blue, and one green. They slowly approached me as I stood in a fighting position ready to strike them.
Luna watched from her throne with a confident smile.
I grinned deviously at them, I didn't take my eyes off the dummies as they stared at me with those glowing yellow eyes.
Suddenly, they all charged towards me. I quickly pointed my crystal horn at them before it shot a green beam of magic.
It shot across towards the dummies before I struck the green one, it flew backwards before crashing to the floor.
I allowed the other two to reach me before the red dummy tried to throw a punch at me, I dodged it before I grabbed its arm and swung it against the blue dummy; causing them to fall to the ground.
Thanks to my Element's power, I was much stronger. Just like my battle with Thorn, my Element made me stronger and faster for any battle.
The two dummies got back up before galloping back over to me, I flexed my left arm up before a green shield appeared on the back of my arm.
As the blue dummy swung a punch, I quickly blocked it with my small shield. I then lifted the shield out of the way before I shot the dummy with a magic beam from my horn.
The red dummy appeared behind me before it spun around and tried to buck me with its hind-legs.
I turned my head around and used my new magic to grab the hooves of its hind-legs before they could hit me, I then lifted the dummy up so it was hanging upside-down in mid-air.
Just then, I noticed that the green dummy from across the room was starting to get back. I looked up at the red dummy stuck in my magic grasp before an idea came to me.
I used my magic to spin dummy around in circles, I quickened the speed it and the dummy spun faster.
Now the dummy was spinning with great speed before I looked back over to the green dummy and timed my aiming until it was right.
When it was, I released the red dummy from my magic grip and it flew across the room towards the green dummy. Until finally, the red dummy shot into the green dummy and they both crashed to the floor.
"Strike." I cheered.
Just then, I noticed the blue dummy was starting to get back up.
I created shield disc in my hooves before I threw it like a Frisbee towards the blue dummy.
Just as the blue dummy got back onto its hooves, the shield disc sliced through its neck and smashed against the wall behind it.
It stood there for a second before its head fell off and its body fell over; spilling cotton-stuffing onto the floor.
The red and green dummy didn't get back up, they just lied there as if they were knocked out cold.
The training battle was over, I then heard clapping from the throne and I looked to see Luna clapping her front hooves together with a proud smile on her face.
Luna then stopped clapping before she jumped down from her throne and walked over to me. "Well done, Matthew. I am pleased that you are handling the helmet's power so well, too bad you did not have it while Thorn was around." She said.
I nodded. "Yeah, it would've come in handy. So, is that the last of the training for today?" I asked.
Luna nodded. "Yes, you may now dispatch your Element. And do not worry about your Helmet, now that it is a part of your Element, it will disappear back to the vault in Canterlot as well." She stated.
I then closed my eyes before both my armoured vest and helmet disappeared in a flash of light, I felt the cool air brush against my fur now all that armour was gone.
I stroked it through my mane with my hoof. "It feels good to do that again." I stated with a smile.
Luna then came closer to me. "Now Matthew, in honour of your success in your training, I am going to present you with one of my deepest secrets." She said.
"Ok, what is it? I won't tell anyone, promise." I said.
Luna smiled before she leaned her head towards mine, I was worried that she was going to kiss me again. I was about to stop her before she brought her mouth to my ear.
"Come up to my quarters, we need to be up there in order for me to show you my secret." Luna whispered.
I blushed deeply as Luna walked passed me and approached the two double-doors that led to the lobby, I turned around and watched as she opened them with her magic.
Luna turned her head around to me. "Coming?" she asked.
I was wondering what she wanted me in her room for, I laughed nervously as I nodded.
I then walked over to my saddles-bags and placed them up in my mouth before I placed them back on my back. I walked over to Luna and we both then left the throne room.
Luna closed the doors behind us. But instead of going down the stairs in front of us, Luna walked towards a different stack of stairs that where on the left side of the room.
I followed her and we both went up the stairs to a part of the castle I've never been to.
After a few minutes, we were now on a high floor in the castle. I kept following Luna as we approached a small door.
Luna used her magic to open it to reveal what looked like her room, there was a large bed, a make-up desk with a large mirror, and a pair of double-doors made of glass that to led to a balcony outside.
I walked into the room and admired it. "Do you like my room?" Luna asked.
I turned my head around to face her. "Yeah, I do. It looks cosy." I said.
Luna then walked into the room before she closed the door behind her. "And now to present you with my secret." She said.
As she walked closer to me, I became even more nervous. "Umm…are you sure you couldn't have shown me it in the throne room?" I asked.
Luna shook her head. "Now, this can only be done in a peaceful environment. Anyone could have come into the throne room and interrupted us." she stated.
I gulped hard at the sound of that. "Luna…I'm not so comfortable with doing this, what is it we're doing anyway?" I asked.
"You are going to sleep." Luna stated.
"Luna, I appreciate the offer but…I can't sleep over here. Twilight's nervous as it is, and if I sleep here, she's gonna become worried and she might suspect something between us." I stated.
"Matthew, I am just going to show you a secret I have made in somewhere I like to call the Dream Realm. But we can only go there if you are asleep, I am letting you use my bed for your comfort while you enter the Dream Realm." Luna explained.
With that, I understood what she was doing. I blushed from embarrassment from what I thought she was planning, I laughed sheepishly. "Haha, so that's why you brought me up here…you want to show me something in a dream world."
Luna raised her eyes brow. "Why yes, what were you expecting?" she asked.
"It was nothing. Anyway, how does this work again?" I asked.
Luna was curious about what I thought she was going to do, but then decided to drop the subject and spoke. "All you have to do is sleep on my bed and dream, I will met you inside the Dream Realm." She said.
I gave her a confused look. "Okaaay." I said before I walked up to her bed, placed my saddle-bags on the floor before I crawled up onto her bed.
I lied down on the beds surface without getting under the covers, my head was on the pillow before I lifted my head up to face Luna. "Hold up, if I'm sleeping on your bed, where're you gonna sleep?" I asked.
Luna waved her hoof. "Do not worry about that, I have my own way of entering the Dream Realm. You just lie back and relax, I will help you get to sleep." she said.
I then did as she said, I lied my head back down on the pillowed and relaxed.
While I did that, Luna's horn gently glowed and a small cloud of blue smoke came out of the tip, the smoke floated up in front of my face and I sniffed it in.
Just then, my eye lids felt heavy as my vision blurred up. It wasn't long before I gave in and I closed my eyes; causing me to instantly fall to sleep on Luna's bed.
(Dream Realm) Unknown field
I slowly blinked my eyes open. But instead of seeing the ceiling of Luna's room, I saw a starry night sky.
I then felt a small breeze against my body before I leaned up off the ground to see I was in the middle of some sort of field. There was no town in sight, just the grass beneath me and a large wall off trees a mile away from me.
I looked back up at the sky. Not only were there stars in the dark sky, but full planets too. It was as if the entire planet had moved closer to the others, I watched as shooting-stars shot across the sky.
I was stunned with amazement, the beauty of this strange land was unspeakable.
"Beautiful, is it not?" a voice said behind me.
I turned around to see Luna sitting on a large rock in the middle of the field. "Welcome to the Dream Realm, Matthew. Where, as you may already know, imagination comes to life."
I walked up to the rock and looked up at Luna. "Is this what you wanted to show me? Because this place is beautiful, I've never seen anything like this." I said.
Luna then jumped down from the rock before it sank into the ground. "This place is not exactly why I brought you here, but do you have any questions on this place first?"
"Yeah, how are you here? How am I here? Is this my dream, or yours?...or is this some other dimension?" I asked while really confused.
"To be fair, this is basically your dream. You have fallen asleep and I have transported myself into your dream. Right now, the only pony who is in my room back in the Real World is you." Luna explained.
I was slightly confused by this. "I didn't know you could enter other pony's dreams." I said.
"I am the Princess of the night, thus it is my duty come into your dreams." Luna said with a small smile.
"Really?...ok then, so what was it you wanted to show me in this place?" I asked.
Luna was silent as she pointed her hoof towards something.
I looked in the direction she was pointing in to see the forest about a mile away, Luna spread her wings out. "We shall fly there."
I nodded before I spread my wings out as well, we then flapped our wings before we took off into the sky.
Once we got high enough, we started to fly towards the forest. It was amazing, the air in this realm felt so fresh and cool. I closed my eyes and enjoyed it as it blew softy into my face.
Just then, I heard a silent caw and I opened my eyes to see that a number of phoenixes had joined us in flight. They flew gracefully along-side us.
I turned my head to look at Luna as she smiled at me, we both then dived down towards the forest.
Before we could hit the trees, we quickly pulled up until we were back up in the sky. We then continued to fly towards wherever we were going.
We continued to fly before we reached the other side of the forest where there was another field.
I watched as Luna dived down and landed on another large rock, I dived down and landed beside her. Luna looked out at the field as if there was something to see.
I looked out at the field as well but there was nothing, the only thing I saw was the field stretching out towards other forest which wasn't far away, there was also what appeared to be a dried-up ditch going across the field.
I turned my head back to Luna. "What are we looking at?" I asked.
Luna didn't look at me, she just kept looking forward. "We are waiting, it should not be long now." She stated.
"What shouldn't be?" I asked.
Luna was silent, she looked down from the rock as a sparkling light was reflecting off something. I looked down at what was sparkling to see a dark blue rose rise up from the grass and open its petals; revealing its whole beautiful self.
I was stared down at it before I noticed something else sparkling, I turned my head to see another blue rose rise up and do the same.
Luna smiled as a few more blue roses rose up from the ground, almost all the field was covered in sparkling blue roses. "It is time." She said.
I was confused before I watched as the field transformed into a beautiful garden of sparkling plants, it looked almost like Luna's garden back at her castle.
I watched as different types of flowers sprouted from the ground, they were all blue and sparkling as if they had left-over rain drops on them.
A few large trees grew from the ground like time was fast-forwarding which made them grow faster than a normal tree would. Once they grew to their full size, the tops were covered in leaves that were as dark and sparkly as the flowers.
I then noticed something near the dried-up ditch, a large number of large rocks inside it rose up from the dirt and started to attach themselves together.
I then realised they were starting to form something. I was surprised to see that the large rocks were forming a stone bridge that stretched from one side of the ditch to the other.
I was in bigger surprise to see that the ditch was starting to fill up with water all by itself, it was as if it was rising from the dirt until it was completely full.
No more happened after that, I stared in awe at the garden in front of me. A quiet empty field just transformed itself into a garden right in front of me, I have never seen anything like that.
Luna turned her head to face me with a smile. "Matthew…welcome to my Garden of Shadows." She said with pride.
I didn't know what to say, it was truly amazing. "Whow…is this the secret you wanted to show me?" I asked while continuing to stare at the garden.
"Yes, this is my personal project here in the Dream Realm. Even since I learned that you can make your own reality in this realm, I have been creating this garden. Every flower, every tree, it is all my work." Luna explained.
I then looked at her with a raised eye brow. "So, you've been coming into my dreams and creating this place?" I asked.
Luna shook her head. "No, the Garden of Shadows is part of my own dream. You see, because I have entered your dream, some of my imagination has combined itself with yours, letting us experience both our dreams at the same time. I may be real, but my imaginations still roam once I enter this Realm." She explained.
It was hard to understand, but I got most of what she said. "Shall we?" Luna said before she leaped off the rock and headed towards the stone bridge, I leaped off too before I started to follow her.
As we crossed the stone bridge, Luna stopped halfway and put her hooves up over the stone barrier, I stepped up beside her and did the same.
I turned my head to face Luna. "So how come you haven't shown anyone else this place? Why keep it a secret." I asked.
Luna turned her head to face me. "Because something does not feel right…I feel as though there is something missing…as if there is a hole that has yet to be filled. What will fill it, I do not know." She said.
"Don't worry, Luna. It'll come to you…eventually." I said trying to give her confidence.
"I appreciate your confidence in me, but it is not necessary. I know I will find what is missing from my garden, and when I do…this garden will be the most special place in the entire Dream Realm." Luna said.
I smiled at her before we both heard a small splashing sound, we looked down at the stream below us to see a group of Flying-fish skip across the water surface.
We both saw our reflections in the water, Luna turned her head to look at me with a smile. "Come, there is still much more to see." She said before she stepped down from the barrier and continued to walk across the bridge.
I did the same before I followed her.
As we got to the other side of the bridge, Luna stopped right in front of the grass at the end of the bridge. I wondered why she stopped before a stone path appeared in front of Luna's hooves and stretched on through the garden, she then continued to walk along the stone path with me following.
This side was different to the other, this one had even more sparkly flowers and it had some of the large trees. Just then, I heard a sound behind me, it sounded like children laughing in a ghostly way.
I turned my head around and saw nopony, I then turned my head back around and continued to follow Luna.
I heard the sound again, I looked in the direction it came from to see only one of the large thick trees. I was creeped out at this point, I walked faster until I was beside Luna.
"Luna…I think someone else is here." I said while looking around for whoever made the sound.
"Do not be frightened, Matthew…they are just playing." Luna stated as she continued to walk.
I gave her a confused look. "Who?" I asked.
Just then, Luna stopped and turned her head to face me. She then pointed to something, I turned my head to where she was pointing and was stunned at what I saw.
There were two small ponies running through the flowers, one of them looked like a colt while the other was a filly. The colt was a unicorn while the filly was an Earth pony. Only they didn't look normal, their bodies were completely white and I could see through them, they were like ghosts.
As I stared at them, I heard more laughter before I looked to where it came from to see more kids playing in the garden. I began to notice even more of them in different parts of this side of the garden, they were almost everywhere.
I just kept looking around at the different kids playing different games, some were playing Tag, some were playing with a jump-rope, and two fillies were admiring the flowers. It was kinda spooky in a way.
I looked back at Luna to see a sweet smile on her face, I didn't know why she was smiling. "Luna…who are all these kids? Are they…are they ghosts?" I asked.
Luna looked at me and shook her head. "No, these children are not spirits. These are just illusions made by my own desires, they are not real." She stated.
"Your own desires? So…this part of the garden shows your deepest desires?" I asked.
Luna nodded. "Yes, like these children for instance. My desire is for the children of Ponyville to play in my garden, to enjoy my creation. It is something I have wished to see since I started creating it, but without whatever is missing from my garden, my desire will not come to pass." She said.
I couldn't help but feel bad for her. "Oh, that's a shame. I think the kids would really like this place." I said.
"I think so too. At least, I hope they do…Anyway, enough about my desires, let's see yours." Luna said before all the ghostly kids disappeared into the air; leaving the garden quiet.
Suddenly, I heard a voice. "Matthew." It said in a whisper, the voice sounded female and it was familiar.
I then noticed something glowing beside me, I turned my head and was shocked by what I saw.
It was Twilight, she looked white and see-through just like the kids were.
"T…Twilight?" I said before the illusion Twilight placed her hoof on my lips to silence me.
She moved closer before she sat down beside me and nuzzled her head on my neck. Even though it was a figment of my own mind, it still felt real. I wrapped my arms around her and held her close, not caring if it was an illusion.
Luna looked at me with a warm smile. "It seems your deepest desire is to be home with Twilight Sparkle…So I best not keep you from her any longer." She stated.
With that, the illusion Twilight disappeared from my arms and I felt the warm air turn into a strong wind. I looked over to Luna. "What's happening?" I shouted over the roaring wind.
"Do not worry yourself, this wind is just a sign to say that you are about to wake up. Soon we'll both be back in the Real world." Luna yellowed over the wind.
Just then, Luna lifted off the ground before she started heading up towards the moon as if she was being sucked there.
I didn't have time to react before a blinding light shined from the moon; causing me to close my eyes tightly.
(Real World) Luna's bedroom
I slowly began to open my eyes to see the light had stopped, I then noticed that I was looking up at a ceiling instead of a night sky.
I then realised I was lying on my back, I moved my hoof around to discover I was lying on a soft surface. I realised that I was on a bed.
I leaned up on the bed and looked around to see I was back in Luna's bedroom, I then noticed Luna standing at the end of the bed with a smile. "Did you enjoy our little trip, Matthew?" she asked.
I slowly got off the bed and continued to look around. "Err…yeah, it…it was good, definitely worth it." I said.
Luna raised her eye brow. "Is there something troubling you?" she asked.
I turned my head to face her. "Err…yeah, kinda. You see, how do I know this isn't another dream? I mean, is there supposed to be a difference I should notice?" I asked.
Luna then came up to me. "Hmm…well there is one way to tell if this is a dream or not. You see, as your dream-self, you cannot feel pain. I could because I was the only thing in there that was real, you were your dream-self at the time. But to tell if you are your real-self now…well…"
Suddenly, Luna slapped her hoof hard against my right shoulder and I let out a small yell of pain as I held my shoulder with my left hoof. "There is your answer, you are awake." Luna stated.
"Oh, thanks for making sure." I said sarcastically as I held my shoulder.
The pain then died down and I placed my hoof back on the floor. "Well Luna, this day has been very enjoyable. And I really liked your…what'd you call it? Garden of Shadows?" I asked.
"Yes." Luna said with a nod.
I then continued. "Right, but I have to get back to Ponyville…Something about that illusion makes me think I've been away from Twilight for too long." I said with my ears down slightly.
Luna gave me a sweet smile. "Yes, you may go. Remember to mention what you have learned to Twilight Sparkle, she will help you to practice your magic. And please keep the Dream Realm and the Garden of Shadows a secret, it is not yet ready to be known by others." She said.
I nodded again. "Ok, it'll be between you and me for now. See ya, Luna. Thanks for the helmet, the lessons, and the trip to the Dream Realm." I said as I grabbed my saddle-bags and placed them on my back, I then headed towards the door to leave her room.
Luna smiled. "You are quite welcome. And here, I shall aid you in returning home." She said before her horn glowed.
Before I knew it, I disappeared in a flash of light; leaving Luna alone in her room before she walked out of her room and headed back down stairs to return to the throne room.
Ponyville library
With a flash of light, I reappeared in front of the library. I felt dizzy from the teleportation and I wobbled where I stood. "Oooh...I really don't like that…" I said in my dazed state.
I then shook it off and looked at the library, I walked up to the door and opened it to see Twilight sitting in front of a book-stand. There was a book sitting up on the stand, it was wide open and right in front of Twilight's face, she must've been reading one of her stories again.
I walked in and closed the door behind me, Twilight heard the door close and looked over to see me. She smiled before she stood up and walked over to me. "Hi, Matt. How was Luna?" she asked.
"She's fine, she's taking things pretty well. She's a little down, but she's more cheerful than she was before." I stated.
Twilight continued to smile as she looked around me. "Sooo?...what'd she give you? Is it in your saddle-bags?" she asked as she pointed at my bags.
I thought about how Twilight may react once she hears I have a helmet that gives me magic like a unicorn, I chuckled at the thought. "Twilight, it's something you'll never believe…but you're gonna love it." I said with a smirk.
Just then, we heard the door open. We looked to see Jeff walk into the library with his entire body shining and sparkling, the colour in his feathers were brighter than they usually were.
But he didn't looked pleased with his new look. He slammed the door before he started to storm passed us as we watched him, I opened my mouth to say something before he stopped and held his wing up.
"Don't, just don't." Jeff said before he continued to storm further into the library as we continued to watch him.
I returned my attention to Twilight. "I'll tell you later." I said, Twilight nodded in agreement.
That night
Me and Twilight were both lying in our bed, our heads lied on our pillows as I told Twilight about the helmet and the lessons I learned while I was at Luna's castle.
And my thoughts were right, she reacted with both excitement and joy.
"A helmet that gives you the powers of a unicorn? That's amazing, Matt." Twilight cheered.
I smiled. "Yeah, and Luna wants me to practice my magic here, so do you think you can teach me?" I asked.
Twilight's smile grew with excitement. "Yes, of course I will. Oh, where do we begin? There's so many spells to choose from, I don't know which one to start you off with." she said.
I chuckled and smiled at her. "Maybe we should do this tomorrow, I'm kinda tired from all that's happened today." I said.
Twilight smiled at me before her sweet smile turned into a sly one. "Ok…we can leave it, I have something else in mind anyway." She said.
I gave her a curious look. "Really, what?" I asked.
Twilight continued to smile slyly as she nudged up closer to me and rubbed her hoof on my chest. "If you remember, this morning I said we'd have some private time when got back form Luna's castle. Spike and the others are asleep, no one will interrupt us." she said.
I gave her an unsure look. "Twilight…I don't know, I thought we were waiting until after we were married." I said.
"We won't go that far, I just want to kiss and snuggle for a bit. There's nothing serious about that, is there?" Twilight asked with a sweet smile.
I smiled sweetly back before I nodded. "Ok, Twi. Get comfy with me." I said.
With that, Twilight nudged up closer until her body was touching mine. Twilight's face was right in front of mine as we smiled lovingly at each other, Twilight kept her hoof on my chest as our heads moved closer together.
Me and Twilight then took one last look in each other's eyes before started to kiss deeply with my arm wrapped around her.
We continued this for almost an hour without getting carried away in the moment. Eventually, we feel asleep cuddling each other in our arms, we both slept peacefully without any bad dreams.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
Note to readers: Just to let you know, I check Equestria Daily and other things all the time to find any new information about the show. I want to share any info I find with all of you, I'll call it Pony News which will appear at the end of each chapter I write.
For example. Pony news: Episode 12 has been announced, it will be called Games Ponies Play.
Here's the summary: "Princess Cadence invites Twilight and her friends to welcome the important Equestria Games inspector."
There's not much to go by, but I'm sure we'll get more info in time. I've seen a screenshot showing the Crystal Empire and there seems to be some sort of arena that wasn't in the first 2 episodes, the new episode's most likely gonna take place there.
If you want me to start giving you Pony News, go to my profile and vote.
Here are the choices.
"Yes, I would like Pony News."
"No, I don't want Pony News."
Please remember to review!
Next chapter will be up soon.
40. Chapter 40: A surprising visit
Hi everypony, welcome back.
That Discord episode was AWESOME, totally worth the wait. I hope this means Discord will appear more in the show.
Ok, the votes are in. 11 people want Pony News, while 2 don't. I think we have an obvious winner.
Pony News will be shown at the end of the chapter.
Note: There may not be any news to tell.
I had to change some of the lyrics in the song so they'd make sense for the story, but enjoy the chapter anyway.
(Warning: long chapter.)
Chapter 40: A surprising visit
It's been a week since Luna gave me my magic helmet, Twilight's been teaching me how to use my magic like a real unicorn.
All the while, our wedding day was only a few days away. Every one of our friends was preparing for it.
Applejack was gathering ingredients to make the food.
Fluttershy was helping the birds practise the music.
Rarity was finally done with Twilight's dress.
Pinkie Pie was getting all the decorations ready for the reception, she got most of the decorations from under her bed.
And Rainbow Dash was….well….I don't really know what Rainbow Dash was gonna do at the wedding, but I bet it'll be awesome.
Anyway, tonight was a special night. It was the night of the Moon Festival, the one night in the year were everyone celebrates Luna's return to the throne after Twilight and the others stopped her with the Elements of Harmony.
The Mayor asked me if I could play at the festival tonight with my band, The Bronies. I mentioned I didn't know any songs that involved the moon or something like that, but she said it didn't have to, it could be about whatever.
After hearing this, I decided to accept her offer and we'd play at the festival.
Although, I was shocked to hear that Luna wasn't gonna come to the celebration. Twilight then told me that Luna was gonna celebrate, but she'd be in Canterlot with Celestia.
I was happy that Luna was gonna spend time with Celestia for a bit, I figured she's seen enough of me for a lifetime.
But today wasn't only to celebrate Luna's return, this was also the same date when Twilight became friends with the rest of the main 6 and stayed in Ponyville, it was kinda like their own personal anniversary.
Ponyville Park
It was a sunny day in Ponyville. Me, Twilight, and Spike where in the park after leaving Jeff and Peewee in-charge of the library. Twilight brought me here so I could have more room to practise my magic.
I was wearing the Horned Helmet while Spike held a green leaf in front of me, I grunted as I tried to cast a spell that would change the leaf's colour to brown.
Twilight sat on the grass as she watched me try to perform the spell. "Come on, Matt. I performed this spell easily the first time I did it, it can't be that hard for you." she said.
"You're…a unicorn…this kind of stuff is supposed to be easy for you…" I said between grunts.
Twilight just rolled her eyes before she continued to watch us.
I continued to grunt hard before my crystal horn finally began to glow green, Spike held the leaf out as far as he could to avoid being effected by the spell's effects.
As my horn glowed brighter, the leaf in Spike's fingers began to glow green too. The leaf's colour began to change from green to a darker colour. "You're almost there, Matt. Keep it up." Twilight said as she kept her eyes on the leaf.
The leaf began to change from a dark green to a dark brown, the brown colour slowly became brighter as I tried as hard as I could to keep the spell going.
Until finally, the leaf's colour was now light brown. I stopped focusing on the spell and let myself relax a bit, I sat down on the grass as I breathed deeply, performing spells is a lot harder than Twilight and the other unicorns made it look.
Spike looked at the leaf before he looked at me with a large smile. "You did it." he cheered.
Twilight then came over to me while hovering a bottle of water beside her, she hovered the bottle up to me and I grabbed it with my hoof. "Thanks, Twi." I said before I drank some of the water from the bottle.
Twilight gave me a proud smile. "You're doing really well, Matt. Four different spells preformed in one day is impressive, you may even become as powerful as me someday." She said.
I took the bottle head out of my mouth and swallowed the last bit of water before I looked at her. "I wouldn't say that. There's no way I can learn as much as you, you're the magic queen." I said.
Twilight smiled and blushed. "Well…I'm not that good, I still have a bit to learn myself you know." She said.
I then stood up off the grass and gave her a kind smile. "I think you're that good." I said.
Twilight gave me a sweet smile. "Aww, thanks Matt."
Spike just watched with narrow eyes as Twilight and I smiled sweetly at each other. He cleared his throat which snapped us out of our love trance, we turned our heads to face him.
"Now that I have your attention." Spike said before he picked his clipboard up off the ground and looked at it.
"It took you a full eight minutes to perform that last spell, you took two minutes longer than Twilight when she first learn that spell." Spike stated.
Twilight let out a small gasp before she looked at me with a proud smile. "Two minutes longer, not bad for somepony who's never used magic before." She said.
I smiled back. "I guess so…a little more practise, and maybe I'll be able to do it in less than eight minutes." I said.
Twilight nodded. "Yeah, now I think we should stop the lesson here, you have a lot to prepare for tonight." She said.
"Twilight, it's only one o'clock in the afternoon. We have hours to prepare." I said.
"Still, it's better than leaving everything to the last minute." Twilight stated.
"Yeah, you're probably right…as usual. Besides, I don't really like leaving Jeff and Peewee alone in the library." I said.
Twilight raised her eye brow. "Why, do you worry about them?" she asked.
I shook my head. "No, I worry about the library. Seriously, you can't leave those birds alone for one second." I said.
Twilight smiled with amusement as she shook her head. "C'mon, you. Let's go home, we still need to send a letter to Discord to ask if he can come down for tonight." She said.
"Yeah, we do. Let me just send my helmet away and we'll go." I said before Twilight nodded and took a few steps back.
With that, I focused my mind on my helmet before it started to glow. My helmet then disappeared in a flash of light, it's been getting easier to do that lately, I didn't even need to close my eyes anymore.
Once the helmet was gone, I looked over to Twilight. "Ok, let's go." I said.
Twilight then came closer to me before we started to walk side-by-side with my wing wrapped around her. "Come on, little bro." I called to Spike.
"Coming." Spike called, he started to follow us as we headed back to the library.
Library
After returning to the library and eating our dinner, we sent a letter to Discord up in Canterlot. It didn't take long for him to send a letter back, we were glad to read that he was free to come down tonight.
Me and Twilight were now in the living room. Twilight was helping me to pick a new spell to learn by showing me her faverate spell book.
We were both sitting on a cushion while Twilight hovered her spell book in front of us, we had to pick a spell that wasn't too hard for me to perform.
"I think we should work on the distance of your teleportation spell for your next lesson, we don't want you to teleport yourself someplace far away. Oh, or we could try a repairing spell. That way you'll be able to fix things that get broken." Twilight suggested.
I looked at her and gave her a small smile. "I guess we could try that, it could come in handy someday." I said before I looked back in the book and noticed a spell that caught my interest.
"Hey…what's this one do?" I asked while pointing my hoof at the sentence in the book.
Twilight looked at the sentence before she looked at me again with a frightened look. "Matt, that's not a spell for a beginner. That's a pyro spell, not only does it let you set things of fire, but it lets you shoot fire from your horn. It's very dangerous, even I don't know that one." She stated.
I could see that she was growing concerned, so I decided to take things easy for her. "Ok, don't worry. We'll skip that one and go with that repairing spell you mentioned a minute ago." I said softly.
Twilight gave me a sweet smile. "Thanks. We'll do it tomorrow, but right now…we need to think over what you're gonna do at the Moon Festival tonight." She said.
I waved my hoof. "Don't worry, I have everything under control. Me and the guys have been practising some songs over the last few weeks, and I know what we're gonna play tonight." I stated.
"Are you still gonna come with me to Sugar Cube Corner to celebrate the anniversary of my friendship with the girls?" Twilight asked with a hopeful smile.
I smiled back. "Of course I am, why would I miss-out on something like that?"." I said kindly.
Twilight smiled. "Thanks, Matt. That means a lot."
I gave her a sweet smile. "Hey, you know I'd do anything to make you happy, right?" I said.
Twilight nodded. "Yeah, but you know you don't have to, right?" she asked.
"It's not a case of having to…it's a case of wanting to." I answered with a warm smile.
We smiled warmly at each other as we looked in each other's eyes, we slowly leaned closer and prepared to kiss. But before we could, we heard a loud knock on the front door and we pulled away from each other.
We looked over to the door before we head another loud knock, I rolled my eyes. "Probably Pinkie Pie with an early surprise for our wedding." I said before I walked towards the door.
As I did, there was another loud knock. Whoever it was really wanted to come in. "Alright, alright, I'm coming." I called as I got closer to the door.
Spike, Jeff, and Peewee then came into the room from the kitchen. "What's with all the knocking and yelling?" Jeff asked with an irritated tone.
I stopped and turned my head around to face Jeff. "I'm just about to find that out." I said.
Just then, there was another loud knock and I turned my attention back to the door. The knocking was starting to irritate me as well, I grabbed the door-nob with my hoof before I pulled the door open. "Yes?" I asked in a slightly annoyed tone before I went wide-eyed at what I saw.
Two royal guards stood before me, they were both pegasi and they each had a firm look on their faces. I saw their looks and gulp hard.
Jeff saw the guards too and a look of worry came on his face, he quickly looked at Peewee. "Peewee, go upstairs and look under Matt and Twilight's bed. You'll see a small brown bag, get rid of it!" he said.
Peewee gave him a confused look. "Why?" he asked.
"Don't ask questions, just do it!" Jeff said in a louder tone, Peewee did as he said and quickly flew upstairs.
Meanwhile, I just stood there in the guard's gave. I then remembered how rudely I answered the door and laughed nervously. "Haha…I mean, can I help you?" I asked.
"Matthew and Twilight Sparkle?" One of the guards asked.
Once she heard her name, Twilight came up to us and stood beside me. "Yeah, that's us."
"I'm sorry to say this, but you're both under-arrest." The other guard said firmly.
Me and Twilight were more than shocked to hear this, what did we do? Why were we being arrested?
Jeff heard this and became even more worried, he then looked over to the stairs. "Peewee, hurry up and get rid of that bag!" he yelled up the stairs.
I was still shocked while Twilight was the first to react. "Under-arrest?...b-but what're the charges?" she asked.
Just then, the two guards stepped apart to reveal a third guard, only this one looked different from the others. He looked down at Twilight and smirked. "For not introducing me to your future husband." He said.
The moment Twilight saw him, she smiled largely. "Shining Armor." She said with joy before she and the guard shared a big hug.
This Shining Armor guy was a unicorn, he looked as big as Big Macintosh. He had a white coat, his mane and tail were dark blue with a light blue streak going through them (like how Twilight has a pink streak going through her mane and tail).
His armour also looked different from the guard's armour, the colour of his armour had more purple than gold. There was also a crest in the chest area of his armour, it looked like a shield with a star in the middle of it, the star resembled Twilight's cutie mark star.
"Twily, how've ya been?" Shining Armor asked before he and Twilight broke the hug.
Twilight kept her large smile as she looked up at him. "I've been great, how come you didn't tell me you were coming?" she asked.
"What? And miss the chance to see the look on your face when you thought you were being arrested? Not a chance." Shining Armor said with a smirk before he chuckled.
Twilight smiled with amusement. "You always knew how to play jokes like that." She said.
I kept my eyes on the pair of them as Spike rushed passed me. "Shining Armor." He said with a large smile.
Shining Armor looked down at him and smiled. "Spike, how've ya been, little dude." He said as he and Spike shared a small hug.
Spike broke the hug and looked up at him. "I've been great, thanks." He said.
I was more than confused by this, who was this guy? How does Twilight know him so well?...was he an ex-boyfriend from Canterlot? Once I thought of this, I became slightly worried. It soon became too much to bare and I had to find out the truth.
I then stepped forward and cleared my throat. "Umm…I hate to spoil this…obvious reunion…but who exactly are you?" I asked Shining Armor.
Before he could answer, Twilight spoke. "Oh that's right, you've never met him before. Matt, this is my big brother, Shining Armor." She said.
I looked at him with surprise, Shining Armor waved his hoof at me. "Hi, you must me Matthew. Twilight's told me a lot about you in her letters, you seem like a cool guy." He said before he held his hoof out to me.
I was still in surprise and shock as I took his hoof in mine and shook it up and down. Twilight has a brother? How come she never told me? I then released Shining Armor's hoof and turned my head to face Twilight. "Wait, so…he's your older brother?" I asked.
Twilight nodded. "Yeah, he's my BBBFF." She stated.
I cocked my head as I looked at her with confusion, Twilight rolled her eyes. "Big Brother Best Friends Forever!" she said.
I then realised what she meant. "Ooooh…right, now I get ya." I said before a thought crossed my mind. "Wait, if he's your big best broth-…whatever, how come you've never mentioned him before?" I asked.
Shining Armor looked at Twilight with a raised eye brow. "You've never mentioned me to him?" he asked.
Twilight quickly looked back up to Shining Armor. "Of course I have, I've mentioned you loads of times." She said before she looked at me again.
"Remember last week when I told you I was gonna give him an invitation to our wedding?" Twilight asked.
I rubbed my chin with my hoof as I thought back to that day.
(Flashback) library
Me and Peewee were each sitting by one side of a table looking down at the chess-board in front of us, I was trying to think of my next move.
My mind was so focused on the game that I didn't notice Twilight poke her head through the door. "Matt, I'm going up to Canterlot to see my brother, I'm gonna give him an invitation to our wedding." She said.
I didn't pay much attention to what she said, but I answered anyway. "That's good, sweet-heart. You do that." I said while continuing to stare down at the chess-board.
"Ok, I'll be back later." Twilight said before she walked away from the door and closed it behind her.
I then finally chose which piece to move and I moved it.
"What'd she say?" Peewee asked while also staring at the board.
"I don't know, something about seeing her mother or something." I said as we both continued to play our game.
(Flashback over)
"…Oh yeah, I forgot about that." I said before I placed my hoof back down on the floor.
Twilight then looked back at Shining Armor. "Anyway, what're you doing here? Don't you have important business to do back at the castle?" she asked.
I raised my eye brow as I looked at Shining Armor. "You work at the castle? What do you do? Are you a guard?" I asked.
Shining Armor smirked again. "Close, but no. You're looking at the captain of Princess Celestia's royal guards." He said with pride.
I was once again surprised when I heard that. "You're the captain of the guards?" I asked with a surprised tone, Shining Armor nodded.
I then shook off my surprise before I spoke. "Whow…that's way cool, what's it like?" I asked with interest.
"I'll tell you this, it's not as easy as you think. I have to make sure my troops are doing everything right or else the blame falls on me, I have to go on long trips around Equestria, and I barely have any time to visit my family because of my duties. So in shorter words, it's a rough ride." Shining Armor stated.
My ears lowered slightly after hearing this. "…Oh…I'm sorry to hear that." I said.
Shining Armor smiled and waved his hoof. "Ah, it's ok. It was my dream to become a guard in the first place, guess I was better than I thought." He said.
Twilight then spoke. "But that's just the thing, what're you doing here if you're supposed to be doing your duties as captain of the guards?" she asked.
Shining Armor looked down at her. "Princess Celestia let me have the day off so I could celebrate the Moon Festival, I decided to celebrate it here with you guys, I figured it was finally time to meet my future brother-in-law and see what he's like." He said.
"But if you're the captain of the guards, where were you when Thorn took over the castle?" I asked curiously.
"Remember when I said my duties make me travel around Equestria, well I've been spending the last few months in one of the far kingdoms in Equestria, Crydo Village. Due to its small defences, the Princess assigned me to travel there once or twice a year to help protect the village's only ruler. I just got back a few weeks ago." Shining Armor explained.
"So you weren't here that whole time?" I asked.
Shining Armor nodded. "Yeah, but Princess Celestia told me about what happened. She told me about Thorn's strike on Princess Luna's castle, she even told me what happened to Captain Midnight Gave…I still can't believe he's really gone." He said with his ears down.
"Did you know him?" I asked curiously.
"Yeah, we trained together before we became guards, he was a close friend of mine." Shining Armor stated with slight sadness.
"He died trying to protect Princess Luna, he said so himself before he died." Twilight stated trying to make him feel a little better.
Shining Armor turned his head to face Twilight. "I know, he died with honour, and we should respect that." He said before he turned his attention back to me.
"I also know that Thorn is dead now, and that it was you who beat him. I only wish I was there when you did, I would've made that low-life pay." Shining Armor said with a look of anger in his eyes.
"Shining Armor!" Twilight said loudly, she sounded shocked at her brother's tone.
Shining Armor shook off his anger and looked at Twilight. "Sorry, Twily…I just get upset when I think about it…it makes me wonder if I could've done anything to prevent it, you know?" he asked.
Twilight got closer to him and placed her hoof on her shoulder. "There was nothing you could've done, even Princess Celestia didn't know about it until it was too late." She stated.
"I know, Twilight…Midnight was good, but…I guess Thorn was better." Shining Armor said.
I saw the sadness in his eyes before I stepped forward. "Look, lets calm down a bit. That was a dark night for all of us, let's stop talking about it and enjoy today, we don't want to be upset before the Festival." I said trying to change the subject.
Shining Armor then managed to make a small smile on his face as he looked at me. "You're right, Matt. What's done is done, and we can't change that no matter how much we mope about it. So to change the subject, what're you two up to before the Festival starts?" he asked in a more cheery tone.
"We were just getting ready to meet our friends at Sugar Cube Corner, you can join us if you like." Twilight said hoping he'd agree.
Shining Armor then shrugged. "Fine with me, I've wanted to meet your friends for a while now anyway." He said before he turned his head around to face the two guards behind him. "You two can go now, I'll take things from here." he said.
One of the guards nodded. "Yes, sir." He said before the two guards turned around and walked away. They both then took off into the sky and flew back up towards Canterlot.
Shining Armor then turned his attention back to us. "So, how long before we go to meet your friends?" he asked.
"Not long, we just need to take care of some stuff before we go. Come on in." Twilight said kindly as she stepped aside to let him pass.
Shining Armor smiled at her. "Thanks, Twily." He said before he walked past us and into the library.
Twilight then closed the front door before we looked at each other. "Some brother you have there, that whole thing with the guards really had me worried." I said.
Twilight smirked. "I know, I thought I saw your fur turn white when they said we were under-arrest." She said before she giggled slightly.
I blushed at this. "Well it wasn't my fault, how did you feel when that guy said that?" I asked.
Twilight kept her amused smile as she rolled her eyes. "Scaredy-pony." She said before she followed Shining Armor.
"Hey, you're talking to the Element of Bravery here." I called as she walked further away from me.
"Says the one who's scared of needles." Twilight said as she and Shining Armor walked into a different room.
"You said you wouldn't bring that up again." I called before I followed them into the other room.
Meanwhile, Jeff was still watching us with a confused look on his face. "Wait, so…we're not being arrested?" he asked out-loud.
At that moment, Peewee walked over to him while carrying a brown bag in his wings. "I found the bag, Jeff. Now what?" he asked.
Jeff turned his head to face him before giving Peewee a firm look. "What're you doin' with that? Give that back!" he said as he snatched the bag from Peewee's wings and flew off towards the stairs with the bag in his talons.
Peewee watched him with confusion. "Was it something I said?" he asked himself.
Later: Ponyville streets
With everything settled in the library, we were now on our way towards Sugar Cube Corner to meet up with the rest of the main 6. Spike, Jeff and Peewee had come along for the trip, Spike was walking beside me while Jeff and Peewee were riding on my back.
Shining Armor had left his captain armour back in the library, so now he looked like a regular pony.
On the way, Twilight was telling Shining Armor all about her friends without missing a single scrap of info. She mentioned Rarity's love for fashion, Rainbow Dash's need for speed, and Applejack's respect for her farm.
I just walked beside Twilight as she kept going on about what she did after she moved here, she even mentioned some of the things we did together before I proposed to her at the Gala.
Shining Armor paid full attention to her, hearing every word she said. Clearly, he was interested in what Twilight had done while in Ponyville.
It wasn't long before we finally arrived at Sugar Cube Corner. We walked up to the door to see a sign that said the words Closed on it.
Me and Twilight were slightly confused before I knocked on the door with my hoof. After a few seconds, the door opened to reveal Pinkie Pie and she smiled at us. "Twilight, Mattie, I'm super glad you could come." She cheered.
Twilight smiled at her. "Of course we came, it's our Friendship Anniversary, I wouldn't miss this." She stated.
"Oh yeah, silly me, hehe. Anyway, come on in and join the party." Pinkie Pie said before she hopped away from the door.
"I'm guessing that was Pinkie Pie." Shining Armor said with an amused smile.
Twilight turned her head to face him. "Yep. Don't worry, she doesn't bite." She joked.
Shining Armor chuckled at that before we all entered Sugar Cube Corner and closed the door behind us.
Upon entering the shop, we saw Pinkie and the rest of the main 6 sitting by a large round table in the middle of the room.
The table they were sat on was blocking the way towards the counter, so this must've been why Pinkie closed the shop early, so they could celebrate their Friendship Anniversary without any customers complaining.
We all then headed over the table to join them. Once we got close enough, Rainbow Dash noticed us. "It's about time you guys got here, where've you been?" she asked.
"Sorry, girls. We had a bit of work to do at the library, but we're here now." Twilight said as we stood next to the table.
Just then, Rarity noticed Shining Armor standing beside Twilight. "Oh, and who's your new friend?" she asked curiously.
With that, Twilight wrapped her arm around Shining Armor's neck. "Everyone, this is my big brother, Shining Armor." She announced as Shining Armor waved his hoof at them.
They all had surprised looks on their faces before Applejack looked at Twilight. "I didn't know ya had a brother, where's he been all this time?" she asked.
Twilight turned her head to face her. "He lives up in Canterlot, but he's been away for a while." she explained.
After hearing this, Applejack turned her attention back to Shining Armor. "Well it's nice to meet ya, Shinin' Armor." She said with a smile.
Shining Armor looked at her a smiled back. "It's nice to meet you too…Applejack, right?" he asked.
Applejack nodded. "Yep, that's me." she answered.
Suddenly, Pinkie Pie jumped up beside Shining Armor with a large smile on her face; causing him to flinch with surprise.
"You're Twilight's brother? Oh my gosh, I never knew Twilight had a brother, or any type of sibling for that matter. (Gasp) We should totally have a welcome party for you. Won't that be fun? Huh, huh, huh?" Pinkie Pie said quickly with excitement.
Shining Armor didn't really know how to respond to Pinkie's words, I watched before I sniffed the air to catch the scent of something cooking. I then gained an idea to help Shining Armor. "Urr, Pinkie. Do I smell something cooking?" I asked.
Pinkie looked over to me and smiled again. "Yeah, I'm making some special muffins for our party. As a matter of fact, I should probably go check on them before they get burnt." She said before she trotted away from the table and into the kitchen.
Shining Armor the turned his head to look down at Twilight. "Well, you weren't kidding when you said she was a bit…hyper." He said.
Twilight smirked. "Well, that's Pinkie Pie for ya." She said.
"Yeah, but we love her anyway." I added.
"Well now that you're all here, we can finally get this party started." Rainbow Dash asked sounding desperate.
Rarity then looked over to us again. "And what are you all still standing around for, come sit and join us." she said with a smile.
We all then sat down by the table as we waited for Pinkie Pie to come back. While we were doing that, Spike tried not to make eye contact with Rarity, he must still feel nervous after that whole incident with his greed.
Jeff and Peewee flew off my back and landed in front of me on the table.
After a few seconds, Pinkie Pie walked back into the room while balancing a tray of muffins on her head. "Alright, everypony. The muffins are ready." She announced as she came over to the table.
Once Pinkie reached the table, Twilight helped her by using her magic to lift the tray off her head and placed it down on the table. I could smell the muffins from where I was sat and they smell really good.
Fluttershy sniffed them before she looked at Pinkie Pie. "These muffins smell delicious. You've out-done yourself again, Pinkie." She stated.
"Thanks, I used a very special recipe." Pinkie Pie stated.
"Well I hope they taste as good as they smell, they look absolutely wonderful." Rarity said before she picked one up in her magic.
Me, Twilight, Shining Armor, and everyone but Rainbow Dash grabbed one. "I don't normally like muffins…but these do look good, and they smell good too. Ah what the hell, I'll try it." I thought.
While everyone took a bite out of their muffins, I took a bite out of mine and chewed it. To my surprise, they tasted delicious. I swallowed before I spoke. "Whow, I never thought a muffin would taste this good." I said.
Shining Armor chewed his muffin before he swallowed. "Yeah, these are awesome." He said before he looked at the others. So, is anything special gonna happen at the Festival tonight?" he asked.
Rarity tapped her chin before she spoke. "Well…Matthew's was asked to perform a song at the Festival with his band, what was the name again?" she asked herself.
"The Bronies." I answered.
Rarity nodded. "Oh yes, that was it. The Bronies…quite an odd name, if you ask me." she stated.
Shining Armor looked at me with raised eye brow and a smile. "I didn't know you had a band…I might have heard of it, who was in it again?" he asked.
"Well, I'm in it." I said.
"So am I." Jeff stated.
"Me too." Peewee added.
"Me three." Spike also added.
"Ok, but there was one more…someone easily recognised...who was it?" Shining Armor said, he rubbed his chin as he tried to figure it out.
I was about to tell him before there was a bright flash of light and Discord appeared behind him. "ME!" he said loudly; causing Shining Armor to let out a small yell of fright.
He spun around fast to see Discord, he then glared up at him. "Oh, it's you…now I remember." He said before he spun back around to face the table.
Discord huffed. "Well, it's not pleasant seeing you again either." He said as he crossed his arms.
Twilight had a look of surprise on her face. "Wait, you two have met before?" she asked.
Shining Armor turned his head to face Twilight. "Dah, everyone can see this creep wondering around the castle with those dogs of his…as if he was up to something." he said clear enough for everyone to hear.
"I already told you, I've left that life behind. I've reformed, I'm not up to anything." Discord stated.
Shining Armor turned around and glared at him again. "Tell it to someone who's willing to believe any word you say." He said strongly before he turned back around to the table.
Discord growled down at him. "Oh, you wanna go? Then let's go." He said before he snapped his fingers.
With a flash of light, Discord was now wearing a pair of red shorts with red boxing-gloves on his hands. He lifted his fists up and trotted on the spot. "Put 'em up, put 'em up." he said with a glare.
I was confused by this, but I was gonna find out what was going on. "What's wrong with you two, why are you at each other's throats?" I asked.
With another flash of light, Discord's shorts and boxing-gloves disappeared before he pointed at Shining Armor. "He started it. I was walking through the castle, minding my own business, when guess-who showed up and attacked me." he said.
Shining Armor quickly spun around with an angered look on his face. "I did not, you liar."
Discord glared down at him. "You were pointing your spear at me." he stated.
"Because I thought you were up to your old tricks, Twilight told me all about you in her letters." Shining Armor stated strongly.
"Did she happen to mention that I changed my ways a few months ago, and did she also mention that I tried to protect Celestia from Thorn?" Discord asked with a raised eye brow.
"No, she didn't." Shining Armor stated.
Just then, Discord slivered under the table before he came back up beside Twilight. "Do you mind telling your dear brother that I'm not up to anything and that he's acting like a child." He said with his arms crossed again.
"I'm acting like a child? Says the one who likes to make it rain chocolate milk." Shining Armor said loudly.
Pinkie Pie then stood up with her front hooves on the table. "Hey, who doesn't like chocolate milk rain?" she said loudly.
Twilight then stood up too. "Everypony calm down." She ordered before she looked up at Discord. "Discord, stop making my brother get in a bad mood." She said, Discord just crossed his arms and huffed.
Twilight then looked at Shining Armor. "Shining Armor, stop jumping to conclusions about Discord. I'm sorry I didn't tell you he was reformed, I kept forgetting to add it into the letters I sent you." she explained.
"Yeah, he really has changed." I said hoping he'd believe the truth.
"Don't tell me you guys really believe Discord, he's just acting innocent so he can cause chaos again when he gets the chance." Shining Armor stated.
"Look, Shining…I know how you feel, I didn't believe it myself the first time. But he proved me wrong, he proved to me that he's really turned over a new leaf. So c'mon, give the guy a chance like we did." I said hoping he'd agree.
Shining Armor looked up at Discord who was giving him sad puppy-dog eyes while trembling his bottom lip, he then looked at us again. "I'm not sure, Matt…" he said.
Twilight then placed her hoof gently on Shining Armor's shoulder. "Please, for me?" she said while giving him puppy-dog eyes too.
Discord's eyes definitely didn't work on him, but Twilight's eyes…well, he just couldn't refuse to them. Shining Armor let out a sigh before he gave Twilight a small smile. "Ok, Twily. I'll give him a chance, but this doesn't mean I trust the guy." He stated.
Me and Twilight smiled at this news. "That's ok, just as long as you'll try." Twilight said.
Shining Armor chuckled. "Well how could I say no? You used those big eyes of yours on me." he said before he turned his attention to me.
"I swear, her eyes are enchanted. When she was just a filly, she use to use them on our Dad just to get some cookies before dinner." Shining Armor said as he tussled Twilight's hair with his hoof.
I let out a small laugh as I looked at Twilight. "You did not." I said.
Twilight smirked. "I sure did, he use to fall for it every time. Ha, he use to get in so much trouble with our Mom. Haha." She laughed.
We all shared a small laugh at this before Discord came up between me and Twilight and wrapped his arms around us. "So now that everyone is all friendly, what's say we get this party really started?" he said before he snapped his fingers again.
With another flash of light, the entire room turned into a disco ring. The floor was flashing different colours while a disco-ball hung on the ceiling, I was in so much surprise that I didn't notice the rollerblades on all four of my hooves.
"What the friv just-WHAA!" I yelled as I slipped and fell to the floor.
I leaned up on the floor to see that everyone was wearing rollerblades and they rolled around as they were struggling to keep their balance. Even Spike, Jeff and Peewee were wearing rollerblades, only they were wearing smaller than ours.
I slowly got back onto my hooves and wobbled as I tried to keep myself from slipping again. As I stood there in a struggling state, Discord with rollerblades on his feet rolled past me while skating like a pro, he was even wearing a rollerblade on his tail.
"What's wrong, Matt? Never heard of Disco Rollerblading before? Or as I like to call it, Discord Rollerblading." Discord said as he skated around me.
As I continued to struggle to stand in place, I noticed Twilight across the room starting to slip and I managed to get to her just in time to catch her.
As Twilight tried to get back up, Shining Armor slowly rolled past us while keeping perfectly still. "Are you still sure about this guy?" he asked.
With that, I looked at Discord with a serious look. "Alright, Discord. You've had you fun, now turn it back."
"Are you kidding?" a voice said. We looked where it came from to see Pinkie Pie skate across the room, she was as good as Discord. "The shop's never been this much fun before, why change this back? Weeee!" she said as she skated away with a large smile.
"For once, I actually agree with her." Rainbow Dash said as she also skated past us.
"Normally, I don't go along with Discord's shenanigans. But I have to admit, this is more enjoyable than what we previously planned. We were looking for a good source of entertainment anyway, why not spend our Friendship Anniversary rollerblading?" Rarity asked as she started to skate gracefully across the floor.
Me and Twilight looked at each other before she let out a sigh. "Fine, we'll skate for a while. But once we're done, Discord has to turn the shop back to normal." Twilight said strongly.
At that moment, Discord skated by use. "Deal." He said, he then jumped in the air and spun around a few time before landing back down on his skates.
Me and Twilight took it slow as we began to skate along the floor, we'd always catch each other if either of us slipped.
Even though Shining Armor was still getting the hang of skating, he still held his suspicions over Discord.
That night: Town Square
After celebrating Twilight's Friendship Anniversary, Discord changed Sugar Cube Corner back to normal and we set off to the Moon Festival.
The clear sky was black with sparkling stars and the full moon, the Festival was being held in the Town Square and everypony in town was there.
As we all entered the Town Square, with Discord along with us, I noticed a large stage in front of the Town Hall, that must be were me and the other guys would play our song.
I also saw a long table full of food and drinks, there was a large round yellow cake in the middle of it. Twilight told me what that cake was earlier today, she called it The Moon Cake. It's supposed to be the Festival's main cores.
Some of the ponies were playing the games they had there, some were playing a ring-toss game, the pumpkin-launching game, and a strength game.
As we got further into the Festival, Twilight smiled as she admired her surroundings. "Wow, it all looks so wonderful. Hard to believe it was only last year when we used the Elements for the first time to bring Luna back." She said.
I looked at her with a raised eye brow. "So this must be the first Moon Festival ever, right?" I asked.
Twilight turned her head to face me and nodded. "Yeah…anyway, what should we do first? We still have half-an-hour left before your show." She said.
With that, I looked around at all the games to see if there was any that I'd like to play. I then looked over to the Pumpkin Launching game and it caught my interest.
"How about we play that Pumpkin Launching game? I've always wanted to try that one." I said.
Everyone looked over to it and Shining Armor smiled. "Ok, I'll try that too. Looks easy, kinda reminds me of the catapults back up in Canterlot, I always was good at using them." he stated.
I looked up at him with a smirk on my face. "Oh yeah? Think you can beat me?" I said.
Shining Armor looked down at me and smirked back. "Are you challenging me?" he asked.
I nodded. "Yeah I am. In fact, I challenge you to this game, the ring toss, and the strength game." I said still smirking.
Shining Armor rubbed his chin with an interested look on his face. "Interesting, what's the prise when one of us wins?" he asked.
"Nothing, it's just a little fun. What's wrong? Scare of losing…Shiny?" I teased.
Shining Armor chuckled. "Oh, now you're gonna get it. You're so on, let's see if the Captain of the Guards can beat the Hero of Canterlot in a few games?" he said before we both headed over towards the Pumpkin Launching game.
Twilight and the others watched us as we walked away from them. "…Wow…they've only known each other for a few hours and they're already competing against each other." Twilight said with slight amusement.
"Well, at least they're doing it out of fun instead of aggression. I can't imagine what would happen if they were getting at each other's throats." Rarity stated.
Twilight turned her head to face her. "Neither do I, and I try not to think about it." she said before they all started to follow us towards the game.
Meanwhile, Shining Armor and I had already been set up with our catapults loaded with one pumpkin. Our targets were not far away, but far enough to make it a bit difficult to hit. Twilight and the others finally joined us and watched.
"Ooooh, this is so exciting." Pinkie Pie said with excitement with a box of popcorn in her front hooves, she then dipped her head into it and started eating the popcorn inside.
Me and Shining Armor faced each other with grins on our faces. "Ready, Matt?" Shining Armor asked.
"You bet your ass I am." I answered before we both grabbed our catapults with our front hooves and pulled them back. I could feel the catapult getting harder to bend back, it was clearly ready to fling the pumpkin off into the air.
"C'mon, Matt. Show this guy how it's done." Jeff called from Twilight's back.
Me and Shining Armor looked at each other for one last time before we both released out catapults and they flung the pumpkins off in the air towards our targets.
We all kept our eyes of Shining Armor's pumpkin, seeing how it was ahead of mine. We were all surprised to see the pumpkin spatter directly on the target, earning a cheer from the small crowd. Shining Armor definitely looked pleased with his success.
We all then turned our attention to my pumpkin, I was disappointed and embarrassed to see it fly high above the target and land somewhere far away into the Ever Free Forest.
This earned a few small laughs from the crowd, but I wasn't bothered by it because I found it funny myself.
At that moment, Shining Armor came over to me while laughing slightly. "Haha, nice shot, Matt. That pumpkin flew clear out of Ponyville, who knows where that think could've gone." He said.
I gave him a small smile. "Hopefully nowhere important." I said.
Shining Armor nodded. "Yeah, ready to play the next game?" he asked.
I smirked at him. "Totally, but don't think you'll win this time." I said.
"We'll see about that, tough guy." Shining Armor said before he started to head over to the ring toss game; leaving me and the others watching him walk away.
Twilight came up beside me, I looked over to the splattered pumpkin on the target before I looked at Twilight. "Well then, he wasn't joking when he said he was good with a catapult." I said.
Twilight smiled. "Trust me, Matt. He's used more than a catapult in his years as the captain of the guard. By the way, why are you two competing against each other anyway? Are you two trying to prove something like Rainbow Dash and Applejack once did?" she asked.
I gave her an honest smile. "Don't worry, Twi. We're just having a bit of fun with each other, it's not like we're trying to prove who's the best." I said softly.
"Well…ok, just as long as you two don't get swept up in the competition." Twilight said.
I nodded. "We won't, now let's get over to the ring toss before Shining Armor wins again." I said before we all started to head over to the game to join up with Shining Armor.
As we did, Discord hovered beside Pinkie Pie and looked down at her with excitement. "Oh, this is going to be exciting. Matthew vs. Shining Armor, who will win?" he said.
Pinkie Pie returned his excited smile. "Only one way to find out." She said before they both hurried to watch us play.
For a few minutes, Me and Shining Armor continued to play the games for a while.
I was able to win the ring toss game and won a teddy bear. Seeing how me and Twilight didn't wanted it, I kindly gave it to Fluttershy and she was very thankful. She said it would keep her company at night when Angel was asleep.
Then came the strength game, where we would prove who was the strongest. I went first and managed to get a high score, but Shining Armor managed to hit the bell.
Our personal competition was over and Shining Armor was victorious, he won two games while I won one. However I wasn't troubled by this, it was only friendly fun and it didn't mean anything. I knew anyone could win those games, I just had bad luck.
Some of the ponies had set up round tables near the stage, they must've been set there for everyone to watch me up on stage with the guys.
While Twilight and the others were playing some more games, me and Shining Armor were taking a break and were now sat around one of the tables.
I sat beside Shining Armor as we all made small talk. "So, what was Twilight like back when she was a filly?" I asked.
"Well, she was very interested in how magic worked. When she watched Princess Celestia raise the sun in the Summer Sun Calibration, she was inspired to learn more about magic. That's how she became the Twilight you know now." He said.
I knew what he was talking about, he was talking about when Twilight gained her cutie mark and became the Princess's student. "Yeah, I know. Twilight's told me that." I said.
Then for some reason, Shining Armor's smile faded away. I noticed this and became concerned. "What's up, Shining?" I asked.
"Matt…can you promise me something?" Shining Armor asked.
I nodded slightly. "Sure, what is it?" I said.
"…Listen, I don't want you to think I have to wrong idea about you. I mean, you're a great guy and I see why Twilight loves you…but that's just the point, she loves you very much. She's a great girl and she deserves to be happy, so I want you to promise me you'll be good to her once you two are married." Shining Armor said with a serious tone.
I gave him an honest face. "Shining, I'm not that type of guy. I love Twilight as much as she loves me, and I'll do anything to make her happy. I promise, I'll be good to her for the rest of my life."
My serious look then turned into a small frown as my ears dropped. "She's the best thing that's ever happened to me…I'd never do anything to upset her…never." I said as I looked down at the table in front of me.
Shining Armor looked at me with concern before her placed his hoof on my back. "Hey…I didn't mean anything…I don't really know why I said that." He said.
I looked back up to face him. "Don't worry, you're just being a protective brother and I don't blame you for that. But I'm being serious, I'll give Twilight all the love she deserves, I will never hurt her…" I said in a slightly strong tone.
With that, Shining Armor smiled down at me. To my surprise, he caught me in a head-lock and started noogying my head. "I know you won't, lover boy." He said playfully.
I chuckled before I pulled myself out of his head-lock. "Haha, Ok…So we're cool?" I asked as I held one of my hooves out to him.
"We're cool." Shining Armor answered before we bumped our hooves together.
Suddenly. "Oh Matthew, here you are." A voice said behind me, I turned around to see the Mayor smiling at me.
"Oh hey, Miss Mayor. Let me guess, it's time for us to go on?" I asked while smiling back.
The Mayor nodded. "Yes, it is. Your show is to start in five minutes, you should get ready with your friends before you go up there." she stated.
"Don't worry, Mayor. We'll be ready in a flash, and I mean that literally." I said.
"Well alright then, good luck up there." the Mayor said before she walked away from our table.
I then turned my attention back to Shining Armor. "I should probably go tell the guys we're about to go on." I said as I stood up.
Shining Armor stood up too. "Yeah, and I'll go get Twily and her friends." He said.
I nodded before we both went separate ways to find everyone.
A few minutes later, I was up on stage with Spike, Jeff, Peewee, and Discord. We all stood in the sight of all the ponies watching us from the tables, including Twilight, Shining Armor and the rest of the main 6.
Discord had already zapped up the instruments, Peewee was handling the lights, and Jeff was ready to sing with me this time. We were all ready to go.
At that moment, the Mayor came up on stage and stood in front of a microphone on a stand, she tapped it with her hoof before she spoke into it.
"Welcome everypony to the Moon Festival music show, I hope you've all had a wonderful time celebrating the anniversary of Princess Luna's return to the throne. Now I am happy to introduce the band who will be performing for us tonight, please welcome The Bronies!" The Mayor announced.
With that, the Mayor stepped down from the stage as the crowd cheered. I could hear louder cheers coming from Twilight's table, Rainbow Dash placed the tip of her hoof in her mouth before she let out a loud whistle.
I stepped up in front of the microphone before I turned my head around to Jeff. "Ready?" I asked.
"Ready's my middle name." Jeff stated with a grin.
With that, I turned my head back around to face the microphone before I leaned my head to it. "Urr…thank you all for attending, I should probably warn you that the song we chose doesn't really involve the moon, but we still hope you enjoy it." I said.
Jeff turned around to face Discord before he pointed at him, telling him to start playing.
Discord nodded before he started playing his drum-set in a beat followed by a tune from Spike on his electric guitar.
Jeff walked up onto my head so we could share the microphone, I waited until my part before I leaned my head in front of the microphone again and began to sing.
Me: "Life's like the road that you travel on, there's one day here and the next day gone
Sometimes you bend, sometimes you stand, sometimes you turn your back to the wind
There's a world outside every darkened door, where blues won't haunt you anymore
Where the brave are free and lovers soar, come ride with me to the distant shore
We won't hesitate…to break down the garden gate…there's not much time left today, yeeeah."
Me and Jeff: "Life is a highway…I wanna ride it all night long…
If you're going my way…I wanna drive it all night long…"
Me: "Through all these cities and all these towns, it's in my blood and it's all around
I love you now like I loved you then, this is the road and these are the hooves
To Mozambique to those (With Jeff) Memphis nights
The Khyber Pass (With Jeff) to Vancouver's lights
Knock me down and back up again, you're in my blood and not a lonely colt
There's no load I can't hold, a road so rough, this I know
I'll be there when the light come in, just tell 'em we're survivors."
Me and Jeff: "Life is a highway…I wanna ride it all night long…woow
If you're going my way…I wanna drive it all night long (All night loooong)
Life is a highway…I wanna ride it all night long…
If you're going my way (If you're goin' my way)…I wanna drive it all night long (All night loooong)
…there was a distance between you and I,I,I,I, (Between you and I)
A misunderstanding once…but now, we look it in the eyyyyye…ooooh, yeah."
(Spike's guitar solo)
Me: "There ain't no load that I can't hold, a road so rough, this I know.
I'll be there when the light comes in, tell 'em we're survivoooors."
Me and Jeff: "Life is a highway…I wanna ride it all night long (All night long, yeah)
If you're going my way…I wanna drive it all night long…yeah
Life is a highway (Life is a highway)…I wanna ride it all night long. Oooooh, yeah
If you're going my way (You're going my way)…I wanna drive it all night long (All night long, yeah)
Life is a highway…I wanna ride it all night long (Yeah, I wanna drive it all night long, baby)
If you're going my way (You're goin' my way)…I wanna drive it all night long (All night loooong)"
(Spike's last guitar solo)
Once Spike finished his solo, the song was over and everypony cheered loudly. Especially Twilight's table, Shining Armor looked very impressed.
As the crowd continued to cheer, my face burned with embarrassment as I tried to hide it with a smile. I always did get embarrassed when I was up on a stage with everyone watching me.
"Thank you, and enjoy the rest of the Festival." I said into the microphone before we all walked off the stage.
Twilight, Shining Armor and the others then came up to us as we stepped off the stage. "Wow, Matt. That was great, didn't know you had it in you." Shining Armor said in an impressed voice.
"Hey I sang too, you know." Jeff stated while still standing on top of my head.
Shining Armor turned his attention to him. "Oh, yeah…good pipes." He said as if he didn't have anything else to say.
Just then, Pinkie Pie hopped up in front of me. "Wow, Mattie. That was totally awesome, it was better than the last song you played with the band, or was the last song you played better than this one? I can't remember, it was soooo long ago. But still, you rocked up there." she said with another large smile.
I smiled back. "Err…thanks, Pinkie. I'm glad you enjoyed it." I said.
Suddenly, Rainbow Dash shot up between us with an irritated look on her face. "Yeah, yeah, we all know Matt's band is cool. Can we please go back to playing in the Festival now? It's almost over." She said.
Applejack rolled her eyes. "Cool ya jets there, Rainbow. We're still talkin' to Matt and the rest of the guys." She stated.
I looked over to Applejack and waved my hoof. "Nah, you lot go right ahead and enjoy yourselves. Do let us hold you back." I said kindly.
A large smile appeared on Rainbow Dash's face. "Yes!" she cheered before she shot off to play in the Festival.
Fluttershy then looked at me. "Are you sure you don't want us to stay with you?" she asked.
I nodded. "Yeah, you go have fun. I'm gonna spend some personal time with Twilight." I said before I looked over to her. "Wanna go play that Pumpkin Launching game again, Twi? Maybe I'll hit the target this time." I said.
Twilight smirked at me. "Yeah, maybe." She said.
I smirked back. "Oh, you think I can't do it? Well let's find out, shall we?"
Twilight's smirk turned into a small grin. "Oh yeah, but there's only one thing you have to do first…you gotta beat me there if you want the first turn." She stated before she galloped passed me.
I watched her with amusement before I looked at Shining Armor and the others. "Gotta love her." I said before I galloped after her.
Suddenly, Rarity noticed a few shopping stalls across the Town Square. She saw that one of them was selling a bunch of different jewels and smiled with a twinkle in her eyes. "Oh, look at those gems. They would look gorgeous on my designs." She thought.
She then turned her attention to the others. "You all carry on without me, I'm going over there to observe those delightful looking jewel they're selling." She stated while pointing at the stall with her hoof.
Once he heard that word, Spike gave her his full attention. "Jewels?" he said to himself before he shot up beside Rarity. "Mind if I join you?" he asked her.
Rarity smiled down at him. "Why of course you can, it's nice to have a little friendly company with me while I do my shopping." She said before they both headed over to the stalls.
It wasn't long before everyone else went off to enjoy the rest of the Festival; leaving Shining Armor alone with none-other than Discord by his side.
They both looked at each other before a large grin grew on Discord's face. "Hey, the arcade's near-by, wanna play a few rounds of air-hockey?" he said.
Shining Armor looked up at him with a raised eye brow.
"I won't use any magic, I promise." Discord stated before a halo appeared above his antlers.
Shining Armor gave it some thought before a smirk came on his face. " You're on, but we have to be back later. I don't want Twily to think I left without saying goodbye." he said.
Discord's halo disappeared before he smiled with delight. "Don't worry, we will. And I'll get us to the arcade in style." He stated before he snapped his fingers and they both disappeared in a flash of light.
The next day: Ponyville train station
After spending the night at our house, Shining Armor was now ready to go back up to Canterlot to continue his duties as captain of the guards.
Discord had already gone back up there, so we didn't have to worry about him.
Me, Twilight and Spike walked Shining Armor over to the train station to catch the next train up to Canterlot. Jeff and Peewee were once again left in-charge the library, they didn't really want to come anyway.
We stood in the station's platform as we said our goodbyes to Shining Armor, Twilight went up to him and they both shared a loving hug. "Oh, I hope you come back soon." She said as she hugged him.
"Don't worry, Twily, I will. The Princess doesn't keep me on duty every day." Shining Armor stated before they separated from each other.
"Will you be back to attend our wedding?" I asked.
Shining Armor turned his head to face me. "Trust me, nothing will keep me away from being there." he said before he looked back down at Twilight. "Mom and Dad will be there too, so don't worry about it, we'll all be there." He said.
Twilight smiled warmly at him. "I know…I love you." she said.
"I love you too, Twily." Shining Armor said sweetly.
I couldn't help but smile warming as I saw them hug again.
"Everypony all aboard for Canterlot." The conductor yelled before the other ponies on the platform headed into the train.
Twilight and Shining Armor separated "You better get going, you don't want to miss your train." Twilight said.
Shining Armor nodded before he looked down at Spike standing beside Twilight and tussled his head. "See ya, Spike." He said.
"See ya, Shining Armor." Spike said.
Shining Armor then finally turned his attention to me. "See ya, Matt…keep up the good work." He said.
I nodded. "I will." I said before I wrapped my arm around Twilight and pulled her closer to me.
With that, Shining Armor smiled before he turned around and walked towards the train before he got into it.
We watched as he poked his head out of one of the train-car windows and waved to us, I removed my hoof from Twilight as we waved back. The train then started to move.
We stayed in the platform until the train was far away from the station. I let out a small exhale before I looked at Twilight beside me, she had a small frown on her face before I placed my hoof on her shoulder.
"It's alright, we'll see him again. And he'll definitely be here for our wedding, I'll make sure of it." I said trying to help her.
Twilight looked at me and smiled sweetly. "It's ok, Matt. I know he'll come…anyway, we should get home, you still have more spells to learn." She said.
I nodded. "Lead the way…Twily." I joked.
Twilight giggled at what I said before we all walked towards the steps on the left side of the platform. Once we got off the platform, we headed back towards town to go home.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
The song I used is called "Life is a Highway" from the Pixar animated movie "Cars" I do not own anything.
Pony News: Episode 13 has been announced, the name of the episode is "Magical mystery cure" here's the summary.
"When Twilight casts a spell that switches the Cutie Marks and destinies, the only way to reverse the spell is by writing her own magic."
I wonder how this one will turn out, we won't know until February 16th.
Anyway, you'll be glad to know that the next chapter will finally be the wedding chapter.
If you have any title ideas for the chapter, please let me know in a review or a PM. hope you're all looking forward to it.
Please remember to review.
Next chapter will be up soon.
41. Chapter 41: A wedding to remember
Well everypony, this is it. The chapter you've all been waiting for, I've been waiting to write this since I started.
I'd like to dedicate this chapter to 2 of my faverate readers. ShiningShadow1965 and Biggmomma46, who are also going to get married someday. The date of their wedding is still unknown, but let's wish them the best :D
Anyway, on with the chapter. Please enjoy!
Chapter 41: A wedding to remember
It's been a week since the Moon Festival and it was finally the day that Twilight and I have been waiting for, our wedding day.
The altar was ready in the gazebo, the decorations were up in the Town Square, and everyone was getting ready to attend.
A few days ago, Princess Celestia gave us some magical paper. She explained that the paper can be sent to any world of our choice, I instantly knew why she gave it to us. Once we wrote a message on the paper, Spike burnt it and it hopefully teleported to England for my family to receive.
Ponyville Library
I was upstairs in the library getting ready to go to the gazebo, Spike and Jeff were with me. Seeing how I didn't have many suits, I decided to wear my tuxedo that Rarity made for me a long while ago.
Spike was wearing a black tuxedo with a black top-hat, while Jeff was wearing nothing but a small black bow-tie.
I sat in front of the mirror while Spike examined how I looked, he rubbed his chin as he looked up at me. After a second, he reached up to my neck and adjusted my black bow-tie.
After he finished, he smiled with satisfaction before he released my bow-tie. "There, all perfect." He said.
I looked down at him with a slightly worried look. "Are you sure? How does my suit look? Is my collar straight? Please tell me there isn't a stain anywhere!" I said as I looked around my body.
"Don't worry, I've made sure there's nothing wrong with your suite. Trust me, you look fine." Spike stated.
I gave him a thankful smile. "Thanks, Spike. I appreciate this, I really need to look good today." I said in a slight nervous tone.
Spike smiled back. "Don't mention it, Matt. I still can't believe it, you and Twilight are finally getting married. It feels like forever since you proposed to her." He said.
I nodded in agreement. "I know how you feel, Spike. It feels like we've been waiting years for this day, and now that it's finally come…I don't know what to do." I said.
At that moment, Jeff flew off the bed and landed on Twilight's make-up desk in front of me, he looked up at me with his wings crossed. "What do ya mean you don't know what to do? You've been talkin' about this day none-stop for months, please don't tell me you're gettin' cold hooves." He said.
I looked down at him. "Of course I'm not getting cold-hooves, I'm happy I'm marrying Twilight…I just can't believe it's finally here." At that moment, a joyful smile growing on my face. "I…I'm getting married…"
Jeff then smiled at me again. "And we're all very happy for you and Twilight. I may not know much about it, but I can tell when I see true love. And when I see you and Twilight together, I don't think there's any love more true." He said kindly.
I gave him a warm smile. "Thank, Jeff." I said.
Suddenly, there was a large flash of light before Discord appeared beside me; causing us all to flinch in surprise. Once we all saw it was him, we calmed down. "Discord, you know I don't like it when you do that." I said.
"Well how else do you expect me to make a good entry? Walk through the front door? Talk about boring. Anyway, it's time to focus on the real objective, how do you feel?" Discord asked.
I rubbed one of my front hooves against the floor as my ears lowered slightly. "…excited…but also kinda nervous." I admitted.
Discord waved his lion hand. "A common feeling for a groom, it's perfectly normal. Trust me, you'll feel fine once it gets started." He said.
"I hope so, Discord…so…have you seen Twilight yet?" I asked curiously.
Discord shook his head. "I'm afraid not, I'm not allowed to see her before the wedding." He answered.
I understood this and nodded "Yeah, me neither."
"You know, I'll never understand that rule. Why isn't the groom allowed to see the bride before the wedding? I mean, what's the point?" Jeff said out-loud.
Spike turned his head to face him and shrugged. "It's a wedding thing, I'd just go with it." he said.
Just then, Peewee flew in from the open window and landed on the bed. We all turned our attention to him, he looked slightly out of breath. "Peewee, are you ok?" I asked with concern.
Peewee looked up at me. "Matt…everything at the altar is ready…all the guests are starting to arrive…you better get over there." he said between breaths.
My eyes went slightly wide as I felt my nervousness grow. "Wait, you mean…it's time?...already?...as in, this minute?" I asked slightly loud.
Discord then smiled with delight. "Oh, this is just too exciting. I best wear my good suit." He said before he snapped his fingers.
With a flash of light, a light blue tuxedo with golden buttons and a white collar appeared on Discord's body. He then reached down and took Spike's top-hat. "Hey!" Spike yelled.
Discord held Spike's hat upside-down before he reached into it with his talon hand and pulled out another top-hat. But instead of black, it was light blue to match his suit. "Ta-da." Discord said with an amused smile.
Spike crossed his arms as he gave Discord an annoyed look. "Yeah, neat trick. Now give me back my hat." He demanded.
Discord looked down at him with his eye-lids half shut. "Oh yeah, here." he said before he gave Spike his top-hat back, Spike then placed it back on his head.
Discord put his own top-hat on before he turned his attention back to me. "So, is the groom ready for his big day?" he asked.
I could feel my body temperature rise as I became even more nervous. "Umm…I…I guess so." I said nervously.
"Ok then, come on." Discord said before he flapped his wings and flew down the stairs.
While Spike and Peewee followed him, Jeff looked at me and noticed the troubled look on my face.
He flew down beside me and placed his wing on my right leg, I looked down at Jeff to see his comforting smile. "It'll be alright, you can do this." He said.
I smiled down at him. "Thanks, Jeff….well, we best get over there. I don't want to be late for my own wedding." I said before I lowered my right wing down for Jeff to climb up.
Jeff climbed up my wing on onto my back. "No, you don't." he said.
Now that I was finally ready, it was time to go to my biggest party ever.
I walked down the stairs with Jeff on my back. Once down stairs, Spike looked up at me. "You ready?" he asked.
I nodded. "…Yeah, I'm ready." I said as calmly as I could, Spike smiled proudly at me.
After that, we all walked towards the front door before we left the library. Once outside, we started walking to the gazebo where my wedding's going to be held.
Meanwhile: Rarity's boutique
While I was heading to the gazebo, Twilight was still getting ready at Rarity's boutique.
Rarity, Fluttershy, Applejack, Pinkie Pie, and Rainbow Dash were Twilight's brides-maids, so they were helping her to get ready for the wedding.
Twilight was inside one of Rarity's dressing rooms while the rest of the main 6 waited for her to try on the dress. "Is everything alright, Twilight? It's not too tight, is it?" Rarity asked.
"No, it's fine. I'm just trying to adjust some parts so it's on right." Twilight stated from inside the room.
"I hope you like it, Twilight. Remember when I bought all those jewels at the Moon Festival last week? Well I used those jewels as a finishing touch to your gown, do you like it?" Rarity asked hoping she would.
"Yeah, I love it, Rarity. I can't wait to see how it looks on me." Twilight said from inside the room.
While everyone was waiting for Twilight, Rainbow Dash let out a bored groan as she lounged on Rarity's bug red couch. "No offence, Twilight. But the thing about getting married is that you have to be at the altar, not in a dressing room." She said.
Applejack looked at her with a firm look. "Rainbow, don't rush Twilight on her wedding day. She can take as long as she needs to." She stated.
"It's alright, Applejack. I think I've got it right now…should I come out?" Twilight asked.
An excited smile appeared on Rarity's face. "Oh yes, Twilight. Come out and show us all how you look." She said.
With that, Twilight stepped out of the dressing room and everyone gasped at the sight of her. "…H-How do I look?" Twilight asked nervously due to her friend's sudden gasp.
Everyone was silent, they stared at Twilight with their mouths hanging open. Twilight soon began to become worried before Rarity spoke. "Twilight…you look…you look…"
"Wonderful." Fluttershy finished as her stunned look turned into a smile of awe.
Twilight's worry faded after hearing that. "You really think so?" she asked.
"Twilight, you look more than wonderful, you look absolutely stunning. Here, look." Rarity said before her horn glowed, a large mirror then moved from across the room and stopped in front of Twilight.
Once she saw her reflection, Twilight's eye's widened slightly before a cheerful smile grew on her face. "...Rarity…this dress is beautiful." She said.
Rarity moved the mirror away before she smiled warmly at Twilight. "Thank you, I've spent weeks trying to perfect it for you. This is your wedding and you deserve to look your very best." She stated.
Twilight smiled warmly at her friend as tears began to form in her eyes, she was touched by Rarity's kindness before she walked up to her and hugged her. "I don't know how to thank you for this." She said.
Rarity smiled as she hugged her back. "You don't need to, you just go to that altar and enjoy your big day." she said kindly.
Twilight and Rarity then broke the hug before Twilight wiped her small tears away. "Ok…so, do you think Matt will like my dress?" she asked.
Rainbow Dash then walked up beside her. "Are you kidding? Once Matt sees you in that dress, I wouldn't be surprised if his entire jaw falls completely off." She said.
"Umm…charming thought, Rainbow Dash." Rarity said with a raised eye brow.
"I have to say, Twilight. Matt is one lucky guy, you look prettier than stars on a crystal-clear night." Applejack said kindly.
Twilight turned her head to face her. "Thanks, Applejack…but I have to admit, I feel kinda nervous about all this." She admitted.
"Oh, don't worry. I feel nervous all the time, but things always turn-out good in the end." Fluttershy said trying to make her feel better.
"Fluttershy is correct, there's nothing to be afraid of. In fact, my own mother once told me that she herself felt nervous on her wedding." Rarity stated.
Twilight turned her head to face her. "Really, what happened?" she asked curiously.
"Twilight, what do you think happened? Once she was with my father on the altar, everything turned-out well and now they live a happy life together, just like how you and Matthew will." Rarity said.
Twilight smiled sweetly at Rarity. "I know we will…I love Matt more than I've ever loved anyone…As long as we're together, we'll always be happy." she said.
"Aww, that's so romantic." Fluttershy said to her.
Just then, an idea came to Rarity which made her smile with joy. "Wait, we still have half-an-hour before the wedding starts. This gives me enough time to adjust you with some perfume." Rarity said before she hovered a bottle of perfume in front of Twilight.
She sprayed the perfume all over Twilight; causing her to cough from the perfume filled air. Once Rarity stopped spraying the bottle, Twilight waved one of her hooves to try and clear the air.
"Perfect, now you look and smell divine. Is there anything else we need to add before we head over to the gazebo?" Rarity asked.
Once the air was clear enough, Twilight placed her hoof back down on the floor before she spoke. "No, thanks. I think I'm all ready to go, is there anything we can do to before the wedding starts?" she asked.
Everyone thought about it before Rarity spoke. "Well, I guess we could have a cup of tea. As long as you don't spill any on your dress." Rarity said.
"I'll try not to, but I know a cleaning spell I can use if I do end up making a mess. Anyway, a cup of tea could be just what I need to calm my nerves." Twilight said.
Rarity nodded before she turned her head around to face the others. "Do you girls want any?" She asked.
They all shook their heads. "Nah, we're good. Personally, I don't really like the stuff." Applejack stated.
"Soot yourself." Rarity said before she walked towards her kitchen with Twilight following behind; leaving the rest of the main 6 in the living room.
Half-an-hour later: Ponyville gazebo
The wedding was finally ready to begin. There were two rows of pews set up in front of the altar while beautiful flowers hung from the entrance of the gazebo.
Rainbow Dash managed to put in a good word with the other Pegasi and they've moved all the clouds away from Ponyville, so now it was a gorgeous sunny day with clear skies.
The altar was set up under the gazebo, so Twilight and I could be in the shade when Princess Celestia marries us.
I was standing under the gazebo on the right side of the altar, I shifted my front hooves nervously as I waited for the wedding to begin. As my best man, or in this case best parrot, Jeff stood beside me.
Spike was our ring-bearer, so he stood beside Jeff while holding a blue pillow in his hands. Two golden rings were lying on the pillow he was holding, one of them was the same ring I gave to Twilight when I proposed to her.
Seeing how I was a Pegasus, my ring wouldn't be able to go on anywhere. So my ring was attached to a chain that would go around my neck like a necklace.
All the while, Princess Celestia stood behind me. She had a calm look on her face as we waited for Twilight to arrive.
While we did, I couldn't help but look around at the pews to see all our guests.
On the right side, My family sat in the front row as they smiled at me. I looked closely at my sister, Jess, to see she was wearing the amulet that allowed them to come to this world.
To my surprise, they were sitting next to Twilight's family. Crescent, Star, and Shining Armor smiled at me as well.
I also noticed Twilight's pet owl, Owlicious, was standing in an empty space next to Shining Armor.
Twilight explained to me that she had lent Owlicious to Shining Armor before he left to do his duties in Crydo Village, Owlicious went with Shining Armor to help him. That explained why Owlicious wasn't here for all those months.
I looked around at the other guests to see Granny Smith and Big Macintosh, Rarity's parents, Zecora, Derpy, Spitfire and Soarin', Cheerilee, Mr and Mrs Cake, Fancypants and Fleur de Lis, and many other ponies I've met.
I also saw Luna, Discord, the Diamond Dogs, and Philomena sitting near the back.
Luna then noticed me looking at them, she gave me a small smile as she waved to me. I waved back to her before I continued to wait for Twilight.
Jeff looked up at me and saw my nervous face, he leaned his head over to whisper up to me. "You ok, dude? You look a little funny." He said.
I looked down to him. "I'm really nervous, Jeff. I mean, it's been almost an hour and Twilight isn't here yet." I whispered.
Jeff rolled his eyes. "Dude, you worry too much. Just relax, everything's gonna be fine." He stated. At that moment, the rest of the main 6 entered the ceremony and walked towards us.
"Look, here come the girls now." Jeff said pointing at them.
I looked to where he was pointing to see Rarity, Rainbow Dash, Pinkie Pie, Applejack, and Fluttershy walking up to me. They were all wearing lovely dresses for the wedding, Rarity must've made them while she was making Twilight's dress.
Fluttershy was carrying a conductor's stick in her mouth, she must be planning to use it when her birds start sining.
Once they all reached the gazebo, they stood on the right so they wouldn't be in the way when Twilight comes down the aisle.
I looked over to them. "Is Twilight alright?" I asked in a whisper.
Rarity smiled at me. "Oh she's just fine, darling. She was a little nervous at first, but now she feels relaxed and ready to go." She stated.
I nodded to say I understood. "Ok." I said before I looked at Fluttershy. "Are you're birds ready to play the music, Fluttershy?" I asked.
Fluttershy placed her conducting stick on the ground before she nodded. "Yes, we've been practicing ever since I agreed to help with the music." She said with a smile.
I then smiled thankfully at all of them. "Hey…I just want to thank you for this, I know you've all worked really hard to put all of this together for us and I just want to let you know how thankful I am." I said kindly.
They all smiled warmly at me. "You're very welcome, Matthew." Rarity said.
"Yeah, don't sweat it." Rainbow Dash added.
"We just wanted you and Twilight to have the most perfect day ever." Pinkie Pie stated.
I just smiled warmly at them, I felt a lump in my throat as I thought about how much they've done for me and Twilight. I never had friends like this back in England, coming to Equestria has truly changed my life for the better.
Suddenly, I was broken from my train of thought when I noticed two peacocks standing at the end of the aisle, they each had their large tail-feathers spread wide out.
Fluttershy noticed them before she let out a small gasp. "Oh, it's time." She said to herself before she turned around to face a bird-stand with a row of different birds standing on it.
Fluttershy then picked her conducting stick up off the ground before she tapped the bird-stand with it.
As Fluttershy started to wave it up and down, the birds started to sing the tune "Here comes the Bride". Once the music started, everyone in the pews turned their heads around to face the other end of the aisle where the two peacocks stood.
I also looked at the two peacocks before they slowly closed their tail-feathers to reveal the most beautiful sight I've ever seen, Twilight in her wedding dress.
Her entire dress was purl white, the small robe she dragged from behind had a row sparkling yellow jewels going down the middle from her waist to the end of the robe. The golden fabric belt around her waist also had yellow jewels on it.
She wore a golden slipper on each hoof (almost like the ones that Princess Celestia wears). The chest area of her dress had a velvet jewel attached to it, the jewel had been cut into the shape of her cutie mark.
And finally, she had a see-through veil hanging at the back of her head with yellow flowers attached to it.
My jaw dropped at the sight of her, Applejack had to come over to me and push my jaw back up before she returned to where she was.
"…Whow…" I said under my breath in awe.
At that moment, Applebloom, Scootaloo, and Sweetie Belle came up beside Twilight. They looked cute in their little dresses. They were each holding a basket of pink flower-petals in their mouths.
The girls started hopping down the aisle while leaving a trail of petals behind them, Twilight then began to walk down the aisle as the music kept playing.
As she did, everyone kept their eyes on Twilight as she came closer to the aisle. My eyes were glued to her as I felt my heart pound against my chest.
Once they reached the altar, the girls stepped out of the aisle and sat on one of the front pews before they watched the rest of the wedding.
When Twilight finally reached the gazebo, she joined me on the altar before the music stopped. Twilight stood beside me as she smiled sweetly at me, I returned the smile. "Twilight…you look so beautiful." I said.
Twilight blushed. "Thanks, Matt…and you look really handsome." She said.
Just then, Princess Celestia lowered her head down to us. "Are you two ready to begin?" she asked with a smile.
We both then nodded to Celestia before she moved her head back up, Celestia looked out at the crowd before she spoke.
"Mares and gentlecolts, we are gathered her today to celebrate the union of Twilight Sparkle and Matthew. They've proven that their love for each other is strong. Despite everything that's happened lately, they've never stopped letting their love bloom into what it is today." Princess Celestia said.
My mother started to tear up before she tried to find a tissue, Star noticed this before she reached into the pocket of her dress and pulled out a tissue. She held it to my Mother, she saw this and took it.
"Thank you." my Mother said before she wiped her tears away, they both then continued to watch the wedding.
As Twilight and I faced each other, Princess Celestia looked down at Twilight. "Twilight, do you take Matthew to be your beloved husband?" she asked.
Twilight smiled lovingly at me. "…I do..." she answered.
Celestia then turned her attention to me. "Matthew, do you take Twilight to be your beloved wife?" she asked.
I smiled lovingly back at Twilight as I looked deep into her beautiful purple eyes. "…I do…" I answered without taking my eyes off Twilight.
Over by Luna and Discord's pew, Fido burst out into emotional tears before Spot and Rover then looked up at him with awkwardness. Suddenly, Fido grabbed Spot and hugged him tightly.
As Fido continued to hug him, Spot let out an irritated groan.
"If there's anypony here who has a reason why these two should not be wed, speak now or forever hold your peace." Celestia announced.
Twilight and I then looked at everyone in the pews while hoping no one would say anything. After a few seconds, no one objected. Twilight and I exhaled in relief before we turned our attention back to each other.
Celestia smiled before she looked down at Spike. "May we have the rings please?" she asked.
With that, Spike came up to us and held the pillow up to Celestia. Her horn glowed before Twilight's ring and my necklace lifted up off the pillow and floated towards us, Twilight's ring hovered over her head before it slid onto her horn.
The necklace hovered over my head before it placed itself around my neck, I looked down at the golden ring hanging from the chain before I looked back up to Twilight.
We both smiled at each other before Celestia continued to speak. "I here-by pronounce you…mare and colt, you may now kiss the bride." She said.
With that, Twilight and I leaned forward towards each other before we shared a powerful and loving kiss. And with that one kiss, we would spend the rest of our lives together.
Everyone in both pews cheered as they clapped their hooves together. Spike placed the pillow down on the ground before he, Jeff, and Peewee started clapping along with them.
The rest of the main 6 cheered as they stomped their hooves on the ground.
Twilight and I separated before we once again smiled at each other, we both then turned to face the pews to see everyone cheer for us.
I looked over to my family to see them clapping their hooves together while smiling proudly at me, Twilight looked at her family to see them doing the same.
As everyone continued to clap for us, both our tails reached over and wrapped around each other. Twilight and I both blushed as we continued to look out to all our friends and family.
That night: Town Square
It wasn't long before the day turned to night, Luna's wonderful stars filled the clear sky while the moon-light shun down on Ponyville.
After the ceremony, we all headed over to the Town Square to begin the reception party, hosted by none-other than Pinkie Pie.
Thanks to Applejack's cooking skills, she and her family filled the food-table with apple-pies, apple-fritters, caramel-apples, apple-dumplings, and other food that mostly involved apples.
A while ago, Pinkie Pie had told Mr and Mrs Cake about our wedding and they took this opportunity to make a fabulous wedding-cake for us. And they really put a lot of effort into making it, the cake was over four-layers tall.
I stood by the food-table while holding a glass of apple-juice with my hoof. I was watching Twilight dance on the dance-floor with her father, I once hear than brides would to do that on their wedding day.
All the while, I couldn't stop staring at Twilight, she looked so amazing in her wedding dress. As I continued to watch her, I couldn't help but think about how we came to be here.
We've been through a lot of things together, Twilight became my closet friend when first arrived in Equestria, we've been through the good and the bad as our relationship grew into something magical. And now here we were, at the reception party of our own wedding.
Twilight was my wife and now I can spend the rest of my life with her. As I thought about it, I couldn't help but shed a single tear of joy, I couldn't be happier. I wiped the tear away before I continued to watch Twilight on the dance-floor.
To show Twilight how much I loved her, I was planning to sing for her later tonight…and I knew exactly what to sing.
Due to different musical sounds, the song I chose couldn't be played by the band. So I asked Vinyl Scratch if she'd help with audio sounds. She's kindly agreed to help and now everything was set
All I had to do now was wait until the right moment to go up onto the stage that was (once again) set up in front of the Town Hall.
Suddenly, I felt a hoof on my shoulder. I turned my head around to see my Dad with another proud smile on his face. "Hey, mate. How're you doing?" he asked.
I smiled back at him. "I'm great, Dad…in fact, I'm more that great, I feel like the happiest guy ever." I said.
My Dad chuckled. "Yeah, that's how I felt when I married your Mum….We're really happy for you, Matt…and we're proud of you." he said with a kind smile.
"Thanks, Dad." I said before we shared a nice hug, we then separated as Jess and my Mother came over to us.
Once they reached us, my Mother gave me a tight hug. "Oh, I can't believe my little boy is married." She said with joy before I hugged back.
Jess just looked at me with a smirk. "I still can't believe you got married before me, I'm the oldest you know." She joked.
Me and my Mother broke the hug and I looked at her. "Well, I guess I just got lucky." I said while smirking back.
Jess just smiled as she shook her head. "Cheeky beggar." She said.
Just then, we heard someone tapping on a microphone, we looked over to the stage to see Pinkie Pie in front of the microphone.
"Alright, everypony. Make room on the dance-floor for the bride and groom's first dance." Pinkie Pie announced.
With that, I turned my attention back to my family. "Excuse me for a minute." I said before I walked onto the dance-floor to join up with Twilight.
After I was gone, Discord appeared in a flash of light. He was wearing a waiter outfit while hold up a metal tray with his talon hand, the tray had cubed-fruit on it.
My family looked up at Discord before he brought the tray down to them. "May I interest any of you in cubed-fruit?" he asked with a grin.
My family just stared up at him with their mouths hanging open, they had never seen a creature like Discord before. Discord's grin faded. "What?...do I have a stain on my shirt?" he asked before he looked down at his white shirt for any stains.
Meanwhile, everyone cleared the dance-floor as I got closer to Twilight.
I saw Twilight and Crescent in the centre of the dance-floor, Crescent gave Twilight one last smile before he walked away from her; leaving me and Twilight as the only ponies on the dance-floor.
Once I reached Twilight, we both smiled at each other before I held my hoof out to her. Twilight gently placed her hoof on mine before we took a step closer to each other.
Vinyl Scratch then pressed a button on her stereo before waltzing music started to play, Twilight and I began to waltz to the music as we kept our eyes on each other.
Usually, I'd get embarrassed with all these eyes watching me dance. But I didn't notice them as I was too busy focusing on the beautiful pair of eyes in front of me, it was as if we were the only ones there.
Just then, Twilight placed her front hooves on my shoulders before she rested her head on the left side of my neck.
I smiled warmly at this before I wrapped my arms around her body, we both closed our eyes as we gently swayed left and right while holding each other.
"…I love you, Matt…" Twilight whispered.
"…I love you too, Twi." I whispered back as we continued to hold each other.
Everyone watched us with sweet smiles, my Dad wrapped his arm around my Mother and pulled her close to him.
Crescent did the same with Star as they watched Twilight dance with me.
As we continued to dance, I opened my eyes and looked over to Jeff and Peewee standing on the food-table, Spike was standing beside the table they were on. They all smiled before they waved at me.
I smiled as I waved back at them, I then closed my eyes again and continued to hold Twilight.
After a few more minutes, the music ended and we both separated, a part of us wanted to song to last a little longer just so we could hold each other again.
Once again, Pinkie Pie walked up on stage and got in front of the microphone. "Wow, that was a really touching dance. Let's hear it for Twilight and Mattie!" she said.
With that, everypony stomped their hooves on the ground as they cheered for us. Once they stopped, Pinkie Pie spoke again. "Alright, now guess what time it is…it's time to cut the cake, dibs on the first slice." She said in an excited tone.
Just then, Fluttershy came up on stage and whispered into Pinkie's ear. Once Pinkie heard what she said, she looked at Fluttershy with a raised eye brow. "Really?" she asked, Fluttershy nodded.
Pinkie Pie then spoke into the microphone again. "Urr, forget what I said before, apparently the bride gets the first slice of cake…dibs on the second slice then." She said.
Again, Fluttershy whispered into her ear and Pinkie Pie looked at her again. "Oh, c'mon. Are you serious?" she whispered loudly, Fluttershy nodded.
Pinkie Pie turned to the microphone again. "Ok, apparently the groom gets the second slice…" she said before she managed to form a small smile.
"Well, that's ok. I don't care which slice I get, just as long as I get one." Pinkie Pie said before she hopped off the stage with Fluttershy following.
We all then headed over to the food-table to cut the wedding cake.
Half-an-hour later
After cutting and eating the cake, Twilight and I were on dance-floor again with our friends. But instead of dancing, we were talking amongst each other.
Me, Twilight, and Spike were talking to Rainbow Dash and Fluttershy. I was starting to get a bit nervous because it was nearly time for me to sing to Twilight.
Vinyl Scratch was ready with the music, and I secretly had Big Macintosh get a piano up on stage, everything was set.
"So, where are you two going for your honeymoon?" Fluttershy asked.
"We're gonna stay at the castle in Canterlot, Princess Celestia's letting us stay in one of her suites while we're there. I think it's the same suite Rarity and Matt shared a while back." Twilight said.
A large smirk then grew on Rainbow Dash's face as she looked at Fluttershy. "Yeah, we've seen that room, remember? It's at the top of a tower…a high tower…In fact, I bet nopony could hear what they're doing all the way up there..." she said in a clear tone.
After a bit of thinking, Twilight and I understood what she meant and we both blushed deeply. "Well…umm…we're gonna…umm…" I said as I tried to think of something.
"Yeah, we're gonna…you know…umm." Twilight said as she did the same.
At that moment, Fluttershy looked at Rainbow Dash. "Rainbow Dash…umm…I think what Matt and Twilight do in their privacy is…umm…none of our business." She said.
Rainbow Dash kept smirking as she shrugged her shoulders. "Just asking, haha." She chuckled.
"Do you mind if we change the subject?" I asked hoping she would.
Rainbow Dash looked at me before rolling her eyes. "Fine…So what do you guys plan to do on your honeymoon?" she asked.
While Twilight answered her question, I decided that this would be the best time to preform to Twilight. I've already gone through the plan with Spike, I was gonna need his help.
I tapped Spike's shoulder before he looked up at me, I winked down at him to say it was time. Spike grinned and nodded to say he understood.
I then tapped Twilight's shoulder with my hoof before she looked at me. "Hey, is it alright if I go to the toilet? Spike needs to go too, so I'll take him with me." I said.
Twilight nodded. "Sure, go right ahead." She said.
With that, Spike and I walked away from her to get everything ready for my performance.
As Spike got up on stage, I walked around the stereos and whispered into Vinyl's ear. Once I Vinyl heard what I said, she looked at me and nodded.
With that done, I got up on stage to see Spike sitting in front of the piano on a stool. He turned his head around to face me before he stuck his thumb up; telling me that he was ready.
I nodded to him before I walked up to the microphone, I looked over to Vinyl and nodded to her. Vinyl nodded back before she pressed another button and the music stopped.
Everyone looked over to the stage to see why the music stopped, that's when they all noticed me on stage, including Twilight. "Matt? What's he doing up there?" she thought with confusion.
I then leaned my head towards the microphone before I spoke. "Ok, you're all probably wondering why the music stopped." I said.
"YES!" They all said at the same time.
This made me flinch a little before I continued. "Well, It's because I wanted to say something. I'd like to thank you all for coming, it's means a lot to me and Twilight. But that's not the only reason why I'm up here, I'm also up here because I want to do something special for the pony I love." I announced.
I then looked around until I finally found Twilight in the crowd, some of the ponies in front of her moved aside so I could see her better. "Twilight...this song is for you." I said with a sweet smile.
Once she heard that, Twilight gave me her full attention.
I turned my head around to face Spike before I nodded to him. He stuck his thumb up again before he turned around to face the piano, he then started to play it in a soft tune.
While he started to play, I looked over to Vinyl and nodded to her. She nodded back before she pressed another button on her stereos, they then started to play the music I asked for.
I waited until my part before I took a step closer to the microphone and started to sing for Twilight.
Me: "From the moment I saw you…from the moment I looked into your eyes
There was something about you…I knew…I knew…
That you were once in a lifetime…a treasure near impossible to find
And I know how lucky…I am to have youuuu
'Cause I've seen rainbows that could take your breath away…
The beauty of the setting sun that ends a perfect day…
And when it comes to shooting-stars, I've seen a view…
But I've never seen…anythiiiing…
…As beautiful as youuuu…
Holding you in my arms…no one else has fit so perfectly
I could dance forever…with you…with you…
And at the stroke of midnight…please forgive me if I can't let go
'Cause I never dreamed I'd find a Cinderella of my ooooown
And I've seen rainbows that could take your breath away…
The beauty of the setting sun that ends a perfect day…
And when it comes to shooting-stars, I've seen a view…
But I've never seen…anythiiiing…
…As beautiful as youuuu…
La-da-da, da-da, da-daaaaa…
Oooooh, hooooo
I've seen rainbows that could take your breath away…
The beauty of the setting sun that ends a perfect day…
And when it comes to shooting-stars, I've seen a view…
But I've never seen…anythiiiing…ooooh
No, I've never seen…anythiiiiiing…
…As beautiful as youuuu…"
I didn't take my eyes off Twilight as it came to the final verse.
"From the moment I saw you…form the moment I looked into your eyyyyyes…"
Once the song finished, everyone cheered loudly while stomping their hooves on the ground. Everyone except for Twilight, she just smiled lovingly at me with tears of happiness in her eyes.
I kept my eyes on Twilight as I stepped down from the stage and walked over to her. Once I reached her, Twilight took a step closer to me as she continued to smile.
"Matt…I can't tell you how much I love you right now." Twilight said sweetly.
I returned her sweet smile. "You don't have to, Twi." I said softly.
Twilight continued to smile at me before she leaped up and hugged me, I was surprised at first before I hugged her back.
"Awww." Everyone said, they all heart-filled looks on their faces as they watched us hug.
Celestia and Luna were also watching us, Celestia was cut off by the sound of a sniffing noise. She looked down to where the noise was coming from to see Luna with watery eyes.
However, Luna didn't look sad, she looked happy.
"Luna, are you alright?" Celestia asked with slight concern.
Luna looked up at Celestia before she wiped her tears away. "Oh, yes…it is just…I am just so happy for them, sister." She stated with a kind smile.
Celestia gave Luna a proud smile, she then wrapped her wing around Luna and pulled her closer to her. "So am I, little sister." She said.
The two sisters smiled warmly as they continued to watch me and Twilight hug lovingly.
Later that night: Ponyville streets
After a long night of partying, it was time for Twilight and I to leave the reception and begin our honeymoon.
Princess Celestia was had arranged at carriage to take us up to Canterlot, it wasn't long before it arrived in town.
The carriage was in the shape of a large sphere. It had a large diamond on top of it, the front and back wheels were set far apart from each other, and the side-doors where round.
There were four Canterlot guards harnessed to the front of the carriage, they were gonna pull it up to Canterlot.
Twilight and I had already packed our suitcases and they were now stored inside the carriage.
Once it was time to go, Twilight and I walked up to the carriage as everyone watched us leave.
As we got closer to the carriage, we noticed Celestia standing beside the side-door, her horn glowed opened before the door opened.
Once we reached the carriage, Celestia smiled at us. "I wish you both the best, have a wonderful time." she said kindly.
We smiled back at her. "We will." I said before we I climbed onto the carriage with Twilight, Celestia then closed the door behind us.
From the back window, we saw all our friends and family smiling and waving at us. "Have a nice time." Rarity called as she waved at us.
"Yeah. And don't worry about your job, Matt, Big Macintosh will fill in for ya while you're gone. Won't cha, Big Mac?" Applejack said as she looked at Big Mac standing beside her.
"Eeyup." He responded.
I smiled at them before I looked over to Spike, Jeff, and Peewee. "So, I guess this means we get the library to ourselves for a little while, huh?" Spike asked with a small grin on his face, Jeff and Peewee were also grinning.
I then smirked at them. "Nice try, But Shining Armor's gonna be looking after the library and you guys while we're gone." I stated.
The grins on their faces soon disappeared after hearing this. "And there goes our party idea." Jeff said under his breath.
With that done, Twilight and I were about to sit down before Twilight let out a small gasp.
"On my gosh, I nearly forgot." Twilight said, her horn glowed and the bookey of flowers lifted up off the carriage seat.
Twilight floated it up to her before she grabbed it with her front hooves, she then looked back out at the crowd.
Without any warning, Twilight closed her eyes and tossed the bookey towards the crowd. A large group of girls gathered 'round and It looked as though our old friend, Junebug, was gonna catch it.
But before she could. "IT'S MINE!" Rarity yelled as she pushed her way through the group to catch the bookey.
As Rarity was about to catch it, Fluttershy swooped over her and caught it in her mouth.
A look of disappointment came on Rarity's face before Fluttershy floated down to her. Being as kind as she is, she held the bookey out for Rarity to take.
Rarity's disappointed look quickly turned into a thankful one, she took the bookey before she let out a cheerful squeal. "Thank you, Fluttershy." She said.
Fluttershy gave her a kind smile. "You're welcome, you wanted it more than I did." She said.
Twilight and I smiled at this before I turned my head to face her. "So, you ready to go?" I asked.
Twilight looked at me and nodded. "Ready when you are." She stated.
With that, I went up to the front window of the carriage. I poked my head out of it to speak to the guards. "Excuse me, we're ready to go." I said loud enough for them to hear.
One of the guards turned his head around to face me and nodded. "Very well, sir." He said before he turned his head back around.
The carriage then started to move as the guards began to walk.
As we began to pick up speed, I went back to re-join Twilight at the back window. We both looked out to the crowd again before we started waving goodbye to them, they all waved back as we moved further away from them.
As we got further away from Ponyville, we noticed a few ponies doing something near some kind of box. We wondered what they were doing before a number of fireworks shot up to the sky and exploded in different colours.
Twilight and I watched in awe as more and more fireworks exploded in the sky. Just then, something else shot up to the sky, but it wasn't a firework.
Twilight and I squinted our eyes to see it better, we then saw that it was Rainbow Dash shooting up to the sky with great speed.
Twilight and I continued to watch Rainbow Dash before, BOOM, she performed a Sonic Rainboom the same time as more fireworks blew up. This must have been what she was planning to do for the wedding.
While Rainbow Dash landed back down on the ground, Twilight and I continued to watch the fireworks as the rainbow sonic-wave spread across the night sky.
Once Ponyville was out of sight, Twilight and I sat down on the carriage seat as the guards began to pick up speed.
I then moved closer to Twilight and wrapped my arm around her. "Well…here we are." I said.
"Together forever." Twilight finished as she smiled sweetly at me.
I gave Twilight a small kiss on her fore-head before she rested her head on my shoulder and closed her eyes.
I held Twilight closely as the guards continued to pull our carriage up towards Canterlot.
Later: Canterlot castle suite
After arriving at the castle, a guard escorted us to the tower where our suite was. And Twilight was right, it was the same suite Rarity and I once shared a while back.
Once Twilight and I got settled in the suite, we both agreed that it was time for bed.
We both undressed from our wedding clothes and placed them into our suitcases.
Twilight and I both came out of the bathroom after brushing our teeth, Twilight let out a small yawn. "I don't know about you, but I'm so ready to go to bed." She said.
"Me too, Twi." I said.
Just then, I thought up an idea that made me grin. "You know what I forgot, Twi? I was supposed to carry you up here before we got settle. I guess it's too late now, but I can do something else." I said.
With that, I flapped my wings before I lifted off the ground. I then surprised Twilight by scooping her up in my arms, Twilight quickly wrapped her arms around my neck to keep herself from falling.
"Whow…Matt, what're you doing?" Twilight asked.
"Well seeing how I can't carry you up the stairs, I'll just have to carry you to bed." I said before I flew over to the bed.
Twilight's surprised looked soon turned into a calm one. Once we reached the bed, Twilight used her magic to move the covers before I gently laid her down on the bed.
I then landed beside Twilight before she pulled the covers over us, we both laid our heads on the pillows as we looked at each other.
"I still can't believe we're finally married." Twilight said as she smiled lovingly at me.
I smiled back. "Neither can I, Twi…this has been the happiest day of my life." I said sweetly.
"Mine too…especially now that we'll always be together…now and forever." Twilight said still smiling at me.
We both felt a lump in our throats as we continued to smile at each other, we moved our heads forward before we shared one last deep kiss.
After a few seconds, we broke the kiss before Twilight rested her head beside mine. "I love you so much, Matt." Twilight said as she closed her eyes.
I smiled warmly as I wrapped my arm around her. "…I love you too, Twi." I said before I closed my eyes as well.
After a few minutes, Twilight and I fell asleep in each other's embrace. Ending the best day of our lives, the day that would be the start of something new for Me and Twilight.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
The song I used is the "Jim Brickman and Wayne Brady" version of "Beautiful as you". I do not own anything.
Please tell me what you thought of the song. If you have the time, go check it out on YouTube, it's sounds better if you listen to it.
Here's what the video's called "Jim Brickman feat. Wayne Brady – Beautiful" again, I don't own anything.
There's a reason why Cadence didn't appear at the wedding. And before you suspect anything, No, she hasn't been kidnapped by Changelings…yet. To find out why she didn't appear, you'll have to wait until the next chapter, sorry.
Pony News: There is some news, but it's a massive spoiler so I can't tell you. If you want to know, you'll have to PM me and ask, but do so at your own risk.
In other news, 26 Episodes for Season 4 confirmed. To find more news about it, look it up on Equestria Daily. If it's not on the first page, go on to the next one.
Please remember to review.
Next chapter will be up soon.
42. Chapter 42: The honeymoon
Hi, everypony.
As promised, I will now explain why Cadence didn't appear in the last chapter.
Remember in "A Canterlot wedding Part 1" where Shining Armor told Twilight that he was marrying Cadence? Well, Twilight sounded as though she hadn't seen Cadence since she was a filly.
And seeing how there's no proof of them seeing each other before the episode's events, that's what I'm going by.
So Cadence probably won't be seen until my Canterlot Wedding episode chapter, but I wouldn't get excited about it yet, it's a while away.
If I can come up with something, maybe Matt will meet Cadence early, but I can't promise anything.
So as always, please enjoy the chapter.
Chapter 42: The honeymoon
It's been 3 days since Twilight and I got married, and we've never been happier. Although, we haven't talked about having a special night yet.
The day after our wedding, Princess Celestia came to our suite and said she had a surprise for us.
We followed her through the castle until we came to a pair of double doors, Celestia opened them to reveal a Pool-side were ponies come to when they're on vacation.
Twilight and I were amazed by it, there was a large pool, massage beds, a drink bar, and a kidy-pool for young fillies and colts.
Celestia said we could relax here anytime we wanted while we were on our honeymoon, we both gave her our dearest gratitude for this wonderful gift.
And that wasn't the only thing she had for us, Celestia had also assigned one of her best and toughest guards to aid and protect us while we were in Canterlot.
His name was Blaze Horn, he was a unicorn guard. But unlike most of Celestia's guards, his coat was light-brown and his mane & tail were black, he had silver cross-swords for a cutie mark.
Despite being determined to fulfil his assignment, he was more loose and cheerful than the other guards. He was a very kind pony, Twilight and I got along with him just fine.
Canterlot Pool-side
Today was a warm sunny day, so Twilight and I decided to spend it at the Pool-side.
Of course, we weren't wearing our wedding rings anymore, we packed them away with our wedding cloths for safe keeping.
Twilight was sunbathing on one of the wooden sun-chairs, she was a few feet away from the pool so she wouldn't get splashed or anything like that.
While she was relaxing, I was on top of the high diving-board walking as carefully as I could across it. Once I reached the end of the board, I looked down to see how high up I was from the pool.
"Oh boy, what've I got myself into this time?" I said under my breath.
"What's wrong, Mr Matthew? Afraid of heights? That's kinda weird, seeing is how you're a Pegasus and all." Blaze Horn called while standing near the edge of the pool.
I looked down at him. "I'm not scared, I've just never used one of these things before." I stated.
Blaze chuckled. "Well there's a first time for everything, sir." He called with an amused smile on his face.
"Yeah, whatever." I responded as I slowly took a few steps back.
Once I was far enough back, I waited a few seconds before I rushed across the board and bounced off the end. I hugged my knees to form a cannonball before I fell down into the water with a big splash.
After a few seconds, I shot my head out of the water and whipped the water off my eyes, I breathed heavily as I tried to catch my breath. "Well done, Mr Matthew. If I had number cards, I'd give you a…hmm…solid eight." Blaze stated.
I smirked at him. "An eight? Ok then, tough guy. Let's see you do better." I said as I swam over to him.
Blaze shook his head. "No thanks, sir. I'm not exactly the swimming type. Plus, I'm on duty helping you and your wife." He stated.
When I reached the side of the pool, I climbed out of the water and shook myself dry. Once I was dry, I looked at Blaze. "You know, you work too hard. Why not take a break? Sit down for a bit, me and Twilight can handle things." I said kindly.
Blaze smiled at me. "That's very generous, sir. But I'm under order to aid you and Twilight. And as a loyal guard, I must stick by my orders and follow them." he stated proudly.
"Whow, get a load of Captain America over here." I thought in amusement.
"Ok, do what you want, Blaze." I said.
As I thought about going back in the pool, I moved my tongue around my mouth to feel it was dry. I then looked over to the drink bar before I looked at Blaze again. "Hey, I'm kinda thirsty, wanna get a drink at the bar over there?" I asked as I pointed my hoof at the bar.
Blaze looked over to it before he smiled and looked at me again, he gave me a small nod. "Alright, sir. Let's have a drink, maybe we can learn a bit about each other." he said.
I smiled at this before we headed over to the drink bar. When we reached it, we sat on the spinning stools before the bar-tender came over to us. "What can I get you boys?" he asked.
"A glass of apple-juice, please." I said politely.
"Same here, please." Blaze said.
With that, the bar-tender walked away to make our drinks. After a few minutes, he came back and placed them in front of us.
I then realised I didn't have my money with me. I looked over to the chair Twilight was resting on and saw my saddle-bags, I then looked at the bar-tender. "Just a sec, I'll need to get the money from my bag." I said.
But before I could move from my seat, the bar-tender spoke. "It's ok, they're on the house." He said kindly.
I was slightly surprised by this. "Really?...oh, thanks." I said.
The bar-tender waved his hoof. "Don't mention it, kid. Any friend of Blaze Horn, is a friend of mine." He stated before he walked away to attend another customer.
Once he was gone, I turned my head to face Blaze with a raised eye brow. "Sounds like you've made a name for yourself, Blaze. How come you're so popular around here?" I asked curiously.
Blaze looked at me and shrugged. "I don't know, maybe it's because I'm good friends with the Captain of the Guards or something." he said.
"You know Shining Armor?" I asked in surprise.
Blaze smirked. "You mean Shiny? Yeah, I know him. He and I go way back, we trained together with Midnight Gaze before we became guards."
Once I heard that name, my curious smile faded away. "…Oh…you knew Midnight?...Did you hear about what happened to him?" I asked.
Blaze nodded. "Trust me, Matt. Every guard in the castle knows about what happened to him, we all attended his funeral at Princess Luna's castle." He said before his ears dropped.
"It was hard for me and Shining Armor, we were friends with Midnight for many years. To most of the guards, we lost a dear friend that night…but to me, I lost a family member." Blaze stated sadly.
After hearing this, I couldn't help but feel sorry for him. "…I'm sorry for your loss, Blaze…By the way, where were you during Thorn's attack on the castle?" I asked.
"Before Thorn could take over the castle, he had to get to the throne room first. I was one of the first guards he knocked-out on the way there, I woke up some time later in the Canterlot Hospital. When I returned to the castle, I asked one of the other guards what happened after I was knocked out." Blaze explained.
"And what did he say?" I asked curiously.
A smirk then grew on Blaze's face. "He told me Thorn was stopped by a little green pony with a habit for annoying bad guys." He stated.
I chuckled at this. "And now you're having a drink with that little green pony." I said.
Blaze chuckled as well. "Haha, yeah." He said before his amused smile turned into a small frown. "I still wish I could've done something during the attack, I would've tried to help-out." He stated.
I then placed my hoof on his shoulder. "Hey, Thorn was a tough guy. You were lucky to get out of there, you're even lucky to be alive." I said.
Blaze nodded in agreement. "I know I am…I just wish I could've helped." He said before he managed to form a smile. "Anyway, the past is the past. It's time to move on to the future, like your future with Twilight." he said in a more cheerful tone.
At that moment, look over to Twilight who was still relaxing on the sun-chair before I turn my attention back to Blaze.
"I know…I still can't believe I'm married. Think about all the things we can do in our future together, where would we start?" I asked, I was still in slight amazement over the fact that I was married.
"Here's something, ever thought about having kids?" Blaze asked with a raised eye brow.
After hearing this, my eyes widened slightly. "Err...well, we almost had a...special night…but we decided to wait until we were married." I said.
"Well you're married now, so what do you do next?" Blaze asked before he grabbed his drink with his hoof and took a small sip of it.
I turned around to look over to Twilight again, I just stared at her as I thought it over. "Well…we did say we'd do it after we were married." I admitted in a quiet tone.
Blaze placed his drink back down. "And married couples usually do it on their honeymoons, so this maybe the best time to do it." he stated.
I continued to stare at Twilight as I thought about what he said, it would be good to do it while we were away from home. Our room was private, everyone knocks before entering, and I felt ready for it. "Well…I guess we could try, I'd have to ask her first." I said.
"Well, why not go over there and ask her now?" Blaze asked.
And within a few seconds, I felt confidence flow through my body. I turned my head back around to face Blaze. "You know what? That's exactly what I'm gonna do." I said.
I then grabbed my glass of apple-juice and drank the whole thing in a few gulps. When the glass was empty, I slammed the glass down and took some deep breaths. "Alright, I'm going over there."
With that, I jumped down from the stool and made my way towards Twilight. "Good luck." Blaze called before he took another sip of his drink.
As I got closer to Twilight, I saw that her chair was lying flat so she was looking up at the sky. She lied there with sun-glasses over her eyes and a warm smile on her face, I could tell she was enjoying her sunbathe.
Once I reached her, I walked around her chair until I was behind her head. I then leaned my head forward until my face was above hers; causing my shadow to block the sun from her face.
After a few seconds, her smile faded. "Excuse me, you're kinda blocking my light." She said before he horn glowed and her sunglasses tilted up to her fore-head.
Twilight then opened her eyes to see me smiling warmly down at her, her smile then returned. "Oh, hey Matt. What're you doing?" she asked.
I continued to smile down at her. "Oh you know, enjoying the view." I said.
Twilight giggled at my comment. "Well, maybe you'll enjoy this even more." She said as she placed both her front hooves on my cheeks.
Twilight then pulled my face down and we shared a deep kiss, it felt a little strange kissing her upside-down, but I didn't care.
We then separated before Twilight removed her hooves from my face, we smiled lovingly at each other before I moved around to the left side of her chair.
Twilight watched as I got onto chair with her and laid down on my back beside her, I wrapped my arm around her as we looked into each other's eyes. "Isn't this peaceful, Matt? Just you and me spending personal time together on this gorgeous day?" she said.
"Yeah." I answered.
Twilight then nudged closer to me and nuzzled her head against the side of my neck. Once she got comfy, she closed her eyes to enjoy the moment.
As I continued to hold her, I thought about what I was going to say to her. "I know she wants to do it, but how do I tell her? Ok, just say you're ready, and don't be too strong about it. It's easy, you can tell her you're ready to take the next step." I thought.
I took a quiet deep breath before I spoke. "…Twilight…" I said.
"Yeah?" Twilight responded as she kept her eyes close.
"I…I want to tell you something…I…I'm ready…" I said.
Twilight opened her eyes before she moved her head away from my neck and looked at my face. "Ready? Ready for what?" she asked curiously.
I was slightly surprised that she didn't remember. "You know…I'm ready to do it…what we said we'd do after we were married." I said.
At that moment, Twilight knew what I was talking about and blushed deeply. "Oh…y-you mean…you're ready?" she asked.
I remained silent as I nodded. "So…when do you want to do it?...Tonight?" Twilight asked.
I gave it some more thought before I nodded again. "I want to do it with you, Twi...I think this honeymoon is the best time to do it. No distractions, no interferences, just you and me on our bed." I said softly.
A small smile grew on Twilight's face before a thought came to her. "But what about Blaze? He'll be standing right outside the door of our suite." She said.
I gave her a comforting smile. "We'll send him away, we'll tell him we want some time alone, he'll understand." I said.
Twilight blushed again as she continued to smile at me. "Ok, Matt…we'll do it tonight..." She said before she wrapped her arms around me and held me tight.
I closed my eyes as I kept holding her, we felt relaxed as we continued to lie there in each other's embrace. We felt the heat from the bright sun warm our faces as we thought about what tonight would be like.
That night: Our suite
That night, we returned to our suite to begin our special night.
Just like said, we explained everything to Blaze and asked if we could have some privacy. Blaze understood and kindly went away, he said he had other business he needed to take care of anyway.
After he left, Twilight hung a sign outside on the front door. It read 'Do not disturb', somehow I can tell she's been planning this night for a while.
While Twilight was getting comfy on the bed, I was in the bathroom swilling my face with water as I thought of what I was about to do.
I leaned over against the sink with my head hanging above it, I felt the water drip from my face as I took steady breaths. After a few more breaths, I looked up at my reflection in the mirror. "Alright Matt…you can do this…she's your wife now, it's ok to do it with her." I said to myself.
As I tried to build confidence, an unsure feeling caused me to frown slightly. "But what if something bad happens? What if I hurt her somehow?" I said before I felt my confidence return.
"NO! You're doing it with her tonight, you promised her." I said strongly at my reflection.
"Matt, are you ok in there?" Twilight called from the bedroom.
I turned around to look at the open bathroom door. "Yeah, I'm fine. I'll be in there in a minute." I called before I turned around to face the mirror again.
"Well…here I go…" I said before I stepped down from the sink and headed over to the door.
Once I entered the bedroom, I saw Twilight lying in the bed with her chin resting on her left hoof. She fluttered her eyes as she smiled slyly at me. "Coming to bed, sweetie?" she asked.
I blushed deeply as I stared at her beauty, I made my way towards the bed while smirking at her. "Well, I've never seen this side of you before…but I think I like it." I said.
Twilight giggled. "I think you'll like it even more once we get started." She said slyly.
I was surprised by her sudden flirty attitude, I never thought I'd see someone like Twilight act like this…But who ever said I had a problem with it?
Once I reached the bed, Twilight's horn glowed before the covers on my side of the bed moved aside to let me in. I lied down on the bed with her before she moved the covers over me.
I continued to smile as I rolled on top of Twilight and she placed her hooves on my shoulders. "Alright, you naughty pony. Are you sure you're ready for this?" I asked.
Twilight smiled back as she nodded slightly. "More than you know." She stated.
We smiled lovingly at each other before I lowered my head down to her face, we both soon connected in a passionate kiss. Twilight's hooves moved from my shoulders to the back of my neck as we continued to kiss.
After a few seconds, we began to move faster. We both soon felt the irresistible urge trying to take over, but this time we weren't going to hold back.
The feeling was overpowering, I felt my wings desperately try to unfold while I was doing my best to keep them down.
We separated from the kiss to breathe. Once I caught my breath, I began to softy kiss Twilight's cheek; earning a small giggle from her.
But suddenly. *Knock, knock, knock!* someone knocked at the front door.
Twilight and I quickly looked over to the door to hear another knock, I then looked down at Twilight with confusion. "I thought you put a sign on the door." I said.
Twilight looked at me. "I did put a sign on the door." She claimed.
This made me even more confused, I looked over to the door again with an unpleased look. "Well who the hell's dumb enough to knock on a door with a 'do not disturb' sign on it?!" I asked in an irritated tone.
At that moment, the door opened to reveal Rover. "Room-service." He said with a large smile.
Once I saw him, I lowered my eye-lids half-way. "Now I feel dumb for asking." I groaned out-loud.
Rover stepped aside to allow Spot to push a food-cart through the doorway. The cart had two metal dome cloches on it, obviously they were covering our food.
"Guys, did you even notice the sign on the door?" I asked still feeling irritated.
Rover and Spot looked at the sign on the door before they looked at me. "Yes." They both answered.
"Well can you read?" I asked growing more annoyed.
They both looked at the sign again before they looked at me. "No." they both answer.
I couldn't help but face-hoof myself while letting out a groan. "Grr…ok, just…put the food over there." I said while pointing to the table on the other side of the room.
With that, Spot pushed the food-cart over to the table. When he reached it, he then removed the cloches to reveal two plates of steaming salads.
"Fresh cooked food for the new pony couple." Spot said as he placed the plates on the table.
Twilight and I could smell the food from the bed, it was giving off a wonderful sent that tempted us to eat it.
With that done, Spot turned around and pushed food-cart back towards the door. After he left the room, Rover looked at us with a raised eye brow. "Err…why are you two in bed?" he asked curiously.
Twilight and I didn't answer, we just gave him an annoyed glare before Twilight's horn glowed. Suddenly, the door slammed shut in Rover's face; locking him and others out.
Once that was done with, Twilight and I let out a small exhale. We then looked over to the food before we both slipped out of the bed and walked towards it.
Once we reached the table, we looked down at the food-filled plates in wonder. "Matt, why did you order room-service on our special night?" Twilight asked as she kept staring at the food.
I turned my head to face her. "Whow, hold up, I didn't order anything." I stated.
Twilight then looked at me. "Well, I didn't do it. And it didn't just order itself, so who did order it?" She asked.
I then looked down at the plates again before I noticed a small note lying on one of the plates beside the food. "Hey, there's a note." I said as I pointed at it.
Twilight looked down at it before her horn glowed, the note then lifted off the plate and hovered in front of her as she began to read it.
"Dear Twilight and Matthew.
I ordered this special surprise dinner for you both. Don't worry about paying, it is free in your honour. Just make sure you have a wonderful honeymoon.
Yours: Princess Celestia."
After Twilight finished reading the note, she looked at me again. "So the Princess ordered this for us? Why?" she asked in wonder.
"Looks like Blaze isn't the only one trying to make our honeymoon perfect." I said.
Twilight then placed the note back down on the table before she looked at the food again. "We're not gonna do it tonight, are we?" she asked with a disappointed look on her face.
I could tell she was upset by this, so I got closer to her and wrapped my wing around her. "Hey, it's ok. We still have a few days before we go back to Ponyville, there's plenty of time." I said softly.
Twilight then turned her head to face me. "So what should we do tonight?" she asked.
I gave it some thought before spoke. "Well we can't just leave this food to go cold, especially after the Princess ordered it for us. Plus, I am kinda hungry…and it does smell good. How about we eat this tonight and try again some other night?" I said.
Twilight was silent for a moment before she nodded slightly. "Ok, Matt…Rover and Spot kinda ruined the mood anyway." She said.
I could tell by the sound of her voice that she was still disappointed, I placed my hoof under her chin and gave her a warm smile. "Don't worry, Twi. We will do it eventually, we just need to find the right time to do it." I said.
Twilight then managed to form a smile. "Ok, Matt. Well…we should probably start eating this food, we don't want it to get cold." She said.
With that, we both sat down by the table before we started to eat our salads. However, we were still disappointed that our special time was ruined just as it was getting good.
The next day: Castle Gardens
While Twilight was getting a back massage by the pool, I decided to take a peaceful walk through the castle gardens.
Blaze Horn accompanied me and he was curious about what happened last night.
"I told you, Blaze. Nothing happened last night, we just ended up having room-service." I stated trying to end the conversation.
"Oh, I get it. You blew it." he said.
I immediately stopped and turned around to face him. "I did not blow it. We almost had a special night, but those Diamond Dogs interrupted us before we could even get best part." I explained.
"Bummer…better luck next time, huh?" Blaze said with a slightly amused smile.
I didn't take notice to his smile and let out a small sigh.
"Yeah, we'll try again some other night. And when that night comes…we're locking the door." I said before I turned around and continued to walk through the garden with Blaze behind me.
As we kept walking through the lovely surroundings, we soon entered another part of the garden that had bushes cut into the shape of different animals.
Blaze and I looked around to admire them. There was one in the shape of whale, one in the shape of an elephant, one in the shape of a giraffe, and many more.
Just then, I saw someone up ahead. I got closer to see it was Discord behind a rose bush, he looked as though he was hiding.
I wondered what he was doing before I turned my head around to face Blaze. "Hey, how about you go check on Twilight? I just need to check something out. Plus, she's been alone for a while."
Blaze smiled as he saluted to me. "Sure thing, buddy." he said before he turned around and headed back to the pool-side.
Once he was out of sight, I turned my attention back on Discord before I started to walk over to him.
When I reached him, I watched as he looked at something on the other side of the bush. Obviously he didn't want to be seen. "Hey Discord, what're you doing?" I asked.
Discord then quickly looked down at me. "Oh, hello Matthew…I'm…I'm doing nothing." He stated while shifting his eyes left and right.
I raised my eye brow at him. "Nothing, huh? What do you keep looking at over the bush?" I asked.
Discord began to sweat slightly. "Err…also nothing." He stated.
I still didn't believe him, he had a nervous look in his eye that told me he didn't want anyone to know what he was doing. "Oh, so you were looking at nothing?" I said.
Discord smiled and nodded.
"Ok, then there shouldn't be anything beyond this bush. Mind if I have a look?" I asked with a devious smirk on my face.
Discord's smile went away as his eyes widened slightly. "Well…emm…you see…I…" he said trying to come up with an excuse.
I just rolled my eyes before I looked over the bush. That's when I saw Celestia on the other side of the gardens with a watering-can floating beside her, she was using her magic to water the flowers while humming a calming tune.
I then looked at Discord again to see him twiddle his fingers while smiling nervously down at me. "I don't get it, it's just Celestia." I said.
"Yes…I know." He responded.
I was really confused by this, why was Discord spying on Celestia? Discord's usually really calm around her. At that moment, it hit me.
I looked back and forth from Discord to Celestia a few times as a smile grew on my face. "Hey…are you checking her out?" I asked.
Discord then let out an amused chuckle. "Haha, checking her out? Haha. Oh Matt, you make me laugh when you're talking nonsense." He said as he patted my head with his lion hand.
"No seriously, I wouldn't mind if you were. I mean…she's very beautiful." I said in an honest voice.
Just then, Discord's amused faded away before he looked at Celestia again. "Well…I suppose she's quite lovely…" he said.
I was curious to why he was acting so shy and defensive, he's usually more lively than this. "Discord, I'm starting to get the feeling that you like Celestia. And not as a friend, I mean as something else." I said.
Discord then looked down at me again and his ears dropped. "Well seeing how the cat's out of the bag…I…I guess I do have curtain feelings for her." He admitted.
"Well, have you ever thought about asking her out?" I asked curiously.
Discord raised his eye brow. "You mean have I ever considered dating her? I have dated her, we went to witness the Canterlot bonfire together. You were there with Twilight, remember?" he said with his arms crossed.
I nodded. "Yeah, I remember. But I'm not talking about going to a bonfire, I'm talking about an real date. You know, take her out to dinner or something like that." I said.
"It's not that easy, Matt. You may think I have a chance with her, but why would she ever have a relationship with me? I mean, just look at me!" Discord said as he looked down at his body.
I gave him a confident smile. "Don't be-little yourself like that, Discord. I've seen enough to know Celestia likes you too, you just need to make the next move." I said.
Discord then rubbed his chin with his talon hand. "I see…well then, I should probably make that move now, shouldn't I?" he said.
I nodded. "Yep." I responded.
Discord looked over to Celestia again before a nervous look came on his face, he then looked back down at me. "But…I've never been on an actual date before…can you come with us and help me?" he asked sounding desperate.
"Discord, I can't come on your date with Celestia, that would just be weird." I stated.
Discord then wrapped his hands together. "Please, please, pleeeease." He begged.
After hearing him beg a few more times, I decided to try and think of a way to help him before I came up with something. "Well…maybe Twilight and I could double-date with you and Celestia." I said.
Discord gave me a confused look. "Double-date? What's that?" he asked.
"It when two couples go on a date together, Twilight and I will be able to join you and Celestia on your date." I explained.
"…I guess that could be suitable." Discord said before a look of confidence came on his face. "Alright, I'll do it. I'll go over there and ask her out on a date." He said.
I then gave him a proud smile. "Good on ya, Discord. Don't worry, I'll be here the whole time." I said before I sat down on the ground.
Discord's confident look didn't last long as looked over to Celestia again, he gulped hard as he felt nervous again. "Alright, here I go." He thought.
With that, Discord took a deep breath before he walked around the bush and made his way towards Celestia. As he got half-way, he stopped and turned his head around to face me.
I could tell he was having second thoughts, so I moved my hoof in a way that told him to keep going.
Discord then mouthed the words 'I'm going' before he turned his head back around and continued to walk towards Celestia.
Finally, Discord approached Celestia from behind while she continued to water her plants. Discord listened to her humming melody, her smoothing tune somehow made Discord feel calmer.
Discord listen to her for a few more seconds before he held his fist to his mouth and cleared his throat, Celestia heard this and turned her head around to see Discord.
Celestia smiled at him before she turned the rest of her body around to him. "Why hello Discord, how long have you been standing there?" she asked curiously.
Discord rubbed the back of his head with his lion hand. "Well, I haven't been here long…I was actually wanting to ask you something." he stated nervously.
Celestia then placed her watering-can down on the ground. "What is it?" she asked giving him her full attention.
Discord was a loss for words, he turned his head around to face me again. I saw this and motioned my hoof again to tell him to keep it up
Discord then turned his head back around to face Celestia again, he began to sweat slightly as he tried to spit it out. "Well…I was…urr…wondering if you'd like to go somewhere with me tomorrow night. You know, a place where we can have an evening together." He said.
After hearing this, Celestia cocked her head in confusion. "Discord, are you asking me out on a date?" she asked.
Discord slowly nodded. "Umm…yes…" he answered with a sheepish smile.
Celestia looked at the ground as she thought about it, Discord became more worried every silent second. Discord was sure she was going to refuse…until. "I'd love to, Discord." Celestia answered with a kind smile.
At that moment, Discord's worried feelings went away and a cheerful smile came on his face. "Really?" he asked.
Celestia nodded. "Yes, I need some time out of the castle anyway. And also…I've grown rather fond of spending time with you, Discord." She said with a sweet smile.
Discord smiled sweetly beck. "Oh…thank you, Princess. By the way, do you mind if Matthew and Twilight joined us on our date? Matthew said it was something called…a double-date." He said.
Celestia shook her head. "Oh, I wouldn't mind at all. I've been meaning to speak with those two, I'm curious on how their honeymoon is going." She stated.
Discord was pleased on how well this had gone, he gave Celestia a small nod. "Ok then…So how about we go to that fancy restaurant in the city tomorrow night?" he asked.
"That sounds like a good idea." Celestia said before she picked up her watering-can with her magic.
"Anyway, I need to get back to watering my plants. I'll meet with you later, Discord. I'm really looking forward to our date tomorrow." Celestia said kindly.
"As am I, Princess." Discord said before Celestia walked away from him to water a different bush.
When Discord started walking back towards me, an overjoyed smile came on his face, he couldn't help but chuckle cheerfully. "Yes." He cheered under his breath.
As he came closer to the bush, I could see the smile on his face that told me he had done it. Once he reached me, I smiled up at him. "So, what happened?" I asked curiously.
"She said yes, we're going out of dinner tomorrow night." Discord said in delight.
"Did you mention it was a double-date?" I asked.
Discord nodded. "Yes, and she doesn't mind if you and Twilight come, she said she wanted to speak with you two anyway." He stated.
At that moment, I gave Discord a proud smile. "Well I'm happy for you, Discord. Looks like you and Celestia have more of a chance than you think." I said.
Discord smiled humbly as he rubbed the back of his head. "Well…maybe…but no one should get their hopes up just yet, we still need to see how this date turns out." He stated.
"Yeah" I said.
suddenly, I remembered that I supposed to be back at the pool-side by now, Twilight and Blaze must still be waiting for me. "Oh crap! Discord, I have to go. I was supposed to be back with Twilight ages ago." I said.
Discord raised his talon hand up. "Don't fret, I'll get you back in a snap…literally." He said.
But before he could snap his talon fingers, we heard a loud dark caw. We looked in the direction it came from to see a large black crow standing on a tree branch.
"Wow…I've never seen a lot of birds in my years, but never one that creepy, it looks like it's…glaring at us." Discord said as we stared at the crow.
As it glared at us with its menacing red eyes, I looked at it closer to see it had a large ugly scratch on its beak. That's when I remembered the crow from Fluttershy's garden that attacked me and Spike.
"No…it can't be." I thought.
Suddenly, the crow spread out its wings before it launched down at me. My eyes widened in surprise. But before I could react, the crow shot past my face and slashed my left cheek with its talons.
"AHH! Ahh…damn it!" I yelled in pain as I held my hoof against my cheek.
As I held my cheek in pain, the crow flew towards another tree and landed on another branch before it continued to watch me.
My yells caught the attention of Princess Celestia, she turned around to see what the commotion was and saw me in pain. She quickly placed her watering-can down before she rushed over to me and Discord.
Once she reached me and Discord, she looked down at me with concern. "Matthew, are you alright? What's wrong?" she asked.
I looked up at her while still holding my hoof against my face. "Ah...a damn crow just attacked me, it scratched my face!" I said loudly.
"May I see your wound?" Celestia asked calmly.
With that, I gently removed my hoof from my face.
Celestia looked at my wound to see three long scratches going across my cheek, she let out a small gasp. "Oh my…this is quite bad for a crow to make, are you sure it was a crow?" she asked.
I nodded. "Yeah, positive." I said before I looked around to try and find it. After a few seconds, I saw the crow up on another tree branch. "There it is!" I said while pointing at it.
While Discord and Celestia looked up at it, I picked up a rock with my hoof. "Get out of here, you ugly feathered rat!" I yelled before I threw the rock towards it.
The rock hurled towards it before it hit the tree-trunk, the crow cawed loudly at me before I took off and flew away into the sky.
After it was gone, I held my hoof against my cheek again before I removed it. I looked down at my hoof's palm to see a small amount of blood on it, this meant my wound was starting to bleed.
"Fucking pigeon." I said under my breath in anger. Again, I don't usually swear like that, but it really hurt.
After I calmed down, I looked up at Celestia and Discord. "Hey guys, I'm just gonna get back to Twilight before anything else happens, alright?" I said in a calm yet exhausted tone.
Celestia gave me an understanding look. "Of course, Matthew. Go and relax for a while. And if that cheek's bothering you, there should be a medical kit in your suite." She said.
I gave her a thankful smile. "Thanks, Princess. I'm looking forward to the double-date tomorrow, I'll be sure to tell Twilight about it." I said.
As I began to walk away, I felt the scratches on my cheek sting again; forcing me to stop and place my hoof on the wound.
"Are you sure you're ok?" Discord asked in concern.
I turned my head around to face him. "Yeah, I'll be ok. I just need to get to that medical kit, I'll see you tomorrow." I said.
With that, I turned my head back around before I looked at my hoof again. I saw even blood this time, I could tell by the amount of blood that the wound was starting to bleed more.
I rubbed my hoof on the ground to wipe the blood off. Once the blood was off my hoof, I continued down the path to the pool-side.
On the way, I was still thinking about the crow that attacked me. There was no denying it now, that was definitely the same crow from Fluttershy's garden. But what was it doing here? And why does it always come after me when it appears?
I started to wonder if it was stalking me, like it was out to get me. I then realized how silly that sounded and shook the thoughts off. "What do crows have against me anyway?" I groaned under my breath as I tried to forget about it.
However, the stinging pain on my cheek kept reminding me of it. But all the while, I wondered how Twilight would react once she saw my wound.
That night: The suite
When we returned to the suite, Twilight immediately searched around for the medical kit. She was really shocked when she saw my cheek.
After finding the medical kit in one of the kitchen drawers, Twilight was now sat in front of me as she tended to my wound. She soaked a cotton-bud in disinfectant and was dabbing my cheek with it.
I sat on the edge of the bed as I felt the disinfectant sting the scratches on my cheek. "Ow…ow…ow." I repeated every time she dabbed my cheek.
"Matt, stop whining like a school-colt." Twilight said as she continued to dab my cheek.
"I can't help it, it stings. Ow!" I yelped as she dabbed my cheek again.
After a few more stinging dabs, Twilight stopped dabbing and threw the wet bloody cotton-bud in a bin beside the bed.
Twilight then levitated three band-aids out of the kit before she stuck them onto my cheek, the band-aids each covered one of the three scratches on my face. "All done, better?" Twilight asked.
At that moment, I thought of an idea that made me grin. "Kinda, it still hurts a little bit." I said slyly while tapping my cheek.
Twilight was confused at first before she understood what I meant, she smiled before she gave me a sweet kiss on my wounded cheek. "How about now?" she asked.
"Much better." I said smiling warmly at her.
Twilight smiled back before she spoke. "So how'd that happen anyway? Did you say it was a crow?" she asked curiously.
I nodded. "Yeah, Discord and I saw it up on a tree branch before it shot down and scratched me across my face. I think it was the same crow from Fluttershy's garden…I'm sure it was." I stated.
"You mean the one that scratched your arm?" Twilight asked with a raised eye brow.
I nodded again. "Yeah, it had a large scratch on its beak just like the one at Fluttershy's place." I said.
"Well if it is the same bird, it's gone now. Let's just try to forget about it, ok?" Twilight said as she placed her hoof on my shoulder.
I then gave her one last nod. "Ok, Twi." I said.
Just then, I remembered about the double-date we had with Celestia and Discord. "Oh Twilight, I almost forgot. How do you feel about going on a double-date with Discord and Celestia?" I asked hoping she'd be alright with it.
Twilight gave me a confused look. "Double-date with Discord and Celestia? What're you talking about?" she asked.
"Before the whole crow thing happened, I was helping Discord ask Celestia out on a date. He asked her and she said yes, but Discord is kinda nervous and he'll feel much better if we go with them on the date." I explained.
Twilight gave me an unsure look. "I don't know, Matt." she said.
"Aw c'mon, Twi. We'll be on a date too, only Celestia and Discord will be with us on theirs. We're going to one of the fancy restaurants in the city, and the Princess wants to talk to us anyway…How about it, Twi?" I asked with a hopeful smile.
Twilight tapped her chin as she thought about it. "Well…we haven't had a romantic dinner while we've been here, I guess it could be good." she said with a small smile.
"So we're on?" I asked.
Twilight kept smiling as she let out a small sigh. "Ok, we're on. But only because we haven't been on a dinner date yet. Plus, we're talking about the Princess here, we don't want her date to go bad." She stated.
I smiled at this news. "Great, the date's tomorrow night." I said.
"In that case, we'd better get a good night sleep, we need to be up early enough." Twilight said before she stood up and walked towards the bathroom. "Come on, let's get ready for bed." She said.
I was slightly confused by this. "But…the date's tomorrow night, how come we need to get up early?" I asked.
As she kept walking, Twilight turned her head around to face me. "I find it best to over-prepare for things like this." She stated before she entered the bathroom.
I smiled with amusement as I shook my head. "That's my twilight, always being prepared for anything." I thought.
"Honey, have you seen my toothbrush?" Twilight called from the bathroom.
"Well…almost anything." I thought before I hopped off the bed and walked into the bathroom to help Twilight.
After hearing Twilight say we needed to sleep early tonight, I was disappointed a little. I was hoping we could try to have a special night again…Oh well, better luck tomorrow night.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
Well friends, season 3 is over. I know some of you may not like the idea of Twilight as a Princess, but this is one of those moments were we need to remember that Bronies and Pegasisters stick together and pull through no matter what.
I have no problem with Princess Twilight, I'm looking forward to see how this works in Season 4, I just hope you feel the same way.
Pony News: Season 4 sounds like it could be better than season 3. Meghan McCarthy considers the Season 3 final a 3-parter, and she says parts 2 & 3 (most likely the season 4 premiere) will be worth the wait.
And Daniel Ingram says there's something big in store for us, here's what he said in his Twitter.
"For those planning on leaving the fandom after season 3…I've seen into the future, and you do NOT want to miss out on what's in store."
Poll: I'm curious on what you thought of season 3, so I've put up a poll to find out. You'll find it on my profile, here are the votes.
1: I loved it.
2: I liked it but could've been better.
3: I hated it.
Please remember to review and vote.
Next chapter will be up soon.
43. Chapter 43: The double date
Hi everypony, and welcome back once again. So sorry for the wait, I've been a bit out of it lately.
The votes on how people felt about Season 3 are in. 9 people loved it, 11 people think it could've been better, and 0 people hated it.
I'm happy to hear that most of you loved Season 3. And again, don't worry about the Alicorn Twilight thing, let's just give it a chance and see where it takes us in Season 4.
I had to change some of the lyrics in the song I used so they'd fit the story.
Chapter 43: The double-date
As the sun rose to begin the new day, Twilight and I kept our word and woke up early so we could have some time together before our double-date with Celestia and Discord tonight.
While we were getting ready to head out, Twilight managed to find a healing spell in one of the Spell Books she brought with her. She used it to heal the scratches on my cheek, now it looked completely clear and I didn't need the band-aids anymore.
Canterlot Pool-side
As Celestia's sun shun brightly down over Canterlot, Twilight and I were once again spending our time by the Pool-side enjoying the warm weather.
While Twilight was having a nice swim in the pool, I lied on one of the massage-beds with a female employee massaged my back. It felt great, I've never had a back massage before, but I was beginning to like it.
Blaze Horn was standing beside the bed I was lying on with a determined look on his face, he really took his job seriously, even if it wasn't that big of a deal.
I opened my eyes before I looked over to him. "Hey Blaze, maybe you should relax a little bit. Try one of these back massages, they feel amazing." I said before I felt the massager hit a good-spot on my back. "Oooh, really amazing." I moaned.
Blaze looked down at me and chuckled. "Haha, no thanks. Like I keep saying, I'm on duty and I can't afford any distractions." He stated.
"Yeah, yeah, I know. You're only duty is to aid and protect me and Twilight, but don't you ever take a break and chill out?" I asked.
"Only on weekends, Mr Matthew…Oh, and I almost forgot. I have a message from Princess Celestia, she requests something from you." Blaze stated.
The relaxing feeling left my mind as I gave Blaze my full attention. If it involved the Princess, it must be important. "What is it, Blaze? Does it involve the date tonight?" I asked.
Blaze shook his head. "No, it isn't about that. You see, there're some new guards coming in a few weeks and the Princess was wondering if you could be there when we first meet them." he said.
Hearing this sent a worrying feeling through my body. I've only been married to Twilight for a few days, I shouldn't be planning things like this, not on our honeymoon. "Well…I don't know, Blaze. I have Twilight to think about now, I can't just leave her alone at the library like that." I said.
"Oh Twilight can come too, the Princess would be more than happy to have you both there. It's a very important event when new recues join the royal guard, it's the day when they turn from trainees to soldiers." Blaze stated.
After hearing this, I rubbed my chin with my hoof as I thought about it. "Well…I'm still not sure, Blaze. I'm gonna have to talk it over with Twilight." I said.
"Fair enough, sir." Blaze said with a small smile.
"You know, you can call me Matt. I like it better than 'sir' or 'Mr Matthew'." I stated.
Blaze nodded slightly. "Understood…Matt." he said as he gave me a friendly wink.
The massager then finished rubbing my back and I paid her. As I stepped down from the massage-bed, my back felt so flexible and refreshed, the massagers here really knew how to give a mean back rub.
"Oh…my back feels great, I don't know if it's ever felt so-AH!" I yelled as a small amount of water splashed against me.
I looked down at the pool to see Twilight swimming close to the edge, she gave me a small smirk before she splashed me again; soaking my face.
I shook the water off my face before I smirked back. "So that's the game you want to play, is it?" I said under my breath.
With that, I leaped into the pool and swam towards Twilight. She saw me coming closer before she started to swim backwards. "Matt, don't even think about it." she said as I got close to her.
"Never do." I responded with a devious grin, I then pulled back one of my hooves before I thrust it forward; causing a large amount of water to splash in front of Twilight.
Twilight let out a playful scream as the water waved over her body and got her even wetter. Her flat mane was now dripping with water, a part of her fringe was even covering her right-eye. Twilight then grinned before she splashed me back.
We both soon began to splash each other hard like a couple of school-ponies. But after a minute of mindless splashing, Twilight began to paddle away from me.
I noticed this before I paddled after her, I even cheated by using my wings like oars; causing me to move faster.
As I began to catch up with Twilight, she suddenly turned around before her horn glowed. Three chunks of water then rose up from the pool's surface before they stopped above Twilight's head, she gave me an evil smile before one of the water-balls hurled towards me and slashed in my face.
After I wiped the water off my eyes again, I saw that Twilight had made a few more water-balls. I gulped hard before I quickly turned around and swam away. "Ok, you win! I give, I give!" I said as I swam with all my might.
But that didn't stop Twilight from swimming after me while throwing the water-balls at the back of my head. It was all fun and games, so I couldn't help but laugh as she kept throwing the water-balls at me.
While we kept playing in the pool, an amused smile came on Blaze's face as he watched us. "There's never been a sight more perfect." He said to himself.
Meanwhile: Princess Celestia's room
Princess Celestia was already getting ready for her date with Discord tonight.
While she was getting ready, three of her best unicorn maids helped her. They were called Dusty, Shiny, and Pearl Blossom. And to top it off, they were sisters. (You can decide what they look like, but they don't wear outfits.)
After years of cleaning for Celestia, they had become close friends with her. She could always rely on them to help her with other things besides from cleaning. In this case, helping her get ready for a date.
While Celestia was sitting in front of her make-up desk, Shiny was combing her rippling mane with a golden brush. "I really appreciate your help, girls. I need to look my best for tonight." Celestia said as she stared at her reflection.
"It's our pleasure, your highness. And don't worry, we'll make sure you look magnificent." Shiny said as she continued to comb Celestia's mane.
"I still can't believe you're actually going out with Discord. No offence, but the guy's kinda creepy. And didn't you two use to be enemies? How come you want to date him all-of-a-sudden?" Pearl asked from across the room with Dusty sitting beside her.
Celestia then looked over to Pearl and smiled. "Because he's changed now, I like having him around. Besides, we've been on a date before. Is there really anything wrong with spending time with a good friend?" she asked.
Pearl quickly shook her head. "No, there's no problem at all." She said before Celestia turned her attention back to her mirror.
Just then, Dusty leaned over to Peal. "Except if your 'good friend' use to be the Master of Chaos." She whispered.
Shiny then went back to combing Celestia's mane "Well I'm happy for you, Princess. Especially now that you're starting to date again, why is it you stopped in the first-place?" She asked.
The moment she asked that question, Celestia's small smile turned into a frown. She looked down at her desk as she thought about her last relationship with the late Grimerd, Celestia remembered how she believed in him and loved him. But after his betrayal and death, she never had a romantic relationship with anypony since.
"I...I'd rather not talk about it, if you don't mind." Celestia said in a slightly sad tone.
Shiny did notice the tone in Celestia's voice, but she thought it best not to ask. "Well whatever the reason, we're just glad you decided to get back out there." She said as she kept brushing Celestia's mane.
Celestia then turned her head around to face Shiny with an unsure look. "To be honest…I wouldn't call it a date." She said.
Shiny gave her a confused look. "But…I don't understand, aren't you going out with Discord tonight?" she asked.
"Yes, that's true." Celestia answered.
"So isn't it technically a date?" Shiny asked.
"It is, but…I just don't want to refer to it as a date, I like to think of it as an evening out with a friend." Celestia said before she turned her head back around to face her reflection.
Shiny was confused by Celestia's words, she looked over to Dusty and Pearly to see them shrug their shoulders; stating that they didn't understand either.
Shiny then turned her attention back on the Princess's mane. "All right then." She said still rather confused.
As Shiny went back to brushing her mane, Celestia thought about why she just said that and why she didn't want to think of this evening as a date.
"I cannot believe I just said all that, I was so looking forward to this evening and now I'm afraid to go. I want to call it a date, I really do. But…after my relationship with Grimerd went terribly wrong, I've been afraid to gain another in case it ends the same way. I once decided to let go of the past and get back into dating, that's why I agreed to Discord's offer. But my last relationship broke my heart, I don't want to go through it all again." Celestia thought.
After thinking about for a little more, a feeling of confidence soon came to Celestia. "No! I won't allow myself to live like this! Just because a relationship I had in the past went wrong doesn't mean my future ones will end the same way. I don't care how I feel, I am going on this date tonight!" she thought strongly.
Celestia's strong attitude didn't last very long when a part of her worried feelings returned. "Well…I'll call it a date, but it shouldn't be anything else. I trust Discord and I like him, but anything can happen in the future." She thought.
After a few more minutes, Shiny finished combing Celestia's mane and placed the brush down. "There, now all you have to do is choose your dress." She said before she walked across the room to the wardrobe.
Celestia then stood up before she followed her. When they reached the wardrobe, Shiny opened it with her magic before they started searching through it to find the perfect dress.
While Shiny and Celestia were looking through the wardrobe, Pearl turned her head to face Dusty. "I still don't know what the Princess sees in Discord." She said.
Dusty then looked at her. "Me neither." She said.
Meanwhile: Discord's room
"I still don't know what the Princess sees in me." Discord said while looking at his reflection in the mirror.
He was wearing a black tuxedo. And when he snapped his fingers, his suit changed into a different colour. But no matter how many colours he tried, he always found it difficult to decide.
By now, Discord had already tried 12 different colours, but none felt right to him. "I mean, I know she likes me and all. But I still don't understand why she would consider dating me, especially after our history." He said to himself.
The Diamond Dogs, who were sitting on a large red couch on the other side of the room, listened to him talk to himself before Rover spoke. "Maybe the Pony Princess has special feelings for you, Lord Discord." He said.
Discord then turned around to face them. "Feelings?...For me? Do you three actually believe that she, of all ponies, would like me in…that way?" he asked with his arms crossed.
They all smiled as they nodded. "Oh yes, Lord Discord. I think she would, she really likes you." Fido stated.
"And besides, what's not to like about you?" Spot asked trying to butter-up Discord.
After hearing all that, Discord stroked his beard as he thought about it. "Well, I suppose you're right. She did say she liked spending time with me, and we have dated before." He said in a more cheerful tone.
"Exactly, so what are you worried about?" Rover asked.
A confident smile came on Discord's face. "Nothing. I'm spending the evening with a beautiful mare, and I'm going to enjoy it. Now, I need to choose the right colour from my suit. What do you boys think? Black, red, or yellow?" he asked as his suit changed into the 3 colours.
"Oh, how about yellow, Lord Discord?" Rover said.
"No, red! Red looks better on you." Spot said loudly to get Discord's attention.
"Red's too bright, go with the blue one." Fido said.
Discord looked at him with a raised eye brow. "I didn't suggest blue." He stated.
After hearing this, Fido felt sheepish. "Oh right…urr…how about the green one?" he asked.
Discord almost face-handed himself, but instead just rolled his eyes. "You know, I'm just going to pretend I didn't hear that and go with the black one." He stated before his yellow tux into a black one with a flash of light.
When Discord turned back around to face his reflection, he began to adjust his red bow-tie to make sure it looked good.
meanwhile, Rover turned his head to face Fido and Spot. "Hey, do you think Lord Discord is a little nervous about this date?" he whispered.
Fido and Spot looked at him. "What do you mean? Are you saying you don't believe our master can go through with it?" Fido asked.
"Of course not! I would never question Lord Discord, I'm just saying he may need a little help in case he makes a mistake and gets into a jam." He said.
"But he's not in jam, he can't even fit into a jar!" Spot said in confusion.
Rover face-handed himself in frustration. "Grr…that's not what I meant, I meant someone needs to be there to help him in case things get out-of-hand." He stated.
"So what do you plan to do? Hire someone to follow them around on their date and make sure everything goes right?" Fido asked with his arms crossed.
Rover then grinned as he shook his head. "No, we're gonna follow them around on their date and make sure everything goes right." He said.
This caught Fido and Spot by surprise, but it also made them worried about how Discord would react if they got caught. "You want us to follow Lord Discord on his date? But what if he spots us? We'll get in big trouble." Spot stated with worry.
"That's why we're going to hide while wearing clever disguises, Lord Discord won't see or recognise us. It's the perfect plan." Rover said while rubbing his hands together deviously.
"Do you really think that'll work?" Fido asked.
Rover nodded. "Yes, but I need to know if you two are with me. Come on, do it to help Lord Discord." He said.
Fido and Spot looked at each other before they looked at Rover again. "Ok." They both said at the same time.
"Excellent." Rover said.
The Diamond Dogs then huddled around each other before they went through the plan. "Now, here's what we're going to do…" Rover said as he began.
Later that evening
When it started to get dark, Twilight and I returned to the suite to get ready for the double-date.
While I was wearing my black tuxedo again, Twilight was wearing her glittery dark-purple dress. To my surprise, it was the same dress she wore on the night we first kissed. And after all these months, she still looked breath-taking in it.
After we got ready, Twilight went through the male to find a letter from Shining Armor. According to the letter, everything is fine at the library and everyone is getting along great. Hearing this brought me relief, I've been worried about Spike and the others lately.
It also said that my family had made it back to England safely. I was glad to hear this too, and hopefully we'll see them again soon.
A few minutes after, Celestia and Discord came up to our suite to collect us.
While Discord was wearing a black tuxedo like me, Celestia was wearing a beautiful pearl-white dress that sparkled as much as her wonderfully combed mane. I've always seen her as beautiful, but I haven't seen her this beautiful before.
We were now walking through the streets of Canterlot with everypony eyeing at us, they were mostly looking at Celestia and Discord.
They all had looks of confusion, disgust, and shock. Obviously they had never expected their Princess to date someone like Discord, they even started to whisper amongst themselves as they continued to watch them.
But Celestia and Discord took no notice, they just kept walking without a care in the world.
Twilight and I were following a few feet behind them. in the silence between us, I was thinking about this date. "Discord seems calmer about this whole thing now, and this is his first actual date with Celestia. Does he still need us to be with him? Or will we just ruin the atmosphere for them? I don't want to do that, maybe I should talk it over with Twilight." I thought.
With that, I turned my head to face Twilight. "Hey Twi." I said.
Twilight then looked at me. "Yeah?" she responded with a smile.
"Listen, I've been thinking…maybe we should let Discord and Celestia take it from here and we can go have our own private date, just the two of us." I said.
Twilight then gave me a really surprised look, which was exactly the reaction I was afraid of. "What? You want us to leave before we even get there? Matt, you're the one who arranged all this in the first place!" She said.
"I know, I just think we should give them some privacy. It's Discord's first romantic date, and Celestia hasn't had a proper date since…well, she hasn't had a date for years. I just want everything to be perfect for them, you know?" I said in an honest tone.
After hearing this, Twilight looked at the ground as she thought about it. "I see what he means, Discord does look more confident. But this is Princess Celestia, my teacher, we can't just leave after we said we'd spend the evening with her. I have to convince Matt to continue this…and I know just how to do it." She thought.
Twilight looked at me again before she took a step closer. "Alright, let's make a deal." she said with a serious face.
"Umm…Ok, what is it?" I asked curiously.
"We keep this double-date going to make sure Celestia and Discord have a good time." Twilight said before her serious look turned into a sly smile.
She then moved closer to me and began rubbing my chest softly with her hoof. "And once we get back to the suite, we can-" Twilight said before she started whispering into my ear.
The things Twilight whispered to me made my eyes widened, my face began to burn from blushing.
Once she was done, Twilight pulled away before she saw the look on my face, she giggled at the sight. "Deal?" she asked with her arms wrapped around my neck.
I then shook off my stunned expression before I looked at Twilight's face, I gave her an innocent smile. "T-Totally." I answered.
Twilight grinned at this. "Works every time." She thought.
"Thank you, but we'll only do those things if you're a good boy tonight." Twilight teased before she released my neck and walked away to catch up with Celestia and Discord.
I remained where I stood as Twilight walk away from me, the things she whispered in my ear aroused me to the point where I couldn't move. After a few seconds, I looked up at the night-sky with desperation. "Oh great Pony God, I know I talk to you much, but please let there be no interruptions tonight." I said out-loud.
"Matt, are you coming?" a female voice called.
I then looked to where it came from to see Twilight waiting for me up the road. "Oh…yeah, I'm coming." I said before I trotted over to her.
Once I reached her, we both continued to follow Celestia and Discord towards the restaurant.
Later: The Canterlot restaurant
After arriving at the restaurant, we were now sat by our table admiring the surroundings.
The dining-room we were in was massive, there was a large glass chandelier hanging from the ceiling, and there was a String-quartet playing fancy music on a small stage.
As we ate our food, we told each other interesting and humorous stories. And seeing how Twilight, Celestia, and Discord knew that I was once a human, I told them about events that happened when I was in England.
"So after waiting for a long time, my Dad came home and told me to take cover inside the bath. Once I did, he broke the door open." I said; ending my story.
Twilight looked at me with an amused smile. "I still can't believe you locked yourself in your own bathroom." She said.
I turned my head to face her. "It was an accident. The lock was rusty, it got stuck." I protested while sharing her smile.
This made everyone laugh slightly. "So what happened after that? Did the lock break?" Discord asked.
I then looked at her. "Yeah, we fixed the door, but we didn't bother getting another lock." I said before I leaned down and took a bite out of the cooked salad in front of me.
While I was chewing my food, Celestia spoke. "So anyway, how's your honeymoon going? I've been curious for the last few days." she said.
"It's been great, the Pool-side is wonderful, Matt and I go there every day. Thank you so much for letting us to spend time there." Twilight said with a thankful smile.
Celestia smiled back. "You're very welcome, and how are things with Blaze Horn? Are you getting along with him well?" she asked.
After I chewed my food enough, I swallowed it before I spoke. "Yeah, he's ok. He reminds me a lot of Shining Armor."
"And he takes his guard duties just as seriously." Twilight added.
"Well I'm not surprised, Blaze is one of those ponies who like to do the job right, no matter how difficult it may be." Celestia said before her horn glowed.
Her tea-cup then floated up from the table before she noticed it was empty. "Oh…does anyone know when the Waiter will come back? I seem to be out of tea." She said to us.
After hearing this, Discord stroked his chin with his talon-hand before a small smile came on his face. "One refill coming up." he said before he snapped his fingers.
With a small flash of light, a blue tea-pot appeared in front of Celestia and poured warm tea into her cup; filling it before disappearing in another flash of light.
Celestia looked down at her cup before she took another small sip. After tasting it, a smile appeared on her face. "Discord, this tea is wonderful. Thank you." she said giving him a thankful smile.
Discord smiled back. "My pleasure, Princess." He said.
As they smiled kindly at each other, Twilight and I could definitely see that there was something going on between them.
Their smiles soon faded away as they noticed us smirking at them. "Well, I see your relationship's going well." I said.
Celestia and Discord blushed deeply, they started to mutter things like "Well I…err…", "Relationship?", and "I was just…you know…" It seemed a bit awkward for them.
I chuckled slightly before I put my hoof up. "Guys, I was just messing with you." I said trying to calm them down.
Celestia and Discord continued to blush as they smiled sheepishly at us. "Oh…of course, just messing." Celestia said.
"A bit of harmless humor. Haha, you're a funny guy, Matt." Discord said as he rubbed the back of his head with his lion hand.
Twilight and I then noticed their blushing faces, we began to wonder what was causing them. "Are you two ok?" Twilight asked curiously.
"We're fine!" They both answered loudly at the same time.
Celestia was surprised by her volume and quickly covered her mouth with her hoof. Discord was also surprised by his own volume, he remained perfectly still as he tried to avoid eye-contact with any of the other customers.
They both then looked around to see if anyone was looking at them. Thankfully, it seemed no one heard them. Celestia calmly removed her hoof from her mouth. "Forgive me…I…I don't know why I answered so loudly." she said.
"I also apologize, I don't know what came over me." Discord stated as he rubbed his hands nervously.
Celestia then looked up at Discord. "M-Maybe we should just get back to eating our food." She said trying to end the awkwardness.
Discord turned his head to face her. "Yes, I agree. We can talk a little more later." He said in agreement.
With that, they both went back to eating their food, trying to pretend as though nothing happened. Twilight and I looked at each other before we decided to do the same.
Meanwhile, three figures were sitting on one of the far tables behind me and Twilight, they were each holding a menu in front of their faces. When they placed the menus down, they revealed themselves as the Diamond Dogs in unusual disguises.
Rover was wearing a brown hat with shades over his eyes, Fido was wearing a black fake-beard , and Spot was wearing a colourful propeller-hat to make him look like a child.
"What do you think's going on over there?" Rover asked as he kept his eyes on our table.
"I don't know, I can't hear anything from over here." Fido answered.
"Maybe they're not talking, maybe the date's not going as well as we thought." Spot said in a worried tone.
"What're you talking about?" a female voice said beside them, the Diamond Dogs quickly turned their heads to see three other figures sitting on the same table as them with menus in front of their faces.
They each placed them down to reveal themselves as Dusty, Pearl, and Shiny. Instead of disguises, they were each wearing a lovely dress. Shiny was wearing a green dress, Dusty was wearing a red dress, and Pearl was wearing a light-blue dress.
"Of course everything's alright over there, they're both just trying to hide their feelings from each other." Dusty stated with a raised eye brow.
Rover gave them a confused look. "Err…who are you and why are you on our table?" he asked.
"We're Princess Celestia's royal maids. And we're doing the exact same thing as you're doing, we're following the Princess to make sure her date with Discord goes well." Pearl answered.
"How did you know what we were doing?" Fido asked slightly worried that their cover had been blown.
"We saw you following them on the way here. We figured you were doing the same thing as we were, seeing how you're Discord's pets and all." Shiny said with a smirk on her face.
Spot gave her a small glare. "Hey, we may be dogs, but we are not pets!" he responded firmly.
Shiny kept smirking at him. "Oh really? Did Discord give you your little bones today?" she said.
Spot's firm look quickly went away. "No, he forgot. We're hoping he'll give us them once the date is over." He answered indecently.
Rover quickly turned his head to face Spot. "Don't tell them that!" he said before he smacked Spot over his head for his stupidity; earning a small laugh from the three maids.
Rover then turned his attention back to them. "What do you three want anyway?" he asked in an irritated tone.
"The same thing you want, to make sure the one we care about has a wonderful evening with their date. And to avoid any unnecessary arguments, I suggest we all work together to achieve our goal." Dusty explained in a serious tone.
Rover rubbed his chin as he thought about it, he then turned around to face Fido and Spot before they started whispering to each other. After a small discussion, they all nodded before Rover turned back around to face the girls again. "Alright, we have an agreement. Deal?" he said as he held his hand out to Dusty.
Dusty then grabbed it with her hoof before she shook it up and down. "Deal." She said with a pleased smile.
"So what should we do now?" Fido asked.
Dusty released Rover's hand before she looked over to him. "Now…we watch and listen." She stated with a grin.
With that, they all locked their focus onto our table. They sat there in silence with their eyes wide open, making sure not to miss a single second of what was happening.
After a great meal, we were all leaning back on our chairs with satisfied smiles on our faces.
Over by the other table, the Diamond Dogs and Celestia's maids were still watching us. Feeling tired and bored, they all had a tough time keeping their eye-lids open. Spot was the closest to sleeping, he would have too if he hadn't grab a glass of water and pour it over himself.
Back at our table, we all felt our food start to settle in before we sat back up on our chairs. "Ah, that was delicious." Twilight said.
"Indeed, I couldn't eat another bite." Discord stated.
"Me neither, I think my stomach would burst." I stated as I patted my full stomach with my hoof.
Celestia then nodded in agreement. "Yes, that was a wonderful meal. But it's getting late, I think it's time for us to pay the bill and make our-"
Celestia was then cut off by the sound of the String-Quartet changing the tune in their music, the sound of it was smoothing and bright. It was beautiful, like something you'd hear in a slow-dance song.
Even though I had never heard it before, it was all too familiar to Celestia. A large smile soon came on her face. "Oh, I love this song." She said in delight.
At that moment, Discord looked at the Quartet to see a small number of ponies slowly dancing in front of them. The floor they were dancing on was sparkling with cleanliness, it must've been a posh dance-floor or something.
Discord then turned his attention back to Celestia before a small smile came on his face. "Really?" he asked before he stood up from his chair. "Would you…care to dance?" he asked nervously with his talon-hand held down to her.
Celestia was slightly surprised by this sudden question, she never thought Discord would want to dance to this type of music. She looked up at his face to see his kind smile, she couldn't help but smile back. "…I'd love to…" she answered.
With that, Celestia placed her hoof on Discord's hand before he helped her up. She then placed her hoof back down on the floor before they made their way towards the dance-floor.
While Twilight and I watched them walk away, the Diamond Dogs and Celestia's maids quickly became aware of what was happening. However, Fido and Spot had fallen asleep from waiting too long.
After hearing their small snores, Rover turned his head to see his two friends sleeping. "Hey…hey, wake up, we have movement." He said as he shuck Fido and Spot to wake them up.
Fido and Spot's eyes then shot open before they looked around it confusion. "Wha? What's going on?" Spot asked.
"The Princess and Discord are on the move, they're heading towards the dance-floor." Shiny said without taking her eyes off Discord and Celestia.
Fido and Spot quickly looked over to see them. "Drat, how are we going to hear them now?" Fido asked in a frustrated tone.
"Someone's gotta go over there and keep an eye on them. We don't want to blow our cover, so whoever goes has to blend in with the crowd." Dusty said.
Rover then turned her head to face her. "And how do you expect us to do that?" he asked with a raised eye brow.
"…We're going for a little dance…" Dusty answered before she grabbed Rover's hand with her hoof and rushed towards the dance-floor with him stumbling behind her.
Meanwhile, Celestia and Discord walked onto the dance-floor before they turned around to face each other, they stared into each other's eyes as the soft music continued to play.
Discord held his lion-hand in front of Celestia before she gently placed her hoof on its palm, Celestia had to stand on her hind-legs so she could hold Discord's shoulder with her other hoof.
With their eyes now at the same level, Discord held Celestia's waist with his talon-hand before they started waltzing to the music.
Dusty and Rover soon got in the same position before they started to dance too, they each stared at Discord and Celestia through the corner of their eyes. "If you stand on my hooves even once, I'll break your tail." Dusty threatened in a whisper.
"Shhh, stop talking." Rover whispered.
Dusty then looked at him with her mouth open, she looked slightly offended. "Did you just tell me to-"
"Shut up, you'll give us away!" Rover said in a loud whisper as he looked at Dusty firmly.
Dusty huffed before they both went back to watching Celestia and Discord dance.
While Discord smiled at her, Celestia had a blank expression on her face, as if she was lost in deep thought. She was thinking about Discord's behaviour tonight, he seemed more charming then he usually did. She was also impressed by his waltzing, he was so light on his feet.
After a few minutes, Celestia couldn't help but let a small smile grow on her face. "I…I'm impressed, Discord. I never knew you were quite the dancer. I saw how good you were at the Gala, but I've never seen you waltz before." She said.
"Why thank you, Princess. I know I may not look it, but I've always had a heart for any type of dance." Discord stated as he continued to waltz with Celestia.
"I can tell, you're very good at this. I never took you for one who likes to waltz, especially to this music." Celestia said while listening to the music in the background.
"Well, that shows I'm fully of surprises." Discord stated with a smirk on his face.
"I didn't need to dance with you to know that." Celestia joked before she giggle a little.
Discord chuckled at her small joke before they continued to waltz in silence.
After a few minutes, the music ended, but Celestia and Discord continued to hold each other. As Celestia stared into Discord's large yellow eyes, she could've sworn she saw a small sparkle in them. At that moment, she felt her heart beat slightly faster; causing a warm shiver to flow up her body.
Suddenly, Celestia snapped back into reality before her eyes widened slightly. She stepped down off Discord's body before she rubbed her leg with her hoof, almost as if she was nervous. "Umm…thank you for the lovely dance, Discord." She said as kindly as possible.
Even though it was obvious, Discord didn't notice her sudden nervous behaviour, he just smiled back down at her. "It was my pleasure, Princess." He said while giving her a small bow.
Celestia and Discord had a small talk before they headed back towards our table. As they walked away, Dusty and Rover were still on the dance-floor watching them. "Well, that worked out well." Rover said in a pleased tone.
"Yeah, but we still need to keep an eye on them, this date isn't over yet." Dusty stated before they both made their way back to their own table.
Twilight and I watched as Celestia and Discord approached the table. "Twilight, Matthew, do you mind if Celestia and I take everything from here? We want to go for a little walk and get some fresh air." Discord said.
Twilight and I looked at each other before we looked at them again. "Err…sure, go ahead." I answered.
Celestia gave us a thankful smile. "Thank you for understanding. I had a wonderful evening, thank you both ever so much form this." She said kindly.
"Anytime, Princess." Twilight said with warm smile before Celestia and Discord walked away from us.
As they were about to walk through the exit, Celestia and Discord stopped before they turned around and waved goodbye to us, Twilight and I waved back before they walked out of the restaurant and into the streets.
The Diamond Dogs and Celestia's maids were also watching them leave. "They're leaving, should we follow them?" Fido asked.
Shiny then turned her head to face him. "Dah, how else are we gonna keep an eye on them?" she stated.
Just then, Dusty stood up from her seat. "Then why are we still sitting around? C'mon, let's go before we lose them!" she said firmly before they all rushed off their seats and left the restraint.
With Celestia and Discord now gone, Twilight and I were trying to think of something to do for the rest of the evening. "So what should we do now? It's just the two of us." Twilight said.
I gave her an unsure look. "I'm not sure, Twi. Discord and Celestia are gone now, so I think the double-date's over. Should we call-it-a-night and go back to the suite?" I asked.
Twilight thought about it before she let out a small sigh. "Ok, I'm kinda tired anyway." She said in what sounded like a disappointed tone.
Seeing her unhappy-look always upsets me, I then tried to think of a way to make the night last a little longer for us. Just then, I heard the String Quartet start to play another sweet-sounding song. I soon gained an idea.
I stepped out of my seat before I held my hoof out to Twilight, she looked at it with confusion before she saw the smile on my face. "May I have this dance?" I asked.
Twilight gave me a sweet smile, she placed her hoof on mine and stepped out of her seat. We then walked onto the dance-floor before we started to dance to the soft music, neither of us wanted to look away from each other's eyes.
Meanwhile: Canterlot Park
Unlike the Castle Gardens, the Canterlot Park was much bigger with more trees and flowers. There was even a small humpback-bridge that stretched across a calm stream.
Celestia and Discord had already arrived there and were now crossing the bridge, they both looked around at the park's beauty. "Wow…I've never actually been to this part of Canterlot before." Discord stated.
Celestia looked at him with slight surprise. "Really?...I use to come here all the time when I was young, I once even came here with…" she suddenly stopped in her sentence as he smile faded away.
Discord noticed this and grew concerned for her. "Princess, are you ok?" he asked.
Celestia snapped back into reality before she looked up at him. "What?...oh, yes I'm fine. Urr, can we find a place to sit down? My hooves are starting to ach a little." She said before she quickly walked across the rest of the bridge and sat down on a near-by stone bench.
Discord wondered why she was acting so odd all-of-a-sudden. But being the smart spirit he was, he already knew the answer. He then followed her across the bridge before he sat down beside her.
Discord looked at Celestia to see she had her head turned away from him, there was a moment of silence before he broke it. "You…came here with that stallion once, didn't you? The one from your academy. Grimerd, right?" he said.
Celestia didn't look at him, she could only sigh. "We came here on our first date…my first date…It was so magical, and he was so charming and kind. I sometimes find it hard to believe somepony like him could've turned into something so…sinister…so dark. He betrayed all of us" She stated with sadness in her eyes.
Discord couldn't help but feel bad for her. "But he betrayed you most of all, didn't he?...He betrayed your heart." He said.
Tears began to form in Celestia's eyes. "Yes…but we didn't even give him a chance to come back, he's dead now…and I'm the one who killed him." She choked as a tear ran down her cheek.
Discord could tell she was starting to cry, he placed his talon-hand on her shoulder before she turned around to face him. Discord had never seen Celestia so sad, it made him feel even worse about the situation.
Celestia sniffed as Discord placed his lion-hand on her cheek and whipped the tear away with his thump. "Celestia…I know it hurts, and I know he hurt you in a way even I can't imagine. But I promise you this…no matter what happens between us, I will never…never…hurt you." He stated.
Celestia looked at him with wide eyes, she had never seen the passionate side of him before. "Discord, I…I don't know what to say…except-"
Celestia was suddenly interrupted by the sound of a twig snapping, they both looked over to where it came from to see a large bush on the other side of the path. After staring at it for a few seconds, they saw it rustle slightly.
Discord gave the bush a suspicious glare before he snapped his fingers and the bush rose up off the ground; revealing the Diamond Dogs and Celestia's maids sitting behind it. "Haha, hi, Princess." Dusty said sheepishly.
"Dusty?...Shiny?...Pearl? What're you doing here?" Celestia asked in surprise.
The three maids smiled nervously at her. "Oh, us?...Well, the thing about that is…well…" Shiny said as she tried to think of something.
Meanwhile, the Diamond Dogs looked up at Discord with fear. Discord crossed his arms with his left eye brow raised. "And what are you three doing here with them?" he asked.
They all stared up at him as they tried to think of an excuse. "…Urrr…" Was all Rover could say.
"What he said!" Spot blurted out while pointing at Rover.
Discord raised his eye brow higher. "From how I see it, it looks as though you and these maids were spying on us." he said with a disapproved look.
The Diamond Dogs began to sweat. "Oh no, we'd never spy on you and the Princess, Lord Discord. Haha." Fido laughed nervously.
"We were merely following you to make sure your date goes well." Spot stated.
"SPOT!" Rover, Fido and the maids yelled at the same time.
"Following us, huh? Well thanks to all of you, the moment Celestia and I were sharing is now ruined. What do you have to say for yourselves?" Discord asked in a firm voice.
The Diamond Dogs began to beg in front of their master. "We only wanted to help you, Lord Discord. We had good intensions, please have mercy on us!" Rover said loudly.
Dusty could only roll her eyes at this sight. "What a bunch of babies." She said under her breath.
"Well I appreciate you concerns, but what happens on my date is none of your business and you shouldn't get involved. Now with that said, I suggest you return to the castle immediately." Discord said firmly.
"Err…very well, Lord Discord. But can we say one thing?" Rover asked.
"Hmm…nope." Discord answered before he snapped his fingers. The Diamond Dogs didn't have time to say anything else before they disappeared in a flash of light.
With that done, Discord turned around to face Celestia with a calmer look. "I'm sorry about that, Princess. I didn't know they were following us this whole time." He stated.
"It's quite alright, Discord. I didn't know either, but I'm going to have a firm talk with my assistants once we get back to the castle." Celestia said as she glanced over to her maids.
"So before I go, what was it you were going to say to me?" Discord asked.
Celestia looked up at him nervously. After the moment was ruined, she forgot what she was going to say. "I was…I was going to say…"
Just then, Celestia stood up before she gave Discord a small kiss on his cheek; making him to blush deeply. "I was going to say thank you for everything." She answered with a sweet smile.
Discord smiled back. "Y-You're welcome, Princess." He said kindly.
Discord then suddenly thought of something to seal-the-deal. He snapped his fingers before a yellow rose appeared in his lion-hand, he held it out to Celestia before she took it in her magic. "Discord…it's lovely." Celestia said as she stared at its beauty.
"Much like the pony it now belongs to." Discord said while still blushing.
After hearing his complement, Celestia blushed slightly as well.
Discord rubbed the back of his head while still smiling. "Well…I should be going now. Goodnight, Princess. Sleep well." He said kindly.
Celestia smiled up at him. "Goodnight, Discord." She said.
Discord then snapped his fingers before he disappeared in a flash of light; leaving Celestia alone with her maids.
Once he was gone, Celestia looked at the yellow rose he gave her, she couldn't help but smile at it.
Just then, the thoughts of her last relationship came back to her. The smile on her face then faded as she remembered how Grimerd hurt her, how he once stole her heart before breaking it like glass. Would she really go through all that again?
Celestia didn't want to admit it, but she still questioned Discord's loyalty at time-to-time. But Celestia couldn't deny she had feelings for hum, not after everything they've done together.
After a few silent seconds, Dusty stepped forward with a concerned look on her face. "Princess?" she said.
But Celestia didn't look at her, she just kept staring at the rose before she placed it down beside her and stood up from the stone bench.
The three maids watched as Celestia walked passed them and went deeper into the park.
As Celestia walked further away from them, Dusty looked over to the yellow rose before she gapped it with her mouth. She, Shiny, and Pearl then galloped after Celestia to catch up with her.
As she wondered within the park, Celestia thought about how deep she was letting Discord into her heart. She was still unsure about having a romantic relationship, especially after her last one with Grimerd. She didn't know whether to let Discord in, or keep their relationship at a professional level.
When the maids finally caught up, they saw Celestia standing in the middle of the path with her head down. They heard her let out a loud sigh before she spoke. "What have I gotten myself into? You think I would've learned by now." Celestia said to herself before she kept walking, the maids followed.
Even though Celestia knew they were following her, it didn't stop her from thinking about the situation. She soon began to sing to herself with the maids listening from behind.
Celestia: "If there's a prize for rotten judgment…I guess I've already won that…
Not stallion's worth the aggravation…
That's ancient history – been there, done that!"
Dusty, Shiny and Pearl: "Who d'ya think you're kidding? He's the earth and heaven to you
Try to keep it hidden. Honey, we can see right through you
Girl, you can't conceal it. We know how ya feel and who you're thiiiinking oooof."
Celestia: "Oh, no chance, no way, I won't say it – no, no."
Dusty, Shiny and Pearl: "You swoon, you sigh, why deny it? Uh-oh!"
Celestia: "It's too cliché, I won't say I'm in loooove….
I thought my heart had learned it's lesson, it feels so good when you start out
My head is screaming 'Get a grip, girl!'…
Unless you're dying to cry your heart out."
Dusty, Shiny and Pearl: "You keep on denying - who you are and how you're feeling
Baby, we're not buyin'
Hon, we saw you hit the ceilin'
Face it like a grown-up! When ya gonna own up that ya got, got, got it BAD?!"
Celestia: "Oh, no chance, no way, I won't say it – no, no."
Dusty, Shiny and Pearl: "Give up, but give in." Pearl: "Check the grin, you're in love."
Celestia: "This scene won't play, I won't say I'm in loooove."
Dusty, Shiny and Pearl: "You're doin' flips, read our lips, you're in love."
Celestia: "You're way off base, I won't say it
Get off my case, I won't say it."
Dusty, Shiny and Pearl: "Girl, don't be proud. It's ok, you're in love."
As Celestia sat down on another stone bench, Dusty walked over to her and held the rose out to her. Celestia then took it with her magic before she smiled sweetly at it.
Celestia: "Oh, at least out loud…I won't say I'm iiiin…loooove."
Celestia continued to smile as she gently stroked the rose's head with her hoof. Dusty, Shiny and Pearl sighed at the sight of this, they were glad to see Celestia had finally chosen to give in to her feelings.
As she staring dreamily at the rose, Celestia became lost in a day-dream. The only sound she could hear was the light beating of her heart. "Perhaps…I could give it a chance." She thought before she sniffed of the rose and sighed at its sweet aroma.
Celestia and her maids stayed there for a few more minutes before they left the park and made their way back to the castle; ending the best date Celestia had in years.
Meanwhile: Canterlot streets
After spending half-an-hour at the restaurant, Twilight and I were ready to head back to the suite.
Twilight had kept her part of the deal and we were gonna have our special night once we got back, I'm not embarrassed to admit I was excited.
But I wanted to do something that would make tonight feel more romantic. After thinking for a few minutes, I thought of a way. But I needed to do it alone, or-else it wouldn't be a surprise.
Luckily, the gentle breeze was too cold for Twilight, so I told her to go to the suite without me and get warm.
Twilight soon agreed and left me in the streets by myself; giving me the perfect opportunity to form my surprise for her.
After running the errand, I was now heading back to the suite again, but this time I had a large bouquet of red roses in my mouth. "I hope Twilight likes these." I thought.
Suddenly, something smacked me hard across the face; causing me to drop the bouquet onto the ground. "What the hell was that?" I said out-loud as I rubbed my hoof against my stinging cheek.
Just then, the mysterious force smacked against my other check. But because I didn't have all four of my legs on the ground, the force knocked me down.
After I got back up, I suddenly heard a dark caw and looked up to see an all too familiar face. It was the red eyed crow again, it was looking down at me from a lamp-post.
I gave it a sharp glare. "Oh not you again! Have you got a problem with me or something?" I yelled up to it.
The crow then spread out its wings before it shot down towards me. My eyes shot wide open as the crow flew passed and scratch me across the chest with its talons.
I let out a small yelp and held my hoof against my chest, I then removed my hoof to see three small scratches on my chest, they were each starting to bleed. And that wasn't all, the white under-shirt of my tuxedo now had three slashes on it.
After seeing this, I looked up at the crow that was flapping in mid-air. "That was my faverate suit, you little pest!" I yelled in anger.
The crow cawed darkly at me before it turned around and flew off into the city. "Oh no you don't, you're not getting away this time!" I yelled before I picked up my bouquet and flew after it.
I flapped my wings as hard as I could to keep up with the crow, it was surprisingly fast for such a small creature.
I chased the crow almost all over Canterlot. It was weird, I thought it would've tired-out by now. But no, it just kept going. While I was chasing it, I had to dodge fruit-stands, buildings, and lamp-posts to keep myself from crashing.
We soon entered the Canterlot Castle Gardens and I grew tired of this ridiculous chase. "That's it! Time to end this!" I muffled with the bouquet still in my mouth.
With that, I flapped my wings with all my strength to pick up speed, it wasn't long before my front hooves were just behind the crow's tail feathers.
But before I could grab it, the crow took a sudden turn and I crashed into a large tree.
I groaned in pain as I peeled off the tree's trunk and fell to the ground. After a few seconds, I opened my to see all the roses from my bouquet were now scattered on the ground, it must've broke went I crashed.
"Oh, perfect." I groaned before I rolled over onto my hooves and stood back up, I then started to look around to see if the crow was still here.
I took slow steps as I looked around the gardens, I didn't want to risk it coming out and attacking me again. The gardens soon became quiet…too quite.
"Why is it so quiet all-of-a-sudden?...I don't like where this is going, it's getting a bit creepy." I said under my breath as I continued to search for the crow.
After a few more minutes of searching, it didn't show up. I then decided to quit before I turned around and walked back towards my now destroyed bouquet, maybe some of the roses were still intact.
As I walked, I looked down at the scratches on my suit and frowned. "Dammit, this was my best suit… *Sigh* well maybe Rarity can fix it when I get back to Pony-AHHH!"
Something suddenly grabbed onto one of my hind-legs and hoisted me up in the air, I was now dangling upside-down from a lasso-rope tied to a tree-branch.
When I saw what had grabbed me, I felt so stupid knowing I was stuck in the oldest trap ever made. If Rainbow Dash saw me now, she'd laugh her head off. "Well…I must look pretty stupid right about now." I said.
I then tried to pull myself up to the branch to free my leg, but I soon lost my strength and dropped back down to my dangling position. I couldn't say I wasn't annoyed by everything that was happening. I mean with the crow, the dangerous chase, the crash, and now this. It was like my luck for today just ran-out.
As I felt the blood start to rush to my head, I let out an annoyed groan. "Grr, how'd this even happen? I mean seriously, what idiot would set a robe-trap in the middle of a bloody garden?" I said out-loud.
Suddenly, I heard the crow's dark caw again. I looked in the direction it came from to see it was standing on another branch that was pointing straight at my face. Step-by-step, it walked down the branch towards me.
"Oh, so you expect me to believe you're the idiot? Don't make me laugh." I scoffed as it approached my upside-down head.
Then without warning, the crow grabbed my snout roughly with its claw before it pulled my face up against his, it glared sharply at me with its beaming red eyes. The moment was then silence…until. "The fight's not over yet, runt." The crow hissed with a male's voice.
My eyes widened with complete shock, the crow just spoke to me.
The crow then pushed my head away before he flew up to the branch I was hanging from. Once he landed on the branch, he smiled deviously down at me before he cut the robe with his talons.
As I fell from the high tree, I yelled loudly before I landed head-first on the hard ground. My ears rang before my world turned to black.
Later: The suite
"Matt!...Matt!...Are you ok? Please wake up."a familiar female voice said as I blinked my eyes open.
I soon saw two blurry figures looking down at me. When my vision cleared, I saw that it was Twilight and Blaze who were looking down at me, they each had a worried look on their faces.
I began to wonder why they were in the park before looked around to see I was actually back in the suite, I also noticed that I was lying on the bed.
"Matt, are you ok?" Twilight asked with a worried tone.
I turned my attention to. "Yeah, I think so." I answered weakly before I leaned up on the bed, I suddenly felt a throbbing pain in my head and moaned as I held my hoof against it.
"Easy there, Matt. You have a bad bump on your head, you were even unconscious when I found you." Blaze as he gently rested me back down.
I then gave him a confused look. "…Found me?.."
"After I got here, I waited for you to come back, but you didn't. I was getting really worried, so I sent Blaze out to find you." Twilight explained.
"I found you unconscious in the park, you looked pretty beat-up. You also had a piece of rope tied around your leg, don't worry, we got it off. But you looked as though you were attacked, did something happen?" Blaze asked.
At that moment, my eyes widened as I remembered everything that happened to me before I blacked-out. Twilight soon noticed my scared look. "Matt, what's wrong?" she asked in a concerned tone.
I looked at her with my eyes still wide. "This wasn't an accident…it did this to me..." I said.
"What did?" Blaze asked with a raised eye brow.
"The crow…the crow from yesterday…it…it set a trap and I fell into it…it did this to me." I said.
Twilight and Blaze then looked at each other before they looked at me again. "The crow did this?...Matt, I think that bump may have done more damage than we thought." Blaze stated.
I looked at him with a firm face. "What, you think I did this to myself?" I said before I looked down at my chest to see the three small scratches. "And how do you explain this?" I said while pointing at them.
Twilight saw the scratches before she looked closer at them, she examined them while rubbing her chin with her hoof. "Hmm…these do look like talon scratches, and they definitely match the ones you had on your face yesterday." She said.
"See!" I said to Blaze.
"Well if a crow did manage to do this, it must've flown away before I found you. Now, is there anything else you want me to do before I turn-in for the night?" Blaze asked.
Twilight turned to face him and shook her head. "No, we can take care of everything from here. You go get some rest, you deserve it." she said kindly.
Blaze smiled at her. "Thank you, Twilight." he said before he looked at me. "Goodnight, Matt. Be sure to get a lot of sleep tonight, you look exhausted." He said.
I nodded. "I will, goodnight, Blaze." I said.
Twilight and I then watched as Blaze walked over to the door and left the suite.
After he left, I went into deep thought about what happened tonight, including the fact that the crow actually spoke to me. Did this mean it can do the same things Jeff can? How many talking birds are there in Equestria? I only knew one thing, that crow definitely wants to cause trouble.
"Matt, is something wrong?" Twilight said.
I snapped out of my thoughts before I looked at her. "Huh?...oh…yeah, I was just remembering something that happened." I answered.
"What is it?" Twilight asked curiously.
I didn't know how to tell her, I didn't even know why I felt so worried about it. The crow only talked, we listen to Jeff and Peewee talk all the time…But the thing he said, the way he called me the same name Thorn called me, it just didn't feel right and I didn't want to worry Twilight.
But I could never keep something like this from her, not if it truly involves Thorn. "Well…you're not going to believe this but…the crow spoke to me." I stated.
"W-What?" Twilight said with a confused look on her face.
"The crow…it spoke, just like Jeff and Peewee can." I said as I leaned up on the bed again.
"So how's that scary?" Twilight asked still looking confused.
My ears lowered slightly as I prepared to tell her the bad part. "He said…the fight wasn't over, and then he called me a runt." I answered.
Twilight's confused look then faded away. "You mean…the same name Thorn use to call you?" she said before I nodded to her.
"You don't think this has anything to do with him, do you?" Twilight asked.
I let out a loud sigh. "I hope not, the last thing we need is to go through that hell again." I said as I lied back down on the bed.
"Or to be reminded of it, so let's try and forget the subject, ok?" Twilight said.
I gave her a comforting smile as I placed my hoof on top hers. "Ok, Twi. Sorry if I'm starting to cause problems."
Twilight smiled back and chuckled. "Haha, it wouldn't be the first time." She joked.
We both shared a laugh at what she said before I noticed something, I wasn't wearing my tuxedo anymore. "Hey, what happened to my tux?" I asked as I looked down at my flat body.
"I took it off you while you were unconscious, I thought it would make you more comfortable. And there's some bad news about it." Twilight said before her horn glowed and my slightly ripped tuxedo hovered up beside her.
"Rarity's gonna have some work to do when we get back to Ponyville." Twilight joked.
I chuckled slightly before Twilight placed the tuxedo down on a chair next to the bed. But when her magic grip released it, something fell out of the bottom.
Twilight looked down at whatever it was before she picked it up with her magic, I was then surprised to see it was one of the roses from the bouquet I bought for Twilight. However, it was slightly bent and most of its petals were missing.
"Why is there a rose in your suit?" Twilight asked while staring at the rose.
"Oh…well…that was the errand I had to run, I bought you a whole bouquet of roses to make our special night seem more romantic. But it got ruined during the whole crow thing, sorry" I apologized.
After hearing this, Twilight looked at me with a sweet smile. "Matt, that was so sweet of you. But don't be sorry, this rose is perfect." She stated.
"But…it's broken." I said while pointing at the rose.
"…As long as it was from you, it doesn't matter." Twilight said sweetly before we shared a small kiss.
But for some reason, Twilight's smile suddenly turned into a frown. "But about our special night…I think we may have to postpone it again." she said.
"What? Why?" I asked.
Twilight gave me a look of sorrow. "Trust me, I want to do it as much as you do. But after what happened, I don't think you're in any condition to do anything like that." She explained.
I waved my hoof. "What're you talking about? I feel fine, we can sti-ohhhh." I groaned as I felt the throbbing in my head again.
"See, you need to get a lot of rest tonight. I'm sorry, Matt, but we'll just have to wait a little while longer." She said before she pulled the covers over me with her magic.
I didn't want to argue, so I let out a disappointed sight. "Alright." I said with my ears down.
Twilight then walked over to a table with a small vase on it before she placed the rose inside it, she smiled at how it looked. "There, now it's in a nice little spot where I can always see it, it even has some water to help it feel better. Speaking of which, I could use a drink myself." She stated.
Twilight turned around to face me. "Do you want some too? It could help your head feel better." She said with a kind smile.
"Yes, please." I answered politely before Twilight walked into the suite's kitchen.
All the while, I still couldn't believe our special night was cancelled again. All thoughts of the talking crow had now left my mind, I didn't even care about it anymore.
All I could do now was lie on the bed while looking up at the ceiling. "Thanks a lot, Pony God." I said under my breath before I crossed my arms and waited for Twilight.
While I was waiting, I thought about the things Twilight whispered into my ear before the date and how weren't gonna do them tonight. However, we still had a few more days before we go back to Ponyville.
So who knows, maybe we'll get lucky.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
Again, sorry for the long wait. Like I said, I've been feeling a bit out of it lately. But maybe a good strong review will help me get some spirit back. Trust me, I'm not gonna quit.
The song I used in this chapter is called "I won't say I'm in love" from the cartoon Disney movie "Hercules". I don't own anything.
Pony News: this is about the fan-game Fighting Is Magic.
Apparently, Lauren Faust herself is helping the makers create the game. Either that, or she's helping them turn it into something else due to the Cease-and-Desist order they got from Hasbro.
In other news, the show's Season 2 DVD will be 'hitting stores' on May the 14th. It will be available on Amazon.
Poll: Some of you might be asking this question "What would happen if Matt visited his family in the Human World and Twilight and her friends went with him?" Well, we might find out.
If you want Matt, Twilight and the others to go to the Human World, go to my profile and vote now, here are the options.
1: I want to see them go to the Human World
2: Leave them in Equestria
Please remember to review.
Next chapter will be up soon.
44. Chapter 44: Return to Ponyville
Hey everypony, I have really bad news.
For those who know the author 'Biggmamma46', I'm sorry to say that she died recently from a heart-attack.
I cried when her fiancé, ShiningShadow1965, told me this news, she was such a kind and lovely woman. So I've decided to dedicate this chapter to her memory.
I really hope you enjoy it.
Chapter 44: Return to Ponyville
After spending 2 weeks away on our honeymoon, Twilight and I were finally going home to Ponyville. To be honest, we couldn't wait to be back at the library with all our friends, we were starting to feel a bit home-sick.
There was some good news, more good news, and bad news about the last days of our honeymoon.
First the good news, the crow that attacked me hasn't reared its ugly head since our double-date with Celestia and Discord.
The extra good news, Twilight managed to heal the scratches on my chest with her Healing Spell.
And finally the bad news, there were so many distractions that we didn't have our special night, this really disappointed me. But I didn't make a big fuss over it, the last thing I wanted to do was upset Twilight when our honeymoon was so close to ending.
Skies above Ponyville
Instead of riding in the carriage that took us up to Canterlot, Twilight and I were riding in a golden chariot pulled by two Pegasi guards.
Surprisingly, there was enough room in the chariot to place our luggage in. Our suitcases sat neatly behind us as we enjoyed the ride.
As we soured through the blue sky, Twilight and I looked down from the chariot to see Ponyville right below us. It wouldn't be long before we start to lower down, no doubt they'll land in front of the library.
After a few minutes, the guards started to fly lower and lower until we were just above the streets of Ponyville. They soon came to a soft landing in front of the library, just as I thought they would.
Once we came to a full stop, Twilight and I grabbed our luggage with our mouths before we hopped off the chariot; leaving it empty.
We then placed our suitcases down on the ground before Twilight trotted over to the guards, they both looked at her as she stopped beside them. "Thank you, sirs." She said politely.
The two guards nodded before they looked forward and galloped away from us; taking the chariot along with them. We both watched as the guards took off into the air and flew the chariot back up towards Canterlot.
Once they were out of sight, Twilight came back over to me before we turned our attention to the library. It felt so good to be home, no fancy ponies, no big buildings, just our normal library in our normal village.
Twilight and I then picked up our suitcases before we made our way towards the front door. Once we reached it, I pushed the door open with my hoof and walked inside with Twilight beside me.
Once inside, we looked around the living-room to see no-one was here. Ether they were out, or they were in some other part of the library. I placed my suitcase down on the floor before I spoke. "Hello? Anypony here?" I called.
After a few silent seconds, Shining Armor appeared at the top of the stairs. Once he saw us, he smiled with delight. "Twily, Matt, when'd you two get back?" he asked as he made his way down the stairs.
Twilight placed her suitcase down before she spoke. "We just got back this minute." She said with a smile.
After Shining Armor got down the stairs, he walked over to us and hugged Twilight lovingly, she hugged him back. "It's so good to see you again." he said.
Twilight and Shining Armor then separated before they looked at each other. "How was your honeymoon?" he asked.
"It was great. Not only did the Princess give us a nice suite, but she let us spend time at the Canterlot Pool-side. It was like we were on vacation." Twilight answered.
"And let's not forget Blaze Horn, he was a great help most of the time." I added.
The moment he heard that name, Shining Armor looked at me with a surprised look. "Blaze Horn? What's he got to do with this?" he asked.
"The Princess assigned him to aid and protect us while we were on our honeymoon. And let me tell you this, he doesn't fool around when it comes to his job. Sure, he has the same personality as you, but he's not the type that relaxes very much." I stated.
Shining Armor then smiled with amusement. "Let me guess, he was all like 'I'm have a job to do, so I can't afford any distractions or anything else that involves having fun'." He said while putting on his best Blaze Horn voice.
I chuckled at what he said. "Haha, yep, that Blaze alright. Haha, good impersonation by-the-way." I complimented.
"Thanks." Shining Armor said before he came a bit closer to me. "So, err…did you and Twily…you know, shake the Earth?" she asked with a big smirk on his face.
I was confused for a moment before I realized what he meant, I then blushed deeply from embarrassment. "Oh…well…no, we didn't. There were so many distractions and stuff like that." I said.
Despite hearing this, Shining Armor's smirk didn't leave his face. "Ah, don't worry too much. You'll get around to it eventually. Trust me, Twily isn't the type who gives up so easily."
I then gave him an amused smile. "Believe me, I know." I said before my smile faded away. "I just feel as though we're delaying it for too long. I mean, what if-"
"What're you two talking about?" Twilight asked; interrupting me.
We both quickly looked at her. "Nothing." We answered at the same time.
Twilight gave us a slightly suspicious look, but before she could speak her suspicions. "Twilight! Matt! You're back." A voice cheered.
We all looked in the direction the voice came from to see Spike running towards us with a large smile on his face. The moment Spike reached us, he leaped up to Twilight and hugging her tightly. Twilight couldn't help but smile and hugged him back with one arm.
After a few minutes, they separated before Spike came over to me. "Man, I've missed you guys." He said as he hugged my chest.
I wrapped my arm around Spike and hugged him back. "We've missed you too, little bro." I said sweetly while still hugging him.
Once Spike and I separated, Shining Armor spoke. "Well, my job's done here, so I think I'll just let you guys settled." He stated before he made his way towards the front-door.
But as he approached the door, Twilight suddenly stopped him by standing in front of him. "Wait, you don't have to leave right now. You can stay for a while longer if you want to." She said.
Shining Armor gave her an understanding smile. "I appreciate the offer, but I should really get back to Canterlot and continue my duties. Besides, the Princess only allowed me to stay here until you got back. If I stay any longer, I might get in trouble." He explained.
Deep down, Twilight understood what he meant. "Ok, I understand. Do you want me to call the chariot back to pick you up?" she asked.
Shining Armor raised his hoof up. "No need, I'll take train. Thanks though." He said with a thankful smile.
Twilight smiled back before they hugged again. "Thanks for taking care of everything, Shining Armor. I love you." she said sweetly.
"I love you too, Twily." Shining Armor responded, Spike and I smiled as they held each other in a loving hug.
They both then separated before Shining Armor looked over to me. "Look after yourself, Matt." he said with a slight smirk.
I smirked back. "I'll try, thanks again for looking after thing." I said kindly.
"You're welcome." Shining Armor said before he walked around Twilight and then over to the door.
Once he reached the door, Shining Armor turned around to look at us. "Don't worry, we'll see each other again." he stated.
"We know, goodbye, Shining Armor." Twilight said with a small smile on her face.
"See ya, Twily." Shining Amor said before he opened the door with his magic, he then walked out of the library and the door closing behind him.
Once he was gone, Twilight came back over to us. However, she looked a bit upset. I knew this was because she wanted Shining Armor to stay a bit longer.
I didn't like to see Twilight upset, so I tried to help her feel better. I placed my hoof on her shoulder before she saw the kind smile I was giving her. "It's ok, Twi. We'll see him again. If you want, we'll go see him sometimes." I said.
Twilight's small frown was then replaced with a thankful smile. "Really?...Thanks, Matt. I'd like that." She said.
After that was done, Twilight looked down at Spike. "So anyway, Spike. How were things while we were away?" she asked curiously.
"Well you know, just as normal as usual. I did my daily chores, helped out around town, and just the same old stuff." Spike stated.
"Were things still crazy around here?" I said with an amused smile.
Spike looked at me with an honest smile. "Actually, things have been kinda calm since you guys left." He stated.
My amused smile then went away. "Even with Pinkie Pie?" I asked with a raised eye brow.
"Well…not completely calm." Spike said as he rubbed his chin. "Oh, that reminds me. She left a note for you a few days ago, I'll go get it." he said before he rushed up the stairs.
While we waited for Spike to return, we heard a door suddenly slam open. We both turned around to it to see Jeff storm out with Owlicious hovering behind him. "Would you stop followin' me! It's bad enough I have to listen to you!" Jeff said in an annoyed tone.
"Hoo." Owlicious hooted.
Jeff quickly spun around to him. "YOU! It's bad enough I have to listen to YOU!" He yelled.
"Hoo." Owlicious hooted again.
Jeff's left-eye twitched a bit before he groaned loudly. "GRR! Just get outta here, will ya!" he said loudly.
Owlicious obeyed by flying into kitchen, Jeff was grunting with steamed annoyance. "Jeez, if I hear him say that word one more time, I'm gonna grab him and-" he stopped in his sentence once he noticed us looking down at him.
Jeff was silent before he formed a fake smile. "Give him a big hug…I love that owl, so full of character." He finished.
Twilight and I weren't convinced, we just stared down at him with firm looks. Jeff continued to smile largely before he laughed nervously. "Haha…so…When'd you guys get back?" he asked.
"Just now, actually." Twilight answered with the firm look still on her face.
The large nervous smile didn't leave Jeff's face. "Oh really? Wow, it feels like you left only yesterday, how time flies." He said as he slowly made his way towards the kitchen. "Peewee and Owlicious are in the kitchen so, err…I'll just, err…let them know you're here…bye." He then shot into the kitchen; leaving me and Twilight alone in the room.
After a few minutes, Spike came back down with an envelope in his right-hand. "Here it is, I've been keeping it safe since Pinkie Pie gave it to me." he said as he held it up to us.
We both looked at the letter before Twilight picked it up with her magic, she open the envelope and pulled the letter out.
Once it was out, Twilight unfolded it and started to read it out-loud for us to hear.
"Dear Twilight and Mattie
For the last few days, I've been coming over to your house to see if you were back yet. But Spike told me that you wouldn't be back for a few days, so I decided to write this letter for you.
When you get this letter, come over to Sugar Cube Corner, I have a surprise for both of you.
P.S. Spike and the others can come too.
Love, Pinkie Pie."
After Twilight finished reading the letter, we both looked at each other. "I wonder what Pinkie Pie wants us there for?." I said.
"Pinkie Pie wasn't making it up, you know. You wouldn't believe how many times she came over to ask if you were back yet, it was like three times a day." Spike stated with his arms crossed.
"Well obviously she wants us to go there for some reason, so I think we should." Twilight said as she gave the letter back to Spike.
I nodded in agreement. "Yeah, I think so too. And who knows, maybe she's asked everyone else to go there, it'll be nice to see them all again." I said.
Twilight smiled. "Great, we'll head over there once we finish unpacking." She declared before she picked the suitcases up with her magic.
Twilight and I then walked up the stairs to go to our room and unpack, Spike came up with us to help.
Later: Sugar Cube Corner
After unpacking all our belongings, we all headed out to Sugar Cube Corner to see what Pinkie Pie had for us.
While Spike was walking beside us, Jeff and Peewee were riding on my back. Owlicious was riding quietly on Twilight's back, which pleased Jeff.
On the way, I decided to start a conversation. "So what do you think Pinkie Pie's got planned for us?" I asked while looking at Twilight.
Twilight turned her head to face me. "Well if I know Pinkie Pie, which I do, it'll probably be a party." She stated.
"That would make a lot of sense, seeing how throwing parties is Pinkie Pie's special talent, not to mention her faverate joy in life." I said.
Just then, Spike looked up at me with a confused look. "I thought Pinkie's faverate joy in life was swimming in a river of chocolate." He said.
I looked down at him. "Nah, that's probably her faverate fantasy." I stated.
As we kept discussing about Pinkie's random and bizarre activities, Jeff soon lost his patients and spoke. "Oh for the love of Celestia, can we just get there already?!" he said loudly.
I turned my head around to face him. "Ok, we'll be quiet." I said before I turned my head back around. "Wow, someone's been rattling your cage." I said.
"Yeah, I wonder who that could be." Jeff said sarcastically before he glared over to Owlicious.
From there, we all kept quiet as we continued to walk.
It wasn't long before we finally arrived at Sugar Cube Corner. As we approached the front-door, Twilight looked at me. "You ready?" she asked.
I turned my head to face her and nodded. "Yep." I responded before we turned our attention to the door.
I placed my hoof on it and pushed it open; revealing nothing but darkness inside.
We all walked slowly inside before the lights suddenly flicked on. "SURPRISE!" Pinkie Pie, Rarity, Rainbow Dash, Applejack, and Fluttershy cheered as they jumped out of their hiding spots.
Once the lights came on, we all looked around to see the whole room was covered in party decorations. Balloons were floating from the tables, confetti was all over the floor, and there was a banner on the ceiling that said 'Welcome Home', it was now clear that this was a welcome home party.
Before Twilight and I could react, Pinkie Pie shot up and hugged both of us tightly. "Twilight, Mattie, I'm so glad you're finally home, I missed you so much." She said with a large smile.
Twilight and I found it hard to breath in Pinkie's tight hug. "We…missed you too…Pinkie…" I managed to say while struggling for air.
Pinkie Pie then released us and we took deep breaths to get some air. After we caught our breath, we looked at the others. "What is all this?" Twilight asked.
"It's a welcome home party, dah." Rainbow Dash stated while hovering in mid-air.
"A little something we decided to throw for the happy couple." Rarity added with a kind smile.
"Were you surprised? Were you? huh, huh, huh?" Pinkie Pie asked as she hopped up and down on the spot.
Twilight and I smiled at her. "Yeah we were, but you didn't need to go through all this trouble for us." I said.
Pinkie waved her hoof. "Don't be silly, silly. It wasn't any trouble at all, I love throwing parties when the chance comes up. Besides, we had to do something to welcome you back." She explained.
Twilight gave her a thankful smile. "Well that was very nice of you, Pinkie. And everything looks great, you've out-done yourself once again." she stated.
"She sure has." Applejack said as she came over to us. "And we all can't wait to hear how your honeymoon went, did anything exciting happen?" she asked curiously.
"And by exciting, we mean really exciting." Rainbow Dash said with a smirk on her face.
Twilight and I were confused before we realised what she meant, we started muttering as we tried to think of something to say. We didn't know what to tell her, Twilight and I didn't do it while we were gone.
But luck was on our side when Rarity grabbed Rainbow's tail and pulled her down to the floor. "Now, now, Rainbow Dash. Whatever Twilight and Matthew did in their…*clears throat*…personal time, is none of our business." She said firmly.
Rainbow Dash sighed as she crossed her arms. "Okay." She said before she came closer to us. "We'll talk later." She whispered without Rarity noticing.
Twilight and I blushed slightly before we tried to change the subject. "Err…well there'll be plenty of time to talk during the party…which still needs to start." I said.
"Then what're we waitin' for?" Applejack said before she walked over to a gramophone on a table. "Lets get this here party started." She then gave the table a small kick; causing the gramophone to turn on.
As the music began to play, we all walked further into the room to start the party.
Half-an-hour later, we all had a warm reunion and everyone was now in different parts of the room partaking in different activities.
Twilight, Rarity, and Fluttershy were dancing to the music the gramophone was playing.
Pinkie Pie was in the kitchen cook refreshments.
Spike, Jeff, Peewee, and Owlicious were dunking for apples, which also had other things inside like a ball on a spring. Jeff fell for that trick twice already.
And I was talking to Rainbow Dash and Applejack. I had already told them that Twilight and I didn't do it on our honeymoon, which amused Rainbow Dash a bit.
"So let me get this straight. You had three weeks alone with Twilight, but you didn't do it with her?" Rainbow Dash asked while holding back laughter.
"Well…no, not really." I said with a sheepish smile.
At that moment, Rainbow Dash burst out laughing. She was laughing so much, I thought she was gonna fall to the floor. She then stopped when Applejack took a step forward. "It's not that funny, Rainbow. They probably just didn't have the time." She said.
"Or maybe one of them is trying to avoid it. Right, Matt?" Rainbow Dash said as she looked at me.
I quickly shook my head. "No, I do want to do it with her. I mean, I wouldn't mind to. I mean…oh dammit." I said while looking down at the floor.
Applejack then placed her hoof on my back. "Don't pay any attention to her, Matt. You and Twi will do it eventually, just give her time and she'll tell you when she's ready." She said trying to be helpful.
I looked at her and gave her a thankful smile. "Ok, thanks, Applejack." I said before I decided to change the subject. "So…how's Applebloom these days?" I asked.
Applejack removed her hoof from my back before she answered. "She's fine, she's still tryin' to earn her cutie mark with her friends. Honestly, when are those fillies gonna learn that ya can't force something like that?" she said with a slightly amused smile.
I just shrugged. "I have no idea. Has she ever mentioned me?" I asked curiously.
"She's mentions ya a few times, mostly askin' if you were back yet. If ya wanna see her, you can always come to Apple Cleanin' Day." Applejack suggested.
"What's Apple Cleaning Day?" I asked in confusion.
"It's the time of the year when we all clean things up around the farm, we clean the barn, the animal pens, even the animals themselves. We also tend to do a little extra apple-buckin' for the harvest, ya'all welcome to come if ya want." Applejack said.
I then thought about it for a moment. It would be nice to see Applebloom and the rest of the Apple Family again, and I haven't really spent much time on the farm for a while. I didn't see any harm in it so I nodded. "Sure, that sounds good. But don't tell Applebloom I'm back yet, I want to surprise her." I said.
"Sure thing, Matt. And don't worry about your delivery job. Once Cleanin' Day's over, I'll tell Big Mac to give it back to ya." Applejack stated.
"Thanks." I said with another thankful smile.
"Well you might still work hard, but I bet you can't fly as hard as you once did." Rainbow Dash said with a large smirk on her face.
I then turned my head to face her with a raised eye brow. "Meaning?"
"Well when was the last time you flew in a race? You've probably lost your touch by now, even though you didn't have one to begin with." Rainbow Dash said with a grin growing on her face.
I knew she was just saying these things to provoke me, she was trying to get me to challenge her to a race. Well, who am I to disappoint? "So you think I'm not fast anymore, huh? Well maybe we see about that?" I said while grinning as well.
Once I said that, Rainbow Dash gave me her full attention. "What'd you have in mind?" she asked.
"I challenge you to a race around both Ponyville and Canterlot, first one to reach your place wins." I said as I held my hoof out to her.
Rainbow Dash wasted no time in grabbing my hoof with hers and shaking it up and down. "You're on, so when does this race start?" she asked.
"Tomorrow, on the clouds above Fluttershy's house, I'll fill in the details then." I explained.
"Deal." Rainbow Dash said before she released my hoof. "Enjoy the party as much as you can, because you're going down tomorrow." She said with devious grin.
"We'll see about that." I said while grinning back.
"…Why do I see no good comin' from this?..." Applejack asked herself while watching us grin deviously at each other.
After that, we all went back to enjoying the party. But all though the evening, I was trying to think of ways to beat Rainbow Dash in the race tomorrow.
The next day: Clouds above Fluttershy's cottage
Just as we said, Rainbow Dash and I were standing on one of the clouds above Fluttershy's cottage. We told Fluttershy what we were doing and now she was watching us from her garden. "Yay." She said in her quiet voice.
Meanwhile, Rainbow Dash and I were stretching our wings to help them move better. "So, what's the track?" Rainbow asked.
I turned my head to face her. "We take off from here, fly through the town, up into the clouds, through Canterlot, back down to Ponyville, and up to your cloud house. No short cuts and no cheating, got it?" I said.
"Yeah, yeah, I got it. All you need to worry about is keeping up, because I'm giving this race all I got." Rainbow Dash said as she crouched down in a starting position.
"Huh, that won't be much." I joked as I got in the same position as her.
Rainbow Dash then shot her head to me. "HAY!" she said in a loud offended tone, I only snickered before we waited for the starting signal.
As we continued to wait, I suddenly heard the sound of a propeller growing louder by the second. But Equestria didn't have helicopters, so I wondered where the sound was coming from. Eventually, I got my answer.
Rainbow Dash's pet tortoise, Tank, rose up in front of us with his helicopter-rotor strapped to his back. He was holding a checkered-flag in his mouth.
Rainbow and I watched as Tank slowly lifted his head up and waved the flag; telling us to go.
The moment that happened, Rainbow and I shot passed Tank; causing him to spin around fast before stopping in a dizzy daze, he soon shook it off and lowered back down to the ground.
Meanwhile, Rainbow and I were flying as fast as we could go. We were both flying side-by-side while trying to take over the other, it wasn't long before we could see Ponyville up ahead.
As we entered the streets, we made sure to fly high above the ground so we wouldn't crash into anything or anyone.
Rainbow Dash slowly overtook me and was now in the lead. As we flew further through the streets, Rainbow Dash saw fruit-stand with tomatoes on it, she then gained a devious plan.
When she shot past it, Rainbow grabbed a few tomatoes and left some bits in their places. I watched in surprise as Rainbow began to fly backwards and throw the tomatoes straight at me.
I was quick to dodge the incoming tomatoes before I continued to fly after Rainbow Dash. "Hey! I said no cheating!" I yelled loud enough for Rainbow to hear.
"I wasn't aiming for you." She yelled back as she continued to fly backwards.
"Well it doesn't matter who you were aiming at, the important thing is to keep your eyes on the road." I called as I saw a building coming up behind Rainbow Dash.
Rainbow Dash was confused by what I said. "Huh? What the hay does that me-UNF!" she was cut off when she flew back-first into the building; allowing me to pass her.
"Yeah, that." I said as I flew by.
Rainbow Dash quickly pushed herself off the wall before she shot after me.
We soon came up to the Town Hall, where we would pull-up into the sky and fly up towards Canterlot. Luckily, I was still in the lead while Rainbow was flying behind me.
Rainbow Dash grunted as she pushed herself to the limit and flew slightly faster, eventually she caught up with me.
As we came close to the Town Hall, Rainbow and I quickly pulled-up to avoid crashing into the building. We flew straight up from the town and into the clouds above.
Rainbow and I began to dodge think clouds as we shot past them, we both knew it would slow us down if we crashed into any of them.
I looked over to Rainbow Dash to see she was dodging clouds like crazy. "So Rainbow, how are you…WHOW!...doing? I said as I quickly dodged a cloud.
Rainbow Dash didn't keep her eyes off where she was going. "Just fine, Matt…are you starting to…tire out?" she asked as she dodged a few clouds.
"Not a chance." I said strongly before I flapped my wings faster; forcing me to shoot off into the lead. Rainbow Dash let out a small grunt before she did the same to catch up.
We eventually reached Canterlot, I was still in the lead with Rainbow Dash coming up behind me. However, she was coming up slowly, so I felt confident about this race.
I kept flying as I turned my head around to look back at Rainbow. "So Rainbow, are you slowing down yet?" I asked with a smirk on my face.
Rainbow Dash gave me a small glare before she grinned. "Nope, but it looks like you'll be in a minute." She called.
I was confused before I turned around and gasped at what I saw, I was flying right towards a thick cloud. I didn't have time to turn before I shot straight into it.
While stuck inside the cloud's fluff, I heard Rainbow Dash laugh as she flew past me.
But I wasn't done yet, I quickly dug through the cloud before I popped out of the other end. I looked up to see Rainbow Dash flying in the distance and I shot up after her.
Canterlot streets
By the time we reached Canterlot, I was flying beside Rainbow Dash as we fought to take the lead. Sometimes Rainbow would ram into me, sometimes I'd ram into her. But we didn't take it personally, it was just for fun.
We did the same as we did in Ponyville, we flew high above the streets so we wouldn't hurt ourselves. Most of the Canterlot ponies watched us fly over their heads, their surprised looks soon turn into disapproving ones.
But we took no notice of them, all we cared about was the race, one that we were both determined to win.
A few minutes later, Rainbow Dash and I flew out of the city and into what looked like the Canterlot Sculpture Gardens. However, we both decided to make this one a little more dangerous.
Instead of flying over the statues, we lowered ourselves down until we were flying through them. Just like we did with the clouds, we dodged every one that was in our path.
But the more statues I dodged, the more I began to regret this idea. The moment my path was clear of statues, I looked over to Rainbow Dash. "Rainbow, I think we've taken this a bit too far now. Maybe we should pull-up to the sky where it's safer." I said loud enough for her to hear.
Rainbow Dash then turned her head to face me. Surprisingly, she looked as though she shared my concerns. "Yeah, maybe we bit off a little more than we can…*GASP*, Matt! Look out!" she yelled while pointing to something up a head.
I quickly looked forward and gasped in horror, I was flying straight towards one of the bush-walls of the garden's labyrinth. Before I could crash into it, I quickly pulled up and flew over it.
However, I wasn't quick enough and my body brushed against the top of the bush; causing my flight-pattern to go off-course.
I struggled to regain control of my flying, I bobbed up & down and shifted left & right as my head started to spin. I could feel it deep inside, I wasn't gonna regain control in time, I was gonna crash.
As I kept flying in a wobbly style, I passed over the Sculpture Gardens and was now heading towards what looked like a gloomy old tower with a water-wheel attached to the left-side of it.
While flying above the tower, I eventually lost whatever bit of control I had left and plummeted down to its tailed roof.
I yelled loudly before I smashed through the roof and landed on a hard wooden floor within the tower, I coughed as a thick cloud of dust filled the air.
Outside, Rainbow Dash witnessed the whole thing before she dashed to the rescue. However, the dust cloud was too much for her to fly through and she remained outside. "Matt?...Matt? Are you ok?" she called.
I heard her calls and slowly opened my eyes to see nothing but the light-beam shining down through the hole I made, I groaned as I leaned up off the floor.
"Yeah, I'm fi-" My sentence was cut short by a piece of wood falling on top my head. "Never mind." I said in a daze.
I then shook it off before I looked around the room I was in, it looked like an old study room. There were book shelves with dusty books, a wooden table near a stained-class window, and a large pair of wooden double-doors that led out to a stone balcony outside.
"Matt? What's going on down there? Why won't you come out?" Rainbow Dash's voice called from outside.
I then looked up at the large hole to answer her. "I'll be up in a minute, I'm just checking things out." I answered before I went back to examining the room.
As my sight got use to the darkness, I began to see the room more clearly. There were many broken and scattered things on the wooden floor, it was a sign of some sort of struggle. But seeing how dusty and old the room looked, this fight must've happened many years ago.
When I looked over to the table near the window, I saw a few strange looking things on it. It all caught my interest and I slowly made my way over to it.
As I got closer, I suddenly heard what sounded like glass breaking beneath my hoof. I looked down to see I had stood on a pair of broken reading-glasses, I wondered who owned them before I shook the thought off and kept walking.
Once I reached the table, I looked around at it too see a lot of things. There was a pile of books on the right-side, a half-melted candle on the left-side, and a strange black book lying right in front of me.
I soon forgot about everything else and gave the book my full attention. It didn't have a title or anything that symbolised a story book, so it must be something else.
Curiosity soon got the better of me and I sat down in front of the table, I then opened the book with my hoof and began to read the inked writing inside it.
"Words of an Alicorn – page 1
This is my first day of writing in this book, and I assure you, there will be more.
The winds are growing colder and the plants are slowly dying, I feel winter is on the way. And yet, everyday feels cold in this cursed tower.
But I must remain here for my own safety. If I leave this tower, if I even step outside, everypony will look at me as nothing more than a monster, and I would disappoint the one pony who truly cares for me."
After reading that, I soon figured out what type of book this was. It was a journal, a journal of someone's history. And from what I just read, an interesting history. "Whow, this is a keeper." I said.
"Matt? Where are you? I'm starting to get really bored." Rainbow Dash's voice called again.
I decided that I had kept her waiting long enough and flew up out of the tower, but not without taking the book along with me. Once outside, I flew up to Rainbow Dash before she noticed the book in my hooves. "Err, what's that?" she asked while pointing at it.
I looked down at the book before I looked back up at her. "This? It's just an old book I found in there." I answered.
Rainbow Dash gave me a confused look. "So how come you took it?" she asked.
"No reason, I just thought it would be a good book to read tonight." I answered.
"But you live in a library, you have a whole load of books." Rainbow Dash stated with a raised eye brow.
I didn't know what else to say, so I tried to change the subject. "Urr…hey, I almost forgot, we're still in a race." I said.
Rainbow Dash instantly forgot about the book and smiled. "Oh yeah, I almost forgot about that." He said before her smile turned devious. "So you thought you could distract me with that book thing, huh? Well think again." she said before she shot past me.
I turned around to see her fly off into the distance, I then let out a calm exhale before I shot off after her. I didn't want to tell Rainbow Dash about the journal because I thought it would be best to keep it a secret, for now anyway.
That night: Ponyville library
After once again losing a race against Rainbow Dash, I returned to library and spent the rest of the day with Twilight. While she wasn't looking, I hid the journal in one of the guest room bookshelves.
When night-time fell, everyone went asleep in their beds, everyone except me.
I was lying in the bed while looking up at the ceiling. I couldn't sleep due to the thoughts rushing through my mind, even the sound of Twilight's gentle snoozing couldn't relax me.
All my thoughts were about the journal, what was that pony talking about? If he even was a pony, he could've very well been a dragon for all I know. I knew so little about it and I wanted to know more.
Eventually, I couldn't take it anymore and decided to get some answers. "I have to know." I said before I rolled out of the bed, carefully trying not to wake Twilight up.
I then tip-hooved around the bed and made my way into the guest room, I slowly closed the door behind me before I walked over to the bookshelf where I hid the journal.
I hid it on one of the high shelves so it would be harder for anyone to find it.
Once I reached it, I climbed up the bookshelf-ladder and found the journal pushed between two thick books. I then grabbed it with my mouth before I pulled it out and climbed back down to the floor.
After I got down, I walked over to the desk before I placed the journal down and turned the table-lamp on; allowing me to see it better.
Once I sat down in front of the desk, I open the journal with my hoof and began to read the next page.
"Words of an Alicorn – page 2
It has been over a week since my last log and I was correct, winter is here and the lands are now covered in a thick blanket of snow.
I can hear them, the young ponies of Canterlot playing outside. Oh, how I long to join them, to feel the coldness of the snow beneath my hooves…but…my Father forbids it, he says the world is not yet ready to know of my existence.
However, he has said that for as long as I can remember. At this point, it seems as though the world will never be ready. What makes me different from everypony else? Is it because I have wings and a horn? Am I nothing more than a mere freak?
One day…one day I will prove my Father wrong, one day I will walk amongst other ponies with pride. And if Canterlot will not accept me, maybe somewhere else will. I believe my Father tried to convince me that there are no other cities out there, but I am no fool.
As long as I am out of this tower for good, I do not care where I go.
~Grimerd~."
The moment I read that name, I gasped louder than I intended to. I quickly covered my mouth with my hoof, afraid that my gasp may have woken Twilight.
I listened carefully to hear Twilight's snoozing; telling me she was still asleep.
I exhaled in relief before I looked down at the journal. "Grimerd?...This journal belonged to Grimerd?" I said to myself.
From what I read, Grimerd must've written this before he turned evil, before he even met Celestia. But that didn't matter, these were still words written by a dark soul.
I wasted no time on closing the journal and flying it back up to its hiding spot. After I put the book back, I quickly left the guest room and gently got back into bed with Twilight.
I rested my head on the pillow and tried to clear my mind, but I must've bounced the bed a bit because Twilight slowly woke up. "Matt?...Are you still awake?" she asked in a tired tone with her head still on the pillow.
Even though I was facing the other way, I still answered. "Yeah, sorry. I…errr…couldn't sleep so I tried to read a book, but I'm tired now so I'll go sleep." I whispered.
Twilight let out a small yawn. "Ok, sweetie." She said before she closed her eyes. "What kind of book did you read?" she asked while slowly drifting back to sleep.
"…A scary one." I answered with a scared look in my eyes.
"*Yawn*…That's nice." Twilight said, she must've been too tired to hear what I said clear enough.
When I heard her gentle snoozing gain, I rolled over in the bed to see Twilight sleeping, I smiled warmly at her. "Goodnight, Twi." I whispered.
After receiving a small hum from Twilight, I closed my eyes to let myself fall to sleep. However, I was still shook up by my discovery, and knowing it was in the next room just freaked me out even more.
At this point, I was afraid that I would have another nightmare tonight. All I could do was hope I wouldn't.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
Dana Mullins (Biggmamma46) Age 49, 1963 – 2013.
Dana, we'll miss you very much. T~T
Ok, the votes for the poll are in. 16 people want them to visit the Human World, 7 people want them to stay in Equestria. Guess we have a winner.
But to those who are worried about this, don't be. Matt and the others won't stay in the Human World, they're just staying for a few days then they'll go back to Equestria. It's all under control, trust me.
Pony News: Meghan McCarthy has revealed some news about Season 4, not big news, but still news.
1: Cool things planned for the CMC.
2: Season 4 will keep fans happy after the Alicorn Twilight thing.
3: Rarity will be a central character again.
4: Spike will get some awesome/love moments.
5: Fluttershy will be the main focus in more episodes.
6: Big musical numbers planned.
7: New characters will be introduced.
8: Slice-of-Life episodes. (Whatever that means)
9: We'll see more of Rarity's generosity.
10: More Equestria History revealed.
11: More members of the Main 6's families will be shown.
12: Twilight will still have flaws as a Princess.
13: More Alicorns will be revealed. (Possible joke, but who knows)
Poll: Just a random question, what do you see the show as? Go to my profile to vote, these are the options.
1: Little kid cartoon.
2: Pre-teen kid cartoon.
3: Pre-teen kid and teen cartoon.
4: Any age cartoon.
Please remember to review.
Next chapter will be up soon.
45. Chapter 45: Apple Cleaning Day
Hey guys, welcome back. Sorry it took so long, it's been crazy lately.
As some of you may know, this story was published on the 3rd of May 2012, so its anniversary was only a few days ago. Unfortunately, I didn't get this chapter done in time for it.
But this is a better day to post it, do you know why? Because not only does the Season 2 DVD come out today, it's my sister's birthday too. So let's wish Jess a happy birthday :D
The votes are in. 11 voted for any age cartoon, 2 voted for pre-teen kid and teen cartoon, 0 voted for pre-teen kid cartoon, and 1 voted for little kid cartoon.
These are very good results, I'm happy to hear them. Except for the 1 vote for little kid cartoon, I was hoping to avoid one of those (No offence to whoever made the vote)
Anyway, on with the chapter!
Chapter 45: Apple Cleaning Day
It's been 2 days since I raced against Rainbow Dash and discovered Grimerd's journal. And so far, I've managed to keep it a secret from everyone.
But there's something odd about the journal. In the few pages I've read, Grimerd talks as though he was a prisoner of the tower, and his father's the warden.
Why did his father keep him locked away from the world? Did he know his son would turn evil? Was he trying to protect him from a cruel fate?...Or was he the cruel one?
So many questions and only one way to answer them. I had to keep reading the journal, even if I felt a cold shiver down my spine every time I did.
Ponyville library
Once again, I was in the guest room reading some of the journal's pages. But like I said, I was trying to keep it a secret, so I locked the door to make sure no one would come in.
I was sat by the desk with the journal lying in front of me, I read its pages carefully so I wouldn't miss anything that might be important.
"Words of an Alicorn – page 5
'Determination' That is one of the main keys to strength in both body and spirit.
My Father grows impatient, he is searching for something…something far away from here, something secret. He has put the remainders of his life into this mysterious work, I don't even see him as much as I used to.
But whatever he's looking for, he's determined to find it. And like I said, his determination makes him strong…and much more dangerous, especially if someone tries to get in his way.
If he sets off on a quest to find whatever he seeks, it will mean I will have no one to hold me down. I will be able to leave this tower and explore the city beyond the stone windows, I will be able to explore Canterlot in all its glory."
*Knock, knock, knock*
I pulled my head up from the book as someone knocked on the other side of the guest room door. "Matt, are you in there? Why's the door locked?" Twilight's voice asked.
As I panicked, I quickly slammed the journal shut before I flew it back up to its hiding spot. Once it was back in place, I flew down to the door and unlocked it.
I then opened the door to see Twilight. "Hey honey, what's up?" I asked while acting innocent.
"Matt, are you ok? You've been up here all morning." Twilight said with a concerned look on her face.
"Yeah I'm fine, I just…errr…wanted to read a book in silence. So I came up to read in here." I said with a big nervous smile.
Twilight then gave me a confused yet suspicious look, I only continued to smile largely in the silent moment. "Anyway, I just wanted to remind you about Apple Cleaning day today?" Twilight said.
"Wha?" I said in confusion.
"Apple Cleaning Day! You told Applejack you'd be there to help clean up the farm, remember?" Twilight said, almost shocked by my forgetfulness.
At that moment, I all came back to me. I got so caught up in reading the journal that I forgot about it. "Oh horse-feathers! I'm supposed to be there to help Applejack and the others, and I nearly forgot." I said.
"Nearly?" Twilight said with a raised eye brow.
I looked up at a clock hanging from the wall to see it was nearly Twelve-o-clock, I was supposed to be there by now. "Oh shit, I have to get going." I said before I looked at Twilight again.
"Thanks for reminding me about it, I love ya." I said before I gave Twilight a small kiss; leaving her stunned and slightly surprised as I walked past her.
After shaking it off, she turned around to me. "Wait Matt." she called.
I then stopped at the top of the stairs and turned my head around to face her. "I love you too." Twilight said with a sweet smile.
I smiled back. "I love you more." I responded lovingly before I walked down the stairs and into the living room.
Once I got to the bottom of the stairs, I looked up to see Twilight looking down at me from the bedroom. "How long do you think it'll take?" I asked.
"To clean an entire farm? A few hours, maybe." Twilight answered.
"Oh terrific." I said sarcastically. "Well, seeing Applebloom again is worth it. I've really missed her and the other Crusaders." I stated.
"Well if you're lucky, maybe Sweetie Belle and Scootaloo are there too." Twilight said with a simple smile.
"Hopefully. Anyway, I better get going before Applejack starts to wonder where I am. See ya, Twi." I said nicely before I walked over to the front-door and opened it.
Twilight and I then exchanged waves before I walked out of the library and closed the door behind me.
Soon after I left, Twilight looked over to the entrance of the guest room before she walked over to it and closed its door with her magic.
Twilight then exhaled quietly. "Looking into that dark room really creeps me out sometimes." She said to herself before she turned around and walked over to the stairs.
Later: Sweet Apple Arches
After a short flight through the warm weather, I landed in the middle of Sweet Apple Arches.
That's when I noticed most of the trees around me had no apples on them, Applejack and her family must've bucked them already.
Speaking of which, I also saw Applejack and Big Macintosh standing in front of the barn. "Hey, Applejack!" I called as I made my way over to them.
Applejack then turned around before and smiled once she saw me. "Howdy there, Matt. I was beginnin' to wonder if you were comin'." She said.
"Sorry about that, I was a bit caught up with something back at the library. But I'm here now, and I'm ready to get started." I said cheerfully as I walked up to her.
Applejack then gave me a pleased smile. "Well I'm glad to hear that." She said before her pleased smile turned into a thankful one. "Thank ya kindly for comin' to help by the way, it's not easy cleanin' an entire farm with only three ponies." she said.
I smiled back. "No prob, Applejack." I said before I looked around the area. "So, is Applebloom around?" I asked.
"Yep, she's in the corn fields. I'll just call her over." Applejack answered before she looked over to the corn fields. "Hey Applebloom! Look who's here to help!" she called with a small smirk.
After a few seconds, Applebloom walked out of the corn fields with a basket of corn-cobs in her mouth. But once she saw me, she dropped the basket and smiled largely. "Matt! You're back!" she cheered before she galloped up to me and hugged my chest.
I then hugged her back with one arm. "Hey Applebloom, how've you been since I left?" I asked with a warm smile.
"I've been fine, but I've really missed ya though." Applebloom said.
"I know, I've missed you too." I said as we continued to hug.
Applebloom and I then separated before she looked up at me. "I'm so glad you're back, just wait until I tell Sweetie Belle and Scootaloo!" she said in excitement.
Just then, we heard Applejack clear her throat. "Applebloom, what've we said about manners?" she said with a raised eye brow.
Applebloom's excited smile then turned into a smaller one. "Oh right…sorry." She said before she looked up at me again. "Umm…how was your honeymoon, Matt?" she asked while acting polite.
"It was great, you wouldn't believe the stuff that happened between Discord and Celestia. Haha, talk about awkward." I said in amusement.
"Somethin' happened between Discord and the Princess? Oh tell me, tell me." Applebloom said while hopping up and down slightly.
I let out a small chuckle as I watched her. "I'll tell you all about it when we start this whole cleaning thing." I stated.
Applebloom then stopped bouncing. "Oh, ok then." She said.
With that conversation settled, I looked at Applejack again to ask her a question. "So when does this cleaning thing start?" I asked.
"We're gonna start any moment now, we're just waitin' for Granny Smith, she's in the house takin' a nap." Applejack explained.
"Oh really? This'll take an hour then." I joked before I sat down on the ground. However, I soon noticed everyone staring at me with their eyes wide open.
After wondering why they were doing that, I had a scary thought. "Urr…she's right behind me, isn't she?" I asked nervously.
"Ah-huh." A voice said behind me.
I then turned my head around slowly to see Granny Smith standing right behind me with a firm look on her face. "I resent that, sonny. Now everypony line up!" she ordered like a general.
With that, we all shot up into a line with our chests flexing out.
Once we did that, Granny Smith started pacing left and right in front of us. "Alright, Apple Family. We have a big job ahead of us, and that job is to give this farm a good old-faction cleanin' from top to bottom. We will clean the pens, we will re-paint the barn, we will-" she said before she suddenly stopped in her sentence.
I then watched as Granny Smith came over to me with a raised eye brow. "Wait a minute, you're not a member of the Apple Family, who the hay are ya?" she asked.
Before I could answer, Applejack spoke. "C'mon, Granny Smith. You remember Matthew, don'cha? We went to his weddin' a few weeks ago." She said, trying to get her to remember.
After hearing this, Granny Smith looked at me again before she smiled. "Oh yeah, now I remember ya. Matthew, how's Twilight been?" she asked kindly.
I was slightly nervous by her sudden change in personality "Urr…She's fine." I answered.
"Oh that's good to hear, I wanna hear all about your honeymoon later. But for now, we need to get back to…err…wh-what is it we're doin' again?" Granny Smith asked as she looked over to the others.
"It's Apple Cleanin' day, Granny." Applebloom answered.
Granny Smith blinked. "You're darn tootin' it is, that's why we need to know what we're doin'." She said before she continued to pace left and right.
"Now where was I?...err…Oh yeah. We will clean the pens, we will re-paint the barn, we will…err…oh you know, we have a lot of stuff to do. So everypony has to put their full effort into it, and we don't have time to goof around like a bunch of sheep…." Granny Smith said before she suddenly stopped.
After a few minutes, we all looked at each other in confusion before we looked at Granny Smith again. The moment was silent and kind of awkward. "…So what're ya'all waitin' for? Move ya cabooses!" Granny Smith said loudly.
With that, we all split up to work on different parts the farm. To understand what I was doing better, I went with Applejack towards the barn.
After we entered the barn, I looked around it before I turned my attention to Applejack. "So Applejack, what're we doing first?" I asked curiously.
Applejack turned her head around to face me. "Well we need to give this barn a fresh coat of paint, but we can't do that unless it's cleaned out first. So we're gonna have to take everythin' out of the barn so they won't be in the way." She explained.
"Ok, that doesn't so too hard. What should we take out first?" I asked.
Applejack then looked around before she spotted something I could do. "You can start by shiftin' those hay-bales if ya want." she said while pointing at a pile of square hay-bales.
I looked over to them and smiled slightly. "Alright, I can do that." I said before I walked over to the hay-bales and grabbed one by its band. I then started dragging it towards the exit.
"And while ya doin' that, I'll be up on the loft gatherin' things to take out. I'll check on ya in a minute." Applejack said before she made her way over to the ladder that led up to the barn's loft.
As Applejack climbed up the ladder, I continued to drag the hay-bale out of the barn. I was slightly surprised by its weight, these hay-bales were heavier than they looked. But eventually, I managed to get it outside.
I dragged it over to the white fence near the barn and released it. "Ok…one down." I said before I looked back into the barn to see the rest of the hay-bales. "And ten to go…*sigh*." I sighed.
I then walked back into the barn to get the next hay-bale, but the job soon became harder than I thought.
After a few minutes, I finally finished it. Now there was a pyramid of hay-bales outside the barn, don't ask how I got the last one up to the top.
I wiped the sweat off my head before I went back into the barn again. When I got inside, Applejack looked down at me from the loft. "Finished with those bales already? You sure are a quick worker, Matt." she said with an impressed tone.
I then gave her an amused smile. "Not really, I'm crap at paperwork. I'm only good at this because it's physical work and it doesn't involve holding a pen all day." I stated.
Applejack chuckled. "Haha, yeah, I see what ya mean. But if ya like the physical stuff, then I've got another job for ya. Did ya see the waggon outside?" she asked.
I nodded. "Yeah, I saw it while I was dragging those hay-bales out." I answered.
"Well I need ya to hook it up to yourself and pull it in here, we're gonna need it to get all this stuff out." Applejack stated.
"On it." I said before I trotted out of the barn to fetch the waggon.
After attaching the waggon to myself, I pulled it inside the barn before Applejack looked down at me from the loft. "No, Matt. Don't come in forward, I need ya to back the waggon up into the barn." She stated.
I looked up at her. "Why?" I asked with my head cocked.
"Because I'm gonna drop this stuff down into the waggon, it'll be easier than going up and down the ladder a million times." Applejack explained.
I then did as she said by turning the waggon around and backing it up into the bard, I continued to back it up until it was right below the loft.
Once I was in place, Applejack smiled with satisfaction. "Good work, Matt. But get ready, I'm gonna drop down the heaviest thing first so it's out the way." She said before she walked away from loft's edge.
I then turned my head around to look up at the loft. "Ok, but how big is this thing?" I asked.
I got my answer when I saw a large wooden crate being pushed towards the edge, my eyes widened slightly. "Oh cra-" my sentence was cut off when the crate fell down into the waggon with a hard thud!
With the crate's weight now added to the waggon, the metal strap around me felt slightly tighter.
Applejack then came up to the loft's edge and looked down at me again. "Alright Matt, it's in. Now let's take it outside." She said before she climbed down the ladder.
Once she came down, I used all my strength to pull the heavy waggon towards the exit. Eventually, I managed to get it outside and stopped.
"Damn…what's in that thing?...pumpkins?" I asked Applejack while panting hard from exhaustion.
At that moment, Applejack gave me a sheepish smile. "Haha." She laughed nervously before she opened the crate lid with her hoof; revealing a whole stock of large pumpkins.
My eyes widened in shock. "Hey, it is full of pumpkins! Why is this crate full of pumpkins?!" I asked loudly.
"What do ya think we sell on Nightmare Night, cowboy?" Applejack said before she closed the crate.
"…Just get the crate out…" I groaned with my eye-lids half shut.
After taking care of the crate, we both went back to the barn to load-up more stuff. There were a lot of things up on the loft that needed to be taken out, like a bunch of straw-baskets, more hay-bales, and a cardboard box full of pictures from Granny Smith's childhood.
We kept doing this until the barn was completely empty, all the stuff we took out was now in a neat pile not far from the barn. We were gonna leave them there for now, but I knew we'd have to put them back later.
While we stared into the empty barn, Applejack turned her head to face me. "Nice job, Matt. I know it was hard work, but we pulled it off." She said with a proud smile.
I then looked at her and smiled back. "Yeah, so are we gonna start paining the barn now?" I asked.
Applejack shook her head. "Not yet, we're gonna leave that job for last. But if ya wanna do somethin' else, you can always help Big Macintosh harvest some extra apples. He's probably in the orchard right now." She said.
"Well that can only lead to disaster and hilarity…so yeah, I'll do it." I said with a simple smile.
"Great. You do that, and I'll start fixin' a few things up around here." Applejack said.
With that, we both went our separate ways. Applejack went around to the front-door of her household while I made my way over to the apple orchard to help Big Mac.
Apple orchard
After entering the apple orchard, I looked around until I spotted Big Macintosh standing next to an apple-filled tree.
I also noticed Winona picking up apples and dropping them into a wooden basket beside Big Mac, she must be helping him collect apples that miss the basket when they fall.
As I walked up to him, Big Mac bucked the tree with his hide-hooves before a bunch of apples fell down into the basket below; filling it up.
"Hey Big Mac, working hard?" I asked with a smile.
Big Mac then turned his head to face me. "Eeyup." He answered with a small nod.
"Nice. So anyway, Applejack and I are done cleaning out the barn and she says you might need some help over here, do you want me to do anything?" I asked curiously.
"Eeyup." Big Mac answered before he pointed his hoof at something.
I then looked to where he was pointing to see an apple tree that hadn't been bucked yet, a few empty baskets had already been placed under its branches. "You can buck the trees over there if ya want." Big Mac said.
I turned my attention back to Big Mac. "Sure thing, I'll meet up with you when I'm finished." I stated before I made my way over to the apple tree. Surprisingly, Winona followed me.
When we reached the tree, we looked up at its apples to see they were definitely ready for picking, I was even tempted to eat one myself. But the job came first, I'll ask for one later.
I then looked down at Winona who was standing beside me. "Those apples look good enough to pick, what do you think?" I asked.
Winona looked up at me. *Bark, bark* She barked while nodding slightly.
I gave her an amused smile. "I'll take that as a yes." I said before we turned our attention back on the tree.
Once I got the basket properly in place, I turned my body around before I lifted my hide-legs and gave the tree a hard buck. However, no apples fell down.
I stayed in the position I was in for a few seconds before I quickly rolled over onto my back and rubbed my hide-hooves. "Ow, ow, ow, ow." I repeated in pain.
Winona just sat there as she rolled her black beady eyes at the sight of this.
After rubbing my hooves a bit more, I stood back up before I looked at the apples again. "Hmm…how am I gonna do this without breaking my legs?" I muttered to myself as I tried to think.
Eventually, I came up with an idea and shot off to find what I wanted. A few minutes later, I came back with a long wooden stick in my mouth before I dropped it onto the ground. "Alright Winona, just stand back a bit so you don't get hurt." I said while looking down at Winona.
Winona obeyed by standing up and taking a few steps back.
Once she was in a safe distance, I picked up the stick with my front-hooves before I swung it up at the apples above. Unfortunately, I wasn't tall enough for the stick to reach them. Swing after swing, I kept missing without getting close to the apples, even standing on my hind-legs didn't help.
I soon gave up and allowed the stick to drop down onto the ground. But I wasn't going down that easy, so I tried to think of another way to make the apples fall.
That's when I hoisted the stick back up and held it in a bat-swinging position with my eyes focused on the tree's truck.
Winona soon realised what I was about to do and covered her eyes with her paw, not bearing to watch.
Then with one hard swing, the stick smacked against the wooden trunk. I but instead of sending vibrations through the tree, the hit sent vibrations through me.
With my entire body shaking like crazy, I slowly pulled the stick away from the tree. "Th-th-th-there's got to b-b-be a bet-t-t-ter way to d-d-do th-th-this." I managed to say before I released the stick.
After I shook the vibrations off, I dropped back down onto my hooves before looking up at the tree again. But this time, it was with an annoyed look. "Alright, no more mister nice pony. Those apples are coming down, one way or another." I declared strongly.
With that said, I tried many ways to get the apples to fall. I tried climbing the tree, but I kept falling. I tried using a lasso-rope to pull them down, but I wasn't good at it. I even tried shaking the tree itself, but they all ended with one thing, failure!
While I was having another go at bucking the tree-trunk, Big Macintosh came over to me while pulling an apple waggon behind him.
Once he noticed the exhausted look on my face, he grew slightly concerned. "You ok?" he asked.
I then stopped bucking the tree and looked up at him. "These apples are wearing me out…it's like they're glued to the branches or something." I said while panting.
"What'd ya mean?" Big Mac asked with slight confusion.
"No matter what I do…these apples won't fall down…I've tried bucking the tree, shaking them down, I even tried whacking them with a stick…How do you make it look so easy?" I asked.
"Well maybe apple-buckin' just isn't the right type of work for ya. But you do know you're a Pegasus, right?" Big Macintosh asked while still in confusion.
"Yeah, what's your point?" I asked with a raised eye brow.
"Well ya could've just flied up there and picked the apples, ya don't have to do it exactly like us." Big Macintosh stated.
The moment I heard that, my eyes shot wide open in disbelief. I could've avoided all this trouble from the very beginning, how could I have forgotten I had wings? I couldn't help but blush deeply from pure embarrassment.
My left-eye twitched slightly before I growled loudly. "You've got to be kidding me!" I shouted as I gave the tree a hard buck; causing it to shake.
Suddenly, a whole load of apples then fell down from the tree and landed in the baskets. I looked at the now full baskets with surprise and placed my hide-legs back on the ground. "Huh…well that solves that problem." I said before I lied down against the tree and relaxed.
"Yeah, but there's still a few more trees to buck." Big Macintosh stated.
My eyes then shot open before I looked around the orchard. Unfortunately, he was right, there were still many more apple-filled trees around me. Upon seeing this, I felt my head start to spin.
It wasn't hard for Big Macintosh to notice this. "I know it's hard work, but that's the thing about runnin' a farm." He said before he thought of a way to help me. "Tell ya what, let's work together on this. I'll buck the apples down and you catch them in the basket, deal?" he said.
After hearing that, I gave it some thought. It did seem a lot easier that way, and I wouldn't have to worry about making the apples fall anymore. "Well…alright, let's do that." I said with a small confident smile before I stood back up.
Big Macintosh then smiled at me before we made our way over to the next apple-tree, Winona followed behind with her tail wagging.
Later: The Barn
It took a while, but Big Macintosh and I were finally finished. There were still some trees with apples on them, but we harvested more than enough.
After we stored all our picked apples away, Big Mac and I headed over to the barn to see if Applejack and the others needed held re-painting it.
As we approached the barn, we saw that Applejack and Granny Smith had already started painting it. Granny Smith was painting the left side of the barn while Applejack was paining the main double-doors.
"You're doing a good job there, Applejack." I said as we walked up to her.
Applejack then turned her head around to me and smiled. "Thanks, but we've only just started, it'll take us a little longer to re-paint this whole thing. I take it you're both here to help out?" she asked.
"Eeyup." Big Macintosh answered.
Applejack looked him and smiled. "That's good, we need all the help we can get."
"What do you need us to do?" I asked.
"Well Big Mac can start paintin' the right-side of the barn while you help Applebloom at the back. That is, if she ever shows up." Applejack stated.
"What do you mean? Where is she?" I asked slightly worried.
"She went over to the pig pen to give the pigs a bath, but she's been there all evenin'." Applejack said.
"Maybe I should go check on her." I said.
At that moment, Applejack looked over to something behind me before she looked at me again. "I don't think that'll be necessary anymore." She said.
I then turned my head around to see Applebloom galloping to us before she stopped. "Sorry I'm late, Applejack. Those pigs were hard to clean, especially Little Piggington." She explained.
I then looked over to the pig pen to see a large fat pig with a blue bow rolling around in the mud. "You mean that pig?" I asked while pointing at it.
Applebloom turned her head around and gasped at what Piggington was doing. "Shoot! It took me forever to clean her." She said as she looked at us again.
Applejack then gave her a kind smile. "It's ok Applebloom, Piggington dose that every time someone cleans her." She stated.
"Yeah, but I guess this means I won't get a cutie mark for animal cleanin'." Applebloom said with a small frown.
Feeling bad for Applebloom, Applejack thought of a way to cheer her up. "Would workin' with Matt help ya feel better?" She asked.
After hearing this, Applebloom's small frown turned into a smile. "That's sounds nice." She said.
Applejack then looked at me. "How 'bout it, Matt? Wanna help Applebloom paint the back of the barn?" she asked.
I nodded. "Sure, I've been wanting to spend a little time with Applebloom anyway." I said while stroking Applebloom's head with my hoof.
"Good. Now you two go around back and start paintin', I'll stay here and finish up on these doors." Applejack said before she looked at Big Macintosh. "Big Mac, we need you to paint the right-side of the barn." She said.
Big Macintosh then nodded before he walked around to the right-side of the barn.
"C'mon Matt, we have a barn to paint." Applebloom said with excitement as she galloped around to the back of the barn.
After she disappeared around the corner, Applejack and I looked at each other. "Thanks Matt, this really means a lot to her." She said with a thankful smile.
I smiled back. "No problem, Applejack. And don't worry, I'll help her if she needs it." I stated before I followed Applebloom around to the back.
But once I got there, I was met with a surprising sight.
Applebloom had already started painting the wooden wall with a paint-brush in her mouth. But unlike other kids her age who would paint in a crazy style, Applebloom did it with smooth and gentle strokes.
I was amazed by Applebloom's work and stepped closer to admire it, her skills with a brush were impressive. "Wow Applebloom, you're really good at this." I said without taking my eyes off her work.
Applebloom dropped her brush into the paint-can before she looked at me. "Oh I can't be that good." she said while rubbing her hoof against the ground in an embarrassed way.
I then looked down at her with an honest smile. "But you are, I don't think I've ever seen a pony with such a steady…well…mouth." I said.
"Well…thanks Matt, but I bet you're as good as I am, it's nothin' special." Applebloom said before she picked her bush back up and continued to painting the barn in her talented way.
As I watched her work, I couldn't help but chuckle. "And she wonders what her special talent is." I thought before I decided to get to work on the barn.
I then looked around for another brush before I saw one lying on the ground next to Applebloom's paint-can, I guess this meant we had to share the can.
But as I reached down to pick the brush up with my mouth, I suddenly notice something on Applebloom's flank, it was some sort of picture. After a few seconds, I figured it out and my eyes grew wide. "No way…has it finally happened?" I thought.
I then took a closer look to see it was a single red apple, my heart began to race as I thought she had finally earned her cutie mark. "Applebloom…h-have you noticed what's on your flank?" I asked without taking my eyes off her cutie mark.
Applebloom dropped her brush again before she looked at me. "Oh, you mean my new cutie mark? Yeah, I earned it early this week." She said.
I then raised my head back up before I smiled largely at her. "Applebloom, that's great! You've finally got you're cutie mark. We told you it would come if you-…wait a minute." I said as I took another close look at her it.
At that moment, Applebloom's proud smile turned into a nervous one. "W-What?...What's wrong?" she asked.
As I looked closer at her cutie mark, I saw some wired red dust on it. I then gently stroked my hoof across her cutie mark to see I had made a smudge on it, this raised my suspicion.
After figuring it out, I looked at Applebloom's face again. "Applebloom, this cutie mark's been drawn on with crayon." I said as I raised my head back up.
Applebloom's wide eyes then shifted left and right. "Urr…what's your point?" she asked.
"It's a fake." I answered.
Applebloom was silent as she stared up at me "Oh…really? Now how in Equestria did that happen? Huh, must've been one of the kids from school. Probably Diamond Tiara tryin' to tease me again, you know what she's like, haha." She laughed nervously.
I could tell she was trying to play innocent, so I gave her an unconvinced look with my eye brow raised.
As the seconds went by, Applebloom began to sweat before she finally cracked. "Alright, I did it. I was tired of havin' a blank-flank all the time, so I drew a fake cutie mark on my flank. It seemed like a good idea at the time." She explained with a small frown.
I then placed my hoof gently on her back. "Applebloom, sweet-heart, I know you really want your cutie mark, but you didn't need to do that. I mean, how do you know your special talent involves apples?" I asked.
"I don't know…I just thought it would fit because everyone else in the family has apple-themed cutie marks." Applebloom stated.
"But from what I remember, you've already tried getting an apple-themed cutie mark and it didn't work." I said as I removed my hoof from her back.
"I know, but I'm not gonna keep it forever, just until my real one appears. Please Matt, let me keep it for now." Applebloom begged.
"Well…alright, but just don't get too attached to it, it's not gonna be there forever you know." I said.
"Oh thank you, thank you." Applebloom replied with a large smile.
"It's ok, now c'mon, we need to get back to work before Applejack comes to check on us." I said before we both picked our paint-brushes up and went back to re-painting the barn wall.
Suddenly, Applebloom realized something and dropped her brush again. "Hey, how'd you know I tried to get an apple-themed cutie mark anyway? You weren't even there." she said while looking at me suspiciously.
My eyes then widened slightly. "Oh that?...well I…errr…Oh look at the time, we better get back to work." I muffled with the brush still in my mouth before I resumed painting.
Applebloom then decided to forget about it and picked her paint-brush back up. As we both went back to work, I exhaled in relief. "Woow, that was close." I thought.
A few minutes later
After Applebloom and I finished painting the back, we both went around to the front of the barn to see Applejack had finished her job as well. As we approached her, Applejack noticed us and smiled. "Finished already? Well that didn't take too long, did it?" she said.
Applebloom and I shook our heads. "No, and by the way, have you ever noticed Applebloom's skills with a paint-brush?" I asked.
Applejack's eyes then closed half-way. "Yeah, but I think the real question is have you noticed the state of her coat?" She said.
I was confused for a moment before I looked down at Applebloom and realized what she meant. Applebloom's coat was covered in dry paint, she must've dropped a bit on her while we were working. "Oops" I said.
"Looks like somepony needs to have a bath." Applejack said with a small smirk on her face.
Once she heard that, Applebloom let out a whiny groan. "Oooh, but I hate baths." She stated.
"I know, Applebloom. But we're all havin' one after this, so you might as well get yours over with. But I don't think I have time to give ya one right now…unless." Applejack said before she looked at me. "Unless Matt wants to do it." she finished.
"…What?..." Applebloom and I said at the same time.
"You don't mind givin' Applebloom a bath, do ya?" Applejack asked with a hopeful smile on her face.
"Well…urr…I guess I could do it." I answered while secretly unsure.
"Great, you go inside and give Applebloom a bath while I stay here and help Granny Smith paint her side of the barn." Applejack said before she trotted around the left-side of the barn.
After she was gone, Applebloom and I looked at each other. "So, wanna get this thing over with so it's done?" I said trying to give her a good reason to accept it.
"…I guess so." Applebloom said.
Hearing this relieved me because I thought she'd try to talk me out of it. But I was stupid to think that about Applebloom, she was a good girl who always did as she was told.
Although, there was that time when Applejack got shrunk by the Poison Joke and Applebloom left her stranded on a tree-branch, but that was different. Plus, Applejack did act a bit…bossy…back then.
Anyway, I smiled down at her before we walked around to the house-entrance of the barn.
Apple Family household
After we entered the house, Applebloom and I went upstairs to the bathroom. Applebloom waited in her room while I ran her bath.
Once the bath was ready for her, Applebloom came back before she took her bow off and gladly hopped into the water. With Applebloom now settled in the warm bubbly water, she was ready to be washed.
I grabbed a sponge with my hoof before I dipped it into the water and started scrubbing Applebloom's back, I made sure to use gentle rubs so I wouldn't hurt her in any way.
"Is this alright, Applebloom?" I asked as I kept scrubbing her yellow fur.
"Yeah, it actually feels nice." Applebloom said with a small smile.
When I finished scrubbing her back, I saw a bar of soap near the bath before I looked down at Applebloom. "Hey Applebloom, do you mind washing yourself with the soap while I get the shower-hose ready?" I asked.
"Sure thing." Applebloom answered before she grabbed the soap with her hoof and started rubbing it against herself.
While she was doing that, I reached my hoof over to one of the shower-knobs and turned it clock-wise. Water then instantly began to rain down from the shower-head.
I then looked over to Applebloom to see her whole body covered in soap, I couldn't help but chuckle at the sight of her. "Haha. Oh no, it's a bubble monster. Please, stay back." I said with a playful smile on my face.
At first, Applebloom was confused, but she soon got the idea and played along. "Grrr, I'm a vicious bubble monster from the deep and I'm here to cover you in my evil bubbliness." She said while paddling towards me.
"No, don't come any closer, I can't take it. There's only one thing I can do to stop you." I said in a dramatic way before I picked Applebloom up and placed her back down under the shower-water.
The bubbles covering Applebloom's body were instantly rinsed off by the warm water raining down on her. "Nooo, you found my one weakness, you have defeated me *Fake cough*." Applebloom said while pretending to be weak.
I smiled with amusement. "You bet I have." I said as I gently splashed Applebloom with the bath water; earning a small giggle from her.
I then gapped a shampoo bottle before I flicked the top off with my hoof and poured some over Applebloom's mane.
Once it was on, I placed the bottle back down before I used my hooves to rub the shampoo into Applebloom's hair.
"Keep your eyes shut, Applebloom. We don't want any of this to go in your eyes." I said as I kept rubbing her now sudsy mane.
"Ok." Applebloom answered with her eyes shut tightly.
When all the shampoo was washed off by the shower-water, I turned the shower off before I grabbed a towel and used it to wipe all the water off Applebloom's face.
Once he face was dry, I took the towel away before Applebloom slowly opened her eyes. "Is it time for me to get out?" she asked while looking at me.
I nodded. "Yeah, I'll help you dry yourself once you come out." I said while holding the towel open with my hooves.
Applebloom then climbed out of the bath before I wrapped the towel around her. While Applebloom dried parts at the front of her body, I helped dry her back.
Once she was dry, I removed the towel to see her coat sparkle with cleanliness. "So do you feel refreshed now?" I asked as I threw the wet towel in a hamper.
Applebloom then looked around her clean coat. "Kinda…but I feel as though something's missin', somethin' import-*GASP* Oh no!" she said in a loud voice.
"Wh-what is it?" I asked with concern.
Applebloom then rotated her body around until I could see her blank-flank. But that was just the point, it was blank!
"My crayon cutie mark's gone, it must've washed off in the bath. Now what am I gonna do?" Applebloom frowned as she sat on the floor.
I couldn't help but feel bad for her. It wasn't a big deal, but I had to be sensitive to her feelings. "Hey, it's ok Applebloom. Why don't you just draw another one?" I asked.
"Oh what's the point? Lets face it, I can't pretend to have a cutie mark, I'll have a blank-flank forever." Applebloom said as she looked down at the floor with sadness.
"That's not true, Applebloom. You'll get your cutie mark someday, just…not right now, maybe when you're older." I said trying to help her feel better.
Applebloom then looked up at me. "What do ya mean 'when I'm older'? How old do I have to be? Most of the kids at school are my age and they have their cutie marks. *Sigh* What am I doin' wrong, Matt? Why can't I find my special talent?" she asked.
I didn't know how to answer her question. I mean, I didn't exactly know what her special talent was. I did have a hunch earlier today that it was something to do with painting and decoration, but how can I be sure?
I then realized Applebloom was still waiting for my answer. "Well…you see…umm…I doubt you're doing anything wrong, but maybe you and the other Crusaders should try doing things you like instead of all those random activities you always do." I said.
Applebloom then rubbed her chin as she thought about it. "Or maybe…we're just not tryin' hard enough." She said with a gentle smile.
"Well, that's not really what I mea-"
"I have to ask Applejack if she'll let me go find the others! If we're gonna earn our cutie marks, we have to get back to work proto." Applebloom interrupted before she put her bow back on and galloped out of the bathroom.
After she left, I just blinked before a small smile came on my face. "She'll get the idea one day." I said to myself before I left the bathroom and followed her outside.
Outside the household
After exiting the household, Applebloom and I went around to the entrance of the barn to see Applejack and the others putting everything I took out back inside it.
Granny Smith was carrying small things into the barn, Applejack was organizing everything up on the loft, and Big Macintosh was pushing in all the heavy stuff.
Once we entered the barn, we both looked up at Applejack on the loft. "Hey Applejack!" Applebloom called.
After a second, Applejack walked up to the edge of the loft and looked down at us. "Hey Applebloom, all clean I see, did Matt do a good job?" she asked with a simple smile.
Applebloom nodded. "Yep." She answered before she decided to ask her question. "Hey Applejack, do ya mind if I go play with Scootaloo and Sweetie Belle for the rest of the day? I promise not to do anythin' that'll get me all dirty again." she said with a hopeful smile.
"Well…ok, just be back before dark, alright?" Applejack said.
"Deal! Thanks" Applebloom said before she spun around and left the barn. "Baseball cutie mark, here I come!" she cheered as she galloped towards town.
After watching her leave the farm, Applejack and I looked at each other. "Matt, do ya mind comin' up here to help me? There's a lot of stuff up here." she said.
"Ok." I said before I spread my wings out and flew up onto the loft. "What's up?" I asked after I landed next to Applejack.
"Well before we get started, I just wanna say somethin'." Applejack said before she gave me a thankful smile. "Thank you for everythin' you've done today, it means a lot to us." she said.
I then smiled back. "No prob Applejack, I've enjoyed myself today, even if I struggled at some points." I stated.
"Well I'm I glad you had fun, and we really do appreciate all the help you've been givin' us. In fact, we even have a little somethin' to give ya after we're done here." Applejack said.
At that moment, I became curious as to what they were going to give me. "Really? What is it?" I asked with an excited smile.
Applejack then gave me a cheeky smirk. "Oh no you don't, it's a surprise. You wanna know what it is? You've gotta help me finish this job first." She said.
"Meany." I joked. "Ok, what do you want me to do?" I asked.
With that, Applejack looked down from the edge of the loft. "See those boxes down there?" she said while pointing her hoof down at something.
I then looked down at what she was pointing at to see a couple of cardboard-boxes stacked in a neat pile. "Yeah." I answered.
"I want ya to fly down there and bring them up one-by-one, I'll take care of the rest." Applejack explained while looking at me.
I then turned my head to face her and nodded. "Got it, I'll get started." I said before I flew down to the pile of boxes and grabbed the one at the top.
With the box in my hooves, I flew back up to the loft and placed it down beside Applejack. "This isn't such a core, is it?" I said.
"Just wait until later when you have to bring up the heavy stuff, these boxes are just the starter." Applejack stated with another smirk on her face.
Once I heard that, my smile went away. "I don't see this ending well." I muttered before I flew down to get the next box.
Applejack just shook her head in amusement before she pushed the box over to the back-wall.
Later, I had already brought up 6 boxes and I was now bringing up the seventh. After placing it down on the loft, I rested my elbow on it to catch my breath.
"Is it me or did this become harder than it was before? What's in these things anyway? bricks?" I said to myself before I removed my elbow and lifted the box's lid up; revealing something inside that I found interesting.
The box was full of black-and-white photographs and old books, they looked as though they were from Ponyville's olden days. And there was something in common with some of the photos, they had green mare with blond hair on them. Just then, Applejack came over to me. "You know it's rude to snoop, right?" she joked.
I then looked at her. "Sorry, I just wanted to know what was in here. By the way, who's this?" I asked while pointing at one of the photos with the mare on it.
Applejack looked at the photo before she looked back at me again. "Her? That's Granny Smith when she was my age. She certainly looked different back then, didn't she?"
I was surprised by this. All these photos and books belonged to Granny Smith, and the green mare on most of them was her when she was young. "Really? What's she doing in these pictures? It looks like some sort of party." I said as I looked at another photos.
"That's a picture from one of the old Apple Family Reunions, that party only comes every one-hundred moons." Applejack explained.
"ONE-HUNDRED?! How many Family Reunions have you had?" I asked in a shocked tone.
Applejack shrugged. "I don't know, they've been going on for as long as I can remember. But according to Granny Smith, they've been goin' on ever since Ponyville was founded." She said.
"But that must've been like…thousands of years ago." I said still shocked.
"I know. Look Matt, if ya have questions about the past, talk to Granny Smith, she knows more than I do. But let's just finish this job first, ok?" Applejack said.
"Wait a minute, I just found something I need to see." I said before I reached my hooves into the box. Once I grabbed what wanted, I smiled sweetly. "Aww, this is the most adorable thing I've ever seen." I said.
"What is it?" Applejack asked as she tried to look at what was holding.
I then pulled it out to reveal a picture of Applejack as a baby, she had small pig-tails in her hair and her tong was sticking out a bit. "It's you as a baby, oh look at your little tong sticking out." I teased as I pointed at her tiny tong.
Applejack then blushed with embarrassment. "Umm…alright Matt, you've seen it, now put it back." She said.
"But I wanna look at it a bit more." I said in a whiny voice.
"I said put it back!" Applejack said before she pulled the picture out of my hooves with her mouth and dropped it back into the box.
"Now go get the next box." Applejack ordered before she walked around to the front of the box and started pushing it towards the others at the back.
"Alright…Tomorrow's newspaper headline, 'Farm-girl can't take a joke'." I said to myself before I turned around and flew down to get the next box.
Later: Apple fields
After we organized everything in the barn, we were finally finished. The pens and animals were clean, the barn was re-painted, and we harvested more than enough extra food.
Now, we were all in an open field where we could get a good view of the whole farm. "Boy howdy, this had to be the quickest Cleanin' Day we've ever had. Don't ya think, Big Mac?" Applejack asked as we looked out at the farm.
"Eeyup." Big Macintosh answered.
Applejack then turned her head to face me. "What do you think, Matt? Did it feel quick to you?" Applejack asked.
I turned my head to look at her. "Well I've never been involved in an Apple Cleaning Day before. But if you think so, that's fine with me." I stated.
Applejack gave me a thankful smile. "By the way, thanks again for helpin' us out, Matt. We owe ya one." She said.
Before I could say anything else, Granny Smith placed her hoof on my back. "And we have just the thing to thank ya with." she said before she turned around to face something.
We all then did the same and I was slightly confused by what I saw.
It was some sort of machine. It had a giant stone wheel in a large wooden box, a metal tap sticking out of the front with a barrel underneath the nozzle, and what appeared to be a treadmill attached to the side.
It was an odd looking device, I had no idea what it was. "What's that thing?" I asked while staring at it.
"It's your reward." Applejack answered as we approached the machine.
"You're giving me a machine?" I asked in confusion.
Granny Smith then turned her head to face me. "Heck no, we're givin' ya what the machine makes." She stated before she looked over to Big Macintosh. "Show 'im, Big Mac." She said.
With that, Big Macintosh walked over to the machine before he stepped onto the treadmill and began to run on it; surprisingly causing the stone wheel to spin.
I then watched as Granny Smith walked around the to the back of the machine and packed up a bucket of fresh apples, she poured them down a metal slope and they rolled into the machine.
At that moment, I heard a loud splattering noise coming from the large box under the big wheel. The wheel was obviously crushing the apples inside the box, but for what reason?
All the apple juice then dribbled out of the tap and into the barrel under the nozzle. When it stopped, the barrel was full of fizzy apple juice. I looked at it with wonder. "What's that?" I asked.
Instead of an answer, Applejack walked up beside me and scooped up some of the strange liquid with a wooden cup. She then held the cup out to me before I took it with my hoof.
"Matt, you're gonna be the first pony to taste this year's Apple Family Cider." Applejack announced as Granny Smith and Big Macintosh came over to join us.
Once I heard that, my eyes widened slightly. "Did you say…cider? As in, actual apple cider?" I asked.
"Urr…yeah." Applejack answered with a nervous smile.
The moment was quiet before a large smile came on my face. "I love apple cider, it's one of my two faverate drinks, next to Coca-Cola. I never thought Equestria had this kind of drink here, have you guys always made this?" I asked.
Applejack then nodded. "Yeah, it's what we sell durin' Cider Season." She stated.
"Great, that means I can get more later this year. Oh my god, I can't believe you actually have cider here, I can't get over this." I said in a cheerful tone.
"Well stop gabbin' and drink it already." Applejack said with an amused smile.
I nodded. "Ok, ok, here it goes." I said before I brought the cup up to my mouth and took a sip. Once I tasted it, my eyes shot wide open with amazement. This was more than delicious, it was the best apple cider I've ever tasted.
"So what do ya think?" Granny Smith asked.
I then lowered my cup before I looked at her. "Well…I have to say that this…is the best cider I've ever had, this stuff's amazing!" I said loudly before I took another sip.
After hearing this, Applejack and the others smiled with relief. "Thank goodness, we need our cider to be at its best for Cider Season." She said.
I then lowered my cup again to speak. "Why? Is this 'Cider Season' a big deal or something?" I asked curiously.
"Durin' the winter, our trees won't grow as much apples as they normally do. So we sell cider instead to keep our business runnin' until winter ends. When Cider Season's not far off, we usually ask somepony to taste-test it. We would taste it ourselves, but then we wouldn't get someone else's opinion." Applejack explained.
"So that's why you rewarded me with this? So I could test it?" I asked.
"Trust me, it's a fine reward. Seriously, there're some ponies in town who'd usually beg to have the first taste." Applejack stated.
Suddenly, there was a loud whooshing sound behind me. That's when I turned my head around to see Rainbow Dash, she was hovering a few feet in the air with a desperate look on her face. "Applejack, please can I have the first taste of your cider this year?" she begged.
"Sorry Rainbow, Matt just beat ya to it." Applejack said with sorrow.
"Dang it!" Rainbow Dash said with annoyance before she shot off into the sky.
Once that random moment was over, I turned my head back around to face Applejack. "Don't worry Applejack, this cider's really amazing. And from what you've just told me, ponies will be desperate to get their hooves on this. You'll probably have a line stretching all the way to town." I said with an honest smile.
"Well…I guess you have a point there, and lots of ponies do buy our cider every year." Applejack said with a small smile.
"There you go then. Trust me, this cider will sell like crazy, even if I have to buy every barrel myself." I said.
Applejack then chuckled. "Haha. Alright, I get the message…I'm glad you like the cider, I'll be sure to save a cup for you and Twilight when Cider Season comes around." She said.
"Thanks…Speaking of Twilight, I should really head back to her. I've been here longer than I thought, she might be worried." I said.
"Alright, but we still need to talk about your job. You can have tomorrow off, but I want you to come back the day after, ok?" Applejack said.
I nodded. "Got it, I need to get back into the job anyway, it's been a while." I said.
"Good, we'll see ya then. Now you better go on back to Twilight before she does get worried, and be sure to say hi for me." Applejack said while smiling.
"I will if you'll say goodbye to Applebloom for me." I said with a cheeky smirk.
Applejack continued to smile as she rolled her eyes. "Ok, I'll say goodbye to Applebloom for ya once she gets back." She said.
I then drank the last of the cider before I placed the cup down on the ground. "Thanks, see ya Applejack." I said before I looked at Granny Smith and Big Macintosh. "See ya." I said to them.
"Bye." Big Macintosh said as he waved his hoof at me.
However, instead of waving, Granny Smith came over to me. "Now hold on a minute there, sonny. There's one more thing I want to give ya." She said.
As I wondered what she wanted to give me, Granny Smith reached her hoof into her bandanna and pulled out a silver necklace with a pink crystal heart hanging from it. "My Pa gave this necklace to my Ma after they got married, it was her faverate piece of jewelry." She said.
I stared at the necklace in awe, but I also wondered why Granny Smith was showing it to me. "Now you're new to the whole married life thing, and I can tell you love Twilight very much, don't ya?" she asked.
I nodded. "More than anything." I answered.
"Well that's why I want you to have this and give it to Twilight." Granny Smith stated as she held the necklace out to me.
I was surprised by what she was doing, she wanted me to have her mother's necklace so I could give it to Twilight. I then gently took the necklace with my hoof and watched it sparkle in the sunlight. "Granny Smith…this is very nice of you, but…I can't. It's been in your family for years, I just can't take something like that." I said.
"Don't worry about it, Matthew. I want ya to have it, just think of it as a little somethin' for bein' so good to Applebloom." Granny Smith said while gave me a friendly smile.
I then smiled back before I hugged her with one arm. "Thanks Granny Smith." I said nicely.
Granny Smith hugged me beck before she spoke. "You're very welcome, now go on and find Twilight so she can see the gift you have for her." She said.
We then separated before I nodded. "I will, thanks for this." I said before slip the necklace onto my neck so I wouldn't lose it.
"I'll see you all later." I said before I turned around and took off into the air to fly home.
As they all watched me fly away, Applejack called out to me. "Don't forget to come back after tomorrow, you don't wanna be late for your first day back at work." She said.
I then stopped in mid-air before I turned around to look down at her. "I won't. And don't worry about Cider Season, everything will be." I called back.
"We're all hopin' so. But I guess there's no point in worryin' about it right now, Cider Season's still a while away." Applejack stated.
"Exactly, so don't worry about just yet. Now I really have to get going, I'll see you again soon." I called before I turned back around and flew off into town.
Applejack and the others continued to watch me until I was out of sight. After a moment, Applejack turned around to face the others. "C'mon ya'all, let's go inside and get somethin' to eat, I'm starvin'." She said.
With that, they all went back to the barn before they entered the household. While Applejack and Big Macintosh were cooking, Granny Smith was in her room sitting in front of a counter.
She was staring down at an empty necklace case; which once held the necklace she gave me. "…*Sigh* Matt's a good kid." She said to herself.
At that moment, Granny Smith opened a drawer under the counter. It was full of necklaces that looked identical to the one she gave me.
Granny Smith then took one out before she placed it in the empty necklace case. "A little gullible though, hahaha." She laughed before she closed the drawer and stood up.
With her legs creaking, Granny Smith walked out of her room and went down stairs to join the others for dinner.
That night: Ponyville Library
After returning to the library, I gave Twilight the necklace and she couldn't thank me enough. She was surprised when I told her Granny Smith gave it to me, she thought it was really nice and generous of her.
Twilight was now standing in front of her mirror while I fastened the necklace onto her. When I got it on, she looked so beautiful with it. "Matt, it's so lovely. I still can't believe Granny Smith let you have this, especially since it was her mother's." Twilight said as she stared at her reflection.
"I know, I was confused too. But she wanted you to have it, and I think it looks amazing on you." I said with a warm smile.
"Aww, you little flatterer." Twilight said as turned around to me. "So, you wanna go somewhere tonight?" she asked.
"You mean like for dinner?" I asked curiously.
Twilight nodded. "Yeah, maybe we could go to our faverate restaurant, we haven't been there in a while." she said.
A sly smirk then came on my face. "You mean the place where we eat on the table in the gazebo?...Where it'll be just the two of us?...Alone?" I said as I stepped closer to her.
Twilight then got the idea and giggled. "Hmm…maybe." She said as she wrapped her left-arm around my neck.
"Then maybe we should go out, I've been in Sweet Apple Arches all day so I have a lot of catching up to do with you." I stated while still smirking.
"Then what're we waiting for?" Twilight asked before she removed her hoof from my neck and walked away, I then followed down the stairs and into the living-room.
As we made our way towards the door, Spike came in from the other room and noticed us. "Where're you two going?" he asked.
Twilight and I then stopped before we turned our heads around to face him. "Twilight and I are going out for dinner, we'll be back later. Can you take care of the library with Jeff and Peewee for us?" I asked.
After hearing this, Spike frowned slightly. "Oh…sure, I can do that." He said while twiddling with his fingers.
Once we saw this, Twilight and I knew he was upset because we were leaving him behind. After thinking about it, Twilight and I smiled at each other before we looked at Spike again. "Alright, c'mon." I said.
Spike's sad look was then replaced by a cheerful smile. "Really? Thanks" he said as he ran up to us.
"Hey, do you think I'd upset my little bro?" I said as I tussled Spike's head with my hoof.
After I removed my hoof from his head, Spike climbed up onto my back before Twilight opened the door with her magic.
"I've never actually tried the food at this restaurant, do you think they serve gem-stones?" Spike asked as we walked out of the library.
"Not likely, sorry buddy." I said while Twilight used her magic to close the door behind us.
Soon after we left, Jeff and Peewee came into the living-room and noticed we were gone. "Hey, where'd everyone go?" Jeff asked.
"No idea, it looks like we're on our own tonight." Peewee answered.
Jeff then smiled deviously. "Really? Huh, this means we can do anything we want without anyone knowin'." He said.
"Yeah, I guess it does." Peewee said.
The moment was then silent before Jeff turned his head to face Peewee. "Wanna get some ice-cream from the freezer?" he asked without his devious smile.
Peewee looked at him with a small smile. "Thought you'd never ask." He responded.
With that, Jeff and Peewee flew off into the kitchen to get some ice-cream.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
Again, let's wish Jess a happy birthday. She's been away in University for a while and she'd like it if you said happy birthday to her, just write a message in your reviews and I'll pass it on XD
Pony News: There's been a lot of news floating around lately, some you may even find relieving, like this one for instance.
Despite her new Alicorn form, Twilight will not outlive her friends. Meghan McCarthy confirmed this herself.
I wanted to remind everyone that the Season 2 DVD is out today on Amazon, I'm gonna buy my copy soon.
The spin-off show, Equestria Girls, is expected to come out in theaters next month. The DVD of it is expected to be released in August. However, I can't help but feel worried about the real show.
If you could, I'd really appreciate it if you'd say something in your reviews that would ease my worries. Thanks.
Anyway, Meghan McCarthy sent a Tweet a while back teasing a new song for Season 4. Here's the twist, it's for someone who's never sung on the show before.
She Tweeted, and I quote. "Putting on my lyricist hat today. Gotta come up w/ something great. This is the first time this character will get to sing on the show."
Let's hope it's someone like Luna or Discord. In fact, Daniel Ingram once said he'd like to make a song for those two characters, so it might be possible :D
Please remember to review.
Next chapter will be up soon.
46. Chapter 46: The new recruits
Hi everypony, welcome back again.
Thanks for wishing my sister a happy birthday, she really liked it and thought it was kind of you.
Now seeing how there aren't any votes to count, let's just get right to the chapter.
Chapter 46: The new recruits
It's been 3 days since Apple Cleaning Day and everything's been going smoothly so far.
Twilight and I are fully settled after returning from our honeymoon, I have my delivery job back, and things are starting to cool-down between Jeff and Owlicious.
However, Jeff's been acting a bit strange lately. When I asked him what was wrong, he hesitated a little before he finally had to guts to tell me what was wrong. Apparently, he's nervous about seeing Philomena again. It didn't take me long to figure-out he had a thing for her. Sooner or later, I'd have to help Jeff out.
And finally, no-one knows about Grimerd's journal yet. But the longer I keep it a secret, the more I feel as though I was lying to Twilight. I wanted to tell her about the journey, I really did, but how would I explain it to her?
Ponyville café
It was a warm sunny day, so Twilight and I decided to spend a little of time together at the café. We were both sitting by a table enjoying our orders, Twilight was eating a daffodil and daisy sandwich while I had a bottle of apple-juice.
Of course, Twilight wasn't wearing Granny Smith's necklace anymore. It was safely locked away in Twilight's jewellery box with the rest of her jewellery.
As I drank my juice with a straw, I was in deep thought about my family back in England. It seemed like forever since I last saw them and I was beginning to wonder if I'd see them again soon, but who said they had to come to me?
My family once came here to find me, then they came here again to attend my wedding. But I've been thinking recently. Why should they have to visit me? Why couldn't I visit them? And that's when of going back to the Human World.
However, I didn't want to leave Twilight behind, so I thought about asking her to come with me. But how would she feel about it? Going into a strange world where things run differently seemed like a lot of pressure to put on her. I honestly didn't know what to do.
While I was lost in my thoughts, I suddenly felt someone's hoof nudge me. "Matt?" Twilight's voice said.
I quickly snapped out of my train of thought before I looked at Twilight, she had finished her sandwich and was now giving me a concerned look. "Are you ok?" she asked.
"Huh?…Yeah, I'm fine. Why?" I responded while trying to act normal.
"Well you've barely said three words since we arrived, is there something on your mind?" Twilight asked.
"Well...sort of, but don't worry about it, Twi. It's nothing." I answered before I grabbed my bottle with my hoof and took a sip of it through the straw.
Just then, Twilight placed her hoof on-top of mine. "C'mon Matt, you can tell me. If there's something bothering you, I'll do my best to help." She said with a sweet smile.
After hearing this, I placed my bottle back down on the table before I looked at Twilight's face. The twinkle in her eyes, her loving smile, and the feeling of her hoof gently rubbing against mine was enough to make me crack like an egg. "…I have been thinking about something lately." I confessed while smiling back.
"Ok, what is it?" Twilight asked curiously.
"It's about my family back in England, I haven't seen them since our wedding and…I want to see them again." I said softly.
Twilight then smiled. "Well that won't be a problem, we'll just write a letter and ask Spike to-" she said before I interrupted it.
"Except, I don't think it's fair for them to always have to come to us. So I was thinking…maybe we should visit them for a change." I said, slightly nervous.
At that moment, Twilight gave me a slightly confused look. "Visit them?...But that would mean we'd have to travel to-"
"The Human world? Yeah, I know….and I was hoping you, and maybe the others, could come with me." I said as my nervousness rose.
The moment was silent as Twilight stared at me with either a shocked or surprised look. I began to worry that she'd refuse before she spoke. "Matt…I…I don't know, that's a really big and risky step. I mean, I don't know how your world works, I don't even know what a human looks like." She said.
By the sound of her voice, I could tell she was beginning to stress. "Don't worry, the Human world basically works the same way this one does. Only there's no magic and everyone walks on two legs." I said, trying to ease her worries.
Twilight's eyes suddenly shot wide open. "No magic? Know I'm definitely not sure." She said.
My attempt to ease her worries obviously failed. "Please Twi, we can do this…Just this once?" I said softly.
Twilight looked down at the table as she thought about it, the moment was once again silent before she looked into my eyes. "Well…I…I…"
But before Twilight could answer, we both suddenly heard a voice calling. "Twilight!...Matt!" the voice said from a distance.
Twilight and I then looked in the direction it came from to see Spike running towards us with an urgent look on his face and a scroll in his left-hand. When he stopped in front of our table, he panted with exhaustion. "Spike, are you ok?" Twilight asked with concern.
While still panting, Spike tried to answer her but was too out of breath to say anything. "Whow, calm down buddy. Take deep breaths." I said, trying to help him.
Spike then nodded before he did as I said and took deep breaths. After catching his breath, Spike looked up at us. "Sorry." He said before he held the scroll up to Twilight. "This came for you guys a few minutes ago." He stated while breathing heavily.
"A letter from the Princess?" Twilight asked as she took the scroll with her magic.
Spike nodded. "Yeah…I thought you'd want to get it as soon as possible, so I rushed here to give it to you." he explained while still breathing heavily.
"Good job Spike, sit down for a minute and catch the rest of your breath." I said.
And while Spike sat down on one of the seats, I turned my attention to Twilight. "What does it say?" I asked curiously.
Twilight then used her magic to unravel the scroll before she held it up in front of her face and read it out-loud.
"Dear Twilight and Matthew
I am delighted to tell you that the new guards have arrived in Canterlot. If you have the time, please come up to the castle and greet our new friends. I am sure they will be honoured to meet you.
Yours, Princess Celestia."
When Twilight finished reading the letter, she looked at me with confusion. "New guards? I didn't know they were hiring new recruits." She said.
At first, I was a little confused too. But then I remembered what Blaze Horn told me a while back, he said that they were bringing in new guards and it would mean a lot to Celestia if we were there to meet them with her. "Looks like Blaze Horn wasn't messing around when he told me they were coming." I said.
A slightly surprised look came on Twilight's face. "You knew? Why didn't you tell me?" she asked.
"I was going to, but I must've forgot. We were a bit pre-occupied at the time." I stated.
"Do you remember what Blaze told you?" Twilight asked.
"Only that it's a special occasion and Celestia would appreciate it if we were there to meet the new guards." I said simply.
After hearing that, Twilight let out a small sigh. "Well if it means that much to the Princess, I guess we'll have to go." She said.
I then gave her a caring look. "Are you sure, Twi? The letter sounded more like a suggestion, we don't have to go if you don't want to." I said.
Twilight shook her head. "No, we should go. The Princess asked us to come and it would seem rude to ignore her request, especially since we have more than enough time to go up there."
I gave her a gentle smile. "Ok Twi, if that's what you want. As soon as I finish my drink, we'll go back to the library, lock the place up, and then we'll head over to the train station. Deal?" I asked.
Twilight smiled back. "Deal." She said.
And as I took another sip of my drink, Spike raised his eye brow at us. "Hey I didn't interrupt anything, did I?" he asked curiously.
Twilight and I looked down at him before we looked at each other, we both soon remembered our previous conversation and I waited for Twilight to tell me her answer. "We'll talk about it later, ok sweetie?" Twilight asked in a gentle voice.
I then removed the straw from my mouth and gave her a small nod. "Alright." I said before I continued to drinking.
As I drank up the last few drops of apple-juice, I couldn't help but think of what might happen if Twilight says no. I can't go back to England without her, what if something happens that'll make the portal stay closed and I'd be separated from Twilight forever?
I couldn't bear to think of that so I tried to keep my mind off the subject, at least until we're ready to talk about it a little more.
Later that day: Canterlot Castle
After riding the train up to Canterlot, me, Twilight, and the others entered the castle ground where we were greeted by one of the royal guards standing in front of the main doors.
He took us into the castle and was now escorting us to the throne room. But it wasn't just me and Twilight. Spike, Jeff, and Peewee came along with us. Owlicious stayed behind to watch over the library. While Jeff and Peewee were riding on my back, Spike walked along-side Twilight.
It wasn't long before we arrived in front of the throne room doors and the guard who escorted us knocked on them with his hoof. "Enter!" Celestia's voice said from behind the door.
With that, the guard pushed the doors wide open before we followed him into the throne room. Once inside, we all saw Princess Celestia standing in front of her throne with Shining Armor standing beside her, he was wearing his freshly polished Captain Armour.
"Your highness, Twilight Sparkle and her companions have arrived." The guard said as he stepped aside to let Celestia see us.
Celestia then smiled. "Excellent. Thank you for letting me know, you may return to your post now." She said.
The guard bowed his head. "Yes, your highness." He said before he turned around and left the throne room with the doors closing behind him.
After he left, we all walked over to Celestia and Shining Armor before Twilight smiled at him. "Hi Shining Armor, how are you?" she asked kindly.
Shining Armor returned the smile. "I'm fine, Twily. It's good to see you again." He said before he and Twilight shared a loving hug.
When they separated, Shining Armor looked at me. "Hey Matt, how're you doing?" he asked with a smile.
"Doin' fine." I answered before we shared a friendly hoof-bump. "So, where's Blaze Horn? Wasn't he supposed to be here to meet the new guards?" I asked.
"Nah, he already met 'em earlier today so I told him to patrol the grounds with some other guards for a while." Shining Armor explained.
"Where are these new guards anyway?" Twilight asked with a raised eye brow.
"They should be here any moment now, I sent a guard out to summon them a few minutes ago." Princess Celestia stated.
Just then, there was a knock on the throne room doors before we turned around to see one of the guards walk in. "Your highness, I've brought the new recruits as you requested." He stated.
Celestia then gave him a simple smile. "Thank you, please send them in." she said.
The guard bowed. "As you wish." He said before he left the throne room and closed the doors behind him.
With the new guards about to come in, me and the others walked over to the right-side of the room while Celestia and Shining Armor stayed in front of the throne. That way, they'd be the first ponies the new guards would see, it was a professional thing.
"Well, time to say hello to the fresh meat." I said under my breath as we all stared at the throne room doors.
After a few seconds, the doors began to open until we saw 5 pony figures in guard armour standing behind them. As they came in, we all managed to get a good look at them. 3 of them were Unicorns, and the other 2 were Pegasi.
Also, one of the Unicorns was a female, I don't think I've seen a female guard before.
We then watched as the new guards walked up to Celestia and bowed to her. "Princess Celestia, it is an honour to finally meet you." the largest Unicorn said with his head still bowed down.
Celestia smiled down at him. "And it's an honour to meet you too. Would you mind presenting us with your name, kind sir?" she asked politely.
The Unicorn then looked up at her and nodded. "Not at all, your highness. I am Flash Beam, and this is my team." Flash Beam said before he turned his head to face the 2 other Unicorns. "That's Sunray and the lovely pony standing next to him is Illume." He said.
"It's wonderful to be at your service, your highness." Illume said as she bowed her head slightly.
After that, Flash Beam turned his head the other way to face to 2 Pegasi. "And these two are the twins, Coyle and Doyle." He said.
"The pleasure is all mine, Princess." Coyle said as he too bowed his head.
"No, the pleasure is mine." Doyle said as he also bowed.
Coyle then looked at him with a firm look. "No, it's mine!" he argued.
"No, mine!" Doyle said loudly while returning his firm look.
"Mine!" Coyle said as his firm look turned into a sharp glare.
"MINE!" Doyle yelled as he glared back at him.
We all then watched as the two brothers pressed their faces together and growled at each other, it looked as though they were about to start fighting.
I just decided to stay out of it and take a better look at the guards.
(You can decide their hair-styles)
Flash Beam had a dark-brown coat, a black mane & tail, and he had dark green eyes. His cutie mark was a yellow flash with light-beams shining off it. He looked as though he was the strongest in the group due to his muscular body.
Illume had a pale-white coat, a light-yellow mane & tail, and her eyes were blue. Her cutie mark was an orange candle flame. She was the shortest in the group, but she looked tough.
Sunray had an orange coat, a light-red mane & tail, and his eyes were brown. His cutie mark was a white cloud with sun-rays shining behind it. He was taller than Illume, but slightly shorter than Flash.
Coyle had a light-blue coat, a dark-blue mane & tail, and his eyes were light-green. Despite having an American voice, his cutie mark was the Ying symbol.
Like his brother, Doyle had a light-blue coat and a dark-blue mane & tail, only his had a white streak going through them. His eyes were also light-green, and his cutie mark was the Yang symbol. He and Coyle were the same size, tall with slender legs and necks.
I then stopped examining them when I heard Coyle and Doyle ague louder.
But before things could get out-of-hand, Flash's horn glowed and they were both magically pulled apart. "Knock it off, you pair of goofs!" he ordered firmly before he turned his head to face Celestia. "My dearest apologies, Princess." He said in a calmer tone.
Celestia smiled. "It's quite alright, I think it's time to move on anyway. Besides, I want you to meet someone important." She said before she looked down at Shining Armor beside her. "This is your new Captain, Shining Armor." She announced.
At that moment, the 5 guards looked at him and gasped loudly. "The Captain?!" Flash Beam said in shock before he turned his head around to face the others. "Quickly, show respect!" he ordered.
With that, they all held their left-hooves against their fore-heads to salute Shining Armor. "Sir, please forgive us for not addressing you properly. We're just a little…off…today." Flash Beam said.
Shining Armor then gave him a gentle smile. "It's alright, soldier. It's natural to be nervous on an important day like this, so let me ease your concerns by being the first to say 'welcome aboard'." He said.
Flash continued to salute as he smiled back. "Thank you, sir. And I promise we'll be the best guards we can be." He stated before he placed his hoof back on the floor.
Shining Armor smirked. "Confidence, that's what I like to hear from new recruits" He said.
Once the other guards stopped saluting, Sunray stepped forward. "So what're our first orders, sir?" he asked.
Shining Armor turned his attention to him. "Your first orders are to meet a couple of very special friends of mine." He said before he looked over to us; followed by the guards doing the same.
"Newbies, meet my little sister and her husband, Twilight Sparkle and Matthew. The small dragon on Twilight's back is Spike, and the two birds on Matt's back are Jeff and Peewee." Shining Armor introduced.
Me, Twilight, and the others smiled kindly at them. "Hello" Twilight said as she waved her hoof slightly.
Flash Beam then smiled back. "Twilight and Matthew, huh? So you're ponies who fought against that Thorn guy, right?" he asked.
"Yep…I take it you've heard of us then." I said with a small smirk.
But before Flash could respond, Sunray stepped in. "Heard of you? You guys are like legends around here, especially with those other five. Where are they anyway?" he asked as he looked around the room.
We knew he was talking about the rest of the main 6, so we answered him. "They're not here, they're in Ponyville." Twilight stated.
Sunray then looked at us again with a small frown on his face. "Aw dang-it, I really wanted to meet that rainbow one." He stated in disappointment.
"You mean Rainbow Dash?" Spike asked with a raised eye brow.
Sunray nodded. "Yeah." He said before he turned his head to face Flash Beam standing beside him. "Haha. She's tough, but she's real cute." He said with a smirk.
Flash's eyes widened. "Sunray!" he said loudly as he quickly covered Sunray's mouth with his hoof.
Most of us were surprised by what Sunray said. "Excuse me?" Twilight said in confusion.
Flash quickly looked at us with sorrow. "I'm terribly sorry about Sunray, he has a nasty habit of speaking his mind." He said as he removed his hoof from Sunray's mouth.
"Sorry, but it's the truth. I like the tough and loyal type." Sunray stated with the smirk still on his face.
Flash then looked at him again with a firm look. "Sunray, this isn't the time or place to discuss this. So would you do us all a big favour and shut up?!" he said loudly.
"Pff…Fine." Sunray said before he turned his head away from Flash.
Once he was taken care of, Flash looked up at Celestia. "Again, I apologise for him. But please don't judge him by his behaviour. Sunray may be a loud-mouth, but he's a loyal soldier."
Celestia gave him an understanding smile "I understand, and there's no need to apologise, it'll be nice to have such free-spirited ponies like you around." She said.
Flash and the rest of the guards smiled back with surprise. "Really?...Well…thank you, your highness." Flash said politely.
"You're very welcome. Now you and your team should go get settled in your new quarters, you've all got a big day tomorrow." Celestia said.
With that, the new guards bowed one last time before they turned around and made their way towards the open doors.
"Wow, I still can't believe we saw the Matthew and Twilight." Doyle said before he looked at his brother. "Why didn't you say anything to them?" he asked as they kept walking.
Coyle then looked at him. "Me? You're the one who keeps talking about them, why didn't you say anything?" he asked.
"I was waiting for you to make the first move!" Doyle replied with a small glare in his eyes.
"Would you two be quiet back there?" Illume said while walking in front of the twins.
However, they didn't hear him and kept arguing. "You know you don't always have to wait for me to make the first move, right? You're a big boy now, you can handle your own introductions." Coyle stated in an annoyed tone.
Doyle then smiled deviously. "You know something? Maybe you're right, maybe I can be a big boy and handle things by myself. Then maybe you can be a big boy too and get over your fear of bats!" he said coldly.
After hearing him say that, Coyle glared hard at him. "That is a childhood fear and you promised never to mention it out-loud!" he said loudly.
"Seriously guys, shut up!" Illume said in a more annoyed tone.
"I still don't get why you're scared of them anyway, most of the local bats around here are fruit-bats and they're completely harmless." Doyle stated.
"They're like rats with wings. That's creepy, right?" Coyle asked.
"Oh don't tell me you're afraid of rats now too!" Doyle said in annoyance.
Coyle glared harder at him. "No, I'm just speaking from my point of view! In fact, I happen to know that you're afraid of-"
"I can't believe you both don't shut up!" Illume snapped in pure annoyance.
After finally hearing her, Coyle and Doyle stopped arguing and kept following their team-mates out of the throne room. We all then watched as Flash and his team walked down to the end of the hallway and disappeared around a corner.
Once we couldn't see them anymore, Shining Armor looked up at Celestia. "Well they were…something." Shining Armor said.
Celestia then looked down at him. "Yes, quite." She said before she looked at me and the others. "What do you think of them?" she asked us.
We looked up at her. "Well they're a very lively bunch, I'll give them that." Twilight answered.
I nodded in agreement. "Yeah…how did they reach guard status again?" I asked in curiosity and confusion.
"I don't exactly know, they must've got lucky and passed their training somehow." Celestia simply stated.
Jeff then tapped Peewee with his elbow. "Yeah, dumb lucky." He whispered; causing them both to snicker.
We didn't hear his comment and kept talking to the Princess. "Well if they've passed their training, it must've been some sort of miracle. Do you think they're ready to guard you, Princess?" Twilight asked Celestia.
"They may not be the guards we expected, but I'm willing to give them a chance. After all, everyone deserves at least one chance, right?" Celestia said with a confident smile.
Twilight gave her an unsure look. "Begging your pardon, Princess. But don't you think they're a bit too…reckless? I mean, how are they supposed to take their jobs seriously when they're too busy arguing with each other?" she said.
At that moment, Shining Armor stepped forward. "That's when I step in, Twily." He stated before he looked up at Celestia. "Princess, I wish to personally take them under my wing and teach them how to become real guards. And when I'm done, they'll be ready to fight any battle." He said confidently.
Celestia gave him a pleased smile. "Very good, Shining Armor. I will allow this. Now I want you to catch up with the new recruits and show them to their quarters, please." She said politely.
Shining Armor then nodded before he looked at us. "Well see ya, Twily." He said before he and Twilight shared another loving hug.
"See ya, B.B.B.F.F." Twilight said sweetly as she hugged him.
Once they separated, Shining Armor looked at me. "And Matt, stay out of trouble." He said with a smirk.
I then smirked back. "Hey it's me, remember?" I said.
Shining Armor chuckled. "Yeah, that's what worries me." he joked before he trotted away towards the doorway
Once Shining Armor reached it, he gave us once last wave before he walked out of the throne room and closed the doors behind him.
After he left, Jeff looked up at Celestia. "Well like always, it's been nice seeing ya again, Princess. But if that's everything done, we'll just show ourselves out." He said before he patted my back with his foot. "C'mon, let's get out of here before those twins come back." He whispered to me.
Celestia ignored his comment and spoke. "Actually, there is one last thing I'd like you all to do." she stated.
Twilight then looked at her with curiosity. "Really? What is it?" she asked.
"Well seeing how you've come all this way to meet my new guards, I thought it would be nice if you met Luna's new guards too." Celestia said with a simple smile.
I gave her a slightly surprised look. "Luna has new guards too? You mean whenever you get new guards, she gets some as-well? Does this usually happen?" I asked.
"Well…not exactly. To be honest, I was just as surprised as you are, it's not every day we both get new guards at the same time." Celestia stated.
"Then I wonder what makes this day so special." I said in suspicion.
Celestia then raised her eye brow. "What makes you say that?" she asked.
I'll admit I had a strange thought, but I soon realized how ridicules it sounded and shook it off. "Nothing…So, are Luna's new guards here or in her castle?" I asked.
"They're in her castle, Luna should be in her throne room waiting to meet them." Celestia explained.
"I guess that means we're gonna have to take a royal chariot to get there, right?" Spike asked.
Celestia then gave us a playful smile. "Well you could do that…or I could get you there the fast way." She said before he horn glowed.
Suddenly, we all disappeared in a flash of light; leaving Celestia alone in her throne room.
Luna's castle grounds
Two of Luna's Unicorn guards were standing in front of the main double-doors to the castle, they each had a bored expression on their faces. During the silence, one of them looked at the other. "So how're your kids?" he asked.
The other guard then looked at him. "They're fine. How was it visiting your sister-in-law?" he asked.
The guard then rolled his eyes. "Don't get me started. I swear, if she wasn't my wife's sister, I'd sooo kick her in the-"
*FLASH*
The guard was suddenly interrupted by me, Twilight, and the others appearing in front of them in a flash of light. We were all dizzy from the sudden teleportation. "Oooh…I wish she warned us before she did that." Spike stated before he shook his daze off.
I then did the same before I started rubbing my head with my hoof. "I agree with him, did anyone happen to know my dislike for teleporting?" I asked, but didn't get an answer.
After Twilight shook her daze off, she turned around and looked up at the tall castle. "Well we're here now, so let's not talk about it anymore." She said.
"Yeah, let's not talk about it anymore…until we have to go home." Jeff groaned as we made our way towards the main doors.
But as we approached them, the two guards held their spears in a cross-formation in front of us. "Holt, no one goes in without authorization!" one of the guards said firmly.
Twilight then looked at the one who said it. "But Princess Celestia sent us here, she wants us to be with Princess Luna when she meets the new guards." She explained.
The guards then looked at each other before they looked at Twilight. "So you're here to meet the newbies, huh? Yeah, we've seen those guys too." One of them stated.
I looked at him. "Really? What're they like?" I asked curiously.
The guard shrugged. "You know, just like any new group of guards. Nervous with no idea how challenging this job is." He stated.
That wasn't really the answer I was looking for, so I tried to say it clearer. "That's not really what I meant, I mean was there anything unusual about them? You know, like goofy behaviour?" I asked.
The guard then rubbed his chin with his hoof. "Now that you mention it, there was one that acted a little…strange. But I didn't pay much attention to him, I was too busy focusing on the other guy who was with him." He stated.
"Yeah, that guy was really creepy. And I don't mean your average every-day creepy, I mean total dark creepy," the other guard said.
We then looked at him with wonder. "Why? What was wrong with him?" Twilight asked.
The guard looked at her. "Let's just say, he had a bad look in his eyes." he said.
"Yeah…At least in the good one." The other guard said.
Spike looked at him with nervousness. "What do you mean by 'in the good one'?" he asked, but they didn't answer him.
Instead, the two guards lifted their spears apart so we could pass. "You'll find out." One of the guards said as they both opened the doors with their magic.
Twilight and I gave them pleased smiles. "Oh thanks." I said before we all walked towards the doorway.
As we walked into the castle, Jeff looked at one of the guards. "You doin' get by the way, keep up the good work." He said.
Once we were inside, the guards closed the doors behind us and resumed their jobs. "Do you know that bird?" one of them asked.
"Nope." The other guard answered.
Meanwhile, we all walked through the lobby before we went up the stairs towards Luna's throne room. After we reached the top, we walked up to the throne room doors before Twilight opened them with her magic.
Upon entering the throne room, we all saw Luna sitting on her throne with two of her guards standing beside her. "Hey Luna." I called as we made our way towards her.
Luna then saw us before a look of surprise came on her face. "Twilight Sparkle and Matthew? What brings you to my castle? I was not expecting company on this day." she stated.
"Hey, don't forget about us, we're here too." Jeff said in a slightly offended tone. Afraid of how Luna would take that, Peewee quickly slammed Jeff's beak closed with his wings and held them there; making Jeff groaning with annoyance.
Ignoring him again, I answered her question. "Sorry for not telling you we were coming, Luna. It was kind of a 'last minute' thing." I said.
Luna raised her eye brow. "Pray-tell, what does 'a last minute thing' mean?" she asked.
"It means we decided to come here at the last minute. You know, all of a sudden? Princess Celestia transported us here so we could meet the new guards with you." Twilight explained.
Luna then gave us a pleased smile. "Excellent." She said before she looked down at one of her guards. "You retrieve them now." She said.
The guard nodded. "Yes, your highness." He said before he and the other guard walked past us while making their way towards the doors. After leaving the room, they closed the doors behind them.
Once they we gone, Luna gave us a warm smile. "I am pleased you are here to meet the new guards with me. To be truthful, I have always disliked meeting them by myself. It feels a little, how you ponies say it these days…awkward." She stated.
Twilight and I smiled back. "Well you don't need to worry, Luna. We're here now and I'm sure everything will be fine." I said before I decided to change the subject. "So…any luck on finding a colt you like?" I asked.
Luna's smile then disappeared before she sighed. "I'm afraid…I have had no luck." She said as her ears lowered slightly.
My ears also dropped at this news, I felt a little bad for asking now. "Oh…sorry, Luna." I said softly.
"It is fine, Matthew. I may not have had any luck yet, but I will not give up. I still remember what you said a while back, 'my colt is out there somewhere'. I just need to keep searching." Luna said in a stronger tone.
My smile returned. "Exactly. Trust me, Luna, you'll find him one day, maybe even sooner than you think." I said, trying to make her feel better.
Luna then smiled again in return. "Thank you for trying, Matthew. But…it seems very unlikely I will run into anyone soon." She said.
I was about to disagree, but I was interrupted by the throne room doors creaking open. We all turned around to see one of the guards sanding in the doorway. "The guards are ready to meet you, Princess." He stated.
Luna then looked at him. "Very well, please send them in." she ordered.
The guard bowed his head before he left the throne room.
Luna looked down at us. "We shall continue this colt matter later. Right now, we should focus on the important subject." She said.
None of us wanted to argue with Luna, so we just nodded in agreement before we did the same as what we did with Celestia and sat on the right-side of the room. We all then looked over to the doorway and waited for the new guards to come in.
After a few seconds, 5 ponies entered the throne room and made their way towards Luna, they were all wearing Shadow guard armour. (I don't know the name of the armour Luna's guards wear, so I'm calling it Shadow armour for now)
As they approached us, we managed to get a good look at them. Like Celestia's new guards, 3 of them were Unicorns and the other 2 were Pegasi. Once again, one of them was female.
When they stopped in front of Luna's throne, the guard in front of the group stepped forward and took his helmet off. This guard had a light-red coat, he had a dark-blue mane and tail. He had blue eyes, and his cutie mark was a dark-blue shield with both a yellow star and a light-red sword on it.
"Hello, Princess Luna. Allow me to introduce myself, I am Brave Star, leader of this group. And may I say, it is a great honour to finally meet you, your highness." Braze Star said as he bowed his head.
"The pleasure is mine, Brave Star. I have been told much about you, I believe you are to be my new Captain, correct?" Luna asked with a gentle smile.
Brave Star then looked up at her. "Yes, Princess. But I do request one thing, I don't want you to think I'm replacing Midnight Gaze. I may be taking his place as Captain, but I can't replace his legacy. No-one can forget the things he did…or the sacrifice he made." He said.
"Indeed, Midnight was a loyal Captain and he shall never be forgotten." Luna said while feeling a little upset over the loss of her old Captain.
Brave Star gave her a small nod. "Yeah…But anyways, shall I introduce you to the rest of my team?" he asked.
After hearing that, Luna decided to drop the Midnight subject and continue with the main one. "Yes, please." She said.
With that, Brave Star turned his head to face the other 2 Unicorns. "That's Dusk, and the guy standing next to him is Sullen." He introduced.
"Hello, Princess." Sullen said kindly as he bowed his head.
Brave Star then turned his head the other way to face the 2 Pegasi. "And these two are Bleak and Night Thunder." He introduced before Bleak and Night Thunder also bowed their heads.
Luna smiled at them all. "It is nice to meet you all." She said kindly before she thought of a question. "But before any of you make the traditional vow, do any of you have anything to say or ask?" she asked.
At that moment, the pony known as Sullen stepped forward. "Yes, your highness…I just want you to know that it's a major honour to be one of your guards, I'm really looking forward to getting started." Sullen stated in a cheerful tone.
Just then, the guard know as Dusk spoke. "Yes…I say we all are." He said in a tone that sounded…creepy.
I could tell Luna heard the weird sound in his voice because she was giving him an uncomfortable look. "Umm…I'm glad to hear that." She said.
For some reason, I couldn't take my eyes off Dusk, there was so much to see on him.
(Once again, you can decide their hair-styles.)
He had a grey coat, a black mane & tail, and his cutie mark was spiked-mace. Like Brave Star, he had a muscular-looking body and he was about the same size as him too.
His left-eye looked normal, but his right-eye was made of glass and there was a scar going down the eye-lids. The guard at the door wasn't kidding about the 'eye' thing.
I thought it would be rude to keep staring at it, so I decided to look away and examine the other guards.
Sullen had a light-amber coat, a light-azure mane & tail, and his eyes were light-brown. His cutie mark was a dark-grey raincloud. Despite being the same size as Brave Star, he wasn't as muscular.
Bleak had a light-blue coat, a moderate-cerise mane & tail, and her eyes were dark-blue. Her cutie mark was a snow-flake. She was slightly shorter than Sullen.
And Night Thunder had a dark-sapphire-blue coat, a moderate-cobalt-blue mane & tail, and his eyes were light-blue. His cutie mark was a yellow lightning bolt. He was the same size as both Bleak and me.
In fact, not only did Night Thunder have the same colours as Luna, but he kinda looked like me. He even had the same mane-style and short tail as me. I couldn't help but feel strange about it.
Twilight also noticed the resemblance and leaned her head to me. "Hey Matt, is it me, or does that Night Thunder guy look a little like you?" she asked in a whisper.
I then leaned my head to her. "Yeah, it's kinda weird. If I had the same colours as him, we'd be spitting-images of each other." I said also in a whisper.
We both stopped talking as Brave Star spoke. "I too have something to say, Princess. We have an offering for you." he stated.
Luna grew a curious look on her face. "Oh? Do tell." She said while giving him her full attention.
Brave Star smiled. "Alright then…let me just get into the moment, I've been waiting to say this for a while." He said before he cleared his throat. "Princess Luna, as Captain of the Guards and the leader of this group, I offer you one of us as your own personal guard. Whoever you choose will accept the task, all you need to do is choose who you want." he said with pride.
Luna was slightly surprised by this offering. "Oh…my, I was not expecting something like this. My own personal guard?" She asked.
Brave nodded. "Yes, your highness. Whoever you choose will stay by your side and protect you with their lives." He stated.
At that moment, Night Thunder looked at him with a raised eye brow. "Our lives, sir? OW!" he said as Bleak jabbed her elbow into his arm.
After hearing his voice, I was a bit relieved because he had an American voice. If he had a British voice like me, things would've been too weird.
Luna was lost-for-words about the offering. How can she choose one of these ponies as her personal guard when she barely knows them? Or better yet, how does she know any of them are good enough for such a role? There was only one answer she could give to Brave Star.
"As much as I am grateful for your offering, I am afraid I cannot make such a choice at this moment. My apologies, but I need to be sure you can all handle a position like this. I will have to witness each of your fighting and defence techniques before I make my decision." Luna declared.
Bleak then looked at Night Thunder with confusion. "Huh?" she said.
"She wants to test our fighting skills." Night Thunder translated.
"Why didn't she just say so?" Bleak whispered before they turned their attention back to Luna.
"As you wish, Princess. Please, take as long as you need to make the decision, there's no rush. Anyway, you mentioned something about a vow a few minutes ago?" Brave Star said.
"Oh of course, I almost forgot." Luna said before she gave her new guards a serious look. "All of you, please step forth." She said.
With that, Brave Star and the other guards took a few steps closer to the throne. "Are you all ready to begin?" Luna asked.
Brave Star and the others nodded their heads to say they were ready.
"Very well…Do you, Brave Star, Sullen, Dusk, Bleak, and Night Thunder swear to obey the rules of Equestria law?" Luna asked.
"I do." They all answered at the same time.
"Will you follow any orders given to you by me, my sister, or any other members of the Royal Family?" Luna asked.
"I will." They all answered at the same time again.
"And finally, when the lands are threatened, will you fight to the bitter end to protect your Princesses, the citizens, and Equestria itself?" Luna asked.
"…I will…" They all answered at the same time for the last time.
"Then as Princess of the Night, I name you all official royal guards, your vows are now complete." Luna said before a blue beam shot out of her horn and struck the guards.
As the blue aura of Luna's magic covered them, they each started to glow brighter and brighter until their bodies were glowing with light.
When the lights faded away and the guards returned to normal, we were confused to see nothing had changed about them. That is, until Brave Star opened his eyes.
Me and the others gasped a little at what we saw, Brave Star's pupils had turned from a round shape to an oval shape, like a cat or a snake.
We then looked at the other guards to see they too had oval-shaped pupils. "Ok…that was wired." Night Thunder said as he rubbed his head with his hoof.
Sullen was looking around his body for any changes, but couldn't find any. He became confused before he looked up at Luna. "What exactly was that supposed to do, Princess?" he asked.
"Look at one of your companions and find out." Luna said.
Sullen did as she said and looked over to Dusk, his eyes then widened once he saw his good eye. "Oh my gosh! Dusk, your eye!" Sullen said loudly.
"I know, it's made of glass, tell me something I don't know!" Dusk said in an offended tone.
Sullen shook his head. "No, not that eye, your good eye. Your pupil…it's…oval-shaped." He stated.
"So are yours." Dusk said as he pointed his hoof at Sullen's face.
After hearing this, Sullen then looked down at his reflection in the clean floor. He saw that his pupils were indeed oval shaped as-well. By discovering this, he became freaked out. "Oh my gosh, oh my gosh, oh my gosh! What happened to my eyes? What happened to my ey-"
*SMACK*
Sullen was cut off by Dusk slapping him across the face. "Get a hold of yourself, soldier! It could've been a worse change." Dusk stated.
"How?" Sullen asked as he rubbed the cheek Dusk slapped.
Dusk then looked around before he spotted something he could use for an answer. "You could've ended up like Bleak and Night Thunder." He stated.
Bleak and Night Thunder were confused by what Dusk said. "What? What's wrong with us?...Wait a minute, eye check!" Night Thunder said before he and Bleak looked at each other's eyes only to see that they too had oval-shaped pupils.
"Hmm…Are my pupils oval too?" Night Thunder asked.
"Yep, same with me?" Bleak asked.
"Yeah." Night Thunder answered before he looked over to Dusk. "Our eyes are exactly the same as yours, how does that make us worse?" he asked.
Just then, Bleak's eyes widened at something. "Err…maybe because he's not talking about our eyes…look at your wings." She said.
Night Thunder gave her a confused look before he did as she said and looked at his wings, he was then surprised to see that his feathered wings had been replaced with bat wings. "Whow…that's new." He said as he stuck one of them out to look at it better.
Bleak couldn't take her eyes off his wings. She knew all of Luna's guards had them, but she never expected this to happen. Suddenly, she had a scary thought which made her look at her own wings.
She was shocked to see that her wings had changed too. "Ah, I have them too! I can't believe this!" she said in a scared tone.
After hearing enough of everyone's whining, Brave Star turned around to face his team. "Would all of you calm down for pony's sake! We're supposed to be a tough group, and most of you are acting like a bunch of frightened foals." He said firmly.
"Me and Dusk aren't, we taking this pretty well." Night Thunder said with Dusk nodding in agreement.
Brave Star then looked at him with a small glare, Night Thunder quickly got the message before he smiled nervously. "Sorry, please continue." He said.
With that said, Brave Star went back to what he was saying in a calmer voice. "Look, I know it's a big change and it's kinda freaky. But unless any of you haven't noticed, every one of Princess Luna's guards has eyes and wings like this. Don't you know what this means?" he said.
"We're…walking mutations?" Sullen asked.
Just then, Sullen heard someone clear their throat behind him before he turned around to see two of Luna's guards standing by the doorway. "Urr…no offence, guys." He said with a nervous smile.
The guards just glared at him as they backed out of the room in a creepy way. "Oooh…they backed out of the room. You're in trouble now, Sullen." Bleak said.
"Ah-hm, if you're both finished." Brave Star said; regaining the attention of Sullen and Bleak.
Brave Star then continued with what he was saying. "No Sullen, it doesn't mean that. It means we're now officially royal guards of Princess Luna, this is what we've been waiting years for. Aren't any of you proud of how far we've come to get here?" he asked.
The other guards looked at each other as they thought about what he said. "Well…I guess it's not that bad." Bleak said as she looking at her new wings again.
"Yeah, and I guess it's kinda cool to have eyes like this, not many ponies have them." Sullen said with a weak smile.
Brave Star smiled proudly at his team before he turned around to face Luna. "Thank you so much for this, Princess. I promise we won't let you down." He stated.
Luna gave him a simple smile. "Let us hope not." She said before she changed the subject. "Now, with that out of the way, I want you all to meet some friends of mine." She said before she looked over to us.
"Brave Star and friends, this is Twilight Sparkle, Matthew, and their companions." Luna introduced as we walked over to them.
The guards then looked at us before Brave Star stepped forward. "So, you're Twilight and Matthew, huh? We've heard some pretty cool stuff about you guys." He said.
"Like what?" Twilight asked.
Brave Star looked at her. "Well first off, we know you two are part of the Elements of Harmony. And we also know your husband once saved Princess Luna's life." he said before he looked at me. "Isn't that what happened?" he asked with a raised eye brow.
The tone in his voice was making me a bit nervous. "Umm…yeah…that was me." I answered.
Just then, a smiled came on Brave's face. "Good show, kid." He said as he gave me a hard pat on the back; making me grunt a little.
"Yeah, you're like a hero." Night Thunder said before he shook my hoof with his. "I'm Night Thunder by the way, I'm a big fan." He said with an excited smile.
I smiled back. "Well it's nice to meet you, Night Thunder." I said before he released my hoof. "…umm, by the way, has anyone told you that we're-"
"Identical? Yeah, I've been getting that a lot since you beat that Thorn guy. It gets kind of annoying sometimes." Night Thunder stated.
"Indeed it does, we can't even walk through the streets without somepony coming over to us because they thought he was you." Dusk said as he came up to us.
I didn't reply as I was too busy looking at his glass-eye again, Brave Star soon noticed this and leaned his head over to me. "Don't stare, he hates it when ponies stare." He whispered.
After hearing that, I quickly looked down at Dusk's chest to avoid looking at his face. "Dusk, is it?" I asked.
"Yep." Dusk answered before I placed his hoof under my chin and lifted my head up. "Were you looking at this?" he asked as he removed his hoof from my chin and pointed it up to his glass-eye.
"Urr…no…I was just looking at your scar, the eye doesn't bother me." I said, trying to act innocent.
Dusk smirked. "Are you sure? Most ponies find my glass-eye very interesting. Wanna see me take it out?" he asked as he placed his hoof over his glass-eye.
Me, Jeff, and Peewee then went wide-eyed. "NO!" we said loudly. "...We mean, no we're fine. We don't want to see that." I said hoping he'd reconsider.
Dusk then placed his hoof back on the floor. "Alright then, suit yourself." He said simply as he stepped back a bit.
After that, it was definitely official, this guy was creep. Even Twilight thought so, I could tell by the uncomfortable look on her face.
Worried about how we thought of Dusk's actions, Brave Star quickly spoke. "I'm really sorry about him, he's not been the same since…his accident." He stated.
I then looked at him. "Don't worry, i-it's alright." I said with a fake smile. "As long as he keeps that thing in his face, that is." I thought.
Meanwhile, Bleak walked up beside Twilight. "So you must be Twilight Sparkle, Princess Celestia's student, right?" she asked.
Twilight turned her head to face her and smiled. "Yes, yes I am. And you're name's Bleak, right?" she asked.
"Yeah, it is…So anyway, I just want you to know how much I loved what you and your friends did for Princess Luna." Bleak said with a small smile.
"Well we had to, Princess Luna is our friend and Celestia's sister, we couldn't just let Thorn suck her powers out and use them for his own-"
"I'm not talking about that, I'm talking about how you freed her from Nightmare Moon, you really saved her." Bleak stated, interrupting Twilight.
Hearing this caught Twilight by surprise. "Oh…well thank you." she said with a small smile.
"I also heard how Discord broke out of his prison and tried to cloud the world in eternal chaos, but you and your friends stopped him before he could do any more damage." Bleak said.
"Yes well, I don't think we need to worry about him doing that again." Twilight said.
Bleak's smile then went away. "Oh yeah, I hear he's living in Princess Celestia's castle now." She said with her eye-lids half closed.
Twilight nodded. "Yeah, you should see what he's like now, he's really changed. I mean, he still has his annoying moments, but he's good now." She said.
"…Is that what he told you?" Bleak asked with a raised eye brow.
Twilight then gave her a confused look. "Huh?" she said.
Bleak sighed. "Look Twilight, Discord's whole life was dedicated to causing chaos. Don't you find it a bit odd that he suddenly wants to turn over a new leaf?" she asked.
"I know where you're going with this, Bleak. My brother thinks the same thing, sometimes I do, but Discord's done enough to convince me he's truly changed." Twilight stated.
"I'm just saying you of all ponies should know when he's trying to pull somepony's leg. What if this is another one of his tricks? What if he's putting on this act because he's up to something big?" Bleak said.
Twilight didn't respond imminently, instead she had a thought about what she said. It's true that Discord has been known to lie a lot, he certainly proved that when he turned the rest of the main 6 against her. Could it be true? Could this all be another fiendish act?
No! Twilight hated to admit it, but Discord's become a close friend to her in the last few months. He may still have a bit of his wild-side left in him, but it'd not over-the-top like it used to be. He's had many chanced to cause ultimate chaos, and did he take them? no! And knowing Discord, he'd never miss a chance like that.
Twilight then accepted her own opinion and spoke. "No Bleak, I don't think it's an act. Princess Celestia believes Discord's changed, and as long as she does, I do too." She said firmly.
"Ok, ok, it's your opinion. All I'm saying is be on your guard while hanging around him. You never know when he's gonna snap those fingers." She said.
"…I understand…I'll be careful." Twilight said in a calmer voice.
"Alright…sorry about all this by the way. Kind of a bad first meeting, isn't it?" Bleak said with an amused smile.
Twilight retuned her smile. "It's ok, it can happen to anypony." She said.
Bleak's amused smile then turned into a friendly one before she and Twilight began a random conversation.
After a few minutes of talking, Luna had raised the moon and it was finally time for the guards to go to their quarters and for us to go back to Ponyville. We all stood by the throne room doorway as we said goodnight to the guards.
"Well Princess, I think it's time for us to go to our quarters and get some sleep, we're gonna need it for our first day of duty tomorrow." Brave Star said.
Luna gave him a nod. "Agreed, and it's been delightful meeting you all. Hopefully I will pick my personal guard soon." She said.
"Just remember, Princess. You don't need to decide straight away, you can take as long as you need." Night Thunder said with a kind smile.
Luna then looked at him and smiled back. "Thank you, Night Thunder. I am sure that will help me decide easier." She said.
"So where do we find our quarters from here?" Brave Star asked.
Luna looked at him. "If you go down the stairs, you should see a guard standing by a door on the right-side of the lobby. Tell him you are the new recruits and ask him to escort you to your rooms." She explained.
Brave Star gave her a thankful smile. "Thank you, your highness." He said before he turned around to his team. "C'mon team, let's go get some shut-eye." He said before he made his way down the stairs towards the lobby.
Sullen and Bleak then bowed their head to Luna. "Goodnight, Princess." Sullen said before he followed Brave Star.
"Sleep well." Bleak said before she did the same.
After she went down the stairs, Dusk walked up to Luna before he gently took her hoof and kissed it. "It's a pleasure to finally be at your service, my lady." He said.
"Urr…charmed." Luna said as she slowly pulled her hoof away.
Dusk then bowed his head before he followed the others down the stairs.
"Wow…what a creep." Peewee said out-loud for us to hear, luckily Dusk didn't him..
Just then, Night Thunder stepped forward. "Well, goodnight Princess….may I?" he asked as he held his hoof out to her.
Luna saw the friendly smile on his face before she smiled back and placed her hoof on his, Night Thunder then gave it a gentle kiss before he released her hoof and made his way towards the stairs.
However, he was too busy looking back at Luna to see where he was going and stumbled on the first step; making him yelp a little.
Me and the others couldn't help but grow amused smiles at this, even Luna was trying hide her giggly smile with her wing.
Once he got his balance back, Night Thunder looked at us again with a sheepish smile. "Haha, sorry….Pleasant dreams to you, Princess." He said before he walked the rest of the way down the stairs.
Luna smiled sweetly at what he said, we all soon noticed her smile and wondered what was happening. "Luna, are you alright?" I asked,
Luna then snapped back into reality and looked at me. "Huh?...oh, of course I am." she said before she turned her body around to face us. "Now, I understand that you need to be transported back to Ponyville?" she asked.
Twilight nodded. "Yeah, it's dark out there and it's too far for us to travel back." She said.
"Especially since we don't have anything to travel back on." Spike added.
"Very well, I shall teleport you back to Ponyville. Just hold still." Luna said before her horn began to glow.
Me, Twilight, and the others then stood close together and prepared for the transport. "Goodnight, Princess." Twilight said with a kind smile.
Luna smiled back. "Goodnight, Twilight Sparkle. And thank you all for coming, I felt so much calmer with you here." she stated.
"No Problem, Luna. And don't worry about the colt thing, you'll find him one day." I said.
"I know…Thank you." Luna said as her horn glowed brighter.
At that moment, we all disappeared in a flash of light; leaving Luna alone in the doorway before she went back into the throne room and closed the doors behind her.
Ponyville Library
In another flash of light, we all reappeared in front of the library. Once again, we were all in a dizzy state due to the transport. "Urr…remind me never to come along on these trips again." Jeff said before he shook his dizziness off.
After the rest of us did the same, I looked around Ponyville to see it was pitch black and no-one was in the streets. "I still can't believe we were gone all day." I said as I looked at Twilight.
"Yeah, time sure flies when you're visiting royalty." Twilight said with a humorous grin.
Just then, a chilling breeze blew through us in the wind; making us all quiver. "Yeah, it's amazing how fast the day goes. Now can we please go inside? It's freezing out here." Spike said in a quick as he wrapped his arms around himself.
Twilight looked down at Spike before she used her magic to pick him up and placed him on her back. "Ok, let's go inside and get you to bed, it's past your bedtime anyway." She said before she trotted towards the front-door of the library.
Jeff then yawned as he starched his wings out. "Yeah, I'm kinda beat myself. It's time to hit-the-hay." He said before he and Peewee flew up onto my back.
After that, I followed Twilight into the library before I closed the door behind me and locked it.
A few minutes later, I was in the bed waiting for Twilight to finish tucking in Spike and the others. Owlicious was still wide wake on a bird-stand near the window, he was nocturnal after all.
And while Jeff and Peewee were already asleep in the basket, Spike was still awake, but he looked as though he was about to fall asleep any moment.
Spike watched with tired eyes as Twilight pulled the covers over him with her magic. "Comfortable, Spike?" she asked quietly.
Spike slowly nodded. "Yeah…hey Twilight, can I ask you something?" he asked.
"Sure, what is it?" Twilight asked curiously.
"I overheard you and Bleak talking about Discord…Do you really think he's changed? As in, changed for real?" Spike asked as his eye-lids grew heavier.
Twilight kept her gentle smile as she answered. "Well I don't like to argue with the Princess's opinion, so…I'm choosing to trust him." She answered.
Spike would've spoken his opinion on the matter, but he was far too tired to do so. "*Yawn*…That's nice, Twilight…goodnight." He said as his eyes slowly closed.
Twilight smiled sweetly before she gave Spike a small kiss on his forehead. "Goodnight Spike, sweet dreams." She whispered before she quietly made her way towards our bed.
Twilight then came around to her side of the bed before she got in and pulled the covers over us with her magic. Once she was settled, she looked at me and noticed the nervous look on my face. "What's wrong, Matt?" she asked.
I was nervous because I remembered the conversation we had earlier, the one about us visiting my family in the human world. I was afraid she would refuse, but I had to try. "Well…remember the conversation we had at the café?" I asked.
"You mean the one about us going to the Human world?" Twilight asked as she remembered.
I nodded. "Yeah, you didn't answer it before. I'm just wondering…have you made a decision?" I asked with my ears slightly low.
Twilight then began to think about her answer, she could tell just by looking into my eyes that I really wanted her to come. After a few seconds, she let out a small sighed before a smile came on her face. "Alright Matt, I'll do it for you." she answered.
After hearing that, my ears perked up. "Really?" I asked with a smile.
Twilight nodded. "Yeah…You live in my Pony world every day, I guess it wouldn't hurt to live in your Human world for just a few." She stated with the smile still on her face.
I then gave her a surprising loving hug. "Thanks Twi, I promise I'll always be with you while we're there, I won't let anything bad happen." I said in a calming voice.
Twilight continued to smile as she hugged me back. "I know, Matt…but there's one condition." She stated.
I then separated from Twilight before I looked into her eyes. "Sure, Twi. What is it?" I asked curiously.
"I want to ask our friends to come with us. Fluttershy, Applejack, Rainbow Dash, everyone. Spike and the others can come too, if they want to of course." Twilight said.
I understood what she wanted and nodded. "Ok, we'll ask them at some-point. But there's only one thing…how are we gonna ask them?" I asked.
Twilight then took a moment to think about it before she came up with something. "We'll invite them to meet us at the café tomorrow, we'll ask them then. How's that?" She asked.
"Yeah, that sounds good, we'll do that." I said before I yawned. "*Yawn*…Well, we better get some sleep, I'm really tired." I said before I lied down in the bed and rested my head on the pillow.
"Yeah, me too." Twilight said as she did the same. "Goodnight Matt, I love you." she said before she closed her eyes.
I smiled at what she said. "Goodnight Twi, love you too." I said before I closed my eyes a-well.
Before I fell asleep, I wondered what would happen if Twilight and the others came to the Human world. Would they become Humans too? Or would they stay in Pony form? I wouldn't mind if they turned to Humans, I was actually curious to see what they'd look like.
But will they turn to Humans? I'll have to find out when we go. That is, if the rest of the main 6 agree to come. I'll have to find that out tomorrow when Twilight and I ask them the big question.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
I'd like to thank the author known as "Thunder Pony" for creating Brave Star. Hoof-bump to you, buddy. /)(\
Also, to those who want to know what Night Thunder looks like, go onto Google Images and type in this "MLP Night Thunder" It'll help you imagine him better. Thank you to whoever created him.
And one more thing, to those who keep telling me to do something similar to a picture called "A life for a life", I have something like that in mind and it'll still involve Spike getting badly hurt. But I wouldn't get excited yet, the chapter I'm gonna put it on is still a while away.
Pony News: Just a reminder, Equestria Girls is out in cinemas, but I don't know for how long.
In other news, Meghan McCarthy doesn't know exactly when Season 4 is coming out, but she says it's worth the wait.
She's also stated (for what sounds like the fiftieth time) Equestria Girls is NOT Season 4 and that Season 4 will be all pony.
Magical Mystery Cure has won the Best Musical Score in the Leo Awards.
Poll: The next chapter's gonna be the one where Matt and the others go to the Human world, so I need to know this. Do you want Luna to go with them? Or stay behind and get to know her guards better? Here are the options.
1: Luna should go with them.
2: Luna should stay behind.
Please place your vote on my profile and please remember to review.
Next chapter will be up soon.
47. Family day out
Hi everypony, sorry for the delay.
Ok, I've gone over the Poll's results and here they are. 7 people voted for Luna to stay behind, and 6 people voted for Luna to go with them. Once again, we have a winner.
P.S. I want you all to know that I am fully aware of what Celestia did to Matt in Chapter 8, she made him a pony permanently….I kinda went a little overboard when I wrote that. However, I've gone back and added something to her deal, now it says this.
"Matt, you have two choices. You can ether say your goodbyes to all your friends and return to your home world. Or become a pony permanently and stay here with Twilight. If you choose to stay as a pony, you can never be a human again unless I reverse the spell."
After reading that, you've probably got the idea of where this is going XD
Anyway, enjoy the chapter.
Chapter 47: One world to another (part 1)
Ponyville café
Just as we planned, Twilight and I invited our friends to the café so we could ask them if they'd come with us to the Human world. All the while, I was nervous about the whole thing.
What would they think about this? How would they react? How can I explain everything to them? I honestly didn't know.
However, there was something I did know. I knew I wanted Twilight to come with me to visit my family. So if I wanted her to come, I'd have to try and convince our friends to come with us.
After we all arrived at the café, we sat down by a table and I went through the subject with everyone. I told them everything I knew about it, like how I wanted to visit my family and how Twilight wanted them to come with us.
But after hearing it all, they just stared at us with their mouths hanging open a bit.
Applejack was the first to speak. "So let me get this straight…you want us to come with ya to the Human world?"
"Even though we have no idea how it works?" Rarity added.
"Just to visit your family who can easily come here instead of us going there?" Rainbow Dash added.
"Urr….yeah." I said before I smiled largely and nervously at them.
The moment was then silent before Pinkie Pie smiled. "Well, I'm in. I better go pack my stuff." She said before she got up and trotted away from the table.
But before Pinkie could go any further, Applejack quickly grabbed her tail with her mouth and yanked her back. "Hold on there, Pinkie. We can't just agree to it like that, we need to take our time and think this through." Applejack stated.
After Pinkie Pie sat back down in her place, Applejack looked over to me. "Matt, are you sure about this? I mean…this isn't like ridin' a train across the world, this is bigger." She stated with concern in her voice.
I noticed the sound in her voice and tried to ease her worries. "I know that, but I just want to see my family again and I think it's unfair for them to always have to come here." I said.
"We understand what you're saying, Matthew. But travelling to a different world? Don't you think that's a little…risky?" Rarity asked while sitting beside us.
I turned my head to face her. "My family seem to do it without any problems." I stated.
"But they're Humans who come to our world, who knows what'll happen if a pony tries to go to theirs." Rainbow Dash argued.
As I was about to protest, Twilight spoke up for me. "Look girls, I had my doubts about it too, but Matt really wants to visit his home world. Besides, I wrote a letter to the Princess about this situation and she says the travel will not harm us in any way." She said in a calm tone.
"How does she know? Has she ever gone to a different world?" Fluttershy asked curiously.
Twilight looked over to her. "I don't know, probably. Or maybe she just knows more about it than we do, she did know Matt was a Human before any of us did after all." She said.
"Well that basically proves it then, it's safe to go…So what do you all think?" I asked, hoping they'd eventually agree to it.
The moment was then silent as they all thought about it. Twilight and I soon began to worry in the silence, we were sure this was a sign of them rejecting.
But our worries went away when Fluttershy broke the silence. "Well, umm…I'll try and go with you…if it's fine with everyone else, that is." She said in her quiet voice.
Seeing how Fluttershy was brave enough to try, Rainbow Dash started to consider it herself. "You know…usually I'm not big on travelling to faraway places. But if Fluttershy's game enough to do it, then it shouldn't be a problem for me. So count me in!" she stated with a smirk of pride.
"Now that I think about it, it does seem like quiet the adventure. Plus, think of all the new lines of fashion I'll discover there!" Rarity said excitement before she looked at me. "What kind of clothes do they have there?" she asked.
I shrugged my shoulders. "All sorts. But it's probably best to warn you that you won't like everything everyone wears, there are some people who don't have good fashion sense." I stated.
Rarity waved her hoof. "That's fine, darling. Everyone has their own taste in fashion, even if some ponies don't share it." she said with a simple smile.
"So does this mean you'll come too?" Twilight asked, hoping she'd say yes.
Rarity looked over to her. "Well after thinking about it, I'd have to say I'm open to the idea. So…yes, I'll come with you. Oooh, I feel inspiration coming already." She said with excitement.
Suddenly, Pinkie Pie jumped up between me and Rarity from under the table. "Nopony has to ask me twice, I'll come too." She said before she slid back under the table and remerged beside Applejack. "Now that just leaves Applejack." She stated.
With that pointed out, we all gave Applejack our full attention. "*sigh*…I guess stayin' there for a few days wouldn't hurt." Applejack said with a small smile.
After hearing that, Twilight and I smiled with delight. "It's settled then, we're going to the Human world!" Twilight declared.
"Great! So when are we going?" Rainbow Dash asked.
I then looked over to her. "Twilight and I thought it'd be best to go next Friday, that way you should all have enough time to get everything ready. Is anyone busy on that day? Because we can always postpone." I said.
Everyone then thought about it before they shook their heads. "Friday's good with us." Applejack stated.
Once that was taken care of, I gave everyone a thankful smile. "By the way…umm…thank you for this, all of you. It means a lot to have you all coming with me." I said kindly.
They all smiled back. "It's alright, Matt. In fact, I find it really nice that you want us all to come with you." Fluttershy said.
"And I bet it'll be fun discovering a new world. Can you just imagine what we might find there?" Pinkie Pie added with slight excitement.
I let out a small chuckle. "Well you might be disappointed, there isn't that much to find in England. But who knows, maybe you'll find it interesting once we get there." I said.
Rarity gave me a slightly surprised look. "You know, you seem very calm about this." she stated.
I then looked at her with confusion. "Why wouldn't I be?" I asked.
"Well you're going back to the Human world after all these months, doesn't that make you a little nervous?" she asked curiously.
I then thought about what she said. "Well…not exactly. To be honest, I never thought I'd go back after I decided to stay here, and especially after Celestia put that 'Permanent Pony' spell on me." I said.
At that moment, I realized something that made my eyes widen. The spell! Celestia said it would keep me in my pony form for as long as I live. Even if I go back to the Human world, I'd still be a pony.
Twilight soon noticed my shocked look. "You ok?" she asked.
I turned my head to face her. "Well…not really, I just realised something that could a problem for our trip." I said.
"What is it, Matt?" Twilight asked as she gave me her full attention.
"I'm still under the Permanent Pony spell." I stated in a worried tone.
Twilight just gave me a confused look. "The Permanent what-now?" she asked.
"The Permanent Pony spell, Twilight. Remember? Celestia casted a spell that made me a pony permanently, she told you about my Human-life and everything!" I said.
At that moment, it all came back to Twilight and she gasped. "*Gasp* Oh my gosh, I completely forgot about that. Wait, that means when we go through the portal…"
"You guys might turn into Humans, but I'll still be a pony. Crap, what am I gonna do?" I said as I began to stress.
Twilight then placed her hoof on my shoulder to try and calm me down. "Calm down, Matt. We have until next Friday, we'll figure something out before then." She said in a calming voice.
"Why don't you just ask the Princess to reverse the spell?" Rainbow Dash suggested.
Twilight then tapped her chin as she thought about what she said. "You know, that's not a bad idea. If Celestia reverses the spell, you won't be stuck as a pony anymore and you'll be able to turn back into a Human." She said to me.
"Do you really think she can do that?" I asked, unsure if it was possible.
Twilight gave me a confident smile. "If anyone can reverse the spell, I'm pretty sure Celestia can." She stated.
Truthfully, I had to agree with her. Celestia was good with special magic, and she was the one who casted the spell in the first place. So if I'm lucky, there's a high possibility that she could reverse it.
"Good point, Twi. I'll ask Celestia to reverse the spell. But I won't trouble her with it today, I'll ask her on the day we leave. Besides, I think it'd be best if she was there when the portal opens. You know, just in case." I said.
Twilight nodded in agreement. "I agree, we can't be too careful about this stuff." She said.
"I know." I responded before I turned my attention back to everyone else. "So is that everything taken care of?" I asked.
Pinkie Pie then nodded. "Yep. Everypony's agreed to come, we know what day we're going on, and we've got a solution for this whole 'spell' thingy. That sums up just about everything in my book." She said with a simple smile.
"Great, so we have a plan." I said with pleased smile.
Just then, the waiter came over to our table while balancing a tray of mugs on his hoof. "Your orders." He said as he placed the tray down on the table.
"Thanks." I said before the waiter walked away to serve another customer.
We all then took a mug each before we began to drink out of them. As we enjoyed our orders, I couldn't help but think about our trip.
I was glad my friends decided to come with us, I felt like I was going to need them more than ever. I mean, really, going back to the Human world after being gone for so long? It was gonna be tough. But with them and Twilight by my side, it might make things easier.
But I wasn't going to worry about that right now, I had until next Friday before we go anyway. Besides, it's not like I'm seeing my family for the first time since I left, I bet they'll be thrilled to hear that I'm coming back for a few days.
A few days later: Fields outside Ponyville
The last few days seemed to have gone quick, it feels like only yesterday Twilight and I were discussing this journey with our friends.
During week, I sent a letter to my family saying I was coming home with Twilight and my friends for the next 2 weeks.
When my parents sent a letter back, it said they were thrilled and couldn't wait to see me again. It also mentioned that Jess went back to University a few days ago. I guess this means she won't be there when I arrive, but I can always call her to let her know I'm back, or better yet, use Skype.
Me, Twilight, Spike, Fluttershy, and Rarity were standing in the field outside Ponyville waiting for the others to arrive.
Celestia, Luna, and Shining Armor had already arrived on chariot. After welcoming them, I asked Celestia to reverse the Permanent Pony spell and she did so.
Now with the 'spell' thing taken care of, there was nothing standing between us and the Human world. At least, I hope there wasn't.
While we waited for the others, Twilight and I went through our saddle-bags to check if we forgot anything. "Do you have your quills? I can't find them in my bag." I said as I searched through my bag.
"Yep, there're in here next to my spare ink pot. Hmm…I can't find my comb, do you have it?" Twilight asked while also searching through her bag.
"Yeah, it's in here." I answered as I pulled Twilight's comb and held it out to her. "In fact, there's more of your stuff in here than mine." I said.
Twilight then took her comb with her magic and placed it into her bag. "We'll have to fix that later." She stated.
"So where's Jeff and Peewee? Aren't they coming?" Spike asked as he came over to us.
I turned my head to face him. "They already said they're not coming with us, but they're coming to say goodbye." I said.
"Ok, but still, where are they?" Spike asked as he crossed his arms.
"Jeff said they were gonna come here with Applejack." I stated before I went back to searching through my bag.
While spraying perfume on herself, Rarity overheard our conversation and looked over to us. "Speaking of which, she and the others should really get a move one. It's getting late and I have no intention of going anywhere in the dark." She said before she placed her perfume bottle into her saddle-bag.
Just then, Fluttershy flew over to us. "Oh, I hope they're alright. Maybe they got too nervous and decided not to come." She said before her ears dropped. "That's what I almost did…sorry." She said in a slight whisper.
I looked up at her and gave her a gentle smile. "It's ok Fluttershy, I know how pressuring this must be for you. But everything's going to be fine, my house is as safe as yours." I said, trying to help her.
Fluttershy then smiled back before she landed beside me. "And don't worry about the others, they're probably on their way by now." I said with a confident smile.
Then as if on cue, we all noticed Applejack and the others walking towards us with Jeff and Peewee on Applejack's back.
As they came closer, Rarity stepped forward. "Where have you all been? We've been waiting for ages." She said.
Applejack then looked over to Rarity. "Sorry, I had some stuff to take care of before leavin'. I wanted to make sure I packed everythin' I might need while we're there." she stated as she looked back at her full saddle-bags.
Suddenly, Pinkie Pie hopped up beside her. "And I wanted to make sure I packed everything I might need if there's a PARTY!" she said before she opened one of her saddle-bags and a large burst of confetti shot out.
I then looked up at Rainbow Dash who was hovering in mid-air above them. "Have you packed everything you might need, Rainbow?" I asked.
"Yeah, yeah, I have everything." Rainbow Dash said as she pointed at the saddle-bags on her back. "But honestly, I don't see why I'd need this stuff when I already have the thing that truly matters." She said with a smirk.
"And what would that be?" Applejack asked with a raised eye brow.
Rainbow Dash looked down at her. "My awesomeness, of course." She gloated.
"Well I hate to break it to you, Rainbow. But I'm afraid there won't be any flying for you where we're going." I said with a devious smirk.
Rainbow's ears then perked up before she turned her attention to me. "What do you mean?" she asked in a slightly worried tone.
"I mean Human's don't have wings, they can't fly. And if we all end up as Humans on the other side of the portal…well…bye-bye wings." I stated.
After hearing that, Rainbow Dash grew extremely worried. How would she last without her wings? It was too painful for her to even think about that. "You know, I'm starting to think that maybe this whole 'going to the Human world' thing isn't for me. But I'm looking forward to hearing about it when you get back." She said with a nervous smile.
"Thinkin' of stayin' now, huh Rainbow? Should've known to be honest, I bet you wouldn't have handled the two weeks without your wings. I already know you can't handle one day, or have you forgotten The Runnin' of the Leaves?" Applejack said with a devious smile.
I could already see where this is going, she was trying to tempt Rainbow Dash into taking the bet and proving her wrong. And as expected, it worked.
Rainbow Dash shot down to Applejack and looked her straight in the eye. "Is that so? Well Applejack, I can go a whole month without flying."
"So is it a bet?" Applejack said as her smile turned into a grin.
"You bet it's a bet." Rainbow Dash said before she and Applejack spat on one of their front-hooves on bumped them together; making a small 'splat' sound.
"I still find that hoof-bump really disgusting." Rarity whispered to Twilight.
After their hooves separated, Rainbow Dash looked over to me again. "So Matt, how would you rate your home country? Cool, or un-cool?" she asked.
"I'd have to say England isn't the most exciting place on Earth, but it's better than most places." I said simply.
"Well…England…better get ready for me, because I'm Rainbow Dash and I'm bringin' in a whole lot of awesome! With or without wings." Rainbow Dash declared strongly as she shot up into the air and flexed her chest out.
With her taken care of, I looked down at Jeff and Peewee standing in front of me. "Now are you guys sure you don't want to come with us? It won't be any trouble if you do." I said.
Jeff shook his head. "Nah, I'm not really in to all this 'other world' stuff. It just raises too many questions for me, like…how many other worlds are out there waitin' to be discovered? No, I prefer to stay here in the world I know best." he said in a calm tone.
I gave him a simple smile. "I understand, Jeff. Thinking about that kind of stuff used to give me a headache as-well. You and Peewee can stay here if you want." I said.
"And besides, someone needs to watch the library while you guys are gone." Jeff said before he and Peewee shared a sly smile.
I knew what they were up to and smirked. "Nice try, but Shining Armor's going to stay in the library while we're gone. I'm sure he'll keep an eye on it and you two." I said.
After hearing this, Jeff and Peewee's then eyes shot open. "What? Oh not that guy, he's a total bore." Jeff said.
"Well you know you don't have to be around him all the time, right? You can do your own thing….as long as it doesn't cause trouble" I stated.
Jeff then rubbed his chin as he thought about it. "Now that you mention it…there is one thing I could do." he said.
"Yeah, try to set things right with your girlfriend." Peewee said before he snickered.
Jeff quickly turned his head to face Peewee. "That's not what I was thinkin' at all and Philomena is NOT my girlfriend!" he snapped.
Peewee kept his smirk and he crossed his wings. "Then why are you acting so defensive?" he said.
Jeff blushed deeply. "I'm not actin' defensive! I'm just tryin' to get my point across. There's nothin' goin' on between me and Philomena, she hates my guts." He stated strongly.
"Well do whatever you want, Jeff. Just be sure to stay out of trouble, we don't want another mess like last time." I said.
Jeff then looked up to me. "Hey, that guy had it comin'. He was tryin' to hit me with a broom." He argued.
"After you tried to steal one of his watermelons." Peewee said.
Jeff turned his head to face him. "Three bits for one watermelon is highway-robbery and you know it!" he said.
"Jeff, I'm serious. Please stay out of trouble, just this once." I said with slight desperation.
Jeff looked back up to me before he sighed. "Ok, I won't. Just don't expect me to get along with Owlicious while you're gone." He said as he crossed his wings.
I gave him a cheek smirk. "Wouldn't dream of it, buddy." I said before I looked over to Twilight who was still searching through her saddle-bags. "So have we got everything?" I asked.
Twilight then closed her saddle-bags before she looked at me and nodded. "Yep, everything we need is in our bags." she stated with a simple smile.
Just then, Twilight heard someone sigh sadly behind her before she turned around to see Shining Armor with a concerned look on his face. "What's wrong, Shining Armor?" She asked softly.
Shining Armor then looked into her eyes before he decided to be honest with her. "The Princess told me about your trip…I just want to know if you're absolutely sure about doing this. I mean, you're about to go through a portal to another world, don't you think it'll be a bit dangerous there?" he asked with concern.
Twilight gave him a calming smile. "I know how risky it might be, but I want to go there and see what it's like. Besides, Matt will be with us through the whole thing, we'll be safe with him." She stated.
"I hope so." Shining Armor said before he looked over to me. "Matt, you know more about this world than anyone, I want you to promise me that you'll look after Twilight." he said in a serious tone.
I returned his serious look and nodded. "I will. And to make it official, I'll Pinkie Promise." I said before I began the chant. "Cross my heart, hope to fly, stick a cupcake in my eye." I said as I held my hoof over my left-eye.
However, Shining Armor just stared at me with confusion. "Urr…what?" he asked.
I then remembered that Shining Armor's always lived in Canterlot, so he's never heard of a Pinkie Promise before. "Never-mind, just take my word for it." I said as I placed my hoof back down on the ground.
After that was settled, Luna came over to us. "I think it is time for you all to go. The stars may not be visible, but they are now perfectly aligned to open the portal." She said.
"She's right, Matt. Besides, we don't want to keep your parents waiting." Twilight stated.
Twilight had a point. While I was writing the letter to my parents, I wrote a sentence telling them to wait in the back-garden for the portal to open. If we waited any long, they might think we changed our minds about coming.
I then turned my head to face Twilight. "Yeah, you're right." I said before I took a deep breath and exhaled. "…Here we go…" I said loud enough for everyone to hear.
With that, Luna took a few steps back along with Celestia and Shining Armor. While they got to a safe distance, Twilight and the others gathered around me so we could be close together when the portal opens.
After taking another few steps back, Celestia and Luna closed her eyes before their horns glowed faintly. As their horns glowed brighter, Celestia and Luna tilted their heads towards each other before the tips of their horns connected.
Suddenly, a large yellow-and-blue mixed beam shot out of their horns and stopped in mid-air a few feet in front of them. The beam's power then began to open the portal.
We all then watched as the portal grew wider and wider until it was big enough to walk through. Once it was big enough, the beam stopped.
Celestia and Luna both breathed heavily as their horns stopped glowing, obviously the amount of power they used to open the portal was too much for even them.
It didn't take long for Celestia and Luna to regain their strength before they looked over to us. "The portal is open, but we don't know for how long. If you're going to go, you best do it now." Celestia stated.
I nodded to her before I walked over to the portal and stopped a few feet in front of it. As I stared at the roaring hole in front of me, I thought about what lies beyond it. "Hard to believe my old life is on the other side of this thing." I thought.
After having my small moment, I turned my head to face Twilight and the others. "Ready?" I asked.
Twilight, Spike, and the rest of the main 6 had unsure looks, but they didn't say anything as they joined me in front of the portal.
All the while, I knew what they were thinking. They were scared…hell, I'd even be scared if it was my first time doing this.
I didn't want them to feel worried, so I tried to help them. "It's alright…I'll take care of all of you, I promise." I said in a calming voice.
After hearing that, their unsure looks turned into small smiles; telling me their confidence had returned.
I smiled back before I prepared to jump into the portal. But before I could, Shining Armor called out. "Wait." he said before he galloped up to Twilight and hugged her. "Stay safe, ok?" he said as he continued to hug her.
Twilight then hugged him back. "Don't worry…I will." She said softly.
After they separated, Shining Armor took a few steps back until he was standing beside Celestia and Luna. "Goodbye, my little ponies. We look forward to hearing all about your journey when you return." Celestia said with a kind smile.
But before any of us could say 'goodbye' back, Rainbow Dash shot up into the air. "But until then, I have a world to fill with awesomeness." She said with a grin before she flew down towards the portal.
My eyes widened at this. "Rainbow, wait! We should go through-" But I didn't have time to finish as Rainbow Dash shot over my head and straight into the portal.
"-Together…" I finished as I turned around to the portal.
Fluttershy gasped loudly. "*Gasp!* Oh my goodness, is she alright?" she asked with a worried tone.
I then looked over to her and attempted to answer, but Applejack beat me to it as she walked past me. "Only one way to find out, sugar cube." She said before she stopped in front of the portal.
"Other world, here I come! YEE-HAA!" Applejack yelled as she leaped into the portal.
Once I got the idea that everyone was going in one-at-a-time, I decided to step aside so everyone else could get to the portal easier.
After gaining some confidence, Fluttershy took a deep breath before she made her way towards the portal. When she stopped in front of it, she looked upon it with nervousness.
As she started to quiver, her left saddle-bag opened before Angel's head popped out of it. Fluttershy noticed this and looked at him. "Not yet, Angel Bunny. I don't want you to get hurt when I go into this thing." she said in her quiet voice.
Angel wondered what she was talking about before he looked at the portal in front of Fluttershy. Once he saw it, he squealed in fright before he dove back into the bag and closed it.
Fluttershy then looked at me with a fake smile. "You know, maybe I should take Angel back to my cottage before I go. But if I'm not back in time, be sure to say hi to your parents for me, will yo-AHH!" she yelled as Pinkie Pie flicked her into the portal with her muzzle.
Twilight and I then looked at Pinkie firmly. "Pinkie, why did you do that? She probably wasn't ready." Twilight said.
Pinkie Pie turned her head to face her. "What? You know she was making up an excuse so she could stay behind, right? I mean, c'mon, even I saw it coming." She stated with a large smile before she hopped past us.
"Cannonball!" Pinkie Pie yelled as she leaped into the portal in a cannonball style.
After she went through, Rarity knew she was next and walked past us. "I don't know why everyone keeps jumping into the portal, can't they simple walk into it?" she said.
When she stopped in front of the portal, she turned her head around to face us. "Observe." She said before she turned her head back to face the portal.
We watched as Rarity lifted her right-hoof up and stuck it into the portal, she then simply walked the rest of the way in like she said she would.
After she went through, Twilight and I looked at each other before I gave her a small smile. "Our turn." I said softly.
Twilight nodded before she looked down at Spike who was standing beside her. "Hop on, Spike." She said as she lowered her body down to him.
Spike then did as Twilight said and climbed onto her back. Once she stood back up, Twilight and I made our way towards the portal.
The Princesses, Shining Armor, Jeff, and Peewee all watched us go. "Hey Matt!" Jeff called.
Twilight and I stopped in front of the portal before we looked over to him. "Don't forget about us, dude." He said.
I then gave him a small smirk. "I won't, buddy." I said.
"Farewell, my friends. We look forward to your safe return." Luna said with a kind smile.
We looked over to her and returned her smile. "See ya soon, Luna." I said.
Twilight then looked at Shining Armor. "Goodbye Shining Armor, I love you." she said sweetly.
Shining Armor then gave her a sweet smile. "Love ya too, Twily." He said.
With all our goodbyes now said, Twilight, Spike, and I returned our attention to the portal. We each then took a deep breath before we walked into it.
After a minute or so, the portal closed and whatever remained of it disappeared in a small flash.
"Well…that is that then…" Luna said before she looked up at her sister. "We should return to Canterlot before anything happens in our absents." She said.
Celestia then looked down at Luna before she nodded in agreement.
With that, Celestia & Luna turned around and made their way towards the chariot that brought them here.
Once they got onto it, the 4 Pegasi guards attached to the yokes made a running start before they took off into the air while pulling the chariot behind them.
Meanwhile, Shining Armor headed towards Ponyville with Jeff and Peewee on his back. Along the way, they couldn't help but wonder where we all were now.
Meanwhile: England/my back-garden
My Mum and Dad were sitting on a bench in the back-garden waiting for something, anything, to happen.
As they waited, my Dad checked his watch a number of times. But it wasn't very helpful because I didn't say we'd arrive at a certain time.
But after a few more minutes, the portal suddenly opened with a loud flash that startled my parents.
After calming down, my parents stood up off the bench and slowly made their way towards the portal.
But before they could get any closer, they were caught by surprise when I suddenly flew out of the portal and crashed into the ground, followed by the main 6 and Spike.
After a few minutes of unconsciousness, I soon started to wake up to the sound of cheeping birds and my Mother's voice. "Oh my god. Matt, are you ok?" I heard her say with a worried tone.
When I woke up completely, I felt grass against the side of my face. That's when I realised I was lying in my back garden with my parents on their knees beside me.
My parents saw me coming around and tried to help me stand. "Come on, mate. Let's get you up." My Dad said as he helped my Mother lift me off the ground.
Once I was up on my feet, I managed to keep my balance. "I'm ok, I'm ok…I just need a minute." I said as I placed my hand on my face.
After a few seconds, I finally noticed the obvious. My eyes shot open before I quickly removed my hand from my face and looked at it. My hand wasn't a hoof anymore, it was a…well, hand!
I then turned my attention to my other hand before I looked down at my body to see I was a full-flesh Human again. I was speechless, I never thought I'd see myself as a Human again.
The surprise was eventually too much to take and I fell back down onto the ground with a hard thud.
My parents quickly helped me back up before they took me over to the bench and gently sat me down on it.
Once I got settled on the bench, I took steady breaths before I looked down at my body again. I still couldn't believe it. After being a pony for a large number of months, it felt kinda strange to be Human again.
(Seeing how I didn't describe myself in the first few chapters, I'll tell you now.)
I had white skin. I was taller than my Mother, but shorter than my Dad. Unlike my Pony form, my hair was short and not as spikey. I had a thin body. And finally, I was wearing the same blue pyjamas I had on when I first went through the portal to Equestria.
My parents saw me staring down at myself before my Dad placed his hand on my shoulder. "You alright, Matt?" he asked.
I then looked at him and nodded. "Yeah…it's just I haven't seen my hands in ages, or any part of my Human form for that matter." I said before I looked down at my hands.
My Mother gave me a kind smile. "Well don't worry, you still look like your old self. In fact, I think you've lost a bit of weight." She said.
I then looked down at my stomach to see it actually did look thinner, it must've been because of all those apples and salads I ate while in Equestria.
After examining my stomach for a few more seconds, I looked at my Mother with a smile. "Yeah, I think you're right…Huh, I wonder how Twilight's gonna react when she…."
I then stopped in my sentence as I remembered about Twilight and the others. "Twilight?...Where's Twilight?!" I said loudly with panic as I stood up off the bench and looked around for her.
After a short search, I spotted Twilight and the others lying on the grass while still unconscious. However, they didn't look like themselves. "Oh my god…" I said under my breath.
As I expected, they had all become Humans. Except for Spike who had become a small purple dog for some reason. I also noticed that our saddle-bags had turned into backpacks.
But despite being Humans, they still looked cartoony and their skin colours were still the same. For example: Twilight was still velvet, Rainbow Dash was still blue, and Applejack was still orange.
(If you're wondering what they look like, they look exactly like how they do in Equestria Girls, same clothes and everything.)
After examining them for a few more seconds, I quickly rushed over to Twilight and dropped down onto my knees in front of her. "Twi?...Twi!" I said loudly before I rolled her over onto her back.
I couldn't believe it when I saw her face, she looked so…Human-like. But despite all the differences, she was still just as beautiful as ever. Just then, I heard Twilight groan slightly before her eyes started to blink open. "…Matt?...Is that you?" she asked weakly.
I nodded. "Yeah, Twi….Are you ok?" I asked as I gently placed my hand on her soft cheek.
"I…think so." Twilight answered before she examined my body. "Wow…so this is the real you, huh? You look better than I expected." she said with a small smile.
I smiled back. "Thanks…you don't look too bad yourself." I said.
Twilight gave me a confused look as she leaned up. "What do you mean?" she said before she looked down at herself.
Once Twilight saw her new body, her eyes widened larger than ever and she screamed at the top of her voice; forcing me to cover my ears.
Twilight's scream was so loud that it woke everyone else up from their unconscious state. Once they were all awake, they quickly leaned up and looked over to Twilight.
"Twilight? What's-…AHHH!" Rarity screamed once she saw Twilight's new form. "Twilight…w-what in the name of Equestria are you?" she asked while quivering.
Twilight then held her hands up in front of her face to look at them. "I…I think I'm a Human." She said before she looked over to Rarity. "You're one too!" she said loudly.
"What?!" Rarity responded before she looked down at her body and screamed as loud as Twilight did. "AHHHH! I'm a Human too!" she shouted.
"So are we!" Applejack added as she, Rainbow Dash, Fluttershy, and Pinkie Pie examined their new bodies.
Spike was also examining his body, but he wasn't freaking out as much. "Whow, I'm a dog…weird." He said as he looked back at his short tail.
I could tell by their loud voices and heavy breathing that they weren't taking this whole thing very well. "Everyone, please calm down. W-We expected this sort of thing to happen, try not to freak out about it." I said, trying to help them calm down.
Applejack then looked over to me. "Try not to freak out?! Matt, have you seen us? We look so…so…freaky." She said as she tried to stand up, but ended up falling back down.
"I know it might feel freaky, but you all look fine, trust me. You just need a little time to get use to your Human bodies." I said.
Just then, I noticed Twilight trying to stand up before she dropped back down onto the ground. As she attempted it again, I decided to help her.
I kneeled down to Twilight before I placed her arm over my shoulders and lifted her up onto her feet.
Twilight stumbled a few times, but I managed to keep hold of her. "Let's get you inside the house so you can have a minute to calm down." I said before I looked over to the others.
"I'll come back to help the rest of you once I take care of Twilight." I said before I started walking towards the house while holding Twilight beside me.
Along the way, I stopped and looked over to my parents. "Can you help bring some of the others in?" I asked.
My Mother nodded. "Of course we will." She said before they walked over to Applejack and Rainbow Dash and helped them up off the ground.
I gave them a thankful smile. "Thanks." I said before I resumed carrying Twilight towards the house, my parents followed behind while carrying Applejack and Rainbow Dash.
As we walked away from the others, Fluttershy suddenly remembered something that made her eyes widen. "Oh my goodness! Angel!" she said before she quickly took her backpack off.
After she opened it, Angel slowly emerged from inside the bag in dizzy state. "Angel, are you ok?" Fluttershy asked in concern.
Angel then shook off his dizziness before he looked up at Fluttershy. However, once he saw her new form, he went wide-eyed before he fainted back into the bag.
"Oh my." Fluttershy gasped before she reached into the bag and gently picked Angel up. She then held him in her left-arm and started fanning him with her right-hand.
As Fluttershy tried to bring Angel back to consciousness, Spike and the others looked at each other with unsure faces.
A few minutes later
It took a while, but my parents and I managed to get everyone inside the house.
I would've introduced them to my black-Labrador dog named Harvey, but I was afraid he would've made things worse by barking and jumping up on everyone. So my parents decided to take him out on a long walk while I settled things.
After they left, we placed our backpacks on the dining-room table and went into the living-room where I'd try to calm everyone down. However, they were all still a little shook up from what's happened to them.
My living-room had 2 couches and 1 reclining-chair made of red leather. Me, Twilight, and Applejack were sitting on the first couch. Rarity, Rainbow Dash, and Pinkie Pie were sitting on the second one. Fluttershy was sitting on the reclining-chair with Angel on her lap. And Spike was sitting on Twilight's lap.
"So what you're sayin' is…in this world, everyone has hands and walks on two legs?" Applejack asked in confusion.
I nodded to her. "I know it's confusing right now, but you'll eventually get the hang of it. In fact, I think Pinkie already has." I said.
At that moment, Pinkie Pie walked into the room with a smile on her face. "Hey, have you guys seen Matt's bathroom up-stairs? Talk about fancy." She said as she walked over to the second couch and sat down between Rarity and Rainbow Dash.
Rarity then looked over to me. "We know what you're trying to say, Matthew. But to be honest, you might think it's easy because you were born this way. For us on the other hoof…well…we're just not use to this. I mean, look at us, we can barely stand." She stated.
I turned my attention to her. "I know, Rarity. But like I said before, I'm going to help you through all this. I'm going to teach you everything I know about this world, I'll even take you out into town at some point." I said.
Even though she was still quivering from shock, Fluttershy gave me a small smile. "Oh, you mean like a nice calm walk around your home village?" she asked while stroking Angel's back.
I turned my head to face her. "Well not exactly because this isn't a village, it's a cul-de-sac. I meant I'd take you out into a town where people go shopping." I explained.
After hearing that, Twilight gave me a concerned look. "You mean in a public place? Matt, none of us are ready for that sort of thing yet. Don't you think you're rushing this a little?" She asked.
I then looked at Twilight and placed my hand on hers. "I didn't mean straight away, I meant after you've gotten use to your new bodies." I explained.
Twilight still had an unsure look on her face. "…I don't know, Matt. Perhaps once we've got the idea of how this world works, maybe we'll think about it." she said.
I gave her a small smile. "Good enough for me." I said before I looked at the others. "So, any of you willing to give Human lifestyle a chance?" I asked.
They all then had a long thought about it until they finally made their decision. "Well we're still not so sure about all this, but I guess we'll give it a try." Applejack said with the others nodding in agreement.
I smiled thankfully at them. "Thanks guys…thank you so much. I know it's hard for all of you right now, but…I'm really glad you came with me." I said kindly.
They all returned my smile before Rainbow Dash spoke. "Yeah well, enough of the mushy stuff, what do you Humans do for fun around here? All this talking is really starting to bore me." she stated while still smiling.
I then opened my mouth to answer her, but I was stumped on what to say. We all arrived here just half-an-hour ago, it would seem kind of wired to start a normal activity straight away.
"…Wow, I'm really stuck here." I said out-loud as I rested back against the couch.
Twilight let out a small chuckle before she placed her hand on my shoulder. "Why don't you start by showing us around the house?" she said while smiling with amusement.
I figured that would be the best way to start, so I nodded in agreement. "Alright then." I said before I stood up off the couch and looked at the others. "Do you still need help standing up?" I asked them.
"Actually, I think I have an idea on how it works." Rainbow Dash said before she slowly stood up off the couch. But once she was on her feet, she started to wobble a bit.
I prepared to catch her, but she managed to regain her balance. "See, nothing to this two legs business." Rainbow Dash said with a small smirk.
Everyone else then slowly stood up by themselves and attempted to walk. As they did, they had a little trouble keeping their balance, but they soon got the hang of it and were now walking like real Humans.
Twilight looked down at Spike on her lap. "Spike, could you get off my lap for a minute. I can't get up while you're still on me." She said.
"Sure thing, Twilight." Spike said before he leaped off Twilight's lap and landed on the floor.
Once Spike was off her lap, Twilight slowly stood up off the couch and attempted to walk.
While taking one step at a time, Twilight began to wobble and I prepared to catch her. But it proved to be unnecessary as she regained her balance and easily walked over to me. "I think I've gotten the hang of this now." She stated with a small smile.
I smiled back. "Great." I said before I looked at the others. "So is everyone ready for the tour?" I asked.
Twilight, Spike, and the rest of the main 6 then nodded to say they were ready.
With that, I guided them out of the front-room to begin the tour.
I showed them the dining-room, the kitchen, the upstairs bathroom, my parents' bedroom, Jess's bedroom. And finally, my bedroom.
As we entered my room, I couldn't help but feel a warm emotional feeling upon the sight of it.
I never thought I'd miss my own room so much. Sure it was small, but I had so many memories here. Also, I've missed lots of things like my Xbox 360, PS3, Skylanders collection, and many of my games.
"And this is my room…it's been a while since I last saw it." I said as Twilight and the others looked around the room.
Just then, I noticed my old stool standing below the window, the exact same place it was in when I made the wish. I stared blankly at it as I thought back to that night.
As I got lost in my thoughts, I suddenly felt someone's hand touch my back. "Hey, are you ok?" A voice asked softly.
When I snapped back into reality, I turned my head to see Twilight looking at me with a concerned face. "Huh?...Oh yeah, I'm fine, it's just…" I said before I looked down at the stool again. "This was where it happened…This is where I made the wish. I was sitting on that stool in that exact place…I never thought it would actually work." I said.
I then turned around to face Twilight. "But I'm really glad it did." I said with a warm smile as I wrapped my arm around her.
Twilight returned my smile before we slowly moved in for our very first Human kiss. But before we could get any closer to each other, Rarity spoke.
"Oooh, I simply love this blanket over your bed. Did you sleep with this every night?" Rarity asked while stroking her hand against the colourful blanket coving my bed.
I then moved my head away from Twilight's and looked over to Rarity. "Urr…Y-Yeah, there's a bit of a story behind that. You see, I didn't liked sleeping with a duvet because I got too hot at night, so I took it out and only slept with the cover. But when winter came, it got really cold and my Mum bought me this blanket. So now I can sleep without being too hot or too cold." I said as I walked over to the side of the bed.
Just then, I saw something lying near one of the corners of the bed. It was my IPod with the charger plugged into it, someone must've plugged it in after I went to Equestria.
I smiled with delight before I grabbed my IPod and unplugged the charger from it. "Oh yeah, life is sweet." I cheered as I held it up in my hand.
Twilight and the others looked at my IPod with both confusion and wonder. "What is that small thing?" Fluttershy asked curiously.
I turned my head to face Fluttershy before I held it in front of her. "It's my IPod, it's a small devise that lets people listen to music." I explained.
"Really? How does it work?" Rainbow Dash asked while staring at my IPod.
"I'll show you later, but let's carry on with the tour first. I've been dying to show Fluttershy my chicken pen." I stated.
As Twilight and the others walked out of my room, Spike gave me a large smirk. "When you use to live here, is that how you imagined having six girls in your room?" he asked before he followed the girls.
I instantly knew what he meant and looked down at him with surprise. "What?!" I said loudly.
Spike chuckled. "I'm only messing with ya." He stated.
As I watched Spike and the girls go down the stairs, I couldn't help but grow an amused smile. "I don't even want to know where he learned what that meant." I said to myself before I walked out of my room and followed everyone down the stairs.
That night
After finishing the tour, we all returned to the living-room where I told them everyone what I knew about my world. It was all a little hard to explain at first, but it soon got easier and everyone eventually understood everything…well, almost everything.
Not long after that, my parents returned with Harvey.
When I introduced him to everyone, they all thought he was really cute. In fact, Fluttershy absolutely loved him, she wouldn't leave him alone for a good half-an-hour.
Being a dog, Harvey took a friendly liking to Spike. But Spike didn't feel the same way, he found it a little uncomforting when Harvey sniffed around him.
A few hours later, the sun went down and night-time came.
My Dad went out for a snooker match, my Mother went to bed early like she usually does, and Harvey was resting peacefully on his bed in the kitchen. So me and the others had the whole living-room to ourselves.
Once we realised this, I suggested we'd watch a movie on my flat-screen TV. Twilight and the others agreed to it and we all got comfy on the seats.
I was sitting on the first couch between Twilight and Fluttershy. Rarity, Rainbow Dash, Pinkie Pie, and Spike were sitting on the second couch. And Applejack was sitting on the reclining-chair.
I wanted to show them so many movies, but I only chose 3 for tonight. The first one was a comedy, the second one was an action, and the last one was a Science-fiction.
Right now, we were watching the comedy film called Johnny English starring Rowan Atkinson. And let me tell you, it made us all laugh.
It was up to the part where Johnny and his sidekick, Bough, fell down a hole and landed in darkness.
"Are you alright, sir?" Bough asked.
"Yes, I landed on something quite soft." Johnny answered.
"That was me, sir." Bough stated.
"Oh, good." Johnny said as they both got up off the ground.
We all shared at small laugh at this. "Haha! You know, this guy kinda reminds me of you, Matt." Rainbow Dash said as she looked over to me.
I then turned my attention to her. "Really?" I asked.
Rainbow Dash nodded. "Yeah. He has the same accent as you, you both get involved with bad guys, and you're both complete goof-balls." She stated before snickering.
I understood her joke and smiled with amusement. "Oh hardy-fecking-har." I said before I turned my head to face Twilight. "I'm not a goof-ball, right?" I asked.
Twilight looked at my face and smiled. "Well…maybe a little, but I like that side of you, it shows you have a good sense of humor." She said as she placed her hand on my chest.
I gave Twilight a loving smiled before I wrapped my arm around her and gently pulled her closer.
Twilight then rested against my side before we went back to watching the movie.
After Johnny English ended, I put in the second movie. It was the action movie called Die Hard starring Bruce Willis.
Even though most of the girls didn't approve of it very much, Rainbow Dash and Spike couldn't take their eyes off it….I mean it, seriously, their eyes were watering from the lack of blinking.
It was up to the part where the main character, John McClane, was talking over a walkie-talkie to the main villain, Hans Gruber.
"Do you really think you have a chance against us, mister cowboy?" Hans asked while holding the radio in front of his mouth.
The screen then panned to where John was in the building. "Yippee-ki-ya, motherfucker." He responded as he slid off into the next room.
"That's my faverate line in the movie. I want to use it on someone I don't like, but the opportunity never comes. I wish I had used it when I was fighting Thorn, that would've been awesome." I stated with a smirk.
Applejack then looked over to me. "What does it even mean? I get the yippee-ki-ya part, but what's the last praise supposed to mean?" she asked with confusion.
I was a little stumped on what to tell her. "Urr…best not to know, AJ." I answered.
"How come?" Fluttershy asked curiously while petting Angel on her lap.
I turned my head to face her. "Just trust me, you don't want to know." I stated before I turned my attention back to the TV.
With that said, they all decided to drop the conversation and went back to watching the movie with me.
After Die Hard ended, I put in the final movie for tonight. It was the classic science-fiction called Jurassic Park.
To add scary effects, I turned off the lights so it would make the room dark.
At first, everyone thought it would be as good as the last two movies. But once it showed the opening scene with the Raptor, they knew it was going to be frightening.
By now, it was up to the part where the T-rex was attacking the tour cars.
While everyone was full of suspense, Fluttershy was clinging tightly onto my right-arm with fright.
Suddenly, the T-rex roared loudly and Fluttershy hide her face in my neck. "Ahh…i-is it nearly over yet?..." she asked while quivering.
I turned my head slightly to face her. "Fluttershy, it's only been on for half-an-hour. It hasn't even shown the Raptors yet." I said.
Fluttershy then pulled her face off my neck and looked at me. "Y-You mean those horrible c-creatures that ate that poor cow? We still have to see them before it ends?" she asked.
I was starting to feel a little regretful now. "Well…yeah." I answered honestly.
After hearing my answer, Fluttershy hid her face back in my neck and whimpered. "Matt, c-can we please watch something else?...I…I don't like this." She said in her little voice.
Rainbow Dash looked over to us. "You're not gonna chicken-out over a bunch of animals that don't even exist anymore, are you?" She asked with a raised eye brow.
I shot Rainbow Dash a firm look before I focused back on Fluttershy. Her small whimpers said it all, the movie was too scary for her. "Maybe this movie was a bad choice." I thought.
"Well I think the others want to watch this, but there's a TV with a DVD-player in the kitchen. If you want, I can set you up with another movie in there." I said softly.
Fluttershy pulled her face off my neck again and gave me a faint smile. "I'd like that." She said.
With that, Fluttershy and I stood up off the couch and made our way towards the door. "I'll be back in a minute, Twi." I said before we walked into the kitchen.
After I set Fluttershy up with a comedy movie called Get Smart, I returned to the living-room before I sat back down beside Twilight and continued to watching the movie.
Once the movie ended, everyone became tired and decided to go to bed. "*Yawn* Those movies were some great, but I think it's time to hit-the-hay." Rainbow Dash stated with tiredness in her eyes.
Applejack then stood up off the chair and stretched her arms up. "I think Rainbow has the right idea, I'm kinda tired too." She said before she looked over to me. "So Matt, where can we tucker down for the night?" she asked.
"I'll explain where you're sleeping once everyone's ready for bed, but did you all bring a pair of pyjamas like I told you to?" I asked while looking around to everyone.
"Of course we did, Matthew. And you must see the ones I made for myself, there're absolutely smashing." Rarity stated with a large smile.
I looked over to Rarity and smiled back. "Knowing your handy work, I bet they are." I said before I looked at everyone else. "Now you should all go upstairs and get changed in the bathroom, no-one will walk in on you in there." I said.
"Sounds like a plan. See ya up there, Mattie." Pinkie Pie said before she and the others walked out of the room; leaving me alone with Twilight and Spike.
Just then, Applejack came back. "Urr, where do we go after we're dressed?" she asked.
"Wait in Jess's room for now, I'll come up in a few minutes and tell you all where you're sleeping." I said.
Applejack nodded. "Got 'cha." She said before she followed the others.
Once we were alone, Twilight and I looked at each other. "So where do we sleep?" she asked.
"You're gonna sleep with me in my bed, Twi." I said before I placed my hand on her's. "But…not just yet."
Twilight gave me a confused look. "What do you mean?" she asked.
I looked deep in her eyes before I spoke. "After you get changed, can you come back down and meet me in here…alone? I have something for you." I said nervously.
"Umm…ok Matt" Twilight said with a small smile before she got up off the couch and made her way towards the doorway with Spike following behind.
I then watched as they both walked out of the room; leaving me alone to think about my plan.
After Twilight collected her backpack from the dining-room, she walked through the kitchen and into the hallway with Spike walking beside her.
Along the way, Spike looked up at her. "So what do you think Matt wants?" he asked.
Twilight looked down at him as they approached the stairs. "I don't know Spike. But knowing Matt, it'll probably be something important." She said.
"Or maybe he's up to one of his romantic plans again." Spike said with a smirk as they made their way up the stairs.
Twilight blushed slightly. "…Do you think that's what he's up to? Is that why he wants to see me in private?" she asked.
As they reached the top of the stairs, Spike gave Twilight a wondering look. "You make it sound as though he's never done it before. What's wrong, Twilight?" he asked.
Twilight then looked down at the floor. "Well…he hasn't said anything about my appearance since we came here. I just can't help but think…maybe he doesn't see me the way he used to anymore." she asked.
"That's crazy talk, Twilight. Matt loves you with all his heart, I doubt that would change just because you're not a pony anymore." He stated with a kind smile.
Twilight smiled back before she kneeled down to him. "You're probably right, thanks Spike." She said as she scratched his head.
When Twilight stopped, Spike smiled up at her again. "Don't mention it, Twi. Now go get changed, you don't want to keep Matt waiting." He said.
Twilight nodded before she stood back up and walked into the bathroom. Once she was inside, she closed the door behind her so no-one could see her.
While Twilight was getting changed, Spike went into Jess's room to meet up with the others.
A few minutes later
While I was waiting for Twilight to come back down, I looked around the room to see if everything was set.
The curtains were closed, the TV was off, and every light but the 2 lamps were off.
After another minute or so, I finally heard someone coming down the stairs. I figured it was Twilight, so I got up off the couch and stood in the middle of the room.
As Twilight came into the living-room, I looked at her dark-velvet pyjamas, they really suited her. "Nice PJs, Twi. Did Rarity make them?" I asked.
Twilight nodded. "Yeah, she made pyjamas for all of us, even you." she stated with a small smile.
"Really? I'll have to look at them tomorrow, what do they look like?" I asked curiously.
"Just plain green, like mine are just plain purple." Twilight stated.
"…Ah.." I said before we both shared an amused laugh.
"Haha…ok, so why did you want to see me in private? Twilight asked.
I then looked down at the floor as I thought about what to say. "Well…I kind of wanted you down here with me so we could have a moment alone, just the two of us." I said.
"Yeah, I kinda figured that part out. But why? Is there something you want to tell me?" Twilight asked as she came closer to me
I nodded. "Yeah…Twilight, this might sound a little random…but would you like to dance with me?" I asked.
Twilight then gave me a confused look. "What?" she asked.
I understood why she would be confused, so I explained. "It's just…I've never had a dance before…Well, not with a Human anyway. And if there's any girl I'd want to share my first Human dance with, it's you." I said.
Twilight smiled sweetly at me. "Really?...You want me to be your first Human dance?" she asked.
I gave her a loving smile. "Of course I do, Twilight." I said before I held my hand out to her. "What do you say?" I asked.
Twilight then looked deep into my eyes before she placed her hand on mine. Once I knew she had accepted, I gently pulled her closer to me.
I was about to hold Twilight in a loving embrace until I remembered something important. "Oh, wait a minute." I said before I reached into the chest-pocket of my pyjama shirt.
I then pulled out my IPod and pressed the play button on a song I chose while Twilight was upstairs.
As the music began to play, I slid my IPod back into my pocket before I returned my attention to Twilight's sweet face.
As I placed my hands on Twilight's thin waist, she placed her hands on my shoulders.
We then began to dance slowly to one of the most romantic singers ever, Elton John.
"There's a calm surrender…to the rush of day…
When the heat of a rolling wind…can be turned away…
An enchanted moment…and it sees me through…
It's enough for this restless warrior just to be with youuuu…
And caaaan you feeeel the loooove tonight (tonight)
It is where we are…
It's enough…for this wide-eyed wanderer…that we got this far….
And caaaan you feeeel the loooove tonight (tonight)
How it's laid to rest…
It's enough…to make kings and vagabonds…believe the very best…"
As a music-solo played, Twilight moved in closer and rested her head on my shoulder. "Oh Matt…this is so romantic. I can't believe I actually thought you wouldn't do something like this while we were here." she said.
"…Why would you think something like that?" I asked as we stopped dancing.
Twilight then removed her head from my shoulder and looked into my eyes. "Because now that I'm a Human…I thought you wouldn't see me the same way you do in Equestria." she said.
I was a little shock by this, why would I ever feel that way about her? "Twilight…You're my wife, I love you and I always will, not matter what you are." I said softly.
"You mean you still think I'm beautiful? Even though I don't look like myself?" Twilight asked.
I gave her a warm smile. "You're better than that, Twilight. To me, you're the most beautiful Human I've ever seen in my entire life….I love you, Twi." I said.
Twilight couldn't help but shed a small tear before she suddenly hugged my neck. "I love you too, Matt." she said with a soft smile.
I then wrapped my arms around her body as I hugged her back. "I love you more." I said quietly before I closed my eyes to enjoy our love-filled hug.
As the music-solo ended and the singing resumed, we began to gently rock back and forth along with the soft tune.
Unknown to us, Applejack and Rarity were watching us from around the corner of the doorway. They both had emotional tears in their eyes. "Oh Applejack *sniff*…aren't they just adorable together?" Rarity asked with a heart-warmed smile.
"They sure are." Applejack said before she turned her head to face Rarity. "Now come on, let's give 'em some privacy." She said before she walked away from the doorway.
Rarity took one final look at us before she followed Applejack; leaving me and Twilight alone in our romantic moment.
Later: Upstairs
After our moment was over, Twilight and I went upstairs to get ready for bed.
Soon after that, my Dad returned from his match and did the nightly routine. He locked the door, fed the fish, and made sure Harvey was in his bed in the kitchen. Once all of that was taken care of, he came up to go to bed as well.
Seeing how there weren't many beds, I had to work out where everyone was going to sleep. Eventually, I came up with something.
Twilight and I were going to sleep in my bed. Rainbow Dash was going to sleep on a blow-up bed on my bedroom floor. Spike was going to sleep next to her on a big soft pillow with a blanket. Rarity and Fluttershy were going to share Jess's bed. And Applejack and Pinkie Pie were going to sleep on the couches downstairs.
After saying goodnight to Applejack and Pinkie Pie, I went into Jess's room to check on Rarity and Fluttershy. "So are you both comfy? I know it's a tight fit, but we don't have any spare blow-up beds…so…sorry." I said.
Rarity smiled. "It's quite alright, Matthew. I don't mind sharing the bed. In fact, I once had to share a bed with Applejack when we had a slumber party with Twilight." she said before she chuckled. "Haha, talk about a bad night's sleep."
"You can say that again." I said under my breath with an amused smile.
"Excuse me?" Rarity asked with a raised eye brow.
I then shifted my eyes left and right. "…Nothing…" I said before I looked over to Fluttershy. "Remember Fluttershy, if you have a nightmare or something, just wake me up. Ok?" I said.
Fluttershy nodded. "Ok Matt, thank you. Will Twilight be in your room too?" she asked.
"Yeah, she's going to sleep with me in my bed." I stated.
Rarity then grew a small smirk. "Indeed, especially since you're both feeling the love tonight. Right Matthew?" she asked slyly.
I was confused at first, but I soon realised what she meant and my eyes widened slightly. "You peeping little…" I said before I grew another amused smile. "Goodnight, you two."
"Wait Matt, aren't you gonna say goodnight to Angel too?" Fluttershy asked with a small smile.
I then sighed before I looked over to Angel who was lying on a big pillow on the floor. "Goodnight Angel." I said.
After earning nothing but a squeak from the bunny, I walked out of the room and closed the door a little behind me.
With those two taken care of, I walked into my room where Twilight, Rainbow Dash, and Spike were waiting for me. "You three ok?" I asked as I closed my bedroom door behind me.
The all looked at me and nodded. "Yeah, thanks for setting me up with this balloon-mattress by the way. It's not as comfy as a regular one, but it'll do." Rainbow Dash stated while sitting on the blow-up bed.
I looked down at her and smiled. "No problem, Rainbow." I said before I sat down on the edge of my bed. "So is everyone ready for bed?" I asked.
"Yeah…*yawn*…just remember to switch off the light, ok?" Spike said with tiredness as he curled up on his pillow.
I looked over to him. "Sure Spike." Said before I stood up and switched off the light; making the room dark.
I then pulled my IPod out of my pocket before I reached down in front of my bed and grabbed the charger cable. After I plugged it in, I rested my IPod beside my small TV.
With that done, I took my shirt off and got into the bed with Twilight. Twilight had decided to keep her PJs on, I guess she'd feel a little uncomfortable if she didn't.
Once I was in the bed, lied down and rested my head on the pillow before I rolled onto my side to face Twilight. "So what do you think of this world so far?" I asked.
Twilight turned her head on the pillow to look at me. "Well I haven't really explored much of this world yet. But so far, everything's been fine." She said.
I smiled back. "That's good to hear." I said before I decided to change the subject. "So…how did you like the dance we had?" I asked.
Twilight's simple smile then turned into a warm one. "I think it was really romantic….and to be honest, I'm glad we did it. I was beginning to think you didn't find me pretty anymore." she said.
I then gently placed my hand on Twilight's cheek. "Trust me, Twi, that'll never happen. You'll always be beautiful to me, no matter what you look like." I stated.
"Oh for pony's sake." Rainbow Dash groaned before she grabbed her pillow and held it on-top of her head to block her ears.
Twilight and I looked deep into each other's eyes before we moved our heads closer and shared a loving kiss. After a few seconds, we broke the kiss and smiled at each other. "Wow…that was my very first Human kiss." I stated.
"And?" Twilight asked.
"…I'm glad it was with you." I said with a loving smile.
Twilight blushed before a sly smile came on her face. "Well urr…maybe you're ready for your second one." She said in a playful tone.
I instantly knew what she was up to and played along "With pleasure." I said as I returned her sly smile.
Twilight and I then wrapped our arms around each other before we shared another kiss, only this one had more passion in it.
Suddenly, I felt a pillow hit the side of my head; making me break the kiss in both surprise and fright. I then turned my head around to see what hit me.
That's when I saw Rainbow Dash leaned up on her bed with an annoyed look on her face. "Can you guys make-out in the morning? It's late and I'm really tired!" she said before she lied back down on her bed and pulled the covers over body.
Twilight and I then looked at each other again. "Haha…maybe we should wait until we're alone." I said while blushing with embarrassment.
I could tell by the look on Twilight's face that she was embarrassed too. "Yeah, you're probably right." She said while also blushing.
Twilight then gave me a small kiss on the cheek. "Goodnight Matt, I love you." She said before she closed her eyes to fall sleep.
I smiled before I kissed her back. "Love you too, goodnight Twi." I said before I rolled over onto my back and looked up at the ceiling.
After a few minutes, I felt my eye-lids grow heavy until I was at the point of closed them.
But before I could let myself fall asleep, I snuggled up against Twilight so I could hold her in a soft embrace.
Once I had Twilight in my arms, I smiled before I closed my eyes and allowed myself to fall off into a peaceful slumber; ending the first day of our 2 weeks in the Human world.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
The song I used in this chapter was Elton John's version of "Can you feel the love tonight" from the Disney cartoon movie "The lion king". I don't own anything.
Hey guys, I need your help with something. I can't get in contact with the guy named "Thunder Pony". It's been weeks now and he hasn't answered any of my PM messages.
Also, he would've read and reviewed my last chapter by now, especially since he knew his character was going to be in it. I'm a little worried, so I'm offering a reward for anyone who can help me.
The reward is information on future chapters, whoever can find Thunder Pony and tell him to contact me will get some major spoilers on this story.
Pony News: Meghan McCarthy has stated that Equestria Girls takes place before Season 4. And guess who asked her the question…it was me, Megan McCarthy was my very first Tweet :D
In other news: A sneak peak of Season 4 is expected to show at San Diego Comic-Con on Saturday the 20th of July (In other words, today), so keep your eyes peeled on Equestria daily and YouTube.
Please remember to review.
The next chapter will be up soon.
48. Chapter 48: Crime of the Century
Hi again, Everypony. Sorry for another delay, I've had 6 weeks off school and I've been spending it more on doing other things. I hope you can forgive me.
First over all, I'm calling off the search for Thunder Pony. He sent me a message a while ago saying that his internet device was broken and needed fixing. So now that he's back, everything's ok now.
Second of all, I saw the Comic-Con clips for Season 4. They've made me so excited and I can't wait for the Season to come out.
Speaking of which, for those who haven't heard the news yet, there's a Season 4 surprise at the end of this chapter.
If there are any spelling mistakes or sentences that don't sound right, just let me know and I'll fix them.
Enjoy the chapter.
Chapter 48: One world to another (part 2)
It's been a week since we arrived in the Human world and everything's been going better than I expected.
Everyone has started to get a good connection with this world, despite still being a little confused about certain things here and there.
Twilight and the rest of the main 6 have finally gotten use to their Human forms and were now walking like real Humans. It wouldn't be long now before they're ready to go out in public.
Spike still doesn't have any problems being a dog. Well, except for everyone saying how 'adorable' he is every day. He thought it was flattering at first, but I think it's starting to annoy him a little. However, he doesn't mind when Rarity says it, he could listen to her say it all day.
All-in-all, everything's been going great.
But there was something that concerned me.
By coming to this world, we left Equestria unprotected. If our home becomes under-attack by a force that even the Princesses can't defeat, who'll use the power of the Elements of Harmony to stop it? We're the only ones who can wield them.
England/My bedroom
While everyone was sleeping peacefully in their beds, I was muttering and whimpering as another nightmare haunted my mind.
After a few minutes of seeing nothing but darkness, my eyes started to blink open. However, I still couldn't see anything due to my vision being blurry.
Once it cleared, I saw that I was back in Equestria while lying in the field outside of Ponyville.
When I leaned up off the grass-covered ground, I looked down at myself to see I was a pony again. Suddenly, I felt my head pound like a drum. "Oooh, my head." I groaned as I rubbed my head with my hoof.
My head was banging so much that I had to clench my eyes shut. "Ah…Twi…you wouldn't happen to know any headache-relief spells, would you?" I asked as I opened my eyes slightly.
But when I got no answer, I removed my hoof from my head and looked around for Twilight. "Twi?...where are you?" I asked as I continued to look around for her.
After a short unsuccessful search, I stood up onto my hooves and looked around the area. "Spike? Fluttershy? Rarity?...Anyone?" I said loudly, hoping one of them would answer.
But it was no-use, I was completely alone in the field.
As I was about to go search for everyone, a strange scent passed through my nose. It smelled like strong smoke after a large bonfire. There was so much of it in the air that it was a bit foul. "Oh…what's that smell?" I said as I covered my nose with my hoof.
Just then, I noticed a strange orange glow shining behind a nearby hill. This concerned me a bit because Ponyville was usually beyond that hill.
I immediately forgot about the smoky smell and rushed as fast as I could towards the hill. After I reached its peak, I was more than shocked by what I saw.
Ponyville was completely burnt to the ground, every house was nothing but a pile of burnt wood creating a cloud of black smoke that filled the once blue sky.
It was so horrible. I couldn't move, I couldn't do anything else but stare at the chaos in front of me.
Sugar Cube Corner, Sweet Apple Arches, the Schoolhouse, Town Hall, the Library…it was all gone. My home was destroyed.
"No…NO!" I said before I broke down onto my knees. "NO!" I yelled as I stomped my front-hooves down so hard that I could've sworn it made cracks in the ground.
Tears began to swell up in my eyes before they ran down both my cheeks. I didn't want to believe any of this, I couldn't. This had to be a nightmare, it just had to be. "This isn't real…this isn't real." I repeated to myself as my tears dripped down onto the ground.
But no-matter how much I tried to deny it, it all felt so real. The grass beneath my body, the wind in my face, the smell of the burning wood, it seemed too real to be fake.
I soon came to the point where I had no choice but to accept this and collapsed onto the ground.
This was all my fault. If I hadn't convinced Twilight and the others to come with me to the Human world, if I hadn't left Equestria without its true defenders, maybe none of this would've happened.
As I felt the pain in my broken heart grow stronger, more tears ran down my face. "I-I'm sorry, Twilight…I'm so sorry…" I wept before I placed my hooves over my eyes.
"Matt!…Matt!" a male voice said loudly.
Upon hearing the sudden voice, my eyes shot open and I quickly leaned up on the bed. I then looked around my surroundings to see I was back in my bedroom in England.
"Hey." the male voice asked again.
I looked to where the voice came from to see Spike standing beside my bed with a concerned look on his face. "You ok, Matt?" He said.
"Wha-?...oh, yeah I'm fine. It was just a bad dream." I said as I rubbed the side of my face with my right-hand.
"Another one? I knew they were bad and everything, but I didn't know they were this bad. You were tossing around and everything." Spike stated.
I then removed my hand from my face and looked down at him again. "Nightmares make almost everyone toss around." I said.
"Do they usually make someone cry?" Spike asked as he pointed his finger up to one of his eyes.
Confused, I rubbed my finger around the corner of my left-eye and felt a little wet patch, I must've shed a tear in my sleep.
After I wiped it off, I looked down beside me to see Twilight sleeping while facing the other way. "Do you think she heard me having another nightmare?" I asked without taking my eyes off Twilight.
"I don't think so." Spike answered.
"I hope not. The last thing Twilight needs is to worry about this again. She's probably under enough stress as it is." I said as I gently stroked her soft hear.
"So…you're not gonna tell her?" Spike asked with slight confusion.
I then looked back down at him and shook my head. "Not right now. Maybe when we're back in Equestria, that way she'll be in the comfort of the library when I tell her." I stated.
"Are you sure? You know how much she hates secrets." Spike said with a raised eye brow.
"I know, Spike. But if I tell her now, she'll have more than being in another world to worry about. You understand, right?" I asked.
Spike then thought about it before he nodded. "Yeah, I get it…*Yawn*…Well I'm gonna go back to bed, it's still pretty late." He stated.
I smiled down at Spike and tussled his head with my hand. "Ok, goodnight Spike." I said before I removed my hand from his head.
"Goodnight Matt." Spike said before he turned around and made his way back to his bed.
Once he was back in his bed, I turned my head to face Twilight who was still asleep. I couldn't help but smile lovingly at her peacefulness.
I leaned over to Twilight before I gently moved her long hair aside and planted a small kiss on her cheek; earning a small moan from her. "Goodnight Twi." I whispered as quietly as I could.
I then lied back down in the bed and rested my head on the pillow. With my eyes closed, I waited a few minutes before I felt tiredness take me over.
As more minutes flew by, I eventually fell to sleep and rested peacefully through-out the rest of the night.
That morning: Equestria/Luna's castle
As Celestia's sun rose up from the horizon, the light it radiated shun through the windows of Luna's castle, including the Royal Guard Quarters where Night Thunder and his team rested.
Despite the brightness of the sun shining in his face, Night Thunder continued to sleep soundly. "*Snore*…Don't worry, your highness…*snore*…I'll stop that dragon…*snore*…." He mumbled with a simple smile.
*BONG, BONG, BONG*
"AH!" Night Thunder yelled as a loud banging noise woke him up.
He then looked in the direction the sound was coming from to see Sullen using his magic to hit a wooden-spoon against a metal pan. "Time to get up, Night!" he said before the wooden-spoon and pan disappeared in a small flash.
Night Thunder groaned as he leaned up on his bed. "Did you have to wake me up that way? What happened to a simple nudge?" he asked.
"I was gonna wake you up that way, but I thought this would be a better method. Now enough chit-chat, we have a test to do." Sullen said before he turned around and walked over to his bed.
"Test?" Night Thunder said as he climbed out of his bed.
Sullen then used his magic to open a large chest that was standing in front of his bed. "The fighting and defence test, remember? Princess Luna wants to see our fighting techniques so she can choose one of us to become her personal guard." he explained as he levitated his helmet out of the chest.
At that moment, it all came back to Night Thunder. "Oh my gosh, I completely forgot about that!" He said before he rushed around to his chest and opened it.
Night Thunder then reached into the chest before he pulled out his helmet and shoved it onto his head. "We gotta hurry! I can't screw this up by arriving too late." He said as he tried to find his guard shoes.
Once Sullen got all his armour on, he turned around to face Night Thunder. "Calm down, Night. It's not that big of a deal." He stated.
After Night Thunder had put his guard shoes on, he looked over to Sullen. "Not that big of a deal? Sullen, we're preforming in front of Princess Luna herself. She'll be watching our every move during the test and I don't want to make a fool of myself." He said before he went back to getting dressed.
"But she probably won't even make her decision today. It'll take more than one simple test to prove we're capable of guarding her life." Sullen said, trying to ease Night's stress.
Once Night Thunder got the rest of his armour on, he looked over to Sullen again. "It's not the personal guard thing I'm worried about….I just don't want her to think I'm a useless guard, I want to prove that I can handle all the responsibilities this job has." He explained.
Sullen then walked over to him and placed his hoof on his shoulder. "Hey, since we've been here, Luna's never seen you as a useless guard. I mean, remember the seventh day when you took down that Harpy that looked like a giant bat? You were awesome." He said with a kind smile.
Night Thunder returned his smile. "I guess that was pretty good. And the Princess did seem rather impressed." He said.
"So what's there to worry about? You're gonna do great, all you have to do is try your best." Sullen said as he removed his hoof from Night's shoulder.
Night Thunder then had a small thought about it. "Hmm…I suppose you're right." He said.
Sullen smirked. "Of course I'm right. Now c'mon, we don't wanna be late."
Night Thunder nodded before they walked over to the door and left the Guard Quarters.
Once they were out of the room, Night Thunder closed the door behind him before he pulled out a key and locked it. "Hey, why did you lock it?" Sullen asked in confusion.
Night Thunder looked over to him. "So no-one gets inside to steal our stuff or something." he claimed.
"But what if someone from out group wants to get in there? They'll be locked out." Sullen said with concern.
"Don't be so dramatic, Sull. Everyone in our group has a key to the Quarters, even you have one" Night Thunder stated.
Sullen then remembered that he was giving his own key the same time as the others were. "…Oh yeah." He said.
Night Thunder just rolled his eyes before he walked past Sullen. "C'mon, we gotta get down to the castle grounds before the test starts." He said.
Sullen then followed Night Thunder through the hallway before they made their way down the stairs to the castle lobby.
But as they did, a closet door creaked open and a hooded figure inside watched them leave. Once he knew it was safe, he slid out of the closet and walked over to the Guard Quarters.
When he reached the door, he used his magic to lift a key out of his cloak's pocket and stuck the key into the keyhole. He then unlocked the door and went inside.
Once he was inside the room, he walked over to Brave Star's bed before he stopped in front of his chest. After opening it with his magic, the hooded figure searched through the chest as if he knew what he was after.
Eventually, he found it. The hooded figure gabbed what looked like a metal lock-pick and smiled with delight. "Perfect." He said darkly with the lock-pick in his grasp.
Just then, he heard hoof-steps outside of the door. The sound of them getting louder told him someone was coming. He knew he needed to get out fast, so with a flash of light, he disappeared with his goal.
A guard then poked his head through the door and looked around the room. "Hmm, thought I heard something in here….Ah, probably rats or something." he said before he closed the door and walked away without any knowledge of what just happened.
Meanwhile: England/Southport
After getting changed and having breakfast, we all went to my faverate shopping town called Southport.
Of course, my parents had to come with us. My Mother brought me, Twilight, Spike, Fluttershy, Pinkie Pie, and Rarity here in the car. And my Dad brought Applejack and Rainbow Dash in his white van.
It was a tight squeeze for us in the car, but we managed it.
Right now, we were walking through the centre of Southport where all my faverate shops were. HMV, CeX (Which is a game and DVD shop, in-case you didn't know), and Game.
But not everything was going so great. Every time we passed a bunch of people, they looked at the girls in a weird way. And if that wasn't bad enough, some of the teenage boys in the street kept staring at them with wide eyes and large smiles.
It was clearly obvious that they were turning a lot of heads. However, none of them were comfortable about it…including me.
Eventually, we all decided to just ignore them and carried on with our day.
While my parents took Twilight and a few of the others around to different shops, I was in Game with Rainbow Dash and Applejack. Fluttershy was waiting outside with Spike.
I slowly wondered the aisles as I looked at the different games they had. "I wonder what's come out since I was gone." I thought.
Just then, I spotted something which made me gasp. "*Gasp* No way!" I said to myself before I gapped the game and looked at it better.
It was called God of War Ascension, the seventh instalment in the God of War video game series. "The new God of War game is out? Man, I've been away longer than I thought." I said with the excited smile still on my face.
Applejack and Rainbow Dash then came over to me and looked at the game in my hand. "Wha'cha got there, Matt?" Applejack asked.
I turned my head to face her and showed her the game. "It's a game in the God of War series." I said.
They both gave me a confused look. "What's the God of War series?" Rainbow Dash asked as she stared at the game.
"It's one of the coolest video game series ever. It takes place in Greek mythology and you battle creatures like Minotaurs and Gorgons. Then in the third game, you get to kill all the gods in the most gruesome-"
"I thing that's enough detail, sugar cube." Applejack said as she placed her hand on my shoulder.
I then realized I was getting a bit too carried away and blushed from embarrassment. "…Sorry…got lost in the moment there." I said.
Rainbow Dash waved her hand. "Don't worry about it, Matt. But there is one question I do want to ask…Why play a game about mythology when you can play one about rock-and-roll?" she asked.
"Huh?" I said in confusion.
Rainbow Dash then handed me a different game and I looked at the cover. It was called Brutal Legend. "I read the back of the case and it seems like a pretty far-out game. It says Jack Black is Eddie Riggs, whatever that means." She said with her arms crossed.
I looked at Rainbow Dash again and handed the game back to her. "I know about it, I have the game back at the house." I stated.
Rainbow Dash gave me an excited look. "You have it already? You've got to show me once we get back." She said.
I smiled at her with amusement. "Don't worry, I will. Now let's put these games back and find the others." I said before I placed the God of War game back on the shelf.
"Are you sure ya don't wanna look around a little more?" Applejack asked.
I shook my head. "Nah, I've already looked around a few times now, I'm getting kind of board." I stated.
"Well I'm not. You two go on ahead, I'll catch up later." Rainbow Dash said before walked away to look at more games.
So with that, Applejack and I walked out of Game and Fluttershy saw us. "So what's it like in there, Applejack?" she asked.
Applejack turned her head to face her. "Not as good as you think, but I guess it's alright." She said as she placed her had on her hip.
"I'm sorry I didn't go in with you, but I don't think dogs are allowed in there." Fluttershy said as she looked down at Spike.
Spike then looked up to her. "You do know you could've gone in anyway, right? I would've been fine waiting out here." he stated.
Fluttershy kneeled down to him. "I know, but I just couldn't live with myself if anything happened to you." She said as she picked Spike up and hugged him; making him groan.
"Well Rainbow Dash is staying in Game for a little longer, so we're gonna meet up with the others. Do you know where any of them are?" I asked curiously.
Fluttershy then placed Spike back down before she stood up. "I think your parents took Twilight and Pinkie Pie to a card store down the street." She said.
"A card store? I wonder what they're doing in there?" I said.
"Only one way to find out." Applejack said before she turned around and made her way down the street towards the card shop.
When Fluttershy and I started following her, Fluttershy came up beside me with a concerned look on her face. "Umm…M-Matt, can I ask you something?" she said in her quiet voice.
I looked at her. "Yeah, what is it?" I asked.
"Well…umm…do you think Angel's alright back at the house? I don't like leaving him on his own for so long." Fluttershy stated.
I then gave her a calming look. "Don't worry, Fluttershy. He's a smart and tough bunny. Plus, I'm sure Harvey's keeping him company." I said as we continued walking.
Meanwhile: My house
While we were gone, Angel was sleeping peacefully on Harvey's bed in the kitchen.
Just then, he heard a loud sniffing noise and opened his eyes to see a frightening sight.
Harvey was looking at Angel with his wet nose right in front of him. All Angel could do was stand perfectly still and wait for him to go away.
But after a few silent seconds, Harvey began to give off soft growls.
As Harvey's growls grew louder, Angel slowly reached under the side of the bed and pulled out a long wooden-spoon. He then did something Harvey didn't expect.
Angel held the wooden-spoon like a bat before he swung it against Harvey's nose; making him yelp and run away with his tail between his legs.
With Harvey taken care of, Angel dropped the wooden-spoon before he smacked his hands and went back to sleep on the bed.
Back in Southport
My Mother, Twilight, and Pinkie Pie were looking around in a small card shop not far from Game. There were cards in there for pretty much everything. Birthday, Father and Mother's day, anniversaries, all sorts.
Pinkie Pie was more than delighted to be in this shop. Everything she saw made her more and more excited to throw a party once we're back in Equestria.
But not everyone was as full of joy.
Twilight had to admit it was a nice shop, but she was still a little confused by why they were there. After wondering for a few minutes, she looked over to my Mother who was searching through the birthday cards. "So…why are we here again?" she asked.
My Mother turned her head around to face her. "I'm looking for a card for Matt." she answered.
Twilight then gave my Mother her full attention. "For Matt? What's the occasion?" she asked as she walked over to her.
"It's his birthday next month. I thought I should get him a card now while he's busy in Game." My Mother said before she went back to looking through the cards.
"Matt's birthday is next month? He never told me about that." Twilight stated.
My Mother then looked at her with confusion. "Has he not? I thought he would've mentioned it by now." She said.
"I thought so too." Twilight said before she sighed. "*Sigh* But I guess I can't blame him, he's been a bit distracted with his job and everything." She said.
My Mother gave her a kind smile. "Well don't worry, just talk to him about it when we find him." She said before she picked up a card and showed it to Twilight. "What do you think of this one, Twilight?" she asked.
But when Twilight was about to look at it, Pinkie Pie suddenly popped up in front of her. "Did I hear you say it was Mattie's birthday next month?" she asked my Mother with a large smile.
"Umm…yeah, it is." My Mother answered with her best smile.
Pinkie Pie instantly grew excited over this news. "My Pinkie Senses are telling me there's a PARTY ON THE WAY!" she said loudly before she shot around the shop to collected party decorations.
As she did, most of the people in the shop stared at her oddly. It was a little embarrassing for Twilight.
"We'll need some of these, and some of those. Oh, and it can't be a party without some of these." Pinkie Pie said as she grabbed a bunch of decorations and brought them back to Twilight. "How's this, Twilight? Too much, or too less?" she asked.
"Pinkie, I wouldn't get too excited about Matt's birthday, it's still a few weeks away. Besides, I don't think we can afford all that stuff you have there." Twilight said as she pointed at the pile of decorations in Pinkie's arms.
Pinkie Pie then looked down at decorations before she gave Twilight a simple smile. "You're right, it's too much. Don't worry, I'll just put a few of them back." She said before she shot off around the shop again.
Twilight watched as she did this. "Pinkie, that's not exactly what I mea-…*Groan*." She groaned as she face-palmed herself.
At that moment, Applejack and I walked into the shop and saw Twilight with my Mother. "Hey Twilight." I said as we walked up to them.
Twilight then turned around to face me. "Hey Matt. You didn't take very long in your store, what was the rush?" she asked.
"There wasn't anything I liked in there, so I decided to come find you." I explained.
Twilight gave me a small smile. "Oh that's nice." She said before she looked behind me to only see Applejack. "Where're Fluttershy and Rainbow Dash? Weren't they with you?" she asked in wonder.
I nodded. "Yeah, Fluttershy's waiting outside with Spike and Rainbow Dash decided to stay in Game for a little longer. Don't worry, Rainbow Dash is tough enough to look after herself." I said.
Just then, Pinkie Pie rushed past me with a bunch of decorations in the arms. "Hey Mattie." She said before she ran around a corner to the next aisle.
"Wow, Pinkie likes this shop more than I thought." I said out-loud.
"It's not that, she overheard me and your Mom taking about your birthday next month and now she's all excited." Twilight stated.
After hearing that, I instantly remembered about my birthday. "My birthday? Oh my god, I can't believe I forgot about that." I said before I grew a small smirk. "So…what are you gonna get me?" I asked Twilight playfully.
Twilight smirked back. "I don't know. And even if I did, I still wouldn't tell you. That would ruin the surprise." She said.
My Mother walked up beside Twilight. "That's not going to work, Twilight. He always tries to ruin his birthday surprises." She said with a playful smile.
I looked at her. "Not always." I protested.
Twilight then rubbed her chin. "Actually, you do tend to do that sometimes." She said before she looked at my Mother. "This one time, Pinkie said she had a surprise for us at Sugar Cube Corner and Matt kept trying to guess what it was." she stated.
"I've never felt so out-numbered." I said in a slightly high-pitch voice.
Twilight and my Mother shared a small laugh at my reaction. "Haha...Well I'm going to pay for this card, you and the others can wait outside for me if you want." My Mother said to me before she walked away to join the line for the counter.
With that, me and Applejack made our way towards the exit, but Twilight didn't follow. "You coming, Twi?" I asked.
Twilight then gave me a gentle smile. "You go on ahead, I'll stay here with your Mom." She answered.
I nodded. "Alright then, I'm gonna go check on Rarity in New Look, she's been in there for ages." I said before I followed Applejack out of the shop.
After I left the shop, Twilight joined my Mother in the line. "So about Matt's birthday, what do you plan to get him?" she asked curiously.
My Mother turned her head to face her. "Well we used to give him presents when he was young, but when he grew out of it we decided to give him money so he could buy the things he wants." She explained.
Twilight gave her a confused look. "So basically you give him money….and he buys his own gifts?"
"When there's something he wants, yes. But his present doesn't have to be an actual gift you know, it can be something like a day out somewhere or a special party." My Mother said.
After hearing that knowledge, Twilight gave my Mother her full attention. "You mean his present can be some sort of event?" she asked.
My Mother nodded. "Yeah. Why? Do you have something in mind?" she asked curiously.
"…Maybe…but I'm not so sure yet." Twilight admitted.
"Alright, but don't get worked up about it. Like you told Pinkie, Matt's birthday is still a few weeks away." My Mother said before they both went back to waiting in line.
As they waited, Twilight thought long and hard about her future present to me. "His present could be an event…interesting." She thought while rubbing her chin.
Meanwhile: Equestria/Canterlot Castle
With the sun now shining brightly over Equestria, everyone in Canterlot was outside doing their daily routines.
Most of Celestia's guards had already started patrolling the area around the castle, and like always, each one was fully focused on their job.
But because they were looking out for unusual things, they didn't notice Jeff flying over them towards the castle. Any of them that did may have thought he was just an ordinary bird.
The more he got closer to the castle, the more Jeff's worries grew. "Ok…I'm here…you can do this, Jeff." He thought with a nervous look on his face.
Once he reached the castle, Jeff started circling around it to try and find Celestia's window. "Let's see, it should be around her somewhere. Just look for the room that's fancier than the others." he said to himself.
After looking though about 12 windows, Jeff finally found a room that matched Celestia's image. "Hmm, this might be it." he said before he flew through the window and into the room.
Jeff then landed on a large yellow cushion before he looked around the room.
There was a large purple fireplace with a black chimney, a blue flag hanging on the wall with a picture of a shooting-star on it, a plant pot standing next to the door with a flower-bush planted in it, and large flat mat in the middle of the room. The cushion he was standing on was part of it.
Jeff was amazed by all the free-space in the room, he expected it to be larger. "Wow…if this is Celestia's room, she certainly knows how to keep it clean." He said out-load.
Suddenly, Jeff heard the door behind him click and he quickly spun around in fright. The door then opened and Celestia walked in, it didn't take her long to notice Jeff standing on her cushion. "Oh!...Jeff, what a pleasant surprise. How did you get here?" she asked with a friendly smile.
Jeff laughed nervously. "I…I flew, your highness. Err…sorry I came here without tellin' ya, I didn't really want anyone back home to know." He said.
Celestia gave him a curious look. "And why's that?" she asked.
Jeff blushed slightly. "It's kind of a personal thing that I needed to talk to you about." he answered.
Celestia's smile then returned. "Is that so?" she said before she walked around to her mat and lied down on it. "Well I'm all ears, Jeff. What is it you wish to tell me?"
Jeff hesitated at first, but soon grew the confidence to tell her. "It's about Philomena…h-has she said anything about me? Like, maybe a while ago?" he asked.
Celestia then rubbed her chin as she thought about it. "Hmm…well now that you mention it, she may have said something the last time she returned from Ponyville. She sounded a little upset." She stated.
Jeff was afraid she would say that. "Oh…I can't explain everything about that. You see, Spike was feelin' a little down because of an…*clears throat*…incident he was involved in, so Matt decided to take him around town to try and cheer him up." he started.
Celestia rested her chin on her hoof as she listened. "Ah-huh, go on." she said.
A few minutes later.
After Jeff finished the rest of his story, Celestia thought about what he told her. "It sounds like Philomena got the wrong message from your actions." She said.
Jeff instantly nodded. "Yeah! That's totally what happened. I didn't mean to upset her, it was just an accident. I wanted to apologise to her as soon as possible, but Rarity told me to wait a little while for her to calm down." He explained.
"So that's why you're here? To apologise to Philomena?" Celestia asked.
Jeff nodded. "Yeah…I just…I just hope she accepts it." he said as he hung his head.
Celestia then placed her hoof under Jeff's chin before she raised it up so he could look at her warm smile. "You know, Jeff…once you get past the rough attitude, you're really a sensitive soul." She said.
Jeff was almost speechless. "Well…yeah, not all my feathers are rough. I mean, I'll fight if I need to, but we're talkin' about a girl's feelings here, feelings that I hurt…accidentally, of course." He said.
Celestia kept her smile. "Well no-one's stopping you, Jeff. Philomena is in the bedroom right through that door." She as she pointed her hoof at the door behind him.
Jeff then turned around to the door before he took a deep breath. "Ok then...here I go, wish me luck." He said before he marched towards the door.
Celestia watched as Jeff walked up to the door. "You must really like Philomena to take this risk." She said.
Jeff then stopped before he turned around to face her, his face was blushing. "H-Huh?"
"Well she'll probably remember you, and no doubt she'll still be a little mad. But yet you still want to apologise to her in person…I can't help but feel that there's more to this than it seems." Celestia said as she stood up off her mat.
Jeff's face was now completely red. "I…err…you see, I…It's kind of a…"
Celestia giggled. "It's alright, Jeff. You're secret's safe with me." she said before she gave him a friendly wink.
Jeff then stopped blushing before he smiled thankfully at Celestia. "Thanks, Princess." He said before he turned his attention back around to the door. "Alright…back to business." He said to himself.
Jeff then slowly pushed the door open until there was enough room in the doorway for him to walk through. After he entered the bedroom, he closed the door behind him and looked around to see if he could find Philomena.
It didn't take Jeff long to spot Philomena standing on a bird-stand in front of an open window.
At first, Jeff hesitated to go any further and thought about leaving. But he knew this was something he needed to do. Jeff took another deep breath before he walked over to Philomena.
However, Philomena never noticed him, she was too busy staring out the window and enjoying the gentle breeze blowing through her feathers.
Jeff noticed this and decided to make the first move. "*Gulp*…Hmm…Ph-Philomena…" he stuttered.
With her moment interrupted, Philomena turned her head around to see who was there, but she didn't see anyone and grew confused.
"Down here, girl." Jeff said.
Philomena then looked down to see Jeff nervously waving at her. But once she saw him, she glared down at him and spun her head back around to the window, more annoyed that it was him who ruined her little moment.
Jeff expected this and sighed. "Look, Philomena, I know we got off on the wrong foot."
"*Squawk*Squawk*Squawk*" Philomena cawed in a way that sounded like 'got that right' while still facing away from him.
"But I'm here to make it up to you. I know it's a bit late, but I wanted you to calm down first." Jeff finished.
Philomena turned her head slightly to look down at him. "*Number of squawks*" she cawed with the glare still in her eyes.
Jeff understood what she said and was shocked. "By hitting on you again? No, that's not what I've come here to do. I want to make it up to you by saying…I'm sorry for everything I said…I didn't mean to hurt you." he said in a friendly tone.
Philomena's glare then disappeared before she turned around to face him better.
"I was nervous that day…a lot of weird stuff just flew out of my beak…to be honest, I wasn't thinkin' straight about what I was sayin'." Jeff said.
Philomena cocked her head. "*Squawk?*"
Jeff grew more nervous. "Why?" he said before he looked down at the floor "...Because I…err." His nervousness then made him stop.
Jeff was now stuck, he didn't know how to finish this sentence without revealing his feelings to Philomena. But when he looked up at the beautiful bird before him, Jeff grew the confidence to say it.
"Because…I've never seen a bird as beautiful as you…And when we started talkin', I was too destructed by your beauty to focus on what I was sayin'." Jeff finished.
Philomena was wide-eyed with shock. When the incident happened, she thought Jeff was just being rude. But now that she knew the truth, she didn't know what to think. "*Squawk?*"
Jeff gave her a kind smile. "Yeah…really." he said as he blushed slightly.
After hearing that, Philomena used her wing to cover her blushing face. She hated to admit it, but she was charmed by Jeff's kind words. However, she still wasn't so sure about him. "*Number of squawks*" she cawed as she lowered her wing.
"I don't expect you to trust me just yet…I just want you to forgive me and maybe we can start over." Jeff said, hoping she'd find a way to forgive him.
After a few silent minutes, Philomena sighed before she gave Jeff a gentle smile. "*Number of squawks*"
Jeff smiled largely. "Really? You forgive me?...That's great!" he cheered with delight.
Philomena then shot him a serious look. "*Number of squawks*" she cawed.
"Just friends? Sure, we'll just be friends, anything else never crossed my mind." Jeff said before he decided to ask her a question. "So…before I go, you wanna hang out some time?" Jeff asked nervously.
Philomena then raised her eye brow in a way that said she was expecting that.
Jeff noticed this and believed she got the wrong idea. "I didn't mean like a date or anything, I meant just a friendly get-together. You know, so we can get to know each other a little more." He said before his nervous smile returned.
Even though she wasn't fully convinced, Philomena decided to give Jeff a chance and thought about his question. After a few seconds, she gave him her answer. "*Number of squawks*"
"Friday? Yeah, Friday's great. Come to the Ponyville library and I'll take you to good café I know. You do know where the library is, right?" Jeff asked.
Philomena was silent as she nodded.
"Ok, I'll see ya then." Jeff said before he turned around and made his way towards the door. But before he even got half-way, he stopped and looked up at Philomena again. "Oh, and just so we're clear, we're not thinkin' this as a date or anythin', right?" he asked.
Philomena shook her head to say 'no'
With that settled, Jeff smiled. "Alright then, I'll just leave you to carry on with whatever you were doin' before I came in." he said as he walked backwards towards the door.
Once Jeff reached the door, he opened it a little and slid into the other room. But seconds after the door closed, Jeff opened it again. "Oh, and I love what you're doin' with your feathers, they look very shiny." He said before he closed the door again; leaving Philomena alone.
Philomena then looked down at her shiny feather before she blushed at his compliment.
Meanwhile in the other room, Jeff walked away from the door before a large smile grew on his face. "Yes, I'm in!" he cheered under his breath.
"I take it things went well?" Celestia said while lying on her side on her mat.
Jeff then looked over to her and nodded. "Yeah, not only did she forgive me, but now we're gonna see each other again next Friday for a friendly get-together." He said in delight.
Celestia smiled at this news. "Well that's great to hear, Jeff. I'm so glad Philomena feels better about you now." She said.
"So am I. But our little get-together isn't like a date or anything, we pacifically made that clear. We're just gonna stay friends and that's it." Jeff said.
"I understand. It was enough to get Philomena to be your friend, you don't want to push it too far ahead with a date." Celestia said with an understanding smile.
Jeff nodded again. "Exactly." He said before he looked up at the clock hanging on the wall. "Dang! I've been gone for half-an-hour! I have to get back to the library before someone notices." He said in panic before he flew over to the window.
When Jeff landed on the window-sill, he turned around to face Celestia. "Urr…can you do me a favour? If anyone asks, please don't tell them I was here." he said, hoping she'd keep his secret.
Celestia then grew a playful smirk. "Don't tell them what?" she said.
Jeff was confused at first, but then realized she was pretending she had forgot. "Oooh…Haha, that's funny. Well see ya, Princess, and thanks." He said with a kind smile.
Celestia returned his smile. "You're welcome, Jeff." She responded.
With their goodbyes now said, Jeff turned around before he took off out of the window and flew up into the skies.
As Jeff flew back down to Ponyville, all he could think about was his not-date with Philomena. "Another chance with Philomena…I'm gonna have to give this my best shot. Luckily, I have a more than a few days to prepare for it." he said to himself before he returned his focus to his flying.
Meanwhile: England/my room
After returning from Southport, I decided to show Rainbow Dash my video game collection. I showed her all my favourite games like Skylanders, the Spyro series, God of War, Overlord 1 & 2, and Destroy all Humans.
Rainbow Dash was impressed, but most of the time she thought I was a video game nerd.
However, I managed to change her mind by playing Brutal Legend with her as an audience. All the action and rock-and-roll was definitely to her liking. What can I say? I know how Rainbow Dash works.
After an hour or so, I gave the game a break and Rainbow Dash went down-stairs to watch TV with the others in the living-room; leaving me alone in my room…but not for long.
Once I got everything ready, Twilight came up to my room and I asked if she wanted to watch some of the Harry Potter movies with me. I told her how much it involved magic and she immediately agreed.
With the door closed and the curtains shut, we both got comfy on my bed and I pressed play on the DVD-player remote; beginning the first movie.
Later that evening.
As the day turned to night, Twilight and I were still watching Harry Potter movies. Right now, we were half-way through the third movie, The Prisoner of Azkaban.
My right-arm was wrapped around Twilight as we watched the movie. "You know, this is one of my faverate movies in the Harry Potter series." I said.
"Really? Why's that?" Twilight asked without taking her eyes off the screen.
"Well mostly because there's a werewolf in it. But besides that, it's just a good film." I explained.
"I kinda like the second one. It wasn't much like the first one, but it had more mystery to it." Twilight stated.
I then turned my head to look at her. "Well believe me, Twilight. These three are only the beginning, the real story begins in the fourth one." I said.
Twilight turned her head to face me. "What do you mean? What happens?" she asked curiously.
I grew a sly smirk. "I'm not spoiling it for you, you'll have to wait until this movie finishes first." I told her.
"Fine, have it your way, Mr rule-book." Twilight said in a playful tone before we went back to watching the movie.
The movie was up to the part where Harry was playing Quidditch in a rain-storm and a group of Dementors ambush him.
The rain-water around his goggles turned to flakes of ice as the Dementors' cold body-temperature froze the air around him.
No matter how much her tried, he couldn't shake the Dementors off his trail. And as he stopped in mid-air to see more of them up-ahead, a Dementor suddenly came up in front of him and started sucking on his soul; making him pass out and fall off his broom.
Twilight was startled by the sudden Dementor appearance and she gripped my arm. I felt this and turned my head to face her. "You ok?" I asked.
Twilight looked at me and nodded. "Yeah, sorry…it just made me jump." She said with a small smile.
I returned her smile as I looked deep into her eyes. I still couldn't believe that this beautiful human beside me was Twilight, she just looked so different from her pony form. But no matter how different she looked, she was still my beloved Twilight.
"W-What is it?" Twilight asked as she looked into my eyes.
I gave her a loving smile before I placed my hand gently on her cheek. "You just…have such beautiful eyes." I said softly.
Twilight blushed slightly as she returned my smile. I stroked some of her long hair behind her ear before we moved in and shared a loving kiss.
After a few seconds, we separated and smiled at each other again. "I never get tired of that." I said while staring into Twilight's eyes again.
"Me neither." Twilight responded before a nervous look grew on her face. "Umm…Matt, can I ask you something?" she asked.
"Sure, Twi. What is it?" I asked as I removed my hand from her cheek.
Even though she tried to hide it, Twilight looked really nervous. "Well…remember when we kept trying to have our special night but we always got interrupted or distracted?" she asked.
I nodded. "Yeah. But I thought we agreed to wait until we're back in Equestria." I pointed out.
"I know we did, this is about something else….*sigh*….After we…you know…do it, w-where would we go from there?" Twilight asked nervously.
I then shrugged. "I don't know, I never thought about it before. I guess we would just carry on with a usual stuff." I said.
"But what if something were to happen? What if our special night forms something that will change our lives forever?" Twilight said, hoping I'd get the idea.
I gave her a confused look. "Twi, special nights like that only seem weird to unmarried couples. But we are married, I doubt it would make an uncomfortable feeling between us." I said.
Twilight sighed again. "No, Matt, you don't understand." She said in a slightly frustrated tone.
"Then what is it? Why can't you just tell me? Is there something wrong?" I asked.
"No, there isn't…*Sigh*…ok, I'll tell you. But if you don't feel like answering, just tell me, ok?" Twilight asked in a calmer tone.
I nodded. "Ok." I answered.
Twilight then closed her eyes before she took a deep breath. Once she exhaled, she opened her eyes and looked deep into mine. "Matt…after we have our special night, what would happen if I got-"
*WHAM*
Twilight was interrupted by the bedroom door swinging open and Rainbow Dash walked in while wearing her PJs. "Man, I am beat." She said as she stretched her arms up.
We both watched as Rainbow Dash sat down on her blow-up bed in the middle of the room. "Hey, have you guys been up here all day? I haven't seen you for hours." She stated.
"Hours? What time is it?" I asked curiously.
"Ten to eleven." Rainbow Dash answered with her eye-lids half closed.
I was surprised by this. "Really? Wow, these movies are longer than I remember." I said.
Just then, Twilight got off the bed before she made her way towards the door. "Where are you going, Twi?" I asked, wondering where she was going.
Twilight then stopped before she turned her head around to face me. "I'm going to the bathroom to get ready for bed, I didn't know it was this late." She answered.
"But I thought you needed to tell me something." I said as I leaned up on the bed.
"It can wait for another night. Don't worry, I'll be back in a minute." Twilight said before she walked out of the room to get ready for bed.
I couldn't help feeling concerned over this, whatever she wanted to tell me sounded important. Why does she not want to tell me anymore? Was it because Rainbow Dash came in?
"So what're you guys watching?" Rainbow Dash asked while looking at the TV screen.
I snapped out of my thoughts and looked at her. "What?...Oh, just something I thought Twilight would like, it involves magic and stuff like that." I said.
Rainbow Dash then looked at me. "Well if it has magic in it, then it's definitely something Twilight would dig." She said before she noticed the concerned look on my face. "Hey, were you guys talking about something when I came in?" she asked.
"Yeah, but if Twilight doesn't talk about it anymore, it mustn't have been that important." I said before I lied back down on the bed and continued to watch the movie.
All the while, I wondered what Twilight wanted to tell me. Maybe it was important, she sure made it sound like it was. I wanted to ask her about it, but I thought it'd be best to wait until tomorrow, she seemed a little tense tonight.
With that decided, I just relaxed on the bed and waited for Twilight to return.
That Sunday: My back-garden
7 days later, it was Sunday and it was finally time for us to go back to Equestria.
The last few days were fun. Rainbow Dash and I played some of my video games, Fluttershy gained a close friendship with my pets, and Applejack helped my Dad with some of the gardening.
We even when back into Southport on Wednesday, I took everyone to a place called Funland, it was like a mini-casino for kids. Fluttershy basically spent every coin she had trying to win a toy monkey from a claw-machine, she eventually won it though.
During her search in New Look, Rarity discovered new design ideas that she could use back in Ponyville, she even bought some of the clothes she found to bring back as inspiration.
As for Twilight, she still hasn't told me what she wanted to tell me before Rainbow Dash interrupted us. I kept asking, but she'd always change the subject. It's either not as important as I thought, or she doesn't want to talk about it right now.
But whatever it was, it would have to wait. Because right now we were all focusing on opening the portal and returning to Equestria.
Myself, Twilight, and the others were in the back-garden saying our goodbyes to my parents. I hugged them both as they hugged me back. "Oh, we're going to miss you so much." My Mother said as she hugged me tightly.
"I'm going to miss you too." I said before we separated. "But hey, you can still visit us in Equestria any time you want. That is, if you're ok with the whole 'being a pony' thing." I said.
"We didn't have a problem with it before, we'll won't have a problem with it in the future." My Dad said with a smirk as he patted my back.
Just then, Twilight walked up beside me. "Thank you for letting us stay here, it's been great." Twilight said to my parents with a kind smile.
My Mother looked at her and returned her smile. "You're welcome, Twilight. It's always nice to have a member of the family staying over, especially if that member is married to my child." She said before she and Twilight shared a small hug.
After a few seconds, they separated and smiled at each other.
"So, you ready to go, Twi?" I asked.
Twilight turned her head to face me. "Yeah, I'll go see if the others are ready, I'll be back in a minute." She said before she turned around and walked over to the others.
Once she walked away, I looked at my parents. "So do you have the Star Amulet?" I asked.
My Dad then reached into his coat pocket before he pulled out the amulet and held it in front of me, the small crystal hanging from the chain sparkled like a star. "Great, now all we have to do is get the 'ok' from everyone else and we'll be set to go." I said.
"So what are you going to do when you get back to Equestria?" My Mother asked curiously.
I shrugged. "We'll all probably just go back to our usual stuff. I go back to my job, Twilight goes back to working in the library, Rarity goes back to working in the boutique, etcetera." I said.
"That seems sort of dull, does anything interesting ever happen there?" My Dad asked with a raised eye brow.
I then looked at him and smirked. "You have no idea. Knowing Equestria, something interesting always happens." I said.
"Matt!" Twilight called from behind me.
I turned my head around to see her and everyone else with their backpacks on. "We're ready when you are." Twilight said with a small smile.
I gave her a small nod before I turned my head back around to face my parents. "Well, it's time for us to go. Do you think you can open the portal?" I asked my Dad.
"I'll try." He said before he walked up to a clear space in the garden and held the Star Amulet up.
The small crystal then sparkled brighter before a small beam shot out and stopped in mid-air a few feet away from us. As the beam continued to shoot out, it slowly began to open the portal until it was big enough to walk through.
Once it was big enough, the beam stopped and my Dad joined back up with us.
Rainbow Dash turned her head to face me. "The portal's open, we better go through before it closes." She stated.
I nodded in agreement before I turned around to face my parents and hugged them one last time. "I'll miss you both. Remember to visit us in Equestria at some point." I said before we separated.
"And you remember to be careful when you're out-and-about, you never know when something might happen." My Mother said.
"I know, I will." I said in a small groan.
"Come along, everypony, Equestria awaits." Rarity said before she made her way towards the portal, followed by everyone else.
At that moment, my Dad patted my back. "Stay safe, mate. We love you." he said before he removed his hand.
I gave him a warm smile. "I love you too." I said.
With all our goodbyes now said, I turned around and walked over to the others.
Once I joined up with them in front of the portal, Rainbow Dash looked at me. "You ready to go yet? We've been waiting forever." She said with impatient.
I nodded. "Yeah."
Rainbow Dash then smirked. "Great, so do you wanna go in first?" she asked.
I thought about it for a few seconds before I came up with an answer. "Well, it's better to be safe than sorry, so I think-"
"GERONIMO!" Rainbow Dash yelled as she jumped into the portal; leaving us all stunned.
My eye-lids then closed half-way. "I should've expected that." I groaned.
"Well what do ya expect? It's Rainbow Dash." Applejack said as she walked past me and stopped in front of the portal. "See ya'all back in Ponyville." She said before she jumped into it.
Rarity then decided that it was her turn and walked up to the portal before she turned around. "Farewell, Human world. I will miss thee." She said in a dramatic way before she casually walked into the portal.
As Fluttershy walked up to the portal, Angel's head popped out of her backpack. Fluttershy turned her head around to see the frightened look on his face. "It's ok, Angel. Just stay in the bag and hold tight." She said.
Angel then reached into the bag before he pulled out a small crash-helmet and strapped it onto his head. After that, he dove back into the bag and zipped it up from the inside.
Fluttershy looked up at the portal with an unsure face before she looked at me. "Are you sure this thing is safe?" she asked.
I gave her a comforting smile. "Of course it is. It got you here safely last time, didn't it?" I said.
"I…I guess." Fluttershy said.
"It'll be ok, Fluttershy. Just close your eyes and leap forward. You'll be back in Ponyville in no-time." Twilight said in a soft tone.
Fluttershy turned her attention back to the portal and gulped loudly. "Ok." She said before she closed her eyes tightly.
"A hop…skip…and a JUMP!" Fluttershy said loudly before she leaped into the portal.
Twilight and I smiled proudly at Fluttershy's bravery. "Remind me to say something to her when we get back." I said to Twilight.
Just then, Pinkie Pie hopped past us. "Oh! Me next, me next!" she said with excitement before she stopped in front of the portal.
"Cannonball AGAIN!" Pinkie Pie cheered loudly before she jumped into the portal in a cannonball form; leaving only me, Twilight, and Spike left.
Once we knew it was our turn, Twilight and I looked at each other. "You ready?" I asked.
Twilight nodded. "Yeah, I'm ready. Let's go home." She answered.
With that, we both turned our attention back to the portal and walked over to it.
As the three of us stopped in front of it, we turned around to look at my parents and my home world for the last time.
Twilight then noticed the troubled look on my face and placed her hand on my shoulder. "Hey, are you alright, honey?" she asked.
I looked around my old home as I answered her. "I just got a funny feeling that…that I'll never see this place again." I confessed.
Twilight smiled sweetly before she planted a kiss on my cheek. "Don't worry, you will…one day." she said.
I then turned my head to face her and returned her smile. "Thanks, Twi." I said before we looked over to my parents.
My Mother and Dad waved goodbye to us before we waved back. "We love you." My Mother called as she kept waving.
"I love you too." I called back before we stopped waving.
After that, we turned around to the portal and I took a deep breath. "Here we go!" I said loudly before I jumped into the portal along-side Twilight and Spike.
After a few seconds, the portal closed and whatever was left of it disappeared in a small flash; leaving the back-garden silent.
My Mother and Dad then looked at each other before they turned around and made their way back to the house. My Dad comforted my Mother the whole way.
Meanwhile: Equestria/Ponyville Library
Jeff and Peewee were in the living-room playing Go-Fish.
They were both sitting in the centre of the room with a fan of cards in their wings. "Got any fives?" Peewee asked.
Jeff searched his fan until he found at least one card with a 5 on it. "Yeah." He answered before he pulled it out and gave it to Peewee.
While Peewee wasn't looking, Jeff slowly reached behind his back before he pulled out and extra card and added it to his fan; making him grin deviously.
The room was quiet, the only sound that could be heard was their silent breathing. But the silence was suddenly broken by the portal opening right against the wall of the room; startling Jeff and Peewee.
They both dropped their cards and quickly looked over to it with shock. "What the hay?!" Jeff said loudly.
Just before they could do anything else, Rainbow Dash shot through the portal and landed on the floor right in front of them. "Rainbow Dash?...I thought she was in the Human world." Jeff stated before he looked at the portal again.
As the portal rippled wildly, Peewee's eyes widened. "Oh…MOVE!" he yelled before he and Jeff quickly flew out of the way.
At that moment, the rest of us shot through the portal and landed on the hard floor; knocking us all uncurious.
A little while later, my eyes blinked open until I was fully awake. My eye-sight was bleary, but I knew it would clear soon. "Matt! You ok, buddy?" I heard a voice say.
I then rolled my head to the left until I saw a bleary figure standing in front of my face. When my vision cleared, I saw that it was Jeff with a concerned look on his face. "Wicked wipe-out, dude. You ok?" he asked.
I groaned as I leaned up. "I've been better." I said before I looked around the room. "Where's the portal?" I asked.
"It closed a few minutes ago." Peewee answered.
"That's good, we don't want it open for too long." I said before lifted up my 'hands' only to see a pair of green hooves.
Once I saw this, I looked down at my body to see I was a Pegasus again. And I'll tell you this, I was actually happy to be back in my Pony form. "I'm a pony again! Yes!" I cheered as I flew up into mid-air.
That's when I realised I had my wings back. I quickly turned around and smiled. "Oh you don't know how much I've missed you two." I said to them before I floated back down.
Once I landed back on the floor, I looked down at Jeff and Peewee. "Guys!" I said with joy before I picked them both up and hugged them tightly. "I can't believe I'm saying this, but I actually missed you two, I even missed your constant arguing." I said.
Jeff and Peewee were struggling to breath. "Great…glad to see you too…now let us go!" Jeff said as his eyes were bulging out of out of his head.
"Ok." I simply said before I released them and they fell to the floor.
While they were regaining their breath, I wondered what happened to Twilight and the others were before I looked over to them to see they too were ponies again. To be honest, I think they look better as ponies.
I walked over to Twilight's unconscious body before I nudged her face with my muzzle. "Twi? Are you alright, sweet-heart?" I asked softly.
After a few seconds, Twilight's eyes started to open before she looked up at me. "Matt? Y-You're a pony again…does that mean I'm a pony too?" she asked weakly.
I smiled and nodded. "Yeah, Twi. You're my gorgeous Unicorn again." I said.
Twilight smiled sweetly at me before I nuzzled my head against her's.
However, our moment was soon ruined by the others groaning as they woke up. "Ah, my head feels like it was hit by a brick." Rainbow Dash said as she rubbed her head with her hoof.
"Mine feels like it was hit with a ton of bricks." Applejack stated before she opened her eyes to see Rainbow Dash back in her pony form. "Rainbow! You're a pony again!" she said while pointing her hoof at her.
Rainbow Dash quickly looked down at her body to see she was right. "YES! Finally, the Dash is back!" she cheered.
She then turned her head around to see her wings. "My wings!" she said with joy before she started stroking them with her hoof. "It's ok, mamma's back. I've missed you guys, did you miss me?" she said to them.
Applejack just rolled her eyes at Rainbow's act.
Meanwhile, the others were looking at their bodies and were more than glad to be ponies again. "Oh it feels so good to have my true beauty back." Rarity said.
"Well I think it feels good to finally be home." Fluttershy stated with a small smile.
"I'm right with ya on that one, sister." Pinkie Pie said as she hopped over to her.
Spike then stood up off the floor before he looked down at himself to see he was a dragon again. "Now this is much better. I'd rather be a dragon than a dog any day." he stated with a pleased smile.
I heard what Spike said and gave him a friendly smirked. "And to be honest, I think you look much better as a dragon." I said.
"Yeah, I think so too." Spike said as he came over to me and Twilight.
Twilight slowly stood up onto her hooves before she looked around the room with a wondering look on her face. "Does Shining Armor even know we're back?" she asked out-loud.
At that moment, Jeff flew over to her and landed in front of her. "He's not here, he went back to Canterlot a few hours ago. Somethin' about an important meetin' with the Princess." He stated.
Twilight looked down at him with a raised eye brow. "Did he say when he was coming back?" she asked.
Jeff nodded. "Yeah, some time tomorrow mornin'. He left the Library in our care." he said.
Twilight was both surprised and disappointed that her brother wasn't here to greet her. "Oh…well, I guess we could write him a litter telling him we're back." She said before she turned her head to face Spike. "Spike, could you fetch me a quill and paper please?" she asked.
"Sure thing, Twilight." Spike said before he turned around and walked away to get what she requested.
While he was doing that, Rarity came over to us. "Well Matthew, I must admit you certainly know how to show six girls a good time." She said with a cheeky smile.
I looked at her and smiled back. "Really? You enjoyed it that much?" I asked.
Rainbow Dash then flew over to us. "Well dah! Who else could take us on a trip like that? I mean seriously, another world? That was awesome." She said as she landed beside me.
"I'll admit, I had my doubts, but you stuck to your word the whole way, sugar-cube." Applejack said as she came over to us.
"I liked your home world too. Your chickens were lovely and your dog was sooo cute, not to mention all those fluffy little bunnies that were on the field near your house." Fluttershy said as she joined us.
"Well I loved everything about your world, especially that town we went to. I loved the stores, the music, those old smelly guys that kept asking us for a penny, all of it!" Pinkie Pie said as she too joined us.
A pleased smile then grew on my face, I was more than glad to hear they liked the trip. "Thanks guys, I'm glad you enjoyed yourselves." I said before I gave them a humble look. "You know…if it's alright with Twilight, you guys can stay over tonight and go home in the morning. That is…if you want to." I said.
They all looked at each other before they looked back to me. "Well I would be more than happy to stay over, but like you just said, it's Twilight's decision." Rarity said.
With that, we all looked at Twilight to receive her answer. "I guess one more night together wouldn't hurt." She said with a small smile.
We all smiled at her answer. "Then you can count us in." Rainbow Dash said before everyone else nodding in agreement.
I smiled with delight. "Awesome, sleep over!" I cheered before I looked at Twilight with a serious face. "Not to be confused with slumber party, slumber parties are for girls." I said.
Twilight then grew a playful smile. "Well in that case, I guess we're just gonna have to throw you out." She said.
"What?" I asked with a raised eye brow.
Twilight giggled. "Out you go." She said before he horn glowed and I was lifted up into the air.
"Hey! This isn't funny, let me down! Come on, Twi." I whined as she hovered me towards the front-door.
Twilight couldn't help but laugh in amusement before she looked up at her horn. "Oh magic, how I've missed you." she said out-loud.
Later that night
After being allowed back into the library, Twilight & I wrote a letter to Shining Armor and had Spike send it up to him. Once that was done, to started getting things ready for the sleep over.
We only worked everything out. Me, Twilight, Spike, Jeff, and Peewee were going to sleep in our usual places, and everyone else was going to sleep in sleeping-bags in the living-room.
The rest of the main 6 were all in their sleeping bags getting ready to go to sleep. Twilight had already said goodnight to them, so all that was left was for me to say it.
I stood in the doorway watching the others get comfy in their sleeping-bags. "Is everyone comfy?" I asked.
They all looked at me and nodded.
"Good." I said before I looked over to Fluttershy. "Are you ok there, Fluttershy? You know you can sleep upstairs with me and Twilight if you get frightened." I said.
Fluttershy gave me a thankful smile. "Thanks, Matt. But I'll be fine, especially with Angel and Mr Monkey with me." she said while holding the toy monkey she won from Funland in her hooves.
I smiled. "Ok." I said before I looked over to the others. "So does anyone need anything before we go to sleep?" I asked.
They all shook their heads to say 'no'
"Alright then, goodnight everyone." I said.
"Goodnight Matt." they all said at the same time before they lied down in their sleeping-bags and closed their eyes to fall asleep.
With that taken care of, I walked out of the front-room before I went up the stairs and saw Twilight lying in our bed. Spike, Jeff, and Peewee were already asleep in their basket.
I walked over to my side of the bed before I got into it and pulled the covers over myself. But as soon as I laid my head down on the pillow, Twilight rolled over and looked at me. "Hey." She greeted in a tired voice.
I turned my head to face her and smiled. "Hey." I said back.
"Are you as glad to be back here as I am?" Twilight asked.
I nodded slightly. "Yeah…I mean, I do miss England sometimes, but I'd rather be here with you guys." I said.
Twilight smiled sweetly before she nudged up to me and wrapped her arms around me. "Well we're back now, and you'll always be with us….especially me." she said before she planted a kiss on my cheek.
I smiled lovingly at her before I gave her a small kiss back. "I love you, Twi." I said.
"I love you too, Matt." Twilight said as her eyes slowly closed.
As she fell asleep beside me, I gently stroked her hair with my hoof and enjoyed her warmth. It wasn't long before I could feel myself drifting off to sleep and I yawned. "*Yawn*…T-Twi?"
"Uh-hmm?" Twilight hummed in her sleep.
"Wh-…What was it you wanted to tell me a few days ago? You know, before Rainbow Da-…" I was so sleepy that I couldn't finish.
"What?" Twilight asked with her eyes still closed.
"N-Never-mind." I said before I eyes closed and I let myself fall to sleep with Twilight.
We all slept calmly and peacefully through-out the night. No nightmares, no late-night noises waking us up, no disturbances of any kind. And why did we feel so peaceful? Because we all knew we were finally home.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
First of all, I think it's probably best to do this for safety reasons. I don't own MLP or Equestria Girls.
Also, sorry I had to rush the Human World thing. I was getting a bit bored of it and I wanted to get on to the good part, which will be in the next chapter. Don't worry, it'll have a bit more excitement in it.
Pony News: To those who don't already know, Season 4 is expected to premiere November 23rd this year. I'm so excited for this.
Also, Meghan McCarthy has stated that we'll see some returns of old friends or enemies in Season 4. I wonder who they could be, here's hoping Gilda or the Diamond Dogs.
Please remember to review.
Next chapter will be up as soon as it can.
49. Chapter 49: The investigation continues
Hello everypony. Guess what, it's September 25th again, and do you all remember what that means? It's my Birthday again :D
If you want, you can write a Happy Birthday message on your reviews. I'd like it if you did.
To the guest who keeps telling me to do something similar to the fan-art "Life for a life", I get it! I already told you this, I am going to do something similar in the future. So can you please stop sending me the same review over and over again? Thanks.
Enjoy the chapter.
Chapter 49: Crime of the Century
It's been a full week since myself, Twilight, and the others returned to Equestria and everything's been going great so far.
The day after we got back, we all returned to our usual day-to-day lives. Applejack went back to working on the farm, Rarity went back to her boutique, Rainbow Dash went back to weather patrol, etc.
None of us spoke about where we truly went. Whenever someone asked, we'd just say we were on a business trip for the Princess. If anyone knew the truth, who knows what might happen.
During the week, Shining Armor came back to the library and welcomed us home. He was more than happy to see us back, and Twilight was even more than happy to see him again.
Unfortunately, he couldn't stay long. He had to go back to Canterlot to resume his duties as Captain. So with heavy-hearts, we said our goodbyes and Shining Armor took the train back up to the great city.
After one or two days, everything went back to normal. Ponyville was as peaceful as ever, and no disasters of any kind have happened. At this point, it seems like nothing could go wrong.
Canterlot Castle
With Luna's night sky shrouding over the lands, everyone in Canterlot was fast asleep in their beds. Everyone except the Royal Guards patrolling the castle grounds.
Most of them were Unicorns and they were all using luminous magic like torches.
Blaze Horn and Sunray, however, were patrolling inside the castle. They soon started a conversation to relieve the boredom. "So is it true that Flash Beam has a thing for Illume?" Blaze asked with a large smirk.
Sunray chuckled. "Haha, yep. You should see them when they're alone…at least, when they think they're alone. Haha." He snickered.
Blaze let out a small laugh. "haha, well I know something that can top that. Did you know the Captain has a little sweet-heart of his own?" he asked.
Sunray gave him a surprised look. "No way! The Captain?"
Blaze nodded. "Yeah, he's been seeing her for a few years now. And from what he's told me, their relationship is growing pretty big. I wouldn't be surprised if one of them asked the big question soon." He said.
Sunray was almost speechless over this news. "Whow, seriously? Who is it?" he asked.
"Oh no, I shouldn't say." Blaze said before he explained. "You see, to avoid unwanted attention, Shiny doesn't tell anyone who he's dating. His girlfriend understands this, so she doesn't say anything either. It's one of those 'secret relationship' things, very hush-hush stuff."
"Oh c'mooon" Sunray whined. "I won't tell anyone, I know how to keep a secret. Trust me, I've got plenty of my own." He stated.
Blaze raised his eye-brow and a small smirk grew on his face. "Hmm…ok." He said before he leaned his head closer to Sunray. "Now listen…Captain Shining Armor is currently dating Pri-…" he then stopped in his sentence.
Sunray waited for him to finish. "Pri?...Who's Pri?" he asked in confusion.
Blaze stopped talking because he spotted something.
There was a hooded figure staring at them from the end of the hallway. "Who's that?" he asked in a whisper.
Sunray then looked in the same direction as Blaze and saw the hooded figure. "No idea…but what's with the hood?" he asked.
"Doesn't want anyone to see his face no doubt." Blaze said before he turned off his luminous magic like a switch. "Which means he's probably up to no-good." he finished.
"Hay you!" Sunray called.
At that moment, the hooded figure turned around and sprang of around the corner.
Sunray's eyes widened. "He's making a runner! We need to go after him." He said to Blaze.
Blaze then gave him a friendly smirk. "I like that sense of courage, solider. Let's do it." he said bravely.
With that, they both rushed after the mysterious pony to see where he was going.
-A few minutes later-
Thinking he had slipped past the two guards, the hooded figure started sneaking his way through the castle; unaware that Blaze and Sunray were following a short distance behind him.
Eventually, the hooded figure stopped in front of the large double-doors that led to the vault room.
The hooded figure then looked left and right to see if anyone was watching him. Once he knew it was safe, he used his magic to pull a lock-pick out of his cloak before he stuck it into the door's keyhole and juggled it around.
After a few seconds, the door made a 'click' sound; telling the hooded figure that he succeeded in unlocking the doors.
Once that was done, he opened the doors with his magic before he slid into the room and closed the doors behind him.
But not without leaving the lock-pick in the keyhole by accident.
Blaze and Sunray saw what he did from around a corner. "He went inside Canterlot Tower, we have to go after him." Blaze said seriously.
Sunray gave him a confused look. "Shouldn't we alert the Captain first?" he asked.
Blaze turned his head to face him. "No need, it's only one guy. Besides, that'll take too long, we need to stop him now before he reaches the vault." He stated.
"The vault? As in, the same vault that holds the-" Sunray then realised what was a stake. "Oh no."
"Exactly, which is why we need to get in there right away. There's no time to inform Shiny, not if we want to stop him in time." Blaze said.
Sunray knew he was right, so he nodded in agreement. "Ok, let's go." he said.
With that, they both rushed around the corner and quietly made their way towards the vault room doors.
Meanwhile, the hooded figure was walking across the room as he looked at pictures on the stained-glass windows.
He saw Celestia and Luna surrounding Discord, Celestia and Luna surrounding a stoned Discord, the main 6 unleashing their magic upon Nightmare Moon, the main 6 unleashing their magic upon Discord, and Discord hovering puppet-handles over 3 scared ponies.
But none of this mattered to him, all he cared about was getting what he came for.
The hooded figure kept walking until he stopped right in front of the vault. He looked up to admire its size before he focused his attention on the small hole in the centre of the door.
Then with his horn in position, he stuck it into the hole and closed his eyes. At first, his horn glowed a dim light-blue, but then it got brighter and brighter until it could be seen from outside the windows.
As his horn continued to glow, small bolts of electricity shot violently around the vault's door until it finally worked.
Somehow, his spell unlocked the vault.
After the hooded figure pulled his smoking horn out of the hole, he took a few steps back to watch the large doors open in front of him. Once they were fully open, he saw the Element case inside.
Very carefully, he used his magic to lift the case out of the vault before placing it down in front of him. With his goal only moments away from completion, he wasted no time in opening the case with his magic.
However, it wouldn't open. It was either locked, or something was keeping the lid down.
After a quick analysis, the hooded figure came to the conclusion that Celestia had used a spell to keep the case locked tight; meaning he'd have to do this the hard way.
He glared down at the case before he tried to force the lid open with his magic. But no matter how much he tried, he couldn't get it open.
Celestia's spell was really putting up a fight, so he decided to kick it up a notch by focusing all of his power into his magic until the case's lid finally started to open.
The hooded figure grunted as he tried to open the case all the way, but the best he could do was open it enough for him to see Elements of Harmony inside.
He saw them twinkling beautify in the light, they were so close that he could reach in a grab them, but he was afraid of the possibility of his hoof being chopped off by the amount of force pushing down on the lid. However, it was a risk he was willing to take.
Once the case was open wide enough, the hooded figure reached his left-hoof into it and grabbed one of the Elements. As soon as he pulled it out, his horn stopped glowing and the case slammed shut.
The hooded figure panted with exhaustion before he looked down at his prize. It was Pinkie Pie's necklace, the Element of Laugher. It wasn't much of a score to him, but any of the Elements was better than nothing.
If he could, he would try and get the rest of the Elements. But all that effort he used to open the case wore him out, so he decided to stick with what he had and get out of there.
The thief used his magic to slip the necklace under his cloak before he turned around and made his way towards the main doors.
But as he reached half-way down the room, Blaze and Sunray suddenly burst through the doors and blocked his path. "Going somewhere, bub?" Blaze asked while standing in a fighting position.
The thief was silent as he took a step back.
"You know, if you want a pretty necklace, there's a Jewellery store in town. Why don't you go ruin their night?" Sunray said while standing in the same position as Blaze.
The thief remained silent, the only thing they could hear from him was his heavy breathing.
Blaze and Sunray then looked at each other with confusion before they returned their attention to the thief. "As a royal guard of her majesty, Princess Celestia, I'm ordering you to return the artefact you've stolen and surrender yourself." Blaze ordered.
The thief didn't respond with words, but instead with violence. His horn glowed a bright blue before a powerful beam shot out towards the two guards.
Blaze and Sunray quickly dropped to the ground before the beam shot over their heads and struck one of the walls outside the room.
Blaze and Sunray then stood back up before they turned their heads around to see what damage the beam had made. That's when they saw a large soot-covered hole in the opposite wall beyond the doorway.
They then returned their attention to the thief. "Right then." Blaze growled before he and Sunray charged towards him.
As they both charged towards him, the thief stayed exactly where he was without even flinching. At this rate, it looked as though he was going to let them catch him.
But just before Blaze and Sunray could reach him, the thief's horn glowed before he disappeared and reappeared behind them in a bright flash.
Surprised, Blaze and Sunray skidded to a stop before they spun around to see the thief galloping towards the doorway.
Sunray knew they had to act fast, so he used his magic to close the doors before the thief could escape. "Nice one, kid." Blaze complimented.
After the thief skidded to a stop, he spun around to face Blaze and Sunray. "This is your last warning, surrender now and things won't get ugly." Sunray said firmly.
The thief continued to stay silent as his horn glowed, he then disappeared in another bright flash.
Blaze and Sunray looked around for him. "Wh-Where'd he go?" Sunray asked.
"No idea…but I have a funny feeling he's still in the room." Blaze said as he looked around the room with a glare in his eyes.
After hearing what he said, Sunray grew a slightly frightened look on his face. Each step he took was careful and silent.
Blaze kept his guard up at all times. His eyes shifted from one part of the room to another. He stood perfectly still to listen for anything.
Suddenly, the thief leaped out of the shadows and pinned Blaze against the wall; startling Sunray and making him yelp.
The thief and Blaze fought roughly against each other. Blaze would punch his face, and the thief would punch back. At some point, Blaze managed to swing his leg up and kicked the thief in the stomach.
The thief then released him and held his stomach in pain.
Blaze took this opportunity to catch the thief in a head-lock before ramming his head into the wall; making a small mark on it.
Blaze attempted to do it again, but a small bolt of electricity shot out of the thief's horn and stuck the side of Blaze's face; forcing him to release him.
While Blaze was holding his cheek in pain, the thief stood up on his hind-legs and bashed Blaze's head against the wall with his front-hooves; instantly knocking him out.
Sunray watched in fight as Blaze's unconscious body fell to the floor. He didn't know what to be scared of most, having to fight this guy, or having to fight this guy alone.
And seeing the thief turn around to him didn't help.
Sunray took a few steps back before he quickly pointed his horn at the thief. "Stay back! I'll do it, d-don't think I won't!" he threated while trying to act brave.
But the thief didn't show any signs of fear and started walking towards him. "I'm warning you!" Sunray said as his horn glowed slightly.
The thief then stopped where he was before his eyes flashed red in the shadow under his hood.
"What the?...wh-who are you?" Sunray asked in a stutter.
The thief didn't respond, instead he pointed his horn at Sunray and it glowed violently.
Before Sunray could even react, a dark bolt of lightning shot out of the thief's horn and headed straight towards him.
"AAAHHH!" Sunray yelled in horror before the bolt struck him and he fell to the floor. The last thing he saw was the thief looking down at him before his whole world went black.
The next morning
After learning what happened in the vault room, Celestia wasted no time in calling me and Twilight to the castle. Once we arrived there, she told us everything she knew about the break-in before she took us to the vault room.
We then saw that a few experienced ponies had already started investigating the scene. Some were searching for clues, others were attending to the injured guards.
It was horrible. There were scratch marks on the walls, small drops of blood on the floor, and thick soot on the vault's door.
Twilight and I were horrified by this sight. "What the hell happened here?" I asked as we walked across the room.
"Like I told you, a thief broke in last night and attacked two of my guards. They not gravely hurt, but their injuries are bad." Celestia said while walking with us.
Twilight looked up at her with concern. "Who were they?...Is Shining Armor alright?" she asked with worry.
Celestia looked down at her. "He's fine, Twilight…But he feels horrible about this. He believes this was his fault, that he should've been here when it happened." She stated.
Twilight and I were shocked to hear this. "How could he think that? He can't blame himself like that, nopony could've seen this coming." Twilight stated.
"I know…I tried to tell him that, but he disagrees…he believes he's failed me." Celestia said.
Twilight's ears dropped as her worries grew.
After noticing the troubled look on her face, I placed my hoof on her shoulder and she turned to face me. "It'll be ok, Twi. We'll talk to him later, but right now we need to know what we're dealing with." I said softly.
Twilight then gave me a small nod. "I know." She said.
I then removed my hoof from Twilight's shoulder before I looked up at Celestia. "So, who were the two guards the thief attacked?" I asked.
"See for yourself." Celestia said as she pointed her hoof at something up-ahead.
I then looked to where she was pointing to see Blaze lying on a hospital-stretcher with a doctor tending to him "Blaze." I said under my breath before I rushed over to him.
Once I reached him, I saw that he was covered in bruises and his nose was bleeding. "Blaze! Are you ok, buddy?" I asked as I sat down on the floor next to him.
Blaze then opened his eyes before he looked at me. "I've been better, Matt. I'm glad you're here, now this investigation can actually get somewhere." He said with a weak smile.
I chuckled slightly before I looked at the doctor. "Is he gonna be ok?" I asked with concern.
The doctor nodded. "His injuries aren't as bad as they look, so I think he's gonna be fine." He said before he looked at something behind me. "Too bad I can't say the same about his friend over there though."
I then turned my head around to see another stretcher, but I couldn't see who was lying on it due to the amount of doctors surrounding it. Whoever they were attending to must've been in a worse shape than Blaze. "Who is it?" I asked without looking away.
"One of the guards that were attacked, only that one won't stop crying." The doctor answered before he went back to fixing up Blaze.
I was confused by what he told me, so I decided to see it for myself. I stood back up before I walked over to the second stretcher and saw the victim.
His eyes were as round as plates and his pupils were as small as dots, his light-red mane was standing on end and he was quivering like hell. But despite this, he looked a little familiar.
"What is it, Matt?" Twilight asked as she and Celestia came over to me.
I turned my head to face at her. "It's just…I feel like I know this guy. Do you recognize him?" I asked before I returned my attention to the quivering pony.
Twilight looked down at him and thought about it. "There is something familiar about him, but I can't put my hoof on it." she said.
"It's Sunray, a member of Flash Beam's group. You both met them when they first started as guards, remember?" Celestia asked.
After thinking about what she said, we both soon remembered. "You mean he's one of the new recruits? How did he get mixed up in this?" Twilight asked Celestia.
"I asked Flash Beam the same question, he told me that he assigned Sunray to patrol on the nightshift with Blaze. Blaze said they were patrolling the castle when they encountered the thief." Celestia answered.
I looked up at her with confusion. "But…that means the thief was already inside castle. How did he get past the guards patrolling the grounds?" I asked.
"No-one knows." Celestia answered.
"This is getting weirder by the minute." I thought as I rubbed my chin with my hoof.
Just then, we heard Sunray muttering something. We all looked down at him to see his head shifting left and right. "Sunray, can you hear me?" Celestia asked as she lowered her head down to him.
Sunray looked at her and yelped in fright. "St-stay back!...Get away from me, y-you beast!" he said loudly.
We were all shocked at what he said. "Sunray, please calm down. It's Princess Celestia, you know her." Twilight said, trying to calm him.
Sunray then looked at Twilight, but was still frightened. "I said get away! D-Don't make me hurt you!" he said before he fell back off the stretcher and dragged himself towards the wall.
This was really starting to freak me out. "What's wrong with him? It's as if he doesn't recognize us." I said.
"I think I might know." A male voice said behind us.
We all then turned our heads around to see Shining Armor. "Let me see him." He said before he walked past us and approached Sunray.
Once he reached him, Shining Armor lowered himself down to Sunray and looked closely at his face. Sunray pushed himself against the wall as Shining looked deep into his eyes.
After a few minutes, Shining Armor sighed with sorrow. "Just what I thought." He said out-loud.
"What is it, Shining Armor?" Twilight asked.
Shining Armor then stood back up before he turned around to face us. "He's been cursed…with a Fear Hex." He said.
Twilight and Celestia gasped. "A Fear Hex?...But that's impossible, the Fear Hex was long forgotten. Who would be cruel enough to use it again after so long?" Twilight said loudly.
"I take it a Fear Hex is a spell that makes you feel fear, right?" I asked with my eye-lids half closed.
Twilight then shot me a firm look. "Matt, it's no laughing matter. The Fear Hex is one of the most barbaric spells anyone could ever use, especially on another pony!" She said firmly.
After hearing the tone in her voice, my ears lowered slightly. "Ok, ok, sorry." I said before my ears perked up again. "But what is a Fear Hex? I've never heard of it." I said.
"The Fear Hex is an ancient spell created by a dark-hearted Unicorn. He used it to turn his emeries' fears against them. But not only did the victims see their worst fears flash before their eyes, they also saw their companions as monsters." Celestia explained.
"Is that why Sunray's so scared of us? Because he sees us as monsters?" I asked.
Celestia nodded. "Yes." She said before she continued her story. "When Luna and I defeated the Unicorn, we believed the Hex was banished with him…but I guess we were wrong." She finished.
Twilight and I then looked down at Sunray with sorrow. "…Is there a way to cure him?" I asked.
"Luna knows more about the Hex than I do. If there is a cure, she'll probably be able to find it." Celestia said before she looked down at Sunray. "I still can't believe someone would do something like this." She said.
Twilight then looked up at her. "The thief sure went through an awful lot of trouble to get what he came for. What did he steal anyway?" she asked.
At that moment, Celestia gave Twilight a troubled look. "…Follow me." she said before she made her way towards the vault, Twilight and I followed behind.
After reaching the vault, Celestia's horn glowed before the Element case floated out and hovered in front of us. "As you know, the vault has always been protected by a spell that only I can break. But after last night, I fear that might've changed." Celestia said before she used her magic to open the case.
Twilight and I then looked inside the case and saw the Elements.
There was mine, Twilight's, Rarity's, Applejack's, Rainbow Dash's, Fluttershy's, but Pinkie Pie's was gone. "There's only six, where's Pinkie's Element?" I asked with a raised eye-brow.
"That's what the thief stole last night. Somehow, he broke into the vault and escaped with one of the Elements of Harmony. And if he was trying to take them all, then there's no doubt he'll return to complete what he failed to do." Celestia stated before she closed the case and returned it to the vault.
Twilight and I looked at her with worry. "You mean he'll come back to try and get the rest? Would he really take that risk after all of this?" Twilight said as she looked back at all the damage the thief had done.
"This thief isn't like any other. Somehow he has the power and knowledge to not only cast a Fear Hex, but to open the vault when no-one else can. We may be dealing with someone more powerful than we think." Celestia said in a serious tone.
Twilight turned her head back around to face her. "Then what should we do?" she asked.
"We need to know more about what we're dealing with, so I'm closing this room off for investigation. But before we leave, I want to have a quick word with the both of you." Celestia said.
Twilight and I looked at each other before we looked back up at Celestia. "Sure, Princess. What is it?" I asked.
Celestia then lowered her head down to us. "I'm not sure if I can trust anyone to guard this vault tonight." She whispered.
Twilight and I were confused. "What? Why's that?" I asked.
Celestia looked at me. "Remember when you asked how the thief got past the guards patrolling the grounds? Well I have a strange feeling he didn't, I think he was already in the castle from the beginning." She whispered.
"So what you're saying is…you think it was an inside job?" Twilight asked.
Celestia looked at her. "I can't guaranty that, but it's the only thing that makes any sense right now. We've already lost one Element, we can't afford to lose the rest." She said before she sighed. "Twilight…I know this is asking much of you, but I need you and Matthew to stay here and investigate this crime." She said.
Twilight and I were surprised by her sudden request. "Us?...why?" I asked.
"Because I need ponies I can trust. Shining Armor's under enough pressure as it is and I don't want to make the mistake of assigning the wrong pony for the job." Celestia stated as she raised her head back up.
"But what if the thief comes back?" Twilight asked.
"Don't worry, Twilight. I'm sure with your brains and Matthew's brawns, you'll be able to subdue this thief and bring him to justice." Celestia said with confidence.
Twilight and I then looked at each other as we thought about what she said. After a moment, we looked at her again. "Princess, you can count on us. We won't let you down." Twilight said with a confident smile.
Celestia smiled at this. "I'm glad to hear that, Twilight. Report anything you find to me or Shining Armor." She said before she walked past us and made her way towards the room's exit. "Now if you'll both excuse me, I must write a letter to my sister. I need to know if there's a cure for the Fear Hex." She said.
We both then watched as Celestia left the room with everyone else following behind. The doctors took Blaze and Sunray out of the room on their stretchers.
Pretty soon, only myself, Twilight, and Shining Armor were left in the room.
After a few seconds of silence, Twilight walked up to Shining Armor. "Hey…are you ok?" she asked in concern.
Shining Armor turned around to her and sighed. "I still can't believe this has happened…I feel like…I feel like I'm responsible. I…I should've been there, I should've done something…it's my fault Blaze and Sunray got hurt." He said with shame.
Twilight placed her hoof on his shoulder. "You shouldn't think like that, Shining Armor. You're a great Captain, one of the best, but no-one could've seen this coming. What happened last night wasn't your fault and you have nothing to be sorry for." She said, trying to help him.
Shining Armor then gave her a warm smile. "Thanks Twily." He said before they shared a small hug.
After a few seconds, they separated. "Well I better go make sure Blaze and Sunray make it to the hospital. I'll check up on you two later, ok?" Shining Armor said.
Twilight nodded. "Ok, I'll see you later."
With their goodbyes now said, Shining Armor turned around and walked over to the room's exit. He then stopped in the doorway and turned his head around to look at us. "Good luck on your investigation." He said.
"Thanks." I said as I walked up beside Twilight.
Shining Armor gave use one final wave before he left the room; leaving me and Twilight alone.
Knowing our investigation had already begun, I turned my head to face Twilight. "So what should we do first?" I asked with no idea on what to do.
Twilight looked at me and rubbed her chin with her hoof. "Well…the first thing we should do is learn everything we can about detective work. And what better place to learn about it than…*pause for effect*…the library?!" she stated with a large smile.
I then raised my eye-brow. "Urr…are you sure? I mean, do we even have that kind of time to-"
"We can probably find a book about it in the library Spike and I used to live in before we moved to Ponyville. I'll go there right away and get started." Twilight said before she rushed out of the room and slammed the doors behind her with her magic.
I stood where I was in the silence as I stared at the doors. "…Well…now I'm lonely." I said to myself.
I then started thinking about what to do now.
"Huh…Twilight's probably gonna be gone for a while. I would wait for her, but there's no time, this investigation needs to start now. I can't do it alone though, I'm gonna have to bring someone in to help me. Someone smart, helpful, and full of attitude." I said to myself as I rubbed my chin with my hoof.
After a moment or so, I thought of someone who fit the deal perfectly.
Later that evening
After asking her to do so, Celestia sent a letter back to Ponyville telling Jeff to come up to the castle with my saddlebags.
When he arrived, I filled him in on what was happening and he agreed to help me.
I was now back in the vault room with Jeff on my back. "So what're we looking for exactly?" he asked.
I turned my head around to face him. "Clues, Jeff. Anything that looks out of the ordinary." I answered.
Jeff raised his eye-brow. "You mean like these hats we're wearin'?" he asked as he pointed at the small black bowler-hat on his head.
I was wearing a brown detective hat. "What do you mean? You can't do investigations without the proper head-wear, and this happens to be a classic detective hat….Plus, I make it work." I stated.
"Uh-huh, and where did you get these things exactly?" Jeff asked with his wings crossed.
"Not important." I said before I turned my head back around to face the room. "What is important is that we find some clues, maybe the thief left something behind while he was working." I said.
Jeff sighed. "Fine, let's just make sure no-one sees us in these things. I still have a rep to protect." He stated.
With that, we started the investigation.
Jeff and I worked together to try and find clues. He was my second pair of eyes. If there was something I missed, he would spot it.
But as the minutes went by, we still hadn't found anything. "Ok…this is getting nowhere." Jeff stated with a bored look on his face.
"Don't give up yet, Jeff. There's bound to be something here. We're just looking in the wrong places, that's all" I said as I continued to search around the room.
Just then, I gained an idea. "Maybe we should try retracing the thief's steps" I said.
Jeff looked me with confusion. "Retrace the thief's steps?"
I nodded. "Yeah, if we go wherever he went, we might find something." I said before I looked over to the vault. "He obviously went to the vault, so we'll start there." I said.
"Then what're we waitin' for?" Jeff said.
I then walked over to the vault before I stopped in front of it.
Jeff and I examined the entire door before I looked at the small hole where Celestia would stick her horn in. It was covered in black soot.
"Soot?" I said before I took a closer look at how dark it was. "really thick soot for that matter." I said.
Jeff then climbed up onto my head and looked closely at the soot-covered hole. "How can you tell how thick the soot is?" he asked curiously.
"By how dark the colour is. If it wasn't thick, it would be a dimmer black. But it's a dark-black, so it's thick." I stated, sounding a lot like Twilight during one of her lectures.
Jeff then looked down at my face with his eye-lids half closed. "Ok, the lesson wasn't needed. Jeez, you spend too much time with Twilight." he said before he returned his attention to the vault door.
I rolled my eyes before I did the same. "Well it looks like the thief was definitely desperate to open the vault. With this much soot, he must've used a large amount of power." I said.
I then started thinking about what the thief must've done to achieve his goal. "This seems a bit weird. All that power the thief used the open the vault must've hurt him in some way. Most normal thieves would give up and steal something else…but this one didn't, this thief didn't let anything stop him, not even Blaze and Sunray." I said out-loud.
Jeff heard me and looked down at my face. "So what you're sayin' is…."
"I'm saying maybe this wasn't an average robbery. Maybe the thief came her with a purpose…a purpose to steal the Elements or nothing at all." I said.
Jeff then patted my head with his wing. "Dude, calm down. You've only been on this job for an hour or so, we don't need you saying crazy stuff yet." He said.
I shook off my thought before looked up at him. "Yeah, you're right…It's just a weird feeling I have." I said.
"Give it a few minutes and it'll probably pass." Jeff said before he jumped back down onto my back. "So where do you think the thief went next?" he asked.
"Well after the thief took Pinkie's Element, he would've headed towards the exit to make his escape." I said before I turned around and made my way towards the main doors.
After walking half-way across the room, I stopped and looked down at the blood drops on the floor. "Judging by the drops of blood here, I'd say this is where Blaze and Sunray came in. The thief didn't go any further, he fought them right here." I said as I looked around the spot for any clues.
Just then, I saw a small piece of black metal on the floor. "Hello, what do we have here?" I said as I lowered myself down to it.
Jeff looked down over my shoulder and saw the piece of metal. "What is it?" he asked curiously.
"No idea." I said before I turned my head around to face him. "I'll need the magnifying-glass. Could you get it for me?" I asked.
Jeff nodded before he reached his wings into my right-saddlebag and pulled out the magnifying-glass.
I returned my attention to the piece of metal before Jeff walked up onto my head and held the magnifying-glass in front of my left-eye.
"Keep it steady, buddy." I said while trying to look through the magnifying-glass properly.
Jeff did as I said and held the magnifying-glass as still as he could.
With the help of the magnifying-glass, I was able to examine the metal piece better. It was dark-blue and curled like a part of something round. "Hmm…it's definitely something." I said.
"Got any idea what it is." Jeff asked while struggling to hold the magnifying-glass in place.
"Not really, but we should brand it as a clue anyway." I said before I raise myself back up. "We'll need one of the plastic-bags." I said to Jeff.
Jeff nodded before he returned to my back and dropped the magnifying-glass into to my right-saddlebag.
He then brought out a small plastic-bag before he flew down to piece of metal and gently grabbed it with his talons.
Once he had it in his grasp, Jeff dropped the metal piece into the plastic-bag and sealed the opening. That way, it wouldn't fall out.
With that done, Jeff flew back up onto my back and dropped the plastic-bag into my left-saddlebag. "Awesome, we found our first clue. Do ya think there's any more?" he asked.
I turned my head around to face him. "Only one way to find out." I said before we both started examining the area for more clues.
Just then, Jeff spotted something on the left-wall. "Hey, what's that on the wall?" he asked as he pointed his wing at it.
I then looked at Jeff to see where he was pointing before I looked in the same direction, that's when I saw a strange mark on the wall. "I don't know. Good eye, Jeff. Are you sure you're not part eagle?" I asked as I walked over to the wall.
Jeff smirked. "Well I should be, I do have the looks for it." he said.
I then stopped in front of the wall before I took a closer look at the mark.
It was a group of small scratches with traces of gold in them. "It looks like something scratched against the wall, something gold." I said out-loud.
"Well that's not much of a mystery, every guard in the castle has golden armour. Maybe the thief pushed Blaze or Sunray against the wall and it made that mark." Jeff said, trying to explain it.
I then turned my head around to face him. "That may be a possibility, Jeff. But a good detective doesn't rule anything out. We'll need the camera." I said.
Jeff rolled his eyes before he reached into my right-saddlebag and pulled out a camera.
He then flew onto my muzzle and held the camera in front of the mark. "Look at the birdy." He said before he took a picture of it.
When a blank photograph slid out of the camera, Jeff took it out and waved it around in the air.
After doing that for a few seconds, he held the photo in front of his face and saw the picture come into focus.
Jeff then looked down at my face. "Got it." he said as he showed me the photo.
"Nice work, buddy. Now let's add it into the clue bag." I said.
With a nod, Jeff flew back onto my back before he dropped the photo into my left-saddlebag and returned the camera to my right-saddlebag.
"There we go, two clues found." I said in a pleased way.
Jeff looked at me with a raised eye-brow. "Yeah, and one of them isn't very useful." He said with an unimpressed tone.
I then looked at him with my eye-lids half closed. "Oh c'mon, Jeff, this gold mark is helpful. Just think about it. If we find the armour piece with the same mark on it, we find-"
"Let me guess, our thief?" Jeff asked as he crossed his wings.
"Whow! We're not going that far. We can't just rush to conclusions like that, we have to take our time and figure this out." I stated.
"I know, I just said what I thought you were gonna say." Jeff said.
"Well I wasn't gonna say that." I stated before I made my way towards the room's exit. "Now let's go to the Guard Quarters and see if we can find our scratched armour." I said as I approached the doors.
I then opened them before I left the room.
Once I was out of the room, I turned around to the doorway. "I should probably close these doors." I thought before I grabbed one of the doors with my hoof and closed it.
I then went to the other door and did the same. But when it closed against the other door, I heard a small 'clang' sound.
Jeff and I looked down at the floor to see a strange looking key in front of my hooves. "What the hell?" I said under my breath.
"What is that? Some kind of key?" Jeff asked in confusion.
"I don't think so." I said before I lowered myself down to get a better look.
After examining the shape of the strange object, I released what it was. "It's a lock-pick." I said.
"A lock-pick? You mean one of those things thieves use to unlock doors?" Jeff asked.
I turned my head around to face him and nodded. "Yeah, and our thief probably used this one to unlock these doors." I said before I returned my attention to the lock-pick.
I then noticed some strange markings carved into the side of the lock-pick. Curious to find out what they were, I flipped the lock-pick over with my hoof and saw that they were actually letters. They read B.S.
"B.S.?...Wonder what that stands for." I said without taking my eyes of the lock-pick.
"No idea, but do you want to add it to the clue bag?" Jeff asked.
I turned my head around to face him again. "Yes please." I answered politely.
And while Jeff was getting another plastic bag out of my saddlebag, I looked at the lock-pick again and I wondered what the letters stood for.
If we're lucky, they could be initials for someone's name. And if we could find what the name is, it might reveal the thief's identity.
Later: main hallway
After adding the lock-pick to our collection of clues, I made my way through the castle to try and find the Guard Quarters. Unfortunately, no-one ever told me where it was.
Jeff and I felt as though we'd been going in circles since we left the vault room, which was almost half-an-hour ago. "Matt, I think we're lost." Jeff said in boredom.
"Thanks for the update, buddy." I said sarcastically before I sighed. "Maybe we should ask the next pony we see for directions." I said.
"Are you sure? Don't you think it's best to keep all of this to ourselves?" Jeff asked curiously.
I turned my head around to face him. "Why? It's not like we're undercover or anything. Besides, the hats kind of give it awa-UFF!" I said before I accidently bumped into someone in front of me; causing me to stumble backwards.
Jeff quickly flew off my back as I fell backwards onto the floor.
As I groaned in a daze, something suddenly landed beside my head. At first, I thought it was my detective hat, but then I saw it was a book.
Once my daze wore off, I leaned up and looked down at the book beside me. "Where did this come from?" I asked myself before I picked the book up in my hooves and read the title. "Once love is found, by Gilderoy Long-mane." I read.
"Oooh." A female's voice groaned.
I then looked to where the groan came from and saw a tall pink mare lying on her back in front of me.
I instantly let out a small gasp. "Oh, I'm so sorry. That was my fault, I wasn't looking where I was-" I stopped when the mare leaned up and revealed her face.
She was an Alicorn with a light-pink coat, her mane & tail were dark-velvet with moderate-rose and pale-gold streaks, she had a beautiful pair of dark-purple eyes, and her Cutie Mark was a blue crystal heart between 2 golden branch-like things.
(I don't know what they're called)
Also, judging by the golden shoes on her hooves and a small golden tiara on her head, I'd say I was in the presences of a Princess.
"Oooh…that's gonna bruise." She said while rubbed her head with her hoof.
I continued to stare at her as I dropped the book. "Urr…s-sorry…this was my fault." I said before I stood back up onto my hooves.
The Princess did the same and smiled kindly at me. "No, it was my fault. That's probably what I get for reading and walking at the same time." She said before her horn glowed light-blue.
The book then rose up off the floor before it hovered over to her. "I guess I got too caught up in my book. But then again, who wouldn't? It was written by Gilderoy Long-mane after all. Have you ever read any of his books?" the beautiful mare asked me.
"Urr…n-no, I've never really heard of him. Which is funny seeing is how I live in a library, haha…But I bet my wife's heard of him." I said with nervousness.
Just then, the mare started rubbing her chin with her hoof. "Hmm…you seem familiar, have we met before?" she asked.
"I doubt it, otherwise we'd have more bruises on our heads." I joked, referring to our accident a minute ago.
The mare understood my joke and laughed. "Haha, yeah, we probably would." She said before she took a step closer and looked straight at my face. "I'm sure I know your face from somewhere." She claimed.
Seeing her this close to me made me blush for some reason and I gulped. "Well…y-you may have seen me in the papers. My name's Matthew and I saved Canterlot a while ba-"
"Matthew? As in, the hero of Canterlot? I knew I recognised you! You're the pony who stopped that Thorn guy from taking over the city and saved my aunts in process." The mare said with excitement.
I smiled humbly. "It was nothing really." I said before I realised what she said. "Wait, what? Celestia and Luna are your aunts?" I asked in confusion.
"I guess you don't know me, let me introduce myself. I'm Princess Cadence, niece of Princess Celestia and Princess Luna." Cadence said in a polite manner.
I quickly lowered my head in a bow. "I'm so sorry, your highness. I didn't know you were a Princess…well, the shoes and crown made it kind of obvious, but I wasn't sure until now. I hope I wasn't rude to you or anything." I said as I looked up at her.
"Of course you weren't, I like ponies with a sense of humor." Cadence stated with a small smile. "So if you're Matthew, then I guess your wife is Twilight Sparkle, right?" she asked.
I then raised my head back up. "Yeah, you know her?" I asked curiously.
Cadence nodded. "More than you know. I used to foal-sit her when she was a filly. I loved the days we spent together, she was always such a sweet-heart." She said with a nice smile.
I smiled at this. "That's my Twilight, always the kind-hearted one." I said before something crossed my mind. "Hold on, how did you know Twilight was my wife? I didn't see you at our wedding." I said.
"I can explain that. You see, I had some royal business to attend to in one of the far cities of Equestria and I had to stay there for a while. I only got back the last week." Cadence stated.
"So that's the reason why you missed out on everything?" I asked with a raised eye-brow.
Cadence nodded again. "Yeah, but Princess Celestia has already filled me in on everything, she even told me about last night's break-in. Is it true you're the one investigating the scene?" she asked curiously.
I then rubbed the back of my head with my hoof. "Well…kind of." I said with a small smile.
Cadence smiled back before he horn glowed and my detective hat floated up off the floor. "Well then, you're gonna need your hat back." she said as she placed my hat back onto my head.
I used my hoof to adjust it a little before I gave Cadence a thankful smile. "Thanks, Princess." I said.
Cadence smiled kindly at me. "You're welcome, but please, call me Cadence." She said.
I nodded. "Ok, Cadence." I said.
Suddenly, Cadence gasped about something. "I my gosh, what time is it? Listen Matt, I have to go, it's been a pleasure meeting you though." She said before she grabbed her book with her mouth and rushed past me.
I turned myself around as I watched her gallop down the hallway. "It's been a pleasure meeting you too, Cadence!" I called.
I continued to watch Cadence until she disappeared around a corner.
Jeff then landed back down onto my back and looked at me. "Well, she's somethin' new." He said.
"Yeah, she is." I said before I turned my head around to face him. "But there's no time to talk about that, we have to get to the Guard Quarters while no-one's there." I said.
"Then what're we doin' standin' around here for? Giddy-up, Silver!" Jeff said as he patted his foot on my back.
With that, I turned my head back around and continued with our task.
A few minutes later: Guard Quarters
After finally finding the Guard Quarters, Jeff and I started searching through the armour. But seeing how many guards shared this room, there was a lot of armour to go through.
Luckily for us, the armour wasn't scattered around like dirty clothes on a bedroom floor. Instead, each set was displayed on a pony-shaped mannequin standing in a row along the back-wall.
While we were searching through the armour on the first mannequin, I discovered each mannequin had a name-tag sown to their foreheads. Each name-tag had a different name on it, most likely the name of the armour's owners.
I then realised something that could make our search easier. If we find the armour piece with the mark on it, we can read the mannequin's name-tag and discover who the armour belongs to.
So Jeff and I kept examining from set to set. But no matter how hard we searched, we couldn't find anything.
By now, we were examining the armour on the twelfth mannequin.
Jeff was standing on its shoulder as he examined its helmet. "So…what do you think of this Cadence gal?" he asked.
I was looking around the mannequin's body-armour as I answered his question. "Well I don't really know her, but she seems nice." I said.
Jeff then looked down at me and smirked. "Yeah, I bet you'd think so." he said.
I looked up at him and raised my eye-brow. "Meaning?" I asked.
"C'mon dude, you're attracted. I'm not even the same species and I'm attracted." Jeff stated with his smirk growing wider.
I gave him a firm look crossed with seriousness. "Well I hate to disappoint you, but I am not attracted to her. I'm a married pony, I love Twilight more than anyone, and this conversation is over." I said before I imminently went back to what I was doing.
Jeff was wide-eyed over my aggression. "…Ok, sheesh, I try to make a joke and I get Mr grumpy-hooves." He stated.
I sighed before I looked back up at him. "Sorry, it's just…I don't like jokes like that." I said.
Jeff then motioned his wings in a way that told me to 'calm down'. "Ok, ok, let just forget about it and get back to what we're doin' here." he said before we both did exactly that.
Once we finished examining every inch of the armour, I looked up at Jeff. "Nothing on the body-armour. Find anything, Jeff?" I asked.
Jeff looked down at me and shook his head. "No, it's another dud." He answered.
"On to the next one then." I said before we moved along to the next mannequin and started examining its armour.
Just then, Jeff spotted something on the mannequin's helmet. It looked like some of the metal had been scratched off.
Jeff looked at it with confusion before he looked down at me. "Hey Matt, I think I found somethin'." He said.
I then looked at Jeff to see him pointing at the mark on the helmet. I looked closer to see it matched the mark on the vault room wall. "I think it's a match." I said.
"Well what are ya waitin' for? Take the helmet off and see who it belongs to." Jeff said with impassions.
I nodded before I grabbed the helmet with my front-hooves and pulled it off the mannequin's head.
Jeff and I then looked at the mannequin's name-tag and saw the owner's name, but it confused us. "Flash Beam?...But that doesn't make any sense." I said in confusion.
Jeff looked at me. "Isn't Flash Beam the leader of those new recruits that arrived a while back?" he asked.
I looked at him and nodded. "Yeah, but he wasn't with Blaze and Sunray during the break-in, he wasn't even on the same floor as them." I stated as I became more confused.
"Well there's probably an explanation. Maybe that isn't even Flash's helmet, maybe they got it mixed up with Sunray's or somethin'." Jeff said.
"But Twilight and I saw Blaze and Sunray this morning, they were still in their armour even when the doctors where taking them to the hospital." I stated.
"Well maybe someone brought their armour back." Jeff said.
I raised my eye-brow. "Oh really? Is that what think? Well answer me this, smart guy. Why are Blaze and Sunray's mannequins the only ones without armour?" I asked.
Jeff then quickly turned his head around to see I was right, Blaze and Sunray's mannequins didn't have any armour displayed on them. "…Oh." He said.
"Damn right oh." I said before I sat down on the floor and held Flash's helmet up in front of my face.
I stared at the mark with slight despair. "I'll admit, I haven't known Flash long, but he seemed like a nice guy. Would he really be the-…" I stopped when I suddenly noticed something.
Through the reflection in the helmet's shiny gold metal, I could see someone standing in the doorway behind me. I quickly turned around to see a dark hooded figure.
It didn't take me long to realised that I was now face-to-face with the thief himself.
Jeff soon noticed the strange look on my face. "Dude, what's up?" he asked before he looked in the same direction as me and saw the thief. "Oh…this is bad." He said.
We just stayed where we were in silence, waiting to see who would make the first move.
Without taking my eyes off him, I slowly placed the helmet down on the floor and stood back up. "Ok…I don't know who you are, but you have something of ours. We'd like it back." I said with a small glare.
"Yeah, so hand over the necklace, chump!" Jeff demanded.
Remaining silent, the thief took a few steps back away from the doorway.
I was confused at first, but then I knew what he was planning. "Don't you dare, don't you bloody dare!" I growled.
At that moment, the thief sprung off and galloped away from the Quarters.
"He dared." I groaned before I galloped out of the room and chased after him.
Jeff took off into the air and followed behind. "You go, Matt! I'll catch up!" he called while flying as fast as he could to keep up.
As I galloped through the hallways, I could see the thief up ahead. He was really fast and I actually had to push myself to keep up.
At some points, the thief would purposely knock something over to try and block my way or trip me up. But I would just leap over it and continue the chase.
After a few minutes of chasing him, I got tired of this and decided to put a stop to it. I spread my wings out as far as they'd go and flapped them strongly to gain more speed.
And to my surprise, it was working. I was starting to close in on the thief.
I was now so close that I could grab his cloak with my teeth. But before I could, the thief made a sudden turn and I ended up running into a wall; putting me in a daze.
The moment I shook the daze off, I saw the thief run behind a corner before I took off after him with pure determination to catch him.
But as I shot around the same corner, I suddenly crashed into someone.
We both fell backwards onto the floor and groaned in dizziness.
A few seconds later, I leaned up off the floor to find out who I had crashed into. That's when I saw Twilight rubbing her head with her hoof.
My eyes widened with shock and I quickly stood up. "Twilight! Oh my god, I'm so sorry. It was an accident." I said as I helped her back up onto her hooves.
Twilight continued to rub her head as she looked at me. "Matt? What were you doin flying around the castle like that? It's dangerous." She said before she stopped rubbing her head and placed her hoof back down on the floor.
"I know, I wasn't thinking properly. I guess I got too caught up in catching the thief and now I've lost him." I said as I hung my head with my ears low.
At that moment, Twilight gave me her full attention. "What? You mean you saw the thief?" she asked in surprise.
I lifted my head back up and nodded. "Yeah, I was chasing him when I-…" I stopped talking once I noticed the thief standing a few feet behind Twilight.
But before I could make a single move, the thief quickly turned around and galloped away again. "There he is!" I said loudly as I pointed my hoof at him.
Twilight immediately turned her head around and saw the thief galloping away from us. "*Gasp* Quick, after him!" she said before we chased after him.
As we stayed tight on the thief's tail, Twilight's horn glowed and she suddenly disappeared in a bright flash.
Then with another flash, Twilight reappeared ahead of the thief and blocked his path. "Stop right there!" she demanded firmly.
However, once he was close enough, the thief leaped high over Twilight and landed behind her.
By the time Twilight turned around, the thief was already half-way down the hallway. "This guy's good." she said under her breath.
I then caught up with her. "How did he do that?" I asked as I looked at her with a slightly surprised face.
"I don't know, but we're losing him." Twilight said before she turned her head to face me. "You go on ahead and catch him, I'll be right behind you." she said in a serious tone.
I nodded to her before I did as she said and rushed on ahead. I then started to flap my wings before I took off into the air and flew after the thief.
Once I had the thief back in my sights, I flew as fast I could after him. It looked as though he was slowing down, all this running must be tiring him out.
With a grin on my face, I started to slowly close in on the thief "I've got you now, you slippery little-"
The thief then came to a stop and I flew past him, only for him to grab me by the tail with his mouth and slam me down hard on the floor.
While I was in another daze, he took this opportunity to make another get-away.
Once I shook it off, I saw the thief run through a wooden door on the left-side of the hallway. It was right next to the large pair of double-doors that led to the Great Hall.
"Why did her go through there? That door leads high up into the tower, why didn't he go into the Great Hall and escape through there?" I said out-loud before I stood back up and flew over to the door he ran through.
After I landed in front of the door, I pushed it open with my hoof before I followed the thief's trail up a bunch of stairs that took me high up into the tower.
Once I reached the top of the stairs, I saw the thief up ahead standing outside on a large balcony. However, he wasn't on the balcony itself, he was standing on of its stone barrier.
I gave him a small glare and I slowly approached him. "Between you and me, I think this whole chase has been going on long enough. So how about you give me the Element before anything else goes wrong." I said, trying to negotiate.
But as I got closer, the thief took a step back.
I instantly froze in place once I knew what he was planning. "Whow…calm down, fella. I just want the Element, nothing more." I said with a concerned look on my face.
The thief said nothing as his eyes suddenly flashed red.
I then gave him a puzzled look. "…What the hell are you?" I asked with a faint voice.
The thief remained silent as he sat down on the barrier and willingly fell backwards off the balcony.
With a horrified look on my face, I rushed up to the barrier before I looked over it to see if I could see him.
Then without warning, something shot up and punched me in the jaw; making me fall backwards onto my back.
When I opened my eyes, I was surprised to see the thief flying in the air with a pair of wings. He glared down at me with his red eyes before he turned around and flew off into the sky.
I quickly got back up before I watched him fly away.
The last thing I saw of the thief was him landing somewhere in Canterlot. There was no point in chasing him any further, he'd be long-gone by the time I get there.
I breathed heavily as I tried to make sense of what just happened. "How the hell is that possible? How can the thief be a Pegasus? He was a Unicorn the last time I checked." I said to myself.
I then started hearing wings flapping before Jeff appeared out-of-nowhere and landed on the stone barrier. "There you are, Matt. I've been flyin' all over for ya." Jeff said.
"Sorry…I was trying to catch the thief." I stated.
"I know, Twilight said you were chasing him in this direction. So where is he?" Jeff asked curiously.
"He…he got away." I confessed as I hung my head in shame.
Jeff gave me a confused look. "How could he have escaped from way up here? A fall from this height would've killed him." He stated.
I lifted my head back up to look at him. "Except he didn't fall…he flew away using a pair of wings." I said.
Jeff's confused look was replaced with surprise. "What?! You mean like a Pegasus? But that's impossible! The thief's a Unicorn. You told me he used some sort of Hex on Sunray, how could he have done that if he's a Pegasus?" she said.
As I was about to answer him, a troubling thought came to my mind. "I don't know, but I think we have a bigger problem. The vault room's been left unprotected all day. If the thief's been in the castle this entire time, who knows what he could've been up-to while we were gone." I said as I started to panic.
Jeff soon understood what I was saying and his eyes widened. "…You don't think…"
I nodded. "Yeah…We have to find Twilight and get back to the vault room! Stat!" I said before I turned around and rushed back towards the stairs with Jeff flying behind.
Later: Vault Room
After reuniting with Twilight, I told her what I suspected and we all returned to the vault room as quickly as we could.
Once we got there, we found Celestia had taken it upon herself to protect the vault while we were investigating.
To our relief, none of the other Elements have been taken.
After calming down, I presented all the clues Jeff and I found before I told Twilight and Celestia what happened between me and the thief.
Once I did, they were as shocked and confused as I was, neither of them had an explanation for the thief's sudden change in races.
With a frustrated look on my face, I was now pacing left and right as I tried to figure out what was going on.
Twilight, Jeff, and Celestia were watching me with concern. "Dude, maybe you should take a break. Sit down at relax for a minute." Jeff said.
I stopped pacing and looked over to him. "How can you expect me to relax at a time like this? Not only did I lose the thief, but he's probably miles away with Pinkie's Element by now." I said before I resumed pacing.
"Take it easy, bro. So one Element gets stolen, big whoop, we'll just stick with the others until we can get it back." Jeff said with a small smile of confidence on his face.
Celestia then looked down at him with a troubled face. "If only it was that simple, Jeff. But I'm afraid until the missing Element is returned to its place, the others will be powerless to be of any help to us." She said.
Jeff looked up at her. "Wait…you mean the Elements won't work unless they're all together?" he asked in confusion.
Celestia nodded. "Exactly. The thief may have taken only one Element, but he's left us without our greatest defence." She stated.
"…Oh, well then…I guess this is kind of a big deal, isn't it?" Jeff said as he rubbed the back of his neck with his left-wing.
Celestia said nothing as she nodded to say 'yes'.
Twilight then walked over to me before she placed her hoof on my shoulder; stopping me from pacing. "Don't worry, Matt. You and Jeff found so many clues that could be helpful, especially the lock-pick. If we can find out what the letters B.S. stand for, we may be able to find the thief." She said with a small smile.
Celestia came over to us with Jeff on her back. "Not to mention you found these other interesting clues." She said before her horn glowed.
The plastic-bag with the photo inside it then floated up to her. "Like this photo of the gold mark on the wall for example. You said it matched the one on Flash Beam's helmet, correct?" Celestia asked.
I nodded. "Yeah, but Flash Beam wasn't with Blaze and Sunray last night, how could his helmet have made that mark if he wasn't there?" I asked.
Jeff then flew onto my back. "Here's a thought, what if Flash was the thief? He might've been wearing his armour under that cloak." He said as he tried to make sense of this.
I turned my head around to face him. "I've already told you, Jeff. We're not pointing our hooves at any of the guards. Besides, Flash is a Unicorn, the thief I chased was a Pegasus. I saw him fly away with my own eyes." I stated.
"But the thief last night had to be a Unicorn, how else could he have opened the vault or used the Fear Hex on Sunray?" Twilight asked.
I turned my head back around and looked at her. "I don't know, Twi." I said before I felt a small pain in my head. "Ah, all this confusion is starting to give me a headache." I whined as I held my hoof against my head.
Celestia then rubbed her chin with her hoof. "Obviously the thief is trying to confuse us. He's leading us down multiple paths to cover his tracks." She said before her horn glowed again.
The plastic-bag with the small piece of black metal then floated up to her. "For instance, I happen to recognize this metal. This is Ebony, a metal used to forge black armour…*sigh*…The trouble is, I only know one place that has it." she said.
Twilight stepped forward. "Princess Luna's castle. They use it to make the armour for her guards…do you think the thief came from there?" she asked, hoping it wasn't true.
Celestia lowered both bags before she looked down at Twilight. "I can't be certain, but it's our only next step." She said.
I then gave her a confused look. "Wait, you're saying that piece of metal is part of some armour? But that's impossible, the mark on the wall is gold. If the thief was wearing a helmet under his hood, it would've been made of golden metal." I stated.
Celestia turned her attention to me. "That's what I meant when I said 'he was leading us down multiple paths'. We're dealing with someone who has a cunning mind, and he's not afraid to use it." she said.
"Well what should we do, Princess? Head over to Luna's castle and investigate some more?" Twilight asked.
Celestia then thought about it before she gave us her answer. "No, that can wait until tomorrow. Right now, I have a more important task for you to do." she stated before she turned around and walked over to the vault.
The three of us watched as Celestia opened the vault and brought out the Element case with her magic. "With the thief still at-large, I fear the Elements may no longer be safe here. He may return to steal the rest." She said.
"So what do you want us to do?" I asked curiously.
"I need you to take the Elements back to Ponyville and give one to each of your friends for protection. If you explain the situation to them, I'm sure they'll understand." Celestia said as she hovered the case over to us and place it down in front of us.
Twilight and I weren't sure if this was such a good idea. "Are you sure, Princess? I don't think our homes are as secure as the vault." Twilight said.
"Maybe not, but it's something the thief probably won't expect." Celestia said before she lowered her head down to us. "Please, I need you to trust me. I know it's risky, but the Elements can't stay here and you are the only ponies I can trust right now to take care of them. Please." She said.
Twilight and I then looked at each other before we looked at the Princess again. "Ok, we'll take them. As soon as we get back to Ponyville, we'll meet us with our friends and tell them everything." I said.
Celestia smiled. "Thank you, both of you." she said before she raised her head back up. "Now I suggest you take the Elements out of the case and put them in your saddlebags, you don't want to risk being seen with them when you leave." She said.
"Good point, Princess." Twilight said before she used her magic to open the case and lifted all the Elements out of it.
She then placed them in my left-saddlebag.
It was easy to fit the necklaces, Twilight's tiara, and my horned-helmet inside the bag. But my Elemental body-armour had to go in my right-saddlebag.
Once that was done, Twilight used her magic to shut and fasten both saddlebags' lids.
With all the Elements now stored in my saddlebag, we looked back up at Celestia. "Ok Princess, I guess we're ready to go home now." I said.
"Very well, I'll escort you outside to the chariot that will take you back to Ponyville. But first, I need to put the case back and close the vault." Celestia said before her horn glowed again.
The Element case then closed itself before it floated off the ground and hover into the vault. Once it was back inside, Celestia used her magic to close the vault and locked it.
With that done, Celestia looked down at us again. "Shall we?" she said before she walked past us and made her way towards the room's exit. Twilight and I followed with Jeff on my back.
"I hope the Princess knows what she's doing." I thought as we left the vault room with the doors closing behind us.
That night: Ponyville library
After we returned to Ponyville, we kept our promise to the Princess and met up with our friends at the café. We told them everything that happened and they happily agreed to take one of the Elements each.
Applejack took the Element of Honesty, Rarity took the Element of Generosity, Rainbow Dash took the Element of Loyalty, etcetera.
Pinkie Pie, however, didn't have anything to take and she was a little upset about it.
Feeling bad for her, I decided to give her my horned-helmet to protect. This cheered Pinkie Pie up and she was very thankful.
As day turned to night, Twilight and I said our goodnights before we left the café with our Elements; leaving everyone else to go home with their own.
Once we got settled back in the library, Jeff and I placed out detective hats in the wardrobe before we went to our beds to call it a day.
I was now lying in the bed beside Twilight who was reading a book while leaning against the bed's backboard. The only sound that could be heard was Spike's snoring as he slept in his basket with Jeff and Peewee.
While looking up at the ceiling, I couldn't help but think back to what happened in the castle. "How could I have let the thief escape like that? Why couldn't I stop him?…did I choke?" I thought before I sighed.
Twilight heard my sigh and turned her head to face me. "Something wrong, sweetie?" she asked.
I then looked at her with my ears low. "I was thinking about that thief…I just can't believe I couldn't catch him. The Princess was counting on us and I let her down…am I…am I losing my edge?" I asked.
Twilight gave me a confused look before she placed her book down on the bedside table. "What do you mean?" she asked.
I then leaned up on the bed before I rested myself against the backboard. "I once took down a monstrous Alicorn who had Luna's power over the night and could turn into a Hydra. But yet, I couldn't take down a simple thief?...*sigh*…I think I'm slowing down, Twi. I'm no good anymore." I said in depression.
Twilight understood what I was saying and she placed her hoof on my shoulder. "Matt, you're not slowing down, you've just not done anything like this for a while. That Thorn fiasco happened months ago and you've probably lost your touch since then, but I'm sure you'll get it back if you try hard enough." She said with a small confident smile.
"How do I do that, Twi? I tried my best today and that didn't seem to work." I said with the depressed look still on my face.
"Maybe you should start training with your Element again. We can set you up with a small training-area behind the library, I can even make some dummies for you to practise on. What do you say?" Twilight asked as she smiled sweetly at me.
After seeing her smile, I returned it before I nudged over to her and wrapped my arms around her body. "You always have an answer for everything, don't you?" I asked while still smiling.
Twilight giggled as she wrapped her arms around the back of my neck. "Hehe, pretty much…And don't worry about the thief, sooner-or-later we'll catch him and get Pinkie's Element back." she said.
My smile then went away. "But we have to find out where he is first." I said.
Twilight nodded. "True, but we'll focus on that some other time. Let's just get some rest for tonight, ok?" she asked.
"Ok." I answered with a small smile.
Twilight & I then shared a small kiss before we released each other and lied down in the bed.
Once we were comfy under the covers, Twilight used her magic to turn off the table-lamp; making the room dark.
With our heads resting on the soft pillows, Twilight and I closed our eyes before we drifted off into a deep sleep.
But even in my sleep, I still wondered where the thief was and what he was doing with Pinkie's Element.
Meanwhile: Mount Forbidden/throne room
The still-hooded thief stood in the centre of the room with the 3 dark Alicorns staring down at him from their thrones, each breath he took was careful and silent as he kneeled down to their presence.
"Master, I have retrieved what you requested." The thief said with a males voice.
"Present it to me." The leader said darkly as glared down at him.
Unwilling to test his master's patience, the thief reached his hoof into his cloak before he pulled out Pinkie's Element and bowed his head bowed as he held it out to him.
The leader's horn then glowed green before the Element lifted out of the thief's hooves and hovered over to him.
Once the Element was in front of him, the leader examined it until he saw the balloon-shaped crystal attached to the front.
"The Element of Laughter?" The leader said out-loud before he shot a look down at the thief. "Is this the only one you got? Where are the rest?" he asked with aggression as he placed the Element down on his throne's armrest.
Hearing the tone in the leader's voice made the thief hesitated to answer, but he knew he had to. "I was…unable to collect them, master." He admitted as he looked down at the floor.
The leader then gave him an unpleased look. "…How disappointing…and why, pray-tell, were they unreachable?" he asked in slight growl.
"I was able to open the vault, but the case that held the Elements was locked with some sort of special enchantment. I couldn't open it enough to get them all, so I grabbed what I could and-" The thief stopped in his sentence as he looked up at a frightening sight.
The leader had left his throne and was now standing right in front of him, looking down at him with a vicious stare. "And you ran away instead of retrieving the other Elements!" he said; finishing the thief's sentence for him.
The thief's ears dropped under his hood. "There was nothing I could do, master. I didn't have enough strength to reopen the case." He stated.
"Did it ever occur to you that you could've brought the entire case to me instead of this pitiful excuse for a victory?!" The leader shouted in frustration as he stomped his left-hoof down on the floor; causing small cracks to form around it.
The thief gulped once he realized his mistake. "P-Please forgive me, master. I wasn't thinking…I won't make a mistake like that again, you have my word." He said in a begging way.
"You already gave your word when we assigned you to this task. Years of training and studying, only to be bested by a small enchanted box. You have failed me, my student." The leader growled as green electricity started forming around his sharp horn.
The thief quivered as he closed his eyes and prepared for his punishment.
But before the leader could cast any spells, he suddenly felt someone's wing wrapped around his back and he turned his head to see Zelga with a smirk on her face. "Now brother, you know there's better ways to sort this out. I mean, what use would our scout be if he was dead?"
The leader's horn stopped glowing as he raised his eye-brow at her. "Are you suggesting I let him live to continue his task?" he asked.
Zelga removed her wing from her brother's back before she answered. "I'm just saying if he was dead, who else would collect the rest of the Elements? Especially since they're not in Canterlot anymore." She said as he smirk turned into a grin.
The leader gave her a slightly shocked look. "Explain your words, sister?" he demanded.
"When was the last time you look in the Vision Pool? Matthew and Twilight Sparkle have been investigating their little missing Element problem. Celestia knew our student would return, so she assigned them to take the Elements back to Ponyville. I don't know where they hid them though." Zelga explained.
The leader then thought about the situation before he made his decision. "Very well, Zelga, you get your wish." He said before he returned his attention to the thief. "Rise, my student." He said.
The thief did as he was told and stood up.
"Like Zelga has just explained, the Elements are now somewhere in Ponyville. Your new task is to find out where they are and bring them to me, one-by-one if you have to. Am I clear?" The leader asked with a serious look in his eyes.
The thief nodded. "Yes, master. And I won't let anything or anyone stand in my way…especially Matt!" he growled.
"Good, then go forth and start your mission, my student. Continue to play your part, hide in plain sight, and don't let anyone suspect you. We'd hate for the Princess to discover where your loyalty truly lies." The leader said with a devious grin.
The thief returned his grin. "Yeah, we would." He said darkly before his horn glowed and he disappeared in a small flash.
Once the thief was gone, Zelga turned her head to face the leader again. "You know, his attempt the steal the Elements wasn't a total failure. He did bring us at least one of them after all, and you of all ponies should know what that means." She said.
The leader looked at her and nodded. "Yes…without this one Element, the rest will be powerless. But that doesn't mean Equestria is unprotected." He stated.
At that moment, Rage came over to them. "He's right. As long as Matthew lives, our plans for domination are in jeopardy. Brother, I beg of you, let me go and finish him myself." He said in determination.
The leader shot him a firm look. "No! I will not have you exposing us! If Matthew starts poking his nose in places it doesn't belong, our scout will take care of him." He said.
"You make it sound as though we can actually trust him to do this. How do we know he won't mess up again like he did last night?" Rage asked with an irritated look on his face.
"If he does, it'll be the last mess up he'll ever make." The leader answered before he turned around and made his way back to his throne.
Zelga and Rage watched as their brother walked away from them.
Just then, the leader stopped half-way across the room and looked back at them. "You shouldn't be so distrustful of him, Rage. I, for one, have full confidence in him…hahahaha." The leader chuckled darkly with a devious smile.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
Ooooh, something's definitely going down here. Who is the thief? Only time will tell.
Note: To those who have Twitter, I've got some good news for you. I'm on Twitter too, so if you want to follow me, just PM me and I'll tell you my Twitter user name.
Also, do you know when I sometimes take too long on my chapters and you start wondering when it's coming? Well I feel bad when I keep you all waiting, so I'll start posting my latest chapter news on my Twitter page for you all to read. That way, I can tell you why it's taking so long.
Of course, this is an option. You don't have to follow me on Twitter if you don't want to. I'm just saying it would be nice.
Please remember to review. Again, I hope I get a Happy Birthday message from some of you. It would mean a lot if I did.
Next chapter will be up as soon as possible.
50. Chapter 50: Best Birthday Ever
Hello again, everypony. Sorry for the delay, I've been going through a lot of shit lately.
Well my friends, today's the day. The first 2 episode of My Little Pony Friendship is Magic Season 4 airs today! I'm so looking forward to it, especially since Discord's coming back again :D
BTW, thanks for the Happy Birthday messages on your reviews for the last chapter, I loved them all.
So this is where we enter the 50th chapter of the story. Honestly, I thought this story would be reaching its end by now.
I guess we still have a long way to go before the grand finale. But know this, I won't stop writing until I reach it. No matter how long it'll take, I won't stop.
I just want to know if you'll all still read it, even if this story goes so far as to reach its 100th chapter. Please tell your opinion in your reviews.
Anyway, enjoy.
Chapter 50: The investigation continues
Yesterday was just terrible. Not only did an unknown thief steal the Element of Laugher, but he also got away with it as well.
I couldn't deny I felt bad about it. I mean, was the last pony to see the thief. He was right in front of me, I couldn't caught him then and there. But he tricked me and escaped with the Element.
But this investigation wasn't over yet. After examining the clues Jeff and I found, Celestia told us to go to Luna's castle and search the place. I think she's hoping we find more clues there.
So the next morning, Twilight and I packed all the equipment we needed and headed out to Luna's castle to continue the investigation.
Luna's castle
After arriving at the castle, we told one of Luna's guards that we needed to see her and he escorted us to the throne room.
Along the way, I decided to start of conversation with Twilight, which eventually led to me mentioning that I saw Princess Cadence yesterday.
Surprised by hearing her old foal-sitter's name, Twilight told me everything about her. How she was once her foal-sitter, how she was a close friend to the family, everything. From what Twilight told me, Princess Cadence sounded like a very nice pony.
We both kept talking as we approached the throne room doors. "So you actually saw Princess Cadence?" Twilight asked with a large smile on her face.
I nodded. "Yeah, she seemed like a very nice girl." I said.
"I can believe that. She's kind, caring, humours. She's like the big sister I never had but always wanted." Twilight said before she grew a wondering look. "Huh, I wonder where she's been lately." She said.
"Yeah, feels like ages since we've seen her." Spike said while sitting on Twilight's back.
Before we left the Library, Jeff stated that he didn't want to be part of the investigation this time, so we brought Spike along instead.
"She said she went away on royal business for a while. She also said that was the reason why she didn't come to our wedding." I explained.
"I can understand that. Cadence may be the best pony ever, but she's still a Princess and has to stay committed to her royal duties. Like Shining Armor with his role as Captain of the Guard." Twilight said with an understanding smile.
"I guess that makes scene." I said.
We all then stopped talking and kept following the guard.
A minute or so later, we finally reached the throne room doors and stopped in front of them. The guard who escorted us then opened the doors with his magic before we walked into the large room.
As we walked across the throne room, we saw Luna upheld talking to Night Thunder and Brave Star. "Explain to me again why Dusk has not attended his training sessions this week?" Luna asked.
"He's still suffering from strong headaches, your highness." Night stated.
"Still? He has had these headaches for nearly three weeks. How did he get them in the first place?" Luna asked in a frustrated tone.
"We don't know. It's like they came out of nowhere." Brave Star said.
Luna sighed. "Fine, where is Dusk now?" she asked.
"He's resting up in the Guard Quarters. After all the sleepless nights he had lately, I'd say he needs it." Brave Star stated.
"Then rest he shall receive. But know this, he cannot stay in his bed forever. You two need to find a way to cure him and get him back on his hooves." Luna said in a serious tone.
Brave Star and Night Thunder then nodded to say they would do as she requested.
Just then, Luna noticed me and Twilight being escorted by a guard towards her. She looked at Brave and Night with a calmer look. "Thank you both for you time, but you'll excuse me, I have a matter to attend to." she said.
Brave and Night bowed their heads slightly. "As you wish, your highness." Night said before they both made their way towards the exit behind us.
Brave and Night walked past us as we approached Luna.
Once we reached Luna, the guard who escorted us stepped aside to let her see us. "Your highness, these ponies request to see you, they say it's urgent." He said.
"Thank you, guard. You may return to your post." Luna said.
The guard gave her a small nod before he turned around and made his way back towards the exit; leaving me, Twilight, Spike, and Luna alone in the throne room.
Once we were alone, Luna looked at us. "I assume this is about the investigation." She said with a raised eye brow.
Twilight nodded. "Yes, did Princess Celestia tell you we were coming?" she asked.
"Indeed, she informed me that one of the Elements of Harmony was stolen by a shadowed thief in the night. Now you are all here to search my castle for any further clues." Luna said.
"Yeah, that pretty much covers it." I said, slightly impressed by how much Luna knows about this.
"Before you begin your investigation, let me ask you something. You do not believe someone here is the culprit, do you? Everyone in this castle is loyal and would never to anything to disturb the peace." Luna said, hoping she right.
I gave her an honest look. "We don't know, Luna. We found a piece of Ebony at the crime scene. Celestia told us Ebony was metal used to make armour for your guards and your guards only."
Luna then looked at me with a bit of firm in her eyes. "So in other words, you do believe it was someone here." she said.
"I'm not saying that, I'm just saying we can't cross anything out just yet." I argued.
Twilight then stepped forward. "What Matt's trying to say is, we don't have enough leads to confirm anything yet. The Ebony we found is the only next step we have. That's why we're asking for your permission to search around the castle." She explained.
Luna sighed. "…Yes, of course. You may begin your investigation when you feel ready." She said.
Twilight and I then nodded before we turned around and made our way back towards the exit. But after walking half-way across the room, I stopped and looked back at Luna to see her with her ears down. I couldn't help but think that I may have upset her in some way.
While Twilight and Spike left the room, I went back and stopped In front of Luna. "Luna, listen…I…I'm sorry if I upset you in any way. It's just…I'm going through a tough time right now…you know, with everything that's happening recently." I said.
"I understand, Matthew, and I do not blame you. These are indeed troubling times. But the best thing you can do is continue your investigation and discover where the thief is hiding. I know you and Twilight Sparkle can do this, I have full faith in you." Luna said with a sweet smile.
I smiled back. "Thanks Luan. And don't worry, we'll get to the bottom of this." I said before I turned around and made my way towards the exit.
"I do not doubt that." Luna said under her breath as she watched me walk away.
Once I reached the doorway, I walked out of the throne room to follow Twilight and begin our investigation.
Meanwhile: Canterlot castle/throne room
Princess Celestia was sitting on her throne as she went through her recent mail. She was using her magic to hold letter by letter in front of her face.
Just then, *Knock, knock, knock*
Celestia immediately looked over to the large double-doors at the end of the room. "Come in!" she called as she placed her letters down on her throne's left-armrest.
One of the doors then opened and Shining Armor walked into the room, he was wearing his Captain armour. "You highness, may I have a quick word with you." he asked politely.
"Of course, Shining Armor." Celestia she before she got up off her throne and walked to the centre of the room. "What's on your mind?" she asked.
Shining Armor then closed the door behind him before he walked over to Celestia. Once he stopped in front of her, he reached his hoof up to his helmet and took it off. "It…It's about the brake-in, your highness." He said as he gently placed his helmet down on the floor.
"Oh Shining Armor, I thought we had settled this. It wasn't your fault. The thief was obviously a professional, no-one could've prevented what happened." Celestia stated in a calm tone.
Shining Armor shook his head. "No, it's not about that. It's something else." He said.
Celestia raised her eye-brow. "Oh? Then what is it?" she asked curiously.
Shining Armor remained silent as he looked around the room before he leaned his head closer to Celestia. "Princess…how much do you trust Discord?" he asked.
Celestia then gave him a confused look. "Discord? What do you-"
"Please, your highness, answer my question. I need to know." Shining Armor said with a slightly desperate voice.
Celestia stayed silent for a moment before she answered. "I trust him enough to be a close companion. Why do you ask?" she asked.
Shining Armor hesitated to answer at first, but then grew enough strength to speak his mind. "Your highness…I…I think we should keep an eye on him for a while. You know, until this whole 'missing Element' thing blows over." He said slightly nervous.
Celestia was still confused by what he was saying. But after thinking it through, she finally understood. "Oh…I see…you believe-"
"It was Discord?...Yes, I do." Shining Armor admitted before he sighed. "A while ago, Twilight told me what he did when she first met him, how he mysteriously broke into the vault and stole the Elements. Well, who's to say he didn't do it again?" he said.
Celestia's ears lowered slightly. "But…it couldn't have been him…Blaze Horn, Sunray, and Matthew all described the thief as a pony." She claimed.
"What if it was one of Discord's tricks? What if they saw what he wanted them to see? Maybe he's trying to get us to focus our attention on someone besides him? He has been known to play games with our minds." Shining Armor said.
"But…he's changed…he's nothing like what he used to be." Celestia said.
Shining Armor gave her a look of sorrow. "I know you trust him, Princess. But sometimes things just aren't what they seem." He stated.
Celestia didn't know what to think. She knew Discord could be mischievous if he wanted to, but lately, he hasn't caused any problems for anyone. Not wanting to rush to conclusions, she gave Shining a firm look. "Listen to my words, Shining Armor. I know you have your doubts about Discord, but unless you have some strong evidence to confirm his betrayal, I'm afraid I cannot count him as a suspect." She said.
Shining Armor raised his eye-brow. "Evidence? No offence, your highness, but this is Discord we're talking about, how much more evidence do we need?" he asked.
"Discord is innocent until proven guilty, am I understood, Captain?" Celestia said in a firmer tone.
Shining Armor was slightly surprised by Celestia's sudden snap. "…Yes, your highness…of course." He said quietly.
Celestia then calmed down a little. "Good, now if you'll excuse me, I have a lot of letter to get back to." she stated before she turned around and went back to her throne.
Shining Armor felt it would be best if he didn't say anything else on the subject, so he turned around and made his way towards the room's exit.
As Shining Armor was about to leave the room, one of Celestia's best maids walked in. "Afternoon, Captain." She said politely.
Shining Armor kept walking towards the doorway as he looked at her. "Afternoon, Pearl Blossom." He said before he left the room.
Once he was gone, Pearl Blossom walked over to Celestia and stopped in front of her. "Your highness, I'm here to polish your-…" she then stopped once she saw Celestia with her back turned and her head hanging. "Your highness? Is everything ok?" she asked in concern.
Celestia turned her head around to look at her. "Oh…yes, I'm fine." She said with a weak smile.
Pearl easily noticed the troubled look on her face, she could see it through her obvious forced smile. "Princess, I've known you long enough to know when you're worried about something. Why don't you tell me what's wrong? Maybe I can help." She said.
Celestia then turned the rest of her body around to face her better. "I appreciate your concern, Pearl Blossom, but I'm fine. It's just something the Captain said, that's all." She stated.
Pearl took a step closer to Celestia. "What did he say?" she asked curiously.
"It's not important." Celestia said before she decided to change the conversation. "Now, you said you were here for something?" she said.
Pearl still wondered why Celestia was upset, but she didn't want to argue with her, so she agreed to drop the conversation. "I'm here to polish your crown and jewellery, your highness. It's that time of week." She said.
"Oh yes, of course. Shall we do this in my quarters? It's quieter there and I feel like I really need to get out of this room." Celestia stated calmly.
Pearl smiled kindly. "Sure, your highness. Lead the way." She said.
With that, Celestia made her way towards the exit with Pearl following behind. Once they left the room, Celestia used her magic to close the double-doors behind them.
What they didn't know was Discord had been listening to every conversation that accrued in the room. He was in his stained-glass form on the window so no-one would notice him.
With a flash of light, he disappeared from the window and reappeared in the middle of the room back in his normal form. He stared at the closed doors with despair. "They…think it was me? B-But I've shown so much loyalty to the ponies, how can they suspect me?" Discord asked himself.
Discord then rubbed his chin with his lion hand as he thought back to when he was evil. "Well, I guess I do have history for…these things." he said before he stopped rubbing his chin. "But I've changed now, surely everypony knows that by now."
Just then, Discord thought of something. "Or maybe they haven't! Maybe I haven't proved myself enough." he said before I serious look came on his face. "Well I can change that. From this day fourth, I will be the best Discord I can be." He declared strongly as he pointed his talon finger high in the air.
Meanwhile: Luna's castle/Guard Quarters
While Twilight was asking Luna some questions in the lobby, Spike and I decided to go up to the Guard Quarters and investigate. We had searched high and low, but couldn't find anything.
I was now searching through their armour. "Hmm…doesn't look like there's anything on their armour. I've searched every set at least three times now and nothing." I said out-loud before I turned my head around to look at Spike. "Find anything interesting on your end, Spike?" I asked.
Spike was going from bed to bed searching through every guard's chest. Right now, he was in Bleak's chest. "No…well, if you count Bleak's diary as interesting. It has a lot dirt on her." He said as he picked up Bleak's diary.
"Spike, put that back. We're here to search for clues, not read about every guard's personal life." I said before I went back to what I was doing.
But curiosity was too strong for Spike and he opened Bleak's diary. He read through a page until he let out a small laugh. "Haha. Well, well, looks like somepony has an irresistible urge for stage singing." He said to himself before he put the diary back and went on to the next bed.
As he approached the next chest at the end of the next bed, he noticed something on the lid. It was a small metal golden label with two letters carved into it, they most likely initials for the chest's owner. They read B.S.
Spike found this interesting because he remembered the lockpick I showed him and how it had the same letters carved into it. He thought maybe, just maybe, the lockpick belonged to the same guy who owns this chest.
Spike looked over to me. "Hey Matt, I think you should come look at this." He said.
I then stopped what I was doing and walked over to Spike. "What is it, bro?" I asked as I stopped beside him.
"Do these letters seem familiar to you?" Spike asked as he pointed down at the metal label.
I then down looked at the label on the chest and saw the two letters carved into it. Indeed, they did look familiar. They were the same letters carved into the lockpick I found in Canterlot yesterday. "'B.S.'…Those are the same letters carved into the lockpick Jeff and I found yesterday." I said.
"So yesterday you found a piece of Shadow Armour and a lockpick with the same letters carved into it as this chest label. Too much of a coincidence if you ask me." Spike stated.
I turned my head to face him. "You may be on to something there, Spike. I think we should find out who owns this chest and ask them some questions." I said.
"But how do we do that? Do we even know anyone with the initials B.S. in their name?" Spike asked.
With that question troubling my mind as-well, we both started thinking about every guard we knew in Luna's army. After a few minutes, we finally remembered someone whose name matched. "Brave Star!" we both said at the same time to each other.
Suddenly, we heard the door open and we looked to see Dusk walk in with an agitated look on his face. "Would you keep it down in here? My headache's bad enough as it is!" he said as he held his forehead in pain.
Spike and I looked at each other before we looked at him again. "Sorry…umm…are you ok? You don't look well." I said.
Dusk then walked further into the room and stopped near us. "No, I'm not ok. My head's pounding like a drum and I have a weird craving for ice-water." he said before he took a closer look at me. "Say…do I know you?" he asked.
I nodded. "Yeah. I'm Matthew, we met when you and your team joined Luna's army." I said.
Dusk then remembered. "Oh yeah, now I remember you. Let me guess, you're because of the missing Element thing. Well you're not going to find much in here I'm afraid." He said.
"How did you know about that?" I asked with a raised eye-brow.
"Dah, everyone's heard about it. I mean, c'mon, an Element of Harmony was stolen, who wouldn't have heard about that?" Dusk asked.
Spike and I then looked at each other before we looked at Dusk again. "Ok, so why wouldn't we find anything in here?" I asked.
"Because a few investigators were in here earlier and they didn't find anything." Dusk stated.
"Well we did and we may also have a lead, but first we need to find Brave Star. Have you seen him today?" Spike asked.
Dusk looked down at him. "Brave Star? Yeah, he'd down in the library. Why? Is he in trouble?" he asked.
"Well…*HFF*" Spike said hummed as I covered his mouth with my hoof.
"No, no he's not. We just need to talk to him, ask him about…urr…what he might know about the case. If he has important information to tell, it's best that we know it as-well." I said before in laughed nervously.
Dusk raised his eye-brow in confusion. "Ok…whatever." He said before he groaned in pain. "Ooh…I'm gonna get more water, this headache is killing me." he said before he turned around and walked out of the room.
Once he was gone, Spike and I looked at each other. "Alright Spike, let's get down to the library and find Brave Star before he leaves." I said.
Spike nodded in agreement before we walked out of the Guard Quarters and closed the door behind us.
Luna's library
After searching for a full 20 minutes and asking 2 guards for directions, we finally found the Luna's library on the second floor of the castle.
It was just as big as Celestia's library back in Canterlot, with loads of bookcases both standing in the rows around the room and built into the walls.
Spike and I stood in the entrance as we examined the room. "*Impressed whistle* Too bad Twilight isn't with us, she'd love this part." I said out-loud.
"Yeah, but we can tell her about it later, right now we have to find Brave Star." Spike said.
I then looked down at him. "Dusk said he was in here somewhere, let's look around for him." I said.
With that, we walked into the library together and started looking around for Brave Star, but there wasn't any sign of him. Either he was in some other part of the library, or he's already left.
As I searched for Brave Star, I decided to look around the big round table in the centre of the room. I approached it hoping he'd be sat next to it reading a book, unfortunately he wasn't.
"*Sigh* This is getting tiresome, we better find him soon." I said to myself I decided go look somewhere else.
But as I was about to walk away, I suddenly noticed a black book on the table.
Spike & I didn't put it there, and if someone was reading it we would've seen them by now. The only explanation is that it was an unattended book left on the table instead of being put back in its shelf.
After living with Twilight for many months, I learned that unattended library books shouldn't be left lying around, so I decided to be useful and put it back myself.
I walked around to where the book was on the table and read its title. "Legend of the Green Moon" it read.
At that moment, curiosity got the better of me. "Sounds interesting, but I really need to find Brave Star." I said to myself before a small smirk grew on my face. "well, I guess he can wait a few minutes."
With that, I sat down in front of the table and picked up the book in my hooves. I then opened it to the first page and started reading it.
"Ponies have told many tales of the legendary Green Moon. Some say it's just a saying like 'Once in a Blue Moon', some say it's to symbolise the anniversary of Princess Celestia and Princess Luna's victory of Discord, and others say it involves something else, something mysterious.
Once every six months, a bright green light shoots up from beyond the horizon and strikes to the moon, turning it completely green. The moon remains green for only five minutes before it returns to normal.
No-one knows what causes this or why, only that it has gone on for a thousand years and no damage has been brought to the moon or the Princess that cares for it."
"Excuse me." a male voice said behind me.
I instantly snapped back into reality and quickly turned my head around to see Brave Star was a curious look on his face. I exhaled in relief as I held my hoof against my chest. "Brave Star…you made me jump."
"Sorry about that, but what are you doing in her-…" Brave said before he recognized me. "Wait a minute…Matthew?...I haven't seen you since for a while, how are you doing?" he asked with a small smile.
"I'm doing fine, even with everything going on recently." I said.
Brave then gave me a confused look. "What do you mean? What's happened?" he asked.
"One of the Elements of Harmony was stolen the other night. Surly you know about it." I said, expecting him to have heard the news.
He had a slightly shocked look on his face. "One of the Elements of Harmony was stolen? Are you kidding me?" he asked a bit loud.
I was a bit confused by this. "Wait…you don't know? But I thought everyone knew about it." I said.
"The only one who'd know about things like that would be the Princess, the guards in this castle aren't usually allowed to know those kind of things, especially new recruits such as me and my team." Brave stated.
"But Dusk said-…" I said before I realized what had happened. "..Dusk…" I growled under my breath as I looked back at the doorway with a small glare in my eyes.
"What was that about Dusk?" Brave asked.
I then looked back up at Brave normally. "Nothing…hey listen, I need you to gather your team and meet me down in the throne room. Twilight and Princess Luna should be there, just tell them I sent you down and they should understand." I said.
Brave looked at me with slight confusion. "Is it important?" he asked.
I nodded. "Yeah, in a way." I answered.
"Umm…ok then." Brave said before he walked past me and made his way towards library's exit.
Once he was gone, I grew a serious face and looked around for Spike. "Spike? Where are you, bro?" I called.
"Up here!" His voice called back.
I looked up and saw Spike looking down at me from the second floor, he was standing on the metal barriers so he could see me better. "Did you find Brave Star?!" Spike asked.
"Yeah, I found him. We're gonna talk to him later in the throne room, but first we need to find Dusk again, so get back down here fast! And be careful on those barriers, I don't want you to fall." I called.
"Ok, I'll just get back around to the stairs and-AHHH!" Spike yelled as he fell down from the barriers and landed hard in front of me.
"Oh my god! Are you alright?" I asked in strong concern.
Spike then peeled his face off the floor before he looked up at me in a daze. "Urr…fast enough?..." he asked before his head dropped back down.
I quickly started fanning Spike with my left-wing to help him regain consciousness.
A few minutes later: long hallway
When Spike finally regained consciousness, I told him the situation and we left the library to find Dusk again.
As we headed back to the Guard Quarters, I couldn't help but recall what Dusk said to me earlier. 'Dah, everyone's heard about it. I mean, c'mon, an Element of Harmony was stolen, who wouldn't have heard about that?'
But from what Brave Star said, no-one here knows about the brake-in except for Luna, so how come Dusk knows about it when no-one else does. It's all a bit suspicious to me.
"So why are we looking for Dusk again?" Spike asked as we walked down a hallway towards the stairs that led up to the next floor of the castle.
I looked down at him. "Because something doesn't feel right. Dusk said everyone knew about the brake-in, but Brave Star just told me the only one in this castle who knew about it was Luna. So how come Dusk knows when no-one else dose?" I asked.
At that moment, Spike got what I was saying. "That fibber lied to us, didn't he?!" he said with an displeased looked on his face.
"Looks like it." I said before I looked away from Spike and faced forward. "He must be trying to hide something, but we'll get some answers once we find him. Trust me on that." I said as we approached the stairway.
Once we reached the top of the stairs, we soon noticed someone sitting by the wall facing away from us. Even though we couldn't see his face, I recognized him as Dusk by the colours of his coat and mane.
We couldn't see what he was doing, but his arms were moving as if he was holding something in his hooves.
Spike and I looked at each other before we returned our attention to Dusk. "Dusk! What are you doing?!" I called.
Dusk stopped what he was doing and quickly spun his head around to see us. With a slightly frightened look on his face, he stood up and galloped away from us.
"Hey!" I yelled before I looked down at Spike. "Quick, get on!" I said as I lowered my body down to him.
Spike quickly climbed onto my back and I raised my body back up. I then galloped after Dusk to catch him and find out what was going on.
As I chased after Dusk through the hallways, he made sharp turns and knocked stuff over to slow me down, kind of like how the thief tried to lose me back in Canterlot. Not of this would look good for him if I catch him.
But luck was on my side this time as Dusk reached a dead-end in the hallway and skidded to a stop.
Dusk spun around to see me coming down the hallway. I breathed heavily with exhaustion as I approached the trapped Unicorn. "Dusk…just calm down, mate…don't make this harder than it has to be." I said, trying to reason with him.
Dusk remained silent as he tried to find a way to escape. He tried opening one of the doors on the left-side of the hallway, but they were locked, as was the doors on the right-side. He thought of rushing past me, but he knew I'd catch him easily. At this point, he was cornered.
With nowhere else to go, I felt like I had caught him. "This was easier than last time." I thought as I got closer to him.
But at that moment, Dusk grinned deviously and his horn glowed. He then disappeared in a bright flash and reappeared behind me before galloping away from us.
Filled with surprise, Spike and I quickly spun our heads around to see him gallop around the corner at the other end of the hallway. "I hate it when they do that!" I said in annoyance.
Spike turned his head back around and looked at my face. "Quick Matt, get after him!" he said.
I looked at him and nodded before I spun around and rushed after Dusk.
After a minute or two, I caught back up with Dusk and continued to chase him through the hallways. But it didn't last long as he burst through a large pair of double-doors that led to a long kitchen filled with chef ponies.
They all watched him with shock as he jumped up on the long wooden table in the centre of the room and ran along it. Once he reached the end of the table, he leaped off it and burst through the exit doors.
I entered the kitchen to follow him, but instead of running along the table like he did, I ran along beside it. "Sorry! 'Cuse me! Nothing to worry about, we handle this all the time!" I said while running past the chefs.
I then rushed out through the exit doors and looked back at the chefs. "You're doing a great job, by the way." I said before I continued to chase Dusk.
-2 minutes later-
After catching up with Dusk again, I tried to think of a way to end this quicker. "If we keep this up, someone might get hurt or worse. I need to finish this fast. Maybe if I get close to him, I can tackle him to the ground." I thought before I decided to do exactly that.
I then started using all my strength to gallop faster so I could get closer to Dusk. It worked and I eventually got close enough to perform the tackle.
But before I could do it, a hoof poked out from around the corner up-ahead and Dusk tripped over it; making him fall face-first onto the floor.
I quickly skidded to a stop and looked back at Dusk to see him lying on the floor. "Ooooh…" he groaned in pain with his eyes closed.
I then looked over to the pony who tripped him up to see Night Thunder with a small smirk on his fast. "What's the hurry, Dusk?" he asked while looking down at Dusk.
I gave him a slightly surprised look. "Night Thunder? What're you doing here?" I asked.
Night Thunder looked at me and smiled. "Your wife sent me to check on you, you've been up here for a while and she was getting worried." he said before he turned his head around and looked down at Dusk again. "And by the looks of it, I'd say you found something out." He said.
"Well kind of, but how did you know I was trying to catch him?" I asked with wonder.
Night Thunder turned his head back around to face me. "I heard you chasing him from the floor below us. Plus, I overheard some disturbed chefs talking about a green Pegasus chasing one of the new guards. Figured it would be you." he said.
I then rubbed the back of my neck with my hoof. "Oh yeah, the kitchen thing…urr…I'm sorry about that." I said with a sheepish smile.
"Don't worry about it, those chefs have witnessed worse." Night stated before he decided to ask me a question. "So…what's Dusk in for?" he asked.
"I don't really know yet, but he's hiding something, he wouldn't have run away from me if he wasn't." I said as I approached Dusk's body.
"That means an interrogation is in order, right? So where are we gonna do it? In the dungeons?" Night asked as he walked up beside me.
I turned my head to face him. "No, we'll take him down to the throne room, the rest of your team are going to be there." I said before I walked around Dusk's body and wrapped his left-arm around the back on my neck. "Can you help me lift him up?" I asked.
Night Thunder nodded before walked around to the other side of Dusk's body and wrapped his right-arm around the back of his neck.
"Also, Dusk isn't the only guard with questions to answer." Spike stated as he climbed off my back.
Night then looked at him with confusion. "What? You mean someone else is in trouble? Who is it?" he asked.
I turned my head to face him. "I'll explain along the way. Now come on, let's get Dusk down to the throne room and meet up with the others." I said before I started wondering where to go from here. "Urr…which way to we go?" I asked.
Night pointed his hoof down the hallway. "There's a stairway that leads all the way down to the lobby. I'll guide us there, it's just down this hall and to the left." He said.
"Thank." I said before we both started carrying Dusk through the hallway with Spike following beside me.
Night and I struggled to hold Dusk up due to his large size "This guy's heavy." Night said.
"Well maybe he'll wake up before we get there. Then he can walk for himself and give us a break." I said as we continued to carry Dusk down the hallway to find the stairway Night mentioned.
Later that evening: Luna's throne room
After returning to the throne room with Dusk, who had regained consciousness along the way, I explained the situation to everyone and they didn't really take it very well.
Dusk was pacing left and right with an outranged look on his face. "So let me get this straight…you think I stole one of the Elements of Harmony? You think I'm the thief? That's ridiculous!" he said to me.
"I never said anything like that, I just think it's weird that you knew about the break-in when no-one else did." I stated.
Luna then took a step forward towards Dusk. "That does raise a lot of questions, Dusk. How did this information come to you?" she asked with a curious look on her face.
Dusk at her before he looked down at the ground. "…I was in Canterlot the yesterday and I overheard one of Princess Celestia's guards talking about. I didn't think it was true until I heard that these two were investigating it." He said as he pointed his hoof at me and Twilight.
"I see, and may I ask why you were in Canterlot yesterday?" Luna asked with a raised eye-brow.
Dusk hesitated to answer, but he knew he wouldn't be allowed to leave unless he answered our questions. So with a deep breath, he answered truthfully. "I was buying…my grandmother a Peace Lilly for her birthday." He said.
Then after a moments silence, Brave Star and the rest of his team burst out laughing. "Hahahaha! Are you serious?! Hahaha!" Bleak laughed hardly.
Dusk's cheeks went red as he shot them a firm look. "Hey, she's a very special part of my family, ok?! The last thing I want to do is upset her by not getting her a birthday gift!" he claimed strongly.
Brave Star kept laughing for a little more before he managed to calm himself down. "Ok, ok, sorry. It's just a funny image." He said with a small chuckle.
Dusk growled. "Oh really? Well I'll show you a funny image!" he said as he angrily stormed towards Brave.
Seeing this, I quickly took action by leaping in between them and spreading my wings out to keep them apart. "Hey, calm down! The last thing we need is a fight going on!" I said.
Dusk looked at me with the angry look still on his face. "Don't go thinking you can boss me around, kid! If it wasn't for you, this wouldn't be happening. You're the reason I'm in this mess!" he shouted before he grunted and held his head in pain. "Ahh!...You're making my headache worse than it already is!"
"Enough!" Luna shouted so loud that it echoed across the room.
We all looked over to her as she spoke. "I will not have such ruthless behaviour in my presence." Luna said before she looked at Dusk. "Dusk, you will take ten steps back away from them! Imminently!" she said firmly.
Dusk gave me and Brave a cold looked as he obeyed Luna's demand.
Once he took 10 steps back, I closed my wings and walked back over to Twilight. "That was too close. Are you alright?" Twilight whispered as I sat back down beside her.
I turned my head to face Twilight and gave her a small smile. "Yeah, I've had meaner things yelled at me before." I whispered before we returned our attention to Luna.
"Now Dusk, due to the fact that I saw you enter the castle with a Peace Lilly yesterday, you were telling the truth about your errand. But from what Matthew has told me, you were doing something else earlier today that you did not want anyone to know about, care to tell us what it was?" Luna asked with her eye-brow raised again.
Dusk shifted his eyes back and forth. "W-What? I don't know what you mean." He said.
I knew for a fact that he was lying, so I stepped forward to say it. "That's not true. If it was, how come you ran away?" I asked.
Dusk then looked over to me. "Because…urr…" he said as he tried to think of what to say. "…I thought you were someone else and I got spooked." He said.
"Oh come on, Dusk? You expect us to believe that? You never get spooked by anything." Sullen stated.
Dusk turned his head to face him. "Well, I…urr…"
"Dusk, may I remind you that you are not permitted to leave until this matter is solved. Now if you are indeed hiding something, I want you to tell us this instant. Your Princess demands it." Luna said in another firm voice.
Dusk looked at her face to see she wasn't in the mood for any of this. So with a hard sigh, he reached his hoof into his body armour. "I ran away because…I didn't want anyone to find…these." He said as he pulled out a necklace with objects hanging from it.
The objects were small and each one had a sharp point at the end of them. Some were white and some were black.
While the rest of us were looking at the necklace with wonder, Brave had a shocked look on his face. "Are those what I think they are?" he asked.
"What are they, Brave?" I asked without taking my eyes off the mysterious objects.
"Those are teeth and claws from dragons." Brave Star answered before he looked at Dusk with shame. "And each pair is from a different breed! I should know because I used to study dragons back in the academy." He said.
Twilight and I were slightly shocked by this. This meant Dusk had been hunting dragons and taking at least one tooth and claw from their corpses. Twilight and I quickly looked down at Spike to see his face was as pale as a sheet.
I stuck my left-wing out to block his sight. "Don't look, Spike!" I said slightly loud before I turned my head to face Twilight. "Twilight, I don't want him to see any more. Can you take him out and try to calm him down please?" I asked.
Twilight nodded. "I was thinking the same thing." she said before she stood and walked around to Spike. "Come on, Spike. You don't need to see this." she said as she lifted him onto her back with her magic.
With Spike on her back, Twilight quickly made her way towards the throne room's exit to take him out.
Once they were gone, I returned my attention to Luna and the guards. "But why does he have those? Has he been hunting dragons without us knowing?" Bleak asked.
"Looks that way, but I wouldn't be surprised. He's had a strong hatred towards dragons ever since his grandfather was killed by one. Isn't that right, Dusk?" Brave asked with a small glare in his eyes.
Dusk growled slightly before he looked at us. "I just felt like…they owed me! They killed my grandfather when I was just a colt! Dragons are the scum of the Earth and they deserve to be extinguished!" he said darkly.
I couldn't believe someone would have such a strong hatred towards dragons. I swear, if he came anywhere near Spike with harmful intensions, I'd break his arm.
"This doesn't look good or you, Dusk. Keeping secrets, lying about what you were doing, hunting dragons and stealing from their corpses! I used to think I knew you, but now I'm starting to think there's more about you I don't know. So answer me this…how can we believe anything else you say now?" Brave said coldly.
Dusk was about to argue before another strong pulse of pain when through his head. "Ahh…would you all stop this already?! My head's killing me!" he said loudly.
"And another thing, what is with the headache lately? Could it be a side-effect from using a large amount of magic? Mainly to, shall we say, open a strongly sealed vault!" Sullen said as he pointed his hoof at Dusk.
Dusk shot him a glare. "Shut up, that's ridiculous! I've had this headache for nearly three weeks and the Element was only stolen the other night!"
After hearing that, everyone was silent until Brave looked over to Sullen. "He's telling the truth, he has had this headache for a while." he said before he took a step closer to Dusk. "But that still doesn't prove anything." He said.
Dusk then looked at him suspiciously. "You're really determined to pin this all on me, but where were you on the night of the break-in? I didn't see you until the next morning. Care to explain that?!" he asked.
Brave shrugged. "Easy, I was in the training grounds while the rest of you were on your way to the Guard Quarters. I figured it was best to work-out for an extra hour. Maybe you should try it sometime, you'll gain more strength that way." He said.
While they were talking it out, I suddenly remembered something. The lock-pick with Brave Star's initials on it. I quickly took off my saddlebags and started searching through them until I found the lock-pick.
With the lock-pick in my hoof, I looked at it for a second before I looked over to Brave. "Hey Brave Star!" I called to get his attention.
Once he and everyone else looked over to me, I continued. "You said you were in the training grounds on the night of the break-in, right?" I asked.
Brave nodded. "Yeah, I was." he answered.
"So how come I found this at Canterlot Castle yesterday?" I said as I held out the lock-pick.
Everyone looked at it in confusion. "What is it?" Dusk asked as he eyed the lock-pick.
"It's a lock-pick I found at the scene of the crime. It has Brave's initials carved into it." I said.
The moment I said that, Brave's eyes grew wide. "Hey that's mine!" he said loudly; earning a gasp from everyone.
Once he realised what he said, he grew nervous and looked at everyone to see their suspecting faces. "Ok…I know what you're all thinking, and it's not true. I can explain this." Brave said, trying to remain calm.
"That's our proof! You're the thief! You just confessed it!" Dusk said with his face right in front of Brave's
Brave then pushed him away with his hoof. "No I'm not! You don't understand! That lock-pick was a gift from my brother, it went missing a while ago. I've been looking for it ever since." He explained.
"Yeah right, and you say I'm full of lies!" Dusk scoffed with a glare in his eyes.
Bleak then stepped forward. "No Dusk, it's true. He told me it was missing from his chest and he asked me to help him look for it." she stated.
Dusk turned his head around to face her. "Oh, so you mean to tell me someone broke into the Guard Quarters and stole Brave's lock-pick from his chest?" he asked with an unconvinced look.
Bleak nodded. "It looks that way. Trust me, Brave would never do anything like steal one of the Elements. He's innocent, I know he is." She said.
I was a little surprised and confused by this. "Wait…if what they're saying is true, that means the lock-pick wasn't any help at all. Someone just stole it from Brave's chest and used it to get into the vault room. Whoever the thief was, he was trying to make me think it was Brave Star. But why? Is he trying to throw me off his tracks by framing other ponies?" I thought as I rubbed my chin with my hoof.
I was then snapped out of my thought by the sound of the guards arguing. "Well this still doesn't prove it was me! I mean, yeah, I'm not the most honest pony in Equestria, but that doesn't mean I'm a thief!" Dusk stated strongly.
Luna then sighed loudly before she looked at me with desperation in her eyes. "Matthew, surly you know something that will end this conflict once and for all." She said.
With that, everyone turned their attention to me and I gulped hard. "Well…I don't understand much of it myself. I mean, the pony that broke into the vault was obviously a Unicorn but…the hooded pony I chased in the castle was a Pegasus. So either there's more than one pony involved, or we're dealing with a young Alicorn." I said, giving them the best information I knew at this point.
"…That's it? That doesn't help at all! What kind of detective are you?!" Dusk said loudly with an annoyed look in his eyes.
Luna shot him a firm look. "That was highly unnecessary, Dusk. He may not be a proper detective, but he is doing a better job than anyone else who has investigated so far. Besides, what he just said does help. He just clarified that the thief is both a horn and a pair of wings. Therefore, we cannot deem you as the thief until more evidence is found." She said.
Dusk understood what she was saying and looked down at the floor. "…Oh…o-of course…thank you, your highness." He said.
Luna then put her hoof up. "However, it seems that you have been keeping secrets from both me and your team members for a while now. This type of action cannot go without consequences." She said before she placed her hoof back down on the floor. "Dusk, I hereby suspend you for the rest of the month. You will not be allowed to participate in any training exercises, instead you will assist the messengers and report all news to me at the end of each day. Am I clear?" she asked.
Dusk couldn't deny that he felt a little crushed by this news, but he knew this day would come eventually and accepted it. "Yes, you're highness…I understand." He said with his head hanging.
"Good, now dismiss, all of you." Luna ordered.
With that, Brave and his team turned around and made their way towards the room's exit. As they walked past me, Brave approached me. "Hey, do you mind if I take my lock-pick back? It means a lot to me." he said.
"Huh?...oh yeah, sure." I said before I handed his lock-pick over to him.
"Thanks." Brave said before he followed his team out of the throne room.
I was about to follow them until I was stopped by Luna. "Not you, Matthew. I want to speak to you." she said.
I didn't know what she wanted, but it was probably about my investigation. Maybe she upset that I caused a bit of a rouse between Dusk and the others.
Once the guards had left the room, I gave Luna a look of sorrow. "Luna, listen…I'm sorry if I caused a lot of trouble today, I was only trying to solve this case the best way I could. I didn't mean for it to go this badly." I said.
Luna gave me a friendly smile. "I know, Matthew. I just wanted to talk to you about the case." She said before he smile went away. "Now from what I have learned today, it looks as though the thief is obviously trying to make it look like someone else committed the crime." She said.
I nodded in agreement. "Yeah, I'm starting to think the same thing." I said.
"This could also mean that any clues you have found so far might be leading you down a false trail." Luna said before she gave me a concerned look. "You and your friends must be careful, Matthew. This thief is trying to fool with our minds." She said.
I then smiled comfortably at Luna. "Hey, don't worry, we will. The Elements are hidden and the thief probably doesn't even know they're gone yet. We will catch him, Luna, I promise you that." I said.
Luna then took a moment before she returned my smile. "Alright, Matthew. Thank you for coming today. I hope you and Twilight Sparkle have a safe journey back to Ponyville." She said kindly.
At that moment, I remembered Twilight and Spike were waiting for me outside the throne room. "Oh god, I better go see how Spike's doing, he didn't look very well before." I said before I turned around and made my way towards the exit. "See ya, Luna. I'll let you know if I find out anything else." I said.
Luna waved goodbye to me as she watched me leave. "Goodbye, Matthew. Maybe we'll see each other again soon." She said with the kind smile still on her face.
As I kept walking, I looked back at her and smiled. "Yeah, hopefully." I called before I stopped in front of the main double-doors that led into the castle's lobby.
I then opened one of them before I looked back at Luna and waved goodbye to her. After that, I walked out of the room and closed the door behind me.
Once I was out of the throne room, I saw Twilight and Spike sitting at the top of the stairs and I walked over to them. Twilight heard my hoof-steps and turned her head around to see me. "Matt, what happened in there? Is one of them the thief?" she asked as she stood up onto her hooves.
I shook my head. "No, it was all waste, Twilight. Turns out the lock-pick was stolen from Brave's chest a while ago and he's been looking for it ever since. That officially crosses him off the list." I said.
"And what about Dusk?" Spike asked as he turned his head around to face me.
I looked down at him. "He's not the thief ether. At least, I think he isn't. He has a dodgy behaviour, but there are a lot of things that don't add up to him being the thief. But that doesn't mean we won't be keeping a close eye on him." I said.
Spike stood up and turned around to face me. "And I should think so too. I mean, what kind of pony hunts dragons and treats their bodies with such disrespect? It makes me sick just thinking about it." he said with his arms crossed.
"I know, Spike, it's not right. But don't worry, he got what was coming to him. Princess Luna made sure of that." I stated.
"So what do we do now, Matt?" Twilight asked me.
I then returned my attention to her. "To be honest, I think it's time we call it a day and go home. Besides, we've done all we can here." I said.
Twilight and Spike then looked at each other and decided that I was right. There wasn't much more we could do at this point. Plus, they were getting a little tied. They looked at me again and Twilight nodded. "Ok Matt, let's go say goodbye to the Princess." She said.
I nodded in agreement before we walked up to the throne room doors and Twilight opened one of them with her magic. We then went back into the throne room to say goodbye to Luna one last time.
Later that day: Sugar Cube Corner
After saying out goodbyes to Luna and returning to Ponyville, the three of us decided to spend the rest of the day with our friends at Sugar Cube Corner.
We were all sitting around a large table as we talked amongst each other. "So how did the investigation go at Princess Luna's place?" Applejack asked.
I was drinking a bottle of soda with a straw as I looked over to her. I took the straw out of my mouth to answer her. "Well it could've gone better, I'll tell you that for free." I said before I went back to drinking my soda.
"Why? What happened?" Fluttershy asked curiously.
Twilight looked at her. "I wasn't with Matt most of the time, but he said Dusk was acting strange and it led him to think he was the thief." She told her.
Suddenly, Pinkie Pie gasped in shock. "Dusk did it?! I knew it! Oh why did I fool myself into thinking he was innocent?!" she cried as she hid her face in her hooves.
"No Pinkie, he didn't do it. It was just a misunderstanding." Twilight clarified.
Pinkie then removed her hooves from her face and smiled simply. "Oh, well that's good to know." She said calmly as she rested her arms on the table.
We gave her a weird look before we shook it off. "Anyway, then Matt figured out something else. Remember that lock-pick he found when we were investigating in Canterlot yesterday?" Twilight asked.
"You mean that one he found at the crime scene with those engravings on it?" Rarity asked.
Twilight looked at her and nodded. "Matt found out who it belonged to. It belonged to Brave Star, Princess Luna's new Captain." She said.
Pinkie then gasped loudly again. "Brave Star?! No, not him. Anyone but him! Oh, I'm such a poor judge of character!" she cried as she hid her face in her hooves again.
"No Pinkie! It wasn't him either! The real thief sneaked into his room and stole his lock-pick to try and frame him." Twilight explained.
Pinkie then once again removed her hooves from her face and smiled simply. "Oh what a relief, I was scared for a moment there." she said as she rested her arms on the table again.
After shaking off the awkwardness again, Rainbow Dash looked at us. "Ok, so we can cross off the lock-pick thing, but what other leads do you guys have?" she asked.
I then removed the straw from my mouth again to answer her. "There's only two other clues we found. The piece of Ebony metal, which is the same metal used to make the armour for Luna's guards, and the golden mark on the vault room wall." I said.
"Do you know what made the mark?" Rainbow Dash asked with a raised eye-brow.
"Jeff and I investigated that and discovered that it was made by a guard helmet. From what Blaze Horn told me, he fought the thief on the night of the break-in and bashed his head against the wall. The thief must've been wearing the helmet and some of the metal scrapped off on the wall." I said.
Just then, Applejack gasped slightly. "wait a sec, Matt. I just figured somethin' out. There's a link between the two clues. They both involve royal guards. This might mean that the thief is a royal guard, how else would they've gotten access to the castle and everyone's things?" she said.
I thought about what she said and it did make scene. The clues did have a link and they each pointed to a guard. Also, a guard from Canterlot or Luna's castle would have no problem getting into any of the two castles, they'd just simply walk in unnoticed. "You could have a point there, Applejack." I said before I put the straw back into my mouth and continued my drink.
I then drank the last few drops of the soda before I took the straw out of my mouth again and held the bottle up in my hoof. "Empty." I said out-loud before I looked at the others. "I'll be back in a minute, I'm just gonna get another bottle." I said before I stood up and walked away from the table.
While I was getting another drink from the counter, Twilight quickly looked at Rarity. "Rarity, can I talk to you in private for a moment?" she asked.
Rarity nodded. "Of course, Twilight." she said before she and Twilight stood up and walked over to the other side of the room. "What's troubling you, dare?" she asked.
Twilight had a nervous look on her face as she looked over to me and then back to Rarity. "Well…you know Matt's birthday is only a few weeks away and…well…I need your help with something. It involves my gift to him." she said.
Rarity wondered why Twilight was so nervous, but she didn't ask and nodded to say she understood. "Alright, what is it you need from me?" she asked.
Twilight then brought her mouth to Rarity's ear and whispered her answer to her. Once she was done, Rarity gasped loudly and gave Twilight a shocked look. "Twilight Sparkle!" she said loudly.
Afraid of being too noticed, Twilight quickly covered Rarity's mouth with her hoof. "Shhh! I know it's shocking, but Matt's my husband and…well…I think he'll really like this." She said with a weak smile before she removed her hoof and placed it back down on the floor.
Rarity was still full of shock, but she took a few deep breaths to calm down. "Are you sure about this, Twilight?" she asked.
Twilight nodded. "Positive." She said before she looked over to me talking to Mr Cake. "Trust me, he'll like it." she said with another weak smile.
When she returned her sight to Rarity, she saw the small smile on her face. "Alright Twilight, I'll do it for you." she said.
Twilight gave her a warm smile before they shared a small hug. "Thanks Rarity, this means a lot." She said.
They then separated and Rarity returned her smile. "Think nothing of it, Twilight. In fact, I always wondered what it would be like making that type of clothi-"
"Shhh! Not out-loud, Matt's right over there." Twilight said as she pointed her hoof at me.
Rarity looked over to me before she looked at Twilight again. "Of course." She whispered before they both quietly made their way back to the table to re-join the others.
Once Twilight and Rarity were back in their seats, I returned to the table with no knowledge of what they were talking about. "Sorry I took so long, Mr Cake was having a hard time finding my faverate kind. So, what were you guys talking about while I was gone." I asked.
"Nothing." Twilight and Rarity said at the same time before they went back to drinking their milkshakes.
I gave them both a look of suspicion. The only time someone says 'nothing' is usually means they're up to something. But I figured I've done too much of the detective thing today and just shrugged it off before I started drinking my soda through the straw.
But as things finally began to settle, I couldn't help but think about the thief and how cunning he is.
He's trying to throw us off his tracks by framing royal guards. And if he is a guard himself, which one is he?...And which Princess does he seemingly work for?
All I knew was that he was still out there and it probably wouldn't be long until I saw him again.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
Pony News: Boy, where do I start. A lot of Season 4 news came out while I was on my break, too much for me to put on this one chapter.
Well, I guess the most important news I want to share is that Discord will get his very own song. Most likely in the Season 4 premiere titled 'Princess Twilight Sparkle' and yes, it's a 2-parter.
Also, I heard someone else (besides from Discord) will get a singing debut in S4. Hopefully Spike for once :P
New villains with issues will be introduced.
More Rainbow Dash and Scootaloo stuff.
Loads of things! It's just so exciting :D
So be sure to get comfy on the couch, get a good drink, and watch the premiere in action. And for those who have to watch it on the computer (like myself), do the same, only on a chair in front of a desk XD
Anyway, please remember to review.
Next chapter will be up as soon as possible and I hope you enjoy the first two episodes of Season 4.
51. Chapter 51: New Problems
Hi everypony and welcome back to another chapter. Sorry once again for the delay, I've been busy with Christmas stuff and trying out my new games.
Anyway, I've watched Season 4 since it started and it looks good so far. Discord was as awesome as ever (Especially in the latest episode), a nice CMC and Rarity song, and it looks like things are just getting started.
What was the locked box at the end of the second episode? What's inside? Where are the keys to unlock it? Only time will tell. Let's just pray to God this isn't the last Season of the series.
Anyway, enjoy the chapter. A friend of mine has been dying for this one.
(Warning: Long chapter, but worth it)
Chapter 51: Best Birthday Ever
It's been 4 weeks since we investigated Luna's castle and we haven't found any other leads since.
The only clues we had left was the golden mark on the Canterlot vault-room wall and the peace of Ebony armour, which had very little information.
However, they did point to a guard doing it, but they didn't tell us which one. There are probably over 100 guards in both castles and any of them could be the thief or thieves.
Luna had been keeping a close eye on Dusk during his suspension. From what she's told us in her letters, he hasn't done anything out of the ordinary…so far.
Everything in Canterlot has been as calm as ever. The news of the break-in became old and everyone up there went soon back to their natural life-styles as if it never happened. Nether the less, Celestia has taken all precautions to assure it doesn't happen again.
Many of us have wondered why the thief hasn't attempted to break into the castle again. He seemed so determined to steal all the Elements, but now it's so though he's disappeared completely.
Either he doesn't want to risk doing it a second time in case he gets caught, or he's binding his time until the right moment.
But right now, Twilight was trying to convince me to take a break from the investigation. The reason being my birthday was just one day away and she didn't want me to worry about the thief on my special day.
In fact, Twilight and our friends have been more focused on my birthday than the investigation lately. I guess I couldn't say anything against them for caring about me, but you'd think they would show a bit of concern for the problem-at-hoof too, wouldn't you?
But I'm one to talk, even though I was still worried out the investigation, I couldn't help but grow excited for tomorrow.
I've been getting cards and presents in the mail, some of the ponies in town say 'happy birthday' to me when I walk by, and I even got a letter from my parents saying they were coming to celebrate the occasion with us.
Yep, I had a feeling tomorrow was going to be a good day.
Ponyville library
It was nearly midnight and I had once again locked myself in the guest room so I could read Grimerd's journal without Twilight barging in and finding out about it.
I sat in front of the desk with the journal in my hooves. The light from the small lamp helped me see the pages so I could read them.
"Words of an Alicorn – page 7
It was not easy, but I finally took my first steps out of the tower and into the open world. The feeling of the grass under my hooves was enchanting, the wing in my face was wonderful, and there was so much space where I could wonder.
I felt as free as a Phoenix, I could do many things I could never do within the tower. I could take off into the sky and travel as far as I wanted to without turning back, I could perform magic without the risk of damaging my belongings, I could do absolutely anything.
All this magnificence, and all I had done was step outside the tower.
Now my dream has finally come true, for not only did I take my first steps out of the tower, I took my first steps into the city I have dreamed of entering since I was a young colt…Canterlot.
For once in my life, I do not feel trapped. And if my father has not intentions of returning, then he shouldn't. Where ever he is in the world, I hope he stays there for good!"
*Knock, knock* "Matt? Are you in there?" Spike's voice said on the other side of the door before I heard the doorknob giggle. "Why's the door locked? Are you ok?" he asked.
Panicking, I quickly closed the journal and flew it back to its hiding spot in the bookcase before I shot towards the door. The moment I landed in front of it, I unlocked the door and opened it to see Spike. "Hi…what's up?" I asked, acting innocent.
Spike looked at me with confusion. "Why did you have the door locked? What is it you do in here that you don't want anyone else to see?" he said as he walked past me to enter the room.
"Nothing, I was just having a few minutes to myself. I did it all the time back in England." I stated as I watched him scan the room.
Spike then turned his head around to face me. "Did you always have the door locked?" he asked with a raised eye-brow.
I grew slightly nervous by that question before I came up with an excuse. "No, mostly because I didn't have a lock on my door. But if I did, I probably would've locked it just the same." I said, hoping he wouldn't suspect anything.
As Spike gave me a suspecting look, I smiled largely and started to sweat. I just hoped he wouldn't turn around and notice the journal in its hiding place amount the other books.
After a moment of silence, Spike decided to give up and walked past me to leave the room. "…Ok then…" he said as he made his way towards his basket.
Once Spike had climbed into his basket to go to sleep with Jeff and Peewee beside him, I exhaled in relief before I yawned loudly. "*Yawn*…I think Spike's got the right idea there." I said tiredly to myself.
With that, I walked over to my bed to see Twilight sleeping soundly on her side of it. The sight of this brought a warm smile onto my face before I pulled the covers back with my hoof and got into the bed beside her.
After pulling the covers over my body, I leaned down to Twilight's head and gave her a gentle kiss on the cheek. "Goodnight, Twilight." I whispered before I lied my head down on the pillow and closed my eyes.
But before I could let myself go to sleep, I heard Twilight wake up. "Huh? Matt?" I heard her say tiredly.
I opened my eyes before I rolled my head over on the pillow to face Twilight. She was still resting her head on the pillow, but her eyes were open slightly. "Sorry, did I wake you?" I asked quietly.
Twilight nodded slightly. "Yeah…have you just gotten into bed? What time is it?" she said before she weakly looked over to the clock on the wall and saw the time. "Matt, it's nearly midnight, what have you been doing?" she asked as she looked at my face again.
Even though I felt like telling her the truth, I didn't want to worry her about journal, so I told her the same excuse I told Spike. "I was in the guest room again…thinking. You know, having some time to myself?" I said.
"Are you still concerned about the thief?" Twilight asked.
Despite how long it's been since we started the investigation, I still felt a bothered by the fact that the thief was still out there. "…kind of." I answered.
Twilight sighed. "Look Matt, I know you what you're going through. Trust me, I feel just as concerned as you do. But we shouldn't worry about that at the moment." She said before she nudged up closer to me and wrapped her arm around me. "Especially when your birthday's tomorrow. I want you look forward to it with no worries what-so-ever." She said with a sweet smile.
I looked into her eyes and returned her smile. "I know, Twilight…and…I guess I can take a short break from the investigation." I said before I rolled my over on the pillow until I was facing the ceiling.
Twilight's sweet smile turned into a pleased one. "That's good to hear." She said before she gave me a small kiss on my cheek and closed her eyes. "*Yawn*…Goodnight, Matt." she said as she let herself fall back to sleep.
"Goodnight, Twi." I said while I was still looking up at the ceiling.
As Twilight fell back to sleep with her arm resting on my stomach, I closed my eyes and let myself relax in the comfort of the bed. It wasn't long before I joined Twilight in a peaceful slumber.
The next morning: Carousel Boutique
After luckily waking up before me, Twilight sneaked out of library and made her way to Rarity's house. She had been planning something with her for a while now and she made sure I knew nothing about it.
Twilight trotted up to Rarity's front-door before she knocked on it with her hoof. A moment later, the door opened to reveal Rarity in her night-gown. "Twilight? What are you doing here so early?" she asked out of surprise.
Twilight was silent for a second before she answered. "I'm here for the…*looks left and right*…you know." She said in a whisper.
Rarity instantly knew what she was talking about. "Oh…of course, come on in." she said as she stepped aside to let Twilight pass.
"Thanks." Twilight said before she walked past Rarity and entered the Boutique.
Once Twilight was inside, Rarity closed the door and turned around to look at her. "isn't it a little early for this? I mean, what if Matthew wonders where you are?" she asked.
Twilight then stopped in the middle of the room before she turned around to face her. "I just thought I should pick it up now so I wouldn't have to later. And don't worry about Matt, he's still asleep." She stated.
"But what if he wakes up?" Rarity asked.
"I took care of that too. Before I left, I used a Nap Spell on him, it should keep him asleep for another hour or two. Giving me just enough time to come here, pick up the package, and get back before anyone's the wiser." Twilight said with a small smirk on her face.
Rarity titled her head. "You used a spell on your own husband?" she said with a raised eye-brow.
After hearing the questioning sound in her voice, Twilight's smirk went away. "What else could I do to make sure he wouldn't find out, Rarity? I want this to be perfect for him. I've been planning this for a long time, you know that." She said.
Rarity then patted the air with her hoof. "Alright, I understand." She said before she placed her hoof back on the floor. "So should we see it?" she asked.
Twilight nodded. "Yes please." She answered.
With that, Rarity walked past Twilight and made her way towards the stairs that led to the next floor. Twilight followed behind as they both went up the stairs.
Once they got to the top, they walked through the hallway until they stopped in front of the door to Rarity's working room. Rarity used her magic to open the door before they both walked inside and closed the door behind them
Twilight then noticed one of Rarity's dressing dummies at the other end of the room, it was covered by a large red sheet. Obviously it was displaying her order and the sheet was to keep it from getting dusty.
Twilight stayed in the middle of the room as Rarity walked up beside the hidden dummy and turning around to face her. "Now Twilight, are you ready to see what you requested?" Rarity asked.
Twilight didn't waste any time and nodded. "Yes." She answered.
"Very well then." Rarity said before her horn glowed and the blue magic gripped onto the red sheet. "Behold!...My newest masterpiece!" she said with a smile as she pulled off the sheet; revealing the outfit to Twilight.
Once she saw it, Twilight's eyes widened and she let out a small gasp. But her surprised look didn't last long as it was replaced with a pleased smile. "Rarity…it's wonderful! It's exactly what I expected it to look like." She said as she walked up to the dummy.
Rarity was more than delighted to hear this. "Do you really think so? I've never made something such as this before. To be honest, I thought it was a little plain." She admitted.
Twilight looked at her and gave her a kind smile. "Rarity, I love it, just like how I love the dress you made for me on my birthday. And I must say, for your first time making one of these things, you did an excellent job." She said.
Rarity smiled warmly at her. "Why thank you, Twilight. I just hope Matthew's likes it all the same." She said.
Twilight laughed a little. "I'm sure he will." She said before she returned Rarity's smile. "Thank you so much for making this, I know it must've put you through a bit of trouble." She said.
Rarity shook her head. "Not at all, Twilight. In fact, I considered it to be a worthy challenge for my talent." she said with a small smirk.
"Well I'm glad you enjoyed yourself, Rarity." Twilight said before they shared a small laugh.
Once they stopped laughing, Rarity put on a serious face. "Now on to the real task, what are we going to do about Matthew's surprise?" she asked.
"I'll explain it all later, first we need to get the others. Quick, go get yourself ready before we run out of time." Twilight said.
Rarity nodded before she quickly galloped out of the room to prepare herself for the day; leaving Twilight alone with her new outfit.
Half-an-hour later: The library
While I was still asleep in the bed, I rolled over to the left only to have a light shine through my eye-lids.
The bright light was disturbing my sleep and I moaned in annoyance. "Twilight…turn off that lamp, will ya? It's too bright." I groaned with my eyes still closed.
After getting no reply, I slowly opened my eyes to see the light wasn't coming from the lamb, it was coming from the window. That's when I realised it was the sunlight shining in my eyes.
I leaned up on the bed before I stretched my arms out and yawned. "*Yawn*…Oooh…how long was I asleep for?" I asked out-loud.
After stretching a bit more, I got out of the bed and looked around for Twilight. "Twilight?...Twi?...Where are you?" I asked. Once again, I got no reply.
I wondered where she was before I decided to ask either Spike, Jeff, or Peewee. Unfortunately, they weren't in their basket. "Huh…must be downstairs." I said to myself.
I then walked over to the top of the stairs before I made my way down to the living-room.
Once I got to the bottom of the stairs, I looked around the living-room only to see no-one was here either.
I was starting to wonder where anyone was until I heard a noise in in the kitchen. "Someone's in the kitchen." I said to myself before I walked over to the kitchen's entrance and saw Jeff & Peewee standing in front of the fridge.
"How many times do I have to keep telling you, Jeff? Don't go in the fridge! If Matt sees what's in there, it'll ruin everything!" Peewee said firmly to Jeff.
"All the food's in there and I'm hungry! What am I supposed to eat if I can't go in the fridge?" Jeff asked with an irritated tone.
"I think we have some birdseed left in the cupboard over there." Peewee answered.
"Oh no, no, no, no! I am not, repeat, NOT eating that dry stuff again. I may be a bird, but I don't eat like one. C'mon, Matt's not gonna see anything, he's still asleep in bed." Jeff said.
I wondered what they were talking about, so I walked up beside the two birds and looked down at them. "I'm not gonna see what?" I asked; making Jeff and Peewee yelp in fright.
Jeff quickly spun around and looked up at me. "Oh!...H-Hey Matt…urr…so…how did you sleep?" he asked with a nervous smile on his face.
I raised my eye-brow at him. "…fine…" I answered before I got to the real issue. "Now what was that you were saying about the fridge? It sounded like you said something was in there, something you don't want me to see." I said.
Jeff and Peewee shifted their eyes to the fridge before they looked back up to me. "What? No, no, no, there's nothin' in the fridge. Nothin' but…urr…left-over salad…a fresh daisy sandwich…some apples maybe…" he said in a way that sounded like he was struggling on what to say.
I continued to stare down at him with a raised eye-brow. "…Uh-huh, well I need to go in there anyway, I'm really hungry for some reason." I said before I reached my hoof towards the fridge door-handle.
But before I could grab it, Jeff flew up right in front of my face. "No! You can't!" he said loudly.
I was slightly surprised by his loud tone. "Jeff, what's wrong with you? Why can't I go in the fridge?" I asked.
Jeff then landed back down on the floor and looked up at me again. "Because…urr…because it's the middle of September and its cold in here. The last thing we need is to make things colder by opening the fridge." He said before he laughed nervously.
Peewee face-winged himself over Jeff's unusual excuse.
I just stared down at Jeff with confusion. "It's not like I'm gonna leave the door open, you know. I just need to open it for a second, what's the big deal?" I asked.
Before he could answer, Jeff suddenly noticed something behind me. He saw Twilight tip-toeing past the kitchen's entrance with a flat pick box hovering beside her.
Twilight looked directly at him and froze in place, unable to move due to the fear of me hearing her.
Jeff knew he had to keep me from noticing her and looked back up at me. "What's the deal? The deal is…urr…" he said before he looked back over to Twilight; earning only a shrug from her.
I noticed Jeff wasn't focusing on me anymore and I wondered what had caught his attention. "What?" I asked before I started to turn my head around.
Jeff quickly looked back up at me and panicked before he flew up in front of my head and grabbed my face with his wings. He then forced my head back around to face him. "The deal is…it's your birthday, dude! Happy birthday!" he said with a large smile on his face.
He then glanced back over to Twilight to see her tip-toe away until she was out of sight.
Once she was gone, Jeff released my face and dropped back down to the floor. I stared at him more confusion. "Urr…thanks, Jeff." I said.
"So how old are you now, buddy?" Peewee asked me.
I turned my attention to him. "Seven-teen." I answered.
"Wow, that's a big number. You're practically a stallion now." Jeff said with a small smile on his face.
"He's always been a stallion in my eyes, a very handsome one too." A female voice said behind me.
I turned my head around and saw Twilight standing next to the entrance. She didn't have the box anymore, implying that she had hidden it away. I smiled at her. "Hey Twilight, where have you been? I've been looking for you since I got up." I stated.
Twilight walked up to me and returned my smile. "Sorry, I was in the other room studying and I mustn't have heard you come down." She said before her simple smile turned into a warm one. "Happy birthday, Matt." she said sweetly.
I smiled warmly back. "Thanks, Twi." I said before we shared a small hug and Twilight kissed me on the cheek.
We then broke the hug and smiled at each other again. "So…where's Spike, isn't he going to see me open my cards?" I asked, wondering where he was.
Twilight grew nervous and shifted her eyes left and right. "Spike?...he's…urr…running an errand for me, he'll be back soon." She said before s nervous smile came on her face.
My ears dropped slightly. "Oh…ok, we'll just wait until he gets back then." I said before I gave her a small smile. "Why is everyone acting so weird today, it's as if they've forgotten my birthday or something." I thought.
Twilight then walked past me and over to a cupboard. "How about I make us some breakfast in the meantime? Sound good?" she asked while looking back at me.
"Yeah, ok." I said before I walked over to the kitchen table and sat down in front of it. "But if you're planning on going into the fridge, you're gonna have a hard time doing it. Jeff and Peewee have been blocking the way all morning." I said.
Twilight smirked before she looked over to Jeff & Peewee and winked at them to say they did a good job, they both winked back.
Twilight then returned her attention to me. "Don't worry, we have plenty more food in the cupboard." She said before she opened the cupboard with her magic. "Want some tined-fruit?" she asked.
I gave her a small smile. "That's sounds nice." I said.
With that, Twilight happily used her magic to grab the tin of fruit and pulled it out of the cupboard. She prepared both breakfast and her own before she sat by the table with me and we ate together.
Meanwhile: Sugar Cube Corner
Spike was standing outside Sugar Cube Corner with the rest of the mane 6. Applejack walked out of the cupcake-shaped building and closed the door behind her before she looked at the others. "Ok y'all, everything's set for the big surprise." She said.
Spike was holding a clipboard in his left-hand and a quill in his right. "Great." He said before he ticked off something on the clipboard. "Now all we need is cake." He said.
"It's at the library, Twilight said she would take Matthew out somewhere so we could go in and get it." Rarity stated.
"Oooh, this is so exciting. I can't believe it's finally Matthew's birthday today! I've been waiting for this even since his mom told me about it last month." Pinkie Pie said with excitement as she hopped up and down on the spot.
"Me too, I hope he likes what we've prepared for him in there." Fluttershy said as she looked over to the front-door of Sugar Cube Corner.
"Of course he will, Fluttershy. Matthew may have told us he wasn't much of a party-pony, but that doesn't mean he won't like what we have for him." Rarity stated with a confident smile.
Rainbow Dash then walked up beside Fluttershy. "Besides, I think he meant he didn't like big noisy parties filled with a bunch of ponies he barely knows. This'll be a small party with just us and possibly his parents." She said.
Suddenly, Pinkie Pie popped up beside Fluttershy and wrapped her arm around her shoulders. "Don't worry, Fluttershy. I'm totally sure Mattie will totally love this party! And if he doesn't, well, there's always next year." she said with a large smile.
"I guess so." Fluttershy said quietly before Pinkie released her from her grasp.
Applejack then stepped forward. "Alright everypony, we need to focus on getting' a hold of that cake before Matt finds it." she said.
Rarity nodded in agreement. "I agree, but we can't all go get it, what if Matthew's still there and he spots one of us?" she asked.
Applejack thought about what she said and realized she was right. "Hmm…ya make a good point there. I think at least two of us should go get it, now who's it gonna be?" she asked.
At that moment, they all stared directly at her. Applejack looked at everyone in confusion before she got the message. "*Sigh*…I guess I'm doin' it, now who's gonna come with me?" she asked.
They were all silent of a moment before Pinkie Pie walked up beside her. "I'll go with you! It'll be like we're spies trying to take something from a super-secret base without anyone seeing us." she said with a simple smile.
Applejack looked at her weirdly. "Urr…I don't exactly know what ya just said there, but sure, you can come with me." she said with a weak smile.
Pinkie smiled with joy. "Great! I'll get my disguise!" she said before she shot inside Sugar Cube Corner.
Everyone was silent as they looked at each other with awkwardness.
A few minutes later: Library
After finishing out breakfast, Twilight and I went into the living room to find more books about spells. For some reason, Twilight wanted me to choose my next set of spells to perform with my Horned Helmet.
"So why are we doing this again?" I asked while lying on a cushion in front of Twilight who was also lying on a cushion.
Twilight smiled at me. "I thought it would be a good idea to be prepared. You know, for your next magic lesson." She answered before she looked down at the open book between us. "Now let's see…ummm…oh, how about Transformation Spells?" she asked.
"Transformation Spells? Are you sure I'm ready to start those? I mean, I'm technically still I Beginner." I stated.
Twilight looked at me again and gave me a soft smile. "You'll do fine, Matt. I started practising Transformation Spells when I was just a filly." She said.
"Yeah, but magic is your special talent, Twilight. I'm not as good as you." I said.
"Maybe not, but I'm sure if you practise hard enough, you might grow to be a talented Sorcerer one day." Twilight said as she placed her hoof on my shoulder.
I sighed with doubt. "I wouldn't put so much hope into it, Twilight. Celestia knows I'm not cut out to for the magic stuff. If I was, I would've been turned into a Unicorn when I first arrived here. Instead, I got these two." I said as I stuck out my wings and showed them to Twilight.
Twilight then closed her eyes half-way. "Did you pull yourself down this much when you lived in England?" she asked.
I closed my wings before I answered. "…no…" I said while shifting my eyes left and right.
-Meanwhile-
Outside the library, Applejack and Pinkie Pie were tip-toeing up to the kitchen window. Once they reached it, they stopped and faced each other. "Alright Pinkie, Twilight's kitchen should be right behind this here window. Now we need to do this quietly so Matt doesn't notice us." Applejack said.
"Right." Pinkie responded with a nod.
"But first, there's one thing I need ya to do." Applejack said with her eye-lids half closed.
"What's that?" Pinkie Pie asked curiously.
"Take off that dang disguise!" Applejack answered firmly.
Pinkie was wearing a long light-brown coat, a dark-brown hat, a pair of big glasses, and black fake mustache. "Why? I told you I was gonna get my disguise back at Sugar Cube Corner." She stated.
"I thought you were jokin' 'bout that." Applejack said.
"Joking? No way! I always wear a disguise on top secret missions. My fans demand it." Pinkie said with a small smirk on her face.
"What fans?" Applejack asked with a raised eye-brow.
"Those ones." Pinkie answered as she turned around to reveal a bunch of air-fans standing behind her.
Applejack looked at her weirdly before she shook off the awkwardness. "Anyway, here's the plan. I'm gonna slowly open the window and hoist you through it. Once you're inside, open the fridge without makin' any noise and grab the cake. Then climb back out and we'll both head back to Sugar Cube Corner. Got it?" she asked.
Pinkie Pie nodded. "Got it." she said.
"Alright, here we go." Applejack said before she turned to face the kitchen window and reached her left-hoof up to it. Once she had hold of the window, she slowly opened until it was wide open.
She then carefully peeked through the entrance of the widow and look around the library.
"See anypony?" Pinkie Pie asked.
Applejack then spotted me and Twilight in the front room. Luckily, I was facing the other way from them. "Yeah, Matt and Twilight's in the livin' room." she answered.
Pinkie Pie then grew a worried look. "*Gasp* Quick, get away before Matt sees you." she said.
"Don't worry, he's facin' the other way. As long as Twilight keeps him distracted, he won't see us." Applejack said before she pulled her head away from the window and looked at Pinkie. "Ready to go in?" she asked.
Pinkie gave her a strong smile and nodded. "You bet!" she said with confidence.
"Alrighty then, get over her and climb up." Applejack said before she lowered her body to let Pinkie climb up.
Pinkie Pie then walked over to Applejack before she climbed up onto her back. With a grunt, Applejack lifted her up until she was at the same level as the window. "Ok AJ, just a little bit to the left." Pinkie said.
Applejack struggled, but she managed to move to the left so Pinkie could get through the window properly.
Pinkie Pie then examined the line-up between her and the window. "Now just a teeny bit to the right." Pinkie Pie said.
Applejack did as she said and stepped to the right.
Pinkie examined the line-up again. "Ok, ok, now just a teeny tiny bit-"
"Pinkie, can ya get a move on already? My back's startin' to hurt." Applejack groaned while struggling to keep herself standing.
Pinkie looked down at her and smiled simply. "Ok, that's good enough." She said before she leaped off Applejack's back, through the window, and into the library.
Once she did, Applejack breathed deeply to try and regain her strength. "That pony's heavier than she looks." She said to herself.
-Meanwhile-
While I was looking through some more Spell Books, Twilight was still lying in front of me when she suddenly noticed a coated pony enter the kitchen from the window.
It didn't take long for her to realize it was Pinkie Pie in another one of her silly disguises. Twilight stared at her in confusion until Pinkie eventually saw her.
With their eyes locked onto each other, Twilight mouthed the words. "What are you doing?"
Pinkie Pie understood the words she said and pointed her hoof at the fridge. "Getting the cake." She mouthed.
Twilight also understood her words and knew what she had to do, she'd have to try and distract me for as long as possible. "Urr…so Matt, found any interesting spells you'd like to learn?" Twilight asked.
I looked at her and shook my head. "Not yet, there's not many spells I understand in this book." I said before I looked back down at the book. "Take this one for instance. The Clairvoyance Spell? What the hay does that mean?" I asked.
"The Clairvoyance Spell is a spall used to guide your way through unfamiliar areas. For example, say you were lost in the Everfree Forest with no idea how to get back, what would you do?" Twilight asked.
"I'd fly above the trees until is the town." I answered.
Twilight raised her eye-brow. "…Or you could use the Clairvoyance Spell, then a small blue light would shoot out of your horn and guide you back here. Simple as that." She said with a small smile.
"Hmm…I guess so." I said before I looked back down at the book to read more about the spell.
While I was doing that, Twilight looked over me to watch Pinkie Pie open the fridge. She saw her reach into the fridge and pull out a large round tin; containing the cake inside.
Pinkie Pie looked over to us one last time before she closed the fridge and made her way back over to the window. But suddenly, she tripped over and the tin flew across the room.
Both Applejack and Twilight panicked as they watched the tin fly through the air. Pinkie Pie also panicked before she zipped over to where it was going to land and caught it in her hooves. Applejack and Twilight let out a silent sigh of relief.
With the tin back in her possession, Pinkie Pie stood up and turned to face the window to see Applejack holding her hooves out to take the tin. Pinkie Pie happily gave it to her before she tried to climb out of the window.
Twilight watched with awkwardness as Pinkie Pie kicked her hind-legs to try and force her way through the window. Eventually, she managed to squeeze through and dropped down to the grassy ground below.
Applejack placed the tin into her saddleback before she grabbed Pinkie's hoof and helped her up. "You ok, sugar cube?" she asked in slight concern.
Pinkie Pie smiled and nodded. "Sure I am." she said. Just then, she noticed something odd. She felt around her face with her hooves until she came to her upper-lip, she felt nothing, and that was just the point. "*Gasp* My mustache!"
"You must've dropped it when ya tripped over." Applejack said.
"I need to get it back." Pinkie said before turned around to face the window and tried to jump up to it.
Applejack quickly grabbed her with her front-hooves and pulled her away. "There's no time, we have to get back to Sugar Cube Corner before we run out of time." She said.
As much as she wanted to go back for her moustache, Pinkie knew she was right. "*Sigh* Ok." She said as she turned back around to face Applejack.
Applejack saw that she had a slightly upset look on her face. "Hey, it's alright, we'll get ya a new fake mustache. They're bound to have plenty at the Joke Store." She stated.
Pinkie Pie worked up a smile. "Yeah, you're right. C'mon, let's get that party ready." She said before she hopped past Applejack.
Applejack smiled with slight amusement before she followed the still hopping Pinkie Pie back to Sugar Cube Corner.
-Meanwhile-
Once Pinkie had left the library, Twilight returned her attention to me. "So, find anything interesting about that spell?" she asked curiously.
I looked up at her to answer. "Not really, but we'll add it to the list of spells I want to learn." I said.
Just, I then felt a small urge to get a drink. "Hey I'm little thirsty, I'm gonna get something to drink." I said before I stood up onto my hooves. "Do you want one as-well?" I asked.
Twilight smiled. "Yes please, a glass of water would be good." she said.
I smiled back. "Coming right up." I said before I turned around and made my way into the kitchen.
Once I entered the kitchen, I walked over to the fridge and opened it to see all the food we had. I examined everything in the fridge before I found what I was looking for, a glass bottle of soda. I smiled with satisfaction before I grabbed one of the bottles with my hoof and took it out of the fridge.
I placed the bottle down on the floor beside me before I looked back into the fridge and grabbed a plastic bottle of spring water.
I then closed the fridge and made my way over to the cupboard to get a clean glass to put the water in. But along the way, I suddenly stepped on something. I looked down and saw a small furry thing under my hoof. "What the hell?" I said before I raised my hoof to see what it was.
I saw that it was some sort of fake mustache. I looked at it with confusion before an amusing thought came to mind. I grabbed it with my hoof and stuck it onto my upper-lip. "Haha, wait 'til Twilight sees this." I said to myself.
After getting both drinks ready, I returned to Twilight with the drinks on a small tray and placed it down between us. She was looking down at a book, so she didn't notice me.
"Hey Twi." I said with a giggly smile.
Once Twilight looked up at me, a strange look came on her face. "Matt…what's that on your face?" she asked.
I chuckled a little. "A mustache. Like it? I think it suits me." I said with smirk.
Twilight closed her eyes half-way. "Where'd you get that?" she asked.
"It was on the kitchen floor. I don't know how it got there though. It might be Spike's, he was once interested in having a mustache, right?" I asked.
Twilight then shifted her eyes to the corner. "Pinkie." She said under her breath.
I didn't know exactly what she said, but she definitely said something. "What was that?" I asked.
Twilight quickly returned her sight to me. "What? Nothing! Y-You're probably right, it could be Spike's. Urr…say…how long has it been since we went for a stroll in the park? The flowers are really lovely this time of year." She said with a nervous smile.
"It's September, most of the flowers are dead because of the cold weather and snow." I stated with a raised eye-brow.
Twilight's face grew blank as her eyes shifted left-and-right. "Urr…exactly, sometimes it's nice to be in the cold." She said before she stood up. "C'mon, get your boots on and we'll go." She said.
I watched Twilight with confusion as she went off to find her boots. I then decided to just go with it and did as she asked.
"And take that mustache off, you're not taking it with us!" Twilight's voice called from the other room.
"Oooh." I said with disappointment before I took the mustache off and place it down on the nearby table.
I then put on all 4 of my dark-green boots and I waited for Twilight to get ready. Once she was, we both left the library and made our way through town to go to the park.
Later that evening: Sugar Cube Corner
After a peaceful stroll through the snow-covered park, Twilight convinced me to go to Sugar Cube Corner for my birthday treat. On the way there, I couldn't help but reflect on the events of this day so far.
It seemed as though no-one had anything to say about my Birthday. I mean, Twilight and the others said happy birthday to me this morning, but that was it, nothing else.
I couldn't find the cards and presents I got in the mail, and I didn't even get a cake. To be honest, I was starting to feel as though nopony cared. At that moment, I shook off the thought. "What am I thinking, Twilight's my wife and everyone else are my friends, of course they care." I thought strongly.
My strong thought didn't last long as the bad feel came back to me. "But…why hasn't anyone taken interest? They've been acting so weird today and that whole thing with the Spell Books wasn't really what I'd call a birthday activity." I thought.
After thinking it through, I decided to take a risky step and ask Twilight about it. "Umm…Twilight." I said nervously.
Twilight turned her head to face me. "Yes?" she responded with one of her kind smiles.
Seeing her smiling face almost made me reconsider asking her this, but I just had to know the truth. "You…you do know what today is, right?" I asked with an even more nervously.
Twilight gave me a sweet smile. "Of course I do, Matt. It's your Birthday. I know it hasn't been good so far, but just wait, things will liven up sooner than you think." She answered.
"Are you sure? Because it doesn't look as though anyone else remembered. I mean, I haven't seen Spike all day, I couldn't find the cards I got in the mail, and the weirdest thing of all is that Pinkie Pie hasn't popped up out of no-where with a Birthday song. I just want to know what's going on...did I do something wrong?" I asked as I with a slightly upset voice.
Twilight knew by the look on my face that I was starting to get upset. She decided to help, but she still couldn't reveal too much about the surprise. "No Matt, you haven't done anything wrong. Everypony's probably just…urr…caught up in their work. Rarity has her outfit orders to complete, Fluttershy has her animal friends to tend to, and you know how busy Applejack gets with her farm." She said.
"I know but…still…you'd think they would make a little time for me on my own Birthday." I said as my ears dropped slightly.
Twilight then gave me another kind smile. "Trust me Matt, once we get to Sugar Cube Corner, you'll feel better about today." She said.
"…Ok, Twi…" I said as I looked down at the ground with my ears still low.
-A few minutes later-
After reaching Sugar Cube Corner, Twilight and I walked up to the door and stopped in front of it. Twilight then turned her head to face me. "You ready to go in?" she asked with a simple smile.
I looked at her and nodded. "Ok, sure." I answered.
With that, Twilight returned her attention to the door before she placed her left-hoof on it and gently pushed it open. But when I looked inside the shop, all I saw was darkness.
I tilted my head in confusion before I looked at Twilight. "Why are all the lights off?" I asked.
Twilight shifted her eyes back and forth. "I do not know, Matthew. Maybe you should go inside and check it out." She said in a very weird way.
I noticed the odd tone in her voice, but I didn't say anything about it. All I did was look at her with more confusion before I returned my attention to the dark room in front of me.
I slowly walked into the room with Twilight following behind. As we reached the centre of the room, we both stopped and tried our best to see through the darkness. "…Hello?..." I called.
Suddenly, the room lit up and Spike & the rest of the main 6 jumped out from behind the counter. "SURPISE!" They all yelled with large smiles on their faces.
I was stunned for a moment before I shook it off and looked at everyone. "W-What? What's going on?" I asked in confusion.
At that moment, Pinkie Pie hopped up in front of me with a large smile on her face. "It's your Birthday, dah, and this is your Birthday surprise party!...Surprise!...again!" she said as she threw her hooves in the air.
I then looked around the decorated room to see that it did look like a party. "There was a nice looking cake on a big table with a few cups of cider standing beside it, a pin-the-tail-on-the-pony poster nail up against the wall with a fake tail pinned next to it, and a bunch of presents in colourful paper piled on another table.
Once I was done, I returned my sight to Twilight and the others. "You all did this….for me?" I asked.
"Of course we did, darling. Why wouldn't we?" Rarity asked with a kind smile.
"Well…it's just that…no-one's ever thrown a party like this for me before." I said with an honest look.
"Well we did, sugar-cube. Ya know why? Because you're our friend and we want ya to have the best birthday ever." Applejack said with a warm smile on her face.
I couldn't help but smile lovingly at all my friends before me. Never have I had friends that would go to this much trouble for me.
I remained silent with the smile still on my face as I rushed over to Twilight and hugged her. The others came closer joined us in a group hug. "Thank you all so much….I love you guys." I said.
"We love you too, Matt, and we always will." Twilight said lovingly.
After a few seconds, we all separated and Spike tapped my side; gaining my attention. "And we've got another surprise for you." he said before he rushed through the pair of Swing-doors that led to the kitchen. "Ok, you can come in now." I heard him.
We all then watched as Spike came back into the room with my parents following behind. Once I saw them, I smiled with joy. "Mum! Dad!" I said before I rushed over to them and hugged my Mum, she was wearing the Star Amulet that brought them here.
My Mum hugged my back. "Hey sweet-heart, happy Birthday." She said kindly before we separated.
I then turned to my Dad and hugged him as well. "Happy Birthday, mate, how are you doing?" he asked as he hugged my back.
"I'm fine." I answered before we separated. "When did you two get here?" I asked while looked at both of them.
"Half-an-hour ago. We were going to come to the library, but Applejack met up with us along the way and told us about this surprise party. We both thought it would a good idea if we waited here until you arrive, that way we'd surprise you." My Mum explained.
"Well it worked, I'm surprised." I joked before we shared a small chuckle.
Suddenly, Pinkie Pie popped up in front of me again and wrapped her arm around my neck. "And it gets better, c'mon." she said before she pulled me over to the table with the cake on it. "The last time I saw your Mom, she told me all about your birthday and what you liked. She even gave me a copy of the recipe for your faverate cake, sponge-cake with jam in the middle and icing-sugar on top." she said as she presented the cake to me.
I looked down at the cake and was surprised to see that it looked exactly like the cake I use to have back in England, only it looked more….cartoony. It even smelled the same. "Nice, thanks Pinkie." I said kindly.
"She also told me that you liked the drink called Coca-Cola or something like that. I looked all around Ponyville for some, but there's no such drink here." Pinkie stated.
"It's ok, Pinkie. I didn't expect there to be any here anyway." I said with a calm smile.
"That's why we brought these." My Dad said as he came over to us while carrying a plastic-bag in his mouth.
Once he placed it down on the table, I looked inside it and saw two big bottles of Coke.
A large smile instantly grew on my face. "You brought Coke! Thank you, thank you, thank you!" I said loudly as I hugged my Dad tightly.
My Dad smiled at me and patted my back with his left-hoof. "You're welcome, mate." He said before we separated.
I then returned my attention to Pinkie and she showed me the cups of cider standing next to the cake. "Here we have the drink we prepared for you. Applejack told me how much you love cider, so we decided to give you exactly that." She said.
I looked down at the cups of cider and smiled. "Awesome, I love cider." I stated.
At that moment, Rainbow Dash shot up beside me. "Yet another thing with have in common." She said with a kind smile.
Before I could do anything else, Pinkie Pie gapped me and pulled me over to where all the games were. "And here is all the games we're gonna play tonight. We've got Pin-the-tail-on-the-pony, spin the bottle, Twister, and a Piñata." She said as she pointed them all out to me.
I smiled with satisfaction. "Cool, we'll play some of those later." I said.
Pinkie Pie then looked straight at me. "So does this party look like the supersest party ever? Was it everything you thought it would be? Huh? Huh? Huh?" she asked as her face came right up in front of mine.
I took a few steps backwards to give myself some space between her before I answered. "Well it does look like a great party, Pinkie. But there's only one way to find out if it's truly the best party ever." I said.
"Really? What's that?" Pinkie asked curiously.
A small smirk then grew on my face. "Let's get it started!" I said.
Once she heard that, Pinkie smiled largely with joy. "You got it!" she said before she looked over to Rarity who was standing by the gramophone. "Hit it, Rarity!" she said loudly.
Rarity nodded before she turned on the gramophone and it started to play music, the music it was playing was the same music Twilight had on her Birthday. "Hey, nice choice of music, Pinkie." I said.
"Oh, I didn't choose it, Applejack did." Pinkie stated.
I then looked over to Applejack with an amused smirk. She saw this and shrugged. "What? You can't argue with jazzy music." She said before she started dancing along to it.
"I agree with her." Twilight said as she walked over to me and grabbed my left-arm with her hoof. "C'mon you, I wanna see if you still got those moves." She said before she gently pulled me over to the centre of the room.
Once she released me, Twilight started dancing in front of me with the rest of the main 6 and Spike joining her. I looked at all of them before I started dancing lightly with them.
My parents just stayed where they were and watched as I enjoyed myself with my wife and friends.
As for Jeff and Peewee, they just stood on the table were all the drinks were and watched. "Well this party's definitely gone off to a good start. I mean, Matt's happy, everyone else is happy, and best of all no annoying birds saying 'hoo,hoo' down my ears all day." Jeff said with a pleased smile on his face.
"Hoo!" a voice said from behind.
Jeff's smile instantly went away before he turned around to see Owlicious standing right behind him. "Oh who invited you?" he said in annoyance.
"Hoo." Owlicious said.
"Don't start with me! It's Matt's big day and I'm not gonna let you annoy me today." Jeff said in a huff before he turned back around to look away from him.
Owlicious said nothing as he looked at Jeff with a raised eye-brow as if he didn't understand what he was saying. The two birds just stayed quiet as me, Spike, and the main 6 danced to the music.
A few minutes later
Once the music had ended, we all settled down for a bit with a slice of my cake. It tasted just as good as it did back home.
After finishing the cake, Pinkie decided that it was time for me to open my presents. So without a single argument from me or anyone else, we all gathered around the table where the presents were and I sat down in front of it.
I then opened the first few presents.
The first one was from Applejack, she had gotten me a colourful well-made Poncho, kind of like the one Clint Eastwood wore in his old western movies. I quickly tried it on and it was surprisingly comfortable.
Applejack said that it would look great on me during our trip to Appleloosa. However, I had no idea what she was talking about, we never arranged any trip to Appleloosa. That's when Applejack explained to me that Twilight had told her of my love for western-themed things and was planning on taking me there sometime in the future.
Hearing this made me feel excited because I indeed loved western-themed things and I always wanted to visit an old western town. I thanked her by giving her a grateful hug, which she returned without hesitation.
The next present was from Rarity, it was a light-brown winter hat along with a red wool scarf, obviously for the upcoming winter. She said that she worked almost an entire day making them especially for me. That kind of hard worked deserved another grateful hug, so I gave her one and she also returned it.
The next present was from Rainbow Dash, it was a build-it-yourself punching bag. She said it was for me to practise my fighting moves and keep my strength up. I somehow knew she was going to give me a present like this, after all, she did give Spike a lifting-weight on his birthday. Nether the less, I thanked her kindly for it.
The next present was from Fluttershy. After my parents had told her of my love for animals such as birds, she got me a large wooden bird-house big enough to home over 30 small birds. We didn't have a bird-house at the Library and I was starting to think it would make it look nicer, I told this to Twilight and she agreed. Like the others, I gave her a thankful hug for this lovely present.
To move things along, I'll tell you the other presents I got in a quicker way.
Pinkie Pie got me a practical-joke set, saying that we could use it to play some pranks on some ponies in the future.
Spike, Jeff, and Peewee gave me a present that was from all three of them. It was a nice dark-blue suit. Of course, it didn't include pants, what suit in this world does? I looked closely at it to see it had some thin brown lines going down it. If you looked at it in a curtain way, it looked like the blue suit the David Tennant wore on Doctor Who. I thanked them all for this.
My parents' present was small, but it was definitely something I liked. It was two 6-packs of Coke cans. This made me happy because it meant I'd have more left after these two bottles ran out. I gave them both a loving hug for this.
I placed the presents I had unwrapped so far on the side as I opened the remaining two. Everyone watched as I grabbed a part of the paper with my mouth and tore it off shred-by-shred until we could see the top of the box. "Who's it from, Matt?" Fluttershy asked.
I then looked down at the tag on the present before I cupped it up in my hoof and read it out-loud. "To Matthew, Happy Birthday, I hope you find these useful in improving your Element and Horned-Helmet. Sensory: Shining Armor." I read.
Twilight looked slightly surprised by this. "Shining Armor sent you a present all the way from Canterlot? Ooh, I wonder what it is." She said as she looked at the still un-opened present.
"Well let's find out." I said before I opened the box lids and saw what was inside it. It was a spray-can of polish and a polishing cloth. I picked them up out of the box and showed them to everyone.
"That must be what he meant by 'Improving your Element and Helmet', he got you polishing equipment so you could make them look cleaner." Rarity said as she eyed the two objects in my hooves.
"And shinier!" Pinkie Pie added.
I then looked at them with a small smile. "Well I guess that was nice of him, I'll be sure to send him a thank you letter later." I said before I placed the can and cloth down with the other presents.
"Looks like you got one more left to open, Matt." Applejack said as she pointed her hoof and the tall present beside the table.
I then looked up at its size with slight awe. "It's a big one, isn't it?" I said.
"Sure is, but it's not about the size, it's about what's inside it. Go on, Matt, open it up!" Rainbow Dash said with excitement.
I looked at her with a slightly amused smile. "Alright, alright, keep your horse-shoes on." I said before I got up and walked up to the present. I once against looked up at its size before I turned my attention to the sticker-tag stuck onto the paper.
I looked closely at it as I read it. "Open me up and let me out!" I read out-loud. Confused, I looked over to Twilight with a small smirk. "This one's from you, isn't it Twi?" I asked, expecting her to say 'yes'.
Twilight returned my smirk. "What makes you think it's from me?" she asked.
"Well I just assume because I haven't gotten a present from you yet." I stated with the smirk still on my face.
"Well I'm sorry to disappoint you, sweetie, but that present's not from me. It must be from someone else." Twilight said.
At that moment, my smirk went away. "Really? B-But this is the last present…are you sure it's not from you?" I asked.
Twilight nodded. "Yeah, I'm sure. Don't worry, Matt, I've got you a present, but you're gonna have to wait 'till tonight to get it." she said with what looked like a small devious smile.
For a few seconds, I wondered why she wanted me to wait until later to receive her present. But I soon saw that everyone was still waiting for me to open the large present in front of me, so I decided to trust her words and returned my attention to the present.
It was so big that I had to use my wings to reach the top-half of the present. After a minute or so, all the paper was off; revealing a tall cardboard box. I flew up to the top of the box again before I opened the lid and looked inside it.
At first, there was nothing but darkness. But soon, a large grey face with yellow eyes popped up in front of my face. "SURPRISE!" It yelled.
I yelled in fright as I quickly flew backwards away from the box. Once I was a safe distance away, I saw the face that scared me was in fact Discord. He laughed in amusement at my reaction. "Haha! So sorry, Matthew, but I couldn't resist! Hahaha!" he laughed.
Everyone saw this and gave him a firm look. "Discord! What do you think you're doing?!" Twilight said loudly.
Discord opened the side of the box like a door before he stepped out of it. "Just attending a good friend's Birthday party. If you didn't want me to come, then you shouldn't have given me an invitation." He said with his arms crossed.
"I don't remember making you an invitation." Rarity stated with a raised eye-brow.
Discord then reached his lion-hand into his right-ear before he pulled out the invitation he had received and showed it to Rarity. "There, does that help?" he asked.
"Who sent you that?" Rainbow Dash asked while eyeing the invitation in his hand.
At that moment, Pinkie Pie hopped in. "I did! That was me!" she said loudly.
Everyone then looked over to her with both confusion and sternness. "Why did you send Discord an invitation without telling us?" Twilight asked.
Pinkie turned her head to face her. "I thought it would make a nice surprise." She stated with a simple smile.
Twilight then walked over to me, I was still breathing heavily due to my little fright. "Well that little 'surprise' nearly scared Matt to death. We're trying to surprise him nicely, not give him a heart-attack." She said.
Discord floated over to us as he sighed. "Ok I see where this is going. *Clears throat*, I'm sorry that I scared you, it was not my intention." He said.
I looked up to him and gave him a small smile. "It's ok, Discord…I'm glad you came, by the way." I said kindly.
After hearing this, Discord turned to the others and smirked. "Well, well, well, at least somepony's happy to see me." he said.
"I'm happy to see you." Pinkie Pie said with her smile still on her face.
Discord looked down at her and waved him talon-hand. "Well, somepony and Pinkie Pie." He said before his snapped his fingers and a present appeared in his hands. He then back around to face me and held it down to me. "Happy Birthday, Matthew." He said with a nice smile.
I looked at the present before I looked up at him with confusion. He had just apologized for a humorous act and now he was giving me a present. "Are you alright, Discord? You don't seem like yourself today." I said.
"Oh that? That's just be turning over a new leaf. From now on, I am going to be a much friendlier Discord. No more pranks that could hurt someone's feelings, no more selfish acts, and no more behaving like a spoiled school pony." He said proudly.
Hearing this left us all with our mouths handing open, we were left in complete disbelief. "B-But Discord, you've already changed, you don't need to prove yourself anymore." I stated.
Discord held his talon-hand up. "I know that, Matthew. But some of the ponies out there still think I'm bad, they think I'm playing some sort of trick on everyone. So if what I've done so far isn't enough for them, then I'll just have to do better. And as my first act as Nicer Discord, I am giving you this present. I hope you find it useful in certain situations." He said with the present still in his hands.
I still didn't fully understand, but he had explained enough of it for me to get his idea. So with a kind smile, I took the present and placed it down in front of me. "Thanks, Discord." I said.
I then looked down at the present and started ripping off the paper with my mouth. Once the paper was off and the cardboard box could be seen, I opened the box's lids to see some sort of large light-blue cube inside. I grabbed it with my hooves and pulled it out of the box.
I looked at it with confusion before I looked up at Discord. "Urr…what is it?" I asked.
"I thought you'd ask that." Discord said before he answered my question. "It's a Request Box, my own creation. Ask it for any item, and whatever you asked for will magically appear inside the box. Go ahead, ask it for something." he said.
I then looked back down at the box curiously before I did as he said. "Ok…I'd like a…umm…a new hairbrush?" I said with a raised eye-brow.
At that moment, the box then glowed a little before the lid sprung open. I looked inside the box and saw a small wooden hairbrush. I grabbed it with my hoof and lifted it out of the box before the lid closed itself.
Everyone looked at the box with awe and surprise. "Wow, it actually works." Rarity said.
Discord looked at her. "Of course it works. And it doesn't just give you small objects, it can gives you bigger ones if you ask for it. Here, let me demonstrate." He said before he took the box in his hands and held it in front of him. "I would like a snow shovel." He said.
The box once again glowed before the lid flung open. Discord then reached into the box with his talon-hand and pulled out a long shovel. "See?" he said with a smirk on his face.
Discord then returned his attention to me. "And if you're not satisfied with what it gives you, just simply do this." He said before he slipped the shovel back into the box and closed the lid himself. "Vanish!" he said.
After the box glowed again, he opened the box and showed me the inside of it so I could see the shovel had gone. "Whow! That's cool. One question though…where did it go?" I asked.
Discord rubbed his head with his lion-hand. "Actually, I never figured that part out. But I'm sure it doesn't go anywhere important." He said with a confident smile.
Meanwhile: Manehattan streets
A light-brown Unicorn pony in a grey jacket stood by a street-corner in the heavy rain, he was using his magic to hold an umbrella above himself to keep dry. He looked like one of those big-city ponies who spend too much time a work and had a hard life at home. "Taxi!" he called as he saw a taxi cart coming by.
The Earth-pony who was pulling the cart stopped beside him and the pony climbed aboard. The taxi pony looked back at him. "Hey mac, can you believe this weather we're having?" he asked with a friendly smile.
The pony closed his umbrella and shook the rain off it. "Tell me about it, it's raining so hard the sky might as well be falling." He said.
Suddenly, the shovel fell down from no-where and hit the taxi pony on the head; leaving him in a short daze until he shook it off. Both the city pony and the taxi pony looked down at the shovel before they looked at each other. "I saw nothing if you didn't." the taxi pony said.
"Deal, now get me out of here!" the city pony said in a slightly panicky tone.
With that, the taxi pony rushed away from that area with the city pony riding in the cart behind him.
Back at Sugar Cube Corner
"Well I hope not." I said.
While we were talking to Discord, my parents had slipped into the kitchen for some and, after a few minutes, my Mum came back into the room. "Matt." she called.
I and everyone else then looked over to her standing by the kitchen entrance. "We've got another surprise for you." she said before she stepped aside to let my Dad come back in.
I looked at him to see he was carrying a big flat square box on his back. I recognized the box all too well, it was a 14-inch pizza box. I gasped in surprise. "Is that what I think it is?!" I asked.
My dad nodded. "Yep." He said before my Mum helped him place it down on the table in front of me. "Got it straight from Papa's Pizza." He said with a smile on his face.
I quickly open the box lid to reveal my faverate pizza, Garlic-bread with cheese. The smell reminded me so much of the Saturday nights I use to have back in England where I would have one of these pizzas and my family would have a Chinese take-away or something.
And best of all, it looked in good condition. The cheese looked well melted and the crust was slightly black and crunchy (the blacker the crust, the more flavour it adds).
Everyone looked at it and took a big whiff of it. "Mmm…that smells good." Twilight said.
I turned my head to face her. "Trust me, it tastes better then it smells." I said before I peeled a slice off the pizza and held it in front of her. "Wanna be the first to try it, sweetheart?" I asked.
Twilight gave me a simple smile before she took the slice in her magic and took a bite out of the end. She chewed it for a minute before she hummed it satisfaction. "This is delicious." She muffled before she swallowed.
After hearing what she said, Spike and the rest of the main 6 looked at each other before they walked up to the pizza box and took a slice each. Good thing there was always 8 slices in my pizza, because now there was only 1 left, but I didn't mind as long as the others enjoyed it too.
I took the last slice and started eating it. As I chewed my first bite, I looked at the others to see the smiles on their faces. "Mmmm, this is awesome!" Rainbow Dash said.
"My word, Matthew, I didn't know food from your world could be this good." Rarity said before she swallowed and took another bite out of the pizza slice.
"Mmm…you have to get this more often." Pinkie Pie stated.
"I agree with Pinkie, I've never had anything like this before." Spike said as he too took another bite out of his slice.
After swallowing the chewed up pizza in my mouth, I smiled at them. "Well I'm glad you like it. But you're gonna want to use mouth-wash afterwards, the garlic really does a number on your breath." I said.
"Don't care!" Applejack said before she took a large bite out of her slice.
As I was about to take another bite out of my slice, I looked back at everyone else and realized that there wasn't any slices left for them. "Oh god, sorry, I completely forgot. Do you want to have a bit of mine?" I asked as I held my slice out to them.
My Mum and Dad shook their head. "No, you're alright, you enjoy yourself. We don't want any." My Dad said.
Discord put his hands up. "I'm not that fond of food I'm not familiar with." he said.
"We're ok too. We're birds anyway, we don't eat that stuff." Jeff said with Peewee nodding in agreement.
After hearing what they said, I nodded. "Ok." I said before I went back to eating my slice.
We all then ate the rest of the pizza until there was none left. Pinkie Pie finished her slice before she hopped up. "Ok everypony, now that all the presents have been opened and the foods been eaten, it's time for the games. Let's start with Pin-The-Tail-On-The-Pony!" she said.
We all looked over to her and stood up. "Oh yeah, my favourite game." Spike said with joy as we all made our way over to the game.
Later that day
It was starting to get dark outside and we were all still playing some of the games Pinkie Pie. My parents had left the party early and gone back to England, but they said we'd see each other again soon.
So now it was only me, the main 6, Spike, Jeff, Peewee, and Discord. And we were playing the most dangerous game every created, Spin-The-Bottle!
Applejack grabbed the bottle with her hoof and spun it. We all watched it spin until it stopped and pointed at me. "Oh dear." I said under my breath.
Applejack looked at me with a devious smirk. "Alright Matt, truth or dare?" she asked.
I thought about it for a moment before I decided. "Truth." I answered.
Applejack was slightly disappointed that I didn't choose 'dear'. "Fine, let's see…urrr…how much do ya love Twilight?" she asked.
Twilight and I then looked at each other before I gave her a loving smile. "I love her more than life itself, I'd fly around Equestria for her." I said.
Twilight returned my smile. "Aww, Matt." she said before she planted a small kiss on my cheek.
"Awww!" All the girls said as they watched us. Spike and the other guys put their fingers in the mouths with disgust.
Just then, Pinkie Pie leaned over to Applejack and whispered something in her ear. Once she was done, Applejack chuckled. "I don't think that'll work." She said.
"Let's try it anyway!" Pinkie whispered.
Applejack rolled her eyes before she looked at me again. "So, you love Twilight that much, huh? You wouldn't…let's say…kiss another girl if you could? Even if you were paid to do it?" she asked.
I instantly shook my head. "Absolutely not. Twilight's the only girl I'd ever kiss. I mean, I did kiss Luna once, but that was different." I stated.
Applejack and Pinkie looked at each other again before they looked at me with devious grins. "Is that so?" Pinkie said before she spun the bottle with her hoof.
While it was spinning, Pinkie whispered something to Rarity and she nodded to her. Her horn then glowed and the bottle stopped, it was pointing at me again. "Oh aren't you fortunate today?" Pinkie said as if she didn't know it was going to happen. "Truth or dare?" she asked.
"…Truth…" I answered.
"Oh c'mon, Mattie, pick dare, you've been picking truth all through the game." Pinkie said.
I rolled my eyes. "Fine, I'll be fair…Dare." I said.
Pinkie's grin grew larger. "Hehe, alright…I dare yo to…kiss Rainbow Dash for twenty seconds!" she said.
"WHAT?!" Both Rainbow Dash and I said at the same time in shock before we looked at each other. We both then looked back at Pinkie. "You can't be serious!" Rainbow Dash said.
"You have to do it, it's the rule." Pinkie said with a giggly smile.
"But I can't kiss another girl! Especially with Twilight sitting right here." I said as I pointed my hoof at Twilight.
Pinkie looked at me. "The sooner you doing, the quicker it's done." She said with the giggly smile still on her face.
I then turned my head to face Twilight. "Twilight, I…I can't, it's not right." I said.
Twilight gave me a small smile. "It's ok, Matt, it's just part of the game. I mean, it's not like you're kissing a total stranger. Just do it quick so it's over with." she said.
"But…but I…" I said before I was interrupted by Rainbow Dash grabbing my head with her hooves and forcing my head to turn around to face her. I could see the anger in her eyes.
"Like they said, the quicker we do it, the quicker it's done. So just shut up and do it already!" Rainbow Dash growled before she pulled my face towards hers and our lips connected.
My eyes widened in surprisement and shock as Rainbow kissed me. Everyone watched in amusement. Just then, Discord appeared between the girls. "Oh, I'm definitely catching this moment." He said before he snapped his fingers.
A video-camera then appear in his hand in a flash of light and he held it against his eye, I couldn't believe he was actually recording this. All I could think about was how Twilight must feel about this. Finally, after exactly 20 seconds, Rainbow Dash and I separated.
Rainbow Dash turned her head away and started spitting on the floor and wiping her mouth. "BLAH! Never make me do that again!" she said loudly.
I quickly looked at Twilight and saw the amused smile on her face. "Haha, enjoy your dare?" she asked.
I tilted my head in confusion. "You're…not upset?" I asked.
Twilight shook her head. "Of course not, Matt. I know it wasn't real. Because if it was, I'd probably turn you into a duck." She said with a smirk.
I laughed nervously. "Haha…you can actually do that?" I asked.
"Want me to prove it?" Twilight asked as her horn glowed brightly.
I quickly shook my head. "No! No! You don't need to do that! I believe you!" I said.
Twilight's horn then stopped glowing. "Got cha." She said as she tapped my nose with her hoof; earning a laugh from the others.
I laughed a little with them before exhaling in relief, glad that Twilight didn't turn me into a duck. Once we had all calmed down, we went back to playing our game.
An hour later
After playing a few more game and doing other things, the party finally came to an end and everyone was getting ready to go back to their own homes.
Twilight and I stood by the door as we watched our friends leave. "That was a cool party, Matt. But if you ever even think about kissing me again, you'll end up missing, got it?" Rainbow Dash said firmly.
I quickly nodded. "Yes, ma'am." I said. We then watched Rainbow Dash as she left the building while giving me a small glare.
Applejack and Fluttershy then walked past us. "Great party, Matt. Hope ya enjoyed it." Applejack said.
"I did, thanks. And I'm really looking forward to that trip to Appleloosa with you." I said with a kind smile.
"Me too. I know just you're gonna love it, Matt." Applejack said with a slightly excited smile.
"I bet I will. Again, thanks for coming, now go on back home before your family starts to worry." I said.
Applejack nodded before she walked out of the door and into the streets. Fluttershy then gave me a soft hug. "Happy Birthday, Matt." she said sweetly.
I smiled warmly at her before I hugged her back. "Thanks Fluttershy." I said before we separated. "Do you think you can find your way home okay?" I asked.
Fluttershy gave me a small smile. "Oh I'm sure I can, I mean, it's not that dark." She said before she looked out the doorway. Once she saw all the darkness and shadows in the street, she grew a slightly frightened look. "Or…maybe Pinkie Pie will let me stay here for the night." she said.
Twilight then looked over to where Pinkie Pie was. "I don't think she's in any condition to do anything at the moment." She said.
Fluttershy and I then looked in the same direction as Twilight and saw Pinkie Pie lying flat under a table. "Looks like she's in a Party-Coma." Twilight said.
"That the second time this month." I stated.
Fluttershy's ears then lowered. "Oh…umm…I guess that means I can't stay here then." She said in her quiet voice.
I looked at her with pity before I sighed. "I suppose, if you want, I can walk you home so don't have to go through the streets alone." I said.
Fluttershy's ears then perked up. "Really? Y-You would do that?" she asked.
I smiled kindly and nodded. "Of course I would. That is, if it's ok with Twilight." I said before I turned my head to face Twilight and waited for her answer.
Twilight was silent for a second before she smiled. "Sure, why not? I need to speak with Rarity about something anyway. Just head back to the library once you're done, ok sweetie?" she said to me.
I nodded to her. "Sure." I said before I turned my head to face Fluttershy. "Come on, Fluttershy. Let's get you home." I said before I walked out of the doorway with Fluttershy walking beside me.
Twilight watched us walk away into the streets before she used her magic to close the door. At that moment, Discord appeared in front of her in a flash of light. "Well Matthew, that was a wonderful party, I should really thank Pinkie for-…" he then stopped once he noticed I wasn't there.
"Hey, where's the birthday boy?" Discord asked as he picked Twilight up and looked under her. After placing her back down on her hooves, he looked at her with a raised eye-brow. "Don't tell me he left without saying goodbye." He said.
"He just left to walk Fluttershy home, but if you want, I can pass on a message for you." Twilight said.
Discord sighed. "Fine. Please tell him I hope his had a great birthday, thanks for having me, and I hope he finds my gift useful in the future." He said.
"Ok, I'll tell him. Goodnight Discord." Twilight said with a kind smile.
"Goodnight, Twilight." Discord said before he snapped his figures and disappeared in a flash of light.
Twilight then turned her attention to Rarity who was standing in front of the unconscious Pinkie Pie with Spike, Jeff, Peewee, and Owlicious standing beside her. Rarity was tapping her belly with her hoof to try and wake her up.
Twilight walked over to them before she stopped beside Rarity. "Hey Rarity, can I talk to you for a moment…in private?" she asked.
Rarity stopped tapping Pinkie Pie and turned her head to face her. "Of course, Twilight." she said before she and Twilight walked away from the others. Once they reached the other side of the room, they stopped and faced each other. "What is it you want to talk about, darling?" she asked with a kind smile.
Twilight looked over to Spike and the three birds before she looked at Rarity again. "If it's not too much trouble, I need you to do something for me…it's kinda important." She said.
"I'll certainly do what I can to help, but what is it you want me to do, Twilight?" Rarity asked curiously.
"Well…do you have a spare bedroom in your house?" Twilight asked as she looked over to Spike, Jeff, Peewee, and Owlicious again.
Later that night: Library
After walking Fluttershy home, I had made my way back to the Library and entered it. I closed the front-door behind me and walked into the centre of the living-room. I saw all my presents on the table with the wooden horse head on it.
"Twilight! I'm home!" I called.
At that moment, Twilight trotted down the stairs and saw me. "Oh good. Was Fluttershy ok?" she asked as she came up to me.
I nodded. "Yeah, she was fine. Did I miss anything after I left?" I asked.
"Discord told me to say he hoped you enjoyed your birthday and he wanted to thank you for having him there, and Rarity basically said the same thing." Twilight answered.
"I'll have to say thank you to them the next time I see them both." I said. Just then, I noticed that only Twilight was in the room with me. "Urr…where's Spike and the others? Are they upstairs sleeping?" I asked.
At that moment, Twilight took a few steps towards me. "No, I asked Rarity if they could sleep over at her house tonight and she agreed." She said.
"Why did you ask her that?" I asked curious.
Twilight suddenly nuzzled her head against my neck. "So we could have the whole place to ourselves." She said in a slight whisper before she stopped and looked me in the eyes.
I then realized what she was doing and smirked at her. "Haha…well then, best enjoy it while we can." I said as I brought my head closer to hers.
But before I could get close enough to kiss her, Twilight held her left-hoof up in front of my face. "Not yet, first you need to use mouth-wash, your breath reeks of garlic." She said with an amused smile.
I returned it "Fine." I said before I made my way to the bathroom. Along the way, I looked back at her. "I'll be back for you." I joked. Once I reached the bathroom, I entered it and closed the door behind me.
A few minutes later, I came out of the bathroom with fresh minty breath. I re-entered the living-room and looked around for Twilight, but I couldn't see her. "Twi?" I said in confusion and I looked around the room.
"Over here, Matt." Twilight's voice said softly. I looked in the direction the voice came from and my mouth dropped at what I saw.
It was Twilight wearing a pink night-gown made of see-through fabric, I could see her body right through it. It glittered in the light like a stars. Right now, Twilight was literally taking my breath away. "T-Twi?...Wh-…wh-…"
Twilight then walked up to me before stopping in front of me. "Like my new outfit, Matt?" she asked.
I was still struggling to speak. "Twi…w-where did you get that outfit?...It…it's…" I couldn't finish my sentence due to the fact that there was no word to describe how amazing it looked on her.
"I had Rarity make it for me, I've been saving it all day for this one moment. And now that we're alone, it's time to give you my present." Twilight said with a sly smile on her face.
"Y-Your present…as in, your present to me for my Birthday?" I asked nervously.
Twilight nodded. "Yes, Matt. Wanna know what it is?" she asked. And then, without even letting me answer, she whispered it into my ear.
Once she told me what it was, I grew even more nervous. Twilight pulled her head away from my ear and I looked into her eyes. "You mean…you want to…." I said without finishing.
Twilight calmly nodded. "Yes…no distractions…no interruptions…just you, me, and a romantic night alone." She said with a loving smile.
I didn't answer, I didn't know how to answer, I just stood there in silence as Twilight stared into my eyes. "You don't have to answer…just follow me and you'll be fine." She said before she took my left-hoof in hers and gently pulled me towards the stairs without taking her eyes off me.
I soon started following without her aid and she released my hoof. Twilight then turned around and went up the stairs with me following right behind her.
As we entered our bedroom, I saw that the whole room was dark, the only light that was on was the bed-side table lamp beside our bed. I followed Twilight up the second smaller set of stairs that led to the floor where the bed was.
Once we reached the top of the stairs, Twilight walked over to her side of the bed before she climbed onto it and lied down on her side. She looked over to me to see I was standing in front of the bed. "Well Matt…here we are." She said.
I gulped slightly. "Twi…a-are you sure about this?" I asked nervously.
Twilight then gave me an honest smile. "…Yes Matt, I've always been sure. I want this." She said.
I then walked around to my side of the bed before I climbed up onto it and lied down on my side beside her. "…I want this too, Twi…I have for a long while." I admitted.
Twilight smiled warmly at me before she started nudging towards me, I did the same until we were close enough to be hugging, which we did. As we held each other in a loving embrace, we both shared a passionate kiss which eventually led her Twilight being on top of me.
Once we broke the kiss, we both looked into each other's love-filled eyes. "Happy Birthday, Matt. I love you so much." She said with another loving smile.
I returned her loving smile. "I love you too, Twilight…More than life itself."
With those words said, Twilight and I shared another passionate love-filled kiss. As we kissed, Twilight's horn glowed and the table lamp beside the bed turned itself off; rendering the room completely dark.
My Birthday may have ended, but my special night with Twilight had finally begun.
The next morning: Carousel Boutique
As the sun rose above the horizon, it's light shined through the window of Rarity's room and onto the sleeping Unicorn. She was muttering in her sleep. "Mmm…yes…I would like a crumpet..." she muttered.
The light from the sun then shun on Rarity's closed eyes and it eventually woke her up. "Ooh…I knew I should've worn my eye-mask." She groaned before she leaned up on the bed tiredly and stretched her arms up.
As she yawned, she suddenly caught the whiff of something foul. Rarity's eyes shot open and she covered her nose to prevent smelling any more of it. "My goodness, what on Earth is that dreadful odour!" she said in disgust.
As much as she didn't want to, Rarity sniffed it again and she found out where it was coming from, her mouth. "Oh my, it's my breath. Matthew certainly wasn't joking when he said that pizza would cause bad breath." She said before she quickly got out of bed and rushed into her bathroom.
She used her magic to open the small cabinet above the sink and pulled out a bottle of mouth wash. She poured it into the lid (That also worked as a cub) and sipped it all up. Rarity swilled it around in her mouth before she spat it out into the sink. "Note to self…never have that pizza again." she said to herself as she placed the mouth wash bottle back into the cabinet.
But once Rarity closed the cabinet's door, she suddenly saw something in the reflection of the small mirror on it. It was reflecting something from inside her room. From Rarity's POV, it looked as though part of the bedroom wall was missing.
Rarity quickly turned around and saw what it truly was. It was her safe that had been built into the wall. The door was broken wide open, and on the floor in front of it was a ripped portrait of Opal. The portrait was obviously used to hide the safe.
From the bathroom, Rarity could see the inside of the safe. It was completely empty.
Once Rarity saw this, she screamed loudly in shock and horror; knowing that not only had her home been broken into while she was sleeping, but whoever broke in had stolen The Element of Generosity.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
Again, sorry for the delay, I've been going through sh*t you wouldn't believe XD
Pony News: Many episodes are coming in the future, and I'll give you a small taste of what what'll happen in them.
Pinkie is threatened by a new party pony planning a party for Rainbow Dash. Featuring in the guest voice of Wired Al Yankovic.
Rarity becomes more like Applejack.
Fluttershy needs to get a singing group back together
And The Cutie Mark Crusaders take advantage of Twilight to become more popular.
That's it so far.
Please remember to review.
Next chapter will be up as soon as it can.
52. Chapter 52: Deviless in Disguise
Hi everypony, and welcome back again.
Now to talk serious, I need you all to decide something for me. You know how in some stories some chapters get deleted because they're not good enough or the author just doesn't like them? Well that's pretty much the situation here. There are 2 chapters I don't want in my story anymore and I want to get rid of them, I'll delete one and re-write the other. You'll find the poll at the end of the chapter.
Anyway, enjoy.
Chapter 52: New problems
Ponyville library
The morning sun was now high in the sky and shining dimly over Ponyville. As every pony in town began to wake up, Twilight and I were still sound asleep.
Yesterday was my birthday and it was the best birthday ever had, it even ended just as great with Twilight and I having some special alone time. Our peaceful slumber, however, didn't last long.
My eyes weakly opened until I could see the bedroom completely. Upon examining the area, I saw Twilight lying in front of me facing the other direction, my arms were wrapped around her waist lovingly.
That's when I remembered what happened last night and everything we did. At first, I couldn't believe it, but our scruffy manes and Twilight's see-through nightgown at the end of the bed confirmed it. We had finally had our special night.
I felt like releasing Twilight and pulling myself away from her, but for some reason, I didn't want to let go. She felt so warm in my arms and he fur was so soft.
I liked this feeling and I didn't want to lose it just yet, so I decided to rest for a little while longer by gently pulling Twilight closer to me and nuzzled my head against her mane.
After a few minutes, Twilight woke up and slowly opened her eyes. She soon felt my arms around her waist and immediately remembered what happened last night. She blushed deeply at the thought of last night's events before she turned her head around until she could see my head. "Matt?...You awake?" she asked.
I was still awake, but only just. "…Yeah…" I said tiredly with my eyes still closed.
"I can't believe we finally had our special night last night. It was just as I imagined it. What did you think of it, Matt?" Twilight asked.
A small smiled grew on my face. "Twilight…I can honestly say that last night was the greatest night of my life…you were absolutely amazing, Twilight." I said as I opened my eyes slightly.
Twilight returned my smile. "Thanks. So were you." she said before she planted a small kiss on my nose.
"So…where do we go from here?" I asked curiously.
"I think we just carry on with our normal morning routines. How about we get up and get some breakfast, huh?" Twilight asked.
"Sounds good to me." I said before I released Twilight from my embrace and climbed off the bed, Twilight did the same and we both went down stairs together.
When we reached the living room, we went into the kitchen and started making breakfast for ourselves. While we were doing that, Twilight and I couldn't help but keep looked back at each other. Every time I turned my head around to see her, she'd quickly look away.
Once our breakfasts was finished, Twilight and I both sat down by the kitchen table and started eating it until it was all gone. As we let the food settle in our stomachs, we started making small talk. "So how do you think Spike and the others are doing at Rarity's?" Twilight asked.
I shrugged. "Not sure. Good, I hope." I said before I began to think about last night again. "Twi, listen…about last night, I…do you think this will put us in some kind of awkward situation?" I asked nervously.
Twilight tilted her head in confusion. "What do you mean? Didn't you…you know…like it?" she asked.
I was quick to answer. "Of course I liked it, Twilight. It was the greatest thing I've ever experienced. It's just…we've barely spoken or looked at each other all morning and I'm afraid it's because of what we did." I said as I became more nervous.
Twilight understood what I was saying, there was a bit of awkwardness in the air. But she soon grew a sly smile and stood up. "Well…maybe we don't have to do that things, maybe we can do something else." She said.
"W-What do you mean?" I asked in confusion.
Twilight then made her way around the table and stopped in front of me. "I mean, we don't have to pick up Spike and the others just yet, we have the whole place to ourselves for a little while longer." She said as she stood up on her hind-legs and wrapped her arms around my head.
I soon realised what she was doing and grinned. "Oh really? Well then, what are we gonna do until then?" I asked; knowing what the answer would be.
Twilight answered by leaning her head closer to mine and we shared a deep kiss. After a few seconds, we separated and smiled at each other. "Since when did you start acting like this, Twi?" I asked with the grin still on my face.
"I don't know…something about last night just rattles me in a way that makes me feel cheerful about everything. Is that natural for married couples after they do…what we did?" Twilight asked curiously.
"I'm not sure, Twilight, p-probably. I mean, it's common for a couple to feel good after they've expressed their love in that way." I said, giving her my best answer.
"Well I'll read up about it later." Twilight said before he grin returned. "But for now, where were we?" she said.
We both then leaned in for another kiss. But before we could, we heard the front-door slam open in the living room; startling us both. Twilight quickly released me and placed her front-hooves back down onto the floor. "What was that?" she asked.
I stood up from where I was sat and looked at her. "I don't know. I think it was the front-door. I'll go check it out." I said before I made my way over to the kitchen entrance.
As I entered the front-room, I was a bit surprised to see Spike in front of the front-door with his hands on his knees, he looked out of breath. "Spike?" I said.
Once I said that, Spike shot his head up and rushed towards me. "Matt!...*Pant, pant*…you and Twilight…need to…*Pant, pant*…" he said before he stopped in front of me and continued to pant.
Twilight then walked into the room and saw Spike. "Spike? What are you doing here? Shouldn't you be at Rarity's." she said.
Spike continued to pant as he looked up at her. "*Pant, pant*…Rarity…bedroom…safe…help her!" he said in a panicky way while still out of breath.
Not understanding what he was trying to say, I placed my hoof on his shoulder. "Whow, calm down, little bro. Catch your breath, then speak." I said.
Spike nodded as he continued to pant. After a few seconds, he caught his breath and spoke. "You guys need to come to Rarity's place quick!" he said as he grabbed my hoof and attempted to pull me over to the front-door, but I didn't move.
"Why? What's going on? What happened?" I asked as Spike kept trying to pull me over to the door.
Spike then stopped pulling on my hoof and looked at me. "Rarity's been robbed…and you're not gonna be happy with what they took." He said.
Twilight and I immediately looked at each other before we looked back down at Spike. "Show us." I said.
Spike nodded before he turned around and rushed out of the library with us following behind. Along the way, Twilight and I had a good idea of what was stolen, we just hoped we were wrong.
Carousel Boutique
After arriving at the Boutique, Spike led us up to Rarity's room to show us the crime scene. It was exactly what we feared, The Element of Generosity had been stolen.
Rarity was lying face-flat on her bed crying loudly into her pillow. I couldn't blame her for being upset, knowing someone was in her room while she was sleeping must terrify her.
I would've gone over to comfort her, but Jeff and Peewee already had that covered. They were both standing beside Rarity on the bed and Jeff was patting her back with his wing. "It's ok, girl, let it all out. No-one's blaming ya." He said softly.
Spike then walked over to the other side of the bed and stranded rubbing Rarity's back. "Of course we're not. It's not your fault, Rarity. It could've happened to anypony." He said, trying to help.
Rarity lifted her head off the pillow and looked at him. "I…I know, Spike. It's just that…whoever stole my Element was in this room…while I was sleeping in this very bed…if he wanted to, he could've…" she said as more tears swelled up in her eyes.
Knowing she was about to cry some more, Spike quickly climbed up onto the bed and pulled Rarity into a caring hug. As she hugged back, Spike looked over to Twilight who was standing at the end of the bed.
They both then turned around to see me examining the broken safe which once held Rarity's Element. As I stared at the bent corners and broken hinge, all I could think about was how worse this situation had got and how worse it could've been. Screw the Element, I could've lost one of my best friends to this asshole. The more I thought about it, the more frustrated I became.
At some point, Twilight walked over to me and saw my studious face. She could clearly see I was rattled, so she tried a gentle approach. "Matt…honey…are you ok?" she asked.
I didn't look at her, I only kept my focus on the safe. "…He knows…" I answered.
"Huh?" Twilight said in confusion.
"He knows…the thief from Canterlot…he knows the Elements aren't in the castle vault anymore, he knows we moved them, he knows they're here!" I said with every sentence getting louder.
Twilight placed her hoof on my shoulder. "Matt, please calm down, shouting isn't gonna help anyone." She said, trying to calm me down.
I took a few deep breaths to calm myself down before I turned my head to face Twilight. "I know, sorry…it just…I can't believe how smart this guy is. How did he know where the Element was? For all he knows, it could've been in our safe along with the other Elements." I said in a frustrated tone.
"I don't know, Matt. I wish I did, but I don't. But like we said when this whole thing began, we're probably not dealing with any ordinary thief." Twilight stated.
"Tell me about it. It's as if he knows our every move, like he's watching us or something." I said.
"After all this, he probably is." Jeff said.
At that moment, a scary thought hit me. What if the thief was watching us? It would explain how he knew were the Elements were. "You know…that might be possible." I said out-loud.
Twilight looked at me with a raised eye-brow. "What? Matt, I don't think the culprit is watching us every minute of the day." she said.
I turned my head to face her. "What if he doesn't have to? Maybe he's hiding in plain sight." I said.
Twilight became more confused until she realised what I was saying. "Oh Matt, you're not still convinced one of the Royal Guards, are you?" she asked.
"Well who else could it be, Twi? The Elements slowly start going missing one-by-one shortly after new Guards arrive at the castle. Seems too much of a coincidence." I stated.
"Don't you think you're getting a little too paranoid about this whole thing?" Twilight asked.
"Look, I'm just saying it makes more sense than anything else. So until something else comes up, that's the only lead we have." I said strongly.
Twilight thought about it for a minute before she sighed. "Ok Matt…I'm not saying you're right, but I'll trust you on this. What do you want me to do?" she asked.
I up a plan of action before I looked her. "Can you take Rarity back to the library and comfort her? She looks like she really needs it." I said.
Twilight nodded. "Of course…but what are you gonna do?" she asked.
"Spike and I are gonna stay here and investigate for clues." I answered.
Twilight nodded again to say she understood before she walked up beside Rarity's bed and placed her hoof on her back. "Rarity, I need you to come with me back to the library, ok?"
Rarity broke away from Spike before she turned her head around to face her. "W-What for?" she asked with some tears still in her eyes.
"Matt and Spike need to set up and investigation. I know you're upset, Rarity, but you'll feel safer at the Library. I'll be with you the whole time, ok?" Twilight said softly.
Rarity was silent for a moment before she agreed. She climbed off the bed before she left the room with Twilight walking beside her; leaving me, Spike, Jeff, Peewee and Owlicious alone in the room.
Once they were gone, I looked over to Jeff. "Jeff, I need you to gather the rest of the girls. Tell them what happened and take them to the library so they can take care of Rarity." I said.
Jeff saluted me with his wing. "You got it." he said before he took off into the air and flew out the open window to do what I said.
I then looked at Peewee. "Peewee, the Mayor needs to know what happened as-well. I hate to say this, but this building contains a serious crime scene, it needs to be closed off for a while." I said with regret.
Peewee was silent as he nodded before he took off into the air and followed Jeff out the window.
At that moment, Spike walked over to me. "But this place can't be closed. Where will everypony buy new outfits? Rarity lives here, she can't just be locked out." He said firmly.
I quickly looked down at him. "Spike, I promise you, Rarity will not lose this house. We need to investigate every part of this building and we can't do that with loads of ponies coming in and out tampering with possible evidence. We have to make sure no-one comes in until it's done, do you understand?" I asked calmly.
Spike thought about it for a moment before he nodded. "Yeah…but what about Rarity?" he asked.
I gave him a small smile. "We still have the guest room in the library. If she wants, she came stay with us for the time being." I said, knowing he'd probably like the idea.
And I was right, Spike quickly grew a smile. "Really? You'd let Rarity stay with us?" he asked.
"Of course we would, she's our friend and we have to do everything we can to help her." I answered.
"So what about Owlicious?" Spike asked as he pointed at the owl standing on top of one of the chair in front of Rarity's make-up desk.
I looked over to him with no idea on what he should do. "Urr…Owlicious, you can…urr…go back to the library and make sure everything's going alright." I said.
"Hoo." Owlicious hooted before he took off into the air and flew out the window.
"Well…I take it he's alright with that idea." I said out-loud before I looked down at Spike. "Ok Spike, you know what to do…let's get to work." I said.
Spike nodded before we both spread out to different parts of the room to begin our investigation. All the while, we couldn't help but wonder how Rarity might be coping. We were both worried about her, especially Spike.
Half-an-hour later: Library
Thanks to Jeff, the rest of the main 6 was now at the library comforting Rarity. They, along with Jeff, Peewee and Owlicious, were all in the main room. They waited for me and Spike to return with further news on the situation.
The first thing Rarity wanted to do once she entered the library was relax, so Twilight brought her a bunch of pillows to lie down on. She was still slightly upset by the whole thing, so she didn't say much.
While everyone else was sitting close to her, Rainbow Dash was hovering back and forth impatiently. Each minute felt like a wasted hour to her. "Grr….what's taking them so long?! How hard can it be to find things that obviously don't belong there?!" she said as she continued to hover.
Twilight looked up at her with a firm face. "We've been through this type of thing before, Rainbow. Trust me, it takes a while." she said.
Rainbow Dash stopped where she was in the air and looked down at her. "Why is Matt in-charge of all this stuff anyway? For all we know, he may have started it all in the first place." She said as she crossed her arms.
Everyone looked up at her with slight shock. "Now hold ya horses there, Rainbow. You can't honestly be sayin' this is all Matt's fault." Applejack said.
"Well how do you explain it all? All this weird stuff started shortly after he came into our lives and we're supposed to believe it's some sort of coincidence?" Rainbow Dash asked.
"In a way, yes! If you're going to blame Matt for this, then you might as well blame him for everything else, like that whole thing with Thorn." Twilight stated firmly.
"You know something, Twilight, I might just do that. He did do all things to get back at Matt for kicking his flank, after all." Rainbow said a bit coldly.
Twilight couldn't believe what she was saying. "Rainbow Dash, Matt's your friend, why are you talking about him like this?" she asked.
At that moment, Applejack walked over to Twilight to answer her question. "Don't pay any attention to her, Twi. She's just a little ticked because she had to share her first kiss with 'im." She said as she smirked up at Rainbow.
Rainbow Dash's ears flung up before she quickly looked down at them. "That's not true! I just…urr…didn't realize how much of this stuff is his fault….until now, that is." She said while rubbing the back of her head with her hoof.
Twilight and Applejack looked at each other before they looked back up at her. "Yeah, you keep tellin' yourself that." Applejack said with the smirk still on her face.
"Just…just get off my back." Rainbow Dash snapped as she turned away from them.
After a few minutes, Spike and I came through the front-door with tired looks on our faces. Twilight and the others saw us and came over to us. "Are you two okay? Did you find anything?" Twilight asked.
With regret, I shook my head. "No, we didn't. We turned the whole place inside-out and found nothing to help us. The thief was smart this time." I answered.
"Guess he learned his lesson after what happened in Canterlot." Applejack said.
I looked at her and nodded. "That's what I'm thinking as-well. He's learning from his mistakes…*sigh*…this probably means he's gonna be harder to catch." I said while looking down at the floor.
Twilight then placed her hoof on my shoulder. "Hey, it'll be alright…we'll catch him and get the Elements back." she said with a soft smile.
"How do you know, the guy's probably miles away by now." Rainbow Dash said while still hovering in the air.
Twilight quickly looked up at her with a firm look. "Rainbow! That's not helping!" she said.
"No Twi, she's right. It's impossible to catch him at this point. For all we know, he probably is miles away by now, perhaps on the other side of the country." I said.
Twilight and the others looked at me with slight shock until Applejack stepped forward. "Wait a minute…what are ya sayin'? It's like you're givin' up or somethin'. That's not the Matt I know." She said strongly.
"Yeah, just because you didn't find anything today, doesn't mean you won't find anything eventually. I mean, if he's after all the Elements, won't he come back for the ones he hasn't stolen?" Pinkie Pie asked.
After hearing what she said, my ears perked up with hope. "Yeah…yeah, you're absolutely right! He will come back, and we're gonna be ready for him this time." I said with a confident look.
Everyone smiled at my regained confidence. "Now that's the Matt I know." Applejack said.
"So what've you got planned this time, oh fearless leader?" Rainbow Dash asked in a smug sarcastic way.
I didn't know why she spoke in that tone or why she called me that, but I'd have to find that out later. "Well…I'm gonna need to write a letter. But first, I need to talk to Rarity." I said.
Once I said her name, Rarity looked at me with curiousness. I knew she wouldn't like what I had to say, but I was ready to comfort her. I walked over to her and my ears lowered slightly. "Rarity…I'm…I'm sorry to say this, but…we have to close your shop for a few days. No-one can be allowed to go inside until it's been fully examined for clues by professionals." I said with regret.
Everyone was silent for a moment before Rarity broke it. "But…doesn't that mean I can't go inside either?" she asked.
I looked into her eyes and I answered. "I'm sorry, Rarity." That was all I could say.
"B-But…where will I stay? Where will I sleep?" Rarity asked.
I knew she was getting more upset, so I gently placed my hoof on her shoulder. "You can stay with us until you go back. I'm sure Twilight won't mind." I said before I looked over to her. "You don't mind if Rarity stays with us for a few days, do you?" I asked.
Twilight shook her head. "Of course not, she can stay with us for as long as she wants." She said with a weak smile.
I returned her smile before I looked at Rarity again. "But it's up to you, Rarity. Do you want to stay with us?" I asked as Twilight came over and stopped beside me.
Rarity looked at my face with wonder. "Y-You'd let me stay with you in your home? Matthew…Twilight…that's so generous of you." she said before she finally managed to grow a smile. "I will…Thank you so much." She said before she stood up and hugged us both.
Everyone smiled as they watched us.
We then broke the hug. "You're welcome Rarity, and I promise you, we'll catch the guy that did this." I said once again with confidence.
I then turned around and walked over to the door that led to the next room. "Now I need to write a letter to the Princess and report what happened." I said before I looked over to Spike. "Spike, can you come and write for me please?" I asked politely.
Spike nodded. "Sure thing, Matt." he said as he followed me into the other room. Once we were inside, Spike closed the door behind us.
A moment later, Spike brought out a sheet of paper & a quill and got ready to start writing. "Ok Matt, whenever you're ready." He said while looking at me.
I nodded at him before I started telling him what to write.
"Dear Princess Celestia.
As you know, you intrusted us to protect the remaining Elements after the incident in Canterlot, which is why I regret to inform you that the Element of Generosity has been stolen by an unknown criminal. But my friends have given me an idea on how to catch him once-and-for-all. If he's trying to get all the Elements, then he'll be back for the rest. My plan is to wait for him to return and then strike before he can make off with another Element. If you can help us in any way possible, we would surly appreciate it.
Yours: Matthew."
Once I was done and Spike had written it all down, he rolled up the paper before he held it up in front of his face and breathed fire onto it; causing it to burn and flow out of the window in a small cloud of magic smoke.
After that, Spike looked over to me. "Do you think she'll be upset about this?" he asked.
I looked at him with an unsure look. "I don't know, Spike, probably. I mean, she intrusted us to protect the Elements and we screwed up...how did the thief even know we brought the Elements here in the first place?" I asked.
Spike shrugged. "No idea…maybe he really is watching us, lurking in the shadows and waiting for us to lead him to each of the Elements one-by-one. Maybe he's still here in Ponyville, hiding in plain sight." He said, getting more frightened with each of his thoughts.
I walked over to him. "Whow, whow, calm down buddy. Don't go giving yourself nightmares, that's the last thing we want." I said as I placed my hoof on his back.
Spike heard what I said and too a few breaths. "Thanks." He said. Suddenly, his cheeks inflated and he burped out a small amount of fire; releasing a small cloud of magic smoke that turned into a scroll.
As it dropped to the floor, I looked at it with nervousness. "Looks like the Princess wrote back. W-What's it say?" I asked, almost afraid to.
Spike picked up the scroll before he unravelled it and read it out-loud to me.
"My dearest friend, Matthew.
Even though I don't blame you or anyone else, it is unfortunate that another Element has been stolen and, as you may already know, this cannot be allowed to happen again. So in response to your request, I will aid you in keeping the Elements more protected. I am sending some of my guards down to you, it will take them at least half-an-hour to get there. Once they arrive, they will discuss the plan with you Twilight.
Yours truly: Princess Celestia."
Once Spike had finished reading the letter, he looked at me. "She's sending down some guards? How will that help?" he asked in confusion.
"Well…I have a good idea on what they're plan is." I stated.
"Really? What is it?" Spike asked curiously.
"Let's just say…we better get used to seeing them around for a while." I said nervously before I changed the subject. "C'mon, we better tell the others what the Princess said." I said.
With that, we both went back into the main room to inform Twilight & the others of this news and patiently waited for the guards to arrive.
Half-an-hour later
After a while of waiting, there was finally a knock on the library door. We answered it to see at least 12 guards standing outside, two of them entered to discuss the plan with us. They were both Pegasi, one of them was white and the other one was light-grey.
Dispite having the same pony feature, they were wearing different armour from the other guards. It looked similar to Shining Armor's, but instead of purple plating, theirs was bright-red. Twilight told me they were Elite Guards. She also told me that they're not normally seen around Canterlot, they only come out during really serious situations.
They told us the plan, but some of us weren't really big fans of it. "You wanna patrol outside our homes all day and night?" Rainbow Dash asked.
"Precisely, Miss Dash." One of the guards said before he looked at the rest of us. "Each of you will have two guards standing watch at your homes every night and every day until the culprit is captured. And if young Matthew's theory is correct, that shouldn't be too long." He said.
"Yeah, that's great and all, but there is such a thing as personal privacy. I don't wanna sound rude or nothin', but we can't have you guys bargin' in our homes any time ya please." Applejack stated.
"We are aware of that, Miss Applejack, and I assure you that we care for your privacy and it won't be disturbed unannounced. We want you all to feel relaxed and carry on with your normal lives while we tend to the protection of the Elements." The other guard said.
"But my Element has already been stolen, along with Pinkie Pie's, why do we still need guards?" Rarity asked curiously.
The guard turned his had to face her. "Your Elements may already be gone, but that doesn't mean you're safety is out of harm's way. Who knows, the culprit might come back to…how should I say it?…silence possible witnesses?" he said.
At that moment, Rarity looked as though she was going to faint. I noticed this and looked at the guard. "Don't say that, don't ever say such a thing to her. She's just been through a terrified state and I'd appreciate it if you didn't make her feel worse, thank you very much." I said firmly.
He then looked over to me. "I'm just saying, we can't take any chances with this guy. The Princess was very clear, your protection must be our top priority." He stated.
"But what about the Elements? She sent you to help us protect them." Twilight said.
The guard looked at her. "That's our second top priority. Have no worries, Mrs Sparkle, we'll all keep a very close eye on the Elements, you can guaranty that." He said.
"I'm not so sure about this." Twilight said with an unsure voice.
I walked up beside her. "Twilight, maybe we should consider this. When we're sleeping, the one time we've got our guard down, the culprit could sneak into our homes and snatch the Elements right from under us. I mean, look what happened with Rarity. Celestia said that this can't be allowed to happen again, I don't think we should take any more risks. But…if you're not comfortable with this, then we'll send them anyway, I'm sure the Princess would understand." I said.
Twilight turned her head to face me before she thought about what I said. "Well…I may not be keen on this idea, but you're right, Matt. We shouldn't take any more risks. The Elements are too important." She said.
"Wait a minute, you're actually considering this? From what you guys have told us, that crook took down a lot of tough guards, what's to stop him doing the same to these guys?" Rainbow Dash asked as she landed beside us.
"No need to worry about that, Miss Dash, we've been trained to fight off almost any foe. We've ever taken on a Hydra and captured it alive." One of the guards said.
Rainbow Dash heard that, but she was still unsure. I stepped forward to speak to her. "C'mon, Rainbow, it won't be so bad. They're not going to bother you, if that's what you're worried about, they said that themselves a few minutes ago." I said.
"Yeah, I heard." Rainbow Dash spat before she turned around and stormed to the front door. "I'll go along with this, but I'm not happy about it." she said before she walked out of the library and took off into the sky.
I could tell by the way she was acting today that something was bothering her. "What's eating her? She seems to be mad about something." I said.
"I'll tell you later, Matt." Twilight said before she looked at the rest of our friends. "Are the rest of you ok with this idea?" she asked, hoping they were.
Everyone looked at each other before they looked at us again. "We're not so sure, Twi. I mean, havin' a pair of guards in our homes all day just seems a bit…uncomfortable."
I then stepped forward. "Trust me, guys, this is probably a good thing. If he's just a common crook, then we don't have to catch him, we just need to make getting to the Elements harder than it's worth." I said.
"And if we're not dealing with a common crook?" Rarity asked.
I looked at her. "Then one way or another, we'll take him down and make him tell us where the missing Elements are. Hopefully these guards are tough enough to take him on and weaken him." I said.
"*Clears throat* Hydra, captured alive, I think I mentioned this." One of the guards said.
I just shook my head at this before returning to the subject. "Anyway, what I'm trying to say is, do any of you feel uncertain about this idea?" I asked.
Everyone was silent for a moment before Fluttershy spoke. "H-He's right…we have to guard our Elements somehow, and we can't do it every minute of every day. It's like the guard said, w-we have our own lives to tend to." she said before she looked at Applejack. "Applejack, can you protect your Element while running your farm?" she asked.
Applejack's ears lowered slightly. "…You've got a good point there."
"And Rarity & Pinkie's Elements may already gone, but who's to say they're safe? What if this crook needs us to power the Elements for something after he's got them? He might start snatching us in the night next, unless there's someone to warn us first." Fluttershy said.
Rarity and Pinkie Pie just gulped at this.
"And I can't protect my Element. I have my little animal friends to look out for…also, I…I'm not the toughest pony in the world." Fluttershy said shyly before she continued. "But these guards are tough and they can protect my Element for me, for all of us. I think we should give it a try." She said with a small smile.
After hearing all that from the usually shy pony, the rest of the girls looked at each other before they looked at me and Twilight. "Alright Matt, we're with ya on this. We'll just have to find a way to get used to it." Applejack said with Rarity and Pinkie Pie nodding in agreement.
I gave her a small smile. "I'm glad to hear that, Applejack. Now…it's getting late into the day, maybe this is a good time to go home and try to relax. Take one pair of guards with you and tell them where your Element is kept so they can begin guarding it." I said.
But before they could have a chance to leave, I walked up to them and motioned my hoof in a way to tell them to come closer. Once they did, I started whispering to them. "If you keep your Elements in a safe, don't tell these guards the combination to it. We're trusting them, but not that much. Ok?" I said.
Everyone nodded to say they agreed.
I then stepped back a bit. "Ok, see you all some other time." I said.
"See ya, Matt." Applejack said before she and the others turned around and made their way towards the front-door.
Applejack left the library, Pinkie Pie looked back at us. "And don't worry about Rainbow Dash, Mattie, I'm sure she'll come around eventually. Then we can all look back at that kiss you two had yesterday and laugh about it." she said with a cheerful smile before she left the library and closed the door behind her; leaving me, Twilight, Rarity, the guys, and the Elite guards alone in the room.
"Wait, what?" I said in confusion before I looked at Twilight. "What did she mean?" I asked.
Twilight turned her head to face me. "We'll talk about it later, Matt. For now, let's just try and make the best we can out of the rest of the day." she said.
I nodded to her. "Ok, Twilight…Tell you what, how about we set these guards up with their task, then we can go out to our favourite restaurant, just the two of us." I said with a small smile.
"But what about Spike, Jeff and Peewee?" Twilight asked.
Rarity stepped forward. "Well, I could look after them while you're gone. It's the least I can do for letting me stay here for a while." she said with a kind smile.
I looked at Twilight. "See? Everything will be fine. Wouldn't it be nice to get out for a little while, just you and me in a romantic atmosphere?" I asked.
Twilight then rubbed her chin with her hoof. "That does sound nice." She said before she looked at me. "Ok Matt. You tend to the guards, and I'll get some money upstairs." She said before she trotted over to the stairs that led up to our room.
Once she was gone, I looked over to the guards. "Alright, you two. Follow me and I'll show you where our elements are hidden." I said.
With that, I led the two Elites into the next room to show them where we were keeping our Elements; leaving Rarity, Spike, Jeff and Peewee alone in the room to discuss what they were going to do for the evening.
Meanwhile: Mount Forbidden/throne room
The large pair of doors slowly opened to reveal the Thief accompanied by Zelga. They both entered the throne room to see the Alicorn Leader sitting on his throne.
As the hooded pony and Zelga stopped in the centre of the room, the hooded pony bowed to his master. "Master, I have returned." He said.
The leader gave him and displeased look. "You're late." He said in a dark way.
The hooded pony raised his head back up to look at him. "A thousand apologies, master. I couldn't risk using my magic so close to the town, I had to travel further away." He explained.
"Is that so? Well, I trust you have some useful information regarding where those ponies have hid the Elements." The leader said.
The hooded pony stood up. "I have something better than that, my lord." He said before he reached his hoof into his cloak and pulled out one of the Elements. He held it in both his front-hooves and held it out to his master.
The leader's horn glowed before the Element shot over to him and stopped in front of his face. He took a close look at it before he grinned. "The Element of Generosity." He said before he looked down at the hooded pony. "Well done, my student. You will receive a fine reward for this. Now return to your quarters and wait for further instructions." he said.
The hooded pony bowed one last time. "Yes, master." He said before turned around and left the room with the doors closing behind him; leaving Zelga and the leader alone in the room.
The leader looked at the Element. "Generosity, what a foolish excuse for power. When a pony shows generosity, they show weakness! Weakness I will not allow in my world." he growled.
"Well you know what they say, brother. Generosity comes with its own reward. Maybe there's a way we can use that to our advantage." Zelga said with a devious smile.
The leader stopped and thought about what she said. "Hmm…a cunning thought, sister." He said before he tried to think up a plan.
After a minute, he thought of something. "Yes…I have an idea. We still need to know the location of the other Elements, and to do that we'll need a set of eyes in the crowd." he said.
"Say the word and I'll send the boy in, he'll find out where they're hiding them." Zelga said.
The leader held his hoof up. "No! He's already gained the attention of Matthew and his friends, if he gets anymore, they'll become suspicious. No, we need someone new, someone they won't suspect. We need." He said.
Zelga rolled her eyes. "If Matthew wasn't so busy playing detective, my boy could find all the Elements in one day. Isn't there anyway we can distract him somehow? What's the one thing he cares about more than this investigation?" she asked.
At that moment, the leader's eyes winded. "Of course…that's the answer. There is something more important to him, his dear little wife, Twilight Sparkle." He said with a dark smile.
"So what's the plan, kidnap her and hold her ransom for the Elements?" Zelga asked.
"We need to draw his attention away from us, doing something like that could do the exact opposite. No, we need to do something that doesn't involve the Elements, we need to cause a problem secondary situation in their lives...and I believe I know what that is." The leader said before he chuckled. "Haha, after all, what's a marriage life without its problems…especially if there's another mare involved."
Zelga gave him an unsure look. "I may not know much about Matthew, but by watching him, I can tell he isn't the cheating type. How do we expect him to turn his attention to another mare?" she asked.
"Simple, all it needs is the right touch from the right mare. I trust you know what I speak of." The leader said as he raised his eye-brow at her.
Zelga was confused for a moment before she realized what she meant. "Oh…" she said before she grinned. "Haha, I understand completely, brother." She said.
Zelga's horn then glowed before a bolt of purple flames shot up around her and covered her whole body. Within the fire, she body began to shrink and he parts of her body began to change.
The next day: Sugar Cube Corner
It was late in the morning and Jeff & I had decided to spend a little time together at Sugar Cube Corner. Like any ordinary guys, we talked about pretty much anything that interested us.
"So how was dinner with Twilight last night?" Jeff asked while standing on the same table I was sat in front of.
"It went well, Twilight enjoyed it, that's what really matters." I answered.
"Cool." Jeff said before he decided to change the subject. "Well, at least those guards weren't bothering us last night. I can probably live with it if they stay that quiet every night." he said.
"Hopefully, they will." I said. "So, any luck with Philomena lately?" I asked.
"Not really, haven't seen her in a while. I might go up to Canterlot sometime this week and see how she's doing." Jeff answered.
"Well at least she's not mad at you anymore, that's a starter." I stated.
Jeff chuckled slightly. "Haha, yeah." He said.
Just then, we heard someone come through the front-doors. We both looked over to the entrance to see it was Rainbow Dash. The moment I saw her, I knew this was a chance to talk to her. "Rainbow Dash!" I called.
Rainbow heard me and looked over to us. But once she saw me, she gave me a small glare before she stormed over to the counter. This both disappointed and saddened me a little.
"What's her problem lately?" Jeff asked.
I looked down at him. "Twilight told me the reason over dinner. She's mad because she had to share her first kiss with me." I said.
Jeff raised his eye-brow. "You're kiddin', right? She's in a grump because of that? Doesn't seem worth it if you ask me." he said.
"Maybe not to us, but to a girl it's all different. I think they're more touchy about it than we are." I said.
"I don't doubt that." Jeff stated.
Just then, Mrs Cake came over to our table. "Can I get you boys anything? Maybe a nice drink?" she asked kindly.
I turned my head to face her and shook my head. "No thanks, Mrs Cake, we're good." I said. Just then, I noticed something different about her, he stomach was larger than usual.
Mrs Cake noticed me looking at her stomach and gave me a small smile. "You're probably wondering about that, huh?" she asked.
I snapped my head back up to her face. "What? No, I wasn't wondering anything." I said while looking away. I knew it was rude to stare, so I was trying to act like I wasn't looking at anything.
"Matthew, it's ok. I was actually hoping someone would eventually notice." Mrs Cake said.
I turned my head to face her again. "Really? Why?" I asked.
"Because…are you ready for this?...I'm pregnant!" Mrs Cake said with a cheerful smile.
"Pregnant?!" Jeff and I said at the same time.
Mrs Cake nodded. "Yeah, five months now. Four more months and we'll have a little foal of our own." She said.
"Well that's great news, Mrs Cake. I'm happy for you, and Mr Cake." I said with a kind smile.
"Thank you, Matthew. By the way, I see you and Twilight have been enjoying your married life, ever thought about having kids of your own?" Mrs Cake asked before he smile suddenly went away. "Oh goodness, I'm so sorry. I shouldn't be asking you that without your promotion. That was rude of me."
I raised my hoof up. "No, it's alright, Mrs Cake. To answer your question, we haven't really talked about it. I think she tries to mention it sometimes, but can never find the right words." I said.
"Well in the end, it's completely up to the both of you." Mrs Cake said.
Just then. "Excuse me, Miss, I need some help over here." a pony called from the other table across the room.
Mrs Cake turned her head around to look at him. "I'll be right over." She said before she looked at me again. "I have to go, it was nice talking to you, Matt." she said.
"Same to you, Mrs Cake." I said.
Mrs Cake then turned around and made her way over to the pony on the other table; leaving me and Jeff alone at our table.
The moment was then quiet enough for me to think about what she said. I still couldn't believe she was pregnant. I mean, seriously, 5 month without us noticing? You'd think Pinkie would've said something by now. My thoughts then changed to the other subject about Twilight and I having our own child.
I've been married to Twilight for a while now and I've never really thought about it before. Would it make our lives better or harder? Maybe the better question is, would I make a good father? All these questions ran through my mind until I realised something that made a chill go up my spine.
Jeff noticed the slightly worried look on my face. "Hey dude, are you ok? You don't look so hot." He said.
I snapped out of my thoughts before I looked down at him. "Wha?...Urr, yeah, I'm fine. I just had a worrying thought." I said.
"What is it?" Jeff asked curiously.
I didn't know whether or not I should tell him. But he was one of my best friends and I could trust him. So I looked left and right to make sure no-one was looking before I lowered my head down to him to whisper. "It's possible that…Twilight may be getting pregnant." I said.
Jeff was silent for a second before he spoke. "I think the winter air may be getting to ya head." he said.
"No Jeff, I'm serious. Twilight doesn't know it yet, but she's probably getting pregnant, it's early to say." I said with a bit of worry in my voice.
"Dude, c'mon. Even I know how the birds-and-the-bees thing works. A couple has to do the, you know…business…before they can a kid. I mean, haha, it's not you and Twilight have actually…" Jeff stopped in his sentence once he saw the look on my face.
After a second, he realised what I was trying to tell him. "*Gasp* Matt! Are you tellin' me that you've-MMM!" I quickly silenced him and slamming his beak shut with my hooves.
"Speak a little louder, Jeff, I don't think the Ponies in Las Pegasus can hear you!" I said loudly.
Jeff then pushed my hooves off his beak and spoke. "Sorry, but…seriously, you and Twilight have…w-when was this?" he asked.
I rubbed the back of my neck with my hoof. "…On the night of my Birthday." I answered.
Jeff gave me a slightly confused look. "Your Birthday? But that was the day before yesterday." he said before his eyes widened. "When me and the guys had to sleep over at Rarity's for some reason." He said.
"Yeah, that's was Twilight's doing. I had no idea what she was up to at the time, but…I can't say I didn't like it." I said while blushing slightly.
"Well…if Twilight is pregnant, wouldn't that be a good thing?" Jeff asked curiously.
I thought about it for a minute before I answered. "…Yeah, it would…but I'm just worried. What if I'm not cut out to be a dad? I mean, if can barely protect the Elements, how am I supposed to protect my own child?" I asked.
Jeff walked up the table and placed his wing on my hoof. "Hey, I know you, and you would make an awesome dad. You would protect your kid the same way you'd protect Twilight." he said.
"…With my life…" I said.
"Exactly. Also, you're a fun guy when you want to be, your funny, and I've seen how you treat Applebloom and her friends. They really like you, and if you treat your kid the same way, he or she would like you too." Jeff said with a kind smile.
I returned his smile. "Thanks Jeff, you're a real pal, you know that?" I said.
"When am I not?" Jeff said with a smirk. "You know something, I am feelin' a little thirsty now. How about we get some of those drinks Mrs C offered us?" he asked.
"Sounds good to me." I said.
But before I could call for Mrs Cake, Peewee flew into the building and looked over to us. "Matt!" he said before he flew over to us and landed on the table, he looked as though something was wrong.
"Peewee, What's wrong?" I said in concern.
Peewee panted as he answered me. "Something *pant, pant*…up in the…*pant, pant*..Ever Free Forest…*pant, pant*…Someone's in trouble…I heard a girl scream. It was near the Ruined Castle." He said.
With that, I looked at Jeff. "Sorry Jeff, you're gonna have to count me out with the drink thing." I said before I stood up and rushed to the exit.
Peewee and Jeff watched me. "Where are you goin'?" Jeff asked.
I stopped in front of the doorway before I looked back and answered him. "Ever Free, apparently." I said before I left the building and took off high up into the sky.
From this high up, I could see Ever Free Forest in the distance. Once I knew where I was going, I shot off to find this endangered mare.
A few minutes later: Deep in the Ever Free Forest
I flew above the trees so I could have a good view of what was below. I searched and listened, but I couldn't find any trace of this mare Peewee told me about.
I saw the Ruined Castle up ahead and flew around the area surrounding it. I still couldn't find anything, until. "AAAAHHHH!" A female voice screamed.
I flew in the direction the scream came from until I found what I was looking for. A female Pegasus was trapped on top of a big rock surrounded by what looked like wolves made of sticks.
I flew down to them and targeted one of the wolves. As I swooped in, I rammed into it and it literally exploded into sticks. This caught the attention of the others and they watched me turned around to them.
I landed a short distance away from them and I got a good look at the wolves. "Wood wolves…that's a new one." I said to myself.
The 3 remaining wolves then charged towards me barking like actual wolves. "Crap." I said to myself as I back up a bit.
I continued to back away as they got closer. Eventually, I backed into something, I turned around to see it was another big rock. At that moment, I got an idea. I looked at the wood wolves and waited for the right moment.
Once it came, I quickly took off into the air and one of the wolves ran straight into the rock and, like the other one, it exploded into sticks. The other ones were smart and stopped before they could share the same fate.
While I had some spare time, I landed on the rock beside the mare and looked at her. "Hey, are you ok?" I asked.
She looked at me. "Urrr…n-no, not really. One of my wings are broken, I can't fly away. I tried to reach the town called Ponyville, but these Timberwolves came out of no-where and chased me. I managed to get on top of this rock, good think they can't climb so well." She said.
"Timberwolves, aye? Better name than Wood Wolves." I said.
At that moment, the 2 remaining Timberwolves came to the rock and started barking and snarling up at us. I spread my wings out to prepare to fight. "Stay up here where it's safe, I'll take care of these things." I said.
But before I could take off, she placed her hoof on my shoulder. "Wait, you can't fight them, they'll eventually overpower you." she said.
I turned around to face her. "They die with one hit? How can they overpower me?" I asked.
"They don't die, look." She said as she pointed her hoof down at something.
I looked to where she was pointing and saw the remains of the first wolf I beat. The pieces of wood and leaves began to glow green until they started putting themselves back together. After a minute, the whole wolf was back in one piece and joined the others. I then looked over to the second wolf I beat to see it was doing the same. "Oh that's just cheating." I said out-loud.
We now had all 4 Timberwolves trying to reach us. "Got any other ideas?" the mare asked.
"Just one." I said before I turned around to her. "You need to climb onto my back, can you do that?" I asked.
She gave me a confused look. "What?...Y-Yeah, I think so." she said before she climbed onto my back and wrapped her arms around my neck.
I then managed to spread my wings out again. "Hold on tight, it's gonna get windy." I said before I used all my strength to take off into the air with the mare on my back.
The Timberwolves saw this and attempted to chase us, but eventually gave up and stopped in the middle of the forest. All I could hear was their howls growing quieter as I flew further away from the area.
A few minutes later: Field outside Ponyville
I landed in the field outside Ponyville and the mare climbed off my back. I took this time to get a good look at her.
She had a purple coat, a black mane & tail, and her eyes were light-purple. She had the same body as Luna, but she had the same mane and tail as Cadence. She was also just as beautiful as them.
I then looked at her wings to see one of them was in a crooked position, that must've been the broken one. "Maybe we should go to the hospital about that." I said.
She turned her head to face me. "Yeah, but first I want to know the name of who I'm thanking for saving me." she said with a small smile.
"Oh, I'm Matthew." I answered.
She then looked at me with slight shock. "The Matthew? Wow, I can't believe I'm actually meeting you. No, scratch that, I can't believe I actually got saved by you. My life is now fully complete." She said, sounding like an excited fan girl.
I chuckled. "Well I'm glad to see you're in a cheery mood, considering the fact that we nearly got mauled by walking firewood." I said.
The mare laughed at this. "Haha, wow, no-one ever said you'd be so funny." She said before she took a step closer. "Not to mention…handsome." She said with a sly smile.
I gulped a bit before I cleared my throat. "Well…urr…anyway, maybe we should head over to the hospital and have that wing put into a cast." I said before I turned around and started making my way towards town.
As the mare began to follow me, I stopped and turned my head around to face her. "Oh by the way, I never got your name." I said.
With that, she gave me a kind smile. "…Zelga…Miss Zelga." She answered.
I returned her smile. "Ok, Zelga, just follow me to the hospital. Then we can get that wing wrapped up and you'll start feeling better in no time." I said.
Zelga chuckled. "Haha, I bet I will." She said.
As I turned my head back around and kept walking, Zelga grinned deviously. "I have a feeling things are gonna get much more interesting." She said as her eyes glowed red for moment before they returned to normal.
Zelga then caught up beside me and we both made our way towards Ponyville to find the hospital.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
Pony News: A lot of new episodes are on the way. Here's what we can expect from them.
Today's episode will feature one of Pinkie's sisters coming to town.
Sweetie Belle gets a visit from Luna in her dreams.
Flim and Flam return and this time they're selling they're new project, cure-all tonic. Granny Smith gets some and it actually works.
Rainbow Dash tried to become a member of the Wonderbolts Reserve.
There's another episode, but the plot isn't so clear yet.
Poll: As I mentioned at the beginning, I want to delete one of my chapters and change another. These chapters are 'From one world to another – part 1 & 2'. I don't think I need to tell you why I want to change them, all I want is your support on this. These are the options.
1: Change them if you want, it's your story and I will support your choice.
2: Change them, but I won't like it very much.
3: Don't change them.
Please remember to review.
Next chapter will be up as soon as it can.
53. Chapter 53: Zelga charm
Hi everypony, welcome back again.
Now then, let's have a look at those poll results. 9 people will support my choice to change the chapters I don't want any more, 2 people say I can change them but won't like it, and 1 don't want anything changed. By the time you read this, the chapters would probably be changed by now. If not, I'm still working on it.
Anyway, on to the chapter. Please enjoy.
Chapter 53: Deviless in Disguise
Ponyville hospital
After arriving at the hospital with Zelga, I took her to my usual doctor and he tended to her broken wing. During that time, I got to know Zelga a little more. She was definitely a free-spirited pony, the type that likes the thrill of things, particularly danger.
I was actually starting to think how she got in that mess with the Timberwolves in the first place. Was it your common wild animal attack, or a thrill chase gone wrong?
I sat in the room with Zelga as the doctor used his magic to wrap bandages around her wing. At one point, she Zelga flinched in pain. "I'm sorry, miss. Did that hurt you?" the doctor asked as he stopped.
Zelga looked at him. "A little, but nothing compared to the crash that caused it." she said.
"You never did say how you crashed in the first place." I said while sitting at the other end of the room.
Zelga looked over to me. "I trying to get to this town in a hurry, then there was this flock of birds or whatever, flew right into it, and…I guess you can tell what happened after that." She said.
"Oh." I said before I looked at the clock on the wall. It was nearly twelve-o-clock and my eyes widened slightly. "Oh god, is that the time?" I said before I stood up onto my hooves and looked at Zelga. "I need to go, my wife and friends are waiting for me somewhere. I'll see you around, ok." I said as I made my way towards the exit.
"Wait!" Zelga said; making me stop and turn around to face her. "Do you mind if I come with you to see them? I won't be a bother, I promise." She said with an innocent smile.
I turned my body around so I could face her properly. "You want to meet them? But what about your wing?" I asked.
Zelga gave me an amused smile. "Matt, I just need to ease off on the flying for a while, my hooves work fine. *Giggle*" she giggled.
I chuckled as I returned her smile. "Haha…well, ok then." I said.
"Awesome." Zelga said before she jumped of the hospital bed and walked over to me. "Ready whenever you are, good lookin'." She said with a cheeky smile.
I blushed slightly at what she called me. "Um…a-alright…we can go right now." I said.
"Great." Zelga said before she turned her head around to look at the doctor. "Thanks for tending to my wing, doc. I owe you one." She said.
"It's quit alright, Miss. Just stay off that wing for a while and let it heal." The doctor said.
"Will do, doc." Zelga said before she and I walked out of the room to leave.
After leaving the hospital, Zelga looked at me. "So…where are we meeting your friends?" she asked curiously.
I turned my head to face her as we kept walking towards town. "They're at the café in the town centre. Don't worry, it's not far." I said.
"Ok…but before, in the emergency room, did you say your friends and wife were waiting there?" Zelga asked even more curiously.
I nodded. "Yeah, her name's Twilight Sparkle. Or as I like to call her, the lovely gem in my life." I said.
Zelga's ears dropped slightly. "Oh…that means you're married…how nice." She said with a bit of a disappointed voice while looking down at the path.
I noticed this and felt concerned. "Hey, are you alright? Did I say something?" I asked.
Zelga then looked at me again and gave me a weak smile. "No, you didn't…I'm looking forward to meeting her, she must be quit a pony if she got your attention." She said.
I nodded. "She is. I met her when I first came to Ponyville, she let me stay with her in the library, one thing led to another and now here we are, nearly a year later and happily married." I said before I returned my attention to path ahead.
While I wasn't looking, Zelga grinned deviously. "Hmm…we'll see about that." She thought as we continued on our way into town.
Later: Ponyville Café
As Zelga and I arrived at the café, I saw Twilight and the others, including Spike, sitting around a big table and they were talking to each other.
As we walked up to them, Pinkie Pie was quick to notice us. "Mattie! Where've you been? Have you been playing hide-and-seek without us?" she asked with a large smile.
I shook my head. "No, Pinkie. I had a bit of problem to take care of." I stated.
"Jeff and Peewee told us you went off to save a mare in the Ever Free Forest." Rarity said before she looked at Zelga who was standing beside me. "Is this her?" she asked.
I nodded. "Yeah." I said before I looked at Zelga. "Everyone, this is Zelga, she had a bit of trouble in the forest." I said.
Everyone looked at Zelga. "Oh! Was she playing hide-and-seek with somepony but they couldn't find her and forgot about her and she got lost trying to find her way home?" Pinkie asked.
I looked at her again and shook my head. "No Pinkie, I don't think she was." I said before I leaned my head over to Zelga. "Were you doing that?" I asked in a whisper.
Zelga looked at me with a raised eye-brow. "Urr, no. I told you how I got in that mess, remember?" she said in an obvious tone.
I then remembered what she told me before. "Oh yeah, sorry." I said before I moved my head away from Zelga and focused on the others. "Anyway, she broke her wing and I had to take her to the hospital. I was going to leave her in the doctor's care, but she wanted to come meet you guys." I explained.
At that moment, Zelga stepped forward. "It's an honour to meet you all…Wow, I can't believe I'm actually meeting the six ponies who represent the Elements of Harmony, this is so cool." She said in excitement.
Applejack gave her an awkward look. "Urr…thanks and all, but how do you know about that?" she asked.
Zelga looked at her and laughed nervously. "Haha…well, dah, who doesn't know about it. You beat Nightmare Moon with them and they turned her back to Princess Luna. That's not something anyone just forgets, it's gonna go down in the history books, I wouldn't be surprised if it already is." She said.
"Well you sure know a lot about us." Rainbow Dash said.
Zelga looked at her. "I'm a big fan, particularly of yours, Rainbow Dash. You're totally awesome, is it true you pulled off a Sonic Rainboom more than once?" she asked.
Rainbow Dash stared at her for a moment before she smiled proudly. "Well, I don't like to brag but…oh who am I kidding, I totally like to brag! Yeah, I must've pulled it off loads of times." She said.
"Three times, by my count." Applejack said with her eye-lids half closed; earning a look from Rainbow.
Zelga rolled her eyes before she noticed Fluttershy giving her a shy look. Trying to pass as a friendly visitor, she smiled at her. "Hello…Fluttershy, right?" she asked.
Fluttershy gave her a small smile. "Yeah…it's nice to meet you, Zelga." She said shyly.
"Matt told me about you on the way here. He says you like to take care of animals. I like animals too, particularly bats." Zelga said.
"Bats?" Fluttershy said out of confusion.
Zelga nodded. "Yeah, I just find them fascinating. How they sleep upside-down, come out only at night, and how there's so many different types of them. I mean, there're Vampire Bats, Fruit Bats, and possibly many more." She said.
"I think there's some Fruit Bats nesting somewhere in my Peach Tree, but it's been a while since I saw them." Fluttershy said in a not-so-sure tone.
"Cool, I should come by sometime." Zelga said before she looked over to Rarity. "And you must be the generous Rarity that Clothes Horse magazine always talks about. I must say, you're much prettier in person." Zelga said.
Rarity smiled kindly. "Why thank you, Zelga. I did use some new eye-liner today." She said as she fluttered her eyes.
"Yeah, I've noticed, it looks great on you. By the way, I love your work in fashion, I'm thinking of studying it myself one day. Say…I've been looking for a fashion designer to help me get a new wardrobe, think you can help me out with that, you'll be well paid." Zelga said.
Rarity smiled with excitement. "*Gasp!* I'd be honoured to, Zelga. It may be a great opportunity to show off my latest designs." She said.
"I'm looking forward to seeing them." Zelga said before she noticed Spike walking around the table to me. "Oh my goodness, I never knew you had a dragon. What's your name?" She said.
Spike smiled up at her. "I'm Spike." he answered.
"That's a nice name for a dragon. Aww, you're so cute." Zelga said like a girl who just saw a baby bunny.
Spike blushed slightly. "Thanks." He said before he looked up at me with a smirk. "I like her already." He said as he tapped my side with his elbow.
Zelga then looked across the table to see Twilight sitting on the other side. "Let me guess, Twilight Sparkle, right?" she said.
Twilight nodded. "Yeah, that's me." she said before she gave Zelga her best smile. "So…Matt saved you, right?" she asked.
"Yeah." Zelga said before she looked at me. "He saved my life from those Timberwolves. And may I say, he looked pretty awesome doing so." she said still looking at me.
Twilight noticed the look she was giving me and gave her a look of disapproval. "Yeah…well, he does that lot. Care to sit down and tell us more about yourself?" she asked calmly.
Zelga looked over to her. "I'd like to, but I was hoping someone could give me the tour of the town. Maybe…Matt would be so kind as to-"
"I'll do it!" I'll do it! I love to give new ponies the tour, I know all the best places to go!" Pinkie Pie said in excitement while hopping on the spot.
"Good idea, Pinkie. You don't mind, do you Zelga?" I asked with a friendly smile.
Zelga looked at Pinkie awkwardly before she gave me a fake smile. "Of course not, it'll give me and…Binkie here enough time to get to know each other." she said.
"Urr…my name is Pinkie." Pinkie Pie stated.
At that moment, Zelga wrapped her arm around her neck. "See? We're already starting." She said while still smiling.
"Well in that case, we'll see you later." I said.
"Yeah, see you all lat-AHH!" Zelga yelled as Pinkie started pushing her away with her head to start the tour.
"You're gonna love it here in Ponyville, we have farms, stores, a spare, a library, restaurants, an arcade." Pinkie kept going on as she continued to push Zelga away; making her gain an annoyed look.
As they went away, I walked around to Twilight and sat down beside her. "Well she was nice, wasn't she?" I asked.
Twilight, with the disapproved look still on her face, looked at me. "I suppose, but there's something a bit…odd…about her." She said.
"Oh come now, Twilight. She just knew a lot about us, many ponies probably do by now. She was probably just excited to meet us and wanted to make a good impression." Rarity said.
Twilight then thought about what she said. "Well…maybe." She said before she glanced over to Zelga who was still being pushed away by Pinkie. "But that doesn't mean I have to trust her." She said under her breath.
That night: Library
While Spike and the others were sleeping soundly in the basket, Twilight and I was in bed having a small conversation. But unlike our usual bedtime talks, this one was hard, mostly because Twilight had her face buried in a book…again.
While lying flat on the bed with my head on the pillow, I tapped my hooves together trying to think of what to say. "Well…today was nice, wasn't it? I mean, Rainbow Dash was still in a bit of a mood with me, but I did a good deed and we got a new friend out of it. That's good, right?" I asked.
"Uh-huh." Twilight said while still reading her book which was held in front of her face with her magic.
I noticed she wasn't in her cheeriest mood tonight and I was a little concerned about it. "Twi, are you alright? You've barely said three words all night. Is something bothering you?" I asked as I leaned up on the bed.
Twilight let out a small sigh before she closed the book. Once she placed it down, she turned her head to face me. "Sorry Matt, it's just…I can't help but feel a little bother by this Zelga girl. She just seems a bit…odd to me." she explained.
I gave her a slightly amused smile. "You've never had a big fan before, have ya?" I joked.
Twilight didn't return it. "No, it's not that. I'm bothered because of the things she knew about us, things we don't usually share with other ponies that often." She said.
I shrugged. "Well maybe she's the type who likes to learn about things. You and her should get together for a study session sometime." I said.
Twilight then crossed her arms. "Also, I noticed the looks she was giving you. And I think you noticed them too." She said with a small glare.
"What looks?" I asked in confusion.
"Oh don't act like you didn't see it. She was eyeing you like vulture looking for prey." Twilight said.
I was slightly nervous by this. "She was?" I said before I thought about some of Zelga's actions from earlier. "Well…I noticed some weird stuff before. But I thought she was either being nice or just joking." I explained.
After hearing this, Twilight calmed down a little. "Well…still, just remember who your wife is." She said in a serious tone.
"Twi…listen to me…you're the only pony for me. I love you more that life itself, remember?" I asked.
Twilight was able to grow a small smile. "…I love you too, Matt." she said.
"And besides, Zelga's gone now. Pinkie said she went back home. I wonder where she lives anyway." I said.
"Hopefully far away from here." Twilight said under her breath.
"What was that?" I asked curiously.
Twilight shifted her eyes left and right. "Nothing. Whoo, is' that the time? We better get some sleep." she said before she kissed my cheek and lied down on the bed. "Goodnight, Matt." she said before she closed her eyes to fall asleep.
I didn't know what that was all about, but I just let it slide by. "Goodnight, Twi." I said with before I lied down on the bed and rested my head on the pillow.
We both then closed our eyes to go to sleep peacefully.
Meanwhile: Canterlot castle
Celestia entered her room to get some well-earned rest after a tiresome day. As she made her way towards her bed, she used her magic to remove her tiara, golden shoes, & neckpiece and placed them on a desk on the other side of the room.
Celestia was about to climb into bed, she heard a bunch of small noises down the hall outside her room, it sounded like talking. She turned her head around and sighed. "Doesn't anyone sleep around here?" she said before she walked over to the doorway and left the room.
She followed the sound until she saw the Diamond Dogs walking down the hall away from her. "Why is he making us do this now? At this time of night?" Rover asked in annoyance.
"He is trying to impress pretty pony Princess by solving the robbery thing." Spot explained.
"Still! At this time of night?!" Rover repeated.
"Shhhh, not so loud. Sleeping ponies will hear you." Fido said in a slight whisper.
Celestia wondered why they were walking through the castle at this time of night. "What are those three up to?" she thought before she decided to follow them.
She followed the three dogs to the vault room where the Elements were once held. She peeked through the doorway and saw Discord wearing a detective's outfit with a smoking pipe in his mouth, each time he blew into it bubbles came out of the other end.
Each of the Diamond Dogs were in different parts of the room sniffing around on the floor.
"Pick up anything yet, boys?" Discord asked before he blew into his bubble pipe again.
Rover stood up and turned around to face him. "No, sir. All we can pick up is the Princesses, some guards, and I think a sales pony." He said.
"Yeah, he was in here earlier today. I got some lovely smelling bath soap from him." Discord said as he pulled out a red bar of soap and smelled it. "Mmm, strawberries." He said before he made it disappear in a flash of light.
"Lord Discord, don't you think it's too late for this. I mean, the robbery happened weeks ago. If the culprit's sent was here, it's probably gone by now." Fido said as he joined them.
"That I can agree with." Celestia said as she entered the room and walked over to them.
Discord and the Diamond Dogs quickly turned around to see her. "Celestia! What are you doing out of bed at this time of night?" Discord asked.
"I could ask you the same question." Celestia replied as she stopped in-front of him.
Discord tapped his fingers together nervously. "Well…I…I'm just trying to help solve the case of the missing Elements. I thought it would best to do it while everyone else was sleeping." He explained.
Celestia remained silent until she looked at the Diamond Dogs. "I need to talk to Discord for a moment, you three can go to bed." she said kindly.
They smiled at her. "Thank you, your highness." Rover said before they walked past Celestia and made their way towards the room's exit.
Discord watched as they left. "But I need them to help me solve the case." He said.
"Discord, I appreciate that you want to help solve this mystery, but you can't stay up all night searching the room for more clues." Celestia said.
"Of course I can. I'm a spirit, I don't require sleep." Discord stated.
"Maybe, but the Diamond Dogs do. Solving this case could take many more weeks, possibly months, you can't really expect to do to in one night." Celestia said.
Discord frowned as he took his detective's hat off. "I was only trying to be more helpful." He said sadly.
Celestia stepped forward to him. "And you can be, but not right now. If you want, you can continue this in the morning, but for now you need to get some rest." She said sweetly.
Discord thought about it before he gave her a small smile. "Very well, Celestia, I'll go bed and continue this in the morning." He said before his detective's outfit disappeared in a flash of light.
Celestia smiled. "I'm happy to hear that. Goodnight, Discord. Pleasant dreams." She said before she turned around and made her way towards the room exit.
"Goodnight, Celestia. Same for you." Discord said before he snapped his figers and disappeared in a flash of light.
The next morning: Ponyville
After waking up and having breakfast, Twilight and I left the library and were now on our way to Sweet Apple Arches to help Applejack and her family gather the last few apples in the orchard before the cold weather kills them.
Along the way, we admired our surrounds. The entire land, including the town, was covered in a thick blanket of snow. Small white specks floated down of the cloudy sky and landed on the white ground beneath our hooves.
Twilight and I were both wearing scarfs. Twilight was wearing a pink scarf with light-pink stripes on it, and I was wearing the red scarf Rarity gave me for my birthday. "Wow, winter sure is beautiful, isn't it?" Twilight asked.
"Yeah, we didn't get much snow back in England. Well, we did, but only if we got luck." I said before I thought of something that made me chuckle. "Haha, one time it snowed so much that it was a foot deep, and even then it kept snowing. A bunch of kids made a giant pile out of snow and it took forever to melt after winter ended. It was probably there for a month or possibly longer." I said.
Twilight turned her head around to face me. "Really? Well around here, you won't have to wait for the snow to melt after winter. What with Winter Wrap Up and all." She said.
At that moment, I remembered that. "Oh yeah, I forgot about that. My God, will I have to be part of that when it comes?" I asked her.
Twilight thought about it for a second before she answered. "I suppose so. But don't worry, Spring isn't for another few months, so just relax and enjoy winter while it's here." she said.
I then stopped and let her walk ahead as I grinned deviously. "Alright then, if you say so." I said before I lowered myself down to the snow-covered ground and gathered as much snow as I could. I scooped a bit of it up in my hooves and made a snowball out of it.
Once it was done, I threw it towards Twilight and it hit the back of her head; making her yell out in surprise. She spun her head around to see me whistling innocently. "Very funny, Matt." she said with an amused smile.
"I have no idea what you're on about." I said; acting like I didn't do anything.
At that moment, Twilight used her magic to make a snowball and grinned deviously at me. I saw this and backed away slowly. "Hey, whow, wait a minute!" I said in fear.
Twilight didn't hesitate in throw the snowball at me and it hit me straight in the face; covering it with snow. This made Twilight laugh. "Hahaha, there, now we're even." She said with pride.
I wiped the snow off my face with my right-hoof. "Not even close." I said before I made another snowball and made my way towards her while holding it in my right-hoof.
Now it was Twilight's turn to back away with fright. "No! Don't you dare! NO!" She said as she spun around and galloped away.
I quickly chased after her and threw the snowball once I had the chance. It his Twilight's back and she stopped galloping, she turned around to face me and made a very large snowball with her magic. I looked at it with slight fear and gulped.
Twilight threw it at me and it landed right on top of me, I was so mesmerised by the snowball's size that I didn't even bother to move, I just let it hit me; burying me in a big pile of snow.
Twilight galloped over to the snow pile I was now under and stopped in front of it. "Matt! Matt, are you ok?" she said in concern.
"Well, well, if it isn't Equestria's faverate love birds." a familiar female voice said.
Twilight felt a cold shiver go up her spine before she turned around to see Zelga wearing a dark-purple wool hat and a dark-purple scarf. "Having fun with your hubby?" she asked.
"Z-Zelga?" Twilight asked with a surprised look on her face.
I heard what she said and I quickly popped my head up out of the snow pile. "Zelga?" I repeated.
"That my name, don't wear it out or I'll have to make you buy me a new one." Zelga said with a cheeky smile.
Twilight and I looked at each other awkwardly before we looked back at Zelga. "W-What are you doing here? I mean, I thought you went home yesterday." Twilight said.
"I did. I live in a cottage on the other side of town." Zelga explained.
Twilight's eyes then widened. "You…You live in Ponyville? Since when? I've never seen you around here." she said.
I forced my way out of the snow pile and stood beside Twilight to listen closely to Zelga's answer.
Zelga rubbed the back of her neck with her hoof. "Yeah, you know when I was in the Ever Free Forest yesterday? I was following a Moving Wagon. Walking was tiring and boring, so I decided to follow them through the sky. But when they entered the forest, I lost sight of them, so I went down to find them and…I suppose you both know what happened next." She explained.
"So what? You're here to stay? You live here now?" Twilight asked.
Zelga nodded. "Yep, and I'm looking forward to spending a lot of time with you guys." She said with a pleased smile on her face.
This didn't make Twilight feel any better. In fact, she felt more nervous and troubled than she was before.
"So, what are you guys up to? Just a fun day playing in the snow?" Zelga asked.
"No, not really, we just got caught up in the fun. We're heading over to Sweet Apple Arches to help Applejack and her family, they're trying to gather every apple in the orchard before the cold weather ruins them. Something about needing them for cider sales." I explained.
"*Dramatic whistle*, that's a lot of apples. You sure you can gather all of them in time?" Zelga asked curiously.
"I think so, but Applejack's always open for some extra hooves. If you want, you come with us and help." I said with a friendly smile.
Twilight quickly turned her head to face me. "No!" she said quite loudly; making us both stare at her in confusion.
"W-Why not, Twi?" I asked curiously.
Twilight then realized how she just sounded and quickly made up something to say. "Because…she's probably busy with something else. She's just moved here, I'm sure she wants a little time to get used to her new home." She lied to hide her true feelings.
"Actually, I don't. Tinkie already showed me around town yesterday." Zelga stated before she looked down at the ground with a slightly annoyed look on her face. "All day yesterday, in fact." She said under her breath.
Twilight looked at her with her eye-lids half closed. "It's Pinkie, her name is Pinkie." She said.
Zelga looked at her and gave her a fake smile. "Of course it is, how silly of me." she said before she looked at me. "Now to answer your question. Sure, I'd like to help you guys with the orchard." She said.
"Cool, let's go then." I said before Twilight and I continued walking down the street with Zelga following behind.
Along the way, Twilight couldn't help but look over her thoughts about Zelga. She couldn't explain it, but she felt that something was wrong with Zelga, like there was something she wasn't telling us. However, she knew how her paranoia could make her feel and think things that weren't true. So she decided to give Zelga a chance and see how the rest of the day turns out.
At that moment, Zelga came up between me & Twilight and smiled sweetly at me. All I did was smile nervously at her before I turned my head away to avoid eye-contact. Twilight may be giving her a chance, but she didn't have to like it.
A few minutes later: Sweet Apple Arches
After arriving at Sweet Apple Arches, we headed into the apple orchard and saw Applejack bucking trees. Applebloom was with her collecting any apples that missed the baskets under the trees.
As we walked over to her, Applejack noticed us. "Well you two sure took ya time, but I'm glad ya both could make-" she said before she noticed Zelga with us. "Urr…hey Zelga, what're you doin' here?" she asked curiously.
We stopped in front of her and Zelga answered her. "I'm here to help you with the apple gathering. I can help you, can't I? Matt said you were always open for some extra help." She said.
"Well…y-yeah, I suppose. Big Mac's over yonder on the other side of the orchard, you can go help him if ya want." Applejack said with a small confused smile.
"Thanks AJ." Zelga said before she trotted past us to help Big Mac. "See ya, guys." She said.
Once she was far enough away, Applejack looked at us. "Not to be rude or anythin', but why was she with you guys?" she asked.
"We ran into her on the way here and I asked if she wanted to help us." I explained.
Twilight then stepped forward. "Sorry about this, Applejack. I think we should've asked you first." She said.
"Why be sorry, Twilight? I'm glad ya brought her. Not only will the job be done twice as fast now, but we're connectin' with our new friend. Now we just need to get the others over here and we'll be done by launch." Applejack said with a normal smile.
Twilight gave her a slightly shocked look. "B-But Applejack!"
"Twilight, you help me over by the on the East side of the orchard and Matt will work with Applebloom on the South side. Big Mac & Zelga's already coverin' the North side, so we don't need to worry about that." Applejack answered as she
"What about the West side? Is Granny Smith covering it?" I asked curiously.
Applejack shook her head. "Nah, Granny does what she usually does. In fact, if you look real close like, you can just see her inside the barn." She said as she pointed at the barn.
Twilight and I then turned our heads to look over to the barn. We squinted our eyes until we could just make out a small green dot rocking back forth inside the barn. "Oh yeah, I think I see her." I said.
We then returned our attention to Applejack. "Now then, on to business." I said before I started making my way towards Applebloom.
"Be careful, Matt." Twilight called to me.
As I kept walking, I turned my head around to face her. "I will. You be careful too." I replied before I turned my head back around.
As Twilight and Applejack made their way to their work posts, I approached Applebloom and noticed that she was facing the other direction. I instantly thought up a funny idea and I grinned with amusement.
I spread out my right-wing and slowly lowered it down to her. The tip of my longest feather touched behind her right-ear and I tickled it. Applebloom soon felt it and she pressed down on her ear with her hoof. "Haha, whoever's doin' that, stop it." she said with a giggly smile.
"I'll stop it when you stop laughing." I responded.
Applebloom's eyes widened before she spun around to see me. "Matt! Ya came!" she said with joy before she stood on her hind-legs and hugged me around my neck.
I smiled and returned the hug with my left-arm. "Hey sweetheart, how are you?" I asked.
"I've been fine, thanks." Applebloom said before she released my neck and placed both her front-hooves back on the ground. "When did ya get here?"
"I just arrived with Twilight and Zelga. Applejack sent me over to help you with the apples." I answered.
Applebloom looked at me with confusion. "Who's Zelga?" she asked.
"She's new in town." I said before I looked over to where Big Mac and Zelga were. "She's right over there with your brother." I said as I pointed my hoof at them.
Applebloom looked over to her and titled her head. "Wow, I've never seen a pony like her before. But she's very pretty." She said with a small smile.
"Yeah, she is." I responded before I realised what I said. "Urr…I meant that in a complimentary way, just so you know." I stated.
Applebloom looked up at me in confusion. "Huh?" she said.
I was afraid to say anything else, so I decided to change the subject. "You know what, never-mind, forget I said anything." I said before I went over to the nearest tree and bucked it.
A bunch of apples fell down and landed in the baskets below. "Let's just get back to work, we've got a lot to do today." I said.
Applebloom just nodded before she came over to me and started gathering the apples that missed the basket.
Meanwhile, Applejack and Twilight were doing the same by some other trees. While Applejack was bucking the trees like she normally does, Twilight was using her magic to pick the apples off the other trees and drop them in the baskets. However, she wasn't fully focused on that, half the time she was looking at Zelga with a frim face.
Twilight was so distracted by her suspicions that she didn't see where the apples where floating and instead of dropping them in the baskets, she dropped them right on top of Applejack; burying her in a big pile of apples.
Applejack popped her head out of the top of the pile and looked over to Twilight. "Hey! Watch where you're droppin' these things!" she said.
Twilight spun her head around and saw the mess she made. "Oh my gosh, I'm so sorry, Applejack." She said before her horn glowed and all the apples lifted off Applejack.
Twilight then placed them in the basket before she walked up to Applejack. "I guess my mind was else-where." She said.
"I noticed. You seem to be lookin' at Zelga a lot today. Somethin' you wanna talk about, sugar-cube?" Applejack asked.
Twilight looked over to Zelga again before she returned her attention to Applejack. "Well…this is gonna sound crazy, but do you feel a bit, I don't know, strange when Zelga's around you? Like the air seems to grow colder?" she asked.
"Well winter is comin' up, Twilight. The air's bound to cold 'round about now." Applejack stated.
Twilight gave her a dis-pleased look. "That's not what I meant. I can't explain it, there's just something weird about her. Like how she knows about us and what we've been through. And above that, she seems to have grown a particular liking to Matt." she said while looking at Zelga from the corner of her eye.
"You probably just feel a bit nervous around her, Twi. Everypony gets nervous when they meet someone new. Remember how nervous you were when you first arrived at Ponyville?" Applejack explained.
"I wasn't nervous, I was just…in a hurry, that's all. And what about all the things she knows? Not many ponies know things like that, not even the ponies here in Ponyville." Twilight said.
"Well…she said she was one of our biggest fans, right? So it's likely she knows a few things about us." Applejack stated.
"That kinda makes sense. But what about her interest in Matt? She seems to be getting a little too comfortable around him…I don't like the way she looks at him when she thinks we're not looking." Twilight said.
"Well Matt did save her from a pack of Timberwolves. Plus, he's the big hero these days. No surprise she'd be takin' a bit of a fancy to him, Princess Luna sure did." Applejack said before she smirked at her. "You're not feelin' a bit threatened, are ya?" she asked.
Twilight's eyes widened. "Threatened?! I don't feel threatened by her! Matt told me last night that no other girl would ever come between us, especially Zelga." she said firmly.
"Then what's the problem? She's not doin' any harm. So far she's been a very nice pony. Just give her a chance, Twilight, then you might just see that yourself." Applejack said before she turned around and made her way over to the next tree.
Twilight wasn't satisfied with the advice she had just received. She was expecting Applejack to support her, to understand her concerns. But when she looked back at Zelga one last time, she saw that she was actually doing a good job. Not only that, but she was talking to Big Macintosh and laughing with him, like they were becoming good friends.
Twilight then realized that maybe she was wrong to suspect Zelga. Maybe one day, if she connected with her more, they could become just as good friends.
Later that day
After surprisingly gathering all the apples in the orchard, Big Macintosh filled a big wooden cart with as much baskets as he could and took them into the barn. After emptying the cart, he came back for the rest. He did this repeatedly until last bunch of baskets were left.
Without any more work to do, we all followed him to the barn to help him unload the cart. As we got closer to the barn, we noticed two Royal Guards standing by the entrance. They must be the guards that were assigned by Celestia to protect the Elements, in this case, the Element of Honesty.
When we reached the barn, Big Macintosh entered the barn first with the basket filled cart, then Applejack and Applebloom, then me and Twilight. But when Zelga was about to follow us inside, the guards stuck out their wings to block the way. "Halt! No citizens can enter here!" one of them said firmly.
Zelga looked at them in confusion. "Excuse me?" she said as she backed away a little.
I noticed this and walked over to help. "Guys, it's cool, she's with us." I said.
One of the guards turned his head to face me. "Sorry, Mr Matthew, but we're under strict orders. No civilians can enter the restricted zone." He said.
"Since when was this barn a restricted zone?!" I said in an annoyed tone.
Applejack then rushed over to me and held her mouth in front of my left-ear. "Since I hid my Element in here." she whispered before she moved her head away and stood beside me.
I looked at her and instantly understood. "Oh right." I whispered before I looked over to Zelga with regret. "Sorry Zelga, but you can't come in here. Princess's orders." I said.
"Why? Don't you trust me?" Zelga asked with a slightly sad face.
My ears lowered slightly. "Yeah, I do…but…there're some things even our best friends can't know. We've been having a bit of trouble recently, I can't go into much detail, but it's a big deal and-"
Zelga then held up her hoof to tell me to stop. "You don't need to explain, Matt. I understand." She said before she sighed. "I'll just…go home then." She said before she turned around and started walking away.
"Zelga, wait! You don't need to go home. Just…wait for us to come out, then we can do something else. Maybe we can see Fluttershy, she might need some help with her animals." I said.
Zelga stopped and turned her head around. "It's alright, I need to go anyway. I've got some important stuff to do back home. I'm still unpacking my things…you know, after moving here." she said with a small smile.
I understood this and nodded. "Oh…ok then, well…maybe we'll see you later." I said.
"Maybe. By the way, tell Big Mac we're on for Friday." Zelga said before she turned her head back around and continued to walk away until she was out of sight.
Once she was gone, Applejack and I looked at each other before we turned around and went back over to the others. I then looked at Big Macintosh. "Big Mac, did you ask Zelga out?" I asked.
Big Mac rubbed his left front-leg with his right-hoof. "Urr…Eeyup." He said with a slightly embarrassed look on his face.
Applejack was slightly shocked by this, but she smiled up at him. "Well good news, big brother, she agreed." She said.
Big Macintosh instantly grew an excited smile. I was sure he was going to start hopping up and down on the stop, he definitely looked like he was fighting the urge to do so. After a few seconds, he calmed down and gave Applejack a normal smile. "That's great." He said before he went back to work, obviously trying to hide his excitement.
At that moment, Applejack turned her head to face Twilight. "See Twilight? You don't need to worry anymore, she has her eyes on Big Mac now." she said with a smirk.
Twilight didn't show it, but she was a bit relieved by this. I, however, was confused. "What? What are you talking about?" I asked curiously.
Twilight and Applejack looked at each other before they looked at me again. "It's nothing, Matt, just some…girl to girl things." Twilight stated, earning a disapproved look from Applejack.
"Oh…alright then." I said before I turned my head to look at Applejack. "So, you hid the Element in here?" I asked curiously.
Applejack nodded. "Yep, I keep it in a really safe place." She said.
"Where?" I asked curiously.
"It's right up there." Applejack said as she pointed her hoof up to the loft. "Wanna see where I hid it? Just in case of emergencies?" she asked.
"Sure." Twilight answered with me nodding in agreement.
Applejack then took us over to the stairs that led up to the loft. While Applejack climbed up them, Twilight teleported and I flew up there. Once we were all up on the loft, we saw a load boxes full of old family stuff. I remembered them all from when I helped clean the farm.
"It's behind these here boxes." Applejack said before she started moving them aside one by one with her hooves.
We could both tell by how Applejack was struggling that this was gonna take a while, so Twilight stepped forward and placed her hoof on AJ's shoulder; gaining her attention. "I'll take care of it. Don't worry, I'll be careful." She said.
With a nod from Applejack, Twilight's horn glowed and her magic covered the rest of boxes. They then moved aside by themselves; revealing a metal safe.
"I keep my Element in there, I figured the boxes would make it harder to find all the way up here." Applejack explained.
Twilight and I stared at the small safe before we looked at her. "That's it? A small family safe hidden behind a couple of cardboard boxes? Applejack, this guy was able to pry the Canterlot vault open and this is where you're Element is kept." I said.
"Is the best I could do at short notice, Matt. I don't live in a bank, you know." Applejack said with raised eye-brow.
"I know that but…isn't there something else you can do? Put it in your attic or something?" I asked curiously.
"Don'cha think that'll be what the crook would expect? Think about it, who ever hear of hidin' an important artefact in a barn with no security and no big locks? If he does come, he'll be expectin' it to hidden somewhere where it's hard to reach. I've hid it here because not only is it too easy, it's very unlikely." Applejack explained with smirk.
We then understood where she was going with this and grinned. "That's…kinda clever." Twilight said.
"Yeah, not bad, Applejack." I said with a slightly impressed voice.
Applejack smirked proudly. "Just doin' what I can with the old noggin." She said as she tapped her head with her hoof.
Applejack then placed her hoof back on the floor before she went over to the moved boxes. "Now let's put these boxes and get somethin' to eat, I'm starvin'." She said as she pushed one of the boxes in front of the safe; hiding it.
"I hear that." I said before Twilight and I helped her move the boxes back.
The last few boxes were moved back by Twilight using her magic again. Once that was done and the safe was well hidden, we got down from the loft and left the barn to get some well-earned launch.
However, as we left, Zelga watched from a small hole in the barn's roof. She had watched the whole thing and now knew about the Element's location. "Smart, Apple-smack, but not smart enough." She said with an evil grin before she flapped her wings and took off into the air.
That night: Library
After returning from Sweet Apple Arches, we all spent the rest of the day in the library. As night-time came, everyone started going to bed one-by-one, all except me.
While everyone was sleeping, I took this opportunity to sneak into the guest room and read a few more pages of Grimerd's journal. With the door locked, I once again sat by the wooden table with the journal in my hooves.
"Words of an Alicorn – page 10
Ever since I first stepped in Canterlot, I have been learning to interact with other ponies. Some are kind, some are rude, some look at me as if I was they have never seen an Alicorn before. And for a while, I thought they hadn't, I thought I was the only one in the city…until today.
I saw Princess Marella, the Princess of that era. Not only was she the ruler of Canterlot, but she brought the day and night to the land. She was being escorted through the streets while greeting her many loyal subjects. I couldn't believe I was seeing her in person, it was like watching a god walk amongst mortals.
After she passed by, I saw a large group of ponies follow her, all led by a pony I recognised all too well. Star Swirl the Bearded, the most power powerful Unicorn in the land. I knew much about him, he was the head of an academy for powerful Unicorns and Alicorns. The ponies following behind him must've been his students.
And that…is when I saw her. A white Alicorn with a pink flowing mane. Out of all the sights I've seen since I left the tower, she was the most beautiful. I didn't know why, but I couldn't take my eyes off her.
As the group passed by, she surprisingly stopped and looked at me. Our eyes met and I knew then…there was something. I thought for a moment that she would come over and talk to me, but unfortunately that didn't happen. A short blue Alicorn walked up to her and said something to her, the mare then walked away with the blue Alicorn.
Stunned, I watched as they caught back up with the group. The white mare looked back at me for a moment before she kept walking along with the other ponies.
As the crowd dispersed, I stood exactly where I was. I didn't know what was wrong with me, I felt sick and jittery at the same time, I still do, I feel like I've been turned inside-out. I am currently researching this new wave of emotion.
But during my studies, all I can think about is that white mare. Who was she? Why did she notice me out of everyone in the streets? These questions are rushing through my mind, but there is only one I want answered…when I might see this mare again?
After finishing the page, I stared into the air to think. "White Alicorn mare?" I said in confusion before I put the pieces together and I looked back down at the page. "Celestia…that was when they first met…that was when it all started." I said, remembering all the stuff Celestia told me about him.
At that moment, I looked up at the clock on the wall and saw that it was 2:08AM. My eyes widened at how late it was. "Is that really the time? Damn, I have work tomorrow!" I said i9n a whisper before I flew up to one of the book shelves and shoved the journal back in its hiding spot.
Once that I was done, I flew out of the room and landed beside the bed where Twilight was sleeping. Trying not to wake her up, I carefully climbed into the bed and pulled the covers over my body before laying my head down on the pillow.
Luckily, Twilight didn't wake up, all she did was moan gently in her sleep. I exhaled quietly in relief before I closed my eyes to go to sleep.
Meanwhile: The middle of the Ever Free Forest
While everyone in Ponyville was sleeping, Zelga snuck out of her cottage and entered the Ever Free Forest. She travelled far into the dark forest until she stopped in a large area with no trees.
As she waited, she suddenly heard a growl behind her. She turned around and saw 3 Timberwolves approaching her. They snapped their wooden teeth viciously as they got closer.
However, Zelga showed no sight of fear. Instead, a large bolt of purple flames surrounded her and she changed back into her large Alicorn form. Once the flames when away, her horned glowed and a powerful bolt of purple lightning shot out.
It stuck one of the Timberwolves and it blew up, scattering its wooden parts everywhere. See this scared the other Timberwolves and they ran away into the forest whimpering.
Zelga's horn slopped glowing and she smirked. "Pathetic." She said out-loud to herself.
"Nice shot." A male voice said behind her. She turned around saw the Thief, like always, he was wearing his hood to cover his face.
She smiled down at him. "Thank you, sweetie. I still can't believe I had to pretend to be afraid of them the other day, as if they could scare me." she said.
"Nothing scares you, nothing ever has and never will." The hooded pony said before he got down to the real matter. "Now, you called me to meet you here?" he asked.
"Yes, I was working on Applejack's farm today and discovered the Element of Honesty is kept. It's hidden in the barn in a safe." Zelga said.
"Excellent work." The hooded pony said before his pleased smile went away. "But it seems a bit easy. What if it's a decoy to fool us?" he asked.
Zelga was going to say that would've been ridiculous. But as she thought about it, the more likely it seemed. "Hmm…maybe you're right. It could be hidden in the house. You'll need to search everywhere when you go for it." she said in a serious tone.
"I'll go tomorrow night while their sleeping, I'll be as quiet as I was in Rarity's house." He said with an evil grin.
"No, that was when there was only one pony in the house, this time there'll be four. You'll need to strike when they're not at home." Zelga said.
"But ever since they moved the Element there, no-one has left the farm unguarded. There's always someone still there while everyone else is gone. How am I supposed to do that?" the pony asked.
Zelga thought about it for a moment before she answered. "I'm not sure, I'm going to have to look into it. We'll have to leave the Element alone for now." she said.
"And…what will my master say about that?" The pony asked, almost scared to.
"Don't worry, I know how to handle my brother. Just make sure you're ready when I call again. In the meantime, I have to keep earning the trust of my new…friends…and find out as much as I can about the whereabouts of the other Elements." Zelga said before her horn glowed again.
As another blot of purple flames surrounded her, she turned back into her Pegasus form and the flames soon went away; revealing herself to the hooded pony.
"Now then, I have to go back to my cottage and get some rest. I have a lot of work to do." Zelga said before she gave him a kind smile. "You do the same, we don't want you to be tired on the job, now do we?" she said.
The pony nodded. "Yes…Mother." He said.
Zelga walked over to him and nuzzled his neck with her head. "That's my boy." She said before she pulled her head away and looked at him. "Now go on, I'll see you again soon." She said.
With that, the hooded pony's horn glowed and he disappeared in a flash of light.
Zelga spread her wings out and took off into the sky before flying back to town. "If I keep this up, the Elements will be ours in no time. With their magic, we'll finally find what we seek. And once we have it, there'll be nothing to stand in our way…nothing!" Zelga said darkly to herself as her eyes glowed red for a second before returning to normal.
Zelga continued to fly until she reached Ponyville and landed in front of her cottage. "But first, I'm going to have to distract Matthew from the Elements. And to do that, I'll have to keep him away from Twilight." She said as she walked up to the front door and entered her cottage before locking the door behind her.
As Zelga walked through the front room, she grinned deviously. "I'll eventually get him alone. And once I do, I'll just give him the old Zelga charm and he'll be mush in my hooves by the end of the day. Then, haha, the fun will really begin." She said before she entered her bedroom and closed the door behind her.
As Zelga got ready for bed, all she could think about was how much fun it was going to be…to ruin my life.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
Poll: Do any of you know the games franchise, Skylanders. Because if you do, you'll want to listen to this.
I'm a big fan of Skylanders and I want to write a new FanFic about it. It won't interfere with the production of this story, possibly just slow it down. I'd write it like this. One chapter for AWCT, one chapter for Skylanders, one chapter for this, one chapter for that, and so on.
In the end, it's up to you what I do. I want to write it because I want something else to write for a change and I have a good idea on what it'll be about. But still, you vote on my profile.
Reminder, this Skylanders story will NOT stop me from continuing this story. This story will NOT be abandoned, not ever.
1: Give me Skylanders
2: Don't write it yet, focus only on this story for now.
Pony news: I keep forgetting to mention this one, Season 5 was announced a while ago. I hope it's the usual 26 episodes.
New episodes on the way and they'll come in this order.
Spike will be tasked to light the Equestria Games touch.
Celestia chooses Discord over Twilight to hunt down a new or possibly old villain (Hoping Queen Chrysalis or King Sombra)
Something happens and Twilight needs to combined her powers with the other Princesses to save Equestria.
Not 100% sure about the final but we'll probably get some proper info soon.
Anyway, please remember to review.
Next chapter will be up as soon as possible.
54. Chapter 54: Moleyair the Mage
Hi everypony, welcome back again.
Well that's it, Season 4 is over. I must say, it was the best season so far. I especially liked the fight scene with Twilight and Tirek, it was both dark and action-filled, officially proving that this how is no long for just little kids, it's a family show now.
Ok, so my Skylanders story didn't get as much attention as I had hoped, maybe it'll become something big in the future.
Just in case you guys don't know anything about Skylanders, it's basically a Spyro game. I mean, the first Skylanders had his name on the title and as long as you have the toy of him, he'll always be in the others. Also, if you don't know any of the other characters, the first chapter covers all of that, so you'll know about the characters without even having to look them up. Except if you want to know what they look like, then you'll have to look them up :/
In order for it to make sense for the story, I had to change some of the lyrics of the song I used in this chapter.
Anyway, here's the next chapter, please enjoy.
Chapter 54: Zelga charm
It's been 4 weeks since Zelga's first day in Ponyville and I must say she's doing alright for herself.
She's been spending a lot of time with Big Macintosh recently, if I didn't know any better, I'd say they were really hitting it off.
She's also been having some quality girl time with our friends. Rarity showed her latest designs to her, Fluttershy's been showing her how to interact with her animals, and she been helping Rainbow Dash clear the skies.
However, that was the first few days she was here. These days, our friends don't think the same as they used to anymore. They complain that Zelga's starting to get snobby and over-proud.
They're saying she thinks herself as, in Rarity's words, 'The gem of Ponyville'. Not only that, but every female in town is thinking the same.
Personally, I didn't really notice anything about her. I admit Zelga's a little strange here and there, but that doesn't mean she's a bad pony. Must be a girl thing or something.
But…if Twilight really thinks there's something funny about her, I'd look into it as much as possible until she's at ease. Then maybe she can find a way to get along with her.
Sugar Cube Corner
While I was busy with my deliveries, Twilight and the rest of the girls went to Sugar Cube Corner to talk to themselves.
They were sitting around a big table and each of them was having a milkshake. After ordering her milkshake, Rarity came back over to the table. "So now that we're all alone together, let's say we talk about our biggest problem yet…Zelga." she said as she sat in her place.
They each nodded with agreement. "You're tellin' me." Rainbow Dash said before she turned to face the others. "She's been doing my job for the last few days. Every time I wake up in the morning, the clouds are gone. After taking an afternoon nap, the clouds are gone. At night when everypony's supposed to be sleeping-"
"The clouds are gone?" Pinkie Pie asked.
Rainbow Dash looked at her and nodded. "Yeah! Without my weather duties, what am I supposed to do? The Wonderbolts would never take an out-matched Pegasus! She's ruining my destiny!" she said loudly.
"And she's difficult to please. I swear, I've made her dress after dress and nothing seems to fit her liking. She comes to me every day asking for type of outfit, and when I make it for her, there's always something that needs adjusting or changing. I spend almost an hour making her outfit, then I spend nearly another hour fixing what she doesn't like." Rarity said.
"Now do you all see what I've been saying? There's something strange about her. I mean, when does a pony like her ever come to a small place like Ponyville?" Twilight asked.
"You've got a point, Twilight. No offence, but Zelga could do so much better than Ponyville. What's she doing wasting her talents here?" Rainbow Dash said.
"Speakin' of talent, have you noticed the strangest thing about Zelga?" Applejack asked as she looked at all of them.
"Her hair colour doesn't match her coat colour?" Pinkie Pie guessed.
Applejack looked at her. "No." she said before she looked back at the others. "The last time I saw her, I noticed something…she had a blank-flank, she has no Cutie Mark!" she answered.
Everyone looked at each other with slight shock. "No Cutie Mark? But she's just as old as us, possibly even older, how can she not have a Cutie Mark?" Rarity asked in confusion.
"Maybe she just hasn't found her special talent yet." Fluttershy said, trying to think of an explanation.
Applejack turned her head to face her. "Have you seen how old she is? She should've gotten her Cutie Mark years ago. Somethin' isn't right about her, I can feel it." she said.
"I still don't get what the big deal is. So she's a little weird here and there, but aren't we all a little weird in this big crazy world?" Pinkie Pie asked.
Everyone looked at her awkwardly before Rainbow Dash spoke. "She has a point. Some ponies are a little…odd…in their own way." She stated.
"That's what I'm saying! By the way, any of you want some spare streamers?" Pinkie said before she threw a bunch of multi-coloured streamers in the air and they floated down on everyone. "It's really helpful when you've have an unexpected party." She stated.
"I rest my case." Rainbow Dash said as she brushed some streamers off her head and shoulders.
"Look, the best thing we can do right now is keep an eye on her, make sure she doesn't do anything funny. Then when we have a chance, we'll try to find out why she's really here." Twilight said.
"Like what?" Fluttershy asked curiously.
"I've got the answer to that. We'll sneak into her house and stay there until we find some dirt on her." Rainbow Dash said strongly.
Applejack quickly looked at her. "Hold ya horses there, Rainbow. Sure we wanna know what she's doing here, but I don't think breakin' into her home is the right move. We could get in big trouble for that." She stated.
Rainbow Dash looked her. "Well what else are we supposed to do? Ask her? She'll probably lie and say she's here just for the weather or something. If we sneak into her house, maybe we'll find a diary or some evil blueprints that'll tell us the truth." She said.
"A diary, yes, evil blueprints, not likely. But I have to agree with her, if Zelga is up to something suspicious, we should know straight away." Rarity said as she looked at the rest of them.
"Girls, I want more about Zelga as much as you do, but breaking into her house and going through her personal belongings is a bit extreme, don't you think?" Twilight said.
Rainbow Dash looked over to her. "But weren't you the one who was suspicious of Zelga in the first place? Surely you out of all of us want to know who Zelga really is." She said.
"Yes, I do, but there's a limit. If you're planning on breaking into her home, please, leave me out of it." Twilight said firmly as she crossed her arms.
"Fine." Rainbow responded before she looked over to Applejack and Rarity. "Are you guys in or are you gonna join Twilight on the side-lines?" she asked.
Rarity and Applejack looked at each other before looking at Rainbow Dash. "I'm afraid you'll have to leave us out of it. We're not so fond of Zelga, but we're not trying to make enemies with her either." Rarity stated with Applejack nodding in agreement.
Rainbow Dash huffed. "Then I guess I'll have to do it myself." She said with her arms crossed.
"Well I'm gonna have Zelga here soon, maybe you can go then." Pinkie Pie said with a large smile.
Fluttershy looked at her curiously. "Zelga's coming here? Why?" she asked.
Pinkie Pie turned her head to face her. "So we can spend some time together, silly. What better way to make a new then by inviting over for some fun. We're gonna play games, eat snacks, tell jokes, and did I mention having fun?!" she explained.
Twilight gave her a small smile. "Well hopefully it won't keep from Matt's song rehearsal is this afternoon, we promised we'd be there to watch." She said.
Pinkie then gasped. "You're right! How could I have forgotten." She said before another smile came on her face. "I got it! I'll bring Zelga to the rehearsal!" she said.
"NO!" Twilight said loudly before she realized how loud she sounded and spoke again in a quieter voice. "I mean, no Pinkie, I think we'd feel better if she wasn't there."
"Agreed. The last thing Matthew and the boys need is more pressure put on them by an extra pony in the audience." Rarity stated.
"But I can't miss Matt's rehearsal. What am I supposed to tell Zelga?" Pinkie Pie asked.
"You're going to have to tell her not to come today, say you've got something important to tend to and you can't spend time with her today. Reschedule it for another day or something." Rarity answered.
Pinkie looked at her with a raised eye-brow. "What? Cancel my evening with her? Just like that?" she asked.
"Yes Pinkie, just like that. It's quite easy, I'm sure she'll understand." Rarity said.
Pinkie thought about it for a moment before she answered. "Ok, I'll see what I can do." she said.
Twilight gave her a pleased smile. "Good." she said before looked at everyone else. "Now can we please stop talk about Zelga and enjoy our drinks, please?" she said.
Everyone nodded. "Yeah, I don't want her on my mind while at Matt's rehearsal, it'll ruin it." Applejack said.
"Then let's do what Twilight said and stop talking about it." Rainbow Dash said before she went back to drinking her smoothy.
Twilight and the others did the same until they were finished. Once they done, everyone but Pinkie left Sugar Cube corner and made their way towards the field where the rehearsal stage was set up.
Later that day: Field outside Ponyville
Once I was done working, I went over to the field outside Ponyville with Spike, Jeff and Peewee to begin our rehearsal for Nightmare Night. We were already in mid-October, we didn't have long before it was here.
And to give the show a bit more effects, we had a new member with us.
Spike sent a letter up to Discord in Canterlot and he came a few minutes later. As always, he was entertaining to be around.
Twilight and the others had just arrived and were now sitting in front of the stage waiting for us to begin. However, Pinkie wasn't with them, Rarity explained that she had something to take care of and that she'd be a bit late. When I asked why, she said it was a personal matter. I didn't ask any more questions and just accepted it.
While I was testing the microphone, Spike was tuning his guitar, Jeff was helping Peewee with the lights and Discord was getting his look right.
I tapped the microphone with my hoof and put my mouth in front of it. "Testing, testing. Hello? Hello?" I said into it and was satisfied with how it sounded. "There we are." I said to myself before I looked over to Spike. "How are things on your end, Spike?" I asked.
Spike looked over to me and smiled. "Fine, just trying to get thing one string right." He said before he went back to tuning his guitar.
I nodded to him before I turned my head the other way to face Discord. "Discord, what are you doing?" I asked.
Discord was standing on the other side of the stage facing away from me. "I'll be with you in a moment, I'm just putting on my face." he said before he turned around to reveal his face-less head with his face in his hands. He then placed his face back where it should be and blinked his eyes.
I was a little freaked out by that, but hay, that was Discord. I shook off the feeling and looked up at Jeff and Peewee. "How are the lights, guys?" I called up to them.
They both flew between the lights as they looked down at me. "They're cool, we just finished adjusting them." Peewee answered.
"Yeah, this is gonna be awesome." Jeff said with excitement.
"Good job." I said to them before I walked over to the centre of the stage and turned around. "Alright everyone, gather up." I said.
With that, Spike, Discord, Jeff and Peewee all joined me at the centre of the stage to listen what I had to say.
"I just want to say I'm glad you could all come. As you know, Nightmare Night isn't far away and we don't have much time, so we'll need to practise a lot for the next few days so we're ready for it. But getting straight to the point, thank you all for coming." I said before I looked over to our new member. "And I'd like to thank Vinyl Scratch for joining the group to provide some background music for the effects." I said.
From behind her stereo set, Vinyl responded by waving her hoof at me.
I waved back before I looked at the others. "Now I know it was a pain getting all this stuff over here. But when ponies play loud music like we do, it'll annoy or disturb other ponies. So we're all the way out here so we don't bother anyone and cause a fuss. Is everyone alright with this?" I asked.
Everyone nodded. "Yep." They all answered at once.
"Alright, let's show these girls what we have in-store for Nightmare Night." I said with a large smirk.
With that, everyone got to their posts and I walked over to the microphone in front of the stage. I looked down at Twilight and the others. I put my mouth in front of the microphone and spoke. "Thank you all for coming. You girls will be the first to hear the song we're planning to perform for Nightmare Night. And with our new member, Vinyl, we hope it'll sound better than it used to." I said.
Twilight and the others cheered as they stomped their hooves on the ground.
I then looked at Spike and nodded to him. He nodded back before he started playing his guitar; beginning the song.
As he played a few notes, I put my mouth in front of the microphone again to get ready to sing. Once my part came, I began to.
Me: "The secret side of me…I never let you see, I keep it caged but I can't control it.
So stay away from me, the beast is ugly, I feel the rage and I just can't it.
It's scratchin' on the walls, in the closet, in the halls. It comes awake and I can't control it.
Hidin' under the bed, in my body, in my head. Why won't somepony come and save me from this? Make it end!
I feel it deep within, it's just beneath the skin, I must confess that I feel like a monster!
I hate what I've become, the nightmare's just begun, I must confess that I feel like a monster!
I…I feel like a monster! I…I feel like a monster!"
(Spike plays a few notes)
"My secret side I keep…hid under lock-and-key. I keep it caged but I can't control it.
Cause if I let him out, he'll break me up, break me down. Why won't somepony come and save me from this? Make it end!
I feel it deep within, it's just beneath the skin, I must confess that I feel like a monster!
I hate what I've become, the nightmare's just begun, I must confess that I feel like a monster!
I feel it deep within, it's just beneath the skin, I must confess that I feel like a monster!
I…I feel like a monster! I…I feel like a monster!
It's hidin' in the dark, it's teeth are razor sharp. There's no escape for me, it wants my soul, it wants my heart.
No-one can hear me scream, maybe it's just a dream. Maybe it's inside of me, stop this monster!
I feel it deep within, it's just beneath the skin, I must confess that I feel like a monster!
I hate what I've become, the nightmare's just begun, I must confess that I feel like a monster!
I feel it deep within, it's just beneath the skin, I must confess that I feel like a monster!
I've gotta lose control, it's something radical, I must confess that I feel like a monster!
I…I feel like a monster! I…I feel like a monster!
I…I feel like a monster! I…I feel like a monster!"
Once the song was over, Twilight and the others cheered louder that they did before. We all waved to them before we put any stuff we had down and got off the stage. Twilight and the others galloped up to me. "Matt, that was amazing!" Twilight said as she hugged me.
"Yeah, it was awesome and spooky at the same time! It's perfect for Nightmare Night." Rainbow Dash said with a large smile while flying in mid-air. I smiled back.
But this didn't last long because she still had a bit of a grudge against me, and once she remembered that, she turned away with her arms. "But this doesn't change anything." she said.
I frowned slightly. "I still don't fully understand why you're mad me. It had something to do with our kiss on my Birthday, right?" I asked, hoping I got it right.
Rainbow Dash didn't turned around, she just stayed were she was. "Whatever, it doesn't matter. Great show, anyway." She said without looking at me.
I should really talk to her more about this, I just never found the right time. And whenever I did, she was nowhere to be found, as if she was avoiding me.
I was then thrown off my thoughts by a hoof planting a hard pat on my back. I turned my head to the left and saw Applejack with a smile on her face. "You did good up there, Matt. You and the guys are gonna shake the Earth on Nightmare Night." she said.
"Where did you learn that song, Matt? Is it from your home world?" Rarity asked curiously.
I nodded. "Yeah, I loved it because not only did it sound cool, but…it kind of fit me back then." I admitted.
Fluttershy looked at me with surprise. "Fit you? But you're not a monster, you're one of the nicest stallions we ever met." She said kindly.
I looked over to her. "Well not now, but back before I came here, I was moody all the time. Things in my life weren't going very well, you know, school and stuff like that. I got annoyed easily, annoyed soon became frustrated, frustrated became angry, and…well you all probably know where it goes from there." I said.
"We understand, sugar cube." Applejack said kindly.
"But the one thing that keeps my frustration under control more than anything these days." I said before I looked at Twilight. "Is knowing Twilight always there to calm me down and help." I said with a sweet smile.
Twilight returned it before she nuzzled her head against the right-side of my neck.
"Aww!" Everyone but Rainbow Dash, Spike and the rest of the guys said at the same time as they watched us.
"Oh my goodness!" A familiar voice said nearby.
Twilight's eyes shot wide open because it was a voice she knew all too well. We all looked over to where it came from and saw Zelga walking towards us with Pinkie beside her. "You guys were amazing! I can't believe I nearly missed it." she said as she stopped in front of us.
Twilight was slightly surprised that she was here. "Zelga….w-what are you doing here?" she asked.
"Well after I arrived at Sugar Cube Corner, Pinkie said she had some important business to attend to and had to cancel our evening together. I said that didn't sound like the Pinkie we knew at all and she soon agreed, so we decided to continue with our evening plans and Pinkie would do whatever she had to do another day." Zelga explained.
"So how did you know about Matt's rehearsal?" Rarity asked curiously.
Zelga looked at her. "Pinkie told me, of course. We didn't know what to do at the time and Pinkie mentioned something about Matt & his band practising a performance for Nightmare Night." she said before she grew an excited smile. "I love Matt's band and I just totally had to be here. You guys were awesome, by the way." She said to me.
I smiled at her. "Thanks Zelga, I'm glad you both were able to make it."
Suddenly, Discord appeared in front of us in a flash of light. "Matt, Jeff keeps touching my drums! Tell him to knock it off." He said like a whiny child.
I rolled my eyes. "Discord, not in front of our new friend." I said.
Discord then grew a look of interest before he looked down at Zelga, she waved her hoof up at him. "Oh, so this is Zelga, the new pony everyone keeps talking about." he said.
Zelga instantly remembered Discord. She remembered freeing him alongside Thorn, she remembered trying to kill him in the Town Hall fire, she remembered everything and her teeth clench. However, she was able to control her anger and smiled. "Yes, I am. Pleased to meet you…Discord, is it?" Zelga said.
"The one and only." Discord said before he noticed something about Zelga, he lowered his head down to her and looked at her closer. "Say, do I know you from somewhere? You seem familiar." He said.
Zelga smiled nervously. "Urr…no, we've never met. You must be mistaken." She said.
Discord gave her a suspicious look before he smiled. "Alright then, just making sure." He said before he returned his attention to me. "Now then, Matt, about Jeff and my drums." He said.
Zelga let out a quiet sigh of relief.
I rolled my eyes again before I turned my head around to the stage, where Jeff was standing on top of one of Discord's drums. "Jeff, quite messing with Discord's drums!" I said firmly.
Jeff looked at me and flew off the drum. "Alright, I'm off, I'm off." He said before he flew back over to Peewee.
I turned my attention to everyone else before I looked at Pinkie and Zelga. "Sorry about that, anyway, what do you two have planned for the day?" I asked curiously.
Pinkie stepped forward. "Zelga and I were gonna catch a movie at the theatre in half-an-hour. Zelga's picked the movie we're gonna watch and it really sounds interesting." She said before she pulled out a movie poster from nowhere and showed it to me.
I then looked at the poster to see what it was. The background was white and there was a pony's face in the middle of the picture. From the looks of the small white dots on the character's face, the white background was supposed to be some kind of snow theme. I looked at the title at the bottom of the poster and it read 'The Dim'.
Twilight looked at the poster in confusion. "The Dim?"
Pinkie placed the poster down in front of us and nodded. "Yeah, it has thrill, suspense, Timberwolves, loads of things." she said.
Rarity looked at Zelga. "It seems a bit high rated, Zelga. Why would you want to watch something like…this." She asked as she pointed her hoof down at the poster.
Zelga shrugged. "I have a thing for movies with suspense. Gives you a bit of a thrill." She answered before she smiled. "Any of you guys wanna join us? We have enough bits for a few more guests." She said.
Rarity shook her head. "Sorry, but this movie sounds rather uncouth for my liking. I'm afraid I'm going to have to pass on that offer." She said.
"I can't come either, sorry. I have to clean out my chicken coop. Plus, it doesn't seem like my kind of movie." Fluttershy said nervously with her ears down.
Zelga sighed before she looked over to Applejack and Rainbow Dash. "What about you two?" she asked.
"I can't go. I'm helpin' Fluttershy clean her chicken coop, then I have some work to get back to on the farm. I've already used a lot of my time comin' here." Applejack stated.
"Yeah, and I can't come because I have some work to d-…I mean, I have to study for-…I mean, I…*sigh*…You know what? I'm gonna be honest, I just don't want to go." Rainbow Dash said before she shot off into the sky and disappeared above the puffy clouds.
Zelga huffed before she looked at us. "Well, that just leaves you guys. Up for a movie?" she asked.
Twilight and I were unsure about it. We looked at each other with the same look on our faces. "I'm up for it if you are." I said.
Twilight thought about it for a moment before she looked at Zelga. "I suppose we could. I mean, we've haven't been to the movie theatres that much, it could be fun." She said with a weak smile.
Zelga smiled at her answer. "Awesome, this evening just got a lot better!" she said with joy.
Suddenly, Discord's head rose up beside her. "Can I come, I've never been to the movies before, and this movie sounds like my type of thing." he said before he gave her a big begging smile.
Zelga rolled her eyes. "Fine." She said through her teeth. "But the point about the movies is to be as quiet as possible so everyone can hear it." she said.
Discord hovered away from her to give himself some space. "Of course, I'll be as quiet as a mouse." He said as he turned himself into a giant mouse.
Zelga ignored him and looked over to Spike, Jeff and Peewee. "Hey guys, you wanna come with us?" she asked.
Spike, Jeff and Peewee then came over to us and Spike stopped beside me while Jeff and Peewee stayed in mid-air. "Sure Zelga." Zelga said with a kind smile.
"Nah, we're good. We need to watch the library. Besides, the movie doesn't look that good." Jeff said with Peewee nodding in agreement.
"Good, not only will it mean less bits for us to spend, but it means I won't have to listen to your flapping beak all evening." Zelga thought before she responded. "Ok, I understand."
"So is that it? Should we get going?" Pinkie asked as she getting more and more excited.
I was about to answer before I remembered Vinyl Scratch. "Oh wait a minute." I said before I turned my head around look back at Vinyl. "Hey Vinyl, do you want to come with us to the mo-"
I didn't get a chance to finish my sentence as Vinyl answered by shaking her head; saying no.
"She doesn't talk much, does she?" I said under my breath before I turned my head back around to face the others. "Alright, I guess we're set to go." I said.
Jeff then hovered down to me. "Urr, dude, aren't you forgetting about the stage, instalments and everything else? We can't just leave it in the open like this, especially in this weather." He stated.
I realized her was right. "Oh yeah, thanks." I said before I looked up at Discord. "Discord, apply the stage cover." I said.
Discord saluted with his talon-hand. "Yes sir." He said before he snapped his fingers.
At that moment, a giant blue cover appeared in a flash of light above the stage and started lowering itself down to it. Vinyl barely had time to get off the stage before it covered the entire stage and nailed itself to the snow-covered ground; protecting it from any bad weather.
Once that was done, Zelga and Pinkie smiled at us. "Ok, now that's done, let's get moving. I'm just dying to see this movie." Zelga said with excitement.
"Sure, let's get going." I said.
With that, Zelga & Pinkie turned around and started making their way towards the path that led back to town, everyone else followed them.
But as I began to follow as-well, a force grabbed my tail and stopped me. I turned my head around and saw Twilight was holding my tail in a magic grip. "Matt, can I talk to you for a second?" she asked as her horn stopped glowing and released my tail from her magic.
"Sure Twi." I said before I turned around to face her properly. "What's on your mind?" I asked.
Twilight gave me an unsure look, just like the one she always give me. "Matt…I'm not sure this is a good idea." She said.
"Why? We're just going to the movies with some friends, nothing we wouldn't normally do if the opportunity came up." I stated.
"It's not that." Twilight said before she moved a bit closer to me. "I'm just not sure we should go with Zelga." she said in a whisper.
"Twilight, I know you don't feel right about her, but you said you'd try to get on with her." I said calmly.
"That was weeks ago. Listen, it's not just me, the others think the same way about her. They said she's rude and over proud." Twilight said, still whispering.
I turned my head around to look back at everyone as they walked away. "You mean…Fluttershy, Rarity, Applejack, all of them feel the same way about her?" I asked as I turned to face Twilight again.
Twilight nodded. "Yeah, something just doesn't feel right. It's like…every time I'm around her, all the happiness goes away…she…she frightens me." she admitted.
I couldn't help but feel a bit bad for her. I moved beside Twilight and wrapped my wing around her. "Hey…listen…if you don't want to come, all you need to do is say so. I'll tell Zelga you had some work to do for the Princess." I said kindly.
Twilight gave me a kind smile. "Thanks Matt, but…I've been avoiding her for the last few days, anymore will cause suspicion and…I really don't want to make enemies with her. I mean, yeah she gives me the creeps, but that could be me." she said.
"Are you sure, sweet-heart?" I asked.
Twilight nodded again. "Yeah…besides, the movie doesn't sound that bad. Who knows, maybe we'll enjoy it." she said.
I smiled at her. "Ok Twi." I said.
Suddenly, Discord appeared in front of us in a flash of light wearing a cowboy outfit. "Giddy-up, slow pokes. What's the hold up?" he asked.
We both looked up at him. "Nothing Discord, we're coming now." Twilight answered.
With that, the three of us caught up with the others and followed them back to town.
Later on: Inside the Movie Theatre
While everyone else went home, the rest of us went to the theatre and were now in one of the rooms watching The Dim.
Me, Twilight, Spike, Pinkie, Discord and Zelga were sitting in a row of seats while our eyes were glued to the scream with both suspense and disbelief.
So far, I understood the movie. A group of stallions were in the cold North and had just survived a nasty train crash. Now they had to make their way back to civilization, surviving the freezing weather while also being chased by a pack of aggressive Timberwolves. It was early in the film and one of the characters has already been killed by the wolves. The death scene really felt some of us, including me, in a stunned state.
However, Discord was watching the movie in awe. "Where has this thing been all my life." he said while eating a box of popcorn.
Just then, a pony sitting behind Discord tapped his back. "Hey buddy." he said. Discord turned his head around to see the firm look on the pony's face. "Down in front, I can't see the movie." He said.
Discord then magically shrunk himself to a very small size so the pony could see the full screen. "Sorry." Discord said in a high-pitched voice before they both went back to watching the movie.
Meanwhile, I was sitting between Twilight and Zelga. I was watching the movie with small interest while Twilight and Zelga watched it with suspense and a bit of fear.
Spike was sitting beside Pinkie with his hands over his eyes, quivering in fear. I would've comforted him, but because of the distance between us, I didn't notice.
When a scary jumpy moment came, everyone reacted. Some let out a small yell while others just jumped.
Twilight reacted by wrapping her arms around me and hiding her face in my neck. However, she soon noticed something that shocked her. Zelga was doing the same, she had her hooves wrapped around me and was hiding her face in my neck.
While Zelga was doing this, Twilight gave her a growling look and waited for me to say something to her, but because I was so focused on the movie, I didn't even notice them holding on to me.
Eventually, they both released me and went back to watching the movie. At some points, Twilight would look at Zelga to make sure she wasn't doing anything funny.
-A while later-
Once the movie was over, we all came out of the room and left the theatre. Spike, Pinkie, Zelga and Twilight were in a shaky mess from all the things they just saw. "Wow…that was disturbing." Twilight said.
"More like depressing." Spike said before he looked up at Pinkie. "Why did you want to watch that so much?" he asked.
Pinkie then looked down at him. "I didn't know it was gonna be like that. I thought it was a winter movie about a few guys and Timberwolves." She stated.
"Did you even bother to look at the rating before you chose it?" Zelga asked.
Discord and I were the only ones not disturbed by the movie. There were a lot of violent and heart-breaking scenes, mostly involving some of the characters being killed by the Timberwolves or environment. We both looked at them. "Guys, it was just a movie. I know how you feel, it left me a bit depressed myself, but none of it was real." I stated.
Twilight looked at me. "Still, I'm starting to wish I hadn't watched it." she said.
"Same here." Spike added.
"Well I for one enjoyed it. It had everything, suspense, thrill, conflict, everything I wanted in a movie. And I especially loved the ending where the main character was about to fight the alpha Timberwolf, did he win, or did the creature finish him off? A question that my never be answered." Discord said.
Spike's eyes widened. "Oh my gosh, he's right. That just makes things worse." He said.
Discord slithered up beside him and patted his head with his talon-hand. "Well, what are you going to do?" he said before he hovered away from him.
Twilight walked up to me. "I think it's time for us to go home." She said.
I nodded in agreement. "Yeah, it's getting a bit late, we better get back to the library." I said.
But just as we were about to walk away, I felt someone place their hoof on my back. I turned my head around to see ti was Zelga with a frightened look on my face. "Matt, can you walk me home?" she asked.
Twilight's eyes widened with shock. "No!...I mean, no he can't, he has some work to do at home." She said.
I looked at Twilight in confusion. "I do?" I asked curiously before Twilight then hit me in the chest with her elbow. I grunted before I looked at Zelga again. "Yeah, I do." I said weakly.
Zelga gave me a begging look. "Please…that movie really creeped me out. It said that Timberwolves seek revenge, and after what you did to the ones that attacked me, they're probably out looking for us. They might come into town and attack me again." she said.
Twilight rolled her eyes. "I load of nonsense." She growled in her head.
However, I thought differently, I figured Zelga might be right. Those Timberwolves I fought off didn't exactly back away, they kept coming for us. If I hadn't of flown us out of there, we probably would've ended up as wooden wolf-chow. I looked at Twilight with my ears down. "Urr…Twi…I think I should just walk her home. I don't think we should take the chance of those Timberwolves showing up again." I said.
Twilight looked at me with surprise. "Matt, I-" she said before she pulled me away from Zelga so we could talk with her hearing us. "I can't believe you're buying that act. She's not scared of Timberwolves, she just wants to be with you." she said in an angry whisper.
"What are you talking about?" I asked in confusion.
"You rescued her from those Timberwolves weeks ago, last month, if they were after her, don't you think they would've come by now?" Twilight questioned.
"Well maybe they're buying their time until the right moment. You know, just like the Element Thief did. We didn't see him for ages, then he just popped up and stole Rarity's Element. Now he's gone again and might strike again at any moment." I said.
"This is a completely different matter. We're talking about wild animals that live their own lives, not intelligent ponies out to steal important artefacts. She's just being over dramatic." Twilight said strongly.
"Twilight, I understand what you're saying, but…I'd rather be safe than sorry. Besides, I won't be long, I'll just walk her to her house and then come straight back to the library. You'll barely know I'm gone." I said with a small smile.
Twilight huffed as she thought about it. After a second, she spoke. "Fine, you can walk her home to make sure she's safe." She said before she gave me a frim look. "But if you're gone for more than an hour, you better hope it doesn't rain tonight, because you won't be sleeping with me, you'll be sleeping on a small cloud. Got it?" she said.
I was a little surprised by Twilight sudden firmness, but I nodded my head. "Yeah…I get it." I said in a quiet voice with my ears low.
Twilight noticed this and suddenly realized how she just sounded. Once this happed, quilt overtook her. "Matt…I…"
But before she could say anything, Zelga came over to us. "Is there a problem?" she asked curiously.
We both looked at her. "N-No…we'll go now, Zelga." I said before I looked at Twilight. "See ya when I get how, Twi." I said before I turned and walked away from her.
Twilight had her hoof over her mouth with a slightly upset look on her face, she couldn't believe how she just spoke to me. Zelga looked at her and smiled. "See ya, Twilight. Safe walk home." She said before she followed me; leaving Twilight alone with Discord and Spike.
As Twilight watched us walk away, Spike walked up to her and placed his hand on one of her front-legs. "Twilight, are you alright?" he asked.
Twilight looked down at him. "Yeah…I…I just want to go home." She said with her ears down.
Discord noticed the upset look on her face and gave her a small smile. "Hey…how about I save you both the walk and just send you home. With me, it only takes a snap." He said.
Twilight and Spike looked up at him and smiled. "Thanks Discord, we'd like that." Twilight said.
With that, Discord snapped his fingers and Twilight & Spike disappeared in a flash of light.
Once they were gone, Discord flew up to one of the clouds above and rode it back up to Canterlot.
A few minutes later: Zelga's cottage
After arriving at Zelga's cottage, I looked around at her home. She had a big cottage and a big garden in front of it. She had a flowerbed, a small pond with a fountain, and what looked like a bat-house. She wasn't kidding when she said she liked bats.
We walked through the garden and approached the front-door. Once we reached it, Zelga opened it and went into her house with me following behind.
"Thanks for walking me home, Matt. Feel free to look around for a moment, I've been dying to show you guys my place." Zelga said.
I looked around at her big front room in awe. There was a soft carpet, a nice cushiony sofa, a big round table in the other room (most likely the dining room), a bunch of shelves with small fancy antiques, a large bookcase with a load of books and what looked like an arcade game near the North-Easy corner of the room.
"Wow Zelga…you've got a nice place." I said while looking around.
Zelga turned her head around to face me and smiled. "Thanks. And this is just the front-room." she said before she gave me a sly smile. "If you want to see something really amazing, follow me." she said before she walked into the other room.
I didn't ask why, I just followed.
She led me down the hallway to a pair of double-doors. Once we reached them, Zelga turned around to me and grinned. "Now Matt, get ready to be amazed by my most cherished possession." She said before she turned back around and pushed the doors open with her left front-hoof.
Once they were open, I looked inside and was stunned by what I saw. It was a hot-tub that made to look like a small lagoon. Water trickled down from rock to rock until pouring into the warm bubbling water where someone would be relaxing. It looked so realistic, it was as if Zelga had taken it from a beautiful forest and placed it in her house.
"No one else knows I have this. If they did, everyone would be knocking on my door asking if they could use it." Zelga said before she walked over to her the edge of the hot-tub and went into the water.
She swam to the other side of the tub before she turned around to look at me. "Care to join me, the water is really warm and relaxing." She said with a small grin.
I gulped hard before I shook my head to shake off the thoughts I was having. "Umm…thanks Zelga, but no thanks. I mean, I'd like to, it really looks relaxing…but I have to get back to home." I said.
Zelga laughed. "Haha, Matt, you won't be cheating on your wife if you come in my hot-tub." she said with the grin still on her face.
I chuckled. "Yeah, but I would be upsetting her. Twilight said if I was longer than an hour, I'd have to sleep on a cloud tonight." I said.
Zelga gave me a surprised look. "Really? That's kinda mean." She said.
I shrugged. "Well, she's…she's going through a lot at the moment." I said before I turned around and without taking my eyes off Zelga. "I really should be getting back. Thanks for the evening, by the way. Take it easy, Zelga." I said before I started making my way down the hallway.
Zelga sat up in the bubbling water and watched me walk away. "You know…if I was your wife, I'd never talk to you that way." She said.
I stopped where I was a puzzled for a moment. I then turned my head around to face Zelga and gave her a small smile. "Well…then one day, you'll make a stallion very happy." I said before I turned my head back around and continued to walk down the hallway.
After I left the cottage, Zelga hit the water with her hoof in anger. "Dang it! I almost had him! His stubborn loyalty to Twilight is really starting to boil me up!" she growled as the bubbles in the water grew wild from the heat her body was giving off.
Zelga then took some deep breaths to calm down. "It's fine…it's fine…from the sound of it, Matt and Twilight's little love train is starting to go off course, I just need to break the tracks a little more." She said before she got out of the hot-tub and shook the water off.
Zelga then went out to the back garden and looked up at the starry sky. "But just to spice things up, I'll give Matt another taste of my power." She said with a devious grin as her horn appeared in a small bolt of purple flames.
A while later: Library
After arriving back at the library, I entered it and went up the stairs to my room. I then saw Spike, Jeff and Peewee sleeping in the basket and Twilight sleeping in our bed. I quietly walked over to my side of the bed and climbed into it.
But as I got comfy, I suddenly heard a small moaning, it was Twilight waking up. She opened her eyes a little and looked at me. "Matt…have you just got home?" she asked.
I looked at her and smiled weakly. "Yeah…but I wasn't gone long, I've definitely not been an hour, I had eleven minutes left." I said.
Twilight gave me an amused smile before it went away. "Hey Matt, listen…I'm sorry for how I acted back at the theatre. It's just…I've been feeling a bit stressed lately and it's making me feel sick. I have a headache and everything." She stated.
At that moment, I placed my hoof on her head and felt a bit of a temperature. "You do feel warm. Maybe we should take you to a doctor tomorrow, see if they can give you anything." I said.
Twilight gave me a small smile. "Thanks Matt…and again, sorry for how I spoke, it was wrong of me." she said.
"It's alright, Twi." I said before I kissed her cheek and gently laid her down on the bed. "Just try and get some rest, it'll make you feel better." I said.
"Ok." Twilight said before she rested her head on the pillow. "Goodnight Matt, love you." she said as she closed her eyes.
"Love you too, Twi." I said before I laid down in the bed and rested my head on the pillow. I closed my eyes and soon joined everyone in a peaceful sleep.
Dream realm: Northern Equestria
Unlike many of my dreams where I was in Ponyville or Canterlot, I was now in a cold land covered with deep snow. The blizzard made it very hard to see where I was or where I was going. It was like I was on the snow planet on Dead Space 3.
"Hello?!" I called out. I got no answer, all I could here was my echo growing quieter the further away it got.
I then decided to make my way through the winter land to find civilization. I pushed myself through the strong blizzard, I almost couldn't see because off all the snow flowing into my face. I didn't know how long I've been walking or how far I got from where I was.
After a few minutes, I suddenly heard a growl noise. I turned in the direction it came from and was stunned by what I saw. It was a large Timberwolf, snarling it's wooden teeth and drooling sap.
I back away from it, but was stopped by the sound of another growl. I looked to where it came from and saw another Timberwolf, then another, then another, then another, all stepping out from the thick blurry wall of the blizzard.
I was surrounded, they were all approaching me with the jaws snapping viciously.
I was getting ready to fight until I heard a strange noise in the rushing wind. At that moment, a cloud of snow started spinning in mid-air until it formed a face, a face that looked exactly like Nightmare Moon. He eyes lowed red as she laughed evilly.
I was both shocked and frightened by this.
While I was staring up at the wicked face above me, one of the Timberwolves pounced at me and landed on my back.
It bit my neck hard and I yelled in pain before I grabbed its head with my front-hooves. I then pulled it over my shoulder and slammed it down on the ground in front of me.
I then noticed another one preparing to pounce. So with the other Timberwolf's head still in my grasp, I spun it around to the pouncing and they smacked into each other; causing more damage to the wolf in my hooves and knocking the other wolf away.
Two of the other Timberwolves then ran towards me together. Once I noticed this, I quickly flew up into the air and they ran into each other. As soon as that happened, I dropped back down to them and smashed them both upon impact.
As I fought off the Timberwolves, the Nightmare Moon head watched until she blew a strong wind at me. The wind was so cold I could barely move, I almost didn't want to.
I fought off the Timberwolves as long as I could before I submitted, the cold was too much for me to bear any longer. Frozen in place with the remaining Timberwolves ready to tear me apart, it looked like it was all over for me.
But suddenly, from out of nowhere, something jumped through the blizzard and landed in front of it. It stood in a fighting pose in front of the Timberwolves.
I weakly looked up and saw it. It was a short figure in a cloak holding a long staff, I couldn't see his face because he was facing the other way, and having his hood up didn't help.
The Timberwolves started barking and snapping their jaws at the figure. When they came to close, the figure would swing it staff and make them back off.
He did this 3 more times before used some sort of magic in his left-hand to push the Timberwolves with great force. They eventually took the hint and ran off until they were out of sight; leaving only the Nightmare Moon face in the wind to deal with.
The Nightmare Moon face growled down at him before it opened its sharp teeth-filled jaws and shot down towards us.
The figure then held his staff with both hands and held it up above his head. "You will not cause any fear tonight, demon!" it said before he slammed the bottom of the staff down on the ground.
At that moment, the Nightmare Moon face disappeared and the entire world around us changed. Instead of a cold snowy nowhere, we were now in a warm spring-like land filled with flowers and birds.
I lied on the grass while shaking from the coldness. I stayed there until the new warm weather melted this feeling. Just then, the figure walked up to me and stroked my head with his hand. As he did this, I could feel he had some form of claws for fingers. "It's alright, Matthew. The danger is gone…for now." the figure said in an elderly-man voice.
I weakly looked up at him to see his face, but because the sun was right behind him, I couldn't. "Wh-…Who are you?" I asked.
The figure continued to stroke my head. "Someone who you must meet as soon as possible. What I am about to tell you is important. You must find me out, find me in the Ever Free Forest and we'll talk more there." he said before he stopped stroking my head.
"What?" I said in confusion as I stood up.
"Something dark is afoot, Matthew, something very dark indeed. You have to find me so I can teach you how to fight it, I can teach you many things that the Princesses can't. I know this all seems a bit rushed, but there isn't much time for me to explain." The figure said.
Just then, I noticed he was fading away. "Hey, what going on? You're disappearing!" I said.
The figure looked down at himself before he looked back up at me. "Yes, this is what I mean. I only have a limited amount of time in this realm, and using my magic a minute ago just shortened it." he said before he sighed. "Listen, I don't have any more time left, so just ask Celestia or Luna where I am." he said.
"Celestia and Luna? You know them?" I said before I got to the more important question. "Wait, hold on, you want me to ask them where you are? I don't know you, I don't even know your name, how am I supposed to ask them that?" I asked in a frustrated tone.
"Just do your best, boy!" The figure said before he took his staff and whacked me over the head with it.
Reality: Library
Upon feeling the figure hit me on the head with his staff, I fell off the bed and landed hard on the wooden floor. "OW! Bustard!" I said in pain as I held my hoof against my head.
The sound of me landing on the floor and my shouting instantly woke up Twilight and she leaned up on the bed. "Matt! Are you aright?" she asked in concern.
I stood up and continued to rub my head with my hoof. "Y-Yeah…I just had another one of those nightmares and fell off the bed." I explained.
Twilight looked at me with confusion. "Your nightmares never did that before." She said.
I climbed back into the bed and looked at her. "I know, but this one was…really wired." I said before I showed Twilight my head. "By the way, is my head bleeding?" I asked.
Twilight looked at my head before she looked me in the eyes and shook her head. "No, you're fine." She said.
I was relieved by this. "Good, the last thing I need is to get an injury form falling out of the bed. Good God, Rainbow Dash would never let me forget it." I said in amusement before I lied back down in the bed with my head on the pillow.
"It's a good thing you didn't then." Twilight added before she did the same. "Now just try and get back to sleep. Goodnight Matt." she said before she closed her eyes to go back to sleep.
"Goodnight Twi." I said before I did the same.
As I drifted back to sleep, I couldn't help but think about the figure in my dream. Why did he save me? Why did he want me to meet him? Why in Celestia's name did he hit me with his stick? According to what the figure said, these were questions that would have to be answered by Celestia or Luna…and fast.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
The song I used in this chapter is called "Monster" by "Skillet". I don't own anything.
Well guys, this'll be the last you'll hear from me for a while. I'm going on holiday, I'll be spending the next 2 weeks in sunny Gran Canaria and I won't be doing any writing while I'm there, I'll be relaxing by the poolside with my Dead Island novel and doing all kinds of other things.
I might still be able to talk through PMs, but that's only if I get a good Wi-Fi signal there, here's hoping I do.
No Pony News to report at this time.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
Please remember to review.
Next chapter will be up sometime after the next chapter of Skylanders Beginnings. Which like I said, won't be for a while., but you can still talk to me thought PMs.
55. Chapter 55: Nightmare Night
Hi everypony and welcome back for another chapter of my best story, seeing as how my Skylanders story isn't going so well. Only got 2 reviews on my last chapter of that story, it's a tough crowd.
Anyway, I'll tell more about my holiday in Gran Canaria now. Let's see if I can do it in list form.
It was really hot.
I met some nice people.
I went to an animal park.
I fed a banana to an ape.
I stroked a baby crocodile and a dolphin.
I watched the MLP FIM Season 4 final for the first time.
We went to a restaurant every night to eat, and every time we did I would have a couple of Strong Bows and get really drunk. My best score so far is 5 in one night, or was it 6?...Forgot.
I spent a few or maybe a lot of coins trying to win a prize in the hotel claw-machine. Curse my damn competitive nature with claw-machines.
And I think that's about it.
Now, on with the chapter, please enjoy. (Warning: Long chapter)
Chapter 55: Moleyair the Mage
Ponyville Day Spare
Me, Twilight, the rest of the mane 6, and Zelga were all spending some time at the Day Spare.
I was in the hot-tub with Twilight and Zelga.
Rarity and Fluttershy were getting a hooficure for one.
Rainbow Dash and Applejack were getting a back massage.
And Pinkie Pie was getting her hooves polished.
As we lay in the bubbly water together, I couldn't help but think about the dream I had last night. How it turned from a violent nightmare to a peaceful dream. Who was that small guy who saved me? Was that really Nightmare Moon controlling the storm? How was I supposed to find this guy? So many questions that I knew would take a long time to answer.
"Oh…this is so relaxing." Twilight said with a warm smile as she rested against the side of the hot-tub.
"Yeah, I swear these guys get better every time we come here." Rainbow Dash said as one of the Spare Stallions massaged her back.
"And my hooves have never looked shinier." Pinkie said as she looked at one of her hooves and smiled at her own reflection in them.
Meanwhile, I was suddenly released from my train of thought when I felt a soft body lie against my left-side. Knowing it was Twilight, I smiled warmly. "Twi…I love it when you do this, it's so cu-whow!" I said loudly when I saw who was really lying against me.
It was Zelga, she was resting her back against me with her eyes closed and a comforting smile on her face. I was frozen in place before I shot my head around to face Twilight, she was staring just at me, waiting for a reaction.
I then made the first move and scooched away from Zelga. Once that happened, Zelga opened her eyes and turned her head around to face me. "Something wrong, Matt?" she asked.
I was about to answer before Twilight moved up in front of me and gave Zelga a firm look. "Actually yes, something is wrong, Zelga. I don't know why you're so fond of Matt, but you do realise he's married, right?...To me!" she said with a small glare in her eyes.
"Yeah, I know…what? Can't a girl relax against her friend?" Zelga said, returning her furious glare.
"Not when that 'friend' happens to be my husband. Why are you so interested in Matt anyway? Why do you always act like you have a thing for him? Aren't you currently dating Big Macintosh?" Twilight asked as she crossed her arms.
"Yes I am, and when I was lying against Matt, I was fantasising about him. I was imagining it was him I was lying against, I was even about to say 'Oh Big Mac, you're so soft and warm' before you started snapping in my face about it." Zelga said coldly.
"Excuse me?!" Twilight snapped as they both gave each other vicious and growling looks.
I knew if I didn't do anything, they would break out into a fight. I quickly got between the two angry girls. "Whow! Twilight, Zelga, stop! Don't start fighting over nothing." I said as I gently pushed them away from each other.
Zelga pushed my hoof off from her chest. "What was I doing? She's the one who started this whole thing." she said.
"Just keep the hay away from my husband!" Twilight snapped loudly. Soon, all our friends were watching us.
"He's a free colt and he can do whatever he wants, he's not some animal you can keep on a leash." Zelga replied.
"I do not treat him like that!" Twilight said with an even worse growly look.
"Ha! That's a laugh, I see the way you act around him these days. I'm surprised he still wants to stay Ponyville…in fact, I'm surprised he still wants to be married to you!" Zelga said in a very harsh tone; making everyone gasp loudly.
I then shot Zelga an angered look. "HEY! That's going too far, Zelga." I said before I moved my face closer to her's. "Now you listen to me, I love Twilight more than anything and she definitely doesn't mistreat me. And all that stuff you just said to her was really crossing a line…."
Zelga kept her firm look as I moved my face away from her's. "Now…I think you're about done in this hot-tub. Maybe you should go into the steam-room or something and cool down." I said, slightly calmer.
Zelga huffed. "Fine." She said before she climbed out of the hot-tub and grabbed a towel from the rack with her mouth. After she dried herself, she stormed away into the steam-room with the towel still in her mouth.
Once she was gone, I turned around to face Twilight. "Twi…are you alright?" I asked in concern.
"No, I'm not alright. Did you hear what she said to me? Who does she think she is saying things like? I can't believe her." Twilight said as her ears dropped in sadness.
I then moved over to her and hugged her tightly. "It's ok, Twi…nothing she said was true…I love you, Twi…very much." I said sweetly.
We then laid back in the hot-tub and tried to relax with my arms still around her. As the tension died down, everyone went back to what they were doing.
What we didn't know was the door to the steam-room was open slightly and Zelga was watching us through it. She glared darkly at us before she carefully closed the door the rest of the way.
-A few minutes later-
After we were all done with our treatments, we all walked out of the Spare feeling refreshed. "Oh that was lovely." Rarity said with delight.
"Yeah, my hooves have never been so smooth." Fluttershy said as she looked at her front-hooves while flying in mid-air.
"Yep, it was a good day." Applejack stated before she turned her head to face us. "That is until Zelga started making a scene." She said.
"I know, what did she think she was doing? I mean, you actually believe she was fantasying about Big Mac while she lying against Matt?" Twilight asked as she walked up to the others.
"As much as I want to believe it, I have a fealin' she was just using that as an excuse." Applejack said with a small glare in her eyes.
"Yeah." Rainbow Dash said before she shot up to me and stared me right in the face. "And don't think I didn't see you enjoying it, you were gonna let her do it, we're you? Confess!" she growled.
Rarity's horn glowed before she used her magic to grab Rainbow's tail and pulled her away from me. "Now Rainbow Dash, don't accuse Matthew of such a thing. He loves Twilight more than life itself, he once said so himself." She stated.
I nodded. "Yeah, I did…and it's true." I said honestly.
Rainbow Dash stayed in mid-air as she crossed her arms and huffed. "*Huff* That's what they always say." She said.
Applejack looked up at Rainbow and gave her a firm look. "Rainbow Dash, stop accusin' Matt of bein' a two-timer, you know well-and-true he's not like that." She stated.
Rainbow Dash looked down at her. "Fine, if he's not the two-timer, Zelga is. I mean, she's with your brother yet she hits on Matt every moment she can. If you ask me, someone should tell Big Mac about this." She then groaned in frustration. "You know what? I don't have time for this, I'm outta here." she said before she shot up into the sky and flew away from us.
We all watched her until she was out of sight. After that, my ears dropped as I lowered my head. "I take it she's still mad at me because of what happened on my birthday." I said.
Twilight and the others then looked at me. "Well…kinda, I guess…" Applejack said before she gave me a warm smile. "D-Don't worry though, sugar cube. You know what she's like, give her some time…or in this case, a lot of time…and she'll be back to her old braggin' self in no-time." She said with confidence.
Rarity turned her head to face Applejack. "However, she does speak an excellent point, Applejack. If Zelga truly istrying to…'hit' on Matthew, your brother should certainly be told. We wouldn't want him to find out the hard way." She stated.
Applejack then sighed. "I know, but I'm just afraid of how he'll take it. He seems to really like Zelga, I've never seen him so…cheery…before. I don't fancy hurting his feelings…but…it's probably best if he knew the truth." She said.
At that moment, Fluttershy walked over to her. "Well…maybe you don't have to tell him just yet." She said.
"What're you talking about? If he's gonna keep goin' out with Zelga, he has to know the truth." Applejack stated.
"I know, but what if this was all just a small hiccup? What if she's telling the truth?" Fluttershy said.
Rarity then walked up beside her. "Fluttershy, dear, I know your thing is kindness and all, but even I have to say that sounds silly. It's clear that Zelga was making all that 'fantasizing about Big Macintosh' thing up, it's actually quite obvious." She stated with an unconvinced look.
Fluttershy turned her head to face her. "But what if she wasn't? All I'm saying is Ponyville is known for second-chances." She said with a small smile.
"Urr…no it isn't." Twilight said with a raised eye-brow.
Fluttershy's smile then went away once she realized that no-one had ever said that about Ponyville. "Well…sometimes I think it is. Don't you think Zelga deserves a second-chance anyway? I mean, remember when Discord said he turned good but none of us believed him?" she asked.
Twilight stepped forward. "Oh no, she's not staying with us like he did." She said strongly.
Fluttershy quickly looked at her. "No, I wasn't suggesting that, I meant we didn't believe him until he proved himself. Maybe Zelga just needs to prove she's really good inside." she said, hoping we'd agree.
"Zelga's been in Ponyville for nearly a month and she's done no such thing." Applejack said with her eye-lids half closed.
Fluttershy gave her a humble look. "Urr…maybe she's a late bloomer." She said.
"Sorry Fluttershy, but I'm afraid that flower has already lost its petals." Rarity stated.
Fluttershy then looked at all of us. "Oh come on, girls…and Matt, can't we all learn to forgive and forget? Let's give Zelga at least one more chance. Like Princess Celestia would say, it's important to always do the right thing when we can." She said.
After a silent moment, Twilight sighed. "I suppose that's what she would say." She said before she gave Fluttershy a strong look. "Fine, she's gets one more chance, but if she tries anything else with Matt again, I can't be held responsible for what I'm gonna do." she said.
Fluttershy took that as the best answer she was gonna get. "Oh…urr, ok." She said quietly.
Just then, Zelga came out of the spare with a saddle bag on her back. "My ears are burning, someone talking about Moi?" she said in a smug way.
Applejack glared at her. "I gotta go, I have some chores to do." she groaned before she turned around and stormed away from us.
"See ya, Applejack." I called, wondering if she was going to call back…she didn't.
Zelga then walked up to Twilight. "Twilight, sweetie, listen…I said some hurtful things in there and while I was in the Steam Room I had some time to reflect on what I did…I just want to say I feel terrible and I'm sorry, I'm truly sorry. I know you love Matt more than anything and it was wrong of me to say otherwise." She said in a very convincing tone.
We all watched the two of them as Twilight thought about what Zelga just said. The moment was silent before Twilight spoke. "Well…you really hurt me, you know…but when you say it like that, I suppose I can forgive you. Mostly because Fluttershy convinced me to." She said.
Zelga gave her a weak smile. "Oh…well I'm glad we can put all that behind us now and I'm really glad you can forgive em." She said before she turned her head around to look at her saddlebag.
Zelga then opened it with her mouth before she used her mouth to pull out a small present. She turned her head back around to face Twilight and held it out to her. "Here, I want you to have this. I got it for you." she muffled.
Twilight was slightly surprised by this, she never expected someone like Zelga to give her a present. She took it with her magic and looked at it with wonder. "Wow…thanks, Zelga. What is it?" she asked.
"Open it up and see." Zelga said with a small grin.
Twilight then used her magic to undo the bow and take off the lid. Once she looked inside, she gave whatever was inside a confused look. "What the?" she said.
I walked up beside her. "What is it, Twi?" I asked.
"It's…an orange." Twilight answered and she pulled a normal orange out of the box.
Me and the rest of the girls looked at it with even more confusion before I turned to face Zelga. "Why an orange?" I asked.
Zelga smiled. "It's not just any orange, it's a magical orange. Give it an hour or so and it'll do something you wouldn't expect from an orange." She explained.
Twilight gave her a slightly interested look. "Oh…right." She said before she looked down at the orange. "In that case, thanks Zelga. I'll be sure to keep on it in case it does anything." she said.
Zelga gave her a pleased smile. "Great! Well I need to go, got some stuff to do. I'll see you guys later." She said before she turned her attention to me. "By the way, Matt. Do you mind dropping by my place this afternoon? I need to talk to you about something, it concerns your show for Nightmare Night." she stated.
"Oh…urr…" I said before I turned my head around to face the others.
Twilight, Rarity, Fluttershy were all shaking their heads to say 'no' while Pinkie was nodding her head to say 'yes'. But once she saw everyone doing the opposite thing, she quickly started shaking her head to say 'no' as-well.
I then turned my head back around to face Zelga and smiled weakly. "Umm…sure Zelga, I can drop by for a minute." I said.
The 4 girls then let out groans, but they were quiet so Zelga couldn't hear them.
Zelga smiled again. "Cool, I'll see you then." She said. She then turned around and began to walk away before she stopped and turned her head around to look back at me. "Don't keep me waiting." She said with a sly smile before she continued to walk away.
Once she was gone, I turned around and saw the girls giving me firm looks. "…What?...She wants to talk about something involving the show. Maybe she has an idea on how to improve it." I said.
Twilight rolled her eyes. "Huh, yeah right." She said before she turned and stormed away; taking Zelga's present with her in her magic.
As I watched her walk away, I walked up to the rest of the girls and turned to face them. "What's up with her? I know she and Zelga just went through a big fight, but why is she acting this way?" I asked.
Rarity then shook her head with her eyes closed before she opened them. "Oh Matt, I'm surprised you don't see the big picture out of all this. I don't mean to sound rude, but are you really so blind?" She said.
I gave her a confused look. "W-What do you mean? What big picture?" I asked.
"I think Twilight's afraid Zelga's trying to steal you away from her. That why she's always so nice to you, but mean to Twilight." Fluttershy explained.
I looked at her. "She's not always mean to Twilight, she just have her a present, you all saw her." I stated.
"We saw Zelga give Twilight an orange, not a present. If she wanted an orange, she could've gone to the market for one." Rarity said with her eye-lids half closed.
I then looked at her. "It's the thought that counts, right? Besides, it's a magical orange." I stated.
"And you believed her?" Rarity asked with a raised eye-brow.
"Yeah, even I don't believe that, and I believe a lot of things. Like the purple gooey monster that lives in my closet, I leave a cupcake out for him every night to show I don't mind his company." Pinkie Pie stated with a large smile.
We all stared at her in awkwardness for a moment before we returned to the main subject. "Anyway, the point is Twilight's just afraid you're getting too attached to Zelga. She's worried you're more interested in Zelga rather than her." Rarity explained.
I was slightly shocked by this. "What?! That's crazy! I love Twilight, I'd never go after another mare. I mean, yeah, Zelga's pretty, but not enough that I'd cheat on Twilight with her. You know I'm not that type of guy…right?" I asked, actually wondering if they saw me that way.
Fluttershy then stepped forward and placed her hoof on my shoulder. "Of course we do, Matt. We weren't saying that, we just think maybe you should…spend more time with Twilight rather than Zelga. Look, you've been very nice to her since she arrived in Ponyville, you've made her feel more than welcome and we're happy you did so, but we think it's time to put it all to rest now. Go see Zelga this afternoon like you said, but after that, stay with Twilight and make her feel loved, alright?" She said with her sweet voice.
I gave her a small smile. "Ok, I will…thanks, Fluttershy." I said.
Fluttershy smiled warmly as she removed her hoof from my shoulder.
I turned looked at everyone else. "Alright, I'll go back to the library and have a small talk with Twilight, but I have something else to deal with today so I'll have to see Zelga and spend time with Twilight some time tonight." I stated.
Everyone looked at each other in confusion before they looked at me. "What is it you need to do?" Rarity asked curiously.
"Let's just say I need to write a letter to Princess Celestia, something tells me she'll know something about it." I said before I turned and walked away from them. "See ya." I said without looking back.
"Bye Mattie, I'll tell the gooey monster in my closet you said hi." Pinkie Pie said happily as she waved her hoof to me; making Rarity and Fluttershy roll their eyes.
Later: library
Once I got back to the library, Twilight wasn't very happy that I agreed to see Zelga this afternoon, I was starting to think Rarity and Fluttershy was actually on to something. I followed her around the library to try and explain things to her, but she wasn't paying much interest.
Right now we were in the second main room. Twilight was sitting in front of her work desk reading a book while I stood behind her. "Twi, it's not like I'm gonna be there all night, I'm just going to see what she wants then I'll come straight back."
"I think she knows what she wants, Matt. It's the same thing Princess Luna wanted once." Twilight said coldly without taking her eyes off the book.
"Oh come on, Twi, you don't mean that. What happened with Luna was completely different, I helped her feel more confident with herself and she got the wrong idea about it. I didn't say anything to Zelga, I've just been trying to make her feel more welcome here in Ponyville." I explained.
"Well I think you've made her feel more than welcome, now she probably has the wrong idea too." Twilight said.
"For God's sake, Twilight, I love you, not Zelga. I thought I made that perfectly clear the last time you thought like this." I said before I took a step closer to her. "…I'd never take interest in another girl. You're my one-and-only, Twi, you always will be. But if it'll make you feel better, I'll talk to Zelga when I see her and…if she really does have some form of feelings for me, which I'm hoping she doesn't…I'll tell her in person that I'm not and never will be interested in her." I stated.
Twilight was silent for a moment before she turned her head around to face me. "You'd do that?" she asked.
I nodded. "Yeah…if it would make you feel better." I said.
Twilight turned around and sighed. "Alright…but when you do talk to her, don't be really hard. We may not see eye-to-eye but I don't want her feeling hurt so bad." She said.
I gave her a small smile. "Don't worry, I will nice." I said before I grinned slyly. "And maybe when I get back, I can show you just how much I love you." I said as I stepped closer to her.
Twilight smirked. "Oh really? Well, I'll do the same. You definitely enjoyed it last time." She joked.
I smirked with her. "Oh-ho!...I love it when you talk like that." I said as I wrapped my arm around her and pulled her closer.
Twilight giggled a little before she shared a kiss. At that moment, the door opened and Spike walked in the room holding a quill and sheet of paper. "Matt, didn't you say you wanted to write a letter to the-" he then stopped once he saw me and Twilight kissing.
We soon noticed him and pulled away from each other. There was an awkward silence before Spike broke it. "Ur…bad time?" he asked.
Twilight and I looked at each other before we looked at Spike again. "No Spike, it's alright, we were just settling something." I said before I walked over to him. "Now, what we're you saying?" I asked curiously.
Spike cleared his throat before he continued. "You wanted to write a letter to the Princess, right? Well I'm ready when you are." He said.
"Oh good, thanks Spike, just go into the front-room and I'll be with ya in a minute." I said.
With that, Spike turned around and walked out of the room. Once he was gone, Twilight walked up beside me. "Do you really need to send a letter to the Princess? I know someone spoke to you in your dream, but how do you know Celestia will know who it was?" she asked.
I turned my head to face her. "Who else can I ask? She and Luna have been around longer than we have, one of them must know something about it." I stated.
Twilight sighed again. "Fine, do what you want, but don't bring me into it." she said in a grumpy tone before she marched over to the doorway.
I watched her walk away, wondering why she was so angry. "Twi, are you ok? I know you're not happy about me seeing Zelga, but I thought we just settled this." I said.
Twilight stopped where she was before she turned her head around to face me. "I know…I'm sorry, I don't know why I spoke like that. I just don't feel very well." She said.
Feeling concerned, I took a step towards her. "Do you want me to take you to a doctor?" I asked.
Twilight shook her head. "No, I'm fine, I'll just get some pills from the medicine-carbonate in the bathroom and have a glass of cold water, I'm sure I'll feel better after that." She said before she turned her head back around and continued to walk out of the room.
I followed her out and noticed Spike sitting on a stool in front of his writing desk. While Twilight headed towards the bathroom, I walked over to Spike and tapped his shoulder with my hoof; getting his attention.
Spike turned his head around and saw me. "You ready now, Matt?" he asked curiously with a smile.
I nodded. "Yep, are you ready to start?" I asked.
Spike nodded as-well. "You bet, just say the words and I'll get them." he said as he prepared to write down what I was going to say.
With that, I started speaking out my letter to Celestia.
"Dear Princess Celestia.
As you may know, for the last few months I've been having strange dreams that feel extremely real and are also very frightening, but last night my nightmare was transformed into a dream by a small cloaked creature.
He told me he knows something about the missing Elements and he also told me to seek him out in the real world to get more answers.
I don't know who this guy is or what he knows, I write this letter to you because I figured either you or Luna might know something about him.
I await your reply.
Yours truly, Matthew."
Once I finished speaking the letter, Spike rolled it up into a scroll and burnt it with his fire breath; turning it into a cloud of smoke. The smoke then flew out the open window and up towards Canterlot.
Spike closed the window before he turned around to face me. "So this guy in your dreams…what did he look like again?" he asked.
"Well, he was short, dressed in a brown cloak, he was holding a long staff in his hand or claw or whatever, and he had a deep old-man voice. He also had a wise yet strong attitude." I explained.
"How strong?" Spike asked.
"He hit me over the head with his bloody staff, that's how strong." I stated.
Spike chuckled. "Haha, on dear, it's one of those old guys that hit people with sticks. Haha! How many of those do we have in this town?" he said with an amused smirk.
I returned his smirk and chuckled. "Haha, yeah I know. My head still hurts from it as-well." I said as I rubbed my hoof against the part of my head which guy hit with his staff.
As we both started to laugh a little more, Spike suddenly stopped and his cheeks inflated as if he had thrown-up in his mouth before he burped out a cloud of smoke which then turned into another scroll.
"Huh, that was fast." I said as the scroll hit the floor.
Spike picked it up and unravelled it, he then cleared his throat before he read out what it said. "My dearest Matthew, may we come in?" he read.
We were both confused by what it said before we suddenly heard a knock on the front-door. Once we looked over to it, it opened by itself to reveal Celestia and Luna standing behind it. "Hello Matthew, Spike, how are you both?" Celestia said as she and Luna entered the library.
Spike and I looked at each other in confusion before we looked at them again. "…We're alright." I said before I got to the real conversation. "Urr…don't take this the wrong way, but…why are you two here?" I asked curiously.
"You sent us a letter, Yes?" Luna asked.
I nodded. "Yeah, but why are you here to answer it in person? Couldn't you just sent a letter back?" I asked.
"Usually we would've, but after hearing what you said in your letter, Luna and I wanted to be here to ask you some questions first." Celestia explained before she and Luna sat down on the floor in front of us. "I know this must seem very confusing right now, but we have suspicions that the creature you described from your dream may be…someone we know." She said.
I was surprised by this. "You might know him? I knew it." I said before I looked down at Spike. "Didn't I say they would know?" I asked with a smirk.
Spike rolled his eyes. "Yeah, you said that." He said as he crossed his arms.
Just then, Twilight came into the room and saw Celestia and Luna. "Princess Celestia? Princess Luna? What are you two doing here?" she asked as she trotted over to us.
Celestia looked down at her. "We came to speak to Matthew, we got his letter and we're here to answer it." she explained.
Twilight then looked at me with a firm look. "Matt, you were just supposed to write them a letter and wait for them to write back. You didn't have to ask them to come all the way down here to answer your questions." She said.
I looked at her with wide eyes. "I didn't ask them to do anything, they came here by themselves!" I said.
Celestia got up and stepped forward. "Whow, Matthew, Twilight, please calm down." She said.
We both looked up at her and our ears dropped. "Sorry Princess, we've…been going through a lot lately." Twilight stated.
Luna stepped forward as-well. "You two are not starting to form marriage problems, are you?" she asked curiously.
Celestia quickly turned her head to face Luna with a firm look. "Sister! That's not an appropriate question." She said.
Twilight raised her hoof up. "No, no, it's alright." She said before she looked at Luna. "And to answer your question, no, we're not started to get marriage problems. We've just been having a rough few days." she stated.
"Well I hope you both make it better soon." Celestia said before she turned her attention to me. "Now, down to business. This creature from your dreams…what did her look like?" she asked.
I then described the creature to them. "Urrr…he was short, wearing a cloak, had weird claws for fingers, spoke in a deep old-man voice, holding a long staff with a crystal on-top." I said.
Celestia and Luna looked at each other before they looked at me again. "This staff he had? Was it carved with markings?" Luna asked.
I thought about ti before I answered. "No…but he did hit me on the head with it." I stated.
At that moment, Celestia and Luna smiled largely at each other. "That is him!" Luna said with joy.
"After all these years, he's finally retuned. I haven't seen him in so long." Celestia said.
Twilight, Spike and I were slightly confused by this. "Yeah, sorry to interrupt the happy moment, but who are you talking about? Who's back?" I asked.
Celestia and Luna looked down at us and Celestia stepped forward. "Matthew, you may not know this, but you have been visited by one of the wisest minds in Equestria…Moleyair ." she said.
I tilted my head. "Moleyair? Who's that?" I asked curiously.
"Moleyair is an old but powerful Mage, he has the ability to see small glimpses of the recent future, along with many more magical talents." Celestia explained.
"After suffering a serious injury, he felt that he was not capable of living in Canterlot anymore, so he left to find a new home where he could rest and work on his studies. No-one has seen him since." Luna said.
Twilight stepped forward. "A Mage? I've heard of them, they're powerful sorcerers with amazing skills in magic. Last I checked, they were all gone, either dead or hiding in different parts of the world. There's really one here?" she asked with interest.
Celestia nodded. "Yes, Moleyair is the only Mage we know is still alive. We suspect he's living somewhere in the Ever Free Forest, but no-one knows where."
"Oh that makes it easier." I mumbled sarcastically.
Luna looked down at me. "Matthew, did he say anything in your dream that indicated where he might be?" she asked.
I shook my head. "No, all he did was change my nightmare into a dream and told me to find him." I then frowned. "He didn't really tell me how thought…it would've helped if he did."
After hearing that, Celestia and Luna looked at each other before they looked back down at me. "He told you…to find him?" Luna asked.
I could tell by the sound in her voice and looks on their faces that something was up. "Yeah…why? Is something wrong?" I asked.
Twilight, Spike and I listened closely as Celestia spoke. "Before he left, Moleyair said he would return one day and call upon one pony who would become his pupil, then he would pass on his wisdom and techniques to that pony." She said.
We were slightly stunned by this. "Wait you mean…he went into Matt's dreams because he wants him to be his pupil?" Spike asked.
Celestia nodded again. "Yes, but he said the only time he would do this…was when the world was coming close to destruction." She stated.
We all gasped a little. "W-What do you mean 'coming close to destruction'? Are you saying the world's ending or something?" I asked in slight panic.
"We do not know, only Moleyair would know, but we do not know where to find him." Luna said.
We were all silent for a moment before Twilight spoke. "Then Matt will have to search the Ever Free Forest until he does find him." she said in a serious tone.
I turned my head to face her and gave her a confused look. "I will?" I asked; earning a nudge from Twilight's elbow. "I mean, yeah, I will." I said with a fake smile.
"Are you sure, Matthew? It is very dangerous to travel through the Ever Free Forest alone." Luna said with slight concern.
"That's why Spike's going with him." Twilight said with a small smile.
Spike looked up at her. "I am?" he asked; earning a nudge from her elbow like me. "I mean, I am!" she said to the Princesses.
Celestia then looked at Twilight with a raised eye-brow. "And what of you, Twilight? Will you be venturing with them?" she asked.
Twilight gave her an honest look. "I would, Princess, I'd really love to meet Moleyair. But I've been feeling a bit under the weather lately, I feel like I'm gonna throw up at any minute." She said as she rubbed her stomach with her hoof.
I looked at her with concern. "Are you sure you don't want me to take you to a doctor about that? I'm starting to think you're coming down with something." I said.
Twilight looked at me and gave me a warm smile. "No Matt, I'll be fine…I'm sure it'll pass eventually." She said.
"Well at least let me stay with until I'm sure you're alright." I said.
Twilight shook her head. "No Matt, you heard Princess Celestia, you need to find Moleyair, it's important." She said.
I then thought about it before I sighed. "Fine…but if Spike's coming with me, Jeff's gonna be looking after you." I said before I looked over to the stairs that led upstairs. "Jeff!" I called.
There was a moment of silence before I voice upstairs broke it. "What?!" Jeff's voice called back.
"I'm gonna be going out for a while with Spike, Twilight's not feeling so well and I need you to look after her!" I called loudly.
"Can't you get Peewee to do it?!" Jeff's voice called.
"No, for two reasons. One, I don't know where the hell he is, and two, I'd rather have someone bigger than him looking after my wife!" I called.
"*Groan* Alright, I'll look after your girl!" Jeff's voice called.
"Thanks!" I called back before I looked at Twilight again. "Jeff's gonna look after ya." I said with a cheeky smile.
"*Groan*" Twilight groaned as she rolled her eyes.
Celestia smiled. "It's settled then, you and Spike shall go into the Ever Free Forest and find Moleyair. If I were you, I'd look for either a small hut or a hole in the ground." She said.
I looked at her in confusion. "Hole in the-…why would he live in a hole in the ground?" I asked.
Celestia smirked. "You'll know once you see him." she said.
"Why does that make me nervous?" I asked out-loud and got no answer.
While we were talking, none of us notice the magical orange on the table glowing, it then grew a wide freaky grin.
-A few minutes later-
After planning what I was going to do and having a quick drink of coke, I opened the front-door and walked out of the library with Spike following behind.
We turned around to face Twilight and the Princesses who were standing in the doorway. "Please be careful, you two." Twilight said.
"We will, don't worry." I said with a confident smile.
"And for goodness sake, if anything happens to him, come back here as quick as you can and tell me so I can get him out of the mess." Twilight said.
I raised my hoof. "Relax Twi, I'll make sure nothing bad happens to Spike." I said with a small smirk.
Twilight looked at me with her eye-lids half closed. "I was talking to Spike." she said.
"…Oh…" I said as my smirk went away.
Celestia then stepped forward. "Now remember Matthew, Moleyair has probably been resting for a very long time now, so take things slow with him and don't rush him. I know you have a lot of questions, but he's very old now and he might not be as quick as he used to be." She said.
"Especially after his great injury." Luna added.
Spike looked up at her. "What is his 'great injury' anyway? What's wrong with him?" he asked curiously.
"You will find out when you encounter him." Luna stated.
"Again, why does that make me nervous?" I said out-loud.
"Don't worry, Matthew, you have nothing to be nervous about. All you have to do is search the Ever Free Forest until you find something out of the ordinary. Hopefully he left you things leading to his home." Celestia said with a comforting smile.
"Alright, I'll try." I said before I turned my attention to Twilight. "Twi…are you sure you want me to go? I don't really like the idea of leaving you here when you don't feel well." I said in concern.
Twilight gave me a sweet smile. "I'll be fine, Matt, don't worry about me. I'll be right here when you get back." she said.
I retuned her smile. "Ok Twi…" I said before my smile went away. "But if anything happens, send Jeff or Peewee to find me and we'll come straight back. Please…just promise me you'll do that." I said.
Twilight sighed. "Alright, if it'll make you feel any better about it, I'll do that." She said.
My smile returned. "Thanks Twi." I said before we shared a warm hug.
After a second or two, we separated before I turned around and started walking away from the library with Spike walking beside me. Twilight waved her hoof goodbye. "Be careful out there, you two." she called.
"We will." Spike called back as we kept walking away.
Once we were far enough away from the library, Twilight stumbled a little and groaned. Celestia and Luna noticed this and gave her a concerned look. "Are you alright, Twilight Sparkle?" Luna asked.
Twilight placed her hoof on her forehead and looked up at them. "Yeah, I'm alright…I just felt a little dizzy there." she said.
"Maybe we should stay with you until Matt comes back." Celestia said, feeling concerned for her student.
Twilight placed her hoof back down and shook her head. "No, you've got more important things to do back in Canterlot." She said before she looked at Luna. "But Princess Luna, can I speak to you for a moment?" she asked.
Luna was silent for a moment before she nodded. "Of course, may we go inside to speak?" she asked.
"Yeah." Twilight answer with a nod.
Celestia then walked through the doorway until she was outside the library. "I'll leave you two to your business then." She said before she stopped and turned to face them. "By the way, have either of you seen Discord? I can't find him anywhere in the castle." She said.
Luna and Twilight shook their heads. "No, I have not. In fact, I haven't seen him a while." Luna stated.
Twilight gave Celestia a small smile. "Don't worry Princess, I'm sure he'll turn up eventually. I mean, when doesn't he?" she said.
Celestia chuckled a little at what Twilight said. "You're right, Twilight. He'll show up at some point, maybe the Diamond Dogs know where he is. Anyway I should go, goodbye Twilight, let me know when Matt returns." She said.
Twilight nodded. "I will." She said.
Celestia then looked at Luna. "Sister, I'll see you back in the castle." She said with a smile before she spread out her wings and took off into the sky.
While she made her way back up to Canterlot, Twilight and Luna went back into the library. "What was it you wanted to talk to me about?" Luna asked.
"Well…I don't know if you already know, but Matt's been having some terrible nightmares lately." Twilight said as she closed the front-door with her magic.
Later: The Ever Free Forest
After entering the Ever Free Forest, I was searching everywhere for anything that looked like it was left intentionally, Spike was riding on my back helping me look.
"See anything yet, Spike?" I asked as I kept walking deeper into the forest, being careful not to trip on any rocks, branches or tree roots.
Spike was looking around with his hand held above his eyes to block out the sun. "No, I don't see anything." he answered.
I sighed loudly. "*Sigh!*…You know, if this guy wanted me to find him, you'd think he would at least leave me something that would help me find him." I groaned.
"I know, you've said four times now. Let's just keep looking, there's bound to be something here." Spike stated.
I decided to agree with him and kept looking for something, anything that would tell me where to find Moleyair.
But after two minutes or so, we finally spotted something. It was a sign standing up by a tree with writing on it, it said "Go this way" with an arrow pointing towards a rocky path.
The very look of the path sent chills down both our spines. Unlike the dirt path we were currently on, this path was made of crooked rocks stuck into the ground surrounded by dead trees, I also could've sworn I saw a pair of yellow glowing eyes in the darkness.
We both gulped in fright over this. "D-Do we really need to go down there?" Spike asked.
"W-We have to, Spike. We need to find Moleyair…it's important." I said before I took a step forward and stepped on the path.
The second I did, we heard a spooky growl from inside the dark area ahead, the growl continued until I lifted my hoof off the path. Spike and I looked at each other before I placed my hoof back down on the path; making the growling noise come back.
I repeatedly lifted my hoof up off the path and placed it back down; making the growling noise go on and off like a light switch. I was even starting to do it in a musical tune; which was amusing me a little.
Spike soon got tired of this and smacked the side of my head. "Knock it off, Matt! We're here to find Moleyair, not make monster growl music." He said firmly.
I shook my head to snap myself out of my own amusement. "Right, sorry, got carried away there." I said before I focused on the path. "Alright…lets go." I said before I stepped on the path again and walked down it into the darkness ahead.
If felt like we had been wondering for hours. It was dark, we had no idea where we were, and we felt like we were being watched. But eventually, we found another sign. This time it said "This way" with an arrow pointing downwards.
We were both confused by this. "What the hell? Why is it pointing down?" I asked.
Spike shrugged. "I don't know…maybe it means 'go back' or something." he said.
"Yeah, maybe." I responded.
Suddenly, we heard a small cracking sound, our eyes widened before we looked down. We were shocked to see the ground under my hooves was starting to break, as if I was standing on something other than earth, like glass or wood, most likely wood.
"Oh shi-AHHHH!" I yelled as the floor beneath me broke and we both fell down a long dirt tunnel. We slid fast down the tunnel until we finally got to the end and hit a hard floor.
Spike and I groaned in pain as me laid on the floor. "Ah…ow…didn't see that coming." I groaned with my face flat on the floor.
"Oh, you think?" Spike said sarcastically as he stood up.
I pushed myself off the floor before I examined our surroundings. Only two words could describe it…pitch black. We couldn't see a thing, I couldn't even see my own nose.
"Where do you think we are?" Spike asked curiously as he waved his arms around to try and feel something.
"I don't know, but at least we know what the sign meant now…it meant 'go down'…which is exactly what we did." I stated.
"But isn't that a good thing, it means we're on the right track, right? Now we're even closer to finding Moleyair." Spike said in a pleased tone.
"Yeah, we're on the right track, but the problem is we can't see where the track's leading. I can't see anything down here…where are you, by the way?" I said as I tried to feel around for Spike.
"I'm over here." Spike said what sounded like behind me.
"Where's 'over here'?" I asked in a joking way as I turned around and tried to feel around for Spike again.
"I'm right in front of you…I think." Spike said while trying to see me through the darkness.
At that moment, some lanterns attached the walls lit themselves up; providing us with a small amount of light.
I then spotted Spike a few feet away from me facing a wall. Once he saw the dirt wall in front of him, he looked around and saw me. "Oh…we weren't even close." He said.
We then saw more lanterns light themselves one-by-one down the tunnel. It was clear that they were lighting themselves to show us the way down the tunnel.
"I take it we go down there." I said as I pointed my hoof down the tunnel.
With that, Spike hopped up onto my back and I carefully made my way down the lit tunnel.
After a few minutes, we reached the end of the tunnel to see a large room. As I walked into it, I couldn't help but examine it.
There was a large round table in the centre of the room, another large table by the wall with a chemistry set on it, a book case by the wall on the other side of the room, a few more lanterns attached to the walls, and a few roots dangling from the ceiling.
"Whow…homey." Spike said in amazement.
"Yeah, it's hard to believe someone actually lives here." I said as I walked up to the table in the middle of the room and saw an open book on it.
I looked down at the book and was shocked by what I saw in it. It was a page with Thorn's picture on it, I read through it and discovered that the entire page was about him, from his birth to his death. However, it didn't say much about him, no known family or anything about his past before we first met him.
Spike looked over me and saw the page. "Is that…Thorn?" he asked curiously.
I kept my eyes on the page as I answered him. "Yeah, it's like someone's wrote a page about him." I said before I thought came to me.
There may be more about him on the other pages. I turned to the next page only to see it was blank. I turned to the next one, also blank. The next one, you quested it, blank. It was like Thorn's page was where it stopped.
"The book ends with Thorn's page, the others are blank." I said out-loud so Spike could hear.
"That's weird, maybe they're meant to be filled in at some point." Spike stated.
"That's a possibility, but why's there a page about Thorn in the first place? Who would write about him?" I asked, wondering why someone would be interested in a maniac like him.
Spike noticed a few more pages before Thorn's. "Hey, there are more pages before Thorn's. Go to the beginning of the book and see what they say." He said.
I was about to do that before we heard a door creek open. We turned to face the direction it came from and saw archway. We were then stunned to see a large shadow of a guy with a hunchback and a long nose, it's mouth opened to reveal a bunch of crooked teeth.
Spike was quivering with fear at the sight of it. The movement of the shadow indicated that whoever was casting it was coming towards the archway. "Who is in my home?..." a deep scary voice asked.
Both of us were too shook up to speak, but knowing a guy like this could be impatient, I spoke. "Urr…sorry mate, but…aren't you Moleyair?" I asked, afraid of how he might respond.
"I am, I've been expecting you…Matthew and Spike." The guy said.
Spike put his hand on the side of his mouth. "How did he know our names? How did he know I was here too?" he whispered to me.
"Shhh, don't ask things like that out-loud, you might make him mad." I whispered as we waited for Moleyair to reach us.
I could tell by the movement of his shadow that he was getting closer, any moment now we would see this large frightening Mage that had already proven to be an intelligent and great creature.
Just then, we noticed his shadow getting smaller and less scary until the creature finally emerged from around the corner.
Spike and I looked down to see a small creature in a light-brown cloak with his hood up. In his right-hand, he was holding a long wooden staff with a light-blue gem attached to the top. I looked at his hands to see his fingers were actually long claws, I also noticed his long furry nose poking out from under his hood. "You are Matthew and Spike, right? My site isn't what it used to be." He said in a deep old-man voice.
We were stunned by the fact that what we thought was a scary creature was actually a Yoda-sized old man. "Urr…yeah, I'm Matthew and this is Spike." I said as Spike waved down to him.
"Good, you don't know how many times that happens." He said before he took off his hood, revealing himself as a mole wearing a pair of black goggles; which shocked us even more.
"So…you're Moleyair then?" I asked curiously.
"I am he." Moleyair said as he walked past us while tapping the end of his staff against the floor. "And you are Matthew, also known as the Hero of Canterlot for defeating Thorn. You've been married to Twilight Sparkle for a few months now and you're still trying to figure out how, in your own words, a sad-sack like yourself could've possible got an astounding life such as this." He said as he walked towards the table.
I gave him a firm look. "Sad-sack? Who are you calling a-…" I then stopped once I realised what he said. "Wait, how do you know so much about me?" I asked curiously.
Moleyair turned around to face me and smirked. "I know a lot about you, Matthew. For you see, I have the ability to see small glimpses of the near future. I saw you arriving in Ponyville before you even came to this world, I saw both your victories over Thorn before he died, and I saw your wedding to Twilight the moment you proposed to her." He stated.
We were amazed by this. "Whow, you're like some sort of fortune teller." I said.
"I supposed I am, but there's only one difference between me and the fortune tellers you see in the circus…my predictions are actually real and not cheap guesses." He said with an amused smile
The three of us chuckled at that. "Haha, very true. So is it only my future you can see or can you see everyone's?" I asked curiously.
"I can see everyone's near future and their past. I even know about Spike, how Twilight hatched him from an egg and kept him, how he secretly thinks Twilight's constant lectures can put any pony to sleep, and his obvious crush on Rarity…I don't really need to see into the past or future to know that part." Moleyair stated.
Spike blushed from embarrassment. "Urr, I…I don't buy any of this. He's probably making some of this up." he said strongly, hiding his embarrassment.
Moleyair raised his eye-brow. "Really? Well then." He said before he looked over to the left. "See that shelf up there?" he said as he pointed his claw up to something.
Spike and I looked over to where he was pointing and saw a shelf with a vase on it. We looked back down to him. "Yeah, what about it?" I asked curiously.
Moleyair then explained. "Well it broke a while ago and I had to fix it, but due to my poor eye-site I did a pretty poor job of it. I just had a small glimpse into the future and I can see the shelf braking again, causing the vase to fall down onto the copping board beneath it and fling the sharp knife on it directly towards you. I say you should duck…now."
At that moment, the left side of the shelf broke and the vase fell down. It hit the end copping board on the counter below and flung the knife on it towards me. Spike and I yelled out in fright before I dropped down onto the floor with Spike on my back and the knife shot past us.
The knife flew across the room before it stuck itself into the wall on the other side of the room. Spike and I were panting loudly at how close we came to being hit by that thing.
"I can tell by the panting sound you two are still alive, that's a relief. Remind me to fix that again later." Moleyair said before he turned around and continued walking.
After Spike got off my back, I stood up and we both followed him. We were both still a little shook up from what just happened. "H-How did you do that? You said what would happen and it suddenly happened…y-you knew it like you saw it before." I said, stuttering slightly.
"That's because I did. I told you, I can predict the near future. I'm just glad it was that one." Moleyair said.
I was a little confused by this. "What do you mean by 'that one'?" I asked curiously.
Moleyair stopped and turned around to face me. "I thought you would ask that. You see Matthew, every single time someone makes a choice, a number of futures are created. For example, I saw a number of different futures when that knife flew off the table, one in particular I hoped wouldn't happen." he said.
"Which one was that?" I asked.
"Let's just say…it involved a bit mess." Moleyair answered.
Once we heard that, Spike and I gulped hard. "Well….I'm glad it wasn't that one then." I said.
"Same here." Moleyair said before he walked over to the table in the middle of the room. "Now, your answers to your questions. First off, don't worry about this book with Thorn in it, it's not important." He said as he closed the book and threw it over to one of the bookcases, it skilfully landed in an empty place among the rest of the books.
"Whow." Spike said in an impressed way before he looked at me. "He's good." he said.
"I can do more than that, Spike" Moleyair said before he turned around to face us. "Now for your second question, I've called you here because the time of a great danger is near." He said.
After being reminded of this, I felt worried again. "Yeah, about that, what kind of danger are we in? If Celestia's right about you resting until the right time, why come back now? Why didn't you come back during Nightmare Moon's return? Or when Discord took over Ponyville? Or when Thorn appeared? Are you saying there's something worse coming our way?" I asked, feeling more panicky by the minute.
Moleyair held his hand up. "Relax Matthew, to be honest, I don't know what the danger is or when it's actually going to come, all I know is its not far off. But I'm going to do something about it." he said.
"Really? What's that?" I asked, wondering what he had in mind.
"I'm going to train you to fight. So when the danger comes, you'll be more than ready for it." Moleyair explained.
I was slightly surprised by this, Moleyair wanted to train me. But did I need it, Luna started training me a while ago and now Twilight's doing it. "Oh…no offence, Moleyair, but Twilight's already training me at the moment, I don't think it's really necessary." I stated.
Moleyair was quiet for a moment before he hit me on the head with his staff; making me yell out in pain. "I didn't mean with your magic, I meant your fighting skills. When you're pinned down by a worthy foe, magic and flight won't always be there to help you, your Element won't always be there to help you. You need to learn proper combat, you already know some, but it's not enough." He said strongly.
I rubbed my head with my hoof. "I get that, but why did you hit me?" I asked in an annoyed tone.
"First lesson, suspect the unexpected." Moleyair said before he grabbed his staff with both his hands and swung it at me.
Seeing this, I quickly ducked and it missed me. "Good, you're a fast learner. I can see we're going to make good progress in these lessons. If there's anyone who can teach you combat, it's me. I'm very skilled in martial-arts. In fact, I used to teach it in Canterlot many years ago." Moleyair stated.
Spike and I looked at him with confusion. "Urr…that's good to hear and all, but there's something we need to ask….why are you talking to that chair?"
"Huh?" Moleyair said before he stretched his arm out and felt the chair in front of him, he wasn't facing me, he wasn't even close. "Oh, where are you then?" he asked looking around for me.
"I'm right behind you." I answered.
Moleyair turned around and felt my chest. "Ah, there you are. As I was saying, I used to teach martial-arts in Canterlot and I'd like you to be my first pupil after so many years of retirement." He stated.
Spike and I looked at each other before I waved my hoof in front of Moleyair's face, he didn't react in any way. "Umm…Moleyair…when you say you have bad eyesight, how bad is it?" I asked, worried about what the answer would be.
"Oh it's nothing too serious." Moleyair said, unaware that I was still waving my hoof in front of his face.
"So you can see my hoof then?" I asked curiously.
"Your hoof? What about it?" Moleyair asked in confusion.
After hearing that, I was more than shocked. "Oh my God! You've got more than poor eyesight, you're completely blind! You can't even see my hoof in front of you!" I said as I placed my hoof back down on the floor.
Moleyair sighed. "Alright, I admit it…I can't see, I'm blind. I lost my eyesight centuries ago…" he explained.
At that moment, Spike and I remembered the Princesses mention something about his 'great injury', this must be it. "Oh no…Princess Celestia and Princess Luna said you suffered a great injury before you left. This is it, isn't it? You got hurt and made you blind." Spike said.
Moleyair nodded. "Yes, that's why I had to leave Canterlot…I wasn't any good to anyone there anymore, I had to go into hiding until I could learn to live with my blindness, and now I have. I may be blind, but the magic within provides me with a special type of sight. My eyes are useless, but I can see with my mind, just like how I can see into the future." He explained.
"Whow..." I said in slight amazement. "But wait, if you can see with your mind, how come you were talking to that chair and you couldn't see my hoof?" I asked curiously.
"Ok, the seeing with my mind thing doesn't always work, it's kind of in the middle of on-and-off, if you know what I mean." Moleyair said.
I nodded. "Yeah, I get it." I said before I decided to change the subject. "So you think you can actually train me to fight with my bear hooves?" I asked.
"Yes, I can. Don't let my lack of sight fool you, Matthew, I'm still a Mage and a master or martial-arts." Moleyair said before he walked over to the table and grabbed a sheet of paper and a quill. "We can't start today though, maybe sometime this weekend. I'll give you this letter to explain everything to your wife, hopefully she'll understand." He said as he wrote the message.
Once he was done, Moleyair rolled the letter up in a scroll and brought it over to me. "Here, give this to Twilight when you get home." He said.
Spike took the scroll from Moleyair.
At that moment, Moleyair gasped loudly and held his hand against his head, he was quivering like crazy. Spike and I got worried about him. "Oh my God, Moleyair, what's wrong?" I said in a really worried tone.
Moleyair then stopped shaking and panted hard. "I'm…I'm alright…just let me catch my breath." He said.
"What the hell was all that about? You look like you had a heart-attack or something." I said, trying to calm myself down.
Once he caught his breath, Moleyair looked up at me. "I just…I just had a vision. I saw the hooded pony, the one who's been stealing the Elements…he had another one." He said.
After hearing that, I remembered the hooded pony who's been making off with the Element lately. The memory of him always getting away made me hatred towards him. "That bastard, he's gonna get another one." I said before I looked at Moleyair. "Which one did he have? Did you see who he was?" I asked, desperately hoping he knew.
Unfortunately, Moleyair shook his head. "I'm afraid not, but I did see something…I saw you, full of rage and hatred. You were beating someone savagely, demanding answers. I have a feeling the crook will steal something besides an Element, he'll take something else, something precious to you." he said.
I couldn't believe what I was hearing, I'd never beat someone like that, no matter how angry I was. What could the hooded pony steal that could make me cross such a line. "But…why would I do that? I've never done something like that." I said.
"I don't know, but like I told you before, there are many different futures, the one I just saw may not be the real future that'll come to pass, just a possible one." Moleyair said.
I remembered him saying that and the thought of it only being a 'possible future' relaxed me a bit. "Alright…alright…Moleyair, I need to find this guy…is there anything, anything at all that can help me find him before he steals another Element?" I asked in desperation.
Moleyair rubbed his chin with his hand before he thought of something. "There may be one thing you can do, I don't normally suggest such a thing…but if you're this determined to find him, then you may have no other choice."
"Ok, what is it?" I asked, wondering what he had in mind.
"There is a creature living in a deserted part of Equestria. Most ponies stay as far away from him as possible not only because of his bad attitude, but because of his blood thirsty apatite, he eats any creature that enters his territory. However, legend says he can uncover any secret in the world, he may be useful to your cause." Moleyair stated.
I knew what he was saying. Whoever this guy was, he could probably find out who the hooded pony was, or better yet, he may already know. I gave Moleyair a serious look. "Who is he?" I asked.
"His name is Jersey Devil, he lives in a dead swamp near the Badlands. If you go there, he's not hard to miss…seriously, he's the only one living there, if you don't see him, you're basically as blind as I am." Moleyair stated in a joking way.
"He sounds kind creepy." Spike said.
"He's more than creepy, my dear boy, he's a terrifying beast." Moleyair said before he looked up at me. "I should warn you, Matthew. If you go to Jersey's home to search for answers, be on your guard, he is a reckless monster who will more than enjoy feasting on your flesh and bones." Moleyair said.
Hearing this left me and Spike with our jaws hanging, it wasn't long before Spike fainted onto the floor.
I then thought long and hard about that name, Jersey Devil, I've heard that name before back in England, but I couldn't remember why.
I decided to forget about that and focus on the real problem. If I was going to find out who the hooded pony was, my best chance was to get Jersey Devil to tell me who he is. But from what Moleyair said, it sounded really dangerous. But at this point, I may have no choice. "…I'll do it, I'll find Jersey Devil and have him tell me where I can find the hooded pony." I said with a brave tone.
Moleyair nodded. "If that's what you need to do, Matthew." He said before he looked up at the clock on the wall. "Oh is that the time, it's pretty late, you two should be getting home." He said to us.
"How do you know what time it is? You're blind." Spike stated.
"Do you really want me to explain it all to you again?" Moleyair asked with a raised eye-brow.
Spike then remembered what he said before and he felt a little sheepish. "Oh sorry." He said.
Moleyair waved his hand. "It's alright, now get going, you don't want to make Twilight worry." He said before he looked up at me. "Now remember what I've said here, Matthew. If you're sure about going to see Jersey, here's a tip, research on him, learn more about him, then maybe you'll have the upper-hoof what you meet him." he said.
I nodded. "I will, don't worry, I won't be looking for any trouble. I'll go there, get my questions answered, get out, no-one gets hurt, easy." I said with confidence.
"Yes, But Jersey may not be as…cooperative." Moleyair said.
"Well I'll just have to make something up as I go along." I said before I changed the subject. "Anyway, about my training, you want me to come back here on Saturday?" I asked.
Moleyair nodded. "Yes, Saturday will do nicely. I would suggest next Saturday, but if I recall, that's Nightmare Night, I suspect you'd want to spend it with your wife and friends." He said.
I nodded. "Yeah, this Saturday will probably be best. I'll just have to explain it to Twilight." I said.
"Don't worry, that letter I gave to Spike will explain everything to her. I'm looking forward to our lessons." Moleyair said with a friendly smile.
I returned it. "Same here." I said before I changed the subject again. "Well we better go, it's been great meeting you and I'll give your regards to the Princesses." I said in a friendly tone.
"Please do, and who knows, maybe I'll finally leave this place and go see them at some point." Moleyair said.
"I think they'd like that. I'm not sure, but I think Luna's gonna be in Ponyville on Nightmare Night, maybe you should drop by and meet everyone." I said, kind of hoping he would agree to.
Moleyair then grew a warm smile. "I just might do that." He said.
With that, Spike climbed onto my back and I turned around to face the exit. I turned my head around to face Moleyair. "See ya, Moleyair, take it easy ok?" I said.
"I will, but you can't leave that way, the entrance you came in is only good to coming down, not up," Moleyair stated.
I then turned back around to face him with a confused look. "Oh…well, how do we get out then?" I asked.
Moleyair just grinned before he tapped the floor with his staff. Once he did that, a hole opened on the ceiling above me and there was a bright light shining down from it, it was the sunlight. I was then magically lifted off the ground before being sucked up the hole towards the surface.
A minute later, Spike and I shot out of the hole and landed in a soft bush near it. Due to being in the dark for a long time, the sunlight hurt our eyes. We were temporary blind until we got used to it and looked at each other. "S-Spike…are you alright?" I asked.
Spike rubbed his eyes and nodded. "Yeah, I'm fine. Wish we could've come out a better way though." He stated.
I chuckled a little. "Yeah, I lift or a staircase would've done." I stated before Spike climbed on my back.
We then looked over to the hole we came out from and saw it close up. "That Moleyair sure is full of surprises." Spike said without taking his eyes off the place where the hole was.
"Yeah, and he's probably got a lot more for us." I said before I looked around for a path to follow. I then saw a rocky path with sign next to it that said the name "Ponyville".
Once I knew where I was going, I turned my head around to face Spike. "Come on, Spike, let's go home." I said before I turned my head back around and walked over to the path.
After reaching it, I followed the rocky path all the way back to the Every Free Forest main road. From there, I knew my way back to town.
A few minutes later: Ponyville Streets
By the time we got back to Ponyville, the sun was almost gone and night time was upon us. Spike was yawning almost every minute. "Matt…are we there yet?" he asked in a tired way.
As I kept walking, I turned my head around to face him. "We're almost there, mate, just relax on my back until we get there, have a little nap if you need to." I said.
Spike smiled warmly at me. "Thanks Matt." he said before he laid his head down on the back of my neck and closed his eyes.
I returned his smile before I turned my head back around to face the road. At that moment, someone came out from around the corner of one of the building and started creeping across the street. That is, until whoever it was saw me and stopped. "Matt?" the pony said in a female voice.
I took a few steps forward. "Yeah…who are you? I can't see you." I said as I narrowed my eyes to try and see her properly.
The mare then stepped into the light of the streets lamp and revealed herself as Zelga. Once I saw it was her, I felt relieved. "Oh…Zelga, it's just you." I said.
Zelga walked up to me. "Yeah, it's me. Who'd you think it was? The Boogiemare?" she said before she laughed at her own joke. "Haha, I'm a terrible joker, anyway what are you doing out at this time?" she asked.
"I could ask you the same thing? Where are you off to?" I asked curiously.
"Sweet Apple Arches, I'm going to see Big Macintosh." Zelga answered before she moved in closer to me. "Between you and me, no-one knows I'm going there, not even Big Mac, I'm gonna surprise him." she said in a whisper.
I couldn't help but smirk with amusement over this. "Oh, I get it. Well I bet he'll be more than surprised. What's the plan? Go over there and fly up to his window?" I asked.
Zelga shrugged. "Could do that." She said before she decided to change the conversation. "Anyway, where've you been all day? I waited at my cottage for you, but you never came." She stated.
"Oh yeah…sorry about that, I got a little caught up in something. W-What was it you wanted to talk about anyway? Something about my show on Nightmare Night?" I asked, wondering what she had in mind about that.
"It wasn't anything important. I was just thinking…well…maybe I can perform with your band with a new song that night. If you're interested, of course." Zelga said nervously.
I titled my head. "You want to perform with us on Nightmare Night? B-But we already have a song prepared, it would take ages to practice a new show." I said.
"I know, but just hear me out. I have a song, a plan, everything you need to make a new performance in only a few days. Back where I was from, everyone said I had a great singing voice. Do you think…sometime this week…you can drop by my place and hear me sing? You know, just to see what you think of it?" Zelga said with a small smile.
The look on her face told me that she really wanted me to do this. Not wanting to disappoint her, I nodded. "Ok…I suppose I can do that. And who knows, if you're as good as they said you were, I might be able to squeeze in an extra performance on Nightmare Night." I said.
Hearing this made Zelga smile with joy. "Thank you, Matthew. I promise, you'll love it, I've gone through everything to make sure it's perfect for Nightmare Night." she said with an excited tone.
I smiled. "Well I'm…looking forward to hearing it. Now, I better go, Twilight's probably worried about me." I said before I walked past her. "Enjoy whatever you plan on doing with Big Mac." I said.
Zelga watched as I walked past her. "I will…oh, and Matt." she said.
I then stopped where I was and turned my head around to face her.
"Don't tell anyone you saw me here, I wanna keep it between me and Big Mac if you know what I mean." Zelga said with a sly grin.
I smirked. "I won't." I said before I remembered something from my conversation with Moleyair. "Hey Zelga, can I ask you something?...You know someone named Jersey Devil?" I asked, wondering if she had heard of him.
Zelga's grin faded away and she was silent for a moment. But after a few seconds, she answered. "…Never heard of him…Why?" she asked.
I was a little disappointed by this, but I wasn't really surprised, I wasn't even expecting Twilight to know him. "No reason…just heard that name somewhere and wanted to know if anyone knew it. It's alright thought, it's not important…goodnight, Zelga." I said before I turned my head back around and continued walking down the street.
As I walked away, Zelga gave me a suspicious glare. "Jersey Devil…now what would you want with him?" she said to herself before she turned her head around and saw the path leading to Sweet Apple Arches.
Zelga stared at it for a minute before she grinned evilly. "As if I would." She said before she took off into the air and went in the completely opposite direction. Instead of going to Sweet Apple Archers, she was heading towards old castle in the Ever Free Forest.
Library
Once I got to the library, I approached the door and raised my hoof up to open it, but before I could. "Matt!" a familiar voice said behind me.
I turned around and saw Applejack trotting towards me with Peewee on her back. "Applejack? What're you doing out here? Does anyone sleep in this town anymore?" I asked.
Applejack stopped in front of me. "Apparently not…look, I now it's late, but Twilight sent Peewee to fetch me because of some sort of…situation." she explained.
At that moment, I became worried, Twilight was looking ill when I left and I was starting to think something bad had happened while I was gone. "What happened? Is she alright?" I asked in concern.
Applejack raised her hoof up. "From what I know, I think she's fine, but Peewee said she wanted me because of my experience with fruit." She stated.
I looked at her with confusion. "F-Fruit?" I said before I looked at Peewee on her back. "Peewee, what the hell's going on in there?" I asked.
"You'll see when we get in there." Peewee said.
With that, we all faced the door and I pushed it open with my right-hoof. Once it was open, we stepped inside and looked around. "Twi? I'm home! Where are you?" I called.
After a minute or so, Twilight came out from the other room and saw us. I then noticed Twilight was wearing a thick pair of earmuffs. "What took you so long, Matt?!" she said in an annoyed tone.
I walked over to her with a concerned look. "Twi, are you alright? Applejack said you were in trouble."
"I am in trouble, Matt! That thing in there has been driving me crazy since Princess Luna left! I'm ready to pull my mane out here!" Twilight said loudly.
"T-Twi, I don't understand, what thing?" I asked in complete confusion.
"See for yourself!" Twilight said as she pointed her hoof at the door that led to the room she just came out of.
We then turned our attention to the door that led to the other room and I made my way over to it. I then stopped in front of it before I slowly placed my hoof on it and pushed it open.
Once it was open, I was confused by what I saw, it was the orange Zelga gave to Twilight earlier today, it was sitting on the table at the end of the room. I then walked into the room with everyone else following behind, I approached the orange and looked down at it. "…It's…just the orange Zelga gave you before…" I stated.
"I know, and I'm starting to wish I didn't take it. It's been driving me crazy all night!" Twilight said in a frustrated tone.
I turned to face her. "I don't get it, how's it been doing that? It's just a fruit." I said with a raised eye-brow.
"I'm not a fruit, I'm an orange." A sudden weird voice said behind me.
With our eyes wide open, we all looked the orange. "Urr…what?" I said, actually talking to the orange.
"What? What? What in the butt! Ne-hahahaha!" the voice sang before laughing in a creepy way.
At that moment, I recognized the voice, something I haven't heard in a long time, I felt a wave of fear flow within me. "Oh no…please…for the love of Celestia, no!" I said as I slowly backed away from the orange.
Everyone looked at me with scared faces. "What is it? What is that thing?" Spike asked as he hid behind Twilight's front-legs.
"It's…it's…" I said without taking my eyes off the orange.
The orange then spun around to reveal a creepy face. It had two eyes and a large smiling mouth. "It's me! Orange! Ne-hahaha!"
"The Annoying Orange!" I yelled in absolute fright.
"Hey, why are you yelling? Are we having a yelling contest, I wanna play! AHHHHHHH!" Orange yelled at the top of his voice.
We all covered our eyes to try and block out his yelling. "Matt, make him shut up!" Peewee yelled as Orange kept yelling.
"I don't know how! On-one knows how!" I said to him with my front-hooves covering my ears.
Spike looked up at Applejack. "Applejack, you've lived with fruit all your life, can you do something? That's why Twi called you over, right?" he asked.
But before Applejack could answer, Orange stopped yelling. "Applejack? More like Apple-smack, ne-hahahaha!" he laughed; making Applejack groan with annoyance. "Hey! Hey Apple! Hey, Apple, hey! Why do you have three apples on your butt? Ne-hahahaha!" he laughed again.
Applejack growled before she looked over to Twilight. "Alright, I see why ya called me over, but I don't think I can do anything. Can't you just zap it or somethin'?" she asked.
"I tried, but it won't shut up, I think it's been cursed with Black Magic!" Twilight stated.
Orange then looked at me. "Hey you! You're green, are you a pear?" he asked.
I knew he was talking to me. "Wh-…n-no, of course I'm not, do I look like a pear?" I asked in a slightly annoyed tone.
"Are you broccoli?" Orange asked.
"No." I answered.
"Cucumber?" Orange asked again.
"No!" I said in a more frustrated tone.
"Oh now I know who you are, you're the green leprechaun? Hey, what did you do with my whistling-pinwheel?" Orange asked again.
"Oh my God, you're annoying!" I said loudly in an extremely annoyed tone.
"I can't take this anymore!" Twilight screamed. "I wanted to avoid this, but I have no choice, I'm writing to the Princess, she'll know what to do." she said before she galloped out the room.
"For goodness sake, Twilight, hurry!" I said as I was starting to freak out.
As Twilight wrote to Celestia for help, we were forced to stay in the room with Orange's annoying remarks and terrible jokes. Even if we left the room, we'd still be able to hear him, he was just so damn loud!
"Hey, why do you all have such long faces? Na-hahahaha!" Orange laughed before he sighed. "*Sigh*...What's with the dragon?" he asked curiously.
May Celestia have mercy on us all…
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
The cameo character is the "Annoying Orange" from the famous YouTube videos with the same name, I don't own him or anything about him. I asked the creator if I could use him in this, but he didn't reply back so I just went for it.
Pony News: During SDCC, a clip of Season 5 was shown, it has gotten me so excited. From what I've heard, this is what we can expect.
Twilight grieving over her former library.
Luna having a nightmare.
The 100th episode is focused on background characters, Coco Pommel will return.
Maud Pie will return.
Rainbow Dash will have an entire solo song.
In other news, (Keep this bit a secret), Meghan McCarthy confirmed something very big to me not long ago, she wants to keep it a secret, so it's very important that no-one tells her or anyone else I'm offering this news to those who are willing to take it to their graves. Of course, I can't say it on here, so if you want to know, PM me and I'll discuss it with you.
Ever I started this story and attracted so many of you, I've seen you all as my friends who will always have my back on things, that's why I'm trusting you all with this info and that you won't tell a single soul about it, remember this.
Please remember to review.
My next chapter will be up sometime after the next chapter of Skylanders: Beginnings.
56. Chapter 56: Dance with the Devil
Hi everypony, and welcome back to another chapter of my classic story.
I'm very sorry about the long delay, I've been busy with other things, but I kept taking time to write some of this. But I wouldn't expect the next one to come out for a while, I'll try my hardest to do it quick, but I can't make promises.
I know most of you were expecting a new chapter of my Skylanders story, but I hit a plot-block, so I decided to skip it until I knew how to continue.
So, there's not much more to say, sorry for keeping you waiting so long and I hope you enjoy this chapter.
The lyrics of the song I used in this chapter have been changed to match the story. It'll work as a background song, so just imagine it playing in the background while Twilight and Luna are stalking Zelga through town.
Chapter 57: Dance with the Devil
It's been a week and 3 days since Nightmare Night and let me tell you, the hangover I had the next day was just plain evil, as if the devil himself sent it upon me.
Speaking of which, that's who I've been reading up on lately, the Jersey Devil. I've waited and studied long enough of this guy, I'm now ready to confront him and get some answers.
Like Moleyair told me, he knows basically everything that goes on in Equestria, if anyone knows who the Element Crook is and where they are, it'll be Jersey.
In my last lesson with him, Moleyair gave me a map that would show me where I would find Jersey and a book explaining more about him.
According to the book, not many ponies have seen him up close, they've only seen a shadowy figure matching his description roaming around the swamp near their town.
With everything it said, I started to question if he was even real, but Moleyair insured me that he was because he's met Jersey before. He describes him as a rude, brutal and skilful creature with a really short temper.
So far, I was loving the idea of hunting this creature down and demanding answers from him...I would say sarcastically!
Library
I was in the study room reading up on a book Moleyair gave me on Jersey Devil, I was looking for anything that would help me defend myself if things went South between us.
From what I could gather, his weakest points are his antlers and behind the knees, he also feels pain if someone hits the left side of his body, he apparently got bit there once by some sort of wild cat and it still hurts him.
After I finished reading the page I was on, I turned to the next and it had a picture of a dark figure in a forest. The figure had a dear head with antlers, a large pair of bat-wings, and it walked like a man. I stared at the picture closely, imagining what this thing might look like in person.
"What's the Jersey Devil?" a deep voice asked; making me jump.
I looked up in the direction the voice came from and saw Jeff sitting on top of the bookcase looking down at me. I stood up and turned around to face him properly. "Jeff, how many times have I told you to stop doing that?" I said with a slightly annoyed tone.
"A few, I just like doin' it." Jeff said with an amused smile before he glided down to me and landed on the floor in front of me. "So to repeat my question, what or who is the Jersey Devil?" he asked as he looked in the book.
"He's some sort of creature who knows a lot about everything that goes on in Equestria." I said before I read a paragraph to give him an example.
"No matter how far the distance, no matter how quiet the whisper, the Jersey Devil will always claim what he believes is his to have, every scrap of detail ever spoken throughout Equestria."
Jeff quivered a bit. "Oooh, ok, I got chills." He said before he looked up to me. "So why are ya readin' about him?" he asked curiously.
I then closed the book with my hoof. "I need to find out where the Elements are and who's taking them, Moleyair says if there's anyone who'll know, it's Jersey." I said before I stood up and made my way towards the door that led to the front-room.
Jeff quickly caught on to what I was up to. He shot up behind me and grabbed my left hind-leg with his wings. "Whow dude, you're not actually thinkin' of goin' to find this thing, are ya?" he asked in a worried tone.
I stopped and turned my head around to look down at him. "Jeff, the longer we wait, the more chance that crook is gonna try and steal another Element, we've already lost two, we can't afford to lose anymore." I said before I shook my leg to make him release it; which he did.
With Jeff off my leg, I continued to walk over to the door only to be stopped by something pulling back on my mane. Jeff was in the air with his talons gripping my hair. "Matt, I can't just let ya go after it. I'm usually the cool one in all this, but I'm tellin' ya right now, this is a bad idea." He said.
I then tugged my head forward to try and get him to release, but instead it yanked him towards me and smacked into the back of my head. He fell down in a daze onto my back.
I turned my head around again to face him. "Sorry about that." I apologised. "But my mind's made up, Jeff, I'm gonna find Jersey Devil and get some answers." I stated strongly.
Jeff got back up. "Matt, just think about this for a sec. What if he's deadly, he'll rip you apart, dude!" he said.
"Jeff…I fought and killed an insane Alicorn with Luna's powers mixed with his own. I think I can handle some creep that lives in a swamp." I said before I walked out of the room and made my way towards the front-door.
But before I could, Jeff dropped down in front of me. "Wait a sec…does Twilight even know you're doing this?" he said with a suspicious look as he crossed his wings.
My ears lowered slightly because I actually haven't told Twi about Jersey. I've been meaning to, but I couldn't find the right time to tell her. "Well…not really." I admitted.
"And if she notices you're gone, what then?" Jeff asked.
I then tried to think of something to cover that. "Urr…tell her…tell her I've been called up to Canterlot for something involving the Missing Element Case…and that it'll probably take a few hours." I said, coming up with the best plan I could.
Jeff rolled his eyes. "Not your best excuse, but it might work. Well if you're really set on doin' this, then I'm not stoppin' ya." He said in a huff before he walked away from the door. "Just try not to die." He said.
I watched him walk away. "I was gonna try not to anyway." I said before I stepped over to the door and opened it.
I walked outside until I was a short distance away from the Library. I then spread my wings and took off into the sky and flew away to find the Swamp where Jersey lived. I took enough time to read the map to Jersey's home multiple times, let's hope it was enough.
Meanwhile, Jeff closed the door to the Library and turned around to go about his own business, but Twilight came into the room and saw him. "Jeff, did you close the door just then?" she asked curiously.
Jeff froze where he was and tried to think of an alibi. "Urr…yeah, I closed it after Matt left…he went to investigate something, you know, about the Missing Elements case." He said with a nervous smile, hoping she'd buy it.
Twilight gave him a confused look. "He left? Without telling me? That's not like him." she stated.
"Well…he was kinda in a hurry. He wanted to tell ya, but he couldn't find ya anywhere. Hard to believe, right?" Jeff said still smiling nervously.
"A little, seeing is how I was up in our bedroom." Twilight said with a raised eye-brow.
Jeff paused for a moment before he spoke. "Well, what can I tell ya?" he said before he tried to think of something to get him out of this situation. "Whow, is that the time? I need to get goin'. A lot of…bird stuff to do." he said.
Before Twilight, could respond, Jeff took off into the air and flew away into the next room. Twilight was silent for a moment before she decided to leave it. "I'll just wait for Matt to come back. But for now, I have another matter to deal with." she said to herself before she made her way towards the stairs that led up to our room.
Once she was there, she went up the small set of stairs that led to bedroom and went over to the telescope. She used her magic to point it down into Ponyville and looked through the eye-piece.
Through it, she saw Zelga in the market looking at some fruit. The pony behind the counter couldn't keep his eyes off her, he just sat there with a dreamily look in his eyes. Zelga smiled as she put an apple in her left-saddle bag and placed 2 bits on the counter. After that, she just walked away.
"She's been acting strange since the day I met her, I don't know what she's up to, but I'm not gonna wait around to find out anymore. I'm gonna find out what she does in her privacy, and for her sake, I better not find anything I don't like." Twilight said herself firmly before she stepped away and got her saddle-bag ready.
When she did, she went down stairs into the living-room and left the Library.
At that moment, Spike came in from the kitchen wearing a pink apron with a yellow smiley-face on it. "Twilight? Is that you?" he asked as he looked around the room. "Where'd you go?"
He didn't get a response. "Huh, must of left." He said to himself before he smirked. "Guess that means I'm in charge for a while, good for me." he said before he went back into the kitchen.
Meanwhile: Ponyville streets
While everypony was walking through the streets of town, a shadowy figure moved in any shadow it could get to. It moved quickly, like a dash so no-one could see it properly.
It finally came to a stop behind a cottage near the market. The figure then poked it's head around to corner to reveal itself as Luna. "Where is she?" she asked herself as she searched the area.
Eventually, she found her target, Zelga. "There you are, you snake in the grass. I will expose you to Matthew and the other ponies, even if I must follow you in this village all day." she said to herself before she slipped back into the darkness.
A moment later, she dashed from one shadow to the next until she was behind a stall that Zelga was standing in front of. That stall sold antic rocks like diamonds and crystals. "Excuse me, do you have any flawless sapphires? Just one would do." Zelga asked nicely.
The pony behind the counter rubbed under her chin with her hoof. "Hmm, I could've sworn I saw some here the other day." she said before she looked under the counter. "Ah, here's some." She said as she grabbed a small box with her hooves and placed it on the counter.
Zelga looked into the box and saw 3 sapphire gems.
"I'm afraid I only have three." The mare said.
Zelga smiled at her. "That'll be fine, I'll take them." She said before she reached her head into her left-saddlebag and pulled out a small bag of bits and placed it on the counter. "Keep the change." She said before she grabbed the box with her mouth and dropped the gems into her right-saddlebag.
Zelga gave the empty box back to the mare before she walked away to continue her shopping.
Luna watched her leave from behind the stall. "Now what would she want with flawless sapphires? I must investigate further and learn as much as I can." She said before she continued to stalk Zelga.
A few minutes later
Zelga was standing in front of a flower stall speaking to the mare behind the counter.
All the while, Twilight was on the other side of the market wearing her cream dress Rarity made for her birthday, a sun hat and a pair of black sunglasses. She turned her head around to look over to Zelga before she used her magic to lower her sunglasses.
She saw the mare give Zelga a bunch of brown weeds. Zelga picked them up in her mouth before she dropped them into her right-saddlebag and pained the mare. She then walked away.
As she did, Zelga felt something was a bit off and she looked over to where Twilight was, but only saw a pair of sunglasses and a sun hat on the grass. Zelga just shrugged before she continued walking.
Once she was gone, Twilight poked her head from behind a stall before she used her magic to pull out a pad and quill from her saddlebag. "She seems to be buying a lot of wired items, if she's planning and using them for cooking, I don't want to be the one who eats whatever she makes with those." She said before she wrote down what she saw.
"Or maybe she's planning something else with them." Twilight said to herself as she thought about it for a bit, but couldn't think of any explanation for it. "I should keep following her, she's bound to give me something more to go on." she said.
Twilight then started following Zelga as stealthily as she could, unaware that she wasn't the only one watching her in the shadows.
Luna: "I can see the things you doing and you think that I'm naïve, but when I get the goods on you, they'll finally believe."
Twilight: "He says it's all just drama, but every bubble's got to pop
He's gonna see just what you're goin', and then you're finally gonna have to STOP!
Both: "Don't think you're gonna win this time, 'cause you better believe I'm gonna drop a dime on you
I'll get cha! (yeah) I'll get cha!
And when I do you're gonna be busted! (Busted)
I don't wanna put the hurt on you
But you better believe me when I tell you that I've finally got the dirt on you
You're busted! (Busted)
Yeah, he's finally gonna see a light
This is how it's gonna be when he finds out that I was always right
You're busted!
There's a new cop on the beat, and I'm bringing down the heat
My eyes are wise to all your lies 'cause you're not that discreet
And I don't care what you've heard, 'cause there's one six letter word."
Luna: "It's gonna set me free."
Twilight: "Gonna set me free."
Luna: "It starts with a B."
Twilight: "Starts with a B."
Both: "It goes B-U-S-T-E-D
You are busted! (Busted)
I don't wanna put the hurt on you
But you better believe me when I tell you that I've finally got the dirt on you (I'll get ya)
You're Busted! (Don't think you're gonna win this time)
Yeah, he's finally gonna see a light (Drop a dime on you)
This is how it's gonna be when he finds out that I was always right (I'll get ya! I'll get ya!)
You're busted!"
All through the day, Twilight and Luna followed Zelga everywhere she went and watched every move she made. Neither of them knew they were both doing the same thing, wherever one of them were, the other wasn't far behind. They both were willing to do this no matter how long it would take, just as long as they get something to prove to everyone what they already knew.
Meanwhile: Swampville
After flying for what felt like hours, I finally reached the village outside the Jersey's swamp. I landed in the middle of the village and looked around to see…well, nothing. It was completely deserted, the windows were boarded pup, and the grass and plants were as dead as they could get.
I walked slowly down the street, searching for any inhabitants. "Hello?! Anypony here? If so, I'm not here to hurt any of you, I just want to talk." I called out.
I kept hearing creaking and whispers from everywhere, I could've sworn I saw a dark figure run past the cottages a few times.
I was started to become nervous, like something would jump out in front of me at any moment. I then noticed a cottage that didn't look as dull as the others, it was boarded, but it looked recently done. I walked over to the house and looked through the window between the boards.
I saw only a dark room, but I noticed a few dark figures inside. They were all huddled up together. I walked over to the door and knocked on it. "Hello? Is anyone home?" I asked, hoping for a response, but got silence.
"Look, you don't have to be afraid of me, I'm not here to hurt you, I just need to ask some questions and then I'll leave." I called.
I got only silence again, but not for long, I heard a click on the door before it slowly creaked open. Through the gap, I saw a young mare peeping at me. "W-What do you want?" she asked in a quiet frightened voice.
"I just want to ask you something, nothing more. Is that alright?" I asked, trying not to frighten her.
"…Why us? Why can't you ask someone your questions?" She asked nervously.
I looked around the empty street before I looked at her again. "Not really anyone else to ask." I stated.
The mare looked at me for a second before she sighed. "Alright, I'll let you in, but please…don't hurt us." she said with a bit of a begging voice.
I smiled at her. "It's alright, sweetheart, I'm not going to." I said gently.
She then slowly opened the door before I walked inside the house. Once inside, she closed the door and locked it, I don't know why she did, but it's probably for the same reason for why she's so scared.
I went into the living room and noticed a small colt in the corner, he looked frightened. "Mommy, there's a strange Pony in the house." He said in a scared tone.
The mare walked over to him and lied down beside him. "It's alright, sweetie, he says he's not gonna hurt us." she said before she looked over to me. "Sorry about this, we've…had it rough for the last few months." She said.
I sat down on the floor in front of them. "What on Earth happened here? Why is this town so…so…" I said, trying to think of a word for it.
"Ghostly?" The mare spoke. "It's been like that for a long time, before it never came to the village, now it comes every once in a while wanting food, namely ours. We're just lucky it rarely eats Ponies." She said.
"What does?" I asked curiously.
The mare looked at me with fright in her eyes. "…The Devil…"
When she said it, it sparked my interest. "As in…the Jersey Devil?" I asked.
The mare nodded. "Yes…when it first came into town, we didn't know what to think, most of us couldn't believe it, none of us had ever seen the Jersey Devil so close. But then…it started attacking, it destroyed carts, cottages, stole a large among of our food and flew back into the swamp. A group of stallions went into the swamp to get our food back, but they didn't return. A little while later, Jersey came back and did the same thing again and again until we were reduced to…this." She said as she looked around her home.
I looked down at her Cutie Mark and saw that it was 3 daisy flowers. "What's your name?" I asked curiously.
She looked at me again. "Daisy Shine." She said before she looked down at her son. "And this is my son, Grace Glide." She then looked back up to me. "I used to grown and sell daisies here, but with Jersey always attacking, I…just couldn't see the point anymore, just like how all the other ponies couldn't see the point in their jobs anymore." She stated.
"Is there anyone else in your family?" I asked, almost afraid to.
Daisy nodded. "Yeah, my husband Harden Stone, but…he was one of the few who went after Jersey, I haven't seen him in days." said stated as she looked down at the floor in sadness.
I couldn't help but fell a wave of sorrow for her. "I'm…I'm so sorry, I shouldn't have asked." I said with my ears low.
Daisy looked back up at me. "It's alright, I'm just worried about what might've happened to him…some say that Jersey keeps Ponies prisoner, maybe Harden is among them, I can only hope." She said.
I was almost afraid to ask her another question, but I had to if I was going to find Jersey. "I know Jersey Devil is inside the swamp, but I need to know where abouts. Do you know?" I asked.
Daisy thought about it for a moment before she answered. "I think Harden mentioned something about him being in the centre of the swamp." she said before she looked at me with curiosity. "Why do you want to know?" she asked.
I responded by standing up onto my hooves and looked down at them with a serious face. "Daisy, Grace, I'm gonna make you two promises. One, I'm going to find Jersey, get the answers I need from him, and give him a hard lesson about what happens when he messes with innocent Ponies. And two, if I find Harden there, I'll send him and any other prisoners back here. And if Jersey tries to stop me, I'll keep him busy while they get away." I said.
They both looked at me with slight shock and wonder. "You're gonna go after Jersey Devil? But…he's a monster, he'll rip you to shreds." Daisy said.
"I've dealt with a monster before, and compared to him, Jersey's nothing." I said before I began to turn around to leave. "Stay safe you two, and if I don't come back afterwards, I'll be sure to mention what's happening here to Princess Celestia." I said.
"You know the Princess?" Grace asked with slight awe.
I nodded. "Yeah, and she'll help you keep this place safe from Jersey." I said before I began to walk over to the from door to leave.
As I approached the door, Daisy stood up. "Wait…who are you?" she asked with a raised eye-brow.
I looked over to her and smirked. "I'm Matthew, and I'm gonna help your town." I said before I unlocked the door, opened it and left.
Daisy stood there in silence. Grace stood up and walked up beside here. "Is that Pony gonna get rid of the Devil?" he asked.
Daisy looked down at him and gave him a warm smile. "I don't know, Grace, but even if he doesn't, I have a strange feeling things might get a little better here." she said as she wrapped her arm around Grace and pulled him closer to her.
After leaving the home, I looked down the street and saw the misty swamp outside it. "Alright Jersey, time to talk." I said in a low voice before I took off into the air and flew towards the swamp.
A few minutes later: Near the heart of the swamp
As I flew closer towards the centre of the swamp, I kept looking down at the land below me. From a sky-view, the swamp looked all foggy and dark, I couldn't see the ground beneath it all, which made it very difficult to find a place to land.
But soon enough, I saw a bright orange glow up ahead within the fog, it moved in a wavy faction. I figured it must've been fire, and when there's fire, there's someone using it for something.
I dove down towards it and entered the fog. The fog covered my path until I saw the ground coming up fast. This startled me and I quickly pulled up to avoid crashing, but my flight-patter was ruined and I struggled to control it. Eventually, this ended with me crashing into the mud and before falling into a dirty pond.
I quickly burst up from the water and swam towards land, I dragged myself out of the water and shook it all off, along with some Duckweed and a Lilly-pad. After that, I looked around the area I was in.
The fog made it hard to see anything in the distance, the trees were all dead & crooked, and there was a feeling like I was being watched.
I kept looking around until I saw the glow again not far from me. I started making my way towards it, keeping a watchful eye out for anything that moves.
Once I reached where the glow was, I saw that it was a large camp fire near a gloomy cave. The area looked like a camp site. Dead fish and raw meat on a large wooden table, a Grindstone, a stump with an axe on it, and a large stone table in the centre.
By the looks of it, no-one was there. I took this chance to go in for a closer look. I stepped lightly until I was in the camp, and let me tell ya, the place absolutely stunk.
I ignored the smell and went back to doing what I came here to do. As I walked towards the cave, I soon noticed something, a large square thing under a giant sheet. From what I've seen so far, I was afraid to find out what was under it, but I had to know.
I walked up to the object and slowly reached out to the sheet. I then grabbed it with my hoof before I pulled it off, I was shocked by what I saw.
It was a bunch of wooded cages, I counted 9, all piled on top of each other. And inside each of these cages was a Pony, they were all beaten and weak, barely awake. I felt a lump in my throat at the sight of this before I raised my hoof up and slammed it down on one of the cage locks; breaking it off.
I then opened the cage door and helped the stallion out of the cage. He was dark grey, his mane & tail were white, and his Cutie Mark was a stone in the shape of a diamond.
"Hey, hey buddy, are you alright?" I said, trying to get an answer out of him.
Soon enough, I got a response, but he mumbled it. I leaned my head closer to his mouth. "What was that?" I asked.
"Wa-…Water…" He said weakly.
I nodded and quickly rushed around the camp to find water. Luckily, I found a barrel full of water, I saw a jug next to it and grabbed it with my hooves. I dipped it into the water and filled it up. Once it was full, I brought it back to the stallion and helped him drink it.
He drank a lot of it before he placed his hoof on it and lowered it away from his mouth. "Thank you…thank you…" he said between breaths.
I placed the jug down beside him before I looked at him. "What happened to you? Who are all of you? Why were you in that cage?" I asked.
The stallion looked at me. "We…we were trying to find him and keep him away from our town…but he found us instead, attack us and then finally captured us. He threw us in these cages and made us watch as he feasted upon the prey he caught. He called us Livestock, I don't have to be a genius to know that means." He explained.
"I take it when you say 'He' you mean the Jersey Devil?" I said.
He nodded. "Yeah, he had taken his abuse for too long, we need to fight back, give him a reason to stay out of our town." He said strongly.
I nodded to say I understood. "Right….what's your name, mate?" I asked.
"Harden Stone, why?" He answered.
I gave him a small smile. "Your wife and child are very worried about you." I said.
Harden looked at me with worry. "Daisy? Is she alright? How's my boy? Did Jersey do anything to them?" he asked with slight panic.
I put my hoof up. "They're both fine, they're just worried about you and scared. I need you to help me break everyone else out of these cages and make your way back to your town. Don't look back, just keep going and stay there, lead everyone home." I said in a clear voice.
"But what about Jersey, he won't leave us alone, he'll come back." Harden said.
I gave him a firm look. "You leave him to me, I'll get the message through his head." I said.
Harden gave me a shocked look. "You're gonna go up against Jersey? By yourself? We were a whole group and he stepped on us like bugs, what makes you think he's not gonna do the same to you?" He said.
"You may not have heard of me, but I saved the Princesses and Canterlot from an evil Alicorn a few months back. So basically, I've dealt with worse than someone like Jersey." I stated.
Harden stared at me in silence. "That…that was you?...huh, I pictured you bigger." He said as he looked at my body.
"Yeah, that one of the things I get a lot." I said with a small amused smile.
"Then of course there's your name, Matthew, that sounds a bit weird to most of us." Harden stated.
My amused smile went away. "And there's another one." I said.
Harden then put his hoof up. "Anyway, yeah, I have of you. And if you're serious about going up against Jersey, let's hope you've still got those fighting skills of yours." He said.
"Same here." I said before I looked at the other ponies in the cages. "C'mon, help get these guys out of those cages." I said before we started breaking the locks off the cages and freeing the trapped ponies.
After that, Harden told everyone to head back to town and as he started following them, he turned his head around to look at me. "Do me a favour, will ya…if things go South with Jersey, give him a good buck for me." he said before he continued to follow his people.
"I'll do my best." I said out-loud before I turned to face the camp.
I walked over to the large stone table and sat down near it and waited for Jersey to show up.
A few minutes later
Minutes passed and I had actually fallen asleep sat-up waiting for Jersey. Suddenly, there was a faint thud, which was enough to snap me awake. I looked around quickly, but saw no-one, I then heard it again, then again.
I listened to the thuds carefully, they sounded like footsteps, that's when I realized that they were. Each thud got louder every time, meaning whoever was making them was getting closer. I knew it was Jersey and quickly went under the stone table.
I listened to the thuds until I finally saw something enter the camp, it had long bony legs with grey skin, I looked at its feet and saw two long toes with claws. It walked up to the table and stopped in front of it.
"Chicken yesterday, chicken today, and slap me in the face if it isn't gonna be chicken tomorrow." It said in a New Yorker accent before it dropped a few dead chickens onto the ground.
I looked at them and almost threw-up over the smell.
"When am I gonna catch somethin' with a bit more meat on it? Like a goat or somethin'?" it said before I watched it walk over to where the cages were.
I had put the sheet back over them so I would raise Jersey's suspicion. I moved up a little and saw him from behind, I knew it was Jersey, he had a bony grey body with a large pair of bat wings and large antlers on his head.
"Maybe one of these ponies with satisfy me, it's been a while since I've had one." He said before he grabbed the sheet with his 4 fingered claw. "Now, time to choose who's lucky…and unlucky."
He then pulled the sheet off and saw the empty cages. "What the?! My livestock! It's gone!" he said as he threw down the sheet and grabbed one of the cages, he yelled in rage and threw the cage across the camp. "When I found out who let them go, I'm gonna rip the flesh from their bones!"
At that moment, I shot up from under the table and landed on top of it. "Then why don't ya?" I said loudly.
Jersey then turned around to reveal his face to me. The front of his body was as bony as his back and he had grey skin going all the way up to the back of his head, where it stops, from there he had no skin at all. His entire deer-like head was a complete flesh-less skull with a single eye-ball in the right socket.
(He looked like the Jersey Devil from the video game The Wolf Among Us, only with wings and a single eye-ball)
"You have a lot of nerve coming here and freeing my livestock. The last guy who tried to do that ended up as my main course." Jersey said as he slowly made his way over to the table.
"Well I'm not the last guy, am I?" I responded with a raised eye-brow.
I couldn't make it out properly, but it looked like Jersey smirked. "That's just you, isn't it? Tough to the end, same as always, right Matthew?" he asked.
I immediately noticed that he said my name, even though I hadn't told him it. "How do you know my-"
"I know many things, Matt. I know Moleyair was the one who told you to come here, I know you live in Ponyville with your wife and friends, and I especially know why you're here. But here's the one thing I don't know…what makes you think I'll tell you anything about the guy who's been stealing the Elements?" Jersey asked.
I took a step forward. "Because if you don't, innocent ponies will get hurt, dark forces will attack the lands and we'll be powerless to stop them." I stated in a strong tone.
"Am I supposed to care? I don't take sides and I don't care who's in-charge, Thorn can come back and take over for all I care, just as long as everyone stays out of my swamp." Jersey said before he picked up his dead chickens and made his way round to the butchering table.
I watched him as he walked around me. "Whoever stealing the Elements is breaking into my friend's homes. My friend Rarity was sleeping in her bed when they did, they could've killed her in her sleep if they wanted to." I said strongly.
"Not my problem." Jersey said before he slapped the dead chickens onto the butcher table.
I growled lightly. "You're gonna tell me who's doing this or else I'll be your problem!" I snapped.
Jersey stopped what he was doing before he grabbed the handle of the rusty home-made blade he had stuck into the table. "Those are fighting words, punk. Didn't Moleyair ever tell ya not to pick fights you can't win?" he said, still facing away from me.
"What makes you think I'm gonna lose?" I said, quoting the same answer he gave me before, but with different words.
Jersey growled before he spun around and threw the blade directly at me.
I quickly dropped down on the table and the blade flew over me. I turned my head around and saw the blade fall on the ground before I noticed a shadow covering me, I turned back around and saw Jersey standing in front of me with his fists up.
He then threw them both down towards me, I managed to roll off the table before his fists slammed down onto it; cracking it slightly. Jersey watched me stand up and roared at me.
He then came closer to me and threw his fist down art me again, I moved out of the way fast as he punched into the ground. He then swung the same fist up off the ground and struck me right in the face; sending me flying across the camp and crashing into the dirt.
I slowly lifted myself up and heard another roar. I looked back over to Jersey and saw him leap towards me with his claws out and his mouth open wide.
Meanwhile: Ponyville/Zelga's cottage
After a long day of shopping, Zelga finally returned to her cottage with her saddlebags full of strange ingredients.
What she didn't know was Twilight and Luna were still stalking her, trying to catch her in any sort of wicked act that could expose her to everyone. Twilight was hiding in a nearby bush facing the front of Zelga's cottage and Luna was hiding in a tree behind her cottage.
After Zelga entered her home, they both came out of their hiding spot and snuck up to the windows of the cottage.
When Twilight looked through the window to the living-room, she saw Zelga taking her saddlebag into the kitchen. She groaned in frustration and left the window to find another one where she could get a better view.
Meanwhile, Luna looked through the kitchen window and watched Zelga place her saddlebag on the kitchen counter with a large pan on top of the oven. She took out a few of the ingredients and dropped them into the pot.
The steam from the pan of boiling water filled the room's ceiling and it was starting to make Zelga sweat. "It's getting a bit stuffy in here, better open a window." She said before she made her way over to the window.
When Luna saw this, she quickly ducked down out of sight and hoped Zelga wouldn't spot her. Zelga opened the window wide to let some of the steam out before she returned to her pot. Once she was gone, Luna peeked back through the window and continued to watch Zelga.
Zelga grabbed a long wooden-spoon with her mouth and started stirring the water in the pot. After a minute or so, she pulled the spoon out and placed it on the counter before she grabbed a bottle of liquid and purred some into the pot.
Luna watched in wonder and she continued to tend to her pot. "What is she doing? This does not seem like something a pony like her would do." she said to herself.
Meanwhile, Twilight had actually snuck into the cottage and watched Zelga from outside the kitchen. Twi was well hidden behind Zelga's couch so she wouldn't spot her.
As Zelga kept cooking, Twilight leaned forward more and more to see what she was doing better. But suddenly, the amount of weight she was putting on her front-hooves made the floorboards creek slightly, which Zelga heard.
Twilight quickly hid behind the couch as Zelga turned around to look into the room. Curious, Zelga left her pot and made her way to the living-room to see what the noise was.
Luna took this opportunity to sneak through the window and have a look at what Zelga was making.
Meanwhile, Zelga entered the living-room and looked around, but didn't see anything. Twilight stayed very still behind the couch, she listened for any sounds that would indicate Zelga was getting closer or going away. Unfortunately, her hoof-steps were getting louder, meaning she was coming over to the couch.
Twi needed to think fast, she needed an escape. If Zelga found her in her, she'd freak, she might even report it to Princess Celestia, Twi couldn't bear the thought of what she might do if she ever found out she did something like this.
All the while, Luna looked into the pot in the kitchen, the steam and thick water made it hard to see what she was cooking. She didn't have long to examine the pot before the wooden-spoon on the counter suddenly fell off and hit the floor.
Hearing this, Zelga looked back over to the entrance of the kitchen and made her way back over to it. Twilight exhaled in relief at this before she snuck over to the stairs.
Back in the kitchen, Luna knew what just happened and quickly leaped out of the window just before Zelga re-entered the kitchen. She saw the wooden-spoon on the floor and wondered how it got down there, she then just shrugged it off and picked it back up with her mouth.
She placed it back on the counter before she went back to cooking.
With neither of them giving up this witch-hunt, they both made their way to the next floor of the cottage. Luna flew up to one of the top open windows while Twilight went up the stairs.
Once up there, Twilight went to the hall and saw 3 doors, one on each side of the hall and one at the very end. Without even thinking, Twi went down to the end door and went through it. She looked around and saw that it was a quest room with 2 beds, she closed the door and started looking around.
Meanwhile, Luna went through the window that led to Zelga's bedroom, where she saw everything you'd expect a normal mare to have in her room. A large plushy bed, a make-up desk by the wall with a square mirror hanging above it, a large chest on the floor in front of the bed, everything.
Luna didn't waste time and went to the chest, she figured it would have to contain something that could expose Zelga. She opened it with her magic and dug her hooves around inside it.
It was full of books and scrolls, Luna needed to find something that would prove to everyone what Zelga really was. But the books were about nature, history and fictional stories. Even the scrolls proved useless, they were just letters from friends outside Ponyville, no-one even knew she had friends outside Ponyville.
Luan then found a scrapbook and figured it might contain pictures of herself in her true form. But when she opened it, she found nothing like that, just Zelga as a Pegasus in different cities and towns. Luna continued to flick through the pages and found nothing of use, eventually she got frustrated and threw the book back into the chest before closing it.
"There must be something here, there has to be." Luna said to herself before she continued her search.
Meanwhile, Twilight had torn the room apart and found nothing that could help her expose Zelga. After putting everything back to make it look like she was never there, she left the guest room and went towards one of the other doors, but it was just the bathroom, nothing in there.
With both rooms useless, Twilight went over to the last room, which was Zelga's bedroom. She used her magic to grab the knob and slowly turn it.
Inside the room, Luna heard this and saw the knob turning. Thinking it was Zelga, she went inside the wardrobe and hit inside it, there she remained very still and tried not to move any part of her body.
At that moment, Twilight came into the room and quietly closed the door behind her. She then started searching the room high and low, she searched the desk and everything.
Luna couldn't see who was in the room, she could only see a shadow under the wardrobe door moving back and forth. She could hear things being moved around, but she didn't know what they were doing. Luna waited in the wardrobe patiently for the pony in the room to leave so she could escape.
A few minutes later
Twilight search the entire room but found nothing of value to help her in her. Just then, she looked over to the wardrobe and began to wonder what could be inside, she started making her way towards it.
Luna could hear the pony's hoof-steps getting louder and knew it was coming towards the wardrobe. She didn't know what to do, she had to think of something fast.
But just before Twilight could reach the wardrobe, the floorboard creaked and Twi froze in place. She listened for any sounds that would tell her Zelga was coming up the stairs to investigate the noise, but heard nothing. Not wanting to push her luck, Twilight backed off and left the room.
With the click of the door closing, this was Luna's cue to leave the wardrobe and get away. She leaped out of the wardrobe and went to the window, once there, she slipped out and glided down to the nearest bush.
Meanwhile, Twilight snuck down stairs and looked in the kitchen to see Zelga was still there cooking. This was her chance to go, she crept to the front-door and quietly opened it with her magic. With the door open enough, she slipped out and closed the door behind her.
Once outside, Twilight ran back towards town as fast as her hooves could manage.
At the back of the house, Luna stared at Zelga through a window from behind a bush. "I will expose you, Zelga, I will not let you commit the same carnage your brother did." She said before she backed off into the darkness of the forest behind her, where she disappeared to parts unknown.
Meanwhile, Zelga took a test-taste of the stuff she was cooking. "Mmm, this soup is gonna be great, I think I deserve a good meal after a long day." she said before she walked out of the kitchen and went to the staircase.
She stopped behind it before she looked left and right suspiciously. Once she saw there was no-one in sight, her horn appeared on her head in a small bolt of purple flames. She then pointed it at the wall under the stairs, then a small hole appeared on the wall and she stuck her horn through it.
Zelga's horn glowed before the entire wall began to glow. When she pulled her horn out, the wall vanished and revealed a stone stairway going down. She went down them and entered a room full of potions, armour and a large cauldron in the centre of the room.
Zelga had brought her saddlebag with her, which contained the real ingredients she bought today at the market, the others were just for actual cooking. She stopped in front of the cauldron and placed the saddlebag down beside her.
Zelga used her magic to pick up a large staff and used it to stir the glowing purple liquid inside it. As she did, she used her magic to get some of the ingredients and dropped them into the water.
Zelga grinned evilly as she watched her creation being made. "If they think my power over fear is bad now…just wait…hahaha." She chuckled darkly as she continued to stir her mysterious potion.
Meanwhile: Jersey's swamp
Jersey and I had been fighting for a few minutes now, for someone so skinny and bony, he was incredibly strong, he got a few good hits at me and I got my own at him, but it didn't seem to hurt him much.
Beaten and bruised, I crashed into the mud and slid along the ground after Jersey had another good hit. Jersey leaped forward and landed on his feet near me, he chuckled as he watched me slowly get back up. "C'mon, you little shrimp, gimme your best shot!" he called.
I looked at him and growled in anger before I shot towards him with my wings flapping hard. As I made contact with Jersey, I threw my hoof out hard and struck his chest, which sent him flying and crashed to the ground.
In a twisty disgusting way, Jersey picked himself back up and charged towards me.
As he did, I saw a broken branch on the ground, I flew down and picked it up with my front-hooves. I held it like a bat as Jersey got closer, once close enough, I swung it at his head.
However, Jersey was fast to grab it with his claw, before snapping it before I could blink. "Oh shiza." I said to myself before smacked me away with his other arm.
I hit a tree hard, but I managed to keep myself in the air. I soon noticed Jersey coming at me with his claws ready to slash at me, when he did, I moved out of the way and his claws ended up sticking into the tree I crashed into.
As he tried to pull them out, I saw this as my chance to attack. I grabbed his skull head with my front hooves and slammed my knee into his face, which made his stumble back hard enough to pry his claw loose.
Suddenly, Jersey grabbed one of my hide-legs with his claw and started slamming me into a lot of things like trees, the ground and some rocks before finally throwing me down hard onto the ground.
As I tried to recover from the brutal beating, Jersey placed his foot on my chest and pushed down on it. I started struggling and tried to move his foot, but he wouldn't budge. "What cha gonna do now, ya lousy horse?"
I wasn't giving up, I quickly scooped up some sloppy mud in my hoof and threw it up into Jersey's face, which covered his only eye. He yelled in shock and stepped back as he tried to wipe off the mud.
I quickly got back up and thought of a move fast. I spun around and bucked one of my hide-legs out, it struck his knee and he yelped in pain as he kneeled down. With his this low, I quickly spun back around and threw my hoof up under his head; sticking his jaw hard and making him fall back on his back.
Jersey groaned on the ground as I walked up beside him. "Now…*pant*…you're gonna tell me who's been stealing the Elements so I don't have to stay here and knock you on your ass all night, get me?" I said firmly.
Jersey looked at me in silence before he suddenly grabbed me by the neck with his claw. I struggled to get him off, but he was too strong. "I told ya, I ain't tellin' ya nothin'." He said as he stood up before he threw me high into the sky.
I soon got control of my flight and hovered in mid-air. I looked down to the swamp, but Jersey was gone. I looked around for him, for I couldn't him.
I began to think he flew the coop before, suddenly, his large claws grabbed me from behind. He turned me around to see his was flying with his giant bat-wings, he laughed. "The skies over the swamp are mine! You're in my playground, punk." He said before he punched me in the head.
While in a daze, Jersey released me before he did a flip in the air and stuck the top of my head with his foot, which sent me falling, but I got my control back.
I looked up to see Jersey diving down to me, but I moved out of the way when he got close, As he past me, I grabbed his leg with my hooves and threw him back up above me, after that, I shot up and struck his stomach.
I get delivering hits, not giving him a chance to strike me. I wanted to end this stupid flight battle, so I grabbed his arm and threw him down towards the swamp. Of course, he got control of his flight before he could crash, so I needed to help him with that.
I shot down towards him and struck into him, sending us both crashing down into one of the swamp's ponds. At first, I was stunned by the sudden impact, but I recovered and swam back up to the surface.
Once I reach it, I swam to land and crawled out of the pond. I laid on the ground trying to catch my breath, but that was shortened when something slammed down on my back and gripped me.
It picked me up and I turned around to see Jersey had me in his grasp, even though he didn't have a face to show it, he was pretty pissed. He said nothing as he threw me down hard onto the ground and kicked me in the stomach.
I was sent through the air before tumbling into the ground, I tried to get up, but Jersey would always come along and strike me back down before I could.
I coughed roughly as I tried to get back up, but like I just said, Jersey stopped me. He picked me up and held me tightly his hands, then with his jaw open wide, he bit my body hard.
I yelled in pain before he removed his me from his bite and threw me across the area. I landed not far from Jersey's camp and weakly opened my eyes to see the blade Jersey threw at me before, if I could just reach me, maybe I had another chance.
I slowly picked my head up and started crawling towards it. I heard footsteps behind me, I knew Jersey was there, but he didn't do anything. "Look at ya, beaten to a bloody pulp, but ya still go for it. Ya got spunk, kid, I'll give ya that, but like everyone who has spunk, it doesn't take much to make 'em lose it." he said.
I just ignored him and kept going towards me goal.
"Ya know, ya can give up any time ya want, I won't care what happens, I won't care if ya die or ya leave, just as long as you're gone. But I know you, it's not your style, is it? But you can always beg, begging's always an option." Jersey said as he followed me.
Again, I ignored him as I kept crawling towards the blade. "Hmm, guess not." Jersey said before he kicked me in the stomach again.
I grunted in pain and rolled over onto my back holding my stomach. Jersey kneeled down to me and placed his claw on my throat. "Say goodnight, Matt, you're lights are about to go out." He said as he raised his fist up above me.
As I prepared for his strike, there was a flash of light in front of Jersey as something knocked him away and sent him crashing to the ground. We both looked to see it was Moleyair with his staff, he was standing in a fighting position. "That's enough, Jersey!" he said firmly.
Jersey stood back up. "This has nothin' to do with ya, old mole! Leave now! Don't make me beat the stuffin' out of a blind guy." He growled.
"This 'blind guy' has more tricks than you give credit for, Jersey, you of all creatures should know that by now." Moleyair said.
"I'll show ya tricks!" Jersey said before she charged towards Moleyair roaring loudly.
Within a second, Moleyair shot towards Jersey and tripped him up with his staff. With Jersey on the ground, Moleyair stuck the crystal on top of his staff into Jersey's back and there was a weird 'bong' noise.
Jersey's body shined blue and it looked like he couldn't move. His eye shifted, but the rest of his body was frozen.
Moleyair calmly walked back over me to me and placed his claw on me. "It's alright, Matthew, you'll be fine." He said before he held his staff up and it began to glow.
We began to glow blue before we disappeared completely. When we did, the spell that kept Jersey at bay broke and he was free to move. As he got back up, he looked at the spot we were in and growled angrily.
An hour later: Ponyville hospital
After Moleyair's magic returned us to Ponyville, he didn't waste time in rushing me to the hospital where I was tended to immediately.
I lied in the hospital bed, looking out the window as the rain drizzled down the glass. I was thinking about how much I've failed today. I didn't get any info from Jersey and I got my ass kicked in, I'd be dead by now if Moleyair hadn't come and got me out of there.
Moleyair sat beside the bed on a chair, gripping his staff and staying silent. It wasn't long before he broke it. "You're probably wondering how I knew you were in trouble." He said.
I didn't turn to face his as I answered. "You had one of your visions?" I asked.
"…Yes…I saw you and Jersey fighting, you were losing. You're probably a bit shook up, thinking how close you came to death today, but you shoulder. You weren't going to die today, I was going to be there one way or another to save you, I saw it myself." Moleyair stated.
I then turned my head to face him. "It was all a waste, Moleyair, I got nothing from Jersey. I'm no closer to finding the guy stealing the Elements as I was when I left to find Jersey, all I got was many bruises and possible broken bones." I said.
"A waste, was it? You call saving trapped ponies and discovering a terrorised town a waste? If it wasn't for this 'waste', those ponies would still be trapped by Jersey and would be sentenced for a worse fate." Moleyair said.
I understood what he meant. "Yeah, you're right, Moleyair. I need to tell Princess Celestia about that town, they need help." I said as I looked out the window again.
"You can ask Twilight to send her a letter about it when you return home to the Library. Speaking of which, she should be coming through the door just about….now." Moleyair said.
Then on cue, Twilight came through the door with a worried look on her face. She saw me on the bed and rushed over to me. "Matt! Oh my gosh! Are you alright?" she said as she stopped beside the bed.
Twilight stood up on her hind-legs and placed one of her front-hooves on the bed while she hugged me with the other. It didn't make my wounds hurt much, so I let her do it. "I'm alright, Twi, I'll live."
After Twilight broke the hug and placed both her front-hooves back on the floor, I looked her in the eyes. "How did you know I was here?" I asked curiously.
"I had one of the nurses sent to find her." Moleyair answered for her.
Twilight nodded. "What he said." She said before she changed the subject. "Matt, what's this about you going to find the Jersey Devil? Did he do this to you?" she asked in concern.
I nodded. "Yeah, he has information on the guy stealing the Elements, I had to try and get it. I was trying to reason with him, but he didn't want to cooperate, so one thing led to another and…well…you know." I explained.
"Matt…the Jersey Devil isn't like other creatures, he's a monster! He is very viscous and has unbelievable strength, that's why no-one goes into his territory. What were you thinking going after him like that?" Twilight asked.
"I wanted it to be over, Twi…I didn't want any of the other Elements to be stolen, I don't want this guy braking into our homes while we sleep and robbing us blind. Jersey knows who it is, I know he does!" I stated.
Before Twilight could respond, Moleyair spoke up. "Actually, if anyone is to blame for what's happened today, it should be me. I'm the one who informed Matthew on Jersey's knowledge and I told him to interrogate him. When I did, I failed to tell him about Jersey's abilities. Matthew's injuries are basically my doing." he said humbly.
I leaned up. "Moleyair, no, you don't have to-"
Moleyair raised his claw up. "I'm sorry Matthew, but there is no proof that says I didn't tell you to look for Jersey. Spike was there when I told you, if you require a witness." He said.
Twilight looked at him with simple eyes. "Moleyair, I'm…I'm not wanting to blame anyone, especially someone like you, I just…I just worry about what he gets himself into, a lot of bad things have been happening lately and I don't want to lose him." she stated.
"I know Twilight, but right now your concern should be focused on Matthew's current state, anything else isn't important at the moment. Stay with him, help him recover…I have a strong feeling we may need him at his strongest soon." He said before he turned and walked towards the door.
As we watched him leave, Moleyair continued to speak. "You two have a lot of things to do, but the most important is to stay together, stay safe, stay strong continue to fight through whatever troubles you, the same goes to your friends." He said before he looked back at us. "Whatever happens, the brave will always cast out the fear." He said before he left.
Twilight and I were silent for a moment before we looked at each other. "Ok, besides from the obvious, did you get any of that?" she asked with a raised eye-brow.
"Beats me, I don't know what the bloody-hell he's on about half the time." I said before I looked up to the ceiling.
Twilight sat down beside the bed and placed her hoof on my head. "Matt, I know you want to find this guy, but you shouldn't go trying to get yourself killed over it." she said as she rubbed my head gently.
"What was I supposed to do? Wait until he comes back for the other Elements?" I said without taking my eyes off the ceiling.
"No, of course not, but there has to be a better way to find this guy without interrogating a vicious monster." Twilight stated before she sighed. "We'll find a way, Matt, we always do. Remember what Moleyair just said, we need to stay together and stay strong. As long as we do exactly that, we will always win over times like this." She said with a small confident smile.
I then looked at her, a smile didn't appear, but I understood what she meant. "I suppose so, Twi." I said before I remembered the village outside Jersey's swamp. "Oh, I nearly forgot, we need to send a message to Princess Celestia." I said as I leaned up slightly.
"Why?" Twilight asked curiously.
"There's a village near Jersey's swamp, they need help and protection badly, otherwise Jersey's gonna keep attacking them until there's no-one left. I promised a mare and her child there that I'd help them, I told them I could help them stay safe." I explained.
Twilight nodded. "Alright Matt, as soon as your able to leave the hospital, we'll send her a letter to her. I'm sure she'll be more than willing to help them." she said.
I smiled at her. "Thanks Twi." I said. Suddenly, I felt a strong pain in my side, it was obviously from Jersey's nasty bite. "Gahh!...Damn!" I said as I laid back down.
Twilight gave me a look of concern. "Matt, it's ok…just take it easy. The doctor said your injuries are really bad, it'll take some time to heal." She stated.
"Got it." I said with my body tense from the pain.
After a moment, the pain went away and I started to relax on the bed. For the rest of the day, Twilight stayed by my side in the hospital and took care of me when the doctor wasn't around. The pain would come back at some points, sometimes even agonizing, but the doctor would give me something to ease the pain.
But all the while, I couldn't help but feel like I failed at my mission. I got nothing from Jersey, so I'm not any closer to finding the guy stealing the Elements. I can't just wait for him to come back and steal another Element, I need to do something.
I need to find out more about this guy, I need to revisit the crime scenes and see if I missed anything, try to find a link or something. One way or another, I will find him and the Elements, even if I have to face Jersey again.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
Well Season 5's off to a good start. I thought Starlight Glimmer was a decent villain and I have a feeling we'll see her again eventually? Why do I think this? Because I knew what type of evil she is, and that type of evil never gives up so easily.
I hope the 7th episode will be revealed soon. It may be the one with the Smooze, a bolt-type creature that was in the G1 series. Also, prepare to see Discord in the Grand Galloping Gala, at least I think it's the Gala, certainly looks like it.
Will one of the Cutie Mark Crusaders finally get their Cutie Mark? Find out in the new episode this Saturday.
The song I used in this chapter is called 'Busted', from the 'Phineas and Ferb' series. I don't own anything.
Please remember to review and PM
The next chapter will be up as soon as possible.
57. Chapter 57: Big news, big trouble
Hi everypony, welcome back again!
I'm sorry if this has taken a while again, I've been busy with other things. I don't have much to say today, mostly just the Pony News will have stuff I forgot to mention last time.
This chapter may appear a bit short, I haven't got much of an idea for this one.
Anyway, I'll try, enjoy.
Chapter 57: Big news, big trouble
It's been a full week since I fought the ferrous monster, the Jersey Devil, and lost. Since then, I've been recovering from the brutal beating he gave me.
I informed Celestia about Swampville and all the ponies being abused by Jersey's rampage, which she took immediate action to. She sent a large group of guards to the town and they set up a protective force-field around the entire town along with a large part of the area around it. No matter where Jersey comes, he won't be able to get in.
I had to take a few days off work and didn't go to Moleyair's home to train. But now, I was ready to get back out there and continue my life. The only problem was the stinging pain on my body from Jersey's bite, out of all the injuries he gave me, that was the worst, I had a few bandages wrapped around my body to keep it clean and put pressure on it.
I even went back to training with Moleyair, he said he had something important to teach me in my next lesson. I wondered what it was, if Moleyair says it's important, it must be something worthwhile.
Steets of Ponyville
I walked through the snow-covered street pulling Applejack's supply wagon behind me, I had already spend almost an hour delivering supplies and I was now nearly done, I just had a few more placed to go.
Jeff was with me, he was riding on my back watching my progress the whole time. Since I got back from the swamps, he hasn't let me out of my sight, he and Twilight have a crazy idea that I'm gonna collapse from pain over my bite wound. It felt a bit uncomfortable having a pair of eyes watching the back of my head all the time.
I turned my head around to face him. "Jeff, you know I can do this by myself, right? I'm a grown stallion, I don't need a babysitter." I stated.
"Sorry Matt, orders from Twilight, I'm not allowed to leave you out of sight, not until you heal up anyway." Jeff said. "Also, she said it was punishment for not telling her you were going after Jersey."
I rolled my eyes before I turned my attention to the path in front of me. "This is completely stupid. If she's so worried about me, why is she letting me work and train with Moleyair?" I asked.
Jeff shrugged. "Beats me, dude, just be glad she's actually letting do these things instead of keeping you in the house all the time." He said.
I sighed. "Yeah, I suppose so." I said before I looked around at all the snow and ponies wearing winter clothes. "Winter's definitely coming, isn't it?" I asked.
"Coming? I say it's already here. The lakes are frozen, the kids are building snow-ponies and there winter-wear is selling like hot cupcakes." Jeff stated as she sighted each of his descriptions.
"I wish I had some of those winter outfits, I'm freezing out here, man." I said while shivering with coldness.
Suddenly, there was a flash of light and Discord appeared in front of me. He had changed his appearance to look like Genie from Aladdin, the only thing that wasn't changed was his face, but he still had the facial hair of Genie. "You wish is my command." He said before he snapped his fingers.
With that, winter-wear appeared on me. I was wearing a dark-green coat, a blue wool hat and a red scarf. "Discord, wh-…what the hell?" I said, surprised by the sudden act.
Discord then changed his body back to normal. "No need to thank me, Matthew. Just think of it as a good deed. I've been doing a lot of those lately."
"Well this is really nice of you, Discord, I was really starting to freeze my…wait, what do you mean you've been doing good deeps lately?" I asked, almost scared to find out.
Discord stroked his beard with a grin on his face. "Well let's just say there fisher-ponies in a small town not far from here won't need of their fish gear for a while."
Meanwhile: Lake a few miles away from town
Stallions in fisher outfits stared a giant pile of flapping fish with wide eyes and hanging jaws.
Back in Ponyville
Discord floated there with a proud smile as we looked up at him. "Wow Discord, that's very…helpful of you." I said, trying to find the right words.
"Why thank you, Matthew." He said before he suddenly slivered up from behind me. "And remember, if you ever need any help from your old pal, Discord, just give me a dingle-ling." He said as he floated past me ringing his tail tip which had turned into a small gold bell.
I then thought about my bite wound, if anyone could fix it for me, he could. "Well Discord, there is something I need from-"
"Now if you'll excuse me." he said before he snapped his fingers again and a bunch of shopping bags appeared along both his arms. "I have some holiday shopping to attend to." he said as he floated up into the air.
His tail then straighter as if something was pulling on it before it released and his body rolled up like a spring roller-blind. His body rolled and made the slapping noise before he disappeared in a small flash.
"Hmph, some helpful friend he is." Jeff said with his wings crossed.
"He gave me this winter stuff, didn't he? I'd call that helpful enough. Let's just finish our work and go home, I'd like to have a few minutes to relax before I go to Moleyair's place." I said before I started to walk down the street again.
As we kept moving, Jeff decided to make small-talk. "Hey Matt, do you think Jersey will come looking for ya? He's had a taste of you, he might come back for more." He said.
"That's not something I want to think about, buddy." I stated as we continued to walk to our reach my next destination.
A while later: Library
Twilight was lying on the bed with a sick look on her face, he eyes were baggy and she felt a sickly pain in her stomach. Spike had found out about this and got the others.
Now she was being attended to by Pinkie Pie, she held a thermometer to in Twi's mouth and wearing a head-mirror around her head. She took the thermometer out of her mouth and looked at it. "Oohhh." Pinkie said before she looked at the others. "It looks kinda bad." She said.
After hearing this, Rarity looked at everyone. "I knew it, I knew it, I told you all there was something wrong with her." She stated.
"Rarity, you thought she was ill because her hair was a mess and she was black under the eyes." Applejack said with a raised eye-brow.
Rarity turned to face her. "Well when a mare looks that messy, I can only assume there is something wrong with their health." She said.
That moment, Rainbow Dash stepped in between them. "Getting back to the matter, how long have you been like this, Twilight?" she asked, making everyone else look at her with curiousness.
Twilight weakly lifted her head up. "For the last few months or so, I feel like I'm gonna vomit, but then I…*gags*" she gaged and held both her front hooves over her mouth with her open wide.
Rainbow Dash was quick to grab the trash-can in the corner and held it in front of Twilight, so she could vomit in it.
They waited a few moments before Twi stopped and gently pushed the trash-can away from her. "But then I don't, as you just saw." She finished.
Fluttershy climbed up on the bed and lied next to her, she placed her hoof and Twi's back and gently stroked it. "I'll be alright, Twilight, you'll feel better eventually. But you should go see the doctor, he might be able to help." She said in her kind voice.
Twilight turned her head to face her. "I would, but…I can't, more important things are at stake, I need to help Matt find the pony who's been stealing the Elements. Besides, Matt's not in the best shape himself, somepony needs to take care of him." she said.
"Matt's a grown stallion, he can take care of himself. You need to start workin' on getting better, startin' with goin' to the doctor." Applejack said.
Twilight was about to respond, but then they heard the front-door open downstairs. "Twily, I'm home." I said loudly for her to hear through-house the library.
Twilight's eyes shot open. "Oh my gosh! Matt's home, I can't let him see me like this." She said before she weakly climbed off the bed and made her way down the small set of stairs that led to the exit.
But as she reached the bottom of the stairs, Rainbow Dash stopped her by flying down in front of her. "What's the rush, Twilight? It's just Matthew." She said before she had a thought that made her feel a little angry. "Did he make you ill like this? Is he doing something to you that we don't know about?" she asked.
Twilight was shocked by what she was suggesting. "What?! No! Never! Rainbow Dash, how could you think like that about him? He's your friend!"
The others made their way down the stairs until they reached Twilight. "I must agree with Twilight, how could you think such a rotten thing?" Rarity asked.
Rainbow Dash hovering in mid-air and turned away with her arms crossed. "Because…there's just something I don't like about him recently…ever since his birthday a while ago, I just…grrrr!" she groaned in frustration as she held her head with her hooves.
Everyone looked at her with confusion. "His birthday? What happened that day that made you...oohh." Fluttershy said as she understood.
Everyone else looked at her. "What is it?" Applejack asked curiously.
Rainbow Dash stayed in the air, facing away from them as she listened closely to what they were saying.
"Remember when we played Truth or Dear? Rainbow Dash and Matt were forced to kiss and everyone was ok with it. Maybe Rainbow Dash thinks Matt isn't as loyal as everyone thinks, if he was ok with kissing another pony besides Twilight, then maybe he'd try making a habit of it with other mares." Fluttershy explained.
After hearing that, everyone got a good idea of what she meant and looked back up at Rainbow Dash. "Is that true, dear?" Rarity asked her.
Rainbow Dash kept facing away from them. "No!...I mean, maybe…or…probably." She said, struggling to come up with the right answer.
Twilight gave her a comforting smile. "Rainbow Dash, haven't we been over this alright? It was just a game….and if I remember correctly, he wasn't really up for it, he needed my say-so and everything." She stated.
Applejack then stepped forward. "Plus, I think you kissed him more than he kissed you." she stated with a smirk.
At that moment, Rainbow Dash turned around and shot down until her face was right in front of Applejack's. "Oh yeah?! Well…I was just trying to….he was probably…I'll have you know that…ah forget it!" she said before she flew over to a window, opened it and shot out through it.
"Talk about touchy." Pinkie blurted out as they all stared at the window Rainbow flew out of.
Just then, I came up the stairs and saw everyone. "Hi ladies, what going on?" I asked with a smile.
They all looked at each other before Twilight walked up to me. "Nothing Matt, we were just talking." She said with a small smile.
I then noticed the look of her eyes and mane, she looked at complete mess like she was gonna collapse at any moment. "Are you alright, Twi? You don't look so good." I said as I gently placed my hoof on her cheek.
She placed her hoof on top of mine. "I'm alright, Matt…there's nothing to worry about." she said with the same smile.
Applejack walked up beside her and gave her a firm look. "Twilight, tell Matt the truth, ya need help." She said.
I looked at Applejack before I looked back at Twilight and removed my hoof. "Help? Help with what? Is something wrong?" I asked, starting to worry.
Twilight looked at Applejack and got a nod from her before she faced me. "Matt…I don't feel well…I feel terrible." She said weakly.
I instantly grew concerned for her, but I was also shocked that she didn't tell me sooner. "I knew there was something wrong, you haven't been acting yourself lately. How long has it been going on for?" I asked.
"She says she's felt like this for the last few months or so." Fluttershy said as she hovered over to us.
I took a step closer to Twilight and placed my hoof gently under her chin. "Twi, why didn't you tell me sooner?" I asked.
Twilight looked down at the floor for a moment before she looked into my eyes. "Because you have more than enough to deal with. Your work, your training, your injuries and your trying to track down that mysterious pony…I don't want you to worry about me as well." She said.
I stayed silent for a moment before I sat down. "Twilight, listen to me…there is nothing more important to me in all of existence than you. My job, my training…this case…I'll stop doing them all to make sure you're safe. Now you say you're sick, then there's only one thing in my mind…to take you to the hospital and have you looked at A-S-A-P." I said with fully honesty.
After hearing that, Twilight felt heart-warmed and gave me a sweet smile. "You know, I sometimes forget how much you love me…but I'll never forget how much I love you, Matt." she said as she nuzzled her head against the side of my neck.
I smiled at this and rubbed her back with my hoof.
The others watched us with heart-warming smiles and Pinkie burst out crying. "That's so beautiful! *loud sops*" she said as she wiped her tears with her hoof.
Rarity saw this and used her magic to give her a handkerchief, Pinkie noticed it in front of her and she took it with her hoof. "Thanks." She said as she used the hanky to wipe her dramatic tears.
Twilight and I then stepped away from each other. "Now let's get you to a doctor." I said before we started making our way towards the stairs that led down to the living-room with the others following behind.
Once we reached the living-room, Twilight and I went over to the front-door to leave the Library. But before we could, Applejack stopped us by calling out. "Hold on a sec…if you're here, where's my supply cart?" she asked.
I turned my head around to face her. "You weren't at home so I left it in the barn and told Big Mac, I gave him the money I earned and he gave me my pay. Don't worry, everything's in order." I said with a confident smile.
Applejack raised her eye-brow. "Oh yeah, then tell me this…where's Jeff?" she asked.
At that moment, my confident smile vanished and my eyes grew wide.
Meanwhile: Sweet Apple Archers
Jeff was standing on top of the supply cart in the barn, he was repeatedly tapping his talon with an impatient look on his face. "Where the hay is Matt? He told me to wait here and it's been half-an-hour." He said before he huffed and crossed his wings, continuing to wait for me.
A while later: Ponyville hospital
After collecting Jeff and going to the hospital, the doctor took Twilight away to have her checked and left us all in the waiting room.
The rest of the Mane 6 (except Rainbow), Spike and Jeff were sitting on the small stools while I paced back and forth nervously, I've never seen Twilight so ill before, I was really worried about her.
After a few minutes of silence, Rarity broke it. "Matthew, sweetie, you really must calm down and relax, I'm sure everything will be fine." She said with a small reassuring smile.
I stopped pacing and looked at her. "How can I? Twilight's in one of those rooms, alone, probably scared." I said in a slightly panicky voice.
"Listen Matt, if there's one thing I know about Twilight, it's that she's not scared of bein' sick, even if she needs to go to the hospital." Applejack stated confidently.
I calmed down a little. "Ok…ok yeah…she's dealt with worse, much worse." I walked over to the others and sat down near them. "It's probably just a case of the flu, nothing serious."
Jeff flew over and landed next to me with a confident smile. "Yeah, nothin' serious…unless it's one of those diseases that can dose real damage with a cure that's almost impossible to get." He said as he rubbed the bottom of his beak with his wing.
Hear this made me panic again and I started to hyperventilate, the others noticed this and looked at Jeff. "Thanks Jeff, now he's never gonna sleep tonight." Applejack said.
Suddenly, we heard the front doors open and Rainbow Dash flew in with a worried look. "Is it true? Is Twilight here?" she asked as she flew over and landed in front of us.
Fluttershy nodded. "Yes, we came her almost half-an-hour, where have you been?" she asked.
Rainbow Dash looked down at the floor. "I just…needed to cool down, ok." She said before she looked back up at us. "But that's not important right now, have the doctors said anything about Twilight's condition?" she asked curiously.
We all shook our heads. "Not yet, we're still waiting for him to come back and tell us." Rarity said.
"So what do we do? Just wait?" Rainbow Dash asked with a slightly agitated look.
"Apparently so, it's all we can do. You just need to find something to do to pass the time, like Pinkie Pie has." Rarity said as she pointed her hoof over to Pinkie Pie.
She was on the other side of the room playing with some of the toys the kids play with when they're bored, she was playing with a cup-and-ball. She held the handle with her hoof and quickly jerked her arm up, tossing the ball attached to it by a string in the air and she tried to catch it in the cup, but missed…for like the 45th time.
"This game is super hard, it must be cheating or something." Pinkie said with irritation before she tried again and missed…again. "D'oh!"
Rainbow Dash raised her eye-brow before she looked at Rarity again. "Urr…I think I'll just wait with you guys." She said before she sat down beside Applejack and grassed her arms.
-A few minutes later-
We had all waited for quite some time now, the others had almost fallen asleep a few times, Pinkie was still trying to catch the ball at least once, and me…well, I was out.
"*Snores loudly*" I snored loudly as I slept on the chair.
But, after a full hour, the doctor finally came into the waiting room. "Mr Matthew." He said as he looked over to us and noticed me sleeping.
Fluttershy snapped out of her tiredness and looked at me. "Umm, Matt." she said quietly before she placed her hoof on me and shook me lightly. "Matt, the doctor's back and he wants to-"
She didn't get to finish and I suddenly woke up quick. "DON'T GO IN THE SHED!" I yelled loudly.
This made Fluttershy yelp in fight and jump back, making her fall off her chain and onto the floor. Her loud thud snapped the other awake as well and they all acted like they were awake the whole time.
The doctor cleared his throat to get my attention, which he got. "Your wife would like to see you now, Mr Matthew." He said.
I nodded before I got off my chain and walked over to him, I looked back at the others. "I'll be back in a minute." I said.
They all nodded as Fluttershy leaned up off the floor in a small daze.
After that, I followed the doctor out of the waiting-room and into the hallway that led to the hospital rooms. As we walked, I couldn't help but wonder how Twilight was, I looked at the doctor and built up the courage to ask him. "So…how is she?" I asked.
The doctor looked at me and gave me a small comforting smile. "She's fine, I've seen this type of sickness before, lots of times even. I would tell you what it might be, but your wife made it very clear that she would like to tell you instead." He explained.
"Oh…yeah, sure." I said, curious of what it was.
I continued to follow the doctor to the room where Twilight was resting until we reached it, we stood in front of the door as the doctor turned to look at me. "I have another patient to tend to, take all the time you need with your wife." He said before he turned around and walked back down the hall.
With him gone, I faced the door and slowly opened it with my hoof. I poked my head through and saw Twilight lying in the bed under the covers, he head was resting on the pillow and she looked over to me with a bright smile on her face. "Hi Matt." she said.
I walked over to the side of the bed and placed my hoof on it. "Hi Twi, how are you feeling?" I asked gently.
"I'm feeling much better now, the doctor gave me some medicine to stop the headaches, but they couldn't give me anything for my stomach…just in case." Twilight said as she patted her stomach with her hoof.
I looked at her with confusion and wondered why they didn't help her with her stomach problems. "In case of what? Why won't they help you with your stomach?" I asked.
Twilight was silent for a moment before she placed her hoof on top of mine and smiled sweetly at me. "Matt…I'm gonna tell you something important…but you have to promise not to freak out." She said.
"O-…-kay…" I said, getting slightly nervous by this.
"Matt…the doctors say that this may not be an illness, but side-effects of…quite possible…pregnancy." Twilight said as she gave me a slightly nervous smile.
With that, it felt like time stopped and went quiet, I felt a shocking thrill rush but my spine and some of the fur one my body stood up on end, even though it was barely visible. "Wha-…I'm sorry, what?" I asked with a small stutter.
"Possible pregnancy." Twilight repeated she said with the small smile.
I was silent for a moment until I noticed she was waiting for a response, which I quickly gave her. "Pregnancy?...But that means…we could be having-"
"Yes Matt…we could be having a baby." Twilight said as her nervous smile turned into another sweet one.
I didn't know how to react to this, part of me was scared and the other was pleased, I was mostly worried about how this could affect our lives, would it make them better or difficult? "Twilight, that's…I don't know what to say." I said, trying to be honest without hurting her feelings.
Twilight gave me an honest look in return. "I know, I didn't know how to react when the doctor told me, but do you wanna know what I did after? I looked on the bright side of it." she said.
"The bright side of it?" I asked.
Twilight nodded. "Yeah, I mean, having a child isn't the end of the world, it's something for us to cherish and share our love with. Besides, don't you think having a baby will brighten your world?" she asked.
"What do you mean? My world's always been bright, ever since I came here all those months ago, ever since I met you." I said with a loving smile.
Twilight retuned it before she continued. "I know, but there's been some dark stuff happening recently, this could be just what we need to make things seem a little better, don't you think?" she asked.
My ears lowered slightly. "But…what if I'm not cut out for it? What if I'm not ready?"
Twilight gave me a reassuring smile. "Matt, I've seen how you treat Applebloom and her friends, I've seen how you act with the ponies at the schoolhouse, from what I've learned…you'll be a great dad." She said.
I smiled back. "Yeah…you're probably right." I then learned towards her and kissed her cheek. "Thanks Twi." I said lovingly.
Twilight's smile then went away a little. "But like I said, we 'could' be having a baby, meaning…you know." She said, thinking I would understand what she meant.
My ears lowered as I did. "We might not have one, it could just be a mistake."
Twilight nodded. "Yeah, the doctor said it would probably be a few weeks until they can confirm anything." she said before she looked down at her stomach and rubbed it with her hoof. "I'm a little worried, Matt." she said.
I then comforted her by rubbing my head against her's. "It'll be alright Twi, if it is pregnancy, we'll have a little foal of our own, and if not nothing will change between any of us." I said, trying to make her feel better.
It worked a little as Twi smiled slightly. "I know Matt, I think the same way." Twilight then moved her head away from mine and looked me in the eyes. "Do you think we should tell the others about this?" she asked.
I then thought about it before I gave her my answer. "I suppose we can, would be fair to leave them in the dark." I said.
"Yeah, you're probably right." Twilight said in agreement.
At that moment, the doctor came through the door and walked over to us. "Good news Mrs Sparkle, there doesn't seem to be anything seriously wrong with you and you're free to go home." He said with a smile.
We both smiled at this. "Great, I need to finish some work back at the Library." She said as she leaned up on the bed.
"Oh no, no, no, Mrs Sparkle. You can't put yourself through stressful situations like that, not until we know for sure if it's pregnancy or not. Until then , you'll need to take things slow, I'm sure Mr Matthew here can handle some of your work." The doctor explained.
With that, Twilight went speechless. "….I can't do my daily studying? B-But the Princess needs me to do my studying! If I don't, I'll fall behind, I can't afford to lose that much time." She said, starting to panic.
I then gave her a comforting smile. "Don't worry, Twilight, I'll make sure you're up to date with your studies." I said.
Suddenly, Twilight grabbed my face with both her hooves and pulled me right up to her face. "Oh come on Matt, we both know even Jeff has a better chance of doing that than you do." she said loudly.
"Hurtful." I whined before she released my face.
Twilight then looked at the doctor. "What am I supposed to do? I can't tell the Princess I won't be able to do my work because of possible pregnancy, we don't even know if it is that yet." She stated.
"Well Mrs Sparkle, it's up to you. Take it easy for a while or risk harming your child with stress. I'd advise you choose the second one, but I can't make that decision for you." The doctor said before he turned and walked towards the door. "Like I said, you're free to go home when you're ready."
After he left, Twilight placed her hoof on her fore-head as she began to worry over the choice. I saw this and decided to help. "Twi, maybe it's best if you do take it easy, just until we know what's going on, ok? We wouldn't want to harm the baby." I said, hoping she'd agree and calm down.
Twilight looked at me with worry. "But we don't know if it is a baby, what if it's just a false alarm and I get behind on my studies for nothing! I can't disappoint the Princess like that." She said in a stressed tone.
"Twi, if Celestia knew what might be a stake, she'd probably tell you the same thing the doctor did, I'm sure she'd understand. Who knows, maybe she'll but your studies on hold." I said.
Twilight thought about it for a while before she finally agreed. "I suppose you're right, she probably would tell me the same thing. If it's possible I am pregnant, she'd want me to be as careful as possible." She said as she began to climb out of the bed.
I went around to the other side of the bed and helped her down. "That's good, Twi, you're doing the smart thing here." I said as I helped her.
Once I did, she smiled at me before she took a breath. "We better let the others know, huh?" Twilight said gently.
I smiled back and nodded. "Yeah, let's get you home." I said before we made our way over to the door that led to the hallway.
After walking down the hallway, we entered the waiting rooms where the others were waiting for us. Once they saw us, they all ran up to us with questions.
"Are you alright, Twilight? You've been in there for a full hour." Rarity asked.
"We were so worried about you." Fluttershy said with her gentle voice.
"Did they give you a lollipop? If so, can I have one too?" Pinkie asked as she hopped in the air.
Applejack looked at Pinkie with her eye-lids half closed. "Pinkie, can you hold that thought for one second?" she said before she looked at us. "What happened in there? Why were ya so ill?" she asked.
They all listened closely, wanting to know the answer just as badly. Twilight looked at me before I nodded to her, telling her to go for it. With that, Twilight looked at the others and sighed. "The doctor said…that my illness was caused by…possible pregnancy." She finished with a nervous smile.
Everyone gasped in shock, they all looked stunned, but Rarity smiled with complete joy before she hugged Twilight. "Oh Twilight! I'm so happy for you! I never thought this day would come, but it finally did!" she said before she released Twilight from her hug and stepped away.
The others smiled with her. "Yeah, congratulations, you two." Applejack said happily.
"You and Matty are gonna have a foal?" Pinkie Pie asked before she gasped again and started bouncing in excitement. "I smell a Baby Party." She then stopped. "Really, I do, it smells like baby powder." She said with a large smile.
I titled my head. "Ok then…" I said in awkwardness before I looked at everyone else. "Thanks you guys, but I wouldn't get too excited over it yet." I said.
"Why not? You and Twilight are gonna have a kid, it's a pretty big deal." Rainbow Dash stated.
I looked up at her. "Yeah, but there's still a problem with it." I said before I looked at Twilight. "Twilight said it could 'possibly' be pregnancy, meaning it still may not be." I explained.
With that, everyone's smiles went away. "Oh…oh Twilight, I'm sorry we rushed into it like that, we just got over excited." Rarity said calmly.
Twilight smiled at her. "It's ok, Rarity. Matt was the same when he heard the news." Twilight said before she looked back at her stomach. "The doctor said it'll take a few weeks before they find out if it's pregnancy or not, until then we'll just have to wait and see." She said as she looked back at our friends.
Applejack gave her a sweet smile. "Well here's hopin' that you are havin' a foal, you two would be great parents." She said.
"Indeed, you're both responsible and mature enough to have your own child." Rarity said with the same smile.
"Plus, it'll make your lives twice as fun." Pinkie said with her same large smile.
Me and Twilight smiled warmly at them. "Thanks, that all means a lot to us." I said. Just then, Twilight moaned as she stumbled a little and I was quick to try and catch her. "Twilight, are you alright?" I asked with concern.
Twilight looked at me. "I'm fine, I just felt a little light-headed there, I still don't fell one-hundred percent." She confessed.
Hearing that, I started helping her towards the exit. "Come on, lets get you home and into bed, I'll give you some water and a bucket in case you feel sickly again." I said as I gently guided her towards the doors, the others followed behind as we left the hospital.
A few minutes later: Streets of Ponyville
It was almost night-time and Twilight & I were approaching the Library with Jeff on my back and Spike walking beside us. The rest of the Mane 6 had said their goodbyes and went home, they knew I was capable of taking care of her.
Along the way, Spike was still trying get his head around the big news. Twilight, the pony that raised him from an egg, could be pregnant with her own child. He didn't know if he should be happy or worried about this.
I noticed how silent he was the whole way and I figured it could be because of this news, so I decided to talk to him. "Are you ok, Spike, you've hardly said a word since we left the hospital." I said.
Spike looked up at me and sighed. "Yeah I'm fine, it's just that…Twilight could be pregnant and I can't help but feel like…where'll I be when she has the baby? Will it be the same as always, or…will things change? I'm worried." He said, getting it off his chest quicker than I expected.
Jeff heard this and looked down at him. "Uh-Oh, Spike's got some issues. He thinks once the baby comes, it'll all about him-slash-her and none of him, it'll be like he isn't even there."
"Spike looked down at the ground. "I hate to admit it, but I think Jeff got it right this time." He said, slightly sad.
My ears lowered as I tried to answer his question. "Spike…sure, things might change, but not for you. You'll still be Twi's number one assistant and you'll still be my little bro, it's just that there'll be a new member in the family." I said before I smiled down at him. "And guess what, I'll know where you'll be if the baby comes, you'll be right beside us as it's Uncle." I said.
Spike looked up at me with a twinkle in his eyes. "Really?" he asked, almost shocked.
I nodded. "Definitely."
Spike felt much better after this, he even grew a proud smile. "Huh, Uncle Spike, has a ring to it."
Jeff rolled his eyes. "Great, now he's gonna be dreamin' about that, best get my ear-plugs for tonight." he said as he crossed his wings.
I smiled with amusement before I returned my attention to Twilight, who was really tied and looked like she was gonna collapse at any moment.
After a minute or so, we reached the Library and went inside. I helped Twilight to bed and got her some water and a bucket, like I said I would do. She went to sleep soon after that, giving me some time to fill Peewee in on what was happening.
For the rest of the day, me and the rest of the guys sat and talked about what was going to happen if there was a baby on the way. And at the same time, I tended to Twilight every time she woke up and asked me to help with something.
And for a few simple hours, everything I was worried about before was forgotten, the Elements being stolen, my wounds from my fight with Jersey, everything. It was like something more important came up in my life, and I liked it.
All I hope is that nothing terrible happens until we know what's happening for sure.
That night: Castle of the two Princess Sisters
While we were at home, most of Ponyville somehow found out about Twilight's possible pregnancy, thanks to a certain pink party pony.
The whole town knew in less than a few hours, the sun didn't even have a chance to go down all the way before the news got out. Also, the news went on to reach someone was more disturbed by the news than anyone.
A hooded pony flew over the Ever Free Forest until she reached the wrecked Castle of the Two Princess Sisters, she landed in the main hall before she took her hood off to reveal herself as Zelga.
Zelga walked to the centre of the hall before she made her horn appear on her head in a small bolt of purple fire. She then used her magic to cast a spell on the floor, causing a small amount of purple flames to ignite against it.
The purples flames soon turned to green before they suddenly shot up into a great blazing wall of green fire. The flames soon took on the shape of an Alicorn and a pair of red eyes appeared on its head.
Zelga bowed to it as she spoke. "Brother, I come to you to bring you news regarding Matthew and Twilight." she said.
"Is that so?" the Leader Alicorn said as he began to walk towards the smashed window. "Is it that you've finally succeeded in separating them? Making Matthew weaker."
Zelga got up and was almost afraid to answer. "Well…n-no, Brother." She said nervously.
The leader turned his head around to face her. "Is it that you're close to breaking them apart? That you've used your charm to gain Matthew's attention and is starting to take interest?" he asked.
Zelga knew he was building up to something, she could hear it in his devilish voice. "N-No Brother, it's proving more complicated than I Thou-"
"Or…is it that you've made absolutely no progress at all and they've basically announced that they're preparing to have a child of their own!" The leader said, sounding more furious with every word.
Zelga's ears dropped as she backed away slightly. "H-How did you know about that?" she asked, growing frightened.
The leader started walking towards her. "News travels fast, Sister. And if you've already forgotten, I never need anyone's eyes and ears when I gain Intel on my enemies!" he said before he seemingly calmed down. "Now from what you said, your task is to break up Matthew and Twilight so Matthew has nothing left to fight for, we take him out and get revenge for Thorn's death, correct?"
Zelga nodded. "Y-Yes…"
"So tell me…how do you plan on separating them when the thought of having a child is making their love STRONGER!" The leader yelled in pure anger as the green fire on his back shot up in roaring flames.
Zelga, terrified by this, dropped down onto her stomach and watched her brother's fury.
"I'm starting to question your capability to complete your assignment, Sister." The leader said before his flames died down. "You should be punished for your failures…but why should I wait for you to return to the mountain when your son will be reporting to me very soon? It would definitely save my time." He said sinisterly.
Zelga gasped. "No, please Brother, I'll do better. I have a plan, I've been planning it for some time now. I know it'll work, please, don't harm him." She begged.
"Your son is a thief, a liar and a murder, yet you beg me not to give him the punishment most ponies would say he deserves." The leader said before he spoke again. "Very well, you have one more chance to redeem yourself."
The leader then made his way over to the stairs that led to Celestia and Luna's old thrones. "But if you fail me again, you had better get back to the mountain quickly, otherwise your son will pay for your failure." He said darkly before the flames departed and he vanishing into the air.
Zelga was almost left breathless by this meeting, she looked down at the floor and breathed heavily as she thought about how she was going to execute her plan and succeed in her mission. She soon grew a fierce face. "Matthew will not win, I won't let him." she said before she turned around and stormed out of the castle and took off into the air.
"Matthew and Twilight will not stay together, even if I have to kill one of them to be sure." Zelga said evilly as she flew back towards Ponyville to begin her plan.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
Pony News: Not much to report these days, but I'll give it my best.
Season 5 is going very well, we've had some great episodes in this season so far, I especially liked last week's episode 'Amending Fences' and it sounds like this week will be the one were Luna has a nightmare, could this be the work of the mythical create known as a Hym? Maybe not seeing as how Big Jim has never heard of one, we'll just have to see what happens.
Poll: As you just ready, Twilight could 'possibly' be pregnant, that's where you come in. I'm letting you decide if a foal comes into our lives. You can vote on my profile, just go up to the top and click my user name.
Please remember to review or PM.
The next chapter will be up as soon as possible.
58. Chapter 58: Alone and Untrusted
Welcome back again, everypony.
I'm very pleased with how my last chapter went and I hope you enjoy this one just as much. I looked at the poll and the results are…
19 people want us to have a foal, and 1 person doesn't. I suppose we have a winner. Sorry to that one person, but this won't take the coolness out of the story, trust me, there's a lot in store *Chuckles deviously*
Just a warning, this chapter will contain heart-breaking and conflict scenes, so…yeah, you were warned.
I went to Greece for a week a while ago, it was good, not as good as my holiday lat year, but it was good. I'll tell ya something, I wish a never went on those trips to the museum, it was more focused on Greek History than Mythology, we also had to go to like 4 different places after that with a tour group, it was a complete nightmare full of sweat and boredom, the rest of the Holiday was fine after that day though.
Anyway, I'm probably boarding you with this. On to what you came here for, please enjoy.
Chapter 58: Alone and Untrusted
The Grey Horse-Shoe bar
It was raining outside the local night bar known as the Grey Horse-Shoe, I've never been here before, but there's a first time for everything, there's even a first time for things to go completely to hell.
Inside the bar was a few ponies, some old and some young, but they all had one thing in common, they all looked like they went through hell and back, they were tired and looked as if they didn't care for their messy appearance.
Especially me, I was sitting on one of the bar stools in front of the counter with a half empty cup of cider beside me. My head hung over it as tear after tear dripped off my face, making the wood on the counter damp. My mane and coat was all scruffy, like I'd been in a fight and lost.
All I could think about was the things that have happened in the last few hours, the heart-breaking things my friends said to me, the look on Twilight's face when she closed the door on me. It was all so painful to remember, my life was no officially over.
The bar-tender pony walked over to me, he had a dark-brown coat with a well-combed black mane and had an eye-patch over his left eye. He noticed my cub and looked at me noticed my cup. "Another round, kid?" he asked in his deep voice.
I couldn't bring myself to look up at him, I didn't want him to see my sad eyes. "Might as well." I said with a weak voice.
The bar-pony then used his magic to pick up my cup and refilled it with cider, he then gave it to me and I soon took a sip out of it. The bar-pony noticed my sad look and sighed. "So, is this the part where you tell me how you got in this mess?" he asked as he sat down.
I put my cup down and looked at him. "I'm sorry?" I asked.
"Usually new ponies that come in here always have a story to tell, mostly about how they ended up coming here. You're not the first one to come in with a face like that, half the sad-sacks in here right now had the same deal." The bar-pony said out-loud, gaining the attention of the so-called 'sad-sacks'.
The bar-pony noticed this and spoke out to them. "You can deny it all you want but in my eye, you're all sad-sacks!" he said, making the other ponies look away with more depression than they already had.
The bar-pony then returned his attention to me. "But unlike them, you're younger, so your story must be interesting. So go on, tell me everything." He said, preparing to hear my tale.
I managed to lift myself up before I began. "Well…everything bad that's happened was during the last few hours, but I think it started just the day before yesterday."
Yesterday: Ponyville Library
7 weeks ago, my wife, Twilight, had to go to the hospital because she was ill. That's when the doctor told us that she could be in the early stages of pregnancy, but nothing was set in stone yet.
That was until the last Saturday when we got the results back, it revealed that she was indeed pregnant. At first, we were a loss for words, didn't know if we were excited or worried, but we soon felt good about it, we wanted this.
Twilight felt scared half the time, she had read up about pregnancy and what the mares go through during the stages, but I told her I'd help her through them in any way I can, she felt much better after that.
After telling our friends, Pinkie Pie spent her whole day going around town telling everyone the news, after that we started to get countless visitors congratulating us, it was starting to get tiring until it finally came to an end.
I stood in the Library doorway as Cheerilee stood outside. "I still can't believe you and Twilight are having a little foal of your own, it seemed like only yesterday that you two were married." She said with a kind smile.
"Yeah, Twi thinks the same thing sometimes." I said, returning her smile.
"Anyway, it's getting late so I better get home. Again, congratulations to you and Twilight, I'm really happy for you both and I can't wait to see the little one when it comes." Cheerilee said before she turned around and walked away. "Goodnight, Matthew." She said.
"Night, Miss Cheerilee." I responded before I closed the door and turned to face the living room. "Twilight, that's the last of them." I called.
With that, Twilight came down the stairs that led to our room and walked over to me.
"I appreciate them for congratulating us, but did every pony in town have to come over and say it all in one day?" I asked as she reached me.
"Some of them could've left it until tomorrow, but I suppose they were just really excited for us." Twilight said with a sweet smile.
"Hmm, yeah, that could be it." I said before I walked over to the table with the horse-head statue and rested my head on it, I put my hooves on my head and sighed heavily.
Twilight walked over to me and placed her hoof on my back. "Something wrong, Matt?" she asked with slight concern.
I turned my head to face her and smiled. "I'm alright, I'm just tired…I'm so damn tired." I said as I rubbed my eye with my hoof.
Twilight gave me a sweet smile as she nuzzled her head against mine. "Let's go to bed, it's getting pretty late anyway." She said as she walked with me towards the stairs.
I smirked at her. "You're the who's pregnant, I should be saying that to you." I said as we made our way up the stairs.
Once we reached our bedroom, we went up to our bed and got into it. As Twilight lied down beside me, I couldn't take my eyes of her, she looked at me and noticed my stare. "What?" she asked.
"I still can't believe we're having our own child, it seems like only yesterday since we met." I said with a warm smile.
Twilight returned it. "I know, I still remember how we did meet. You came to the Library looking for someone to give you the tour." She said.
My smile grew as I remembered that day. "That reminds me, I should thank Applejack for telling me to find you for that tour." I said.
Twilight leaned forward and kissed my cheek. "I should thank her too, if she hadn't told you to come, we probably wouldn't be together right now." she said with a sweet smile.
"Maybe, but I have a feeling that we would've ended together anyway." I said as I placed my hoof on top of hers.
"Same here." Twilight said before she nuzzled her head beside my neck and closed her eyes, it wasn't long before she fell to sleep smiling.
I smiled at this before I wrapped my arm around her and fell to sleep in her warmth. A part of me still couldn't believe I was going to be a father, but the other part was overjoyed by it. I was starting to think things might finally be turning around for us.
That was until the next day.
The next day: Streets of Ponyville
After my usual morning routine, I went to Applejack's place and she set me up with my delivery cart. I then set out to do my job and deliver the Apple Family's goods around Ponyville.
An hour or so later, I finished my rout and returned the cart to Sweet Apple Archers, now I was making way back to the library through the streets of Ponyville.
Along the way, I noticed Applebloom, Scootaloo and Sweetie Bell in an open field just outside town. Applebloom and Scootaloo watched as Sweetie Bell bounced on a large trampoline, it looked like she was trying to perform jumping tricks while in the air.
As I approached them, Sweetie made a false move while jumping up and she nearly dropped to the grassy ground, which I stopped by catching her on my back. I looked turned my head around to look at her. "Are you alright, Sweetie Bell?" I asked in concern.
Sweetie Bell nodded. "Yeah, thanks Matt." she said before she climbed down off of me and the others came over to us.
I turned around to face them all of them. "What are you three up to this time?" I asked with a raised eye-brow.
"We're trying to get Cutie Marks for trampoline jumping." Scootaloo stated with a bright smile on her face.
"But it's apparently more difficult than it sounds." Sweetie Bell said with a small frown on her face.
"You tend to learn that with a lot of things." I said as I rubbed her small head with my hoof. "But what have we said about trying to get Cutie Marks for things that can hurt you?" I said as I placed my hoof on the ground.
"Try not to." the three of them said at the same time in groan tones as they rolled their eyes.
"That's right. Now, I'm not gonna stop you for doing your trampoline thing, but be careful on it, ok? Maybe put some safety mats around it so you'll have something soft to land on if you fall." I said.
"Yeah, maybe we should've thought of doing that first." Applebloom said as she rubbed the back of her neck with her hoof.
I smiled kindly down at them and placed hoof under Applebloom's chin and tilted her head up to make her look at my face. "Like I keep saying, you'll get your Cutie Marks eventually, all of you." I said gently.
Applebloom grew a small smile. "Thanks Matt." she said before she turned her head to face Sweetie Bell and Scootaloo. "C'mon Cutie Mark Crusaders! We gotta get some mats and place them around this here trampoline." She said.
Sweetie Bell then gasped with a large smile on her face. "Wait! That's given me an idea. We can get our Cutie Marks as Safety Instructors, we can probably make all of Ponyville safe." She said with slight excitement.
Scootaloo smiled at this. "Yeah, that's not a bad idea. Forget this trampoline stuff, this sounds much cooler." She said.
"Then let's go!" Applebloom said before they all shot off into town.
I smiled and shook my head. "Those three are a mystery wrapped around an enigma." I said before I walked back to the street and attempted to head home.
However. "Brave, kind, charming and good with kids. You're just every girl's dream, aren't you?" a familiar voice said behind me. I turned around to see Zelga walking up to me with a smirk on her face. "What are you doing out here all alone, Matt? Is Twilight slowing down too much to be with you in the streets now?" she said.
I shook my head. "No, she's just tired lately. I'm not sure if you've heard, but…she's pregnant…with my foal." I responded.
Zelga smiled with her teeth bearing, trying to hide her frustration. "Oh really? I had no idea, how lucky for the both of you." She said through her teeth.
"Yeah, I was just on my way home now. Maybe we can talk some more tomorrow, ok?" I said with a small smile.
Zelga remained silent as she gave me a sly grin. "Or…we could talk now, back at my place. I don't think you've ever been to my house since I came here, it'll give us time to talk about some stuff." She said as she walked around me with her tail brushing under my chin at one point.
I chuckled nervously and stepped away a little. "Umm…sorry Zelga, I'd like to, but I need to get back home before Twilight starts worrying about me." I said.
Zelga raised her eye-brow. "Did she even know how long you'd be out here?" she asked curiously.
I looked down at the floor before I looked back up to her. "Well, no, there's specific time for when my job ends. It could take an hour, could take two, it all depends on how much needs to be delivered." I explained.
Zelga's grin returned. "Well it sounds to me like she wouldn't know if you came to my place or not, she would think you were still working." She leaned her head towards me. "C'mon Matt, be bad for once." She whispered.
I smiled slightly with amusement over the sound her last few words, but part of me was unsure about it. "Well…I'm not sure if I can, it doesn't seem fair to Twilight."
"Don't worry, you'll be back for her in no time." Zelga said before she smirked. "I have fresh cider at my place, I've been saving it for you and the others if any of you ever dropped in." she said with a gentle voice.
With that, I gave her another small smile. "Well I suppose I can spare a few minutes." I said.
Zelga smiled at this. "That's good to here. I'll lead the way, wouldn't want you to get lost along the way." She said as she turned around and walked away with me following behind.
As we walked, Zelga grew a devious smile and chuckled in silent yet dark way.
If only I had noticed that, then I probably would've refused the offer again…and maybe I wouldn't be in this horrible mess.
A few minutes later: Zelga's cottage
After arriving at her cottage, Zelga showed me around and some of rooms were unbelievable, one of them even had a personal Jacuzzi bath.
The living room was a sight as-well, Zelga took me over to the sofa and I sat down on it while she went into the kitchen to get the cider she promised. She soon came back with two cups of cider and sat next to me.
As time went on, we started talking and laughing about things. Zelga took another sip from her cup as she started laughing slightly. "So you actually got locked inside your own bathroom when you were a kid?" she asked with an amused smile.
I nodded. "Yeah, the lock was all rusty and it got stuck when I tried to get out. I had to wait god-knows how long before I Dad came home and broke the door down. Guess where I was when that happened…taking cover inside the fecking bathtub! Hahaha!" I laughed.
Zelga laughed with me before she sighed. "Matt, you never cease to amuse me with stuff like this, do you ever have a normal day?" she asked.
I took another sip from my cup before I answered her question. "Only on rare days." I said before chuckling slightly.
Zelga giggled before she put her cup down and scooched over to me. "Matt, can I ask you something personal?" she asked.
Her words caught my interest and I gave her a nod. "Sure, what's on your mind." I asked before I took another sip of cider.
"Have you ever…turned your attention to another mare besides Twilight?" Zelga asked slowly giving me a sly smile.
Once I heard that, my eyes shot wide open as I gulped my mouth-full of cider down and looked at her. "No, I've never done that…at least, I don't think I have." I said as I thought back to when I first met Princess Cadence.
Zelga lied down beside me and rested her head on her front-hooves as her silky tail swayed left and right. "I'm not sure if you've noticed, Matt, but…I have been sending off messages, giving you hints, if you know what I mean." She said with her sly smile growing.
I thought for a moment before I finally realized what she was getting out, now this whole thing made sense. "Oh…umm…I'm sorry Zelga, but I'm married." I said as I stepped down off the couch and backed away slightly. "Besides, aren't you with Big Macintosh?" I asked.
Zelga jumped off the couch and walked towards me, with me backing away with each step she took. "He's getting boring, it was cute at first but now I want a stallion more…exiting." She said.
I yelped slightly as I back finally hit the wall. "Well there's loads of stallions in Ponyville, maybe I can help set you up. We'll go out into town, you find a stallion you like and we'll see what we can do." I said as she approached me.
"No need, already found one." Zelga said as she got closer to me.
Before she could get any closer, I quickly slipped away from the wall and back away towards the arm-chair. "But I'm married to Twilight, I'm not that kind of guy, I'll never be that kind of guy." I said firmly.
Zelga shook her head. "Matt, can't you see Twilight is just holding you back? You could be so much more fun if you just move on and let her go, you can finally be your own pony if you just forget about her." She stated as she took a step towards me.
I gave her a sharp glare. "That's not true, Twilight loves me and lets me do anything I want, I already am my own pony and she supports me. She's not holding me back like some sort of controlling maniac, she lets me do whatever I want. True, she has her firm side, but that's because she wants me to be safe when I'm making dangerous decisions, like when I went after Jersey Devil. If I had talked it over with her, she would've gone completely against it and I would've missed out on getting answers from him, but that would've been because wouldn't have wanted me to get hurt." I said, defending Twilight with every word in my body.
Zelga stared at me with wide eyes before I sighed. "If you think she's like how you described, then you don't know her at all…and I think it's best if we don't see each other anymore. I'm sorry Zelga." I said before I walked past her and went over to the front door.
In that instant, Zelga became angered by my refusal to leave Twilight and she turned to see me heading towards the door. "Well it doesn't matter anyway, after all, why would she still want to be with you after what you did?" she asked.
With that, I came to a halt and turned around to give her a confused look. "What I did to her? What do…what do you…ahh." I said as I suddenly became light-headed and dizzy, my vision began to turn blurry as Zelga approached me.
Zelga gave me a smug smirk. "You'll find out soon enough. I the meantime, I have a certain pony to talk to."
Those final words were all I heard before I collapsed down onto the floor and blacked out.
The next day
My eyes slowly opened as the sun filled the room I was in. I rubbed my hooves against the surface I was lying on and it felt soft and springy, I was obviously on a bed.
As I leaned up, my head spun and I was near to vomiting, but I managed to get a hold of it. I then looked around the room and noticed something that shocked me, it wasn't mine, I didn't recognize it. I tried to remember what happened and how I might've got here, but it all I could remember was talking to Applebloom and her friends, then I went over to Zelga's place and the rest is blank.
I looked up at the clock on the wall and saw it was very late in the day, it was half-way through the afternoon.
I slowly got out of the bed and left the room in a wobbly mess, I made my way through the house until I finally found the front-door. After I opened it, the sunlight stung my eyes as I walked outside to the front yard. I looked back at the house and saw that it was Zelga's cottage. I wondered why I was sleeping here and what happened after I arrived.
I decided to solve that mystery later and made my way to the town to go back to the library, she must've been worried sick about me.
Streets of Ponyville
After reaching town, I walked through the streets and looked around at everypony. When they noticed me, they just remained silent and looked at me with disapproval, as if I did something that offended them.
I kept going until I finally saw a friendly face, Rarity, she was coming out of her Boutique. She might be able to help me with this whole thing and maybe tell me why everypony is acting weird around me. I trotted up to her and smiled. "Rarity, you don't know how glad I am to see you. I need your help, something's happened and I don't-"
"Something certainly has happened, Matthew!" Rarity interrupted in a strange tone before turning around to face me with a glare in her eyes. "How could you do this? How could you do this to Twilight? She's your wife who's carrying your child and you think you could just…Grr!" she growled before she stormed past me.
I watched as she did and I tried to follow her. "Wait, what are you talking about? What did I-"
*SMACK!*
My sentence was forced to a sudden stop by Rarity spinning around and slapping me in the face with her hoof, making me stumble slightly as I placed my hoof on my now soar cheek. i stared at her, gobsmacked by her action.
Rarity stared right back, with a firm look and tears in her eyes. "You know very well what you did." She said before she turned around and walked away.
Part of me felt crushed by this. Rarity slapped me, one of my closest friends actually slapped me, and over what? What did I do to make her so angry? I soon noticed a few ponies staring at me and I quickly started walking away, trying to find some else who could help.
It wasn't long before I found Applejack and Rainbow Dash in the café. I quickly trotted over to their table and they both noticed me. "Applejack, Rainbow, you'll never guess what happened to me just now. I saw Rarity, tried to talk to her, and she goes off saying I did something to Twilight and she slapped me! Why the hell did she slap me?!" I asked.
Applejack and Rainbow Dash looked at each other before they returned their attention to me. "Well, by the sound of it…you got what you deserved, you two-timing worm!" Rainbow said with full anger.
"Rainbow, please, I'm sorry about what happened on my birthday, but can we forget about that for the moment and focus on what the hell's going on?" I said, beginning to feel upset by this whole thing.
"She's not talkin' about your birthday party, Matt, she's talking about what happened last night." Applejack said firmly before she sighed. "And I have to agree with her. I thought you'd never do something like this, Matt, but I suppose I can't be right all the time." She said.
I turned my head to face Applejack. "But…what did I do?" I said, feeling a lump in my throat.
"If we told you, you'd probably start saying you didn't do it." Rainbow Dash said before she flapped her wings and started flying into the air. "Sorry, but I think I'll skip the innocent act." She said before she took off into the cloudy sky.
As I watched her fly away, Applejack suddenly appeared beside me and looked down at the ground. "Seems she was right about you all along, Matt. I always thought she was just blowing all smoke and no fire. But when I heard about what you did…I had to face it." she said as she began to walk away.
My eyes began to water as I began to watch Applejack walk away. Suddenly, she stopped and turned her head slightly to look back at me. "Sorry Matt, but…our business doesn't take kindly to acts like the one you did. Guess what I trying to mean is…you're fired." She said with slight sadness before she continued to walk away.
I just stood there, feeling the life being sucked out of me. I sat down on the grass, feeling completely helpless. I looked down at the ground and tried to make sense of things. Did this have something to do with me being in Zelga's cottage? Zelga wasn't anywhere to be found inside the cottage, did I do something to her? Did I hurt her?
I felt a wave of doubt, I couldn't have done anything to Zelga, I surely would've remembered if I did. Plus, there were no signs of a struggle on my body, no bruises or anything like that. But whatever's going on, it has something to do with whatever happened at that cottage.
I part of me thought of going back to see if I could find any clues, but there was something more important to do first, I needed to check on Twilight. If she feels the same way as everyone else so far…I can't even think of what I'll do.
I stood back up and started trotting, but the thought of Twilight possible leaving me replaced it with galloping. I went as fast as I could, I even started using my wings to gain more speed.
But as I did, I was suddenly stopped by a wet object exploding against my head, causing me to tumble down. With a groan, I brought myself back up and the object fell off my head and onto the ground. I was surprised to see it was a piece of a broken balloon.
I looked around for the pony who threw it, but as I turned my head, I was met with another balloon smacking against my and covering me with water. After wiping the water off my eyes, I looked and saw Pinkie Pie up on the balcony of Sugar Cube Corner with a bunch of water-balloons beside her.
"Pinkie? What are you doing?" I asked in shock.
Pinkie responded by throwing another water-balloon down to me and I moved out of the way to avoid getting hit. "I'm giving you what you deserve, Mattie." She said as she picked another water-balloon up with her front-hooves and threw it down at me.
I moved out of the way again and spoke up to her. "Pinkie, I don't know what's going on, why are you and everyone else so angry with me?" I said.
"Nice try, but she said that he said you'd try and deny it. Well I'm not falling for it!" Pinkie said as she picked up another water-balloon and threw it down towards me.
Again, I moved away. "Who's she and he? Who's been saying things about me?" I asked, desperately wanting an answer.
At that moment, Pinkie covered her mouth with her hoof. "Oops, I wasn't supposed to tell you that. Later Mattie." She said before she went back into her room and left my question unanswered. Suddenly, Pinkie came back out and looked down at me. "By the way, I'm never throwing you another birthday party again." she said before going back inside.
There was a silent moment before Pinkie came back out once again. "Ok, I'll keep throwing you parties, but no cake!"
Pinkie went back inside, only to come back out a moment later. "Ok, there'll be cake, but no presents."
Went back inside and, you guessed it, came back out again. "Ok, you'll get presents, but only one…from all of us." she said before going back inside.
I waited a good few minutes in case she had anything else to add, she didn't. I looked down at the ground with an upset face before I started galloping my way to the library again.
I began to see the library up ahead, I started to gallop faster to get there quicker. But suddenly, something caught my eye in one of the allies, I stopped and looked down it to see a pony sitter there alone, it looked like she was crying. I looked over to the library before looking back at the weeping mare, I sighed before I walked into the ally and approached the mare.
As I got closer, her weeps started to sound familiar, it was only when I reached her did I finally recognized her. It was Fluttershy with her back turned to me, her hooves were on her face as she cried gently.
A part of me was scared to talk to her, all the others had yelled at me and hurt me, I didn't want to see Fluttershy do the same. However, Fluttershy was never the angry type, if there was any pony that could help me now, it was Fluttershy. "F-Fluttershy?" I said, trying to get her attention.
Fluttershy then stopped crying and removed her hooves from her face, she turned her head around to reveal her teary eyes and sad look, she remained silent as she sniffed and wiped her eyes with her hoof.
"Are you alright, Fluttershy? Why are you all alone here?" I asked.
Fluttershy remained silent as she looked down at the floor, her eyes began to tear up again until she couldn't bear to look at me and turned away.
"Fluttershy, please, talk to me." I begged.
With that, Fluttershy burst out into tears before she quickly flew away into the sky. "Fluttershy, wait! Please!" I called, but she disappeared into one of the high clouds.
I sighed with sadness before I turned around and walked out of the ally. I was scared of her yelling at me like the others, but she didn't say a single thing, somehow that was even worse. Obviously Fluttershy had heard whatever it is everypony's saying about me, now she doesn't even want to speak to me.
As I got back into the streets, I looked over to the library and gulped. Twilight was my only hope now, everyone else has abandoned me and I feel almost empty inside. I prayed for Twilight to make this better, like she always dose.
I began making my way towards the library with a heavy heart, hoping she wouldn't be as upset as the others.
This part is the hardest to talk about.
Library
After finally reaching the library's front-door, I reached my hoof for the doorknob and grabbed it, but the door wouldn't open and I stopped trying. I released the doorknob and breathed in as I did the only thing I could do, knock.
A moment later, the door opened slightly as I saw Twilight look through the gap. A chill went down my spine as I made the first move. "Twi? Are you alright?" I asked.
"M-Matt?" Twilight asked quietly before she opened the door all the way and we stood facing each other probably.
I looked at her face and my heart grew heavy over the sight of her red eyes and wet cheeks, she looked as though she had been crying for hours. "Twi, what's happened? Why are you so-" I said as I reached my hoof towards her face, but was stopped by a see-through pink wall between us. I pulled my hoof away before I placed both of them on the strange wall, it was like some sort of shield in the doorway and I couldn't get through. "Twilight, what's with the forcefield? How do I get in?" I asked.
Twilight gave me a sad look before she looked down at the floor. "…You don't…" she said quietly.
My ears dropped as I placed my hooves back down at the ground and stepped away. "W-What?" I asked, almost struggling to talk.
Twilight looked back up at me. "I'm sorry Matt, but…but I can't see you at the moment. I have a few things to think over." She said.
I instantly realized why she was doing this. "No Twi…no, please, not you too." I said as I felt another lump in my throat. "What happened? Why is everypony so angry with me?" I asked.
Twilight sniffed. "I should be the one asking you what happened…between you and Zelga the other day." she said.
"Twi, nothing happened with me and Zelga yesterday, she wanted to talk about something and I stopped by her place for a bit, I don't remember anything after that." I stated in my own defence.
Twilight gave me a firm face. "Really? Because everyone keeps saying that you stayed there…all day and night. Is it true? Did you…did you cheat on me with Zelga?" she asked, becoming more sad with each word.
I shook my head fast. "No, of course I didn't! How could you think I'd do something like that?" I asked, refusing to believe I did something so despicable.
"…Because…because of the baby. You've been scared ever since we found out I was pregnant, I've noticed it a few times. They say you're not interested in me anymore, that you think I'm not exciting enough anymore." Twilight said, turning her head away as tears began to swell up in her eyes.
I couldn't believe all these lies I was hearing. "Twi, I'd never think that way about you. You're the most exciting and precious thing that's ever happened to me. And why would I lose interest in you over the baby? I want this baby as much as you do. How could you believe all this?" I asked.
A tear ran down Twilight's cheek as she forced herself to face me. "I'm sorry Matt, but how do I know anything you say is true? They said you'd try and deny everything." She said.
"Who did?" I asked.
"I don't know, Applejack told me everything, I have no idea where she heard it from." Twilight said.
I gently placed my hoof on the forcefield. "Please Twi, let's try and fix this, we always try to fix stuff like this. None of these things are true, someone is spread a lie about me." I said, hoping she would at least try and help.
But my hopes died when she looked down with her ears dropping. "I'm sorry Matt, but…you can't come in. If I were you, I'd stay somewhere else for the time being." She said.
Tears filled my eyes. "Twi…please…don't do this. I need you." I said with a chocked up voice.
Twilight started crying before she used her magic to slowly close the door. "I'm so sorry." She said before the door closed all the way, locking me out.
I placed me hooves on the door. "Twi?...Twi?!" I said loudly as I banged my hoof against the door. "Twilight please! You have to trust me! Please…don't abandon me." I said as tears ran down my face and my body slid down to the ground, I sobbed in front of the door as everything around me fell apart.
I lost my job, my friends, and now I may have just lost the love of my life. I couldn't believe any of this was happening, it had to be another nightmare, soon I'd wake up in my own bed with Twilight beside me, but I knew this was really happening.
After almost half-an-hour later, it was starting to get dark and I was still lying hopelessly in front of the Library's front-door. I soon pulled myself up and looked at the door, it was obvious that Twilight wasn't going to open the door again. So after taking one final look at my home, I turned and made my way to the cottage nearest to the Library.
Just then, I felt a drop of water drip down onto my nose, followed by another on my back and two more on the ground next to me. Then came the thunder and a shower of rain purred down on top of me.
I rushed over to the front-door of the cottage and knocked a few times, but I got no answer. My body quivered over the cold rain as I walked away from the cottage and looked around for something to take shelter in, that's when I found a cardboard box next to the trash.
I went over to it and crawled inside it. I sat down inside the dry box as I looked out at the Library, knowing Twilight was somewhere inside it, she may even be watching me right now from one of the windows. I felt sadness take me over again. "Goodnight Twilight…I love you." I said before I lied down and closed my eyes to try and get some sleep, which was difficult with the thunder and lightning making me jump at some points.
The next day
And that brings us to earlier this morning, I woke up feeling close and some of the mussels in my body ached from the position I was lying in.
I dragged myself out of the box and stood up before looking over to the Library, once I did, everything came back to me. I remembered how my friends treated me, I remembered Twi's face as she closed the door on me, it was all so painful to remember.
I knew I had to make this right, there had to be someone who could help me. Then I remembered what Twilight said about Zelga, no one will believe me if I said nothing happened, but maybe they'll believe me if Zelga backed me up. Feeling a small speck of hope, I took off into the air and flew across the town to find Zelga.
It wasn't long before I saw her in the market, I dove down to the ground and landed behind her. "Zelga, thank Celestia I found, I really need your help." I said.
Zelga turned around to face me and acted surprised. "Why? What's wrong Matt?" she asked.
"Something really bad has happened, someone's going around saying that I cheated on Twilight with you the other day. Everyone's mad at me and Twilight's thrown me out the Library, I need your help to clear this whole thing up." I said.
Zelga tapped her chin with her hoof before she spoke. "I suppose I could, but I don't think I will." She said with a raised eye-brow.
I was slightly surprised by this. "What? Why not?" I asked curiously.
"Because this is what you get for being so naïve. If you don't recall, I gave you the chance to dump Twilight and be with me, but you turned me away. I've always thought she would do something like this, and now it's finally happened." Zelga said as she began to walk around me. "I don't know who starting this rumour, but I won't have any part in fixing it. You want to done so bad, do it yourself." She said.
"Please Zelga, I've lost almost everything, you need to help me." I said, almost begging.
"Sorry Matt, but this is your problem not mine." Zelga said before she turned and walked away. As I watched her, she suddenly stopped and turned her head around to face me. "However, if you don't want to live life alone, you can always be with me. It's your choice, be with me or be alone, that's all I gotta say." She said before she continued walking.
I couldn't believe what I was hearing from her. She's always been like a friend to me, but now when I need her most, she abandons me. I felt the last bit of hope I head wash away before I sat down on the grass and thought about what she said, I loved Twilight too much to be with someone else, but I didn't want to be alone either.
I sighed sadly, unable to even stand, I saw no point in doing anything anymore, I didn't even see a reason to leave the spot I was sitting in right now, it all seemed pointless. I needed to get out of Ponyville, I needed to clear my head and set things straight.
I stood up and walked through the streets of my once beloved town until I left. I made it halfway up the dirt road until I found this old bar. I figured I could use a drink right about now, so I walked over to it and went inside.
Present time
"And the rest you already know." I said as I placed my elbow on the counter and rested my chin on my hoof.
"Hmm, well that's quite a story, kid." The bar-pony said as he used his magic to clean an empty glass with a cloth. "Best I've heard in this line of work." He said.
Everyone else in the bar heard him and looked over to him like they did before. "What? This kid has a real problem! You guys are just wining over things no-one else cares about!" the bar-pony said to the entire bar, making them look away in depression again.
The bar-pony then returned his attention to me. "Now kid, I'm not an expert on this kinda thing, but who knows…maybe this'll get fixed somehow. If not by itself, then by somepony who knows the truth about what happened." He said.
I grew a smile for a second before it went away just as fast. "There's no-one who knows what really happened, the only pony who dose has abandoned me…some friend she turned out to be." I said before I took the last gulp of my cider until it was gone.
"How about another round? On the house." The bar-pony said, earning a silent nod from me. He then looked down the counter before he looked back at me. "I'll get it in just a moment, there's another customer I need to tend." He said before he walked away.
I continued to stare down at the counter as I listened in on what the bar-pony was saying. "Hey darling, what can I get ya?" he asked.
"Nothing, thank you. Listen, I'm looking for my husband, a friend of mine said he'd be here, have you seen him? His name is Matthew." A familiar female voice said.
Recognizing the voice all too well, I looked over to them and saw Twilight standing in front of the counter. "Twilight?" I said, gaining her attention.
Twilight looked over to me. "Matt." she said before she rushed over to me. "Matt….I need to talk to you, it's about what happened yesterday." She said.
"Of course it is, it's the talk of the town." I said before I turned to face my empty glass again. "Twi…if you're here to say you don't want to be with me anymore, then…I get it." I said, feeling pain in my heart.
Twilight took a step closer. "No, no, no, Matt. I didn't come down here to do something like that, I'm here to bring you home." She said as she placed her hoof on the side of my body.
"I don't have a home anymore, Twi…I don't have a job…I don't have any friends. By now, the whole town would probably like to see me leave on the train." I said in a sad tone.
"Matt, that's not true." Twilight said before she walked around to my other side to try and see my face better. "I was wrong, Matt, we all were. We should've known you wouldn't have done such a thing, I should've known you wouldn't have done such a thing. Somepony came to the Library this morning and told me what really happened at Zelga's place, she swears to it. I told our friends what she said and they think the same way, they feel really bad about what they did to you, and so do I."
I listened, but I didn't know if I wanted to respond. "Matt, please…look at me." Twilight said with slight desperation in her voice.
With that, I slowly turned my head around to face her. Twilight gave me a look of pure sorrow before she gently placed her hoof on my cheek. "I'm so sorry…I should never have doubted you like I did, I should've trusted you. I love you, Matt." She said with a small amount of tears swelling in her eyes. "Please…come home."
I looked into her eyes for a moment and saw real sadness in them, placed my hoof over her's on my cheek before I shed another tear. "…I love you too, Twi." I said as I began to choke up.
Twilight managed to grow a smile before she hugged me tightly around my neck. I wrapped my arms around her body and rubbed my head against her neck. "Zelga knew…Zelga knew nothing happened, but she refused to help me…you were right about her, Twi…you were right all along and I didn't listen." I said as more tears ran down my face.
"We'll take care of her later." Twilight said before she pulled away and looked at my face. "But right now, all I care about is getting you home." She said in a sweet tone.
I wiped the tears from my eyes and nodded. "Alright, lets go." I said before I got down from the stool I was sitting on and I looked back at the bar-pony. "Thanks by the way, for listening." I said with a thankful smile.
"Anytime kid." The bar-pony said as he took my empty glass with his magic and placed it in the sink.
Twilight and I then left the bar, leaving the other ponies with their own problems. The bar-pony saw them watching us and did what he usually did. "Don't get your hopes up, that only happens rarely in my bar!" he said loud enough for everyone to hear, making the ponies all depressed yet again.
Half-an-hour later: Library
Twilight and I approached the front door of the library and she opened the door with her magic. She had told me that Spike, Jeff and Peewee were going to stay with the Cakes until this whole matter had been resolved.
When we entered the front room, Twi gave me a sweet smile as she rubbed the tears off my face with her hoof. "Let's get you in the shower. Once that's done, we'll fix everything that's happened." She said.
"But Twi, I need to ask you a few things. Who sent you to the bar? Who told you what happened at Zelga's?" I asked.
"I promise I'll answer all your questions, but you seriously need to wash." Twilight said before she escorted me to the bathroom and I went in alone.
I went into the shower and washed myself real good. It felt nice having warm water raining down on me, washing all the filth and cleaning my body, it felt like being refreshed. Once I was done, I got out and dried myself with a towel before leaving the room and re-entering the living room.
I saw Twilight sitting in front of the table with the wooden horse-head on it and I came up from behind her. From there, I surprised her by wrapped my arms around her body and hugging her. "Thanks Twi, for trusting me again…I was scared that I lost you." I said lovingly.
Twilight smiled warmly at this. "I was scared that I lost you, I'm glad you're back." she said before she moved away and turned around to face me. "We'll make up for it later, but right now…you want answers." She said.
With that said, I nodded. "Yeah...you said somepony saw what really happened at Zelga's and then told you about it, who was it?" I asked, curious to find out.
Twilight remained silent as she walked over to one of the other doors and looked back at me. "This…may be a bit of a shock." She said before she used her magic to open the door and reveal the mystery pony behind it.
I was indeed shocked by who I saw. "Applebloom?" I said in surprise as Applebloom stepped into the room, she had a nervous smile on her face as she stopped in front of me. "You saw what happened at Zelga's place?" I asked.
Applebloom nodded. "I saw you and Zelga talkin' after me and my friends got back into town. I remembered how Applejack kept saying how she wasn't somepony to hang out with, but I wanted to see if she really was…you know…bad, so we decided to follow ya. We watch ya both through one of the windows and I saw ya movin' away from Zelga, ya looked like you were tellin' her off and went towards the door, but you collapsed before you could get there." she explained.
I was surprised by this, I didn't even know she was spying on us at the time. "But…what happened after that?" I asked.
"Zelga dragged ya into the bedroom and left out the backdoor, I dunno where she went after that, none of us do." Applebloom said.
"Applebloom heard all the things that happened to you yesterday and came over here straight away to sort things out, she told me everything that happened." Twilight said as she walked up beside Applebloom. "After that, I left straight away to find you. Moleyair told me where you'd be, that's how I found the bar."
After hearing all this, I silently walked up to Applebloom and hugged her gently. "Thank you so much, Applebloom. You saved everything. If our baby turns out to be a girl, I hope she'll be like you." I said with a warm smile on my face.
Applebloom hugged me back. "It's ok, Matt." she said before she went wide-eyed with excitement. "Hey, maybe I could get my Cutie Mark in bein' a detective!" she said.
I grew an amused smile. "Let's not get ahead of ourselves, sweetheart." I said before I pulled away and released her from my hug.
Just then, we heard a knock on the door and Twilight walked over to answer it. "That must be the others." She said before she opened the door to reveal the rest of the Mane 6 behind it. They all came inside with looks of sorrow, even Rainbow Dash looked disappointed in herself.
I watched as they all stopped in front of me. "Guys…what are you all doing here?" I asked, trying not to get too worried about this.
They all stayed silent until Applejack stepped up to me and took her hat off with her hoof. "Matt…Twilight came to us earlier today and told us what Applebloom said and…well…we honestly can't tell ya how deeply sorry we are, otherwise we'd be here for days. We said real horrible things and we don't know if anything we say will make it right, but…can you ever forgive us?" She asked as she held her hat against her chest.
I then gave them a gentle smile. "Sure I can." I said before a thought came to me. "But does this mean I'm still fired?" I asked.
Applejack smirked. "Are you kiddin'? I expect ya to be at work first thing on Monday, Mr Delivery Pony." She said as she came up to me and rested her elbow on one of my shoulders.
But then something unexpected happened, someone over kissed my cheek softly. I turned my head around to see Rarity. "That was my way of apologizing for that horrible slap I gave you. I'm sorry if I hurt you, I was just upset." She explained.
I nodded. "It's ok Rarity, it didn't hurt so bad." I said as I felt Applejack remove her elbow from my shoulder.
Suddenly, I was tackled to the floor by Pinkie Pie who was now hugging me tightly. "I'm sorry for all those water-balloons I threw at you, I should really learn to use my 'water-balloon throwing skills' for good instead of bad." She stated with an upset look on her face.
I would've hugged her back, but she was hugging my arms against my body. "It's alright Pinkie, none of them hit me…but can I expect one of your famous parties at my next birthday?" I asked, remembering what she said yesterday.
Pinkie then pulled her head off my chest and looked my straight in the eyes. "You can expect one of my parties tomorrow! And maybe the day after that! Oh, and maybe the day after that! Then the next day, and the next day, and the next day." she said in repeat.
Eventually, Twilight used her magic to pry her off me and move her aside so Rainbow Dash could approach me. We both stared at each other, neither of us knowing what to say. But surprisingly, Rainbow made the first move. "So umm…I suppose this means you didn't cheat on Twilight with Zelga." she said.
I nodded. "Yeah." I responded.
"Then I suppose I should say…*sigh* I'm sorry for what I said yesterday…I'm sorry I've been acting like a complete jerk to you in the past few weeks. After what happened between us on your birthday, I just felt like…you were willing to kiss almost any mare and not care if you were married to Twilight, I felt she deserved better than that." Rainbow Dash said as she looked away with her ears low.
I understood what she was saying and was quick to respond. "But Rainbow, the only pony I was willing to kiss other than Twilight was Luna, and that was just to help her get over me. When we kissed at my party, I wasn't as willing, you heard me try and get out of it. You're the one who kissed me Rainbow, not the other way around." I stated.
After hearing that, Rainbow Dash's eyes grew slightly wide. "Umm…no I didn't." she said while shifting eyes back and forth.
"Rainbow Dash!" Rarity said with a firm tone.
Rainbow Dash rolled her eyes as she scoffed. "Ok, I kissed you! There, everypony happy?" she admitted before she sat down and crossed her arms. "But it still didn't feel right." She said.
I could see by the look on her face that she was upset, things like that are always noticeable on ponies like her. I could also read her like a book, I think she was more upset that her first kiss was forced onto me than anything else. I tried to think of a way to make it up to her until I came up with something. "Say Rainbow, I think I may know a way to make this better." I said with a small smile.
"Yeah? How?" Rainbow asked, still facing away from me.
I then continued. "Because of my, umm…big reputation so-to-speak, I have a lot of big connections, including the Wonderbolts. Now if you want, I could go to Cloudsdale and ask if you could hang out with them for a day or so and-"
But before I could finish, Rainbow Dash spun her head around to look at me with a large smile on her face. "You'd do that for me?! Really?!" she said loudly with excitement.
I stared at her wide-eyed as I nodded silently.
"Matt, if you pull that off, I'll personally forget everything that happened at your birthday, it all would've never happened." Rainbow Dash said with the large smile still on her face.
I smiled at this. "I'm sure I can pull it off…so, are we cool again?" I asked as I lifted my hoof up to her.
Rainbow Dash looked at it and smirked before she gave me a hoof-bump. "We're totally cool." She said before we both placed our hooves back on the floor.
After that, I noticed Fluttershy beside me with tears in her eyes. I was about to say something to her, but she stopped me by hugging me tightly and weeping into my chest. "I'm so sorry, Matt, I'm so sorry." She cried as her tease damped my chest fur.
I gently stroked her soft pink mane as I smiled sweetly down at her. "It's alright, Fluttershy…it's alright." I said as she continued to weep.
At that moment, Applejack spoke up. "Well now that we're all friendly again, maybe now's a good time to focus on the problem with all of this." She said with a serious look.
We all drew our Applejack. "What do you mean, Applejack?" I asked curiously.
"If nothin' happened between you and Zelga at her place, then somepony out there is spreadin' a rumour around Ponyville." Applejack explained.
"A rather nasty rumour at that." Rarity added.
At that moment, Rainbow Dash shot into the air. "I say we find the pony who started it and show 'em what happens when they spread lies about our friend!" she said in a firm tone.
"Couldn't have said it better myself, Rainbow." Applejack said before she looked at the rest of us. "But we can't just go around town asking everypony if they were the ones that started it, we need to know who it is we're lookin' for." She stated.
"But that could be anypony in town." Applebloom said, making it sound almost impossible to find out who it was.
"What we need to do is find out who heard it first, then find out who told them." Twilight said before she went on to add. "I heard it from Applejack."
"I heard it from Rainbow Dash." Applejack said.
"But I heard it from Rarity." Rainbow Dash said as she pointed her hoof down at Rarity.
"And I heard it from Pinkie Pie." Rarity said as she did the same as Rainbow and pointed her hoof at Pinkie.
"Well I heard it from Bon Bon." Pinkie Pie responded.
Twilight gave her a confused look. "Bon Bon? Who'd she hear it from?" she asked.
Pinkie Pie shrugged her shoulders. "I dunno." She stated.
With that, Twilight looked over to the only pony who hadn't said anything, Fluttershy. "So who did you hear it from, Fluttershy?" she asked.
As everyone else turned their attention to her, Fluttershy stayed silent as she made a high-pitched whimper before covering her eyes with her hooves and cried into them. Seeing this, I walked up beside her and placed my hoof on her back gently. "It's alright, Fluttershy, you can tell us." I said with a kind smile.
Fluttershy removed her hooves from her face and looked at me with her teary eyes. "I…I didn't hear it from anyone." She said.
"But then how did you know about it? You obviously knew." I said as I gently rubbed her back.
Fluttershy wiped a tear from her eye with her arm. "I mean…I…I didn't hear it from anyone, because….because I'm the one that started it! *Cries hard*" she said loudly before she started crying over my shoulder.
Everyone gasped over this shocking reveal while I was just stunned. If any of us were to be responsible for this, I would've expected it from Rainbow Dash or something, but Fluttershy?...It was almost hard to take in.
I continued to rub her back with my hoof while her read rested over my shoulder. "Fluttershy…what do you mean you're the one that started it? Is this the reason why you didn't talk to my yesterday?" I asked.
Fluttershy sniffed as she moved her head back away from my shoulder to look at my face and nodded. "I was too ashamed of myself to say anything. I'm sorry Matt, I'm so sorry…I had no choice." She said.
Everyone started to listen carefully when she said that. "What do you mean you 'had no choice'?" I asked curiously.
"A-Angel…she has Angel…she said if I didn't start that rumour, she would…" Fluttershy said as she began to choke up and cry again.
"Who? Who has Angel? Who told you to do this?" I asked, desperately wanting a name.
Fluttershy managed to look at all of us one more time, seeing that we were all ready to hear what she had to say next. She turned her head to face me before she managed to say a name, a name that wasn't surprising to most of us.
Later that day: Zelga's cottage
I pounded my hoof against Zelga's front door in anger, Twilight and the others were standing behind me waiting for an answer. But this wasn't our first stop, we dropped Applebloom off back at Sweet Apple Arches before we went to the Town Hall to bring the Mayor with us.
Twilight turned her head around to face the Mayor. "Thanks for coming with us to do this, Mayor." She said.
The Mayor looked at her and nodded. "Of course, if what you're saying is true, then Zelga can't be allowed to get away with it. Once we're done here, I'll make a full announcement to the town's folk and clear Matthew's name." she said.
I turned around. "Thanks Mayor, that means a lot. I'll be glad once this is all over, but there's still one problem in our way." I said calmly.
"What's that?" Applejack asked curiously.
"We won't be able to get that far if Zelga doesn't answer the bloody DOOR!" I yelled in anger as I continued to pound against the front door of the cottage.
"Maybe she's not home." Pinkie Pie said.
"And maybe we don't care." Rainbow Dash said before she walked up beside me and moved me aside with her hoof. "Step aside, junior, let momma handle this." She said.
With that, she spun around and gave the door a strong buck. The door broke and swung open, smacking against the wall hard and making us all tense up.
As we entered the home, Twilight walked up beside Rainbow Dash. "Was that really necessary?" she asked with a raised eye-brow.
Rainbow turned to face her with a firm look. "Hey, you wanted to get in here today, didn't ya? We don't have time to wait for her to come home." She said.
"I'd say that was gonna be a long wait. Check this out." Applejack said as she looked through the entrance to the front room.
We all walked over to her and looked into the room only to see that it was completely empty. It was filled with furniture the other day, and now there's nothing but dust and scraps of cotton.
We entered the room, our hoof-steps echoing through the wooden floor, looking around at the nothingness within. It was as if she was never here, that nothing was ever here. "What happened here? Where'd everything go? There was an entire living room here the other day, how can it all suddenly be gone?" I asked out-loud as I continued to look around the room.
"Maybe Zelga caught on to what we were up to and flew the coop." Twilight said as she walked up beside me.
I turned my head to face her. "She couldn't have left, not that fast anyway. A single Pegasus wouldn't have been about to shift everything out, it would've taken a few ponies." I said to her.
"Well she got everything outta here somehow because there is nothin' left in here." Applejack said as she walked over to the kitchen and looked inside. "Or in here." she added.
"But where's Angel?" Fluttershy asked as she began to panic. "What if she took him with her? What if he's gone forever?" she said before she started to tear up again.
I turned around to face her. "Don't worry Fluttershy, it's a big cottage, he's probably here somewhere, we just need to find out where she might've been keeping him." I said, trying to reassure her.
For the next few minutes, we searched the cottage from top to bottom.
Applejack and Rainbow Dash searched the kitchen.
Rarity and Pinkie Pie searched upstairs
And myself, Twilight, the Mayor and Fluttershy searched the rest of the downstairs area.
Every room was completely empty, I don't know how Zelga did it, but she got herself and everything else out of her in a hurry. My only explanation is that she did this on the day I saw her last, I don't know why she would leave so fast, but she did.
We all gathered at beside the staircase to share information. "Find anything in the kitchen?" I asked.
Applejack and Rainbow Dash shook their heads. "Nothin', not even any kitchen stuff." Applejack stated.
I turned my head to face Pinkie Pie and Rarity. "Anything upstairs?" I asked,
Like the others, they shook their heads. "No, I'm afraid not. I thought I heard Angel up in the attic, but it was just a bat." She said before she looked at Pinkie. "By the way, do I have a cobweb in my hair?" she asked, sounding more concerned for her hair than anything else.
Pinkie stretched her head up to look down at Rarity's hair, she then brought it back down and gave her a small smile. "No, it's clean." She said.
"Thank goodness, I just washed it this morning." Rarity said as she flicked the back-curl of her mane with her hoof.
I then cleared my throat to regain their attention. "*Clears throat* If we can get back to the matter at hand." I said before I looked around at everyone. "We still need to find Angel."
Just then, Fluttershy's ears perked up. "Wait…do you hear that?" she asked as she looked around.
"Hear what, darling?" Rarity asked.
Fluttershy ears picked up a faint squeal and eyes were drawn to the wall under the stair case. "I hear Angel! But it sounds like he's behind this wall." She said as she placed her front-hooves on the wall.
I walked up to the wall and tapped my hoof against it. "Is it fake?" I asked out-loud as I tried to listen to any hollow sounds, but there weren't any, it was a solid wall. "Are you sure you're hearing right?" I asked Fluttershy.
Fluttershy turned her head to face me and nodded. "Yes, I know Angel's cries when I hear them, he's behind this wall. But how do we get to him?" she asked.
Twilight then stepped forward. "Hold on, I have a spell that will allow us to see through the wall." She said before he horn glowed and zapped the wall with her magic, the wall glowed before we were able to see through it like glass.
We were all surprised to see that behind the wall wasn't another wall or a hidden room, but instead another staircase going downward. Twi and I looked at each other before we look back at the staircase.
Twilight used another spell to make the entire wall disappear, allowing us access to the staircase. With me in front, we went down the stairs to see another empty room, inside it were a bunch of wooden shelves and an empty caldron in the centre of the room.
As we looked around the room, we suddenly heard a high-pitched squeal, we all looked to where it came from and saw Angel in a cage on one of the top shelves, his paws grabbed the bars and shook the cage to try and get out.
"Angel!" Fluttershy gasped before she flew up to the cage and tried to open it, but she couldn't. "I can't get the lock open!" she said in a panicky voice before she brought the cage down to us.
Twilight then stepped forward again before she lowered her head down to the cage. "Stand back Angel, I'll get you out of there." she said to the trapped bunny.
Angel nodded before she moved back against the back of the cage. Once he did that, Twilight used her magic like a blowtorch to burn the lock apart. When she was done, Twi used her magic again to open the cage and pull Angel out.
As soon as he was out, Fluttershy swooped in and hugged Angel lovingly in her arms. "Angel! I was so worried about you!" she said before she started kissing his small head repeatedly. Angel smiled as she did, if he could thump his leg right now, he'd be doing it.
I then walked up beside Twilight and looked down at the cage. "So Zelga kidnapped Angel, used him to force Fluttershy to spread that lie about me, took off afterwards and left Angel trapped down here…what the hell kind of pony dose this?" I asked without taking my eyes off the cage.
"The kind none of us should've ever trusted." Twilight responded before she turned to face the Mayor. "Miss Mayor, I know Zelga isn't here to confess all this, but you have to believe me when I say this is all true, Zelga tried to turn the town against Matt by forcing Fluttershy to spread that rumour." She said, hoping she'd believe her.
"It's alright, Miss Sparkle, I believe you. This secret room, Fluttershy's bunny in the cage, the suddenly empty house, it all points to her being up to something." The Mayor said before she looked over to me. "I'll have the word spread right away, Matthew. Soon the whole town will know the truth." She assured me.
With that, she turned and went back up the stairs to leave the cottage, Fluttershy followed her in the air while still holding Angel in her arms. "Don't worry, Angel. As soon as we get home, I'll brush you, puff your tail, and make you your faverate Sunday recipe." She said with a soft smile on her face.
As we all followed them, I looked back at the secret room and felt a cold shiver down my spine. "What do you think she was doing down here anyway?" I asked, expecting someone to answer.
That someone turned out to be Applejack. "I dunno, that girl was more mysterious than a racoon gatherin' in a haystack. But whatever she was doin', I can't say it would-a been good." she said before she continued to go up the stairs.
After giving the room look, I turned and followed everyone out. We didn't even bother to seal the room back up, we just wanted to get out of the cottage before anything unexpected happened. As the Mayor made her way to the Town Hall, we all stood outside the cottage to talk. "Sorry we didn't find Zelga, Matt, we could've really stuck it to her." Rainbow Dash said as she hovered in mid-air.
"It's alright, besides, she couldn't have gone far with all the luggage she took. Maybe you and some of the other Pegasi can catch up with her, if you're fast enough that is." I said, not really expecting her to do it.
But I was proven wrong by the smirk that appeared on her face. "Challenged accepted!" she said before she shot off into the clouds and disappeared into the sky, most likely to Cloudsdale.
We all watched her until she was out of site before returning our attention to each other. "Ok…well, I suppose that deals with that problem, but what about the damage Zelga? The entire town wants me out, or worse!" I said as I began to panic a little.
Twilight placed her hoof on my shoulder and I turned my head to face her. "The Mayor said she'd handle that. By the time this day is up, they'll know the truth and everyone will be your friends again." she said with a reassuring smile.
I smiled back. "Yeah, you're probably right…as usual. Thanks Twi." I said before I looked at everyone else. "And thanks for all of this guys, I'm really glad you all came back to me." I said.
"Sure we did, you're our friend after all." Pinkie Pie said as she hopped up and down on the spot.
"True, we were a little upset by what we heard, but we didn't know it was a lie at the time. Once we did, we felt awfully bad about everything we said and…we just had to make it right." Rarity said with all honesty.
I smiled warmly at them. "And you did. I thought everything was lost, but it's all come back now…my home, Twilight, you guys, everything. I owe you all a lot for this." I said.
Applejack shook her head. "No ya don't…you owe Applebloom a lot for this, if it weren't for her, none of us would-a known the truth." She said with a small smirk.
I thought about it for a moment and realised she was right, Applebloom was the one who saw what happened and she told Twilight everything, which led to her telling the others. Applebloom saved my marriage, my friendship, everything I care about was saved by that one filly. "My god, you're right. Huh…its surprising how someone so small can do big things." I said.
"Yeah, it is." Fluttershy said as she stroked Angel head with her hoof. "How are you gonna repay her?" she asked curiously.
"I'll think of something." I said before I looked at Twilight. "Twi, do you think we can go home? I don't really want to be out here while the whole town still hates me." I said, starting to feel a little on-edge about still be out in public.
Twilight nodded. "Sure thing." she said before she looked at everyone else. "Do you all wanna come with us?" she asked.
Fluttershy shook her head. "I would usually, but I just wanna get Angel home, I think he's been through enough." She said as she hugged him again.
"The rest of us would come too, but I'm sure we all have stuff to do back at our own homes." Applejack said before she smirked. "Besides, I'm sure you two have a lot of making up to do, right?" she said.
Twilight and I looked at each other and grew nervous once we got what she said. We looked back at them and tried to think of a response. "Umm…well, I…there's been a lot of drama lately and we…ummm." Twilight said, trying come up with something to say.
All I came out with was. "What she said." As I pointed my hoof at her.
Everyone chuckled at our struggle. "No need to say anything, we'll just let you two get home and work stuff out." Rarity as she walked away to go back to her house.
"Catch ya later." Applejack said as she followed her.
"Bye Mattie, maybe tomorrow you won't be so scared to show you face in public. But if you are, come to my place, I'll give you the best disguise ever." Pinkie Pie said as she hopped after them.
"It's not just a moustache, is it?" I asked with a raised eye-brow.
"Lucky guess!" Pinkie called back as she continued to head back to her place.
Fluttershy was the only pony who left without saying anything, she must've been too concerned for Angel to do so. Knowing her so well, I didn't blame her, she loves that bunny more than anything.
Once they were gone, I turned to face Twi. "So, walking or teleporting?" I asked.
Twilight thought for a moment before she answered. "I'd rather walk, it's easier." She said with a gentle smile.
I gave her a single nod. "Alright then, lets go." I said before we both made our way back home to the library.
That night: Library
Twilight and I had spent the rest of the day in the safety of the Library, I didn't want to be outside until I knew it was safe to go out in public again.
During that time, Rainbow Dash had gathered up a group of Pegasi and searched the land for Zelga. But from her report, they haven't found her yet, but they'll keep looking until tomorrow night, then we'll have to assume she got away somehow.
From the Library, I saw all the ponies gathering at the Town Hall, the Mayor must've been informing them of the Zelga's attempt to set me up and turn them all against me. Hopefully by tomorrow morning, everyone will know the truth and everything will go back to normal.
Soon, nigh-time came and me & Twilight were now in bed getting ready to end this tiring day. I fell down on the bed with my head landing softly on the pillow and I groaned. "*Groan* Jesus…what a day." I said to myself.
Twilight, lying beside me, turned her head to look at me. "Matt, my name is Twilight, not…what did say? Jesus?" she said with a confused look.
I looked at her. "No Twi, that name's just used as a saying, like 'Oh Jesus, I can't believe this'. You see, Jesus is the name of…" I stopped once I realized how long this might take. "You know what, never mind, forget I said anything." I said as I looked up at the ceiling.
Twilight smiled sweetly as she scooched up to me and snuggled her head against my neck. "I'm sorry." She said softly.
"You don't need to be Twi, I just don't feel like explaining the whole thing at the moment." I said, thinking she was talking about the Jesus thing.
"Not the name, for everything that's happened." Twilight said before she lifted her head up and looked at my face. "For everything I did to you, everything I said…I should've trusted you more…I'm the worst wife ever." She said, feeling bad about herself.
I leaned up on the bed and placed my left-hoof on my body. "No you're not, Twi, you were just confused by a lie. But you came back to me, you convinced our friends to see the truth and now everything's going back to normal. In my opinion, you're the best wife ever." I said, trying to make her feel better.
And it worked, Twilight smiled lovingly at me. "So you forgive me?" she asked.
"Of course I do, I forgave you after we left that dirty bar." I said, letting out a small chuckle afterword.
Twilight giggled a little before her smile disappeared. "But…I still feel bad about everything I did." She said as we both lied back down on the bed.
At that moment, an idea popped into Twilight's head and she smirked at me. "Maybe…there's a way I can make it up to you." she said as she placed her hoof gently on my chest.
Looking at the sly look on her face, I could tell what she meant and I smirked at her. "Baby…I think that'll totally work." I said.
With that, Twilight used her magic to turn out the lights and we began our night of 'forgiveness'.
Meanwhile: Mount Forbidden
Zelga, now back in her hidden Alicorn form, slammed against the stone wall hard before dropping to the floor, only to be lifted back up by powerful magic.
The Leader Alicorn approached with a dark look in his eyes. "Your 'great plan' failed, Zelga. I warned you what would happen if you failed me again!" he growled before he tossed her at another wall and she crashed into it.
As the Leaper approached her, Rage stood between them and spread his large wings out. "Stop this, brother! This is madness!" he roared.
"This is earned punishment and you'll do well not to interfere, unless you wish to share it!" The Leader said before he smacked Rage aside with his powerful wing, knocking him away.
The Leader's horn glowed and Zelga rose off the floor again, her body battered and bruised. The Leader raised a wing before one of the large feathers detached itself from it. As it came into the light, it revealed itself to be completely made of metal with the tip sharpened into a crooked blade. The tip of the sharp object hovered dangerously close to Zelga's throat.
"This was meant to be your son's punishment, you know. But you're pathetic feelings for him forced you to take it in his place…weakness if there ever was any." The Leader said darkly before he looked across the room to see the mysterious hooded pony watching in silence. "And you stand by and watch your mother take your own punishment instead of taking it yourself…cowardness!" he said before he growled in anger.
"Cowardness and weakness will not be tolerated here! Not under MY ROLE!" The Leader yelled as he threw Zelga down towards the hooded pony, he remained silent and still as Zelga coughed on the floor in front of him.
As the metal feather reattached itself to his wing, the Leader took some breaths and calmed down. "Now then, it is clear that Matthew and Twilight are difficult to separate, so we'll just have to forget about that. Instead, we'll focus on the more important objective, claiming the rest of the Elements. Once they're ours, we'll finally find what I've been seeking for so long." He said.
Zelga managed to pull herself up before she weakly looked at the elder Alicorn. "And we will, once I've reduced Ponyville and its residence to dust! Matthew has won the fight, but he hasn't won the battle, let alone the war." She said.
The Leader turned to face her. "So sorry, Sister, but seeing you failed so often is starting to lose its humor." He scoffed.
"I won't fail, not with what I have next in mind. Once I have Matthew where I want him, he'll be lucky if he survives. No tricks, no lies, just him and me...but I'll win." Zelga said before she grinned evilly. "I will avenge Thorn. I was older than him, which makes me more powerful than him, I'm more than a match for Matthew." She said strongly.
The Leader listened as she continued. "He thought Thorn was bad, wait until he gets a load of me, he has no idea what's coming for him…especially with my son here posing as one of the Guards." Zelga said as she looked at the hooded pony.
The Leader raised his eye-brow before he chuckled darkly. "Very well Zelga, one last chance. But after you execute it, you better not come back without proof of Matthew's dead corpse." He said before his eyes glowed a terrifying red. "Otherwise, I'll spare Matthew the trouble and kill you both myself…am I clear?" he asked.
Zelga nodded. "Yes Brother." She said.
"Good." The Leader then made towards his throne. "But first, I want to make sure you're blood-thirst for revenge hasn't blinded you from our true goal." he said before he looked at the hooded pony. "I want you to steal another one of the Elements before Zelga goes through with this plan. I don't care how long it takes, just make this your top priority." He ordered.
The hooded pony nodded. "Yes Master." He said in a deep voice.
The Leader sat on his throne. "Excellent." He said before he looked at the 2 ponies staring at him. "Well then? Get to work on it!" he yelled.
With that, Zelga and the hooded pony rushed out of the throne room doors. Once they were gone, the Leader looked over to Rage. "You go as well, I'm sure you'll be more used to someone else. Go associate with those friends of yours in the wastelands." He snapped.
Rage growled angrily before he disappeared in a giant bolt of red flames.
Now alone, the Leader used his magic to create a miniature sea-through version of myself in front of him, kind of like a small hologram but made of magic. He leaned closer as he stared at the mini-me. "You're becoming a real pain in my flank, Matthew. You're determined, you never give up, you never surrender and you're willing to do almost anything to achieve your goals." He said before he grinned. "You remind me so much of…myself. I'm starting to think you and I have more in common than I thought."
The Leader leaned back on his throne as he continued. "But continue to get in my way, and I may have to…put you down." he said before his horn glowed and he shot a small bolt of green lightning at the mini-me, destroying it.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
That one took me a while, but can you blame me, look how long it is. Anyway, I hope the ending was satisfying enough for you all.
Pony News:
Episode 14, 15 and 16 of FIM Season 5 have been announced, two of which star Rarity and I think the other stars Fluttershy. Anyway, I'm looking forward for the rest of Season 5.
Poll: Please pay full attention to this part, it's important.
Question: Who would you like to see as a Vinyl Collectible Funko figure?
If you know Funko, then you probably know about the Vinyl Collectible figures of characters they make. I've been starting to collect them and you can see the progress of my collection on my Twitter page.
But anyway, I looked at the figures they've made so far and I was surprised that they haven't made some characters that I thought for sure they would've made.
But I think I may have found a way to contact them, so I'm gonna run this poll to see who you would like next as a VCF (Vinyl Collectible Figure). Be noted that there's only a few characters to choose from, but I think they'll be characters we'd all want. I'll then send the results to Funko and with any luck, you'll make the most popular one.
I won't put the character list down on here because I want to test if any of you know how to actually vote on a poll list, the character list will be on the poll itself. Votes from reviews and DMs won't count. If this has any chance of working, we need to do this properly.
You can find the poll on my profile page. Go to the top of the page and click on my user name "Frontdoor6", that'll take you to my profile page. From there, you'll see the poll at the top of the page and click "Vote Now" then, of course, you vote.
I'm not sure if Guest Readers (Readers without a FanFiction account) can vote, but they're welcome to try.
The poll needs as many votes as possible, so everyone needs to try and take part. The poll will be up for a few weeks before I send the results to Funko, until then, vote. It's only 1 vote per-reader, so choose well.
If I receive anything from Funko after sending the results, I'll let you know in my next chapter.
Please remember to review and PM
Next chapter will be up as soon as possible.
59. Snow Day
Hello again fellow Bronies, and welcome back for another chapter.
To start off, I'm really glad with how the poll went one, 32 people voted with both Tirek and Chrysalis taking the lead, hopefully Funko will make figures of one of these two characters. Personally, I'm hoping for Tirek, he would be good in my collection.
I've sent the results and everything else to Funko, but the person I sent it to told me they wouldn't know if they decide to do it or not, we'll just have to wait and see if something pops up.
Anyway, I'm not sure how this chapter will turn out because I never really planned it properly, it's all kind of made-up as I go along, so if it's not as good as my others, it ain't my fault.
Now then, on with the chapter…whatever it is.
Chapter 59: Snow Day
It's been a full month since I was accused of cheating on Twilight with Zelga and everything has finally gone back to normal.
After the Mayor helped clear my name, everyone realised that they had been told a horrid lie. For the first few days, loads of ponies came and told us how sorry they were about the whole thing, even some of our friends kept apologizing for how they treated me, especially Rarity, she's said sorry for slapping me more times than I can count.
All the while, things between me and Twi have settled. Twilight keeps saying sorry now and again, but I keep telling her that she doesn't have to be…mostly because she made it up to me the night that whole thing ended, believe me, she really made it up to me.
But all wasn't so good, Rainbow Dash and the group of Pegasi she gathered to find Zelga still have no leads, it's as if Zelga vanished completely and I think by now it's obvious that she isn't coming back. To be honest, I hope she doesn't, that girl is more trouble than she's worth. As the days went by, Rainbow's search group got smaller until it was just her and Thunder Lane, but they weren't ready to give up. Rainbow Dash really had it out for Zelga.
Library
We were now in mid-December, the snow that's been going on and off for the last few weeks had returned and stayed on this time, the town was cover in thick now and the lakes were frozen solid. I can imagine the kids, and Pinkie Pie, were excited to play in it all. I could hear their playful noises through the window of the guest room.
Oh yeah, I wasn't out there with them, I was in the guest room :P
I was set on the bed as I once again read through Grimerd's journal. With each page, I could tell Grimerd had turned from a sad, lonely pony to an excited, cheerful one. Most of the time he kept talking about Celestia, he truly did have a thing for her, but the other thing he kept talking about was something called 'The Grand Ceremony'.
"Words of an Alicorn – Page 9
It is nearly here, everypony is talking about it, The Grand Ceremony.
I can surely say that I am looking forward to the event, but until then, I am looking forward to nothing else other than sharing my time with my beloved Celestia. Something about her always seems to brighten my world and make me believe I can do anything.
It is hard to admit it, but I may actually be in love with Celestia, I am sure of it.
I can imagine what my father would say if he was here now and he knew of this, he would most likely lock me in this tower and seal it tight, insuring that I cannot get out and no-one can get in, not even himself.
But he is not here anymore. From what I have heard, he is most likely dead and I cannot think of any pony who deserves death more than he. Nothing will keep me from what I desire most, not now.
Celestia, my love, it will seem like a thousand years until we see each other tomorrow."
I grew a small smile as I read that last part, I could relate to his feelings, only with Twilight instead of Celestia. It was almost hard to believe that a pony so in touch with his feelings could later become so dark and evil.
Suddenly, the door to the room swung open and Spike came in. "Hey Matt, Twilight's wondering if you'd like to go outside with her for whi-…" he then stopped once he saw me with the journal. "What's that?" he asked as he walked up to the bed.
I quickly shot up out of the bed and flew the journal to its hiding spot. "What's what, Spike?" I answer, pretending I didn't know what he was talking about.
Spike raised his eye-brow. "Matt, is that book yours? I've seen it in this room for a while but I didn't know where it came from." He said.
I then flew down to him and started pushing him towards the door with my head. "It's nothing, just an old book I found in the back of the shelves." I said before I quickly changed the subject. "You know what, I might need to go outside for a while, the cold fresh air will do me some good."
Spike then stepped away from my head and looked at me with a suspicious look. "Matt, I know you're hiding something, you always are when you talk like this." He said as he crossed his arms.
"Talk like what? I'm not talking like anything! You're being daft, stop being daft, ya daft dragon." I said in a quick voice with a nervous look on my face.
Spike raised his eye-brow. "What's with the book, Matt?" he asked with a serious tone.
I sighed hard before I responded. "Ok, I'll tell you about the book, but not right now. Otherwise Twilight might wonder why we've been up here for so long. I'll tell you later, alright?" I said, hoping he'd settle with that.
Spike thought about it. "So…I take it Twilight won't be happy to hear you've been hiding this book from her." He said.
"I don't know, maybe. I found it a while ago, sometime after we came back off our honeymoon. I'll tell you about it later, but right now, don't tell Twilight, ok?" I asked.
"Ok fine, but you're gonna need to tell her eventually, remember what happened with the Jersey Devil thing?" Spike said.
I rolled my eyes before I nodded. "Yeah, I remember, she wasn't happy that I kept that from her. But it's different this time, this book has something no-one can know about, not even her." I said.
"Well don't say I didn't warn you, Matt." Spike said before he turned around and made his way to the stairs that led down to the living-room.
I sighed heavily before I followed him, thinking about what I was gonna do all the while. Maybe I should tell Twilight about the book. I didn't want to tell her because it contained info on Grimerd, Princess Celestia doesn't want anyone knowing about him, myself and Discord already knew, but she didn't this whole thing getting out to everyone else.
But knowing Twilight, if the Princess wanted it to be kept a secret, she would bury her own head in the dirt like an Ostrich to keep it secret.
Maybe I could trust her with it. What am I saying? Of course I could trust her with it. That's when I made the decision, I would tell her about the Journal tonight. I didn't want to tell her now, otherwise she might get it worried and it'll ruin her day.
As I reached the living-room, I saw Twilight using her magic to put on a dark-blue scarf, she soon noticed me and walked up to me. "Well it's about time you came down." She said as we shared a small hug.
"Yeah, I was just taking care of something upstairs, it's no big deal." I said as we parted.
"Must've been a big 'something', you've been up there all morning." Twilight said before she used her magic to levitate my red scarf over to me and tie it around my neck. "Now you better bundle up good, it's really cold out there today."
I smiled with amusement at this. "You talk like your my Mum." I said.
Twilight returned my smile before she placed her hoof under her belly. "Just practising." She said in a gentle voice.
Hearing her say that made my heart feel warm and my amused smile turned into a loving one. "And so far, you're doing great." I said before lowing myself down to look at her belly. "It won't be long before the little guy starts growing."
Twilight looked down at me with a smirk. "Guy? Who said it was a guy? It has just as much chance of being a girl." She said.
I stood back up and looked into Twi's eyes. "Guy or girl, it won't matter, it'll still be our little star." I said,
Twilight smiled warmly. "Aww, Matt." she said before she hugged me and kissed my cheek. Suddenly, she pulled. "Oh my goodness, I almost forgot, you need to go to the Town Square later today." She said.
"Why? What's going on?" I asked curiously.
Twilight then used her magic to bring a leaflet over to me, I took it in my hoof and read the cover.
"Snowpony competition at the Town Square! Grand prise for the winner!"
"Applebloom and her friends brought it over a few minutes ago, they asked if you could help them make the best snow pony so they could win the prize." Twilight explained.
I returned my attention to her and gave her a confused look. "Where was I when they came here?" I asked.
"You were upstairs, 'taking care of something', as you put it." Twilight said with her eyes half-closed.
My face was blank with awkwardness. "Oh…" I said before I looked back down at the leaflet. "Is it happing right this minute?" I asked.
"No, it starts later this afternoon, that gives us plenty of time to do stuff together before then." Twilight said as she came over to me and nuzzled her head against my neck. She then moved her head away from me and looked at my face. "Now then, want some breakfast before we head out?"
I nodded. "Sure, I'd like some waffles, we got some from Pinkie a while ago, didn't we?" I said before I made my way towards the kitchen.
"Yeah, they should be in the freezer." Twilight said as she followed me into the kitchen to help me find the waffles.
A few minutes later: Ponyville streets
As Twi, myself and Spike walked through the streets of Ponyville, I looked around and saw ponies playing in the snow. There were kids making snow-ponies and throwing snowballs, a loving couple having a sleigh ride with a strong stallion pulling the sleigh, and I could imagine some ponies were ice-skating on the frozen lake.
I saw Cheerilee down the road coming out of a store with a pair of fluffy blue ear-muffs on. It made me think the schoolhouse was closed, otherwise she'd be there with the kids.
As we kept walking, Spike looked up at me. "So where's Jeff and Peewee? I thought they'd be here with us like always." He said.
I looked down at him as I kept walking. "Peewee's back at the Library, he's not a big fan of the cold. As for Jeff, he's in Canterlot…visiting Philomena again." I answered.
Spike rolled his eyes. "Seriously? It's not like it's ever gonna work." He said with disbelief.
I then smirked. "Like how you and Rarity will work?" I asked, preparing to be amused by his response.
Spike went wide-eyed before he spoke. "That's…different. Rarity and I have known each other since Twilight and I first came to Ponyville, Jeff and Philomena have only known each other for a few months. Plus, Philomena's a royal bird, Jeff's just…Jeff." He said in his defence
"Doesn't mean his chances are any less short. I mean, when you first met me, did you really think I had a chance with Twi? Jet, here we are, happily married and soon to have a foal of our own. Isn't that right, Twilight?" I asked as I turned my head expecting to see Twi beside me. However, she wasn't, I stopped and looked around for her. "Twi?" I asked in confusion.
Suddenly, something cold and soft struck the side of my face. I touched it with my hoof to discover it was just snow, I looked in the direction it came from and saw Twilight standing next to one of the cottages while holding a snowball with her magic, she giggled before she threw it at me.
I quickly spread one of my wings to shield me from the snowball, after it struck my feathers, I lowered it to see Twi take cover behind the cottage. I smirked. "So that's how she wants to do it." I said before I bregan to make my move.
Twilight giggled with excitement before she poked her head from behind the cottage only to see Spike standing in the streets, with a smirk, he just put his arms in a way that said 'I don't know'.
Twilight wondered where I went before a large amount of snow fell down on top of her, making her yelp in surprise and rush away, she then stopped and looked up at the roof of the cottage to see me moving snow off with my hoof. "If you're gonna play sneaky, you should expect me to do the same." I said as I spread my wings out.
Twilight grinned. "Then you're probably expecting this." She said before he horn glowed and one of the clouds above me began to shake until a large amount of snow fell out of it and on top of me, burying me in it.
I burst my head out and shook off the snow before I looked down at my playful wife. "Oh, you're gonna pay for that, sweetness." I said before I shot up into the air and dove down to her.
Twilight quickly galloped away as I flew after her. Meanwhile, Spike rushed in an effort to follow us. "Guys, wait up. I'm not as fast." He called, but we didn't hear him.
As Twilight kept galloping, I began to catch up with her from above, I lowered myself down to her and grabbed her body with my 4-limbs, I then started lifting her up and flew in the air with her. This surprised her and was starting to enjoy it.
That was until, she felt an odd feeling in her stomach, she felt it from there all the way up to her throat, she started to become nauseous. "Matt, can you put me down?" she said weakly.
I stopped in mid-air before I looked down at her. "What's wrong?" I asked curiously.
"Please, just put me down, I need to be on the ground." She said in a panicking tone, almost like she was begging.
Feeling concerned, I lowered myself back down to the ground and released her on the soft snow. Once I did, Twilight stumbled a few steps before she placed her hoof on her stomach and took deep breaths. I landed beside her and saw the sick look on her face. "Oh my God, Twi, are you alright?" I asked in concern.
"Yeah, I'm-…*BLAA!*" Twilight vomited onto the snow-covered ground before she wiped her mouth with her arm. "No, I'm not alright." She said weakly.
I wondered how she got so sick before I remembered that she was pregnant, girls tend to get sick when they're pregnant, all that flying and playing must have stirred up something bad in her. "Crap! This is my fault, I shouldn't have flown off with you like that." I said as we sat down beside each other and I rubbed her back softly.
Twilight turned her head to face me and smiled weakly. "It's alright, Matt, I should've known I wasn't well enough to play like that…" she said before she pressed her hoof against her mouth. "Oh dear." she muffed, like she was trying to hold something back.
At that moment, Spike caught back up with us. "Finally, you guys stopped." He said before he caught his breath. "So what did I miss?" he asked.
Twilight then vomited violently again, making Spike take a step back. "Oh…never mind." He said in slight disgust.
With that, I couldn't take it anymore, I couldn't watch Twilight be in such pain. I stood up and helped her stand. "Come on, Twi, I gonna take you to Sugar Cube Corner. Mr and Mrs Cake will help you feel better." I said as we began to walk with Spike following beside us.
"Sugar Cube Corner? Why there?" Twilight asked in confusion.
"Mrs Cake is pregnant as well, remember? If anyone knows how to deal with what you're going through, it'll be them." I said.
"Matt, I'm not sure if this is a good-BLAAA!" Twilight vomited again and panted hard when she stopped. "Ok…lets get going." She said, agreeing with me.
I nodded before she continued to make our way to Sugar Cube Corner, with Twilight vomiting a few times one the way there.
Later: Sugar Cube Corner
After arriving at Sugar Cube Corner, we told Mr and Mrs Cake what Twilight was going through and they agreed to help. Surprisingly, Mrs Cake was having the same problem this very instant.
Mr Cake and I sat by one of the tables while Twi and Mrs Cake pretty much fought over the bathroom. "So Twi's pretty much gonna be doing this until the baby settles inside her?" I asked curiously.
Mr Cake nodded. "Yep, Mrs Cake's been doing the same thing. True, we've been a bit behind on our orders since it started, but everypony understands. We've been helping her the best we can."
"You and Pinkie?" I said before a thought came to mind. "Speaking of which, is Pinkie her or is she out playing in the snow?" I asked.
Mr Cake smirked. "The obvious one, hahaha." He chuckled.
I chuckled with him. "Yeah, I suppose it was a silly question." I said before I changed the subject. "Anyway, you know how to help Twi?" I asked curiously.
"Yeah, I'll give her something to help her with the sickness, it works very well for Mrs Cake….wish I could say the same for her mood-swings." He said as he rubbed his chin with his hoof.
"Mood-swings?" I said, knowing what it meant but was afraid that it would eventually come.
"Yeah, about half-way through the pregnancy, Mrs Cake's moods kept changing. One minutes she's happy, the next she's sad, then she's angry and then she's happy again, followed by a few other moods. This keeps going on until it all just stops." Mr Cake explained. "And, I'm sorry to say, the same will eventually happen to Twilight." he said.
"I was afraid you'd say that." I said with a slightly worried tone. "Has Mrs Cake's mood-swings stopped?" I asked.
"Well…" Mr Cake began.
Suddenly, Mrs Cake rushed in. "Honey! Twilight's been in the bathroom for twenty minutes! Twenty full minutes! In need to go in there too, you know!" she said angrily.
"I know, honey-bun, I'll take care of it in a moment." Mr Cake said.
Mrs Cake then smiled gently. "Oh…never mind, it's alright, she's going through the same problem I am, I can't blame her for that." She said before she turned and walked away.
Mr Cake and I looked at each other. "Forget I asked." I said in a whisper so Mrs Cake wouldn't hear.
"Don't worry, I'll be sure to warm Twilight about Mrs Cake's mood-swings and give her some median to help her, she just needs to settle down for a while." Mr Cake said with a friendly smile.
I returned it. "Thanks Mr Cake, she needs it." I said. Just then, we heard Twilight vomiting from the bathroom. "She really needs it."
I then looked up at the clock and saw that it was nearly time to begin the Snowpony contest, if I was going to go help Applebloom and her friends, I'd need to go now. "Damn, I need to get going, I've got a contest to get to." I said before I got up and rushed to the bathroom.
I then knocked on the door with my hoof. "Twilight, how are you holding up?" I asked.
"Just give me a minute, I'll be fine...*Cough! Cough!*" Twilight coughed from behind the door.
"Twi, I need to get going if I'm gonna help Applebloom and her friends with their Snowpony, Mr Cake says he'll take care of you until you're well enough to come back out, ok?" I said.
"Ok, I'll catch up with you when I'm…*BLAAA!" Twilight vomited.
"Oh dear." I said under my breath in response to the sound of her sickness. "Ok, I'll see ya later, love you." I said.
"*Cough!* Love you too, Matt." Twilight said, sounding like she was struggling to speak.
With that, I walked away from the door and made my way towards the exit. As I did, I looked over to Mr Cake. "Thanks again, Mr Cake, good luck." I said.
"Anytime Matthew." Mr Cake said as he watched me leave the store.
Suddenly. "Honey! If Twilight doesn't leave the bathroom soon, I'm gonna need a bucket." Mrs Cake called from the other room, sounding sickly.
"I'll find you one, sweetie, don't worry." Mr Cake said as he went to find a bucket.
-Meanwhile-
I made my way down the streets of Ponyville towards the Town Square where the contest was being held. Along the way, I saw Rarity exiting her boutique, she was wearing a dark-purple winter coat with a tall white fluffy hat.
Ever since that whole issue with Zelga, there's been some awkwardness between us. Sure, we've made up, but the guilt and bad feel is still there. With a worried sigh, I decided to go greet her. "Hi Rarity." I said as I walked over to her.
Rarity looked in my direction and smiled once she saw me. "Hello Matthew, isn't it a lovely day? The snow makes everything so beautiful this time of year." She said, making small-talk.
I nodded. "Yeah, the Pegasi have really out themselves." I said before I took notice of her coat, "Nice coat, did you make it?" I asked.
"I very much wish, I bought it when I was last in Canterlot, it cost quite a lot and I've been saving it for a nice snow-filled day such as this." Rarity said as she showed off her coat to me.
"I bet you could make something even better." I said with a small smile.
Rarity smiled back. "Sometimes I forget how much of a flatterer you are, Matthew." She said before her smile disappeared. "And…I apologise for bringing this up once again, but…I'm sorry about…you know." She said.
I knew what she was talking about. "I know Rarity, and I forgive you entirely. We just need to move one and forget about it." I said, trying to make her feel better.
"But the way I just slapped you like that, it was completely unnecessary, I still can't believe I'd do such a thing." Rarity said, continuing to feel bad.
"It wasn't your fault, you were tricked by a lie and hurt by it, it happens to the best of us. Everyone does things they regret because they're angry, even me." I said.
Rarity thought about what I just said and smiled a little. "I suppose you're right, Matt. But just to clarify, there's no harsh feelings between us?" she asked.
"Of course not." I said before we shared a friendly hug.
Once we parted, Rarity looked behind me before she spoke. "Say, where's Twilight? I thought she would've been here with you." she said.
"She was, but we had a bit of a problem. She wasn't feeling well, so I took her to the Cakes and they're gonna take care of her until she feels well enough to come out." I explained.
Rarity showed a look of concern. "Really? What's wrong with her?" she asked curiously.
I rubbed the back of my neck with my hoof as I tried to think of a way to tell her. "Well…umm…" I said before I placed my hoof back on the ground and took a step closer to her. "She's got pregnancy sickness." I whispered to her.
Rarity went wide-eyed. "Oh, I see." She whispered before I stepped away from her. "Well I hope she feels better soon." She said.
"Same here, I'd like to see her at the Snowpony contest." I said.
Rarity smiled with surprise. "You're going to the contest too? I was about to head over to it myself, Sweetie Bell has entered it with her friends." She told me.
"I know, they want me to help them with it. How about I head over there with you? I'd rather go with one of my friends that by myself." I said.
"I'd like that too, Matthew." Rarity said with a smile.
With that, we started making our way towards the town square, enjoying the snowy scenery all the while.
A few minutes later: Town Square
After arriving at the Town Square, Rarity and I looked around to see a number of ponies with their kids preparing to make Snowponies, they were gathering snow and things they planned to add on to it.
There wasn't much of a crowd, mostly because everyone had better things to do than to watch ponies make snow figures.
As Rarity and I walked into the area, we saw Applebloom and her friends in a clear place getting ready to start making their Snowpony. The three of them wear all wearing scarfs and fluffy ear-muffs, they looked like something Rarity would make and she probably did, for Sweetie Belle at least.
We both approached them before Applebloom finally noticed us. "Matt! You came!" she said happily as she galloped up to me and hugged me.
I placed my hoof on her back and smiled. "Of course I did, when you call for help, I'm always there to answer." I said warmly.
While we shared a friendly moment, Rarity walked up to Sweetie Belle and Scootaloo. "So do you know what kind of Snowpony you'll be making?" she asked curiously.
Sweetie Bell turned her head to face her. "We came up with a few ideas, but they were all a bit too hard to do." She said as she pushed a lump of snow over to their area.
"So we decided to just make a normal Snowpony, but with a bit more detail." Scootaloo said with a large smirk.
"Really? Like what?" Rarity asked with high interest.
"Like facial features, mane details, so it stands out and looks like a real pony." Sweetie Belle answered.
Applebloom and I separated from our hug and she walked over to a box full of stones and other Snowpony stuff. "Thanks for agreein' to help us, the competition is gonna be really tough, especially with 'you-know-who' bein' in it." she said as she got some stuff out of the box, with Scootaloo and Sweetie Belle nodding in agreement.
"I don't know who, who are you talking about?" I asked curiously.
"Well, well, well…look what we have here." a familiar voice said behind us.
Rarity and I turned around to see Diamond Tiara and Silver Spoon with mean smirks on their faces. They walked past us and went straight to Applebloom and her friends. "If you three think you're gonna beat us, think again, we're gonna walk away with the prize and leave you in the clod snow." Diamond Tiara said.
"And if you think that's intimidating at all, you can think again." Scootaloo spat.
"I heard the prize isn't that much of a big thing, why do you even want it?" Sweetie Belle asked.
Silver Spoon stepped forward. "We don't, we just want to see the looks on your faces when we beat you blank-flanks." She scolded.
Hearing that, I cleared my thought to get their attention. "*Ah-hem!*" Diamond Tiara turned around to see myself and Rarity looking down at them with disapproval. "I hope I didn't hear you call them what I know you called them." I said firmly.
Silver Spoon had a look of slight fright, meanwhile Diamond Tiara had a plain look, like she wasn't scared at all. "Oh, hi Mr Matthew, didn't see you there." she said, almost in a disrespectful tone.
I gave her a stronger firm look. "Keep that attitude up and Miss Cheerilee will be seeing you…in detention." I said strongly.
Diamond Tiara's plain look turned into a shocked one. "What? You can't do that." She said.
"Love, you'd be surprised with what I can do. Now both of you, get back to your place and leave these three alone." I said as I point my hoof away from our spot.
Diamond Tiara huffed. "Fine, but we're still gonna win, we have the best ponies on our side." She said before she and Silver Spoon walked away with grins on their faces.
Hearing her last words, Applebloom and the others looked down at the floor with discourage. I noticed this and walked over to them. "Hey, don't listen to them. They may have a strong team on their side, but you have me and Rarity, the most creative ponies in town." I said.
Rarity then walked up beside me. "You're creative?" she said in a questioning voice.
I turned my head to face her. "Yeah, back home, I was a good artist and big ideas…shame I was never a big fan of art and my ideas never took off." I said as I ears lowered a little.
Rarity smiled a little. "Well…despite that, I'm sure your artistic knowledge will be very helpful." She said as she placed her hoof on my back.
I smiled back. "Let's hope so." I said before I looked at the three fillies. "Now then, how about we get started? If we're gonna pull off the Snowpony you have in mind, we need to get working." I said.
Applebloom nodded. "Sounds good to me." she said before she looked at Sweetie Belle and Scootaloo. "Alright Cutie Mark Crusaders, let's get to it!" she said before sharing and high-hoof with Sweetie Belle and Scootaloo.
With that, we all started working on our Snowpony, with everyone else beginning to make their own all the while.
A few minutes later
After starting, we soon had the entire Snowpony's body made, but now we were up to the hard part, the body details. Rarity was using a chisel to give it these features, she went around the legs slowly and carefully to make sure she didn't knock any of the snow off.
While she did this, myself and the CMC were going through the box to bring out the stuff we were gonna put on it. "I think it's looking pretty good already." Sweetie Belle commented.
"Yeah, but we're only halfway done, just look at Diamond Tiara's." Applebloom said before we all looked over to the spot where Diamond Tiara and Silver Spoon were working.
Diamond Tiara and Silver Spoon were sitting down drinking hot co-co while a few ponies worked on 'their' Snowpony, it looked like it was gonna be something big and fancy.
I then turned my head back around to face the CMC. "It doesn't matter how far they are with it, it's not gonna matter when we wipe the snow-covered floor with them." I said with a confident smile.
Hearing that made them return that smile. "Yeah, we just need to make a better Snowpony than them, it doesn't matter how long it takes us." Scootaloo said.
Suddenly, the Mayor walked up to the centre of the area and looked around at all of us. "Attention everypony, there is only thirty minutes left until we decide the winner, so get busy." She announced before she walked away.
This left us wide-eyed and stunned. "…Apparently there's a time limit…missed that part on the flyer." I said sheepishly.
Scootaloo looked up at me with a raised eye-brow. "Ya think?" she said before she looked at Applebloom and Sweetie Belle. "Ok, forget what I just said, grab all this stuff and get working. GO! GO! GO!" she said loudly before they all quickly grabbed stuff from the box with their mouths and rushed back to their Snowpony.
I looked at the Snowpony and saw that Rarity was only halfway done with the detail features, it didn't look much like I imagined, the CMC probably thought the same way. I watched as they started working hard and fast on their Snowpony, Applebloom and Scootaloo placed the top-hat and scarf down on the ground as they tried to help Rarity finish the details.
While they did, the wind picked up for a moment, but it was long enough to catch the hat and the scarf in its strong breeze, making them blow away. Applebloom soon noticed this. "Oh no, the hat! It's blowing away." She said as she watched the hat being blown down the street.
Scootaloo looked and noticed the scarf being blown away in the opposite direction. "So is the scarf!" she said as she pointed her hoof at the scarf.
I looked back and forth from the hat to the scarf, trying to decide which one I'd go after first. I looked down that the fillies. "Don't worry, I'll get them both back, just make sure the Snowpony's ready for them when I get back." I said before I took off into the air and went after the scarf first.
After watching me leave, the CMC and Rarity went back to finishing the Snowpony's detail features, worried that I might not make it back in time.
Ponyville streets
I followed the scarf down the street, but I lost sight of it a moment ago. I looked around for it, worried that I had lost it and wouldn't get it back to our Snowpony.
That was, until I finally found it, it was on top of a sled being pulled by a small colt, I don't think he even knew it was there. He wasn't going very fast, so this would be easy. I flew down and landed a few feet away from the colt and his sled.
I walked up towards the sled to quickly grab the scarf, but as I did, a few ponies walked past between us. I tried to look through them to keep my sight on the scarf, but it was hard. Once all the ponies had passed, I rushed back up towards the colt.
I tried not to make a scene out of it, so I approached the colt's sled slowly but quickly. But luck was on my side, the scarf eventually fell off onto the ground, just waiting for me the get it.
But as I approached to retrieve it, a pony pulling a cart walked trotted over the scarf and it stuck to the snow on one of the wheels, making it drag along with it.
Reacting to this, I quickly rushed after the cart to get the scarf back. Catching up with it, a leaped towards the wheel it was stuck to and attempted to grab the scarf, but missed it, I tried it again, missed, but I tried it a third time and finally caught it.
The scarf was released from the wheel and I held it in my hooves. "Alright, that's the scarf down." I said before I wrapped the scarf around my neck to keep it safe. "Now for the hat." I said.
I thought about where I last saw the hat and it looked like it was heading towards the Market. Knowing where I'd start looking, I quickly took off into the air and flew towards the Market.
-A few minutes later-
I flew over the market and looked everywhere for the top-hat. At this point, I thought it could be anywhere in town, but I surprisingly caught eye of it. It was on top of a roof of one of the cottages, I flew over to it and landed on the middle on the roof.
The surface of the roof was slippery from the snow and small amount of ice on it, I was struggling to even stand. I looked over to the front of the roof and saw the hat, lying close to the edge. I slowly took one step at a time as I approached the hat.
As I got close to the hat, I slowly reached my hoof out to grab it before it could fall off. But the wind suddenly caught up again and the hat flew off down the street. I growled in frustration before I took off after it.
I flew fast down the street as I tried to catch the hat, but the wind was making it more difficult than I thought it'd be. I began to feel a little silly doing this, struggling to catch a top-hat that was using the wind to get away from me. I kept flying hard as attempt after attempt of trying to catch it failed.
Suddenly, it was lifted up into the sky by the wind and I flew up after it. As the wind stopped, it started to fall down, I knew for sure that I had it now, until a group of Pegasi flew over me and pulled the hat with them in their speed, making it fly away in a new direction.
I flew after it and followed it into a field with a large windmill. As it floated down over the windmill, it got caught on a nail attached to one of the blades. I stopped in mid-air in front of the spinning blades and kept my eye on the one with the hat caught on it.
As it came around to me, I reached out to try and catch the hat, but I missed. I waited until it came around again, I reached out to catch it, but missed again. I was getting a bit annoyed by this and waited until it came back.
When it did, I grabbed the blade and was pulled along with it. As I span along with the blade, I looked over to the hat and tried to reach for it, or knock it off at least to get off this thing. Luckily, I managed to knock it off and it fell down to the field.
I released the windmill's blade but was now very dizzy, I tried to stay in the air as my vision continued to spin. "Ok…don't vom, don't vom…" I said to myself before I finally got control of my vision…and stomach.
Once that was sorted, I looked down to the field and saw the hat on top of a snow-covered pony scarecrow. I flew down over it and quickly grabbed it with my hooves to prevent it from getting away again. "Finally! Got you, ya slippery S.O.B." I said out-loud to myself.
Suddenly, I remembered why I was trying to get these things in such a hurry. I looked in the distance at the Ponyville Clocktower and saw that I only had a few minutes left to get back to the Crusaders and our Snowpony. "Damn it to hell!" I said under my breath before I placed the hat on my head and shot off back towards the Town Square.
Meanwhile: Town Square
As the judges were examining another group's Snowpony, Applebloom looked up at Rarity with a worried look. "They're gonna come over here any minute, where's Matt with the hat and scarf?" she asked in a worried voice.
Rarity looked down at her. "I don't know, darling. But who knows, he might get back on time…maybe." She said.
As they waited, the Crusaders looked at their Snowpony to see it wasn't much like what they imagined, it just looked like a normal everyday Snowpony, only with black diamonds for eyes without a hat or scarf.
Meanwhile, the judges went over to Diamond Tiara and Silver Spoon's spot and marvelled at their Snowpony, which was more like a snow-monument. It was a replica of the prancing statue of Princess Celestia made completely out of snow and pieces of ice. Most ponies would say it was a masterpiece, the judges certainly thought so, they were taking great interest in it.
All the while, Diamond Tiara and Silver Spoon stood smiling smugly at what they took as their work. Diamond Tiara took a moment to give Applebloom and her friends a mean grin.
The three fillies looked down at the ground with failure, not believing they'd have a chance of winning now.
Suddenly, I landed on a hill not far from the square. I saw the judges beginning to make their way over to them and I quickly started galloping down the hill towards them. Unfortunately, I didn't notice a root sticking up above the snow and I tripped over it.
I went flying until I started rolling down the hill, as I did, my body started collecting snow until I was stuck inside a large ball of snow. It continued to roll down the hill towards the square.
Then, just as the judges were about to come see our Snowpony, the snowball I was stuck inside rolled off a large rock sticking up from the ground and started falling down towards our spot.
Rarity noticed the sudden round shadow shrouding them and she looked up to see the large snowball falling down towards them. Letting out a loud gasp, she used her magic to pick up the Crusaders and gallop out of the way before the snowball crashed right on top of our Snowpony.
Most of the ponies shielded their faces with their arms as snow splattered all over the place, they were just glad none of it ruined their Snowponies. Once it was safe, everyone, including Rarity and the CMC, looked in the place where the snowball crashed to see a Snowpony standing in its place.
Applebloom and her friends smiled with joy at the sight of it. It was just as they imagined it, it was a great replica of a real pony with black diamond eyes, a scarf wrapped perfectly around its neck and a top-hat on its head.
Applebloom and her friends where too excited about the sudden change in their Snowpony to wonder where I was, but Rarity did wonder where the hat and scarf came from, she didn't see me anywhere.
At that moment, the judges came over to them and looked at their Snowpony. "Hmm, this is different. This Snowpony looks real enough to be alive." One of the judges said as she used her magic to write her opinion down on a clip board.
"I especially like the diamond eyes, deficiently different from coal." The other judge said as he did the same with his clipboard.
"This one is definitely going to be one we'll consider as a winner." The third judge said, making the CMC smiled with slight excitement.
With that, the three judges walked away to see to the other Snowponies. Once they were gone, Applebloom and her friends turned to face Rarity. "Did ya hear that? They like it!" Applebloom said with a large smile.
"They said they'd consider it, doesn't mean to say they'll choose it." Sweetie Belle stated.
"Maybe, but there's still one thing I don't know." Scootaloo said, gaining their attention. "Where's Matt?" she asked.
They all looked at each other when they started wondering the same thing. "Yeah, I mean, that's the same hat and scarf he went after, but where is he?" Applebloom asked.
"Maybe he just sent the hat and scarf down and took off." Sweetie Belle suggested.
"He wouldn't just leave, not when he came here to help us." Applebloom said, curtain that I wouldn't leave them.
"Maybe he came down here with that big snowball and got buried in the snow." Scootaloo said as she looked around the floor.
"Ya really think so? We gotta find him." Applebloom said as she looked around the snow before she started hopelessly digging with her front hooves.
But before she could get started, she and everyone else heard the Mayor talk as she made another announcement. "Attention everypony! The judges have gone through their results and have chosen a winner!" she said loud enough for everyone to hear.
"We'll have to search for him later, we need to pay attention to this." Scootaloo said before she and everyone else stood and listened to what the Mayor was gonna say.
One of the judges walked up to the Mayor with a piece of paper in his mouth, he gave it to the Mayor and she placed it down on the deck in front of her so she could read it. "And without further ado, the winner of the Snowpony contest is…Applebloom, Scootaloo, Sweetie Belle, Rarity and Matthew for their realistic-Snowpony." She announced.
Upon hearing that, the CMC looked at each other with large smiles before they started jumping with joy. Rarity smiled down at them proudly at this victory.
Meanwhile, Diamond Tiara and Silver Spoon were left with their mouths wide open in shock. "But…that's not fair! Ours is better than theirs!" Diamond Tiara said as her shocked look turned into an angry one.
"This contest is so messed up!" Silver Spoon added.
As Diamond Tiara and Silver Spoon stormed away, the Mayor walked up to Applebloom and her friends to present them with their prize. "Here you go, little ones. Four tickets to the Sapphire Saddles Funfair, for three children and one grown up." she said before she brought out an envelope containing the tickets and passed them down to Applebloom, who took it in her mouth.
"Thanks Miss Mayor." Scootaloo said with a kind smile.
"Mm-hm." Applebloom muffled as she nodded to the Mayor.
The Mayor returned their smiles. "You're welcome." She said before she changed the subject. "Now then, I have to go sort some things out in the Town Hall. I hope you enjoy your time at the Fair." She said before she turned and walked away.
"We will, thanks again." Sweetie Belle said. Once the Mayor was gone, she turned to face Rarity. "Can you believe it, Rarity? We won! And we get to go to the best Funfair ever!" she said in excitement.
Applebloom walked up to Rarity and she took the envelope out of her mouth with her magic. "I know, I've heard of this place, many ponies highly recommend it for ponies your age." Rarity said.
"I just wish Matt stuck around to see us get it." Applebloom said with a small frown.
Suddenly, their Snowpony started to quiver and Rarity noticed it, the sound of the snow falling off it drew the attention of Applebloom and her friends as well. At that moment, all the snow from the Snowpony's head fell off to reveal my head behind it all, I shook the rest of the snow off before I looked at them. "…Is it over?" I asked.
They all looked at me with surprise. "Matthew? Have you been posing as our Snowpony this whole time?" Rarity asked curiously.
"How'd ya end up in that state?" Applebloom asked.
"I was bringing the hat and scarf back when I tripped and fell down the hill, I started rolling and collecting a big load of snow on the way down and…well, you saw what happened after that." I said before I shook the rest of the snow off my body and took off the hat & scarf.
"So that's why our Snowpony suddenly looked so realistic, all the snow was covering your body and catching your shape." Sweetie Belle said.
"I suppose so." I said as I used my hoof to brush off the last of the snow on my body. I then looked down at the three fillies. "So who won? I couldn't hear anything, that snow's more thick than it looks." I said.
"We did!" Applebloom said with joy.
I smiled down at her. "Really? That's great! What did you win?" I asked curiously.
"Tickets to Sapphire Saddles Funfair, it the best fair ever! We got tickets for all three of us and one grown up. It's closed for the winter, but as soon as Hearth's Warming's passed, it'll open again." Scootaloo informed me.
"Oh? So who's gonna be the grown up who goes with you?" I asked.
With that question brought to their attention, Applebloom and her friends looked at each other with wonder. "Maybe Rarity can take us." Sweetie Belle said, hoping she would.
At that moment, Rarity stepped forward. "Sorry Sweetie Belle, but I'm going to be busy, I have a lot of orders to complete during that time." She said with a look of slight sorrow on her face.
Sweetie Belle looked down at the ground with disappointment. "Oh…" was all she could say.
"Maybe Applejack can take us instead." Scootaloo said with a hopeful smile.
Applebloom shook her head. "No, she'll be busy with the rest of my family plantin' seeds in the orchard, it always needs refreshin' after the winter." She said before she too gave a hopeful smile. "But maybe Rainbow Dash can take us."
But surprisingly, Scootaloo shook her head. "Nah, she'll have more important and awesome things to do than go to a Funfair." She said.
"But if none of them will take us, who will?" Sweetie Belle asked as they tried to think of someone to take them there.
I began to think to that point in the future and wondered what I'd be doing, I couldn't think of anything, so I was basically free to do it. I looked down at them and stepped forward. "Umm, I could take you." I said to them.
They all looked up at me with surprise. "Really? You don't mind?" Sweetie Belle asked.
I shook my head. "No, I'm not doing anything after winter, so I'm good to take you. I'm sure Twilight will understand, she always does." I said.
With that said, Applebloom leaped up and hugged me. "Thank you! Thank you!" she said with happiness.
I smiled and hugged her with a single arm. "It's no problem." I said before we broke the hug.
Rarity walked up to us. "In that case." She said before she used her magic to open the envelope and pull out the tickets, she then passed one to each of us. "You should all keeps these safe until it reopens." She said.
"Good idea, Rarity." Sweetie Belle said before she looked at Scootaloo and Applebloom. "We all better go home and put these somewhere safe, we don't want to lose them out her." She said as she grabbed her ticket with her mouth.
Applebloom nodded in agreement. "Yeah, we'll come back out and enjoy the rest of the snow after we stash these away." She said as she grabbed her own.
With that, Scootaloo grabbed hers and they each galloped away to take their tickets home and put them in a safe place.
Once they were gone, I walked up beside Rarity and smiled at her. "I'm glad they won." I said to her.
"Same here, but I can't help but be surprised about it. Don't tell them I said this, but I thought for sure they would pick Diamond Tiara and Silver Spoon's Snowpony. Compared to ours, that thing is almost a marvel." Rarity said as we looked over to their Diamond Tiara's abandoned sculpture.
"They were never gonna win this." I said as I turned my head to face Rarity again.
Rarity looked at me and smiled slightly. "Matthew, I know you have faith in Sweetie Belle and her friends, and I think that's a wonderful thing, but they won't always get so lucky." She said.
I raised my eye-brow. "No, I mean…they really weren't gonna win this, I saw that from the start." I informed her.
Rarity gave me a confused look. "What do you mean?" she asked curiously.
I then reached my snout into my scarf and pulled out the flyer for the contest, I held it out to her and she took it in her magic. "Read rule four." I instructed.
Rarity then held it close to her face as she read the paragraph. "Rule four: Be aware, everypony must make their Snowpony as a group and work as a team, this contest is based upon teamwork and cooperation." She read out loud.
I smirked. "Diamond Tiara and Silver Spoon had ponies make their Snowpony for them, while they sat back and waited until it was don't, I don't think they barely did anything on it." I said.
After hearing this, Rarity looked at me with a raised eye-brow and a small smile. "Matthew, did you know about this the whole time?" She asked me.
I remained silent as I looked at her and gave her a friendly wink.
Rarity's small smile turned into a warm one. "You know Matthew, you are unlike any stallion I've ever met before…and that's one of the things that's best about you." she said before she gave me a small kiss on the cheek.
My ears lowered a little after she did that. "I know, Twi's said the same thing a few times." I said.
"And it's always true." a familiar female voice said before me.
Rarity and I both looked in the direction it came from to see Twilight walking up to us with Spike walking beside her. "Twi! You came back out." I said as I trotted up to her and hugged her lovingly.
Twilight hugged me back. "Yeah, Mr Cake gave me some medicine and now I feel all better, but I have to move a bit slower than I usually do." she said as we broke away from the hug.
"Yeah, we actually left Sugar Cube Corner almost half-an-hour ago, it's taken us that long to get here." Spike spoke.
I grew concerned when I heard Twilight said. "Really? Maybe we should take you home so you can relax, otherwise you'll be struggling get anywhere all day." I said took a step closer to her.
"But I came over here to be with you so we could enjoy the snowy day together." Twilight stated.
I smiled gently at her. "Twi, it's the middle of winter, every day's gonna be a snowy day for a while. But right now, I'm more concerned about you than any of that." I said warmly.
Twilight smiled at what I said. "Well…maybe having a bit of peace and quiet at home would help." She said.
"That's what I was thinking." I said before I walked up beside her and placed one of my wings on her back to keep her warm. I then returned my attention to Rarity. "Sorry to leave at such short notice, Rarity, can you say goodbye for Applebloom and her friends for me if they come back?" I asked.
Rarity nodded. "Of course, just be sure to keep Twilight nice and warm." She said before she looked at Twilight. "You look terribly ill." She said.
Twilight smirked at her. "Thanks Rarity, I needed to hear that." She said sarcastically.
Rarity then placed her hoof over her mouth. "Oh…I'm sorry, I didn't mean-"
"It's alright, Rarity, I know I don't look well. Give me a few days and I'll be much better." Twilight said before she turned her head to face me. "Should we get going?" she asked.
I nodded. "Yeah, let's get home and warm up." I said before we turned and started walking away. As we did, I looked back to see Rarity one last time. "See ya Rarity, hope you have a good day." I said.
"Same you, as well as Twilight and Spike." Rarity replied before she turned and left the Town Square, most likely to enjoy the rest of the snowy day and gain inspiration for a new design from it.
All the while, Twilight and I kept walking slowly back to the Library with Spike following beside us.
That afternoon: The Library
After returning to the Library, I placed my ticket to Sapphire Saddles Funfair in a cub on top of the shelf above the fireplace, that way I'd know where it would be.
After that, I lit up the fireplace and laid a bunch of soft pillows down in front of it. Twilight was now lying down on them with a blanket over her body.
I walked into the room and lied down beside her. "Warm enough, Twi?" I asked.
Twilight looked at me and smiled. "Yeah, thanks." She said before he smiled went away. "Sorry you had to miss out on the snow to stay inside to look after me." she apologised.
"It's alright, Twi, there'll be other snowy days. You just stop worrying about that and focus on getting better." I said as I rubbed my hoof on her back.
Twilight smiled again before she rested her head down on the pillows and closed her eyes to rest in the warmth of the fire, with me lying right beside her.
But before any of us could relax, the room's door swung open and Spike came rushing in. "Guys, I just go a letter from Princess Celestia! You gotta read it." he said, sounding excited.
Twilight and I looked over to him as he stopped beside us, he held the scroll out to us and Twilight took it in her magic. She then opened it and read it out-loud for us to hear.
"Dear Twilight Sparkle
I'm pleased to tell you that the annual Hearth's Warming Eve re-enactment of the Founding of Equestria will be taking place soon and, due to you and your friends representing the wonders of friendship, I have chosen all of you to star in it. There's even a part for Spike, Matthew and his friend, Jeff, as well.
I hope this is to all of your likings.
Yours: Princess Celestia."
After reading this, Twilight smiled with joy. "We're gonna star in the re-enactment of the Founding of Equestria? Spike, can you believe this?" She said as she looked over to Spike.
"I know, this is great!" Spike said with a large smile.
I then spoke up. "Umm…what's this about a re-enactment?" I asked curiously.
Twilight looked at me before she realised something. "Oh my gosh, I forgot, this is your first Hearth's Warming Eve." She said before she answered my question. "Well, as the name explains, it's a re-enactment of the Founding of Equestria, which happened thousands of years ago on Hearth's Warming Eve. So every year, there's a re-enactment of it held in Canterlot, and we've been chosen to play the characters this year, I never thought this would happen." She said as her excitement grew a little.
I soon took interest in this. "Really? So I suppose there's a big story behind all this." I said.
Twilight nodded. "Yeah, in fact, there's a book around here that has that story." She said.
"I know where it is, I'll go get it." Spike said before he rushed out of the room to fetch the book.
"That's probably a good idea." Twilight said before she returned her attention to me. "If you're gonna be in the re-enactment with us, you might need to know the story so you know what you're getting in to." she stated.
I thought about it for a moment before I nodded in agreement. "I suppose so." I said.
After a few minutes, Spike returned with the book in hand, he brought it over to us and Twilight took it in her magic. She opened it and was about to read it to me before she noticed Spike looking at her with a small smile.
Twilight knew what he wanted and smiled. "Spike, would you like to hear the story as well?...Even though you've heard it many times before." She said.
Spike didn't answer as he rushed around to the other side of the pillows and sat down on one, so he was comfy enough to hear the story. "Any time you're ready." He said.
With that, Twilight looked at the book again and started to read the story. "Many years ago, before the time of Princess Celestia and Princess Luna, the lands were all divided for Earth Ponies, Unicorns and Pegasi alike…"
Twilight continued to read the story for some time with me and Spike listening to every word, and each one was preparing me for this upcoming re-enactment. All the while, I wondered which character I would play as, but that would have to be something I'd have to wait to find out.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
I suppose you all know what the next chapter's gonna be, yep, another Episode based chapter, I've been planning it for some time and I know a few people who'll be glad it's finally coming.
Anyway, I need you all to listen to this. Does anyone in the UK have FIM S1 & 2 on DVD? I don't mean the ones released in the US, the ones that were released here in the UK. If anyone has them, please PM me.
Poll: I've put up a new poll, but I'm not gonna tell you what it is, you'll have to go onto my profile and see it. It's a blind poll, so you can't see the results. Also, I don't want any comments about the poll on PMs or Reviews, so please don't mention it.
Like last time, it's important that it gets as many votes as possible, so tell your FanFic friends about it. Thanks for your time.
Please remember to review.
The next will be up as soon as possible.
60. Chapter 60: Hearths Warming Eve
Merry Christmas Bronies and Pegasisters!
To be honest, I'm a little disappointed by the lack of reviews and no one has messaged me about the FIM DVDs. There was only one person who did and he had the FIM S4 DVD, no one had the others, which is disappointing.
The poll's doing well and I'm gonna leave it up, there needs to more votes on it, a lot more! The only time I'll take it down is when I have a new poll, then when that's finished, I put the current poll back up.
Anyway, on with the chapter. As you know, this is another episode based chapter. While playing through the Hearth's Warming Acts, this chapter will only focus on the Unicorn's side of the story. Why? You'll find out.
In order to make scene, I've changed some of the lyrics in the song I've chosen for this chapter. Also, keep in mind that the last part of it gets a little tricky because 3 characters sing different things at the same time, it'll make scene if you listen to the song itself.
I don't own this episode or the story behind it.
Chapter 60: Hearths Warming Eve
It's been almost 2 weeks and Christmas was just one day away, or as the Ponies called it, Hearths Warming. I don't really know why they called it that, but I'm not complaining, it works the same way.
When we received the letter from Princess Celestia saying we were gonna star in the re-enactment of the Founding of Equestria, Twilight told me the story and it was quite interesting, I was excited to doing it.
We all knew who we were gonna play, we all knew our lines, we were all set for it.
The mountain up to Canterlot
After waiting what felt like forever, Hearths Warming Eve was finally here and we were all on the Friendship Express train heading up to Canterlot. Twilight and the rest of the Mane 6 were really excited about this, so excited that they couldn't keep still.
Spike and I were sitting on the seats that had a table between them, we were playing cards while we waited to arrive. "Got any fours?" I asked while looking at my cards.
"Nope." Spike answered while keeping his eyes on his own.
Meanwhile, Twilight and Rainbow Dash were sticking their heads out the windows as the train got closer to our destination. "We're getting closer!" Twilight said with excitement.
"I can hardly wait!" Rainbow Dash said, sounding more excited.
At that moment, Fluttershy poked her head out of the window in front of Rainbow Dash's. "I'm so excited, I…I feel like shouting." She said before she let out a silent. "Whoo-hoo."
"Hoo-wee! Canterlot, here we come!" Applejack said as she took off her hat and put it back on while also sticking her head out of another window.
"Oh I do hope I look festive enough!" Rarity said as she poked her head out of another window with a Christmas tree hat one.
I then expected Pinkie to pop out of the window in front of Rarity, but instead she suddenly came out of her tree hat. "There it is! Canterlot!" she said.
As the city of Canterlot came into view from behind one of the mountains, everyone went "Ooohh." With awe.
"I don't see what the big deal is, we've been to Canterlot loads of time, why is it suddenly so marvellous?" I asked as I looked over to them, unaware of Spike looking over to see my cards in my hooves.
Twilight and Rarity brought their heads back in from out of the windows and came over to me. "Matthew, Canterlot is the crown jewel of Equestria, when is it never marvellous?" Rarity asked.
"How about the time where I nearly died there? Is was Hell on Earth then." I said as I placed my cards down, giving Spike an even better view of them.
Twilight groaned. "Matt, for starters, can you use the term 'Underworld' rather than that H-word? All the other ponies don't know what that means. And second, I know we've seen Canterlot before and, no doubt, it eventually gets old, but just look how beautiful it is with the snow." She said as she looked out of the window to her hometown.
I looked at Canterlot and saw that it was indeed a pretty sight with all that snow covering it. "Yeah, I dose look beautiful." I said before I looked over to Twi. "Sorry, I'm just a bit nervous about this whole re-enactment thing. What if I screw up on stage and spoil it." I said as I began to worry about it.
Twilight and Rarity gave me warm smiles. "You won't, Matt, you perform on stage in front of loads of ponies all the time." Twilight stated.
Suddenly, Pinkie Pie popped out of Rarity's hat again. "Yeah, except he hasn't put on a show in, like, forever!" she said as she slip out of the hat and onto the floor of the train.
Rarity looked down at her with her eyelids half-closed. "That's not really helping, dear." she said calmly.
Twilight walked up beside me and placed her hoof on my shoulder. "It'll be fine, you'll be fine. I know you're gonna be great up there, and I'll be right there with you if you get stuck." She said with a loving smile, which I returned.
Suddenly, we heard a loud groan above us and looked up at the luggage shelve above the seats to see Jeff looking down at us from it. "Can you all keep it down? This little bird needs some more sleep before we arrive." He said before he lied back down on the shelf and pulled a small cover over his body.
With that, we all looked at each other. "Don't worry, he's always like that when he's trying to sleep. We better get our stuff ready, we'll be arriving soon." I said.
With that, Twilight, Rarity and Pinkie went away while I returned to my game with Spike. "Your turn, Spike." I said, letting him know.
Knowing which cards I had, Spike grinned. "Oh…I dunno, got any…Aces?" he asked as he snickered a little.
I looked at my cards and saw I had two aces. "Blummin' He-…Underworld!" I said loudly as I gave Spike all my aces.
A few minutes later: Canterlot train station
After the short trip and a horrible card game, we arrived at the train station of Canterlot and departed from the train.
As I pulled a luggage-cart full of our stuff with Spike walking beside me and Jeff on my back, the Mane 6 walked ahead of us. "Oh, isn't Canterlot wonderful this time of year?" Twilight asked with her friends.
"Yeah, I wish it was Hearth's Warming Eve every day." Rainbow Dash commented.
Overhearing that, I chuckled. "If that wish came true, you'd be tired of it within three days. Trust me, I've seen it before." I said as I tried to catch up with them.
Rainbow Dash looked back at me. "Where? Where have you seen it before?" she asked curiously.
"I think it was a Christmas story, can't remember what it was exactly, but it sounds like a Christmas story." I said as I finally caught up with them.
Applejack looked back at me with a confused look. "What's this 'Christmas' ya keep saying? Is that another one of your adult words that no-one here's heard before?" she asked.
I looked at her and shook my head. "No, Christmas is basically my home version of Hearth's Warming. It's not so different, to be honest." I said before I left a disturbing feeling. "Oh…I suppose I'm gonna be missing out on Christmas this year…didn't think about that." I said as my ears lowered slightly.
Twilight and the rest of the Mane 6 looked at each other with troubled looks, knowing that it must be upsetting to feel like that. As we kept moving, Twilight began to develop a plan that she'd try to execute later.
Canterlot streets
After a short walk, I managed to cheer up and observe the sights of the city, everything was decorated with lights and trees and other Christmas stuff. It all reminded me of when I'd go with my parents to buy new Christmas ornaments for the tree, truly a Winter Wonderland.
I wasn't the only one doing this, the girls were also looking around admiring all the decorations. "There's so much to look at, I feel like a durn-eyes are gonna pop right outta my head." Applejack said.
"I have an idea, lets I Spy with my little Eye as we walk. I'll go first." Twilight said before she started. "I spy…and eight-foot candy cane." She said while looking over at a giant candy cane with Scootaloo and another filly's toughs stuck to it.
"I spy a Snowpony." Rainbow Dash said while looking over to a pony putting a top-hat on top of her Snowpony.
I wanted a turn and looked around for something to spy, but then I thought of the perfect thing. "I spy a beautiful and super hot pony." I said while looking directly at Twilight, making her smile and blush.
Pinkie Pie then hopped up into the air. "I spy somepony eating a gingerbread house." She said before she shot off into a store and came back out with a gingerbread house, which she then ate with one bite. "And it's me!" she said with her cheeks full.
As Pinkie chewed, we all stared at her in silence for a moment before we burst out laughing. "Haha, Pinkie, you're always good for a laugh." I said before we continued to walk with Pinkie hopping behind.
A few minutes later: Hearth's Warming store
We still had some time life before we'd have to go to the theatre, so we decided to drop in to the nearest Hearth's Warming store, where they sell loads of Hearth's Warming stuff like tree & house decorations, food, Holiday-themed statues and toys.
I was over by the decorations with Twilight, Fluttershy and Spike looking at all the tree ornaments, I always liked doing this back home and I was glad I could do it here as-well.
I looked through them as I walked down the aisle. Some looked good, other's looked a bit corny, I usually look for animal-themed ornaments like owls, Polo bears or penguins, something winter related.
I soon found a nice small one of a Barn owl and I grabbed it with my hoof to look at it better. "This looks nice." I through before I remembered how many bits I had in my saddle. "I might have just enough to get it, but I'd better ask Twilight first, I won't want to get it if she doesn't want it on our tree." I said to myself under my breath.
With the ornament in my hoof, I went to go find Twilight and see what she'd think of it. Eventually, I found her standing in front of a decorated tree and walked up beside her. "There you are, Twi, I found an ornament you might like. I think it would look good on our-…" I stopped talking once I noticed the look on her face.
Twilight was staring at something, like she was in some sort of day-dream. "Twilight? Are you alright?" I asked in concern before I looked over to what she was staring at. "…oh." I said.
There was an ornament on the tree, it was square and made of wood. There was a picture window in the centre where you'd put a picture of something in it, and underneath that said the words 'Baby's first Hearth's Warming'.
I then looked at Twilight and nuzzled my head against the side of her neck, finally snapping her out of her trance. I looked her in the eyes and spoke. "How are you feeling?" I asked.
Twilight placed her hoof on her stomach. "I'm fine. That medicine Mr Cake gave me works wonders on it, I feel much better because of it." she said with a gentle smile.
I wanted to return it, but I was still concerned about her. "Twi, if you feel ill in any way, let me know right away, ok? If you don't feel well enough to do the re-enactment, don't be afraid to say so, I'll sort something out." I said, trying to help her feel more at ease.
"I'm fine, really. I don't feel ill at all." Twilight stated before she looked at the ornament. "In fact, until I saw this ornament, I almost forgot about it." she said.
I didn't know what to think of that, so I just decided to feel glad that she was feeling better. "Well…at least you're not feeling sick anymore. But if that changes, just let me know…I need to know." I said.
Twilight nodded. "Don't worry, I will." She said before she gave me a small kiss on the cheek. "Now I know how you feel when I'm taking care of you." she said, trying to spark some humor out of it.
It worked because we shared a small chuckle. Once that conversation was done, I lifted the owl ornament up for her to see it and she smiled. "Oh, that looks nice, are you gonna get that?" she asked.
I smiled back. "I am now, I was just checking if you liked it." I admitted. "I'd best go pay for this quick, we probably don't have long until we have to be at the theatre." I said before I turned and made my way to the counter to pay for the ornament.
After I left, Fluttershy walked up beside Twilight and looked at her. "Hey Twilight, look what I found." She said before she raised one of her wings to reveal an ornament of a white bunny hanging from her top wing-feather. "Do you think Angel will like it?" she asked, with Twilight giving her a kind smile.
Later that day: Canterlot Theatre
When it was time for us to prepare for the re-enactment, we went over to the theatre and went through a short rehearsal with the pony in charge. We said our lines, sang our songs, acted our movements, everything.
But that didn't last long as the theatre started to fill with ponies ready to watch the re-enactment, with that happening, we started to get dressed into our costumes.
Rarity played the Unicorn Princess, Princess Platinum.
Rainbow Dash played the Pegasus leader, Commander Hurricane.
Pinkie Pie played the leader of the Earth Ponies, Chancellor Pudding-head.
Twilight played Princess Platinum's mage, Clover the Clever.
Applejack played Pudding-head's assistant, Smart Cookie.
Fluttershy played Hurricane's private, Private Pansy.
And I played Jester, Princess Platinum's…umm…Jester. I know, right?
The theatre was now full of ponies, and while Derpy was poking her head out of the curtains to wave to the awaiting audience, we were putting on our finishing touches before the opening act.
"I can't believe the Princess Celestia chose us to put on the most important play of the season. Do you guys know what an honour this is? For all of us?" Twilight said as Rarity used her magic to raise a powder-puff up to her face and pattered her cheeks with it.
"Oh, I wish she hadn't honoured me so much. I can't go on stage! I don't want everypony looking at me!" Fluttershy said with panic before she went and hid her head in a box full of decorations.
I watched this as I put my costume on. "Hey Jeff, look, she's doing her ostrich thing again." I said as I leaned over to Jeff, who was playing my pet parrot, Punch.
Jeff chuckled. "Yeah, she's been hangin' around her pet ostrich for too long." He said.
I then looked at him with a raised eye-brow. "She doesn't have a pet ostrich." I stated.
Jeff nodded. "Yeah, she doses." He said in disagreement.
"Mate, I've been to her cottage loads of times and I've never once seen an ostrich." I said, turning my body to face him more.
Jeff looked up at me. "Dude, the chick practically has a zoo, how can she not have an ostrich. She could very well have an orang-utan." He said.
"An Orang-utan? Now you're just being silly." I said before we started to have a tiff over the matter.
While we argued, Rarity walked over to Fluttershy. "Fluttershy, darling, there's nothing to feel nervous about." she said, trying to reassure her.
It worked a little because Fluttershy brought her head up from the box. "No?" she asked.
Rarity then used this moment to get her out of the box and push her towards a mirror. "Of course not." Rarity said before she used her magic to lift up a hairbrush and comb Fluttershy's mane with it. "All across Equestria, ponies are preparing their own pageant for Hearth's Warming Eve in their own towns, its tradition." She explained.
Fluttershy then gave her a small smile. "So you're saying they'll be too busy to come to our play?" she asked, hoping she was right.
Rarity shook her head. "Well, no…we're in the Canterlot pageant, the biggest, most important production in all of Equestria." she answered as she used her magic to lift up the powder-puff again and pat Fluttershy's face with it. "A lot of ponies will come to watch us." she said.
Once Rarity stopped, Fluttershy looked in the mirror with slight worry. "A lot?" she asked.
"Hundreds." Rarity answered.
"Hundreds?!" Fluttershy said, looking more worried than she did before.
Rarity then gasped in excitement. "*Gasp* Maybe even thousands." She added.
That was Fluttershy's breaking point before she leaped in the air and rushed back over to the box, she then hid inside it again once she reached it, quivering with fright.
Rarity gave her a disapproving look. But suddenly, a strong breeze blew against her, making her shield her face with her arm from the cold wind. "Oh! My hair!" she said quite loudly before she looked over to Applejack. "Applejack, be a dear and shut those windows, will you?" she said as she point her hoof at the open windows.
Without saying anything, Applejack went over to the windows to shut them, but was distracted by Rainbow Dash, who was whispering cheers for herself in front of another mirror. "Rainbow Dash, Rainbow Dash! Haaaaaah." She whispered before saying. "Thank you! Thank you!"
Applejack then spoke up to her. "It's a re-enactment of the founding of Equestria, it's not the Rainbow Dash show." She said as Rainbow Dash lowered herself down to look Applejack in the face.
"Well it should be the Rainbow Dash show, I'm the star." Rainbow Dash said before they both started to argue about it.
While they did, Twilight was using her magic to try and pull Fluttershy out of the box she was hiding in, but she wouldn't budge. She was strong for such a timid Pegasus. "Fluttershy, you've got to come out there!" Twilight said as she pulled harder.
Just then, Spike, who was dressed like a medieval minstrel, opened to curtains and looked over to us. "Curtain in two minutes." He said with a bright smile on his face.
Pinkie Pie hopped over towards Twilight and Fluttershy. "Twilight, let me handle this." She said as she hopped past Rarity, who was still trying to protect her hair from the strong wind.
"My hair!" Rarity blurted out again, hoping someone would shut the window and stop the wind.
At that moment, Pinkie grabbed Twilight by her head with her hooves and pulled back hard, trying to help pull Fluttershy out of the box. "PINKIIIIIIE!" Twilight yelled as the pink pony pull on her head.
The cold wind then stuck Pinkie and she released Twilight to hug herself for warmth, but doing that caused Twilight to be flung into the box with Fluttershy.
Meanwhile, Jeff and I were still arguing over Fluttershy's animals. "Ok, this is getting silly, how can Fluttershy possibly have a crocodile? She'd run to the next town if she saw one of those." I stated.
"She has a bear in her house, for Celestia's sake! If she can put up with a bear, she can have a croc." Jeff argued loudly.
"I know Fluttershy can love all sorts of animals, but she does have limits, I don't see her taking care of…I don't know…a hydra." I said to him.
"Give her a baby hydra and it'll be callin' her 'momma' within four days." Jeff said as he crossed his wings.
While we continued our little spat, Applejack and Rainbow Dash kept on arguing about the pageant. "The Heart's Warming Eve pageant is about harmony and friendship." Applejack stated as she looked Rainbow in the eyes firmly.
The rest of us then couldn't take the strong, cold wind anymore and we all snapped. "SHUT THE WINDOW!" We all yelled at the two ponies.
After watching us all argue and yell, Spike went back behind the curtain, moaning in a worried way.
With that, Applejack walked over to the window and closed them, finally stopping the wind. "There, everypony happy now?" she asked.
I was the first to speak. "Yes! Damn, it's freezing." I said as I hugged myself to keep warm.
Rarity then stepped forward. "Yes, but at least that last part stopped us all from arguing, maybe now we can all calm down and get our attitudes straight for the pageant." She said before she noticed us all staring at her, she then looked up to see her mane was stuck up and messy. "MY HAIR!" she screamed before she rushed over to the mirror to fix it.
While she did, Fluttershy managed to climb out of the box. "I…I'm not sure I can do this, I think I'll drop out." She said with more fright.
Twilight turned her head to face her. "But Fluttershy, you can't drop out, otherwise who'll play Private Pansy?" she said.
"I don't know, but I'm sure you'll find someone, there's probably lots of ponies who'd be more than happy to fill in for me." Fluttershy said.
At that moment, I walked over to them. "I'll talk to her." I said to Twi before I turned my attention to Fluttershy. "Fluttershy, please, we really want you to do it. I know you're scared, but if we're all part of this, we want you to be part of it as-well. If we get someone else to play your character, it won't feel the same, it'll won't feel like we're doing it together. You know what I mean?" I asked.
Fluttershy simply whimpered as she looked away.
"We'll be with you the whole time, I promise, we'll help you if you feel scared." I said with a warm, reassuring smile.
Fluttershy looked up at me before she managed to say something. "Alright Matt, I'll do it, for you and everyone else." She said before she flew over to the costumes to find hers.
Twilight then came up to me. "At least you know how to all this." She said.
I turned my head to face her. "I just want us all to do a good job tonight. Now let's finish up, we're on any second, we should try to get through this with at least some dignity." I said before I put on my jester hat, with its bells jingling as I did.
With that, the rest of us returned to our places to get our costumes ready, working fast so we wouldn't be late for the play.
A minute later
The theatre was dark and packed with a large audience watching the stage, waiting for the play to start. They didn't have to wait long as the spotlight shined down on the large red curtains and opened to reveal the stage, decorated as a fireplace with Spike standing beside it.
Spike then started the story, putting on a posh accent as he did. "Once upon a time, long before the peaceful rule of Celestia and before ponies discovered our beautiful land of Equestria, ponies did not know harmony." He began as he walked up to the front of the stage. "It was a strange and dark time, a time when ponies were torn apart…by hatred." He said, putting a lot of dark in the last line.
The entire audience, including CMC who had front-row seats, gasped loudly at this.
Spike then leaned down to them. "I know, can you believe it?" he said quietly before he continued the story with ponies on stage acted out what he said. "During this frightful age, each of the three tribes…the Pegasi, the Unicorns and the Earth ponies, cared not for what befell the other tribes, but only for their own well fair." He said as the curtains closed.
"In those troubled times, as now, the Pegasi were the stewards of the weather." Spike said as the curtains opened to show a Pegasus shaking a cloud to make snow come out of it. "But, they demanded something in return. Food that could only be grown by the Earth ponies." he said as the scene changed to a field with Earth ponies giving the pegasi food.
Spike then continued as a pair of Unicorns came up on stage. "The Unicorns demanded the same, in return for magically being forth the day and night." he said as one of the unicorns pretended to use her magic to make the fake sun go up and the fake moon come down.
Spike walked up to the front of the stage again. "And so, mistrust between the tribes festered, until one faithful day, it came to a boil. And what prompted the ponies to clash? Twas a mysterious blizzard, that over took the land and toppled the tribes' precarious peace." He said as it started to snow heavily on stage.
Act 1
"The normally industrious Earth ponies were unable to farm their land, the Earth ponies were freezing. The home of the Pegasi fared no better, the Pegasi were hungry. And the Unicorns were freezing and hungry, even the Unicorn's magic was powerless against the storm. Each tribe blamed the other for their suffering, and the angrier everypony grew, the worse the blizzard became. And so it was decided that a grand summit would be held to figure out a way to cope with the blizzard.
Each tribe sent their leaders. Daughter of the Unicorn king, Princess Platinum. Ruler of the Pegasi, Commander Hurricane. And lastly, leader of the Earth ponies, Chancellor Pudding-Head. Perhaps the three tribes could finally settle their differences and agree on a way to get through this disaster.
Unicorn castle: (Jester's POV)
While Princess Platinum was at the summit, I was in my room working on my latest act to amuse her. For year, I had been the jester for the Princess, my attempts to make her laugh always ended the same way, failure, shame and disgraced, I could barely get a chuckle out of her, the closest I got was a smirk when I told a joke about the other tribes, it wasn't even funny, it was kind of crude.
I know very well that I was a Pegasus and I should've been with my own kind, but there's a story behind that. When I was a foal, I was lost from the other Pegasi after a dragon attack, the Unicorn king found me and took me in. I was raised by the Chef, a good stallion if there ever was on, I worked with him in the kitchen until I accidently slipped over some water in front of the Princess, making her laugh more than she ever had done before. After that, the king decided to make me into her personal jester, to entertain her whenever she wanted me to.
As years went by, Princess Platinum's taste in my humor withered until she didn't find me funny anymore, but she still keeps me around, whether it's because she saw me as a friend or she just wanted to watch a Pegasus humiliate himself. Whichever one it was, it didn't matter, I was just glad I could be here.
I sat in my room struggling to juggle three balls, I kept shifting left and right to make sure I wouldn't miss any of them. "Ok, I got this…yeah…I've got this. Now for the hard part." I said before I stood up on my hide-legs, still juggling, and moved across the room, I was doing well before I dropped one of the balls and stood on it.
I struggled more to juggle the two remaining balls as I tried to keep my balance on the ball. "Ok, this isn't right." I said before I started to move backwards. "Oh dear, oh dear, oh dear, oh dear!" I repeated I fell backwards against the wall while throwing the two balls in the air.
As I leaned up, the both balls fell down and hit my head. "Ow." I said as I rubbed my head with my hoof.
"Hahahaha!" I heard a loud laugh and looked up to see my pet parrot, Punch, standing on one of the support beams for the ceiling. "Let me guess, that wasn't part of the act." He asked with an amused smile on his face.
I stood back up while continuing to look at him. "I'll manage it one day and when I do, Princess Platinum will love it…like she did-"
"All those years ago." Punch said, know what I was gonna said. "You keep saying that, but you fail to realise she isn't a little filly anymore, she doesn't find you funny." He said firmly.
"Maybe, but that doesn't stop me from trying. I'm gonna keep at it and try harder, I'm not dried up yet, you'll see." I said just as firmly before walked over to my unicycle and started to ride it, keeping my balance on it all the while.
Punch rolled his eyes before he flew down to me and landed on my head. "Dude, you were meant for more than this, I'm sure of it. You could be one of the knights, bodyguards, you'd even be doing good if you were still workin' in the kitchen. Think about it, if you were one of those, you'd be completely settled, you'd even catch the eyes of Clover." He said.
With that last sentence, I fell of my unicycle and thought about what he said. Clover, also known as Clover the Clever, she was the Princess's personal mage, and the most beautiful pony in the all the land. She's a good friend and one of the only few Unicorn who cared about me. Every time I see her, I'd feel both light and ill, she made me feel like I mattered. If I ever hurt myself while trying to entertain the Princess, she'd use her potions to heal me. To be honest, Clover was indeed the love of my life.
I leaned up off the floor and looked at Punch. "Do you really think it would make an impression on her?" I asked curiously.
Punch nodded. "Sure thing." he said before he lifted one of his wings up and jingled one of the bells on my hat. "This though, not so much. Take it from someone who knows, chicks don't dig clowns." He said, putting a lot of force on the word 'don't'.
I sighed heavily before I fell back against the floor. "It'll never work, Punch. This is who I am, I'm a jester, to try and become something else would be disobeying the king, I can't do that, not after all this." I said before I thought of something that made my heart grow heavy. "Besides, Clover's a Unicorn and I'm a Pegasus, that kind of thing is basically forbidden." I said.
Punch sighed in defeat. "Fine, I tried." He said before he picked up a ball with his talons and threw it to me. "Good look with your jugglin' thing." he said before he flew back up to his nest.
I leaned up and rubbed my face with my hoof, trying to make myself feel more at ease about things. I sighed one last time before I stood up and walked over to my broken mirror. I looked into it and talked to myself. "A jester doesn't frown, if he frowns, everyone else dose, so cheer up and make your best effort." I said before I brought myself up to form a smile.
Doing that would sometimes help, it helped me forget about what was upsetting me and find a way to cheer me up. "Ok, now when the Princess returns from the summit, make her smile, that's all you need." I said to myself before I went back to practise my acts while waiting for the Princess to return.
Later that day
"So the summit of the tribes did not go as well as hoped, and the three leaders returned home to lick their wounds…and basically complain."
Princess Platinum walked through the door of the castle, shivering due to the extreme coldness of the storm, and dramatically fell against the door with her hoof against her head. "Clover the Clever, I need you!" she called before she fell to the floor.
Clover the Clever, the mage who wore a cloak and hood made out of burlap, walked up to her and used her magic to cover the Princess with a blanket. "Yes, your majesty. Did the other pony tribes see reason as I predicted?" she asked before closing the doors with her magic.
"Those other tribes are impossible! I, for one, can no long bear to be anywhere near those lowly creatures." Princess Platinum said as she lied down on a stool with a pillow on it while Clover brought her a wooden tub of water to soak her hooves in. "The Unicorns and noble and majestic, we will no longer consort with the likes of them." she said before she dropped her hooves into the tub, making the water splash against Clover's face.
Clover wiped the water off her face with her hoof. "If that's what you command, your highness." She said, not so fond of the idea.
The Princess groaned. "All this conflict with the other tribe leaders has put me in a distraught mood. Summon Jester, I could use some foolery for my amusement." She commanded.
With that, one of the servants went off to find me. While they did that, Clover looked at the Princess. "Excuse me for bringing this up again, your majesty, but why do you like seeing Jester humiliate himself so?" she asked.
Princess Platinum sighed in frustration. "Clover, we have been over this many times before. Jester is a Pegasus, and if there is one this I find amusing about him anymore is the fact that one of those ruffians is making themselves look like a fool." She said strongly.
Clover gave her a disapproving look. "But Jester isn't like the other Pegasi, he's not a ruffian, he's a good friend, a very loyal one at that. He tries again and again to please you and fails every time, yet he doesn't give up." she stated.
"Yes…I must admit, there is no other Jester like him, but that changes nothing…and when it comes to our view on the Pegasus tribe, don't let your feelings for him stand in the way." Princess Platinum said, looking at Clover with a raised eye-brow,
Clover went wide-eyed when she said that. "My what?...Umm, I don't have any…I mean, I don't like Jester like that, he's a friend, nothing else." She said in her defence.
Platinum rolled her eyes. "Sure he is." She said sarcastically.
At that moment, I came into the doing flips as I came across the room to the two Unicorns. I did one final flip before I reached them, but instead of landing on my hind-legs like I intended, I landed on my head. "Ow!" I said as I laid flat on the floor.
Platinum stayed unamused while Clover covered her mouth with her hoof, trying not to laugh.
I then sat up properly and brushed the dust off. "Sorry about that. Look at me, messy and covered in dust, I might as well be down with the ancient relics." I said before I smiled largely at the Princess.
"I really hope that wasn't an attempt of an opening act." Princess Platinum said, not looking amused at all.
I shifted my eyes back and forth before I answered. "No…of course not." I said before I decided to open up with a few jokes. "So did you hear about the goldfish that went bankrupted?...well now he's a bronze-fish."
*Ba-da-tss*
Princess Platinum yawned with boredom while Clover struggled to keep from laughing.
My smile went away once I realised it didn't work. "Ok, how about this. A pony walks into a hospital and says 'Doctor, can you help me out?', the doctor then say 'Sure sir, which way did you come in?'."
*Ba-da-tss*
Once again, Princess Platinum remained unamused but Clover giggled a little, but straightened her face when Platinum turned to look at her.
I saw that these jokes were going nowhere, so I decided to skip to the big one. "Ok, I was gonna save this for last, but you're a great audience so I'm gonna skip right to it." I said before I turned to face the door. " Bring my unicycle, the ramp and the right of fire." I said.
"The right of what?" Clover said in shock and worry.
A few ponies then brought the items I requested and set them up for the act. The ramp was set up near the end of the hall with the ring of fire standing up in front of it, a Unicorn used his magic to set the ring ablaze, and another past me my unicycle.
Princess Platinum watched with slight interest and Clever with a worried look as I got up on my unicycle and started peddling, moving fast towards the ramp and the right of fire.
As I got closer, I paddled harder, hoping that I wouldn't screw this up. I paddled harder and harder until the moment came, I went up the ramp and it jumped right through the ring of fire. Princess Platinum looked slightly impressed while Clover was glad I didn't get hurt.
I rode my unicycle back towards them before I noticed them looking at my head, I looked up to see my hat was smoking, it was close to catching fire. Panicking, I started to lose my balance on the unicycle before I started to move forward towards the two Unicorns.
Seeing I was out of control, Clover used her magic to pull Platinum away just as I feel forward and my head landed in the tub of water, but out whatever bit of fire was in my hat. I leaned back up, soaking wet with the tub on my head. "Urr…ta-da." I said sheepishly, really glad I couldn't see the look on Platinum's face.
"Nice try, Jester. I appreciate the effort, but I don't think it's working." Princess Platinum said before she walked past me.
I sat there on the floor, once again feeling like a failure as a Jester, I grabbed the tub with my hooves and took it off my head and watched as the Princess walked away. I then felt my hat lift off my head before I looked to see Clover holding it up with her magic, she then held it over the tub in my hooves and ringed the water out of it. "I thought you were great, Jester." She said before she placed my hat back on my head.
I smiled warmly as her as we looked in each other's eyes, there was defiantly something there, but neither of us could bring ourselves to tell the other what they wanted to. I then snapped back to reality before I cleared my throat. "*Clears throat* Ok…I better go check on Punch, I can never leave that bird in my room for too long before he breaks something." I said before I turned and walked towards the exit.
Clover wanted to call me back, but couldn't do it.
But before I could leave, I stopped when I heard Princess Platinum gasped loudly, attracting the attention of me and Clover. "*Gasp* I have it! This storm isn't going to stop and the Earth ponies are keeping all the food for themselves, so we are going to go on a quest, a quest for start fresh and make our own food, with no horrible storm to stop us." she said before she turned to face us. "My friends, we must find a new land!" she said.
Clover and I looked at each other before we looked back at Platinum. "Are you serious?" I asked curiously.
Platinum looked at me with her eye-lids half closed. "Yes, I am serious, when am I ever not?" she stated.
I gave her a small smile. "Alright, I that case, I better pack." I said before I pulled out sack and started putting stuff like candles and glowing gems before I looked over to Platinum. "I'm packing light."
*Ba-do-tss*
Clover let out a small laugh as she got my joke, while Platinum remained unamused. "…No, not working." She said before she turned to look out of the window.
"Oh come on, that one was pure gold, I just this minute made it up." I moaned as I unpacked all the random stuff and went into a huff.
Act 2
After packing up all the supplies we would need, myself, Princess Platinum, Clover and Punch set out to find a new land to escape the constant storm. Of course, the Princess wouldn't carry any of her luggage, so guess who had to carry it for her.
Forest in the Unicorn lands
Now we were off, starting a quest to find a new land restart the rule of the Unicorns and get away from the storm. But no one said it was gonna be easy, we had only been traveling for a few minutes and Platinum was already complaining, can say it wasn't getting annoying.
Platinum and Clover were walking ahead while I was bringing up the rear, carrying all of Platinum's cases with Punch on top of them. To pass time and tune out Platinum's complaining, Punch decided to play I-Spy, even though I didn't want to play. "Ok, I spy something beginning with…T." Punch said.
"Tree." I answered with a board look on my face.
Punch looked down at me with a surprised look. "How'd you know so fast?" he asked.
"Because this is the fourth fecking time you've said it!" I said loudly.
"Well there are not many things to spy, Jester, so forgive me if there's nothing else to play the game with." Punch said as he crosses his wings.
We then passed through a big bush and entered a clear part of the forest, a moment later, Princess Platinum started complaining again. "Oh this is taking simply forever, my hooves are killing me, how long have we been walking for?" she asked as she turned her head around to face Clover.
"About five minutes, your highness." Clover said as used her hoof to push down a bush and show Platinum that we weren't far away from her castle.
"I could've sworn we've been out here longer…or it might've just felt that way because Punch's games have been driving me mad." I said as I looked up at Punch with a firm look.
Punch looked down at me with the same look. "Why don't I just shut up, huh? Will you be happy then?" He asked, sounding offended.
"Now Punch, what have I said about making promises you can't keep?" I said before I snickered at my own joke, but the funny moment didn't last long as a big chuck of snow fell down onto my head.
Platinum then started walking ahead while we followed behind. "*Hard sigh* I never imagined finding a new land would be so hard!" she complained before she started to talk about the bright side of it. "But it'll all be worth it, don't you agree?" she asked as she looked back at us.
"I actually think the three tribes could've tried harder." Clover said, giving her most honest answer.
I caught up with them and walked beside Clover. "Yeah, what happened at the summit anyway, did you actually talk or did you all just argue some more?" I asked.
We were expecting Platinum to answer us, but instead she stopped and yelled. "STOOOP!"
We both then galloped up to her to see what was happening. "What's wrong?" Clover asked in concern.
"Is it bandits? Wild beasts? Bandits?!...Wait, I just said bandits, didn't I?" I said before I threw the luggage off my back and got out a rubber chicken. "Don't worry, you majesty, I'll protect you with my chicken of fury!" I said as I span it around my body like a nun-chuck.
Platinum looked at me. "Well can you protect me from that?!" she asked before she pointed her hoof at something.
We all then looked at what she was pointing at and as only a little stream, so small we could easily just step over it. "She's kidding, right?" Punch asked.
"Your highness, it's just a stream." Clover said before she walked up to it and crossed it by stepping on the small rocks above the water. "We can cross it easily." She stated.
As expected, Platinum turned away with disapproval. "I refuse to get my gown wet. I have no intention of arriving in my new land looking like a bedraggled Earth pony, or worse yet, a rough-and-tumbled Pegasus. I, for one, have no intention of stooping down their level…" she said strongly as she turned her back, but then, she looked back at Clover. "On the other hand, I have no trouble watching you and Jester stoop down." she said with a wicked grin.
Clover groaned as she rolled her eyes. The next thing we knew, I was lying down over the stream to form a bridge and Platinum was riding Clover across me. "And do watch the gown, darling, it's worth more than all the books in your library." Platinum said as Clover walking over my back.
I grunted as I felt their weight press down against my back. "Thanks for making me a part of this." I said as I struggled to hold on until they finally crossed and I pulled myself back up. Now a little wet, I joined them on the other side of the stream. "That went well." I said before I tried to walk ahead.
But I was stopped by Platinum. "Not so fast, Jester, you still need to get my all my luggage you left behind over there." She said as she pointed her hoof over to the pile of luggage on the other side of the stream.
I sighed heavily. "Yes your majesty." I said before I turned and walked back across the stream, letting my hooves walk through the water, it wasn't like I was gonna get any wetter.
That night
After walking for a few hours, encountering many obstacles, we finally decided to call it a night and set up camp in a field.
Princess Platinum was so tired from all the traveling that she fell to sleep right away once we got her tent up, her tent was really big and looked like a castle, guess she didn't want to be away from feeling like royalty.
All the while, Clover and I only had small tents. I was trying to keep the fire going while Clover was sitting in her tent, reading one of the books she brought. At some points, I would look over to her, hoping she wouldn't notice. Our travel had been hard, but she seemed to always make me feel at ease with it.
As I returned my attention to the fire, Punch flew over to me and landed beside me. "Princess is asleep, calm night, the fire is providing mood lighting. If you asked me, I'd say this would be a good time to finally make your move." He said.
I looked down at him. "What are you talking about now?" I asked with a raised eye-brow.
"You know, you and Clover, you should just go over there and talk to her." Punch said as he tried to tempt me into doing it.
It was working and all, I really did want to go over to Clover and talk to her, maybe we'll get somewhere…but I couldn't. "I can't, Punch. Believe me, I want to, but I can't." I said with my ears dropped down in sadness.
"But why not? Are you scared or something?" Punch asked, not understanding the reason.
"I just can't, ok?!" I snapped before I stood up and stormed away from the camp site, Punch watched me leave before he flew after me.
This act caught the attention of Clover and she saw me walking down the field away from the camp, she wondered where I was going and felt a little concerned for me.
After walking for a few minutes, I found a peaceful spot near a cliff where I could sit and clear my head. But the quiet moment didn't last long as Punch landed beside me. "Dude, want's going on? How come you act like this when I keep brinin' it up?" he asked.
I turned my head and looked down at it. "Because you're talking nonsense! You keep talking as if this thing with me and Clover is easy, but it's not as easy as it looks. It'll never work, and even she knows that!" I said with a strong tone.
"What are you talkin' about?" Punch asked with a confused look.
"*Sighs heavily* Punch, think about it, Unicorns and Pegasi are enemies. Now if a Pegasus was to start a relationship with a Unicorn, then everyone will start losing their minds. Clover would get in trouble and I'd be banished, or worse, we'd both get banished. Clover's life with the royal family would be ruined, I can't do that to he, it means too much to her." I said as I looked down at the grass.
While we were talking, Clover was watching from a bush not far away from us, she was listening in and hoped we wouldn't notice her.
Punch then placed his wing on my side. "I get it, ok…there're rules…you break them, it's your head in the slammer." He said before he scoffed. "To think, this would be a problem if you were anything other than a Pegasus." He said as he crossed his wings.
"Well, I am a Pegasus, nothing's gonna change that." I said before I tried to end the subject. "Not like I'd want to, I Pegasus is who I am, to think of myself as anything else would be unrealistic…I may be a jester, but I'm not fool, we can only be who we are." I said strongly as I stood and took a few steps away from Punch.
Punch was quiet for a moment before he spoke. "Well you know what I'd like to be? If I had a choice, I'd be a large great bird, soaring majestically through the skies and everypony down below wondering 'What kind of bird is that? Is it a new kind of Phoenix? Where can I get one of its shiny feathers?'." He said before he looked at me. "That's not being unrealistic, Jest, that's just having a fantasy, nothing odd about that." He stated.
I turned my head around to face him. "I know, Punch…sorry, I just don't feel very cheerful right now. If I was in a different mood, then maybe I'd actually believe such things like I want could be real." I said, sounding troubled.
Hearing that, Punch wondered if I ever really did want to be anything else other than a Jester for Unicorns. "So…there's really no-one else you'd rather be?" he asked.
I stood there, wondering the same thing myself, I turned to face him before I thought of some things, I began to sing my heart out.
Me: "I guess I'd be a hero…with sword and armour clashing. Looking semi-dashing, a shield within my grip
Or else I'd be a Viking, and live a life of daring, while smelling like a herring, upon a Viking ship
I'd sail away, I'd see the world, I'd reach the farthest reaches.
I'd feel the wind, I'd taste the salt and sea, and maybe storm some beaches!
That's who I'd be…that's who I'd be!
Or I could be a poet…and write a different story, one that tells of glory, and wipes away the lies
Into the skies, I'd throw it…the stars would do the telling, the moon would help with spelling and night would dot the 'I's
I'd write a verse, recite a joke, with wit and perfect timing!
I'd share my heart, confess the things I yearn and doooo it all while rhyming!
But we all learn…but we all learn!
A jester always hides, a jester's fate is known, a jester always stays in the dark and all aloooone!...
So yes I'd be a hero, and if my wish were granted, life would be enchanted, or so the stories say.
Of course I'd be a hero! And I would scale a tower…to save a hot-house flower, and carry her away.
But standing guard would be a beast, I'd somehow overwhelm it!
I'd get the girl, I'd take a breath, and I'd remove my helmet…
We'd stand and stare, we speak of love, we'd feel the stars ascending!
We'd share a kiss, I'd find my destiny, I'd have a hero's endiiiing! A perfect happy endiiiing!
That's how it would beeee!
A big, bright, beautiful world!...But not for meeee."
While I was upset by the last verse, Clover overheard the whole thing and chose to sing her heart out as well, being careful not to heard by us.
Clover: "A jester always hides, a Jester's fate is known, a jester always stays in the dark-"
Punch: "You're all aloooone."
Me and Clover: "All aloooone!"
-At the same time-
Me: "So yes I'd be a hero, and if my wish were granted, life would be enchanted, or so the stories say."
Clover: "And I knoooow he'll appear! 'Cause there are rules and there are strictures. I believe the story books I read, by candle light!"
Punch: "All aloooone! You need a pal, my colander's opeeeen. You need meeee!"
Me: "Of course I'd be a hero! And I would scale a tower…to save a hot-house flower, and carry her awaaaay!"
Me, Punch and Clover: "A perfect happy ending, that's hoooow it should beeee!"
Reality: Canterlot theatre
As our song ends, the curtains close and the crowd cheers loudly at our performance.
Once they calmed down, Spike walked back onto the stage and continued the story. "And so, each leader encountered obstacles along the way. But eventually, they all arrived in a new and wondrous land. No pony had ever seen paradise before." He spoke.
The curtains then opened to reveal a set that looked identical to Equestria, but without the towns or Canterlot on the side of the mountain.
Continuing act 2
The next day after that night, we all set off to continue our search for a new land. The path wasn't easy, there was a lot of climbing and getting across things, and it was even harder with Platinum making one of us carry her through them.
But eventually and finally, we found a land unlike any other, it was more beautiful than any other land I've seen before. Long green fields, clean sparkling lakes and I tall pointy mountain in the centre of it all. Who knows what could be in this land, I could live here for a year and only know half its wonders.
Princess Platinum was more than satisfied with this land, especially when she found a cliff with a whole nest of gems stuck in the rocks, each shining in the sunlight like stars on a clear night. She has spent over fifteen minutes lying down in front of a pile of gems, just staring at them with absolute awe. "I've never seen such jewels." She said before she used her magic to pick up the big gem on top of the pile. "This ruby is dazzling, this whole land is dazzling! I'm double dazzled!" she said before she squealed in glee.
"Yeah, this is a very pretty place. Play our cards right with these gems and we could make a whole kingdom with them." Punch said as he landed in front of one of the gems and looked at himself in it. "Think about it, a castle made with gems in it. Can you imagine all the envy." He said.
Platinum turned her head to face me. "Indeed, Punch, I can even now see all the envious looks on the faces of the Pegasi, this is truly a marvellous discovery." She said before she lied down next to the pile of gems. "In the name of the Unicorns, I hereby dub this land…Unicornia." She said as I stuck the Unicorn flag into the ground next to her.
"We found our new home!" Platinum said proudly. But then, we noticed something, a few other voices said the same thing the same time she did.
We all then looked to where they came from to see we weren't alone here, the Earth Ponies and the Pegasi were here as well. The Earth Ponies we just down the small cliff we were on and the Pegasi were on a cloud just above us. They each had their own flag stuck up beside them, meaning they too branded this land as their own.
We all looked at each other for a moment before the Pegasus leader, who I recognised as the famous Commander Hurricane, broke the silence. "I planted my flag first!" she claimed.
"Did not!" Princess Platinum argued with a strong tone.
"Did too!" Hurricane argued back with a stronger tone.
"I planted mine earlier than first." The Earth pony leader, who I also recognised as the powerful yet odd Chancellor Pudding-head, said with a calm voice before her flag fell over.
I rolled my eyes before looking at Clover. "Ah dang, here we go again." I moaned before we listened to their argument.
"All you riffraff are trespassing in Unicornia!" Platinum said, still using a strong and dominating tone, trying to show them she wasn't going to stand for this.
"The name is Pegasopolis!" Hurricane stated with the same type of tone.
"Earth!" Pudding-head blurted out.
"Pegasopolis!" Hurricane argued loudly.
"Unicornia!" Platinum yelled, trying to be louder.
With that, Hurricane lifted up from her cloud and flew over towards Platinum. "I say we fight for the land! May the best pony win." She said as she got closer.
Platinum glared at her. "That's barbaric." She said before she used her magic to move Clover in front of her. "Clover the Clever! Throw that brute into the dungeon." She commanded.
"What dungeon?" Clover asked.
I then walked over to them. "I'll do it, your highness." I said before I pulled out my rubber-chicken. "Get ready to face my chicken of fury!" I said as Punch flew up to my head and struck the Kung-Fu Crane pose.
Hurricane wasn't intimidated, in fact, she looked more annoyed than anything. "Look kid, my business isn't with you, so how about you move aside before I…wait a minute." She said before she flew closer to me and eyes my wings. "You're a Pegasus!" she said in surprise.
"Really? I didn't know. What gave it away?" I said sarcastically.
"What are you doing in that ridiculous outfit? And why are you working with the enemy?" Hurricane asked with a firm tone.
"Firstly, I didn't pick the outfit, I got what they gave me." I answered before I continued. "And secondly…I don't work for you." I said, saying the last part with an amused smirk.
After hearing that, Hurricane growled in anger before she looked at Platinum. "So not only have you stolen all of our food, but you kidnapped one of our own Pegasi and brainwashed him." she claimed.
Platinum glared at her again. "We did no such thing! We found him as a foal and took him in after the Pegasi abandoned him in the woods. So much for taking care of your own!" she said loudly.
"So instead of returning him to us, you turned him into your own personal clown? So you could laugh at a Pegasus making a fool of himself? Not only is that insulting to us, that's down-right despicable!" Hurricane said firmly as she glared right into Platinum's eyes.
"Hey, ladies, the clown's still here, ok." I said, waving my hoof trying to remind them that I was still here listening to them talk about me.
Clover then stepped forward. "Look, perhaps if we all calm down…" She started, trying to stop the fighting.
"I agree." The second Earth pony said. "Let's all calm down."
"I vote for calm." The second Pegasus added in a quiet voice.
Hearing this, Hurricane turned to face her and gave her a firm look. "I'll have you curt-marshalled for insubordination, private!" she said before she puffed out her chest, trying to look strong. "We settle this on the battlefield." She said, but she was suddenly hit in the face by a snowball.
Seeing this made Platinum laugh loudly, this led me to think I could've finally made her laugh if I had thought of doing that first. But her laugh was cut short before she too was hit in the face by a snowball.
While Hurricane laughed at this, Platinum shook off the snow and became really angry. "Who dares throw a snowball at royalty?!" she yelled.
I then looked down below the cliff and saw Pudding-head with a bunch of snowballs. "It was her, your highness, Frosting-head!" I said as I pointed my hoof down at her.
"Pudding-head!" Pudding-head corrected me before she noticed something the rest of us didn't. "Wait a minute, where'd all this snow come from anyway?" she asked.
We all then looked around to see something that we all feared would happen, the storm that covered our old land with snow and wind had arrived here, like it had followed us. The once blue clear sky had become clouded, the green grass was buried in a growing blanket of snow, and the air became as cold as the arctic.
"Oh no, not again!" Hurricane said as the wind picked up and it became harder to see anything through the fog it brought with it.
Reality: Canterlot theatre
As the third and final act was about to begin, Spike continued to narrate to the audience. "And so the paradise the ponies had found was soon lost, buried beneath a thick blanket of snow and hard feelings. Instead of beautiful, it was blizzardy. Instead of wonderful, it was wintery! Instead of spectacular, it was snow-tacular! Instead of-"
"We get it! Move on!" A mare in the audience said loudly, trying to get Spike to stop overdoing it and get on with the performance.
Spike laughed nervously before he cleared his throat and continued. "Everypony was forced to seek shelter, they searched high and low, but the only shelter for miles was a cold and desolate cave." He said as the curtains opened to reveal a set that looked like a rocky hill with a cave in it. "And, of course, the three tribes had to share it…and no-pony was too happy about that."
Act 3: Cold cave
After searching for nearly an hour, we finally found shelter from the storm, it was a deep and dark cave. True, it was no inn, but it was the only thing we could find that was nearby.
Inside the cave, I talked with the other Earth pony and Pegasus and learnt their names, not that it really mattered, but having conversations like that were better than arguing.
We stood in silence, waiting for the storm to pass so we could go find better shelter. All the while, Clover and I were wondering which one of the leaders would start a new argument first. Would it be Pudding-head, Hurricane?, or our own Princess fuss-pot? We were about to find out.
I tried to break the silence by lightening up the mood. "So…if anyone can guess what I have in my hoof, I'll do a magic trick." I said as I held out my hoof.
The second Earth pony looked at my hoof to see I was holding nothing, it was just my plain hoof. "You're not holdin' anythin'." She answered with confusion.
I then looked at my hoof to see she was right. "…Maybe I should've picked something up before I said any of that." I said before I placed my hoof back down on the floor.
Meanwhile, Platinum and Hurricane glared at each other before Platinum looked down at the ground, I didn't know why, but it had something to do with Hurricane. "Please General hot-head…" she started.
"It's Commander Hurricane." Hurricane corrected with an annoyed look.
Platinum then pretended to clear her throat to speak again. "Please Commander, could you just stand back and give me my royal space." She said as she motioned her hoof in the way that said 'move back a little'.
Hurricane glared. "You mean like this, your highness?" she said as she stomped her hoof forward, trying to rattle Platinum up.
"Indeed not!" Platinum said as she pushed Hurricane's hoof away before pointed her own hoof down at the dirt. "You see this invisible line?" she said while point right in front of Hurricane's front hooves.
Punch waved his wing. "Don't talk to me about invisible lines, I always kept tripping over those, that's why I like being in high places like this." He said while standing on my back. Clover and I looked at him with awkward confusion, wondering how that could even be possible.
With no-one else listening, Hurricane turned her head to face Private Pansy. "Private, outline our territory for every pony to see." She ordered, with Pansy carrying it out.
Pansy flew over to one end of the cave and started to draw a line in the dirt, but was taking too long so Hurricane grabbed hold of her and dragged her across the cave, making her draw the line quicker. "See this real non-invisible line? No Unicorns, Earth ponies…or traitors." She said looking at me before continuing. "Are allowed to cross it. This is the sovereign territory of Pegasopolis." She declared.
After that, the rest of us could see was gonna come next. "Clover the Cleaver! Jester!" she said, calling us for duty.
"Ahh - Smart Cookie!" Pudding-head called, wanting her do the same.
"I know, I know." Smart Cookie said as she began to carry out Pudding's order.
With that, we all began to make draw lines in the dirt with our hooves to mark off our territory. "Another thing to add to my 'most silly orders' list." I said under my breath, making sure Platinum couldn't hear me.
While continuing to make lines, Clover and Smart Cookie's lines eventually ran into each other, their hooves basically touching awkwardly, they both looked at each other with shock before backing away. All the while, Pansy's line ran into a rock, which she then tried to draw around.
But Hurricane saw this and was quick to step in. "What are you doing?!" she said before she flew over to her. "Don't go around the rock, go over it! I'm not giving up an inch of the territory to the enemy." She said firmly.
I looked over to watch this new argument. "Are they really starting to fight over a rock?" I asked,
"Looks like it, but did that Hurricane chick actually tell Pansy to draw over the rock? Is that even possible?" he asked.
"No, it isn't." I answered instantly, letting him know how silly such a thing sounded.
Platinum rushed over to them to actually claim the rock. "That rock is clearly on the Unicornia side of the cave and it belongs to us." she stated before she leaned over to Clover. "Who knows, there could be jewels inside." she whispered.
I then walked over to join them. "Or it could just full of rock like any other. I'm sorry, but is a rock really worth fighting over? I mean, in the end, there's trillions more in the world." I said.
"Finally, someone who's actually thinkin'." Smart Cookie said as she continued to draw the Earth Pony line.
Platinum turned to face me. "Did you not here me, Jester? I said there could be jewels inside. Besides, that rock is on our side of the line, and I will not part with a single part of Unicornia." She said strongly.
Just then, we heard a noise and looked to see Hurricane moving the rock more to her side of the line. "I claim this rock for Pegasopolis!" she said.
"Unhand that rock this instant, you scoundrel!" Platinum ordered, but went unheard.
But before Hurricane could reply, Pudding-head actually rushed across the Pegasi line. "Oh look, you found my rock, I've been looking for it everywhere." She said with a cheerful smile before she picked up the rock with her mouth and rushed off back to her side of the line.
"Hey, you invaded our territory!" Hurricane said, sounding as if she couldn't believe she did that.
"Finders keepers, loser's weepers." Pudding-head sang.
I then stepped behind Clover for cover. "Oh this is gonna get ugly. Let me know when it's over, ok?" I said as I took my hat off with my hoof and used it to hide my face, with Clover looking at me with a raised eye-braw.
With that, Hurricane reached her limit and her patients was gone…not like she had any to start with. "That's the last straw." She said before she stepped over the line to the Earth Pony territory and started walking over to Pudding-head.
Pudding-head picked the rock back up with her mouth, preparing to run when she'd get too close. It was only when Platinum said. "Give me my rock." Did Pudding start running away with the rock in her passion.
The three leaders then ran all over the cave, chasing Pudding-head for the rock. Part of me couldn't believe they were actually doing this, it was so stupid, a rock couldn't be worth all this trouble. Clover felt the same, she placed her hoof on her face to say how silly this was.
Each leader kept arguing with, the wind picking up as their argument and fighting got worse, they were yelling, stomping their hooves, growling at each other and getting more angry by the second.
I placed my hooves over my ears, trying to block them out, but it was impossible. Their constant arguing was getting to me, I could feel myself getting ready to explode and tell them to stop. But when I was about to, I noticed something, as did Clover and the other ponies who weren't arguing.
There were clouds inside the cave, they were swirling around the ceiling in a circle and the walls were beginning to freeze over, ice spread down the walls and nearly touched the floor. "Look everypony, the entrance!" Clover said while pointing her hoof at the exit to the cave.
We all looked over to it and saw it was being sealed by a thick wall of ice, blocking our exit out of the cave, even the leaders noticed this and actually stopped arguing. "Great, now there's no way out! We're trapped!"" Hurricane said with frustration as she began to walk away from the other leaders.
"You two deserve this horrible fate, you've done nothing but argue and fight with each other!" Platinum stated as she too walked away.
"You've been fighting too, your highness." Hurricane said.
"Yeah, worse, I haven't been nearly as much as youuuu!" Pudding-head said, putting a lot of tone in the last word. But as she said this, we noticed that the ice was starting to grow over her, freezing her in place and she didn't even notice.
Neither did Platinum or Hurricane. "How ridicules! A Unicorn never stoops to fighting." Platinum claimed as she too began to freeze.
"That's just because you wimpy Unicorns know you never win!" Hurricane said loudly as the ice took her as-well.
We all watched in horror as they continued to argue while the ice came close to covering their entire bodies, we would've tried to help them, but none of us know what was going on or why this was happening.
"Earth Ponies are numbskulls!" Hurricane yelled as the ice swallowed her entirely.
"Pegasi are brutes!" Platinum yelled as the growing ice took her as-well.
"Unicorns are snobs!" Pudding-head yelled before the ice devoured her as-well.
This left only the five of us, me, Clover, Punch, Pansy and Smart Cookie. The ice was starting to come towards us, we knew that if it would touch us, it was freeze us like the others. The exit was sealed off and the floor was covered in living ice, we were trapped.
Clover and I backed up until we felt our flanks bump into something, we spun around quickly, frightened that we had made contact with whatever was doing this, but it was just Pansy and Smart cookie, we all sighed it relief once we saw it was just them.
Suddenly, we heard a roaring moan in the wind and we all quickly hugged each other in fright. "What in the name of winter was that?" I asked, never hearing anything like that before.
"I don't know, but it didn't sound like a friendly." Punch said before he hid under my hat.
We then heard Clover yelp, we looked at her to see she was looking up at something, we all then looked up and was shocked to see three ghost-like horses galloping in the clouds on the cave ceiling, making them swirl and make more snow and ice. They were completely see-through and they glowed brightly, their eyes were colourless and without emotion.
"W-What is that th-thing?" Pansy asked, stuttering in her sentence.
Clover thought for a moment before she figured it out. "They must be…Windagos." She said with fright as her ears dropped.
"Windagos?" The rest of us asked at the same time before we broke the hug and backed away from each other.
I walked up to Clover. "You know these things? W-What are they? What's a Windago?" I asked, starting to panic, if something like this frightened Clover than it should frighten all of us.
"My mentor, Star-Swirl the Bearded, taught me about them. They're winter spirits that feed off fighting and hatred. The more hate the spirit feels, the colder things become." Clover explained before we all looked up at the Windagos.
After hearing Clover explanation, I finally figured it out, why the storm back home got so out of control, why we were forced to come here and the storm suddenly arriving with us. "Oh my sweet jingly-bells." I said, feeling a strong wave of guilt wash over my body.
"Then…this is our fault…we three tribes." Smart Cookie said before she turned her attention to us. "We brought this blizzard to our home by fightin' and not trustin' each other. Now it's destroyin' this land too." She said as she looked back at the frozen Pudding-head and the growing ice.
Clover looked down at the ice and was forced the take a few steps forward as the ice got closer. "Now our bodies will become as cold as our hearts, all because we were foolish enough to hate." She said as we were forced to huddle up to each other to get away from the growing ice.
Seeing the frightened look Clover's face made me feel bad, I didn't like seeing her like that, so I decided to try and do something about it. "Not if I can help it." I said before I once again pulled out my rubber-chicken. "Chicken of fury!" I yelled before I threw it up at the Windagos.
But it did very little because the chicken went right through it, all it did was making it roar again as it kept galloping with its fellow Windago.
I stared up at them with wide awkward eyes before I sat down on the floor. "Well I tried." I said as I gave us and got back in place with the others.
We all stood in silence, waiting for the ice to reach us and give us what we deserved. But the silence was broken by Pansy as she looked at us. "Well…I don't hate you." she said, remembering what Clover said a minute ago. "I actually hate Commander Hurricane a lot more than I hate you guys." She said.
We looked at her with silence for a moment before what she said got a small laugh out of all of us. "How can you even put up with her? Did she force you to be her private or what?" I asked curiously.
"No, she kind of asked me to be her private…very loudly, if I recall." Pansy answered with a small smile, this got another laugh out of us.
We didn't notice, but the Windagos were listening to what we were doing and looked at down use with a glow in its eyes.
Pansy then continued to talk about her partnership is Hurricane. "Actually, I don't really hate her, I just really, really, really, really, really, really, really, really, really, really dislike her." She said before we all laughed louder at this.
In all the fun we were having, we didn't even notice that we were starting to freeze up, we were just focusing on what was going on right in front of us and we didn't care. The Windagos kept moving, making the ice grow quicker.
"Well I don't hate you guys either." Smart Cookie said with a kind smile.
"Noor do I." Clover added with the same smile
"Same here for us two." I added with Punch nodding in agreement.
What we were doing and saying had a large effect on the Windagos, they roared loudly and looked in pain, like they were being shocked from the inside. They started to move faster, trying to freeze us up to keep us from saying anything else.
Seeing as how we were gonna become ice sculptures in a few seconds, I decided to use this time to really talk to Clover. "Clover…there's something I need to tell you." I said, gaining her attention. "I know I should've said it earlier, but I couldn't because of that law, but I don't care about that anymore, I just care about you. What I'm trying to tell you…Clover, I…I love you." I said, feeling the weight of that finally being lifted off my shoulders.
Clover looked at me with shock before she smiled. "You…You do?" she asked.
I nodded. "I have for a long time, you've always been so kind and caring towards me, no Unicorn or any pony has ever treated me the way you did." I said before I looked down at the ice covering our bodies. "We're getting what we deserve, but if we could be spared, I'd want to spend the rest of my life with you." I said, letting my heart out to her.
Clover stared at me with a smile and tears in her eyes. "Oh Jester, that's the sweetest thing any pony has ever said to me…and…I love you too." She said before she rested her head against my neck.
Punch looked down at me and patted my head with his foot. "That's my boy." He said out-loud with Pansy and Smart Cooking looking at us with large smiles.
The Windagos didn't like this one bit, they were galloping like crazy, trying desperately to freeze us before we could say one more single word.
"No matter what our differences, we're all ponies." Smart Cookie said before the ice finally devoured us and froze our entire bodies.
However, as the ice closed up around Clover's horn, it started to glow and within a second the ice broke off us and freed us. We all looked at Clover, whose eyes were glowing white, shoot purple fire from her horn and it struck the Windagos.
The Windagos screeched in fear as they were sucked into the flames and disappeared within them. As Clover's spell calmed down, the last bit of flame came out of her horn and formed the shape of a heart above us, there it stayed.
Clover looked out of breath, I rushed over to her and helped her stand. "Clove, are you alright?" I asked in concern.
Once she could stand by herself, Clover turned to look me in the eyes. "Yeah, I'm fine…thanks." She said as we both smiled warmly at each other.
Smart Cookie and Pansy then walked up to us. "What was that?" Pansy asked.
"I didn't know Unicorns could do that." Smart Cookie added.
"I didn't either." Clover replied. "Nothing like this has ever happened before." She said, wondering what happened herself.
Clover then looked at us with a smile. "But I know it couldn't have been just me, it came from all of us, joined together…in friendship." She said as she stuck her hoof out to us and we all placed one of our front-hooves on top of her's, Punch walked down my arm and placed his wing lot of whoever's hoof was on top.
"All through the night, the ponies kept the fire of friendship alive by telling stories to one another and by singing songs, which of course became the winter corals we all still sing today.
Eventually, the warmth of the fire and singing and laughing reached the leaders, and their bodies began the thaw, it even began to melt their hearts."
Soon after the leaders thawed from the ice, the ice blocking the entrance melted and we could finally leave the cave. We went outside to see the beautiful land was back, the snow was melting and birds sung.
We all stared at this lands beauty and decided that it was simply too much like paradise to be home for only one tribe.
"The three leaders agreed to share the beautiful land and live in harmony forever afterwards…and together, they named their new land…"
Reality: Canterlot theatre: (My POV)
"Equestria!" We all said loudly at the same time.
The curtains then closed to end the play and everypony in the audience cheered loudly at our performance. The curtains reopened to show us standing in front of the stage before we all, including Spike, bowed to them.
Everypony continued to cheer as confetti shot out from the top of the stage and the holiday bells rung. We then had one last thing to do, sing the one of the best Hearths Warming carols with the audience singing with us.
All of us: "The fire of friendship lives in our hearts
As long as it burns we cannot drift apart.
Though quarrels arise, their numbers are few
Laughter and singing will see us through, will see us through
We are a circle of pony friends
A circle of friends we'll be to the very eeeend!"
Once the song finished, everypony in the crowd once again cheered loudly at both our singing and their own, loving our performance and the whole thing all together.
We all took one last bow to the audience before the curtains closed again. After they had closed, we commented each other on our performances before we all made our way back to the dressing room to remove our costumes and get ready to head home to Ponyville.
A few minutes later: Dressing room
It was getting later into the night, the play had ended, everypony in the once large audience was leaving to go home and we were back in the dressing room preparing to leave ourselves.
After we took off our costumes and placed them back in the boxes they belonged in, we all gathered around each other and talked about the great performance we did tonight. "We should be so honoured that Princess Celestia chose us! She must really we exemplify what good friends are." Twilight said, feeling proud of herself and the rest of us on this.
I walked over to her. "Yeah, this has really been something to remember." I said before I turned to face Twilight. "But there's still something I want to know…what happened to Jester and Clover? Dose it ever say?" I asked curiously.
Twilight gave me a warm smile before she placed her hoof on my chest. "The law that separated them was lifted, Clover and Jester got married and officially declared peace between the Unicorns and the Pegasi. They lived a long and happy life, had a foal or two, and were loved by all their friends." She told me before she moved closer. "It says that in the story, but the play is never long enough to tell that part." She said.
I was glad to hear they had a happy ending, I smiled at her and rubbed my hoof against her front leg. "But everyone who's read the story will always know…plus, it's history, so they'd probably have to know, but that's not the point." I said.
Twilight giggled a little before she nuzzled her head against my chest with my arm wrapped around her body.
Pinkie wrapped her arm around Rarity's neck and pull her in to hug her, but suddenly, another strong breeze rushed through them and knocked Pinkie away. Rarity looked over to where it was coming from and saw that the window was open again, she then looked at Applejack who closer to it that anyone. "Applejack, I thought you closed all the windows." She said.
Applejack turned to face Rarity and went up to her face. "Don't blame me, Rainbow Dash should've flown up there and shut it. After all, she's got wings." she stated.
Rainbow Dash, hovering in the air above her, placed her hooves on her hips before speaking. "Why do I always have to do all the high-up chores? Why can't Twilight use her magic for a change?" she asked as she flew over to us.
I then stepped in front of Twilight to confront Rainbow Dash. "Hey, I don't know what's gotten into you, but you better back off, missy. Twilight doesn't have to do anything if she doesn't want to." I said firmly.
With that, we all started arguing again, louder this time and above one-another,
But suddenly, there was a loud windy roar, similar to that of the Windagos. We all stopped arguing once we heard it, frightened that it was in fact the Winter Sprits waiting to feed off our fighting.
Rainbow Dash then looked down at us nervously. "You know what? I've got it." she said calmly with a small smile before she flew over to the window and finally closed it.
We all then looked at each other and laughed together at this awkward yet amusing moment. Even when things like this happen, we can always find a way to make it right again.
-Meanwhile-
Just outside the theatre, the purple fire-heart of friendship burned in the sky above us. Though none of us knew it was there, a part of us inside could feel it, its flames burning for all of us.
I felt it and knew this was the best way to spend my first Hearths Warming Eve, and there was still Hearths Warming Day to come yet. I didn't know what it would bring, but I knew it would be even better than today and I could hardly wait for it.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
I had hoped to have a Hearths Warming Day chapter finished by now, but there was no time. I hope you all have a great Christmas and get lots of cool presents.
The song used in this chapter is 'Who I'd be' from 'Shrek the Musical'. Go on YouTube and listen to it, it's a great song.
The poll will stay the same, whoever hasn't voted yet go up to my profile and vote, if you want to that is, but I'd appreciate it if you did.
Anyway, don't forget to review.
The next chapter will be up as soon as possible. Merry Christmas, love ya!
61. Chapter 61: Hearths Warming Day
Hi everypony, happy new year to you all!
My last chapter may have not got so many reviews, but they were good ones and it got a lot of viewers. Anyway, I know it's a bit late, but here the Hearths Warming Day chapter.
I would've tried to get this one finished by the time Christmas came, but I couldn't finish the last one in time, so here it is now.
Now with that out of the way, enjoy the chapter.
Chapter 61: Hearths Warming Day
Ponyville Library
It was late at night and we had just returned from Canterlot after preforming the re-enactment of the founding of Equestria, it was fun but tiring, all I wanted to do now was go to bed and get some long deserved sleep.
Besides, tomorrow was Christmas…or Hearths Warming Day, as they call it here, so I wanted to get to sleep so it could come quicker.
I was in the bathroom, standing in front of the mirror on the wall as I brushed my teeth. It was still pretty hard to hold a toothbrush with hooves, but I'm getting the hang of it. Once I finished, I spat the toothpaste foam into the sink and washed out my mouth, which was now clean and minty.
After that, I left the bathroom and went to the living-room, where Twilight, Spike and the other were relaxing before we'd all go to bed. As I entered the living room, the first thing I looked at was the tree and saw how perfect it was, it reminded me of the tree I had back in England.
I smiled at it, until I heard the sound of paper tearing, I turned to where the sound came from and saw Spike opening his presents, with Twilight lying on the floor beside him while watching. I went over to them. "Hold up there, fella, those are for tomorrow." I said as I stopped in front of them.
They both looked up to me before Twilight spoke. "Oh, didn't I tell you about our tradition?" she asked.
I shook my head. "No, what tradition?" I asked curiously.
Twilight then stood up before she explained. "You see, when Spike and I were growing up in Canterlot, he couldn't wait until Hearths Warming Day to open his presents. So ever since then, we've always opened our presents the night before." she said with a small smile.
"Oh, our tradition back in England was we only open one before Christmas, though sometimes it would end with two." I said before I tilted my head. "But if you open them tonight, what will you open tomorrow?" I asked curiously.
Twilight came up to me and leaned in towards my face. "I have a few more stashed away, I put them under the tree while Spike's sleeping." She said in a whisper.
With that, I got the idea. "Ooooh…any for me?" I asked before smiling largely.
Twilight smirked. "I'm not saying, but I think there's one under the tree right now." she confirmed as she looked over to the tree and eyed the presents. "Now, I don't expect you to jump-for-joy over it, but you can't open them if you-" But before she could finish, she noticed I wasn't standing next to her anymore. Instead, I was sitting in front of the tree searching for my presents.
Eventually, I found one with my name on it, it was a really small, like 'notepad' small. I get it out and start ripping the paper off with my hoof before it was revealed to be a book of hoof-made coupon book. "Oh…what's this?" I asked curiously.
Twilight walked over to me and looked at it. "It's a Couple Coupon book, I made it myself. You pick one you want to do, and we'll do whatever it tells us to." she explained before she used her magic to flip through the small pages and stopped. "Like this one."
I looked down at it and read when it said. "'All paid spare treatment?'?" I said in confusion.
"Anything you want in the spare, it's yours, you won't have to spend a bit, it'll be all on me." Twilight said with a kind smile.
I smiled back. "Aww thanks, Twi, but you really don't have to do that." I said before I looked back at the coupon. "There's even a few more that you don't have to do…like this one, a should hoof rub, I don't want to trouble you with things like tha-ahhh." I suddenly said as Twilight began to rub my shoulders with her hooves, it felt good, very good.
"I know you've had a hard last few months, Matt, so I want you to relax a bit more." Twilight smoothly s she rubbed my shoulders.
"Mmm…ok…" I said, feeling some tension go out of my body, my back ached at how nice it felt.
"Guys." A voice said, we both looked over to where it came from and saw Spike staring at us awkwardly. "I'm, like, right here." he said.
With that, Twilight removed her hooves from my shoulders and placed them back on the floor. "Sorry Spike." She said before she returned her attention to me. "That reminds me, the more…private…options are on the orange paper." She said.
I then looked back down at the coupon and flipped to the orange paper, I read the things they were for and went wide-eyed at what they said. "Oh my….oh my….oh my!...Jesus!" I said as I flipped through each of the orange pages.
Twilight smirked slyly. "And we can do each and every one of them without question." She said as she placed her hoof on my arm, making me tense up.
Spike rolled his eyes. "Gross." He said under his breath before he looked back under the tree to see if he could find more presents. He couldn't find any, but he did, however, find one for someone else. "Hey, there's a present here for Jeff." He said as he held the present in his claws.
I looked down at it before I looked around for Jeff. "Where is Jeff anyway? I haven't seen him all day." I said out of curiosity.
Twilight's smile then disappeared. "I tried to talk to him, but he just went into the guest room and said he didn't want to do any of this." She said.
I placed the coupon down on the small table beside me and looked at her with confusion. "'Not do any of this'? What does that mean?" I said before I turned to the stairs that led up to the bedroom and went over to them. "I'm gonna talk to him." I said.
I then went up the stairs until I reached the our bedroom, I went up to the guest room and went inside. "Jeff?" I called as I looked around for him, I soon saw him standing on the windowsill looking out the window. "Jeff, are you alright?" I asked as I went up to him.
Jeff didn't turn around, but he answered. "Yeah, why?" he asked in a rough tone.
"Twilight said you didn't want to open any presents, there's some under the tree for you as-well." I said, trying to convince him to come down.
"I know….I just don't feel like it, ok?" Jeff answered, not taking his eyes away from the window.
I stayed silent for a moment before I tried something else. "Do you want to tell me what's wrong? No-one should feel down at this time of the year." I said, hoping he'd tell me.
"No, I just want some time alone. So can you give me that, please?" Jeff asked calmly, everything was silent for a minute before he sighed heavily. "You're still there, aren't you?" he asked.
"Yep." I answered while sitting patiently on the floor, waiting for him to open up a bit.
Jeff sighed again before he turned to face me. "Alright, I'll talk!" he said before he took a breath and spilled. "I'm not originally from this part of Equestria…you probably already know that, but still…I'm from a far off jungle that belongs to other parrots like myself." he admitted.
"You mean there's more parrots like you?" I asked, receiving a nod from Jeff. "Lord help us." I thought before I listened to the rest of his story.
"Anyway, I got left that place to try and move up in the world, but I got captured and brought here to Ponyville to be a prize pet, that's when we met each other. But this will be my first Hearths Warming away from my family and…it really bums me out." Jeff said, looking down in depression.
Hearing that made me feel bad for him, I could relate to his problem and I knew how he felt. "Oh…I'm sorry, buddy." I said before I took a step forward. "But you know, this'll be my first…Hearths Warming…away from my family as-well, so I actually know how you feel." I said.
Jeff stayed quiet for a moment before he spoke. "I never thought of that." He said before he looked at me with sorrow in his eyes. "I'm sorry dude."
I gave him a small smile. "I'm sorry as-well, but you won't spend Hearths Warming alone, you can always spend it with us. I know we're not your real family, but we're close…aren't we?" I asked.
Jeff returned my smile. "Yeah…You're right, I suppose." He said before he flew down to me and landed on my back. "I should be feelin' down, it's the holidays, no-one should be down on the holidays." He said, in a more cheerful tone.
I smile at this before I turned and made my way towards the room's exit. "Glad you're feeling better, buddy, now let's go see about those presents." I said.
"Oh yeah, you mentioned there was one for me, right?" Jeff asked, sounding more interested than before.
"Apparently." I say as I walk through the door and leave the room.
"Sweet." Jeff said smoothly as I turned and grabbed the doorknob with my hoof and closed the door behind me.
-Later that night-
After opening our presents, we all called it a night and went to bed. We were all satisfied with our gifts, Twilight got a new hair-comb with small diamonds on it, only the best for my Twi, Spike got a sweater to keep him warm during the season, Peewee got a bird-feeder with bird seed inside it, Jeff got his own bed so he wouldn't have sleep on a bird stand anymore, now he could rest more peacefully.
As they all slept, Twilight and I were still awake talking to each other. "I can't wait until morning." Twilight said in excitement.
"Me too, I always love waking up Christmas morning…I mean, Hearths Warming morning." I said, trying to speak in their terms.
Twilight smiled. "Its ok, Matt, tell me about this time of your from your home, tell me about Christmas." She said as she placed her hoof on mine.
I looked at her and smiled lovingly before I told her the story. "Well, in religious terms, it celebrates the birth of what we call 'the son of Christ' or 'Jesus Christ', hence the name Christmas. They say if your good all year, a man named Santa Claus comes to your house Christmas Eve night and brings you presents, but only when you're sleeping. In the end, it's a season everyone loves and always will love." I said, ending the story.
Twilight raised her eye-brow, but kept her smile. "So…it's pretty much the same as here, only without the Jesus thing." she said.
I gave her a curious look. "You lot have a Santa?" I asked, surprised that I never thought about asking before.
"Kinda, only we call him Santa Hooves." Twilight stated.
"Of course you do." I said with an amused smile before I nudged up to her and held her in my hooves. "By the way, not only will this my first Hearths Warming away from home, it'll be our first Hearths Warming together as a couple." I said with a loving smile.
Twilight returned it. "I know…" she said before she wrapped her hooves around me and her loving smile turned into sly one. "How about we celebrate? Wanna use one of those orange coupons?" she said as she nuzzled her nose against my neck.
A warm thrill shot up my body and I smiled widely. "And my present has come early." I said before I grabbed the coupon book off the bed-side table and flipped through the pages to find one I wanted to do, I then found one and showed it to Twilight. "How about this?" I asked.
Twilight read it and smiled. "Coming right up." she said before she used her magic to tear out the chosen coupon and turned off the lamp, rendering the room completely dark.
The next day: Streets of Ponyville
The waking up the next morning was everything I had hoped for, my stocking full of small presents, going down stairs and seeing all the presents under the tree, and the sickly hunger feeling at the back of my throat, it all brought back happy memories of my past Christmas's in England.
We would've opened all our presents then and there, but Spike found a letter from Pinkie inviting us all to come to Sugar Cube Corner to open our presents together, Twilight and I talked about it before we decided that I would be nice to do that, Pinkie and the others were basically family to us and we wanted to spend Hearths Warming day the best we could with them.
So with that decided, we all gathered up our presents and left the library, door locked and all. We placed our presents in a cart and I pulled it to our destination with Twilight and the others walking beside me. We looked around Ponyville to see all the cottages decorated in lights and other Christmas themed stuff, they all made the entire town glow with a Christmas feel.
Spike was wearing his new sweater so he wouldn't go too cold in the snow, Jeff and Peewee were riding in the cart with our present and Twilight, like always, was walking beside me. I turned my head to her and smiled. "This certainly makes a change to my past Christmas's." I said.
Twilight turned her head to face me. "What do you mean?" she asked curiously.
"Well back in England, we normally opened our presents at home and everyone came to our place, we'd have Christmas dinner and everything." I said with a smile, remembering all the good Christmas' I had.
Twilight smiled back. "It sounds nice, maybe your family with visit again today, it'd be good if they did." She said as she kept walking beside me.
"I'm sure they will. I mean, they might still have Christmas dinner with Nan before they come, but they'll come…probably." I said, wondering if my parents and Jess would come to celebrate Christmas with me.
Meanwhile, Jeff huffed and turned to Peewee. "*Hmf* Well you know who's family won't be seeing their son for the holiday? Mine! You and Spike lived with Twilight way before Matt showed up, the rest of the girls have known each other long enough that they're basically family to each other, so I'm the only one who's gonna be spending the Holidays family-less." He said before he crossed his wings.
Peewee shook his head. "No you're not, Jeff, you'll be spending you Holidays with us. We may not be you family, but we're close like one." He said.
Jeff sighed. "I suppose…you guys are better than nothing, after all." He said with Peewee nodding in agreement.
Spike, walking beside the cart, overheard this and gave Peewee a disapproving look that he didn't notice.
We kept walking through the town to get to Sugar Cube Corner, seeing all the kids played in the snow, ponies buying food for Hearths Warming dinner, and other ponies adding more decorations to their cottages.
A few minutes later: Sugar Cube Corner
It didn't take long until we arrived at Sugar Cube Corner and, as expected, it was decorated to the brim. Lights, ribbons, a star on top of the cupcake on the roof, esc. Anyway, it looked like Pinkie had been hard at work trying to outdo herself.
I marvelled at Pinkie's work and smile. "Whow, looks like Pinkie had her hooves full last night." I said, not taking my eyes away from the bright and beautiful bakery.
"You should've seen her last year during Easter, a star's not the only thing that she puts on top of that cupcake." Twilight said before she walked ahead towards the front door, leaving me picturing what Pinkie would put up there.
I then quickly caught up with Twi just as she knocked on the door with her hoof. After a moment, the door opened and Pinkie was behind it, wearing a white beard and a Santa hat. "Twilight! Matty! Spike! Jeffy! Peewee! Happy Hearths Warming day!" She said with glee.
"Happy Hearths Warming day, Pinkie. Nice hat." I said as I looked up at her hat.
"Thanks, come on in." Pinkie said as she stepped aside. "Don't worry about your gifts, I'll bring them in, you guys get warm." She said with a kind smile.
Twilight, Spike, Jeff and Peewee went into the house while I detached the cart from my body and walked past Pinkie to follow them. "I'll just hang my scarf up and help you, there's a lot of presents there and you'll help carrying-" I then stopped once I noticed Pinkie had somehow appeared right in front of me.
"All done." Pinkie Pie said with a happy smile.
I looked at the table behind her to see all our presents were there, I then looked back outside to see our cart was empty. "Umm…how'd you do that?" I asked, unsure if I even wanted to know.
"Just a little Pinkie secret, nosey-posey." Pinkie said as she tussled my mane with her hoof, messing it up a little. She then proceeded to hop away. "Now come on, the rest of the girls are already here and they've been waiting for you guys." She said.
I just shook off the odd feeling, hung my scarf up on a peg and followed her, I immediately saw that Twi and the others had already joined up with the rest of the Mane 6, they looked like they were already having a good time. I walked up to them and sat in the space between Twilight and Rarity. "Hi ladies." I greeted with a kind smile.
They all looked at me and returned my smile. "Hello Matthew." Rarity said before she looked up at my messed up mane. "What happened to your mane, darling? Hold still, I'll fix it." she said before she used her magic to put my hair back to normal.
"Thanks Rarity." I said with a thankful smile once she was done.
"Happy Hearths Warming day, you two." Applejack said before she gave us a smirk. "So, did you use up any of those coupons yet?" she said before she chuckled.
I tensed up, slightly embarrassed, before I leaned over to Twilight. "Did you tell them about that coupon book you made for me?" I asked nervously.
Twilight looked at me with a small embarrassed smile. "Yeah…I didn't want to spoil anything but…I didn't really make it on my how, I kinda had help….even with the orange pages." She admitted.
Hearing that send a chill down my spine and I didn't know if I liked it or not, I looked at the others with surprise and saw they were all smiling at me, some with smirks. "Don't hold your breath for anything else like that, Matt, it was just something a little something we decided to put together to say…thanks." Rainbow Dash said with a sweet smile.
"F-For what?" I asked nervously.
"For giving us a dang good year." Applejack said with a kind but strong voice.
"What do you mean?" I asked, looked at each of them curiously.
"Think about it, Matt, since you came to Ponyville, you've made things feel a whole lot better." Fluttershy said with a bashful look. "I mean, you've always been there when we needed you." she said.
"You've been like another big brother to Applebloom and her friends." Applejack added.
"You gave Discord a chance to prove that he wanted to change when the rest of us didn't, know he's one of our closes friends…sort of…but he's very close to Fluttershy now." Rarity said as she pointed her hoof to Fluttershy.
"It's true, we're having a tea party next week, the rest of you are welcome to join us if you want." Fluttershy said, looked at us with a hopeful smile.
Rainbow Dash raised her eye-brow. "Yeah…I might have to check my schedule." She said before she returned her attention to me. "You're a totally cool flying buddy, you share my love for racing and aphetic activates, and you're always up for a race whenever you get the chance. Which reminds me, two old friends of mine from Cloudsdale challenged us to a race through the snow storm coming this weekend." She said.
I tilt my head. "You mean that big snow storm and practically buried Pegasopolis in snow? They say it's the most vicious snow storm of the year." I stated, looking a bit uneasy about the idea.
"So…you up for it?" Rainbow Dash asked simply.
"You know it!" I said loudly with a large smile before we both reached across the table and shared a high hoof before we sat back down.
"And best of all, you made somepony at this table the happiest mare in the world." Rarity said before she looked over to Twilight, causing me to do the same. "You've given her everything she deserves and more, now you're both going to start a family together and we just know you'll continue to treat Twilight right and become a loving father to your foal." She said with a heart-filled voice.
Twilight and I smiled lovingly at each other before I turned to Rarity. "Thanks Rarity." I said before I looked at the others. "Thank you all, I don't know where I'd be if I never met any of you." I said with full honesty.
They all smile warmly at me before Applejack grabbed her mug of cider with her hoof and raised it up. "Happy Hearths Warming day, everypony." she said.
The rest of us then grabbed our mugs and clanged them together all at once. "Happy Hearths Warming day." we all said before we pulled our mugs back and drank to this toast.
Once we were done, we placed out mugs back down on the table before Fluttershy looked around the decorated room. "Nice job on the decorating, Pinkie Pie, you put more up every year." She said with a kind tone.
Pinkie looked over to her and smiled. "Thanks Fluttershy, but I'm not quite yet." She said before she reached under the table and pulled up a box of decorations. "I was just about to put these up, but then I got the idea for all of us to have a gift-opening party together, so dropped the box and sent the inversions right away." She explained.
I looked over to her with a raised eye brow. "Wait, so…you still have more decorations to put up?" I asked, not sure if I could believe she wasn't done.
Pinkie shook her head. "Nope, could you and Fluttershy help me put 'em up?" she asked me.
I shrugged. "I suppose I can." I said before I stood up and walked around the table to Pinkie.
At that moment, Pinkie looked over to Rarity and winked at her, receiving a nod from Rarity. "Umm, Twilight, could you help me in the kitchen with something?" she asked before winking at her.
"Sure thing, Rarity." Twilight said before she returned the wink. Twilight then stood up and followed Rarity into the kitchen.
I wondered what was in there than needed two ponies to do it, but I just shrugged it off as nothing and followed Pinkie and Fluttershy across the room to help put up the rest of the holiday decorations.
As I started taking thing like baubles and ribbons, Rarity came back into the room and looked over to the other who were still sitting. "*Clears throat* I think we could use some more help in here." she said before she gave the same wink to Rainbow Dash.
"Sure, Rarity." Rainbow Dash said, returning the wink, before she turned her head to Applejack and nodded. After receiving a nod back, they both got up and went into the kitchen to join Twilight and Rarity.
I looked over to the kitchen door and wondered what was going on in there. "What are they doing that needs four ponies? Are they cooking in there…no, that can't be it, Pinkie would be all over that if they were." I thought before I decided, yet again, to shrug it off and continue with my task.
-A few minutes later-
As Pinkie Pie made paper snowflakes, don't ask how, Fluttershy and I were hovering in the air working on the doorframe. Fluttershy hug ribbons along it while I hug mistletoe in the centre, eventually, Fluttershy's task led her straight beside me, under said mistletoe.
Fluttershy and I noticed this and looked at each other, I chuckled nervously before I looked away with my ears down. Surprisingly, Fluttershy didn't do the same, she actually smiled and giggled. The next thing I knew, she planted a small kiss on one of my cheeks, leaving me stunned for a moment before I smiled at her.
Pinkie Pie, covered in cut pieces of paper, looked up at us. "Are you two doing ok?" she asked with a simple smile.
We both then looked down at her. "Yeah, totally fine…how about you, Pinkie?" Fluttershy asked curiously.
"I'm doing great, look at my paper snowflakes." Pinkie Pie said before she held up her badly-made paper snowflakes, it must be hard making things like that with only a pair of hooves.
Fluttershy and I looked at each other before we looked at her with fake smiles. "They…great, Pinkie." I said, trying to spare her feelings.
"Yeah…you should make those more often." Fluttershy said before she felt like hitting herself for saying that.
Pinkie Pie gasped with a large smile. "I should?!" she asked loudly.
Before we could do any more damage, Twilight and the others came back in, we looked over to them and noticed Rainbow Dash was holding a rolled up banner. As Fluttershy and I landed back down on the floor, Rainbow Dash pinned one corner of the banner to the ceiling while Twilight used her magic to pin the other to the ceiling. "What's that, Twi?" I asked curiously.
"Oh, just a little something we put together ourselves, we've been planning this for…well, since yesterday, to be honest." Twilight said with a kind smile before she used her magic to make the banner drop.
That's when I saw what it said. "Merry Christmas" Fluttershy and Pinkie joined up with the others and they all looked at me. "Merry Christmas, Matt!" they all cheered at the same time.
My jaw dropped at this before I walked over to them. "W-What's all this?" I asked, absolutely gob-smacked.
"Remember yesterday when you talked about your version of this holiday back in your world? It was before the Hearths Warming Eve re-enactment." Twilight asked before she looked back at the others. "Well the rest of us decided to try this holiday, well…your way." she said as she returned her attention to me.
I looked at all of them before I focused my attention on Twilight. "Twi…I'm grateful for this, to all of you…but you don't have to do this, you shouldn't have to sacrifice your holiday to try and make me feel more at home." I said, feeling as though this was a bit much.
Twilight gave me a sweet smile. "Matt, you've done so much for us…for me," she said as she placed her hoof on her stomach. "That we wanted to at least owe you this, we want to try it, Matt…we all agreed." She said.
I smiled lovingly at her before I wrapped my hooves around her and hugged her. "I love you, Twilight." I said, feeling more in love with her than ever.
Twilight returned the hug. "I love you too, Matt." she said with a loving smile.
Everyone else smiled warmly at the sight of this, at that moment, Pinkie spoke up. "So where do we start, Matty?" she asked, taking a step forward.
Twilight and I broke away from our hug before I looked over to her. "Well if this was at the beginning of the month, I would've been able to start off easy. But Christmas day, that's a tough one." I said before I thought. "Hmm…I suppose we could start by opening some of our presents first, then we have Christmas dinner, then we just do whatever." I explained.
"Cool, so which presents do we open first?" Rainbow Dash said as she flew over to the table plied with presents.
"Did somepony say presents?" a familiar voice echoed before we heard sleigh bells jingle, they sounded as though they were coming from outside.
Wondering what it was, we opened the front door and went outside into the snow. We looked around before we saw something coming up the street towards us. As it got closer, we eventually saw what it was.
It was Discord riding on a sleigh in a Santa outfit. Fido, Spot and Rover were pulling the sleigh, each was wearing fake antlers and Rover was wearing a red nose with them. We then saw someone riding with Discord in the sleigh, as it got closer, we saw that it was Shining Armor.
It didn't take long before Discord pulled on the ropes attached to the Diamond Dogs and they stopped in front of us, Discord stood up in the sleigh to show his pillow-stuffed belly. "Merry Christmas one and all!" he said in a cheerful tone.
Shining Armor, shook up by Discord chaotic sleigh driving, climbed down from the sleigh looking terrified. "Ok…never doing that again…" he said before he was suddenly greeted by Twilight giving him a large hug.
Hearing what Discord said, I walked up to Twilight with a curious look. "You had Discord in on this as well?" I asked.
Twilight broke her hug from Shining Armor and looked at me. "Actually, I'm as surprised as you are, I didn't tell him anything. I thought he had a different party to attend up in Canterlot." She claimed.
At that moment, Discord's head lowered down beside Twilight's. "Oh I do, but don't worry." He said before he moved his head closer. "I took care of it, they won't even know I'm gone." He whispered.
Meanwhile: Canterlot Castle
Princess Celestia and Princess Luna stared confusingly at a large cardboard cut-out of Discord that he himself left behind as his decoy, it feel forward flat onto the floor.
"I cannot believe you thought it was actually him for the first few minutes." Luna said as she looked up and her embarrassed sister.
Back in Ponyville
"Totally taken care of." Discord said with a large smile before a light bulb appeared over his head. "Oh yeah, I just remembered." He said before he snapped his fingers.
With a flash of light, 7 snow-sleds appeared, each one had their own colour that matched me and the Mane 6, with them were new winter hats, scarfs and hoof ice skates. We all marvelled at how new, clean and shiny they were, especially Pinkie who was soon pretty much in love with hers, she was stroking her hoof against them and everything.
"You're all welcome." Discord said with a proud smile before he appeared behind me in a flash of light and wrapped his arm around my neck. "By the way Matt, there's a little surprise for you in the sleigh." He said as his pointed his lion finger at the sleigh.
I then looked at the sleigh and saw nothing, I tilted my head in confusion before I looked back up at Discord.
"Oh, sorry, I left the warmth blanket on." Discord said before he snapped his fingers.
At that moment, an invisibility blanket flew off the sleigh to reveal my parents and sister sitting in the back of the sleigh, they all looked over to me and smiled. "Surprise!" My mum said cheerfully before she climbed out of the sleigh.
My jaw dropped at this before I smiled. "Oh my god!" I said before I went over to them and hugged my mum. "What are you lot doing here?" I asked as we parted.
"Twilight sent us a letter, she told us about her plan and wanted us to be part of it." My Dad said as he climbed out of the sleigh while dragging out a large sack out with his hooves.
I then turned to face Twilight to see she was smiling warmly at me again. "Looks like they came after all, just like you said." She said.
I gave her the loving smile again. "I think I love you even more." I said before we shared a small kiss.
After that, my mum and dad walked past us to go inside. "We're just gonna get out of the cold, come inside soon, otherwise you'll catch another cold." My Mum said.
"Ok." Said before I returned my attention to the sleigh to see Jess exiting it and she hug me, with me returning it. "I'm so glad you all came."
"I know you are, we're glad to have come as well." Jess said before she looked at Twilight standing behind me. "Hi Twilight, has Matt been a pain as always?" she asked with an amused smile.
Twilight returned it. "You know it." she answered.
Jess then broke the hug and looked at me. "You know, we may be ponies in another dimension and you might be married with a baby on the way, but we're gonna make this Christmas like all the others we've had, I promise you that." She said, keeping her calm smile.
Twilight then looked at me. "I'm gonna head inside too, Matt, don't take too long if you can." She said.
I turned my head to face her and smiled. "I'll be in soon, babe." I said before I kissed her again. After that, Twilight turned and went back inside to join the others.
I then looked back up at the sleigh. "Don't tell me Nan's here as-well, I don't think she'll be able to handle any of this." I said, checking the sleigh for my Nan.
"No, she's not here, she's having Christmas dinner with our Aunty this year." Jess said as I returned my attention to her. "Anyway, what did you get for Christmas, I got a lot of good stuff, like this." She said as she held out her hoof, showing her Pandora bracelet with small Pandora charms on it, including a new one that looked like a horse.
I saw this and smiled. "Oh, very nice, but I thought you only liked charms with meaning, like your Birthstone charm." I said as I pointed my hoof at the charm with her Birthstone on it.
"It does have meaning, Matt, it reminds me where you are and what you've done since you came here." Jess said with a warm smile.
I returned it. "Oh ok, that deserves another hug." I said before we hugged again. "Thanks Jess." I added.
"It's alright, Matt." Jess said before she pulled away and realised something. "Hey, you didn't answer the question, what did you get for Christmas?" she asked curiously.
I shrugged. "I don't know, we haven't opened them yet. Pinkie wanted us to open them together, it's what she calls a 'Gift opening party'." I said as I sat on my hind-legs and moved my front-hooves up and down twice while saying the name.
"Really? That's new of you, I thought you would've opened them as soon as you and Twilight got up." Jess said, with a look of both surprise and confusion.
"What can I say, I didn't want to miss out on Pinkie had planned for this party." I said before I remembered that I had opened some presents last night. "I did get a nice new scarf though, its inside if you wanna see." I said before I walked past her and made my way towards the entrance.
"Yeah, sure." Jess said as she began to follow me. "By the way, Dad brought all the presents they got for you." she said.
"I wondered what that sack was for." I said as we kept walking towards the door.
But before we could, Discord appeared in front of us, this time without and outfit. "You think that sack was impressive? Well how about this sack?" he said before he pulled out a tiny purse, he then reached his two eagle fingers into it and pulled out a giant sack of presents nearly bigger than Sugar Cube Corner.
Jess and I looked up at this before I called up to him. "Yeah, that's every good Discord, but I think it's reached the point of 'a bit too much' now." I said.
The giant sack then disappeared and Discord appeared beside us. "I thought there was no such thing as too many presents." He said with his arms crossed.
"Well there was no such thing as a pony that could use her tail as a pogo-stick, but Pinkie proved that wrong." I stated before Jess and I continued towards the entrance.
"Hey, I still don't know what Discord's supposed to be anyway." Jess whispered while her head was leaned towards me.
"He's a Draconequus." I answered as I entered the building.
"Ok, I'm not even gonna try and pronounce that." Jess stated as she followed me inside.
Discord was about to join us before Rover spoke. "Lord Discord, may we join you inside?" he asked with Fido and Spot standing beside him, wagging their tails in hopefulness.
Discord smiled. "My dear friends…" he started before his smile disappeared. "Sorry, but I need you to find the warmth blanket I used to keeps Matt's family warm." He said.
The Diamond Dogs then looked around but didn't see the blanket anywhere, mostly because it was invisible. "But…we can't see it. Can you make it so we can see it?" Fido asked.
"What do I look like? A miracle worker?" Discord said before he turned and walked inside with his tail closing the door behind him.
The Diamond Dogs sighed before they began searching for the warmth blanket, know it wasn't gonna be easy at all.
An hour later
A while later, after opening all our presents (Too many to name), we all started to make small talk to each other and play with some of our gifts.
Myself, Rarity, Shining Armor and Spike were playing Monopoly, it was a gift my Mum and Dad got me. It was hard teaching everyone how it worked, but eventually they got the hang of it.
My Mum and Dad were talking with Twilight, giving her some tips on how to raise a child, hopefully it was useful info.
Rainbow Dash, who was wearing her new goggles that'll help her see better on rainy days, was playing Pin-the-tail-on-the-pony with Pinkie and Applejack.
Fluttershy was spending time with Discord, they seemed to be laughing a lot about something.
As for Peewee and Jeff, they were standing on the counter talking to each other, having their own conversation. Jeff had a troubled look on his face, I wondered if he was still bothered by not being with his family this year, I'd have to talk to him about that later.
Rarity rolled the dice and moved her piece, the thimble, a few paces forward right onto a piece of land called Euston Road. Spike, being the banker, looked at her. "It cost one hundred bits, Rarity, wanna buy it?" he asked with a smile.
Rarity thought about it before she looked at him. "Sure." She said before she picked up 100 of the fake money and gave it to Spike, who gave her the card to the land in return.
Shining Armor looked at Rarity. "You just bought that to keep me from getting the full set." He claimed.
Rarity looked at him with shock. "Shining Armor, I would never do such a thing as that." She said before she smirked. "But it this case, yes, I did do that. Haha! I totally own you!" she said, acting addicted to winning at this game.
We stared wide-eyed at her until she realised how she sounded and smiled, laughing sheepishly. "Sorry, got a little carried away there." she said before she decided to change the subject and looked at me. "There certainly a lot of strange land names in this game, Matt."
I looked at her and nodded. "I thought you'd say something like that, these lands are based off places from England…yeah, it's kind of a British game." I said before I grabbed the dice with my hoof and began to roll it.
Shining Armor sighed with boredom. "Sorry Matt, but I think I'll fold or whatever you do to leave the game. It's been going on for ages, no one's winning or losing and it's just taking forever." He said as he stood up.
I then looked up at him as I placed the dice down. "Really?" I asked, getting a nod from him. "I suppose you have a point, my Dad always said this game dose that sometimes. In fact, I think I'll fold as well." I said before I got up.
I then looked down at Rarity. "You and Spike are free to keep playing if you want though, here." I said before I gave half my property cards to Rarity and the other half to Spike, along with my money. Shining Armor did the same with his cards and money.
After that, we both walked away towards the front door. Rarity and Spike looked at each other before Spike grabbed the dice and shook them in his hand. "C'mon baby, Spike needs a four." He said before he threw the dice…getting a 6.
Meanwhile, Shining Armor and I put on our scarfs and went outside for some air, the small cold breeze felt nice after being in a warm place for a while. "So…Twily's pregnant…" Shining Armor said, looking up to the sky as snow floated down from the clouds.
"Yep." I answered as I did the same.
"I'm gonna be an uncle." Shining Armor said, not taking his eyes from the clouds.
"Looks like it." I responded, feeling that this was going in an awkward direction. "…And I'm gonna be a dad." I added.
"Apparently so." Shining Armor responded.
We were both silent for a moment before I broke it. "This is kind of awkward, isn't it?" I asked.
Shining Armor looked at me. "No, no…yeah, kind of." He said before he looked down at the ground. "I mean, I know you and Twily have been together for a long time, you two are perfect for each other, but I just can't wrap my head around the fact that…Twilight, my little sister, is married and pregnant while I haven't gotten anywhere near any of those things yet." He said, looking a little disturbed by all this.
I see this and my ears drop. "I'm sorry." I said before I tried to make him feel better. "But don't worry, a charming pony like you won't have any trouble getting a pretty mare, maybe one that's just as incredibly hot as Twilig-…" I said before I noticed Shining Armor giving me an uncomfortable look. "Sorry, but you know what I mean." I say to wrap it up quicker.
Shining Armor then sighed. "Actually, I don't think I'll have trouble with that at all…" he said before he looked at me. "I want to tell you something, but just…don't tell Twilight just yet, ok?" he said.
I nodded. "Sure, what's up?" I asked curiously.
Shining Armor then leaned over to me and whispered. "I'm kinda already seeing somepony." He said.
Hearing that, I had to gasp, which made Shining freak out. "Keep it together, green guy, I don't want anypony to know at the moment, I'm just telling you because I needed to tell someone I know can keep a secret." He said quietly so no-one inside heard him.
I nodded. "Ok." I whispered before I gave him a confused look. "What about your parents or at least Twilight, can't you tell any of them?" I asked.
Shining shook his head. "My mom and dad aren't very secretive. If I tell them I'm dating somepony, they'll tell all of Canterlot, including Twilight, I don't want her to know right now." he said.
"Why?" I asked curiously, wondering why he would keep something like this from his own sister.
"Well…you know how Twily tends to go a little overboard with stress?" Shining asked.
I then moved my eyes up, as if I was really thinking about it, before I answered. "Ummm…yeah." I said, looking back to him.
"Well now she's in the early stages of pregnancy, she's stressed out a lot as she is, imagine how she'd feel if I told her I was dating somepony. Sure, she'd be happy, but it's a big thing to take in, especially while she's in a delicate place." Shining Armor explained the best he could.
I then imagined how that would work. Yeah, Twilight would be happy for Shining, but hearing your sibling is dating someone can put a bit of pressure on a person, especially if their stressed already. Thinking of how Twilight would probably react, I looked at him with wide-eyes. "If you put me through that, I'm not inviting you to this party next year." I told him.
"I know, so I'm not gonna tell her, it's just gonna be between us…ok?" Shining asked, hoping I'd agree.
I nodded. "Sure…but Twi's gonna have to know eventually, if the thing between you and this girl is serious that is. You know that, right?" I said.
Receiving a nod, Shining went on to say. "Yeah…I know, maybe I'll tell her after she's passed all the pregnancy stages. That way, when I tell her, it won't trouble her as much." He said, looking over to the front door of Sugar Cube Corner.
"Probably a good idea." I commented, giving him a small smile.
Suddenly, Pinkie Pie fell down between us and we both looked down at her. She pulled her face out of the snow and looked at me. "Hey Matt, I've been looking for you everywhere, what are doing out here while the party's inside." she said cheerfully.
Shining and I then looked at each other. "I'll be inside, give you two some privacy." Shining said before he turned and made his way back towards the front door.
As Shining went back inside, I looked back down at Pinkie before I looked up. "Where did you fall from anyway?" I asked.
Pinkie Pie stood up before she explained. "I was looking for you, but you weren't where I last saw you so I started looking upstairs. I then saw you out my window and I wanted to get to you as quick as possible…so I jumped." She said before giving me a large smile.
I gave her a concerned look. "Pinkie, you shouldn't jump out your window, you could get hurt," I said, checking her for any injuries.
"Don't worry Matty, I jump out my window all the time, saves using the stairs." Pinkie said before she held out a small present in her hoof. "Anyway, I was looking for you to give you this. It was on the table where all the other presents were." She said.
I looked at it with surprise. "Oh…I must've missed it, thanks." I said as I took it with my hoof, I then sat down in the snow and started opening it.
After a moment, the paper was off and it was revealed to be a music CD, the cover had a white silhouetted mare on it, the only thing that wasn't silhouetted was the black vale over her face. I then read the title on the case. "Countess Coloratura's hits…" I read before I looked at Pinkie. "Thanks but…who's that?" I asked curiously.
Pinkie Pie then gasped. "You've never heard of Countess Coloratura? How could you not have heard of her? She the most famous pop-star in Equestria!" she said, a little loud.
"I though Sapphire Shores was the most famous pop-star in Equestria." I said, knowing I heard that somewhere.
Pinkie scoffed. "She's only the second most famous pop-star it Equestria, dah! Countess Coloratura is the real deal." She said before she took a step closer and looked at the CD. "She's amazing, they say she has the voice of a goddess." She said.
I looked at Pinkie with awe. "Really?" I said before I looked back down at the CD in my hoof. "I'll try listening to it later, but I don't think we have anything to play it on." I said, looking back up to Pinkie.
"Maybe Vinyl Scratch can hook you up with something, if there's anything that plays music, she'll have it." Pinkie said before she started hopping over to the front door. "Now come back inside, it's freezing out here." she said.
With that, I placed the CD in my mouth and followed her back inside Sugar Cube Corner to re-join the others in the warmth.
After re-entering the building, I hung my scarf back up with Shining's and placed the CD down on a small table before I was welcomed by Twilight walking up to me. "Hey Matt." she greeted before we shared a small kiss. "You're mom and dad gave me some great advice on how to raise a child. Somehow, getting advice from someone who's actually had a baby is more helpful than the books." She said with a nice smile.
I returned it. "Yeah, they'd know about stuff like that, they had two after all." I said before chuckling slightly.
Twilight's nice smile turned into a warm one. "Glad they did." She said before we kissed again. "By the way, where you just outside with Shining Armor? I saw him come in some time before you and Pinkie did." She said.
I nodded. "Yeah, he just wanted to talk to me about something…nothing big." I said, trying take her mind off it so she wouldn't ask what we talked about…but it failed.
"What did you two talk about?" Twilight asked curiously.
"Crap." I thought before I tried to think of an answer. I could tell her Shining's dating someone without telling her, but the thought of her being more stressed out was bad for her, me and the baby, so I decided to keep quiet about it. "He was just saying that it felt a bit odd…knowing his little sister is pregnant. He's happy for you, of course, but he's just a bit shook up by how much you've grown up." I said, feeling that I didn't actually lie to her, we did in fact talk about that.
Twilight raised her eye-brow. "He really feels that way?...Well, I suppose I can't blame him, I'd probably feel the same if he was having a foal with somepony….I'd probably feel that way even if he was getting married." She said as she smiled with amusement.
I just nodded awkwardly, knowing that dating would probably one day lead to marriage, I did my best to tell her.
Twilight then continued to say. "Anyway, Applebloom and her friends arrived around the back while you were out, you should go see them." she said.
I smiled at this news. "Totally, I was hoping I'd run into them today." I said before I turned and made my way across room to get to the kitchen.
Once I reached the kitchen, I looked over and saw Applebloom and her friends looking through an oven, watching the cookies being made. "Pinkie Pie's cookies are the best." Scootaloo said.
"I know, I can't wait for them to be ready." Sweetie Belle added.
"We have magical artefacts all over Equestria, but we don't have an oven that cooks things faster? Something's seriously wrong, right there." Applebloom said, sounding impatient.
I then walked up behind them. "I felt the same way when my mum used to cook my dinner." I said, gaining their attention.
They all turned around and smiled once they saw me. "Matt! Happy Hearths warming day!" Applebloom said cheerfully as she leaped up and hugged my neck.
I wrapped my arms around her and hugged her back. "Happy Hearths Warming dad, sweetheart." I said before I looked at Sweetie Belle and Scootaloo. "Happy Hearths Warming day, Sweetie Belle, Scootaloo." I said with a kind smile.
"Thanks Matt, how's Twilight doing?...You know, with the baby." Scootaloo asked with a small smile.
Applebloom and I then separated before I looked down at Scootaloo. "She's doing fine, throws up and bit her and there, but she's fine." I answered before I looked down at Applebloom. "So what have you three been up to?" I asked curiously.
Applebloom smiled up at me. "We've been tryin' to get our Cutie Marks as fisher-ponies." she said before her smile went away. "But…"
"It failed?" I asked, thinking that's what happened.
"Yeah, how'd you know?" Sweetie Belle asked curiously.
"Just a wild guess." I said with an amused smile while looking at their blank flanks. At that moment, we heard a ping over by the oven, indicating that the cookies were ready. "The cookies must be ready, I'll get them out for you." I said before I made my way over to the oven to get them out.
The CMC watched with excitement as I grabbed the over-mitts with my mouth and opened the oven with my hoof, I then reached my head in and grabbed the hot tray of cookies with the mitts before pulling them out.
I poured them onto a plate and placed the tray in the sink. Once I turned back around, I saw the CMC surrounding the cookies with desire in their eyes. "Hey! Wait until they've cooled down, you don't wanna burn you mouths." I said, trying to keep them from getting hurt.
Applebloom then turned to face me. "We will, Matt, we're not babies." She said before she returned her attention to the cookies.
"Ok." I said before I made my way over to the doors that led back to the front-room.
After re-entering the room, I was suddenly spooked by Discord appearing in front of me upside down. "Hello Matthew, everything alright in the kitchen?" he asked curiously.
I took a breath before I answered. "Yeah, everything's fine, the girls are waiting to eat the cookies that just came out the oven." I said before I changed the subject. "So, did you want something?" I asked.
"Actually yes, I did." Discord said as his head twisted the right way up before his body did the same, now he was standing in front of me properly. "It's about your future child…it's a little personal." He said.
I thought about it for a moment, what did he have to say about my foal? There was only one way to find out. "Sure, shoot." I said, preparing for what he might say.
"As you know, my past history is a little…dark…so I'd understand if you didn't want me to be part of your child's life. Just say the word, and I'll make sure the kid never sees me." Discord said with his hands behind his back.
I was silent for a moment before I responded. "Discord…I don't feel that way and neither dose Twilight, we want you to be part of our child's life, we want all of our family members to be part of it." I said before I smirked. "Besides, what kind of life will our foal have without Uncle Discord?" I asked.
Discord gaped before he smiled with tears in his eyes. "Uncle Discord?" he said in a high pitch voice before he grabbed me with his tail and pulled me into a tight hug, making me gasp and struggle to breath.
After a moment, he released me and placed me back onto the floor. "One more thing." he said before he before his tail stretched over his head and stopped in front of me, his fluff tip seemed to be holding some kind of charm. I then took it before his tail went back. "That charm is for you child. Whenever he or she needs me, all she has to do is rub it and I'll appear in a snap." He explained.
I looked at it before I looked back up at him. "Thanks Discord, I'll be sure to give it to him or her…when she reaches the right age, that is." I said, just thinking of the last bit.
Discord nodded. "Of course." He said before he changed the subject. "Now, if you'll excuse me, I see a cub cake with my name on it…I mean it, Pinkie used frosting to write names on some of the cupcakes, it literally has my name on it." he said before he made his way over to the food table.
I smiled with amusement as I shook my head before I made my way over to the others to see what they were up to.
Rarity and Spike were still playing Monopoly…it looked a little ferrous. "Spike, I'll ask you one last time, will you please trade me Park Lane for Marylebone Station?" Rarity asked, sounding frustrated.
"If I do that, you'll get the whole blue set and then you'll build hotels on them and I'll lose a lot of money, I wasn't born yesterday." Spike said, sounding more frustrated.
Rarity gave him a glare. "This game isn't going to go anywhere if you don't learn to cooperate, Spike." she said loudly.
Spike returned it. "You're just upset because I'm actually winning!" he said, trying to sound louder.
"The only reason your winning is because you're cheating out of you scaly bottom!" Rarity yelled before she realised what she said and gasped. "…Spike, I don't like this." She said frowning.
Spike frowned as well. "I know, it's creepy." He said before he looked down at the game. "This game is cursed…tie?" he said as he looked back up at Rarity.
Rarity immediately nodded. "Tie!" she said before she and Spike started to pack away the game with all the cards and pieces.
Meanwhile, Rainbow Dash, Pinkie, Applejack and Jess were still playing Pin the Tail on the Pony. Jess went over to the poster with the pony on it with the tail in her mouth.
Pinkie was letting her know if she was warmer or colder from it. "Warmer…warmer…cold, cold, super cold, you're practically freezing!...ok, you're back on warmer." Pinkie said as she watched my sister stubble around in the blind fold.
Then, Jess reached the poster and pinned the tail somewhere on it. She took the blind fold off to see she didn't get it on the flank, but it was close. "Aww..." Pinkie said, seeing this. "Don't worry, Jess, maybe you'll get it right on your next turn." she said with a confident smile.
Jess turned to her and smiled. "Maybe." She said before she looked over to our parents. "Do any of you not want a turn?" she asked.
My Dad shook his head. "No, you lot enjoy yourselves." He said with my Mum nodding her head in agreement.
"Ok." Jess said before she passed the blind fold over to Applejack.
Fluttershy and Twilight were sitting by a table talking about the foal. "So what are you and Matt going to call the foal when it comes?" Fluttershy asked curiously.
"We haven't decided yet, we still don't know if it's a boy or a girl, I think we have a few ideas for both genders." Twilight said, answering your question.
Fluttershy smiled. "How cute would it be if you have a little girl? *Gasp* Can I help babysit for you two while you out somewhere?" she asked, getting excited.
Twilight raised her hoof. "Fluttershy, take it easy, the baby's not even started to bloat my stomach yet. It's a bit early to make decisions like that." She stated.
Fluttershy was silent for a moment before she smiled sheepishly. "Oh…right, of course." She said as the front part of her mane fell down in front of her face.
As I watched, drinking a cup of cider, Jeff flew over to me and landed on the table next to me. "Hey Matt, can we talk?" he asked.
I turned to him and nodded. "Sure, what's up?" I asked, thinking I knew what it was about.
"…I know I haven't been very cheerful today, even though I should be…but I can't be, not when I'm so far away from my family. I just…wish they were here, just for today…but, they probably don't even know where I am." Jeff said, looking a little upset.
I swallowed the bit of cider in my mouth before I placed the cup down and responded. "I know, Jeff…I know it must be very hard…but you're not alone here, you're with us." I said.
Jeff looked up at me. "But what is us, Matt? I only met you guys almost a year ago and I still feel like a…sidekick! I'm not saying I'm not grateful I'm with you guys, far from it, I'm just saying I wish I could be with you guys and my family for this day." he said strongly.
"But you are with your family, Jeff." I said, even stronger. "Sure, we may not be your birth family, but you're more to us than a sidekick, you're one of our friend…You, Me, Twilight, Spike, Peewee, Applejack, Pinkie, Rarity, everyone…we're all one big family even though we're not related to each other. So like I said, you're not alone, you may not be with your birth family…but you're with us and we're as close as a family as they are." I said with a warm smile, hoping he'd understand.
Jeff thought about it for a moment before he managed to form a smile. "You're right…you guys took me in and welcomed me into your lives…you've treated me right and always looked out for me." he said before his smiled went away. "How could I have not seen it before? You guys…you guys are like a second family to me…" he said.
"And we always will be." I said before I wrapped my arm around Jeff and gave him a gentle hug, trying not to hold him too tight. Jeff returned it and smiled while doing so.
After a moment, we separated and Jeff tried to play it cool. "Well…maybe the hug was a bit sappy, lets end this like dudes." He said, putting on a manly smile.
"Yeah, lets." I said before we shared a hoof-bump. "Ok…now that's out the way, what are you planning to do now?" I asked curiously.
Jeff thought about it before he answered. "I think I might head up to Canterlot, there's a certain Phoenix there who probably wants to see me." he said with a charming smirk.
I closed my eyes half-way. "No she isn't." I said, sounding unconvinced.
Jeff's smirk went away. "…Yeah, you're right, she has no idea I'm coming." He admitted before he smiled. "But I'll surprise her…and hey, maybe I'll get her under the mistletoe, if you know what I mean hahaha!...*clears throat* Anyway, wish me luck." He said before he flew over to the front door to leave.
"Good luck, I suppose." I called as I watched him struggle to open the door and leave.
At that moment, Twilight came over to me. "Where's Jeff going?" she said, also seeing him leave.
I turned to face her. "He said something about going up to Canterlot to…well, make his own Christmas wish come true." I said before I changed the subject. "So, how are you feeling?" I asked, concerned in case she was feeling ill again.
"I'm fine." Twilight answered with an assuring smile. "I've felt a little sickly here and there, but I can manage, I just need to keep drinking some water." she said before she used her magic to hover and glass in front of her, that's when she noticed it was empty. "Oh…"
I saw this and gave her a kind smile. "I'll get you some more." I said before I took the glass in my hoof.
Twilight smiled sweetly. "Matt, you don't have to do that." She said.
"Yeah I do, you need to relax and take things easy, I'll handle this." I said lovingly before I turned and made my way over to kitchen while holding the empty glass in my hoof.
"Please be quick, the water is the only thing keeping me from losing it." Twilight said, watching me walk away.
I turned my head around to face her. "Don't worry, its not like you're gonna start throwing up within the few seconds I'm gone or something." I said before I went into the kitchen and saw the CMC eating the now cooled-own cookies, I smiled at them before I went over to the sink and started filling it up with fresh cold water. After it was rinsed and full, I turned to make my way back to Twilight.
As I was about to go back in, Spike burst in with a panicky look on his face. "Matt! You have to get in here quick!" he said.
With that, I quickly made my way back into the front-room trying not to spill any of the water. When I got in, I instantly saw throwing up in a bucket that Pinkie was holding in front of her. "It's a good thing I have a puke bucket, huh Twilight?" she said.
"*BLURRRR!*" Was all Twilight could say as she vomited in the bucket while my Mum rubbed her back to help her feel better.
I went over to her and chuckled nervously. "Haha…I got your water, sweetie." I said, holding the water out to her.
"*BLURRRR!*" Twilight vomited loudly into the bucket, making me a little frightened.
"I'll just…put it here." I said as I placed the glass of water down on the table next to her while she continued to vomit.
Twilight then brought her head up from inside the bucket and looked at me, her face was green and her mane was messed up. "I don't feel good…" she said before he cheeks inflated and she shoved her head back into the bucket.
I then placed my hoof on her back. "Maybe I should take you to the doctor." I said, concerned for her.
"Mmm!" Twilight hummed before she pulled her head out again and looked at me. "No, no…the doctor can't do anything, this is part of the pregnancy phases…I just have to push through it." she said before she vomited again. "*BLURRR!*…*Cough, cough*…I think I need my bucket emptied." She said, looking into her messy bucket.
"I'll take you to the bathroom." I said before I stood beside her and helped her towards the bathroom, Twilight used as much strength as she could to levitate the bucket in front of her.
As we went away, Applejack turned to Pinkie with a confused look on her face. "Why do you have a puke bucket?" she asked curiously.
Pinkie turned to Applejack and smiled. "I tend to eat a lot of the goods around her…it sometimes ends a bit messy, if you know what I mean." She said before she giggled, leaving Applejack with the disturbing image in her mind.
A few hours later
As the day turned to night, the party slowly started to die down, it got quieter and everyone seemed to be getting more and more tired.
Twilight managed to regain control of her vomiting, this time we brought her a fresh glass of water every time she nearly finished a different one, that way she could drink water non-stop. She kept the bucket close, just in case.
The Diamond Dogs were now with us inside, having finally found Discord's invisible blanket, despite having misplaced it again. Probably not a good thing that it was last seen…well not really, but you know what I mean…with Pinkie Pie.
My parents and Jess decided that it was their time to go, we had a warm loving goodbye before they gathered up all the presents I gave them and left to return home.
Everyone was now playing some of the game we got from each other…but not Monopoly, we've learned our lesson about that game…we were playing better ones now.
Shining Armor decided to say at our place tonight, the trains stopped running for the day and there was no way back to Canterlot. Good thing we still used the guest room.
While everyone played their board games and talked amongst each other, I watched while sitting beside a table with Twilight, making sure she was ok. I turned to her and smiled. "Are you ok, Twi?" I asked.
Twilight looked at me. "Hmm?...Oh yeah, I'm fine, I still feel a little off but I'm fine as long as I keep drinking." She said before she took another sip of her water.
I placed my hoof on hers. "You're gonna be fine, Twilight, I'm with you." I said, receiving a loving smile from her.
Just then, Applebloom came up to me. "Hey Matt, Pinkie said we could sleep over tonight, how great is that?!" she said with excitement.
I smiled down at her. "That's nice, Applebloom, dose Pinkie have three spare beds for the three of you?" I asked curiously.
Applebloom's smile went away. "I dunno…I'd ask her, but I can't find her." She said.
"I'm over here…and no, I don't have three spare beds" Pinkie's voice said.
We all then looked around the room, but couldn't see her. "I don't know where that came from." Applebloom said before she looked back up at me. "But now what are we gonna do? I already told Applejack and we had Rainbow Dash go to Sweetie Belle and Scootaloo's house to tell their folks, we can't take it back now." she said.
I thought about it for a moment before I thought of something. "I have an idea, just give me a minute." I said before I walked away to find someone.
Suddenly, Pinkie Pie appeared out of no-where as the invisible blanket fell off her, startling Twilight and Applebloom. "Wow, everything seems brighter for some reason." She said with a normal smile.
-A few minutes later-
Myself and the CMC went up to an empty room that was big enough for them to sleep in. "This room seems good enough." I said as I went inside.
Scootaloo looked around it. "Yeah…but where are the beds? We can't sleep on the floor." She said as she walked up to me with Sweetie Belle and Applebloom following her.
I smirked down at them. "Don't worry, you won't." I said before I looked over to the door. "Discord!" I called.
But instead of coming through the door, Discord rose up beside me through the floor like a ghost. "You called?" he asked, making me jump and look at him.
"Discord!" I said loudly. "Can you not use the door like a normal person?" I asked, feeling my heart race due to the startle.
Discord gave me a confused look. "What is the meaning of this word you call…normal?" he asked, as if he didn't have a clue what it meant.
"Really? Are you serio-…*Sigh* never mind." I said as I placed my hoof on my face before I changed the subject. "Can you please make three separate beds appear for the girls?" I asked.
Discord smiled before he rolled up his arms like sleeves. "Not a problem." He said before he snapped his fingers and made three separate beds appear in the room. "You're beds, ladies." He said as he looked down at the CMC.
Applebloom looked over to them before she looked up to Discord with a thankful smile. "Thanks Discord, they look real comfy." She said.
"You're welcome, my dear." Discord said before he returned his attention to me. "Now if that's my part done, I have a party to liven up." he said before he pressed the air like there was a button there, we heard a 'ping' noise and he suddenly started moving down through the floor until he was gone.
I felt a little creeped out by this before I shook it off and looked at the CMC. "Anyway, you're beds are ready when you want them." I said.
"Thanks Matt." Sweetie Belle said before she yawned. "I think we may want them now though, we feel a little tired." She said, sleepy-like before she, Applebloom and Scootaloo made their way towards the beds.
I watched as they climbed into their beds, how they tucked themselves in and lied down, I was envious by how comfy they looked. It had been a long day for me as well and I wanted to go to my own bed.
They snuggled up under the covers and laid their heads on their pillows, they yawned and blinked their eyes as they began to drift to sleep.
Seeing this, I decided to quietly leave the room to let them sleep, but just as I was about to leave the room. "Matt…" Applebloom said softly.
I turned around to see all of them leaning up on their beds. "Can you tell us a story?" Sweetie Belle asked.
I smiled warmly at them. "Sure." I said before I turned and walked back up to the front of their beds. "What kind of story do you want to hear?" I asked curiously.
"Applejack said that this party was to try your version of Hearths Warmings Day, so how about you tell us one of your home land stories?" Scootaloo said, sounding excited by the idea.
"…Ok." I said before I tried to think of some of the classic Christmas stories I knew, but I could only think of one in particular. "There is one I know by heart, but I'm not sure if it's something I should tell you…it might scare you." I said, warning them about it.
"We can handle it. Please Matt, tell it to us…pleeeease." Applebloom said before she gave me the big cute eyes.
Seeing them, I felt as though I couldn't say no. "*Sigh* Ok, but don't say I didn't warm you." I said before I sat down. "Get comfy and I'll start." I said.
The three of them then lied down and got comfy in their beds, keeping their eyes on me as they prepared to hear the story.
Once I knew they were ready, I breathed in before I began. "This story is called 'A Christmas Carol'…Many years ago in the city of London, there was a man who was as nasty as anyone could get, his name was Ebenezer Scrooge…"
As I told the story, the CMC became intrigued, I should've known a Christmas story about ghosts would spark their interests, Scootaloo's especially. They all tried hard to stay awake to hear it all, but they were just so tired that Applebloom and Sweetie Belle fell asleep halfway through the Ghost of Christmas Past part, leaving only Scootaloo slightly awake.
"Then Scrooge opened his eyes to fine himself back in his room, he was full of confusion and wondered how he had returned from the Past. But despite what he'd saw and been through, he remained strong and unchanged. Then, just as everything seemed normal, a light shined in his chamber room and a loud voice laughed and said "Come in and know me better, man." Scrooge went to the door and pushed it open to see…" I then stopped once I noticed that Scootaloo had finally fallen asleep, I exhaled before I stood up and made my way towards the exit of the room.
I managed to leave the room and close the door without waking them. But as I turned to make my way down starts, I was met by Twilight who was waiting for me in the hall, she was giving me a loving smile. "I saw what you were doing in there, how you handled them." she said before she nuzzled her head against my neck. "You're gonna be a good dad." She said.
I smiled and wrapped my arm around her. "And you're gonna be a loving Mum." I said before we both pulled away and looked in each other's eyes. "Pinkie has a balcony upstairs, wanna go on it and watch the saw fall?" I asked.
Twilight nodded. "Sure, that sounds nice." She said softly before we both made our way higher up Sugar Cube Corner.
We kept going until we reached the room with the balcony, Twilight and I walked out onto it and sat down as we watched the snow fall from the night sky. Twilight sighed as she leaned against my shoulder. "It's beautiful, isn't it?" she asked.
I continued to look up at the sky. "Yeah, it is…a good way to end my first Christmas here." I said.
Twilight lifted her head up off my shoulder and looked at my face. "Was it everything you wanted?" she asked, keeping her smile.
I turned to face her and returned the smile. "That and more…" I said before my smile went away. "I'm just sorry you didn't have the Hearths Warming you wanted." I said, feeling a bit guilty that everyone gave up their usually Hearths Warming traditions to try mine.
"Matt, this is what I wanted, it's what we all wanted. I was the one suggested it to the others and they agreed to it." Twilight said before she nuzzled my neck again. "It may not have been what we expected this year, but it's what we agreed to do…you know, to make you feel more at home." She said.
With that, I looked down at her. "What do you mean?" I asked curiously.
Twilight pulled away and looked me in the eyes. "You were saying how you'd miss out on Christmas back home, so we did this to help you feel better, so you wouldn't miss out, we invited your family and everything." She said, explaining her plan a bit more.
I was silent for a moment before I placed my hoof on top of hers. "Twi…I feel at home every time I see you, when I see Spike, our friends, the Library, everything here. True, I'd miss out on a few things back in England, but who doesn't when they move to a new place?...Or in this case, a new dimension, but you know what I mean. Anyway, I don't tend to get home-sick and I suppose the reason for that is this is my home now…and you're my whole life." I said with a loving smile.
Twilight returned the smile before she slowly wrapped her arms around me and hugged me. "I love you, Matt." she said, full of passion.
"I love you too, Twi, more than anything." I said before we pulled away and I looked at her stomach. "And I'm gonna love our foal just as much." I said.
"I know you will. And if you treat it the same way you do with say…Applebloom, he or she is gonna love you the same way right back." Twilight said with a warm smile.
I looked backed up to her eyes and we shared a loving kiss, after that, Twilight lied against my side and rested her head against my shoulder, closing her eyes to relax.
I then looked up to the dark, starry sky as snow gently fluttered down from it, thinking about how great this Christmas was. I thought about everything that's happened and everything that will happen.
It wouldn't be long now before Christmas is over, the brightest and exciting day of the year comes and goes so quick, I suppose the only thing to look forward to now was New Year.
Once I realised this, I thought about everything that's happened and everything that will happen.
This was the year I travelled to a new land, the year I made a lot of great friends, the year I fell in love, the year I was almost killed by an insane Alicorn, the year I got married, the year I found out I was gonna be a dad.
And damn…it was the best year of my life.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter
I'm sorry if this chapter feels a bit rushed, I was trying to get it done in time for today because, as you know, it's the premiere of FIM Season 6!
Spoiler Alert! Unless you already know the summary for the Episodes, then read all the way lol
In this episode, we're finally gonna see Shining Armor and Cadence's foal, apparently called Flurry Heart. Plus, Starlight's gonna be there, how will that turn out? We'll see.
The next episode will feature Pinkie and Rarity looking for a gift for Maud Pie.
Then there'll be one about the CMC struggling on what they'll do next because they now have their Cutie Marks.
Then there'll be one were Spike has to win the title of Dragon Lord to save his friend, but here's the question, from what? There's something to look forward to.
After that, the episode has no summary as of yet, but the title is 'No Second Prances', so it might feature an old villain looking for forgiveness, here's hoping it's Trixie. Speaking of which, could you imagine Starlight hanging out with Trixie? That would be legend-wait for it….-dary, legendary!
And lastly, the next episode after that will feature Rainbow Dash finally joining the Wonderbolts, but she makes a bad first impression.
Spoilers over!
Also, I don't follow Equestria Daily on Twitter anymore, so there will be less Pony News that before, I'm sorry to say.
One more thing, if there's anyone who's good at art out there, if you want to do some fan art based on my story, feel free to do so, but can you please PM me first so I know if you're interested?
Please remember to review.
Next chapter will be up as soon as it can.
62. Painful truth
Howdy everypony, and welcome back to another chapter.
I'm glad everyone liked the other chapter and the S6 premiere was awesome. Flurry Heart was so cute, the wings were a bit freaky, but still cute. Hopefully she'll have some interaction with Discord in a future episode.
Anyway, this chapter will have a shocking reveal and ending, so hang on to your chairs, beds, toilet, or wherever the hell you're reading this lol
Enjoy.
Chapter 62: Painful truth
It has been one and a half months since Hearths Warming Day, so we were in late February and everything seemed fine.
None of the Elements of Harmony had been stolen in a while, there were no problems or issues, and everyone was happy. I could be jinxing it, but everything seemed like it was calming down.
In other news, Twilight's belly had finally started bloating up, the baby was growing inside her. Her vomiting had reduced a bit, but only a bit, she still puked a lot while sounding like a Raptor from Jurassic Park, but her moods swings had stopped at least.
Jeff was really starting to hit it off with Philomena, something must've happened between them during Hearths Warming Day to get them this far. Jeff always was one for smooth talk.
Discord was still going around doing unnecessary kind acts, no-one knew what's gotten into him, but at least he's doing this instead of causing damage…at least, not much damage.
And as for myself, I was going fine as well. True, the thought of being a dad soon was a bit worrying, but I could handle it, Twi and I know what we're getting into and we were prepared. I worked hard and an extra hour to earn more money from my job to get everything we'd need.
Ponyville streets
I was in the streets doing my delivery run, throughout the entire day I've had a song stuck in my head, that's probably what I get for listening to the Countess Coloratura CD so many times. Dammit Pinkie!
"Razzle dazzle…glits and glam…turn it all up, it's a spectacle." I sang under my breath so no-one would hear me. Just then, I noticed Applebloom and her friends coming over to me, but there was something different about Applebloom, I couldn't put my hoof on it.
"Hey Matt, have ya seen my new bow?" Applebloom said as she pointed her hoof at the new glittery bow on her head.
Oh, the bow, of course. I looked at it before I smiled down at her. "It's nice, very pretty, where did you get it?" I asked curiously.
"Rarity made it for me, it's gonna be my Birthday next week and she gave it to me as an early present. I was so excited that I decided to test-wear it today." Applebloom answered, smiling with excitement over the thought of her Birthday.
I was surprised by this, I didn't know it was gonna be Applebloom's Birthday soon. "That's great, sweetheart, I'll be sure to drop by Sweet Apple Archers with something for you." I responded.
Applebloom smiled largely. "You're gonna get me a present?" she asked.
"Of course I am, I wouldn't let a special day like that go by and not get a present for the birthday girl." I said as I tussled her head with my hoof, being careful not to ruin her bow.
Sweetie Belle and Scootaloo looked at each other before they looked up at me. "Would you do that for us on our birthdays?" Scootaloo asked with a raised eye-brow.
I removed my hoof from Applebloom's head and looked at them. "Sure I would, but you're birthdays are a while away, aren't they?" I asked.
They both looked at each other again before they returned their attention to me. "Yeah…" they both answered as they looked down at the ground.
I felt for them for a moment before I took a step closer to them. "How about, during Applebloom's birthday, I get her a present and you two some surprise goody-bags. That sound good?" I asked with a hopeful smile.
They both looked up at me with surprise before they nodded. "Yeah!" they both said with large smiles.
"I'll be sure to do that then." I said before I looked back over to Applebloom. "And I'll see you on the big day. Now I better get going, your sister has a lot of deliveries for me to make. Nice seeing you three." I said before I started walking away while pulling the delivery cart behind me.
"See ya, Matt." Applebloom called as she waved her hoof while watching me leave.
"That bow really is pretty, Applebloom." Scootaloo said as she walked up to her. "I wish we were just as good as Rarity at making things like that." She said.
At that moment, Sweetie Belle gasped and smiled largely. "That's given me a great idea, lets go to Rarity's boutique and see I she can help us get our Cutie Marks as designers!" she said.
Scootaloo looked at her with an unsure look. "Didn't we already try that?" she asked.
"I don't remember, maybe Rarity dose, lets go ask her." Sweetie Belle answered before the three of them walked away to go to Carousel Boutique.
Later: Library
After doing my runs, returning the cart to Applejack and getting paid, I had finally returned home to the Library where Twilight would be waiting for me.
I entered the Library and looked around to see no-one was in the living-room. "Huh, I wonder where Twi is." I asked myself before I heard someone coming down the stairs. "Twi?" I called.
"Yeah, it's me." Twilight's voice said before she appeared half-way down the stairs.
As Twilight reached the bottom of the stairs, I couldn't help but notice her slightly round stomach, the foal was finally starting to grow inside her, I wondered if it would be a filly or a colt, either would be a blessing. "So…I was looking through some of the old books we have and I found something very interesting." She said with a small smile as she came up to me.
"Really? What is it?" I asked curiously.
Suddenly, Twilight's smile disappeared and her face turned firm. "This!" she said as she used her magic to hold something in front of me, something I hoped she wouldn't find, Grimerd's journal. "What is this and why have I never seen it before?" she asked in a strong voice.
I was stunned, I didn't know where to begin. "W-Where did you find that?" I asked, a little frightened.
"In the guest room, hidden between some books I forgot I had. To think, I wouldn't have been able to find it if Spike didn't tell me where it was." Twilight said, keeping her firm look.
Shocked by this, I looked behind her and saw Spike standing on the stairs, watching us. "Sorry Matt, the guilt was killing me, I had to tell her." He said in his defence.
"Spike!" I whined before I sighed hard and returned my attention to Twilight. "Ok, I'm sorry that I kept that a secret from you, but it's just a book, what's the big deal?" I asked.
"The big deal is that this isn't just any old book, is it? It's a journal that belonged to some guy named…" Twilight said before she used her magic to open the journal to read the name. "Grimerd, whoever that is." She said before she closed it.
I could feel my body heat rising as I became more nervous and frightened. "I…I can probably explain that." I said, not sure if that was the right thing to say.
"Unless you wanna sleep down here in a cardboard box tonight, I suggest you do." Twilight said firmly.
"Ok…I'll try." I said. I tried to think of a way to explain it to her, this was something involving Celestia's old relationship, a story she wanted to keep secret, but Twilight would get really upset if I didn't tell, it wouldn't help her or the baby. "Grimerd was once an Alicorn who apparently knew Celestia in a…certain way…she didn't really give much info on his personal life. Then one day, I stumbled across the journal and it's revealed a bit more about him…I haven't reached the last page yet though." I explained the best I could without revealing too much about him.
Twilight's firm look went away a little, but she still looked pretty mad. "Well…how long have you had it, Matt?" she asked.
"Well…If I'm putting it roughly…since we came back off our honeymoon." I said, scared of how she'll react to that answer.
"You've had it since then?! Matt, that was months ago and you've been hiding it all this time?" Twilight asked loudly.
"Only because Celestia wants to keep it a secret, I couldn't go against her. But when I found that, I figured I could learn more about him and know what went wrong." I said, trying to make the right excuse.
Twilight then raised her eye-brow. "What do you mean 'what went wrong'? Did this Grimerd guy do something?" She asked curiously.
I cursed myself to saying that. "I think I may have said a bit much." I said before I tried to walk past her.
But I was stopped when Twilight used her magic to grab my tail and pull me back in place. "No, tell me what happened, you owe me an explanation." She said strongly.
"Look, I don't really know what happened, things just fell apart with Grimerd. What's important now is he's gone, I've told you everything I could and we can just put it behind us." I said, trying to end this before it could get worse.
"Matt, you kept this a secret from me for a long time, you've basically been lying to me for months…I don't know how to deal with this, I don't know what I should feel." Twilight said, looking away with an upset look.
Feeling bad, I took a step closer to her. "Twilight, I-"
Twilight stepped away before I could finish my sentence. "I need a moment to myself." she said before she went into the other room, slamming the door behind her.
I sighed heavily before I stomped my hoof against the floor. "Dammit!" I growled before I sat down. "If she tells Celestia about that journal, I'm so dead…but now that I think about it, I suppose I'd deserve it." I said to myself silently.
Just then, Spike came back down the stairs slowly. "Is she gone?" he asked nervously.
I looked over to him and nodded. "Yeah, she's in the other room." I said calmly.
With that, Spike came over to me and stopped beside me. "I'm sorry Matt, I didn't mean to get you in trouble, I just thought it was right if she knew." He said in his defence.
"It's alright Spike, I suppose she needed to know eventually." I said before I looked down at the floor with a troubled look. "It shouldn't be like this, I can't put her through this sort of thing while she's pregnant." I said before I sighed, feeling bad about what I've done.
Spike then placed his claw on my arm. "It'll be alright, Matt, just give her some time to cool down, she'll probably feel better later." He said.
I was silent for a moment before I nodded. "Yeah, you're right…she needs time." I said before I turned my attention to Spike and change the subject. "So, anything else happen today?" I asked curiously.
Spike thought about it for a moment before he shook his head. "No, I don't think so." he said. But suddenly, his eyes widened. "Wait, I did get this letter from Princess Celestia." He said before he pulled out a small scroll.
Spike opened it and held it in front of my face for me to read. "You have been invited to the annual gala to celebrate the founding of Canterlot." I read before I looked at Spike again. "How many gala's do they have up there?" I asked.
"A lot." Spike answered, not sounding surprised at all.
I then looked back at the letter and thought about whether or not we should go. "Do you think Twilight will be up for it?" I asked.
"Maybe, she tends to like Canterlot parties, especially when Princess Celestia is there." Spike said before he pulled the letter away and read it himself. "By the sounds of it, it's gonna be one of those quiet classy parties." He said.
"Maybe something like that is what Twilight needs, some quiet time out of the house, and maybe seeing Celestia will ease her or something." I said before I looked over to the door which Twilight went through. "But I'm just wondering if she's up for it." I said.
"I'll go ask her, don't worry about it." Spike said before he walked over to the door with the scroll and entered it, closing it behind him.
I waited as Spike spoke to Twilight. My hoof tapped against the floor nervously, I just hoped she wasn't too upset with me. This party sounded like something that could really ease her a bit, I'd ask the others if they'd like to go, but I doubt any of them would be up for something like this.
That night: Road to Canterlot
It took some doing, but Twilight eventually agreed to come with me to the party, but she was still in a bit of a mood. We managed to get ourselves a carriage with two other ponies to take us up there, we were riding in it right now.
Spike decided to stay behind and watch the place with Jeff and Peewee, you know, to give us some time to sort things out.
Oh, and remember when I said none of our friends would be interested in going? Well… "This is going to be wonderful! A gala to celebrate the founding of Canterlot, I didn't know there was even such a gathering." Rarity said, wearing her dark purple gala dress.
I was wearing a black suit and Twilight was wearing her dark blue gala dress. "Neither did I, I'll need to ask Celestia how many parties and galas they have, it's like they have one for everyone." I said before I turned my head to face Twilight. "What do you think, Twi?...Twi?" I said, getting no answer.
Twilight stared out of the side window, looking away from me. "Twilight, are you still not talking to me?" I asked quietly, trying to not attract Rarity's attention.
Twilight remained silent as she continued to look out the window. Unfortunately, Rarity did notice and leaned her head forward to talk to me. "Is everything alright with you and Twilight?" she asked with a concerned look.
I turned my attention to her. "We've just hit a little snag, nothing big or anything." I said.
At that moment, Twilight spun around to face me with an angry look. "Nothing big? You lied to me for months!" she said loudly.
I turned to face her. "Technically, I never lied, did I ever say I didn't have that thing?" I said, trying to make a point, a bad one at that.
"No, you just locked yourself in the guest room and every time I asked 'what are you doing in there?', you'd say 'Nothing'. But you weren't doing nothing, you were doing something. Therefore, you lied." Twilight argued, making a better point than I did.
This began a long argument that lasted ages, much to Rarity's misfortune….in fact, the ponies pulling the carriage weren't very happy either.
A while later, we finally arrived at Canterlot Castle, but that didn't mean our argument ended. Rarity pushed open the carriage door and exited looking glad to get out, while we got out still arguing with each other. "I don't get what the big deal is, Twi, it was just a journal." I said loudly.
"Journal, necklace, ancient relic that could wipe out all of Equestria, it doesn't matter! We're supposed to be honest with each other, not keep secrets like this. If it was in the interest of a surprise, sure, but when it's stuff like this, we should tell each other stuff." Twilight said before she sighed hard. "Don't you trust me?" she asked.
"Of course I do, but I didn't want to stress you while you're carrying our foal, it could be harmful to you and the baby." I said strongly.
"Well you're doing a great job at that now, aren't you?" Twilight said sarcastically before she stormed off to join up with Rarity who was half-way up the path.
I groaned in frustration as I rubbed my eyes with my hooves.
"You're in the pit now, dude." One of the ponies who were pulling our carriage said.
I then turned my head around to face him. "Do you mind?" I asked in an annoyed tone.
With that, they both remained silent and started walking away down the road, taking the carriage with them.
After that, I started making my way up the path to join up with Twilight and Rarity, wondering how this night could get worse.
-A few minutes later-
After entering the castle, Rarity and Twilight entered the lobby and saw Celestia standing on top of the stairs greeting everyone who arrived. With me not far behind, Twilight and Rarity went up the stairs to greet her.
Once she noticed them, Celestia smiled. "Twilight, I'm glad you got my invitation." She said with a warm smile.
Twilight returned it. "Glad to have been invited, Princess, it's always wonderful to see you." she said.
Celestia then looked over to Rarity. "I didn't know you were bringing one of your friends, what a nice surprise." She said with the same smile.
Rarity bowed her head before looking back up at Celestia. "It's nice to see you again, Princess." She said before she leaned her head in to tell her something quietly. "Watch out, Matthew and Twilight are in a bad place tonight." she whispered.
Celestia's smile disappeared. "What do you mean?" she asked curiously in a whisper.
At that moment, I caught up to them and looked at Twilight. "You could've at least waited for me to catch up." I said.
Twilight looked at me with a small glare. "I don't know, Matt, I could've been hiding something I didn't want you to see." She said, finishing in a quiet growl.
I exhaled hard and threw my eyes. "Seriously? We're doing this here?" I asked.
"Yes we are and don't you take that tone with me, mister." Twilight said firmly as she turned to face me more.
This started yet another argument, Celestia and Rarity watched us with wide eyes as we went at each other like a pair of hissing cats. Celestia decided to take a stand and stop this. "*Clears throat* If you're both quite finished." she said calmly but firmly.
Hearing this, Twilight and I stopped fighting each other and looked up at her. "Sorry Princess, but I really need some time to myself." Twilight said before she stormed off to go to the ballroom.
Once she left, Celestia looked back down to me. "Why are you two fighting anyway? You're both usually the calmest couple I know." She said.
"It's complicated." I said before I looked over to Rarity. "Rarity, can you keep an eye on her for a while. I think we both just need some time apart." I said, calming down a little.
Rarity nodded. "Of course." She said before she turned and walked away to follow Twilight.
I then returned my attention up to Celestia. "So…how's Luna and Discord doing?" I asked curiously, trying to get my mind off our argument.
Celestia was silent for a moment before she answered. "Luna is doing fine, she won't be attending this party tonight, she has some work to do in her castle. As for Discord, he's been busy trying to do 'extra good' things for every pony in the city." She said before she looked down at the floor in front of her. "I still don't know why he's acting like this, it's like he's become a completely different person." She said.
I titled my head. "And…is that a good thing?" I asked, unsure if she was glad or upset by this.
Celestia looked at me again. "It's not a 'good' thing, if I'm being honest. I mean, I know I've said Discord could try to be better, but I didn't think I'd actually miss the old troublesome Discord he used to be." She said, sounding a bit troubled.
I thought about it for a moment before I thought of a way to help. "Maybe later, I'll go talk to him and see what's going on, if you want." I said, giving her a small smile.
Celestia raised her eye-brow. "You'd do that? You know what he's like." She said.
I waved my hoof. "Don't worry, I'll handle it. He and I have a connection when we talk serious." I said with a confident smile.
Celestia thought about it for a moment before she smiled. "Very well then, thank you." she said.
"No problem." I said kindly, I then looked over in the direction Twilight and Rarity went. "I better join the girls, I'll catch you later, Princess. And don't worry, I'll talk to Discord." I said before I went away to go to the ballroom.
"I hope so, thank you again, Matthew." Celestia said as she watched me go, she then went back to greeting the ponies who arrived.
An hour later
I was in the ballroom watching all the ponies talking amongst each other and dancing to the high class music played by a string quartet, two of those ponies were Twilight and Rarity. I didn't know what they were talking about, but I hoped it wasn't about me.
I stood next to the food table with a glass of water in my hoof, I took a sip as I kept my eyes on them. I would've joined them, but I felt Twilight and I needed some time away from each other to let things cool.
At that moment, Star Beam, the leader of the new recruits, came over to me. "Mr Matthew, its been some time." He said with a cheerful smile.
I turned my head to face him and tried to return it. "Hi Star Beam…" I said before I returned my attention to the ponies. "So, everything going smoothly?" I asked curiously.
"No sign of trouble yet, but the night's young." Star said before he got himself a cup of punch and stood beside me with it in his hoof.
"Any news on the case? Clues? Anything?" I asked, curious on the progress of the investigation.
Star Beam took a sip of his drink before he answered. "Nothing, no clues, no leads, completely nothing." He said as he turned his head to face me. "Blaze Horn is always off somewhere with the captain and Sunray's no help." He said.
Curious by this, I turned to face Star with a raised eye-brow. "Don't tell me he's still in the hospital after that Fear Hex thing." I said.
Star shook his head. "No, he came out months ago, he just doesn't remember anything that happened before it, it's like an after-effect." He said before he took another sip off his drink.
I exhaled through my nose before I looked out to the ponies again. "This fella…the one stealing the Elements, he's smart and dangerous, he covers his tracks like a pro and beats down anyone who gets in his way, there's also a possible he might be an Alicorn…I don't like any of it." I said before I took a sip of my water to calm my nerves.
"Same here…but don't worry, we'll get him, one way or another." Sunray said before he looked over to two of his teammates. "I've heard whispers that it's someone on my team…I think that's a load of horse pie." He then returned his attention to me. "My team isn't dirty. We've worked together for years, now with all these rumours, even I'm starting to wonder if I know them as well as I think." He admitted.
I looked at him. "You shouldn't think like that, not until you have some strong evidence at least." I said before I thought back to the early days of the investigation. "In fact, some part of me thinks it's one of Luna's new recruits, one in particular." I said.
Sunray raised his eye-brow. "That Dusk guy? Didn't your investigation get him suspended once?" he asked.
I nodded. "Yeah, he wasn't happy about, probably the type who holds a grudge as well." I said, thinking about how rough it might be when I see Dusk again, god forbid.
"Don't worry, he'll get over it…provided he isn't the one doing it, of course." Star said before he looked over to Illume, who gave him a charming smile.
Star, feeling rushed by this, looked at me. "If you'll excuse me, Matthew, I see something over there I really must inspect." He said before he walked away to catch up with Illume.
I shook my head with an amusing smile. "I bet." I said under my breath before I returned my attention to the ponies again, however, there was something different.
There was a pony, standing within the crowd, I couldn't see his face, but he was wearing a black cloak with a hood. He slowly lifted its head up and revealed it's glowing yellow eyes. "You can't protect them all, Matthew." He said in a dark whisper.
My eyes widened in fright, I kept my sight on him until I felt a hoof tap my side. "Hey, what's wrong?" a familiar voice said. I turned to where it came from and saw Twilight. "Why are you staring at everypony like that?" she asked with a confused look.
I looked back to where the hooded pony was and saw that he was gone, I wondered if he was even there to begin with. "I thought I saw…n-nothing, it must've been my imagination." I said, trying not to look weird in front of her.
At that moment, Twilight huffed. "Is that true or are you just trying to hide something again?" she said with a raised eye-brow.
I then sighed heavily. "You're not gonna get over that any time soon, are you?" I asked, not looking at her.
"Let's just say I hope you find the guest room bed comfy." Twilight said before she walked away to join back up with Rarity, not feeling any better about anything.
With that, I did everything I could to swallow my frustration, I slammed my glass of water down on the table behind me before I stormed towards the doors to the gardens. I opened one of the large doors before I went out into the air, I took a few deep breaths to calm down. "…Dammit…this is the worst day ever." I said under my breath.
After a few minutes, I exhaled before I started making my way back inside. But before I could, I heard a strange noise, it sounded like something magically appearing in a poof, I looked around to see if I could see anything. I then heard it again, it sounded faint, like it was in a faraway distance.
Then, from the corner of my eye, I saw a small light above, I looked up and saw only one of the towers of the castle. I heard the noise again and saw a small light shine through one of the windows of the tower, one of the high ones at that. Curious, I went back inside and tried to find a way to that room.
I wondered the castle halls for a while, following the noise that made me do a lot of twists and turns. Eventually, I found the room, the noise was louder and a light shine under the door. I put my ear to the door and listened for anything inside, I heard a strange chuckle that was very familiar. "…Discord?" I said to myself.
But before I could pull away, the door quickly opened and I fell through, but not onto a floor, I fell from the doorway floating in a sky-like surrounding and started plummeting down. I yelled loudly in fright as I feel, hitting a few cotton-candy clouds along the way.
About halfway down, I started flapping my wings and I soon stopped. Hovering where I was, I looked around the area I was now in.
It was weird, like Ponyville when Discord nearly took over. Cotton-candy clouds, flying pigs, tap-dancing fish, you name it. It was like an entire world in one room, Discord must've been working on this for ages…or just a few minutes ago, he's a fast worker.
But then it came to me, Discord said that Thorn took away half his magic, but all this didn't look like the work of someone who only had half his magic. Something was afoot, I had to find out what was going on.
At that moment, I heard Discord chuckle again and I looked down to see him on his chaos throne with a glass of chocolate milk. "What is he up to?" I asked myself before I flew down to him.
Discord laughed loudly as books, flapping their pages like wings, flew past him. He made a large crazy straw appear and put it in his drink. "Oh how I've missed this so." he said before he started to suck the chocolate milk through it.
"And what would that be?" I asked as I hovered in front of him with my arms crossed.
Discord's eyes shot open before his ears did a spit-take, shooting out the chocolate milk. Discord was stunned for a moment before he spoke. "Umm…is it possible one of us is dreaming?" he asked.
"Not likely." I said with a small glare. "Care to explain what's going on here?" I said, sounding firm.
Discord tried to think of an excuse, but couldn't, he was caught red-handed. Discord sighed before he snapped his fingers, turning the room back to normal instantly. "I suppose someone had to find out sooner or later." He said with his ears low.
"Find out what? What was all that? I thought you weren't as powerful as you were before." I said, not sure whether or not I wanted to know.
Discord looked at me with guilt. "I lied, Matthew, I didn't lose half my magic and I didn't lose my title, I'm still the Spirit of Chaos. When Thorn tried to take away my magic, he only wounded me and made me weak, I only said I lost my magic so you'd give me a chance." He admitted.
I didn't know how to respond to this and I didn't know if I should hear any more, but I had to get the whole story. "But…if you still wanted to cause chaos, why didn't you? Why did you play the good guy for so long?" I asked.
"Because I wanted revenge on Thorn, I was using your home as a place to heal before I'd go after him." Discord said before he looked down and played with his fingers. "But after that day we spent together, I started to…you know…bond with all of you, Fluttershy especially. I realized it was nice to actually have real friends, that's why I stayed, even after you defeated Thorn." He confessed.
I knew it was stupid, but I actually felt a lump in my throat over this, I tried to keep myself together as I continued to speak. "So…all this time, you've been lying to us? Secretly pulling off all this stuff behind our backs, dreaming of causing chaos again?" I said, getting louder as I felt more upset.
Discord put his hands out. "No, I've only done this stuff here in this room, it's one of the rooms no-one has used for, you're probably the first pony to come in here in years." He said in his defence.
"But still, you lied to us, Discord! Friends don't lie to each other for that length of time, you couldn't have come clean sooner?" I said, giving him a firm look.
"I couldn't, especially not now, I've already got everypony looking at me weird as it is. That's why I've been doing all these good deeds, to prove I've changed for good and I'm not going back to the way I was before." Discord said, trying to explain.
At that moment, I remembered that Celestia wanted me to talk to Discord about this and find out why he was working himself so hard. "Is that why you're doing all this? To prove you've changed?" I asked.
"That, and to prove I'm not the one stealing the Elements." Discord said before he sighed. "Ever since the break in, I think Celestia has been suspecting it was me. So I've been trying to do good deeds to prove it isn't, I've been trying to clear my name. If I was to tell her that I still have my magic and title, she's never trust me again." he said.
I thought about it for a moment before I shrugged. "Ok, that I understand, but you've lied to us for basically a year! If you were a true friend, you would've told us sooner, not keep it from us for this long." I said.
Discord then gave me a slightly firm look. "Oh come now, Matthew, surly you've done something similar. Hide something from those you love to spare their feelings, to keep them from worrying about it." he said, believing everyone has done those at least once in their lives.
I thought about it before I knew the perfect thing, the thing that happened only a few hours ago. I was hiding that journal from Twilight and Celestia from months, I didn't want them to worry about it so I kept it hidden. "Actually…I've done something like that recently."
"And with my history, you should know how I feel about this secret." Discord said, stepping closer.
"I do know how you feel." I said before my ears dropped. "And now that I've heard it…I now know how Twilight feels about me hiding my secret from her for so long." With that, I placed my hoof on my chest. "Wow…that hurts a lot." I said, feeling bad about what I've put Twilight through.
Discord then gave me a looked of sorrow. "I'm really sorry about what I've done." He said.
I then looked up to him. "We'll discuss more about this later, Discord…but right now I have to find Twilight," I said before I turned and rushed out the room, leaving Discord to wonder if he'd heard the end of this.
-A few minutes later-
After rushing through the halls for a while, I finally found my way back to the ballroom. I pushed my way through the crowd, desperately looking for Twilight, but I couldn't see her or Rarity anywhere.
I searched for a few minutes before I finally found them, they were both standing by the stained window talking to each other. But something was wrong, Twilight looked upset, like something happened while I was gone. I started to make my way over to them until I was suddenly stopped by a large guard. "Mr Matthew, Princess Celestia has requested that you meet her in the throne room immediately." He said in his rough voice.
Stunned by this, I looked past him to see Twilight and Rarity hadn't noticed this, I returned my sight to him. "Sure, but I need to talk to my wife first, it's really important." I said, trying to convince me to let me pass.
But the guard put his hoof up. "I'm afraid she insists." He said before he put his hoof back down. At that moment, another guard walked up behind me and I noticed this.
Seeing there was no way out of this, I sighed before I looked at the one in front of me. "Alright, but can we make this quick please?" I asked,
"Follow us." The guard said before he and the other one led me out of the ballroom and into the halls.
Twilight noticed this, as did Rarity before she placed her hoof on Twilight's shoulder, comforting her as a look of guilt consumed her face.
A few minutes later: Throne room
After leaving the ballroom, the guards led me through the halls until we eventually came to Celestia's throne room, where she was apparently waiting for me. All the while I wondered why she wanted to see me, was it about the case? Was it about Discord? Only one way to find out.
I stood in front of the large double-doors before I looked over to one of the guards. "Do I just go in or…?" I asked, not sure what to do next.
The guard nodded. "She's expecting you, so you can go right in." he said.
I nodded before I pushed one of the doors open and walked into the room, the door closing behind me. I looked around for a moment before I saw Celestia standing on the right side of the room, looking up at one of the stained windows.
I took a breath before I walked over to her and stopped a few feet away from her. "Umm…Princess?...You wanted to see me?" I asked.
Celestia was silent, continuing to stare up at the window of her and Luna defeating Discord, but she soon replied. "Yes, I did…and I wish I could say it was on good terms." She said, sounding upset.
By the looks of things, I wondered if she found out about Discord on her own. I thought about what I was going to say before I attempted to speak. "Look…about Discord…I spoke to him and I think there's-"
"This isn't about Discord, Matthew…it's about you." Celestia said, turning to reveal she had a firm look rather than an upset one.
I was surprised by this before my ears lowered. "Me?...W-What do you mean?" I asked nervously.
"I think you know what I mean." Celestia said before she used her magic to hold something beside her, she moved it in front of me to reveal it was Grimerd's journal, this shocked me even more. "Do you mind telling me how this came into your possession?" she asked, sounding slightly angered.
I stared at it for a moment before I looked at her. "H-How did you get this?" I asked curiously, probably knowing the answer.
"While you were who-knows-where, Twilight came to me with this and told me you found it, that you've been hiding it from her for some time." Celestia said before she looked at it. "She brought it to me saying that it had something to do with me…at first, I didn't believe it, but then I read some of it." she said as she returned her sight to me. "Now I'm going to ask you again…where did you get this?" she asked.
My ears dropped all the way before I tried to explain. "I found it in an old tower outside the Canterlot, I read through some of it and found out that…it was Grimerd's…I didn't want to ask to tell me more about him, the memories would probably hurt…so I took this journal home and tried to learn more about him on my own." I explained the best I could.
Celestia didn't look at all better about this. "Matthew…don't you realise what you've done? What you've found? What you've brought into the open?" she said.
I was starting to feel a little frightened by her tone. "But…it's just an old journal, w-what harm can it do?" I asked, backing up a little.
"This isn't just any old journal, it's Grimerd's journal! He didn't just write his history in here, he wrote every spell and potion her ever mastered, it's full of all the dark magic that turned him into the monster we had to put down." Celestia said, waving the journal in front of me with her magic.
I honestly didn't know what she meant, I had read the journal for months and I've never seen any spells or potions. "But I've read almost every page, I've never seen anything like that." I claimed.
"You wouldn't have." Celestia said before she opened the journal and looked inside. "To the eyes of a Pegasus, Unicorn or Earth pony, these pages are blank…but to the eyes of an Alicorn like him, like me, they're there clear as day." she said, seeing the words that I couldn't.
I stayed silent as Celestia closed the journal and looked at me. "Do you realize that in the wrong hooves this journal could be a key to bringing the apocalypse? What I Thorn got hold of this?" she asked.
"But Thorn's dead, Princess, he's never coming back." I said, trying to ease her worries.
"True, but what if there are more like him? What if there are more Alicorns that would do anything to get their hooves on this?" Celestia said before she sighed. "I didn't know there were more Alicorns in Equestria…I thought Grimerd was the only other Alicorn outside the royal family, but when I saw Thorn for the first time…it made me question everything I knew. How could there be more Alicorns out there? Are some ponies born as Alicorns? And most importantly, are there more like him out there in the darkness? That one worries me the most." She said deeply.
Understanding, I gave her a nod. "Ok…I get it, the books a threat to all of us, but I didn't know there was something so evil inside it, I thought it only had his story. I swear!" I said, hoping she'd understand.
"I believe you, but even after everything I told you about Grimerd, you still kept this from me, you kept it from Twilight." Celestia said before she gave me a firm look. "Now I don't know when exactly you found this journal, but frankly I am deeply disappointed that you didn't hand this in to me. Grimerd isn't meant to be understood, he's meant to be forgotten." She said strongly.
"I know…I'm sorry, Princess." I said with a strong look of sorrow on my face.
After putting the journal down, Celestia lowered her head down to me to show she had a calmer look, like she was trying to be gentle. "Grimerd was a very dangerous pony, Matthew…I should know." She said before he horn glowed.
At that moment, her neck piece came lose and slowly lowered down, revealing her bare neck to me. I then gasped quietly when I saw what she wanted to show me. A large grey scar going across the right side of her neck, she must've got it during her final fight with Grimerd. Celestia remained quiet as she used her magic to put her neck piece back on.
Speechless, I remained quiet as Celestia spoke again. "Now Matthew, I understand that you didn't know what you were doing, but I'm afraid that isn't an excuse…For the time being, I'm don't think I can trust your words." She said, sounding calm but firm.
I looked at her with fear in my eyes. "W-What do you mean?" I asked, almost scared to ask.
Celestia sighed again before she continued. "I'm sorry Matthew, but until further notice…you're off the missing Elements case." She said.
Just like that, I felt my head spin, I didn't feel very good. "W-What? But we're starting to get close, we know a lot more about him because of my investigation." I said, trying to get her to change her mind.
"But what have you uncovered? Things we already know, plus the disappearance of another Element?" Celestia said with a raised eye-brow.
"He came in the night while we were sleeping, we didn't know he knew we moved the Elements." I said in my defence.
Celestia then raised her hoof up to silence me. "I'm going to assign Shining Armor to take the lead in this investigation…I'm sorry Matthew, but that's my final word." She said before she placed her hoof back down and looked away. "Now please…return to Twilight and Rarity." She said, now looking upset.
I was frozen at first, unable to believe any of this. I was off the case, all the work I put into it and now it all just ends like this. Not wanting to argue, I turn and make my way towards the room's exit, leaving Celestia troubled…but feeling she did what she had to do.
After leaving the room and closing the door behind me, I sat down and rested my back against it, feeling sorry for myself for what I did. "What have I done?" I said to myself.
Later that night: Ponyville Library
After my talk with Celestia, I went back to the ballroom and re-joined Twilight and Rarity, I practically begged them for us to go home, so we did. Along the way, I told them what happened and they were just as shocked as I was, especially Twilight. Once we got home, Rarity went back to her house and we went back to the Library.
I sat on the bed in the guest room, looking down at the clovers and thought about the mess I was in. Celestia was right, I put us all at risk keeping that thing, now I'm off the case and lost Celestia's trust.
I then heard the door slowly open, but I didn't care, I was too busy wallowing in shame. "Matt?..." Twilight said gently.
I heard her, but I didn't look, I just kept staring down at the covers.
Twilight walked over to the side of the bed and placed her hoof on the side of it. "Matt, I'm so sorry…I just thought Celestia should know, it did involve her after all…I was worried about you, that journal must've been something bad if you thought you had to hide it from me." she said, getting no response. "*Sigh* I had no idea she would take it so hard, especially enough to take you off the case…I'm really sorry Matt." she said.
I then turned my head to face her. "No, Twi…you were right to do that…that journal was full of dark magic and I took it from its hiding spot just to learn more about the pony it belonged to. What if the pony stealing the Elements got hold of it? Imagine all the stuff he could do with it, it'd be absolute chaos." I said before my ears dropped. "I went out of line doing all this…taking something I didn't understand, lying to you for months, hiding it from Celestia even though I knew it would've been important to her…I really screwed up this time." I said in shame.
Twilight then hopped up onto the bed and sat beside me. "No Matt, you just made a mistake, we all do that sometimes." She said before she tried to make a joke to cheer me up. "But next time you do, try not to involve an old magical book that could destroy everything." She said with an amused smile.
I then looked at her and gave her a small smile. "…no promises." I said in amusement.
Twilight giggled before her amused smile went away. "I'm really sorry for telling on you." she said.
I placed my hoof on top of hers. "As far as I know, you did me a favour…I hated lying to you like I did, but I just wanted to keep you out of it, I didn't want to worry you in any way." I said before I lightly rubbed her belly. "Especially now." I said as I looked into her beautiful eyes. "I'm sorry I lied to you." I said deeply.
Twilight then used her magic to pull a torn coupon from behind her back, it was one of the coupons Twilight gave me for Christmas. "Another fun fact about these coupons, some are blank so you can write new ideas into them." she said before she held it out in front of me.
I saw this before I smiled at her. "I know, I made it myself to give to you, no better time than now I suppose." I said before I reached over to the bedside-desk and opened one of the draws, I soon pulled out another torn coupon. "I wrote it before we left for the party, I put it in here for safe keeping." I explained.
Twilight and I then took each other's coupon in our hooves and read them.
Twilight's said. "Forgive Twilight for telling on you to the Princess."
And mine said. "Forgive Matthew for totally screwing up."
Twilight and I then looked at each other with loving smiles and said the same thing. "Accepted." We both said. We then proceeded to throw the coupons away before we moved closer to each other. "I love you so damn much, Twilight." I said.
"I love you too, Matt." Twilight said as we wrapped our arms around each other.
But as we were about to share a long awaited kiss, we heard a pounding on the front door down stairs. We pulled away from each other before I chuckled. "Every time, right?" I said before I stood up and jumped off the bed. "I've got it." I said with a calm smile before I walked out of the room to head down stairs.
As I went down stairs, the pounding continued, I thought the door would eventually give way and fall off. Whoever it was, they wanted an answer badly.
I then placed my hoof on the doorknob before I pulled open the door, I was shocked to see Applejack standing behind it. She looked like she just received a savage, he hat was ragged, her mane was a mess and she had a black-eye. "Matt…ya gotta get over to Sweet Apple Arches right away!" she said with a frightened look on her face.
I was about to say something until Twilight came down the stairs to see us. "Matt, who is it?" she asked before she saw Applejack in the state she was in and rushed over. "Applejack, what the hay happened to you?" she asked, going past me and helping her stand.
Applejack looked at her before she looked at me again. "We were attacked…" she answered, making Twilight and I look at each other with extreme panic in our eyes.
Later: Sweet Apple Archers
We rushed over to Sweet Apple Arches as quick as we could, Twilight stayed the same speed as Applejack as we did, she had a bad limp in one of her hind-legs. "Who attacked you?" I asked, not looking away from the house.
"I dunno…he was wearin' a hood…I think he's the guy who's been stealin' the Elements." Applejack answered, walking up beside me despite her limp.
Hearing that, I turned to face her. "Where did you leave yours?" I asked, worried that we've lost another one.
Applejack turned to face me. "Under my bed in my room, I thought it'd be the safest place. I locked in in a small chest." She said.
As Twilight walked up to my other side, I turned to her. "Let's go in and check things out." I said, receiving a nod from Twilight. I then returned my attention to Applejack. "Applejack, you're too injured to do anything if he's still in there, you're better off staying out here." I said.
Applejack then smirked. "Like hay I will, that guy's in my home, I'm gonna defend it no matter what." She said before she started limping over to the front door.
Not arguing with her, Twilight and I followed until we reached the door.
Upon entering, we saw that the place had been ransacked, broken pictures, knocked over furniture, scorch marks on the walls, it was like a bomb hit.
We slowly walked through the living room and into the hallway, where a tall figure surprised and startled us, our fear was however eased when we saw it was Big Macintosh, but he was frozen in solid ice, stuck in a frightened pose. "Big Mac…" Applejack said under her breath, feeling the cold breeze coming from his body.
Twilight tapped him with her hoof. "He's been frozen solid." She said.
I walked up to her. "Think you can thaw him out?" I asked, concerned for his safety.
Twilight turned to me with an unsure look. "I think I can, but with ice this thick, it might take me a few minutes." She said before she returned her attention to Big Mac and started shooting a warm beam from her horn.
It struck Big Mac's frozen body and steam started to rise from that spot.
Just then, Applejack and I heard a noise from the kitchen and we slowly approached to investigate. Once inside, we looked around and saw the table had been broken in half and there was pans and stuff everywhere. "He must've done this while looking for the Element." I said.
"Matthew? Is that you?" Granny Smith's voice said.
Applejack and I looked around to try and find her, but we couldn't see her. "Granny Smith? Where are you?" Applejack asked, looking for her.
"Up here." Granny Smith's voice said.
We looked up and saw Granny Smith, stuck to the ceiling with some kind of net. We gasped. "Granny Smith! How'd you get up there?" I asked, flapping my wings to hover up to her.
"That no-good hooded fella threw me up in the air and shot this net at me, next thing I know I'm stuck here and he's trashing the kitchen, looked like he was lookin' for somethin'." Granny Smith said before she smirked. "The yella-belly ran off before I could get outta this and really give show 'im what I could do." she said.
I then grabbed the net with my hooves and used all my strength to rip it open, Granny Smith fell out but Applejack caught her and put her back on her hooves, she then proceeded to hug Granny Smith. "I'm so glad you're ok." She said, receiving a hug back from her.
Once I landed back down in front of them, a frightening thought came to mind. "Granny, where's Applebloom?" I asked.
Applejack and Granny Smith then separated and looked at me. "I told her to hide upstairs when that hooded guy broke through the door, I think she's still up there." I said.
I nodded. "Ok, I'll go find her, you two stay here." I said before I turned and rushed out of the kitchen.
Once back in the hall, I rushed around to the stairs and went up as quick as I could. After I reached the top, I looked down the hall and saw Applejack's room. I knew Applebloom should've been my top priority, but I had to be sure.
I went over to the room and slowly went through the doorway, looking around to make sure I was alone inside. Once I saw it was clear, I went over to the bed and looked under it, but the chest Applejack kept her Element in wasn't here. Seeing this, I stomped my hoof against the floor. "Dammit! Not again!" I growled before I stood back up.
I paced for a second, trying not to lose my cool again. I was so frustrated, I could feel my body temperature rising and I didn't know what to do. I then stopped once I remembered what I came up her for. "Applebloom." I said quietly before I rushed out of the room and went to her door.
But as I was about to open it, I noticed something that made my heart heavy. The door latch was broke, like it was forced open. I then placed my hoof on the door and slowly pushed it open, afraid of what I might see inside.
When the door finally opened all the way, I started to breathe harder at what I saw. The room was trashed, the bed covers were ripped, one of the columns on her bed was broken in half, the window and mirrors were smashed, almost everything was broken.
I walked inside and looked around. "Applebloom? Applebloom?!" I said, starting to panic that something happened to her. I rushed up to her closet and opened it, but she wasn't in there, I didn't bother to close the doors, I just cared about finding Applebloom.
But as I walked across the room, one of my front-hooves hit something. I looked down and saw a small empty chest, it must've been the chest Applejack kept her Element in. "I knew it." I said under my breath.
At that moment, I saw something sparkle in the corner of my eye, I looked to where it was coming from and saw that it was Applebloom's new glittery bow.
I slowly went over to it and looked down to see it was slightly ripped. Upon seeing this, I sat down and kept my eyes on it, I slowly scooped it up in my hooves and felt my heart grow even heavier. "…No…" I said as tears formed in my eyes.
Applebloom wasn't here, she wasn't anywhere near here, the one who stole the Elements took her along with the Element of Honesty. I cared little for the Element, all I really cared about was Applebloom, knowing that he had her was crushing me right there.
As tears started rolling down my face, I buried my head in the bow and started crying into it. "I'm sorry Applebloom…I'm so sorry…" I said before I started sopping a little harder.
After a minute, I started to think about the pony responsible for this. He comes out of nowhere, beats down a number of guards, steals some of the Elements and now he kidnaps an innocent filly? Who was this guy? How is it he was so tough to find? It was then I finally reached my peak, I've had enough of this crap.
All my sorrow and sadness soon turned into anger and rage, I slowly lifted my head up out of the bow to reveal my dark glare, filling with more anger by the moment. I clutched the bow in my hooves as I vowed to find this ass at any cost, no more playing nice.
I'll find him, get Applebloom back…and then he'll pay for this.
Meanwhile: Mount Forbidden
The hooded pony stood in the throne room, looked up at Applebloom who was floating inside a magic bubble, she appeared to be unconscious.
He continued to stare up at her as Rage come up behind him. "Why did you bring her here?" he asked in a growl.
The hooded pony turned around to face him. "The little brat took off my hood, she saw who I was, I couldn't leave her there after that." He explained.
"Then why didn't you just kill her? That would've made it a little easier?" Rage said firmly with a glare.
"Because…because…" the hooded pony said as he looked back up at Applebloom.
"What? Because she's just a filly? You were just a filly when your real parents left you alone to die, it didn't seem to stop them!" Rage said before he walked up beside her. "If you want to rule by my brother's side as his heir to the throne, you must be willing not to show mercy, even to such fillies at this." He said darkly as he looked up at Applebloom.
"But I'm not his heir yet." The hooded pony said before he turned and started walking away.
Rage saw this and disappeared in a bolt of red flames, the suddenly reappeared in front of him. "Give me one good reason why we should keep this filly alive?" he asked.
"Because she could be useful." A familiar voice behind him.
They both looked to where it came from and saw Zelga walked up to them. "I know this filly, she and Matthew have a strong bond, almost like brother and sister. I bet he'd do anything to get her back." she said with a devious smile.
"Are you suggesting we set a trap for Matthew using this filly as bait?" Rage asked, questioning her.
Zelga looked at him and nodded. "No, we're gonna take her back and say we're sorry before we kill ourselves to spare Matthew the trouble." She said sarcastically. "Of course we're gonna set a trap for him! Stop being such an idiot, Rage!" she said, getting a growl from him.
Zelga then walked past them to look up at Applebloom. "Oh yes…once Matthew knows where we're going to take her, he'll rush right over…where we'll be waiting." She said.
"But how will Matthew know where we're gonna take her? I can't exactly tell him, otherwise he'll suspect something." The hooded pony said.
Zelga turned to face them and smirked. "Don't worry about that, dear, he'll find a way…he always does." She said before she glared sharply. "Only this time, we'll be expecting him…and he won't have a happy ending." She said with a dark grin, setting a plan in motion.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
As you've probably guessed, the next chapter will show a much darker side of me, so expect to see some really chilling stuff.
Pony News:
New Season 6 episodes have been announced
One is another Hearths Warming episodes, Twilight tells Starlight one of the holiday tales to cheer her up.
The next stars Rarity where, after opening her new boutique in Manehatten, she becomes a victim of libel…whatever that means.
And the last is called 'Applejack's day off', there's no plot put its safe to assume it stars Applejack.
End of Pony news.
Please remember to review or PM.
The next chapter will be up as soon as possible.
63. Rematch
Hi everypony and welcome back.
Guess what, today's this story's anniversary. 4 years ago today, the first chapter of this story was released and look how far we've come since then, best of all, all of you have stuck by me all that time. You guys are truly awesome and I'm glad to have all of you.
Got a lot of reviews from my last chapter, one even said it was the darkest he's read on this story, which I was aiming for, so…yay.
This chapter will feature a much darker side of me, so prepare yourself, you're about to see some really brutal shit. Warning, will contain blood and violence.
Anyway, enjoy the chapter.
Chapter 63: Rematch
Four days, four days it's been since that mysterious pony stole another Element and kidnapped poor Applebloom. What kind of sick pony are we dealing with? Who kidnaps an innocent filly like her? I wasn't coping well with it at all.
I was angry all the time, imagining how I was gonna beat this guy senseless when I find him. I trained hard, preparing myself for an upcoming battle that I felt would eventually happen.
At first, Applejack tried to track down the hooded pony herself, but found so many dead-ends that she realised it was hopeless, she could only hope someone would bring Applebloom back safely…which I intended to do.
I will find Applebloom and I will make this pony pay for what he's done, nothing will stand in my way of doing that…nothing!
Sweet Apple Acres
While I was busy back at the Library, Twilight went to Sweet Apple Acres to check up on Applejack. Since she gave up searching, she's been a little slow, she barely did any work anymore.
Twilight and Applejack sat on the hill, overseeing the orchard as the sun shun brightly in the sky. Twilight turned her head to look at Applejack. "So how are you doing, Applejack?" she asked, already knowing the answer.
Applejack turned her head to face her. "My sister's been kidnapped, Twilight, how do ya think I'm doing?" she said before she looked away.
Twilight's ears dropped. "Right…stupid question, sorry." She said as she looked down at the grass with an upset look.
Applejack sighed before she looked at Twilight again. "Nah, I'm sorry I snapped like that, it's just…I'm going through a rough time right now and the others aren't doin' so good either." She said.
Twilight looked at her. "What do you mean?" she asked curiously.
Applejack then turned her head to look over to their house. "Granny Smith hasn't left the house since it happened, she's just been sitting in her rocking-chair staring out the window, it's like she's completely shut down." she said before she looked down at the orchard. "And Big Mac's been working himself day and night, harvesting apples like crazy. I once caught him bucking a tree for a good half-hour." She explained.
"Well…that doesn't seem weird, maybe it just took him a while to get them all down." Twilight said.
Applejack looked at her again with a raised eye-brow. "The tree was empty, Twilight, he bucked it earlier before." She said before she sighed heavily. "The family's not doing so good, we're not complete." She said.
Twilight understood and placed her hoof on her back. "I can tell, Scootaloo and Sweetie Belle aren't going so well either. Since we told them, they've been staying in their clubhouse all day, I'm really worried about them and you guys." She said, trying to comfort her.
Applejack turned to her and gave her a warm smile. "Thanks Twilight." she said before a thought came to mind. "So…how's Matt holding up." she asked.
Twilight was silent for a moment before she answered. "Not well, he's been a bit moody since it happened, he's been training all day, preparing for some sort of fight. He keeps saying how he's gonna hunt this guy down and get Applebloom back." she said before she gave Applejack a concerned look. "I hope he gets her back, but I just down want him to do something he'll later regret." She said, sounding concerned about me.
"Sounds like he's in a dark place, I hope he comes back around soon." Applejack said.
"So do I, Applejack…I'm really worried." Twilight said, looking out to the horizon.
Meanwhile: Library
I was outside beside the library, wearing my Element armour facing a stuffed pony dummy. I stood there with my eyes closed, thinking about the pony who kidnapped Applebloom, I thought about how frightened she must've been, how frightened she still must be.
I then thought about what he might be doing to her, if he was to lay one hoof on her…it was then my blood boiled to the point of bursting, my eyes shot open and I created an sharp energy disc in my hoof. I threw it at the dummy and it sliced through between its head, splitting it open.
I then summoned the disc back and it sliced through the dummy's neck, decapitating it. I caught the disk in my hoof before I smashed it against the ground under my hoof. The dummy's head fell off and rolled towards me.
I panted hard as I imagined it as the head of the pony responsible for all of this. Angered, I smacked it away hard.
Unknown to me, Spike and Jeff were watching a few feet behind me. "Whow." Spike said while he and Jeff stared at me with wide eyes.
Hearing this, I spun around to face them. "How long have you two been there?" I asked.
"Around the time you sliced through that dummy's face." Spike said, looking down at the split-open head of the dummy.
I then sighed before I walked up to them. "I'm a little busy, guys, do you think you can give me a moment?" I asked, trying to stay as calm as possible.
"Sure, Matt…but if you need someone to talk to, you always have us and Twilight." Jeff said, trying to help.
I then turned away. "I don't want to talk to anyone, I just want to find the pony who took Applebloom." I said as I walked over to the headless dummy, I crawled under it and lifted it up on my back. I then proceeded to take it over to a pile of other badly damaged dummies.
Spike looked at Jeff on top of his head before he walked over to me. "We know Matt, but you've been hunting this guy since he broke into Celestia's volt. If you couldn't find him then, how are you gonna find him now?" he asked curiously.
I then threw the dummy on the pile and turned around to face them. "Because now I'm not messing! I'm gonna find this guy, even if it takes me all year! Until Applebloom's back home safely, I'll won't stop hunting him." I said as I stormed past them to get another dummy to mutilate.
Spike and Jeff watched me before Jeff sighed, shaking his head. He then flew off and landed on one of the untouched dummies. "Look Matt, we all feel you, but maybe hunting this guy isn't the right way to do it." he said.
I gave him a firm look. "Then what do you suggest, Jeff? I just give up and leave Applebloom out there with that maniac?" I asked loudly.
Jeff then raised his wings up. "No, that's not what I'm sayin' at all, I'm just saying maybe you should try to find him some other way." he said before he tried to think of something. "Maybe instead of searching for the guy himself, maybe you should try to find someone who'll probably know where he is." He suggested.
I stared at him with unimpressed look. "Really?...That's your idea?...Jeff, I'm having a hard time finding this guy as it is, how am I supposed to find someone who'll know where-…" I then stopped once I realized something. "Wait…you might be on to something there, Jeff…I know exactly who to go to." I said before I started rushing away.
Spike and Jeff watched with concern. "Where are you going?" Spike asked.
I kept running as I looked back at them. "To consult an old friend…If Twilight comes back before me, tell her I've gone out and will be back shortly." I said before I went back to focusing on where I was going.
Spike and Jeff looked at each other. "I smell trouble coming." Spike said with a concerned look.
"Same here, Matt's not been himself since Applebloom went missing. Let's just hope he doesn't do anything extreme to get what he's after." Jeff said before they both watched as I ran off towards the forest.
Later: Moleyair's home
After what Jeff said, I realized I knew someone who could see things we couldn't. Moleyair the Mage, the mole who could see glimpses of the future. He may not know who the Element thief is, but he might be able to see where he'll eventually take Applebloom.
I entered Moleyair's home underground and looked around the main room for him. "Moleyair?" I called as I looked around for him. I looked in his potions room, his bedroom, even in a room which I presumed was the bathroom.
With no luck, I groaned in slight frustration before I walked over another room and pushed the door open, it looked like some sort of library and Moleyair was there, reading an old scroll in front of a table.
"Moleyair! I need your help." I said as I walked up behind him, hoping he'd agree to help.
"I know you do, and I know why you're here…but I'm sorry, I can't help you." Moleyair said, continuing to read his scroll.
I was surprised by his answer. "W-What?" I asked.
"If you've come looking for answers on the whereabouts of this mysterious pony stealing the Elements, then you've come to the wrong person. I don't know where, I never did." Moleyair said as he rolled up the scroll and placed it on open side of the table.
As Moleyair grabbed his staff and walked past me to exit the room, I kept my eyes on him and followed him out. "You must know something…Moleyair, a filly's life is at stake!" I said loudly.
"I know, and I wish I could help, but it's not possible. This pony is connected with very strong dark magic, it blocks my view on almost everything he does." Moleyair said as he turned around to face me.
"But you must've seen something, do you at least know where he's gonna take her?" I asked, desperate for any sort of information.
Moleyair shook his head. "I'm afraid not, Matthew, I'm afraid you're on your own." He said before he placed his claw on my chest. "But be careful, young one, the prophecy of you savagely beating someone to near death has still gone unfulfilled. I fear that if you continue this path of rage an desperation, it might come to pass." He said, warning me.
"To be honest, Moleyair, I don't really care about that. All I care about is finding Applebloom and if I have to do that by myself…fine by me, thanks a bunch." I said roughly before I walked past him to go to the exit.
Moleyair watched as I walked away. "Be warned, Matthew, whatever path you choose from here, I cannot help you this time. I can't appear and save you like I did when you fought with Jersey Devil." He said.
I then stopped in my tracks and thought about what he said. If I was to run into any sort of trouble, Moleyair wouldn't help me, I could actually die…however, I had no intention to dying until I found Applebloom. "Then let's hope all that training pays off." I said, but as I tried to continue towards the exit, another thought came to mind. "Did you know?...Did you know he'd do this?" I asked, not wanting to even look back at him.
Moleyair was silent for a moment before he answered. "I knew something was going to happen, I just didn't know when or where…I'm sorry." He said.
Once I heard that, I stayed silent as I continued to walk out of his home.
Once I was gone, Moleyair clenched his staff with both his claws and sighed heavily, shaking his head.
-A few minutes later-
After leaving Moleyair's home, I was back on the surface in the Ever Free Forest, but I wasn't in the best of moods. I had hoped Moleyair would help, but he was just another dead end like everything else, it was like this pony was a ghost and it was driving me up the bloody wall.
"Dammit." I said under my breath before I become overflowed with anger. "God Dammit!" I yelled before I bucked my hind-legs into a tree next to me.
Doing this caused a loose branch to break and fall onto my head, which really hurt, that's when I finally snapped.
"GRRRRR!" I growled loudly before I picked up the branch that hit me and threw it high across over the trees. I then stormed over to a large rock and tipped it over before I went over to a tree and broke a branch off of it, I then proceeded to whack said branch against the tree I broke it off.
I kept going, letting out all my anger, but I did it so hard that the branch soon broke in half. Seeing this, I threw down the piece in my hoof and started punch the tree. I didn't care that it was hurting my hooves, I was too angry.
But eventually, my anger started to die down and I stopped what I was doing. I then rested my head against the tree as I panted hard, feeling like a total failure. I then turned around before I sat down and rested my back against the same tree. "I'm sorry Applebloom…I've tried everything…" I said before I lowered my head and let a single tear run down my cheek.
I thought about how I failed to stop the pony from stealing another Element, how I wasn't here to prevent it, how I failed Applebloom. But I couldn't give up now, Applebloom was out there and she needed me.
"No!" I said loudly before I wiped the tear away with my hoof and stood up. "I'm not giving up, I will find Applebloom and I'll make the pony who took her regret it." I said strongly before my ears dropped. "But how am I gonna find him?" I asked myself.
I tried to think of something, anything that could help me find him. With all the magical artefacts and creatures in Equestria, there had to be something or someone that could tell me where he was. That's when it hit me, Moleyair just mentioned someone who knows everything that goes on in Equestria. "…Jersey..." I growled.
With that, I had a lead and I knew what I had to do. I'd have to confront Jersey Devil again, but this time, I planned to win and get the answers I wanted from him once before. I then took off into the sky and headed to Jersey's swamp.
Later that day: Jersey's swamp
After flying for what seemed like forever, I finally reached the swamp near the village of Swampville, which was well known to be the home of Jersey Devil. The last time I went up against him, I lost and got beaten up pretty bad…but this time, I wasn't going to let that happen again.
I flew over the dead black trees, looking down at the ground to find Jersey's camp. It didn't take long before I saw smoke rising up from the trees, with that, I had a location and shot off towards it.
Upon arriving, I saw him, Jersey Devil. With his long bony arms swinging back and forth, he roamed his campsite and attended to the fire in the centre of it, it looked like he was cooking a slice of meat.
Jersey picked up a long metal blade and stuck it into the meat, lifting it out of the heat. Once it cooled down, he grabbed it in his hands and licked his teeth. "Sometimes chasin' your food makes it taste better." He said as he walked over to his stone table and sat by it.
Once he did that, Jersey chomped his large teeth into the meat and tore a piece off from the piece in his hands. He chowed savagely and he relished in its taste.
But suddenly, I dropped down from the sky and landed hard onto the table, I gave him a dark glare as he continued to eat. "Jersey…" I said roughly.
"Matthew." Jersey responded before he took another bite out of the meat.
"You don't seem surprised to see me." I said, not taking my eyes off him.
"I knew you were coming." Jersey said with his mouth full of chewed meat before he swallowed. "I could see it, just like how I could see why ya came here." he said as he looked at me with his one eye-ball. "The answer's not, by the way, I'm still not tellin' ya nothing." He said strongly.
I then took a step towards him. "If you could see why I came here, then you know what's happened." I said.
"Yeah, a little filly got kidnapped, boo-hoo." Jersey said, not caring at all and mocking.
I gritted my teeth. "Then you know why you shouldn't push me, Jersey! Now tell me where she it." I demanded. "The pony stealing the Elements took her, I find him, I find her, but I need to know why he is first…and you're gonna tell me." I said, giving him another sharp glare.
"Hmm…let me think." Jersey said as he tapped his chin with his finger. "…Nah, not gonna happen, now flutter back home before I start getting annoyed." He said, waving his hand for me to go.
With that, I was done playing nice. I walked up to him on the table before I used my hoof to smack the meat out of his hands, causing it to hit the dirt. "I'm not going anywhere without answers." I said, ready for any reaction.
Jersey stared down at his ruined food before he looked at me. He didn't have any eye-lids, so I don't know what kind of look he was giving me, but he soon stood up with his hands planted on the table.
Jersey stayed silent for a moment before he suddenly put his hands under the table and tried to tip it over with me on it, this caused me to fall onto my back and the stone table to fall on top of me.
Jersey huffed. "Shouldn't have done that." He said before he turned and walked away.
But as he did, I managed to summon my Elemental armour and used the strength it gave me to lift the large heavy table over my head. As Jersey stopped and turned around, he was shocked to see me flying towards him with the table before I whacked him with it.
The strength I put in to hitting Jersey with such a hard object caused him to fly and crash into the wall of his hood, he feel down onto all fours and cough. As he lifted his head to see what I was doing, he saw the same table being hurled towards him,
Jersey luckily avoided by leaping out of its way. As the stone table smashed against his hut, Jersey looked over to me and saw me standing on my hind-legs with my armour glowing brightly.
I then stuck my arm out to him before I flinched my hoof up twice, motioning him to 'come and get it'.
Seeing this, Jersey spread his large bat-like wings before he shot towards me with one hard flap. As he flew towards me with great speed, I waited until the right moment before I leaped over him and used my Elemental magic to create a green chain attached to my hoof.
I threw it down at Jersey and it wrapped out his neck tightly. Jersey chocked as I pulled back on the chain and threw him over my head, this sent him flying high up into the air.
I flapped my wings hard and shot up to him with both my front hooves stuck out. Upon impact with Jersey, my hooves slammed into his gullet, harming him dearly.
Jersey's wings lapped, keeping him in the air until he was able to recover. Once he was good, he growled at me before he tried to throw a punch. I managed to avoid some of them, but I soon screwed up and got hit in the side, this allowed him to strike me a few more times.
Jersey soon grabbed me by the neck with his claws before he pulled his other hand back and formed a fist, he then threw it forward and punched me in a downward persecutory, making me fall from the sky a little. I managed to regain my flight before I grabbed a piece of the cloud beside me and flew up to Jersey fast.
Once I got close enough, I threw the piece of cloud into his face and blocked his sight. Jersey tried to get it out of his face as quick as possible, but he ran out of time as I created a bat in my hoof and hit him across the head with it, making him stumble to the left.
As the bat disappeared, I quickly created a crowbar in my other hoof and hit Jersey across the other side of his head, making him stumble to the right.
While he was recovering from two furious strikes, I put both hooves over my head and created a large hammer head, I then proceeded to slam it down on top of Jersey's head, making him fall out of the sky and slam into the ground of the swamp.
I then flew back down to the ground just in time to see Jersey get up from out of the mud, he turned to me to reveal a small crack in his skull. Jersey traced his fingers over the crack, feeling it. Jersey then growled loudly. "Right then." He said before he charged towards me on all fours like a cheetah.
I then used my power to create a big green brick wall in front of me, but Jersey jumped over it and landed on top of me hard, pinning me to the ground with his feet. Once he got off, I tried to get up, but Jersey suddenly grabbed me with his large claw.
Jersey kept hold of me as he stormed over to a tree and slammed me into it, he then pull me away before he threw me down into the ground hard.
I was in a daze as Jersey rolled me over onto my back, I saw him clench his figures and show off his sharp claws. While he prepared to impale me with them, I grabbed a rock with my hoof and threw it up into Jersey's face, making him stumble back a little.
While he was recovering, I quickly got up and created a large wrecking ball attacked to my hoof. I threw it over my head before it slammed down into Jersey, I pulled it back before I repeated the act, injuring him more.
As I prepare to do it a third time, I made the wrecking ball grow sharp spikes all over it before I threw it over my head again. But this time, Jersey managed to roll out of the way just before it slammed into the ground. He then quickly grabbed onto the chain the wrecking ball was attacked to and used all his strength to throw me over his head.
Unable to match Jersey's strength, he succeeded, he threw me over his head and I was sent flying into the air. I started flapping my wings to get myself under control, but Jersey suddenly flew into me and grabbed me tightly with his claws.
By the looks of his face, it looked like he was preparing to bite my head off, but I prevented this by throwing the bottom half of my body up and rested one hind-leg on his shoulder while I started kicking him in the face with the other.
I kept slamming my hind-leg hoof into his face hard, the fourth time was especially powerful because it made one of Jersey's teeth snap out of his mouth. I then quickly lowered said hoof under his head before I threw it up hard, kicking upwards right into his jaw.
This made Jersey fall back and freed me, I then used one hard flap to shoot myself right into Jersey's gullet and flew him up higher into the sky.
I came to a sudden stop, but due to the speed I was using, Jersey kept going. I flew fast up above him before I shot down into him, making us plummet down towards the swamp. As we fell, I continuously punched his stomach with my hooves which were glowing green with extra strength.
It wasn't long before we finally crashed into the ground, but I was safe due to using Jersey's body as a shield. However, I was thrown from the crash and skidded along the mud.
After a moment, I slowly got up, my legs shaking weakly. I managed to pull myself together before I looked over to where we crashed, I saw a small crater, but I couldn't see if Jersey was in it. I limped over to it until I could see the bottom, but Jersey wasn't there.
Seeing this made me wonder where he was, I looked around sharply, but I couldn't see him anywhere. To make it worse, we landed in a part of the swamp that was cloaked in fog.
I heard a rustling sound behind me, I turned but I couldn't see anything. I then saw a figure move through the fog from the corner of my eye, I looked but still nothing. I stayed still and silent for a moment, seeing if I could see or hear anything else.
Suddenly, a pair of claws grabbed onto my head from behind me before Jersey threw me up into the air. As I feel back down, Jersey smacked me with his claw and I slammed into the ground. Jersey didn't waste any time in grabbed my head with his claw and picked me up. "You're better that you were last time, kid, but you're goin' down just the same." He said he threw me away towards a tree.
Seeing this, I quickly spread my wings out so I'd slow down. I managed to stop myself from hitting the tree, but I got close enough to place my hind-hooves onto the tree before I jumped back towards Jersey, flapping my wings harder for extra speed.
Jersey didn't have time to react before I slapped into his face, I managed to crawl up his head and get behind it before I created a chain in my hooves. I then wrapped it around his neck and started strangling him, growling in anger, I pulled my hooves towards me to make it tighter.
Jersey, chocking from the chain, tried to throw me off. He shifted his body left and right, threw his head back and forth, and started flapping his wings to take off into the air.
Seeing this, my anger reached to the point where I had enough of the same thing, I had enough of being in the sky and continuing this charade. "Oh hell no!" I said before I dropped down onto one of his wings.
Grabbing it with both my hooves, I straightened his wing before I lifted one of my hind-hooves up over it. It glowed green brightly before I unleashed it's built up strength by slamming it down onto Jersey's wing bone, snapping it and rendering him flightless.
Jersey roared in pain before he fell forward onto all fours, he gasped and panted while he tried to recover from the pain, but I didn't care at this point.
"It's time to talk, Jersey!" I said loudly with anger.
Suddenly, Jersey threw his head back and it smacked into my face, it was stronger than it seemed before it made me fly back into a nearby rock.
Due to the impact, it left me dizzy with a high pitched ringing in my head. I soon recovered and looked forward, but I then saw Jersey charging towards me before he pounced up and pulled his fist back, ready to punch forward.
I quickly moved out of the way just before Jersey threw his fist forward and punched the rock, making it crack. I got back up onto my hooves before I looked to see Jersey coming at me with another fist, I dodged that as well just before he slammed it down into the mud, but doing this caused his fist to get stuck in it.
This gave me an opening, I spun around and bucked him right in his face, making him fall onto his back.
I then got on top of him and started punching his face repeatedly. Punching his solid skull hurt my hooves, but I didn't care, I wanted to break him into spilling his guts. Suddenly, Jersey's large claw shot up and grabbed my body. He pulled me close to his face so he could look at me with his one eyeball. "You seem upset." I joked.
At that moment, Jersey got and threw me down at the ground before he lifted his foot up and tried to stomp on me, but I quickly grabbed his foot and tried to push it away. Jersey pressed down his foot hard, trying to break through my grip.
My hooves began to glow green again before I removed one of my hooves and grabbed his leg, I then pulled on his leg and made him fall over onto his side. But before I could do anything else, he grabbed a rock in his claw and whacked me in the face with it.
I stumbled away as I felt a stinging pain on my mouth, I felt the area that hurt the most before I looked at my hoof, it had blood on it, Jersey had caused my mouth to bleed. Feeling my anger rise again, I created a spiked mace in my hoof before I swung it at Jersey and it smacked him in the jaw, making him fly away before crashing into the ground.
After that, Jersey got back up to reveal his jaw was dangling off one side. He cupped his jaw with his claw before he attached the other side back into place. "Is that all ya got?" he asked with his healed jaw.
I growled before I pointed my hoof at him, creating a large chain-net that shot out towards him. It fell onto him and he struggled to get out of it.
I charged towards him before I leaned into the air and recreated the mace, I prepared to slam it on top of him but was unable to when he reached through the net and grabbed me, making me lose focus and the mace disappeared, along with the net.
Jersey got back up and roared in my face. I knew he was gonna throw me or slam me around somewhere, but I wasn't gonna let it happen again. I created a small blade in my hoof before I stabbed it into his arm.
Doing this made Jersey screeched in pain and dropped me, clenching his wounded arm as blood dripped through his claws. Some of his blood dripped down on my back before I got up and tried to get some distance away from him.
Jersey, putting up with the pain, saw me running before he charged after me.
I looked back and saw this, he was faster than me and was getting closer. I thought of a way to use this to my advantage, as soon as he got close enough, I stopped and curled up in a ball. Doing this all of a sudden, Jersey tripped over my back and fell face first into the ground.
I got back up before I grabbed one of his legs with my front hooves, I then started to rotate my body and swing him around, I went faster and faster before I released Jersey, making him fly away high up in the sky. I didn't waste time in shooting up after in a green and brown blur.
After smacking into Jersey again, I grabbed him by his arm before I started spinning him around again rapidly. After building up enough speed, I released Jersey and he shot back down towards the swamp. I shot down after him, so as soon as he hit the ground, I crash down right on top of him.
Once I recovered from the crash, I grabbed Jersey by one of his antlers before I lifted up his head and started punching him square in the face repeatedly. After a few punches, one of Jersey's eye sockets started cracking.
It was around this time were people would be telling to me to stop, but I didn't hear that little voice inside me, I was so damn angry and desperate for answers and I was gonna get them no matter what.
Jersey soon had enough and shot his arm out at me, his sharp claws scratched the side of my body and I fell back in pain, I pressed my hoof against the wound as blood started coming out of it.
Jersey got back up, stumbling a little due to the beating he just got, and walked over to a tree, he grabbed a large branch on it and snapped it off with one pull. Jersey then got back over to my and raised it over his head, ready to whack me with it.
Seeing this, I quickly rolled out of the way just before he whacked it down against the ground. Jersey turned his attention to me before he tried to do it again, but I kept dodging his attacks.
After Jersey slammed the branch down a sixth time, I placed my front hooves on top of it, pinning it down. I then threw my body over it and kicked Jersey across his face, making him stumble back.
Fuelled with anger, I created a chain lasso before I threw the loop over his head and yanked on the chain. Doing this made Jersey slam down head-first into the ground, I quickly got on top of his head before I grabbed one of his antlers with my hooves.
Jersey got back up and tried to throw me off, he threw his head back and tossed it around like a wild bull. I gripped his antler tightly before I did what I intended to do, I snapped his antler right off his head. Jersey roared in pain before he threw his claw up and grabbed me, he gripped me tightly before he threw me away.
As I crashed back into the mud, Jersey held his claw against the spot where his antler used to be. Jersey looked over to me and stormed over. "I'm gonna make you regret that, you little runt." He said, sounding very pissed.
I then looked down at the antler in my hoof, the tip looked kind of sharp, maybe that would prove useful.
As Jersey threw another punch down to me, I quickly got out of the way and grabbed his arm with my free hoof. I then shot the antler up to him and stabbed him right in the side of his gullet. As Jersey roared in pain, I grabbed the antler with both hooves as they glow green with strength.
Keeping hold of the antler launched in his body, I lifted Jersey up over my head. This made the antler go deeper into his body as blood dripped down onto me, I shook my head as some of it landed on my face.
Jersey wiggled to try and get loose, his roars turned into screeches of agony. After a moment, I threw Jersey down and he landed hard onto the mud. With the antler still stuck in him, Jersey weakly picked himself up and tried to pull it out.
But I didn't give him a chance, I shot towards him through the air and punched him in the face, the strength I put into the punch made him fly back into a tree. Jersey groaned as I landed in front of him and grabbed him by his leg.
I had lost every inch of my conscience, the little voices that were yelling at me to stop went unheard, I was too determined to get answers from Jersey, I was gonna break him one way or the other.
I began dragging him towards a large rock before my hoof started glowing green again, I then pulled Jersey hard over my head and made him land, jaw first, onto the rock, making more of his teeth break off.
But I wasn't done, I looked around before I noticed we were near a cliff. I kept hold of Jersey's leg as I started walking over to it, dragging him along. Jersey had a small bit of consciousness left and tried to stop me, he drug his claws into the dirt and they scrapped along the ground as I kept going.
When I finally reached the cliff, I noticed there was a strong tree growing out from the edge, I looked back down at Jersey before I decided to get what I came for.
I released Jersey before I made a noose with a long rope attached to it, I left one end of the rope with the weak Devil before I flew up to a straight branch on the tree. With the noose still in hand, I flew over and under the branch before went back to Jersey.
The then put the noose around his neck before I grabbed the other end of the rope with my front hooves, I then proceeded to pull hard on the rope. Doing this made the rope straighten up and pulled Jersey up onto his feet. I kept pulling and it made the noose pull Jersey towards the edge.
Jersey looked back, seeing himself getting closer towards the edge. He started struggling, gripping the noose to try and get it off, but the magic powering it was too powerful for his mere claws to break. "Stop!...Stop! I give up!" he yelled, choking against the noose.
I then stopped pulling, but kept a tight grip on the rope. "Then spill it! Who is the pony stealing the Elements?" I asked loudly.
"I don't know, I truly don't! He manages to avoid my sight somehow, he's connected to very dark magic. I only see him when he's got his cloak on." Jersey said, trying to walk away from the edge.
But I pulled on the rope and the noose pulled Jersey back into place. "Alright then, where is he? Where has he taken Applebloom?!" I asked.
"Again, I don't know, I saw him take her somewhere and then he just vanished. Wherever he's taken her, it's somewhere neither I nor Moleyair can see." Jersey answered, looking back at the edge in fright.
Slightly angered by the lack of info, I pulled on the rope a bit and Jersey was nearly pulled off the edge. "You're breaking my balls here, Jersey! Give me something useful, dammit!" I ordered as I gripped the rope tightly.
Jersey felt the noose pull back a little against his neck and he panicked. "Ok! Ok! I do know something…Two days from now, the pony is gonna take Applebloom to the castle of the two sisters in the Ever Free Forest." He said loudly.
I thought about this for a moment. Why would the pony kidnap Applebloom and then take her somewhere so close? It didn't make sense. "Why?" I asked.
"They're gonna have a picnic!" Jersey yelled sarcastically. "How the hay am I supposed to know? He just is!" he finished.
I then sighed hard before I released the rope and Jersey fell forward onto the ground. "It'll do." I growled as the rope and noose disappeared. "You better not be lying to me, otherwise I'll be back." I said darkly before I turned and started walking away with a small limp.
As Jersey slowly got up, he watched me go before he growled silently. He then grabbed the antler in his wound before he yanked it out, holding back a painful cry. Once he felt better, Jersey threw it towards me like a throwing knife.
Knowing this, I quickly shifted my head out the way before the antler flew past my head, I then stuck my hoof out and grabbed it in an energy beam before I spun around and threw it back at Jersey.
Jersey didn't have time to react as the antler stabbed into his shoulder, making him cry out in pain as he fell back to the ground.
Leaving Jersey wounded and groaning, my Element disappeared before I turned and continued to walk away. I then took off into the sky and started making my way back to Ponyville to prepare myself for what was gonna come.
That night: Ponyville library
While I was gone, Twilight must've noticed I was gone and got the other together to try and find me. Now Applejack Rarity, Fluttershy, Rainbow Dash and Pinkie were at the Library.
Twilight stood in front of Spike and Jeff, looking down at them with concern. "Ok, so he didn't tell either of you were he was really going?" she asked.
Spike shook his head. "No, he said nothing, he just said he was going out." He stated.
Jeff then stepped forward. "But he looked like he had an idea about somethin'. We said if he wanted to find the guy stealin' the Elements, he should try and find someone who would know where he went." He explained.
Rarity looked at them in confusion. "But that's impossible, the only way he could do that is if he could find someone who knows everything that goes on beyond Ponyville." she said.
"Well he clearly knows someone who does, otherwise he wouldn't have suddenly run off like he was on to something." Spike said, walking over to her.
Twilight tapped her chin with her hoof, trying to think of anyone who has that kind of knowledge and it didn't take long for her to figure it out. "Wait…Moleyair, he's gone to consult Moleyair." She said before she looked at the others with a panicky look. "We have to get over there right now." she said loudly.
Rainbow Dash flew over to her and hovered in front of her. "What's the rush? It's not like Matt's gonna hurt him, he'd never do that." She said.
"No, but in his current state, he might do something rash to get the answers he's looking for." Twilight said before she turned and started making her way towards the front door.
"I hope he's ok." Fluttershy said in concern as she began to follow her.
But before they could reach it, the front door opened to reveal me on the other side. It was dark out, so they couldn't see the state I was in, they could only see me breathing heavily.
They all stared at me before Twilight took a closer look. "Matt? Is that you?..." she said before she smiled. "It is! Oh Matt, where have you been? I've been so worried…about…" she said before she started to see me more, making her smile slowly vanish. "…Dear Celestia…" she whispered as I stepped into the light.
As I did, I revealed myself to them, I was scratched and bruised with a black eye and splattered with blood. I breathed heavily, trying to catch my breath from the fight and long flight I just had.
Everyone stared at me with wide eyes, Fluttershy soon fainted at the sight of me and Spike rushed to tend to her. I stood there, letting them see me in this horrid state, until Twilight walked over to me. "Matt…a-are you ok?...You look terrible." She said as she placed her hoof on my cheek.
"I'm fine, Twilight…I just had a bit of a spat with the Jersey Devil, that's all." I said, being honest with her.
"The Jersey Devil?" Applejack said as she walked over to us. "We thought you were going to see Moleyair." She said, trying not to look at the blood on my coat.
I turned to look at her. "I did, but he was no help, I had to get answers somewhere else…Jersey was the only option." He said before I took a step closer to her. "He told me where Applebloom was gonna be…the castle of the two sisters, the hooded pony's gonna take her there two days from now…and I promise you, I'll get her back safely." I said.
Rainbow Dash slowly flew over to me. "But…why are you so battered like that? You covered in…you know.." she said, too disgusted to say the word.
I looked up to her. "Let's just say Jersey wasn't so willing to talk at first…" I said before my injured leg gave way and I started to fall. "Oh!...I'm going down." I said in pain before I fell to the floor hard.
Twilight, very concerned, placed her hoof on me to try and tend to me. "Matt!...You're really hurt, you need to rest." She said, sounding worried.
I then pushed myself back up before I looked at her. "I'm alright…I'm alright…I need to have a wash, get myself cleaned up…I'll be back in a moment." I said before I started limping to the bathroom to have a shower.
Everyone watched me until I was gone, they all then went over to Twilight. "Do you want us to stay here for a while?" Rarity asked with concern.
Twilight shook her head. "No, it's ok…any problems Matt and I have, we work it out together." She said before she looked over to the hallway I went down. "I'm just worried about him, he's been a little…distant lately." She said.
Pinkie Pie hopped over and stopped in front of Twilight. "It'll be alright, Twilight, you and Matt or the best couple ever, you'll sort it out eventually, then he'll be back to his old cheerful self." She said, patting her hoof against Twilight's head.
Once she stopped, Twilight smiled at her. "I hope so, Pinkie, I really do." she said.
"We'll leave you both to it then." Rarity said before she walked past Twilight to leave the Library, followed by Pinkie and Rainbow Dash who was dragging the still unconscious Fluttershy out by her tail.
Twilight then looked at Applejack and gave her a curious look. "Are you not going with them?" she asked.
Applejack then shook her head. "No, Twilight, I need to talk to Matt as much as you do." she said strongly.
Not wanting to argue with her, Twilight nodded and they both waited until I was out so they could talk to me.
A few minutes later, I came out of the bathroom completely clean of blood, but still covered in scratchers and bruises. I went back into the front room and saw Twilight and Applejack sitting on the floor in front of me. "Matt, we need to talk." Twilight said firmly.
I sighed heavily, thinking I knew what it was about. "I know, I was kicked off the case and I had no right to go off without telling at least Shining Armor about it, but I had a lead…I didn't have time to write a letter." I said, walking up to them.
"Not about that, Matt, about the state you were in a few minutes ago. Why did come home looking the way you did, you were beaten and covered in blood." Twilight said, giving me a strong look.
After hearing this, I stayed quiet for a moment before I answered. "I told you…I went to go see Jersey Devil, things got a little out of control, but I handled it…now we know where Applebloom's gonna be." I said before I made my way towards the kitchen. "I need a drink of water, my head's killing me." I said.
But before I could enter the kitchen, Twilight used her magic to close the door in front of me. "You can have a drink once you tell us what you did to Jersey." Applejack said firmly.
I then turned around to face them. "What do you mean? He's still alive, if that's what you're asking." I said strongly as I went over to her.
"We didn't say that, Matt, we just want to know what happened." Twilight said, trying to help me calm down.
I looked at her before I exhaled hard. "I wanted answers from him, but he wouldn't talk, so I decided to loosen his tongue a bit. It got out of control, I was beating on him, he was beating on me…but eventually he slipped up and got him in a position where he started talking. That's when he told me where the pony was gonna take Applebloom." I explained.
After hearing this, Twilight and Applejack looked at each other, shocked by this news. "So…you assaulted him?" Twilight asked, looking slightly frightened.
Seeing this, my ears dropped and I tried to be a little calmer. "No…I mean, not really, he attacked me first. It got out of hand and I thought I might as well steer into the skid while I was there." I said before I looked at Applejack. "Applejack, he was holding information on your sister's whereabouts…what would you have done?" I asked.
Applejack looked at the floor before she answered. "I'd travel all over the world to find her…but I wouldn't go pickin' fights I might lose, Matt." she said before she walked up to me and placed her hoof on my shoulder. "I know you mean well, Matt, and I know you're desperate to get her back…but you need to keep calm and have a clear head." she said with a gentle voice.
"She's right." Twilight said as she took a step closer. "True, you won this time, but what if next time you get beaten up again…what if you die? I need you, Matt…we need you." she said as she placed her hoof on her slightly bloated stomach.
I looked at her before I looked at her stomach that carried my child, I didn't want to admit it, but Twi was right. Rushing off into a monster's nest like that was stupid and reckless, I could've died and I'd never see my baby. I looked down at the floor with self-disappointment. "I failed her…I failed Applebloom…the idea to bring the Elements here was partly mine, if I hadn't have done that…maybe Applebloom wouldn't have been…" I said as I started to tear up.
Twilight came over to me and nuzzled her head against my neck, trying to comfort me.
Applejack came up beside me. "I know how you feel Matt, believe me, I'm her big sister and I wasn't able to protect her, and I was even there when it happened. I don't know whether to blame the pony who took her or myself." she said as her ears lowered.
Hearing this made what I said sound meaningless, Applejack's was going through a much worse time than I was. "I'm sorry Applejack." I said before we shared a warm hug, which Twilight soon joined.
When we separated, Applejack looked me in the eyes I gave her a serious look. "I promise you, Applejack…we will find her…and now we know where she'll be." I said.
Applejack was silent for a moment before she gave me a single nod. "Bring her back safe, ok?" she said.
I nodded before I turned to look at Twilight. "Twi…I need to do this, I need to get her back and stop this pony before he does any more damage." I said calmly.
Twilight nodded. "I know…it's just…I worry about you when you do dangerous stuff like this." She said with concern.
I smirked before I cupped her chin with my hoof. "Hey, we do dangerous stuff like this all the time, it's basically another normal day for us." I said, trying to get at least a smile out of her.
Which I did, Twilight gave me a small smile, but when she looked over to my wounds, it disappeared. "I'm just worried you'll get hurt or worse." She said.
I then wrapped my arms around her and held her close. "I'll be alright…it's me, remember?" I said as I stroked her mane with my hoof.
After a moment, we separated before Twilight gave me another concerned look. "But we have to tell Shining Armor about this." She said.
"What? Why?! What's he got to do with this?" I asked with a raised eye-brow.
"He's in charge of the investigation now, remember? You got kicked off. If the pony is gonna be at the Castle of the Two Sisters, he needs to know so he can be there to catch him." Twilight explained.
"We don't need Shining Armor or anyone else, that pony entered our town again and not only took off with yet another Element, but with a little filly. That's when this became personal, I'm not gonna risk time or Applebloom's life just to obey Celestia's order." I said firmly before I sighed heavily and walked over to the window.
Twilight and Applejack looked at each other again before they returned their attention to me. "What are you saying, Matt?" Applejack asked curiously.
I then turned around to them so I could answer. "I'm saying we're taking this into our own hooves, we're gonna take this pony down ourselves. He's powerful, but he's not invisible, he can be beaten just like everyone else." I said strongly.
Applejack and Twilight's jaws fell open when they heard this. "Matt, you can't do that. You're already on thin ice with Celestia, don't make things worse for yourself." Twilight said as she walked up to me.
"I'm sorry Twilight, but I need to do this myself. I need to make things right with Celestia and make up for my mistakes, and the only way I do that is if I catch this guy myself and get Applebloom back.
"Matt! This is crazy!" Twilight said before she turned to face Applejack. "Applejack, tell Matt this is crazy!" she said to her.
Applejack thought about it for a moment before she answered. "Actually, I kinda see Matt's point." She said with a small frown.
"Come again?!" Twilight asked loudly with a raised eye-brow.
"Matt's right, this is personal. For lame-sake, Twilight, he kidnapped my little sister! I wanna see this guy brought down good and hard, not by the book." Applejack said before she raised her eye-brow. "Besides, won't this fella expect the guards to come lookin' for him? He'll never see it comin' if it was just Matt." she stated.
Twilight thought about it for a moment before she sighed. "…Fine…" she said before she turned her head to face me. "But, at least take someone to help you. You can't take him on your own." She said.
"Well who would you suggest? We can't tell Shining Armor, and we can't ask Star Beam or any of his team mates, for all we know it still could be one of them." I said, trying to help her rule out curtain ponies.
"Don't worry, I'll think of someone. Someone who we can trust, who can keep a secret…I'm sure there's someone we know who's good with those things." Twilight said, trying hard to think of someone who'd be perfect.
With that, I looked at both of them with a serious look. "Then it's settled, we're taking this case into our own hooves…in two days from now, we're gonna get Applebloom back and catch the pony responsible for all of this…then, finally, it'll end." I said.
Twilight and Applejack were silent for a moment before they nodded in agreement, sealing this decision. It was going against Celestia's word, but we couldn't risk any screw ups.
This was going to end, one way or another.
Meanwhile: Mount Forbiddon
The leader Alicorn sat on his large throne, looking down at the green pool which he used to watch over whatever he wanted, in this case, me. He had overheard out conversation and chuckled darkly. "You just keep making this easier, young boy." He said.
At that moment, he thought about the hooded pony stealing the Elements and how he had made curtain mistakes in the past. "Hmm…my apprentice is strong, but after what I just witnessed with Jersey Devil, you have a strong chance of defeating him." she said before he grinned evilly. "Unless I give him a little nudge." He said.
At that moment, he got up from his throne and the pool sealed itself, hiding it away. The leader made his way out of the throne room before he entered a wooden elevator in the rock wall.
He then looked up at a small pony-like figure in the shadows. "Take me down." he said calmly.
With that, the pony grabbed a lever with it's hooves before pulling it, this made the rope holding the elevator loosen and it lowered the leader down the mountain gently.
As he went lower and lower, the temperature around him got warmer and his ears picked up the sound of pounding metal and gears grinding, followed by whip sounds. The air got hotter and the sounds got lowered as he went lower, until he finally reached the bottom.
The leader stepped off the elevator and went towards a pair of large doors, which each had a large symbol of a red alicorn on it. He used his magic to open the doors and welcomed by the sight of a room full of statues.
There were statues of ponies, dragons, donkeys and even a chimera, each were in a frightened or attacking pose. The leader walked across the room to the next pair of doors, along the way, he took interest in one of the statues.
It was a male pony dressed like a mobster, he was in a frightened pose and the stone looked fresh. "Hmm…that's a new one." The leader said before he continued on his way.
Once he reached the doors, he opened them with his magic and beheld the sight in front of him.
It was a giant forgery, smelters the size of towers, gears the size of houses, and enough ponies to fill an entire village. Each pony was a slave, pulling on ropes to turn the heavy gears, forging armour and weapons to aid a large army, and shovelling coal the feed the thermoses. In the shadows, more pony-like figures continuously whipped them to make sure they kept working.
The leader simply walked across the forgery, getting a few frightened looks from the weak pony slaves along the way. He kept walking until he reached the other side of the room, where Rage sat on his own throne, watching his work in progress. "Brother…I thought I said I'd like you to let me know if you were coming down here, the place is a mess." Rage joked.
"And I thought I told you that this was my mountain, so I can go wherever I please without having to tell anyone if I don't wish to." The leader said as he took a step closer to Rage.
Rage then got up off his throne and walked up to him. "Well, now that you're here, would you mind telling me the meaning of your…sudden…visit." Rage asked, giving him a small glare.
The leader ignored it and turned to face his forgery. "Matthew is planning to attack my apprentice when he takes the filly to Celestia and Luna's old castle." He said.
"How did he know he was taking her there?" Rage asked curiously, slightly shocked by this news.
"He persuaded our old friend, Jersey Devil, to tell him." The leaders answered without looking back at him.
Rage growled after hearing this. "Why do we keep that worthless creature alive anyway?" he asked.
"Because he's useful, he lets us know if there's anything we can't see." The leader said before he looked back at Rage. "At least, for now anyway. Once he's outlived his usefulness, you do whatever you want with him, kill him, add him to that collection of yours, I don't care." he said.
Rage chuckled darkly. "He would look rather smashing as stone. If only I could've added Discord before he got away, he would've been my crown jewel of my collection." He said, picture it in his mind.
"We'll deal with him soon enough, brother." The leader said before he returned his attention to the forgery. "Anyway, back to what I was saying, I fear my apprentice may not be able to deal with Matthew, he's become more one with his Element." He said, sounding troubled.
"So you want me to make him something?" Rage asked with a raised eye-brow.
"Indeed, something that can give his abilities an extra boost and unlock new ones." The leader said before he used his magic to levitate an unfinished amulet towards him. "Make it something…easy to wear…and don't be afraid to add you own person touch." He said before he put it back where it was.
Rage grinned at this opportunity. "My dear brother, what craft of mine doesn't have my personal touch?" he said before he tapped his hoof with his chin. "And I think I know just the thing." he said darkly.
"I hope so, it needs to be ready in two days." the leader said before he looked back at Rage with a sharp glare. "Do no fail me." he said before he started walking away to leave the forgery.
With that, Rage went off to force some slaves to start making this weapon for the leader's apprentice.
So while our plan was in motion, so was theirs, the only question was…which one would prevail?
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
Before anything else, I want to say something. If any of you have a PS4 and can play online with people, then you can probably play with me on some of my games. My PlayStation user name is Frontdoor6, just like it is on here and my avatar pic is Spyro the Dragon.
The following games are the only ones I can play online. Star Wars Battlefront, Mortal Kombat X, Injustice: Gods among us and Evolve.
Anyway, the latest FIM S6 episode was great, best one yet, Starlight and Trixie are so good together, that episode was the dream!
Pony news
3 more episodes have been announced.
The plot for Applejack's Day Off has been revealed: Twilight and Spike work at Sweet Apple Archers while Rarity takes Applejack to relax at the spa
The next one is called Flutter Brutter: Fluttershy convinces her brother to move out of her parents' house and live with her.
And the latest one is called Spice up your life: Pinkie and Rarity discover a struggling family resonant.
I know, Fluttershy has a brother. Mind-blowing, right?
End of Pony News
Please remember to review or PM
The next chapter will be up as soon as possible.
64. Snake in the Grass
Hello again, everypony, and welcome to another chapter.
I'm very pleased with how the next chapter went, I'm glad everyone liked it and was shocked by the fight scene, that kind of reaction was what I was aiming for.
Anyway, not much to say other than enjoy the chapter, because this is where it begins, the arc that will lead to the awaited showdown between me and Zelga. And how do we start such an arc, you ask? By finally revealing the identity of the pony stealing the Elements…yeah, that's happening now.
I changed the lyrics in the song I used in this chapter to match with the story.
I don't know whether or not this chapter will be long or not, we'll just have to see what I have to tell. So sit back, relax and enjoy the chapter.
Chapter 64: Snake in the Grass
Six days ago, a mysterious pony who had been stealing the Elements of Harmony one by one had returned to our town to claim another one, Applejack's Element. He got what he wanted, but not without taking a bonus prize.
Not only did he steal another Element, he kidnapped Applebloom. What kind of sick twisted pony kidnaps an innocent little filly? Answer, the worse kind. After that day, I made it my top goal to find this pony, get Applebloom back and make him pay for what he did.
Four days later, I was desperate to find out where this pony was, so I decided to get some answers from a reliable source, the Jersey Devil. He wasn't willing at first, but I wasn't in a good place to be messed with, so I had to loosen his tongue. The fight was brutal, but eventually, I overpowered him and he sang. He told me the pony was gonna take Applebloom to the Castle of the two Sisters, however, he didn't know why.
That's all I could get from Jersey, so I had to make do with that. Now it was two days later and the pony was gonna take Applebloom there tonight.
Ponyville Library
I was outside the Library, doing push up to build myself up for anything that could happen. This guy took Applebloom for a reason, I doubt he'd give her up without a fight. I didn't care how hard it was or how much my body still ached from the recent battle with Jersey, I wasn't gonna let a little pain stop me from getting Applebloom back.
Twilight watched through one of the windows, she watched as I pushed myself more and more. At times, she was nearly pushed the point of coming out to me because she thought I hurt myself, but that feeling would go away once she saw me keep going.
Spike walked over to her, placing his hand on her side. "It's alright, Twilight…Matt's tough, he'll be fine when he goes to get Applebloom back." he said with a small smile, trying to make her feel better.
Twilight turned her head to face him. "I appreciate what you're trying to do, Spike, but that's not what I'm worried about." she said before she returned her attention to me out the window. "You saw the sate he was in when he fought Jersey, what if he does something worse this time? What he gets out of control and something goes wrong? He could get himself or Applebloom hurt if he's not careful." She said with concern.
"Don't think like that, Twilight, Matt's not some kind of monster." Spike said, trying to build her confidence a bit more.
Twilight was silent for a moment before she looked down at Spike again. "I love Matt, Spike…I love him with all my heart, but since Applebloom went missing…it's like he's a completely different pony, he's always so angry and only thinks about finding the one who took her." She said as she looked down at the floor with slight sadness.
"Well…it's probably normal, Twilight…I mean, how would you feel if some brute pony kidnapped your foal?" Spike said as he pointed at Twilight's pregnant belly.
Twilight looked under herself to see her belly before she placed her hoof on it. "…I suppose you have a point." She said before she looked at Spike again. "But can you at least talk to him? I need to make a letter to someone." she said before she walked away towards the next room.
"Who?" Spike asked curiously.
Twilight kept going as she looked back at Spike. "An old friend of ours." She answered before she disappeared into the other room.
After that, Spike looked out the window and saw how hard I was training. He sighed heavily before he walked away to head towards the front door. Once outside, Spike went around the Library until he reached me, I had now switched from doing arm push-ups to wing push-ups.
I grunted and groaned as I lifted my body up and down with my wings, Spike walked up to me slowly. "Umm…Matt?..." he asked.
"Yeah?" I asked as I continued to do push ups.
"Twilight's a little worried about you, do you think you can stop for a moment and talk to her?" Spike asked.
I continued to do my push-ups as I turned my head to look at him. "I can't stop now, Spike, I need to get myself prepared for when I go to get Applebloom back. Just tell Twilight not to worry, I'm fine, really." I said before I stopped doing push-ups and went over to a punching bag.
But Spike didn't leave, instead, he followed me to try and talk to me again. "That's not really what she's worried about, she's scared that you're gonna get hurt if you don't stop for a second and think." He said, trying to put some sense into me.
I sat down before I started punching the bag with my front hooves. "There's nothing to think about, I'm going there and I'm getting her back, I promise Applejack…" I said as my punches got harder. "He took her because I wasn't here to stop him, if I had only stayed in Ponyville when it happened! I might've been able to….Ahh!" I yelled before I gave the bag one hard punch.
Spike took a step back, a little frightened by my sudden temper I saw this before I tried to calm down. "Spike…I'm sorry…really I'm so sorry…but I need to do this, Applebloom trusted me and she got kidnapped…I need to make up for that." I said, trying to make him feel better.
I didn't like getting so angry, but when I'm in a state like this, I need my space. The thought of that pony kidnapping Applebloom the way he did, it just boiled me so badly, can any of you blame me?
Spike thought about it for a moment before he responded. "I suppose I understand, just try and be careful, Twilight's really scared for your safety." He said before he turned and walked away to go back inside.
Left alone, I grabbed the punching-bag with my hooves make it stop moving. Once it did, I released it so I could punch it again, but I couldn't bring myself to do it for some reason. What Spike said about Twilight made me feel bad, I didn't want to scare her so much, I loved her more than life itself…but this pony stealing the Elements and abducting fillies was too much to forget about…why does everything have to be so complicated.
"Dammit!" I yelled as I gave the bag one hard punch and stormed away from it.
I then sat down hard on the grass, trying to do what Spike said and think about this. I didn't know if it was gonna be dangerous, I didn't even know if I could handle it if it was. True, I was tough and won some brutal fights, but the last time I thought that way was before my first fight with Jersey, we all saw how that turned out.
I was on the edge of giving up and deciding to wait until the pony struck again before I could catch him, but another thought soon overpowered that one.
Maybe I was rushing right into a trap, maybe Jersey was lying and he wasn't gonna be there at all. But one thing was certain, I sure as hell wasn't gonna find out by giving up. I then got up and marched over to the punching-bag before I started beating on it.
I wasn't giving up! A dead end lead or not, I was going to the castle tonight, only then will I find out for sure if the pony and Applebloom were gonna be there or not.
Meanwhile: Canterlot
Princess Celestia sat in her throne room alone, in her magic she held Grimerd's journal. After being tempted, she finally started to read some of the pages of it. Most of what she read was pretty harmless, sometimes flattering when she read paragraphs written about her. But despite this, she could never forget the beast the lurked behind these words.
"Words of an Alicorn – page 54
My dearest Celestia, I never thought anyone would show me such kindness like you have, I see now that you are my everything, my sun, my moon, my stars, my oxygen. We have been together years and I cannot imagine my life without you.
I do believe I'm falling in love with you, I think nothing but you, I see nothing but you. it won't be long now, my love, sooner we'll be together for the rest of our-….."
Celestia stopped reading when the paragraph ended with a long ink streak trailing off the paper, like whoever wrote it fell over and dragged the quill across the page. She turned to the next page, but it was blank, as was the rest of the pages ater it. That's when she realised that these were the last words Grimerd wrote in this journal.
Celestia sighed, going back to the pages that actually had written words. But suddenly, the pages started turning by themselves, they went faster and faster until they were like a blur. Within the flipping pages, a pair of large red eyes shot out in front of Celestia with a loud screeching cry.
Startled, Celestia yelped before she threw the journal down to the floor below her throne and the journal closed with a slam. Breathing deeply, Celestia was trying to understand what just happened. Was it some sort of defence spell to scare unwanted readers?...Or was it something else?
Celestia then heard the doors swing open before two guard come rushing in. "Your highness, is everything alright? We heard you yell." One of them said.
Celestia took a breath before she spoke. "I'm alright." She said before she looked down at the journal. "Take that journal to the artefacts lock-up, I don't want anyone getting their hooves on it again." she ordered.
"Of course." One of the guards said before he leaned down and grabbed the journal with his mouth, they then turned away and proceeded to leave the throne room with the journal.
As the guards walked through the doorway out of the room, Discord walked past them to enter and saw the troubled look on Celestia's face. "Celestia? Are you alright?" he asked in concern.
Celestia looked over to him before she got up off her throne. "Yes, I'm fine, Discord…I was just reading a scary book." She said, troubled by the memory of what she just saw.
In a bright flash, Discord appeared beside her. "Must've been some book if it could scary you." he said before he snapped his fingers and in another flash, Discord was wearing a red dressing-gown and had grown large enough to have Celestia sit on her knee. "Would you like me to read you a nicer one?" he asked while holding a book.
Celestia shook her head. "No, I just want some space, please." She said calmly, but firmly.
With a frown, Discord snapped his fingers again before he shrank back down to his normal size and Celestia was back on her hooves. "As you wish." He said before his ears dropped. "Listen…I need to tell you something…I know I'm not usually the touchy feely type, but I just need to tell you so you don't find out some other way." he said, thinking of the many ways this could go wrong.
Celestia gave him an interested look before she took a step closer to him. "Yes?" she asked, wondering what he had to say.
Discord took a breath before he spoke. "Alright, do you remember when I told you that I had lost most of my power and I wasn't the Spirit of Chaos anymore?" he asked.
Celestia nodded. "Yes, but that was many months ago, why do you want to bring it back up?" she asked curiously.
Discord hesitated to tell her the truth, if she found out he had been lying to her and everyone else for so long, she would probably never forgive him and more, she might even have him turned back to stone. But Discord had to tell her, something was telling him it had to be done. "Because…this is gonna be hard to tell you, but-"
Discord was then interrupted by the doors opening. They both looked over to them to see Blaze Horn enter the room. "Princess? You asked me to report on Shining Armor's progress in the case?" he asked with a small smile.
Celestia was silent for a moment before she nodded. "Indeed, I'll be with you in a moment, Blaze Horn." She said before she looked at Discord. "Can we continue this later, Discord?" she asked.
Discord's ears dropped again before he nodded. "Sure…anytime you're ready to continue, just let me know." He said before he hovered towards the doors and left the room with his head hanging.
Once he was gone, Blaze Horn walked up to Celestia. "Well…if you're ready to begin?" he said.
Celestia gave him a single nod. "Very well, proceed with the report." She said before she turned and walked over to one of the stained windows.
"Well, due to the lack of leads, suspects and witnesses, we haven't been able to make any progress on finding the one who's been stealing the Elements." Blaze Horn confirmed.
Celestia sighed and responded. "I don't understand this at all, it's like this pony is a ghost. He appears, and then disappears, leaving no tracks, no hoof-prints, nothing. At this point, it seems impossible that we're going to find him." she said, starting to lose confidence.
Blaze Horn took a step closer. "Don't worry, Princess, we'll find him and bring the Elements back, it's our top priority." He said strongly.
Suddenly, a poof of smoke shooting through the window and stopped behind Celestia, Blaze Horn noticed it and watched as it turned into a scroll before it fell to the floor. Blaze's horn glowed and he managed to catch it with his magic before it could hit the floor, he brought it over to himself before he read the little piece of writing at the side.
I said a name, obviously the name was who the letter was addressed to, but it wasn't Celestia.
Blaze was surprised by this, but as Celestia was starting to turn around, Blaze quickly hid it behind his back to keep her from seeing it.
"Are you sure you've checked everything?" Celestia asked curiously with a raised eye-brow.
Blaze nodded. "Yeah, but now that you've mentioned it, I'll double check the things we have so far, I'll report if I find anything." he said before he turned and made his way towards the exit, being sure to hide the letter from her.
Once he left the throne room and closed the doors behind him with his magic, he pulled the scroll out and unravelled it to read it. As he read through it, a charming smirk appeared on his face. "I'll be right there." he said before he rolled the scroll back up and started walking down the halls of the castle.
That night: Ponyville Library
I spent hours preparing for the task ahead, I hadn't eaten, I hadn't slept, I only trained and trained until I knew I was ready.
Spike and I stood right outside the Library while I waited for my supposed backup partner. Twilight insisted that I shouldn't do this alone, so she called someone who we could trust to help me take down this mysterious pony.
It wasn't long before Applejack came over to the Library and decided to wait with me. Twilight was busy having a bubble bath, trying to at least feel more relaxed while this was happening. We sat in front of the library together, talking about what I planned to do and how I was gonna do it, it seemed like the only thing we could talk about at the time.
"So you're gonna go to the castle, sneak up on this pony, jump 'im, catch 'im and then bring Applebloom back safely?" Applejack asked, going through the plan I had.
I nodded. "That's what I'm gonna do, I need to take this guy out first if I have any chance of getting Applebloom out without any trouble." I said, explaining it to her.
"I dunno Matt, sounds like a long shot. Don't you think you should get Applebloom out safely before you jump him? I mean, what if you screw up and he gets away with Applebloom?" Spike asked curiously.
I thought about it for a moment before I sighed. "You've got a point, I'll need to get Applebloom out first before anything else." I said before I thought of something. "Maybe my partner can get Applebloom out while I distract the pony, at least then he'll be too busy focusing on me to stop him." I said, thinking that was a better idea than my last.
Applejack rubbed her chin with her hoof. "That could work, I suppose." She said, sounding a bit more pleased it.
I smiled a little at this. "Maybe this partner thing will be more helpful than I thought." I said quietly before I started looking around for any sign of anyone. "That is, of course, this partner of mine decides to actually show up." I said as I stood up onto my hooves.
Applejack watched as I started pacing. "It's ok Matt, he or she will be her soon, I'm sure of it." she said with a small confident smile.
I stopped pacing and turned to look at her. "Well they're taking they're sweet time." I said before I started pacing again. "We don't have time to mess around like this, the pony is probably at the castle right now and we'll miss our possibly only chance to catch him." I said as I started to panic, stressing about time.
"Sounds like you'll need someone who knows how to do things fast." A familiar voice said near us, the three of us looked in the direction it came from to see Blaze Horn walking up towards us.
I was surprised to see it was Blaze who was going to be my backup partner. "Blaze Horn…haven't see you in the while." I said as I walked up to him and shook his hoof.
Blaze smiled as he shook it back. "Feelings mutual, Mr Matthew. I got your wife's letter and I came as soon as I could, she mentioned that this was a secret mission, so I had to go while it was dark, didn't want to rouse suspicion." He explained.
I gave him a single nod. "Smart." I said before I gave him a serious look. "So I take it you know the situation?" I asked.
Blaze nodded. "Yep, the pony stealing the Elements is gonna be a the Castle of the Two Sisters and will have the small filly he kidnapped with him, good thing a guard like myself knows every inch of that castle, it should be easy to get the drop on him." he said.
"Good, but remember, our top priority is to get Applebloom back and then deal with this pony." I said strongly.
Blaze raised his hoof. "Don't worry, we'll make sure she out of harm's way and make the psycho pay for his crimes, I'll make sure of that." He said firmly.
"Good to hear." I said before I turned around to face Applejack. "We're going to head off now, when Twilight comes out of the bath, can you tell her that we've already left?...and…tell her I love her and will try to be back soon." I asked.
Applejack nodded. "Sure…just be careful, Matt…and bring Applebloom back safely, please." She said with concern in her eyes.
I nodded before I looked down at Spike. "I'll be back soon, little bro." I said before I rubbed his head with my hoof for a moment, I then stopped and placed it back down on the floor.
Spike smiled up at me. "I know you will, you're the toughest guy I know. If anyone can handle this, it's you." he said with a confident tone.
I smiled back at him. "Thanks Spike." I said before I turned away to face Blaze. "Alright, let's go, we don't have much time." I said with a firm voice.
With a nod, Blaze and I set off galloping down the road to head for the Ever Free Forest. Applejack and Spike watched as we kept going until we were out of sight.
A moment later, Twilight came rushing out with a towel wrapped over her head. "Matt?" she called as she looked around for me, but was disappointed to see I wasn't there. She then noticed Applejack and Spike and went over to them "Did Matt's back-up arrive already?" she asked curiously.
Applejack and Spike looked at her and nodded. "Yeah, they've already left for the castle." She said before she saw the troubled look on Twilight's face. "But if it makes ya feel better, he says he loves ya and will try to be back soon." She said with a small smile, trying to help her feel better.
Twilight was silent for a moment before she managed to form a smile. "I suppose that makes me feel a little better, I just wish I had waited until after they left to have my bubble bath." She said as her smile turned into a small frown.
Feeling bad for her, Applejack walked up to her and placed her hoof on her shoulder. "You wanna go to the spa and take some stress off ya? It's a twenty-four hour service, remember?" she asked with another small smile.
Twilight looked at her with a slightly unsure look. "I…suppose it could help a little." She said.
Spike walked up to them and patted Twilight's chest with his hand. "That's the spirit, Twilight, we'll get you a nice hooficure, sometime in the hot-tub, maybe even a good massage." He said as they started to walk away from the Library to go to the spa.
Along the way, Twilight tried to keep her mind on what she'd do to keep herself from worrying, but the troubling thought of what might happen on my mission stayed with her.
A few minutes later: Ever Free Forest
After entering the forest, Blaze and I walked down the dark path, watching out for any of the creatures lurking and watching us through the shadows. At time to time, we'd hear twigs snap and bushes rustle, putting us both on edge until we got over it. So with our guard never going down, we continued on the path to the castle.
"So…you've been in this forest before, huh?" Blaze asked as he caught up and was now walking beside me.
I didn't look at him as I nodded. "Yeah, a few times, never stayed long enough to find out what other creatures live out here though." I said, looking out through the trees to see if I could see any wildlife.
Blaze then heard a bush rustle and looked in the direction the noise came from. "What do you think lives out here?" Blaze asked, sounding a little worried by what could be out there.
"As far as I know, there's at least a Manticore somewhere, plus a Cockatrice. Other than those, I'm not sure what's out here." I said as we kept moving.
As we kept moving down the path, we noticed the ground getting…stickier…our hooves were peeling off the floor lightly. We eventually got curious about this and looked down to see something shocking.
The path was completely cover with thin webs, like a pack of spiders followed it while dragging their webbing behind them. Blaze and I looked at each other before we kept going, being careful as to what might be up ahead.
As we kept going, the webs under our hooves got thicker and stickier, we'd start pulling up some of the webbing every time we lifted our hooves up, they soon becoming so sticky that it made it hard to walk. "Jesus…the spiders have been busy." I said out loud as we kept trying to move.
Eventually, we reached a point in the road that was blocked by a giant spider webs between two large trees, we the many dead flies and moths stuck to its sticky surface. "The spider that made this must be massive." Blaze said as he stared up at the web with awe.
"That's doesn't make me feel better, Blaze." I said as I stared up at it as well.
As I looked away, I noticed a few small spiders with blue stars on their packs, I had never seen spiders like this before. They were crawling in a line like in the second Harry Potter, going somewhere. My gaze followed where they were heading and it led to a tree, they were crawling up it to the very told.
I slowly looked up to the top of the tree and saw it covered in a giant webby nest, it was both impressive and disgusting, which those thoughts went away once I noticed something in the nest move.
I continued to watch as one of the web layers slowly slit apart by a large pair of pointy legs, Once far enough apart, I saw a slight that sent a chill down my spine, the face of a giant spider. It looked down at me with its eight eyes as it's pincers spread open and let out a light hiss.
"…Shit…" I said under my breath before I tried to get Blaze's attention by tapping him with my hoof, keeping my eyes on the giant arachnid.
But at that moment, the Spider Queen came out of the nest more and leaped towards us. Surprised, I quickly turned to Blaze and tackled him out of the way just before the Spider Queen landed.
After we feel to the ground, Blaze lifted his head up and saw the Spider Queen. "What in Equestria is that?!" he asked loudly.
I got back up and kept my eyes on the Spider Queen. "You're asking me?" I asked as Blaze got up beside me.
The Spider Queen took a few steps towards us before it let out a loud screech, mixed with a hiss.
"Well whatever it is, it looks like it's not gonna let us pass easily." Blaze said as he prepared himself to fight.
"Then we're just gonna have to push through it." I said before, in a flash of the light, my Element armour appeared on my body.
The Spider Queen lowered itself down before it leaped towards us, Blaze and I leaped apart before it landed between us.
It then turned to Blaze and hissed, turning its back to me. But when I prepared to attack it from behind, a shot of large webbing shot out from its behind and struck me. The strength it used to shoot out the web was so strong that it made me fly back into a tree, causing me to get stuck there by the webbing.
I struggled to get free while the Spider Queen started to approach Blaze slowly, snapping its pincers at Blaze as it got closer to him. But before it could attack, Blaze used his magic to create a metal collar around its neck attacked to a long chain. While holding the other end of the chain with his magic, Blaze leaped forward and rolled under the Spider Queen until he was behind it.
Blaze then pulled hard on the chain and it pulled the Queen's head under its body until it was forced to flip forward onto its back.
The chain and collar disappeared as the Spider Queen struggled to get back up onto its legs. While it was busy with that, Blaze rushed over to me and tried to get me out of the webbing. "How did you do that?" I asked after watching his performance.
Blaze continued to pull on the webbing as he smirked. "The academy where all the trainees get sent to isn't all fun and games, Mr Matthew, they can turn a normal pony into a real fighter." He said.
I waited for him to get me free, but he ran out of time when I saw the Spider Queen roll back onto its legs and crawl quickly towards us. "Blaze! Watch out!" I yelled, trying to get his attention.
Blaze spun around to see the Spider Queen right behind him, one of its front-legs was lifted up high before it shot it towards Blaze. Blaze ducked down and I shifted my head to the right as its leg shot right into the tree I was stuck to, stabbing through the bark. "Hey! Watch it!" I yelled at the Spider.
The Spider Queen then pulled its leg out of the tree before it noticed Blaze standing a few feet away from it, his horn glowing brightly with power. As the Spider Queen went over to him, I used my Element power to create a small blade hovering in front of me, I then proceeded to start cutting myself free from the webbing.
As the Spider Queen got close to him, Blaze's horn glowed brightly before I roar of flames shot out of the tip like a flamethrower.
The Spider Queen took a few steps away from the fire, once it stopped, it stuck its head and opened its mouth, suddenly spitting out some sort of dark green liquid.
Blaze moved away as the liquid shot past him and landed on a rock, there was a loud sizzling noise and the rock started melting under the liquid. "Digestive acid…that cannot be healthy." Blaze joked before he returned his attention to the Spider Queen.
I soon managed to get myself free from the webbing and I fell down onto my hooves, I then looked over to the Spider Queen and Blaze before I rushed over there to help. As the Spider Queen tried to charge towards Blaze, I flew on top of the Spider Queen and tried to cover its eyes with my hooves.
The Spider Queen screeched as it tried to throw me off, its front legs swung up over its head to try and whack me off, but I managed to avoid them.
Blaze saw this as a chance to attack, he looked around to see if there was anything he could use, that's when he saw a vine next to a tree. He grabbed it with his magic before he started running around the Spider Queen, wrapping the vine around its legs.
Blaze then stopped before he pulled hard on the vine, tightening the vine around the Spider Queen's legs, making it fall over onto its side.
I fell down with it, but I got up quick and ran around to join up with Blaze. "This thing doesn't like fire very much." He said, keeping his eyes on the Queen.
"Then let's use that." I said before I used my Elemental powers to summon my Horned Helmet.
As the Spider Queen started getting its legs loose from the vine, Blaze and I pointed our horns at it and a blast of flames shot out at the Queen. The Spider Queen screeched and hissed as it got loose and backed away from the flames.
Blaze and I started moving towards the Queen, still shooting fire at it. This made the Spider Queen back way more, hissing and prancing as it moved backwards towards the trees. We kept it up until the Spider Queen had its fill and took off into the forest, disappearing into the forest.
Blaze and I then stopped using the fire spell and looked at each other. "Well…that could've been easier." Blaze said, taking a breath to settle himself down.
"I can imagine, you basally fought that thing by yourself for most of the time." I said with a small smirk.
Blaze chuckled. "Yeah…just try and not get yourself stuck next time, 'kay?" He said as he walked past me and patted my shoulder with his hoof.
Rubbing the shoulder he patted, I watched as Blaze walked up to the giant web and used his fire spell one last time to burn through it, creating a path for us. Blaze turned his head around to look back at me. "Let's keep moving, shall we?" he said before he started walking down the path.
Without a second thought, I caught up to Blaze and walked with him down the path, continuing our journey to the Castle, hopefully without any more surprises.
A few minutes later: Castle of the Two Sisters
After a not-so-long walk, Blaze and I finally reached the Castle of the Two Sisters. It didn't look at all different from before, it was ratty, falling apart on itself and looked like the most haunted place in Equestria.
Blaze and I stared at it with awe before we made our way over to the rickety bridge. "This is where the Princesses used to live?" Blaze asked as we stopped in front of the bridge.
I nodded without taking my eyes away from the Castle. "Yeah…I think it was abandoned after Luna became Nightmare Moon, I suppose Celestia couldn't cope with the painful memories." I said, thinking of how much things like that must hurt.
Blaze turned his head to look at me. "It was such a shame, Princess Luna seems like such a kind pony. I can't imagine her being someone like Nightmare Moon." he asked before we started making our way across the bridge.
"Same here, but it's all water under the bridge now, she's not Nightmare Moon anymore. I don't hold anything against her and neither should anyone else." I said firmly.
Blaze was silent for a moment. "…If you say so." he said as he kept walking across the bridge.
As we did, I looked down from the bridge and saw the empty canyon, I wondered if there was ever any water running down there back in the day. Just then, I noticed a strange cave and could've sworn I saw a strange glow shine from within it. I watched the cave entrance closely and saw the glow again. "What the hay?..." I asked myself, wondering what it was.
"Matthew!" Blaze called, snapping me out of what I was doing. I looked over to see Blaze had already made it across. "You coming or what?" He asked.
I then returned my attention back down to the cave and saw the glow was gone, if it was ever really there. "…Y-Yeah…I'm going." I said before I continued to walk across the bridge, keeping my eyes on the cave for a moment before I looked away.
Once I got across with Blaze, we both looked over to the large doors to the castle and knew something dark was behind it. "Right…here we are…" Blaze said.
"Yeah…to think, the one causing us so much trouble is right behind those doors." I said before I turned my head to face Blaze. "You good to go?" I asked.
Blaze looked at me and nodded. "Let's do this." He said with a brave tone.
With that, Blaze and I started sneaking up to the doors before we each stood behind both, we placed our hooves on the doors before we slowly pushed them open, being sure not to make any sound.
Blaze and I peeked through the small opening and saw the lobby was mostly empty, but we soon noticed Applebloom up the stairs, hovering above the throne alter, she was in a dark purple bubbled and looked to be in some sort of sleep.
The sight of this nearly made me burst in and take her back right now, but that feeling stopped when I saw a hooded pony walk across the lobby and look up at Applebloom.
Blaze and I then looked at each other. "Ok, he's there. Do you remember the plan?" I asked.
Blaze nodded. "Yeah, you distract him and I'll get Applebloom to safety." He said before he looked back into the lobby and searched for an opening. "One of the windows behind her is broken, I can probably sneak through it." he said before he returned his attention to me. "Once I have her, I'll teleport us both out here, then I'll help you take him down." he said, sussing out a plan.
I thought for a moment before I nodded. "Sounds good to me." I said before I returned my attention to inside the castle, I kept my eyes on the hooded pony as I prepared to enter. "Ok…let's go!" I said in a slightly loud whisper before I opened the door more and snuck inside.
All the while, Blaze started searching for a way around the castle to the broken window.
I sneaked across the lobby, hiding behind some fallen pieces of stone along the way. The hooded pony didn't turn around, he just stayed at the bottom of the stairs looking up at the sleeping filly.
While he was facing the other way, I walked out to the middle of the lobby before I started sneaking up behind the mysterious pony. Sneaking then turned to rushing, rushing turned to galloping and now I was going straight at him.
As the pony began to turn around, I pounced towards him and tackled the pony, making us fall down the stairs. We stumbled down them onto the floor and I was on top of his back, I slammed my arm down above his neck and pinned his head down. "Don't you damn move!" I yelled with aggression.
The pony struggled for a moment before he stopped, knowing he wasn't going anywhere.
Knowing I had him pinned, I grabbed his hood with my hoof. "Suppose we don't need this anymore." I said before I yanked it down hard. I was then shocked to see who it was behind the hood. "…Zelga?" I said in shock and confusion.
Yes, it was Zelga, looking the same way she did the last time I saw her. She looked up at me with a sinister smirk on her face. "Hello Matthew, it's been a while." she said.
Stunned by this, I got off her and took a few steps back as I watched her get up off the floor. "It was you this whole time?" I asked, still in slight shock.
Zelga grinned deviously. "Surprised?" she asked.
At that moment, my feeling of shock turned into that of slight anger and hatred. "I shouldn't be…I should've seen it, the Elements start going missing and then you show up in town! I bet that whole thing with Big Mac was all played just so you could know where Applejack's Element was." I said as we both circled each other.
"Well look who's quite the detective. If you and your friends hadn't called me out to the whole town, I probably would've learned the location of the others…but that's my fault, I should've waited until then before I tried to sabotage your relationship with Twilight." She stated, while keeping her smirk.
Upon hearing that, a thought back to that terrible day, how everyone turned against me, even Twilight. "Why did you do that anyway? What was the motive?" I asked curiously.
"Because Twilight is your strength, your reason to fight. Without her in your life, you'd just give up and become easy to deal with. But I underestimated you and the rest of those ponies, you found me out and turned the whole town against me, forcing me to run and make everything else so much harder." Zelga explained.
"But why are you trying to steal the Elements? So we'll be defenceless?" I asked.
Zelga shrugged. "That's only a bonus, there's another reason why I take them, but that would be telling." She said with a mysterious grin.
I then looked up to the alter and saw that Applebloom was still there. "C'mon Blaze." I said under my breath before I returned my attention to Zelga. "Ok, forget the Elements, why did you take Applebloom? What's she got to do with this?" I asked with a glare in my eyes.
"All will be revealed in good time, Matthew, but as of right now…I recommend you surrender, you're clearly outnumbered two-to-one." Zelga said with a devious smile.
I raised my eye-brow. "Two-to-one?" I asked in confusion.
"Two-to-one." A dark voice said behind me before I felt something hard whack me at the back of my head, making me fall down onto the floor with a loud ringing in my ears.
As I tried to get back up, black chains suddenly burst up from out of the floor and tangling around my body. They wrapped around my limbs, my body, even my neck. Now I was chained up to the floor, unable to move.
I soon recovered from the sudden attack and tried to look behind me to see who hit me.
"Huh…thought you'd be quicker than that." The voice said before the pony started to walk around in front of me. Once I saw who it was, I was completely and utterly shocked to the point of being petrified.
It was Blaze Horn, he was looking down at me with a dark smirk and satisfaction in his eyes, like he finally achieved a long running goal.
"Blaze Horn?" I said in shock and confusion.
Blaze's horn glowed and He suddenly grabbed one of my ears with his magic, he pulled up on it hard and made my face move up right in front of his. "Surprise 'Mr Matthew'!" He said before he released my ear and chuckled.
At first, I was shocked and my heart was shaken, I was just betrayed by a pony I've known for ages. All my shock was replaced by anger before I gave him a sharp glare. "You…torturous little!" I growled before I tried to leap up at him.
However, the chains around my body held me down while a few more burst out the floor and wrapped around me, making sure I'd stay down from now on.
Blaze smirked at this. "Nice try, but those chains aren't easy to break…I should know, I made them." he said before he turned and walked over to Zelga.
I watched as Zelga removed the black cloak she was wearing and gave it to Blaze. "Here you go, sweetie, I made sure not to get it dirty." She said with a small smile while glaring at me.
"Thank you…mother." Blaze said before he used his magic to put the cloak on.
"Mother?!" I said in surprise before I looked at Zelga. "Blaze is your son? Aren't you a little young to have a kid?" I asked.
Zelga smirked as she rubbed Blaze's chin with her hoof. "He's adopted, but I'm the only family he's ever known." She said before she stopped and placed her hoof back down on the floor. "Well, me and my brother, but he's…gone now." she said as her smirk went away.
I raised my eye-brow. "So…what happened to him?" I asked curiously.
Suddenly, Blaze's jaw dropped before he stormed over to me with red hot anger in his eyes. "What happened to him? You killed him! That's what happened!" he said as his horn glowed violently in my face, making me freeze in place due to the fear of what he might do.
But before he could do anything, Zelga walked over to us. "Blaze! Calm down! We're not gonna hurt him…yet." She said, putting a lot of force in that last word.
But I didn't focus on that, my mind was only on what Blaze said. "What do you mean 'I killed him'? I never killed anyone!" I said loudly.
Zelga looked down at me with a raised eye-brow. "Really?...Think back, Matthew, think back to before this whole thing started. Who did you face all those months ago? Who did you have to kill in order to stop him?" she asked, looking me right in the eye.
I thought for a moment, but I couldn't think of killing anyone who they might be related to, I've only caused the death of only person and that person was…. "…Wait…you mean…Thorn? Thorn was your brother?" I asked, remembering my fight with Thorn and how much of a monster he was. "But…he can't have been…you look nothing-"
"Like him?" Zelga said, finishing my sentence before she grinned evilly. "Appearances can be deceiving, Matthew." She said as she took some steps backwards with Blaze moving out the way to give her some room.
At that moment, a horn appeared on Zelga's head through a small bolt o purple flames. It started glowing violently before she was engulfed by a larger bolt of purple flames.
I watched as I saw her inside the flames, she was growing bigger and her body was changing, like she was evolving. He wings grew bigger, her legs got longer and she started looking the same size as Celestia. When the flames disappeared, I saw Zelga in her true form.
She had the same appearance as Nightmare Moon, but her coat was black and she had dark purple flames for a mane and tail. She had glowing red eyes and large feathered wings. She had the same neck piece and hoof shoes as Nightmare Moon, but they were light purple. And lastly, her Cutie Mark was a dark purple flame with a black tiara in the middle.
"What's the matter, Matthew? Having a bit of Déjà vu?" Zelga asked, her voice now sounding like that of a 22 year old.
I breathed deeply, staring up at the dark Alicorn in front of me. But I realized something, she looked just like the figure in the nightmares I used to have. "It was you, wasn't it? You were the one putting all those nightmares in my head." I said.
Zelga nodded. "Guilty! I was trying to scare you to the point of weakness, but that wasn't working, so I decided to infiltrate your little town and ruin your life. The perfect way to get someone on their knees is to use their fears against them, it's my specialty…what else do you expect from the Alicorn of Fear?" she said as she walked back over to me.
I gave her a sharp glare. "And now you have me right where you want me…is this the point where you kill me and try to take over Equestria?" I asked, sounding like I wouldn't be surprised I they did.
Zelga and Blaze then laughed a little, as if I said a bad joke. "Oh Matthew, that's a bit of a predicable plan, don't you think?" she said as she rubbed my chin with her hoof.
"That's not really what we're aiming for, Matt." Blaze said as he walked over to us.
Zelga removed her hoof and placed it back on the floor. "Thorn may have tried to rule Equestria, but not us…our motive isn't as original as Thorn's, this is just good old fashioned revenge!" she said before she lowered her head down to my face. "You killed my brother! And I'm going to make you regret the day you stood in his way."
"Thorn was a sick FUCK! And I'm sure as hell you're no different!" I spat at Zelga in a loud tone.
But doing this got me a punch in the face from Blaze. "Better watch your tone, Matt!" He said with a small glare.
I turned my head to look at Blaze before I gave him a stronger glare. "…Looks like the apple doesn't fall far from the adoptive tree!" I scolded.
Blaze bared his teeth in anger. "You just don't learn, do you?" he growled as he prepared to punch me again.
But Zelga put her hoof out in front of Blaze and stopped him. "Don't worry, Blaze, he'll be getting more pain than that soon enough." She said as she looked down at me with her eyes glowing red brightly, making me a little frightened.
Meanwhile: Ponyvile Spa
While Applejack was getting a back rub, Spike and Twilight were relaxing in the hot tub. "Mmmm…this is nice." Twilight said, relaxing with her eyes closed.
"I know, right? It can take ya mind of almost anything." Applejack said as she felt the masseuse's hooves rub her back, making it feel a lot better.
Twilight then opened her eyes and looked over to her. "And things were forgotten until then, thanks a lot." She said sarcastically before she looked over to Spike relaxing beside her. "Do you think Matt's alright?" she asked in concern.
Spike opened his eyes and looked at her. "Don't worry, Twilight, Matt's a tough pony and he was ready for anything, I'm sure he's just fine." He said before he went back to relaxing.
"But what if something goes wrong?" Twilight asked, sounding like she was going to panic.
"Twilight, Matt's been in situations like this before, I'm sure he can handle a single pony." Spike said, sounding confident.
Twilight thought about it for a moment before she responded. "I suppose you have a point…Matt is tougher than he used to be…" she said before she started to feel more confident. "Yeah…there's nothing to worry about, Matt can handle it just like he handled everything else." She said before she laid back to relax in the bubbling water.
"Besides, with Blaze Horn by his side, he'll kick that pony's flank." Spike said before he closed his eyes again.
At that moment, Twilight's eyes shot open before she looked at Spike. "Blaze Horn?" she asked.
Spike didn't open his eyes as he responded. "Urr…yeah…he arrived before they left, said he was Matt's backup." He claimed.
Twilight leaned up and looked down at him with a raised eye-brow. "Umm…I didn't ask for Blaze in my letter, I asked for Star Beam." She said.
Spike opened his eyes before he looked at her. "Star Beam?" he asked.
Twilight nodded. "Yeah…when I sent the letter, I made it addressed to Star Beam. Celestia would've received it, but she respects everypony's privacy, she would've given it to Star Beam right away." She said before she grew a concerned look. "Why did Blaze Horn come instead of Star Beam?" she asked, getting a shrug from Spike.
"Because that's the opportunity Blaze Horn wanted." A familiar voice said, Twilight and Spike looked over to where it came from to see Moleyair walking over to them.
"Moleyair? What are you doing here?...And what do you mean?" Twilight asked as she watched Moleyair stop in front of the hot-tub.
Moleyair put his claw up. "There's not much time to explain, we must hurry. At this moment, Matthew is in serious danger!" he said.
Twilight's eyes widened. "What?! Why? What's happening?" she asked in panic.
Moleyair gripped his staff before he gave Twilight a troubled look. "Twilight…I want you to stay calm and listen…this part's going to be hard to hear." He said, getting Twilight's full attention as he explained what was happening.
Meanwhile: Castle of the Two Sisters
"But I don't understand…How can Blaze be the pony stealing the Elements? I chased him, I followed him up the tower of Canterlot and saw him fly away! Blaze is a Unicorn, he doesn't have wings!" I said, still in my chain trap while watching Blaze and Zelga look down at me.
Zelga smirked before she looked over to Blaze. "Care to explain to him?" she asked.
"I would be happy to, mother." Blaze said before he took a few steps closer to me. "You see, Matthew…being the son of a powerful Alicorn helps you learn some tricks, such as a mind-control spell. I've been cleverly using this spell to throw you off my tracks for months. That night, I used Doyle to stage a get-away." He explained.
I thought about whom he meant and I remembered Doyle was one of the two twin Pegasi of the Star Beam's team. "You used another pony to hide yourself?" I asked.
"Yep…and not only him, I've used many different ponies in the past. For instance, you remember Dusk, don't you?" Blaze asked with a smug face.
I thought back and did indeed remember Dusk, he was one of Luna's new guards, he was actually a suspect once. "You used him as well?" I asked.
"Dusk was one of my most influential puppets, I used him for many of my tasks, such as breaking into the vault and stealing the first Element, I even had him leave curtain clues behind to throw you off my trail." Blaze explained before he lowered his head down to come face-to-face with me. "Don't you remember how ponies like Dusk suffered with bad headaches? Well that's just a side-effect from the spell." He said.
Part of me couldn't believe this, the pieces were finally coming together, but I didn't think they'd reveal themselves like this. But there were still a few more questions that needed answering. "But you were there, you were protecting the vault when it was broken into, you were put in the hospital." I said.
"Well I had to make it look real, didn't I? I couldn't have come out of there without a scratch, that would've raised suspicion." Blaze explained more.
"And how do you explain the robberies in Ponyville? Who did you use for those?" I asked, remembering how Rarity and Applejack's Element were stolen.
"No one, it was all me during those times. My Mother told me where the Element of Honesty was and I was sent to retrieve it, shame she couldn't find the others…but we'll get them soon enough." Blaze said as he cupped my chin with his hoof.
I roughly moved my head away to get his hoof off me. "Then why did you kidnap Applebloom, she has nothing to do with this!" I said, almost afraid to know the answer.
"She took my hood off and saw who I was, I couldn't keep her there, she would've given me away." Blaze explained before he smirked again. "Besides, she makes good bait." He said before snickering.
I glared at him. "Well you have me, now let her go!" I ordered as I tried to get up, but the chains held me down.
"Not so fast, Matty." Zelga said as she came over to me. "We almost forgot to tell you the rest of our master plan." She said before she lowered her head down to my face. "Killing you isn't in our plan…right now anyway…first we're gonna make you suffer. We're gonna leave you half-dead and weak, just so you see me spread my fear throughout Ponyville and watch as everypony you care about tare themselves apart. Once that's done and you're dead, nothing will stop us from taking Canterlot and my Blaze Horn will finally earn his true place as Prince until he's ready to become a king." She said as she looked over to Blaze, who was grinning at the idea.
I forced myself to stand up, even though the tight chains held me down. "I won't…let you do this…I will be there to stop you, both of you…just like how I stopped Thorn." I said in a growl.
Zelga chuckled. "Oh sweetie…how are you gonna stop me if you're not in the right state of mind." She said before, suddenly, her horn glowed brightly.
My eyes widened as a lightening beam shot out of her horn and struck me. I closed my eyes tightly as I felt my eyes sting, when I opened them, I was horrified to see the castle crack and crumble around me while Zelga turned into a monstrous creature, her fangs showed and venom dripped from them. "What's wrong Matthew? Scared?" she said with a growl in her voice.
I tried to back away, but the chains kept me where I was. I breathed rapidly as I saw the floor around me start to fall through a gaping hole under the castle. It stopped around me, but I was scared that the rest would fall if I moved. I looked back up to Zelga and Blaze to see they were just walking on air.
"I believe you're familiar with the Fear Hex, a power and dangerous spell that can make a pony see their worst fears and more. It can be quite deadly, if I'm not mistaken." Zelga said as she spread her wings, which had now become bat wings.
I then felt the chains release me and I stood up, I looked up to see the castle's roof had crumbled away, so I took off up towards the sky. But when I was about to escape, a bunch of stones came together and I crashed into them, making me fall back down to the floor. I grunted before I slowly picked myself back up.
I then watched as giant syringes slowly formed around me, with their large sharp needles pointing directly at me. They slowly moved towards me before they stopped around my body, making me stay perfectly still so I wouldn't touch them.
I become terrified, so terrified that I was actually starting to become light headed due to panicking so much. "It isn't real…it isn't real!" I kept telling myself as I began to sweat.
While I was stuck there, surrounded by needles, I saw 6 colourful orbs start to appear before me, hovering in the air. They then started to take shape into the heads of the Mane 6, all looking down at me with hatred in their eyes.
"Equestria was better off without you! You've brought this carnage onto us!" Rainbow Dash yelled.
"My sister trusted you! She believed in you! And your failed her!" Applejack yelled.
"I'm the type who loved everyone, but I HATE YOU!" Pinkie Pie yelled.
"You've poisoned me with your foal and it'll grow up to be a failure just like you!" Twilight yelled.
Tears started to run down my cheeks as I covered my ears with my hooves. "It's not real! You're not real!" I yelled, trying to block them out.
"You disgust me, Matthew! You're a shame to us all!" Rarity yelled.
"You scare me, Matthew! I'm scared to leave my own hut because of you! Monster!" Fluttershy yelled.
"GET OUT MY HEAD!" I yelled at the top of my voice before I fell to the floor and kept covering my ears.
The 6 heads started rotating around me as they kept yelling the same thing over and over again. "It's all your fault! It's all your fault!" they yelled, getting louder as I felt myself begin to pass out from being so scared.
In reality, Zelga and Blaze watched while I was curled up on the floor, covering my ears and quivering while talking to myself. "Get out of my head! You're not real!" I said to myself as tears dripped from my face to the floor.
Blaze marvelled at the sight of this. "Look how pathetic he is. The brave Matthew, reduced to a cowardly little sack of nothing." He said as she came over to me. "I should just put you out of your misery…but that would be a mercy." He said.
Zelga looked down at me, proud of her work, but it didn't last as she heard voices outside the castle, it sounded like a group. "Come Blaze, we must go before we're spotted." She said as she backed away.
Blaze turned his head around to face her. "But what about Matt and the filly?" he asked.
"Look at him, he's not gonna be a threat to us for a while." Zelga said before she looked back at Applebloom. "As for the filly, we might as well give Matthew what he wants, she no longer use to us anyway." She said as she used her magic to release Applebloom from the bubble and bring her over to them.
Zelga then proceeded to plant Applebloom beside me, right in front of my face. Zelga walked up to me and lowered her head down to my face. "Until next time." She said before she planted a small kiss on my cheek, making me flinch.
Zelga then walked over to Blaze before her horn glowed, a giant bolt of purple fire engulfed them and once the flames died down, they were both gone.
I then slowly opened my eyes to see Applebloom in front of me, but due to the Hex, all I could see was her skeleton and raggedy bow. Seeing this made a chill go down my spine and made my heart break even more. "Applebloom…I'm sorry…I'm so sorry Applebloom." I said before I covered my eyes and started to gently cry in failure.
While in the reality around me, the castle's double doors opened and the Mane 6 came in, they all had worried looks on their faces. "Matt?!" Twilight called as she looked around until she saw me, lying on my side in a half-destroyed state. "Matt!" she yelled before she galloped over to me with the others rushing behind.
Once she reached me, Twilight lowered herself and placed her hoof on my arm. "Matt? Are you ok?" she asked before she pulled on my body to roll me onto my back.
I then opened my eyes and saw a velvet serpent above me, slowly opening its mouth as it hissed, more serpents in different colours started to gather up behind it. I started to panic again as I tried to get away, but before I could, I saw a glimpse of reality. The serpents suddenly turned into the Mane 6 before they went back to being serpents. "T-Tw-Twi?..." I said, frightened as hell in case I was wrong.
In reality, Twilight started stroking my head with her hoof. "What happened to you?" she said before she looked over to Fluttershy. "Fluttershy, can you help me calm him down?" she asked.
"I'll try." Fluttershy said before she came over to us and started to nurse me.
While they were doing that, Applejack soon noticed Applebloom beside me. "Applebloom!" she said loudly before she rushed around to her. Once she reached her, Applejack picked her up in her arms and exhaled. "She's alright, but she needs to get to a hospital!" she said as she looked over to the rest of us.
"So dose Matt." Twilight said before she turned her head around to the others. "I don't know what's happened to him or why he's so scared, but we need to get him out of here." she said before she looked up to the Rainbow Dash, who was hovering in the air above them. "Rainbow, can you carry him?" she asked.
Rainbow Dash nodded. "On it!" she said before she landed beside me and picked me up onto her back. "He's getting cold." She stated.
"I know, I'm really worried about him." Twilight said as she looked at me in concern.
Rarity then came up beside her and placed her hoof on Twilight's shoulder. "It'll be alright Twilight, he'll make it." She said, trying to encourage her.
Twilight looked at Rarity. "I hope so Rarity, I really do." she said before he looked back up to Rainbow Dash. "Lets get out of this place." She said.
With that, Applejack placed Applebloom on her back and they all rushed out of the Castle and back into the forest to get back to Ponyville, all hoping that both I and Applebloom will recover from this.
Meanwhile: Mount Forbidden/Zelga's chamber
In another bolt of purple flames, Zelga and Blaze appeared in the middle of the room. Zelga exhaled before she looked down at Blaze. "I'd say today went very well, didn't it my son?" she said as she walked over to her make-up desk and looked at herself in her smashed mirror.
"Indeed Mother, and soon we will take what is ours. You and Uncle Rage will rule alongside my master and I will become Prince. Then, when the time is right, I will be made king of my own land." Blaze said with a dark grin.
Zelga removed her armour and placed them on the desk. "Yes you will, and you'll be a strong king, I know it." she said before she turned around to face him. "But know that Matthew and that filly know who you are, you can't return to Canterlot, you'll have to stay here until we're ready to strike." She said.
Blaze nodded. "Yes Mother, I'd rather be here than there." he said with a growl in his voice.
Zelga walked past him and went over to a door. "That's my boy, now come, you must be tired." She said as she used her magic to open the door to Blaze's room.
Zelga and Blaze then went into the room where there was only a single bed, Blaze mustn't have been much of a decorative pony. Blaze climbed into his bed and Zelga smiled down at him. "Soon, we will return to power and Equestria will be under a better rule." she said.
"I know…our achievement will finally be gained…and it'll all start when we go to Ponyville." Blaze said as he relaxed on his bed.
Zelga then turned and made her way towards the exit. "Sleep well, my son." She said before she left the room and closed the door behind her with her magic.
Once she did that, Zelga walked over to a wall and used her magic to pull down on one of the lanterns like a lever. Doing this made a secret door open in the wall with stairs leading down lower into the mountain, Zelga then proceeded to walk down the stairs.
Deep below Zelga's chamber was a large area of caves and tunnels, mostly populated by vampire bats. Two large ones flew through the caves and landed on the wall, gripping onto it with their wing claws, which were actually small blades.
One of them was a light brown colour and the other was a dark grey, they both watched as another secret door opened and Zelga walked in.
Both bats then flew down to her and landed in front of her. "Mistress." They both said as they bowed to her.
Zelga smiled down at them. "Dag, Clara, good to see you're both still up." she said before she began to make her way down on of the tunnels.
Dag and Clara flew up to her and landed on her back. "Of course we are, Mistress, we are bats after all. Besides, we're always available to serve you." Clare said.
Zelga smirked before she looked back at Dag. "You're little sister has learn to serve well, Dag, maybe she could teach you to do the same." She said before she chuckled in amusement and turned her head back around.
Zelga then entered a large cave that had a crystal ball in the centre. She walked over to it and rubbed her hoof against it, the image of Blaze sleeping in his bed then appeared in it. "Behold my friends, the face of your future ruler." Zelga said.
Dag scuffed. "Mistress, I know you care for that pony, but he needs more training and skills to become a true king." He said.
Clare then gently smacked him with her wing. "Don't be silly, Blaze has king written all over him." she said strongly.
Zelga looked down at them. "Thank you Clara." She said before she returned her attention to the crystal ball. "Soon, my son, soon we will become the most powerful force in Equestria and the world will be ours. But for now, rest, regain your energy, then we'll start preparing you for the our strike on Ponyville." She said.
Zelga rubbed her hoof against the crystal ball before she gently started to sing to Blaze.
Zelga: "Sleep my little Blaze Horn, let your dreams take wing….
One day when you're big and strong, you will be a king."
Zelga then proceeded to walk around the room with other bats watching as she continued to sing, only with a darker mood.
Zelga: "I've been exiled, persecuted, left alone with no defence
When I think of what that brute did, I get a little tense!
But I dream a dream so pretty, that I don't feel so depressed
'Cause it soothes my inner pony, and it helps me get some rest
The sound of Matthew's dying gasp!
His wife squealing in my grasp!
His dearest friend's mournful cry!
That's my lullaby!
Now the past I've tried forgetting, and my foes I could forgive
Trouble is, I know its petty, but I hate to let them live!"
Dag: "So you found yourself somepony who'd chase Matthew up a tree!"
Zelga: "Oh the battle may be bloody, but that kind of works for me
A melody of angry growls!
A counter point of painful howls!
A symphony of death, oh my!
That's my lullaby!
Thorn is gone, but Zelga's still around. To love this little lad
Till he learns to be a killer! With a lust for being bad!"
Bats then gathered around the crystal ball and watched Blaze sleep.
Dag: "Sleep you little termite! I mean, precious little thing."
Clara: "One day when you're big and strong…"
Zelga: "You will be a king!"
Zelga then shot a powerful beam up to the ceiling and blasted a hole through it, making a ray of moon light shine down on the crystal ball. Zelga started to slowly fly up towards it as she kept singing
Zelga: "The pounding of the drums of war! The thrill of Blaze Horn's mighty roar!"
Dag: "The joy of vengeance!"
Clara: "Testify!"
Zelga: "I can hear the cheering!"
Dag and Clara: "Blaze Horn, what a guy!"
Zelga then burst out through the hole she made until she was outside.
Zelga: "Payback time is nearing, and then our flag will fly!
Against the blood-red sky!
THAT'S! MY! LULLA-…-BYYYY! HAHAHAH!"
Zelga laughed evilly as a large flock of bats flew out the hole and surrounded her, spreading out across the sky around the mountain and signalling her current victory of her enemies.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
The song I used in this chapter is called "My Lullaby" from "The Lion King 2", I don't own anything.
So how did you like the reveal of the traitor? Didn't see it coming, did you? Let me know how you liked how Blaze planned everything out, I was planning it for months. Let me know if I missed anything.
As far as I know, I told you all the latest FIM episodes, so there's nothing left to talk about in news terms.
Please remember to review and PM.
Next chapter will be up as soon as possible.
65. Till death do us part
Hi everypony and welcome back!
Well the last chapter didn't get as much attention that I expected. If it wouldn't be any trouble, could everyone try and send more reviews so I know if I'm doing a good job or not? Otherwise I won't know and the chapters may stop, I don't want that to happen as much as you don't. So please keep motivating me.
The lyrics in the song I used for this chapter have been changed to match the story.
This chapter will contain similarities to that of the movie "Ghost", so you don't have to point it out to me.
Anyway, hope you enjoy the chapter.
Chapter 65: Till death do us part
Ponyville hospital
A pair of double doors burst open as a pair of nurse rushed down to the hall with me on a stretch, doctors and patients moved out of the way as they rushed past them, following behind was another stretch being rushed down the hall by a pair of nurses, that stretch was carrying a still unconscious Applebloom.
Behind both stretches, the Mane 6 galloped to keep up with them, they had scared and extremely worried looks on their faces, especially Twilight and Applejack.
As they finally reached the medical room, the nursed used their magic to lift me up off the stretch and place me down on the bed, they did the same with Applebloom before they pulled out a curtain between us so they wouldn't get distracted by each other's work.
The Mane 6 arrived and Applejack didn't waste time in rushing to Applebloom's side, she looked down at her on the bed with concern, looking as though she was gonna break down crying at any moment.
Meanwhile, Twilight rushed to my side and watched as I twitched and whimpered, I was moving so much that the doctors had to strap me down.
Fluttershy, Rarity and Pinkie went over to Applejack to keep her company while Rainbow Dash came over to Twilight, sometimes they'd switch to check up on the other.
Applebloom breathed gently in her state while I was breathing rapidly, still extremely terrified by the visions I kept seeing. The doctor then put an oxygen masks on me to help me breathe better, they did the same for Applebloom. But I was taking in more than I was getting.
I opened my eyes to reveal they were bloodshot and looked over to the first pony I could see, Twilight. Due to the Fear Hex that was casted upon me, all I saw was a velvet serpent creature, it opened its mouth and hissed at me as it showed its dripping fangs.
My heart pounded away against my chest and I felt light-headed, the situation I was in made it all the worse, strapped down to a bed with a monster right next to me.
Back in reality, I was trying to struggle out of the straps, but it was no use. Twilight placed her hoof on my head and stroked my head. "Matt, calm down, it's me!" she said, trying to get me to settle down, but I wouldn't.
Twilight turned her head to look at the doctor. "Doctor, he's freaking out! Isn't there anything you can do to calm him down?" she asked, sounding desperate for a solution.
The doctor looked at me before he looked at Twilight again. "There may be something I can give him, but I better do it fast." He said before he looked at me again. "I don't know why he's so terrified, but his panic level is rising. If he doesn't calm down soon, he'll literally be scared to death." He said before rushing to get the required equipment.
Twilight's jaw dropped in shock, she then looked over to me to see I wasn't getting any better, in fact I was getting worse. Twilight tried to calm me down by gently stroking my head.
After a moment, the rest of the Mane 6 came over and went up to Twilight. "The doctor said Applebloom will be fine, she'll wake up in a few hours." Applejack said before she looked down at me. "He doesn't look good, what did the doc say?" she asked curiously.
Twilight turned her head to face her and gave her a frown. "He said…he said that if Matt doesn't calm down, he'll have a panic attack and could…" she couldn't finish as she began to choke and tear up.
Applejack saw this and held her close to comfort her, they looked down at me and watched as I whimpered and struggled. Sweat began to run down my face as my heart started racing quicker, the heart monitor started spiking and beeping like crazy.
I opened my eyes and saw the colourful serpents looking down at me, I decided to lie there and wait for them to attack me, but before they could, a large brown one appeared beside me and bit my arm. My arm stung as its teeth stabbed into my arm.
I breathed harder until I felt my head become light, my eye lids started to close. The last thing I saw was the velvet serpent lean it's head closer to me before everything went black.
(Dream realm): Ponyville Hospital
Everything was still black, all I could hear was my steady breathing and my heart thumping. I managed to bring myself to open my eyes and see I was in a hospital room. I leaned up on the bed to see that the serpents where gone, in fact, the room was completely empty. No doctors, no nurses and the lights where even off.
I tried to get up, but I still felt a little weak. I grabbed onto the side railing before I pulled myself towards the edge, I managed to pull my body over the railing before I fell to the floor hard. "Ow!" I said in a grunt.
I then placed my hooves on the floor before I slowly stood up, my legs quivered as I started walking towards the door, taking one step at a time. Once I reached the door, I pushed it open and entered the hallway. I looked around, but the place was completely dark and empty, it was starting to creep me out.
"Hello?!" I called out, only to hear my voice eco down the empty halls. "Ok…this is weird." I said to myself before I tried to remember what happened, but I couldn't remember anything. The last thing I remember was entering the Ever Free Forest with Blaze Horn and that's it. "What the hell happened?" I asked myself in a whisper.
Just then, I heard quiet sobbing coming from the room I was just in, I slowly went back inside before I looked in the direction it was coming from. That's when I saw Twilight, crying by the side of the bed I was just on.
"Twilight? What's wrong?" I asked as I began walking up to her. I got no response, but as I got closer, another pony faded in to view. It was Applejack, she was right next to Twilight and looked like she was trying comfort her.
When I finally reached them, the rest of the Mane 6 came into view. They were all looking at the bed with sadness in their eyes, Fluttershy and Pinkie were even starting to cry.
"W-What's going on? What's happened?" I asked them, but again, I got no response. It was like they couldn't hear or see me, I tried to get their attention, but it didn't work.
I then decided to look at what their attention was focused on, but once I did, a cold chill went down my spine and my eyes were filled with fear. It was me, I was lying on the bed with an oxygen mask on my face, my eyes were half-open and my mouth was hanging open.
My mind ran with questions. How could I be lying there while I was standing here? What was going on? Why did my face look like that? I suddenly heard a loud high pitched beeping, I looked to where it was coming from and saw the heart monitor wired to me was running flat.
My eyes widened as to what this could mean, I looked down at my other self before I rushed around to the other side of the bed. "No…No! Wake up! Wake up, you little!" I said before I tried to grab my other self with my hooves, but they went right through it.
I started to panic and breath heavily, this wasn't another me, it was in fact me, my body and I wasn't in it. I tried and tried to grab my seemingly lifeless body, but my hooves kept going through it like I was nothing but air.
I growled loudly in frustration. It couldn't be too late to save me, it couldn't be! There had to be a way to get myself back into my body and bring myself back to life. But no matter what I tried, the results where the same, it was like I didn't really exist.
Suddenly, I felt something rush through me and I gasped at the strange feeling. That's when I saw the doctor pony walking through me and emerge in front of me. He walked up the side of the bed and looked at the girls with an upset look. "I'm so sorry…we did everything we could, but…his heart just gave up." he said to them.
Upon hearing this, Twilight broke down crying on the bed with her head buried in her arms. Applejack's eyes started to tear up as she rubbed Twi's back with her hoof, trying to comfort her.
I looked at them, the looks on their faces made me want to yell to them and let them know I was still there, but it was just go unheard. The situation I was in was terrifying me, I was starting to tear up as I looked at my body and saw the doctor pull the covers over my face with his magic.
I shook my head as tears ran down my face. "No…No! No, no, no, no! I can't be dead! I have so much more to do! I have a child on the way, how's Twi gonna raise it without me?!" I asked loudly.
Not ready to give up, I climbed up onto the bed and tried to lie down on my body. I didn't know what I was doing, I thought if I could re-enter my body, I could take control of it and wake up again. But when I tried, all I did was go right through it, I wasn't even making it twitch.
I leaned up and looked down at my body, I then realized that there was nothing I could do, my body was beyond recovery. No matter what I'd do, I'll never bring myself back to life, I'll never be able to live again.
I then turned my head to face the others, Twilight continued to sob on the bed and the rest of the Mane 6 trying to help her through this. Tears started running down my face as I crawled up to her and tried to place my hoof on top of her's. "I'm here, Twi…I'm here, I'm right here…hear me." I said before my ears dropped and I started to cry gently. "Please hear me…please hear me…" I said before I started to cry more, knowing she'd never be able to hear me again, no one will.
That night: Ponyville graveyard
This was an event I never thought I'd ever see, my own funeral. It was so weird, it was like I was here…but at the same time, I wasn't, I was lying dead in the coffin in front of me. It was white, covered in flowers and had a picture of me in front of it.
I looked down at the picture and smiled at it, it was me with Twilight hugging me from behind. Spike took it after we came back from our honeymoon, it all seemed so easy and bright back then…but now, I didn't know.
I turned around to see everyone I knew gathered around the coffin. The Mane 6, Spike, Jeff, Peewee, my family, Shining Armor, Discord, Luna, Celestia and even Cadence. The list continued to almost everyone in Ponyville, part of me couldn't believe so many people showed up.
I watched helplessly as Twilight continued to cry, she and the others were wearing all black funeral outfits, complete with vales, I bet Rarity made those for them…even during a sad moment, she never stops in her passion for fashion.
Twilight used her magic to lift a soft cloth up and wipe her tears away with it, but she continued to cry. Spike was sitting next to her, rubbing her back to try and comfort her.
Celestia walked up to the coffin before she turned around to face everyone, she took a breath before she began to speak. "We're gathered here today to say goodbye to a good pony. A pony who was more than pony to us, he was a loving husband, a true friend and a strong hearted solider. We will never forget the kind acts he did for his wife and friends, the bravery he showed when he was needed in Canterlot and so on. Now those closest to him will now speak about Matthew's acts and what they loved about him." She said before she walked away to make way for them.
I then sat and listened as pony after pony spoke about me, most of it was heart-warming, even flattering, but they'd eventually reach their breaking point and had to walk away to keep themselves from crying in front of everyone, this included my Mother who didn't last very long. My Dad and sister had to do it for her, they were pulling a strong face, but I could tell they were struggling.
Spike was soon up in front of my coffin as he began to speak about me. "When I first met Matt, I didn't know what to think of him. But after a few days, we became best friends…in fact, we became more than friends, we became brothers. Then when he and Twilight were engaged, I was so glad because I thought we'd be brothers forever…but now he's…" he said before he wiped a tear away with his arm. "He's gone now…but that doesn't make him any less of a brother to me." he said before he quickly went away before he could break.
Applejack then took the centre and turned to face everyone. "Matt was a dear friend to me and my family, especially to Applebloom, he was like a second older brother to her. I'll always remember how he helped my family, how he was always there for me when I needed him…but the one thing I'll never forget…is that he brought my sister back to me, Applebloom's back home safe and sound because of him…I just wish the cost wasn't so dear." she said before she walk back to her seat.
Pinkie Pie then took the centre and began to speak. "I wouldn't say Matt was the life of the party, but he definitely found a way to always liven things up. He'd make everyone feel welcome, lend a helping hoof when I needed help…but now he's just gone and…I don't know if my parties will ever be the same again." she said with her lip trembling before she walked away, only to shoot right back up for one last thing. "By the way, I have party baggies for all of you that I'll give out at the end…but still, a sad day for us all, the saddest." She said before she walked away again.
Fluttershy then took the centre and, like everyone before her, she turned to face everyone. However, she looked like she was gonna burst into tears at any moment. "Umm…M-Matt was a really close friend…h-he always liked helping me with my animal friends…he'd always try to make me feel better when I was sad but…I suppose he won't be able to help me this time!" she said before she started to cry loudly in front of everyone, doing this made Applejack walk up to her and help her back to her seat.
Once she was taken care of, Rainbow Dash flew up and took the centre. "Umm...what can I say other than…Matt will be missed. I mean, he's been gone only a few hours and I feel a small part of my life is missing, he was an awesome friend, a little weird here and there, but he was awesome none the less. But now that he's gone, it's like…it's like…" she said before a tear suddenly ran down her cheek. "I'm sorry, I'm so sorry, I just…I just handle this!" she said before she shot up to the sky and disappeared into a large cluster of dark clouds moving towards the funeral.
Everyone watched Rainbow leave until she was out of sight, Twilight and the others were confused as to why she just bolted off like that, but they thought it best to give her some space.
Then finally, Rarity took the centre and looked at everyone before she moved the black vale up out of her face. "Much like Applejack, Matthew was like an older brother to my sister, Sweetie Belle. He was kind and always there for us. I will deeply miss him and hope he will always be in our hearts." She said before he walked back to her seat.
Then came the hardest thing to watch, Twilight stood up and slowly went towards the centre. Once she reached it, she turned to face everyone and took a breath. "I…I loved Matthew more than I thought I could ever love any stallion. I still remember the day I met him, I thought he was just some random everyday pony who wanted a book…I never thought that this pony would be the stallion I'd marry and have a foal with…but now…he won't be here to see our baby, I'll never feel myself in his arms again, I'll never hear his voice when he tries to comfort me when I'm upset. I hope he can hear me somehow when I say…Matthew, I will always love you, I will never forget you and I hope to see you again one day." she said before she started to cry again, she covered her face with her arm to hide herself.
I stood next to her with sadness in my eyes. I wanted to tell her that I was here, I wanted to hold her and tell her I'd never leave her. But what was the point, I was a ghost, she wouldn't be able to hear me no matter what I did. "Twilight…why can't you hear me? I'm right here." I said to her, knowing she couldn't hear me but did it anyway.
Twilight continued to cry, unable to hear anything I was saying. With Applejack too busy comforting Fluttershy, Shining Armor had to come up and comfort her before helping her back to her seat.
The ceremony went on, ponies and everyone I knew came up and said some words on my behalf, telling everyone what I did for them and how I'd be missed. It wasn't long before the black clouds from before came over us and started to rain down on the ceremony. After everyone said what they wanted to say, the Mane 6 and Spike placed roses on my coffin before Celestia and Luna used their magic to lower my coffin down into the grave underneath it.
Once it was at the bottom, some stallions started to shovel dirt into the hole, burying my coffin. After a few minutes, the grave was completely full of dirt and the stallions used their shovels to flatten the dirt on top of it.
Everyone soon started leaving the funeral to head for the Town Hall for the funeral party. I didn't follow them, I spent a few more minutes staring at something I never thought I'd see, my own grave. The tombstone said "He lies Matthew – A loving husband and a true friend.".
The things everyone was saying about me was almost too much for me to handle, I had no idea my friends cared so much about me, I felt so crappy for how I've acted with them lately, especially to Twilight. Some part of me still couldn't believe that this was real, this had to be some kind of horrid nightmare. But the way I feel, the things I see and the way everyone was acting…I may have to face the fact that this was happening, I was dead.
I sat down in front of my grave and lowered my head, my ears dropped down in sadness as the rain fell right through my body. Even though I couldn't feel it, I could very much feel the cold sadness it brought.
Later: Town Hall/Funeral party
After catching up with the others, I followed them to the Town Hall, where my funeral party was being held. There was a large banner stretched across the ceiling that read "Goodbye Matthew".
Everyone mostly talked amongst themselves, while others went to check on Twilight to see how she was coping. I could see the look on her face, Twilight tried to be strong, but she was broken inside. The rest of the Mane 6, except for Rainbow Dash, stayed by her side the whole time, none of them left for longer than a minute.
I stood beside Twilight, making sure I'd always be with her even if she couldn't see me. I tried to touch her at some points, only for my hoof to go right through her. It was funny, I was surrounded by a room full of my closest friends and family, yet I felt more alone than ever.
Rarity walked up to Twilight and placed her hoof on her shoulder. "Twilight…I know your coping with a lot today, but I just want you to know that we're always here for you if you ever need us." she said, giving her a small kind smile.
Twilight looked at her and returned her smile. "Thanks Rarity, I appropriate that." She said before her ears lowered and she looked down at the floor with sadness. "I just wish there was some way to bring him back." she said.
"Well you can always find some sort of super-secret dark spell that resurrects ponies from the dead! Or find someone who really, really powerful with magic to do it for you." Pinkie Pie blurted out, getting some disagreeing looks from the others. Once she saw this, her ears dropped a little. "Or, you know, maybe just accept your loss and try to move on knowing he's always in your heart." She said, trying to open a more sensible option.
Twilight was silent for a moment before her ears perked up. "Wait…you might be on to something." she said as she looked at Pinkie. "Maybe there is a way to bring him back." she said, getting a little spark of hope in her eyes.
I heard this and shook my head. "Oh Twilight." I said, knowing where she was going with this. I then watched in suspense as Twilight walked over to Discord who was having a conversation with Luna.
"It's almost seems like something is missing now. I'd like to think we could go back to the lives we had before Matthew, but I don't know how long it'll take for that to happen." Discord said, tapping his finger against his glass of chocolate milk.
Luna looked up at him with a strong look. "Things will never be back to the way they were…" she said before she looked down with sadness. "I let go of my feelings for Matthew, but…he was still one of the ponies I could go to if I ever needed help." She said.
Feeling bad, Discord leaned down and patted her shoulder gently. "It's rough, Luna, but we'll pull through this eventually." He said, trying to lift her spirits.
But Luna didn't feel at all better. "I want to believe that." She said before she turned and walked away to re-join her sister.
Once she was gone, Twilight walked up to Discord and looked up at him. "Discord! I need you to do something!" she said in a firm tone.
Discord looked down at her and gave her a sympathetic look. "Of course, Twilight, on this dark day for all of us, I am willing to do anything you request." He said.
Twilight took a breath before she spoke. "I need you to use your magic to bring Matthew back to life." she said, unsure whether or not to believe he'd actually do it.
The moment was silent between them, the rest of the Mane 6 watched in suspense and slight embarrassment. I also felt embarrassed about this, I always thought Twilight would think this kind of thing was impossible, but here she was, asking Discord to perform a miracle.
Discord gave her an uncomforting look, not sure what to do or say next. "Oh…umm…well, when I said I was willing to do anything, I didn't really mean something that…drastic." He said, trying to be delicate with her.
Twilight frowned when she heard this. "But you're Discord, with power like yours, resurrecting one pony should be easy for you." she said.
Discord lowered his head down to her. "I'm sorry, Twilight, but I can't do that. I've never done that before and I don't know what'll happen if I do. I mean, if I even tried to resurrect him, it could put him in an extreme state of shock, it could be catastrophic and might even kill him a second time. The risks are just too high." He explained with a heavy heart.
The things he said spooked even me, I actually hoped he wouldn't try to resurrect me, even though I really wanted to be with Twilight again.
Twilight frowned. "But…you're my last hope, I don't know who else could bring him back. He's been dead for almost a day and I feel like a piece of myself is missing, I can't take this feeling!" she said, her voice getting louder as she went on.
Some of the ponies heard her yelling and started to take notice, staring and starting to whisper to each other. Discord noticed this and looked back down at her. "Twilight, please, keep your voice down." he said, feeling a little embarrassed.
"Keep my voice down?! Matthew is dead! My husband is dead! How can I possibly keep my voice down at a time like this?!" Twilight yelled as she started to tear up. "Matthew was the best stallion I've even met, he was kind, caring, thoughtful. Sure he was a bit firm here and there, but who isn't from time to time? And now he's just gone, I just…I just wish I told him how much her meant to me, to all of us…I feel so lost!" Twilight sobbed before she lowered her head and started to cry gently.
I saw this and walked over to her. "Don't worry, Twilight…I know." I said.
Everyone who was staring felt sympathy for Twilight, most of them wanted to hug her and tell her everything would be fine, but Pinkie beat them to it. Twilight embraced her hug and sobbed on her shoulder. I walked up to them and tried to join their hug, but my body just went through them.
Discord frowned before his ears dropped. "I'm so sorry, Twilight." he said before he slowly faded away until he was gone.
I watched helplessly as Twilight cried in Pinkie's hug, the others gathering around them to comfort Twilight. I watched with a broken heart before I lowered my head with my ears down, unable to do anything to ease Twilight pain.
The next day: Library
It was a hard night, but Twilight managed to sleep in peace. I stayed by her side the whole night, being a ghost, I didn't need to sleep. I just watched her and Spike sleep, wishing I could join Twi in bed and hold her close. I missed the feel of her soft fur against mine, the warmth of her body, the smell of her clean mane, I missed it all.
I stared out the window and watched the clouds go by, wondering why I was never given the chance to be taken up there to Heaven. Did I have 'unfinished business'? Was Heaven even a place? I just didn't know.
All the while, Twilight sat on a bunch of cushions while reading a book. Spike and Jeff were out to get stuff from the market, the only other person in the library was Peewee, but he didn't know how to deal with this type of thing.
Twilight continued to read, but suddenly, she placed her hoof on the side of the book and closed it. "What's the point." She said quietly before she stood up and walked over to the fireplace. This drew my attention and I watched what she was doing. Twilight stopped in front of the fireplace and looked at one of the pictures on the shelf, it was a picture of me and Twilight on our wedding day.
Twilight managed for form a smile before she sniffed. "I miss you, Matt…I hope you're in a good place." She said before she wiped a tear away with her hoof.
I then walked up beside her and looked at the side of her face. "As long as I'm with you, I always am." I said before my ears dropped in sadness again.
Suddenly, there was a knock on the door that broke Twilight out of her emotional moment. Twilight looked over to the door before she started walking towards it, but not without walking through me to get to it. I gasped loudly at the feel of her walking through my body, it sent a chill down my spine.
I spun around and saw Twilight approach the door, her horn glowed and she used her magic to open the door, revealing Applejack behind it, she looked troubled. Surprised, Twilight gave her a small smile. "Applejack! I didn't expect to see you today, please come in." she said as she stood aside to let Applejack past.
Applejack walked into the library and Twilight closed the door behind her, Applejack then turned around to face her before she grabbed her hat with her hoof and held it against her chest. "Twilight...I just wanted to make sure you were ok." She said.
Twilight gave her a weak smile. "That would make you the sixth pony today." She joked. "But I'm fine, it's been a little hard, but I'm pulling through." She said, trying to ease Applejack's worries.
I walked up to them and looked at Applejack. "She was crying most of the night." I said, knowing she couldn't hear me.
Applejack gave her a gentle smile. "That's good to hear, I suppose." She said before she frowned. "But, I have a problem I'm having comin' to terms with." she said before she looked down at the floor with sadness and what looked like shame.
Twilight titled her head and raised her eye-brow. "Really? Well what is it?" she asked curiously.
Applejack then looked at her with sadness. "It was my fault, I'm the reason Matt's dead." she said as her eyes began to tear up. "If I had just protected Applebloom better, she wouldn't have been kidnapped, then Matt wouldn't have gonna after her and he'd still be…" she didn't managed to finish as she began to cry.
Seeing this, Twilight quickly took action by going up to her and placing her hoof on her back. "No Applejack, you didn't kill Matt. The pony that did this was really powerful, he managed to rip the Canterlot vault off the wall, Matt knew the risks, he just…got unlucky." She said, trying to make Applejack feel better.
Applejack looked at Twilight before they both shared a warm hug. I watched this and exhaled. "I wish I could remember what happened to me, at least then I'd know how I actually died." I said to myself.
Just then, there was another knock on the door. Twilight and Applejack broke away from the hug before Twilight made her way over to it. "Probably one of the others wanting to check up on me as well." She said as she walked through my body again to get to the door.
Once she reached it, Twilight used her magic to open the door, revealing a face we haven't seen in a while, Zecora. Twilight was surprised by this. "Zecora, what are you doing here?" she asked.
Zecora entered the library before she spoke. "I have travelled through the forest of vines and moss, to offer my condolences for your saddening loss." She said as she turned to face Twilight.
Twilight then closed the door before she gave Zecora a kind smile. "Thanks Zecora, it's been hard, but I'm pulling through." She said before a thought came to her mind. "But…why weren't you at Matt's funeral?" she asked curiously.
"If I had known, I would've tried, but I have only learned today that Matthew had died." Zecora said before she turned to face Applejack. "He died saving your sister, a brave act if I do say, but that doesn't really solve the mystery at the end of the day." she said.
Applejack gave her a confused look. "What are ya talkin' about?" she asked.
"Matthew enters the forest to find your Applebloom, then not long after, he nears his doom. You find him half dead, you bring him back to town, but his fear levels never went down. His fright grew more and more until his heart gave out, that is what I'm talking about!" Zecora said.
Applejack and I stared at her with our jaws hanging open. "Urrr…what?" Applejack asked, getting nothing from what she said.
Twilight then walked up to them. "I think she's saying what could've caused Matt to die in the first place." She said, throwing a guess out there.
"Well why doesn't she never just say so?" I asked, knowing I wasn't gonna get a response.
At that moment, Zecora looked around with a confused look, like she heard something in the wind, but she shook it off and looked at Twilight. "Precisely." She said.
"Well we don't know what caused Matt to die. He went to find Applebloom, he took longer than we thought, we went after him and he was in a terrified mess." Applejack said, answering Zecora's question.
I then thought about what Applejack said and remembered a pony shooting a spell at me, I then remembered all the frightening images I saw in front of me. "Is that what happened to me? Was I scared to death?" I asked myself out loud.
Zecora once again looked around, she turned her head around to look behind her. Twilight and Applejack noticed this and looked at each other in confusion. Zecora shifted her eyes left and right before she looked at Applejack again. "Well…is there anything we know for sure?" she asked.
Applejack gave her a firm look. "Only his backup wasn't any good, he wasn't even there when we found him." she said with an abrupt tone.
Twilight took a step forward. "Yeah, part of me thinks Matt wouldn't have died if he'd just helped him better." She said in a tone just as firm.
Hearing this, I tried to think back again. "…There was someone with me?" I thought before I continued to listen to their conversation.
Zecora thought before she thought of something. "Hmm, well we don't know what killed Matthew, but maybe his back-up might, maybe the reason he left was because something gave him a fright. This being would've been dangerous, we're sure of that, and it could've been the thing that took our dear Matt." she said, looking over to Twilight.
Twilight thought about what she said for a moment before she realized she could've been on to something. "Hey, you're right, we never asked him what he saw." She said.
I walked over to Twilight. "Who? Who didn't you ask?" I asked loudly.
Zecora eyes widened as she looked around. "Who is that talking in my ear? Is there someone else here?" she asked as she looked around herself in confusion.
Twilight was startled by her sudden outburst. "What?! No one else is in this room with us." she stated, trying to calm her down.
It was then I noticed something, Zecora was acting weird every time I said something. I walked over to her until I was right beside her head. "…Hello?" I asked.
Zecora jumped in fright and backed away. "That! Who was that!" she said in a scared tone.
"Are you ok, Zecora? You're actin' kinda funny." Applejack said as she and Twilight watched Zecora with concern.
Zecora lowered herself down while quivering. "There is a strange sound flowing through the air, like the voice of somepony who isn't there." she explained.
Twilight and Applejack looked at each other with awkwardness before they returned their attention to Zecora. "What?" they both said in confusion.
I then walked up to Zecora, feeling a glimmer of hope in my heart. "You can hear me?" I asked curiously.
Zecora yelped and backed up towards the door. "This cannot be, there is someone here we cannot see." She said in fright until her flank came in contact with the door.
Twilight walked towards her. "Zecora, no one is here with us, its just us three." She said before she tried to change the subject. "Now you were saying something about Matt's back-up probably seeing what killed him?" she asked.
I then looked at Twilight with a raised eye-brow. "Really? You're still not using a name? Are you serious?" I asked.
Zecora yelped again. "That's it! I'm getting out of here before this becomes a habit." She said before he opened the door with her hoof and rushed out, but not without slamming the door behind her.
We all stared at the door with shock and confusion. "…What the hay was that about?" Applejack asked.
Twilight turned her head to face her. "I don't know, maybe she on one of her potions or something. She was acting as if someone else was here." she said.
"Well at least she shun a little bit of light on the situation, we need to find Matt's back-up pony." Applejack said.
Twilight nodded. "Yeah, I'll go write a letter to the Princess right away." She said before she walked over to the door to the next room and used her magic to open it.
Applejack walked up behind her. "I'll go with ya." She said before they both entered the room and closed the door behind them.
I stayed in the front room, staring at the front door with shock. "Oh my god." I said, still in shock over what just happened. Zecora could hear me, she might be the only person in Equestria who can hear me. If I was gonna get to the bottom of what caused my death, I'd need her help. "I need to catch up with her." I said before I looked over to the door where Twilight entered. "Don't worry Twi, I'll be back soon." I said in a quiet tone.
After that, I returned my attention to the front door and walked up to it. I then reached my hoof towards the doorknob in an attempt to grab it, but my hoof went right through it. I kept trying, but the result were the same. "Dammit!" I said to myself before I tried to think of a solution.
Just then, it hit me, I couldn't grab the knob because my hoof was going through it, but did that mean I could go through the door itself? I looked at the door before I took a breath. "Here goes." I said before I walked towards the door slowly. As I came in contact with it, my body start to go through it.
I could feel a chill g through my body as I went through the door, I kept my eyes close the whole time. After a moment, I opened my eyes to see I was outside, I looked back to see the back half of my body was still in the door, I took a few steps forward to get myself all the way out. Once that was done, I turned my head back around to face the open and started galloping after Zecora.
A few minutes later: Streets of Ponyville
I trotted through the streets, looking everywhere for Zecora. I was afraid that I had lost her, I'd have to go all the way to her hut to find her.
But my worries were at ease when I noticed her up the road, she still looked a little frightened, but I had to try and talk to her if I had any hope to talk to Twilight again. I rushed over to her and stopped beside her. "Zecora." I said in a strong tone.
Zecora jumped and spun around, but saw no one was there. "Leave me alone! You're voice with no mouth chills me to the bone!" she said before she started galloping away.
"Zecora! I need your help, just slow down and listen!" I called, but she didn't listen, she just kept galloping away. "God dammit!" I said to myself before I galloped after her.
I galloped after her through the streets for a few minutes, I'd go right through everything she threw at me and everything she used to try and block my path, I even had to run through some huts to catch up with her.
Eventually, she made a wrong turn down an ally and got cornered. I slowed down and slowly approached her. "Zecora, come on, I know you've dealt with a lot more weird stuff than this." I said as I walked up to her.
"I do not know what abyss sporned thee, but you will not take me!" Zecora said as she got in a fierce pose, as if she was ready to fight.
I rolled my eyes before I took a step closer. "Zecora, calm down, I'm not gonna hurt you. It's me, Matthew." I said, trying to convince her.
Zecora's scared look then went away and was replaced by a look of suspicion. "What lies do you try to place in my head, I know very well that Matthew is dead." She said strongly.
I exhaled heavily. "I know that, but I'm some sort of ghost and I'm standing right in front of you." I said.
Zecora didn't look very convinced. "There is only one way to know if you are friend or foe, tell me something only Matthew would know." She said firmly.
I groaned before I tried to think of something, it took a moment, but I finally thought of something. "Everyone keeps saying my name is weird, but it isn't…in fact, it's one of the most common names in the English language." I said, putting more defence into it more than I had to.
Zecora thought about it for a moment before she realized that was something I used to say a lot, with that thought it mind, she knew it must've been me. "What you say must be true, now I know for sure it's you! The news of your death was a shocking surprise, but do you perhaps know what caused your untimely demise?" she asked curiously.
"I don't remember, all I know is that someone put some sort of spell on me and now I'm see-through, walking through walls and talking to someone who can actually hear me but not see me." I explained before something came to mind. "Wait, how is it that you can hear me anyway?" I asked with a raised eye-brow.
Zecora shrugged. "I wish I knew, perhaps it has something to do with the home in which I grew. The elders of my tribe spoke of Zebras who could gain special powers, by eating from the ancient tree that grew magical flowers." She explained, going on a guess.
I stared at her with a confused look. "So…I take it you ate from this tree?" I asked.
"It was my time to eat the flowers, I did as I was told…but I don't know why this is happening now, I did that when I was a few years old." Zecora said as she walked up the ally and went through me.
As Zecora left the ally, I caught up with her and walked beside her. "Well…maybe they've activated so you can help me." I said.
Pinning where my voice was coming from, Zecora turned her head to face me. "Help you in what way? I think I've had my fill of drama for one day." she said before she turned her head away and kept walking.
I then moved in front of her and walked backwards while facing her. "I need you to help me remember what happened to me or at least who killed me. If they killed me, they'll go after Twilight as well, I can't let her die like I did." I said, trying to convince her to agree to help.
"I can help a live pony recall memories, or do the same for an animal at most, but you're asking me to recall the memories of a ghost. What would you suggest I do, cast a spell or create some sort of brew?" Zecora asked with a raised eye-brow.
"I don't know, you're the alarmist!" I said before I took a breath to calm down. "Look, you're the only one who can hear me and you're most likely the only one who can figure out how to help me…please, I need you Zecora." I said, desperate for her aid.
Zecora tapped her chin, thinking of what decision to make.
Later that day: Zecora's hut
After agreeing to help, Zecora and I went to her hut and she started making a brew. The cauldron water bubbled green as sparks floated off it. I looked down at the brew, but didn't see my reflection, I didn't think I would.
Zecora walked over to the cauldron with a bottle in her mouth, she poured sparkling dust from the bottle into the cauldron water and it made dark smoke poof out of it. Zecora dropped the bottle before she spoke. "Now the brew is ready, to view your memories, place your hoof in slow and steady." She said to me.
I looked into the boiling water before I looked at her. "Are you sure this will work?" I asked curiously.
Zecora tapped her hoof with her chin again. "Well the chances aren't very high, but the least you can do is try." She said.
I then returned my attention to the cauldron water before I lifted my hoof up and lowered it into the water. The water around my hoof started to glow white, then the entire cauldron start to glow until an image came into view, I pulled my hoof out before we both looked into to the cauldron.
We saw things through my eyes, I was on the floor of the Castle of the Two Sister and looked up at a tall Alicorn. The Alicorn leaned it's head down to my sight before it's face came into the light, revealing itself to be female with a mane made of dark purple flames.
Upon seeing her face, I recognised her. "Zelga! That's Zelga! She once disguised herself as a Pegasus to try and sabotage my life, but she's really an Alicorn….and get this, she's also Thorn's sister." I said as I looked up at Zecora.
Zecora looked at me with surprise. "Thorn had a sister? This cannot be! I thought Thorn was the only remaining member of that family tree." She said, sounding surprised.
"So did I, but apparently we were wrong." I said before I thought about it. "Makes you wonder if they're any more of them." I asked, thinking of how bad that could be.
Zecora tried to look at me, but it was hard for her. "We will eventually return to the matter of this possible Alicorn band, but for now, let's return to the matter at hand." She said.
I exhaled before I decided to agree. "Ok." I said before I returned my attention to her. "We need to go back to the Library and tell Twilight right now, if Zelga's after her, it won't be long before she finds her." I said in a firm tone.
With that, Zecora nodded and we both ran out of the hut to return to Ponyville, part of me wondered if Zelga had already found her, making me hope it wasn't too late.
Half-an-hour later: Ponyville Library
We returned to the Library and approached the front door. Zecora was a little on edge about all this, she didn't know how Twilight was gonna respond and how it would make herself look.
"Ok, now just knock on the door and tell her what-…" I stopped talkin once I noticed Zecora walking away. "Aye! What you doing?" I asked as I rushed up in front of her.
"Having me do this is asking a lot, she might think I'm pulling some kind of hokes plot." Zecora said, sounding a little stressed about this.
I thought about it and knew she was right, Twilight never did believe in stuff like ghosts, convincing her wasn't gonna be easy. "Ok, I get where you're coming from, but this is important, her life is at risk. Listen, this is what we'll do…you'll break the news to her and I'll tell you stuff that only she and I would know." I explained.
Zecora thought about it for a moment before she sighed. "I suppose that could work, I just hope she doesn't see me as an insensitive jerk." She said before she turned around and made her way back to the door.
"Don't worry, you've got this." I said with a confident smile.
Zecora raised her hoof to knock on the door, she hesitated for a second, but then proceeded to knock on the door. It took a moment, but eventually, the door opened to reveal Twilight behind it. "Oh, hi Zecora, I didn't think I'd see you again today. Are you feeling better?" she asked curiously.
Upon seeing Twilight again, my heart melted and I just wanted to hug her, but it wouldn't do any good. It would always be a dream that would probably never come true.
Zecora took a breath before she spoke. "Yes, I am…can I come in and talk to you, if I can?" she asked curiously and nervously.
Twilight smiled and nodded. "Sure, come on in." she said as she stepped aside to let Zecora in.
Zecora and I then entered the Library and I leaned my head to her. "Remember, just tell her what's happened and then I'll tell you what to say to convince her." I said, hoping this wouldn't go south.
Zecora nodded before she proceeded to walk to and open space in the room, Twilight closed the door and walked over to her. "What's up?" she asked as she sat down in front of her.
Zecora thought about what she was going to say until she decided to speak. "Listen Miss Sparkle, what I'm about to say is true, be sure of that…but I've been contacted by the ghost of Matt." she said, slightly afraid of how she might react.
Twilight's kind smile then slowly went away. "W-What are you talking about?" she asked, raising her eyebrow.
"Remember earlier today when I thought I could hear something that wasn't there? Well there was something, a ghostly Spector in the air." Zecora explained with an honest face.
Twilight then looked around for something before she returned her attention to Zecora. "Am I being punked? Is this a joke?" she asked.
Zecora shook her head. "Of course not, I'm more sensitive than that, but I really have been talking to the spirit of Matt." she said, insisting.
Twilight gave her an unconvinced and slightly unamused look. "Zecora, I don't know what kind of potion you've been drinking, but there's no such thing as ghost." She said before she lowered her head and her ears dropped. "Matt's…Matt's dead." She said sadly.
I then looked at Zecora. "Tell her that I once kept Grimerd's journal a secret from her and she got angry at me for it." I told her.
Zecora nodded before she spoke to Twilight. "He is speaking with me now, he asked me to remind you about Grimerd's journal that he once hid from you. Now you tell me, is that story true?" she asked.
Twilight wasn't convinced at first, but then realized the only person who knew about that was herself, me and Celestia, she hadn't told anyone else. "How…How do you know about that?" she asked.
I then turned to face Zecora again. "Ok, now tell her about the time she and I had a water fight in the pool while listening to classic music during our honeymoon." I said her.
Zecora nodded before she spoke again. "He also wanted me to tell you about the water fight you had in the pool during your honeymoon, while you were listening to a song in the background playing a catchy tune." She said with a small smile.
Twilight thought back and knew the only ponies who'd know about that were herself, me and Blaze Horn. "What are you doing? How are you doing this? Have you been spying on us or something?" she asked, getting a little hurt by all of this.
Zecora shook her head. "No, fooling you is not what I'm here to do, I'm trying to help Matthew once again talk to you." she stated.
Twilight then stood up. "Matt's dead, Zecora! He's dead! So unless you know something really convincing, I suggest you just go." She said firmly as she pointed her hoof at the door.
I then turned to face Zecora again. "What the friv, say 'What the friv'." I said to her.
Zecora then looked at Twilight again. "He told me to say 'What the friv'." She said.
Twilight's hurt look then went away as she thought about what she said, a spark of hope came into my eyes when I saw it enter hers, Twilight looked stunned until she spoke. "O-Only Matt said that, he'd only say it a few times…but how could you know that unless…" she said before a small smile grew on her face. "It is him, isn't it?" she asked.
Zecora smiled and nodded. "It is…and I can only guess how much of a shock this is." She said,
Twilight nodded, speechless, until she was unable to stand. Her legs became weak until her flank flopped down onto the floor, I rushed to her side to make sure she was ok, as did Zecora. Twilight soon looked up at her with tears in her eyes. "What…what else does he want to say?" she asked curiously,
Zecora was more than happy to answer. "From what he told me, he doesn't know why he's here as a ghost." She started before she sat down beside her. "But I know it's for a reason that matters most." She said.
I then looked at Zecora. "Tell her that I know who killed me and that it was Zelga, tell her what I told you." I said.
Zecora nodded. "He says he knows sealed his fate with such grim, he says it was Zelga who took his life away from him." she said with a serious tone.
Twilight gave her a shocked look. "Zelga?...But why? She's been gone for ages, why would she come back just to kill Matt?" she asked.
"Matthew told me that Zelga wasn't a Pegasus, but an Alicorn…and that she was an unknown sibling of Thorn." Zecora said.
Twilight was even more shocked by this. "Sibling of Thorn? Zelga is Thorn's sister? I can't believe this." She said.
I then looked at Zecora again. "Tell her she needs to write to the Princesses as soon as possible, if Zelga wanted to kill me, she'll be coming after her as well." I told her.
"Matt just told me to say that you need to write to the Princesses to help you, for Zelga killed Matt, now she might be coming for you." Zecora said while pointing her hoof at Twilight.
Twilight became a little frightened by this. "But why? I don't know anything…I mean, I do now, but she doesn't know that." She said.
Zecora moved a little closer to her. "Miss Sparkle, your life could be in danger, is that something you really wish to wager?" she asked.
Twilight thought about it for a moment before her ears lowers. "I suppose you're right, I'll write to the Princesses as soon as I can." She said in a gentle tone.
Zecora smiled. "That's good to know, now unless Matthew has something else I need to say, I really must go." She said before she turned to listen for my voice.
I thought about it before I made my decision. "I think we have everything taken care of now, you can go if you want." I said.
Zecora nodded. "Then with that, I leave." She said before she turned to face Twilight for the last time. "And if you feel doubtful later, just remember to believe." She said before she turned away and went over to the front door.
Twilight then looked over to Zecora and saw her open the door with her hoof. "I will Zecora, thanks." She said as she watched Zecora leave and close the door behind her.
I turned to face Twilight for a moment before I decided to say one last thing to Zecora, I turned and ran through the door until I was outside, I saw Zecora not far away and I rushed up beside her. "Thanks Zecora, I couldn't have done that without you." I said with a warm smile.
Zecora didn't face me, but she returned it. "Thank you Matthew, now I must return to my hut tree. And if you need my aid again, you'll know where I'll be." She said before I stopped and let her walk away.
Once she was near out of sight, I turned and made my way back to the Library to make sure Twilight was ok.
After I returned to the Library, I looked around for Twilight, but she wasn't in the room. I figured she went into the other room to write a letter to the Princesses, I went through the door into the next room and saw her by the table.
I walked up beside her and saw her holding the quill in her magic, Twilight lowered the quill down to the paper to start writing, but hesitated. I saw this and wondered what she was doing. "Twilight? What are you doing?" I asked.
The quill shook in Twilight's magic until she placed it down without writing a thing. "How am I supposed to explain this to Princess Celestia? I'm not sure if I believe it myself." Twilight said as she placed her hoof on her face.
I took a step closer to her. "What are you talking about? Zecora just gave you a bunch of reasons to believe it! Please Twilight, do what she told you to, just believe it!" I said loudly.
A tear ran down Twilight cheek when she heard someone open the front door. "Twilight?! We're back!" Spike's voice called.
"We can dandelions to make your favourite sandwich." Jeff's voice called, sounding cheerful.
Spike then came into the room and saw Twilight facing away from him. "Twilight? Are you ok? Are you writing something?" he asked as he came over to her.
Twilight wiped away the tear and turned to face him with a forced small smile. "I'm fine…and no, I'm not writing anything, I was just in here because I thought I left something in here." she lied.
I shook my head, unable to believe what was going on. "No, Twilight, you need to do this, you need to write the letter and tell Celestia what's going on!" I said.
"Well, if you hungry, we can make you a sandwich." Spike said and he pointed his thumb at the door behind him.
Twilight walked over to him. "Ok Spike, I could use something to eat." She said as she and Spike walked out of the room, leaving me with my jaw hanging.
"…Dammit!" I yelled in frustration, thinking of how close I was to keeping her safe and how it was all just gone, now I was back to square one.
Knowing nothing would be achieved by standing here feeling sorry for myself, I decided to just stay by Twilight side to see if she'll eventually do it. I knew there was hope in her somewhere, I just had to figure out how to fan its flames.
I made my way out of the room to follow Twilight into the kitchen.
That evening
Twilight didn't seem herself for the past few hours, the things Zecora told her must've still been rattling in there, I had hoped it would convince her to do what Zecora told her to. If there was anything I could do in my last moments as a ghost before I get taken to the other side, it would be to make sure she'd be as safe as possible.
Twilight did send a letter, but not to the Princesses, instead she sent it to Blaze Horn. I don't know why, maybe Shining Armor was as sceptic as her and wouldn't believe her, or maybe it was because he was with us during out water fight in the pool. He sent one back saying he was on his way.
While she waited, Twilight was reading a supernatural book about ghosts, part of me thought it would help her understand more, but the other part thought it would make her believe less.
Twilight closed the book and placed it aside before she hovered another one over to her, she opened it with her magic before she started reading. "I want to believe you're there…but I don't know how I can." She said out-loud before she lowered her head. "But Zecora knew things she couldn't, if it wasn't you who told her, who did? I just wish I could understand more." She said in sadness.
I walked up to Twilight and sat down beside her, not wanting to leave her side. Twilight kept flipping through the pages, reading each paragraph and thought about a lot of things, if she should believe it or not, the things Zecora knew, and how she thought she could feel a presents in the room with her.
As Twilight kept reading the books, she began to sing her heart out.
(This song involves some time skips, characters singing different lines at the same time and sometimes from different places. So I hope that makes it less confusing)
Twilight: "If there's anything let I can doooo…to convince myself it could be true, it's up to me….
To suspend my disbelief….
If there's even one thing left to tryyyy….I don't even need to know why, it's just relief….
To suspend my disbelief….
How can it beeee?...It must be truuue, this thing I feel…I know it's youuuu….
It's a chance in a million, I knoooow…but I'll take it before I let go and admit defeat
I'll suspend my disbelief….
How can she knoooow? It must be reaaaal, I know it's youuuu…I know how it feels, suspend my disbelief."
A few minutes later, Blaze Horn arrived and Twilight explained everything to him, needless to say, he wasn't very convinced.
"How can you believe some mystical Zebra that Matt's come back as a ghost?" Blaze asked as he sat down in front of Twilight.
"Blaze, Zecora's never steered me wrong before….I saw it, she was talking to Matt." Twilight said in a strong tone.
"Sorry Miss Sparkle, I just don't see it, I mean…you're talking ghosts here." Blaze said with a raised eyebrow.
"But she knew things she couldn't, things only me and Matt would know." Twilight stated.
Blaze gave her a curious look. "Like what?" he asked curiously.
"The water me and him had in the pool during our honeymoon…the only ponies who know about that was us and you, we haven't told anyone. Then she told me about the journal he hid from me for months, the only other pony who knows about that is Princess Celestia! How could she know all that if it wasn't true." Twilight said, desperately trying to convince him that it was real. "She also told me who killed him, that he was murdered!"
Blaze gave her a firm look. "Miss Sparkle, this is all sounds a little far-fetched and it's getting a little serious now, saying Matthew was murdered isn't what most would want to think about when he was buried just the other day." he said.
"But he said it was Zelga, a Pegasus who came here a while ago, but she's not a Pegasus, she's an Alicorn and she's Thorn's sister wanting revenge." Twilight said strongly before she took a step closer. "Zecora said Matt wanted me to tell the Princesses." She said.
"The Princesses?!" Blaze said in shock before he calmed down. "Miss Sparkle, what good would that do? Would they believe a story like this?" he asked.
I looked at him. "Blaze, I know it sounds mad, but you need to trust her." I said loudly.
"Miss Sparkle, you're tired and grieving, it's not healthy…you need to let go." Blaze said, sounding sympathetic.
Twilight didn't respond, she just kept singing her song from before, with Blaze joining in with her.
Twilight: "Suspend my disbelief…suspend my disbelief…suspend my disbelief."
Blaze: "When it's over, it's over."
Twilight: "I know you're heeeere."
Blaze: "None of its reeeal."
Twilight: "It must be youuuu."
Blaze: "You've got to heeeal."
Twilight: "I don't wanna feel."
Blaze: "It's part of the deal."
Twilight: "…I know that it's real."
Know Twilight wasn't going to change her mind, Blaze threw his eyes and sighed. "Alright, if it'll make you feel any better, I'll go back to the castle and see if I can find anything, ok?" He said.
Twilight looked at him with surprise. "You will? Thanks Blaze, I appreciate that…" she said before she gave him a serious look. "But I will write to the Princesses." She said.
Blaze stood up. "I wouldn't do anything like that just yet, Miss Sparkle, I promise I'll be back soon." He said before he made his way towards the front door.
Twilight watched as he opened the front door with his magic. "I'm gonna do it, Blaze." She called as he walked out of the library and closed the door behind him.
With that, Twilight stood up and made her way to the other room to write the letter she should've written ages ago. I was left in the room alone and wondered what Blaze would find in the old castle, would it add more information to the mystery of my murder? I felt like I had to know, so I decided to catch up with Blaze.
I rushed outside before I saw Blaze up-ahead, I caught up with him and followed him to the Every Free Forest. Along the way, he started to sing his own song.
Blaze: "I don't believe it, it's so sad!
Where are the good times we once had?
Such a high that we were on, I can't believe it's all gone
How could this happen? We were friends
Thought we had something that never ends, we'll get over it somehow
All we've got is here and now…."
Me and Twilight: "Here right now."
Blaze: "It was a misunderstanding."
Me and Twilight: "Here right now….Here right now."
Blaze: "It was a misunderstanding."
Me and Twilight: "Here right now."
After traveling the forest for a few minutes, I knew we were getting close to the castle, I turned my head to face Blaze. "Careful Blaze, Zelga's dangerous." I said to him.
Blaze, along with everyone else but Zecora, didn't respond because he couldn't hear me, he just kept walking with a strong look on his face. We kept walking down the path before Blaze suddenly came to a stop, I wondered what he was doing until I noticed the ground in front of him beginning to crack.
Suddenly, a bolt of purple flames shot up from the ground and when they cleared, Zelga stoop tall in front of him. "Hello Blaze." She said with a dark smirk.
"Oh god." I said under my breath as I looked up at the female Alicorn.
Blaze then took a step forward. "Who have you been talking to?" he asked.
Zelga raised her eye-brow. "Talking to? What are you talking about?" she asked curiously.
"Some Zebra knows about you, she knows Thorn was your brother and that you helped killed Matthew, how does she know that?" Blaze asked firmly.
At that moment, I had another flashback to the time of my death. I saw myself standing in front of Zelga until I was suddenly struck from behind, chains rose up and pinned me down, I then saw a pony walk around into my view and when I looked up at it's face, I saw Blaze grinning down at me. I came back into the present and looked at Blaze with shock and disbelief. "…Blaze!" I said in horror.
"I haven't been talking to anyone." Zelga calmed.
"Then how does this Zebra know about everything and why was she flapping her gums to Twilight Sparkle? Now even she knows who you are and soon they'll follow your trail all the way back to me!" Blaze said, getting more stresses by the second.
Zelga raised her hoof. "Calm down, my son." She said.
"Calm down?! We killed a pony! Do you know what the punishment is for murder? Sure, that's no worry of yours, but I'm right in the middle of the wolf den." Blaze said before he looked away. "This was a mistake…we shouldn't have killed him, the master wanted him alive." He said.
"Alive? You wanted him dead more than any of us." Zelga said calmly.
Blaze looked back up at Zelga. "Yeah, but not at the cost of my chance to execute the final plan, the master said he'll be in charge of it from now on. I just lost my one chance to be a general!" he said furiously.
"You basterd." I said in a small growl as I kept my eyes on Blaze.
Zelga gave him a firm look. "I told you to calm down…I'll speak with my brother, we'll just tell him it was a misunderstanding…knowing him, it might not work, but we might as well try." She said.
"Good, I've risked everything I have on all of this, my life, my reputation, everything!" Blaze said.
As I watched Blaze and Zelga bicker, I kept thinking about how Blaze had betrayed me, betrayed all of us. I trusted him, I treated him like a friend and he took everything from me, my life, my home…Twilight…I'll never feel her again because of this traitorous dick.
I watched them finish they conversation and part ways as I began to sing my own song.
Me: "I had a life….I had it all…from such a height….but so far to fall…
You took all I had….torn apart at the seals….
You've taken from me, everything I see, you've stolen my dreams…
I had a life!...I had it aaaall! From such a height!...So far to faaall!
You took all I haaaaad!...Torn apart at the seeeeals!
You've taken from me, everything I see, you've stolen my dreams!
I had a life!"
Twilight: "If there's anything more I can do…"
Me: "I had it all."
Twilight: "I'll do it and find my way back to you."
Me: "From such a height."
Twilight: "Suspend my disbelief."
Me: "But so far to faaall…I gave you all I had."
Twilight: "If there's even one thing left to try."
Me: "Torn apart at the seals."
Twilight: "I don't even need to know why."
Me: "You've taken from me, and forsaken me."
Twilight: "Suspend my disbelieeeef
Me: "And stolen my dreeeeams."
While I was left feeling betrayed in the forest, Blaze had already teleported himself back to Canterlot and was beginning preparations for this plan he was talking about earlier.
Blaze: "Yes! We're just playing a numbers game!
Every second, the numbers change
This is what I live to feel, it's the beauty of the deal….
This is the essence of high finance, gentlemen steps what you do this dance
This is always such a rush, making millions with one touch…
Canterlot, Canterlot, Canterlooot…the city that knows everything
Where and when, who and what, and which and why and how!
Canterlooot…it'll give you everything
Think it, dream it…hey, you got it! Here right now!"
Blaze then slipped into a dark alley where no-one could see him, he used a spell to make a little poof of smoke appear in front of him. Within the smoke, a pair of red eyes appeared and looked at Blaze.
Blaze smirked. "Master, I'm all set for you next mission for me." he said.
"Don't be so quick to expect I'll trust you so soon, Blaze Horn, I'm still a little…disappointed…that you helped Zelga kill Matthew." The leader said darkly.
Blaze glared. "He deserved it, he killed Thorn, we simply returned the favour." He stated.
"Yes, well because of your favour, I've had to make other plans. I want you to retrieve the other Elements right away, even if you have to blow you cover to do it, none of that matters now." the Leader said darkly.
Blaze thought about it before he bowed his head. "As you wish, master." He then looked up at the Leader's eyes. "I need to take care of Twilight Sparkle anyway, she knows more than she should…as dose a Zebra named Zecora." He said.
"You'll take care of Sparkle and retrieve her Element, I'll have Zelga hand this Zebra." The Leader said before the smoke faded away into to the air.
Blaze smirked evilly. "That's the plan…and this time, no-one will stand in our way." he said before he left the alley and went on his way.
Back in Ponyville, I was still in deep shock over what I remembered, Blaze had played us all for fools and we didn't see it, he was the one who was stealing all the Elements and kidnapped Applebloom.
At that moment, even though we were all in completely different places, myself, Twilight and Blaze began to sing our songs for the last time.
Me: "I had a life!"
Twilight: "If there's anything more I can do."
Me: "I had it all!"
Twilight: "I'll do it and find my way back to you."
Me: "From such a height."
Twilight: "Suspend my disbelief."
Me: "But so far to faaall."
Blaze: "It was a misunderstanding."
Me: "I gave you all I had!"
Twilight: "If there's even one thing left to try!"
Me: "I don't even need to knoooow!"
Me: "You've taken from me, and forsaken me, and broken my dreams! I had a life!"
Blaze: "It was a misunderstanding."
Twilight: "You are my heart."
Me: "I had it all!"
Twilight: "You need to know."
Blaze: "It's here right now."
Me: "But such a height."
Twilight: "You're not aloooone."
Me: "Is so far to faaall!"
Blaze: "It's all here right now."
Me: "I thought you would understand!"
Twilight: "You're not alone!"
Me: "But I was blind to see!"
Twilight: "You were my heart!"
Blaze: "It's all here right now!"
Me: "It's all I know, there's nothing you owe, and nothings for free! I had a life!"
Blaze: "This is the life!"
Twilight: "Here right noooow!"
Blaze: "This is the way we're driven!"
Me: "I had a liiiife!"
Blaze: "This is the time!"
Twilight: "Here right now!"
Blaze: "This is the chance we're given!"
All three of us: "I. HAD. A. LIIIIIIFE!"
That night: Ponyville
I was making my way back to the Library, but I was still feeling a strong feeling of betrayal in my heart. How could Blaze do this to me? To us? We treated him like one of us and he got me killed.
I didn't care much about what plan they were talking about, I only cared about Twilight's safety and what I've just learned. "I can't believe Blaze did this to us! After everything we've done together!" I said to myself, unsure whether to feel anger or sadness. "He was right there with Twilight, he could've hurt her and I would've been helpless to stop him…I need to get Zecora, she'll be able to tell Twilight what's going on." I said to myself before I turned my attention to the Ever Free Forest.
But before I could start going over to it, there was suddenly a large explosion from deep within the forest itself. "What the hell?!" I said loudly as I stared up at the cloud of black smock rising from it.
I then took off into the air and started flying towards where the explosion came from.
-A moment later-
Once I reached the area, I was horrified by what I saw. It was Zecora's hut, but now it was a burning tree trunk with a gaping hole in the centre.
I flew down and landed in the all-but-destroyed hut, the flames where no problem for me due to being a ghost and all, I looked around to try and find Zecora, but the smoke and flames made it difficult. "Zecora? Zecora, where are you?!" I asked, trying to yell through the crackling and roaring fire.
I walked around the hut for a moment until I saw something on the floor, it was one of Zecora's earrings, shining in the glow of the flames. Then some of the smoke cleared beyond it to reveal a pile of rubble, and under it, Zecora's hoof.
I gasped at the sight of this, a chill ran down my spine before I placed my hoof over my mouth. "Zecora…oh god, Zecora…" I said as I looked away, unable to stand the sight of it. "…I'm sorry Zecora…" I said out-loud, trying to fight back the painful feeling inside me.
Just then, I heard a noise that sounded like the wind was starting to circle, I looked to where it was coming from to see the cloud of smoke above me beginning to form into the shape of an Alicorn, embers came together on it's face to form red eyes looking down at me.
Seeing this, I knew it was Zelga, Blaze must've told her that Zecora knew about her…so know she's made sure no-one else will know.
Suddenly, Zelga's smoke appearance formed together into a large strip and then shot off into the air, I watched it fly over my head and head back towards Ponyville. Once I realized what she was up to, my eyes widened in fright. "…Twilight…" I said to myself in a whisper.
Without a single thought, I shot up into the air and flew as fast as I could back to Ponyville. I couldn't let Twilight's fate be the same as mine and Zecora's, I had to save her somehow.
-Another moment later-
After I got back to Ponyville, I landed in front of the Library and saw that it was untouched, I looked up at one of the high windows and saw Twilight, she yawned and closed the curtains.
I exhaled in relief once I knew she was ok, but I wondered where Zelga went, why didn't she come after Twilight? A part of me thought they were gonna leave her alone, but that feeling went away when I had a flash behind me.
I spun around and saw the hooded-pony that had been stealing the Elements, he lifted his hoof to his head and took off his hood, revealing himself to be Blaze…no surprise there.
I glared at him and stormed up to him. "You…double-crossing…son of a bitch!" I yelled as I threw a punch at his face, but it went right through him.
I didn't care if he couldn't feel it, I just kept throwing punches to get it out of my system. "You basterd! Why? I trusted you, you were my friend! I was gonna have a family, you basterd fuck!" I said as punch after punch went through Blaze's body.
As my strikes began to slow down, I breathe deeply as I looked up at his face, he was staring at the Library behind me. I kept looking back and form from Blaze to the Library, wondering what he was up to, but when he started moving towards it, I knew. "No…No! You're not going near her!" I yelled as I tried to stop him, but nothing worked.
I tried to keep punching Blaze, hoping at least one would become solid and strike him, but nothing happened.
I then noticed Blaze's horn begin to glow brightly, getting more and more violent, like it was charging up. I knew what he was planning, I had to try and stop it.
I tried punching Blaze, I tried kicking him with my hind-legs, I even tried head-butting him, but nothing worked, I might as well have been hitting air.
Blaze's horn glowed brighter before he pointed it at the Library. "…Say hi to Matthew for me…" Blaze said darkly before he prepared to unleash his magic.
I then shot up into the air and placed myself right in front of his horn to try and block his shot. "NO!" I yelled.
Then, finally, a powerful beam of magic shot out of Blaze's horn and came at me, but it went right through my body. I spun around fast as the beam struck the Library, it began to crack before it eventually exploded.
Time slowed down as parts of the Library crashed down beside me, some smaller parts even flew through my ghostly body. But that didn't bother me, I just stayed where I was, staring at my greatest failure.
I stopped flapping my wings and I dropped down onto the floor, feeling everything that kept me going get ripped out of me. I turned around to see that Blaze was gone, fled the scene like the cowardly assassin he was.
Just then, I heard something behind me that made me feel complete horror. "Matt?...Matt?" a ghostly female voice said. I slowly turned my head back around to see someone walk through the flames of the destroyed tree-building.
After a moment, the pony came into view to reveal it was Twilight, but now she was a ghost. Upon seeing this, I actually felt my heart get torn from my chest, I felt completely helpless.
Twilight saw me and gave me a shocked look. "Matt?...Is that you? B-But I thought you were…" she said before she lifted her hoof and saw how see-through it was. "W-What's going on?...What's happened to me?" she said as she became scared.
I was about to go to her, but suddenly, a large crack appeared in the air and a bright white light shined brightly through it. "Matt?...Matt? Can you hear me?" Twilight's voice called through the light.
Another crack broke through the air and the same light shined through it. "I think it's working, keep it up Princess!" Applejack's voice said in the light.
A third crack appeared above me and the light shined through it. "C'mon Matty! Wake up!" Pinkie's voice said through the light.
I looked around to see the world around me was breaking apart, like the bright light behind it was dissolving it and sucking it up piece by piece.
I returned my attention to Twilight and saw her colours become dim, her eyes glowed purple before she screeched like some kind of ghoul, I watched this for a moment before I glared at her. "…You're not Twilight…" I said under my breath.
The ghoul Twilight then looked down at her chest to see a smaller crack was appearing on her, then it spread open and the light burst through it, she screeched louder in pain as her body shook.
"You…will not…have him." Celestia voice said through the light.
Then, in an instant, the light consumed ghoul Twilight and my whole world went completely white, I closed my eyes to protect my eyes from the brightness.
(Reality) Ponyville hospital
As I slowly opened my eyes, I could hear a high pitched beeping, like a heartbeat. I looked around to see colourful blares look down at me.
"I think…I think I've done it…" Celestia said as her horn stopped glowing and she backed away.
Once everything came into focus, I saw that it was the Mane 6, Spike, Celestia and Luna in the room with me. I quickly shot up from the bed and looked around in panic, Twilight quickly came to my side and placed her hoof on me. "Matt, it's alright, you're alright now." she said, trying to calm me down.
I panted heavily before I turned my head to face her, I looked at her face and the sight of her beautiful eyes calmed me down. "T-Twilight?..." I said quietly.
Twilight smiled before she got up and hugged me. "I'm so glad you're alright." She said.
I was frozen where I was, I could feel Twilight warm body against mine, I could feel her heart pounding through her chest…I could feel her. I slowly lifted my arms up and wrapped them around her, feeling like I hadn't done this is ages. I didn't waste time in hugging her back, never wanting to let go again.
Applejack then walked over to us with a warm smile on her face. "We thought we lost ya, sugarcube." She said.
Twilight and I then separated before I looked at Applejack. "You…you can call see me again?" I asked them.
Applejack gave me a confused look before she looked back at the others, who had the same confused look, Applejack returned her attention to me. "Urr, Matt…what are ya talkin' about?" she asked.
I looked around at everyone before I looked at Twilight. "I…I was dead…I became a ghost, none of you could see or hear me, I…I…" I said, started to become overwhelmed with confusion.
At that moment, Celestia stepped forward. "It's was a dream, Matthew, a dream caused by the Fear Hex. Once you became unconscious, it made you live your worst fear, which seems to be…losing us." she explained.
"It was all…just a dream?" I said to myself before I thought back to the last thing I remember, then it all came back to me, how I went to the castle to get Applebloom, how Zelga was waiting for me, how Blaze revealed himself as a traitor. Once I remembered all of those things, I looked up at Celestia. "Princess! You have to find Blaze Horn! He's the one who's been stealing the Elements this whole time!" I said loudly.
Celestia nodded. "We know, you talked while you were passed out, we also hear you say that Zelga was Thorn's sister….that came as a shock to all of us." she said.
"I still can't believe that Thorn had a sister, and she was with us in Ponyville that whole time." Rainbow Dash said as she hovered in the air.
Applejack then looked up at her. "I bet she had Big Mac tell her where my Element was and then she sent Blaze to get it along with my sister." She said.
At that moment, I noticed Luna looking down at the floor in shame. "I should have known she would do this." She muttered loud enough for everyone to hear.
Celestia turned to face her. "What did you say?" she asked curiously.
Luna looked up at Celestia and knew she couldn't keep it in any longer, she sighed before she spoke. "I knew about Zelga for a while, she came to me and tried to help me get over Matthew being engaged to Twilight Sparkle." She said in shame.
We were all silent until Celestia gave her a firm look. "Why didn't you tell us this sooner?" she asked.
Luna gave her a sad look. "Because she said she would kill Matthew if I ever told anyone about her…but I should have known she was going to try and do it anyway…I am so sorry, sister…please forgive me." she said with her ears low.
Celestia looked at the rest of us before she looked down at Luna. "We'll talk about this later." She said calmly before she returned her attention to us. "As for Zelga and Blaze Horn, I already have Shining Armor search for Blaze, but I doubt Zelga will be easy to find. If she's anything like her brother, in due time, she'll come to us." she said.
Rarity took a step closer. "Princess, remember what happened in Canterlot when Thorn attacked, we can't let that happen again." she said.
Celestia looked down at her and nodded. "I know Rarity." She said before she looked over to me and Twilight. "I'm assigning you and your friends to protect Ponyville, if we need you in Canterlot, I'll send for you." she said.
Twilight nodded. "Of course, Princess."
Celestia then walked up to my bed. "Now Luna and I must return and help search for Blaze Horn, he's a danger to everyone up there." she said before she looked at me. "Don't worry Matthew, you'll feel better soon and then you'll be back to your old self." She said with a gently voice.
I nodded. "Thanks, I just hope I don't get in this mess a second time." I said, thinking of how horrible that dream was.
Celestia smiled. "You'll be fine." She said before she looked at Twilight. "Be sure to take care of him, if Zelga really is Thorn's sister, then Matthew may be the only one who can fight her." she said.
Twilight nodded. "I'll take care of him." she said as she brushed her hoof against my mane.
With that, Celestia walked over to Luna and opened the room's door with her magic. As Luna left the room, Celestia looked back at us. "Good luck to you all." She said before she walked out of the room, leaving us before leaving the hospital completely.
Soon after that, I knew I had to have a talk with Twilight, I looked at everyone before I spoke. "Umm…can you lot give me and Twi a minute, I need to talk to her." I said.
They all looked at me before Rarity spoke. "Of course, Matthew." She said before she motioned her hoof to tell everyone else to leave with her, they all then left the room and closed the door behind them.
Once we were alone, I looked at Twilight and stared into her eyes. "Twilight…I've been a real ass for the past few days…I was so angry because of what happened to Applebloom, I didn't know whether to blame Blaze or…myself…I'm so sorry Twilight." I said with sorrow.
Twilight then gave me a gentle smile. "Matt, it's ok…I knew you were having trouble coping with it." she said.
I shook my head. "No, it wasn't ok, Twilight…it was unfair and you deserve better than that…" I said before I sighed. "Since I beat Thorn, I thought it was something else, I thought I was a guardian who protected the weak, the perfect good guy…but I'm not a perfect good guy, I'm not a guardian, I'm not a hero…I'm a guy who likes to screw with bad guys, especially the worst ones. I realized that when I brutalized Jersey. I think I've always been that way, I mean, I once hurt some kid's arm because he called me a shit-head, he didn't cry or anything, but still…I'm not the guy everyone thinks I'm am…I'm…I'm a brute." I said, feeling completely ashamed of myself.
Twilight then placed her hoof on my arm. "Hey…you're not a bad guy, if that's what you're saying. I mean, yeah, you have your angry moments, but who doesn't? You're a kind and caring person and I love you, all the good things you do make up for the bad stuff." She said with a warm smile.
I thought about it and knew she was right, I looked up at her and returned her smile. "Thanks Twilight." I said before I thought back to the dream I had. "I thought I lost you, Twilight, I thought I'd never see you again." I said.
Twilight and I then shared a warm loving hug. "You didn't…and you never will." She said full of heart.
I couldn't put into words how much I loved this mare in my arms, I wanted to wake up next to her every morning and love her every night. I thought back to what happened in the dream and thought of only one song to describe how I felt right now. "Ooooh, myyyy love…my darling, I hunnnnger for…your touch…a long…lonely time…" I sang.
Twilight heard this. "What's that song you're singing? Its beautiful." She said while still hugging me.
I smirked. "Just…something that popped in my head." I said as I kept holding Twilight tightly.
As we kept hold of each other, I looked across the room and saw Applebloom in the bed next to mine, she slowly opened her eyes and saw me before she gave me a small smile.
I smiled back before I continued to hug Twilight lovingly and I knew it was times like this I was glad to be alive.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
There isn't any Pony News and there probably won't be any until August, where I predict the rest of FIM will likely air.
The song I used for this chapter is called "Suspend my disbelief/I had a life". From the Broadway musical "Ghost the musical". If you listen to the song itself, it'll make more sense on here. And for those who haven't seen the movie Ghost, I highly recommend it, it's a classic.
Please remember to REVIEW and PM!
The next chapter will be up as soon as possible.
66. The Bitch is Back part 1
Hi everypony and welcome back to another chapter. Sorry it took so long, the traffic was terrible lol. Nah, I was going through some personal troubles and hopefully they won't be around much longer.
I'm glad the last chapter got so much attention, I know the song I used was a little confusing, but you'd have to hear it for it to make sense.
Anyway, this will be the first part in the final fight with Zelga, I'm not sure what I'm gonna put into it, so it might be a little short. I hope you enjoy it.
Chapter 66: The Bitch is Back – part 1
Canterlot castle
The large double doors at the front of the castle burst open as a large fleet of guard galloped out, they rushed across the city and started knocking on doors before they searched the houses.
The citizens all watching in shock and confusion as the guards searched endlessly, most of them where going up to random ponies and held up a poster of Blaze Horn, asking if they had seen him, mostly ending with them shaking their heads no.
As the day went on, they kept searching, Shining Armor walked through the street in his captain armour. A guard walked up beside him and looked at him. "Captain, we've searched the first quarter of the city and still no sign of Blaze Horn." He said.
Shining Armor turned his head to face him. "Keep searching, if he's still here, the Princess wants him found!" he ordered.
The guard nodded and saluted. "Yes sir!" he said before he rushed off to keep searching.
Once alone, Shining looked down at the floor and sighed. "I can't believe you did this, Blaze, I thought we were friends…" he said as he thought back to all the good times he had with Blaze, and how they were all just a cover up.
The countless guards practically tore the city apart looking for Blaze, but so far, they had no luck, some began to wonder if he was even in the city anymore.
Meanwhile: Mount Forbidden
Through the green pool, Blaze watched the guards search for him tirelessly, he just smirked at how much time they were wasting. "Go ahead, search, search 'till your hearts content, you'll never find me." he said before he chuckled darkly.
Zelga then walked up from behind and stood beside Blaze. "So my son, are you ready to begin the first part of our take over?" she asked curiously.
Blaze turned his head and looked up at Zelga. "Yes Mother, then we'll finish what Uncle Thorn started, we'll take Canterlot and take our places as the rightful rulers of Equestria." he said proudly.
"You mean…my rightful place as ruler." A dark voice said, Blaze and Zelga turned to see the Leader walk in. "You aren't a Prince yet, my student." He said as he walked up to them.
Blaze looked down at the floor, unable to face him while he answered. "Y-Yes, master." He responded.
The Leader stopped in front of him. "But before you can do any of that, there is a nuisance you must deal with first, you're true challenge." He said.
Blaze looked up at him and gave him a firm look. "Matthew…I know, but don't worry about him, he's not an issue." He said with confidence.
"Do not underestimate his abilities, he's gotten stronger since you first met him. Thorn thought the same as you, but look what happened to him…if you're going to deal with Matthew, you'll have to do it with something that can make his Element look like a cheap antique." He said before he turned his head to look back at the entrance, where Rage stood with a metal case held up in his magic.
Rage came over to them and held the case in front of Blaze. "To beat Matthew, you must become stronger than him…and this will do just that." The Leader said before Rage opened the case with his magic.
Blaze looked into the case to see an Amulet, it was in the shape of a black Alicorn and had a red gem in the middle. "I give you, the Alicorn Amulet." The Leader said as the red gem glowed for a moment.
Blaze picked it up with his magic before he examined it. "What does it do?" he asked curiously.
"It'll enhance your abilities and grant you new ones, you'll become more powerful than ever before, even Matthew will see you as a challenge." The Leader explained.
After hearing that, Blaze wasted no time in detaching the hatch and placing the amulet around his neck, then once he reattached the hatch, he felt a strong power surge through his body. He grunted and closed his eyes tight as he tried to take control over it, once he did, he slowly opened his eyes and they flashed red as he grinned evilly.
The Leader returned the grin. "How do you feel, Blaze Horn?" he asked.
Blaze was about to answer before he looked over to a large rock at the other side of the room, his horn glowed bright red before a powerful beam shot out, it struck then rock before it started cracking and then exploded. "Powerful." He said darkly.
The Leader chuckled. "Very good…now go to the training room and test your new skills, you'll need to be properly prepared for you fight with Matthew." He said in a rugged tone.
Blaze bowed his head. "Yes master." He said before he turned and made his way towards the throne room's exit, Zelga followed him before she looked back at her brothers, wondering why they were truly helping Blaze. Though her suspicions were high, Zelga soon left the room to follow Blaze.
Once they knew they were both gone, the Leader and Blaze turned to face each other. "Did you modify the Amulet like you said?" the Leader asked.
Rage nodded. "Yes, I did…I added a curse onto the Amulet, the more Blaze Horn uses it, the more it'll take him over, he'll become mad with power, eventually it'll destroy him." he said with an evil smirk.
The Leader was silent for a moment before he returned his smirk. "Excellent." He said.
As they kept talking, they didn't know that Zelga's bats, Clara and Dag, we're hanging upside-down on the ceiling above them. "Did you hear that, Dag? They've given Blaze an Amulet that's gonna suck out his soul." Clare said.
Dag tuned his head to face him. "Good riddance, he was a pain in the lower part of the fluff ball that is my body." He said, not caring at all.
"Don't you think we should tell the Mistress?" Clara asked with a firm tone.
"And do what? Mess up the Lord's plan and get in trouble with him? Sorry, but I like my head, I'd like to keep it on my neck instead of rolling on the floor." Dag said before he tucked his head back into his wings to continue resting.
Clara groaned. "Fine, be that way, but we're still going with them to this Ponyville place." She said before she continued to rest with her brother.
Meanwhile: Ponyville
I walked through the streets of Ponyville making my delivery runs for Applejack, I had already stopped by Sugar Cube Corner, the Schoolhouse and the Town Hall. I was now on my way to Fluttershy's cottage, which would be my last stop before I could go home.
I soon reached Fluttershy's cottage and knocked on the door with my hoof. Within a second, the door opened and Fluttershy emerged. "Oh, hi Matt, what are you doing here?" she asked with a kind smile.
I returned it. "I've got your delivery, a sack of freshly picked apples." I said as I looked back at the cart behind me and saw the sack.
Fluttershy then walked past me to get it. "Thanks Matt, so many of my animal friends have been waiting for these all day, especially Angel." She said as she hovered over the cart and tried to pick up the sack, but it was too heavy for her.
I tapped my hoof against the ground, waiting for her to get it, but it looked like it was gonna take longer than it seemed. I unattached myself from the cart and flew up to her. "Here, I've got it." I said before I grabbed the sack with my hooves and picked it up easily.
Fluttershy smiled. "Thanks Matt, I've been trying to get stronger, Rainbow Dash has been making me workout with her." she said.
I flew the sack into her cottage and placed it down in the kitchen. "Really? How that going for ya?" I called from the kitchen while she waited outside.
"Really good, yesterday, I finally managed to do seven wing push ups." Fluttershy said, sounding impressed with herself.
As I walked out of the cottage, I looked at her with an awkward look. "Well that's…really impressive, Fluttershy, sounds like you're really making progress." I said, actually thinking of how little a work out that was.
"Today, I'm aiming for eight." Fluttershy said with confidence before she changed the conversation. "Anyway, I'm just wondering…how you are." She asked.
I gave her a confused look. "How am I?...I'm fine, Fluttershy, why?" I asked curiously.
Fluttershy acted a little nervous, but eventually spoke. "I was just wondering because you came out of hospital not long ago, Twilight said you had a really bad dream caused by the Fear Hex." She said.
I then thought back to that time, I dreamt I had died and became a ghost, I remembered how lonely I felt and how I couldn't be with Twilight. "I…try not to think about it, but I'm fine, really." I said, giving her a small smile.
"Well ok, but if you ever want to talk or just have someone to cry with, I'm always here." Fluttershy said before she paid me for the delivery and walked past me, she went back into the cottage before she turned around to face me. "Say hi to Twilight for me." she said.
"I will, thanks." I said as I watched her close the door.
I sighed heavily as glimpse of my dream came rushing through my head, I then shook them off and went back to the front of my cart. "It was just a dream, get over it, you idiot." I said to myself before I reattached myself to the cart and turned around to leave the area.
I followed the path back to town before I made my way back to Sweet Apple Acres to return the cart and get paid.
That night
As I returned home to Twilight, I thought back to when I was in the hospital, I was in there for almost a week after I woke up, Twilight always visited and took care of me…in more ways than one, if you know what I mean.
Applebloom left a few days before me, she told me how she and her family had something called a Zap-Apple harvest, they made jam out of it and everything. She even told me how Granny Smith had to come into the School House for Family Appreciation day and told everyone how she helped found Ponyville…didn't see that coming.
I came out of hospital at least two days after that, I took things slow and stayed off work until I was back to normal, in fact, today was my first day back on the job. Now that I felt better, I dedicated my time to show and remind Twilight how much I loved her, I brought her gifts, took her out to places and was as passionate as I could be in bed.
Right now, Twilight and I were on the roof looking up at the stars, we watched them shoot by through the sky, Luna was surely putting on a show for us tonight. We both watched in awe at its beauty, but as I turned my head to face Twilight, no stars or moon could compare to her beauty.
I stared at her, unable to turn away, Twilight soon noticed this and looked at me. "What?" she asked with a small amused smile.
"Nothing, just looking at the most beautiful pony in the world." I said as I moved a little closer to her.
Twilight smiled and rolled her eyes. "Always such a flatterer, aren't you, Matt?" she said before she gave me a serious look. "Why are you so determined to be so affectionate? I know you love me and I love you just as much, you don't have to keep trying to prove that." She said.
I then sighed before I turned away. "I know, its just…I haven't felt the same since I woke up in the hospital…I remember all the things I did to Jersey and how I talked to you…I just feel really ashamed of myself." I said as my ears dropped.
Twilight then placed her hoof on my arm. "Hey, I told you not to beat yourself up so much…so you did some things in the past that you regret, that doesn't mean you're a bad person. As long as you're kind, caring and generous, you'll always be the man I fell in love with." she said before she nuzzled her head against my neck.
I smiled warmly before I kissed her head through her hair. "Thanks Twilight, I love you so damn much." I said as I nuzzled my chin against her neck.
Twilight then moved away and looked into my eyes again. "But there are a few things I'd like to know…like, what did you do before you met me? What big things happened in your life?" she said as she lied down and rested her head against my body.
I wrapped my arm around her before I thought back to my days in England. "Well lets see…in my Primary School, I once won an entire Easter competition by making a hat that looked like a big birds nest with a giant egg that had a bird toy hatching out of it." I said as I remembered how young I was back then.
Twilight giggled. "So you looked like you had a hatching bird egg on your head?" she said with an amused smile.
I nodded. "Yeah, it was very creative actually…I think my dad made it more than I did, but I was the one who wore it at the contest." I said with as I kept staring up at the sky.
"You've hidden this from me even after all the times you've joked about me being an egg-head…well, looks like I have a little something to tell Rainbow Dash if you ever call me that again." she said with a amused yet devious smile.
I chuckled. "Oh c'mon, that's not fair, this stuff is supposed to be between you and me." I said as I looked down at her.
Twilight giggled again before she spoke. "Ok, sorry, go on." she said before she waited to hear what I had to tell her.
I then thought back again and remembered something else from my Primary years. "I once got a letter from the Queen of England, everyone keeps saying that I was the only one who got one, but I could've sworn everyone got one." I said, trying to search the foggy memories for the answer.
Twilight looked up at me. "The Queen of England? You mean the ruler of your home? To get a letter for her at such a young age, you must've really impressed her." she said, sounding slightly amazed by this.
I shrugged. "I'm not sure, I don't remember what I wrote to her, to be honest." I said, not even gonna try to remember what I wrote.
"So what else did you do?" Twilight asked curiously.
I thought back to my young years again before I remembered the one thing that still causes me pain every time I thought about it. "Well…there was one thing that happened to me at Primary School…" I said before I looked out into the distance with sadness. "My Granddad died of cancer back in 2006." I said sadly.
Twilight then looked up at me with shock and felt pure sympathy. "Oh…I'm so sorry, I didn't know." She said gently.
"It's ok, it was so long ago…yet it still feels so recent." I said before I looked up at the sky, thinking Granddad was watching me even from this world's heaven. "He was a good man…I just hope I can live up to that and make him proud of me." I said.
Twilight then got up and cupped my cheek with her hoof, she made my head turn to face her and I looked into her eyes. "He will be proud of you. Look at the things you've done, you've done so much for all of us and me, he'll always love you and I think you've made him more than proud." She said with a warm loving smile.
I returned the smile before I moved my head closer to hers. "You're the best, you know that, babe?" I asked.
"Yeah, but I told you to stop calling me 'babe'." Twilight smiled with a small smile.
"Don't see it stopping any time soon." I joked before I chuckled and got a giggle from Twilight, we then moved closer and shared a loving kiss.
We kissed for a few seconds before we broke away and continued to watch the stars shoot by, the other star shined and dazzled in the calm night sky, usurping a breath taking and love-filled night.
The next day
I was still asleep at least 2 hours after the sun rose up, my eyes blinked open and I yawned. "*Yawn*…Morning Twilight." I said as I turned my head to face Twilight's side of the bed, but to my surprise, she wasn't there.
I leaned up on the bed and looked around. "Twi?" I called while looking around, but she wasn't in the room.
I got out of the bed and walked down the stairs to the lower part of the room. I began to wonder where she was before I suddenly heard a noise coming from the living room. I walked down the stairs until I reached the living room, that's when I saw Twilight standing next to Spike.
"Alright, lets try this again." Twilight said before she hovered a scroll over to Spike, he took it in his hand before he burned it with his fire breath, turning it to a poof of smoke. But instead of floating out the window, it came straight back and turned back into a scroll before falling onto the floor. "For goodness sake! Why does this keep happening?!" Twilight said, sounding frustrated.
I walked over to them and looked at Twilight. "What's wrong, Twilight?" I asked curiously.
Twilight turned to face me. "It's this scroll, Matt, it just doesn't want to spend. I've been trying to send it up to Canterlot, but it won't go up there, it just keeps coming back." she said while looking down at the scroll with an annoyed look.
I thought about this and knew it never did this before. "That's weird, they usually do send." I said before I thought of something. "Maybe I should take it up myself." I said.
Twilight turned to face me. "You don't have to do that, Matt, it's such a long trip and I don't want you to be tired out because of this." She said.
I then gave her a gentle smile. "Twilight, you need to keep calm, especially when you're carrying our kid, I'll take it up and ask Celestia why it won't send." I said before I lowered my head down and picked the scroll up with my mouth.
Twilight then gave me a loving smile. "Thanks Matt, please be back soon." She said.
I smiled and tapped my nose against hers, unable to kiss her due to the scroll in my mouth. I then walked towards the front door and opened it with my hoof. I walked out of the library and felt the warm sunlight on my body, everything seemed like a lovely day…but then I turned to look up to Canterlot and my cheerful feelings went away. The entire city was surrounded by a giant purple forcefield, electricity surged through it violently.
I was so stunned that I dropped the scroll and my mouth hung open. "Jesus…what the hell is that?" I asked myself while continuing to stair up at the trapped city.
Twilight then came out to me and wondered what I was staring at. "What's wrong, Matt? What's wrong?" she said before she looked up in the same direction I was looking at and gasped when she saw Canterlot in this state. "What's that thing?" she asked in shock.
"I don't know, it looks like some kind of forcefield." I said, not taking my eyes away from the horrific sight.
Twilight stared at it with concern. "I haven't seen anyone put a forcefield like that up there, I hope everyone's ok up there." she said, thinking about Shining, her parents and the Princesses.
I then turned to face Twilight. "I'll go up and check on them, see if I can get through." I said before I flapped my wings and started hovering in the air. "I'll be back as soon as I can." I said before I took off into the sky to head to the city.
Twilight watched as I flew away towards the city, she felt a worrying feeling and new something bad was coming. "Be safe, Matt." she said as she continued to watch me.
After a few minutes, I finally reached Canterlot and stared up in awe at the giant forcefield surrounding the city. As I tried to figure out a way in, I soon noticed Celestia and Luna fly up to me on the other side of the forcefield, they both looked scared and worried.
Celestia flew closer and tried to talk to me, but I couldn't hear her, her mouth was moving but the forcefield blocked out the sound.
I shook my head. "I can't hear you!" I said while pointing my hoof at my ear.
Celestia and Luna looked at each other before Celestia's horn glowed, a paper and scroll appear in front of her and she started to write something down. When she was done, she turned the paper around to show me what she wrote. It said "We can't get out, forcefield too strong with magic!"
Celestia then made the writing disappear before she started to write something else down. She turned the paper around to me again so I could see what she wrote. "The forcefield is air-locked! We have limited air!"
Once I read this, I began to panic. "Don't worry, I'll get you out of there!" I yelled before I summoned my Elemental armour and Horned Helmet, the crystal horn on my helmet then glowed before I pointed it at the forcefield and it shot a beam towards it.
The beam struck the forcefield, but it didn't do much good in breaking it, it actually absorbed the power from the beam. I saw this before I made the crystal on my armour glow, it shot a powerful green beam at the forcefield, but the results were the same.
I growled in frustration before my hooves glowed green brightly, I shot towards the forcefield and prepared to punch my way through. Celestia and Luna saw this and tried to tell me to stop, shaking their heads and waving their hooves, but I didn't notice.
I then struck the forcefield with my hooves, but instead of breaking it, the electricity on the forcefield struck both my hooves, I yelled in pain as I got powerfully electrocuted. I managed to pull myself off and tried to keep myself in the air as I tried to recover from it.
Luna look really concerned for me while Celestia began to write something else on the scroll, she turned it around to me to show me what she wrote. "Forcefield is electrified, we can't touch it without getting hurt."
"Electrified? Should've seen that coming." I said to myself before I returned my attention to the Princesses. "Don't worry! I'm going to get you out of there!" I said loudly, moving my mouth slowly so they could tell what I was saying, I also did movements with my hooves to make it more clear.
Celestia and Luna understood what I was saying and nodded before they watched me fly away back to Ponyville.
Suddenly, Discord appeared beside them the Princesses as a construction worker with a jackhammer, he hovered up to the forcefield and tried to drill his way through, but it didn't work and the electricity shocked Discord, his body twitched and froze in different poses while his skeleton was visible. When it finally stopped, Discord was in a daze and covered in soot, he held up a wooden sign that said 'ouch' before he tilted backwards and fell down.
Later that day: Ponyville Library
After returning home, I called everyone to the Library to let them know about the situation. The Mane 6, Spike, Jeff, Peewee and I sat in a group and tried to come up with a plan to free the city.
"So you're telling us that there's a giant forcefield around the entire city of Canterlot and there's no way to bust through it?" Applejack said while looking at me with a raised eye-brow.
I nodded. "Yeah, everyone up there is trapped and nothing can break through the forcefield, even my own Element couldn't break through it. But we'll have to find a way through it fast, the Princesses where able to told me that they had a limited amount of air…if we don't get that forcefield down soon…"
"The entire city will suffocate." Twilight said, finishing my sentence for me. "Matt, we have to get them out, my family is in there!" she said, starting to worry.
I looked at her and gave her a caring look. "Don't worry, Twilight, we'll get them out…we just have to find a way through." I said before I tapped my chin with my hoof, trying to think of a solution.
We all thought for a moment before Pinkie hopped up with cheer. "I've got an idea! Instead of going through the forcefield, we should dig under it, then we'll be able to make a tunnel leading up into the city." She said.
I thought about it for a moment before I realised that it could be done. "That's actually not a bad idea. The last time I checked, the Diamond Dogs were still in Canterlot with Discord, we can have them dig down into the mountain and come out right under on the mountain side." I said before I turned my head to face Pinkie. "Nice work, Pinkie." I said with an impressed smile.
Pinkie smiled proudly. "No problem, besides, when do I ever have bad ideas?" she asked.
I then looked into my memories and thought of something that happened not too long ago.
-Flashback-
Pinkie and I were stuck in a thunder storm and we only had one umbrella. "Are you sure about this, Pinkie? I think this is very unsafe." I said while holding her up on my shoulders.
Pinkie leaned left and right while holding the open umbrella over her head. "Sure I'm sure, we only had one umbrella. This way, we can both stay dry." She said.
Suddenly, a lightning bolt struck near us and I yelped in a high-pitched voice, hoping the next one wouldn't strike where I think it might.
-End of Flashback-
I snapped out of my train of thought and looked at Pinkie. "Let me get back to you on that." I said before I turned to face everyone else. "Alright, does anyone have any questions before we set off?" I asked curiously.
At that moment, Fluttershy raised her hoof. "Umm…I need to go to the little pony's room." she said with her back-legs twitching.
"…Alight, it's down the hall over there." I said as I pointed my hoof to the hall with my hoof.
"Umm…yeah, I already know where it is, I've been in this Library like a hundred times." Fluttershy said nervously as she walked over to the hall and started making her way to the bathroom.
"Just thought I'd remind you." I said before I sat down and we all waited for Fluttershy do finish up in the bathroom.
A little while later: Canterlot
After returning to Canterlot, we managed to find a little spot of land for everyone to stand on while we try to make contact with Princesses through the forcefield. Twilight brought a quill and paper to write messages for them to read.
We had already told them to fetch the Diamond Dogs and they were prepared for the task. I stood beside Twilight as she wrote down the message on the paper. Once finished, she turned it around for the Princesses to read. It said. "Tell the Diamond Dogs to dig as deep as they can go and them come out into the open."
Celestia nodded before she turned to face the Diamond Dogs, by the looks of her mouth moving, she was telling them what to do. They saluted before they dove down and started digging through the ground.
While they started doing that, I turned to face Twilight. "Do you think they'll be able to do it?" I asked curiously.
Twilight turned to face me. "I'm not sure, but if anyone is capable of digging a way out, it's them." she said.
We all watched and waited as the Diamond Dogs kept digging, suddenly, the Princesses became aware of something like a pair of startled meerkats. They turned their attention over to the hole where the Diamond Dogs were digging and saw them emerge up from it, they were in a rush getting out and they looked terrified.
Celestia and Luna sudden took flight and hovered in the air.
"What's going on?" I asked out-loud, concerned about what was happening.
Celestia turned to us before she wrote something down on the paper, she then turned it to us and it said "Earth Worms!"
All of us looked at them with confusion. "All that fuss over a bunch of Earth Worms?" Applejack said with a raised eye-brow.
Suddenly, a giant light-brown worm burst through the hole and pointed it's head at the Princesses, the pointed-tip head then opened to reveal its large mouth full of grinding teeth, by the looks of it, it was roaring. A few more then burst near the Princesses and they started to fight them off with their magic.
We all watched with fright as the Worms tried to attack the Princesses, they shot up out of the ground and tunnelled right into the ground once they landed. "What the hell are those things?" I asked, watching them fight off these monsters.
"I don't know, they're like Worms, but I've never seen any like this before." Twilight said as we kept watching the Princesses fight.
Eventually, the Worms had their fill before they dived into the ground and started tunnelling under, they were even kicking the dirt up so the holes they made filled back up, preventing anyone from following them.
"I may not be from here, but I know Canterlot never had Worms like this before, someone put them here." Rarity said.
I then turned to face her. "Probably the same person who put up this large forcefield. They definitely don't want anyone to leave the city." I said before I started tapping my chin. "But the question is, who would want to do this?" I asked out-loud.
While we were all trying to think, one of the Earth Worm's burst up from the ground behind us and we all went wide-eyed in surprise. "…One of those Worms is behind us right now, isn't there?" I asked.
Pinkie then turned around and saw the Worm before she returned her attention to us. "Yep." She answered.
"Ah crap…RUN!" I quickly responded.
At that moment, the Worm roared loudly and we quickly ran away from it, screaming and yelling for dear life. "Run for your life if you love it!" I yelled as we ran towards the train tracks, the best path to get back to Ponyville.
As we reached the tracks and quickly ran down them, Fluttershy and Rainbow Dash flew in the air while the rest of us stayed on the ground. "Well that didn't work very well!" Rainbow Dash said loudly while looking down at us.
"Well, there's always Plan B." I said as we kept running.
"There's a Plan B? What is it?" Applejack said from behind me.
While I kept running, I turned my head around to face her and gave her a nervous smile. "Yeah, funny thing about Plan B…I'll tell you it as soon as I come up with one." I said.
Twilight then gave me a firm look. "Matt! This is serious!" she said loudly.
I then looked at her. "I know it's serious, but I don't know what else to do. I mean, we can't go through it, we can't go under it, and the thing is like a giant dome so we can't go over it, I think it's impossible to get in there." I said as we stopped and looking back at the trapped city.
"But we have to get through it, if we don't get everyone out of there, they're gonna suffocate." Rainbow Dash said while looking down at me.
I took a moment of silence to try and think of a solution to this problem. "Well…maybe instead of trying to break through it, we should find out how it got put up in the first place." I said, looked around at everyone. "That forcefield didn't come out of no-where, someone put it up and wants to keep the city trapped, we just need to find out who put it up and why." I said with a strong tone.
"But Matt, it could've been anyone, it would take up a long time to find out who did this, time everyone in Canterlot doesn't have." Rarity said while coming up to me.
I turned to face her. "Well we have to do something, we can't just wait around and see if an answer will fall from the sky!" I said while pointing my hoof up at the sky.
At that moment, something rapidly shot down from the sky and hit the ground near us, we all yelped in shock over this and looked down at what it was. It was a black arrow with a note tied against it.
"What's that?" Pinkie asked while pointing her hoof down at the arrow.
"Looks like a note attached to an arrow, but where did it come from?" Twilight asked curiously.
I then looked around to see if I could see anything, but there was no one in sight. "But there's no one else here, and if there was, why would they send us the message this way?" I asked.
Twilight then used her magic to untie the message off the arrow and help it up to her face so she could read it.
"Unless you want the Princesses and all those little ponies to die from suffocation, you'll be in the town square tonight with the remaining Elements of Harmony, we're done toying with you and we're ready to get what we came for.
See you soon: Zelga *kiss mark*"
Once we heard that name, we all looked at each other in shock. "Zelga!" we all said loudly.
"Zelga put up that giant forcefield? I should've known, that no-good, dirty, little…" Rainbow Dash said with her anger building.
"She just doesn't know when to quit!" Applejack said with a glare. "First she tries to play friendly so she could ruin Matt and Twi's relationship, then she tried to kill Matt, and now this? Why does she keep doin' this?" she asked.
"Revenge, darling, she want's revenge for what we did to Thorn…that, and she wants the Elements." Rarity said with a brave look in her eyes.
"But we can't give her the Elements, without them, we're powerless." Fluttershy said, stepping forward with a concerned look.
Rainbow Dash then hovered down to her. "We're missing three of them anyway and they can't work without the others, we're already powerless!" she said strongly.
"Well do you wanna just give her the Elements? Just like that?" Applejack said while looking up at her.
Rainbow Dash spun around and looked down at Applejack. "We're not gonna give her anything." she said before she grinned. "Unless you've forgotten, we have a secret weapon. Matt here kicked Thorn's flank easily, beating his sister should be a piece of cake, right Matt?...Matt?" Rainbow Dash said as she turned around to face me.
I was taking a few steps back, remembering what it was like the last time I faced Zelga and all the horror she put me through, I remembered the realistic dream I had about my death and never being with Twilight again. The mere thought of going through all of that again made my fur stand on end. "Urr…I…I can't do it." I said as I backed away.
"Huh?!" The mane 6 all said at the same time in confusion. "But Matt, you're the only one who can fight her. If you don't, who knows what kind of horrors she will cause." Rarity said as she took a step forward.
I then turned to face her. "Trust me, I know, I've had a good sample of her horrors…and I don't think I can bring myself up for a second dose." I said, feeling utterly terrified of what would happen if Zelga was to use the Fear Hex on me again.
Twilight then came up to me. "But Matt, you won't be alone this time. Besides, she only managed to curse you because you were an easy target, you'll have more of an advantage against her this time. You just have to bring yourself to fight." She said.
"I can't just force myself to fight her or Blaze Horn like that, what if I lose control again like I did with Jersey. I promised myself and you that I would never brutalize anyone ever again." I said before I turned away and my ears dropped. "I hate Zelga for what she did to me…I hate Blaze for what he did to all of us…if I fight them, I don't know how I'll control myself."
Rainbow Dash then hovered down to me and gave me a firm look. "Ok, when did you suddenly turn into Fluttershy?" she said before she looked over to Fluttershy herself. "No offence." She said.
Fluttershy waved her hoof. "It's ok, I'm just glad to be included…sort of." She said with a small smile.
I looked up to Rainbow Dash. "If you saw the things I did while being in that dream, you'd feel the same way. What if you were cursed with the Fear Hex and you had a realistic dream of being denied the opportunity to become a Wonderbolt, and all your feathers start falling off piece by piece until there was nothing left?" I asked while giving her a firm look.
Rainbow Dash's strong look then turned into a slightly frightened one. "…Ok, that would be super uncool." She said before her strong look returned. "But not as uncool as you just letting Zelga force you into hiding." She said with her hooves on her hips.
I then looked down at the floor before I looked at everyone else. "….I'm sorry…but I just can't do it." I said before I spun around and took off into the air to get back to Ponyville.
The Mane 6 all watched as I went away, Twilight's ears dropped before she looked down at the ground. "Oh Matt." she said in slight pity.
A while later: Ponyville library
I was in the guest room, lying on the bed and thinking long and hard about what I should do. I knew I couldn't let Zelga take the rest of the Elements or hurt anyone in town, but I couldn't bring myself to even think about facing her again.
Every time I felt I could do it, my mind would remember what happened the last time I saw her. I remembered the horrible visions she made me have, the terrible nightmare she gave me. And if I remember correctly, I was scaring myself to death under the influence of the Fear Hex and the Princesses weren't gonna be around to save me this time.
I was stuck with hopeless knowledge and didn't know what to do, face Zelga and risk a soul crushing death or let Zelga take the Elements and possibly hurt some of the towns folk.
Suddenly, there was a knock on the door and I quickly look over to it. "Yeah?" I called.
At that moment, Twilight entered and looked over to me. "Matt?...i was just wanting to see if you were ok." She said as she walked over to the bed.
"Yeah, I'm fine…I'm just…I'm just struggling with what to do." I said before my ears dropped. "I mean, I know I can't let Zelga win…but I might die for real this time…and if everything goes the same way as that dream I had…I just can't bear the thought of it." I said as I felt like I was going to choke up.
Twilight noticed this and placed her hoof on my shoulder. "I know Matt, that's why…I think we should give Zelga the Elements." She said.
I then looked at her with shock. "You can't give Zelga the Elements! We might as well give her the Throne to Canterlot as well." I said as I sat up.
Twilight nodded with her ears down. "I know, it was a hard choice to make. But with the rest of the Elements missing, we have no power to stop her, and the Princesses are trapped so they can't help. We're left with no choice, we have to make sure she doesn't hurt anyone in town." She said with a small frown.
I then placed my hoof on top of hers. "But she'll hurt you instead, you can't expect her to come into town, take the Elements and then just go. She's Thorn's sister, she'll be more devious than that." I said, trying to make her see how crazy this all sounded.
"We don't have a choice, Matt, we have to do it…for Ponyville's sake." Twilight said before she turned away and made her way towards the door.
As I watched her leave, I quickly leaped off the bed and rushed around in front of her. "Twilight! If you get hurt, it could risk our child getting hurt…please, don't do it, we'll just hide and wait it out, there has to be somewhere we can go." I said, trying to think of another way we can handle this.
Twilight shook her head. "Like you said, she's Thorn's sister, meaning she'll be as persistent as he was. She won't leave until she gets what she's after, we'll never get away from that." She said before she looked deep into my eyes. "The only way we can get out of it is if you can bring yourself to fight her." she said.
As Twilight walked around me to leave the room, she looked back at me. "I know you're afraid of losing yourself to your anger, but just try to remember what Element you represent…and know that I'll always love you, no matter what you choose." She said before she left me alone in the room with my thoughts.
Once alone, I thought about all the things she said and looked down at a book on the floor. Unable to come up with a decision and seeing how it affected Twilight made me so frustrated that I just kicked it away hard with my hoof. "Damn!" I said loudly through my teeth.
-Meanwhile: Downstairs-
Twilight walked down the stairs and into the living room where the rest of the Mane 6 waited, they all noticed Twilight come down the stairs and they all went up to her. "Any luck?" Applejack asked curiously, but sounding like she wasn't expecting much.
Twilight shook her head. "No, Matt is still scared of what'll happen if he faces Zelga again. If only there was a way to make him brave enough to face Zelga just as he faced Thorn." She said, looking back up the stairs.
"So does this mean we'll have to give Zelga the rest of the Elements?" Fluttershy asked curiously.
Rarity turned to face her and sighed. "Apparently so, as disgusting as it is to say, I'm afraid Zelga has us out matched." She said with a sting in her voice.
Rainbow Dash then slammed her hoof down on the floor. "No way are we giving the Elements to her! We gotta get Matt to start fighting again, it's the only way to stop Zelga for good." she said with a firm voice.
Twilight took a step towards her. "We can't just ask him to start fighting again, ever since he woke up from that nightmare he had, he's been afraid of letting his anger getting the best of him like it did when Applebloom got kidnapped, do you all remember what he was like after that?" she asked.
They all looked at each other as they thought about it and remember how I was when Applebloom got kidnapped by Blaze Horn, I was a vengeful, blood thirsty beast. They all then looked back at Twilight with sympathy. "Guess we see what you mean." Pinkie said as she rubbed her left-front leg with her right-front hoof.
"But what can we do if Matt refuses to fight? We can't just give Zelga the Elements." Fluttershy said, wondering deeply about what they could do.
Applejack looked at her. "'Couse we can't." she said before she looked at the rest of them. "I dunno what Zelga and Blaze have in mind with the Elements, but if they're the ones who've been stealin' the others, one can only wonder what kind of scheme they'll cook up if they got their hooves on the rest of them." She said while thinking of what Zelga and Blaze would want the Elements for.
Twilight tapped her chin with her hoof and tried to think of a solution. She knew they couldn't give the Elements to Zelga, but they could risk the safety of the town, part of her really wanted me to feel better about myself and fight off Zelga.
Just then, Twilight thought of something that could solve everything. "I've got an idea, but we'll have to work fast! Follow me!" she said before she rushed towards the front door and left the library, the rest of Mane 6 rushed off after her to follow her.
Two hours later
Nightfall was drawing near and everyone in Ponyville was told to stay indoors until it was safe to come back out.
I was still in the guest room, staring out the window to see if I could see anything. All I could see was a bunch of dark clouds coming towards Ponyville, I gulped in fright at the thought of what was coming along with them. I then turned my attention to Canterlot and thought about all my friends up there, how they must've been suffering from the air they have left slowly running out.
I wanted to help, I truly did, but I just couldn't do it. I was too scared of being cursed again, plus, I didn't want to fight and get out of control.
"Matt?" a voice said behind me, I turned around and saw it was Jeff. "You need to get out there and protect the town, you're the only one who can stop Zelga." he said as he flew over to me.
I sighed. "I told you, I can't do that, she's too strong." I said before my ears dropped. "Who was I to think I could protect this town when I couldn't even protect myself? It was a mistake to get involved in whatever this all is, it was a mistake to go after Zelga without a backup plan."
"Then I suppose it was a mistake to come here to Equestria!" Jeff said before he landed on the bed and looked me straight in the eyes. "It was a mistake to meet Twilight, it was a mistake to become friends with the other ponies, all of this was a big mistake." He said strongly.
I gave him a small glare. "Don't you dare say that! Coming her to Equestria was the best thing that could ever happen to me! Twilight was the best thing that could ever happen to me!" I said loudly.
"Well what you're saying, what you're doing right now, it's a very dull way of showing it. You're gonna be a dad soon, Matt, you're gonna have to risk your life sometimes to protect your child. But the way things look now, you'll be lucky if you have a child to protect after this!" he said while pointing his wing out the window.
I knew well and true he was right, but the fear of being cursed still frightened the fur off me. I returned my attention to Jeff and sighed. "I know…but…but I just can't deal with this stuff right now, so please…can I have a moment to myself?" I asked calmly as I sat down while staring at the floor.
Jeff huffed before he flew away towards the door. "I'll be in my bed, Spike and Peewee are hiding out somewhere downstairs…waiting to see if Zelga will blow up the town or not. As for you, I hope you can find a way to get over this and do something before its too late." He said before he flew out the door and left the room.
I sighed heavily as I stood up and went back onto the bed, I looked out the window again and saw the clouds getting closer, it wouldn't be long now.
Meanwhile: Ponyville town square
As the sun finally finished setting, the Mane 6 stood and waited in front of the Town Hall, while most of them held a brave face, Fluttershy looked slightly nervous…no shocker there. Beside Twilight, there was a large sack, containing the rest of the Elements of Harmony.
The black clouds floated above all of Ponyville, the faint sound of thunder could be heard as the sustention grew larger. Some of them wondered where Zelga was or if she was gonna show up, while the rest wondered if I was gonna appear to help them protect Ponyville.
Suddenly, a large bolt of purple bolt of fire burst up from the ground in front of the Town Hall. When it cleared, Zelga stood tall in the centre of the area.
The Mane 6 gasped at the sight of her, they've never seen her in her Alicorn form before. The way she looked reminded them too much of Thorn.
Zelga looked at the Mane 6 and smirked. "Well look at this…us girls back together again. It seemed like only yesterday I was here, walking these very streets with you. *Sigh* Where do the good times go?" she said as she walked over to them.
"The only good time I remember was when we found out you left!" Rainbow Dash said coldly with a hate-filled glare.
Suddenly, a large black blade appeared under her chin and pressed against her neck, Rainbow turned her head to see Blaze Horn standing beside her, his eyes flashed red as he held to blade against her throat with his magic. "I'd watch my tone around her!" he growled.
Rainbow growled back before she turned away in silence.
Twilight then returned her attention to Zelga and glared at her. "Well do you want the Elements or not?" she asked in a rough voice.
Zelga grinned before she looked over to Blaze. "Blaze, be a dear and bring mother that little sack." She said in a sweet tone.
With that, Blaze picked the sack up in his magic while continuing to hold the blade against the six girls. "Momma's boy." Applejack growled under her breath.
Blaze back away until he was stood right beside Zelga, he hovered the sack up to her and she took it in her magic. She then opened the sack and looked into it to see the remaining Elements, which made her chuckle with a pleased smile. "Good girls, you're making a wise move." She said as she placed the sack down beside her.
Twilight then took a step forward. "Well now you've got the Elements, now release Canterlot from that forcefield and let them have air!" she demanded.
"But of course." Zelga said before he horn glowed dark purple, everyone then turned their attention up to Canterlot.
Meanwhile: Canterlot Castle
Princess Celestia breathed heavily as she grew weak from the air getting thinner, she steered out the window and watched as everyone in the city struggled to breathe. Luna and Cadence stood behind her, also struggling for air. "Sister…we have to find a way out…the citizens don't have long until we are completely out of air." Luna said, taking deep breaths while talking.
Celestia was about to speak before she noticed something going on with the forcefield, parts of it were opening in large holes, but they didn't get any bigger than that. Suddenly, the air they breathed in got cooler and was able to take in more than they could before.
The three Princesses breathed in deeply and took as much air in as possible. "The air…it's getting better, we're able to breathe again." Celestia said with joy as she looked back at Luna and Cadence.
Luna and Cadence smiled back before Cadence looked behind Celestia and her smile went away. "But wait, why isn't the forcefield going away?" she asked as she took a step forward.
Celestia then spun around to look out the window again to see the forcefield was indeed not going away, it only opened some holes to let the air through. "Well that shouldn't be a problem, we'll just escape through those gaps." Celestia said as she pointed her hoof up at the large holes.
At that moment, they noticed a Pegasus flying up towards one of the holes. But upon reaching it, the Pegasus was shocked by a big bolt of electricity, making it fall back down to the ground.
Celestia saw this and quickly grabbed the Pegasus in her magic, she placed him gently back down on the streets for the other ponies to tend to his injuries.
Once that was taken care of, Celestia returned her attention to the forcefield. "We may have air again, but we're still trapped…someone doesn't want us to go anywhere." She said before she closed her eyes. "Twilight…Matthew…our freedom is in your hooves." She muttered to herself.
Back in Ponyville
The Mane 6 noticed the change, but they were shocked to see the forcefield wasn't taken away completely. "Hey! We told you to let them go!" Rainbow Dash said as she hovered up into the air fast.
Zelga and Blaze looked over to them and they both smirked. "Not quite yet…I still have much to do before I leave and I'd rather not be interrupted." Zelga said before she continued. "The Princesses are trapped! You are all powerless…there is no one who can stop me from taking my revenge for Thorn's death!" she said darkly.
"You're letter said you just wanted the Elements, then you'd leave us alone unharmed!" Twilight yelled, feeling like they've all been cheated.
Zelga tapped her hoof with her chin. "Did I say that? I could've sworn I only promised to let the good ponies of Canterlot breathe again, I never said I'd leave anyone unharmed." She said with an evil smile.
"You had better leave straight away if you both know what's good for you." Rarity said, taking a step forward. "If you've forgotten, we still have Matthew with us." she said strongly.
At that moment, Zelga gave them a slightly surprised look. "Matthew?...So he survived the Fear Hex?." She asked curiously.
"Barely, no thanks to you." Twilight said in a growl.
Zelga's smirk then returned. "What can I say? The opportunity presented itself." She said before she looked around. "Speaking of which, where is the stallion of the hour? I want him to watch the things I'm gonna do to his precious home." She said, while looking around at all of Ponyville.
At that moment, Twilight's ears dropped. "He's…he's not here, he decided not to come." She said, trying to keep a tough face.
Zelga returned her attention to them and raised her eye-brow. "He's not here? Well…I must say I'm disappointed." She said with a disapproved look.
Blaze then looked up at Zelga and gave her a sharp look. "You said Matthew would be here, I've been waiting all this time to get revenge for what he did to Uncle Thorn. I want my showdown with him." he said in a frustrated growl.
Zelga then looked down at Blaze. "Don't worry, dear, you'll get your chance." She said before she looked over to the Mane 6 again. "But first, we'll probably have to draw him out." She said darkly.
"Draw this out!" Rainbow Dash said before she shot towards Zelga with all her speed.
However, Zelga shifted out of the way, making Rainbow shoot right past her. Zelga grabbed her with her magic and threw her back towards the rest of the Mane 6, causing her to crash to the ground right in front of them. "I didn't say you could move." Zelga said with a small glare.
At that moment, Twilight leaped out in front of Rainbow Dash and shot a powerful beam of magic at Zelga. Zelga managed to dodge it before he horn glowed brightly again. "Pregnant girls shouldn't be so rough!" she said before she shot a more powerful beam towards Twilight.
Twilight then quickly ducked out of the way and the beam shot right over her head, striking the wall of the Town Hall behind them. Twilight gave them a furious look before she shot another powerful beam at them.
At that moment, Blaze used his magic to force a shield in front of both himself and Zelga. After the beam struck the shield, Blaze teleported away and reappeared behind Twilight.
Twilight spun around and was shocked to see Blaze about to strike her with his hoof, but Rainbow Dash suddenly tackled him away before he could hit Twilight.
Rainbow Dash pinned Blaze to the ground and growled at him. "You're not hurting anyone! Not on my watch!" she said firmly.
Blaze's eyes flashed red before a bright light shined from his horn, Rainbow's eyes widened before she was forced to shut them. While she was blinded, Blaze's horn pulsed with electricity and gave her a powerful shock which made her fall off him.
Blaze then got back up with a pleased smirk, but that smirk quickly went away when he saw Applejack standing in front of him. She used her hoof to tilt her hat down a little in front of her face. "You kidnapped my sister…time for some pay back." she said with a sharp glare.
Blaze grinned. "A lot of guts for a farm girl." He said before she charged towards Applejack.
Applejack quickly dodge by moving out of the way at the right time, Blaze tried to throw a punch at her, but she blocked it with her arm. Applejack then spun around and slapped him in the face with her tail, stunning him along enough to give him a good strong buck in the chest.
Blaze stumbled backwards and placed his hoof on his chest, he growled in anger before her rushed back towards her to keep fighting. But while Blaze was trying to attack Applejack, Rainbow Dash reappeared behind him and got him in a headlock.
While they were holding off Blaze Horn, Twilight and Rarity were fighting off Zelga. Zelga grinning at the site, see them as only a small threat that can easily be stomped out, she pointed her horn at them and shot a powerful volt of dark purple electricity at them.
Twilight and Rarity leaped out of the way before the volt struck the ground, creating a large scorch mark in the grass.
Rarity returned her attention to Zelga and shot a small blue beam at Zelga's face, temporarily blinding her. Twilight use this opportunity to shoot Zelga in the face with a powerful beam, making Zelga stumble a little.
Once she recovered, Zelga glared at both of them before her horn glowed again. Suddenly, a bunch of thorny vines grew under both Twilight and Rarity, they wrapped around their legs and held them in place not matter how much they struggled.
Zelga grinning at this before her horn glowed violently. But before she could blast them, Twilight's horn glowed before she and Rarity teleported away, they then reappeared behind Zelga.
Surprised, Zelga spun around to face them, but was suddenly met with a powerful blast from both their horns.
Meanwhile: Library
I watched out the window as I saw flashing lights coming from the Town Square. Part of me desperately wanted to go out there and help them, but I couldn't bring myself to do it.
I even placed my hooves over my ears to stop myself from hearing all the loud boom noises, I lied down on the bed and closed my eyes tightly.
Back in the Town Square
Blaze Horn stumbled backwards and panted as he faced Rainbow Dash and Applejack, they were definitely giving him a run for his bits. Blaze's eyes flashed red again before his horn glowed brightly, but was suddenly interrupted by a water-balloon falling down onto his head.
Blaze looked up and was hit in the face by another water-balloon. While up above, Pinkie was on the roof of the Town Square with Fluttershy hovering beside her. Pinkie gave Fluttershy another water-balloon and she looked down at Blaze. "Sorry." She said quietly before she dropped the water-balloon.
It his Blaze on the head and he looked up at the with anger in his eyes, his horn glowed brightly before he shot a powerful beam up to them.
Seeing this, Pinkie quickly leaped off the roof and landed onto Fluttershy's back, much to her surprise. The beam then struck the roof while Fluttershy tried to fly away. "Pinkie! I can't hold on!" Fluttershy said as she slowly started floating down to the ground.
"Just a little more, Fluttershy!" Pinkie said, watching them getting closer to the safe ground.
But suddenly, Blaze stuck the ground with his magic and more Earth Worms burst from the ground and instantly noticed Fluttershy and Pinkie getting lower towards them, they started chopping their mouths as they got closer.
Pinkie went wide-eyed with fright before she looked at Fluttershy. "Keep flying! Keep Flying! Keep Flying!" she said repeatedly with each time getting louder.
Fluttershy bared her teeth as she started flapper her wings harder just enough to make them go a little further away from the Worms.
Meanwhile, Twilight and Rarity continued to fight off Zelga with everything they had. Zelga raised her front-hooves before she slammed them to the ground. Suddenly, the ground under her hooves started to crack, the cracks moved quickly towards Twilight and Rarity before stopping right under them.
Knowing something was going to happen, Twilight used her magic to form a shield bubble around both of them. At that moment, a bunch of black spikes shot up from the cracks. Unable to penetrate it, the spikes raised the shield bubble up with Twilight and Rarity safely inside.
Startled by how close they were to being struck by those spikes, Twilight and Rarity breathed gently, trying to stay calm. Twilight's horn glowed and they were both teleported out of the bubble and back on the soild ground.
Zelga's horn glowed brightly again before a pair of giant see-through claws appeared hovering above her, they spread their fingers wide before they both shot towards Twilight and Rarity. Seeing this, they started dodging out of the way every time the claws tried to grab them.
One of the claws then raised high above Twilight and tied to slam down on top of her, but Twilight teleported away before it could do this. She reappeared on the other side of the street and tried to zap Zelga with another powerful beam.
But before it could strike Zelga, the claw came back and shielded her from the beam. The claw then shot towards Twilight with its fingers open wide.
At that moment, Twilight shot a powerful beam of magic towards the claw, the beam was so strong that it broke right through it and struck Zelga, making her yell in pain and stumble a little. This made her lose her concentration and the claws disappeared.
Twilight smirked at this achievement, but it went away once she saw the angered look on Zelga's face. "This game ends now!" she said loudly before she pointed her horn at Twilight and shot a powerful beam at her.
Twilight then quickly pointed her horn at Zelga and also shot a powerful beam at her, the two beams then came into contact and made a strong explosion that spread dust and smoke through-out the area.
After a minute, the dust cleared and most of the Mane 6 coughed and looked around for Zelga and Blaze, but they were nowhere in sight. "W-Where did they go?" Applejack asked, trying to see them through the remaining dust.
"Don't move another inch!" Blaze's voice said loudly. They all looked over to where it came from and saw Blaze and Zelga standing beside each other, with Twilight held tightly in Zelga's magic. "Try anything, and the Unicorn gets a shock of a lifetime." Blaze said as electricity flowed through his horn.
Seeing this, the rest of the Mane 6 looked at each other before they decided they had no choice but to take a step back.
"You fools think you're so much better than everyone else, you think you know the defence between good and bad. But you know nothing about true evil! We may do bad things, but we're doing justice, to right a wrong that was made so long ago!" Blaze said, speaking from the deepest parts of his anger.
Twilight tried to get out of Zelga's magic as she looked down at Blaze. "Thorn was insane, he tried to enslave and probably kill every pony in Equestria, Matt did what he had to do." she said strongly.
Blaze then looked up at her and smirked. "I wasn't talking about that." He said, leaving Twilight confused. "But now that you mention it, this would be a good time to get revenge for Thorn's death. So tell me, where is Matthew?" he asked with a serious yet dark tone.
Twilight turned her head away, refusing to answer.
Blaze grunted. "Fine…luckily, I know his weakness…he won't back down if his loved ones are in danger. So, with that said…" he said before his horn pulsed with electricity before she shot a small bolt at Twilight, making her scream in pain.
The rest of the Mane 6 started charging towards them to try and help her, but Blaze shot another bolt at them and it shocked them all in a chained-attack. The Mane 6 screamed loudly in pain as they were powerfully shocked.
Meanwhile at the Library, I was still in the guest room, lying on the bed, when I suddenly heard the screams coming from the Town Square. I looked out the window and saw the electricity surging from it.
Once I saw that, I felt a boiling feeling inside me, I growled loudly before I flew up into the air and backed away from the window. "Screw this!" I said loudly before I shot towards the window fast. I smashed right through it and flew towards the Town Square with my speed getting quicker.
As I kept picking up speed, I pulled one hoof back as I quickly approached the Town Square, it wasn't long before I saw Blaze and Zelga up ahead. I yelled loudly and I soon shot into them with my hoof punching Blaze in the face.
Time slowed down as my punch came into contact with Blaze's face, but time soon came back up to speed as the power of my much sent Blaze flying into one of the nearby cottages, I then spun around with one of my hind-legs sticking out and it struck Zelga in the face, making her drop Twilight.
Before she could hit the ground, I swooped in and grabbed her in my arms. Twilight and I looked each other in the eyes. "Are you ok?" I asked with concern.
Twilight nodded. "I'm better now." she said with sweetness in her voice.
I then flew over to the rest of the Mane 6 and placed her down with them. "I'm sorry…I'm so sorry, I should've been here. But I promise you, all of you, I will never leave you again." I said looking at them with sorrow.
They all smiled warmly at me. "It's ok, Matt. We're just glad you finally came, now we can properly take on these ruffians." Rarity said.
"Isn't that sweet." Zelga said from behind me, I turned around and we all looked over to her. "The stallion we've been waiting for has arrived." She said as she glared at us with a sharp grin.
I took a step forward. "Stay away from my family, Zelga!" I said in a growl in my voice.
Zelga grinned. "I'm not the one who wants to fight you, Matthew, I simply want to test my strength on this town. Once I truly master the Fear Hex, I'll take it up to Canterlot and use it on every pony there, including the Princesses." She said with an evil smile.
"But we've seen what the Fear Hex does, if you do that, the entire city will tear each other apart through fear." Rainbow Dash said.
"That's the idea, then once the chaos has settled and the city is silent, I'll take the city and get it ready for it's true master." Zelga said with a wide grin.
I raised an eye-brow. "And who would that be?" I asked, curious as to who she was talking about.
Zelga chuckled. "All in good time, Matthew. But right now, I'd be more concerned about Blaze." She said.
I was confused by this until I was suddenly struck by a powerful beam of magic, it blasted me across the town and into a fruit-stand. I slowly opened my eyes to see Blaze storming towards me. "I suppose we can't talk about this." I said as he got closer to me, his shadow shrouding over me.
Blaze shook his head to say 'no' before he picked me up in his magic and threw me across the area, making me crash into the wall of one of the cottages. Once I hit the ground, I groaned in pain. "Ok…that hurt." I said as I slowly picked myself back up.
Blaze stormed over to me before he grabbed my shoulder with his hoof and forced me over onto my back, but I had a surprise for him, a lemon from the fruit-stand he threw me into. I squeezed it and the juice spurted into his face. Blaze yelled in pain as it made his eyes sting. "Ah, you little pain in the flank." He said as he rubbed his eyes with his arm.
"Buddy, you have no idea!" I said before I leaped into the air and threw my hoof down into his face, making him stumble down a little.
But while he continued to rub his eyes, his horn glowed and I was picked up again. "Oh, not agai-AHH!" I yelled as I was thrown away from the cottage and landed hard onto the grass.
I groaned as I leaned up and rolled over onto my hooves. "Ok…I'm ready this time." I said before I turned to face Blaze and saw him coming towards me.
Meanwhile, Zelga grinned again. "I'll leave you two alone, I have some town's folk to round up." she said before her body turned completely black and she sunk into th ground.
Twilight and the others rushed over to the spot where she stood, but weren't quick enough to stop her. Twilight then looked over to me. "Matt, we're gonna find Zelga and try to protect the other ponies, do you think you can keep Blaze occupied?" she asked.
I nodded. "Yeah, don't worry, I've got him right where I want him." I said with a confident smile.
With that, Twilight smiled back and nodded before she turned around to face the rest of the Mane 6, she nodded to them before they all ran off into town to try and find Zelga, leaving me behind with Blaze.
I then returned my attention to Blaze before I got into a fighting pose. "Ok Blaze, time for some pay back." I said before I summoned my Element Armour and it appeared on my body.
"I was about to say the same thing to you." Blaze said as his eyes flashed red and the amulet around his neck glowed brightly.
Blaze and I then charged towards each other before we leaped into battle, beginning the long awaited showdown.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
Again, sorry it took so long, I've been going through some problems. Hopefully I'll be back to normal soon.
If there are any spelling errors, don't worry, my buddy Aaron Thomas Vento helps with my spell check. He once said he likes to be helpful in FanFics, so if you have any chapters you want spell checking, looking him up on Twitter. But he doesn't like to be rushed, so take it slow with him.
I've been feeling a bit of self-doubt lately, so I'm gonna tell you a little about myself and then ask you a question at the end.
I'm normally a very nice person
Pleasant to be around
I like helping out when I can
I care a lot about people and animals
I sometimes get in moods, but that's only when I'm under a lot of stress
I've done some things in the past I'm not proud of and I later regret them
I try to be fair to everyone
I always try to do the right thing
Now that you know all that, answer me this. If it was all real, would I deserve to be in Equestria and would Twilight like me as a boyfriend? Leave an answer in a PM or Review.
Speaking of which, please remember to PM or Review.
Next chapter will be up as soon as it's done.
67. The Bitch is Back part 2
Hi everypony, and welcome to another chapter.
I'm glad everyone loved my last chapter and I thank all of you for your comment on the end question, it's made me feel a lot better.
By the time you all read this, I'll be on my way on Holiday back to Gran Canaria. As always, I won't be writing during that time, but I'll start when I get back.
Anyway, on with the chapter.
Chapter 67: The Bitch is Back – part 2
Blaze and I charged towards each other until Blaze leaped towards me with his horn glowing brightly. But instead of leaping at him, I decided to drop and slide under him.
While Blaze leaped over me, my hoof glowed green and I threw it up at Blaze's stomach, it struck him hard in his body and it sent Blaze flying until his back hit the ground. I stood back up and turned around to face him.
Blaze groaned before he got back up and turned around to face me. "Nice moves, now let me show you what I can do!" Blaze said with a dark grin before his horn glowed again.
Suddenly, the dark clouds above the town gathered into one spot and a powerful bolt of lightning shot down at me. Seeing this, I quickly leaped out of the way just before the lightning struck the ground where I stood. More bolts kept shooting down at me and I kept dodging them with everything I had, I even had to take into the air at some points.
But eventually, I saw an opportunity to use this attack against Blaze. I saw another powerful bolt shot down towards me, but this time, I didn't try to dodge it, I let it come towards me. Once it got close enough, I used my Elemental power to actually catch the bolt in green energy and held it between my hooves, it took the shape of a large ball and struggled to get loose.
Knowing it wasn't gonna stay caught for long, I quickly turned around to face Blaze and threw the ball down at him. Surprised by this, Blaze didn't react quick enough to avoid it and the lightning ball struck him. Blaze grunted in pain as the power of the bolt made him fly back hard into one of the cottages and crash straight through the wall.
I flew over to the cottage and landed outside the hole that Blaze made when he hit the wall, I tried to see him through the dust cloud, but I could see or hear anything. Suddenly, I saw a pair of eyes flash red through the cloud and a kitchen knife shot out towards me.
I quickly dropped to the ground as it flew over my head. Blaze then emerged from the dust cloud holding a bunch of knives with his magic. My eyes widened at this. "Aw crap." I said out-loud before Blaze rushed out to me.
I leaped backwards before Blaze started swaying and jabbing the knives at me, trying to strike me with them. It was hard, but I managed dodge his attacks, I wasn't really one to let myself get cut by knives.
As Blaze swung another one at me, I used my Element energy to make my hoof glow green and protect it from getting damaged, I then shot my hoof at the incoming knife and knocked it away hard. Blaze swung another one at me and I used my other hoof to catch it by its handle.
I was now standing on my hind-legs with a knife in my grasp. As Blaze kept swinging more knives at me, I used the one knife I had to block their attacks and sometimes knock more away out of Blaze's control. It wasn't long until Blaze had no knives left.
Blaze growled before a smirk suddenly appeared on his face, his horn glowed again before all the knives I knocked away came back and they all shot towards me. I then quickly formed a forcefield around myself and they all bounced off, one or two managed to stab through the forcefield, but they didn't get deep enough to touch me.
I then pushed my forcefield away and it disappeared while disintegrating the knives, I looked at Blaze and smirked. "Is that all you've got?" I asked him.
Blaze then smirked at me before his horn glowed brightly again. Suddenly, I felt a strong rumble under my hooves, I quickly shot up into the air and a bunch of large thorn-filled vines shot up from the ground. The lives grew upwards and tried to grab me, but I kept dodging their attempts.
I flew high up in the air as more vines came up from the ground, they kept shooting towards me to try and grab me, but I was too quick for them. However, eventually one managed to wrap itself around my hoof, I felt it's thorn's stick and scratch themselves into my leg as I tried to get it off.
But soon, more vines shot at me and wrapped themselves aroundlimbs, one even got around my neck. Once they got a good grip on me, they suddenly pulled away and tried to pull me apart. I grunted as I felt their thorns grow and jab into my body.
As I felt them stretch me out, the crystal on my Elemental armour glowed and I used the green energy to form a weed-whacker saw on the end of my hoof. It started up with a loud buzzing noise and I managed to get my arm free by cutting the vine off it. With that arm free, I started waving my hoof around and sliced every vine it came in contact with.
Eventually, all the vines had been slashed and crawled back down into the ground.
But once that happened, a powerful blast of magic shot me and sent a powerful shock through my body, I yelled in pain before I started falling. I thought for sure I was gonna hit the solid ground, but before I did, I was grabbed by magic. I looked at saw it was Blaze who caught me, but the smirk on his face made me nervous.
Suddenly, I was slammed to the ground before I was picked up and slammed down again, this went on for a few more times before I was thrown up high into the air. When I came back down, Blaze shot me with another powerful blast and I was shot into one of the nearby cottages.
I crashed through the wall and feel to the floor of the living room of the cottage, the ponies that owned it gasped in fright as they saw me. While still lying on the floor, I turned to face them. "Hi, don't mind me." I said, making it sound like nothing was wrong.
At that moment, Blaze leaped through the gaping hole in the cottage and pinned his hooves down on my throat. I grunted as I tried to get him off, but he was too strong and heavy. I reached my hoof around and tried to grab something I could use to get him off, I eventually got a piece of wood from the debris of my entry and smacked Blaze in the head with it, making him stumble off of me.
I then got back up and threw a punch at Blaze's face, Blaze then threw one back at me and it struck me across the face. Blaze tried it again, but this time I caught his hoof and threw my other hoof up under his arm, making it bend upwards a little. While he was distracted by the pain in his arm, I grabbed him by his arms and my hooves glowed green.
With the strength put into my hooves, I started to quickly rotate around in circles with Blaze in my grasp, spinning him around with me. At the right moment, I released Blaze and he went crash out through one of the windows. I looked at the ponies and waved my hoof. "Sorry about that." I said before I leaped out the window after Blaze.
Once outside, I saw Blaze getting back up from my attack, he must've got cut from the glass because he had a bleeding scratch on his cheek. "You've improved a lot since your battle with Thorn." He said with a dark tone.
I nodded. "Yeah, I've been training a lot." I said before I changed the subject. "But why, Blaze? Why did you betray us?" I asked as we started to circle each other like challenging lions.
"I never betrayed you, I was never on your side to begin with." Blaze said before he told me his story. "Years ago, when I was just a new born, my family abandoned me. But Zelga found me and saw potential in me, she and Thorn raised me into a strong Unicorn and solider. For years, we searched for the Elements of Harmony, I was given the assignment to infiltrate Canterlot and search for them from within. Once I was accepted as a guard, I met Shining Armor and Midnight Gaze, who both eventually earned the status of Captain a few years later. I searched for a long time but could never find the Elements, until your wife and her friends uncovered them and returned Luna to her true self. After that, I stayed on everyone's good side until I could snatch them. But little did I know that a nuisance like you would appear and make things more difficult. That I could get over, but then you killed Thorn, my own uncle who was like a father to me…I'll never forget that." Blaze said with a growl in his voice.
I gave him an honest look. "Thorn was mad, we was trying to kill everyone, including me. He would've destroyed Equestria if I hadn't have stopped him." I said, trying to reason with him.
"Equestria is already destroyed! For the last few years, I've heard nothing more other than stuff about Friendship and Love and how it all makes us stronger! It's all a bunch of utter garbage!" Blaze yelled in anger. "Equestria has been made weak, and it's all because of Celestia. For Equestria to be properly saved, Celestia and her rule must fall!" he said strongly.
I then gave him a sharp glare. "Over my dead body." I said with the crystal on my Elemental armour glowing.
"That's the idea!" Blaze said before his horn glowed and he shot another powerful blast of magic at me.
At that moment, I summoned my horned helmet and I shot a powerful blast of green magic at his beam. The two beams then struck each other and they both caused a powerful explosion in the process. Blaze tried to see me through the dust, but he couldn't see a thing.
Suddenly, a green beam shot through the dust and struck his hooves, freezing them in strong ice instantly. Blaze tried to pull his hooves free, but he couldn't even budge them. I then shot through the dust and punched him right in the body, I struck him so hard that it broke the ice on his hooves and it sent him flying into the air. But that wasn't enough to stop him.
Blaze's horn glowed brightly again before a pair of see-through bat wings appeared on his back, allowing him to fly in the air with me. "So, you want to take this into the sky, do ya? Fine by me!" Blaze yelled before he shot down towards me.
I gasped loudly before I shot up high to avoid his attack, Blaze flew after me and we were soon in a flying chase through Ponyville. I looked back at him and saw him shooting powerful beams at me. As they missed, they shot into some of the cottages and blew chunks out of them.
I quickly turned my body around so I was now flying on my back, my crystal horn glowed and I shot beams back at him. Blaze tilted left and right to avoid my attacks. Seeing how it wasn't gonna do much good, I rolled my body back the right way and returned my attention to where I was going, but was shocked to see I was flying right towards a cottage.
I quickly pulled up and flew upwards towards the sky, Blaze pulled up also and followed me.
While still flying upwards towards the sky, I looked back and saw Blaze still chasing me. I returned my attention to where I was going before I tried to think of something to do. That's when I realized if I couldn't shake him, I'd face him. I flew up a little higher before I stopped and dove down towards Blaze.
Blaze was surprised, but he wasn't frightened, in fact this was what he wanted. He flew upwards faster to get me where he wanted me.
We both flew rapidly towards each other before I smirked, I then wrapped myself in a ball and I used my Elemental power to seal myself in a force-field orb, spikes grew all over it as I fell faster towards Blaze.
Seeing this, Blaze was shocked and tried to think of a way to avoid it, but he wasn't quick enough and I struck into him, we both fell down back into Ponyville and we crashed into the ground. Being protected by the force-field, I was unharmed, more than I can say for Blaze.
After a moment, I opened my eyes to see I was in a small crater created by our impact, but I couldn't see Blaze anywhere. I looked around more, but I couldn't see him. Suddenly, a large black chain came down and attached itself around my neck. Next thing I knew, I was being hoisted out of the crater.
I was tossed up high into the air before the chain pulled down hard and I was slammed into the ground. I picked myself up and saw Blaze, he was covered in dirt and growling like an angered animal, the long black chain was held in his magic. He then pulled his head back and that made the chain pull up again.
I was then picked up again before I was slammed into the ground, this continued for a few more times before I created a green energy buzz-saw in my hoof, I pushed it up against the chain and it soon cut it off, allowing me to fly up into the air freely. With the chain broken, any part of the chain left around my neck disintegrated into nothing.
I looked down at Blaze before I grunted, deciding to play fire with fire. I created two green sword blades and held them with the magic from my horned helmet, I shot down towards Blaze with them ready to strike him.
But Blaze, using the power of the Amulet, created two black sword blades and we got caught in a sword lock. We both glared into each other's eyes. "You're not gonna win." I growled.
"Let's agree to disagree." Blaze said before his horn glowed and a small zap of electricity shot out and hit my face.
I yelped in pain and stepped backwards, I rubbed my arm against my face to rub away the uncomfortable feeling it gave me. When I opened my eyes, I was shocked to see Blaze charging towards me with his sword swaying.
I then threw my swords up and blocked his from striking me and we soon got into a sword fight, I was forced to walk backwards as Blaze's swords bashed against mine. Every time Blaze swung one of his swords, I moved mine in the way and blocked it. At some points, I managed to get a chance to swing my swords at him, but Blaze blocked my attacks just as I kept blocking his.
I was soon forced back against a wall of another cottage, this made it a little more difficult to block Blaze's attacks. As I struggled to block Blaze's swords, he eventually shot one towards me in an attempt to impale me. I quickly dodged it and it stabbed into the wall behind me. This allowed me one opportunity to attack.
I flew upwards a little and threw one of my hind-legs up and kicked him right under the chin, making him stumble backwards a little. This made him lose focus on the one sword and it disappeared. I then threw both my swords at his remaining sword and it destroyed it, both my swords being too strong to withstand.
Once Blaze recovered from my kick, he opened his eyes to see both my swords pointing right at his face. "Don't try anything!" I ordered.
Blaze then looked at me and smirked before his horn glowed again. Suddenly, his body became see-through and he started sinking into the Earth until he was completely gone. "That's the exact opposite of not trying anything!" I said loudly at the ground.
Knowing something was gonna happened, I stood still and watched everywhere, both my swords held up ready to battle. Everything was quiet, it didn't feel right at all.
Suddenly, Blaze shot up from under my body and struck me right in the chest. After returning to the surface and sending me flying, his body returned to normal and he landed perfectly on the ground.
I hit the ground hard, holding my chest due to the strong hit in just received. I weakly looked over to Blaze and saw him walking towards me, his front-hoof raised up and he struck me right in the face, making me fall back down.
I opened my eyes slowly and tasted blood in my mouth. Suddenly, I felt myself being picked up by Blaze's strong magic and forced to face him. I saw his eyes flash red before I noticed the Amulet around his neck glowing. "You were never this powerful before…what happened to you?" I asked, wondering where he learned these new powers.
"You can thank this for that." Blaze said as he tapped the Amulet with his hoof. "With this Amulet, I've become the most powerful Unicorn ever! And I'm gonna use its power to avenge Thorn, I'm gonna use its power…to KILL YOU!" He yelled before a powerful beam shot out of his horn and easily struck me like a sitting duck.
I flew across the area and soon crash landed in the ground, covering me in dirt and bruises. I weakly picked myself up before I tried to stand up, one of my front-legs hurt, but I managed to walk it off in time before Blaze appeared in a flash of light a few feet away from me.
I glared at him before I started walking towards him, then walking turned to rushing, then rushing turned to galloping, then galloping turned to speeding as I used my wings to take off into the air to fly towards him with great speed.
Blaze galloped towards me before he leaped up, I rammed into Blaze and I was now flying through the air for the both of us. Blaze and I threw countess punches at each other as I flew uncontrollably through Ponyville. I crashed through a few store signs and into some market stands, but I managed to keep flying.
I started to fly upwards into the sky as Blaze and I continued to beat each other senseless. I soon grew tired of this and grabbed Blaze with my hooves, I then threw him downwards before I shot him with a powerful beam from the controller-shaped crystal in the centre of my Elemental Armour, sending him shooting back down towards the town.
Blaze used his magic to conceal himself in a forcefield just before he hit the ground near Sweet Apple Acres.
Seeing this, I quickly flew down towards where he landed, but was shocked to see a powerful beam of magic shoot up at me. I quickly dodged it before I saw Blaze down below, still standing and still ready for more, he kept shooting more beams at me to try and hit me.
I kept dodging them in more ways than one, I increased my speed so I would reach him quicker, avoiding every beam he shot at me.
As I got closer, Blaze stopped shooting. Instead, he grinned deviously before his horn glowed again and another Earth Worm sprung out of the ground in front of him.
Once I saw that, I quickly tried to stop myself, but I had been moving too fast to simply stop right away. With its mouth wide open, I flew right into it and it swallowed me. From inside the worm, I could only see darkness and I felt something gooey around me, I used my Elemental magic to illuminate my surroundings. I looked around where I was and saw the worms flesh and innards.
"Oh hell no!" I said to myself before I used my Elemental magic again to create a small forcefield around myself, I then quickly made it expand, growing wider rapidly.
From outside, Blaze, saw the Worm growing wider before it eventually exploded, sending goo and entrails everywhere. I then dropped down onto the brown slime covered ground and felt disgusted by it. "Aww…that's just…wrong!" I said as I shook it off my arms. "That's the most disgusting this I've ever smelt! I'm never gonna get this scent out, now Twilight and the others are gonna be complaining and Rainbow Dash will never let me live it down….Who summons a giant worm to eat someone anyway? Honestly?" I said as I stood up, being careful not to slip on the slime.
Blaze rolled his eyes before he pointed his horn at me and it glowed, a swarm of glowing green hornets then shot out of the tip and flew quickly towards me.
I yelped in fright before I turned around and flew away from the swarm, but they chased after me. I didn't know what kind of hornets they were, but I wasn't willing to find out what their stings do. I flew as fast as I could away from the swarm, I spun around and shot a beam of magic from my crystal horn, but the swarm departed and avoided it. While still flying through Sweet Apple Acres, I kept trying to shoot them with more beams and even an energy disc, but it never worked.
I kept flying through the farm, trying to think of a way to get rid of the swarm. That's when I saw a small tool shed not far away, I then got an idea that would work, but Applejack wouldn't like it very much. I turned and flew towards it as fast as I could, once there, I opened the door and got inside. I turned around to face the swarm as it got closer towards me.
I could see all the hornets within the swarm point their stingers forward, ready to stab them into my flesh. But once they were close enough, my crystal horn glowed and I teleported away, making all the hornets fly into an empty tool shed.
When they were all inside, I reappeared outside the shed and slammed the door shut and trapped the hornets inside. I could hear them buzzing in anger as they tried to break themselves out. I then stood in front of the shed and shot a powerful beam of fire from my crystal horn, instantly setting the shed on-fire. The hornets screeched as they all burned in the fire.
I exhaled in relief, knowing they wouldn't be bothering me again. I was astonished by how powerful Blaze was with that Amulet, I had to find a way to get it off him. I turned around and used every bit of my strength to blast off into the air, I flew back towards Blaze to face him straight on.
I then saw him up ahead and he soon noticed me, Blaze used his magic to make several throwing-knives appear before he threw them all towards me. My hooves glowed green before I started knocking each one away as they got close to me. I then gave my wings one hard flap before I shot towards Blaze, ramming into him like a speeding bull.
We both then flew through the air and crashed through the main doors of the barn, the door slowed us down and we both crashed into the ground. We weakly got back up before we glared at each other, we growled angrily before we charged towards each other and started throwing punches like crazy.
Sometimes I'd get Blaze in the face, sometimes he'd get me in the chest, but we never slowed down. "Why won't you just die?! Why do you keep fighting? Twilight said you were trying to avoid fighting! That you were scared of getting out of control like you did with Jersey!" Blaze said before he threw his hoof towards me to preform another punch.
I quickly caught it with my hoof before I slowly twisted it. "What I did to Jersey…it was because I wanted to…because what you did to Applebloom made me lose control. But this time is different…I'm not fighting you because I want to, I'm fighting you because I have to…because when ponies like you or anything else threaten Ponyville and my friends, there'll always be one thing to stand in your way….and that's me!" I said before I threw my body up and struck Blaze across the face with one of my hind-hooves.
Blaze stumbled backwards and tried to recover from my attack, but I quickly got him by punching him across his face, making him stumble more. Blaze quickly recovered and charged at me in an attempt to head-butt me, but I grabbed him by his head. I started spinning him around before I threw him up against the ladder that lead to the second floor of the barn.
Blaze crash through the ladder and hit the hard wall behind him.
I walked over to him, ready to counter anything he'd try to do. "The Amulet…take it off now!" I ordered with my crystal horn glowing brightly.
Blaze weakly looked up to me before he smirked. "No…way." he said before his horn glowed.
But before he could do anything, I quickly used my magic to make an object appear and I slammed it down onto his head. Once it touched his horn, Blaze felt a sharp pain in his head, like his magic was being blocked by some mystical force. Blaze looked up at his horn and saw what I put onto it.
It was a ring-like object, made from gold stone and jewels around the side, the gear-works within it grinded and made it tighten around Blaze's horn. "A Horn-Block? Where did you get one of those? I thought Princess Celestia disposed of all of them." he said.
"During my last visit to Moleyair's place, he gave me that, told me I'd need it for what was coming. Now I know what he was talking about." I said before I spun around and bucked him hard in the chest, making him grunt in pain and hold his chest.
While he was trying to recover, I walked over to a pitchfork stuck in the hay and picked it up with one hoof. I then walked back over to Blaze and stood up on my hind-legs, I held the pitchfork in both hooves and held the sharp end at Blaze's neck.
Blaze saw this and stayed perfectly still, breathing gently before he looked up into my eyes. "Do it, Matthew, kill me…just as you killed Thorn. It's in your blood now, you can't fight it and neither can I. If you don't, I promise I'll be back and make you pay, there's not a force in the world that will stop me from getting my revenge." He said with a vicious growl.
Tightening my grip around the handle of the pitchfork, I tried to think long and hard about what I was gonna do. If Blaze lives, he could endanger my family. If I kill him, I'm not better than him or Zelga. After a moment, I made my decision, I gripped the handle hard before I pulled back and then thrust towards Blaze.
Blaze closed his eyes tight, waiting for the final blow, but it never came. He slowly opened his eyes to see that the pitchfork didn't stab into him, it actually stabbed through the wall behind him with his neck trapped between the tines, pinning him against the wall unharmed.
I then went up to him and grabbed him by his horn before I slammed his head back against the wall. "If you do come back, I'll be there to kick your ass again." I said in a whisper before I punched him in the face while still holding his horn. "By the way, that was for what you did to Applebloom." I said before I released his horn.
I then turned and walked away towards the exit. "I'll tell the guards where you are…after I deal with your mother. In the meantime, don't go anywhere." I said, mocking him in his situation.
Blaze growled angrily before he grabbed the fork with his hooves and tried to pull it off, but it was too strongly wedged, he couldn't get out. "You coward! Come back here! Come back her and finish this!" he yelled, trying to get me to change my mind about letting him live.
But I didn't listen. Once I got outside, I spread my wings and flew off into the air to get back to town, where my next battled awaited. I just hoped Twilight and the others were safe.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
Nothing much to say today, no Pony News other than expect the CMC to try and get a Griffon a Cutie Mark today and the return of the Flim Flam brothers next week.
I'm still having trouble getting over some stuff I did, I don't feel like the same person I used to. I want to find the person I hurt and apologise to them, but everyone says that's probably not a possibility anymore and they might be right. Everything just feels so different. Does anyone have any helpful advice?
Please remember to review or PM
The next chapter will be up as soon as it's ready.
68. The Bitch is Back part 3
Hi everypony and welcome back! Merry Christmas!
I'm very sorry for such a long delay, I've been struggling with a lot of things lately. Endless waves of doubt and uncertainty. Some about myself, some about the show itself and other stuff.
Thanks for all your support for the last few years, I'm starting to feel a bit better now. I'm still struggling with a few things, but I'm learning to deal with it.
Anyway, on with the chapter and I hope you enjoy the final showdown with Zelga.
Chapter 68: The Bitch is Back – Part 3
After dealing with Blaze and leaving him in the Apple's barn, I flew as fast as I could back to town hoping I'd get there in time before Twilight or any of the others get hurt. Upon entering the town, I started flying around everywhere, going down every ally and over every hut.
After a few minutes, I couldn't find any of them and I started panting in panic. "Where are they?" I asked myself as I tried to find them from high up in the sky.
Suddenly, I heard a small explosion from behind, I spun around and saw a small cloud of smoke coming from the near outskirts of town, I also saw a few beams of magic shoot up from that area. Knowing where they were, I flew towards that spot as fast as possible.
Meanwhile: Near the outskirts of town
Twilight and Applejack dived down to the ground as a powerful beam of dark-purple magic shot over their heads. Applejack then turned to face Twilight with a concerned look. "Twilight, ya need to get outta here, ya can't afford to get hurt." Applejack said as she got up and helped Twilight to her hooves.
Twilight then gave Applejack a firm look. "I'm not leaving you to fight Zelga alone, you need me." she said strongly.
"If you get hurt, you'll risk ya foal getting hurt, we'd never forgive ourselves if that happens." Applejack said in an even stronger tone.
"I'm not leaving! I can handle myself, I can keep to the distance and get her from afar while you all fight her straight on." Twilight said, trying to suggest an idea.
"That's not good enough, sugarcube. Zelga knows you're pregnant with Matt's foal, She'll do anything to get revenge for what he did to Thorn, even if it means…doing the unspeakable. Ya need to get outta here where she can't find ya." Applejack said pointed her hoof to tell Twilight to go.
Twilight thought about it for a moment and actually considered it, but suddenly, another beam of magic shot right into the side of Applejack's face, knocking her down. Twilight looked in the direction it came from and saw Zelga approaching them. "You weren't gonna leave without telling me, were you?" Zelga said as her horn glowed brightly.
Twilight gasped and backed away with a slightly frightened look on her face. Once Zelga shot another beam at her, Twilight used her magic to put up a shield in front of her, protecting her from the beam. Zelga huffed before she shot another beam at her, but this one was a long streamed one, so it wasn't gonna stop.
Twilight used all her strength to keep the shield up, but Zelga's beam was powerful, she didn't know how long it would last. Zelga started approaching Twilight, making her beam even stronger against Twilight's shield. The shield started to crack under the presser and would soon break.
But before that could happen, Rainbow Dash leaped towards Zelga and grabbed her by her neck. "Leave Twilight alone!" she said before she bit down hard on one of Zelga's ears.
Zelga screamed in pain as she shot her head up, stopping the beam from firing from her horn. This gave Twilight the opportunity to get away, the shield disappeared and she started galloping away.
Meanwhile, Fluttershy hovered over to Applejack and helped her up. "Are you ok?" Fluttershy ask in concern.
Applejack rubbed her cheek with her hoof and looked up at Fluttershy. "Yeah, I'm fine, she got me by surprise." She said before she changed the subject. "Where's Twilight?" she asked.
Fluttershy lowered down to her level and landed in front of her. "She's over there, it looks like she's trying to get away." She said as she pointed her hoof at Twilight's direction, Applejack turned around and saw Twilight running back towards the town. "I think something's wrong, Twilight doesn't usually run from a fight." Fluttershy added.
"She's not running because she's scared." Applejack said before she turned her head back round to face Fluttershy. "She's trying to protect her baby, we have to keep Zelga away from her until Matt gets here." Applejack said firmly.
Fluttershy nodded. "Well maybe that won't be so hard, it looks like she didn't even notice Twilight left." She said as she and Applejack looked over to Zelga.
Rainbow Dash was still holding onto her neck with her teeth dug into Zelga's ear, Zelga was bouncing and bucking like a bull trying to throw her off. "Get off of me, you PEST!" Zelga yelled as she threw her head forward and sent Rainbow Dash flying off of her.
Rainbow Dash crashed into a pile of barrels and most of them smashed on impact, releasing a load of pickles and green water. Rainbow Dash picked herself up and saw that she was covered them both. "Eww." She said under her breath before she shook them off.
Once she did that, she was surprised to see Zelga standing right in front of her, growing in anger with her horn glowing brightly. Rainbow Dash smiled nervously before she was suddenly picked up by Zelga's magic. "You have a flight yo catch." She said before she threw Rainbow Dash up into the sky.
Rainbow yelled with fright as she kept going up higher until she disappeared in the sky, making Zelga grin with satisfaction. Suddenly, from out of nowhere, an apple struck her face and splattered all over it. Zelga groaned at this sudden attack and looked in the direction it came from.
She saw Applejack and Rarity standing a few feet away from her, Rarity was holding a bunch of apples in her magic and she dropped one down in front of Applejack, Applejack quickly used her hind-legs to kick it towards Zelga.
But Zelga was quick, her horn glowed and she caught it in her magic. Rarity and Applejack saw this, but it didn't stop them, they kept trying it again and again until Zelga had a lot of them in her grasp. Zelga smirked. "After everything I've heard, this is the best Ponyville has to offer? Well let me show you what I can do." she said before her horn glowed again.
Suddenly, all the apples she had caught fire and she threw one towards Applejack and Rarity. They both quickly got out of the way as it hit the ground, surprisingly exploding on impact. Zelga kept throwing more at the two ponies, each one missing and exploding against the ground.
After dodging a few more, Applejack got an idea that was rather risky, but she had to try. She stopped running and stood still, allowing one of the apples to fly towards her. When the right time came, Applejack quickly spun around and smacked it away with her tail, sending it right back to Zelga.
Zelga gasped as the apple smacked into another and they both exploded in front of her. This made the other apples she had detonate, creating a large explosion and sent Zelga flying away across the area.
From the sky, I saw this explosion and became worried. "What the hell is going on down there?" I said before I started flying down towards the area.
Applejack and Rarity coughed as the dust and smoke cleared. "Applejack? Are you alright?" Rarity asked in concern as she walked over to Applejack.
Applejack turned to face her and nodded. "Yeah, I'm fine. But where'd Zelga go?" she asked as she looked around for the dark Alicorn.
"I don't know, but I wouldn't relax just yet, Thorn wasn't this easy to beat." Rarity said, staying on her guard and keeping her eye out.
At that moment, I landed near them and walked over to them. "Applejack, Rarity, what's going on over her? I could see the explosions from your farm." I said as I walked over to them.
Applejack and Rarity looked over to me and came towards me. "We had a little problem with Zelga, but we're fine." She said, giving me a gentle smile.
I nodded before another question came into my mind. "Where's everyone else? Where's Twilight?" I asked, growing concerned for her safety.
"She's safe, she ran to protect herself and the baby, Fluttershy went with her. Rainbow Dash was thrown away by Zelga, I don't know where she is now, and I haven't seen Pinkie since you started fightin' Blaze." Applejack explained before a question popped into her mind. "Speakin' of which, where is he anyway?" she asked curiously.
"I left him in your barn, don't worry, he's not gonna go anywhere." I said before I turned my head around to try and find Zelga. "Where's Zelga?" I asked, keeping a sharp eye out for any sign of her.
"We don't know, that explosion blew her away somewhere, but I'm not sure where." Rarity said as she walked up beside me.
Suddenly, I felt a strange heat beneath my hooves. I was confused at first, but then I realised that something wasn't right about it. I went wide eyed before I spun to face Rarity. "Look out!" I yelled before I tackled her to get her out of the spot.
At that moment, a large bolt of purple fire burst from the ground we were just standing on. When the flames cleared, Zelga stood there, glaring down at us. "That was unexpected, but I don't think that'll happen again." she said before she notice me and grinned. "Matthew, so kind of you to join us. I hope my dear Blaze didn't suffer when you finished him." she said as she took a few steps towards me.
I then stood back up and turned around to face her. "Don't worry about him, he's alive, but he won't be coming to help you." I said in a growl as the crystal on my Elemental armour glowed.
Zelga smirked. "What makes you think I'll need help?" she said darkly as her horn glowed brightly.
I growled at her, letting her know I was ready to fight her and end this once and for all. "Applejack, Rarity, go find Twilight and the others, make sure they're safe…I'll handle Zelga." I said as I kept my eyes on Zelga.
Applejack nodded before she turned her head around to face Rarity. "You heard 'im, let's go." She said before she rushed away to find Twilight and the others. Rarity was a little against leaving me like this, but she knew I could handle it and followed Applejack, leaving me and Zelga alone.
Zelga and I glared at each other before we started walking towards each other, but soon walking turned to galloping until we were charging straight at each other. I knew Zelga was strong enough to withstand any normal attack I had, so I'd have to try something else.
Once we got close enough, we both leaded towards each other before the crystal on my Elemental armour glowed. At that moment, a powerful green beam shot out of my chest and struck Zelga, sending her shooting backwards and crashing through a few huts. I flew after her to make sure I could keep my eyes on her.
I flew through the huts she crashed through until I reached her landing sight, but she was nowhere to be seen. "Damn." I said under my breath before I tried to look around for her.
I kept looking in every direction, investigating every little noise I heard from creaking wood to twigs snapping. I breathed gently, trying to keep calm and focused in case anything unexpected happened. Suddenly, I bunch of thorny vines shot up from the ground beneath me and wrapped themselves around my entire body. "Crap, I should've seen that coming!" I said before I tried to struggle my way out of the vines.
"I wouldn't bother." A voice said behind me, I turned around to see Zelga walking around in front of me. "Those vines are from the darkest parts of the underworld, it takes a great amount of power to cut them." she said as she cupped my chin with her hoof.
I glared at her before I pulled my head away. "Interesting, shame I don't give a damn." I said before I started struggling again, but the more I moved, the tighter the vines got, it wasn't long before they had a really tight grip on me.
Zelga smirked again. "You're tough-guy was very amusing at first, but now it's just sad. We all know you prefer to be the kind caring type." She said as she grabbed me by my mane and pulled my head closer to hers.
I glared into her red glowing eyes. "Well I'm gonna tell you what I told Blaze…I'm not fighting you because I want to, I'm fighting you because I have to." I said before I used my power to summon my horned-helmet. Once that happened, I shot a powerful beam of magic from my crystal horn, making Zelga stumble backwards.
This made her lose focus on the vines and they released me, allowing me to move again. With one flap of my wings, I shot towards Zelga with both my front-hooves sticking out in front of me and I rammed into her. The two of us shot across the town, crashing through a number of huts. While still holding onto Zelga, I pulled up and we crashed through a single roof before we started going high up into the sky.
But this didn't last long as Zelga pushed herself up off of me and pulled her hoof back, she then used it to punch me across the face and we both started falling back down to the town. Zelga spread her large wings before she shot a powerful beam down at me.
I saw this and used my magic to make a shield in front of me, the beam bounced off it and shot in another direction. I then made the shield disappear before I shot my own beam up at Zelga.
Zelga shot another beam at mine and they created a small explosion on impact, making a small could of smoke between us. I could see Zelga through the smoke cloud, but I did when I saw her shoot down through it and ram into me.
We started falling down faster towards Ponyville, I knew that if I didn't do something soon, I would be the one to soften Zelga's fall. My front-hooves glowed green before I gripped Zelga's front-legs tightly. I grunted as I quickly used all my strength to turn us over so she was under me. My horn glowed before I shot a long-running beam at Zelga's face, keeping her from trying anything while we get closer to the ground.
It wasn't long before we finally hit the ground, I stood on top of Zelga while her body skidded along the grass and dirt. But just then, her red eyes shot open and she grabbed me by my head. She then leaped up onto her hooves before she used the seed we were going in to throw me ahead, making me crashing into the wall of another hut.
Zelga shook off the dirt before she made her way over to me. I saw this and weakly picked myself up, I looked up at her and threw a punch up to her head, but Zelga could in in her magic and twisted it. I grunted in pain as I felt the bone in my hoof being twisted, I turned my body to try and ease the pain a little.
"Did you really think you could be me? Thorn was younger and weaker than me, I have a lot more power than he ever had, even after stealing Luna's power." Zelga said before she picked me up and slammed me down to the ground, her hoof pushing down hard on my chest. "The power to control darkness was merely a parlour trick, anyone can be scared of the dark, I bet even you are sometimes. But the power to control anyone's fear over anything is were power truly lies…that's my power, I can make anyone's fear a reality." She said.
I looked up at her and gave her a hate-filled look. "Yeah, I know how that works…I've had a taste of your power." I said before I threw my hoof up and struck her leg, but it didn't do much.
"Ah yes, you were under the Fear Hex not long ago, weren't you?" Zelga said before she used her magic to take my helmet off and throw it away so I wouldn't use it again. "How was it? To live your greatest fear? I heard it almost killed you…tell me, would you like to live it again." she said darkly as her horn glowed brightly.
At that moment, I used my Elemental power to create a crowbar out of green energy, I swung it up at Zelga and it smacked her across the face, making her stumble off me. I quickly got back up and replaced the crowbar with small wrecking-ball, I swung my hoof up over my head and slammed it down on Zelga's back, making her grunt and drop to the ground.
"Like hell." I said before I brought my hoof up to slam the wrecking-ball down on top of her again. But suddenly, Zelga shot another powerful beam at me and sent me flying away. I crashed to the ground, but I quickly got back up to face Zelga. "Is that all you've got?" I ask as I stood in a fighting position.
Zelga glared at me before her horn glowed again and a long glowing purple whip slivered out of the tip, she spun her head around and the whip cracked against the air.
"Aw crap." I said to myself, surprised by this sudden act.
Zelga smirked before she shifted her head forward and the whip flung at me, I quickly dodged out of the way and it cracked against the ground next to me, leaving a burning slash against the dirt. Zelga pulls it back the threw it back towards me, but this time I shot up into the air to avoid its strike.
I started flying in a circle above Zelga and tried to think of something to do while avoiding her whip's strikes, I shifted from side to side as the whip cracked against the air. I spend a few seconds doing this until I saw my horned helmet still lying on the ground, I then dove down towards it to try and get it before Zelga could notice.
But Zelga did, she knew exactly what I was going for. She pulled her whip back and then threw it towards my helmet. By the time I reached my helmet, the whip wrapped around it and pulled it away from me. I spun around to see it skid along the ground until it was stopped under Zelga's hoof. "Ah-ah-ah, no toys." She said with a smirk before she picked my helmet up in her magic and threw it across the town.
Seeing the helmet fly out of reach, I tried to think of a strategy I could use without needing the helmet. It would seem my Elemental armour would have to be my only attack method. I shot down towards Zelga and my hooves glowed brightly with strength.
Zelga shot her head forward again and the whip launched itself up towards me, but this time I could it in my hoof. The energy covering my hoof was strong enough to withstand the heat from her whip. I kept pulled it on it, wanting her to pull on it. Eventually, that's what she did, she pulled down on the whip and pulled me along with it.
That's when I created a spiked ball in my hoof and struck her across the face with it when I reached her, this made her fall to the side before crashing down to the ground. I then replaced the spiked ball with a blade before I shot towards her, using my wings to boost my speed.
Once I reached her, I threw my sword down to her, but she shot her head up and caught it with her horn, using it like a sword to lock in with mine. I watched at Zelga stood back up, still pushing her horn against my sword.
Zelga then pushed me away before she tried to ram me through with her sword, but I used my blade to knock her horn away. That's when we started getting in a sword fight, sparks flew as my blade and her horn made contact.
Meanwhile: Library
Jeff and Peewee heard the fighting noises from within the Library, they were taking shelter under one of Twilight's desks. "Do you think they're ok out there?" Peewee asked curiously.
"They're fighting a dark Alicorn with stronger powers than Thorn, I don't think they'll be ok." Jeff said, looking at him with a raised eye-brow.
At that moment, Spike opened the door and walked into the room to see them under the desk. "What are you two doing under there?" he asked curiously.
Jeff and Peewee looked up at him. "We're taking cover, you should probably come under here too, anything could crash through the roof any second." Jeff said, moving aside to give Spike a space.
Spike shook his head. "No, we can't just sit here and do nothing while everyone is out there fighting. We have to help them." he said strongly.
"What can we do? We're just two birds and a baby dragon. It's not like we're gonna be much of a match for someone like that Zelga chick." Peewee said.
"We may be just two birds and a baby dragon, but we're still strong in our own way." Spike said with a confident smile before he turned around. "I'm going out there to fight with my friends. You guys can come with or stay here and hide, it's your choice." He said before he made his way back towards the door to leave.
With that, Jeff and Peewee looked at each other again before Jeff sighed. "Dang it…wait for me, Spike, I'm comin' too." He said before he came out from under the desk and flew after Spike, leaving Peewee alone.
Peewee thought about it for a moment and actually considered staying behind, but that wouldn't be like him at all. Peewee also came out from under the desk and flew after them. "You guys are gonna kill me one day, you know that?" he said as he flew out of the room.
Meanwhile: Ponyvile centre
I yelled in fright as I flew across the town and crashed into another hut, I fell through the roof and down into the living room with a hard thud. "Ow." I said as I weakly stood back up. I noticed a few scared ponies staring at me and I held my hoof up. "Don't mind me." I said before I walked over to the door and opened it to leave.
Once outside, I turned to where I last saw Zelga and saw her coming towards me with her horn glowing brightly. "You just don't know when to quit, do you, Matt?" she said before she shot a beam of magic at me.
I used my Elemental magic to make a shield appear in front of me and the beam reflected in another direction. "It's part of my charm." I said before I created a green energy disc in my hooves and threw it at Zelga.
Zelga blocked it with her wing before her horn glowed again. But this time, nothing happened, I stood there for a moment wondering what was gonna happen. Just then, I started hearing little screeching noises and what sounded like a flock of birds getting closer…a big flock.
Soon enough, I saw a big black blur coming towards us from behind Zelga. When it got closer, it revealed itself to be a giant flock of bats and they all flew past Zelga to come at me. I backed away a little, but the bats were fast, they swarmed around me and kept scratching me from different directions.
Dag and Clara flew in and landed on a street lamp, they both watched as I was swarmed by their bat friends. "Fly, my pretties. Fly! Fly!" Dag said before he chuckled evilly.
Clara looked at him with a raised eye-brow. "Why aren't we attacking him with them?" she asked curiously.
Dag turned his head to face her. "Are you kidding? I'm not getting involved in that! I'm a bat, not a hawk." He said as he crossed his wings, making Clara rolled her eyes.
I used my wings to shield myself while multiple bats swooped down and claws at my body. Starting to get tired of this game, my body glowed brightly before I expanded my arms and a green pulse burst out from around me, blowing all the bats away. Once they were all gone, I returned my attention to Zelga and smirked. "If you're so powerful, why are you fighting so poorly?" I asked while I slowly walked over to her.
Zelga returned my smirk. "So you want to see true power? Fine, I'll show you true power." She said before her horn glowed brightly again before she shot a small beam at me, it struck my face and I closed my eyes tightly.
I rubbed my arm across my face to try before I opened my eyes. That's when I saw everything shaking slightly, objects and huts in the background were going blurry as the sky grew darker.
"Aww, what's wrong, Matthew? Seeing things?" Zelga said, her voice getting deeper and echoing. Her eyes became redder as she opened her mouth to reveal dripping snake fangs. "Don't worry, it isn't the Fear Hex again, not completely anyway. It's just something to slow you down. We wouldn't want to make this to be too easy, would we?" she said as she suddenly began to duplicate.
I watched in horror as one Zelga appeared after another, until I was soon surrounded by a large group of Zelgas. I turned around to face one and threw an energy disc at her, but it went right through her, showing that Zelga was one of the fakes.
"Haha, sorry, wrong one." All the Zelga's said before one of them shot me with a beam of magic. Before I could react, they all ran around me and mixed themselves up. "Which one of us is real, Matt?" they all said before I felt a hoof strike me from the back of my head, making me fall down onto the ground.
I growled in frustration before I jumped back up and started throwing a load of energy discs everywhere, hoping one of them would strike the real Zelga. But they all just laughed as they all went right through them. "It's hard to believe my brother died by your hooves." Zelga said before all the other Zelgas disappeared, leaving nothing in sight.
I was confused at first before I heard a whistle. "Up here." Zelga's voice said. I spun around and looked up to see Zelga standing on one of the roofs of the hut, just in time to see her pounce down towards me while making a hissing noise.
Meanwhile: Ponyville market
Twilight and the others had been galloping through the town this whole time, trying to find a good place to take cover until Zelga was dealt with. But eventually, Twilight couldn't run anymore and she had to stop, she breathed deeply as she tried to catch her breath.
At that moment, Applejack rushed up beside her and placed her hoof on Twilight's shoulder. "You ok, sugarcube?" she asked with concern.
Twilight turned to face Applejack and nodded. "Yeah…I just need to a moment." She said before she thought about what she was doing, running and leaving me to fight Zelga on my own, she couldn't help but feel bad about it. "What are we doing? We can't just let Matt fight Zelga on his own, we have to help him." she said.
The other ponies then caught up with them. "We can't, Twilight, you have to keep your baby safe. Matthew wouldn't forgive us if we let you fight her." Rarity said, making a good but difficult point.
Twilight turned around to face the rest of them. "But the rest of you can help him, if anything happened to Matt, I don't know what I'd do, especially if I did nothing to try and help." She said with slight sadness in her eyes.
They all looked at each other before they returned their attention to Twilight. "Alight Twilight, you go find somewhere to hide and we'll help Matt." Fluttershy said while giving Twilight a gentle smile.
Twilight looked up at her and returned it. "Thanks Fluttershy, thank to all of you." she said, looking at Applejack and Rarity.
"Don't forget me!" A familiar voice said behind them, they all looked to where it came from and saw Pinkie standing with a large smile on her face. "Sorry it took me took long to get back, I had some work to do." she said before she pulled over an large object covering in a big white sheet.
They all looked at it with both confusion and curiosity, wondering what was under it.
Meanwhile: Ponyville town square
I flew through the streets of Ponyville while I was being chased by Zelga, I looked back to see her shooting at me with magic beams.
While we were on a straight path, I used my Elemental magic to create a green bazooka, I flew backwards while I aimed it at Zelga. I pulled the trigger with the tip of my hoof and it shot a green energy rocket at her. Zelga shifted slightly to the side as the rocket shot past her and it blew up behind her.
I shot a few more at her, but the results were the same. I made the bazooka disappeared before I came to a sudden stop, I landed on the ground and waited for Zelga to get close. Once the time was right, I used my power to create a large spiked wall in front of me, hoping Zelga would accidently fly into it.
But once she saw the wall, Zelga's horn glowed and she disappeared in a flash. I wondered where she was until she reappeared behind me in another flash. I spun around to face her, but she slammed me down to the ground with her hoof.
I groaned as I tried to pick myself back up, but she threw her hoof down again and slammed me back down. Knowing I wasn't gonna try that again, Zelga used her magic to pick me up and raised me to the same level as her face. She took a good look at my face and saw all the bruises and scratches she gave me so far. "So much for the Hero of Canterlot." She said before she lowered her horn and pointed the sharp pointy end at my throat.
I closed my eyes and grunted, trying to use whatever strength I had left to save myself, but I was too weak at the moment. For a moment, I thought this was it, but a rock suddenly struck Zelga in the face, making her yelp and drop me.
I picked myself up off the ground and looked where the rock came from, that's when I saw Applejack, Rarity, Pinkie and Fluttershy standing tall a few feet away from us. "Stay away from our friend, you evil witch!" Applejack yelled with hatred in her eyes.
Zelga turned her head to face them and chuckled. "How very noble of you all to come back, but that won't save him or any of you." she said before her horn glowed again.
But before she could do anything, I created another energy disc in my hooves and threw it at Zelga's head, but I bounced off her helmet, not afflicting any damage. "Who says we need saving?" I said, quoting what she said earlier, I then created two more discs in both my front hooves before I flew towards Zelga quickly, the discs became buzz-saws and I held them out in front of me.
I tried to strike her with the saw-discs once I reached her, but Zelga dodged it, shifting to the side. I kept throwing and swinging the blades at her, but she kept avoiding them. I was starting to get annoyed by this and started swinging harder, but she eventually grabbed my arm and struck me in the face with her hoof.
I fell down onto my back with my blades still in my hooves. Suddenly, I felt magic grasp one of my arms and made it swing up to my face with the saw still buzzing. I used my other hoof to grasp my arm and keep it away from my face. I grunted as my arm fought its way closer to my face, I turned my head to keep the blade from touching my face.
Zelga grinned evilly, knowing I couldn't hold it back forever. Suddenly, a large cake splattered against her face, the sparklers burned down towards the cake before they made small explosions against her face. This made her lose focus and release my arm from her magic, I then leaped back up and swung my arm and the saw towards her body.
The blade sliced through her shoulder, creating a large bleeding split in her flesh. Zelga screamed in pain as she held her hoof against her wound, her blood ran down her shoulder and hoof until it was starting to drip onto the ground. Zelga then wiped the cake off her face before she turned her head to see where it came from.
She saw Pinkie Pie and the others standing next to a large party cannon, bigger than her usual one, it was pained yellow with blue lightning marks all over it. "Meet the Party Cannon point-two, more powerful than my other one and it knows how to pack a punch." Pinkie said before she pulled on the string attached to the cannon and another cake with sparklers shot out of it.
The cake splattered against Zelga's chest before the sparklers made it explode against her, making Zelga stumble backwards.
I then flew over to them and landed beside them without taking my eyes off Zelga. "Nice new cannon, Pinkie, where'd you get that?" I asked Pinkie curiously.
Pinkie turned her head to face me and smiled. "I know a cannon guy." She said, leaving us to wonder what she meant.
Zelga, enraged by this attack, used her magic to melt all the cake away before she spread her wings out. "Is this all you can do? After everything I've heard, the only fight I get is this? All of you are pathetic!" Zelga yelled before she started storming over to us, but at that moment, a lightning bolt shot down from the sky and stuck her body, surprising her.
We all then looked up to where it came from and saw Rainbow Dash hovering down on a small black cloud. "Did ya miss me?" she asked with a large smirk on her face.
I smiled at this sight. "It's times like this I'm glad you're on our side." I said as she hovered down to us, still riding the cloud.
We all then returned our attention to Zelga and saw her come closer with her horn glowing brightly. "Looks like most of the gang is here, shame your wife isn't as brave as the rest of you." she said to me, trying to get to me.
I glared at her. "Trust me, if she wasn't in a health situation, she'd be right her besides us." I said strongly.
Zelga grinned. "Well whether or not you're all here, I'll deal with all of you eventually…in the meantime, I think I'm gonna enjoy this." She said before she flapped her wings and hovered up into the air, her horn glowed and purple lightning shot down from the black clouds above us, surrounding her before a large electric pulse burst out around her.
The pulse washed over the rest of us and we all suffered a large electric shock. We all fell to the ground as we tried to withstand the shock. During that time, Zelga flew over to us and grabbed me with her hooves. "But first, I should deal with the most annoying one." She said darkly before her horn glowed.
While the others were still stunned on the ground, two of the large Earth Worms burst up from the ground near them and hissed down at them.
Seeing this, I looked up at Zelga and beard my teeth. "I have that effect on people sometimes, here's an example." I said before I threw my body up and struck her under her chin with my hind-hooves, making her drop me. "I'm a very slippery basterd." I said as I fell.
I then spread my wings and start flying safely back down to the ground. Meanwhile, Zelga recovered from my attack and swooped down after me. I started flying close to the ground, hoping I'd re-join the others and keep them from getting hurt.
Applejack slowly picked herself up and felt something wet and thick drip down onto her head, she looked up and saw one of the Worms above her, drooling like a broken sink. It opened its mouth wide and showed her its mouth full of grinding sharp teeth.
As I got closer to them, I looked back and saw Zelga still chasing me. If I had any chance of helping my friends, I had to lose her. I took a sharp turn down an alley and flew down it until I reached the end. Once there, I pressed myself against the wall of the hut and waited for Zelga to follow. Soon, I heard her flying down the alley. I used my power to create and green baseball bat in my hooves, I held it up and prepared to swing it.
When the time was right, I swung it around the corner and Zelga slammed into it, she grunted as her body flopped over onto her back and fell to the ground. Zelga laid there, eyes closed and groaning from her sudden attack. I knew it would be a while before she could recover from it, so I used this time to fly back to my friends.
Meanwhile, Applejack moved backward as the other began to recover from the shock. They all saw that both their paths were cut off by the Worms, they had nowhere to go. Rainbow Dash grunted before she shot up into the air and tried to attack one of the Worms, but it's tail sprung up from the ground and smacked into her, making her crash back to the ground where she took off.
As the Worms moved closer to them, I suddenly shot through the body of one of the Worms, killing it. I had a green saw-blade in my hoof and I flew over to the other Worm and sliced through its body, cutting it in half and killing it. Once they were both dead, I landed on the ground and walked over to the others. "Are you lot ok?" I asked, covered in green worm blood.
Applejack helped Fluttershy onto her hooves before she looked over to me and nodded. "Yeah, we're fine. Thanks Matt." she said with a grateful smile.
Rarity then stood up and looked at me with disgust. "Yes, thank you. But however, darling, you seem to have something on your body." She said, finding it hard to look at me.
I gave her a confused look before I looked down at my body, seeing all the worm blood on me. "Oh…sorry." I said with a sheepish smile. Rarity then used her magic to clean my body off all the worm blood until I was completely clean again. I gave her another smile. "Thanks." I said.
At that moment, Rainbow Dash came over to me with a concerned look. "Urrr Matt, where's Zelga?" she asked curiously.
I turned my head to face her. "Don't worry, I knocked her out before I came over here." I said with a small confident smile. Just then, we started hearing a rumbling noise before we slowly turned to where it was coming from.
Suddenly, a large tornado of purple flames rose up from behind some huts. It was the exact same spot where I left Zelga. We could all feel the heat from where we were, but we wondered what it meant.
"What's going on over there?" Fluttershy asked in a frightened voiced as she backed away.
"I don't know, but I don't think it's anything good." Applejack said, having a good look at the tornado.
I looked at it for a moment before I realised that this looked really familiar, I thought back to where I had seen in before and remembered that Thorn did something similar…and when he did, he…
My eyes widened in horror once I realised what was going on. "You all need to get out of here! Now! Get somewhere safe!" I yelled as I leaped in front of them and prepared for what was coming.
They all looked at each other before they returned their attention to me with a concerned look. "What's happening, Matty?" Pinkie asked curiously.
I glared at the tornado as it started to lower until it was completely gone. "Zelga's getting an upgrade." I said, not taking my eyes away from where I last saw Zelga.
We all watched and waited as the ally glowed purple, we saw a large shadow move past it while a loud hiss could be heard. Then, the glow stopped before there was only silence. We continued to stare at the alley, waiting on edge for the slightest sight of something out of place.
Suddenly, we heard a loud crash behind us and we spun around to see a large serpent smash its way through one of the cottages. It slivered upwards and revealed itself to be a large dark-purple cobra with glowing white eyes and black markings down it's spine. It looked at us and hissed with its long fangs unfolding in it's mouth.
We all stared up at it with shock, our eyes were wide and our jaws were dropped. "Oh…that's a big upgrade." Pinkie said while staring up at it with shock.
"Any plans, Matt?" Applejack asked curiously.
"Umm…I'm gonna say…run for it!" I said loudly before created another energy disc in my hooves and threw it up at Zelga's face, it smashed against her snake nose and she shook it off.
While she was occupied, we all turned around and started galloping away. Zelga recovered from my small attack and started slivering after us, wrecking a number of objects in her path.
We kept galloping as fast as we could, Rainbow Dash soon took up into the air and started flying fast. I looked back and saw Zelga gaining on us, she hissed viciously as she got closer. "Run faster!" I yelled back to the others.
Suddenly, Fluttershy tripped up and fell to the ground. She looked back and saw Zelga stop in front of her and raise her body up, making her look more intimidating.
I saw this and skidded to a stop as the others ran past me, I took into the air and flew back to Fluttershy as fast as I could.
As Zelga lowered her head down to Fluttershy with her mouth open wide, I then shot into her mouth and use all my strength to hold her mouth open. I looked back at Fluttershy. "Go! Now!" I said, tensing up as Zelga tried to close her mouth.
Fluttershy then quickly got back up and started running away to catch up with the others.
Once she was a safe distance away, I returned my attention to Zelga and used my power to make myself stronger. "Don't…hurt...my friends!" I said as I forced her mouth open wider and flew out of it before she could slam her jaw shut.
I then created a large green hammed in my hooves and swung it down at Zelga's head, but it didn't do much damage, it just barely hurt her. She looked up at me with a glare in her eyes and I made the hammer disappear. "Umm…sorry, haha." I laughed nervously.
Zelga smirked before her tail shot up at me and grabbed me by my hide-legs. I yelped as she pulled me down and slammed me against the ground, she then raised me up and slammed me into one of the cottages. Zelga then held me up to her face and she chuckled. "What do you think, Matt? Like my new look?" she asked, admiring her snake body.
I weakly looked at her and smirked. "It's definitely an improvement." I said, trying to insult her.
Zelga knew this and just giggled. "You say that, but I think you liked my Pegasus form more. I know you liked it when I flirted with you, I could see it in your eyes. You were just too loyal to your wife to do actually do it. But, I'm nothing if not understanding…if you were to forget about these ponies and join me, maybe we could find a way to make it work. I just love a strong stallion." She said before her snake tongue slivered out of her mouth and licked up against my body.
I pulled my head away, resisting her. "Sorry babe…I'm spoken for…besides, I have a feeling you're too old for me." I said with a smirk and raised eye-brow.
Zelga hissed in growing anger. "Why you little…" she growled before she threw me down to the ground hard, she then raised her tail up and prepared to slam it down on top of me.
I recovered for the throw and rolled out of the way of her tail just before it hit the ground. I quickly created a green war-knife in my hoof and I stabbed it into Zelga's tail. Zelga hissed in pain as she pulled it away.
While she was occupied, I got up and quickly flew down another alley away from her.
Zelga used her mouth to pull the knife out and threw it away. Once she did, she noticed her I had gone and chased me down the alley, wrecking the wall of the cottages as she did. I flew as fast as I could out of the alley and back into the streets of Ponyville, with Zelga not far behind.
Meanwhile: Surgar Cube Corner
While we were fighting, Twilight had taken refuge in Sugar Cube Corner to keep herself safe from harm. She and the Cakes were hiding in the kitchen, they were all lying on the floor as they heard rumbles outside.
Twilight sighed in disappointment before she looked over to the Cakes. "I can't help but feel so useless. Matt and my friends are out there fighting Zelga and I'm hiding in here…Celestia taught me better than that." She said as her ears dropped.
Mr Cake turned her head to face her. "Well I don't think Princess Celestia ever thought about you being pregnant at the time." He said before he turned his attention to Mrs Cake, who was rubbing her pregnant belly. "We have to keep our foal safe, no matter the cost." He said as he rubbed Mrs Cake's head.
Twilight thought about what he said and knew what he meant. It was important to keep a foal safe, especially when they haven't been born yet. But then she looked at the Cakes again, she saw how much Mr Cake supported Mrs Cake, a look on his face that said he'll be there through the whole thing. She wanted that, she wanted me beside her when the baby would be born and give her the same look. But she knew, if things went wrong tonight, that would never happen.
Twilight looked down at her belly before she let a single tear run down her cheek, being overwhelmed with hopelessness.
Meanwhile: Ponyville Market
For a minute or so, I had been leading Zelga all over town to try and think of something to do. I thought back to my fight with Thorn and remembered everything I did to beat him in his Beast form. Unfortunately, there were no big buildings or lightning-rod towers in Ponyville, it was like trying to beat up a bear with a rubber glove.
I looked back to see if Zelga was still following, but she wasn't there. I stopped flying and landed in the market before I tried to search for her. "Ok, so where is she?" I asked myself, looking around for anything that could give me a clue to her whereabouts.
Just then, I started to feel a rumbling under my hooves, I looked over to one of the fruit stands and saw all the round fruit shaking and rolling off the stand. After a moment, I knew what was going on and quickly flew upwards into the sky.
At that moment, Zelga burst up out of the ground with her mouth open wide. I flew as high as I could go before I grabbed myself by my tail and yanked my body upwards, avoiding a close call when her mouth snapped shut.
Zelga then fell back to the ground before she looked up at me. "Come on Matt, at least make this fair." She called up to me.
"Umm…how 'bout no?! Ya crazy women!" I said loudly down to her as I hovered high up in the air, out of her reach. "It's a shame you can't fly in that form, at least Thorn could climb…you know, with limbs and all." I said, wiggling my arms.
Zelga scoffed. "Well I can do something that Thorn could do with his Beast form." She said before she pulled her head back, taking in a deep breath. After that, she shot her head forward with her mouth open wide and a large amount of dark-purple fire came shooting up towards me.
Seeing this, I yelped in fright before I dove downward to avoid her fire. I flew over her head as she continued to breathe fire at me, I managed to stay ahead of her roaring flames, but they were very close to touching me, I could feel the heat of the flames behind me.
I then dove down behind the fountain with a statue of a prancing mare to take cover, Zelga slivered up to it and breathed fire down upon it. Luckily, the fountain and statue were enough to shelter me. "First a Hydra, now a Snake? What's next?" I said before I looked at you with my eye-lids half-closed. "Don't answer that." I said, breaking the forth-wall.
Suddenly, Zelga's flames stopped and her large tail swung against the fountain, smashing through it and purring the water out all over the grass. I got up and spun around to face Zelga, I looked up at her as she slivered over to me. "You've been very bad!" she said before she opened her mouth and prepared to breath fire down at me again.
I then leaped out of the way as Zelga breathed fire down at me, I quickly rushed over to one of the market stands and leaped over the counter, I hid behind the counter as I wondered what I was gonna do to fight her. That's when I saw what the market was selling.
Metal pipes and plumbing tools, it must've been a supply stand for fixing bathroom stuff like baths and sinks. I could hear Zelga getting closer, slivering towards the stand and the hissing noise she made. I quickly grabbed one of the metal pipes and held it in both hooves.
"Come on out, Matt, there's nowhere to run now." Zelga said as she rose up tall in front of the stand.
I then flew up out of the stand with the pipe still in my grasp. "Who's hiding?" I said as I quickly shot up in front of her face. "Shwing!" I said loudly as I swung the pipe at her giant snake head, only for it to bounce of her.
We both stared at each other in silence, realizing it did absolutely no damage. "Umm…let me try that again." I said before I raised the pipe up over my head and slamming it down between her eyes, again, doing no harm.
I kept swing the pipe at her again and again, doing it harder and harder to at least make a bruise, but it didn't do anything. Eventually I stopped and looked at the pipe to see it was all bent up and completely ruined. "Well…that's rubbish." I said, slightly out of breath.
Zelga raised an eye-brow. "Are you done?" she asked with an unamused voice.
"This thing is." I said before I threw the broken pipe away. "Do you mind waiting here while I get something else? Like a lamppost, maybe?" I asked curiously. Zelga answered by swotting me away with her snake tail, making me crash to the ground with a hard thud. "You could've just said 'no'." I said, ignoring the pain the crash caused me.
I slowly opened my eyes to see Zelga raising her tail up above me, as it came back down, I quickly rolled out of the way just before it slammed to the ground. At that moment, I created a green hook in my hoof and swung it at Zelga's tail, making a small slash against her flesh.
Zelga hissed in pain as she pulled her tail away and wrapped the end of her tail around the slash to provide pressure, like a worm wrapping itself up when impaled on a fishing-hook. This gave me a chance to get away from her, I got back up onto my hooves before I started galloping away from her.
But this time, Zelga didn't let me get away, her tail shot out towards me and grabbed me by one of my hide-legs. She yanked me back towards her before she slammed me into one of the stands, totally destroying it. She then raised me back up before she slammed me into another, this time it was a fruit stand. Before lifting me back up, I managed to grab something to use to get myself out of this mess.
Zelga lifted me up before she tossed me into the air. As I fell back down, weak from the beating I just received, Zelga's tail wrapped around my body before she held me close to her face. "What's wrong, Matt? I thought you liked playing with pretty girls." She said as she battered her eyes.
I weakly looked up at her and smirked. "Well I must admit, from time to time, you're very easy on the eyes…but I'm not." I said before I pulled out what I grabbed from the fruit stand…a lemon. I held in in one hoof while I slammed my other hoof down on top of it, making lemon juice squirt out of it. The juice squirted into one of Zelga's eyes and she yelped at the stinging pain it caused, forcing her to drop me.
I quickly took flight before I could hit the ground and flew up high in the air above Zelga. Zelga rubbed her eye with her tail before she looked up at me with her good one, she growled in anger and stopped rubbing her eyes. "That…wasn't funny." She hissed before she breathed fire at me again.
I quickly dodged it and flew up higher. "Let me guess, it was a bit corny. Sorry, didn't have a lot to work with. Plus, it's a bit of an off day, I'm not working at my best. I usually make funnier remarks than that, but it's hard to work under these conditions." I said, trying to be witty.
Zelga rolled her eyes. "Just shut up and die!" she said before she breathed fire at me again.
Once again, I dodged and flew down towards the ground. I stopped in mid-air half-way down the street from where Zelga was. "Well come on then! If you want me so bad, come and get it!" I said as I flicked my hoof back twice, motioning her to 'come and get me'.
Zelga glared with her good and sore eyes before she slivered down the street rapidly, leaving a small blood trail behind due to the wound on her tail.
I kept hovering where I was, watching as she got closer. "Wait for it." I said under my breath, trying to time my strike perfectly.
Zelga's slivering got faster, like an actual snake that had chosen its target. It wasn't long before she got close enough to attack. Zelga then pounced up towards me with her mouth wide and her sharp fangs unfolding from within. At that moment, I used my power to create a large green brick wall in front of me.
Zelga then crashed into it and stuck there for a moment, she groaned in pain as she soon slipped down from it and feel to the ground. Once she was done, I made the wall disappear before I used my power again to create chains around her body, I even made some wrap around her mouth to keep her from breathing fire…or at least stop her from making some kind of witty remark.
I hovered down to her and as placed my hooves on my hips. "Ha! Not so tough now, are ya? Well that's what happens when you mess with the main man." I said with a small surprised smirk.
Zelga opened her eyes before she tried to escape from the chains, her body wiggled and tossed, trying to break loose.
"I wouldn't bother, love…those chains are as strong as I make them, and I've made them especially strong just for you." I said before I landed on the ground in front of Zelga, I walked up to her and rested my arm on her nose. "Now then…I don't want to kill you if I don't have to, so let's work this out like civilized ponies, yeah?" I asked with a raised eye-bow.
Zelga smirked through her chains before she closed her eyes. Just then, her body started to change colour, her black scaly skin turned into a dim grey. I watch with confusion as they happened and I prepared myself for whatever was gonna happen.
Suddenly, the top of Zelga's head started to crack and spread open, like a thin layer was breaking apart. I could see Zelga's black scales from within the growing split. I then watched as Zelga started to pull her head back and made the split larger, she kept pulling until she managed to slip her head up out from the split, tearing it apart. I looked down at where her head used to be and saw the thin see-through layer in the exact same shape as her head and face with the chains still wrapped around her snout.
That's when I realized what she was doing. That thin layer was skin, she was shedding her skin in order to escape. It made sense, her body became extra slippery in order to sliver out of her skin, but it also allowed her to slip out of the chains unharmed.
Zelga started to sliver the rest of her body out from the trap. I looked back and saw the rest of her body slipping out from its dead skin. It wasn't long before her entire body was free and her broken skin husk was all that was left in my chain-trap.
I looked up at Zelga with my mouth hanging open. "Ok…that was just nasty. Thank God Rarity wasn't her to see that." I said, imagining how she would react if she had seen something like that.
"Getting back on topic." Zelga said before she opened her mouth wide and shot her head down towards me.
I quickly reacted by creating a large green forcefield around myself, Zelga's head crashed into it before she growled in frustration. She kept striking her head at the forcefield, her teeth slamming against it each time she did. Eventually, she gave up and looked at me. "Is killing you gonna take all day?" she asked.
"Why? You in a rush?" I said before I started flapping my wings and flew up to the top of the forcefield, the forcefield then rose up with me until I was in a large bubble. "Honestly, I could do this all day." I said before I shot up to Zelga's head, still in the bubble. I then struck her in the chin before I bounced off her like a bouncy-ball.
Zelga shook it off before she glared up at me. As I dropped down to her to strike her again, Zelga lifted her tail in front of her face before she caught me. I stared at her and smiled nervously. "Haha…did I ever tell you I loved your mane? Rarity kept wondering if she should ask where you get it done." I said, trying to sweet-talk her.
Zelga smirked before she threw me down to the ground. But I was still in the bubble, so I just bounced back up into the air. However, Zelga slammed her tail back down and I fell back to the ground, then I bounced back up again. Zelga kept doing this, bouncing me up and down like a basketball, I swear she was gonna start dribbling me soon.
But instead, she caught me in her tail again before she threw me across the air. I then crashed into a cottage and part of it collapsed on top of me. "Two points!" Zelga said to herself before she slivered over to where I crashed.
After the crash, I opened my eyes in a daze to see I was still in my forcefield bubble, which protected me from the fallen rubble. I then slowly and carefully made it disappear and crawled out of the rubble unharmed. I looked back at the damage and a small smile appeared on my face. "That wasn't so bad." I said before I turned my head back around and saw Zelga standing tall in front of me. "Oh…" I said as my ears dropped.
Zelga grinned before she noticed the family of ponies that lived in the cottage that I crashed into, all huddled together and staring up at Zelga with terror. "Do you mind? We're having a little disagreement." She said with a firm look. With that, the family shot off out of the cottage and disappeared into the streets.
Once that was done, Zelga and I returned our attention to each other. "Now then…I've had more than enough of this song and dance. Time to end this!" she said before she opened her mouth wide and green liquid squirted out from her throat.
Seeing this, I quickly ducked and the liquid struck the rubble behind me. It started to give off smoke and sizzle before it started to disintegrate. I watched as the rubble burned before I looked back up at Zelga. "Fire and acid? You don't have lazar eyes, do ya?" I asked, hoping she didn't.
Zelga shrugged. "Don't know, never used this form enough to know all its kinks." She said before she bearded her fangs again. "But now's a good time to find out." She said before she hissed loudly.
Knowing this was gonna lead into another round, I stood on my hide-legs and created two green blades in my hooves. "Then let's see what other surprises we both have." I said strongly before I flew up to her to attack her again, starting another fight.
Meanwhile
On the other side of town, Applejack and the others were making sure the rest of the town's folk were safe. "Ok ya'all, I've warned the South side of town to stay indoors until this whole thing is over, did the rest of ya take care of the North, East and West?" Applejack asked curiously.
They all nodded. "Yeah, but we have to help Matt fight Zelga, there's no way he can take her on her own, especially now she all snake-y." Rainbow Dash said, hovering down in front of Applejack.
"I may have full confidence, in Matthew, but I must agree with Rainbow Dash. If Zelga truly is more powerful than Thorn, this could be Matthew's most difficult battle yet." Rarity said with a slightly concerned voice.
"But the Elements of Harmony are the only thing that makes us strong, but the Elements don't work on…whatever type of Alicorn Zelga is." Fluttershy said, taking a step forward. "How are we supposed to fight someone we can't beat?" she asked curiously.
They all look at each other, hoping someone would come up with an answer. Eventually, someone did, but it wasn't from anyone in the group. "We do have one advantage." A voice said behind them.
They all spun around to see Twilight walking up to them. "Twilight? What're you doin' here? You're supposed to be keepin' safe!" Applejack said as she watched Twilight stop in front of them.
"I can't leave Matt to fight Zelga alone, I didn't abandon him when Thorn attacked and I'm not abandoning him now." she said before she looked down at her stomach. "Even if things have changed since then."
"Twilight, you're carrying a foal now, you can't risk the safety of your baby. I want to help Matthew as much as you do, but under the circumstances, our top priority is to keep you and your baby safe." Rarity said, placing her hoof on Twilight's shoulder.
Twilight gently brushed it off. "I can't leave him, not now. Besides, I have an idea that can help us beat her. Thorn was strong, really strong, but he had a weakness that left him vulnerable to anything." she said before she looked up at the night sky. "The sun, Thorn could stand the sun, it made him weak for us to attack him. If we can raise the sun, it might help us beat Zelga." she said, returning her attention to everyone.
They all looked at her, some with a glimmer of hope, others with slight doubt. "Will that work?...I mean, I've noticed some differences between Zelga and Thorn, what if I doesn't work?" Rainbow Dash said while hovering in the air.
Twilight looked up at her. "It will work, it has to…its all we have." She said before she gave Rainbow a serious face. "Rainbow, I need you to fly up to Canterlot as fast as you can and tell Celestia to raise the sun, it's the only way to do it." she said strongly.
Rainbow Dash then salutes with her hoof. "I'm on it!" she said before she shot up towards Canterlot, leaving a rainbow trail behind her as she went.
With that done, Twilight returned her attention to the rest of the ponies. "C'mon girls, we gotta help Matthew any way we can!" she said before she galloped past them and rushed across the street, with the rest of the Mane 6 following behind.
Meanwhile: Canterlot
Rainbow Dash shot up to the trapped city and hovered in front of the forcefield, she looked around to see if there was an opening, but there wasn't. "How am I gonna do this?" she asked herself before she saw one of the giant air-holes on the top of the forcefield. "Bingo!" she smirked before she flew over it.
Once she reached it, Rainbow chuckled. "Looks like Zelga forgot to seal the whole thing, I knew she'd eventually screw up." she said before she attempted to fly through the whole and into Canterlot. But upon interaction, Rainbow received a powerful electric shock.
Rainbow Dash squealed with pain before she pushed herself away. She hovered there, twitching with her mane stuck up like a hedgehog. She used both her hooves to fix her mane before she huffed in frustration. "Ok, maybe Zelga is a little tougher than I thought." She said before she tried to think of a new way to enter the city, or at least get the Princess' attention.
Rainbow Dash flew down to the ground and thought about digging her way through, but she remembered the Earth Worms that kept everyone from doing that. She wondered if they were still there, but she wasn't willing to find out. For the moment, it looked like it was a lost cause.
Suddenly, in a flash of light, Discord appeared on the other side of the forcefield and smiled at the sight of Rainbow Dash. He stared speaking, but Rainbow couldn't hear him at all, she could only see his mouth flapping and his arms waving.
Rainbow stared at him in confusion before she spoke. "I can't hear you!" she said loudly while pointing her hoof at her ear.
Discord understood what she was saying and tried to think of a way to speak to her. He looked around before he looked at one of the giant air holes that Rainbow Dash tried to get through, he pointed up at it before he flew up towards it. Rainbow didn't know what he was up to, but she followed him up to it.
It wasn't long before they were both in the air on opposite sides of the air holes. "Rainbow Dash, I never thought I'd be so glad to see you, my dear." Discord said with glee while holding a little flag with Rainbow's cutie mark on it.
Rainbow Dash was confused by this. "Wait, I can hear you? How does that work? I couldn't hear you down there." she said, trying to understand.
Discord waved his hand. "Its elementary, my dear Dash. This strange hole allows air to flow within the city, so I assumed it allowed sound through as well. And look at this, it worked, score one for Discord." He said before he licked his finger and drew a line in the air.
Rainbow Dash rolled her eyes. "Don't pat yourself on the back just yet, buddy. Ponyville's in deep trouble and we need Celestia to raise the sun!" she said, sounding in a hurry.
Discord gave her a concerned look. "What's happening? Do you know what's caused all this? I have all the powers in the universe and even I can't escape from this dome." He said before he changed the conversation. "Why do you need the sun up so badly anyway? What's that got to do with this?" he asked curiously.
"It's a long story, we just need Celestia to raise the sun as soon as she can!" Rainbow Dash said, repeating herself.
Discord threw his eyes. "Oh fine! I try to start a conversation and I get yelled out. The times we're in, I swear." He said before he snapped his fingers and disappeared, leaving Rainbow Dash to wait for something to happen.
Meanwhile: Ponyville streets
Zelga hissed in fright and anger as she was thrown down onto one of the buildings in Ponyville, she picked herself up and looked up to see with my weapons at hand…or hoof, whatever.
I was hovering in the air while swinging two small wrecking-balls from chains wrapped around my arms. "Wanna try that again, sweet-heart?" I asked, giving her a firm look.
Zelga hissed in anger before she shot up towards me with her mouth wide open and her fangs sticking out. As she did, I swung one of the wrecking-balls over my head and it landed smack-down on top of Zelga's head, making her crash to the flat on the ground.
I then made the wrecking-balls disappear before I landed behind her. My front-hooves started to glow before I grabbed her tail and started rushing up her spine. Once I reached her head with her tail still in my grasp, I leaped off her nose and was now in front of her face. I then gave Zelga a hard kick in her nose before I started pulling her tail over my shoulder.
The rest of her body was pulled away as I threw Zelga over my shoulder and high up across the air. Giving one hard flap, I shot up into the sky to join her.
Zelga's snake body wiggled as she went high up into the sky. But once she slowed down and was about to fall, I shot up above her and dove down into her body, making us both fall down towards the town rapidly. We soon crashed into the field near Ponyville, creating a large cloud of dust.
Once everything had cleared, I picked myself up to see I was thrown from Zelga's body. I looked around until I saw her lying on the ground not far from where I was. I flew up and landed on her neck, putting me face to face with her. My front-hooves glowed before I pulled one back and punched her across the face. The green power flowing through my hooves made them as strong as stone, allowing me to deliver strong strikes.
I then punched her with my other hoof, making her head shift to the other side. I repeated punching her with hoof after hoof. But eventually, Zelga had enough and her tail whipped up and grabbed me. I grunted in pain at the tight grip she had around my body.
Zelga managed to pick herself up before she hissed in my face, she slammed me to the ground and pinned me down. With one eye being pressed against the grass, I opened my free eye to see her head move above mine. "This time, you're not getting out of this." She said before her mouth opened and she lowered her head towards me.
But before Zelga could reach me, a beam of magic shot against the side of her face. Making her stumble back and release me from her grin. I managed to get up and move away from her before I turned to see where the magic beam came from. That's when I saw Twilight and the rest of the Mane 6, excluding Rainbow Dash. "Stay away from my stallion!" Twilight said with a sharp glare on her face.
I couldn't believe Twilight was here, after she was told to stay safe by not just me, but everyone else. Part of me wanted to be angry with her for risking the safety of herself and our foal, but the other part, the biggest part, was so glad to see her. I put aside my bad feelings and rushed over to them.
Twilight galloped towards me to meet me half-way and, once we reached each other, we hugged tightly. Twilight then broke the hug and placed her hoof under my chin. "Matt, are you ok? Your face is a mess." She said, looking at my cuts and bruises.
"I'm fine, Twilight, but what are you doing here? You're supposed to be staying safe. What if you get hurt, the baby will-" I said before Twilight placed her hoof on my chest.
"I know the risks, Matthew, but I'm not willing to stand by and watch the stallion I love being beaten to a pulp." Twilight said before she rubbed her head against my neck. "I won't let you get hurt anymore, we'll face this danger together, we all will." She said, looking back at the others.
I looked at her before I looked at everyone else, I smiled warmly at them before I returned my attention to Twilight. "Well, seeing how Zelga is in her beast form, six against one seem like better odds." I said before I hug Twilight again. "Just please…stay descent from Zelga, she knows hurting you especially will affect me more than anything." I said, scared of the very thought of such a thing.
Twilight nodded. "I will, Matt, don't worry." She said with a gentle smile.
At that moment, we all heard a loud slow hiss and we turned around to see Zelga slivering over to us and chuckled. "Isn't that sweet, little Twilight has come for her handsome stallion…shame it won't last for much longer." She said before her body rose up high and her mouth dropped open, hissing while purple flames prepared to fire in her mouth.
We all took some steps back and prepared to move if things went bad. But before Zelga could do anything, another magic beam shot into the side of her face. "For goodness sake! This is getting really old!" she said as she turned her head to see where it came from.
We did the same and saw Spike, Jeff and Peewee standing not far away from us, Spike was wearing my Horned-helmet. "You want another? Have another!" Spike growled before he pointed the horn at Zelga and shot another beam at her.
Zelga used her tail to block the beam before she hissed in anger. "You shouldn't have gotten involved, little ones." She said before she grinned evilly. "Then again, all this fighting has definitely made me hungry. Anything is better than nothing, I suppose." She said before she started to sliver over to Spike, licking her lips with her snake tongue.
While she got closer, Spike backed away with Jeff and Peewee staring up at her with frightened eyes. "Urr…maybe we should've thought this through." Jeff said, feeling very small at the sight of Zelga.
As Zelga approached Spike, she was suddenly stopped when I flew up to her head and grabbed it with my hooves, I then aggressively tossed Zelga away from Spike, making her crash into the ground. Once she was dealt with, I landed in front of Spike and went up to him. "Spike, where did you get my Helmet?" I asked curiously.
Spike then took off my helmet before he held it out to me. "I found it on the ground near the Library, I thought you lost it." he said.
I then took the helmet with my hoof before I put it on my head. "Thanks buddy, Celestia knows I needed it." I said before I turned towards Zelga. "This might've just gotten easier." I said, preparing to charge at Zelga.
I watched as Zelga's snake body wiggled before she managed to get up straight, she spun around to us and hissed viciously. "Enough play time." She growled before she shot towards us while breathing fire.
We all separated to dodge the flames. We all started galloped around Zelga from both sides. Me, Applejack and Rarity went around the right side, while Twilight, Pinkie and Fluttershy went around the left. Twilight and I shot powerful beams of magic at Zelga, both beams struck both sides of her body.
While she was distracted by our magic, Pinkie ran up her spine until she was on top of her head. She then jumped up and down on it in an attempt to attack her. "Get out of our town, you big snake thing!" she yelled as she jumped harder. Zelga's tail then flunk up and whipped her flank, making her yelp as she flew off Zelga's head and hit the ground with a hard thud. "I'm ok!" she called with her face in the dirt.
Applejack then tilted her hat forward with her hoof before she galloped over to Zelga. Once she reached the side of her body, she spun around and bucked her hard. Zelga hissed before she looked down at Applejack, she made a hiss-like roar before her head shot down towards AJ.
Applejack leaped out of the way before Zelga's head struck the ground, she pulled her face out of the dirt before she tried it again, but missed again due to Applejack reflexes. Zelga soon grew tired of this act and turned to face Applejack before she took a deep breath, she then breathed fire at Applejack in an attempt to incinerate her.
Applejack's eyes shot open before she dropped to the ground, the giant bolt of fire shot over her head for a moment before it went away. Applejack looked to see if it was safe before she stood back up, but she was caught by the smell of something burning, she looked up and saw her hat was on fire a little. "Ahh!" she yelled as she threw off her hat and stomped her hoof on it to put out the flames.
Zelga smirked before she felt a gentle tap on the side of her head, she turned to see Fluttershy flying in front of her, she pulled her hoof back and pushed it forward as hard as she could. Which, in her case, was a gentle tap. Fluttershy pulled her hoof away and looked at it. "Ow." She said quietly before she looked at Zelga to see the annoyed look on her face. "S-Sorry." She said before she slowly started hovering down to the ground in awkwardness.
After that, Zelga turned around and saw me helping Pinkie Pie stand back up, she hissed before she slivered over to us rapidly. As I helped Pinkie to her hooves, I soon noticed Zelga coming straight at us and I quickly pushed Pinkie away, sending her to a safe distance. At that moment, Zelga wrapped her whole body around me and squeezed tightly, I felt like an insect being crushed by someone's hand.
Zelga's upper part of her body rose up above mine and watched as I struggled to get free, she grinned as she saw me gasping to breathe as her grip got tighter around me. Just then, she was cut off by a giant banner suddenly coming over her head and covering her eyes. This caught her by surprise and she dropped me from her grasp.
While Zelga struggled to get the banner off her face, I fell to the ground with a hard thud. I coughed and gasped for air as I weakly got back up onto my hooves. Twilight rushed over to me to check on me. "Matt, are you ok?" she asked in concern.
I breathed deeply as I turned to face her. "Yeah…I'm fine…even though I think my rip-cage has closed a little." I said between breaths before I started breathing normally again. "What happened anyway?" I said before I looked up at Zelga and saw the banner was still over her eyes.
Zelga looked as though she was having trouble getting it off, but I soon noticed the banner was covered in a light-blue glow. I wondered what it was until I noticed Rarity standing not far away from her, her horn was glowing brightly and she looked like she was struggling to focus on keeping her magic up. She was the one who got me out of that mess.
Zelga then grabbed the banner with her tail before she forced it off her face by ripping it off. She then spun around to Rarity and hissed. "I've had just about enough of you! You and your pathetic taste in fashion!" she said as her body rose up high in front of Rarity, her mouth opened and her fangs shot out.
Rarity looked up at Zelga with fear and screamed loudly, seeing Zelga about to strike down at her. She would've ran, but Zelga was so close that she would've caught her in an instant. She was scared stiff.
I saw this and took off into the air to fly to her. "Rarity! No!" I yelled as I flew, looking as though I wasn't gonna make it in time.
While Rarity continued to scream, Zelga was about to drop her head down to her to strike, but before she could, she felt a strong crushing pain on the end of her tail. Zelga yelped in pain before she turned her head around to see what was going on with her tail, that's when she saw Spike clinging to it tightly. "Leave her alone, you scally witch!" he said before he opened his mouth and bit down hard on Zelga's tail. Zelga yelped again before she raised her tail up to her head-level so her face was right in front of Spike's.
Spike opened his eyes and saw her staring at him with an angered look. Spike removed his mouth from her tail and smiled nervously. "Haha…did I say 'witch'? I meant 'beautiful snake'. I love your scales, by the way." he said as he rubbed her scales with his claw.
Zelga smiled brightly. "Why thank you." she said before her smile turned devious with a hint of evil. Suddenly, Zelga threw her tail down with Spike still attached and slammed it on top of him with a loud thud.
I stopped in mid-flight and gasped loudly at the sight of this. "Spike!" I yelled in shock and fear over how that would've hurt him. Twilight and the others saw this and had shocked looks with mixers of fright and concern.
Zelga grinned as she lifted her tail and it peeled off Spike. Spike laid on the ground, covered in dirt and bruises as he groaned in pain. He tried to get back up, but he was too weak from the hit and fell back to the ground. Zelga raised her tail up to strike it down on Spike again, but was stopped when something struck the side of her face and exploded against her.
Zelga turned to see me hovering in mid-air, holding a green baseball-bat in one hoof while holding a bomb in my other hoof. "Don't even think about it." I said before I threw the bomb into the air and whacked it with the bat when it came back down. The bomb shot down to Zelga and struck her right in the face before exploding on impact.
Zelga shook away the dusk before she growled in anger, she then stuck her neck out and breathed fire up towards me. The bat disappeared before I flew away through the air in an attempt to stay away from her fire-breath, but her long line of purple fire wasn't far behind me.
Meanwhile: Canterlot
Rainbow Dash continued to hover in front of the giant air-hole while Celestia and Luna flew up to it to speak to her. "Discord told us that you needed us to lower the moon and raise the sun. But why? What's going on down in Ponyville?" Celestia asked in a serious tone.
"It's Zelga! She's back in Ponyville and she's the one behind all this. Matt and the others are fighting her off, but I don't know how long it'll be before she gets the upper hoof. We need you to raise the sun to weaken her and give us a fighting chance!" Rainbow Dash said in a concerned voice, hoping for them to hurry up.
Celestia and Luna looked at each other before they returned their attention to Rainbow Dash. "But we may not be able to use our powers within this dome." Luna said with doubt.
"You have to try! It might be our only shot at beating her!" Rainbow Dash yelled before she realized that she just yelled at the Princesses and smiled sheepishly. "Umm…your highnesses." She said before laughing nervously.
Celestia then looked down at Ponyville and saw a small glimpse of the action going on down there, she looked up at the moon before she sighed. "We have to try, sister, for the sake of Ponyville and possibly all of Equestria." Celestia said as she turned to face Luna.
Luna looked at Celestia with a confused look. "But the dome, it'll keep our magic from having any effect on anything outside." She said, unsure of it would ever work while they were trapped there.
"We shall share our magic…it will be difficult, but it may be enough to break through Zelga's spell." Celestia said as she hovered over to Luna. Once close enough, Celestia and Luna lowered their horns towards each other until the tips touched.
At that moment, both their horns started to glow brightly until the aura started to mix. Celestia and Luna both grunted and gasped as the tips of both their horns started to glow brightly in a mix of blue and yellow magic. It built up more and more until it eventually burst in a powerful magic flash. Luna and Celestia screamed in pain as their power pushed its way through Zelga's dome.
Soon enough, the moon in the sky started to lower slowly. Rainbow Dash noticed this and smiled widely. "You're doing it, Princesses! Keep it up!" she said as she watched the moon move lower and lower while the Princesses struggled to keep up their strength.
Meanwhile: Field outside Ponyville
As the moon lowered in the sky, the girls and I continued to fight off Zelga. Unfortunately, it wasn't going as smoothly as I had hoped.
I grunted in pain as I was slammed to the ground, Zelga held my tail in her mouth as she picked me up and threw me across the area. I hit the ground hard and slid across the grass until I eventually stopped in front of Applejack. I slowly looked up at her and held my hoof up to her. "T-Tag me?" I said, struggling to talk due to the pain and possible collapsed lung.
Even if she would've done, Applejack didn't have time to tag me as I was dragged away by Zelga again. Zelga held me up high before she threw me to the ground again, she then lifted her tail and attempted to slam it down on top of me. However, before it could hit me, I used my power to form a force-field around myself. Zelga's tail slammed right on top of it, making my grunt as I struggled to keep up the force-field up.
Zelga lifted her tail and slammed it on top of me again, she did this repeatedly, making my force-field begin to crack with the impacts. Zelga knew it wasn't long before it broke, so she was gonna make this one the last, she lifted her tail up high and prepared to throw it down. But before she could, a lasso shot up and latched onto Zelga's snout, tightening her mouth shut as it pulled away.
Zelga, with her mouth sealed by the tight rope, looked to where the lasso came from and saw Applejack pulling back on the rope with her mouth. Pinkie rushed up to her and pulled on the rope with her mouth as well, doubling the strength as they attempted to pull Zelga towards them.
While she was distracted, I made the force-field disappear and flew up to Zelga's face and punched Zelga across the face, I repeated this a few times before Zelga's tail whipped out and wrapped itself around my leg and tossed me away again.
I was send flying into the sky before I caught the air with my wings and took control of my flying. Once settled, I looked down at Zelga and saw her grab the lasso rope with her tail, she yanked on the rope hard, pulling Applejack and Pinkie towards her. They both smacked into Zelga's chest they slide down her smooth under-belly before falling off onto the ground below.
Zelga then strongly opened her mouth wide and snapped the rope off her snout, she then looked down at Applejack and Pinkie Pie before she took a breath and spat acid down at them. Pinkie and Applejack rolled out of the way just when the acid was about to hit them, it burned through the ground and melted the earth. But this didn't stop her, she chased after them and kept spitting acid at them, Applejack and Pinkie struggled to run as they continuously dodged her spits.
While this was happened, I flew behind Zelga and followed her. I then created a buzz-saw disc in my hooves and threw it down towards Zelga, it struck her back and cut into her flesh, despite her touch scales.
Zelga stopped her pursuit and screamed in pain, her tail flung up and tried to pull the saw out. But suddenly, I landed on her back and struck the saw-blade, making it go in deeper and wounding her more before it disappeared. Zelga screamed again before she smacked me away with her tail, making me crash to the ground.
Applejack and Pinkie Pie stopped in their tracks and looked back to see me fighting off Zelga. They wanted to help, but they didn't know what to do, nothing they had could stop her.
Zelga shot her head down towards me, but I rolled over and her head smashed into the ground. She retracted it and attempted to do it again, but I rolled to the other side and her head smashed into the ground again. I knew I couldn't do this forever, so I quickly created a green glowing ball of light in my hooves before I threw it up at Zelga.
It struck against her face and exploded in a bright flash, Zelga yelped as she closed her eyes tightly, she rubbed her eyes with her tail to try and fix her vision.
While she was temporarily blind, I got up and galloped away towards Applejack and Pinkie, my galloping turned into flying to reach them faster. "C'mon!" I said loudly as I flew over them, Applejack and Pinkie soon started following me to get away from Zelga as she recovered. Soon enough, we came across an area with a bunch of large boulders, I dove down behind one and poked my head over it to see Applejack and Pinkie coming towards it. "Over here, quick!" I yelled to them as I waved my hoof to tell them to come faster.
After a moment, Applejack and Pinkie reached the boulder and leaped over it. The three of us hid behind it, huddled up together, hoping Zelga didn't see us. We waited a moment, but nothing happened, meaning Zelga didn't see us.
Once we knew it was safe, I looked up at the sky and saw the moon lowering closer to the horizon. "Come on, come on! Now would be a good time!" I said in a loud whisper.
Applejack breathed heavily as she turned her head to face me. "Where's Twilight and the others?" she asked with a slightly frightened look on her face.
I looked at her. "I don't know! But we have to keep Zelga away from Twilight at all cost, that's the top thing that matters to me right now." I said before I looked over the rock to see what Zelga was doing, I saw her rub her eyes with her tail before she started to blink them better.
I dropped back down and looked left and right to Applejack and Pinkie. "Ok, as long as we hide here and no-one gets her attention, we might be able to hold out until the sun goes down." I said quietly with the two girls nodding in agreement.
Suddenly, we heard slivering noise behind the rock and we knew Zelga had fixed her sight. She was looking for us. We heard her hiss as wondered around the area. Good thing this wasn't the only boulder in the area. "Little pigs, little pigs…where are you?" she said gently. "I know you're still here somewhere, but I will find you." she said before she remembered one little flaw with our hiding place and smirked. "…Marko!"
"POLO!" Pinkie yelled with cheer as she jumped out of our hiding spot.
Zelga spun around to our direction. "Gottcha!" she said before she rushed over to our boulder in a blink of an eye and breathed fire down towards it.
I grabbed Pinkie with my hooves and we all pressed ourselves against the boulder, Zelga's fire struck the back of it, but the fire didn't go around the boulder enough to reach us, we were safe. But as soon as the flames stopped, I knew Zelga would try something new, but I wasn't gonna give her the chance.
I spun around and grabbed the boulder with my glowing green hooves. I then hoisted the boulder up over my head, all the dirt and worms fell from the bottom as I lifted up high above me. As Zelga shot her head down to me with her mouth open wide, I threw the boulder up towards Zelga. It struck against her mouth and plugged it up. But this didn't stop Zelga, she bit down on the boulder hard until it smashed to pieces.
After seeing this, I stared at her with awkward wide-eyes. "Umm…guys…run!" I said loudly before I created two small axes in my hooves and flew at Zelga, ready to fight her more and give Applejack and Pinkie more time to get away to safety.
Meanwhile, Twilight and the others rushed over to attend to Spike. Jeff and Peewee were already there to try and spark some life into him. "Wake up, buddy! Wake up!" Jeff said before he slapped his wing across Spike's face, but it didn't work…no surprise.
Twilight and the others stopped in front of them and looked down at Spike in concern and worry. "Is Spike alright?" Twilight asked in concern.
Jeff looked up at her. "I don't think so, he's not waking up and he looks hurt." he said, looking down at Spike and seeing his injuries.
Twilight then used her magic to pick up Spike gently, she turned to Rarity and hovered him over to her. "Rarity, get Spike to safety, he can't stay here in this mess." She said as she lowered Spike onto Rarity's back.
Rarity instantly nodded. "Of course!" she said before she looked back at Spike with concern. "Hold on, Spikey-wikey, you'll pull through." She said before she galloped away towards the town as fast as she could.
While this was happening, Twilight looked back at Fluttershy with a serious look. "Zelga won't get away with this! We're gonna stop her, no matter what!" she said, feeling a mix of concern and anger.
Fluttershy nodded in agreement. "Ok, but do you think the Princesses will lower the moon in time?" She asked as she pointed her hoof up at the moon as it was half-way down the horizon.
Twilight turned around to face it before she sighed. "We have to hope so, otherwise Zelga will win before we have a chance to stop her." she said before she returned her attention to Fluttershy. "Which is why we need to delay her, keep her occupied until the sun comes out." She said with a serious tone. Twilight then turned around to see me and Zelga fighting in the distance. "C'mon, we've got a lot of work to do." she said before she and Fluttershy rushed towards us to help.
During this time, Zelga's tail swung at me and I blocked it with the battle-axes I held in my hooves. Her scales had proven to be tougher than I thought, my axes couldn't make a dent in them, it was like trying to stab into a car-tire. All I could do was whack in the face with them. But it only annoyed her.
Zelga hissed loudly before she spat acid at me. I quickly put up a large green shield in front of me and it blocked the acid from touching me. Once I took it down, I shot towards her with my axes, but she rose her tail up and blocked my axes. "You think you can beat me, don't you? You actually believe it! I'm stronger than Thorn ever was, I'm more powerful than then him and that's why you don't stand a chance against me! It takes more than a Sonic Rainboom to defeat me in this form!" she said as her tail started to press hard against my axes, making me lowly move downwards.
I grunted as I glared up at her. "Who…said anything about using a Sonic Rainboom?" I said as I used all my strength to hold my axes in place.
Zelga raised her eye-brow in confusion and wondered what I meant. But before her wonder could go any further, a beam of magic struck against her face and she pulled her tail away, she used it to block the beam as she looked to see it was coming from Twilight, standing not far away from her.
As Twilight tried to keep Zelga at bay, I flew over to her and landed next to her. "Twilight, you need to go now! It's not safe for you here." I said with a concerned tone.
Twilight kept her eyes completely focused on Zelga. "I'm not going anywhere. All of Ponyville is in danger and we need to stop her…and that means all of us." she said with a few grunts as she kept her beam going.
I would've made an argument, but if there's one thing I learned from Twilight, it was this. When she's made her mind up, its pointless arguing with her. I turned to face Fluttershy and rushed up to her. "Fluttershy, can any of your animal friends help us? Maybe that bear or something?" I asked, sounding desperate for another way to fight Zelga.
Fluttershy gasped a little before she shook her head. "No! I couldn't do that. My animals could get hurt or worse. I want to stop Zelga as much as you do, but I can't do that to my animals." She said with a voice of sorrow.
I sighed heavily. "Well there has to be something we can do. I can't just keep fighting her with my powers, she's learning my every trick. At this rate, we'll never stop her!" I said slightly loud.
Just then, out of nowhere, Jeff and Peewee swooped in over our heads. "We've got her!" Jeff said as they both flew up to Zelga and started attacking her face, they both brushed and slashed their talons against her face. But, of course, they weren't strong enough to cut into her scales. Zelga closed her eyes tightly, struggling to cope with both the birds attacking her face and Twilight shooting a strong beam at her.
I saw this and decided to take advantage of this opportunity. I turned to Fluttershy. "Ok, if there's anything you can do to help at all, then do it. But if there isn't, then get someone safe. Ok?" I said.
Fluttershy nodded once. "Ok. I'll go find the others…be careful, Matt." she said in her gentle voice before she turned around and flew away. I wasn't sure if she was doing something to help us fight Zelga or just getting to safety, but I was fine with whatever, I couldn't force her to fight if she couldn't.
Once she was gone, I spun around to face Zelga before I flew over her as quickly as I could. My hooves glowed green again before I grabbed her large tail, I then turned around and shot up to the sky. Zelga was shocked and surprised as she found herself being pulled upwards fast. I flew as high as I could carry her before I threw her over my shoulder and down towards the boulder-filled area.
As she fell, Zelga scream in fear before she crashed to the ground, smashing into a few boulders as she did. As the dust cleared, Zelga groaned as she slowly picked herself up. But her recovery was cut short and I shot down like a bullet ride on top of her, making her crash into the ground once again.
I picked myself up and brushed the dust off my body. I turned my attention to the horizon, I saw the moon had already set and the sun was rising, I could see the sunlight already coming out brighter and brighter.
I then heard a rumble noise behind me and I spun around quickly, but we met by Zelga's tail smacking into me, sending me flying through the air and crashing into one of the boulders. I weakly picked myself up only to be pinned back down by Zelga's tail, I looked up and saw her head lowering towards me with her mouth open wide. "*Hissss* Haha…this is the most fun I've had in years. Shame it has to end now, I wanted to play with you some more. But you know what they say, nothing lasts forever." She said as a small amount of smoke floated out of the corners of her mouth.
As Zelga lowered her head towards me, I looked past her and saw the sun start to rise over the horizon and into the sky. I smirked before I returned my attention to Zelga. "No, they don't…not even you." I said before I used my power to send strength all through my body. Once that happened, I managed to push myself up from under Zelga's tail until I was back on my hooves.
Zelga growled as she pushed her tail down against me, but y power made me too strong for her. I smirked again before I shot up past her tail and into the air before I quickly flew up to Zelga and punched her so hard in the face that it made her spin around. While she was in a daze, I used my power to create a long green chain before I flew around Zelga's neck until it was tied tightly around it. I hovered behind Zelga's head before I pulled back hard on the chain.
Zelga gasped and choked as I forcefully pulled her head back, making her face upwards. Zelga, struggling to breathe, weakly opened her eyes and saw the sun rising in the sky, starting to shine brightly.
"Sorry Zelga…but this is where this game ends. The darkness can't help you now!" I said loudly as I waited for her to start weakening in the sunlight.
However, after a moment, nothing seemed to happen. I kept hold of the chain around Zelga's neck and waited for her to start burning, but she didn't. Zelga turned her head around to face me before she smirked. "Was something supposed to happen?" she said, sounding smug.
I was confused by this. I remembered what happened to Thorn when he was in the sunlight, he burned and weakened like a vampire, why wasn't it working for Zelga. "W-What the Hell?...Why aren't you-"
"Why am I not burning up like Thorn did?" Zelga asked, keeping her smirk. "Simple answer, Thorn's strength came from the darkness and he was weak in the light. But, my strength doesn't come from the darkness…thus, my weakness isn't the light." She said before her tail rose up from behind me and smacked me away.
Due to this sudden attack, the chain I created disappeared and I crashed to the ground. I quickly picked myself up and spun around to face Zelga, she slivered over to me and hissed loudly. "Wow, I can actually feel the awkwardness from here. I actually thought you would've figured that out sooner. But I suppose that's what happens when you spend most of your life with your head in the clouds." She said with a glare as she stopped in front of me.
I stared up at her with a small amount of fright before I realised what she said. "Wait…I don't spend my time with my head in the clouds. I don't work for the weather group." I stated.
Zelga threw her eyes. "It was a figure of speech, you idiot!" she said before she opened her mouth wide and spat acid down at me.
Once I saw this, I created another forcefield around me and it protected me from the acid. As soon as it was gone, I made the forcefield disappear before I shot into the air away from Zelga. As I flew, I began to panic, this was supposed to be our advantage against Zelga and it didn't work, I didn't know what else we could do. I soon stopped high in the air and looked down at Zelga to see her staring up at me from the ground.
We kept staring at each other, waiting for one of us to make the first move. Suddenly, Zelga's glowing white eyes flashed black before she chuckled. "You're scared…perfect." She said before her body began to glow purple, dark-purple flames ignited on her back before a large pair of bat wings burst out of her back.
Seeing this, my eyes widened in fright. "Oh crap." I said to myself as I watched Zelga start to flap her new wings.
Within a moment, Zelga started to float into the air, her wings flapping harder and harder until she got the hang of it. Zelga looked up at me again and grinned. "Well what can I say? You just can't keep a bad girl down." she said before she gave her wings one hard flap and took off into the air, flying rapidly towards me.
I quickly spun around and flew away as she chased me through the sky. As I flew, Zelga opened her mouth and breathed fire at me. I quickly dropped to avoid her flames before I dove down from the skies, Zelga dove down after me with her wings folded up to give her extra speed.
As I dove down towards the Earth, which was getting close with each passing second, I looked back and saw Zelga approaching faster. Her mouth opened wide as she got close to me, ready to chomp down on me with one bite. I then unfolded my wings and flapped hard to make me go down faster, which helped me avoid her hard snap of her jaws.
We were soon approaching the ground, I began to think I was going too fast to pull up and avoid crashing. But soon enough, I reached the breaking point and spread my wings in a way that made me pull up. I just about missed the ground as I started flying above it. Zelga did the same in her pursuit, but she didn't miss the ground as much as I did.
As Zelga pulled up, her underbelly made contact with her ground and practically wrecked it, leaving a giant long streak of destroyed dirt and grass behind her. I soon pulled back up into the sky and Zelga followed.
As we both returned to the high clouds, Zelga eventually caught up to me and he tail flicked up ahead of her and wrapped around one of my hind-legs. She then yanked me back before she stopped flying. Zelga chuckled before she swung me back and forth quickly to get me in a daze.
Once I was good and dizzy, she tossed me into the air and waited for me to fall back down. I would've taken flight then, but I was too dizzy to even know which direction I was facing in. I fell back down only to be smacked away by Zelga's tail, sending me flying away and crashing through some of the clouds.
As I slowed down, I began to recover from the strong strike and gained control of my flight. As soon as I did, I turned around to where Zelga was and growled in frustration. My Elemental armour glowed and my hooves glowed brighter. A pair of giant green fists appeared on each of my hooves and I flew back towards Zelga, punching my way through each cloud that got in my way.
Eventually, I reunited with Zelga and shot over to her without giving her a second to react. I then threw a punch at her with one of the fists and it struck her hard in the side of her face, making her fall down a little. Before she could recover, I slammed the other fist down on top of her and it made her fall down even more. While she was recovering, I slammed both fists together and it merged into one giant fist, which I then launched at Zelga like a missile.
Zelga slowly looked up at me only to be met by the fist, striking her right in the chest. Despite the hard impact, the fist remained intact, pushing Zelga down towards the Earth with great force like a commit.
Meanwhile, I dove down to catch up with Zelga until I was side by side with her. I gave her a single glare before I flapped my wings harder to go ahead of her, wanting to reach the ground before she could.
I managed to get way ahead of Zelga until I was about to reach the ground, my entire body glowed green as I crashed to the ground, protecting me from the impact and allowing me to land perfectly on my hooves. Once there, I spun around and looked up to see Zelga approaching me, still in an uncontrollable fall due to my giant fist still pushing her down.
I tried to think of a way to strike again and make Zelga weaker. Eventually, I came up with something and I smirked. I stood up on my hind-legs and created a giant boulder with my fore-hooves. I lifted it up until it was pointing and Zelga and I launched it up to her like I did with the fist. It shot up towards her until it struck into her back. The strong force of the fist pushing down against her chest and the boulder pushing up against her back was enough to almost crush her body, Zelga screamed and gasped in pain at this.
In an instant, both the fist and boulder disappeared and Zelga, weak from this sudden attack, fell down until she crashed to the ground nearby.
I then took off into the air and flew over to Zelga's crash site. Once I reach it, I saw Zelga lying unconscious in a small crater. I hovered over to her until I was right above her body. If there was a chance to finish her, it was now. I used my power to create a great sword in my hooves. I pointed it down at Zelga's body and raised it up, ready to strike her down. Usually, I'd offer a chance for her to stop and give up, but after everything she had put me and my family through…I was out of mercy.
But before I could stab the sword down into her body, Zelga's tail suddenly shot up and wrapped around my body, making the sword vanish into nothing. Zelga opened her eyes and raised her head with an angered look on her face. I struggled to get free of her tail, but she had a tight grip around me.
Zelga got up and hissed at me before I felt her tail start to get tighter around me, making me gasp and grunt. "I've had it with power of yours! No Element was ever supposed to give anyone this kind of strength!...So here's what I'm gonna do…I'm gonna keep crushing you until that armour breaks or you break…which even comes first!" she said in a frustrated tone as her tail's grip got even tighter.
I could feel my body start to be crushed until I found it hard to breathe. But before Zelga's tail could grip me tighter, a large bolt of lightning shot down from the sky and struck her tail, making Zelga yelp in shock and pain as she released me.
I fell down to the ground hard and groaned as I looked up to where the lightning came from, that's when I saw Rainbow Dash hovering down to us on a black cloud. "Aren't you supposed to be burning up right now?" she asked while glaring at Zelga.
Zelga shook the pain off her tail before she glared up at Rainbow. "And I've had it with you girls too!...Change of plans, I'm gonna get rid of all of you and then kill Matthew, it'll certainly be easier without you interrupting us all the time!" she said before she spread her wings and flew up towards Rainbow Dash.
Seeing this, Rainbow lifted her fore-hooves and slammed them down on the cloud, making another lightning bolt shoot out. As Zelga flew up, she used one wing to block the lightning bolt, it struck against her wing and did zero damage. Once the bolt died away, she resumed to flap both her wings to fly up to Rainbow Dash with a vicious growl.
I was still a little weak from being almost crushed, but when I saw Zelga heading up towards Rainbow, my eyes shot wide open and I got back up onto my hooves. I quickly took off into the air and flew as quickly as I could up towards Zelga.
As Rainbow continued to make the cloud shoot lightning bolts down at Zelga, she kept dodging them, sending them straight down to me. I yelped each time I was forced to dodge them, shifting left, right, up and down. Some lightning even shot over my head and scorched the top of my mane. "Note to self, never go near Rainbow when she's kicking storm clouds." I said to myself while staring up at my slightly burned hair. I then returned my attention to Zelga and kept flying up to her.
Soon enough, I caught up to Zelga and grabbed her by her tail with my hooves. My hooves glowed green before I yanked her back towards me, this stopped her from going for Rainbow Dash and I shot up towards her face while she was caught up in her surprise. "Stay away from her!" I yelled before I spun around and bucked her in her mouth. My hind-hooves struck one of her two main fangs and it broke it off.
Zelga yelled in pain as her tail came up and she held her mouth with it, her fang fell down to the Earth and disappeared as it fell lower. While Zelga was trying to tend to her great wound, Rainbow saw this as a chance to strike. She slammed her hooves against the cloud again and it sent another powerful lightning bolt down at Zelga.
It struck against Zelga and shocked her entire body, Zelga screamed in pain until she was rendered unconscious…for real this time. We both watched as Zelga fell from the sky and down towards the Earth, it didn't look like she was going to wake up in time to stop her fall.
I took some deep breaths to calm myself down before I turned my attention to Rainbow Dash, I flew up to her and stopped in front of her. "Are you ok?" I asked her in a concerned voice.
Rainbow nodded. "Yeah, I'm fine…takes more than that to scare me." she said with a confident grin.
I smiled in amusement to this before it went away. "We better get back to the others. I've seen Zelga take a lot of hits today, I don't think this'll be enough to stop her." I said as I flew past Rainbow and made my way down to the town with Rainbow following behind.
A few minutes later: Ponyville streets
After a short flight, Rainbow Dash and I soon arrived back in Town and saw Twilight & the others in the street, which included Rarity who must've re-joined them while I was dealing with Zelga. We flew down to them and landed nearby, Twilight and the others saw us land and they all rushed over to us. "Matt!" Twilight called as she rushed ahead of the others.
I galloped up to her and hugged her tightly once I reached her. We hugged for a moment before we pulled away and looked at each other. "I'm so glad you're ok." I said with a small smile before it went away due to a bad thought. "You are ok, aren't you? Are you hurt at all?" I asked as I searched her body for any injuries.
Twilight shook her head "No, I'm not hurt…are you ok?" she asked in concern as she rubbed one of her fore-hooves against my neck.
I nodded. "Yeah, I'm fine." I said before I suddenly felt a sharp pain in my rips, I grunted in pain and I clenched it with one of my hooves. Twilight gasped as she held me with one hoof, keeping me from falling to the ground. "It's ok…it's ok…I've got it." I said as I managed to stand back up on my own.
Applejack then walked over to us and looked at me with a confused look on her face. "Did Zelga do that to ya? I thought the sun was supposed to weaken her." she said, looking up at the sun and using her arm to protect her eyes from the bright morning light.
I looked at her with an even more confused look. "So did I…but it didn't even give her a sun-burn. She just laughed, saying she didn't share the same weaknesses as Thorn." I said.
"So what do we do? The sun was supposed to be our last chance to beat her. If that doesn't work, then…we've pretty much already lost." Fluttershy said as her ears dropped in hopelessness.
There was a silent moment between all of us before I broke it. "No…we haven't…she said that Thorn's weakness was the sun because his powers come from the darkness, so that might mean Zelga's power comes from something else. If we can figure out what that is, we'll be able to find the weakness." I said strongly, trying to come up with at least something to fight back with.
Rainbow then hovered over to me with an unconvinced look. "Sure Matt, we'll just walk up to Zelga and ask her where she gets her power from…how the hay are we supposed to know where she gets her strength from?!" she said loudly, making it sound impossible.
I looked up at her. "I'll think of something…she's been talking to me all day, maybe she said something that at least drops a hint." I said before I tried to think back at all the important times Zelga's talked to me. It was hard, but there had to be something.
While I was thinking, Twilight looked up at Rainbow Dash with a worried look. "Are the Princesses ok?" she asked in concern.
Rainbow turned her attention to her and nodded. "Yeah, they're fine. They're not suffocating anymore, but they're still trapped. I don't know how we're gonna get them out of there." she answered. Hearing this made Twilight feel both relieved and concerned at the same time.
Applejack then walked up beside her and placed her hoof on her shoulder. "It'll be alright, Twilight, we'll get 'em out of there. If we can beat Zelga, all her spells will be broken, right?" she asked with a gentle smile.
Twilight turned her head to face her and returned her smile. "Yeah…but I just don't know how we're gonna beat her. If her weakness isn't the sunlight, then what is it?" she asked before she sighed. "*sigh* Thorn actually made it easy, at least we knew what he had power over." She said as she looked down at the ground.
Upon hearing that, I thought back to all the times Zelga used her power, that's when is struck me. I realised what her power was and what she could control or use against us. "Oh my god…I know what it is…" I said before I turned my attention to everyone. "It's our fear." I finished.
They all looked at each other in confusion before they returned their attention to me. "What are you talking about, Matt?" Rainbow Dash asked in confusion. "What makes you think Zelga's gets her power from our fear?"
"When she revealed her true self to me, she used the Fear Hex on me, a spell that turned my deepest fears against me. Then earlier, when the sunlight didn't weaken her, I got a little frightened and worried, then she got more powerful from it and grew a pair of wings, like she fed off it." I explained, hoping I was really on to something.
Applejack rolled her eyes. "That might be what it looks like, but I'm sorry to say I don't think it's enough to go on right now." she said, sounding unconvinced.
I looked at her and raised my eye-brow. "I also could've sworn I once heard her called herself the 'Alicorn of Fear' when she caused me with the Fear Hex, just like how Thorn called himself the 'Alicorn of Darkness'." I said, countering her argument.
Applejack's unconvinced look went away and was replaced by a stunned look of slight shock. "…Well that shut me up." she said in a simple tone.
"But how are we supposed to use that against her? We've all been fighting Zelga all night and she hasn't gotten any weaker." Rarity said.
At that moment, Pinkie shot up beside me and looked me right in the face. "Yeah, I mean, it'll obviously take a lot more than all of us to stand up to her. If her weakness is bravery, then we'll need a super-duper load of bravery. Like, a whole army of brave ponies to drain her power over fear, or maybe a whole city!" She said, zipping over from one pony to another.
Twilight thought about what she said before a moment before she gasped. "Or maybe a whole town…" she said out-loud before she turned her head to face me. "Matt, can you keep Zelga busy for a little while? I've got a plan that might help us beat her." she said with a small confident smile.
I looked at her with uncertainty before I answered. "I'll try, Twilight…but what do you have in mind?" I asked curiously.
"You'll see, but we need time. If you find Zelga, you need to lead her away from the town, it might not work if everypony hears you crashing through everyone's house." Twilight answered.
I thought about it for a moment, concerning all the pain I'll probably go through to do what she wanted, but I knew it had to be done and nodded. "Ok Twilight…but please, be quick…I'm not sure I can take much more of this." I said, placing my hoof on my injured body.
"We'll be as fast as we can." Twilight said before she leaned in and kissed me on the cheek. When she pulled away, she smiled at me sweetly before her horn glowed. "By the way, I think this'll help you a bit." she said. That's when I saw my Horned-helmet hovering towards me, Twilight then used her magic to place it on my head.
"Be careful, Matt." Rarity said with a small smile.
I turned my head to face her and returned my smile. "Like I keep saying, I'm always careful." I said. Usually when I said that, something happens that shows I'm not very careful, so as soon as I said that, I looked around for anything that could be coming at me, but there was nothing. "Huh…nothing this time, that makes a change." I said to myself out-loud.
But suddenly, there was a giant crash from the cottage beside me and Zelga shot through, still in her snake form and with her mouth open wide. Her face crashed into me and took me away through another cottage and away from the girls.
The Mane 6 stood there, completely stunned by what just happened, wide-eyed and mouths hanging open. "…Well, didn't see that coming." Pinkie said, breaking the silence.
Twilight then returned her attention to the others and spoke. "Ok girls, let's get to work." She said before she looked over to Pinkie. "Pinkie Pie, do you have a bullhorn anywhere? We're gonna need it." she said.
Pinkie looked at her and nodded with a smile. "Yeah, I have one at my house." she said before she rushed away down the street to go back to her house, with the rest of the Mane 6 following behind.
-Meanwhile-
After crashing through a number of cottages, Zelga stopped with me inside her mouth and rose up high, she then opened her mouth and threw me down to the ground. I crashed into the ground hard and grunted on the impact.
I weakly opened my eyes and saw Zelga's head shooting down towards me with her mouth wide open again. I quickly leaned up and the horn on my helmet glowed brightly before it shot a powerful beam up towards Zelga, it struck inside her mouth and made her feel a painful shock in her throat. Zelga stopped and pulled her head away as she choked a little.
While she was distracted by her choking, I got up onto my hooves before I stood up on my hind-legs and stuck my fore-hooves up to Zelga, I then used my Elemental power to create two green dragon head on both my hooves before they both breathed powerful green fire at Zelga. To top it off, I used my helmet to shoot another powerful beam at her at the same time.
Zelga's scales were strong enough to protect her from the fire and the beam of magic, but it made things difficult for her to focus on things. But while I was busy doing all that, Zelga's tale came around from the side and smacked me up into the air, making both my dragon head and beam disappear. Within the same instant, Zelga's wing came down on me and smacked me into the ground again.
Before Zelga could do anything else, I quickly recovered from this attack and created a large spiked mace, which I then swung up at Zelga and it smacked her in the side of her face, making her fall over onto the ground. Keeping the mace in hand, I shot up into the air and prepared to slam the mace down on her head.
However, Zelga quickly slivered away just as the mace struck the ground where her head way. I looked over to Zelga to see her head thrust towards me with her mouth open wide. I then quickly lifted up to the mace and held it in front of myself, protecting me from Zelga's attack as she bit down on the handle of the mace.
Zelga bit down on the mace handle hard as she pushed herself forward, I began to lower to the ground until my hooves touched the grass. I pushed upwards with all my strength to try and keep me from going any lower, but it was hard with what little energy I had left from this fight.
But after a moment, I managed to summon a little more strength and push upward hard, pushing Zelga away enough for me to swing the mace into the side of her head, making her stumble a little. While she was in a small daze, I created a laser-cannon around my other hoof and pointed it at Zelga, which I then fired. A powerful green beam shot out of the cannon and struck Zelga's body, sending her flying backwards and crashing into the ground, she skidded across the grass and slammed against the wall of one of the cottages.
With both the mace and the cannon still in hand, I remembered back to when I merged the energy fists together to create a bigger one and wondered what would happen if I did the same with these two weapons. I looked at them with both nervousness and excitant before I slammed them together. In a bright light, both the mace and the cannon merged together to form something new.
When the light finally faded, I looked to see the weapons had transformed into a large cannon with a mace-head sticking out of the front of the nozzle, working as the ammo. I stared at it with awe before I spoke. "Huh…cool." I said with a smirk before I turned my attention to Zelga, who was starting to come around.
I took off into the air and shot towards her as fast as I could. As I got closer, I pointed the weapon at her and fired it. The large mace-head shot out of the cannon attached to a long chain and hurled towards Zelga.
Zelga get up and shook off the grass and dirt before she spun around to face me while hissing madly with what was left of her teeth unfolded, only to be struck in the chest by the mace-head, smashing her against the cottage wall and breaking it apart.
The chain attached to the mace-head started to move backwards and pulled the mace-head back towards the cannon rapidly. It continued to do this until the mace-head returned to the cannon and was ready to be fired again. Once that happened, I pointed the weapon at Zelga again and fired it down to her.
However, unlike before, Zelga slide out of the way and the mace crashing into the cottage behind her. Zelga then quickly grabbed the chain with her tail and yanked on it, pulling me towards her hard. In that instant, Zelga's tail shot up and grabbed me with it before she slammed me in the ground, making the weapon disappear.
Zelga smirked before she lifted me up slowly until I was face to face with her. "Aww…baby learned a new trick, I'm so proud of you." she said as the tip of her tail slipped under my chin and lifted my head up so I would face her. "Shame you won't be able to learn anything else." She said before her tail smacked my helmet off and her mouth opened wide, looking as though she was ready to eat me.
I tried to struggle out of her tail's grip, but she was holding me too tight, I could barely move. As her got closer, I could smell her breath and prepared for whatever was gonna happen next. Suddenly, Zelga yelled in pain as she pulled her head away, I looked up at what was attacking her and saw Jeff and Peewee attacking her face. "This is for Spike!" Jeff yelled as he scrapped his talons against her scales.
Peewee flew higher up her face before she grabbed her eye-lid with his talons, her yanked on it and stretched it upwards before finally releasing it, making it slap down into her eye. Zelga waved her tail around her face to try and swot them away, but they were too small to hit easy.
While waving her tail around, she loosened her grip around me and I managed to slide out of it. I took into the air and watched as Jeff and Peewee attacked Zelga. Suddenly, I heard a screeching noise behind me before I spun around, only to be struck in the face by two small creatures.
As they flew past my face, I felt two metal objects scratch my face. I yelped in pain as I felt both my cheeks to try and put pressure on the pain, the scratches on them began to bleed. I then looked around to see what those creatures were, but all I could see was the open area and Zelga being attacked by Jeff and Peewee.
Suddenly, from behind, the two creates flew past my body and scratch my body. I yelled again as I clenched my new wounds with my hooves. After a moment, I looked up to see if I could finally catch a view of the creatures, that's when I finally spotted them. They were two vampire bats with small blades on their thumbs.
They flew back around before they started flying towards Zelga, I continued to watch this until they both crashed into Jeff and Peewee. They both brutally attacked the two birds, throwing down their blades against them. "Stay away from the Mistress, this is her time!" the male bat yelled as he attacked Jeff.
Jeff and Peewee took the hits before they started fighting back, throwing down their talons like they were weapons themselves. I watched them fight each other before Jeff and Peewee flew away, the two bats chased after them to continue their fight somewhere else, leaving me and Zelga alone once again.
I returned my attention to Zelga and saw her rub her face with her tail, wiping away the painful feelings Jeff and Peewee left. Once she was done, she looked at me with a dark glare and growled in anger. I then looked down at my helmet on the ground before I quickly dove down to retrieve it. But before I could, Zelga's wing smacked into me and I was sent crashing into another cottage, creating a large hole in its wall.
Zelga took this chance to smack the helmet away before she slivered over cottage I crashed into and looked through hole, trying to spot me through the darkness. But suddenly, I shot out of it, hooves glowing brightly, and punched her right in the nose. The strength I put into the punch sent Zelga flying back and into another cottage, making her grunt.
Before Zelga could react, my entire body glowed green and I shot into her like a bullet, making us both crash through the cottage, wrecking it as smashed into the next street.
-Meanwhile-
After stopping at Sugar Cube Corner, Twilight and the rest of the Mane 6 galloped through the streets until they reached a centre point in the town. Twilight looked around and saw a lot of cottages in the area, cottages full of scared ponies hiding from Zelga's attack. Twilight looked around before she decided that this was the best place. "This spot will do." she said before she turned around to face Pinkie Pie. "Pinkie, the bullhorn!" she said as she held her hoof out to receive it.
Pinkie then pulled out the bullhorn before she held it out to Twilight. "Here you go." She said with a gleeful smile.
Twilight then took the bullhorn in her magic before she hovered it over to herself and held it in front of her mouth. She cleared her throat before she prepared to say what she needed to say, a speech she had practised in her head for the last for minutes. "Everypony! I need you all to listen to me! Matthew is doing all he can to fight against Zelga to protect us, but Zelga's growing stronger every minute because all of you are so scared of her! She's feeding off your fear of her!" she started, speaking through the bullhorn to make her voice heard.
As she continued, the frightened ponies began to poke their heads out from of the windows and doors of the cottages, along with some in many other unusual hiding spots, all listening to what Twilight was saying.
"I know you're all scared, so are we, but we need to bury that fear and stand up to Zelga. Otherwise, she'll win and Matthew will die…and Ponyville and possibly all of Equestria will fall under her power. Matthew's done so much for us, fought battles to help us and keep us safe…it's time we fought for him for once. Who will stand with us and fight back against Zelga…and show here that Ponyville isn't a town to push around!" Twilight said in a strong and intimidating voice before she grew a look of desperation. "Please…we have to help him." she pleaded.
The ponies all stayed silent, their frightened looks not fading away as they stayed where they were. They all wondered whether they should risk it and fight against Zelga or stay in hiding and wait for then inevitable. One thing was for sure, it didn't look like anyone was coming out.
-Meanwhile-
There was a loud rumbling in the streets before, suddenly, Zelga was shot up high into the sky above Ponyville, with me flying under her underbelly, pushing her upwards towards the sky. "I'm not gonna let you destroy the town anymore!" I said before I pushed her away into the clouds with all my strength.
Zelga spun through the air before she spread out her large wings and gained control of her movement. She flapped them to settle herself in the air before she looked at me with her glowing white eyes. "Fine by me! I'll deal with that foolish town once I've dealt with you." she said before she took a deep breath and breathed a strong amount of fire down towards me.
At this moment, I decided to try something new. My hooves glowed brightly before I stuck my fore-hooves out at the incoming flames. Within an instant, my Elemental energy caught the flames until it was trapped in a large green cypher, I then hoisted it over my head before I threw it hard up towards Zelga. It crashing into Zelga's body and she yelled in shock as the impact sent her flying through the air, breaking apart clouds on the way.
While this was happening, I slammed my fore-hooves together and green electricity flowed through both of them until they were full of shock power. Once that was done, I flapped my wings and shot up towards Zelga, gaining more speeding as I went higher and higher. I soon crashing into Zelga's chest and started puncher her body mercilessly, throwing one punch after another, sending electric shocks through her entire body.
I then pulled both my hooves back and charged them up with a large amount power before I punched Zelga in the chest with one, sending a large shock wave through her body. This made Zelga lean over in pain, allowing me to shoot up and punch her under her chain with my other charged hoof. The amount of shock she was going through was enough to make anyone go unconscious, but she kept strong and stayed awake, despite becoming a little weak by the beating.
While she was in this daze, I flew away get a good distance from her before I created two large green ninja stars in both my hooves, I then threw them towards Zelga and they sliced through the flaps in her wings, creating two large holes in them. Having no actual feeling in the flaps, Zelga didn't feel much from this attack, but she definitely noticed.
Zelga looked at me with a dark glare before she started flying towards me with great speed, a killing look in her eyes as she flapped harder to pick up speed.
I saw this, but I didn't try to avoid it. Instead, I stuck my hooves out to her and summoned the ninja stars to come back, which they did. Both ninja stars hurled back towards me from behind Zelga. One shot past her without touching her, but the other one sliced through the flap of her left-wing, making that wing useless to fly with now. Zelga stopped her pursuit as she struggled to keep herself in the air, one wing was flying properly, but the other just flapped wilding in the air trying to catch the wind. She started to slowly float down from the sky as she flapped her wings desperately.
I caught the ninja stars in my hooves before I made them disappear. I immediately saw this as an opportunity, if there was any chance to take her down a peg, it was now. I looked around at all the clouds around the area and developed an idea that was probably strong enough to end this. I once again filled my hooves with strong electricity before I stuck them out towards the clouds, shooting the electricity into the clouds.
The clouds then became dark and thundery, shooting strikes of green lightning as I continued to fill them up with more and more electricity. After a moment, I stopped and examined my creations. Two giant clusters of storm clouds hovering on each side of the sky, filled with my Elemental electricity. I then prepared to perform the next part of my plan.
I stuck my hooves out toward each of the clouds and, like what I did with Zelga's fire, I captured them in Elemental energy until they were linked to my hooves. Once I had hold of them, I closed my eyes and took a breath before I stopped flapping my wings and dove down towards Zelga, pulled the trapped thunder clouds behind me.
As I started to fall faster, I opened my eyes to see I was closing in on Zelga who was still trying to catch the air with her wings to fly again. I narrowed my eyes, trying to pinpoint the best time to strike, I waited for the right moment before it finally came. As I continued to fall, I swung both my fore-hooves out in front of me and it made the storm clouds swing around ahead of me until they both smashed together against Zelga, creating a large electronic explosion that sent as shock wave throughout the sky.
Other clouds were affected by the shock wave and they all turned black and started shooting out green lightning of their own. Ponies far and wide could see the green lights flash and shine in the dark clouds above.
They lightning from the clouds I smashed into Zelga shot out to other clouds before shooting right back, shocking Zelga even more and making her skeleton visible as the thunder and lightning struck violently. Eventually, the lightning stopped and Zelga was left singed and badly injured in the sky, her glowing white eyes dimed as she began to fall down to the ground below.
I watched her plummet to the ground, falling faster and faster as she suddenly caught fire, her entire body burned in dark purple flames until she finally crashed to the ground in the centre of Ponyville near the Town Hall, sending a large cloud of dust and dirt through the streets.
After a moment, I dove down towards the town until I eventually reached Zelga's crash site, her landing created a large crater around her. It was full of smoke and purple fire, so it was hard to see any remains of her through it all.
Suddenly, a powerful purple lightning bolt shot out of the fire and struck my body, sending me flying backwards before crashing into the ground on my back. I groaned in pain before I lifted my head up to look over to the flaming crater.
Zelga, back in her Alicorn form, leaped up from the fire and landed hard on the ground in front of me, the dirt cracking under her hooves. Zelga stood over me, panting hard with her teeth bearing in anger. Her eyes glowed red brightly, burning with rage, and her left wing was missing most of its feathers. Her horn glowed brightly with magic, ready to strike me again. "You…you….you little maggot! I'm gonna take great pleasure in making you suffer before I put an end to your miserable life!" she said before she shot purple lightning down at me from her horn.
I used my power to create a shield in front of me, protecting me from the zap, but smashing once it made contact. I panted hard when I saw this happen, I felt so weak and tied, I couldn't keep this up any longer. I then felt something on the ground with my hoof, I turned my head to see what it was and saw a piece of broken wood on the ground, it must've been from one of the cottages our fight destroyed.
I returned my attention to Zelga to see she was ready to shoot down at me with her magic again. Without thinking, I grabbed the piece of wood before I swung it up at Zelga's head, it smacked into her face and it made her shoot another lightning bolt into the sky. This allowed me a chance to make a quick getaway and I got up onto my hooves before I started galloping away.
However, I didn't get very far before I was suddenly picked up by Zelga's magic and thrown through the air and crashed into a high wall of the Town Hall. I then fell down from the building and hit the ground in a hard thud, sending me in a painful daze. Part of me wanted to just lie there and let this all just end, but I couldn't do that.
I slowly tried to pick myself up. But before I could, I felt a hoof press against my back and pin me back down to the ground. I coughed and weakly looked up to see Zelga standing over me with a satisfied grin on her face. "Hahaha…what's wrong, Matthew? Can't fight anymore? Shame…I was just getting warmed up." she said as her horn glowed brightly again.
"Then try us on!" A familiar female voice said behind her.
Zelga and I both looked in the direction the voice came from and were shocked by what we saw. It was Twilight and the rest of the Mane 6, with everyone in Ponyville standing behind them, all with strong looks on their faces as if they were ready to fight and fight hard.
Then something happened that surprised me. Zelga, the Alicorn of Fear, grew a frightened look like none she had used during this whole thing. She looked stunned, surprised by what was going on. In that moment, Zelga glared at them before she lifted her hoof off me and took a step towards the crowd. "Stay back! All of you!" she yelled as her eyes flashed red and her horn glowed brightly, trying to strike fear back into them.
However, they did the exact opposite, they all took a step forward, showing her they weren't gonna be scared of her anymore.
Zelga's eyes stopped glowing and the magic running through her horn died down, she breathed heavily as she shook her head, as if she was becoming dizzy and tired. "W-What are you…doing?...I can't…I…" she said, struggling to say anything.
Twilight then took a few steps out of the crowd. "We found your weakness, Zelga…you've been feed off the fear of everypony here from the start. But that ends now! You're weak now, Zelga, and if Matt's no strong enough to fight you anymore…then we'll fight for him!" she said as her horn glowed brightly with the rest of the Mane 6 walking up behind her, ready to fight with her.
Zelga blinked before she looked at them with anger, she growled like a beast. "You did this…you caused this!" she said before she returned her attention to me. "…*Pant*…*Pant*…Fools…all of them…and you'd give your life for them?...*Pants*…well…like I said…I'm gonna make you suffer before you die…what better way to do that…than to do THIS!" she said before she pointed her horn at the crowed and whatever magic she had left out of her horn.
The beam shot across the area before it struck into Twilight. Time slowed down as she was sent flying backwards and she landed on the ground on her back, everyone gasped and stared at this in shock and fright, the rest of the Mane 6 rushed to her aid and Rarity helped her lean up.
I, out of everyone here, was the one who was most affected by this sudden act. I felt a strong pain in my heart as I thought about the harm that attack could've done to Twilight and our foal. Seeing Twilight lying there, unconscious and barely breathing, made me feel a mixture of sadness and sorrow. But then, my attention turned to Zelga and I felt something completely different.
All my sadness and fear turned into anger and thoughts of brutality. I glared at her as m hooves pressed against the ground, scrapping against the dirt as I began to breathe hard. Suddenly, my green coat started to grown patches of black, like darkness surged through my body, and the colour in my eyes turned from blue to a dark blood-like red. I growled loudly and I growled even louder as more anger built up.
Zelga and the other ponies heard the winds change and a strange rumble noise before they all looked over to me. As soon as they did, I shot up into the air and looked Zelga with a beastly glare. "I'm will DESTROY YOU!" I yelled with a dark voice trying to speak over my own.
Everypony stared at me with shock. They've never seen anything like this before. Even when Luna became Nightmare Moon, it was never anything like this, this was something different and they didn't know how to react to it. All they could do was watch and stay at a safe distance.
Zelga stared up at me with awe and surprise before she spoke softly. "So…that's where it went." She said in a whisper.
Zelga didn't have a second to react before I shot up and punched her hard in the chest. The strength put into the punch sent her flying away from me, but I wasn't gonna let her get off that easy. My Elemental crystal glowed with darkness before I stuck my hoof out to Zelga and caught her in Elemental energy, I then yanked her back towards me before I punched her into the ground with my other hoof.
Zelga tried to pick herself back up, before I landed on top of her and continuously started puncher her body more. Each punch sent loud crashing noises through the air as the ground beneath Zelga cracked more and more. After give her a savage beating, I grabbed Zelga by her neck and flew up into the air with her, making her choke on my hooves.
I growled viciously before I spun around and threw her high into the sky. I then shot up into the air after her before I crashed into Zelga's body, puncher her chest repeatedly as we went up higher and higher. Once we were high in the sky, my hooves filled with dark magic before I grabbed Zelga's body and spun around it her, I kept spinning faster and faster until I finally released Zelga while throwing her back down towards the ground.
While Zelga fell rapidly down from the sky, I made dark electricity flow through my whole body before I shot down towards Zelga. I then rammed into her and we both fell from the sky like a comet, the electricity around me shocking Zelga as we kept falling.
Eventually, we crash landed in Ghastly Gorge. Upon impact, it sent another electric shock wave around the area, making sure all the damage was sent directly to Zelga.
For the next few minutes, everything was black, I slowly started opening my eyes until I came fully to my senses. I groaned in pain before I slowly picked myself up. "What happened?" I said quietly to myself as I rubbed my head. I then looked down at my body to see it was back to normal, it was scruffy and covered in dirt, but no essence of darkness flowing through it.
I then looked up and noticed the area I was in. From the looks of the pit I was in and all the rocks everywhere, it looked like I was in Ghastly Gorge. In all my time here in Equestria, I had never actually been here, it was a little strange.
Suddenly, I heard rock crumble and snapped my view in the direction the noise was coming from. That's when I saw a bunch of rocks moving before Zelga, battered and bruised, crawled out of the rubble. I stayed where I was as I watched her weakly pick herself up.
Zelga coughed and stumbled a few times before she raised her head to look at me. I stared at her and she stared at me, both waiting to see who'd make the first move. But then, Zelga started chuckling darkly, she kept doing so until it turned into laughter. "HAHAHA!...I knew it…you are just like us…" she said before she coughed in pain.
After hearing this, I became curious. What did she mean by that? What was she talking about? I wanted to know. "Who am I like?" I asked curiously as I started to slowly walk over to her, being careful of anything she might try.
Zelga chuckled again before she looked at me with a grin on her face. "…The True Order…" she said darkly before she let out a small yelp of pain, she looked at her right wing and saw that it was crooked, most likely broken from the fall.
"The True Order?...Who are they?" I asked curiously, getting closer to Zelga.
Zelga returned her attention to me before she looked down at the ground. "Don't worry, sweetie…you'll find out soon enough." She said before her horn suddenly started glowing. "Then again, maybe NOT!" She said before her purple whip came out from her horn against and she attempted to slash it down against me.
My eyes shot wide open before I leaped backwards to avoid her whip and it struck against the ground near me. Zelga kept waving her head around aimlessly, swishing the whip around all over the place, probably hoping it would land a hit against me.
I kept dodging every movement Zelga made as her whip stuck everywhere. Against the ground near me, over my head, I even had to leap out of the way to avoid some of her attacks. Based on this chose of action, I could tell Zelga was don't playing, she was trying to win the fight by force now,
Using what little strength I had left, I took into the air and tried to fly out of the gorge, but Zelga's whip suddenly struck against the wall above me and it stopped me where I was. I spun around to look down at Zelga to see her throw her whip at me again. I quickly shifted out of the way and it struck the wall behind me again.
However, the rocks on the wall behind me were very well balanced, each strike from the whip loosened them more and more until they were ready to fall apart. If this kept up, it would cause a rock slide.
Zelga grinned dementedly before she threw her whip up at me again. I quickly flew away to avoid it and it stuck into the wall again, this time, hitting a small rock and knocking it out of the rock wall. The wall then began to rumble as the rocks piled up on it began to loosen up.
I flew over Zelga until I was on the other side of the gorge, I then spun around and looked down at Zelga, but her whip suddenly wrapped around my leg and yanked me down towards her.
I then slammed to the ground before I tried to get away quick before anything else happens. But it was too late for that as Zelga's hoof suddenly slammed down against the same leg she caught with her whip, breaking it. I yelled loudly in pain as I held my leg with my hooves. I breathed heavily as I tried to maintain the pain in my leg, I looked up at Zelga with agony and saw the cold look she was giving me
"I'm gonna win this, Matthew, I'm gonna finish this one way or another. I don't need wings, I don't need to be a giant snake, I just need fear…fear will give me the power I need to finish you and everyone you love! You can beat me all you want…I'll always be back to fight you again! What do you have to say to that….runt!?" she said with a dark glare and a devilish grin.
I was lost for words before I suddenly noticed the rocks on the wall behind her, I saw they were loosening up before I realized what was going to happen. I then returned my attention to Zelga and prepared to say something I've been waiting ages to say to someone eventually. "Yeah…yippy-ki-yay, motherfucker!" I said loudly as I pointed my hoof at the wall behind her.
Zelga gave me a confused look before she turned around and saw the rocks began to finally give way and start falling down in a large rockslide. "Oh…so this is what fear feels like." She said to herself as her ears dropped in fright.
I then used everything I had to take off into the air and fly away from Zelga as the rocks came tumbling down over her.
Zelga, unable to fly and frozen in fear, screamed loudly as her horn glowed with one last attempt to do something to avoid this fate, but the rocks smashed down on top of her before she could.
Once that happened, a large purple shock wave burst from the boulders that fell on top of Zelga and spread throughout the land.
Meanwhile: Canterlot
Princess Celestia, Princess Luna, Princess Cadence and Discord were in the castle, trying to come up with a plan in case the dome never goes down. Celestia and Luna were still weak from raising the sun through Zelga's dome, but that wouldn't stop them from doing their duties.
But, to their surprise, they heard a loud boom coming from outside. They all went up to the window to see what was going on and saw the shock wave rushing towards them. Seeing this, they all braced for what it could bring, but they were even more surprised to see it strike against the dome and started disintegrating it.
The dome started to crack and fall apart, the shard turning to dust as they fell from the breaking dome.
While this happened, the giant Earth Worms burst from the ground and screeched as they started to smoke and sizzle. They all turned grey until they shrivelled up and turned to dust.
Upon seeing all of this happen, Celestia turned her head to face Luna and smiled. "The dome is destroyed and the Worms are dying, Twilight and her friends must've defeated Zelga." she said with a cheerful voice.
Luna returned her smiled before she returned her attention to the now free city. "Let's not forget Matthew…I'm sure he had a role to play in this." She said with a warm smile.
Meanwhile: Ghastly Gorge
Having avoided the rockslide by a hair, I laid on ground and grunted in pain as I hit my broken leg against the hard rocks. "Ahh…crap!" I said, trying to hold back a worse word. After recovering from the pain, I leaned up and looked over to where Zelga was only to see a large pile of boulders.
Poking of the boulders was one of Zelga's feathered wings, crooked and nearly feather-less. Just then, it started to shrivel up and turn grey, it then started to fall apart and flake away in the wind like ash.
I panted heavily as I weakly got up onto my hooves and started limping over to the pile of boulders. Once I reached it, I grabbed one of the boulders with my fore-hooves and slowly pushed it up, wanting to see what was under the rubble.
I held the boulder up with whatever strength I could gather and looked within the pile of boulders. I then saw what was left of Zelga's body, losing its black colour and turning grey before falling apart into ashes. Her dark purple armour, remaining intact as they laid on top of the ashes. I exhaled hard to calm myself down, knowing the rain of Zelga's horrors were finally over. "Tell Thorn I said 'hi'." I said before I released the boulder and allowed it to fall back down where it was.
Stepping away from the rock pile, I started limping towards the wall of the gorge and started flapping my wings to try and fly out of the gorge, but I was too weak and I ended up landing back down on the ground. "Suppose I'll have to do this the hard way." I said before I approached the wall and start scaling it step by step.
After what seemed like a full 20 minutes of climbing, I finally reached the top of the gorge and pulled myself out of it. But upon exiting the gorge, I lifted my head to see something that stunned me. Everyone in Ponyville had arrived here, they must've seen where we crashed and came over.
I slowly stood up and shook the dust and dirt off my body before I smiled nervously at them. "Haha…hi." I said sheepishly.
After a moment silence, everyone suddenly cheered loudly with praise. Some waved their hooves in the air, some hopped where they stood and others stomped their hooves against the ground. As the crowd kept cheering, a few pegasi saw that I was struggling to walk and flew over to help me.
They hoisted me up over their heads in their arms and carried me over the crowd as they continued to cheer. I looked around at everyone before a warm smile appeared on my face, knowing I was in the best company. But that feeling didn't last long as I noticed my friends coming over to us and saw the concerned looks on their faces, I focused my attention on Applejack to see she was carrying Twilight on her back, still unconscious.
"T-Twilight…" I said in a weak whisper before I began to flap my wings. I then hovered out of the arms of the Pegasi carrying me and flew over to the girls. Once I reached them, I landed roughly in front of them and panted to regain my energy.
Seeing how beat up I was, Fluttershy came over to me and placed her hoof on my back. "Matt, you need to take it easy, you look really hurt." she said gently.
I turned my head to face her and nodded before I carefully started limping towards Applejack. When I reached her, I placed my hoof under Twilight's chin and carefully lifted her head up to look at her face. "Twilight?" I said with a choked up voice before I looked at Applejack. "Is she ok?" I asked, desperately wanting her to give me a good answer.
Applejack stayed silent as her ears dropped. "I…I don't know, Matt…she's out cold." She said, giving me an honest answer.
After hearing this, I became light-headed from a huge amount of concern and worry for both Twilight and the baby's safety. That, and the great pain I was in felt like it was all going straight to my head. I became pale as my ears dropped in fear at the very thought of something bad coming out of this.
Everyone noticed this and grew more concerned about me. "Matt, are you ok? You don't look so hot." Rainbow Dash said as she walked up to me.
I nodded. "Yeah, I just…I just need to…I…" I managed to say before I felt the lights in my head go out and I collapsed from the pain and exhaustion.
"Matt!" Applejack yelled loudly as she and the other rushed to my side, along with some other ponies from the crowd.
While more ponies rushed to my side, a large black crow watched what was happening from a nearby tree. He had seen the whole thing, including Zelga's death. He glared down at us with anger and hatred before he took off into the air, he flew around the area before he started flying away from her.
The next day: Ponyville hospital
All I could see was darkness and could hear only silence, images flashed through my mind about Zelga and the mysterious group mentioned, The True Order she called them. Who were they? By the sounds of it, she talked as if she was one of them, this could mean Thorn was a member of this cult as well.
But suddenly, all those Zelga images were replaced by something else, some other pony I didn't recognize. He looked like me, but his coat was white and his mane was black. His eyes glowed red as he snickered and chuckled dementedly, like he had gone insane and beyond.
But before I could see anymore, I suddenly saw a light shining through the darkness until I was forced to open my eyes. my vision was a little blared, but it eventually came into focus and I was able to see where I was. I was in a medical room in Ponyville hospital, I turned my head to the right and saw the sun shining through the window.
At that moment, everything suddenly came back to me and I lean up on the bed quickly. "Twilight!" I yelled in concern. But upon doing this, I felt a sharp pain shoot through my broken leg and I grunted in pain.
I looked at my leg and saw it was completely in a cast. Not only that, but other parts of my body were wrapped in bandages and band-aids.
At that moment, the door to the room swung open and Applejack came in before she looked over to me. "Matt! You're awake!" she said before she turned her head around to look out of the room. "He's awake, gals!" she yelled.
As Applejack came into the room, the other followed behind, including Jeff and Peewee. They both flew over to me and landed on the side of the bed. "Hey champ, how ya feelin'?" Jeff asked with a bright smile.
I looked at them in confusion before I spoke. "Jeff?...W-What happened to you tow? I saw you guy fighting off those bats and then I didn't see you again." I said, curious as to what went down.
"Oh yeah." Jeff said before he explained in a dramatic way. "So there we were, fighting those tow bats with everything we had, the lighting from the clouds split the sky as we fought to our very last breath." He said, trying to set the scene of their fight.
I stared at him with awkwardness and confusion before my eyes shifted to look at Peewee. "We fought them off until they eventually gave up and flew away." He said, clearing the whole thing up.
Jeff frowned before he turned to face Peewee. "The story was better the way I told it." he argued.
Peewee looked at Jeff before he raised his eye-brow. "Were you also gonna tell them the part where you complained about the bat nearly plucking some of your feathers?" he said, crossing his wings.
Jeff went wide-eyed before he looked up at me again. "No I didn't!" he said loudly, with Peewee nodding his while mouthing the words 'he did'.
Deciding to change the subject, I turned my head to look at Applejack. "Where's Twilight? Is she ok?! I need to see her!" I said before I tried to pick myself up so I could get out of the bed.
Applejack then rushed over to me and placed her hoof on my chest. "You need to rest, Matt, you're in no shame to do anythin'." She said as she gently laid me back down on the bed.
I gave her a concerned look. "But I need to see Twilight, I have to make sure she's ok!" I said as I tried to get up again, only for Applejack to push me back down gently.
Just then, the doctor pony came in and walked over to me. "Oh Mr Matthew, you're awake." He said before he raised his eye-brow. "I thought we agreed you'd try to stay out of hospital. If I didn't know any better, I'd say you liked being here." he said as he picked up the clipboard at the end of my bed and looked at the results on it.
"Where's Twilight? I want to know if she's ok! Zelga shot her with some kind of magic beam and I need to know how she is." I said, desperate to know her condition.
The doctor lowered the clipboard and looked at me. "Don't worry yourself, she's fine! I've run all the tests and double checked everything, she's fine and so is her baby." He said before he smirked. "I don't know what kind of foal you've cooked up, but it's a strong one…takes after its parents, if you ask me." he said.
Hearing this made me feel so at ease. I breathed gently before I lied back on the bed and looked up at the ceiling. "She's alright…they're both alright…" I said as a small cheerful smile appeared on my face. "Thank God…" I said under my breath as Fluttershy came up beside me and gently rubbed my head to make me feel better.
Meanwhile, the doctor walked around the left side of the bed while keeping his sights set on me. "But she's not the only one being tented to at the moment." He said before he grabbed the curtain beside him and pulled it away, revealing another bed with another patient on it.
"Spike!" I said loudly once I saw Spike lying on the other bed. He was out like a light and hand a thick bandage wrapped around his head. I then looked at the doctor again with concern. "Is he going to be ok?" I asked in a worried tone.
The doctor looked at me again. "He has some minor injuries, mostly to the left side of his body, but it's nothing we can't fix in good time. He just needs to stay here for a few days and he'll be fine…same goes for you, that leg isn't gonna heal in one afternoon." He said before he turned around and walked out of the door. "I'll get the nurse and tell her to bring your some painkillers." He said as he left the room.
Now that we were alone together, I looked at everyone and decided to check on what's happened since I blacked out. "So what happened while I was…you know…passed out? Did anything happen?" I asked curiously.
They all looked at me before Rarity began. "*Clears throat* Well, most of Ponyville is being re-built as we speak. Your fight with Zelga really did a number of many cottages…and some of the ponies who lived in them aren't taking it very well." She said with a sheepish smile.
"Like whom?" I asked curiously. At that moment, a large egg splattered against the window outside, gaining the attention of all of us.
"Like the pony in the market who sells all the eggs." Rarity answered, watching the egg shell and yoke slowly run down the glass.
I then returned my attention to them and continued. "What about Blaze Horn? Is he still in the barn?" I asked, mostly looking at Applejack because it was her barn I had trapped him in.
Applejack answered by shaking her head to say 'no'. "No…Princess Celestia came down here after the fight. We told her you left Blaze in the barn and she had Shining Armor arrest him. She says he's in the castle dungeon, waiting to go on trial for his crimes against her." she said before she remembered something else. "By the way, Celestia wanted me to tell you that she wanted to be here when you woke up, so did Luna, but they're a mite busy makin' sure everyone in Canterlot is ok, she hopes you'll understand." She finished.
Even though I would've liked them to be here, I knew their duties came first and I nodded. "I get it…thanks Applejack." I said with a small smile before I looked at all of them. "Thank you all…if you hadn't have come when you did, I'd probably be dead right now…" I said, giving them all a warm smile
They all returned it, but those smiles soon went away as they gave me a concerned look, as if they were worried about something. I noticed this and began to wonder what was wrong. "What?...What's wrong? Did I say something?" I asked curiously.
Applejack rubbed her leg with her hoof nervously before she looked at Rainbow Dash and pushed her a little with her hoof, telling her to speak up. Rainbow Dash gave her a small glare before she turned her attention to me and sighed. "Matt…do you remember anything that happened before you and Zelga went to Ghastly Gorge? Anything at all?" she asked.
I tried to think back to that moment, but it was all really a blare. "No, I don't think so…I remember seeing Zelga hit Twilight with her magic, but after that…nothing. The next thing I knew, I was in Ghastly Gorge." I said before I remembered something. "I remember seeing Zelga crawl out of a pile of rocks…she was an absolute mess…I don't remember doing anything to put her in that state." I said, feeling a little shaken up that I couldn't remember anything. I looked at them with confusion. "Why do you ask? Did something happen?"
Upon hearing my answer, they all looked at each other with deep concern before they returned their attention to me. "D-Don't worry about it, sugarcube…it was probably nothin'. You just went a little crazy when you saw Twilight get hurt, that's all." Applejack said with a comforting voice and a soft smile.
Part of me felt there was something else going on here, but I was too tired and beaten up to worry about that right now. "Ok…we'll talk about it some other time." I said before I rolled my head on the pillow to look over to Spike. "I just hope everyone will be ok after this." I said.
"They will, Matty, I'm really sure of it. You just rest that little head of yours and we'll leave you alone to get some peace." Pinkie Pie said with a nervous smile before she backed away towards the door. "Yep, nothing to worry about, especially if it involves a weird surge of dark magic." She said.
Rarity turned to her and brushed her hoof against her neck, telling Pinkie to 'cut it out'. Pinkie, realizing what she said, frozen and panicked "W-Who said anything about dark magic? I certainly didn't!...Pinkie vanish!" she said before she shot of out the room as fast as she could.
Rainbow Dash turned to face me and made a fake laugh. "Hahaha…that good old Pinkie Pie for ya, always saying the most random things." she said before she took off into the air. "Anyway, we better be going, we don't want to keep your from healing." She said before she started to hover over towards the door.
Applejack smiled down at me before she rubbed my head with her hoof. "Don't you fret about Twilight, Matt…we'll watch over her until you feel better." She said before she stopped rubbing my head and started walking towards the exit, with the others following behind.
On the way, Rarity stopped and looked over to Spike in a concerned look before she turned her attention to me. "Make sure to keep an eye on him, alright?" she asked.
I gave her a single nod. "I will do." I answered, giving her a kind smile.
Rarity returned the smile before she left the room and closed the door with her magic, leaving me and Spike alone to start feeling better.
Meanwhile, the girls walked away from the room before they stopped in the middle of the hallway. "Why didn't we tell him about his little…episode?" Fluttershy asked curiously.
Applejack turned her head to face her. "Because he just defeated Zelga and found out Twilight was gonna be fine, I didn't want to ruin all that by telling him he was crazy on Zelga for a minute." She explained.
"Crazy? Crazy doesn't begin to describe what happened out there! He was out of control, like some kind of animal!" Rainbow Dash said in a strong tone.
Rarity's horn glowed and she grabbed Rainbow Dash by her tail before pulling her down to the floor. "Now stop talking so badly about Matthew that way! I very much doubt it was he was even in full control. You heard him, he doesn't remember a thing, like it wasn't truly him who became all…dark." She said, putting a lot of mood in the last word.
Applejack thought about it for a moment before she decided to come up with something. "Alright, here's what we're gonna do! When Twilight and Matt get better, we'll tell Twilight about this and then we can tell Matt together. Then maybe we can get someone to help him with…whatever's inside him, like Princess Celestia or Moleyair." She stated with the voice of a leader. "I know it's best to just tell him now, but that'll just make him feel worse about things. So in the meantime, we keep this to ourselves, agreed?" she asked.
They were all silent for a moment before they nodded in agreement. "Alright…now let's go see how Twilight's doin'. With any luck, she might already be awake." Applejack said before they all started making their way down to Twilight's room to check on her.
Meanwhile: Mount Forbidden
Rage, angered by the news brought to him by Thorn's crow, roared loudly before his horn glowed brightly and a powerful red lightning-bolt shot out of his horn.
It struck against the ceiling of the throne room and left a giant hole in it. After that, he pointed his horn at a wall and shot another lightning-bolt, which struck against the wall and made another big hole. Then with one last shot, he pointed his horn in a random direction and shot another bolt. But this time, instead of striking a wall, the Leader Alicorn caught in in his magic and held onto it until it faded away. "This isn't helping anyone." He said calmly.
Rage grunted in anger as he stormed over to him. "That's two…two of us dead because of that worm! We should go there now, kill him while he's weak! Why are we staying here while he regains his strength?!" He yelled as he stopped in front of the Leader.
"Because I say so and my word is final." The Leader answered before he turned around and walked up to his throne. "Zelga did what she believed was her best…and she failed. But she was right about one thing…Matthew can be one of us, if pushed in the right direction…he's definitely proved himself." He said while facing away from Rage.
"You would have Matthew join us? After he's murdered our siblings?...I've always said you were out of your mind, but now I know for sure…your absolutely insane!" Rage said in a strong voice.
At that moment, the Leader's horn glowed and Rage was picked up with green magic, he was then yanked towards the Leader before stopping right behind him. "Insane, am I?" he growled before he threw Rage up into the air. Rage then struck the ceiling before he fell to the floor, crashing down with a hard thud. Rage groaned in pain before he slowly picked himself up. "In that case, you had better be careful how you address me…am I understood, brother?" the Leader said darkly as he continued to look away from Rage.
Rage growled in anger before he responded. "Yes…my lord." Rage then started walking away towards to exit of the Throne room. "But this doesn't change the fact that it's only the two of us left." He said before left the room and glared sharply at the ground. "Which means there's no one to get in my way." he whispered to himself as he walked down the stone hallway to go to his chamber.
The Leader remained in the Throne room, puzzled and silent. He slowly turned his head to look over to Zelga's throne, it was right beside Thorn's and his own. Suddenly, the Leader's horn glowed brightly and a powerful green lightning-bolt shot out, striking against Zelga's throne and destroying it completely.
After a moment of silence, the Leader turned around and walked over to his green-water pool. Which, as already mentioned, served at a window for him to see anything he wanted. As the water spiralled in the pool, an image of me appeared, turning from my normal self into my dark form.
The Leader watched this for a moment before he looked over to the Thorn's crow. "Shade…keep an eye on Matthew, I want to know everything he does." He ordered sinisterly.
"Yes, my lord." Shade said before he took off into the air and started flying away towards some cracks in the ceiling, big enough for him to fly through and leave the mountain.
While Shade flew away to do as he was told, the Leader returned his attention to the pool and saw how I acted in my dark form. The speed, the strength, the fact that I wasn't afraid to push my own limits…it was enough to put an evil smirk on his face. "This…will be interesting."
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
Again, sorry it took so long, I've been feeling very out of it lately. Many things have happened since my last chapter was posted, some mostly bad. Anyway, this'll be the last chapter until next year, hopefully I might feel better after that.
-Message to users-
There! There's your Life for a Life moment. Finally, I finally got around to giving this to you! Now can you please stop asking me to do that, it's been going on for years. Thank you.
-Poll-
In the meantime, I'll start a poll for you to answer for me. Like I said, I've been feeling out of it lately, so I've been thinking about something, but I need to know if you guys are ok with it. Here are the questions that come with it.
1: Start writing a different story until I feel better
2: Suck it up and keep going with this one as best you can.
-Pony News-
This may be old news to some, but in case anyone else never caught it, I'll share it with you now.
First off, a Season 7 has been announced along with a few specials of Equestria Girls. There isn't much about them, but let's hope they're cooking up something good.
The upcoming MLP movie will be made with Toon Boom Harmony animation, unlike the show which is made with Flash animation. If you wish to see what the animation is like, then watch the fan-made animation "The moon rises", it's made with the same animation, so there's a chance the movie will look a bit like this.
-This ends Pony News-
During this time, I seemed to have lost contact with show director Jim Miller. I'd really appreciate it if any of you could help me with that. So if anyone here has a Twitter account, please PM me and we'll talk from there, thanks.
Please remember to review or PM
The next chapter will be up as soon as it's ready next year.
69. Three hooves are better than four
Hi everypony and welcome back again.
I don't know what to say at this moment because I started writing this chapter shortly after I finished the last one. I know I said I was gonna take a break, but I didn't have much better to do so I thought…what the hell?
Anyway, with nothing else to say, thank you and enjoy the chapter.
Chapter 69: Three hooves are better than four
It has been a solid 4 weeks since I defeated Zelga, and since that time, so much has happened. Ponyville was rebuilt back to normal, everyone had recovered from the shock of it all, and it felt like all the horror Ponyville has gone through in the past few months just suddenly went away when Zelga died.
Also, the Princesses were talking about doubling their troops and making emergency protocols in case anything like this ever happened again. I was glad to see they were taking precautions for it. I knew they could get themselves out of a tight spot if things got bad, but these Alicorns…they were something else, something pure evil.
After the attack, I spent the next few days in the hospital trying to heal my broken leg and an injured wing. I honestly didn't know how my wing got bad. It was fine after the fight, but then it started aching a day later, the doctor said it was injured during the fight and became sprained.
But not everything was so bad. Twilight left the hospital before I did. At first, I was worried about her and the health of our foal after Zelga shot her with her magic, but the doctor she they were both fine and as healthy as can be. As for Spike, he's still wearing the bandages around his head, but he's was fine as well.
However, there was one little flaw out of all of this…I was released from the hospital, but I was stuck in a wheelchair!
Ponyville Library
I was in an electronic wheelchair, one of those wheelchairs that have an analogy-stick to make it move back and forth, I yawned before I moved through the living room until I stopped in front of the centre table with the wooden horse-head on it.
On the said table, there was a pile of books about ancient Equestria history. It seemed like a long shot, but I was trying to find anything on the cult Zelga mentioned, The True Order. That name riddled in my head for days, if Thorn and Zelga came from the True Order, then God knows who else is involved in it and what kind of messed up powers they possessed. Since I got out of hospital, I searched through book after book, but I found nothing even close.
I read and flipped through the pages of the next book in front of me, but it wasn't giving me anything useful or helpful. Getting frustrated with constant dead-ends, I started flipping through the pages rapidly, trying to fast-read them for key words related to the True Order. Eventually, I just lost it and pushed the book away hard, making it knock other books off the table.
I groaned loudly before I slammed my head against the table, I placed my hooves at the back of my head and rubbed them into my mane. "This is hopeless…there's nothing here!" I said to myself, the table muffling my voice.
Just then, I felt a hoof lie against my shoulder before I lifted my head up and turned around to see who it was. It was Twilight with a slightly puzzled look. "Matt? Are you ok? You seemed stressed." She said in a gentle voice.
I sighed before I grabbed the j-stick on the wheelchair and made it turn around to face Twilight. "I'm fine, babe…it's just I can't find anything on the True Order in these books. It's like no-one's ever heard of them, not even once. This was probably the first time is ever been mentioned ever." I said before I turned the chair around away from Twilight and made it move towards the fallen books.
Twilight followed me and stopped beside me. "Maybe no-one's ever heard of them because they might not really exist. What if Zelga was just trying to mess with your head? It wouldn't be the first time she did that." She said, trying to come up with an explanation.
I turned to face her and shook my head. "No…I could see it in her eyes. In that last moment, she was way past the point of messing around." I said before I remembered the way Zelga looked, the deranged and hate-filled look in her eyes, the growl in her voice as she said the name of the cult. "The True Order exists…and I don't think we've seen the last of its members." I said before I returned my attention to the fallen books. I leaned down towards them and reached my hoof out to pick them up, but due to the chair, I struggled to reach them.
Twilight saw this and her horn glowed. In that instant, the books were engulfed in her magic and they hovered into the air before placing themselves in a neat stack on the table. "Maybe you should take a break, Matt. Go outside, see all our friends. If you're really worried about this…True Order…I'll read through these books for you and see if I can find anything." she said, giving me a kind smile.
I thought about it before I shook my head. "I can't do that, Twi, it wouldn't be fair on you to just leave while you stay here and read." I said, thinking of her needs.
Twilight waved her hoof. "Are you kidding? You know I love reading." She said before she picked up one of the books in her magic and hovered it over to herself. "Besides, I haven't read some of these books in a while, I think I've forgotten what most of them are about. It'll be fun to read them again." she said with a bright smile.
I then gave her a warm smile before I placed my hoof gently against her cheek. "You're always looking after me, aren't you?" I said with a spark of love in my eyes.
Twilight placed her hoof against mine and returned my smile. "Always." She said lovingly before her smile turned into a cheeky smirk. "As long as you always look after me in return, of course." She said.
I chuckled before I pulled my hoof away. "Of course." I repeated. "I wouldn't want to get on your bad side, I've seen what that's like and I don't want to see it again." I said before I moved my chair around and made it move towards the front-door.
Twilight kept her smile as she gave me a firm look. "Hey! Watch it or I'll show you my real bad side." She warned in a joking way.
"More reason for me to get out of here." I said with an amused smile as I stopped in front of the front-door. I grabbed the door knob with my hoof before I pulled the door open. "Well I'm off, maybe I'll see how everyone else is doing." I said before I made the chair spin around to face Twilight.
Twilight walked up to me and smiled at me. "Hopefully they'll help you feel better." she said before she leaned in and gave me a small kiss. "Be careful on that thing, ok?" she said, looking down at my wheelchair.
I nodded. "I will." I said before I started backing up out of the doorway with the chair making a beeping sound. Once I was outside, I turned the chair the right way around and started moving towards the streets. "See ya, babe." I said as I waved my hoof in the air.
"See ya, Matt." Twilight said with a warm smile before she turned around to head back into the Library. "Spike! I need your help with these books!" she called before she closed the door with her magic.
A few minutes later: Ponyville streets
I continued to move through the streets of Ponyville on my wheelchair. All the while, I looked around to see how everyone was doing. By the looks of things, everything seemed fine. Everyone seemed cheerful, the kids were playing in the streets, and there was only one building left to rebuild after the Zelga incident.
Some ponies said hello to me, others ignored me, while the rest sometimes stared at my chair. I suppose they've never seen me in this state before, it must've been shocking. As I kept moving through the street, I sudden came to a stop.
Surprised, I looked down at the j-stick and pushed it forward, but the chair didn't move, it just made a weird screeching sound. I then looked around to see what the problem was. I was starting to worry that the chair had run out of power or something. I looked down at the wheels to see if any of them had got caught on something, that's when I saw one of the back wheels blocked by a rock in the ground. "Ah damn it." I said in slight annoyance.
I then tried to think of a way to get out of this before I grabbed the chair by its arm-rests and tried to jump up with it, but I couldn't make it jump up high enough. I then shook the chair vigorously to try and loosen it up, but it wouldn't budge. I groaned a little before I pushed my hoof against the g-stick hard to try and make the chair drive over the rock, but it still wouldn't move, I was starting to get really frustrated about this. "Oh c'mon!" I yelled.
"Hi Matty." A cheerful voice said in front of me. I turned my head around and saw Pinkie Pie hopping over to me before stopping. "What's up?" she asked with a large smile.
"Hi Pinkie." I greeted before I returned my attention down to the stuck wheel. "One of my wheels is stuck behind that rock, can you help me out?" I asked curiously, hoping she'd agree.
Pinkie leaned her head to the left a little to see the stuck wheel behind me before she smiled. "Sure." She said before she trotted around behind me and placed her hoof at the back of my chair, she then pushed me gently until the wheel rolled over the rock, setting it free. "There you go." She said brightly.
I turned my head around to face her and smiled gratefully. "Thanks Pinkie, I didn't know how I was gonna get out of that mess." I said.
Pinkie smiled widely. "You're welcome. Besides, that's not the only reason I helped you." she said before she lowered herself down to the rock I was stuck in front of. "This is a pretty neat rock! It reminds me of my home back on the Rock Farm. My sister, Maud, will love this!" she said before she grabbed the rock with her hooves and tried to pull it out of the ground, but it was very wedged in the ground. "C'mon you…lousy…rock!" she said as she pulled and pulled on the rock with all her strength.
I stared at her with a confused and awkward look. "Umm…who's Maud?" I asked until I noticed she wasn't listening to me. "Pinkie?...Hello?...I think I've lost her." I said to myself as I continued to watch her try to pull the rock out of the ground. I then decided to shrug it off and keep moving, pushing my hoof against the g-stick which made the chair move forward.
A moment later, I suddenly heard faint laughter nearby. At first, I thought it was someone laughing at my chair, but then I saw where it was coming from and realized that wasn't the case, thank god. It was Applebloom and he friends, sitting by a tree. Applebloom seemed to be drawing something in the dirt with a stick while Sweetie Belle and Scootaloo watched, it was most likely something to do with their next Cutie Mark Crusader activity.
It's been a while since I've spoken to any of them, including Applebloom. Who was still recovering from being kidnapped by Blaze Horn. Lately, I've been beating myself up about that, I felt like I had failed her and Applejack, so I was a little scared to talk to her again. I pressed my hoof against the j-stick and tried to keep moving.
But suddenly. "Hey! Matt!" Sweetie Belle's voice called. I stopped and turned my head around to see them coming up to me. "We haven't seen you in forever." Sweetie said before she looked down at my chair. "Are you…ok?" she asked curiously.
I sighed before I grabbed the j-stick with my hoof and moved it to the left, making the chair spin around to face them. "Yeah, I'm good. Just trying to get used to this." I said as I looked down at the chair. "Until my leg and wing heals, I'm gonna be in this thing for a while." I said.
Applebloom then came up to me and placed her hoof on the cast around my leg. "Does it hurt?" she asked, lightly pressing her hoof against it.
I cringed at the slightly pain, but it wasn't enough to cause me too much discomfort. "Not really, just a little." I said before I rubbed my hoof against it. "But I suppose it had to happen if it meant keeping Zelga from hurting anyone else." I said, remembering all the damage Zelga did when she was alive.
Applebloom looked up at me with slight sorrow in her eyes. "Matt…I…I'm sorry for everything. I feel like this was all my fault. If I hadn't have gotten caught by that Blaze guy, maybe you wouldn't have been attacked and Zelga probably wouldn't have attacked Ponyville." she said before she pushed her face against my leg. "I'm so sorry." She said in regret.
My ears dropped before I stroked her mane gently with my hoof. "Hey, it was never your fault. It was more my fault than anyone else's, I shouldn't have made Applejack hide her Element in your house…it led Blaze right to you." I said before I cupped her chin with her hoof and lifted it up gently so she could look up at me. "Don't blame yourself for any of it. Zelga would've attacked at some point anyway. The important thing to focus on is that we're both safe now, ok?" I said in a gentle voice.
Applebloom sniffed before she smiled and nodded. "Ok Matt…thanks." She said in a quiet voice.
I returned her smile before I pulled my hoof away and smirked. "But you know what's best about this cast?...Having my best friends sign it!" I said before I pulled out a black marker pen. I took off the lid and held it down to them. "Go for it, girls." I said, holding my leg still for them to draw on it.
Scootaloo gasped. "Awesome!" she cheered before she grabbed the pen with her mouth and came up to my leg. She drew a lightning bolt on it before she passed the pen to Sweetie Belle, who drew a heart on it before she past it to Applebloom. Applebloom took a moment to think about what she was gonna draw until she thought of something.
Applebloom began drawing something on it before she finished, revealing it to be my cutie mark with a heart around it. I saw this and smiled warmly at Applebloom, knowing the bond we shared would never be broken. "Nice work, girls." I said before Applebloom gave the pen back to me. "Well I should be going, I need to find your sister and talk about work stuff. Don't get into any trouble in the meantime, ok?" I said with a small smirk.
"Don't worry, we won't." Sweetie Belle said before she looked at her friends. "C'mon Crusaders, lets go get our Animal Whispering at Fluttershy's place." She said with excitement. "Yeah!" Applebloom and Scootaloo cheered in agreement before they all turned and galloped away.
I smiled in amusement as I shook my head. "Yeah, they're gonna get into trouble." I said before I grabbed the j-stick with my hoof and made the chair spin around. But upon turning it around, I was met with a scary face hovering right in front of mine. My eyes widened in fright before I yelled out loudly, making me fall back on my chair and my back hit the ground.
I weakly lifted my head up to have a better look of what I saw, that's when I saw that it was Discord hovering in the air in front of me. "Well that was fun." Discord said before he snapped his fingers. Another Discord then appeared behind me, but he was dressed as a nurse with orange curly hair. "Let me help you up, you big klutz." He said in a womanly voice as he grabbed my chair and pushed me back up properly.
The nurse Discord then disappeared, leaving me with the real one. "So, what's been going on in your life, my green feathered friend?" he asked curiously.
I looked up at him with an uneasy glare, remembering how he's lied to us for ages about losing half his power when actually he had it all along. I pushed my hoof against the j-stick and made the chair move forward, passing Discord and leaving him confused.
As I kept moving, I was suddenly caught up by Discord riding a slowly moving tricycle. "I take it you're still a little steamed about that whole 'having all my power the whole time' thing, right?" he asked with a raised eye-brow.
I didn't look at him, but I answered him. "You've lied to us for months and you've yet to tell anyone else beside me. There was a time I thought I could trust you, but now I don't even know what to think." I said as I made the chair keep moving.
"Maybe…you should think I've been on my best behaviour during those months so you know I'm not as bad as you're starting to think?" Discord said with a nervous grin.
I looked at him with an unamused look before I pushed down harder on the j-stick and made the chair move faster. Seeing this, Discord made his tricycle disappear before he hovered in the air, he then turned away and crossed his arms. "Fine! You don't want to trust me? You don't want to be my friend anymore? Fine by me! I don't need you, I have plenty of other fri-" Discord began before he spun back around with a saddened look on his face. "Please don't leave me! You and Twilight were the only ones who gave me a chance, you were the first friend I ever made. Remember when we did all those pranks together? How we bonded?" he wept as he followed me from behind on his knees.
I thought about it for a moment before I sighed. I made the chair stop before I turned my head around to face him. "How do I know you won't cause chaos again? Those urges are still in you and I know you still want to do it, so how do I know you really want to change?" I asked him with a slightly unconvinced look.
Discord stood back up. "Well how am I supposed to know? You really do have trust issues, don't you? I mean, I know you're wife has paranoid moments, but this really takes the cake." He said as he crossed his arms again.
With that, I started moving the chair forward again to keep on my way. But was suddenly stopped by Discord appearing in front of me. "Ok! Ok! What do I need to do to earn your trust back? I'll do anything to prove myself, just name it." he said with a confident look.
I thought about it for I thought of something. "Ok, you really want to prove yourself?" I asked, earning a nod from him. "Then tell Princess Celestia the truth." I said, giving him my answer.
Once he did that, Discord's brave smile went south and there was a glass-smashing sound as he frowned in fright. "Oh…umm…can't I do something else? Maybe clean her castle until it shines like a diamond? Clean Luna's castle until it shines like a diamond? Clean both castles until they shine like a diamond?" he said, his voice getting higher with each sentence. "…Cure world hunger?" he said lastly with a normal tone.
I then shook my head. "No…the world hunger thing is good and all, but Celestia deserves the truth. You may not know this Discord, but she thinks a lot about you, the least you can do is be honest with her. As for Twilight and the others, I was too busy with other things to tell them about you before, but that's about to change, I'm gonna tell them as soon as I get out of this thing." I said, referring to my chair.
Discord then gained a slightly frightened and worried look. "Well hold on! L-Lets not do anything crazy here. Do they really need to know? I mean, it's not really that much of a deal, right?" he said nervously.
"It is a big deal, Discord!" I said loudly. "Everyone here trusts you and sees you as a friend, friends should be honest with each other and tell each other everything, otherwise what's the point in being friends with someone if you can't trust them?" I said before I realized what I said and how it sounded. "Damn, that was corny, where did that come from?" I said to myself in a whisper as I rubbed my head with my hoof.
Discord scoffed. Knowing he wasn't going to get out of this, his eyes burned in anger and frustration. "Well then fine! Go ahead, tell Twilight and your friends! See if I care if they shun me out just like you have! I don't care if Celestia scolds me after I have to the tell her! I don't even care if I get turned back into stone afterwords! Do you hear me, I. DON'T. CARE!" Discord yelled before he disappeared in a flash of light, leaving a scorch mark in the grass.
I looked down at the scorch mark and sighed. "Discord…I'm sorry." I said as my ears dropped in slight sadness. I then pushed my hoof against the j-stick again and made the chair move forward to continue to my destination.
A few minutes later: Sweet Apple Acers
After arriving at Sweet Apple Acers, I made my way towards the barn and saw Applejack preparing the delivery wagon, getting it ready for me to take it out to make my deliveries. My mind was still on Discord, how he reacted when I told him I had to tell everyone the truth, he was so angry…but at the same time, a little scared. I couldn't help but feel bad for him.
While I was lost in thought, I was suddenly stopped by Applejack pressing her hoof against my chair. "Hey, you ok, sugar cube? You seemed to have your head in the clouds there." Applejack said with a slightly concerned look as she places her hoof back down on the ground.
I snapped out of my thoughts and looked at her. "Huh? Oh, sorry Applejack...I just...got out of a little spat with Discord." I confessed as I looked down at the ground with my ears down, think about how I was gonna tell her the truth.
Applejack gave me a curious look. "Oh? Well what's buggin' the two of ya? You two always seem real close." She said as she walked over to a box of supplies and lifted it up on her back.
I watched her load it onto the wagon before I sighed. "Applejack...there's something I need to tell you about Discord." I said as I made the chair move towards her.
Applejack returned her attention to me. "Yeah?" She asked, ready to listen.
I was ready to tell her everything. About Discord's lie, how he tricked us, how he could go out of control at any moment. However, I couldn't bring myself to tell her, something was telling me to tell her later. "He's planning on turning your carrots giant...as a joke. Thought I'd give you a heads up." I said, saying the first thing I could come up with.
Applejack gasped a little and gave a slight firm look. "I thought I told him to stay away from my crops! What the hay is he doin' trying to mess with it?!" She said before he kicked the dirt in frustration. "Dag nab it! How am I supposed to keep him from doin' that?" She asked.
I shrugged. "I don't know. All I know is there are gonna be some pretty happy rabbits." I said with an amused smirk, seeing how Applejack reacted to my small fib. I then decided to change the subject and moved to the front of the cart. "Anyway. So is the wagon ready? I think doing some work will get my mind off my condition." I said, actually looking forward to making my deliveries.
Applejack was silent for a moment with a look of awkwardness on her face. "Yeah, about that." She began as she rubbed the back of her head with her hoof. "I...don't think you should do your deliveries today...or any other day until you're all fixed up." She said nervously.
My small smile went away before I made the chair turn around to face her. "What was that?" I asked with a raised eye-brow.
Applejack sighed before she walked over to me. "Listen Matt, I know you wanna do this to get your mind off things, but we can't let one of our own do any work when they've had an accident." She said before she looked off into space. "I remember this one time when Big Mac hurt himself and the orchard was full apple trees. Now, because Big Mac was in no shape to do nothin', I had to-"
"Buck all the trees yourself and you got super tired and cranky, I know the story." I said with a small smirk.
Applejack returned her attention to me and closed her eyes half-way. "Twilight tell ya that story?" She asked.
My smirk grew. "Something like that." I said before I shook my smile off. "But what about the deliveries? Who'll take my place? What about my pay?!" I asked loudly in panic.
"Don't worry your green head about the deliveries, Big Mac is takin' care of it today." Applejack said before she looked outside the barn. "Isn't that right, Big Mac?" She asked.
At that moment, Big Mac walked in with a warm smile. "Eeyup." He said as he made his way over to the wagon.
I watched as Big Mac attached himself to the wagon and began to pull it out of the barn. "But…but…what am I supposed to do now? And again, what about my pay?" I asked.
Applejack waved her hoof. "Don't get your tail in a knot, there's plenty of stuff to do in Ponyville…and you're getting a paid vacation, happy now?" she said before she walked up behind me and started pushing me away with her head. "Now go on, get goin' and enjoy your day." she said as she pushed me out of the barn and towards the exit.
Once we reached the exit to Sweet Apple Acres, she rushed me out of the farm land. "Remember to be careful on that thing." Applejack said before she turned around and started making her way back to the barn, leaving me alone at the entrance.
I stayed there, completely puzzled by what just happened. "Did…did I just get benched?" I asked myself before I looked back at Applejack, who had already reached the barn. "Did you just bench me?!" I called, but got no reply from her. I then turned my head back around and sighed heavily. "Well…maybe she's right, I should take it easy for a while. Maybe I could go to the Spa, they might be able to help with my leg." I said before I pushed my hoof against the g-stick again and made the chair more forward back towards town.
Ponyville Spa
I arrived at the Ponyville Spa and made my way towards the entrance. Luckily, there was no step on the door, so I cloud just roll in. I made the chair move up to the counter and saw one of the Spa Twins sitting in front of it, reading a magazine.
"Hey." I greeted. "Can I have a gentle massage for my leg? The doctor said I should try this and see if it relieves the tension." I said with a small smile.
The Twin lowered the magazine and looked down at me. "Oh, hello Mr Matthew. I haven't seen you around here in ages." She said before she put down the magazine and left the counter. "A gentle massage, was it? Right this way." She said. With that, I followed the Twin into one of the massage rooms to get my treatment.
A moment later, I managed to lift myself off the chair and got up onto the massage bed, I gently lied down to avoid hurting my bad wing and prepared to feel relaxation.
"Ok Mr Matthew, I'm going to start now. Just tell me if it hurts or anything." The Twin said before she gently started rubbing my bad leg with her hooves.
There were points where it hurt a bit, but they soon went away and were replaced by nice relaxing feelings. It felt so good that I kept forgetting that my leg was injured in the first place.
"Enjoying yourself?" A familiar voice said on the bed next to mine. I opened my eyes and turned my head to see Rarity, she was lying on a separate massage bed in a dressing-gown with other Twin filing her hind-hooves. "Must I tell Twilight about this?" She said with an amused smirk.
I lifted my head up in panic. "What?!...I wasn't...this isn't...you know I wouldn't..." I said, trying to explain this to her.
Rarity giggled. "Oh come now, Matthew, I was merely jesting. I know you're just trying to make your leg feel better." She said before she looked at her leg. "Oooh, does it still hurt?" She asked, feeling sympathy.
I nodded. "Yeah, from time to time." I said before I sighed. "I couldn't do my job today because of it, Applejack let Big Macintosh do it instead." I said, sounding disappointed.
Rarity gave me a gentle smile. "But isn't that a good thing? You have the whole day off." She said before her smile turned sly. "You could spend it with Twilight, she could tend to that leg all day long *giggle*."
I smiled warmly at the thought, but shook it off to speak to Rarity. "I'd like that, but...I just don't ponies thinking me as weak because of this." I said looking down at my leg as the Twin kept rubbing it.
"Oh that's not it, darling. After everything you did to protect the town, the last thing everyone sees you as is weak. They just don't want you to push yourself any further than you already have." Rarity said in a gentle voice.
I turned my head to face her again and I smile. "You think so?" I asked curiously.
Rarity nodded. "Of course, Twilight would tell you the exact same thing." She said before she looked at something and then back to me. "Also, if you're hoping on keeping her around, I suggest you get a different massager." She said with an amused smile.
I gave her a confused look. "Why?" I asked.
Keeping her smile, Rarity answered. "Because you may not be enjoying it the way I joked about before, but she is." She said as she pointed her hoof in the direction of the Twin massaging my hooves.
I turned my head to look over to her and saw the Twin had a fan-girl smile on her face. "I'm massaging the hoof of the Saviour of Canterlot and Ponyville! My dream has finally become reality!" She said before she let out an excited giggle.
I blush in embarrassment before I chuckle nervously. "Haha…forgot that I had fans." I said before I leaned up and pulled my leg away. "You know, I think my leg is a lot better. Thanks a lot sweetness, you're a natural, I'll be sure to tip you." I said to the Twin before I tried to get off the bed and back onto my chair, but I was having trouble getting down by myself. "C-Can someone give me a hoof?" I asked awkwardly.
Rarity rolled her eyes before her horn glowed and I was suddenly lifted off the bed, I was gently lowered down to my chair and placed softly onto it. I looked at her and smiled. "Thanks Rarity." I said.
Rarity waved her hoof. "What are friends for?" she said before she went back to enjoying her hooves been filed.
I then returned my attention to the Twin before I looked down at the little pouch attached to the side of the chair, I reached my hoof into it and pulled out a few bits. I gave them to the Twin. "There's your tip." I said before I pushed my hoof against the j-stick and made the chair move forward. "Thanks again." I said as I made my way out of the room to leave the spa.
The Twin giggled again before she waved her hoof goodbye. "You're welcome, Mr Matthew." She said with a bright smile before she went over to her sister to help her tend to Rarity.
As they both began filing her hooves, one of the Twins noticed something. "Is that a chip?!" she said in a gasp of shock, making Rarity gasp as she looked at her hoof to see how bad it was.
A few minutes later: Ponyville streets
After leaving the spa, I just started wondering around Ponyville to see if I could find anything to do. Maybe I could go to Sugar Cube Corner to see Pinkie and the Cakes, maybe I could go to Fluttershy's cottage to see her and help her with her animals. That was the problem with days off, you're not sure what to do with yourself.
"I used to be able to do anything when I had a day off, but I don't have a computer or a TV here, so I'm pretty much screwed with that." I said before I stopped at a cross-path in the street, I stayed there as a few wagons passed by.
I rested my head against my hoof as I waited for them to pass. But at that moment, Rainbow Dash suddenly shot up beside me. "Hi Matt! Aren't you supposed to be at work?" She asked curiously as she hovered in the air.
I looked up at her and shrugged. "Apparently not. Applejack wouldn't let me work because of my injuries." I said, sounding board.
"Well that blows." Rainbow Dash said before she turned her attention away from me. Suddenly, a sly smirk appeared on her face and she looked down at me. "So...this pretty much means you can't fly, right?" She asked.
I shook my head. "Nope, I'm grounded for a while." I said as I continued to wait for the wagons to pass. "Man, there's a lot of wagons today." I said out-loud.
"So...this probably also means you're not as fast as you used to be." Rainbow Dash said, continuing to smirk deviously.
I was starting to see where she was going with this and looked up at her. "I suppose not...by air, anyway. But this chair can go pretty fast." I said, patting my hoof against the g-stick.
Rainbow's smirk became wide as she lowered herself down lower beside me. "Oh yeah? Think it can beat me to the end of the street where that book store is?" She said as she pointed her hoof down the street past the wagons and other ponies.
I looked at where the finish line would be, it was at the end of the long street. At the end of that street was the book store she mentioned, there was a sign in the shape of a book hanging above the door, so it was easy to spot. I returned my attention to Rainbow Dash and smirked. "You're on." I said.
With that, Rainbow Dash landed next to me and prepared to take off to start the race. "As soon as the traffic passes, we're off. Don't fall behind." She said as she spread her wings out wide.
I prepared to set off as well, my hoof twitched as I held it above the j-stick, ready to slam down against it and shoot off into the lead.
Then, finally, the traffic stopped and we both shot off down the street. The wheels of my chair screeched against the ground as it kicked back a cloud of dust behind me. Rainbow flew beside me, my chair was fast enough to keep up with her, but we both kept dipping back and forth in the lead.
As we raced down the street, we past a few ponies. Some watched in awe at how fast we went, others had to leap out of the way as we shot past them. We past a few ponies we knew.
Like Scootaloo, who was riding on her scooter. We went past her so fast that we made her and her scooter spin until she was on backwards.
We also pasted Granny Smith, sort off. Rainbow shot past her first, startling her. She shook her hoof at Rainbow with an annoyed look on her face. I wish I could say the same happened to me. Instead of rushing past her, I actually crashed into her.
After that happened, I opened my eyes to see I was carrying her in my arms. "Haha." I laugh sheepishly. "Hi Granny Smith." I said with a nervous smile.
I didn't get a reply from her, instead she hit me over the head with her purse. "Ow!" I said in pain before I tossed Granny Smith away. Luckily, she landed safely on a pile of hay.
I could see Rainbow was starting to get ahead of me, so I pressed my hoof against the j-stick with all my strength and it made the chair go faster. Within a minutes, I caught up to Rainbow until I was beside her, she looked at me with shock before she tried to fly harder to make herself go faster. But it wasn't any good, I was starting to get ahead of her.
A large smirk came on my face as I rushed through the streets. I managed to avoid crashing in to anything or anyone, shifting left and right to get past ponies, stalls and other wagons. At this rate, it looked as though I was gonna win this time. "You're getting slow, Dashy." I said as I looked back at her.
Getting a growl from her, I turned my head back around to face the road, but was met with shock when I saw what was up ahead. It was Spike carrying a bunch of scrolls across the street. He stopped in the road when he saw me coming right at him, he froze in place in fear and closed his eyes tight.
But before I could reach him, I quickly grabbed the j-stick with my hoof and pushed it to the left, trying to make the chair turn. My chair suddenly turned away and I managed to drive past Spike, but now I was heading right towards one of the cottages. Ponies ran out of the way to avoid be run over by me. But before I could crash into the cottage, I pulled back on the j-stick and made the chair turn the other way so I was heading down the street again.
Unfortunately, Rainbow Dash had taken the lead and was now heading towards the finish line. But I couldn't get back into the race, I was still having trouble controlling my chair.
I shifted through the street uncontrollably, avoiding everything in my path to make sure I didn't crash or hurt anyone. I managed to pass a few store-stands without crashing into anything, but it didn't last as I suddenly crashed into a fruit stand, completely wrecking it. Of course, I was thrown from my chair and into one of the fruit baskets, squishing all the fruit inside it.
I leaned up in the fruit basket I was now sitting in and was met with a tomato suddenly splattering down onto my head.
While I was sitting in that mess, Rainbow Dash shot ahead and pasted the book store that worked as the finish line. Once she did, she flew up into the air and chuckled with victory. "Haha! Rainbow Dash wins again! The Iron Pony stays on top and the crowd is going wild! *Haaah! Haaah!*" she said while making crowd-cheering noises in a whisper.
Meanwhile, I wiped the tomato off my head with my hoof, but it was soon replaced by a shadow shrouding over me. I looked up to see the market sales pony looking down at me with an angry glare. I smiled nervously before I reached my hoof into my pouch, knowing what he wanted.
I pulled out a hoof-full of bits and held them out to the pony, which he snatched away before he looked at them. He then returned his gaze to me and glared at me again. I sighed before I reached into the pouch again and pulled out all the bits I had.
The marketer took them without a word before he gave me a satisfied smile, mixed with a bit of a 'I'm the boss' attitude. What's worse is that he then walked away and left me stuck where I was. I tried to get myself up to return to my chair, but I couldn't with both my leg and wing out of order.
But at that moment, Spike rushed over and came up to me. "Matt! Are you ok?" He asked in concern before he went over to where my chair had crashed and brought it over to me.
"Yeah, I'm fine...I'm broke in more ways than one...but I'm fine. Think you can get me out of this?" I said, reaching my hooves out for him to help me up.
Spike pushed the chair in front of me before he walked around it and came up to me. "Sure." He said before he grabbed my hooves. "Ok, I'm gonna pull you up now, ready?" He asked.
I gave him a nod. With that, Spike started pulling back on my arms and tried to get me out of the basket and onto my hooves. But Spike wasn't really strong enough to pull up a full-grown pony, so it wasn't going so well.
As Spike pulled, I tried to lean forward and help him get me out. But suddenly, a pair of arms wrapped themselves under my own from behind and I was suddenly lifted out of the basket. I turned my head around to see it was Rainbow lifting me up. "You gotta be more careful with that chair of yours, Matt, you might have an accident." She said with an amused smirk before she lowered me down until I was sat on my chair again.
Once I was back on my chair, I looked up at her and sighed. "I take it you won the race." I said, already knowing the answer.
Rainbow smirked and waved her hoof. "Cha! Of course I did! What did you expect from the most awesome pony ever?" She gloated.
I threw my eyes before I turned the chair around and left the fruit stand. Once I was back on the streets, I looked around and saw everypony looking at me with unpleasant looks, probably wondering what I was thinking riding through the streets like that.
I sighed again as I hung my head. I made the chair turn and I continued to go down the street. At this point, I just wanted to go home, this day had been a disaster and it still wasn't over.
Suddenly, Rainbow Dash and Spike rushed up beside me. "Ok, so maybe racing through the streets in a wheelchair wasn't a good idea. My bad. But you have to admit, it was a total blast! I mean, did you see how fast we were going? I thought I'd have to pull off another Sonic Rainboom to win." Rainbow Dash said with a large smile on her face.
I turned my head to face her. "Not that close to the ground, you weren't. I think there's been enough property damage for now." I said to her.
Spike then placed his claw on the side of my chair. "Aww, don't be like that, Matt. We're just trying to brighten your spirit." He said.
I looked down at him. "...sorry, Spike...I'm just feeling a little bit of a screw up today. First I got stuck on a rock, then I couldn't go to work, and now not only did I run my chair through the streets like a road-raged maniac, but I destroyed a fruit-stand and lost all my money. Today just isn't my day and i think i should just go home." I said as i pushed my hoof against the j-stick a little and made the chair go a bit faster.
Spike caught up to me again and looked at me. "I know you've struggled with the wheelchair, but it won't be long until you can come out of it and you'll be back in action. Just think about that the next time you feel down about it." He said with a small smile.
I thought about it for a moment before a small smile started growing on my face. "I suppose...that's one way of looking at it." I said before I looked down at Spike. "Thanks, little bro." I said lovingly.
Spike's smile grew. "No problem, big bro!" He said, giving me a friendly dude wink.
Just then, Rainbow Dash shot up beside me with an energetic look on her face. "So...how about we continue our race to the Library? First one there needs to by the other a soda!" She said with an excited smile.
I looked at her with a silence and a raised eye-brow.
Rainbow's excited smile then turned into a sheepish one as she rubbed the back of her head with her hoof. "Ah-haha...right, never-mind." She said before she landed on the ground and started walking beside me. "But at least let me help you get home. You know, just to be safe."
I then gave her an un-easy look. "Oh...you know, you don't have to do that, I can get there myself. Besides, I have Spike here with me" I said. Usually, I was ok with walking with a friend, but she wanted to help me get home, like I couldn't do it myself in my chair.
"I know that, but you might get yourself into another jam along the way, one that Spike might not be able to help you out of. So you're stuck with me, green boy." She said while flicking my nose with one of her wing feathers.
Knowing there was no point in arguing with her, I sighed and smiled at her. "Alright Rainbow, just try to keep up." I said before I pushed my hoof against the j-stick more and my chair started to move faster.
Rainbow Dash's jaw dropped. "Keep...keep up?! Do you remember who just won that race and who crashed in a bunch of fruit?!" She said before she took into the air again and caught up with me. "That's it! You're so getting me that soda!" She said as she trotted beside me back towards the Library.
That night: Library
After returning to the library, and giving Rainbow one of my sodas in the fridge, I stayed there for the rest of the day until it was night time. I pretty much hung out with my family. I played board games with Spike & Jeff and read some books with Peewee.
The only person I didn't hang out with was Twilight, we decided to save that for tonight, if you know what I mean. Now, at last, that time had come. Massages at the spa are wondrous, but compared with how Twilight's touch, it doesn't hold a candle to it.
Twi and I were in the living room as we made our way to the stairs that lead upstairs. Twilight looked back at me with sly eyes. "I know you've had a hard day, Matt. But don't worry, I read up about this sort of thing and know how to make it all better...then I'll make it even better." She said before she trotted up the stairs.
I smiled in excitement as my wings sprung out, I didn't even mind that my bad wing was hurt in the proses...ok, I did mind a bit. "Ow." I said with the large grin still on my face.
I the pushed my hoof against the j-stick and the chair moves towards the stairs. "Here I come, babe." I said to myself as I got closer to the stairs. But suddenly, I was stopped by a sudden thud.
"What the?" I said as I looked down to see what I banged into. It was the first step of the stairs, it was stopping me from moving. "Oh right...stairs and wheels don't mix well." I said before I groaned. "Now, how am I gonna get up there?" I said to myself.
I then pushed my hoof against the j-stick again and it made the wheels scrape against the step, harshly trying to drive over the step. It started to leave a black mark on the side of the step and I was forced to stop, mostly because it was making a horrible noise.
"Matt! Are you ok? Do you need some help?" Twilight called from upstairs.
I looked up the stairs and, even though I couldn't see Twilight, I answered her. "No, I'm fine." I said before I tried to think of a way to get up these stairs.
I then grabbed each side of the chair and jumped up with it. It took a few tries, but I managed to get the first pair of wheels onto the first step. "Ha! Knew I'd find a way around it." I said grabbed the chair again and do it again.
I then jumped up with the chair again, but instead of going any higher, the chair started to fall backwards. "W-Whow!" I yelled as I feel back on my chair and it hit the floor with a hard thud.
Unfortunately, when I fell back, my back fell back against my bad wing and I fought to hold back a pain-filled yell. I breathed rapidly through my nose, unable to breath through my mouth at the time.
The loud noise was enough to attract Twilight's attention and she appeared at the top of the stairs. "Matt?" She said in wonder before she saw the condition I was in. "*gasp* Matt! Are you ok?" She said before her horn glowed.
"Preachy, thanks honey." I said, looking like a tortoise stuck on his back.
Suddenly, I was engulfed in Twi's magic and I was picked up from the floor along with the chair. I then started hovering up the stairs. When I reached the top, the chair was placed under me and I was gently lowered down onto it. Once I had gotten over the pain in my wing, I looked at Twilight. "Thanks." I said.
Twilight placed her hoof on my back and gave me a look of pity. "Are you sure? Maybe we should leave our little together time and just rest tonight." She said, having second-thoughts about tonight.
My eyes widened. "No!" I said loudly before I tried to settle down. "I mean...no, we can still turn this around." I said before I took her hoof with mine and rubbed it. "It's been a while since we've done anything like this...don't you miss it as much as I have?" I asked with a small charming smirk.
Twilight smiled before her cheeks turned red. "I suppose I have...but are you sure you can do it with your injuries?" She asked curiously, her cheeks returning to their natural colour.
I looked at my leg. "What? This? This is nothing. Besides, when we plan a special night, nothing can stop me." I said with another smirk.
Twilight giggled. "Then what are you waiting for?" She said as she turned away with a sly smile, her tail gently brushing under my chin as she turned. I then watched as she walked over to the smaller set of stairs that led up to the bedroom level of the room.
Wait a minute...oh crap, I forgot about those stairs!
My jaw dropped in hopelessness as I stared at the next set of stairs. I soon shook it off and pushed my hoof against the j-stick, making the chair move towards the stairs.
Once I reached them, I looked up at Twilight and saw she had already reached the top. "Are you coming?" She asked with a small grin on her face.
My ears dropped as I looked down at the stairs and then back up at her. "Umm, are you gonna help me with...you know?" I asked as I pointed my hoof at the stairs.
Twilight kept her grin. "Oh, so now there is something that can stop you. I thought you said your injuries were nothing...so if that's true, getting up this small set of stairs should be easy." She said before she walked away over to the bed.
I couldn't believe she just left me here like that. "What?!...that's it, when I get up there, you're in big trouble!" I called.
"Is that a threat or a promise?" Twilight's voice said from the upper level.
My cheeks went red before I shook it off. "We'll see." I said to myself with a devious grin on my face. I then looked back down at the stairs and tried to think of a way up there.
I knew trying to make the chair go up them was a no-go, so I had to try something new. I decided to ditch the chair and crawl for it. I gently got off of the chair, being careful not to stand on my bad leg. But standing on one hoof was harder than it may seems.
I struggled to keep my balance, but it eventually gave way and I fell forward onto the stairs. "Ow...again." I said out-loud to myself before I placed my fore-hooves in front of me and slowly pushed myself back up.
With my front-legs wobbling, I started dragging myself up the stairs to reach Twilight. One step at a time, I dragged myself up as if I had two bad legs instead of one. But finally, after what seemed like an hour, I reached the top of the stairs and was finally able to take a breather.
Lying on top of the stairs, I panted gently as a small smile appeared on my face. "Made it...that wasn't so bad." I said before I looked over to the bed. "Now you bad girl, I'm gonna teach you not to..." I stopped when I saw Twilight.
She was lying on her stomach on the bed, her eyes closed and heavily breathing. She had fallen asleep while I was dragging myself up.
I didn't understand how she could've fallen asleep that fast, she was so eager and flirty, now she's sleeping. I then dragged myself up the rest of the stairs before I started dragging myself towards the bed.
Once I got there, I pulled myself up onto the bed before I crawled over to Twilight. "Twi?...Twilight?" I said gently as I nudged her with my hoof.
Twilight groaned as she woke up and looked at me while still lying down. "Matt?...Did you just now get to bed?" She asked tiredly.
I nodded. "Yeah...you must've been really tired, Twi. You fell asleep while I was getting up here." I said, gently stroking her mane with my hoof.
Twilight gave me a confused look, mixed with tiredness. "Of course I fell asleep, I waited here for half-an-hour." She said.
My ears dropped and my eyes widened. "Half-an-hour? Wait...you mean to tell me I took half-an-hour to get up those stairs?" I asked in shock.
"That and possibly longer, depending on how far you were went I went to sleep." Twilight said before she yawned. "Anyway, I'm too tired to do anything now...maybe tomorrow night." She said before she got up and went over to her side of the bed, she then got under the covers and rested her head on the pillow. "Goodnight Matt...I love..." She didn't have time to finish as she went back to sleep.
I laid there, my mouth hanging wide open in disbelief. I could've had a fun time with Twilight if it wasn't for this leg and wing. I closed my mouth and growled in frustration. "That's it!" I said out-loud, but quietly so I wouldn't wake up Twilight. "Get me stuck in the streets, that's ok. Cost me my job, fine. Humiliate me in the streets, kinda pushing it. Make me lose a challenge against Rainbow, really pushing it. But cost me a fun nightie with my own wife, that's when things get personal!" I said to myself before I tried to think of a way to fix this. ""But how am I gonna get rid if this thing? Who's good at healing broken bones?" I asked myself.
I thought about it for a moment before I eventually thought of the perfect person, which made a satisfied yet devious grin grow on my face.
The next day: Zecora's hut
Once I woke up, I left the Library and went straight into the Ever Free Forest to go to Zecora's hut. From what I remember, she had a cure for pretty much anything, including injured bones. Luckily, it wasn't hard getting to her hut, I just has to force the chair over a few tree roots and rocks.
Once I got there, Zecora was see surprised to see me, for she hasn't seen me in such a long time, she was even more surprised to see I was in a wheelchair.
After entering her hut, I was now sat by her table filling her in on what's happened recently. "After the battle, I was stuck in the hospital for a few days. Applebloom's fine, thank god, but I'm having trouble coping with all this." I said, pointing my hoof down at the chair.
"Hmm." Zecora hummed as she rubbed her chin with her hoof. "A wheelchair is a heavy burden, this is true. But what exactly is it that's bothering you? You can still move, breath and talk, yet you feel helpless without the ability to walk?" She said before she grabbed her tie with her hooves and drank it.
"It's costing me a lot. First, I get stuck in the streets, then Applejack tells me I can't do my job in this state, then I humiliate myself in front of everyone, and to top it off, it cost me a romantic night in bed with Twilight." I said, feeling frustrated that all those things happened in just one day.
The last part about Twilight nearly made Zecora spit her tie from her mouth, but she held it in and heavily swallowed it. "I see what troubles you...but what do you want me to do? Cook up a spell or perhaps a healing brew?" She asked curiously with a raised eye-brow.
I stayed silent for a moment before I answered. "One if those bone healing potions you have would be nice." I said in a simple tone.
Zecora sighed before she stood up and walked over to a wall covered by a curtain, she grabbed it with her hoof before she threw it open, revealing shelves of glowing potions. "I do not know if this is a good idea, young Matt. The potions have never really be tested, it could cause side effects or worse than that." She said as she turned back around to face me.
I then grabbed the j-stick with my hoof before I made the chair spin around and move towards her. "Please Zecora, I don't need my wing healed, just my leg. I've tried to put up with it, but I can't do it anymore, I feel so helpless and pathetic." I said before i gave her the sad-eyes trick. "Isn't there anything you have that can make me better?" I asked before I pouted my bottom lip.
Zecora threw her eyes before she answered. "Alright! There's no need to beg, I might have something to help with your leg." She said before she returned her attention to her potions and started searching through them.
At that moment, my sad eyes and pout went away and was replaced by a pleased smile. "Thanks Zecora." I said cheerfully.
I waited for a few minutes as Zecora kept searching through the positions. After a moment, Zecora grabbed a bottle with her mouth before she held it over an empty bowl on the table in below the shelves. "You wing will have to heal on its own, but this brew should help you with your leg bone." She said.
I moved up to the table and looked down at the potion. "Whow...so, do I just drink it now, or...?" I asked, not sure if I should drink it yet.
Zecora looked at me and nodded silently.
"Awesome." I said before I gently grabbed the bowl with my hooves and brought it up to my face. I then titled the bowl up against my mouth and drank the potion. Once I was done, I placed the bowl down and waited for the healing to begin.
However, I didn't feel anything, my leg still felt stiff and still ached a bit. "Umm...nothing's happening." I said to Zecora.
Zecora looked at my leg in confusion. "How strange, I thought for sure it would do the trick...maybe it needs a little something to make it tick." She said before she walked over to her book shelf and took one of the books out.
As she started reading up on the potion, I looked down at my leg and thought I felt it starting to get better. I started to feel excited, was the potion starting to work? I wanted to check, so I slowly lifted myself off the chair and lowered my bad leg towards the floor.
My hoof touched the floor and I decided to give it a better test, I slowly put some weight on it and waited to see if it would hurt or not. Unfortunately, I felt a sudden strike of pain zap across my leg. I retracted it and sat back down on the chair, trying to hold back from yelling in pain.
Zecora kept reading the book until she found something. "Hmm, I see, so this will trigger the remedy." She said before she turned back around to face me. "To trigger the potion's power of healing, you must first experience a warm feeling." She said with a small smile, expecting me to understand.
However, I didn't, I just stared at her with a confused look. "A warm feeling? You mean, lie in the sunlight or something?" I asked.
Zecora's smile disappeared before she shook her head. "No, a warm feeling regarding something rather crude, something that will get you in a….heavenly mood." She said, smiling in amusing embarrassment.
I continued to stare at her in confusion. Zecora rolled her eyes and groaned before she walked over to me, she then whispered into my ear. As she spoke on, my eyes grew wide and my cheeks went red. "Oh…" I said before Zecora moved her head away. "Zecora…I like you and all, but I'm married and I don't think I can. I've kissed other mares beside Twilight, like Luna and Rainbow, but I don't think I can do a third without Twi's say so." I said, explaining why I could do 'that' with her.
Zecora groaned again. "I wasn't talking about me! I was saying you should do it with Twilight, that will trigger the remedy." She said loudly and firmly, looking at me like I was clueless.
My ears perked up. "Oh right, that's much better." I said before I realized what it sounded like. "Not that you're not attractive or anything, you're very attractive, you're gonna make one voodoo witchdoctor guy very happy someday." I said with a small yet nervous smile.
Zecora frowned. "Just because I make potions that seem like voodoo, doesn't mean I'm in to stallions that do too." She said before she rubbed her chin with her hoof. "Well...I did like this this one witchdoctor who was rather handsome, he knew how to make three potions in only five minutes and then-some." She said, smiling as she thought back.
I smiled in amusement as I shook my head. "Well anyway, I better get going. Thanks a lot Zecora, hopefully this'll work." I said as I made the chair spin around and I made it move towards the exit.
"You're welcome, and don't worry. The potion will surely work, but if it doesn't, you'll have to wait, there's no hurry." Zecora said as she watched me leave.
"Unless I'm forced to." i said under my breath as I left the hut.
Once I was gone, she walked over to her caldron and continued to make her latest brew.
Later that day: Ponyville Library
After returning home, I gave Spike a full bag of bits so he could leave the house with Jeff and Peewee, giving Twi and I a few hours alone.
Luckily, Spike accepted it and left with the guys. Twilight was still in her study at the time, she kept searching book after book to find anything on the True Order, but she couldn't find anything. I told her that she could stop, but she insisted on carrying on.
I wanted her to take a break, but if she really wanted to do it, I couldn't stop her. Plus, this gave me time to set everything up upstairs.
A few minutes later, everything was ready in the bedroom, I just didn't take into thought about one thing. How was I gonna get Twilight to come up, it took me forever to get up here myself in this condition.
"Dammit!" I yelled as I threw myself down on the bed. "Now what? I can't wait for her to come up, it'll probably take too long! And I can't go down, otherwise I'll never get back up here! *groan* maybe I sent Spike and the others away too soon." I said to myself before I stared up at the ceiling with hopelessness. "What am I gonna do?"
Suddenly, I heard a small 'hoo' before I leaned up on the bed, that's when I saw Owlicious fly into the room through the open window and land on the end of the bed.
"Owlicious!" I said cheerfully with a large smile. "You can help me! I need you to go down stairs and tell Twilight to come up here, can you do that for me?" I asked curiously.
Owlicious gave me a confused look. "Hoo?"
My smile went away. "Can you go down stairs and bring Twilight up?" I asked, pointing my hoof down at the stairs that led down to the living room.
Owlicious looked at the stairs before he returned his attention to me. "Hoo."
"You don't understand a word I'm saying, do you?" I asked before I sighed and tried again. "You, fly down stairs, get Twilight...to come up...get me?" I asked, using my hooves in motion to instruct him.
Owlicious was silent for a moment before he took into the air and flew down towards the stairs, which he then flew down. "That's it, buddy! You got this!" I said as my smile came back.
After another few minutes, I was starting to think Owlicious didn't do anything and he just went down stairs for the sake of it. That was until I heard someone coming up the stairs.
I quickly closed the curtains in front of the window to make the room darker. I then laid myself down onto the bed on my stomach and waited for her to come up to this floor.
From behind, I heard her teach this room before I heard the sound of hooves coming up the next set of stairs, within a matter of seconds, she was up her with me. "Hey babe, I wanted to make up for last night, so I threw some stuff together and got us a bit of time alone." I said with a smirk before I turned the bedside table-lamp on, revealing what I had done to the bedroom.
The bed was covered in rose petals and there were lit candles on the bed-side table. I then turned my head around to face her. "So what do you think?" I asked.
My eyes then widened in shock by what I saw. It was indeed Twilight, but she was with Fluttershy, who stared at me with wide-eyes. "Urrr...Fluttershy came over to ask if you could go with her to the market on Saturday, something about a sale for pets." Twilight said while giving me an unimpressed look.
"It's actually a sale on all pet products and food, it only comes once a year." Fluttershy said quietly while still staring at me with wide eyes.
"But I think the better question is...what is all this?" Twilight asked, pointing her hoof at the bed.
I remained silent and frozen, stuck in shock that I basically just came onto Fluttershy as well as Twilight. I eventually found the strength to speak. "Urrr...it...it was...just something...I wanted to..." I said, trying to think of an excuse. "Urrr...have you ladies been to the spa today? You're glamorously glowing!" I said, trying to act innocent or at least change the subject.
Twilight sighed before she looked at Fluttershy. "Fluttershy, can you come back later, Matt and I need to talk." She said.
Fluttershy kept staring at me until she managed to snap herself out of it. "What? Oh...ok." Fluttershy said before she turned and made her way down the stairs, looking back at us a few times.
Once she went down stairs and left the library, Twilight looked at me with confusion. "Matt, what are you up to this time?" She asked, making it sound like I did stuff like this for a living.
I dragged my body around to face her properly before I answered. "Sorry Twilight, I was just trying to set a mood. I didn't know anyone else was here." I said.
Twilight walked up to the bed and looked at what I did. "You did this so we could have some time together? Is this to make up for last night like you said?" She asked curiously while placing her hoof on the bed.
I didn't know if I should tell her I wanted to do this so I could get my leg back, but I knew lying to her was a bad choice, so I sighed heavily. "Well...that, and Zecora gave me something that could heal my leg." I confessed.
Twilight gave me a confused look. "Ok, but how will...this...help you get your leg back?" She said as she picked up one of the rose petals with her magic.
I blushed as I rubbed the back of my head with my hoof. "Well...apparently, the potion won't work unless I feel a warm loving feeling, and seeing how we didn't get to do anything last night...I thought, what would work best than this?" I said with a sheepish smile.
Twilight looked down at the bed before she looked back up at me. "So you wanted to do this, not only to get your leg back, but to make up for last night?" She asked curiously, earning a nod from me. Twilight then jumped up onto the bed before she sat down beside me. "Matt, I know you want to walk again, but do you really need to go through all this trouble to get it?" She asked in a soft voice.
I looked up at her face with my ears down. "I don't know what else to do. I'm helpless and basically useless like this, how am I supposed to go on until I heal? I can't work, I can't fly, I can't even get up the stairs. What am I supposed to do?" I asked as I sat up, feeling as though it was hopeless.
Twilight wrapped her arm around me and held me close. "You make the best of it." She said with a small smile. "Do what you're able to do in the chair and try to be as strong as possible, don't let yourself feel weak just because everyone else sees you that way." She said.
Twilight's words made me feel a little enlightened, but there was still some darkness in my mind. "But Applejack won't let me work. How am I supposed to be as strong as possible if I'm not allowed to do things?" I said.
Twilight rubbed my back as she continued. "Well yeah, you can't make those deliveries, but that's because you won't be able to pull a whole cart in the chair. But maybe there's some other stuff you can do for Applejack until you get better." She said, trying to make me feel better.
I thought about it for a moment before a small smile appeared on my face. "Yeah...maybe...there's a lot of stuff to do on the farm, maybe Applejack has other jobs I can do, like feeding the chickens or something." I said, my hopes starting to rise back up.
Twilight smiled and patted my back. "That's the spirit. You should go back to Sweet Apple Acres and talk to her, I'm sure she'll have something for you to do." She said.
I continued to smile as I chuckled a little. "It's weird, you know, I usefully loved days off, I'd make a big deal out of a headache just to get a day off, but here and now...I just want to do something and I'm basically bot allowed to do it" I said, explaining how ironic it was.
Twilight smiled in amusement. "You really did stuff that?" She asked with slight disbelief.
I nodded. "Yeah, I was going through some troubles and I just wanted to relax at home. But it's different here, I want to do the work and see everyone in town." I said, thinking about how better the job I had here was compared to the stuff I did back home.
Twilight smiled sweetly. "That's nice of you." She said before her amused smile came back. "But seriously, you made a big deal out of a simple headache just to stay at home?" She said while giggling.
An amused smile grew onto my face as I moved close to her. "I was going through a lot at the time, I couldn't cope with going out while I was in a mental mess." I argued, trying to defend myself.
"Yeah, I bet you were like 'oh mom, can I please stay home today? I'm dying from this headache'." She said, acting like she was sick.
"I never said anything like that, stop it!" I said as I gently pushed her with my hoof while the amused smile was still on my face.
Twilight laughed before she stopped. "I'm just kidding." She said before she took a breath. "Ok, so what are you gonna do?" She asked curiously.
I thought about it for a minute before I crawled off the bed and reached my hoof over to the chair beside the bed, I pulled the chair over and careful got onto it from the bed. "I'll head back to Applejack's place and see if she has anything for me to do." I said before I motioned my hoof to tell Twilight to come close.
Twilight leaned her head over to me and I kissed her cheek. "I'll be back later, 'k babe?" I said before I pushed my hoof against the J-stick and the chair moved towards the stairs.
I stopped at the top of them once I realised I couldn't get down them. "Ah crap, forgot about this." I said, staring down the stairs.
Meanwhile, Twilight rubbed the cheek I kissed and looked at the bed again, the petals, the candles, the curtains closed to give the room a romantic glow from the said candles. Twilight blushed a little before she returned her attention to me.
I turned my head around to face her. "Hey Twi, do you think you can help me down these stairs?" I asked, thinking she could use her magic to lift me up and place me at the bottom of the stairs.
Twilight was silent for a moment before her horn glowed. At that moment, I was picked up from the chair and into the air. "Thanks Twi, but you didn't pick up the cha-Whow!" I yelled as I was suddenly pulled towards the bed and brought to a quick stop right in front of Twilight.
I opened my eyes to see the sly look on her face. "On second thought...you're not going anywhere just yet." She said with a smirk as she brushed my mane with her hoof.
While still in her magic grip, Twilight leaned in and kissed me deeply. I was shocked at first, but I soon closed my eyes and kissed back. Once we pulled away, I looked into her eyes lovingly. "Nice to see you changed your mind." I said with s love-struck smile.
"Well I see you went through a lot of trouble to get this all set up and you've already bribed Spike and the guys to leave us alone for a while...so...why not?" Twilight said with the sly look still in her eyes.
My wings spread out again as she spoke in her soft voice. "Please don't tell me you plan to change it back before anything else happens." I said, still floating in mid-air.
Twilight giggled. "That depends on how much you keep me interested." She said before she gently placed me down on the bed.
Once she did, I grinned deviously before I crawled up to her. "Challenge accepted." I said as Twilight wrapped her arms around my neck.
Twilight and I then leaned in and shared a passionate kiss before we lied down on the bed, still in each other's embrace. "I've missed this." I said, pulling away for some air.
"Then stop talking and do it." Twilight demanded with a smirk.
"Don't need to ask me twice." I said before we started kissing again, holding each other closely and tightly.
One last question came to mind and I pulled away from Twilight. "What happened to Owlicious? I sent him down to get you ages ago." I said, wondering what happened to him.
Twilight gave me a curious look. "You did? He didn't let me know you wanted me to come up here. In fact, he's asleep on his stand down stairs." she informed me.
Hearing this, I glared down at the stairs that led to the living room. "I'm gonna make a feather duster out of that guy." I said in a joking way.
Twilight followed her eyes before she pulled me back down to her and kissed me lovingly, which I started to do back until we were in the right mood. That's when things truly went wild and, let's just say, I felt the warm loving feeling the potion required.
That afternoon
After hours of 'alone time', Twilight and I laid on the bed asleep, completely worn out by our activity. Twi was facing away from me while I held her from behind, my head gently nuzzling into her mane.
Eventually, I began to wake up and saw Twilight lying in front of it. I was confused for a second until I remembered what happened, a smile grew on my face before I gently pulled her closer and kissed her cheek, making a smile appear on her face as she slept.
I stayed there for a few minutes, holding her and feeling her soft body against mine. But eventually, I decided to release her and get out of the bed. I leaned up on the bed and yawned. "*yawn* that...was what I needed." I said with a goofy smile.
I then jumped off the bed and landed on all of my hooves, I walked across the room until I reached the top of the stairs. But I was stopped when I saw the chair standing between me and the first step. "Well if that isn't a safety hazard, I don't know wha-..." I went silent once I realised what was going on here.
I turned my head around and looked down at what used to be my bad leg. I was standing on it without a single spark of pain and I had just walked across the room on it as if it had never happened. I decided to test it, so I lifted my leg up and placed it back down, I did this repeatedly as a delighted smile grew on my face.
"Yes...yes!" I said as I leaped into the air and tried to fly, but my wing was still in bad shape, my wing made a sickening crack and I felt a bolt of pain shoot through it. I yelped in pain and fell to the floor with a hard thud.
The bang on impact was enough to wake Twilight up from her slumber and lean up on the bed. "Matt?" She asked, rubber her eye with her hoof. "Are you ok? How did you get over there?" She asked, looking down at me from the bed.
I leaned my head up and smiled. "I walked.." I said before I rolled over onto my hooves and stood up on them. "It worked, Twi, my leg's healed!" I said, trotting on the spot to show her how much it got better.
Twilight smiled at this news. "That's great, Matt!" She said before she blushed. "I suppose that means what we did was enough?" She asked.
I stopped trotting before I walked up to her with a smirk. "Yeah...and that was when I had a bad leg, but now that it's back to normal, I aim to do better tonight." I said, giving her a mysterious smirk.
With her cheeks still red, Twilight gave me a surprised look. "Tonight?" She said with wonder.
I nodded. "Yeah. This happened because you helped me, so I owe...big time." I said before I gave her a quick peck on the lips. "I'm gonna go back to Sweet Apple Acres and tell Applejack that I'll be coming into work first thing in the morning."
With that, I turned around and made my way towards the stairs, where I once again was stopped by the chair. I grabbed it before I pushed it out of the way. I then turned my head back around to face Twilight one last time. "I'll be back soon, Twi." I said with a loving smile.
Twilight smiled back. "Ok...just don't be long, ok? It's starting to get late and I don't like you being out after dark." She said with a slightly concerned look on her face.
I noticed this and walked back over to her, I placed both my front-hooves on the bed before I spoke. "Hey...is there something bothering you?" I asked curiously.
Twilight's ears lower and she stayed silent until she found the ability to talk. "I don't like you being out at dark. After everything that happened with Thorn, Zelga or Blaze, the last thing I want is for you to be jumped in the middle of the night by some other psycho." She admitted.
I gave her a gentle smile before I placed my hoof on top of one of hers. "Don't worry Twi, I'll be fine, Ponyville is a safe town. Anyway, if something does happen, I'm capable of handling it, especially now that my leg's better." I said, gently bucking my healed leg to show off how I was able to use it again.
Twilight rolled her eyes as she smiled a little. "Ok, there's no need to brag." She said in slight amusement.
"Who's bragging? I'm just saying when the going gets tough, the tough get bucking with their no-longer broken leg." I said, doing the can-can dance with my leg.
Keeping her amused smile, Twilight placed her hoof on my face and gently pushed me off the bed. "Just get outta here." She said.
I laughed a little before I gave her a small smile. "See ya, Twi...I'll be back soon." I said before I turned around and made my way back towards the stairs.
Once I reached them, I went down them and then went down the next set if stairs leading down to the living room, leaving Twilight alone on the bed to wait for my return.
Later that evening: Sweet Apple Acres
By the time I had returning to AJ's farm, everyone had done their job and was now inside the house, having a nice family evening. But I continued to do what I came here to do.
I had knocked on the door and Applejack answered. I admit, I could've been more subtle about my leg, but I was so eager that I couldn't hold it in, I wanted to show her that I was capable of working again.
I stretched my leg back and forth in front of Applejack. "I thought Zecora's potions were just for small things, but this is...it's...incredible." I said with cheer as I stopped bucking my leg and placed it back down on the ground.
Applejack gave me an uneasy smile. "Matt, it's great that you're better now, even better that you're able to work again." She said before her smile disappeared. "But do you really think Zecora's potion worked? What if it was only temporary?" She asked, looking at my leg.
I thought about this for a moment and considered the possibility, there was a chance that it was just temporary. But from what I remembered from the other ponies that took one of Zecora's potion, like Applebloom when she chipped her tooth or when she had the Cutie Pox, all the potions seemed permanent unless they were given a cure.
I looked at her again to reply. "Maybe, but it's possible it could be permanent unless there's a counter potion or something...you can ask Applebloom, she'd probably agree." I said with an amused smile.
Applejack turned her head around to look into the house and see Applebloom writing things down on a sheet of paper with a pencil in her mouth. "Nah, we've already tried that." She said before she crossed across a sentence on the paper.
Applejack turned her head back around to face me. "Yeah, maybe you're right." She said before something came to her mind. "So…has Twilight found anything out about those True Order guys?" She asked curiously.
I shook my head to tell her no. "No, there's nothing on them. It's like they don't exist, or at least they're trying to make it seem like they don't." I said, knowing that they were out there somewhere, waiting to show up again.
Applejack then tried to think of a way to help, but she didn't find it easy to come up with anything. "Maybe you should've kept Zelga alive long enough to spill the beans on these True Order guys. If they're really out there, we need to know as much about them as possible." She said.
I nodded. "I know." I said before I thought of the first part she said. "But please...don't say stuff like that." I said, feeling uncomfortable with what she said.
Applejack gave me a confused look. "Like what?" She asked curiously.
"Says I should've kept Zelga alive longer, it makes me sound like a blood-thirsty monster...*sigh*...like when I actually turned into one during the fight." I said, looking down at the ground in shame.
Applejack's eyes shot wide open in surprise. "You know about that?! B-But how did ya know? You didn't remember anything after the battle." She said.
I retuned my sight to her. "Pinkie told me the other day." I answered.
Flashback: Sugar Cube Corner (two days ago)
I sat by a table with Twilight in Sugar Cube Corner, we were waiting for Pinkie to join us and bring us our orders. She had been a while, so I was getting a little impatient.
I tapped my hoof against the table, trying to distract myself while I waited. I looked across the table to Twilight to see her reading the Ponyville Express newspaper.
I had been craving for a soda all day, but it was taking its sweet time getting here. So as expected, I soon had it. "Ok seriously, we're basically the only ponies here, what's taking so long?" I asked, sounding a little frustrated from thirst.
Twilight kept her eyes on the paper as she answered. "She'll be here in a second, Matt, chill out." She said.
"I'm trying to, but I don't have a drink to chill myself out with!" I said before I spun my head around to face the doors that led to the kitchen. "Hey Pinkie! Is everything ok in there?" I called, trying not to be very loud.
Suddenly, Pinkie shot through the flapping doors with our orders on a metal tray balanced on her hoof. "I'm here! Don't worry! And please don't turn into a monster and beat me up!" She said nervously before she placed the tray on our table.
As she sat next to us, I thought through what she said before I found what sounded wrong in it. "Umm...what?" I asked with a raised eye-brow.
Pinkie went wide-eyed once she realised what she just said, she covered her mouth with her hoof before she tried to come up with a replacement sentence. "I mean...who gets all frowny because of a lack of soda? Woo, you need to learn to chill, Mattie." She said nervously before she grabbed her sunday and started eating into it quickly to shut herself up.
I stared at her awkwardly before I spoke. "That's not what you said. You said 'don't turn into a monster a beat me up'. What's that supposed to mean?" I asked, wondering what she was talking about.
Pinkie pulled head up from her sunday and licked the ice-cream off her lips. "Oh, I was talking about when you were fighting Zelga. Twilight got hot by one of Zelga's spells and then you got all berserk and attacked Zelga, almost beating her to a pulp with some weird dark magic!" She said, telling me what she meant in good detail.
Twilight and I stared at her with our mouths ganging while Pinkie once again realised what she did. "Oops, I wasn't meant to tell you that part." She said before she tried to cover for it. "I mean...nothin'." She said with a relaxed smile.
Twilight and I looked at each other in both confusion and concern, wondering what she was talking about.
Flashback over
Applejack's ears lowered as she bit her lower lip, wondering how she was gonna explain all this to me. I looked into her eyes as she saw the slightly frightened look in my eyes. "Applejack, you can't lie to me...what was she talking about? Did I really go crazy and attack Zelga?" I asked, unsure if I wanted to know the answer.
Applejack was resistant at first, but she knew I was right, she couldn't lie to me. Element of Honesty and all. She took a breath before she spoke. "Matt...we don't know what happened. But when Twilight got hit with that attack, you went all dark and angry, you went at Zelga like a pig on a sack of truffles. You used powers we've never seen you use before." She explained gently so it wouldn't upset me as much as it should.
I looked down at the ground as I thought of an explication for that. "Pinkie said...I was using dark magic..." I said.
Applejack tapped her chin with her hoof. "That would explain a few things. It was like you turned into a completely different pony, like you turned into...into a...ummm." She said while trying to think of a fitting yet gentle finisher.
But based on what I've heard, I already knew a perfect word to finish that sentence with. "A beast." I said, feeling like I had finally become the monster that had been waiting to come out for all these years.
Applejack took a step closer and placed her hoof on my shoulder. "No Matt, you're not a beast...I admit, it was strange, but it wasn't you. Something took over you, that's what made you into that thing, it wasn't the real you." She said sweetly before she moved closer and hugged me softly.
I felt heart-warmed that she was trying to comfort me during this troubling time. I admit, I was scared right now, scared that there was something inside me that would trigger me into becoming something monstrous, it was something I've always been scared of. But I knew that if I always had Twilight and my other friends, we'd find a way to fix it.
I smiled warmly before I hugged her back, rubbing my hoof against the back of her neck.
While we hugged, Applebloom saw this and began to wonder what was happening between us. A thought then popped into her head, maybe Applejack and I were having a moment. She smiled in excitement before she looked over to Big Mac, who had just come into the room.
"Big Mac! Look! See the way Matt and Applejack are hugging? I think they're having a romantic moment!" Applejack said before she gasped. "*gasp!* what if leads to somethin' big?! What if they get hitched?! Matt would become my second big brother! Can you imagine it?" She asked, jumping up onto Big Mac's face and looking him straight in the eye.
Big Mac was silent for a moment before he answered. "Nope." He said, shaking his head.
Applebloom's smile went away. "Why not? I mean, I know he's married and all." She said before a devious smile grew on her face. "But a lot can happen after-"
"Nope." Big Mac interrupted while giving her a firm look.
"But, how about we-" Applebloom started, giving Big Mac large innocent eyes.
"Nope." Big Mac repeated before he sat down on the floor and grabbed Applebloom with his hooves, he then lifted her off his face before he placed her back down on the floor.
Applebloom huffed as she pouted her lip. "Fine...so much for idea." She said, deciding to forget about that whole plot.
Meanwhile, Applejack and I separated from our hug and I looked into her eyes. "Thanks Applejack." I said with a kind smile before it went away. "But I'm still concerned about all of this. The darkness inside me, the True Order, it's all a lot to deal with. I just wish we knew more about what was going on." I said, trying to think of a way to know more about the True Order.
Applejack thought with me before she came up with something. "Have you asked the Princesses yet? Maybe they know somethin' about them." She said, trying to make a suggestion.
I rolled my eyes to the top of my head. "That was the first thing we did. They don't know anything about them either." I said as I turned to face the other way, looking out across the Apple orchard as the stars twinkled in the sky beyond it.
Applejack tried to think of another suggestion before she thought of something. "Wait! What about Discord?! He crossed paths with 'em once and he knows more about things like this than anypony." She said, thinking of how much knowledge Discord has about almost everything.
Upon hearing his name, I viewed a flashback of the last time I saw him. I remembered how I spoke to him and how not-so-well he took it. He was so upset, and part of me was still upset with him for lying to us for so long. "I...don't think we should ask him about it." I said as my ears lowered slightly.
Applejack gave me a confused look before she walked up beside me. "Why not?" She said before she gave me a suspicious look. "You know, I've noticed you haven't been around him lately, even when he comes by to visit. What's goin' on with you two?" She asked.
I looked down at the ground and brushed my hoof against the dirt, trying to think of a way to answer that. I knew I had to tell her about Discord eventually, I suppose now is a better time than ever. "Applejack...I need you to keep a secret for a while, just until I've told Twi and the others, ok?" I asked, looking at her with a concerned look, worried how she might respond.
Applejack was confused, but she saw the look on my face and knew it was something important. "Well...sure, I suppose." She said before she raised her eye-brow. "Why? What's buggin' ya?"
I took a breath before I finally built up the strength to tell her. "Discord...has been lying to us." I confessed.
Applejack's face went into shock. "W-What? What are ya talkin' about?" She asked.
I turned my head to face her properly as I continued. "Discord never lost his title or his powers, he's been holding them back this whole time and acting nice. He could've gone on a chaotic rampage this whole time." I said, hoping she wouldn't be too hurt by this.
Applejack's ears dropped as she tried to wrap her head around this. "B-But...why did he do this? What was the point? If he tricked us, why hasn't he done anything...extreme...since then?" She asked.
"He said the encounter with Thorn and Zelga left him weak, he made up the 'lost his powers' story so he could stay with us until he was better." I said, remembering what he told me in Canterlot, but then I remembered what else he said to me. "But...he also said that I showed him friendship, and he wanted to stay friends...with all of us. So, I suppose he decided to hang his plans on revenge and actually stick to living his own lie." I said.
Applejack's ears perked up a little before she responded. "But that's good, ain't it? He chose friendship over revenge." She said, trying to look on the brighter side of the situation.
I gave her a puzzled look. "But...he lied to us for months, almost a year! Friends are supposed to be honest with each other, aren't they? You're the one who should know about that more than anyone." I said, referring to her Element.
Applejack nodded. "I know, and you're right." She started. "I'm not saying what he did was right. In fact, if you told me this a week or so after her told us that fib, I would've expected nothin' less from him. But like you said, Discord wanted to stay friends with us. He was probably scared of tellin' us the truth because he thought we might've stopped that. I mean, he doesn't exactly have the brightest of histories." She stated.
"I..." I started before I actually took that last part into thought. "Might've...not actually thought about it that way." I said, being honest while rubbing the back of my neck with my hoof.
Applejack gave me an amused smirk. "Sounds to me like ya might've over exaggerated this whole thing a little bit. True, he lied to us for almost a year, like ya said. But he's been sticking to it. He could've turned Equestria inside-out any time he wanted to, but he hasn't, doesn't that tell ya he's still the Discord you've always known?" She asked, placing her hoof on my shoulder.
I thought about it and knew she was right. Discord may have lied, but he's truly changed since that day, he's not the out-of-control Draconi...Draconica...Draco-Malfoy...whatever he was, anymore. I realised that now. But then I remembered how I've been acting with Discord and my heart grew heavy. "Aw Applejack...you're right. I've been so focused on the downside that I didn't try to look on the bright one. I've been acting like such a ass to Discord, I need to find him and sort this out with him." I said, turning my head to look up at Canterlot, where I knew Discord resided.
"I don't think you should go up there right now, Matt." Applejack said. "It's too late to be bothering the Princesses or Discord for that matter. You should do it the next time ya see him." She said.
"I thought you'd say something like that." I said before I sighed in defeat and turned around to face her. "Ok, I'll put it on hold. I mean, it's not like Discord isn't gonna show up again eventually." I said before chuckling a little, trying to make it sound funnier than it was.
Applejack smiled in amusement before she hummed a little. She looked up at the sky before she returned her attention to me. "Well I think it's time for you to be scurryin' along home, Matt, Twilight will probably be waitin' for ya." She said.
At that moment, my eyes grew wide. "Oh crap! I was supposed to be home ages ago! Twilight's gonna be so worried about me!" I said in panic before I gave Applejack a quick hug. "Thanks for the talk, AJ, really helpful and I'll be back tomorrow to do my rounds." I said before I spun around and shot off out of the farm.
Applejack watched me leave as she called out to me. "You're welcome!...I guess." She said while saying the last part to herself in a quieter tone.
Applejack continued to watch me leave until I was out of sight. Once I was gone, Applejack went back into her home and closed the door behind her.
The next morning: Library
After returning to the library and having another 'special time with Twilight, we both slept soundly for the rest of the night until morning finally came.
I slowly opened my eyes and yawned. I leaned my head up to look over to Spike's basket and saw that he had returned, Jeff and Peewee were sleeping on their bird stands.
I smiled at this before I tried to get out of the bed, but was stopped by Twilight's arms that were wrapped around my body. I then gently grabbed her arm and carefully lifted it off my body. Once I was free, I scooched across the bed and lowered her arm back down.
I smiled in success before I tried to climb out of the bed. But something went wrong, the bottom half of my body wouldn't move and I feel out of the bed onto the floor.
"Ow." I said to myself before I fell onto my back.
I leaned up and looked down at my hind-legs. I tried to lift them up, but they wouldn't budge, it was like I had lost all feeling in them. In fact, I had lost all feeling in them, I couldn't feel them at all.
I grabbed one of my legs and lifted it up. I used whatever muscle I could use to try to keep it up. But once I released it, it plopped right back down onto the floor.
I started to panic, I had just got my broken leg back to normal and now I've probably lost both of them. I looked across the bed to face Twilight who was still asleep even after my loud fall. "Twilight? Twilight! Wake up." I said in a slightly loud voice, trying to make her up.
It managed to work and Twilight slowly opened her eyes. "Hmm...what is it?" She said as she started to get up.
"I can't move my legs, Twi! They're numb." I said, trying to move my legs again.
Twilight's tired look went away as she became for focused. "What?" She said before she crawled across the bed to look down at my legs. "Maybe they're just asleep, you probably fell asleep on then funny." She said, thinking of a good explanation for what's happened.
I shook my head. "No, I slept on them fine!" I said before I looked down at my legs again. "Something's wrong with them?" I said, starting to panic more.
Twilight jumped off the bed before she came around in front of me. She poked my legs with her hoof and saw no response from me. "That's strange, you were just fine yesterday, what could've caused this?" She asked in wonder.
I rolled over onto my stomach and started dragging myself across the floor towards the wheelchair. I didn't think I'd need it again, in fact, I was going to take it back to the hospital today...good thing I didn't though.
But as I dragged myself across the floor, I was suddenly engulfed in magic and picked up off the floor. I was then placed down on the chair gently and Twilight came over to me. "Maybe Zecora will know why this has happened." She said with a small smile, trying to reassure me.
Upon hearing that, I gasped loudly. "You're right Twilight! Zecora will know. This probably has something to do with that potion she gave me anyway." I said before I pushed my hoof against the j-stick and made the chair move towards the stairs. Once I reached them, I once again was forced to stop at the top of the stairs. "We meet again, my old foe." I said, glaring down at the stairs.
Twilight walked over to me and picked me up in her magic. "I'll handle this." She said before she walked down the stairs with me hovering beside her.
She continued to carry me down the next set of stairs until we reached the living room. She placed me down beside her before she walked over to the front-door. "I'll go with you this time, just to make sure you don't make any more mistakes." she said as she opened the door with her magic the door.
I went past Twilight and left the Library, Twilight followed me and closed the door behind us. As we made our way to the Ever Free Forest, Spike was still fast asleep in his bed. "Hmm…of course, Rarity…I'll be your date to the Gala." he mumbled in his sleep as he rolled over in the bed.
A few minutes later: Zecora's hut
After arriving at her hut, we informed Zecora on what happened and she started examining it. Zecora's head was low as she stared closely at my legs, she grabbed one with one of her hooves and lifted it up to see how light it was.
Zecora then let my leg flop back down before she raised her head back up. "Hmm…the potion you drag does indeed heal the bone, but there's a prise that I should've realised. In order to do so, it has made you temporally paralyzed." She said, walking over to her cauldron.
"Paralyzed?" I said before I made the chair move to follow her. "As in, I won't be able to move my legs?!" I questioned as I stopped beside her.
Zecora turned her head to face me and nodded. "You are correct, indeed. Now I shall tell you what you'll need. You need to take things slow and get lots of rest. Take a few days off work, it's really for the best." She said, giving me a kind smile.
"But I already told Applejack that I'd be working today. Damn, she's gonna be annoyed now." I groaned as I looked down at the floor in frustration.
At that moment, Twilight walked up beside me and placed her hoof on my shoulder. "Don't worry, Matt, she'll understand." She said before she gave me a sly look. "Besides, it gives us a lot more time to spend with each other." she said as she nuzzled her nose softly against my cheek.
My cheeks went red as I smiled sheepishly at her. "Well…when you put it that way, I suppose I could take a few days off." I said before I turned my head around to face Zecora again. "But do you know how long I'll be like this?" I asked curiously.
Zecora thought about it for a moment before she answered. "I'm afraid I do not, my unfortunate friend. You'll just have to wait until the paralysation's end." She said.
"Fine." I groaned before I made the chair turn around to face the exit to her hut. "Thanks Zecora." I said before I turned my head to face Twilight. "C'mon Twi, lets go tell Applejack that I won't be in for a while." I said with a sigh before I made the chair move towards the exit.
Twilight followed behind me until we reached the door, which she then opened with her magic. But before we could leave the hut, Zecora looked back at us and spoke. "But before you go to continue your almost care-free life, I suggest you talk about the situation about Discord with you loving wife." She said to me.
Upon hearing that, I looked back at her before I turned my attention to Twilight. She looked at me curiously. "Discord? What about him? What's she talking about?" she asked.
A part of me didn't want to tell her, we already had enough on our plate as it was. But the cat was out of the bag now and I had to tell her eventually, so… "*Sigh*…Twilight…there's something I need to tell you about Discord." I started, preparing to tell her the truth I knew she'd find shocking.
Meanwhile: Canterlot castle
Princess Celestia was in the throne room, talking to one of her castle decorators as she displayed new designs for the castle gardens. "So Princess, what do you like best? Buttercups, tiger lilies and blue roses planted to form the image of the sun and moon symbol? Or planted to form the image of the Equestria flag?" the mare asked while pointing at a display board with both of those designs it.
Celestia looked at the two designs as she thought. The sun and moon one was good, but the other had more character to it. "Well it's hard to choose, they're both very well thought up. But if I had to pick, I'd say the second one." She said with a gentle smile.
The mare smiled in delight. "An excellent choice, Princess." She said before she picked up the display board with her magic and made her way out of the throne room. "We'll get started on it right away." She said with delight.
Celestia watched her leave before she picked up a small list with her magic. "Now what else is on today's task list?" she asked herself as she read what was next.
Suddenly, a bouche of flowers hover down in front of Celestia and she stared at it with surprise. "What?" she said while staring at the beautiful display. It was a mixture of tiger lilies, blue roses and buttercups, just like the ones she and the designer pony were just talking about.
Celestia smelled them to admire their lovely scent. But when she looked at them again, she was shocked to see one of the blue roses twitching. It soon spun around and bloomed, revealing Discord's head in the centre of the flower.
Celestia yelped in surprise before the Discord flower leaped out of the bouche and, in a flash of light, turned into Discord. "Sorry for the startle, Celestia, I'm running out of dramatic entrances." He said while hover in the air.
"Well it certainly was dramatic." Celestia said before she returned her attention to the flowers. "So what's the occasion?" she asked before looking up at Discord again.
Discord waved his talon-claw. "Oh nothing, I just overheard you talking to that garden pony and it gave me the idea." He said before he hovered closer to her. "By the way, you are looking ravishing today, did you comb your mane?...If you comb it, that is." He said, wondering how she could comb a mane like that.
Celestia gave him a kind smile. "Thank you, Discord." She said before a question popped into her head. "Did you want something or did you just want to say hello." She asked curiously.
Discord was hesitant to answer that at first. But he knew he had to tell her, otherwise someone else would. "I…well…actually wanted to tell you something…something I probably should've told you a while ago." He said while rubbing the back of his long neck with the fussy end of his tail, which had taken the form of a hand.
Celestia tilted her head. "Really? What is it, Discord?" she asked curiously.
Discord struggled on where to start, the beautiful look in her one visible eye was enough to choke him up and want to forget doing this, just to let her believe the false truth so there would be no bad blood between them like before. But he had to tell her, she deserved the truth. "I…nev- *sigh*…I never truly lost half my magic." He confessed.
Celestia took a moment to realise what he said and gave him a shocked look. "What?" she gasped as she dropped the flowers onto the floor.
Discord then slugged to the floor in shame and his ears dropped. "I'm sorry, I'm sorry…I should've told you sooner. But I was afraid you would see me as an enemy again. I admit, I lied and said I lost half my magic, but the truth is I didn't, I was just weakened by that point and needed time to rest to regain my strength." He said before he rose back up a little. "But after some time in Ponyville, I decided to truly change my ways and become a better Draconequus." He said, trying to prove that he had changed since then
But Celestia was still puzzled, she didn't know how to react to this. "You've…been lying to us all this time?" she asked, giving him a saddened yet angered look. "I can't believe you! You told us you lost most of your power and didn't want to cause chaos anymore!" she said loudly.
Discord lowered his head and sighed. "I know, but even though I didn't lose my chaotic needs, I still wanted to be with all of you. I had to keep the truth from you, otherwise you'd think I haven't changed at all and all the trust you've gained for me would disintegrate." He said, explaining himself.
Celestia thought about this for a moment before her ears dropped. "…Well how do you think I feel now?" she said before she walked past him and made her way towards the room's exit. "I just can't believe this…I trusted you, I wanted to believe you had changed…but you were still the same mischievous Discord you always had been." She said.
Discord disappeared in a flash of light and reappeared in front of her. "Celestia, please…I'm really sorry. I'm not that Discord anymore, I wanted to tell you so many times, but I didn't know how." He said in his own defence.
Celestia stared up at him with a raised eye-brow. "Then what made you want to tell me now?" she asked with an untrusting tone.
Discord stroked his beard. "Well Matthew found out and told me to tell you, otherwise he'd do it himself." He said before he gave her a nervous smile. "But believe me, I wanted to tell you myself anyway." He said.
Celestia frowned. "Wanting to tell me eventually and being pushed into finally telling me isn't the same thing, Discord." She said before she looked down at the floor. "And…I don't know what to believe." She said.
Discord hovered closer to her. "Celestia, it's still me, I'm still the same Discord you've known since the day I chose to join you. I may have told a little fib, but that doesn't change anything." he said, placing his lion-paw on her cheek.
Celestia then grabbed his paw with her hoof and took it off her. "Maybe…but I just…I just need some time to think this over." She said before she walked around him and kept heading towards the exit.
Instead of chasing after her, Discord stayed where he was and watched. Celestia opened the door with her magic before she looked back at Discord, not wanting to believe he had been playing a trick this whole time. But at the same time, part of her expecting something like this from him. She walked out of the room and slammed the door behind her, leaving Discord alone in his sorrow.
Discord stood in the silence, thinking about what just happened. He kept seeing the look on Celestia's face him his head, the saddened and disappointed look that left a pain in his heart. Discord didn't know what to do, he cared so much about Celestia, but he may have just lost her. He wanted to cry, he wanted to just stand there and let time reduce him to a skeleton on the spot. He covered his face with his hands and tried to find a way around this.
But when he discovered that there wasn't one, he did what he used to do what he was truly the Lord of Chaos, he looked at what led this event to be and turned all his sadness into anger. "This…is all Matthew's fault!" Discord growled as he removed his hands from his face. "If he had just left it alone, if he had just forgotten he saw anything, Celestia wouldn't be…*growls*" he growled as fire burned in his eyes.
Discord then turned around and walked over to Celestia's throne, he sat down on it and hunched over with dark look on his face. "Well…it doesn't matter now. Once Matthew tells Twilight and the others, they'll see me as the same old chaotic Discord I used to be." He said before he pressed his fingers together. "Well if it's chaotic Discord they want…chaotic Discord they'll get." He said while grinning evilly.
Discord imagined all the things he was planning to do and started to chuckle darkly, then that chuckling turned into his evil laughter which echoed through the whole throne room. From outside, the clouds in the sky above Canterlot turned from white to a dim pink.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
First off, I'm really excited to announce I will be attending BronyCon in August! If anyone else is attending, please let me know. I'll also be in New York for a few days, in case any of you wanted to know.
-Pony News-
Just revealed today, FIM season 7 will arrive in April. So we now know when to expect it.
We've all made Star Trek jokes involving MLP because of John De Lancie's reoccurring roles, but now we can do it even more because William Shatner has announced he will be this year's guest voice! Sorry to those hoping for Mark Hamill or someone like that.
-End of Pony News-
Anyway, if you're looking for a good story outside this one and the actual show, I highly recommend watching the Bride of Discord and Daughter of Discord series on YouTube. Trust me, it's worth the watch, it's earned my stamp of approval.
Please remember to Review or PM
70. Chaotic Control
Hi everypony and welcome back to another chapter!
I'm very sorry for the long wait, I've been having a little trouble lately, I'll keep working though.
I'm glad to see my last chapter did so well, thank you all for your support for the past few years, it means a lot. I won't lie, I've had it rough for a while and probably still am, there even came times where I considered wrapping this whole thing up and giving it a rest, but I don't want to because I promised to see this story through to the end and because it wouldn't be fair on you guys.
But here we are, chapter 70, I didn't think I'd get this far. In fact, I thought it would be finished by now lol
Anyway, here's the next chapter, enjoy.
Chapter 70: Chaotic Control
It's been a week since I got temporally paralysed in a desperate attempt to heal my broken leg. Funny how I set off to heal one leg and ended up losing two, irony if there ever was any.
After I healed, I started getting back to work and let things go back to normal after the Zelga insistent...or at least as normal as it gets.
However, I wasn't completely at peace. Discord was still on my mind. I hadn't seen him the whole week, not since I last saw him. He was so angry at me when I told him to tell Celestia the truth about him still having all his powers.
At first, I wondered if he had told her, but as the days went by without any sighting of him, I started to wonder if I would see him again like...ever.
All the while, there still hasn't been any new information regarding the True Order. We searched the entire Library, we searched Twilight's old Library in Canterlot and we searched Canterlot's Library, there was nothing on them at all. Finding anything on them seemed hopeless at this point, but we knew they were out there and they'd strike again soon.
Twi and I figured we could go back up to Canterlot to check out the Starswirl the Bearded section and see if it had anything on the Order.
Canterlot
After a short train ride, Twi and I finally arrived in Canterlot, eager to get to the castle and check the archives. We didn't have our hopes up, but it couldn't hurt to try. We brought Spike along with us, in case we needed and extra set of hands...or only set of hands, seeing as though we didn't have any ourselves.
We walked through the streets as we made our way to the castle, all the while, I looked around for any signs of Discord. But everything seemed calm, so calm that it seemed like Discord had disappeared completely.
Twilight noticed my wondering eyes and nudged me a little. "Something on your mind?" She asked curiously.
I looked at her before I looked down at the ground as we kept walking. "It's nothing, Twi, I was just...looking around." I said, trying to hide my true intentions.
"For Discord?" Twilight asked with a raised eye-brow.
I should've remembered that Twi could read me like a book. "*sigh* yeah...I was hoping he'd be around here somewhere. Causing some kind of trouble or something like that." I said, still looking around for him.
Spike then came up between us with a firm look on his face. "Hopefully he's fled the coop! I knew we shouldn't have trusted him! He lied this whole time and we totally fell for it!" He said with an angered look on his face.
I may have forgot to mention that after I told Twi, I told Spike as well...which he then shared with the rest of our friends before I could, making them think the wrong way about it. Thanks a lot Spike.
Twilight glared down at Spike. "Spike! Hush!" She said firmly before she looked at me with a calmer look. "I know you want to make things right with him, but if he thinks we've told anyone the truth, he's probably hiding in the castle. You know, to avoid any newly-found hate aimed towards him." She said, trying to help me feel less worried.
I turned my head to face her again. "Maybe...I hope so...I mean, not the hiding part, the part about him being inside the castle. At least then I know where he is." I said with my ears lowering a bit. "I hope Celestia took the news better than I did." I said, hoping the worst didn't happen.
Twilight smirked in amusement. "Well knowing Princess Celestia, she would've taken it better than I did." She said before we thought back on that day.
A week ago: Zecora's hut
A week ago, Twilight and I went to Zecora's hut to try and find out why my legs weren't working. That was also the time where I had to tell her the truth about Discord.
Which then led to this.
"What do you mean Discord lied?!" Twilight yelled right in my face, making me fall back on my wheelchair.
Present day
"I suppose that's true." I said, agreeing with her.
Twilight giggled. "Yeah, can you imagine Celestia yelling that loud? Like if she had her own Royal Canterlot Voice like Princess Luna?" She said, smiling with amusement at the thought of such a thing.
I chuckled at the thought. "I wouldn't want to be around to see that." I said.
"Me neither, in all my years of being her student, I've never seen that." Twilight said before she looked away to think back. "But then again, I think she did once." She said.
"Really?" I asked, wondering when Celestia ever spoke like that.
Twilight turned her head to face me again. "It was a while ago, before I met you. I was going crazy because I hadn't sent a friendship lesson to Celestia in a while, so I decided to make a problem to one and...well...she was pretty mad when she found out what I had done." She said, smiling sheepishly knowing how over-the-top crazy she was back then.
I thought back and realised she was talking about the events in the episode 'Lesson Zero', where she indeed going over-the-top crazy. "Really? What happened later?" I said, acting as though I didn't know."
"Well things happened and everything was fixed afterwards." Twilight said with a small smile. "But I tried to avoid going crazy like that again." She said.
I thought about it and remembered how creepy that episode was when I first watched it. "Yeah, please do." I said, dreading ever facing against that.
Twilight giggled in amusement before we kept on our way towards the castle. All the while, I hoped Discord would be there so I could settle things between us.
A few minutes later
After finally reaching the castle, we approached the gate to the castle grounds and expected Celestia to be waiting for us inside. We had told her we were coming, so it's only likely she'd be waiting to greet us as usual.
As we got closer, I turned my head to face Twilight with a serious look on my face. "Do you think the archives will have anything on the True Order?" I asked.
Twilight looked at me with uncertainty. "I'm not sure. If there was any record of them anywhere, we probably would've found something by now." She informed me.
"Well regardless, we can't give up." I said before I turned my head to face the castle as we got closer to it. "The True Order certainly won't." I said with a sharp glare in my eyes.
"I know, I'm just saying we shouldn't get our hopes up, this might be another dead end." Twilight said, turning to face the castle with me.
I didn't want to admit it, but it was a possibility. The True Order was like the subject that should never be spoken or something, it was most likely not going to be mentioned here. "Maybe...but this is our last hope, so lets just hope we get a lucky break." I said as we entered the castle grounds.
But suddenly, the doors to the castle opened and Princess Celestia came rushing out. We stopped where we were as we watched her gallop past us. "Princess? Is everything alright?" Twilight asked in concern.
"I don't have time to talk right now, Twilight, I have important matters to attend to." Celestia said before she spread her wings and took off into the air.
"Wait! Princess! This is important too!" Spike called as he tried to run after her, but she didn't respond as she kept flying away. Soon enough, she swooped down to another part of the city a medium distance away from where we were.
We were all confused and concerned, what could be happening that would make Celestia leave so suddenly? "What's going on?" I asked out-loud for Twi and Spike to hear.
"I don't know...maybe something came up." Twilight said before she returned her attention to the main doors to the castle. "But maybe she knows more." She said.
I looked over to doors and saw Luna coming out of the castle with a concerned look on her face. We walked over to her and check in on what was happening. "Princess Luna! We just saw Princess Celestia run off in a hurry, is something wrong? Is there danger?" Twilight asked in concern.
Luna shook her head. "No, there is no threat. My sister is just worried. Discord has been missing for a few days now, she is concerned he may have gone into hiding somewhere." She said, informing us on what was troubling Celestia.
Twilight and I looked at each other before we looked at Luna. "Discord's run off? When?" I asked with both curiosity and concern.
"I do not know." Luna said before she looked down at the ground. "This is very unlike him. Usually, he's always somewhere around the castle with my sister or those foolish dogs he's always bossing around. I don't know what could have caused him to flee so suddenly." She said with wonder in her eyes.
I wondered that myself, but I didn't need to, I already knew what caused him to do this. It's either he didn't want to tell Celestia the truth and disappeared to avoid it, or he did tell her and he's hiding in shame. I thought of telling Luna this information, but it seemed as though she didn't know about discord's lie yet, so I decided to keep it under my hat for a bit. "Same here, it's not like her to run off without telling anyone what was wrong." I said, trying to hide the truth.
However, not everyone was fooled, Twilight looked at me with a confused yet firm look before she returned her attention to Luna. "Maybe she's searching for Discord, she's probably asking ponies if they've seen him." She said, thinking of an explanation.
"My thoughts exactly, Twilight Sparkle." Luna said before she looked over to the part of the city where Celestia landed. "I wish there was a time where that creature didn't cause my sister such discomfort." She said out-loud.
I was silent for a moment before I stepped forward. "Don't worry, Luna, we'll find Discord and sort all of this out." I said with a gentle voice before I decided to change the subject to the topic we came here for. "Anyway, Twilight and I wanted to search through the Starswirl the Bearded archives for anything about the True Order. You know, those guys we told you about." I said, reminding about them.
Luna then thought back and remembered that we had mentioned them a few times and so on. "Ah yes...if I recall, you said Thorn and Zelga were part of them." She said before giving me a curious look. "But what makes you believe they will be any information on them is Starswirl's reports?" She asked curiously.
Twilight and I looked at each other again before we looked at Luna. "We don't, we're just checking and hoping we find something." Twilight said.
Luna was slightly surprised by this. "Oh...I see...well, I suppose any plan is better than no plan." She said before she turned around and went back into the castle. "I'll escort you to the archives." She said while looking back at us.
"Thanks Princess." Twilight said as we entered the castle and followed her through the lobby.
Instead of going up the large stairs like we usually would, we turned to face two large doors. Luna opened the doors to reveal long hallway stretching to contact to the next wing of the castle.
As Luna, Twilight and Spike started walking down the hallway, I stayed behind in the lobby. I would've followed them, but I had other plans.
Twilight noticed I wasn't following and stopped to look back at me. "Matt? Aren't you coming?" She asked curiously.
I gave her a warm smile while shaking my head. "No, you go on ahead and search the archives, I've got a different lead to check out. I'll come find you when I'm done, ok?" I said with a soft voice.
Twilight gave me a confused look, but she also gave me the answer I was hoping for. "Oh...Urrr...ok, just be careful." She said.
"I will." I said before I turned and walked away from the entrance.
As I did, Twilight turned and continued to follow Spike and Luna down the hallway. She didn't know what to make of this, I didn't mention a second lead before and I would've told her if there was. Something didn't sit right about it, she knew I was up to something. But there wasn't time to be concerned about that, she had to focus on the task at hand, she could only hope I'd stay out of trouble with whatever it was I was doing.
-Meanwhile-
After separating from the others, I made my way through the castle until I reached the ballroom. I walked across the ballroom until I reached the exit that led to the gardens.
I opened the doors and went out into the gardens. I then stopped in the middle, the warm sunlight shined down on me as my hooves sunk in the grass. I looked around to see if anyone was here, but it looked as though I was alone.
"There has to be some guards around here somewhere." I said to myself, wondering why there were no guards anywhere.
Just then, my ears perked as I heard giggling and chuckling. I turned around and looked around, but saw nothing, until a bush rustled and I could hear the laughter again. I walked over to the bush and listened closely.
"Star, what if someone finds us?" A female voice asked.
"Don't worry, Illume, there's no one around today. We have the castle to ourselves." A male voice said before the rustling continued.
At that point, I knew who I was eavesdropping on and decided to have a little fun with then. I chuckled deviously before I took a deep breath. "Star Beam! Illume! Front and centre!" I said, using my best caption voice.
Within an instant, both Star Beam and Illume yelped in surprise and they leaped out if the bushes. They both stood sharply as they saluted. "Captain, we were just...huh?" Star said in confusion when they realised it was me.
I smirked and raised my eye-brow. "Yes?..." I said, loving how awkward and amusing this was.
Star and Illume stopped saluting and Illume took a step forward. "Matthew? Was that you?" she asked curiously.
I couldn't help but laugh a little at this. "Yeah. Sorry about that, I just had to see what would happen." I said, still laughing a little.
Star and Illume then gave me a pair of unamused looks. "That was so not funny, Matthew." Star said with an annoyed tone.
"It was pretty funny, man." I argued before my laughter finally died down. "Ok...anyway, I heard you say there were no other guards here today. What's that about?" I asked curiously.
"Oh...that. You haven't heard?" Star asked, looking at me like he was surprised that I didn't know what was going on.
I titled my head. "Heard what?" I asked curiously.
"Celestia sent most of the guards across the land to look for Discord, he's gone missing and Celestia wants him found as soon as possible." Illume said, walking up to me.
"Discord again?" I said, sounding like this topic was getting old. "Celestia is definitely going through a lot of trouble to find him. Has she sent every guard?" I asked.
"Not every guard. We along with a few others and the captain stayed behind to protect the Princesses, just in case something would happen. But Equestria is a big place, it takes a lot of ponies to cover it all, Princess Luna even got some of her guards doing it." Star informed me.
This was starting to get weird, Discord's gone for a week and Celestia sends out a world-wide manhunt for him. "Why is Celestia so determined to find Discord? Is she trying to catch him or something? Did he do something to...you know...tick her off?" I asked, hoping nothing had happened to led to that conclusion.
Star shook his head. "No, nothing like that...I don't think...she's just concerned about him, I saw it in her eyes when she told me about this. She also said something about him being...unpredictable...and wanted him back so they could work things out, whatever that means." He explained, wondering what any of this meant.
I thought about it for a moment and knew what was happening. Discord must've told Celestia the truth and something happened between them, Discord must've stormed off afterwards and now no-one can find him. "Well...hopefully he'll turn up soon." I said, still trying to hide the truth from ponies that wouldn't want to know it.
Illume turned her head to face Star. "I know he's a pain and all, but I'm actually worried about him, he usually turns up by now with some kind of crazy motive. What if he's in trouble?" She asked with a concerned tone.
Star looked at Illume and gave her a comforting smile. "Don't worry, Lume." He said, using his nickname for her. "He's a Spirit, I don't think anything can take that guy down."
I stepped forward. "He's right, Discord may not be the toughest guy I know, but he knows how to get himself out of a bad scrape." I said, trying to put Illume's worries at ease before I turned to Star. "Anyway, I need you to do something for me." I said.
Star looked at me with a wondering stare. "Oh? And what would that be?" He asked.
"I need you to take me down to the Canterlot Dungeons." I answered in a serious tone.
Star was surprised by this. No one had ever asked to be willingly taken to the dungeon before, he never thought anyone would. "And...what's your business down there?" He asked with an uneasy voice.
"Important business." I answered before I turned my head away from him. "There's someone who owes me some answers." I said with a low groan.
Star and Illume looked at each other before they returned their attention to me. "I don't think I'm authorised to do that, Matthew, I'd have to take it up with the Princess." He said.
I was a little struck with nervousness by this, I didn't really want the Princess to know about this, what I wanted to do down in the dungeon was my own business and I wanted to do it myself. "You can't!" I blurted out before I tried to talk in a calmer voice. "I mean, the Princess is out, I saw her fly out into the city before we arrived." I said, trying to get him to reconsider.
Star raised his eye-brow. "Really?...Well, I suppose I'd have to talk with Princess Luna then. In the absence of Princess Celestia, she is second in command." He said, stating a counter proposal.
I had to admit that he had me there, but I still didn't want anyone finding out, it was bad enough that I had to ask someone for directions. I had to think of another argument to change his mind. "No…umm…Luna's busy as-well, she's helping my wife in the Starswirl Archives." I said, hoping it was a good enough argument.
Star was silent for a moment, giving me a strange look. "Ok…then I'd have to tell Princess Cadence. Last I checked, she was in her chambers." He said.
I tried to think of another argument, but I was drawn a blank. It all seemed lost until Illume stepped forward. "Sorry Star, she's gone too… something about meeting someone in the Sculptor Gardens." She said, thinking back to when Cadence told her that in her chamber before she left.
Star looked at her with a frustrated look. "Ok, I can't tell Celestia, can't tell Luna, can't tell Cadence! Is there anyone I can go to?" he asked in a loud tone before he exhaled to calm himself down. Once he was calm, he returned his attention to me. "Is it really that urgent that it can't wait until we have proper permission?" he asked curiously.
I took this chance to slip through this situation and nodded. "Yeah, I need to get down there right away." I said, trying to convince him to take me to the dungeons.
Star and Illume looked at each other again before Star sighed. "Very well." He said before he turned and made his way towards the entrance to the ballroom. "Follow me, Matthew." He said as he entered the castle.
I rushed after him until I was behind him, I followed him into the castle and we made our way out of the ballroom into the next wing, leaving Illume alone in the gardens. Feeling the cold chilly breeze of loneliness against her body, she sighed heavily. "I guess our date will have to be put on hold until later, right Star?" she said to herself out-loud, feeling as though Star walked out on her again.
Illume made her way to the entrance, but was stopped by the sound of one of the bushes rustling. She stopped and turned her head around to see where it was coming from. "H-Hello?" she called in a slightly scared voice, but received only silence.
Illume stood there for a moment, waiting to see if anyone would present themselves, but there was no one. She started to think that maybe it was just a rabbit or something, so she decided to shrug it off and go inside.
Illume entered the castle and closed the doors behind her, she felt the warmth of the indoors air melt the cold off her body, but when she turned around, she saw a dark figure standing at the end of the ballroom. This startled her a first, but she calmed down once she saw who it was. "Oh, its just you…where have you been?" she said with a small smile.
The figure remained silent as it started walking towards her. As it got closer, her calm look turned into a troubled one. "Why are you looking at me like that?" she said before she became scared. "Wait! What are you…no! Stay away! No!" she screamed before she suddenly disappeared in a flash of light.
A few minutes later: Dungeons
After a while of walking from one wing of the castle to the next, Star and I finally made it to the castle dungeon where all of Canterlot's trouble-makers where kept locked up. As we walked down the long stone stairs, I kept looking at Star, hoping he wasn't suspicious about why I wanted to go down here.
But all the while, he was silent, didn't ask any questions or say anything regarding this. I thought it would make it less awkward if I said something, particularly something not involving this. "So…you and Illume, how longs has that been going on for?" I asked curiously, trying to break the silence.
Star turned his head to look at me and grinned. "Illume? Huh, that's been going on for years. I met her in the academy, she was a little rough at first, but in the end, her rough attitude became kinda cute. We started dating within a month." He said with a smart-ass smirk.
I returned the smirk. "Love story if there ever was one." I said in response to that. "So has there been any news lately? Any gossip?" I asked curiously.
Star thought for a moment, but couldn't think of anything. "Nothing I've heard of…in fact, Canterlot seems pretty quiet lately." He informed. But upon saying that, a thought immediately came to mind. "Wait! There is something! We've been getting reports that ponies in the city are starting to disappear one by one." He said in a small out-burst.
I looked at him with confusion. "Disappearing? As in, they're being taken away?" I asked, starting to wonder what was going on to cause this.
"Probably." Star replied. "Or maybe they're just leaving the city for a while, some believe it's still not safe after that whole thing with…Zelga, was it?" he asked.
I thought about it and it did seem likely. After the Thorn attack, many of Canterlot's citizens didn't return straight away, they waited a while before deciding it was safe to come back. "I suppose so, but I'd better look into it, just to be on the safe side."
"Be my guest, it's always good to have an extra pair of experienced hooves helping out." Star said as we both continued to make our way down to the dungeon, remaining silent all the while.
Once we reached the dungeon, Star opened the wooden door which led into the cell room, which held a large hallway of cells with ponies and other creatures inside them. Star and I walked down the cell block, passing many cells along the way. I looked into a few of them and saw ponies, griffins and even horses. They all looked tough, one even had large muscles and what looked like a tattoo, how he got a tattoo on his fur, I'll never know. "How many prisoners do you have down here?" I asked, staring at them all like animals in a zoo.
Star didn't turn around as he answered. "Hmm…not sure, quite a lot, whoever causes serious trouble in Canterlot gets sent down here." he said as we kept walking.
I was a little unsettled by all of this, the prisoners looked disturbed and had a strange glare, like they wanted to hurt me. As I passed one of the cells, a claw shot out from the bars and grabbed my right front-leg, I spun my head around to see what it was and saw that it was a griffon with dirty feathers and a mussel on his beak. He hissed at me and gripped my leg hard.
Startled, I tried to pull my leg away, but the griffon had a tight grip on me. Star soon noticed this and rushed over before he slammed his hoof against the bars, scaring the griffon and making it retreat to the back of the cell.
With my leg now free, I stepped away from the cell and took deep breathes to calm myself down. "Yeah…best stay away from the cells, the prisoners aren't commutable around strangers." Star said before he turned and continued to make his way down the cell block.
"No kidding." I responded as I followed behind, staring at the griffon in the cell before I returned my attention to Star.
After a minute or so, Star and I eventually saw someone up ahead facing one of the cells. He was white and was wearing big pieces of armour. As we got closer, we were able to make out that it was Shining Armor. I wondered what he was doing down here, shouldn't he be up-top helping Celestia? It looked as though he was talking to someone inside the cell and I had a strong mind of who it was.
"Why did you do this? Why did you betray us? We were friends, the three of us went to the academy together, we graduated together!" Shining said loudly, full of anger and grief, as he watched the prisoner pace back and forth inside the cell. "Didn't we mean anything to you?" he asked.
"Ha! Are you kidding me? My only goal was to earn the trust of the guards and Princesses and then swipe the Elements when I could." The pony said before he stepped out of the shadows and revealed himself to be Blaze Horn, still pretty beaten up of my fight with him and still had the Horn Block sealed around his horn, preventing him to using magic. "You and Midnight Gaze were merely…keeping me entertained through all those years." He said with a despicable smirk.
Shining bared his teeth and breathed heavily in anger. "So you didn't feel a single ounce of sympathy when you told Thorn the location of Luna's castle and caused the death of many of her guards, including Midnight!" he said, snapping at him with the last part.
Blaze continued to smirk as he walked up to the bars and looked Shining right in the eye. "Not…one…bit." he said darkly.
Shining tried with everything he had to contain his anger. Here he was, talking to a pony he once believed was one of his closest friends through the bars of a prison cell, and all he wanted to do was go in there and knock his lights out for the horrible things he's done. "You betrayed us, you betrayed our trust and friendship…ponies like you should be in Tartarus." He growled.
Blaze threw his eyes. "Don't you get it yet, Shiny? I was working with my mother since the beginning, I enrolled into the academy so I could get close to the Princess and steal the Elements. I didn't betray you because I wasn't on your side to begin with!" he said in a loud tone.
Shining didn't know what to feel. Anger, sadness, regret for not seeing it sooner. He stood there, feeling like an utter fool and that he had failed Midnight. If he had noticed this sooner, he could have prevented his death.
Blaze saw that we was having a hard time coming to terms with this and grinned darkly. "Yeah…you're finally getting it." he said before he decided to get to him more. "By the way, in case you forget, I know all about your little secret, how you're…seeing…one of the Princesses. I wonder if she knows about all this stuff about me…maybe, if you were to suddenly disappear, she would need a shoulder to cry on." he said with a devilish grin.
Shining growled loudly before his horn glowed and gripped Blaze's mane, he was then yanked towards him and his face pressed against the cell bars. "If you even think about going near her, I'll see to it that you never reach Torturous alive, do you hear me?!" he said with a death glare.
"Captain!" a voice said near him. Shining released Blaze and turned his head to see me and Star walking over to him. "Is everything alright?" Star asked with us stopping beside him.
Shining took a few breaths to calm himself down before he spoke. "Yeah, I'm fine." He said before he turned his attention to me. "Is there a reason you brought a civilian down to the dungeon? Especially when it's an off-limits zone?" he asked, looking at Star with a firm look.
I gave him a confused look. He's never addressed me as a civilian before, it was like he had forgotten who I was completely.
"Sorry Captain, but he said it was for important business. I was going to ask the Princesses if it was ok, but I couldn't find them." Star explained before he looked down at me. "I did suggest waiting until I got proper authorization, but he said it was urgent." He said.
Shining looked at him for a moment before he looked down at me, giving me a suspicious look. "Did he now?" he said before he returned his attention to Star. "Thank you Star, I'll take care of things from here. You're relieved." He said, waving his hoof.
Star gave a nod. "Yes sir." He said before he turned around and made his way back up the dungeon hallway, heading back towards the stairs that led back up to the surface.
We both watched him go until he started going up the stairs. Once he was gone, I turned to face Shining and looked at him with a raised eye-brow. "Civilian?" I said, repeating what he said. "You do know who I am, right? I'm not exactly your average pony." I say, wanting to remind him that I wasn't just any random pony.
Shining gave me a gentle look. "Sorry Matt, but I had to keep to my duties as a Captain, you know?" he said, hoping I'd understand. "Speaking of which, I'm gonna have to ask why you're down here." he said.
I understood that he, as a Caption of the royal guard, had to know. "If you must know, I'm here for answers." I said before I turned my head to face the cell that held Blaze horn. "From him." I said with a small growl.
Shining looked over to Blaze and gave me a doubtful stare. "I've been trying to get him to talk all day, he just keeps brushing it off and changing the subject." He informed me.
"I've got other methods." I growled before I returned my attention to Shining. "Open the cell." I said to him.
Shining was shocked by this order. "Excuse me?" he said in surprise. "Did that fight with Zelga leave you crazy? I can't open the cell, Blaze will try to get out!" he stated.
"No he won't, I won't let him." I said before I stepped aside so Shining could get to the cell door. "I need you to let me into the cell." I said in a serious tone.
Shining was still for a moment before he sighed. "Ok, but I'll have to lock it behind you. Don't worry, I'll be right out here if you get into trouble." He said as he walked up to the cell door and used his magic to unlock it with the key.
"Perfect." I responded as I waited for him to open the door.
After a moment, there was a click noise and Shining used his magic to open the cell door. He then stepped aside to let me enter it. Once inside, Shining closed the door and locked it behind me. "I hope you know what you're doing." Shining said, watching from the other side of the bars.
"I've dealt with worse." I said to him before I returned my attention to Blaze. "Isn't that right, Blaze? Or did you forget about Thorn and Zelga?" I asked, giving a strong look.
Blaze had his back turned to me, but as soon as I said that, he spun around and gave me a dark glare. "No, I haven't…I think about them every day." he growled before he sat down. "So is that what you came here for? To gloat? To tell me that I'll rot behind a bunch of bars for the rest of my days? Well save your breath, Shiny here already gave me that speech." He said in a rough tone.
"Actually, I'm here to ask you a few questions." I said before I sat down a few feet away from him. "Questions about your mother and what she was part of." I said, not taking my eye off him and preparing myself for anything he might try.
Blaze smirked as her threw his eyes. "Of course…Dear mother reveals something to the great Matthew and he's suddenly on the case." He said before his smirk went away. "Has it ever crossed your mind that maybe everything doesn't always have to be about you? Since you killed my uncle, it's been Matthew this and Matthew that! If there's a problem, Matthew can fix it! *Feh* You must think of yourself as some kind of god." He said with a hateful stare.
I frowned and thought about what he said. I knew I had been getting a reputation since I defeated Thorn, but I didn't want it to start with. I didn't think of myself better than anyone and I wanted to make that perfectly clear. "I didn't ask for my fame, just as Twilight and her friends didn't ask to be the ones who control the Elements. It…just happened. I just wanted a peaceful life with the girl I love, with the friends I love." I said before I glared sharply at him. "…But you're family got in the way of that! They threatened us, tortured Twilight and the others, and tried to make the world a living Hell!...After I beat Thorn, I made a decision…to protect the ones I love no matter what. All they had to do was surrender and leave us alone, maybe if they did, they'd still be alive!" I said in a loud voice.
Blaze then shot up onto his hooves in anger. I immediately got up as well, ready to defend myself. He may not be able to use magic, but that doesn't mean he wasn't still dangerous. "Well maybe they couldn't! Maybe they would've died either way! Because if that was the case, a death received by you is more of a mercy than the death they would've received later." He said in an enraged yet slightly frightened tone.
Upon hearing that, I began to wonder what he was talking about. What would kill them later and why would it be worse than what I did to them. I mean, Thorn was impaled and Zelga was crushed, what could be worse? "What do you mean by that? Was there something trying to kill them?" I asked, wanting to know as much detail as I could.
Blaze huffed and turned away. "No…in fact, I think I said enough…you should go, you have other problems to deal with." he said in a groan.
I growled and stepped forward. "I'm not going anywhere until you tell me what I want to know." I said before I decided to stop listening and started interrogating. "Tell me about the True Order! You were part of them, who are they? What do they want?!" I asked, stomping my hoof against the ground.
Blaze chuckled. "What do they want?..." he said before he turned back around to face me. "What they want is to fix the damage done to this world, to make this world stronger." He said with a large grin.
I took a step closer to him. "By terrorising other ponies? By killing them? By destroying everything they've worked so hard to build for themselves." I asked, not believing they wanted to fix anything.
Blaze's grin turned twisted and crooked. "Like I said, they want to fix the damage…but they can't do that without cleansing the chaos done to it first. Can't make an omelette without breaking a few misguided heads now, can we? Hahaha." He laughed darkly.
I was starting to get frustrated with his attitude. Acting like he was the one being wronged, like I was the problem, like he was part of something to make the world better, how he talked about people's lives like they were expendable and diseased. "There's nothing wrong with this world! Its perfect the way it is, thanks to ponies like Celestia." I said in their defence.
"Celestia!" Blaze scoffed. "Celestia is the major part of the problem! He teachings and guidance has led ponies to believe things such as love and friendship are a strength, but all they do is make them weak…take your wife, for example." He said while smirking again, knowing he was entering a dangerous area.
And he wasn't wrong, I was starting to lose my cool the moment he entered that area. "Shut up…" I growled, giving him my only warning.
"Celestia's teaching has tainted her, made her soft. True, she can hold herself up in a fight, but she would've accomplished more if she had gone down the same path we did…just imagine what she could've done had she joined us." Blaze said with darkness in his eyes.
With that, I shot up against him and pinned him against the wall. "Twilight would have never joined you! She never will! And if you so much as look at her with that idea in mind, I'll gouge your eyes out! You hear me? I'll gouge them out!" I said with pure anger and hatred as my coat started to turn dim with bits of shadow appearing on it.
Shining saw this and tied to enter the cell, but a dark aura formed around the lock, preventing him from entering. Realising he couldn't get in, all he could do was watch from behind the bars. "Matt! Get a hold of yourself!" he said, trying to get through to me.
Blaze saw my body changing and grinned. "That is interesting…all that darkness in your body, it's starting to take a hold of you. It might just be the hit to the back of the head I just received, but I think if you keep this personality around, he just might take you under his wing just like he did with me." he said, not looking intimidated at all.
"Who is 'he'?" I asked loudly. "How many more of you are there? How many?!" I yelled as I grabbed his throat with my hooves and hoisted him up.
Blaze coked a little due to the pressure against his throat, but he managed to find the strength to answer. "T-Two…there's only two…" he said before he grinned again. "But you won't beat them…Thorn was weaker than my mother, but she wasn't the strongest amongst us…" he said, struggling to talk.
Growled and lowered him so his face was right above mine. "And who is the strongest?" I asked, looking him straight in the eye.
Blaze glared and chuckled. "Sorry Mattie…spoilers." He answered.
I growled again before I threw him against the wall and dropped down onto my hooves, while he fell down onto the floor. I breathed deeply, my inner-self trying to regain control of my body. I grunted and closed my eyes tight, desperately trying to calm down. My coat started to regain into colour and the shadowy patches started to fade away. Once it was all gone, I opened my eyes wide and gasped loudly, taking in as much air as I could.
I took some deep breaths before I looked down at Blaze, seeing him on the floor while rubbing his throat with his hoof. I'm not sure I forgot anything or not, everything just felt like a blur. I lifted my hoof and looked at it, thinking about this…creature…that lurked inside me. I returned my attention to Blaze and gave him a firm look. "What is that thing?...what's inside me?" I asked, not sure whether to be scared or not.
Blaze looked up at me and smirked. "The dark magic of the True Order…think about it, remember how powerful Thorn and Zelga were? Do you really think all that power just simply went away? No, it needs a home just like everything else…and where better to go that the pony who struck down their old masters?" he said.
I grew concerned by this, knowing the power of both Thorn and Zelga were inside me. I didn't how to feel, scared that this power was waiting to take me over again, angry that I didn't predict this sooner, doubtful that I could have such a power. But most of all, I felt a little concerned that it saw me worthy to possess me, did this mean I was as dark as the power itself? "H-How do I get rid of it?" I asked, not beating around any bushes.
Blaze chuckled before he gave a single laugh. "Ha! You can't! That power is stronger than anything you or your wife can dish out. Only a pony of great power can remove it…sorry to say, you won't find any on your side, not even Celestia is that powerful." He scoffed.
I could feel my anger start to rise again, something about his smug face just pushed me in a bad way. But I knew what would happen if I lost my cool, so I took a breath to calm myself down. "I'll deal with that later…right now, I want to know where the next member of the True Order will appear…and you're gonna tell me right now!" I said in a demanding tone.
Blaze smirked as he slowly stood back up. "Don't worry about that…in a matter of time, he'll come to you, just like they always do." he said with a menacing look.
I was about to speak again, but suddenly, the ground started to shake and there was a loud cracking sound, like there was a large earthquake. It was big enough to make us lose our balance and fall to the floor. Dirt and rocks fell from the ceiling as the shaking got worse, we all had to shield out heads with our arms to avoid getting hurt by anything that fell. But after a moment, the shaking stopped completely.
We all waited a moment to make sure it was safe before we removed our arms from our arms from our heads and stood back up. I turned around to Shining Armor and walked over to him. "You ok?" I asked in concern.
Shining rubbed his head with his hoof before he looked at me. "Yeah, I'm fine…" he said before he looked up at the ceiling, wondering what was going on up on the surface. "What was that?" he asked.
I wondered the same. "I don't know…an earthquake maybe?" I asked.
Shining returned his attention to me. "On the side of a mountain, not impossible but very unlikely." He said with a raised eye-brow. "Besides, we've never had anything like that around her before." He stated.
I wondered what this could mean before I heard chuckling behind me, I spun around and saw Blaze get back up onto his hooves with a large grin on his face. "Like I said, you have other problems to deal with. Wouldn't want your dear wife getting hurt up there, would we?" he asked.
Part of me wanted to punch him so hard that it would make him pass out and finally shut up, but he had a point, an earthquake that large could've caused damage to the city. I had to get back up and check on Twilight. I returned my attention to Shining and made my way towards the cell door. "He's right, we need to check on the others." I said.
With the dark power now gone, Shining was able to open the cell door. I exited the cell and shining closed the door behind me. "Come on." I said as I made my way back towards the stairs that led up to the surface. Shining gave one last glare to Blaze before he followed me.
"I'll be waiting." Blaze said with a mocking smirk. "By the way, tell the cook I never got my slop or whatever it is you serve to the prisoners around here." he called as he walked up to the bars to watch us leave from the other side. As he did, he soon noticed that the door wasn't locked, it was open slightly.
Blaze grinned as he decided to take this chance. He walked up to the cell door and slowly placed his hoof on it and prepared to slowly push it open. But suddenly, Shining's hoof on the other side pushed against it and slammed it shut, Shining used his magic to lock the cell before he gave Blaze a firm look. "Yeah, not gonna happen." He growled before he turned and rushed away, trying to catch back up with me.
"Dang it!" Blaze said as his stomped his hoof against the floor. He then sat down on the floor and crossed his arms, pouting at his continuing imprisonment.
A little while later
After returning to the surface, Shining and I quickly made our way to the Magic Archives where Twilight and Luna. We galloped through the hall ways, passing many panicking maids and workers, plus some guards who were trying to control the situation.
I worried for Twilight. The Archives weren't what they used to, they could've collapsed on top of them or worse. I needed to get there as soon as I could, I'd take off into the air and fly there if I had to. But this proved unnecessary when I saw Twilight and Luna up ahead, galloping towards me. Once I reached her, I immediately wrapped my arms around her and locked her in a hug.
"Thank God you're ok." I said, glad that she was still in one piece. I then released her from my hug and placed my hoof on her cheek. "Are you ok?" I asked in concern.
"I'm fine." Twilight answered. "But what happened? It felt like an Earthquake, but we've never had an Earthquake here before, it's like it was totally random." She said, trying to figure out what happened.
"I know, I don't know what it was either." I said before I turned my attention to Luna. "Was anyone hurt?" I asked curiously.
Luna shook his head. "No…at least none that I am aware of." She said before she walked past us and started making her way down the hall. "I am sorry I must go so suddenly, but I must find my sister, she will need my aid in the city." She said before she rushed away to leave the castle and find Celestia as fast as possible.
While she left us, I looked back at Twilight. "I know this probably isn't the best time to ask, but did you find anything on the True Order?" I asked, most curious about what information she might've dug up.
Twilight shook her head. "No, I didn't find anything. Out of all the places, I thought for sure Star Swirl's archives would've had something about the True Order…" she said before she changed the subject. "But yeah, this isn't a good time to ask, we need to check on the ponies in the city, they could've gotten hurt." she said before she rushed past me and went down the same hall as Luna.
Shining and I looked at each other before we followed her. We made our way through the castle until we reached the main exit, upon exiting the castle and entering the courtyard, we saw many citizens in a panic over the sudden Earthquake. We all left the courtyard and went into the streets to see how bad the damage was.
It was a wreck. Ponies in panic, buildings half crumbled, guards trying to take control of the chaos it caused. Fortunately, the damage wasn't so bad, but still bad enough to cause mayhem. "Do you think Celestia's ok?" I asked, turning my head to Twilight.
Twilight looked over to me with a concerned look. "I don't know. I mean, she's a strong pony and she can take care of herself, but she's not entirely indestructible." She answered.
I gave her a thoughtful look before I placed my hoof on her shoulder. "Go find her, she'll probably need your help." I said to her, thinking of her concern for Celestia's safety.
Twilight looked at me deeply. "Are you sure?" she asked with wonder. "I admit, I'm worried for the Princess, but she's capable of handling herself. You two might need me." she said, thinking of what might happen in her absence.
"Not as much as the Princess might." I argued. "She'll need you to help calm everyone down and keep things under control in a proper manner." I said before I turned my head to face Shining. "While Shining and I will do the same, but…not as much in a proper manner…I suspect." I said before smiling nervously at her.
Twilight threw her eyes. "Fine." She said in a groan before she moved closer to me and kissed my cheek. "Just stay safe, ok?" she said with a slightly concerned voice.
I smiled at her. "I'm supposed to tell you that." I said before I turned to face Shining. "Ready to go?" I asked him, feeling ready to handle riot control.
Shining nodded. "Yeah, the citizens are most likely to head to the train station to leave the city. They'll trample each other if we don't control it." he said with a strong tone.
"Right." I said with a single nod before I returned my attention to Twilight. "Find Celestia, make sure she's ok and for God's sake be careful." I said as Shining and I began to move away from her, making our way to the train station and leaving Twilight in the street.
Twilight remained there until she saw us start to gallop down the street. Twilight sighed deeply before she grew a strong look, she then turned and started galloping down the street in the other direction to find Princess Celestia.
While she did, a strange shadow lurked in the darkness and snickered as it watched Twilight run towards a venerable area.
-Meanwhile-
Shining and I kept galloping down the street, passing more panicking ponies, most of them rushed and pushed past us while others stayed near their homes. I looked at them all in pity and sympathy. After we got control of the riots, I'd have find out what caused all this in the first place.
As we kept moving, Shining turned his head to look at me. "We're nearly at the train station, it should just be up ahead and to the left." He said before returning his attention to the path ahead.
"Ok, hopefully the damage isn't that bad, maybe we'll get a break for once." I said as I did my best to keep up beside him, huffing to keep my breath.
But as soon as we got close to the turning point, we were halted by a large herd of ponies rushing around the corner and running towards us. Shining and I were startled, but we stayed where we were while they all ran past us. They looked even more scared than before, like something at the train station had spooked them.
"This is horrible! The city is floating! We're trapped!" A scared mare yelled as she rushed past us.
Upon hearing this, Shining and I looked at each other with complete confusion. "Floating?" I said to him, like I was asking him what it could mean.
Shining was silent before he gave me a serious look. "Come on, we need to get to the train station and see what's going on." he said before he trotted away from me, turning down the corner towards the station. I rushed to catch up with him quicker and I followed him there.
Once we finally reached it, we saw a bunch of ponies gathered around the station. They were all standing in front of a long line of guards, stopping them from going any further than they needed to. "We have a situation here, you all need to keep back for you own safety." A guard said, speaking loud enough for the crowd to here.
With that, they all started ravelling, yelling over each other. They all kept saying how it wasn't safe here anymore and that they needed to leave. Shining and I pushed our way through the crowd, trying to get to the barrier of guards. "Excuse me…sorry…sorry…excuse me." I said as I carefully pushed my way through the crowd, keeping behind Shining at all times.
After finally exiting the crowd, Shining and I walked over to the guards to try and pass them. "I hate walking through crowds, makes me feel like I'm being crushed." I say, shaking off the uncomfortable feeling it gave me as we approached the guards.
Shining ignored my comment and stopped in front of one of the guards. "What's the situation?" he asked in a strong tone with me standing beside him.
The guard saluted before he spoke. "It's rather complicated, sir. The city is…well…look." He informed before he turned around and started heading towards the station. Shining followed him, passing between two other guards along the way.
I tried to follow him, but I was stopped by the two guards spreading out their wings and blocking the way. "No civilians are allowed past this point!" one told me in a deep voice and a firm look.
I would've pushed through them easily, but I didn't want to cause a bigger fuss than there already was. I looked over their wings and saw Shining still walking away from me. "H-Hey Shining…a little help over here?!" I called, feeling a little stuck where I was.
Shining turned his head around and saw the situation I was in. "Oh right…*clears throat*…its alright guards, he can pass." Shining said, talking to the two guards.
With that, the said two guards closed their wings to unblock my path. "Yes sir!" they both said at the same time.
With my path now clear, I slowly walked past the guards. "Thanks." I said quietly to them before I rushed over to Shining. "So what do you thinks going on?" I asked curiously to him.
Shining shrugged. "I don't know." He said before he turned away and continued following the guard towards the station. "But I have a feeling we're gonna find out." He said as he entered the station through the front entrance, with me following behind.
The guard led us through the building until we came out to the tracks. However, everything seemed normal, we looked ahead and simply saw the same sky we always did while at the station, we had literally reached the end of Canterlot, up ahead was nothing more than the train tracks and a long drop down the mountain. "Umm…were we supposed to see something?" I asked in confusion before I looked over to the guard.
The guard looked down at me with a troubled look. "Come over here." he said before he jumped down onto the tracks and walked across them.
Shining and I saw this and grew concerned. "Whow! Wait! That's dangerous, man! The train could come any minute." I said, looking over to the direction the train usually comes to make sure I could see if it was coming.
The guard then stopped and looked back at us. "Trust me, its not coming." He said before he turned away again and walked up to the small wall that kept ponies from accidently falling off the edge.
Shining and I were courteous, but we managed to get across the tracks quick, we walked over to the guard and stood beside him. Whatever was happening, it was simply over this wall. Shining and I carefully looked over it and saw what everyone was in a panic about.
The ground beneath the city was moving, literally moving, it was like the city was flying across it. It didn't even look like we were in the same area, I couldn't see Ponyville or any of the normal sightings anywhere. "What in Equestria?" Shining said out-loud, finding this hard to believe even though he was seeing it.
"Yeah, this is weird." I said before I turned my head to face Shining. "I should fly up and check this out, I'll be back in a sec." I said, trying to think of a way to see things properly.
Shining looked at me and thought about it for a second before he answered. "Ok, just be careful, we still don't know fully what's going on and I don't want my brother-in-law getting hurt." he said.
I gave him a single nod before I spread my wings out. "Here we go." I said before I jumped over the wall and started dive from the city.
Once I did, Shining and the guard quickly looked over the wall to watch me drop from much height. "Is that guy crazy?!" the guard said in shock, finding it hard to believe I actually did that.
Suddenly, I shot up in front of them and flying up into the sky, flapping my wings hard so I could get up there fast and see what was happening to Canterlot. "I'll get back to you on that." Shining responded as they continued to watch me fly up higher and higher.
I kept flapping my wings, the wind getting a little thin due to the height and speed I was going in. But eventually, I was high enough to look down at the city. Once I did, I couldn't believe what I saw. The city was floating, a giant chuck of the mountain it was once part of was still attacked to the back of it, but the mountain itself was a few miles back, the city had moved from there.
I didn't know what to make of this. It was like someone grabbed the city and pulled it from the mountain, now it was hovering in the sky, slowly moving across the lands. Once I had gotten all that I needed to see, I quickly dove down back to the city to return to Shining and report what I found out.
Along the way down, I saw something coming up what was left of the train tracks, like a small train. This confused me, there shouldn't be anything coming up tracks, let alone a train, but there was and it was heading towards the station. I flapped my wings harder to dive quicker.
Once I had returned down to the station, I landed near Shining and walked over to him. "Its worse than we thought." I said as I approached him. "The entire city is in the sky, floating across the land on nothing." I informed him, stopping in front of him.
Shining looked at me with a shocked and confused look. "What are you talking about? The city can't be floating." He said with disbelief.
"I know, but I'm telling you, its floating in the middle of the sky." I said before I turned my head around to look down the tracks. "Also, there's something coming, a train or something." I said, waiting to see whatever it was come up to the station.
Shining was even more confused, but he looked down the tracks with me. "If the city really is floating, do you think the train made it across before it was broken off?" he asked curiously.
I thought about it for a moment, remembering what I looked like from so high up. "I don't think so, it looked a little too small to be the train, it's something else…or someone." I say, sharpening my eyes as I continued to wait for whatever it was to arrive.
Shining and I continued to wait, watching the tracks for a sign of anything. But finally, after a short while, we saw something coming up the tracks towards us. From such a distance, we were having trouble seeing what it was, it was an odd shape, it didn't even help once it started to get closer, it just made us more confused.
Eventually, it did get close enough for us to make out and, once again, my eyes were set upon something I found shocking. It was Discord, riding on a small train while wearing a conductor outfit, big striped hat and all. His mini-train whistled as it came to a slow stop in front of the station. "Hello Matthew! How lovely it is to see you again." he said with a bright smile as he get off the train and made it & his outfit disappear in a flash of light.
I felt relieved to see him ok, especially since I heard he had possibly left. But I also felt a little heartache, due to what happened during our last encounter. "Discord!…" I started as I took a step towards him. "Thank god you're ok, I heard some things happened between you and Celestia…"
Discord's smile faded away a little. "Yes, she had quite a bad reaction to what I told her." he said before he snapped his fingers and a poster of her appeared in front of him. "It was sad, really…I saw her as such a close friend." He said, placing a paw on the poster and dropping his ears in sadness.
I felt bad for him, knowing I was the one who forced his hand and possible ruined his relationship with Celestia. "I'm sorry Discord…I promise you, we'll find a way to make it up with her…but first, we need your help." I said before I walked over to the wall that I dove off. "The city is floating in the sky, we don't know what caused it or why, but I know you have the power to put it back. If you do this, everyone will calm down and it'll give us a chance to talk to Celestia with no problems." I said, trying to convince him to help us.
Discord was silent before he snapped his fingers and the poster was set alight, the flames burned up through the poster until it was completely gone. "And…why would I do that?" Discord asked, turning around to show me his sinister grin.
Confused by his words and shifted by his face, my ears lowered slightly in discomfort. "Umm…because it would help everyone feel better…it would definitely help everyone see the new you, including Celestia." I said, giving him a pretty good reason to do it.
"…What new me?" Discord said before he snapped his fingers.
I wondered what he was doing until I heard something flash behind me, I spun around and saw Shining and the guard trapped in giant bubbles. They had a look of shock as they bashed their hooves against the bubbles, desperately trying to escape from them.
Upon seeing this, I quickly turned back around to look at Discord. "Discord, what are you doing?! Let them go!" I said loudly.
"Oh I think not, my dear old friend, I'll need them for the party." Discord said before he snapped his fingers again, making Shining and the guard suddenly disappear.
I saw this and gasped before I faced Discord again. "What did you do to them?!" I asked in a loud tone, frightened of what Discord was trying to pull.
Suddenly, Discord appeared behind me and lowered his head down in front of my face, so now I was looking at his upside-down face. "Like I said, I need them for the party." He answered. I was about to speak again, but Discord stopped me by placing his lion finger on my mouth. "Tut, tut, tut, I know what you're going to ask me. 'What party?' Am I right?" he asked with a large smirk.
I remained silent with his finger still on my lips, waiting to hear what else he had to say.
"Of course I am." Discord said before he easily flipped his body over mine and then spun around so he was facing me properly again. "Well to answer you're unasked question, it's a special party, a celebration really. A little event I'm hosting in the castle later tonight." he said before a party-hat appeared on both our heads.
I grabbed the party-hat with my hoof and took it off. "And what is this party a celebration for, may I ask?" I asked, deciding to play along as long as he kept talking.
Discord looked at me with slight surprise, but a sinister smirk appeared on his face. "My return to chaos of course!" he said before she snapped his fingers and released a swarm of flying-pigs into the sky. "After all, who do you think sent this city adrift? I always thought this kingdom was so high it might as well be in the sky, and now it is." He said as he started hovering up into the air.
I was stunned by this, his words and the look on his face sent an uncomfortable chill down my spine. "W-What?" I asked, not sure if I could believe he'd do this.
"Oh…did I disappoint you?" Discord asked with giving me shiny sad eyes, which he immediately sent away. "I seem to doing that a lot these days." he said darkly with a small glare before he snapped his fingers.
In a flash of light, a metal bucket appeared on top of my head. I looked up at it curiously before it spun upside down. Knowing what was coming next, I closed my eyes and waited for something it land on top of me. I then felt something soft of damp hit my head and fall to the floor, I opened my eyes and looked down at it to see it was just a single fish. I gave it a confused look before a whole pile of fish dumped out of the bucket and buried me, and even then the fish wouldn't stop coming out. They eventually stopped and I was left buried under a large pile of fish.
I was soon disgusted by the smell and decided to get out, I dug my way up to the top of the pile and my head popped out of the top. Once it did, all the fish's faces turned into that of Discord's face and laughed at me.
I chose to ignore this and looked up at Discord with sorrow. "Discord, please don't do this, we can fix all of this if you just let me help you." I said, hoping he'd see reason.
Discord crossed his arms and turned away from me. "I'm afraid not, Matthew. You see, I feel like no matter what I do, I'll always be treated as the same Discord I used to be. So I decided that if that's what they'll only think of me as, then I might as well play along." He said before his head spun all the way around to face me. "By the way, I do hope you'll attend my party, you and all your other friends….I definitely know you're dear wife will be attending." He said with a large grin.
After hearing this, I gave him a shaken look. "Twilight?...What do you mean? Why would she…." I stopped talking when I saw the devious smirk on his face, like he was waiting for me to finger something out. And it didn't take long for me to do so. "…What have you done?" I asked, scared of his answer.
"Leaving your pregnant wife alone in a big wide city where buildings are crumbling down and panicking civilians are stampeding through the streets…not your best plan, if you ask me." Discord said before he pressed his fingers against each other. "Anything could happen to her." he said before chuckling darkly.
With that, I instantly became scared for Twi's safety. I wanted to shout at Discord, demand him to tell me what happened to her, but I had no time to waste. I spun around and bolted away from the station, rushing back into the city to find where Twilight was last.
As I ran through the streets, I saw that Discord's chaos was already taking a large toil on the city. Lampposts were coming to life and walking away, the ground was turning to goo and trapping ponies caught in it, and the sky was filled with his classic cotton-candy clouds. As you would expect, the ponies weren't taking it all well.
As I kept galloping through the street, Discord came running up beside me in a work-out sweatshirt and a head-band, huffing and puffing as he tried to stay beside me. "Like what I did with the place? I call it 'Discord's starter', I know it's not a very good name, but it's nothing special, the real work begins later on." he said with a mischievous grin.
I glared at him before I huff and started to run faster, wanting to get away from him and find Twilight as soon as possible. I managed to out run him, but knowing Discord, it wouldn't be long before he'd catch up. For the next half-hour or so, I rushed around the whole city looking for her, I passed many panicking ponies and more of Discord's handiwork, I even saw a pony being chased by a statue riding a living sofa like a horse.
But after a long search, I couldn't find any sign of Twilight or Princess Celestia, I eventually ran out of energy and came to a stop in the middle of the street. Out of breath and fearing the worst, I sat on the ground with my ears hanging low. I heard the cotton-candy clouds above me rumble before it started raining chocolate-milk hard. It was drenching me, but I didn't care, Twilight was gone and I was scared that Discord had taken her, just like he took Shining Armor.
Suddenly, I felt the rain above me stop and I looked up to see Discord standing beside me in an umbrella-hat, he was also holding an upside-down umbrella above my head. "Oh dear, I'm afraid I forgot to tell you that Twilight would be attending my party a little early, same for Celestia, Luna and your dragon friend, I didn't want any of them to miss a single second of it." he said as he fill a glass full of the chocolate-milk rain and drank it.
I glared up at him, seeing the monster I used to see in him before he apparently chose to reform himself. I stood up fast and continued to give him an angered look. "Discord, release everyone you took and return Canterlot to normal RIGHT NOW!" I yelled in a strong tone, showing him I was interested in playing his game.
Discord them returned my glare and threw the glass and umbrella away, allowing the rain to fall down upon me. "Oh how perfectly original! Big bad Matthew, barking orders like a real tough guy and expecting everyone to feel intimated. Well here's a little news flash for you, have you ever considered that maybe you don't always have to be the hero all the time?! That maybe you're not as much of a big shot as you think you are?!" he said in a firm tone. "Well I'm going to show the world that you're little hero-act can be stomped out! This is one catastrophe that Matthew will not resolve!" he growled before he snapped his fingers and a flying taxi-cart shot over to me and scooped me up from behind.
"Of course, you and your other friends are still invited to the party, I wouldn't want you to miss this for the world." Discord stated, his angered look turning into a bright one. "But you won't be able to return here until its ready, so don't be trying to fly back up here before them." he said before he snapped his fingers and a checkered racing-flag appeared in his hands. "And…you're off." He said before he waved the flag downwards.
With that, the taxi-cart I was in shot off down the street and rose up into the sky above the city, it then flew off with great speed, leaving the dominated city behind. The taxi was going so fast that I was held back against the seat, my eyes watered due to the wind strongly blowing against my face. But despite this, I was able to see a little bit ahead of me. Soon enough, after a few minutes, I saw Ponyville ahead and the taxi started lowering down towards it.
I then closed my eyes tightly and braced for impact, not expecting this thing to slow down at all. But surprisingly, once the taxi entered the streets of Ponyville, it pulled to a sudden stop. Due to this, I was thrown from the taxi and hit the grassy ground hard. I groaned in the slight pain this gave me as the taxi behind me fell apart into pieces.
After a moment of taking all of this in, I weakly stood up and tied to keep my balance, but the speed of that taxi ride left me shaken, I stumbled a little and nearly fell down again. I looked around and saw a bench a few feet away from me, I carefully made my way over to it and fell down onto it, allowing me to relax for a minute and pull myself together.
I looked around the town and saw most of the ponies were just carrying on with their day, others were looking over to me, having seen me pretty much crash-land into town, and the rest were looking up at the Canterlot mountain with concerned faces. I too looked up at the mountain and saw the large chuck taken out of it, the mountain looked so different without the city attached to it, almost like it used to mean something but now looked soulless.
While I had this minute to myself, it gave me time to think. Part of me couldn't believe what was going on, Discord had betrayed us and had taken all of Canterlot hostage, including Twilight and Spike. I didn't know what I was going to do, Discord was powerful and could turn the tables to his side no matter what we did.
I took a few breaths before I decided it was time for action. If I was gonna beat Discord and get everything back to normal, I'd need to rally the girls and get a plan together, I was going to need their help. I got down off the bench and looked around to see who was closest. Looking over the roofs of the cottages around me, I saw the pointed roof of Carousel Boutique.
"Right then." I said under my breath to myself before I quickly took off to reach Rarity's house, hoping that she'd be home.
Later that evening: Library
After gathering the rest of the Mane 6 and returning to the Library, we all sat in the front room as we discussed the situation at hand. "That two-timing, double-crossing jerk! I knew we should never have trusted Discord!" Rainbow Dash said with an angered tone as she threw her hind legs back and kicked the centre table.
This made the wooden horse-head nearly fall off the table, but Rarity caught it in her magic and placed it back onto the table with care. "True, this is a shocking moment for all of us." She said, giving Rainbow a firm look for her crude act before she looked at the rest of us. "I mean, we placed our trust into Discord and he turned his back on us to return to his old ways. But we're missing the big question…why did he do this? Was this his plan from the start?" she asked, wondering that herself.
Fluttershy's ears lowered a little before she spoke. "I…umm…I don't think so, he didn't seem like he was planning this, he actually seemed pretty nice since he decided t change." She said, trying to find a way to defend Discord's actions.
Applejack turned her head to face her. "Maybe, but we have to remember that Discord is a master when it comes to lyin' and misleadin'. He could've easily been playin' nice just to lower our guard." she said, countering Fluttershy's argument.
Fluttershy looked over to her. "But what about all of the nice things he's done since then? Remember when he tried to be as good as possible to prove he wasn't the one who was stealing the Elements? Why would he go to all that trouble if he was gonna turn against us anyway?" she said, convinced that she had a strong point.
"It would be a good way to throw us off his plan." Rarity said, walking over to her. "I'm sorry darling, but I'm afraid Discord may not have been as honest with us as we believed." She said, placing a hoof on Fluttershy's shoulder.
"Yeah!" Pinkie said as she zipped over to them. "Like if I was going to make a super-frosted cupcake for a surprise, I'd totally act like I wasn't making, even though it's impossible not to be excited about something like that! It's a super-frosted cupcake, and anything that's super-frosted is…well…super!" she said with a small smile.
Rarity turned looked at her with an unappeased look. "Pinkie, darling, that's not helping very much." She said, rubber her hoof against Fluttershy's back.
I then walked up to them to get a word in. "Actually, I agree with Fluttershy." I said, surprising the three of them. "Discord's doing this because he feels like everyone still sees him as the Discord he used to be, no matter what good he did for us. He told Celestia that he lied about losing his powers and I suppose she didn't take it very well, that's most likely what triggered this whole things." I said, explaining what was going on to them.
"How do you know that's the reason why Discord betrayed us?" Rainbow Dash asked, hovering over to me with an unconvinced look on her face.
I then looked up at her. "Because Discord told me that himself." I answered. "He said that if everyone kept treating him like a monster, then he might as well act like one." I said before my ears lowered. "And…it's my fault this is happening." I said, feeling guilt wash over my soul.
Applejack came over to me. "Why do you think that, sugarcube?" she asked.
I looked at her with the guilty look still on my face. "After I found out about Discord's lie, I told him to tell Celestia. If I had just forgiven him right away, this wouldn't have happened." I said before I looked down at the floor. "I put Twilight in danger, I put everyone in Canterlot in danger before I was too stubborn to see that Discord really had changed, whether he lied or not." I said, thinking of what might've been if I hadn't been such a dick to Discord.
Applejack placed her hoof on my back. "Now don't go beatin' yourself up, Matt, you couldn't have known this would happen." She said before she looked over to everyone else. "Right now, we just need to focus on how we're gonna fix it." she said.
"I know how we're gonna fix it!" Rainbow Dash said strongly. "We go up there and lock him up back in stone! We'll be like 'zap, zap'! And he'll be like 'Ahh!'." She said, posing expressions as she made those noises.
Rarity gave her an unimpressed look. "Well as good of a plan as that is, and I say that sarcastically, I'm afraid it's terribly flawed." She said.
"And why's that?" Rainbow Dash said as she flew down to her and looked her right in the eye.
Applejack then walked over to them and answered for Rarity. "Because, even if we could get up to wherever Canterlot is floatin' right now, we can't turn Discord to stone without all the Elements of Harmony." She said before she gave Rainbow a firm look. "And in case you've forgotten, we're short of three, they won't work unless we have all of them." she said, trying to trigger that memory into Rainbow's mind.
Rainbow looked sheepish for forgetting, but soon shook it off and crossed her arms while in mid-air. "Well…I forgot about that." She said before she looked down at Applejack. "But do you have a better plan? How else can we stop Discord?" she asked in a loud tone.
"I don't know, Rainbow, that's what I'm tryin' to figure out." Applejack said while giving her a strong glare.
"Maybe we should just try talking some sense into him." Fluttershy suggested as she walked over to them.
Rarity looked over to her with an uncertain look. "Fluttershy, sweetie, that may work on other ponies, but this is Discord we're talking about. He's not exactly the most reasonable...umm…whatever he is." She said, not believing Discord would be turned back to our side so easily.
Applejack was quiet for a moment as she gave it some thought. "Hold on, Rarity, Fluttershy might be on to something, Discord's only actin' like this because he's got the wrong idea about things. Maybe if we just explained to him that it was a misunderstandin', maybe he'll-"
"Oh no! Don't go soft on me now, AJ!" Rainbow said, strongly going against where Applejack was going. "Discord betrayed us, we need to take him down for good this time!" she said, punching one hoof against the palm of the other.
"Rainbow, for once can you think things through before you try pickin' fights?" Applejack said, giving Rainbow a sharp glare.
"I must agree with Applejack." Rarity said, speaking up again. "It would be foolish to even attempt to go up there with Discord in control. Even if you could get into the city, he would just send you right back here with just one snap of his fingers." She said, explaining the flaw in Rainbow's attack plan.
Rainbow looked at her with a frustrated look. "Why is it my plans are being trashed?! I don't see any of you coming up with anything better, besides from your 'talk reason into him' plan. You said it yourself, Rarity, Discord won't listen to reason." She argued.
Before anyone else could speak up, Pinkie popped up between them. "I'm telling you, super-frosted cupcakes are the best!" she said in a strong tone, not really having anything to do with what we were talking about.
I stood there, listening to the five of them bicker among themselves. I knew they had good or smart intensions, but all this arguing amongst ourselves wasn't going to help, it wasn't going to get Twilight back and free the others. Eventually, I finally had my last fill of it. "Hey!" I said, but my words fell of depth ears. "HEY!" I yelled.
Their arguing immediately came to a stop when my sudden shout gained their attention. "None of this is helping!" I said strongly. "Twilight needs us now and instead we're arguing about how we should take action. We need to be smarter than that." I said, walking up to them.
"…Agreed." Rarity said with a single nod. "But besides from Rainbow's attack plan and Fluttershy's negotiation plan, I really don't see any other way we can stop Discord, especially without the Elements of Harmony." She said while looking at me with hopeless eyes.
"What we need is somethin' that's just as powerful as the Elements, maybe someone knows a different way to defeat Discord." Applejack said, trying to think up a new plan.
"Doubt it!" Rainbow blurted. "Princess Celestia was the only one who knew all of Discord's weaknesses and she's gone, there's no one else." She said as she landed beside Applejack.
I gave this some thought, trying to think of anyone outside of Canterlot who would have as much knowledge as Celestia and know how we could stop Discord. It didn't take long for me to think of someone. "Actually, there might be." I said before I made my way towards the front door. "I just hope he's home." I said before I grabbed the doorknob with my hoof and opened the door.
"We'll come with you." Applejack said as she and the others came up behind me. "If we're doin' something, we're doin' it together." She said.
I looked back at them and was silent for a moment. There was no time to argue and I felt we should stay close for now, just in case Discord wanted some of us up there early. "Ok…but stay close, ok?" I asked.
After getting a nod from them, we all made our way out of the library. I closed the door behind us before I led all of them towards the Ever Free Forest.
Meanwhile: Canterlot ballroom
Within the ballroom of Canterlot, Discord sat upon his throne while watching the chaos he had created around him.
The entire room had been altered to his liking. The floor was waving like steady water, the windows had been replaced with stained windows showing images of himself to make him look like a king, and the large pony stature had been replaced by a stone fountain of three horrifying sea-ponies.
But Discord wasn't the only one in the room. In front of him, the Diamond Dogs rolled around in piles of gems and jewels, like they needed to be smothered in their scent.
Twilight and Luna were both in a giant bird cage hanging from the ceiling and Spike was being forced to continuously run along a giant hamster-wheel. In the centre of the room sat Celestia, without her horn or wings, she acted calm and brave in the face of this uncomfortable environment.
Discord drank more of his own chocolate-milk rain before he sighed happily. "Ahh, isn't this much just grand? Equestria will be so much more interesting now that I'm in charge." He said before he threw the glass away and looked down at Celestia. "I know that you like it though, finally, no more having to look over your shoulder in case I was pulling some sort of traitorous trick." He said.
Celestia remained silent for a moment before she spoke. "I never had to…because I trusted you not to." she said, giving him a firm look.
Discord looked unconvinced. "Because you believed I was weak." He said, twisting her words. "But after I confessed the truth to you, you turned your back on me, saw me as the Lord of Chaos once again." he got off the throne and hovered towards her. "Well guess what, my dear, you can see me that way all you like. Why? Because I am the Lord of Chaos again!" he growled with anger in his eyes, followed by a hint of heart-pain. But he shook it away as he smiled with glee. "By the way, do you like what I've done with the place so far? I didn't go very big because I wanted to save the rest for later." He said before he suddenly disappeared.
Discord then reappeared beside the stone fountain. "How do you like the fountain? I know it has nothing to do with yours-truly, but I thought I'd do it in memory of three special girls I once knew." He said before he looked at the three stone sea-ponies. "the Sirens, they were always so talented. I always wondered where Starswirl sent them, such a pity." He said as he patted his hand against the fountain
Celestia ignored the question and tried to reason with Discord. "Discord, this is a misunderstanding." She said, giving him a concerned look. "You're upset, you're letting your emotions get the better of you." she said, hoping it would help him think clearly and see reason.
However, Discord just brushed it off and crossed his arms. "Don't try to sweet-talk me into submission, that little trick won't work on me any longer." He said before he snapped his fingers and a giant clock appeared on his chest, it had a mini-Discord inside and its arms walked as the clock's hands, slowly ticking. "So far, everything I've done has been nothing. But after midnight tonight, I will unless my full chaotic power upon Equestria." he said before the clock disappeared.
"You don't need to do this, Discord." Twilight said as she walked up towards the bars of the cage she was in. "I know Matt was hard on you, he told me everything. But trust me, he feels really bad about that, he's even been looking for you to apologise." She said.
Discord suddenly appeared in a flash of light in front of the cage. "I know, he told me so himself. But what makes you think I was ready to forgive." He said before he gave her a sinister grin. "Maybe you should tell him to forgive and forget quicker next time, instead of rushing to judgment and ruining someone's one chance of a change of life." he said before he made a bag of birdseed appear in front of him and he started throwing hands-full of it at them.
"But what is this about a party later tonight, Discord?" Luna said, using her wing to shield herself from the seeds. "You keep us and rest of the city prisoners, yet you are planning some big event for us? Why is this?" she asked, relieved when Discord finally stopped throwing seeds at them.
"Oh! I'm so glad you asked." Discord said before streamers and confetti rained down from the ceiling as a large banner unravelled above him, which read 'Discord's return to chaos!'. "You see, Luna, I want to make sure everyone is present when midnight comes, so they can witness all my chaotic glory….which reminds me." he said before he disappeared in a flash of light.
Discord then reappeared in front of Celestia. "Dear Princess Celestia, could I ask something very important of you?" he asked as a small black bow-tie appeared around his neck.
Celestia looked up at him with a slightly ill look. "I suppose there's not choice, but first, can you return the floor to normal, all this waving is making me nocuous." She said as she looked back down at the waving floor.
Discord rolled his eyes. "Fine." He said before he snapped his fingers and the floor returned to normal. "Anyway…Celestia, would you do me the honour of being my lovely date for the party?" he said, holding his lion-paw out to her.
Celestia looked at his paw before she looked up at him. "You imprison my subjects, my student and my sister in this chaotic nightmare and you expect me to accompany you to an event where you'll take control of the entire land? I don't even plan on attending, let alone be you date to it." she scolded.
Discord looked disappointed, but a small grin soon appeared on his face. "Well I tried doing it the classy way, but now I think I'll do it my way." he said before he lowered his head down to Celestia and looked her right in the eyes. His pupils started to spin until they were at a hypnotic speed. "I think you'll reconsider that decision, my dear, you wouldn't want to miss something as grand as this." He said.
Celestia's eyes slowly widened until she started to fall into his trance. Her eyes turned yellow and soulless until a small smile grew on her face. "No…I wouldn't…" she said like a drone. "Of course I'll be your date." She said.
"Sister!" Luna said loudly in shock as she and Twilight watched what Discord was doing to her. "Do not fall for his tricks!" she said, trying to snap her out of it.
"This is low, Discord!" Twilight said while glaring down at Discord. "It's enough to make us all watch as she take over Equestria, but to make hypnotise Celestia into being your date to it? That's just sick!" she said.
Discord then rose away from Celestia, leaving her in her trance, and looked up at the caged ponies. "Maybe, but this night needs to be perfect, and that's what it will be no matter the cost." He said.
"Discord, you're better than this now." Twilight said while giving him a broken-hearted look. "You were good, you were our friend. You're overreacting to a simple mistake, this isn't you at all." She said.
Discord's ears fell in thought of this, like she was finally starting to get through to him, but before he could respond, Rover walked up in front of him. "This is exactly what Lord Discord is. He has been planning this for the past week." He stated.
"Yes." Spot said as he and Fido joined them. "He even told us to kidnap ponies and lock them up until the party started." He explained.
"And in return, we get gems, jewels, treasures!" Fido said with excitement as he looked back at the pile of treasure that Discord had given them. "Lord Discord was meant to be free to spread his creativity across the land, and no-one could stop him, not even pretty pony princess." He said while pointing at Celestia.
With their words sinking into his head, any chance of turning Discord back on their side was taken away. "You guys are right." Discord said with a dark smirk appearing on his face. "I am meant be free to do whatever I want whenever I want." he said before he looked up at Twilight. "And that's why you're wrong, Twilight, this exactly what I am meant to do, this is exactly what I am meant to be." He said in pride.
At that moment, a bright spot-light shot down above Discord and be began to sing.
Discord: "Gosh it's such a hoot to see them quaking
When I'm king, they'll treat me with respect
I can't wait to watch their poor hearts braking, so much for politically correct…"
With a snap of his fingers, the room turned brighter with colourful lights shining everywhere to give the room a more musical feel.
Discord: "Up 'til now, I've pulled my punches. I intend to eat their lunches! No more Mr nice guy, not for me!
If you think that I'm hard hearted, let me by, I haven't even started!"
Discord then made the siren statues come to life and start singing in the background with him.
Discord and Sirens: "No more Mr nice guy! No siree."
Discord: "Soon as my witchcraft has zinged 'em! I'll gain control of the kingdom!
As for dear Matt, well that's tragic. 'Cause I'm going back to that old. Black. Magic!
Good behaviour is so much duller, time to show my one true colour! (With Sirens)Baby! Mr nice guy's history!
Vengeance is what I believe in. I don't get mad, I get even!
Celestia will be at the ball 'cause I will bring her, and a zapped up a date (With Sirens) who's a real dead ringer!"
Discord then zapped the still hypnotised Celestia with a bolt of magic and she was given a beautiful red dress, her mane was held back into a stunning pony-tail and a glistening gen necklace.
Discord: "Up to no good, I love plottin'. 'Cause I'm so good when I'm rotten. No more Mr nice guy, wait and see…"
Sirens: "Wait and see."
Discord and Sirens: "I'll become that nasty, naughty, petty, spiteful! Wicked, wayward, way delightful! Bad guy I was born…to be!"
Rover: "One more time!"
Discord: "Lying, loathsome, never tender! Indiscreet, repeat offender! No more Mr nice guy, that's not meeee!"
Sirens: "Doot, doot, doo."
"Yeah!" Discord said loudly in cheer as a bunch of party cannons appeared around him and fired cream-pies and confetti into the air. But in that instant when the song and music ended, there was a large flash and everything returned to normal. The canons where gone, the sirens had returned the solid stone and the room regained its natural colour.
"Thank you, thank you!" Discord said in amusement as he bowed a few times before he looked up at Twilight and Luna. "Now I had better go check on the preparations for the party…don't go anywhere." He joked before he disappeared, leaving the three ponies in their situation with the Diamond Dogs returning to ravel in their treasure.
Twilight looked at the bars of the cage before he horn glowed, she then shot a powerful beam at the bars in an attempt to break them, but the power surrounding the cage just absorbed the magic. "Its pointless…this cage is too heavily powered for us to break." She said before she looked down at Celestia. "Discord's thought all of this through, he's not taking chances this time." She said.
"Do not lose hope, Twilight Sparkle, I am sure Matthew and your friends will find a way to defeat him and return everything to normal." Luna said as she walked up to her.
Twilight turned her head to face her. "I know they will." She said before she looked back down at Celestia with concern. "They'll never give up on us, especially Matt." she said, hoping we'd find a way to fight back against Discord.
Meanwhile: Moleyair's home
It took a while and a few rough spots, but we all managed to get to Moleyair's hole in the ground. In the absence of all the Princesses, Moleyair was the only reliable source of information and guidance.
It wasn't easy getting here, especially with Fluttershy's fear of the forest constantly making her freeze in terror. But in the end, we managed to pull through and reach Moleyair. Unsurprisingly, he was expecting us.
We all sat by a large stone table as we watched Moleyair make everyone some tea. "So, Discord went through with his plan to take over Canterlot, that's unfortunate." He said as he brought a tray of steaming cups to us.
"You mean ya knew about this?" Applejack asked with a raised eye-brow.
"Yes, but at the same time, no. There were multiple paths Discord could've taken, but he chose this one, I just didn't see it clearly until it actually happened." Moleyair explained as he pasted a cup to her.
"Well what do we do about it?" Rainbow Dash asked with impatience. "Celestia was the only one who knew how to take care of Discord, but she's gone now." she said as she also received a cup.
"And without the rest of the Elements, we can't turn him back to stone." Fluttershy said. "Matt said that you might know another way to stop him…is it true?" she asked curiously.
Moleyair was silent for a moment before he sighed, stroking his small grey beard. "A terrible shame when good person turns bad, especially when they were trying to change their ways." He said out-loud before he looked at us. "Yes, there is another way…but I'm afraid they're not very pleasant." He said.
We all wondered what he meant before he walked over to me. "They all include you, Matthew. You're the only one whom Discord will let near." He said before he looked at the others. "Discord believes Matthew was the cause of all this misfortune, he wants Matthew to see everything he does, just to show him what his misjudgement has brought upon Equestria. If anyone can stop Discord now, its Matthew, the rest of you won't even get close to him." Moleyair explained.
"Alright, but what does Matthew have to do to stop him?" Rarity asked before she took a sip of her tea.
Moleyair then looked at me. "Matthew, you have two options…Discord isn't capable of taking away your Element, the only Element that can function without the others, you can defeat him the same why you defeated Thorn and Zelga." he explained.
I gave this some thought and didn't really like the idea, the thought of having to fight Discord with the kind of power and brutality my Element can inflict was too much. Discord was overacting and basically destroying Equestria, but I didn't want to hurt him. For Moleyair, I didn't have to tell him what I was thinking for him to know. "Yes…it is a bad choice, but there is another." He said as he placed his claw on my arm.
I looked at him with interest before I watched him walk away towards a chest. He whacked it with his staff before the lid flung open, Moleyair reached into it and started searching around. "Now let's see, where is it? Did I even put it in here? Very unlike me if I didn't." he said to himself as she drug through the chest.
We all watched awkwardly as Moleyair continued to search through the chest, sometimes picking up strange objects and tossing them aside. But eventually, he found what he was looking for. Moleyair spun around to show that he was holding a large bronze collar with symbols carved into the sides, it looked a lot like the Horn-Block, but much bigger. "This is a tool I made for situations such as this." He said as he brought it over to the table and placed it down in front of me.
"What is that?" I asked, looking down at this strange relic.
"It's a lot like the Horn-Block I gave you to subdue Blaze Horn, but it goes around the neck rather than a horn." Moleyair said before he looked up at me. "If you can get this around Discord's neck, it will render him powerless, allowing you to capture him before he can do anymore damage." He explained.
I looked down at the collar and thought about it. It was a better option, but it would reduce Discord to a weak and helpless creature and humiliate him. Moleyair was right, both options weren't very pleasant.
"I know it's a hard choice to make. Hurt Discord or strip him of everything he has, both risk losing him as a friend forever. But listen." Moleyair said before I gave him my full attention. "If you choose the right path, everything will be as it should be…but to do so, you must know when to act…and when to not." He said, speaking in riddles like always.
Everyone else looked at each other in confusion. "Anyone get a word of that?" Rainbow Dash asked.
"Nope." Pinkie responded before they returned their attention to me.
"But how will I get it around Discord's neck? As soon as he sees it, he's gonna know something's up and will probably turn it into a life-float or something." I said, slowly picking up the collar and feeling how heavy it was.
"That's where this comes in." Moleyair said before he reached into his robes and pulled out a small bottle full of blue liquid. "This potion will protect you from Discord's magic. Drink this, and he won't be able to even touch you." he said as he placed it down in front of me.
I looked down at the potion and sighed heavily, knowing there was only one suitable choice. "…I suppose the collar is better than fighting him." I said before I grabbed the collar with my hooves and slipped my head through it, that way I could carry it around my neck.
"Do not let anger guide your actions and decisions, Matthew. Just remember what I have told you and you will succeed in bringing Discord back into the light." Moleyair said with wisdom.
I nodded to him. "I will, Moleyair." I said before I grabbed the potion with my mouth and stood up. "We better get back to the Library before Discord shows up. If he sees us out here, he might suspect something." I muffled with the bottle in my mouth.
Moleyair tapped his staff against the floor. "Yes, go, make heist! There is much to prepare for." He said, practically shooing us out the door.
The girls then stood up with me before they started following me to the lift that would take us up to the surface. But I soon stopped, letting the others walking past me and I then looked back at Moleyair. I took the bottle out of my mouth so I could speak properly. "Moleyair…I have to know…did Discord ever have bad intentions when he joined us? Was he plotting this from the beginning or is this just a sudden change of heart?" I asked, not sure if I wanted to know the answer or not.
Moleyair was silent before he walked over to me. "In a way, don't we all have bad intensions sometimes? Don't we all have these evil plots that we sometimes want commit, but we can never do so because its not who we are?" he said before he gripped his staff tightly. "But to answer your question…no, he wasn't planning this. After you and the others befriended him, he decided to change, even though we always wanted to be the same Discord he once was. I'm afraid these sudden actions of his are the result of an injured heart." He said, looking up at me with his shiny black goggles.
Part of me was hurt by this, because I knew it was my fault he was acting like this, because I pushed him into confessing the truth to Celestia. "Ok…I think I know what I have to do." I said before I grabbed the bottle with my mouth again and followed the others towards the exit lift.
"I do hope so, Matthew." Moleyair said as he looked down at the floor.
Later that night: Library
After we returned to the library, we waited hours for Discord to take us to Canterlot. Everyone seemed restless, nervous and uneasy.
Rainbow Dash was pacing back and forth with her tail whipping every time she turned, Rarity kept looking through Twilight's clothes to check them for any tares or miss-stitches, Applejack and Pinkie kept playing card games, and Fluttershy kept staring out the window to look out for anything that might tell us Discord was on the way.
As for me, I was upstairs in the bedroom preparing for Discord's arrival. I stood in front of the bed, looking down at the collar, the potion and my saddlebag. I gently lifted the collar with my hooves before I carefully placed it in the saddle back. I then threw it onto my back, it was a little heavy, but I could manage for a while.
I then looked back down at the bed and grabbed the potion with my hoof. I sighed a little before I grabbed the cork with my mouth and pulled it off. I then spat it out before I started drinking the potion to the very last drop. Once I was done, I shivered at the sour taste before I placed the bottle down. "Nasty." I said to myself before I took a moment to consult myself. "Ok…I can do this…" I whispered to myself.
I stood there in silence for a moment before I turned around to face Twilight's make-up desk. I walked over to it and grabbed a draw knob with my hoof, I pulled it open and looked down at a file inside. I slowly grabbed it with my hoof before I lifted it out of the draw.
In this file contained a very important piece of paperwork. I sat down on the floor and used my other hoof to open the file. I read the paperwork inside and sighed heavily. "…I hope this works." I said before I closed the file and slipped it into my second saddlebag.
"Matt! Everything ok up there?" Applejack's voice called from down stairs.
I turned to look down at the stairs. "Yeah, I'm coming down now." I said as I made my way down the small set of stairs before I walked over the main set. I then walked down the rest of the stairs to get back down to the living room.
After I reached the bottom of the stairs, I looked around to everyone to see how much in a mess they were. Everyone seemed so on edge, doing meaningless activities to try and pass the time. I looked over to Rainbow Dash and saw that she was struggling with it the worse.
Feeling bad for her, I walked over to Rainbow Dash and watched as she paced left and right. "Hey Rainbow, you ok?" I asked in concern.
"Yeah, peachy." Rainbow grumbled as she kept pacing, not looking at me at all.
I didn't want to troubler her like this, but this was a very delicate situation. If she causes trouble up in Canterlot, it could ruin this whole thing. "Rainbow, I know you're upset about this whole thing, but when we get up there, just let me handle Discord." I said, trying to give her easy instructions with a gentle tone.
Rainbow then stopped pacing and glared in my face. "What the hay do you mean?! Do you really think I'm gonna sit back and let that creep toy with us?! When we get up there, we're gonna teach him a big lesson." She said.
"Do that and any hope of stopping him will be gone!" I said firmly before I calmed myself down. "Look, it doesn't matter anyway, Discord will stop you if he sees you coming for him. Like Moleyair said, he'll only let me get close to him." I then placed my hoof on her shoulder. "I just need you to keep a cool head tonight, ok? I need you to help Twilight get to a safe place when the time comes, we don't know what Discord will do when I try to catch him." I say while looking her in the eyes.
Rainbow still looked at little frustrated, but she knew I was right and groaned. "Ok fine, but make sure you get him good, for me!" she said before she stormed away to the other side of the room and dropped down onto the floor.
I decided to leave her be for a while and walked over to Fluttershy who was still looking out the window. "Any sign of anything yet, Fluttershy?" I asked curiously.
Fluttershy turned her head to face me. "I can see Canterlot in the distance." She stated before we both looked out the window and saw Canterlot, still floating in the sky a long distance from town, we could see the pink clouds above it as it continued to drift slowly through the air. "It's been there for a while now, I think Discord's getting ready for whatever he's planning." She said.
"Right." I said before I looked at Fluttershy. "Good work, Fluttershy…it'll be alright, ok?" I said as I rubbed my hoof against her back. "Discord's upset, but he won't hurt anyone, he won't go that far." I said gently.
Fluttershy looked at me and smiled a little. "I know he won't." she said before her smile went away. "But…try not to hurt him…please." She said with worried eyes.
I looked into them for a moment before I answered. "I'll try." I said before I wrapped my hoof around her and hugged her gently, which she soon returned.
After a moment, we broke away and I looked over to Applejack as she returned to her card game with Pinkie. "Are you guys ready to help the ponies escape?" I asked as I made my way over to them.
Pinkie and Applejack looked up at me and nodded. "Yeah, we're ready! But how are we gonna get them out of Canterlot? The train's gone and not every pony can fly?" Applejack asked with wonder.
"Yeah, I mean, we could take the hot-air balloon up there, but its gonna be hard squeezing everypony onto it." Pinkie said as she tried to think of a way to fit the Canterlot ponies onto the basket of the hot-air balloon. "Maybe Moleyair has a shrinking potion." she said as she rubbed her chin with her hoof.
Applejack and I stared at her with awkwardness before we shook it off. "Ok…well…we don't need to worry about getting them out of the city, just try to get them out of the castle." I said, returning my attention to Applejack.
"Will do." Applejack said with a confident smile while giving me a nod.
"Okie dokie!" Pinkie added as she saluted me.
With that, I looked around at everyone else. "I know it's gonna be tricky, possibly quite hard." I said, loud enough to get everyone's attention. "But as long as we stick to the plan, we'll stop Discord and get everything back to the way it was before." I said, trying to build everyone's courage and hope.
They all looked at each other with hopeful smiles, expect for Rainbow who was still lying down on the floor. But before any of them to take this moment in, the room started to shake lightly, like there was a small earthquake. Then, all of a sudden, there was a bright flash of light that blinded us all a little, making us look away with our eyes covered.
Once the light died down, we all returned our attention to where the light came from and saw a large tanning-bed sitting in the middle of the room. We all looked at it with curiosity before it opened, revealing a very well-tanned Discord lying inside. "Ah! I certainly know how to brighten the place up. I could sense the dullness all the way from my throne." He said as he climbed out of the tanning-bed.
Discord removed the pair of goggled from his eyes, revealing the pale tan-line around his eyes. He then looked down at me with a sinister grin. "I hope you didn't get into any trouble since we last spoke? I know how hard it is for you to avoid it." he said before he grabbed one of his antlers and pulled on it, there was then a toilet flushing noise and his tan dropped down his body like water flushing down a drain.
"No trouble yet…but the day is still young, Discord." I said, giving his a sharp firm glare.
"Oh, I bet." Discord said before he slithered around behind me and placed his hands on my shoulders. "And don't worry about Twilight, Matthew, I've made sure to keep her and Luna comfortable all day, I never even laid a claw on them." he said as he gently rubbed my shoulders.
I then stepped away and spun around to face him. "You better not have hurt them in any way, Discord…otherwise I'm gonna have to make things even." I growled.
Discord waved his hand. "No need for that, Matthew, your wife is quite safe." He said before he stood up straight. "So, are all of you ready for my party?" he asked as he looked around to everyone.
Everyone was silent until Rainbow shot up to his face. "Do you think we're playing your little games, you big back-stabber?!" she said with anger in her eyes. "What this whole thing for anyway?" she asked.
"Well I might as well tell you." Discord said as his tail came up and gently pushed her away. "This party of mine is a celebration to my return to chaos. There'll be games, food, and once the clock strikes midnight, I will unleash every bit of chaos around all of Equestria." he explained before he grinned. "And without the Elements, there will be no way to stop me." he said, feeling as though he held all the cards.
At that moment, Fluttershy flew up to Discord. "Discord, please don't do this. I know Matt was a bit hard on you and he's very sorry for that, but does the rest of Equestria have to pay for a simple mistake?" she said with a gentle smile, hoping he'd stop all this.
Discord looked at Fluttershy and smiled. "Oh dear Fluttershy, you're always so good at trying to make me feel better." he said as he gently grabbed her and held her in him arms. "But I'm afraid it won't work this time." He said before he tossed her away. Fluttershy squealed in fright before she spread her wings and caught herself in the air, she looked at Discord with watery eyes before she slowly lowered down to the floor.
"Everything will go exactly the way I want it to go." Discord said before he looked down at me. "So I don't want you to cause any trouble, Matthew. Don't think I've forgotten about you're Element, how you can make it appear whenever you want." he said with his arms crossed while giving me a firm look.
I returned the look. "Well I'll try, but trouble always seems to find me, it's a bit annoying really." I answered.
"Yeah, I bet so." Discord grumbled before his smile returned to his face. "So is everyone ready to go?" he asked with cheer.
"No." we all answered at the same time with a groaning tone.
"Wonderful!" Discord cheered loudly before he snapped his fingers and we all disappeared in a large flash of light.
Canterlot ballroom
In another flash of light, we all appeared in the Canterlot ballroom. We all felt a little dizzy from the sudden trip, but we soon shook it off. "I hate it when he does that." Rarity said as she held her hoof against her head.
I shook off the uncomfortable feeling before I looked around to see where we were. From what I could tell, we were in the Canterlot castle ballroom, but it looked a lot different, thanks to Discord.
I saw the windows, the stone fountain, and the floor that had a black and white spiral fashion. There were also some other stuff, like fish with white feathered wings flying across the ceiling and musical instruments playing by themselves in front of the fountain. There were quite a few ponies here as well, some were civilians and others were guards standing by the doors. They all looked slightly scared and concerned.
"Discord really did a number on this place." Applejack said as she walked up beside me. "If this is his way of holdin' back, I'd hate to see what he has cooked up for the rest of Equestria." she said, looking around at Discord's work.
"Yeah." I said before I turned my attention to the ponies and saw Shining Armor standing by the main doorway, he was wearing his guard gear and holding a spear with his hoof. "Shining!" I called as I rushed into the crowd to try and reach him.
After pushing my way through the crowd, I finally reached Shining. "Shining! Are you ok?" I asked in concern.
"I'm fine…I'm glad you're here, Matt. Maybe now someone can do something about Discord." Shining said, sounding as though he was struggling to talk. "Matt, listen…I can't move…Discord's done something to control our movements…if anyone tries to escape or leave, we're forced to stop them…we can't control ourselves." He said with only his eyes being able to move.
I looked around at the room and looked at all the frightened ponies. Discord had really gone all the way to make sure he'd get what he wants, he seemed very determined this time. "It's ok, Shining." I said as I returned my attention to him. "I'm gonna fix this and return everything to normal. But have you seen Twilight?" I asked, worried for her safety.
Shining's eyes then shifted upwards. "She's fine, I think…she's up there." he grunted.
I then spun around and looked upwards, that's when I saw Twilight, Spike and Luna in the giant bird cage hanging from the ceiling. I gasped a little at this before I flew up to the cage. "Twilight! Are you alright?!" I asked with concern.
Twilight rushed up to the bars. "Matt! Thank Celestia you're here! Discord's planning on plunging Equestria into total chaos at midnight! You have to stop him!" she said in panic.
"I know, Twi, I'm working on it." I said before I looked behind her and saw Luna standing on the other side of the cage. "Luna! Are you ok?" I asked.
Luna nodded. "I am alright, but Discord has my sister under some sort of trance, we could not break her out of it." she said before she looked around at the cage. "We have tried to escape, but this cage has been cursed." She said as she returned her attention to me.
I backed up and looked at the cage. The bars seemed pretty thin. With enough force, I might be able to break them loose. "Stand back, I'm gonna ram it." I said before I flew backwards a little and prepared I ram the cage.
Twilight's eyes widened with panic. "Matt! Wait! Don't touch the-"
But Twilight didn't have time to finish her sentence as I shot towards the cage and rammed against it. But upon striking it, I received a powerful electric shock which made my mane, tail and wings stiffen up. When it was done, I was left frozen in mid-air, smoking and singed. A single electric wave travelled across my body before I dropped down from the area, leading me to hit the floor hard. "Matt?" Twilight's voice called from the cage.
"I'm ok." I answered with my face flat against the floor. I weakly stood back up before I looked up at the cage. "I take it the cage is protected by some spell?" I asked, knowing it was obviously the right answer. I was proven right when they both nodded. "Right…then just hold on, ok? I'll take care of everything." I said, feeling as though I was lying to them and myself a little.
Looking around at everything, I could see Discord was out to prove something, like he wanted to show the world what he was truly capable of. I had some minor doubts that I could talk any sense into him.
Suddenly, I was thrown off my thought by the sound of trumpet horns being blown. I spun around and watched as the crowd broke apart to reveal the Diamond Dogs standing in from of the main entrance, blowing hard on the horns in the paws until they stopped. "Ponies and…umm…ponies…presenting the Lord of Chaos and the soon-to-be ruler of Equestria, Lord Discord and his date, pony Princess Celestia!" Rover announced as he stepped aside.
Fido and Spot then grabbed the handles of the doors and opened them, revealing Discord in a dark-blue suit complete with a red cape. Celestia was standing beside him in a red dress and her hair was held back in a pony-tail. I took a good look at her and saw that her eyes were glowing yellow, her gentle smile was creeping me out a little as well. "Hello everypony! I hope you're all having a wonderful evening." Discord said as he walked in with his arm around Celestia neck.
Everyone watched them with unease as they walked by. Some looked scared, others gave him hateful glares. As for me and the others, we all looked at them with concern, mostly for Celestia's sake and for how much Discord was pushing his chances.
"What has he done to Princess Celestia?" Rarity asked, focusing her attention on Celestia.
"It looks like she's hypnotised or somethin'." Applejack said before she looked at the others. "Celestia would never agree to be part of this. Discord must've done somethin' to her to make her more…agreeing." She said as she returned her attention to the odd couple.
Discord and Celestia walked up to me and Discord grinned widely. "Sorry I had to run, Matthew, but getting this beautiful doesn't happen on its own…I also had to get Celestia ready as well." He said before he rolled his eyes. "You should've seen how long it took her to get ready. Mares, am I right?" he said with an amused smirk.
I ignored his comment and took a step closer to Celestia. "Princess? What's happened to you? Are you ok?" I asked in concern, looking into her bright yellow eyes.
"Of course I am…I'm with Discord." Celestia said like a soulless drone while keeping her small smile.
I was in slight shock at what she said, but in the state she was in, I wasn't very surprised. I then turned my attention to Discord with a firm glare. "Hypnotising Celestia into not only coming to this, but into liking you against her own will…that's low…" I scolded.
Discord crossed his arms as he rolled his eyes again. "Well she wasn't playing along at first, she needed a little persuasion." He said before he made a flower appear in his hand before he placed it behind one of Celestia's ears. "Besides, I like her a lot better this way, she's much more fun." He said as he looked her up and down.
I then took into the air so I was at the same level as Discord. "Discord, I'm gonna give you one chance to stop this now. If you don't…I'm gonna have to make you." I warned in a calm tone, trying to keep my angered emotions to a minimum.
Discord looked at me with an un-itinerated face. "Oh, I'm so scared…what are you going to do, use your Element to trap me? Or perhaps even kill me like you did to Thorn and Zelga?" he said before he glared sharply at me. "You pretty much already did when you tossed me away, forced me to ruin the life I was trying to make." He said in a low growl as he lowered his head down to me so low that it forced me to land back down on the floor.
"You did that yourself!" Rainbow Dash yelled as she and the rest of the girls rushed over to us. "Matt didn't force you to return to your old habits! You just decided to do that!" she claimed with most of the others agreeing with her. "Get you're Element here, Matt, show this creep who's boss!" she said with aggression.
Fluttershy's eyes widened in shock. "No!" she said before she looked at me. "Don't hurt him, Matt! There may still be a chance!" she said, practically begging me.
Rarity then stepped forward and looked at Fluttershy. "Usually, I would agree with you, dear." she said before she looked up at Discord. "But this sort of thing cannot simply be ignored! Keeping these ponies captive! Turning the Princess into a mindless puppet! And making everyone watch as you take over Equestria! This is all just too cruel to let slide." She said furiously.
Discord glared down at them. "I knew you all would be trouble!" he said before he snapped his fingers.
Suddenly, the stone Sirens on the fountain came to life and flew through the air towards us, they then stopped and hovered in front of the girls. They backed away a little at the Siren's growing faces, but were surprised when they started hosing them with water from their mouths.
The girls covered themselves from the water as they backed away more. "Stop it! Oh, my hair is going to curl!" Rarity said as she did everything she could to shield her hair from the water.
The three Sirens made sure to the keep them away as Discord returned his attention to me. "Did you think I wanted this? I'm simply playing with the cards I'm dealt with! Everyone thought of me as a monster! You, Celestia, every last pony in this very room!" he yelled as his voice echoed through the room. "I tried to change, to prove everyone wrong, I truly did. But I suppose you can never truly change! So now…now I'm in charge, I'm calling the shots and I'm going to do what I was probably always meant to do." he said with a monstrous smile.
"You're wrong, Discord! You can change! You can make people see you differently, you just need to stop all this!" I said loudly as I stomped my hoof against the floor.
"Stop?! But the party has just started!" Discord said before his fingers snapped and the entire floor turned to solid ice. "Now everypony dance!" he said loud enough for everyone to hear.
All the ponies in the room struggled to keep their balance on the ice floor. Some wobbled in place, others fell flat on their faces, this kind of movement was probably Discord's messed up idea of everyone dancing.
I too struggled to stand until I took into the air again, I stayed in the air as I returned my attention to Discord. "Everything you do right now ruins your chances to be with us again more and more, you need to get a hold of yourself and think things clearly!" I said loudly.
"I don't take orders from you!" Discord said in a louder tone before he grunted. "You know what, I was going to play fairly and wait for the clock to run down by itself, but because of you and others, I think I've run out of patience." He said before he snapped his fingers again.
At that moment, a giant clock appeared in the air, showing at least one hour to midnight. "Let's say we speed things along, shall we?!" he said before he spun his talon-finger around in a circle. As he did, the hands on the clock started to move faster until they finally came to a stop…at ten minutes to midnight.
I went wide eyed with shock at this before I looked at Discord. "Discord, don't! Please!" I said, almost begging for him to stop.
Discord chuckled. "So sorry Matthew, but as soon as midnight comes, Equestria will be mine to play with as I see fit…and there's nothing anyone can do to stop me." he said with pride.
I breathed heavily through my bared teeth before I reached my hoof into my saddlebag and pulled out the collar. "I have this!" I said as I opened it wide.
Discord stared at it for a moment before he laughed loudly. "Hahaha! What is that supposed to be? A shackle collar?" he said in amusement.
I started hovering towards him. "Close…it's a Magic Block Collar, the same make as the Horn Block I used on Blaze Horn, but its made for creatures without horns…creatures like you. As soon as this goes on your neck, you'll be powerless." I said, explaining how much trouble he was in.
Discord's smug smirk grew on his face. "Really? Maybe you shouldn't have told me that." He said before he snapped his fingers, expecting it to go away. However, it didn't, nothing happened in fact. Discord was a little confused by this before he snapped his fingers again, but it came up with the same result.
I hovered there for a minute or so as Discord kept snapped his fingers, getting more frustrated with each failure to make the collar disappear. "What's going on? Why isn't this working?...Are my batteries low?" he said before he opened a small hatch in his arm and pulled out a pair of batteries, which he then shook against his ear.
"Wow, that potion actually worked…good job, Moleyair." I thought before I started getting closer to Discord. "I'm sorry Discord, but…you've forced me to do this." I said as I get even closer to him.
Discord started to back away, his face showing slight terror as I got closer. It seemed like he had lost control, like he finally had something to worry about. Discord then started snapping his fingers again, trying to make anything happen to me, but nothing happened. "What have you done to me? T-This isn't possible!" he said with a frightened look.
Discord's back then hit the fountain where the Sirens once stood. With nowhere to go, he lowered himself down until he looked like a frightened cornered animal. "No! This was supposed to be MY night! MY time! You can't do this to me! This is just…cruel!" he said with his ears flat against this head.
As I got closer to him, everyone watched as I started to get the upper hand. Twilight, Luna and Fluttershy watched in concern, wondering if I'd actually manage to go through with turning Discord into a powerless coward. Rainbow and Rarity watched with firm looks, thinking he was going to get what he deserved. While Applejack and Pinkie just watched, planning to be fine with whatever I'd do.
As I prepared to clamp the collar around Discord's neck, my eyes shifted up to his face. I have to say, it ached my heart to see him like this. His face was terrified, I didn't know if he was scared of the collar, losing all his power…or simply of me. I took this moment to think about what I was doing.
Here I was, about to render Discord into his most pathetic and humiliated stage yet. True, after all he's done today, he probably deserves it, but…could I really do that to him? After everything we've been through since he joined us. I remembered everything we did together, the pranks, forming the band, the good moments, the hilarious moments. If I was to do this, to trap him with this collar, would it prove everything Discord said about me? That I'd always think with aggression instead of forgiveness? Would doing this make me a monster?
I then remembered what Moleyair told me earlier. "If you choose the right path, everything will be as it should be…but to do so, you must know when to act…and when to not." Those words ran through my head and it suddenly all made sense. I knew what I had to do to set everything right. At first, I didn't think it wouldn't work, that Discord was too far gone to be turned back…but now I could see how wrong I was. Discord didn't need punishment, he needed something to guide him back into the light…and I had the perfect thing in my other saddlebag.
I backed away from Discord and looked down at the collar. This confused everyone, including Discord. I then returned my attention to him before I threw the collar down hard. "This isn't who I am…I won't do that to you Discord, I'd never do that to my friend." I said as I continued to hover in place.
Discord was silent, shocked and confused by this before he slowly stood back up.
"Discord…I have something to show you." I said before I reached my hoof into my other saddlebag and pulled out the file I had taken from the Library. "I need you to read this." I said as I held it out to him.
Twilight saw this and her ears lowered, knowing what was in the file and what I was trying to do. "Matt…I hope you know what you're doing." she said to herself in a whisper.
Discord looked at it with curiosity before he slowly took the file. He then opened it and read the front title. "God Parent Documents?" he read in a confused voice. He then looked at me for an explanation.
"Twilight and I got it from the Town Hall the other day. it's a document that details the legal God Parents of our foal. You see, if anything was to…happen to me and Twi, this document with say who our foal will go to." I explained. "Keep reading." I told him.
Discord looked back down at the document and kept reading. "Ok…*mumble* fill out the following *mumble* Legal God Mother/Mothers: Applejack, Rarity, Fluttershy, Rainbow Dash, Pinkie Pie, Princess Celestia and Princess Luna." he read before he looked at me. "Think it'll have enough God Mothers?" he asked sarcastically with a raised eye-brow.
"Twi and I thought it best to keep the foal with the whole family." I said before a small feel of excitement and nervousness filled my body. "…Keep going." I said, preparing for his next reaction.
Discord rolled his eyes before he read the next line. "Legal God Father/Fathers:…" Discord's face then went blank with slight shock at the next thing he read. "…Discord…" he finished before he looked around the rest of the sheet. "M-My name's the only one on this part…" he said as he looked at me again.
"We thought about it…a lot…we thought Shining Armor would be a good candidate, but with his busy job as Captain of the guard, we didn't think it was best for the foal…in the end, we could only think of one person who would be good enough." I said before a small smile appeared on my face. "You." I finished.
Discord was stunned by this, he was utterly speechless. No one had ever thought of him to be good enough to be a God Father, no one ever thought of him to be good enough to be any kind of father. He kept reading the document over and over, making sure he read everything correctly. That's when he noticed the date of when it was signed. "This…this says it was filled out…" he began, finding it hard to believe.
"A few days after you told me the truth about your powers." I said, finishing his sentence for him. "I realised that you truly had changed…and since you were still all powerful, you could protect our foal from any danger easily. So…in a way…I was kinda glad you still had all your powers…" I admitted.
Discord's jaw hung slightly at this. He had been chosen to be a God Parent and possibly future carer of someone's kid. It was in this moment, that he truly looked around at what he had become, how much he risked throwing away. Discord's face turned from stunned to horrified, thinking of how he must've looked to all of them while acting the way he has been lately. He returned his attention to me with his ears down in sadness. "Matthew, I…I don't know what to say…I can't believe you really thought of me that way…you and Twilight…You actually saw that much good in me, and I've…" he said before he placed his claw on his cheek. "Oh…what have I done?..." he said in shame.
I then hovered closer to Discord and placed my hoof on his shoulder. "Discord…please…be the guy I need you to be…for our kid…" I said, really hoping he'd finally listen.
And as the clock struck midnight and rang in slow bell gongs, my hopes were answered, Discord lowered his head in shame as a large magical wave left his body, spreading across the entire room.
As this happened, everything the wave passed returned to normal. The windows returned to the clear state, the fountain and Sirens disappeared, along with the flying fish and other such weird things, and the floor returned to normal. And to top it off, within a big flash of light, the city had returned to the side of the mountain, like it had never left.
The bird cage Twilight, Spike and Luna were trapped in disappeared, the three of them were caught with magic and gently lowered to the floor.
As for Celestia, her outfit disappeared and she had returned to her natural appearance, she had also regained her horn and wings. The trance that Discord had her under was instantly broken and she blinked a few times, feeling a little nauseous from it.
I then landed onto the floor and felt relieved by this. Not only because everything was back to normal, because I had finally made emends with Discord.
"Matt!" Twilight's voice called. I spun around and saw her rushing over to me. I smiled widely before she finally reached me and we shared a large loving hug. We then parted and Twilight smiled at me warmly. "I knew you could do it." she said.
I returned this smile before I noticed Twilight look up at something behind me. I turned around to see Discord taking a step closer to us, his ears still down in shame. "I'm…so sorry…to all of you." he said.
My ears lowered a little as well. "I'm sorry too, Discord…if I hadn't had rushed to judgment the way I did, maybe this all wouldn't have happened." I said, finally fulfilling my goal to make things right with Discord.
A small smile finally grew on Discord's face. But it didn't last long as his attention turned to everyone else in the room, all of them were watching and coming closer. "They're…never going to trust me again, are they?" he asked.
I looked out at all of them for a moment before I returned my attention to Discord. "Maybe…but maybe you can win them over eventually. It might take a while and a lot of work, but I think you'll manage." I said, trying to lift his spirits.
Discord smiled down at me. "Thank you Matthew." He said before he took a deep breathe. "Well…time for the hard part." He said as he saw Princess Celestia stepping forward, the look on her face told us she wasn't very pleased with what's happened.
An hour or so later: Celestia's throne room
After the mess was cleaned up and all the ponies from the ballroom were sent home, Celestia called me and Discord to the ballroom to speak to us about these current events. We didn't know if she just wanted to speak to us, or possibly punish us, all I knew is that she only wanted the two of us.
Discord and I both stood in front of the throne, with Celestia and Luna watching down upon us from the throne. They were both silent as they continued to stare at us, it was a little uncomfortable.
That was until, finally, Celestia sighed heavily. "Discord…I truly expected better from you." she began. "When you told me the truth about your powers, I admit, I was surprised…but I didn't give you any reason to act out the way you did." She said.
I then stepped forward. "I-It wasn't his fault, Princess…the possibility of losing your trust scared him. And I know I wasn't here when he told you, but I suspect your surprised reacted probably made him think he lost your trust." I said, trying to speak on Discord's behalf.
Celestia turned her attention to me. "I understand that, but if that was the case, I expected Discord to take it a little more maturely instead of reverting back into the Discord he once was." she said, making Discord's ears drop again.
We both watched as Celestia walked away from her throne and over to a window, where she could look down at her city and the land. "The only thing I'm glad about is that Discord didn't do as much damage as I was afraid he would, and the fact that he finally came to his senses and returned to us." she said before she turned around to look at us. "But that doesn't excuse the things he did during his rampage. Trapping my subjects, forcing them to watch you try to take over the land, and hypnotising me into being a puppet…these sort of things can't go unpunished I'm afraid." She said with a firm tone.
Discord and I looked at each other nervously before we returned our attention to Celestia who was walking back up to her throne. "Discord, for your crimes against this kingdom, you should be imprisoned." She said. But at that moment, she looked at him with sympathy. "But I know that your actions came from a broken heart, one that I possibly aided in creating, so I won't do that…" she said before her look became firm once again. "Instead, I am forbidding you from using all your magic! You can still us some, but I don't want to see floating houses, candy clouds and other such things! Am I understood?" she asked.
Discord was silent for a moment before he looked down at me. I looked up at him and gave him a single nod, telling him to accept the deal. Discord sighed before he looked back up at Celestia. "Yes…you're highness." He answered.
With that done, Celestia turned her attention to me. "Now Matthew, I know you had a hand in making Discord stop, but from what I've heard, he did all this because of your harsh judgment upon him. You were the one who told him to tell me the truth, which then led to all this mayhem." She said with a raised eye-brow.
"Y-Yes Princess, but I-" I started, but was stopped when Celestia raised her hoof to silence me.
Celestia then lowered her hoof and continued to speak. "Now your punishment won't be as firm as Discord's, but it's one most suitable. My subjects are scared, scared of because they know Discord is still in the city and roaming unsupervised. We may still see the good in Discord, but they don't see it as clearly. So until further notice, Discord will be moved to your Library to stay with you and Twilight." she instructed.
I was surprised by this, Discord hadn't stayed in the Library since he joined us. I looked up at him and then back at Celestia. Knowing there wasn't a way to change her mind, I nodded. "Yes, Princess." I submitted.
"And furthermore, I am placing Discord under your care until he is welcome back to Canterlot! He isn't to go anywhere without your supervision or at least informing you on where he is going first." Celestia said before she looked at Discord. "If he strays from this instruction or if he disobeys any of these agreements, then I allow you permission to place that Magic Block Collar on him." she said in a still firm tone.
I then looked up at Discord to see the slightly worried look on his face. I felt bad for him being punished like this, but we knew better than to argue with royalty. "I understand, Princess…but I don't think there'll be any need for it." I said as I returned my attention to her.
"I hope you're right, Matthew." Celestia said before she looked at Discord. "I'm sorry I have to do this to the two of you…but you must understand that I need to do what I believe is best for my subjects." She said with a look of slight sorrow in her eyes.
"We understand." Discord said before he bowed his head a little.
"Good." Celestia said with a small smile. "In that case, you are both dismissed, I'm sure you both have a lot to prepare for in Ponyville." she said.
With that, Discord and I bowed one last time. "Yes Princess." We both said at the same time before we turned around and started making our way out of the throne room.
As we left, Celestia and Luna watched. "I hope Matthew and the others will be able to help Discord back on the right path." Celestia said with a small look of concern.
"I saw how Discord acted when Matthew showed him that document." Luna said as she walked up beside Celestia. "If Discord wants to prove to Matthew and Twilight Sparkle that he can be a suitable God Father, I believe he will do anything." she said.
Celestia looked down at Luna. "I hope so, Luna…I truly do." she said before they both returned their attention to us and watched us leave the room.
Later than night: Ponyville Library
After we all returned to Ponyville, I explained Celestia's orders to Twilight. At first, she wasn't very pleased about it, but she knew that there was nothing we could do to change Celestia's mind. It was official, Discord was going to be staying with us for a while.
Everyone else seemed a little uneasy by this, knowing Discord was going to be in Ponyville for a while. Fluttershy was ok with it, but I think the others were planning to keep a close eye on him until he's able to return to Canterlot.
Once we got back, everyone headed home, including us. Me, Twilight, Spike and Discord went back to the Library and immediately went to bed. It was way past midnight and we were all very tired.
Jeff and Peewee had wondered what was going on, but we were too out of it to get into it. We promised to tell them all about it in the morning, but right now, we sleep.
After putting Spike to bed, setting Discord up in the guest room, and putting all the things I took back where they once were, Twilight and I climbed into our bed and rested against it. "I've been begging for this all night." I said, loving the feeling of finally being able to relax.
"Yeah." Twilight said as she lied beside me, giving me a sweet loving smile.
I turned my head to face her and stared at her, she stared right back while keeping the smile. A smile grew on my face before I finally had to speak. "What?" I said in amusement.
"I'm just so proud of you." Twilight said as she moved closer and nuzzled against me. "You had the chance to trap Discord and make him powerless, but you chose the better option…that's the kind of thing that makes me love you so much." She said before she placed a small kiss on my cheek.
I blushed at this a little before I wrapped my arms around her body, holding her closer. "I just thought…maybe if Discord knew what we planned for him, he'd see a bit more light." I said before my smile went away a little. "I didn't know if it would work or not…glad it did though." I said, thinking of what might've happened if things went sideways.
Twilight moved her head away so she could look me in the eyes. "I know it wasn't an easy choice, but…maybe this is good for our foal and Discord. Our foal will have a powerful guardian, and Discord will have a new reason to stay on our side." She said.
"Maybe." I said as my smile returned and I looked at her. "But right now, let's get some rest. The little guy's been through a lot." I said as I rubbed my hoof against Twilight's pregnant stomach.
Twilight then smirked. "'Guy'? It could very well be a girl, you know." She said.
I smirked back before I held her closer, we both smiled lovingly at each other before we leaned closer. "I love you Twilight." I said as I looked deep into her shimmering eyes.
"I love you too, Matt." Twilight responded as we moved closer to each other.
We both closed our eyes and prepared to kiss each other, both our lips soon came into contact with something…furry. Realizing it wasn't the usual feeling, we both opened our eyes and went into shock at what we saw. Discord was lying between us and we were both kissing his cheeks. "Oh…tender." He said with a large grin.
Upon seeing this, Twilight and I quickly pulled away. We started spitting and wiping our mouths in disgust. "Ah! So uncool, Discord!" I said before I grabbed the sheets and started wiping my mouth with it.
Discord then leaned up on the bed. "Sorry, I just felt a little lonely in that guest room and I was wondering what you two were up to. Then I heard all the nice things you were saying about me and decided to get in on the love." He said with a smirk.
We both then looked up at Discord with frustrated faces. "Discord, get back in your room, this bed is ours!" Twilight said firmly.
Discord then looked down at her with his firm disappearing. "But I feel like I've had a nightmare and I want to sleep with the two of you, you know, to comfort me." he said.
"Don't push it, Discord! Otherwise you're sleeping in a box downstairs." I said strongly.
Discord then frowned and huffed. "Fine." He said before he floated up out of the bed and started hovering back towards the guest room. "Whatever happened to hospitality?" he asked himself before he went back into the guest room and closed the door behind him.
With him gone, Twilight and I moved back into place and lied down on the bed. "The next few days are gonna be very…very…long." Twilight said before she rolled over onto her side and closed her eyes to sleep.
I sighed before I rested my head more against the pillow. "Tell me about it…but they definitely won't be boring." I said before I closed my eyes to finally get some sleep.
Part of me couldn't sleep because of the possibility of how hard supervising Discord might be, but the rest of me found it easier to sleep because we had finally gotten our friend back from a dark place.
Yeah, these next few days were going to be very interesting.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
The song I used in this chapter is 'No more Mr nice guy', from the movie "Swan Princess". I don't own anything.
Also, I'm sure you're all very familiar with the Gaston song from Beauty and the Beast, I've been working on my own version of it featuring Discord. This Parody, which I have written myself, will eventually make its way onto this story, possibly after the next few chapters. Please let me know what you think of that.
So far, S7 has been very good, I was just a bit surprised by the lack of a 2-parter, hopefully the final will make up for that, but let's not rush anything.
Pony News: A few episodes for S7 have been announced. The next one should be about Fluttershy, something about things not going the way she expected or wanted.
The next one after that, I think, is about Big Mac having a crush on one of Starlight's old friends, and with help from the CMC, he will try to compete with another stallion trying to win her heart. I'm looking forward to that one the most.
There are some other episodes, but I haven't looked into them yet.
As for the MLP movie, I don't know if anyone of you know, but a small trailer was released a while ago. The animation looks great, kind of like The Moon Rises, which is probably what we were all hoping for.
No doubt the movie itself will rock!
End of Pony News:
Please remember to review or PM
The next chapter will be released as soon as possible.
71. Ponies go west – Part 1
Hi everypony and welcome back.
I hope you all enjoyed the last chapter. I know it took a long time to come up and I'm sorry about that, I hope you can all forgive me and still stick around to read the rest of my story.
The lyrics in the song I've used in this chapter have been changed slightly to make sense to the story.
Anyway, not much more to say except I hope you enjoy this next two-parter.
Chapter 71: Ponies go west – Part 1
It's been two weeks since Discord moved in with me and Twilight and I have to tell you, it was quite a juggle. Some days things would be easy, other days Discord would do things like make the books fly like bats or try sleeping in our bed…seriously, what was his attraction to our bed?
It wasn't something we were very happy with, but we were under Princess Celestia's orders to keep him with us until he's earned back her trust. The things he did the last time he was in Canterlot weren't exactly easy to forgive.
Twilight's stomach had gotten a little bigger since then. We had to go to the hospital at some point because she said she felt ill, but it was nothing, just her body trying to adjust to it.
Speaking of which, since Discord found out her was going to be our foal's God Father, he's been very, let's say, mother hen-y towards Twilight. Making sure she was comfortable, making her food, even doing most of her studies for her…which she didn't really take much of a liking to, she didn't mind the other stuff, but the studying thing was really taking the cake.
Twilight eventually had enough for Discord smothering her and wanted a least one day of peace without him, so she begged me to take him somewhere or go somewhere where Discord can't bother her. But unfortunately, I didn't have anything in mind.
That was, until, Applejack came around one day and asked if I was ready for our trip to Appleloosa in the next two days. At first, I didn't know what she meant, but she reminded me of the promise she made me on my birthday, that we'd take a trip to Appleloosa. She even gave me a poncho for the occasion.
Part of me was surprised by this, I had completely forgotten about the whole thing, that poncho had been hanging in my wardrobe even since then. Of course, I wouldn't tell her that.
Not one to disappoint her, I blindly agreed to go. I didn't really mind, I actually was excited about going there, it would be like a western vacation. Plus, this is probably a good way of getting Discord away for Twilight, giving her the peace she longed for.
Two days later: Appleloosa train
Two days later, Applejack, Discord and I set out on our trip. Instead of taking the Friendship Express, Appleloosa had its own train, an old looking steam-train with a herd of conductor ponies pulling it from the front. I didn't know how a few ponies could pull a train, but as long as it worked, I didn't care.
As the train moved across the long desert, Applejack and Discord were sitting on the seats in one of the train carts. Discord looked board as hell and Applejack was resting back with her hat tilted down in front of her face.
Discord yawned as he stretched out his arms. "So, how long is this trip exactly?" he said as he rested his chin on his hand.
Applejack placed her hoof under her hat and lifted it up of her face. "Here's a hint, the car near the caboose has beds in it." she said in a calm tone.
Discord groaned as he leaned back hard on his chair. "This traveling is no way for a creature such as me to move around." He said before he made an old map of Equestria appear in his hand. "If I had it my way, I'd make the town come closer." He said as he used his finger to move the name 'Appleloosa' closer to Ponyville.
Applejack rolled her eyes. "I know, but remember Discord, Princess Celestia told ya not to do stuff like that." She said, giving him a slightly firm stare.
Discord made the map disappear. "Yes, yes, I am well aware of the leash she tied around this old hound." He said as he made a collar with a padlock appear around his neck. "But a guy can dream." He said before he made the collar disappear.
"Just make sure not to cause any trouble in Appleloosa, I don't think they've ever seen anythin' like you there." Applejack said as she leaned forward and rested her arms on the table in front of her, having enough of resting.
Discord then rested his chin on his hand again and stared out the window, watching the sand and cacti pass across by. "Maybe it's not me you should worry causing trouble." He said for Applejack to hear.
At that moment, Applejack's eyes widened before she looked around the rest of the car. "Where's Matt anyway?" she asked curiously before she groaned in frustration. "I told him to stay close! Where the hay has he gone?" she said as she got out of her seat and started looking for me.
-Meanwhile-
In the next car, I was sitting by a round table with two other ponies, they both looked like they came from Appleloosa or some other western town.
One looked like a gunslinger, cowboy hat, sleeveless shirt, bad smell, you name it. The other looked like a civilized guy, with a grey suit and a bowler-hat, he adjusted his glasses as he stared at us.
The three of us were playing Liars Dice, a gambling game that was easier to understand than you'd expect. It took a while, but I managed to figure it out. It involved each player having 5 dice in one cub. The three of us rolled the dice around in the cubs before we slammed the cups down on the table.
We all looked at each other with shifty eyes before we all looked at our dice, being sure not to let anyone else see them. I looked under my cub and looked at my dice. I had three 2s, one 6, and one 1. I then covered the dice again before I looked at the others. "I bet…there are…four twos." I said, believing at least one of them had another 2.
"Five twos." The cowboy pony said with a rough country voice.
"Five twos?" The bowler-hat pony said with disbelief. "I think I'll call your bluff, sir." He said with a smart voice.
With a bluff being called, we all moved our cubs aside to reveal our dice. With my three 2s and the cowboy pony's one 2, it all totalled into four twos, making the bowler-hat pony's bluff correct.
"Dag-nabit!" the cowboy pony said as he grabbed one of his five dice and placed it in the centre of the table for being wrong.
I smirked at this. "Don't worry, you still have four dice left." I said before I scooped the dice into the cup and started shaking it. "Next round?" I said, feeling confident in winning.
Suddenly, the door swung open and Applejack came into the room. "There you are! What the hay are you doing in here?" she asked as she walked over to me.
I turned my head to face her. "Just playing a game to pass the time…want me to deal you in, we have more dice and cups." I said, thinking she'd want to play.
"No, I don't! I want you to come back with to the next car with me, I wanna make sure I can keep an eye on you." Applejack said firmly.
I looked at her with confusion, wondering why she was acting like this. "Applejack, are you ok? You seem a bit on edge." I said with a raised eye-brow.
"I'm fine, I just want you to stay with us for now." Applejack said, keeping her firm look, but talking in a calmer tone.
I knew how stubborn Applejack was, I knew there was no way to convince her to let me continue this game. I sighed heavily before I placed the cup down on the table. "Sorry guys, I'm out." I said before I climbed off the chair and followed Applejack back towards the door that led to our car.
The cowboy pony let out a low chuckle with a smirk on his face. "Hey son! Real tough guys don't take that from girls." He said in his country voice as he watched me being basically dragged away.
I grumbled at this before Applejack opened the door with her hoof. Once I had walked through it, Applejack followed and slammed the door behind us.
As we made our way back to the table where Discord waited for us, I looked back at Applejack. "You're not gonna start being over protective on this trip are you? I can take care of myself, I think I've proven that more than once." I said as we reached our seats.
"I know you have." Applejack said as she watched me sit next to a sleeping Discord. "But Twilight wanted me to keep you out of harm's way. When bad stuff happens, she knows you'll try to help. She's glad you do, but it also worries her, she's scare you'll eventually get into trouble you might not walk away from." She explained.
In a way, I could understand, I've had very close calls in past fights. But that Applejack can just treat me like a kid. "I get that, Applejack, but let me worry about that kind of stuff, ok? I'll try and stay out of trouble, but please don't be holding my hoof through the whole trip." I say to her.
Applejack huffed before she sat down on the other seat across from mine. "Fine." She said before she titled her hat forward so it was covering her face again, she then laid back to continue resting.
With that, I laid back as well so I could relax, I turned my head to look out the window and watch the environment outside pass by.
After a few minutes, I noticed a small town outside. It looked abandoned and kind of like a ghost-town. I noticed a single pony standing by the entrance, he looked like a sheriff. I watched as he hammered a sign into the ground. The sign read "For sale". Once he was done, the pony sighed sadly before he turned and walked back into the deserted town.
I gave this a confused look before I looked over to Applejack. "Applejack, did you see that?" I asked curiously.
But I got no answer, instead I got quiet snoring from Applejack. She may be a girl, but she sure didn't act like one, believe me. I sighed at this before I continued to stare out the window, deciding to forget about it.
"Another town bites the dust, I'm afraid." A country voice said near me. I turned my head to look across to the next pair of seats across the car from ours, that's when I saw a fat grey pony in a white suit sitting by himself. He was holding a newspaper up in front of his face, so I couldn't see him until he finally lowered it. He had a large white mustache that had curls on each end. "It's a shame really, I heard that town was very nice." He said as he folded up the newspaper and placed it on the table in front of him.
I looked at Discord and Applejack, making sure they were still asleep so this guy and I could talk. I returned my attention to him before I responded. "Yeah…so you know what happened there?" I asked curiously.
The pony smiled. "Allow me to introduce myself. I'm Moneybaggest Trottlen the third, but I like to go by Moneybaggs. He said as he reached his hoof across to me.
I looked at it for a moment before I reached my hoof out and shook his. "Matthew." I said, giving him my name.
"Nice to meet ya, son." Moneybaggs said before he released my hoof. "As I was saying, the poor town is a victim of them there pony rustlers." He said, putting a rough tone in those last words to make them sound scary.
"Pony rustlers?" I said with a raised eye-brow. "Is that actually a thing?" I asked curiously, not sure how that would work in Equestria.
"I assure you, young stallion, they are certainly a…thing…" Moneybaggs said, trying to relate to my words. "They've been goin' from town to town, kidnappin' ponies that wonder too far out into the wild. No one knows who they are or what they do, all we know is that once they get ya, you're gone." He said before his ears lowered in slight sadness. "Many ponies go missing, the town loses its citizens and the sheriffs of those said towns are forced to put it up for sale, deeming the town unsafe for anyone else to live in it." he explained.
"So to keep everyone else safe from being kidnapped, the sheriffs have sell the town." I said, feeling a pity for them. "Has anyone been sent out to find these rustlers? Any leads?" I asked, curious if there was any more information on them.
"Not much, but there are a few ponies out there are tryin' to find them to bring them to the justice that they deserve." Moneybaggs said before he took his white hat off and held it against his chest. "I am so proud to live in a land where the ponies look out for each other, even when they're from completely different towns." He said proudly.
I felt like I was speaking to a completely drama-king, but I just nodded awkwardly. "Yeah, these country ponies may live in the middle of the desert, but they're defiantly friendly to each other. Most western towns usually have crazy saloon fights and can't go a single day without shooting someone." I said, speaking from my knowledge of the old west.
But Moneybaggs, being of this world and not mine, gave me a confused look. "Saloon fights? Gun shooting? What kind of barbaric country town are you referring to…not Appleloosa, I hope." He said as his confused face turned into a slightly worried one.
I then realised that I was talking about my world's version of the West and he didn't know what I was talking about. "Oh, no! No! No, sorry…not Appleloosa, I was talking about…a different western town…far away from this land." I said, partly lying.
Moneybaggs' worried look then went away in relief. "Well that's good…" he said before he laid back to relax. "Somethin' tells me this trip is gonna be real interestin'." He then looked over to me again. "Hopefully we'll see a lot more of each other, son." He said before he closed his eyes and tried to get some rest.
"Same here." I said with a small smile before I looked away. "I guess." I said under my breath before I decided to catch a few Zs myself. I laid back on my chair and closed my eyes to sleep for a while.
An hour later: Appleloosa
The sound of the train screeching to a stop woke me up from my slumber, I opened my eyes and inhaled through my nose as I looked around at the train car.
I saw a few ponies wake up from their own sleep and start to get up out of their seats, some were even already awake and waiting for the train to come to a complete stop.
I took a moment to collect myself until I felt someone nudge my shoulder beside me, I turned my head and saw Discord looked down at me from his seat. "Can I get out of my seat please?" he said with a small groan.
Realising I was sitting in the seat beside him, blocking his way out, I quickly slipped out of my seat and stood in the middle of the car, allowing Discord to do the same. He got out of his seat and stretched his arms up. "Rrrrgg…my legs needed a good stretch." He said he hovered in the air and a taffy-stretcher appeared below him, tangling both his legs in the mixers and stretching his legs.
Applejack also woke up from her seat before she climbed out of it. "Well we best not keep Braeburn waitin', he's supposed to be meetin' us at the station." She said before she turned and started making her way down the car, towards the exit door.
I walked past Discord to follow her, who soon followed me as well after pulling his legs from his stretcher. We all made our way to the exit before we stepped off the train. It felt a lot better to finally be back on solid ground, a long train ride can really make you feel a little shaken after a while.
I took this moment to look around at the town ahead of me. To put in short, it was everything I expect and was hoping for. A proper western town, western-looking ponies and sandy ground. I always wanted to go to a place like this. I took in a deep breath and smelt the desert around me, it was pleasant.
"Come on, let's look around for Braeburn." Applejack said as she walked past me and looked around the station.
I walked over to her and started helping her in her search. As I did, I thought about Braeburn and what I could remember about him. I only remembered seeing him in the show once, in the episode with those buffalo. I had spent so much time in Equestria, but I hadn't met him yet, I was a little nervous about meeting him.
As we kept searching, Discord walked up to us with an unimpressed look on his face. "So…was somepony supposed to be here to greet me?" he asked before he covered his mouth with his hand. "Oh, I mean, us." he corrected with a smirk on his face.
Applejack turned around to face him with a raised eye-brow. "He said in his letter that he would be waitin' here, he must've got caught up." she said before she grew a slightly confident smile. "Don't worry, I'm sure he'll be here soon to greet us. He is my cousin after all." She said as she kept looking around.
"Well it looks like you cousin may have forgotten about us." Discord said before a bunch of suitcases appeared in his hands. "Oh well, back on the train." He said as his tail placed a hat on his head as he turned and started walking back over to the train.
I was about to talk him into waiting until I saw someone running up to the station. "Wait, who's that?" I asked as I tried to make out who it was.
Discord threw his eyes. "There's always something." he complained before he opened one of the big cases before he shoved all the others inside it, including his hat, before he slammed it shut. He then made the case disappear.
Applejack and I watched as the pony rushed closer to us. It wasn't long before I could see his brown hat and vest-shirt, along with his yellow coat. Upon seeing these, I knew it was Braeburn eagerly rushing over here to greet us. It wasn't long until he finally reached us a panted hard. "*Deep breaths* Hold on…just let me…haa…" he said between ach breath.
The three of us waited for Braeburn to gather his breath before he stood up straight and smiled at us. "Hey cous, welcome back to Appleloosa!" he said as he pranced on the spot.
I smiled a little in amusement at the sight of this, slightly surprised that he still did that.
Applejack returned his smile before she walked over to Braeburn and hugged him lovingly. "Howdy Braeburn, it's been way too long." She said as Braeburn returned her hug.
Applejack and Braeburn then parted before he looked over Applejack's shoulder and saw the rest of us. I smiled widely at Braeburn while Discord waved to him while hovering over my head. Upon seeing us, Braeburn returned his attention to Applejack. "So who are your friends?" he asked curiously.
Applejack responded by turning around to us as we both walked over to them. "Braeburn, I take it you're familiar with Discord?" she said while looking up at Discord.
As Braeburn looked up at him, Discord smile nervously and wave his claw again. "Braeburn, I presume? Applejack has told me so much about you." he said before his face gained a confused look. "Or did she?...hmm…you know, I don't think she's ever mentioned you at all, now that I think about it." he gave them a small devious grin. "How awkward."
Applejack gave him a silent firm look before she turned her head to face Braeburn. "Don't mind him, Braeburn, he's just tryin' to cause a ruckus." He stated.
Braeburn looked at Applejack with a slightly uncomfortable face. "Wasn't he tryin' to take over Equestria not long back?" he asked, sounding a little worried.
Applejack was nervous to answer, but she eventually found the strength to do so. "K-Kinda, but he's fine now, he's not gonna cause trouble here." she informed before she shot a glare up to Discord. "Are ya?!" she said in a low growl.
Discord put both his hands up. "Not to worry, Applejack, I'll be a little angel on this trip." He said as a halo appeared above his head and a hard appeared in his hands.
Applejack threw her eyes before she turned her attention to me. "And here's the guy I told ya about. Braeburn, this is Matthew." She said as she held her hoof out to me.
Braeburn's looked at me with a concerned look. "Matthew, huh?...I've…heard a lot about you." he said as he held his hoof out to me.
I wondered why he was acting so nervous, but I just assumed it was because it was his first time meeting me, he just needed to get comfortable around me. I moved my hoof to his and shook it. "It's nice to finally meet you, Braeburn, how's things with the Buffalo Tribe?" I asked curiously as I released his hoof.
Braeburn raised his eye brow. "It's fine…how did ya know about the Buffalo?" he asked in a suspecting tone.
I didn't really know how to answer that question without letting it slip that I watched it on an episode, but I managed to think of something. "Twi told me…she said there was a big fight with you guys…glad all that's over." I said, relieved that I managed to talk my way out of that one.
"Yeah." Braeburn said before he looked down at the ground. "We definitely would've been in trouble if you got involved in that." He said under his breath.
Hearing his mumbling, I gave Braeburn a curious look. "What was that?" I asked with a raised eye-brow.
At that moment, Braeburn's eyes shot back over to me. "Nothin'! Just talkin' to myself." he said in his defence before he started to turn around. "So umm…would ya'all like to follow me, I'll show ya around town." he said before he started walking away.
As we started to follow him into the town, I walked up beside Applejack and looked at her. "Did…he seem a little on edge to you?" I asked curiously, noticing Braeburn's odd behaviour.
Applejack turned her head to face me before a small confident smile appeared on her face. "I'm sure he's fine, he just gets a little nervous around new faces." she said before she looked back at Discord. "And I can't really blame 'im." She said while looking at his face.
Discord heard this and glared down at her. "And what is that supposed to mean?!" he said with an offended look.
I shook my head before I focused on Applejack. "It felt like something else…like he had a thing against me." I said, feeling as though Braeburn had a thing against me.
"I'm sure it's nothin', Matt. I've told him how good you are and what you've done for us." Applejack said before she smirked. "Besides, he just met ya, what trouble would he have with ya?" she said before she returned her attention to the back of Braeburn.
"I suppose." I said with a slightly unconvinced look. The three of us continued follow Braeburn into the town, getting ready to one of his tours.
An hour later: Appleloosa Saloon
After a quick tour of the town, I suggested we went into the town saloon to get ourselves a refreshing drink, Celestia knows we could use one after that long train ride. No one objected and we went over there.
When we got there, I was surprised by what was inside. It looked just like a western saloon. A bar with a bar-tender who had a mustache, a single pony playing an old piano, a group of ponies playing cards, and of course, ponies drinking cider and licking saltlicks to near death, some even had trouble keeping their balance as they walked.
Braeburn and I sat by the bar while we watched Applejack arm-wrestle with some of the locals. All the while, Discord was playing cards, and by the looks of it, he was cheating…there was an ace in his tail fluff.
Match after match, Applejack slammed the ponies arms down against the table without breaking a sweat, she looked like she was enjoying it.
"Applejack's stronger than she looks…I probably should know that by now, but it never stops surprising me." I said, admiring Applejack's strength.
"Yeah." Braeburn said before he grabbed his cider cup with his hoof and took a sip from it. "She's been the strongest pony in Appleloosa for as long as I can remember…almost everyone challenges her when she comes around." He said before he spun around on his stool to face the bar.
I looked at him before I did the same. It felt a little awkward sitting next to this guy without talking, so I decided to try and ease the tension. "So…what do you know about these missing ponies?" I asked curiously, trying to make small talk.
Braeburn turned his head to face me. "What?" he asked curiously.
"The missing ponies." I repeated. "A guy on the train told me that ponies have been going missing and the towns they lived in have had to be put up for sale." I explained, trying to remember as much as I could about the conversation I had with Moneybaggs.
Braeburn stared at me for a moment before he looked down at his drink. "Yeah, I've heard of that…so is that why you're here? To save the day or somethin'?" he asked before he took a big gulp of his drink.
I could hear a bit more of that attitude towards me in his voice, but I let it slide. "No, I came here to see the town…I always wanted to visit a western town." I said before I took a sip of my own drink. "Are any of you trying to find the guys responsible?" I asked curiously.
"We've had a few Bounty Hunters around here." Braeburn said before he looked at me. "None of them have come back…its likely they got caught themselves." he finished.
My ears lowered a little bit. "Have…any of the townsfolk been taken as well?" I asked, a little scared by what the answer might be.
Braeburn was silent for a moment before he answered. "A few…this town is the rustler's next target…it won't be long until everyone you see here is long gone just like the rest." He said as he looked around at the saloon. "I want to help stop this, but if bounty hunters aren't a match for 'em, what chance do ponies like me have?" he asked, looking at everyone with worry.
"Sometimes the smallest person can achieve large tasks." I said, quoting something Moleyair once said to me. "But is there anyone else trying to protect the town?" I asked curiously.
Braeburn then returned his attention to me. "No…like I said, everyone who tried to go after 'em hasn't come back. Whoever are out there, they're strong." He said before he tried to wave the bartender over.
I thought about this for a moment, trying to think of a way to help them. "Well…maybe I can help. I've dealt with things like this before." I said, wanting to be helpful to them.
At that moment, Braeburn shot a strong stare at me. "No! We can handle this ourselves!" he said strongly, like he was pushing away my assistance.
My ears dropped a little at his sudden snap. "Braeburn…are you ok?...You seem a little upset about something." I said, wondering why he was talking like this to me again.
Braeburn groaned a little before he went silent. After a moment of silence and looking around to see if anyone else was listening, he returned his attention to me. "Ya really want to know? Fine, I'll tell ya." He paused for a moment. "I don't trust ya." He said while giving me a slight glare.
A surprised and uncomfortable chill went through my body once I heard this. "What?" I said, not sure if I heard him right.
But before Braeburn could continue, we both heard the saloon doors open and we looked over to see what it was. That's when I saw Moneybaggs coming in with his jolly smile. I was a little surprised that he was here, I knew he was heading to some western town, but I didn't know he was talking about Appleloosa. I watched him walk over to the bar before he finally noticed us. "Well put a saddle on me and call me a donkey, if it isn't my ol' friend Matthew." He said as he approached us.
I raised my hoof up in a form of waving. "Hey Moneybaggs." I greeted as he finally reached us. I lowered my hoof before I continued. "I didn't know you got off the train with us." I said.
"Well I didn't notice you either. What a fine treat this is, huh? At least now I know I have a friend in these parts." Moneybaggs said before he sat down on the stool beside me and ordered a drink.
Braeburn looked across at him and raised his eye brow. "Umm…say Matt, who's ya friend here?" he asked curiously, giving Moneybaggs a strangely curious stare.
I turned around to face Braeburn before I spoke. "Oh…This is Moneybaggs. I met him on the train on the way here, seems like a nice guy. Said something about coming to see the town." I said, telling him all I knew about Moneybaggs.
However, Braeburn didn't seem totally convinced. "Just to see the town, huh?" he said before he returned his attention over to Moneybaggs. "Excuse me Mr Baggs, but for someone with a name and get up like yours, I assume you not just here to see our town."
"Braeburn." I said under my breath, trying to discreetly let him know that wasn't something he should just assume of someone he didn't know.
Moneybaggs looked at him silently before he chuckled. "I have to say, you're a bright kid, ya got me square in the centre." He said before he leaded down on the counter more. "Truth is I'm here to talk to your Sheriff about opening a mine on the mountains near your town. Those mountains are made of solid Dust Rock, which can produce a high amount of diamonds after a long period of time. I believe the time has come to claim them and, of course, your town will get an even split of the shares." He explained before he pulled out a map, showing the cliff where he planned to set up the mine. "It won't require anything less than a few tools and some strong dedicated ponies." he said.
Braeburn and I looked at the map. I can't say I understood most of it, but it all seemed pretty straight forward and organised. I turned my attention to Braeburn. "Seems like a good deal, what do you think?" I asked, curious about his opinion.
Braeburn then gave me an uncertain look. "Well I wouldn't know, the Sheriff will have to decide." He said before he returned his attention to Moneybaggs and gave him a small smile. "But I'm sure if it means brinin' more bits to the town, he'll agree to it. We have a lot of ponies around her willin' to lend ya a hoof."
Moneybaggs smiled at this before he took the map back and titled his hat with his hoof. "Much obliged, my boy." He said before he drank up the last of his drink and hopped off his seat. We both watched as he made his way towards the exit and leave the Saloon.
Once he was gone, I turned back around to face the bar. "Well if Moneybaggs is right and there are diamonds in those cliffs, the town will get a lot more to its funding, right Braeburn?" I asked, but was confused as to why I didn't get a response. I turned and saw that Braeburn was gone, I looked around until I saw him walk over to Applejack, surrounded by stallions rubbing their sore hooves from having lost to her.
My ears dropped a little and I sighed heavily. "Haven't even done anything and I've already pissed him off, this has to be a record." I said to myself as I wondered why Braeburn had a problem with me.
That night: The streets of town
After spending most of the days doing many activities in Appleloosa, Applejack and I were now having a peaceful walk through the town. The air was so much cooler at night, must've been because it was so hot in the day.
Discord and Braeburn joined us, but they decided to head back to the saloon afterwards for more drinks and to have some guy-time. I still hadn't figured out why Braeburn wasn't so keen on me, but maybe Applejack would shed some light on it
In other news, we overheard that Sheriff agreed to permit Moneybaggs' plan of opening a mine in the cliffs. He left a few hours ago with a lot of equipment and a large group of strong stallions. We haven't heard from them since they left, don't imagine we will until someone comes back.
Applejack and I continued walking as I took in the cool air. "Nice night tonight…it goes well with the town as well." I said, looking around at the peaceful streets as the building windows were lit up, feeling a pleasant sensation in my gut.
Applejack looked around and sighed with a small smile. "Yeah, I can't tell ya the last time I was here when it was night." she said before she turned her head to face me and saw a puzzled look on my face. "Somethin' on ya mind, sugarcube?" she asked curiously, giving me a concerned look.
I snapped out of my train of thought before I looked at her. "Huh? Oh sorry, I was just thinking…about something Braeburn said." I said, thinking back to the saloon when I talked to him.
Applejack and I then stopped in place and she walked around in front of me. "What did he say?" she asked.
I looked up at Applejack's face and saw the concerned look, the same looked Twi would give me every time I had a problem and she wanted to help. I smiled a little at this before I sighed. "He said…that he didn't trust me, like he had some kind of problem with me." I admit. "I don't know why, I haven't said or done anything to upset him."
Applejack had a slightly confused look on her face once she heard this. "Well that doesn't make much sense. You two just met, it's not like him to just dislike someone over nothin'." She said, not recalling any time he's ever done that.
"Is there anything I should do to change his mind?" I asked. "I mean, I know I can't have everyone like me, but I don't want any bad blood between me and someone so close to you." I say, wanting to know if there was any way I could make things a little better between me and Braeburn.
Applejack rubbed her chin with her hoof as she thought about it. "Hmm…well Braeburn isn't the type that just changes his opinion about someone because ya act nice to 'im. Maybe you should just hang out with 'im, let him get to know ya better." she answered with a small smile.
"Do you think that would work?" I asked curiously with a raised eye brow.
Applejack then shrugged. "I'm not completely sure, but its worth a shot, right?" she said before she went into deep thought. "Now we just need somethin' for ya both to do." she said, rubbing her chin with her hoof again.
As she thought, I noticed something behind her, something far out of town. I squinted my eyes to see it was someone weakly crawling through the sand, he was wearing a white suit. My eyes soon widened as I realised what it was. "Oh god!" I said in a loud tone before I rushed around Applejack and went over to the pony.
Doing this made Applejack curious and she watched me rush past her. Upon turning around, she saw the same thing I did and gasped before she sprinted after me, doing her best to catch up beside me.
Once we both reached the pony, we both got a better look at the pony and discovered it was Moneybaggs. His suit was torn and dirty, his hat was missing, and he looked like he had been crawling through the desert for hours. "Please…help me…" he said weakly as he raised his hoof.
I wasted no time in standing beside him and placing one of his front legs over my shoulders, lifting him up slightly. I then turned my attention to Applejack. "Applejack, help me with this guy." I say as I struggling to lift him.
Applejack nodded before she walked over to the other side of Moneybaggs and did the same with his other front leg. We both hoisted Moneybaggs up before we started carrying him back to town. "Moneybaggs?" I said as I look at his face. "Moneybaggs! Speak to me, man." I say, trying to get him to talk.
Moneybaggs then weakly opened his eyes before his eyes shifted in my direction, a small smile then appeared on his face. "What is it about me always runnin' into you?" he asked in amusement.
"Moneybaggs, what happened to you?" I asked, not sharing his amusement at the moment. "Where are the ponies you left with?" I asked, wanting to know what happened to him.
Moneybaggs grunted in pain before he spoke. "The rustlers…they attacked our mine…took all the workers…went into the mine and disappeared…I managed to get away and lose 'em…but I think I was the only one who made it out." He said as he panted.
Applejack and I looked at each other before Applejack turned her attention to Moneybaggs. "Don't worry, Moneybaggs, we'll take ya to Sheriff Silver Star, he'll know what to do about this." She said as we started to re-enter the town.
"Thank ya both…I just hope we're not too late." Moneybaggs said as we both carried his towards Silver Star's office.
A few minutes later: Sheriff Silver Star's office
Once we got to the Sheriff's office, we got Moneybaggs some water before he started telling him how the rustlers attacked. Apparently it was one pony and three fearsome creatures, the pony was the one in-charge of the rest.
It wasn't long before Braeburn got wind of this and rushed right over, wanting to know every detail.
Sheriff Silver Star leaned back on his chair with his legs crossed on the desk in front of him as Moneybaggs continued his tale. "There's no doubt about it, Sheriff, that pony who was leadin' the rustlers was no-one else other than that two-timin' snake, Yodellin' Sam!" Moneybaggs said roughly as he slammed his hoof down on the desk.
"Yodellin' Sam?" Braeburn asked as he stepped forward. "I thought that guy flew the coop ages ago." He said, thinking far back when Sam last struck.
"Excuse me." I say, raising my hoof. "But who's Yodellin' Sam?" I asked with a raised eye-brow.
Applejack then turned her head to face me. "He's a crook. When he was young, he used to round up herds of sheep and pigs with his yodellin', it had some kind of power to put creatures into a trance of some sort. It was when he was older that he realised he could do the same with ponies and started using it to rob banks and stuff." She explained before she looked down at the floor. "He hasn't been around here since he escaped jail two years ago. I wonder what he's up to now." she said, going into deep wonder.
Braeburn walked over to us. "Nothin' good if it involves kidnappin' other ponies and takin' them Celestia knows where!" he said before he spun around to face Silver Star. "Sheriff! I suggest we mount a full strike against these rustlers. If we head back to that mine, we might be able to pick up their trail." He said, wanting to strike the rustlers while they can.
Silver Star removed his hind-legs from the desk before he leaned up. "I'm just as bothered about this as you are, Braeburn, but we have to plan things out first. We can't just send ponies out in the wild willy-nilly, they'll get captured easily." He stated.
"Well what else can we do?" Braeburn asked loudly, a little frustrated by this.
Silver Star was about to answer until we heard a commotion outside. We all walked over to the doorway and exited the office, that's when we saw all the townsfolk all rallied up in front of the office, like an angry mob, but less angry and more concerned. Silver Star stepped out in front of us. "Alright folks, settle down, what's all this about?" he asked, making sound like it was a regular thing.
A pony then walked out in front of the crowd. "We just heard about that Moneybaggs guy bein' attacked by rustlers." He said with a concerned look on his face.
"How the hay did ya'all know about that, we didn't tell anyone." Applejack said with me shaking my head to back up her statement.
Suddenly, Discord appeared above the crowd. "Oh, I might have let it slip in the saloon." He said before he came down to us and turned into a giant fly. "I'm afraid I became a little fly on the wall when you brought that poor pony to the Sheriff." He said before he turned back to normal.
Applejack and I gave him a slight surprised yet firm look. "Why did you tell them all that? It's strictly need-to-know." I said, a little annoyed that he caused all this fuss.
Discord shrugged as he held his arms up. "I was running out of things to talk about." he claimed.
At that moment, I face-hooved myself. "For god's sake!" I said under my breath in frustration.
The pony who spoke before then gave the Sheriff a strong glare. "The freaky guy was right to tell us. It may have been need-to-know for you, but we live here too, we do need to know." He said loudly.
A mare then joined him. "This kind of thing has happened too many times, Sheriff. We want action! We need ya to send someone out to stop these rustlers." She said as she slammed her hoof down on the ground with the rest of the townsfolk bickering in agreement.
This whole thing looked like it was getting out of hand until Silver Star spoke up. "Alright! Alright! I'll send out a posy." He said before he looked around at everyone. "Do we have any volunteers?" he asked.
For a moment, it was completely silent until a few strong looking stallions stepped out of the crowd. They looked tough, a few I even recognised from the saloon. "Right here, Sheriff." One of them said with the rest nodding.
Silver Star smirked at this. "Good, anyone else?" he asked, looking around at everyone.
As the silence continued, I turned my head to Applejack, expecting her to go right for it. But she looked at me and shook her head, which surprised me. I looked over to the stallions and saw that they were tough, but these rustlers sounded tougher, they needed some extra hooves. I took a moment to think about this before I sighed. "Here we go again." I said to myself before I stepped forward. "I'll go, Sheriff." I said.
I looked at each of them, there were three of them and they were all the same size as Big Mac, same type of hooves too.
One was dark brown with a light brown cowboy hat, he had a black mane and tail. He wore a red bandanna around his neck.
The second had a white coat with a black mane and tail, his hat hung behind his neck. He had a large dark-grey beard with what looked like spit-stains around the mouth.
The last had a dark-blue coat with a dark brown mane and tail. He wore a black hat right on top of his head, slightly tilted down in front of his face. There wasn't much to him, other than his hooves being slightly brown, like they were rusted.
Silver Star turned his head around to face me and looked me up and down. "Urr…you sure you're up for this kinda thing?" he asked, sounding as if he didn't expect me to come back alive. "It's gonna be a little dangerous." He finished.
Suddenly, Discord appeared beside me and placed his hands behind my shoulders. "Are you kidding? After all Matthew's been though, danger is his middle name." he said with a large grin, trying to make me sound tough. I just smiled and laughed nervously at this.
Silver Star gave it some thought before he shrugged. "In that case, I guess it couldn't hurt. Welcome to the posy, son." H said as he patted my shoulder with his hoof.
Just then, Braeburn gave me an untrusting glare before he stepped forward towards Silver Star. "I'm goin' too, Sheriff." He said strongly.
Silver Star then looked at Braeburn with a surprised look. "Umm…ok…sure." He said, unsure why he was so quick to offer himself. Silver Star then turned to face the crowd again. "Anyone else wanna go with'em?" he asked.
After a minute or so of silence, Silver Star tuned to face me and Braeburn. "Looks like we got our posy together. First thing in the morning, ya'all will set off to the mines and search for any leads." He instructed.
Braeburn nodded. "Yes Sheriff." He said before he turned and walked away, while giving me as strange look as he passed. The rest of the crowd then dispersed to go back to their own business, leaving us at the Sheriff's office to plan what we were going to do.
The rest of us then went back inside the office and sat around the Sheriff's desk. "So what do we do when we get there?" I asked Silver Star as I watched him sit back down in front of his desk.
"First, ya search the place for anyone who might've hid while the rustlers attacked. If there's no-one there, ya search for tracks or any clues as to where the rustlers might've went. Those guys have been givin' us trouble for far too long, it's time we dealt with 'em." Silver Star said as he turned to look out the window at his town.
Moneybaggs then walked over to me and patted my back. "I'm glad ya stepped up, kid, but do ya really think you're up for it? These rustlers aren't your average every-day varmints, they have a Unicorn on their side." He said, giving me a slightly concerned look.
I was going to answer, but Applejack stepped forward. "He's dealt with worse, but I'll have a talk with 'im later." She said.
"If ya say so, little lady." Moneybaggs said with a small smirk. He turned and started making his way towards the exit. "I'm gonna head over to the saloon and rent a room, I need to get some shut-eye." He said before he looked back at me. "If I don't see ya before ya go, best of luck to all of ya." He said as he walked out of the door and left the office.
Once he left, we all returned our attention to Silver Star. "So, what else do I need to know about this Yodellin' Sam guy." I said, wanting to know more about the Unicorn leading the rustlers.
"No much more to tell." Silver Star answered. "Other than he's robbed seven banks in seven different towns and any bounty hunter that's gone after him has never come back." he told me.
Suddenly, Discord appeared beside me. "Oh goody, we're going on a bandit hunt." He said before he turned and looked me right in the eyes. "I'm sure with your skills and my power, we can catch these rustlers and be praised as heroes, they may even make a statue of us." he said as he snapped is fingers.
In a flash of light, a small stone statue appeared on the desk in front of me, it was of me and Discord. Discord was standing tall with his hands up high while standing on my back, I looked like I was struggling to hold him up. To make it worse, I was standing facing the wrong way. "Though, I think it should I should be wearing a cape" Discord said before he snapped his fingers and a cape appeared on his statue self, which now covered my face.
I look at the statue before I looked up at Discord. "Urr…Discord, I don't think it would be good for you to come with me, I think you should stay here with Applejack." I said, hoping he wouldn't take it the wrong way.
Discord then frowned in shock before he made the statue disappear. "But I've been instructed to stay under your care by Princess Celestia, we shouldn't split apart." He said, reminding me of the agreement the Princess and I made.
"I know, Discord." I said. "But as long as you don't do anything…chaotic…then its fine. Besides, Applejack can watch you while I'm gone." I said before I turned my head around to look at Applejack beside me. "Right AJ?" I asked.
"Like a hawk." Applejack said, giving Discord a firm look.
Discord raised his hands up. "Alright, I can take a hint." He said before he wrapped his arm around my neck and held me close. "Besides, this will give you a chance to sort things out with Braeburn." He said and noticed the slightly surprised look on my face. "I'm the spirit of Disharmony, Matthew, I could smell the conflict in that saloon straight through the stench of the townsfolk." He said before he released me.
Upon hearing that, I began to think. Braeburn seemed very eager to offer his aid in the posy after I offered mine, was it because he didn't trust me to be of much help? I turned my head to face Applejack. "Applejack, do you think Braeburn joined the posy because he doesn't want me to go alone with the others?" I asked with a slightly concerned look.
Applejack didn't know how to answer that. She knew Braeburn's heart was in the right place, but when it came to the safety of the townsfolk, he would act strong-hearted and no leave anything to chance. "I'm not sure, maybe." She said before she gave me a comforting smile. "But I'm sure if you do your best to catch these rustlers, he might take a shine to ya." She said.
I thought about it for a moment before I nodded. "I'll do what I can." I responded before I looked out the window and remembered how late it was. "For now, I think we should get some rest. If I'm heading out straight in the morning, I better get some sleep." I said, returning my attention to Applejack.
Applejack nodded in agreement. "Sure thing." she said before she walked past me made her way towards the exit. "There's rental rooms in the saloon, we can sleep there tonight." she said as she looked back at me.
"Ok." I said as I walked over to her and followed her out of the office.
Discord hovered behind me as he followed. "Sleepover! Are we going to have a slumber party? Maybe even a pillow fight?" He asked as we left the office.
"No!" Applejack and I answered loudly at the same time.
Discord then crossed his arms and huffed. "*Huff* Sticks in mud." He said under his breath as he continued to follow us back over to the saloon.
The next day
Overnight, Applejack and I talked about this whole thing. She was concerned that, even though I had been in worse fights, I may not be able to easily take on a gang of rustlers without getting into trouble. These rustlers were tough, they had kidnapped many ponies and escaped law-enforcers many times, they obviously weren't your typical everyday bandits.
I took all of this under advisement, but I figured it was nothing to worry about. These rustlers were mean, but they weren't powerful Alicorns. I was sure everything would be under control.
When morning came, me and the rest of the posy gathered outside the Sheriff's office. I saw all the stallions from yesterday here as well as Braeburn. He looked over to me and I gave him a gentle smile while waving, I didn't get much response other than a cold stare, which made me frown a little. We then saw Silver Star come out through the doors of his office. "Alright fellas, settle down." he said, trying to cut the chatter amongst us.
Once we all gave him out attention, Silver Star continued. "Now before we begin, let's see if everyone's here." he said before he looked at each of us. "Ok, Applejack said your name was Matthew." He said while looking at me before looking at everyone else. "Braeburn…Spitty Bucket…Rusty Shoes…and Salt Saddle. Good to see ya'all are here." he said.
"Wouldn't miss it, Sheriff." Spitty said before he sniffed u hard before he spat thick saliva on the ground.
"Ew." I said under my breath, watching him in slight disgust. "Guess that's why they call him Spitty."
Silver Star continued to stare at us as he explained the plan. "Ok, the plan is simple. Ya'all are gonna head over to the mine, where the rustlers were last seen, and start lookin' for anyone who might've got away, or at least some leads as to where the rustlers will strike next. Am I clear?" he asked with a strong voice.
"Yes Sheriff." Braeburn said as he gave him a salute.
"Let's cut the chatter and get goin'! I'm ichin' to catch me some rustlers." Rusty said, with the others agreeing with him.
"Alright, alright." Silver Star said, settling them down again. "Then without further delay, I grant you permission to get goin'." He said before he gave us a strong salute. "Best of luck to all of ya." He said with a smirk.
With that, the group of stallions galloped off, eager to start the hunt. They yelled things like 'ye-ha!' and 'Hoo-wee!' as they rushed out of town, leaving me and Braeburn in the dust. Braeburn and I waved our hooves around to clear the dust before we looked at each other. "Guess we'll…have to catch up." I said, feeling how awkward this was.
"Yeah, sure thing." Braeburn said before he, unlike the others, started following the other stallions at the normal pace. As he continued walking, he looked back at me. "Ya comin' or what, buddy?" he asked.
With that, I rushed up to Braeburn and walked beside him as we followed the hoof-prints in the sand, leading out of town and to the large cloud of dust in the distance, created by the stampeding stallions.
As we kept walking, I looked over to Braeburn to see his stern look, he kept his eyes on the horizon at all times. I tried to think of something, anything to say that would break this uncomfortable silence. "So Braeburn…when was the last time you saw any of the buffalo?" I asked curiously, trying to make conversation.
Braeburn turned his head to face me before he answered. "Not for a while. They still stampede through our orchard a few times, but they don't really stop to say hi…well…one does." He said, thinking of that one buffalo.
Looking back at the events of that episode, I had a good idea who the one buffalo was. "Little Strongheart?" I asked with a sly smirk.
Braeburn looked at me with a slightly surprised face before he looked away. "Yeah…she drops in now and again to check up on things. She's kinda like, you know, the peace keeper or somethin'." He stated, continuing to look forward to the path ahead.
"Uh-huh." I said with my smirk growing a little bigger, think there was possibly more to it than that.
The two of us kept walking across the desert as we followed the other stallions, believing we'd eventually catch up to them at the mine.
-Half-an-hour later-
Braeburn and I were now very far from town, too far to think about calling it all off and heading back. The rest of the posy was already a few miles ahead of us, we could barely see them anymore.
Being in such a hot part of Equestria, it didn't take long for the sun to start scorching the land. With our hooves sinking into the soft sand with each step, Braeburn and I kept on our quest. I was breathing heavily, my mane damp with sweat as my throat gagged for just one drop of water.
Braeburn, on the other hand, seemed very calm. True, he was hot too, so hot that he had to remove his hat to try and cool his head down, but he was used to the warmth here.
All the while, we didn't talk much. I would've said something, but I was afraid of disturbing Braeburn, so I decided to just speak when spoken to. It wasn't until I saw a large rock up ahead that I finally spoke. "Braeburn…that rock over there is giving off a lot of shade…maybe we can stop for a sec and cool down." I say, desperately staring at the large shadow the rock was casting.
Braeburn looked over to the rock before he looked at me. "I'm not sure, we have to keep up with the rest of the posy…if we stop, we might fall behind." He said, unsure if he wanted to stop for a moment or not.
"Braeburn, if we stay out here any long without a break we won't be strong enough to deal with whatever's waiting for us at the mine…if we don't get heat-stroke before we get there, that is." I said, lifting up my arm and wiping the sweat off my head.
Braeburn stopped and took a few breaths before he nodded. "Alright…alright, I get ya…let's take a breather." He said before he stated walking over to the rock and its shade, with me following behind.
Once we reached the shade, Braeburn and I sat down on the cool sand and relaxed in the shade, finally feeling the heat on us die off. We both rested back against the rock as I looked out at the horizon. "Wish we had some water…" I said, desperately wanting to wet my dry throat.
Just then, Braeburn reached into one of his saddlebags and pulled out a water canister, he held it over to me and I soon noticed it. "Oh, so that's what's in there." I said before I grabbed it with my hoof and unscrewed the cap. Once it was off, I took a quick swig of the water inside, making sure not to drink too much of it.
After having my fill, I put the cap back on and gave the canister back to Braeburn. He took it and placed it back in his saddlebag. We rested for a moment before I turned my head to face Braeburn. "Hey…can I ask you something…why don't you trust me?...i mean, I haven't done much for you not to." I say, curious as to why he thought so badly about me.
Braeburn turned his head to face me before he sighed. "Do ya really want to know?" he asked.
I nodded. "Yeah…did Applejack say something about me or something?" I asked curiously.
Braeburn shook his head. "No…the truth is, you seem to be a trouble-magnet." He started. "Ya didn't always hang out with my sister or her friends, otherwise ya would've been her during the whole buffalo thing. So that means you arrived into Ponyville at some point and decided to park ya wagon there." he said.
I didn't know what he meant, but I could only assume it meant I decided to stay there. "Yeah…and?" I said with a slightly confused look.
"But after ya did, all sorts of trouble started happenin'." Braeburn continued. "Discord got out, those Alicorn's started showin' up, the Elements are goin' missin', and my own little cousin gets kidnapped by a traitorous guard. And then there ya are, in the middle of it all, it just raised suspicion." He said, giving me a shady stare.
At that moment, I knew what he was getting at. "Hey, I didn't bring any of that…I was the one who fought those Alicorns and saved Applebloom…if you think I'd ever be in league with those monsters, you have another thing coming, buddy." I said, giving him a firm glare.
Braeburn leaned up. "I didn't say ya were, I was just saying there's somethin' weird about it. All these things seem to happen because of you. The Alicorn's attacked because they wanted you, the guard kidnapped Applebloom to get to you." he said before he leaned towards me. "Be a hero, save the world, beat the villains, that's fine by me. But put my family in the middle of it all, ya got yourself a problem." He said, nudging me with his hoof.
I leaned up and moved closer to him, looking him dead in the eye as I glared more. "I'd never let anything happen to Applejack or anyone else at Sweet Apple Archers. One tried and he ended up being pinned to the wall by a pitchfork while his mother ended up dead. And I don't ask Applejack to get involved with that stuff, she chooses to, because she wants me to come out of it alive. I keep her and her family safe, and she does the same for me and mine. Stick that in your apple-pies." I said, giving him a nudge back.
Braeburn was silent for a moment before he stood back up. "I think we've cooled down enough, time we got back on track." He said before he stepped out of the shade and kept following the hoof-prints.
As I watched him leave, I sighed heavily. "Well wasn't that bonding?" I said to myself sarcastically before I got up and started following Braeburn, heading further into the horizon as the sun continued to heat the land.
Meanwhile: Appleloosa streets
Watching out into the long empty desert, Applejack sat in the streets and wondered how we were doing. We had been only gone a few hours, but she was worried about us. Part of her wanted to run out to join us, but she knew she had to stay behind and watch Discord.
Speaking of which, Discord appeared beside her and noticed the concerned look on her face. "Cheer up, Applejack, I'm sure Matt and…urr…Breadstick will be fine. They tough ponies." he said before two ice-cream cones appeared in his claws. "Here, have some ice-cream." He said as he held one down to her.
But, due to the heat, the two cones melted within an instant, leaving two small puddles on the ground. "Well, that's not right." Discord said, looking down at the puddles with a small frown.
Applejack sighed as she looked up at him. "Thanks for tryin', Discord, but I'm not in the mood right now for anythin' like that." She said with a quiet voice.
Discord then shrugged before he threw both cones into his mouth and ate them. "Well what would make you feel better?" he said while he continued to chew the cones.
Applejack was silent as she prepared to answer. But before she could, she heard a door open and spun around to see Silver Star walking out of his office, following behind him was his two deputies. Once she saw him, Applejack got up and quickly walked over to him. "Sheriff, can I have a word?" she asked, hoping to get his ear.
Silver Star looked at her. "Sure, what's up?" he asked as he crossed his front legs.
"I'm worried about the posy that went after those rustlers." Applejack began. "I think we need to consider sending more ponies out there to back 'em up." she said.
"I'm not sure if that's a good idea, Applejack." Silver Star said as he stepped down from the porch and started walking down the street with Applejack following beside him. "I want to help those ponies, believe me, I do. But if we send more ponies out there, we risk losin' more of our own people."
"I know, Sheriff, but maybe you and your deputies could help." Applejack said. "I mean, ya have the experience with rustlers and other outlaws, havin' you by their side could really give them the upper hoof." she said with a small hopeful smile.
Silver Star stopped walking and gave Applejack a firm look. "And what happens when the rest of the town finds out we're gone? Everypony here looks to me for action when things go South, who else will they turn to if somethin' happens while I'm not here?" he asked with the deputies approaching them from behind.
Suddenly, Discord sprung up from the sand beside Applejack. "Well why doesn't Applejack take over while you're gone? She has leadership skills and knows how to handle a crazy crowd?" he asked as he hit the side of his head with his talon-hand, making sand shoot out from his ear on the other side of his head.
"Now that's just crazy talk, no-one can just take the role of Sheriff." Silver Star said before he rubbed his chin with his hoof. "But…I might be able to make ya a sub-deputy for a while." he said, looking Applejack up and down.
Applejack then gave him a nervous look. "Sub-deputy? I don't know, Sheriff…I mean, I'm glad you're considering helpin' Matt and the others out, but I'm not sure I can take care of a whole town until ya come back." she said.
Discord smiled widely. "Oh! I can do it!" he said before there was a flash of light around him. A Sheriff's outfit then appeared on his body and he put a toothpick into his mouth. "I've always wanted to be in control of a town….well, one that's actually given to me and not taken by force." He said.
Upon seeing this and imagining what could happen under Discord's control, Applejack quickly looked at Silver Star with wide-eyes. "I'll take the job!" she said quickly.
"Good." Silver Star said before he looked at one of his deputies. "Deputy." He called. With that, one of the deputies walked up behind Applejack and slapped a brown leather vest onto her body, it had a small metal start pinned to it. "Until we get back, you're now sub-deputy, the town will be under your watch and protection until we get back." Silver Star informed.
Applejack looked down at the vest before she returned her attention to Silver Star and saluted. "Yes sir!"
Once that was taken care of, Silver Star turned to face his deputies. "Alright guys, let's go help those kids." He said, getting nods from them before they galloped out into the desert and started their long journey to aid us.
Once they were gone, Discord hovered up beside Applejack, still wearing his outfit. "So…need any help taking care of the town?" he asked, biting his lip while giving Applejack shiny begging eyes.
Applejack saw the look on his face before she rolled her eyes. "Fine…but no changin' anything or causin' trouble!" she ordered.
Discord stood up straight as he nodded. "Of course, wouldn't dream of anything else." He said before he spun around to face a stool, prancing and bucking around while carrying a panicking pony. Discord snapped his fingers and it turned back into a normal stool, making the pony fall off it and land hard on the ground, wondering what in the world just happened.
Discord spun back around to face Applejack and laughed nervously, hoping she didn't notice that.
That night: Moneybaggs' mine
After a long journey through the scorching empty desert, Braeburn and I finally reached the mine where Moneybaggs and his men were attacked. It took so long that the sun had set and the cool night air made us feel a little more refreshed. We hadn't spoken a word to each other the whole time, figured we'd let things cool first.
The stallions from the rest of the posy were already here, looking things over and searching the area. They looked both confused and frustrated, which couldn't mean anything good.
As we both approached them, I had a good look around at the mine. There was a broken wagon, a few barrels stacked up against the wagon, some rope and pickaxes lying on the ground, and a large mine entrance made into the side of the mountain. There were tracks build into the ground leading into the mine with a mine-cart.
After seeing all this, I would've guessed the mine was already here before Moneybaggs and his men arrived. I turned my head to face Braeburn. "Does this mine look a little too well-made for just one day's work? Moneybaggs and the others weren't out here that long." I said, resuming looking around at the mine.
Braeburn didn't turn his head as he answered. "We may not look like it, Matt, but the folks at Appleloosa are hard workin'. They can dig half-way through a mine in just one hour." He stated.
"Oh." I said with a slightly impressed look. "Handy." I finished as we stopped in front of the mine.
Rusty Shoes looked under the broken wagon before he grunted in frustration. "This is a waste of time! The rustlers and the minin' folks are long gone!" he said, stomping his hoof on the ground.
Salty nodded. "Yeah, there's no tracks, no signs, nothin'." He said as he kicked a stone away.
"I say we head back to Appleloosa and tell the Sheriff we didn't find anythin', its dangerous bein' out here at night." Spitty said as walked over to us.
At that moment, Braeburn stepped forward. "And abandon our own people and let those varmints keep kidnappin' other ponies? I don't think so." he said strongly before his attention turned towards the mine entrance. "Did ya look down there?" he asked curiously.
Spitty looked down the mine and saw that it was pitch black in there. "Are ya kiddin'? there ain't no way we're goin' down there in the dark." He said, giving Braeburn a firm stare.
Braeburn turned his attention to Spitty and returned the glare. "The mine is the best place the rustlers could've taken them! It would make a quick getaway and they'd be able go about unseen." He argued.
I walked up beside Braeburn and looked down the mine. "He's right, the rustlers would've been able to get away from here with no problem…provided it actually leads somewhere." I say, looking down into the blackness inside.
"It's too dark to go wonderin' inside a mine." Salty said as he walked over to us. "We'll get hurt, we won't be able to see the muzzles in front of our faces." he stated.
Braeburn took this into thought and rubbed his chin. "I suppose ya got a point." He said before he turned around to face us all. "Fine, we'll set up camp and wait until mornin', then we'll go down the mine." He said.
Rusty gave him a curious look. "Camp? Shouldn't we head back to town?" he asked.
Braeburn shook his head. "No, we're not goin' back until we've searched everywhere. Besides, it'll take us all night to get back to Appleloosa, and if ya think being in a mine at night is dangerous, ya don't wanna know what could happen out there at night." he said, pointing out at the desert.
Rusty looked out at the desert and gulped nervously before he returned his attention to Braeburn. "Camp sounds good." he said with a nervous smile.
With that, Braeburn sat down and removed his saddlebags from his back. He opened them and dug into one before he pulled out some camping equipment. Me and the other three did the same and started building out camp in front of the mine.
After a few minutes, we all had tents set up and a campfire in the centre, we all sat around it as we talk amongst ourselves. "So, Matthew, was it?" Rusty said, looking over to me. "What brings ya to Appleloosa?" he asked curiously.
I looked over to him and smiled. "My friend, Applejack, promised me a visit to the town." I said before I looked down at the fire. "Didn't think it would go like this though, I thought I'd be in the saloon with my friends." I said, thinking about what we could've done.
"Is it true ya fought some evil Alicorn's?" Salty said while roasting marshmallows over the fire on the stick. "I've heard ya name before in a newspaper and I saw your picture. I know it was you, I just wanna know if it was true." he said with a small pleasant smile.
I looked over to him. "Yeah, it's true. I've fought two of them actually…and I think there's gonna be more…I only hope I'll be able to beat them too." I said, wondering how powerful the others would be.
It was silent for a moment before Spitty spoke. "These rustlers…are ya gonna kill 'em? Like ya did with those Alicorns?" he asked curiously. With that question asked, everyone, especially Braeburn, looked at me with wonder, eager to hear the answer.
"…No…I'll do my best to take them in. But if we are going to catch them, I'll need all your help." I said before I looked over to Braeburn. "Especially yours, Braeburn. I know you don't think a lot of me, but if we're going to save those ponies, we'll need to work together." I said, wanting him to put aside his distrust until we're done.
Braeburn looked down at the ground and thought about what I just said.
At that moment, Salt laughed with a slight wheeze in his voice. "I'm just havin' trouble believin' Braeburn's bein' this uptight. Usually he's so calm and joyful. In fact, it was just the other day when he was rollin' through town on a barrel with a few other ponies." He said before he chuckled. "It was some kind of race, if I remember. Ya should've seen the look on his face when he lost control and crashed into the general store, haha." He laughed.
From hearing that story, I looked over to Braeburn and struggled to keep my amused smile at bay. Braeburn smiled nervously before I chuckled. "Now that's the Braeburn I remember." I thought, not wanting to risk him hearing that out loud.
Just then, we noticed the light of the fire going down and we looked to see the fire was dying. "Ah crap, the woods almost completely burnt." I said before I started looking around for some more. "You'd think the minors would've left some sticks around." I said as I continued to look.
"I think I saw some over by the broken wagon." Rusty said before he turned around and tried to find the wagon. "Huh, I saw it a minute ago, it must've gotten darker out there." he said, trying to see through the darkness.
I sighed. "*Sigh* I'm gonna need help finding it." I said before I turned my head to face Braeburn. "Braeburn, can you help me out?" I asked as I stood up onto my hooves.
Braeburn was silent for a second before he got up. "Sure." He said before he and I walked away from the camp towards the direction where we last saw the wagon.
Braeburn and I tried to see through the darkness to try and see the wagon. "Didn't pack any flashlights in the saddlebag by any chance, did ya?" I asked as I continued searching.
"Nope. We're just gonna have to walk around here until we-UFF!" Braeburn said as he bumped into something hard. "Found it." he groaned as he rubbed his chin to ease the small pain.
Following the sound of Braeburn's voice, I walked over to him and carefully stared down until I could just make out the broken wagon in front of us. "Good job, Braeburn, now we just need to find the wood." I said as I felt around the ground for anything that felt wooden.
"Don't ya have that Element thing of yours? Maybe it can give us some light." Braeburn said as he helped me try to find the wood.
"It's an ancient magical artefact to use to protect Equestria, not a lantern…besides, since my battle with Zelga, my connection to it is kind of weak, I'm not strong enough to summon it from such a far distance yet." I said as I brushed my hoof against the sand. Just then, my hoof bumped into something hard, I rubbed my hoof against and felt that it was wood. "I think I've found them." I said before I grabbed the plank and held picked it up.
Braeburn came over to me and grabbed the other, he picked it up and placed it on his back. "Here, put the other one on my back, I'll carry it back." he said, turning around so his back was facing me.
I looked at him with a slightly concerned look. "You sure you can carry both? I can carry this one, if you want." I said, thinking it might not be good for his back.
Braeburn looked back at me. "Don't worry about me, I've carried heavier stuff. Now c'mon, that fire's gonna burn out by the time we get back." he said, waiting for me to put it on with the other.
"Well alright then." I said before I lifted the plank up higher and placed it on top of the other plank resting on Braeburn's back.
With that done, Braeburn and I started walking back to the camp. Braeburn walked steadily to make sure the planks didn't fall of his back. As we approached the campsite, we noticed something…weird…it was quieter than it was a moment ago. That's when we saw a strange figure walk past what was left of the fire. "What was that?" I asked, stopping where I was.
Braeburn stopped and looked over to the campsite. "Maybe it was one of the guys." He said, not seeing anything through the darkness.
"I don't know, it didn't look like any of them…it look…scrawnier." I said, trying to describe the shape of the figure I saw.
Suddenly, we notice the land was getting brighter. We looked up and saw the large amount of clouds moved across the sky and allowed the moon to shine down on it, making it a little bit brighter. "Well that's better, now we might be able to see clearly." I said before I returned my attention to the camp and noticed something shocking. "Crap." I said under my breath.
Braeburn looked at me with wonder. "What?" he asked before he looked in the direction I was looking in and saw what I did.
The three other ponies, huddled up in one spot while a strange creature circled them like predators surrounding their prey. There was two more creatures, one was pacing back and forth, and the other was lying on the ground chewing at a bone. "Where the hay is the boss? If these fellas have back up on the way, I don't wanna be here when they arrive." The pacing creature said.
Braeburn took a good look at the creatures and quietly let the wood drop off his back before he looked at me. "Coyotes." He whispered. "They must be the strange creatures we heard about…and I bet the guy they're waiting for is Sam himself."
I looked at him with a little bit of worry in my eyes. "Coyotes?...Are they dangerous?" I asked curiously, not sure if they were just as dangerous here as they are back home.
"Very." Braeburn answered. "They're cowardly, but they're vicious…and I think I know who these ones are." He said before he returned his attention to the coyotes and trapped ponies. "They're the Hound Brothers, a trio of outlaws that pick off ponies lost in the desert. They also work as hired help for other outlaws." He explained.
I looked over to them again and remembered the coyote mention something about a boss, I then returned my focus to Braeburn. "That coyote was talking about a boss coming…how much do you want to bet its Yodellin' Sam they're waiting for?" I said, having the idea that they were working for him.
Braeburn gave it some thought before he went wide-eyed. "If that's right, we could catch 'im right here and now." he said before adventurous smirk appeared on his face. "Let's do it." he said.
I nodded before I looked over to the coyotes. "Ok, we need to get rid of those guys first, otherwise they'll cause us trouble. We should try and get the jump on them…maybe we should circle around in the darkness and get them from both sides." I said, trying to come up with a plan of attack.
Braeburn nodded with agreement before he looked around and saw a large rock near the coyotes. "Ok, I'll head over there and take cover behind that rock. You circles around the camp over by our tents and hide out there. We'll wait until we're both in place and then we'll jump 'em." He said, adding the last part to the plan.
I looked over to the tents before I look at Braeburn again, giving me a small smirk. "We've got a plan." I said before I lifted my hoof up to receive a high-hoof. Braeburn looked at it with confusion before he looked at me with a raised eye-brow. "C'mon, don't leave me hanging, Braeburn." I said, shaking my hoof a little.
Braeburn looked at me hoof again before he lifted his and gave me the high-hoof I was after. "Awesome!" I said before I placed my hoof down. "Ok, let's do it." I said before I turned and start sneaking over to the tents, being careful not to let the coyotes see me. Braeburn did the same as he sneaked in the other direction to head over to the rock.
After a moment, we both got into position. I looked over the tent and saw Braeburn's head poking up from behind the rock on the other side of the camp. I carefully waved to him to let him know I was in position, I soon received a wave back before I returned my attention to the coyotes.
From here, I got a better look at the Hound Bothers. They basically all looked the same, dark yellow coats with skinny bodies and legs, but they each wore a bandana around their necks and a small bowler-hat on their heads, each with different colours. The hat and bandana of the coyote that was pacing were both black, the hat and bandana of the coyote chewing a bone were dark green, and the hat and bandana of the coyote circling the ponies were dark blue.
I continued to watch and I listened to them talk amongst each other.
"It's getting late, we can't stay out here all night." The coyote that was pacing said.
"Ya need to relax, Fleek. He'll be here soon, ya know he likes making an entrance." The coyote on the ground said before he continued to gnaw at his bone.
The coyote, now known as Fleek, stopped pacing and looked at him. "I'll relax when we get out of here, Skav, these three ponies aren't enough to be a posy, there's gotta be more out here." he said before he looked over to the other coyote. "Speakin' of which, how's our new friends, Gragg?" he asked.
The coyote in front of the rest of the posy, now known as Gragg, turned around to look over to Fleek. "They're doin' fine." He said before he returned his attention to the ponies and raised one of his paws, a sharp claw them flung out. "Though, I don't think they're a might happy about their little situation." he said as he raised it up and slowly placed the tip of his claw under Salty's chin, making him breathe steadily in slight fear while trying to keep a brave face.
Seeing this nearly made Braeburn leap out from his hiding place and attack, but he knew it would be a stupid thing to do and resisted this urge.
Skav then dropped his bone and got up. "Bones just ain't any good without some meat on 'em." He said before he turned around and looked at the ponies, which then gave him a sudden idea. "You know, we've been workin' our furry butts off for a while without a decent meal…with all the ponies we've collected, would the boss really be mad if we had at least one to ourselves?" he said before he turned his attention to Rusty. "What about that one? Nice and plump." He said as he licked his lips while drooling.
Rusty gave him an offended look. "Hey! What ya tryin' to say?" he said, looking down at his stomach to see how big it was.
Fleet rolled his eyes before he stepped in front of Skav. "They're not for eatin', the boss wants every pony we can get. The more ponies we get, the more moolah we get in our pockets, get it?" he said firmly.
"What pockets?" Skav said with a confused look.
Fleet frowned with frustrated before he took his hat off and smacked Skav on the head with it. "Just shut up, ya mutt." He said harshly.
While Skav rubbed his head in pain, Gragg came over to them. "Hey, don't be hittin' him." he said before he took his hat off and smacked Fleet over the head with it.
Fleet rubbed his head before he returned the hit with his own hat, but instead of getting one from Gragg, he got one from Skav behind him. This led to Fleet turning around and smacking him again, which led to Skav returning it. This whole thing then led into an out-of-control hat fight, like something the Three Stooges would do.
I watched this with my mouth hanging open in confusion before I looked over to Braeburn to see he was just as confused as me, maybe even a little bit more. We then returned our attention to the fighting trio.
While they continued to amusingly hit each other with their hats, Spitty looked down and saw a pickaxe lying on the ground near him. If he could get to it in time, he could use it as a weapon against the brothers. He started to slowly walk over to the pickaxe, biting his bottom lip at how intense it was.
As for me and Braeburn, we were too caught up in watching the brother beat each other with their hats to think straight, But by the time we snapped out of it and realised this was a good time to strike, Gragg stopped and noticed Spitty.
"Hey!" Gragg yelled before rushed up to the pickaxe just as Spitty was about to grab it and pinned it down with his paw. Spitty, realising he had failed, backed away as Gragg growled while baring his teeth. "What ya doin', fella?" he said, slowly following Spitty as he backed away.
Once Spitty was reunited with the Rusty and Salty, Fleet and Skav went over to them and surrounded them, growling viciously. "I wouldn't try that again, if ya know what's good for ya." Fleet warned.
"Dammit." I said to myself before I looked over to Braeburn. He looked over to me and pointed at the coyotes, showing me hoof signals to silently tell me that we should attack. I looked back over to the coyotes and saw that they all had their backs turned to us. If there was a time to attack, it was now.
I returned my attention to Braeburn and nodded. We both then started crawling out of our hiding places and slowly made our way towards the coyotes, like lion sneaking up on an antelope.
But after reaching about half-way, we suddenly heard a strange noise, it sounded like galloping. Braeburn looked around before he noticed something coming this way, whatever it was, it was leaving a large cloud of dust behind him. This was getting the attention of the coyotes, making this attack more difficult.
"Tarnation!" Braeburn said under his breath in frustration before he rushed over to me and grabbed me. This made me very shocked and confused as he dragged me over to the large rock he was hiding behind early and made me hide behind it.
Once he released me, I looked at Braeburn as he looked over the rock. "Braeburn, what the hell are you doing? That was our chance to-" I was then silence by Braeburn placing his hoof on my mouth.
"Be quit!" Braeburn whispered before he looked behind the rock again. "Looks like the boss is here, our window's closed." He said before he removed his hoof from my face.
I remained quiet as I raised my head up from behind the rock so I could look over to the coyotes. I saw a pony-shaped figure gallop up to the group before skidding to a halt, creating a small cloud of dust around them. When it finally cleared, Braeburn and I got a good luck at the pony.
He was a fat dark-brown Unicorn, her wore a black top-hat, black suit with pants, and a bandana around his neck. He had a thick black mustache with a small curl at each end of it. He grinned crookedly as his hard glowed and twisted one end of his mustache with his magic.
Once he saw him, Braeburn glared with hatred. "Yodellin' Sam." He growled in a whisper.
"Wait, that's him?" I said in slight surprise as I looked over to Sam. "Huh…I expected him to be less…well…round." I said, staring at his very noticeable gut before I looked over to his pants. "Also he has to be one of the only few ponies in Equestria who actually ware pants."
"Don't judge him for his looks, Matt, that's guy's as dangerous as a wolf in a chicken coop." Braeburn said, not taking his eyes off Sam as he approached the coyotes.
"Howdy boss!" The three coyotes greeted at the same time.
"Howdy boys." Sam responded in his rough voice before he looked over to the stallions. "Looky what ya'all caught for me. What the story here?" he asked, walking up to the stallions.
"Looks like a posy, Sam. Send here by them Appleloosa folks to look for those minors." Fleet answered before he sniffed a little. "We think there's more out here, but they keep sayin' their alone." He finished.
"Do they now?" Sam said before he returned his attention to the stallions and walked up to Rusty. "Tell me, son, are ya alone out here? Please don't lie to me now…I get a little upset when folks lie to me." he said with an intimidating tone as his horn glowed slightly.
Rusty gulped before he spoke. "W-We're alone, sir…its just us three…" he said, hoping he would catch his bluff.
Same glared at him for a moment. But then, his horn stopped glowing and pulled away. "Alright then." He said before he turned and stepped away from them. "It won't matter if you're lyin' or not. If there is anyone else out here, they'll come out." He said with a confident smirk.
Braeburn and I looked at each other, wondering how he planned to make them happen. We then returned our attention to Sam as he walked up to Fleet.
"Did ya bring the dynamite like I told ya to?" Same asked before he glared. "I swear, boy, if ya forgot the dynamite again, I'll make a fur coat out of ya…" he then paused to think on his words. "On second thought, I might just cook ya, no-one would want a fur coat that smells like ol' gym socks."
Fleet took a moment to smell his coat to check if it really did smell. Let's just say he had no comment. After that, he returned his attention to Sam. "Urr…yeah, boss, we got the dynamite." He said before he looked over to Gragg.
Gragg then brought over a small wooden box, holding it by a rope handle in his mouth. He placed it down of the ground before he opened the lid, showing Sam all the sticks of TNT inside it.
"Nice work, boys." Sam said, grinning down at the explosives before he looked back up at the coyotes. "Now get 'em in place while I get these ponies into the mine." He ordered with Fleet nodding and started getting it work.
But at that moment, Salty stepped forward. "Now hold ya horses there, Sam. If ya think we're just gonna walk into that mine willingly, ya got another thing comin'. We're not gonna be another one of ya prisoners." He said firmly, standing his ground and refusing to cooperate.
Sam turned to face him, surprised by his boldness, but he soon grew a crooked grin before he chuckled. "Haha…son…ya don't know who ya talkin' to, don't cha?" he said as he started walking over to him. "I've got a curtain method to get things movin', its very persuasive."
Salty's strong look did shiver, he kept hold of it the best he could against this outlaw. He watched as Sam turned away to face the Hound Brothers.
"Looks like we got some fighters, boys!" Sam said loudly, with the brothers chuckling darkly.
Braeburn and I watched closely at what he was doing, curious as to what plan he had up his sleeve as Sam turned back around to the three stallions. "Maybe I should show ya why they call me Yodellin' Sam." He said as he started circling the ponies.
Yodellin' Sam: "Now listen up! There are crooks in this 'ere West…who have claimed to be the best…and they think they wrote the book on how to rustle, hehe
But as good as they may be, not a one's as good as me…and I barely have to move a single muscle
They call me mean, boys, depraved and nasty too. But they ain't seen, boys, the cruellest thing I do…."
At that moment, Sam flicked his hat up as his horn glowed brightly before he continued.
Yodellin' Sam: "You see, I yodel-adle-eedle-idle-oo! The sweetest way of rustlin' yet devised
'Cause when I yodel-adle-eedle-idle-oo! Why, looky how them ponies get hypnotised!"
Upon hearing Sam yodelling, I strange power overwhelmed Rusty and the others, their eyes became wide with their pupils shrinking down to dots, their mouths hung open as they started bouncing their bodies to Sam's tune.
Fleet: "He don't prod!"
Gragg: "He don't yell!"
Skav: "Still he drives them ponies well."
All three: "Which ain't easy when your chaps are labelled XXXXL!"
Yodellin' Sam: "Yes! If you're lookin' from a bovine point of view, I sure can yodel-adle-eedle-idle, yodel-adle-eedle-idle, yodel-adle-eedle-idle-oooo!"
"Alright boys! Get that there dynamite into that mine entrance and get ready to end this with a bang!" Sam ordered with a wide smile.
Fleet nodded before he started to carry it out his order, shutting the box before grabbing the rope handle with his mouth and carrying the box over to the mine entrance.
As Sam continued to yodel, the three ponies started following him towards the mine. All the while, I couldn't help but smile with amusing awkwardness. "Is this guy for real? This is the big bad Yodellin' Sam I've been hearing about? Braeburn, this guys a pushover, how have you not caught him ye-…" I stopped when I turned around and saw Braeburn was gone.
"Braeburn?" I said in confusion as I looked around for him. But then, I found him, walking out towards Sam and the others. "Braeburn!" I said in a loud whisper before I leaped over the rock and rushed towards him. Once I reached him, I saw his eyes were the same as the others, he was under Sam's trance.
"Braeburn, snap out of it!" I said as I place my front hooves on Braeburn's chest to try and stop him, but he just kept moving, pushing me along in front of him. Once I got that it wasn't work, I got around behind me and wrapped my arms around his hind-legs to try and stop him from walking, but his legs kept moving and dragged me along. "This…is…not…working." I said each time his unstoppable yanked me.
I then released his legs before I leaped onto his back to try and way him down, but he didn't even slow down. I tried to think of anything else I could do to stop Braeburn from exposing himself and probably me to Sam. That's when I remembered Braeburn had a bunch of stuff in his saddlebags. While still on his back, I reached my hoof into his saddlebag and found what I was hoping to find, a long piece of rope.
Once I got it, I got off Braeburn and started wrapped the rope around Braeburn's legs. I made sure they were properly wrapped around them before I pulled on the rope hard, closing all four of his legs together and he fell to the ground. Once down, I quickly started tying the rope around his legs until he was hogtied, finally bringing him to a stop. "That should hold you…*pant*…man, you're strong." I said, complementing his resistance to my attempts to stop him.
While I grabbed the rope tied around Braeburn with my mouth and started dragging him back to the rock, Sam didn't notice us and continued to sing.
Yodellin' Sam: "Yes, I can yodel-adle-eedle-idle-oo!"
Hound Brothers: "A song that ponies truly take to heart."
Yodellin' Sam: "Yeah! I can yodel-adle-eedle-idle-oo! And smack my big ol' rump if that ain't art!"
Fleet: "He don't rope."
Gragg: "Not a chance."
Skav: "He just puts them in a trance."
All three: "He's a pioneer pied piper in ten-gallon underpants!"
Yodellin' Sam: "Yep! I'm a real rip-roarin' deal, yes, it's true
Thanks to my yodel-adle-eedle-idle, yodel-adle-eedle-idle, I got ponies off the ol' wazoo! Hehe."
As Sam continued and the Hound Brothers entered the mine, Sam noticed something in the distance, it looked like a group of ponies heading their way. After taking a closer look, Sam realised it was Silver Star and his deputies, desperately galloping towards the mine site to catch him before he escapes again.
But Sam was cunning, he rushed into the mine and grabbed the dynamite-plunger as he went for one last verse.
Yodellin' Sam: "'Cause I can yodel-adle-eedle-idle-oo!
Yodel-adle-eedle-idle-oo!"
With that last part, Sam pushed down on the plunger and the TNT exploded around the mine entrance. The last thing we saw of Sam was him tipping his hat as rocks crumbled and fell around the entrance, blocking it completely to prevent anyone from getting in or out.
The moment that happened, Braeburn blinked his eyes a few times before they returned to normal. "W-Wha-…huh?...What in tarnation?" he said before he looked as his tied legs. "Why am I all tied up? What happened?" he asked in utter confusion.
"You bloody tell me!" I said in a loud tone as I stepped closer to him and started untying his legs. "Sam started singing or something and you went completely…I don't know…you started going towards him. I had to stop you before he spotted you." I said as I undid the knot on the rope and freed his legs.
Braeburn continued to look at me as he got up onto his hooves. "Ya mean he did his yodellin' spell?" he said before he looked down at the ground in shame. "Huh…never thought I'd fall for it." he said.
I gave him a gentle look before I placed my hoof on his back. "Well don't worry, we'll get him next time." I said before I looked over to the mine. "We just need to find out where that mine goes." I said.
Braeburn looked over to the mine. "Yeah, there should be a map or somethin' around-…" He then stopped talking as he returned his attention to me. "Wait a sec, you saw everything that happened while Sam was singin'? You weren't under the spell?" he asked, giving me a confused look.
I then started to wonder why it didn't affect me either. It was just a theory, but it could be because I'm not completely from this world, it must only affect born and raised ponies, but I couldn't tell Braeburn that. "Urr…maybe it's because I'm connected to one of the Elements of Harmony, it must protect me from those kind of things." I said, hoping it was enough for him to go on.
Braeburn stared at me for a moment before he rubbed his chin with his hoof. "Huh…maybe…but there's still somethin' not right about it." he said.
Just then, were both heard galloping and turned around to see Silver Star and his deputies gallop up to the camp and stop once they saw the blocked mine entrance. "Dang it! Missed 'im again!" Silver Star yelled in frustration as he grabbed his hat with his hoof and threw it down on the ground.
Braeburn then stepped out from behind the rock and started making his way over to them. "Sheriff? Is that you?" he said as he walked up to them and saw that it was indeed Silver Star. "Sheriff! What are you doin' all the way out here?" he asked as I walked up beside him.
Silver Star looked over to us. "You guys are still here? I thought Sam would've taken ya." He said before he looked around the area. "Where's the other guys?" he asked curiously.
"Apparently Sam took 'em into mine." Braeburn asked before he took a step closer. "But ya didn't answer my question, what are ya doin' out here?" he asked.
"Applejack was worried about you boys, asked me if we could come out here to lend ya a hoof." Silver Star answered.
"Sheriff!" Silver Star heard this and looked over to who was calling him and saw one of his deputies standing in front of the mine, pressing his hoof against one of the rocks blocking the entrance. "These rocks ain't budgin', it'll take a while to move 'em out the way." he said as the other deputy came over and tried to help him.
"Leave it, men." Silver Star said. "Sam's long gone by now, we ain't getting to 'im through there." he said before he returned his attention to us. "Do any of ya know where that mines leads?" he asked.
"We don't know, but there has to be some blueprints around here somewhere." I said, taking a step towards him.
At that moment, Braeburn turned his head to face me and gave me a slight glare. "Ya know, we might've caught Sam and the Hound Brothers if you didn't get distracted watchin' those mutts fight each other. We should've attacked 'em then." He said in an irritated tone.
I then looked at him with an unpleased stare. "Hey! Don't pin the blame on me, you were just as distracted as I was. Besides, you weren't any help when Sam was doing his singing thing, I had to tie you up just to stop you from being caught." I argued.
"If ya hadn't come along and made things more complicated than they had to be, we would've caught the Hound Brothers first and then we would've got Sam." Braeburn said loudly.
"How did I make things complicated?" I said just as loud. "Don't tell me you're trying to blame me just because we didn't catch him." I said, thinking he was trying to cover his part on the familiar.
"I'm not!" Braeburn stated. "And ya made things hard because I had to watch over the whole time instead of focusin' on the mission. You're not used to these parts and don't know a thing about catchin' rustlers." He claimed.
"Who said you needed to watch over me? I didn't ask you to hold my hoof during this whole thing!" I said, giving him a firm glare. "Also, I've fought my own share of bad guys, in case you've already forgotten!"
"Quit it!" Silver Star said loud, stopping our argument. "Somethin' tells me you're both more interested in fightin' each other than them rustlers. If we're gonna catch 'em, we're gonna need to cut this whole thing between you two out." He said before he turned to face me. "Now Matt, I let you be part of this posy because I was told you were tough, but maybe it's time you left this to the real Western folk." He said calmly.
I gave him a slightly distort look. "Wait…are you asking me to leave? To go back to Appleloosa?" I asked, a little shocked by this.
"I'm sorry son, but Braeburn is a strong cowpoke, always a go-to guy. I'll need 'im if we're gonna finally catch Sam." Silver Star said as he placed his hoof on my shoulder. "Its nothin' personal, but Braeburn is right, ya may be too inexperienced for this type of thing. I just think it ain't safe for someone like you." he said before removing his hoof.
"B-But…you need me as well…whatever Sam dose to hypnotise ponies doesn't work on me, I can be valuable to catching him." I said, trying to convince him I was useful to the posy. "Without me, how are you going to get near Sam without being caught in his singing?" I asked.
"We already got that planned." Silver Star said. "We brought some ear-plugs with us. With those on, we won't hear a thing, Sam's singing will be useless for 'im." He stated.
I turned to face Braeburn before I looked at Silver Star again. "So that's it?...Have me come all the way out here and then send me back for nothing? It's not my fault we lost Sam. If I wasn't here, Braeburn would've been taken as well." I said.
"And I thank you for that, but you've done all ya can." Silver Star said before he took a step forward. "I know you're strong and I know you've done this type of thing before, but that's why I want ya back in town, I need you to help Applejack protect it. Usually, me and my deputies protect it, but now we're out here and left the town with one pony. Applejack's tough and I trust her, but two ponies protecting the town is better than one." He said, explaining his decision. "I need your skills back in Appleloosa, the rest of us can the take it from here."
I gave this some thought and knew there was point in arguing with him, not unless I wanted to be hogtied and carried back to town. I slowly nodded in acceptance.
"Good." Silver Star said before he pointed out at the horizon. "Town is that way, just follow our hoof prints and they'll lead you right there." he said.
"Sheriff." One of the deputies said as he came over to him with a blue scroll in his hoof. "I found the blueprints to the mine over near the entrance, it says the only other way out of the mine is near Rattlesnake Rock." He said, holding the blueprints out to Silver Star.
Silver Star turned to face him before he sat down to grab the blueprints with both front-hooves. "Why would the mine exit there? There's nothin' on that side of the valley." He said, unravelling the blueprints to verify them.
"I'm not sure, Sheriff, maybe it was just an emergency exit or somethin'." The deputy said.
Silver Star then gave the blueprints back before he stood up. "Well at least we know where we're headin'." He said before he looked at the deputy. "Get the other guy and bring 'im here, we're settin' off for Rattlesnake Rock." He then looked over to me. "Matt, you start headin' back to town, the rest of us have some rustlers to catch."
One the deputies returned, they all nodded to each other before they turned and galloped away. As they did, Braeburn looked back at me, unsure if he was pleased or concerned that I was being left behind. I watched them go until they were out of site.
My ears dropped before I sighed heavily. "Nice work, Matt, you're a real Western legend." I said before I kicked the sand in frustration. I just stood there for a moment, feeling weak and helpless. I know I wasn't too big on the whole hero thing, but being treated like a weak citizen who has bit off more than he can chew? Not a big fan of that.
But Silver Star was right, he and his team were more experienced with western crooks than I was. I'm used to major bad guys that seek to control the world, but maybe western bad guys were a different story. They all seemed to have everything planned and knew what they were doing, maybe I would've just got in the way, I didn't really do a good job catching Sam just now.
I sighed once last time before I accepted my defeat and started walking away from the camp. I looked down at the sand and saw the hoof-prints Silver Star mentioned. I then started following them into the horizon to head back to Appleloosa, where I'm apparently really needed.
That morning: Desert
I walked through the desert for what seemed like forever. The sun had risen again and was already making the land hot. My throat was dry and my mane was started to get soaked in sweat, I wiped my forehead as I kept moving. My eyes always looked out to the horizon before I looked back down at the hoof-prints. "I don't…remember it…taking this long…on the way here." I said, trying to keep up my strength.
As I kept walking, I suddenly felt a small breeze blow against me, I smiled a little at this. "Finally, something to cool me down." I said. For a moment, I enjoyed the cool air, until I noticed what it was doing.
My eyes shot open as I saw the wind blow against the sand, making the hoof-prints disappear. "No! No, no, no, no!" I said loudly as I started galloping along the trail of hoof-prints, trying to stick to the path. But it wasn't long before the whole trail was blow away.
As the wind blew a little harder, I could feel that it was blowing sand against me, I quickly covered my eyes with my arm, my wing too for good messier. I stayed like this until the wind died down. Once it did, I opened my eyes to see the entire trail had gone. "Alright…the trails gone…no problem though, I'll just keep walking forward, that's where the trail led." I said, trying not to panic.
I then started walking forward, trying to pick up the trail the best I could. All the while, I was trying to keep a calm head to prevent me from panicking.
-An hour later-
As the day went on, the sky got hotter, I was covered in dust and I was gagging for a drink of anything, I'd suck on a cactus for its juice if I had to…if there were any cacti nearby that is. I kept looking around for something to help me, a well, a rock for shade, anything, but I just saw miles of sand wherever I looked.
At this point, I felt like Nathen Drake in Uncharted 3 where he had to walk through an empty desert, I always thought it must've hell for him to walk through that desert for miles, well now I know…it definitely was. But I doubt I'd find an old abandoned town here.
I kept walking more and more, my hooves sinking into the sand with each step. Every time I approached the edge of a small sand dune, I always kept trying to go down it easily, but always fell down it due to my weakness, making me dustier.
Just then, I saw something up ahead, it looked like a dead tree. It wasn't very thick, so it didn't give off a lot of shade, but it was good enough for now. I used what strength I had to rush up to it and sit in the shade. I took deep breathes and wiped the sweat off my head again. "Damn…" I said before I looked up at the tree. "Wait…this tree…I didn't pass it on the way to the mine!" I said before I looked out at the desert. "I've been going the wrong way, haven't I?" I asked myself before I groaned loudly in frustration.
I stayed there until I felt cool enough to try and keep going, I got up and started to walk out to the desert, already feeling the warm sun against my body.
-A while later-
Once again, I was completely dried up and ready for another cool down, but was too far from the tree to head back, not that I wanted to. I began to see heat-waves along the sand in the distance as I kept move.
I flew up to the sky and looked around the land, but I couldn't see any towns, just miles of sand. I would try to keep flying, but believe it or not, flying was more difficult than walking in this heat. If anything, it made it feel hotter.
I floated back down to the ground before I kept walking.
As I approached the edge of another sand dune, I saw something down below, it looked like a small lake with sparkling water. I smiled at this and laughed a little in joy. "Oh thank god!" I said before I quickly leaped off the dune and landed at the bottom. I then galloped as quickly as I could towards the lake, desperate to bathe in it and drink the refreshing water.
But, as I got closer, I could see parts of it disappearing until it was completely gone. I began to slow down until I was standing where the lake was, but saw only sand. "Oh...shit…it was a mirage…what a dick move, not fair." I said.
I took a few more deep breaths, trying to keep myself from breaking down, which was getting harder and harder with each step. I then started to keep walking, hoping the next thing I see was real.
-Another hour later-
My mane and tail dripped with sweat as it became harder to take each step. It was so hot, I was so dehydrated, it was becoming unbearable. It wouldn't be long until I'd get too hot that I'd pass out.
As I walked up a sand dune, I saw tall rise from behind it. Once I reached the top, I saw that it was another dead tree, it looked exactly like the last one. I walked over to it and took a closer look, that's when I realised it didn't just look like the last one…it was the last one.
I then dropped to the ground as my mind became blank. "You…have got to be joking…I've been going in circles?!" I yelled before I rolled over onto my back and rested in the shade. "I'm…never getting out of this." I said before my eyes began to close and I soon passed out, my world becoming black.
That night
I was still unconscious in front of the tree, a few buzzards looking down at me from the branches patiently. Luckily, they could tell I was still alive, but they could wait.
But suddenly, out of the sky, a figure in a hood and cloak hovered down. Its large feathered wings spread out before they tucked themselves under its cloak. The figure walked up to me before it looked up at the buzzards. "Sorry guys, this one's coming with me." the figure said with a female voice.
With that, the buzzards spread their wings and took off into the night sky, leaving us alone.
After that, the figure looked down at me before she lied down beside me, she scooped me up in her hooves before she rested me against the tree. She gently placed her hoof on my cheek. "Matthew…Matthew, you need to wake up." she said, tapping my cheek gently, getting only a groan from me.
The figure then took out a water flask from under her cloak and opened the cap, she held the flash against my mouth before tilting it up, making the fresh water inside pure into my mouth.
Once I felt that water against my tongue and throat, I swallowed it before my eyes slowly opened, that's when I saw the figure in front of me. "T-Twi?..." I asked weakly.
"No." she said in a voice that sounded…familiar. "But I'm a friend." She finished.
I looked at what I could and saw that she was the same size as Cadence or Luna, that's all I could make out. "W-Who are you?" I asked, wondering who this hooded pony was.
The figure then lowered her head. "Me…I'm no-one…for now, just call me The Shadow. I'm going to take you to safety." she said before she moved closer to me before she stuck one of her wings out and started to gently fan me with it.
As I felt the cool air against me, I weakly looked at her. "W-Why are you helping me?" I asked as I tried to lean up away from the tree.
The figure placed her hooves on my back and chest as she helped me up onto my hooves. "Because…you helped me once…" she said before I was back up onto my hooves, weakly struggling to keep myself up. "Matt…you have a great battle in your future." She said, her voice becoming serious.
I turned my head to face her as I continued to listen.
"The True Order…they're watching you, they know what you're capable of and they think of you as a threat to their plan. Thorn underestimated you, Zelga was…smarter than him, but was too over confident. But now they know your strengths and weaknesses, the next member you'll face will use everything he has against you, against all of you." Shadow said.
"Who is he? Does he have a name?" I asked, wondering how much she was willing to reveal.
"Yes…his name is Rage. And trust me, the name isn't just for show, his anger towards you is strong…which makes him very dangerous…when you face him, you can't give in to his hatred, especially with the dark magic inside your body." Shadow answered.
My curious look then became a disturbed one. "How did you know about that?" I asked, feeling like I was being spied on.
"A good question…for another time." Shadow said before she spread her wings out and flew over me. She lowered herself on top of me before I felt her legs wrap around my body.
I didn't know what she was doing until I felt her start to lift up off the ground, I tucked in all my legs as she lifted me higher. It wasn't long until she started flying across the desert with me in her grasp.
As we continued to move through the air, I looked up at Shadow and wondered who she was. How did she know so much about me? Why did she tell me all that stuff about the True Order? And most importantly right now, where was she taking me?
After a few minutes of flying, Shadow began to descend until we were approaching the ground. Once we were down, she released me and laid me down on the sandy ground. After landing, Shadow looked down at me. "Don't worry, some friends are coming to help you…but this is where I leave you for now…but remember, I'm always going to be watching over you during this dark time." She said.
I looked up at her again. "I know your name isn't Shadow…really, who are you?" I asked, wanting to know who she truly was.
"Like I told you, I'm no-one, just someone who was lost, but now I'm back…thanks to you." Shadow said before she leaned down to me. Then, to my utter surprise, she gave me a small quick kiss on the lips. "Don't worry, I know you're married and I won't interfere with your relationship, that was just to say thank you for everything." She said.
Left speechless, Shadow stood up before she backed away, she spread her wings out and started flapping them, lifted up into the air and flying up into the night sky.
As I watched her fly up and disappear into the moonlight shining right down onto me, silhouetted figures gathered around me, looking down at me. They all looked large and each had two feathers sticking out of their heads. A small one walked up to me. "I don't think I've seen this one before, he must be new in Appleloosa." She said.
Then, a larger one walked up beside her, this one having more feathers on his head than the others. "Yes, he looks like he needs aid…take him back to the village, we will take care of him there." he said in a deep voice.
After hearing that, I figured I was finally in good hooved, I closed my eyes and let myself pass out again to let these figures take care of me from here. As I began to slip into unconsciousness, I knew this wasn't over, not the business with the rustlers, not the business with the True Order, none of it.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter
The song I used in this chapter is called "Yodel-adle-eedle-idle-oo" from the Disney movie "Home on the Range". I don't own anything.
I know what you're thinking, why is Braeburn such an ass in this? Well I wanted some conflict between him and me to show that not every main character likes me. But will we sort things out? You'll have to find out next time.
Just a reminder, I'm heading to BronyCon in Baltimore in August. But I'll only be there on the second day. If any of you are heading there as well, let me know.
Second reminder, after the next chapter, the chapter after that will feature the Discord version of the Gaston Song I mentioned in the last chapter. I wrote it myself and I really hope you'll enjoy it.
Pony News:
Not much to say other than a new trailer for the MLP Movie might be coming next week, keep your ears and eyes open. If you have Twitter, keep checking up on Equestria Daily.
Equestria Girls Dance Magic is set to air on Discovery Family this Saturday, which is today…or tomorrow in your case. As you know, there are two more specials after this one, but to those who aren't aware, they feature Rainbow Dash on a Daring Do movie set trying to find a missing prop, and the last will feature Sunset Shimmer returning to Equestria and Starlight Glimmer going to the Human world. That one is the one I'm looking forward to.
And in case any of you aren't aware, yes, there will be a Season 8 to the show.
End of Pony News:
Please remember to review or PM
The next chapter will be up as soon as possible.
72. Ponies go West – Part 2
Hi everypony, welcome back for another chapter.
I'm glad the last chapter got some attention, but I was a little disappointed by the lack of reviews. Please try to review as much as possible, even if you don't have an account.
As for Shadow, I'm sorry to say you won't find out who she is for some time, I was actually saving the reveal for the highly possible sequel. But if you want it early, just wait until the end of this chapter before making a decision.
The lyrics in the song I used in this chapter have me slightly changed to makes sense with the story.
Anyway, here the next part, please enjoy.
Chapter 72: Ponies go West – Part 2
Buffalo village
Will still in an unconscious state, I soon began to see a light shine through my eye-lids. The smell of smoke and a strong warmth in the breeze overwhelmed my body. All of this was enough to make me start to slowly wake up.
My eyes opened slightly to the sight of a starry sky above me. I slowly turned my head to look over to where the warmth was coming from and saw a small camp-fire, making the area around it light u a little. As my vision became clearer, I saw large tent-like huts around the area, they kind of looked like…Indian tents.
Becoming curious as to where I was, I placed my front-hooves on the ground and groaned as I leaned up, feeling a slightly painful throbbing in my head. Once I was up, I looked down to see I was lying on some kind of blanket. It was red with brown patterns on it, bit of a distasteful piece, but it was comfy.
Suddenly, I felt a hoof on my shoulder and I froze in place. "Whow!...Take it easy, pal…you were in a pretty bad mess back there." a female voice said in a gentle tone.
The voice sounded a little familiar, so I slowly turned around and saw a familiar face to go with it. At the first sight of that little face with that short curly orange hair with two feathers sticking out, I knew exactly who it was. "Little Strongheart?" I asked with slight surprise.
Strongheart returned my surprised look, but for a different reason. "You know me? Have we met before?" she asked with a slightly confused face.
"Damn, did it again." I thought before I slowly stood up and turned around to face her properly. "Urr…no…Applejack told me about you…you're just as she described." I said, hoping she'd believe my lie.
Strongheart then rubbed her hoof with her chin. "Applejack?" she said before she looked at me again. "That's Braeburn's cousin, right?" she asked with a small smile.
I nodded. "Yeah, she brought me here on a trip to Appleloosa, but some things got out of hoof and I ended up going out into the desert with a posy." I explained as I took my time to look around the village, seeing all the other buffalo Indians wondering around.
"Really?" Strongheart said as she took a step closer. "Well what happened to the posy? How'd you get lost in the desert?" she asked curiously.
I turned my head back around to face her before I answered. "Oh…the Sheriff of Appleloosa showed up and decided to take things from there, he said he wanted me to go back to town and help protect it…let's just say I got a little lost." I said while giving her a sheepish smile.
"A little lost?" Strongheart repeated. "Apparently you were out there for a whole day with no food or water, you're lucky you didn't get sun-stroke or something." she said before a light smile appeared on her face again. "I'd say if it weren't for Shadow, the buzzards would be getting a decent meal right now." she said.
Not a very pleasant image, but I decided to forget that and focus on what she said before about Shadow. I instantly remembered her, even though there wasn't much to remember. The strange mare in a black cloak, she had such knowledge on me and the True Order, she even said that I saved her from something and kissed me for it. I took a step towards Strongheart. "You know her?" I asked, looking as though I was eager for answered.
A little uncomfortable by this, Strongheart gave me a disturbed look as she took a small step back. "I…don't know her that well. All I know is that she came here the other day, saying she was waiting for something. Then she just took off last night and came back with you." she explained.
I took this all into thought and found it very suspicious, it sounded as if she was waiting for me, like she knew I'd get lost out there. "H-How long was she here when she arrived?" I asked curiously.
Strongheart thought hard about it to try and remember. "Urr…about…two days ago…not yesterday, not the day before, she arrived on the day before that one." She said, doing her best to explain it to me.
Hearing that shocked me a little, it was exactly what I was suspecting, she arrived in this land around the same time I did. By the sounds of it, I'd say this Shadow chick was following me. "Has…she been back since last night?" I asked, wondering where Shadow may be now.
Strongheart shook her head. "No, sorry…I haven't seen her since she brought you here." she said before she walked over to me. "Is she someone special to you?" she asked.
With that asked, my eyes widened before my cheeks burned a little. "Urr…no…no, she's not, I just met her last night." I said, calming down a bit. "Besides, I'm married…I think Shadow is just a friend." I said, explaining that whatever was between me and Shadow was professional.
"Oh." Strongheart responded before she gave me another smile. "Well if you need directions back to Appleloosa, I'll be happy to show you the way in the morning. I'd take you now, but its too dangerous out there at night." she then turned around to face the tents. "You're welcome to stay here for the night though."
I then walked up beside Strongheart. "Ok." I said before I friendly panted her back with my hoof. "Thanks for helping me, by the way." I said while giving her a warm smile.
"Anytime, we wouldn't just leave someone out in the desert like that. We may be tough, but we're not barbarians." Strongheart said before she turned and started walking towards one of the camp fire. She then looked back at me with the gentle smile still on her face. "Do you want a blanket or something? It's cold tonight." she asked.
Once I heard that and thought of the feeling of being warm or hot in any way, I immediately became a little frightened. "No!...I mean, no thanks, I think I've been warmed up enough." I said, remembering back to my unimaginably hot journey in the desert.
Strongheart was a little shaken by my first response, but she soon shook it off. "Oh…ok…well, I guess the fire will keep you warm enough anyway." She said before she turned back around and continued walking towards the camp.
I stood where I was for a second before I decided to follow. I wasn't going anywhere right now, so I might as well make the best of my stay here until morning. I caught up with Strongheart and we both made our way to the camp fire to join with the other buffalo.
-Half-an-hour later-
I was now sat beside the camp fire beside Strongheart, she had already introduced me to Chef Thunderhooves, leader of the buffalo tribe. He sat on the other side of the camp, entertaining the other buffalo with a tale of how he and his father faced a creature called the Sand Serpent.
The buffalo seemed a little head-strong, but friendly in their own way. They gave me a bowl of…I'm not sure what. It was grey, sloppy, and I think there's a twig in it. I remembered it from the show, if my memory serves well, Pinkie loved this stuff. All I can say is the buffalo were lucky I was starving. I held the bowl in my front-hooves, lifting it up to my mouth so I could take small bites of the slop inside. To be honest, it didn't taste half bad…for something I think may have come from the ground.
"The serpent's mouth, full of razor sharp fangs, opened wide as it dove down to us. We barely had time to leap out of the way before its mighty head struck the ground. Father and I watched as it burrowed into the sand and prepared for a second strike, this time, coming from below." Thunderhooves told with detail in his deep voice, with the buffalo around his listening closely.
Strongheart and I stared at the Chef as I chewed the slop in my mouth. "So…how many times has he told this story?..." I said through my teeth as I kept chewing, not wanting to open my mouth while there was food still in there.
Strongheart was silent for a moment as she kept her eyes on the Chef. "…Counting this time…fifty five…exactly." She answered.
I then smirked a little as I kept watching the Chef. "And…I take this this is the only exciting story he tells about him and his dad." I asked, knowing what the answer may be already.
"Well besides for the tale of the war with the Coyote Gang, yeah, pretty much…." Strongheart answered before she turned her head to face me. "Unless you include the war with the people of Appleloosa, which doesn't include his dad and we all already know it because…well…we were all there when it happened, so…" she said as she returned her attention to the Chef as he continued to tell his tale.
I turned my head to face her, intrigued by what she said about this Coyote Gang. "The Coyote Gang?...Who are they?" I asked curiously.
Strongheart looked at me again and gave me a small smile. "You mean 'who were they?', they were nothing much, just a large gang of outlaw coyotes. They came to us to offer their protection against any threats to the land, but they wanted payment for it. The Chef's dad, seeing right through their scheme, refused…starting a war between the buffalo and the coyotes. They tended to hit hard, like raid our village with fire and attack our stampedes." She said before she grinned. "But we hit harder. We stampeded through their camps, ruined their heists on banks and other towns, the Chef's dad even did something to the coyote leader's favourite drinking cup." She said before she snickered.
A small amused smile grew on my face as I wondered what he did, I swallowed the food in my mouth before I spoke. "What did he do?" I asked. Strongheart leaned in and whispered the answer in my ear, my cheeks then inflated as I tried to hold back from laughing. I looked at Strongheart's amused face as she pulled away. "He did not…ahh! Hahaha! That's disgusting!" I laughed, thinking how the coyote leader must've reacted.
"I know, right! Haha!" Strongheart laughed as she wiped a tear away before she calmed down. "Anyway, after a while, the coyotes gave up. They figured we were too strong for them to overpower and their gang broke apart. There aren't many coyotes around here anymore." She said, sounding sure that the coyotes were gone.
I smiled as I gave her an amused huff. "Well I think there are still a few coyotes still around." I said before I brought the bowl back up to my face and took a bite out of the slop.
Strongheart raised her eye-brow. "Oh?...What makes you say that?" she asked curiously.
I chewed the slop in my mouth before I swallowed. "I saw three coyotes the other day called the Hound Brothers, they were working with an outlaw called Yodellin' Sam." I answered. "Seemed kinda dim, to be honest." I added.
Strongheart's eyes widened as she gasped a little. "Yodellin' Sam? You saw him?!" she asked in slight shock.
I gave her a shaken look. "Urr, yeah…I was in a posy to try and find him." I said before I decided to explain what happened the other day. "See this is what happened, this guy named Moneybaggs went out to make a mine in the mountains far from town, but Sam and those coyotes attacked them and took the workers. We went out to find them, but Sam jumped us in our camp and took most of the posy. The Sheriff of Appleloosa showed up and he decided to take the posy from there, he asked me to go back to town to help protect it in case Sam attacked while he was gone…that's how I got lost in the desert." I explained as my ears lowered a little. "I just hope Braeburn and the others are ok." I said, thinking about the dangerous task they took on.
Strongheart nearly jumped up in place, but was able to keep herself down and prevent making a scene. "Braeburn?!...H-He went after Yodellin' Sam?! What's he thinking?! He's gonna get himself into trouble!" she said in a slightly loud voice, trying to keep it down so the other buffalo wouldn't notice.
I raised my hoof a little. "Whow, calm down. Braeburn's a strong pony…sure, he's a little…out there…but I think with the Sheriff and his deputies, he'll handle Sam and his goons just fine." I said, not sure if I was a-hundred present sure about that myself.
Strongheart stood up and she continued to look at me. "No, you don't understand, Yodellin' Sam does things like this all the time. He'll take some ponies and then wait until they send more ponies after them, then they'll take them too! Braeburn and the Sheriff are probably walking right into a trap!" she said, gaining some attention from other buffalo.
I was a little more shaken by her sudden panicking behaviour, but I could understand it, this Sam guy did seem like a real rotten apple. "How do you even know Yodellin' Sam anyway? Has he taken any of your buffalo?" I asked curiously.
"He has certainly tried." A deep voice said. I looked and saw Thunderhooves walk up beside Strongheart. "I'm not sure what kind of magical charm he has with his singing, but it does not affect buffalo, we have been trained to resist such spells. But we know he has been kidnapping ponies and taking them to his hideout. We once offered our aid in capturing him to the Sheriff, but he addressed it as a 'pony error', something they had to handle themselves." he explained.
After hearing this, I gave it some thought and understood what the Sheriff meant. Yodellin' Sam was a pony threatening ponies, its only right that another pony should take care of him. But then again, maybe it was just the Appleloosans being stubborn, probably wouldn't be the first time.
"We respected the Sheriff's wishes, but we refused to stand by and watch ponies get kidnapped." Thunderhooves said before he looked out into the desert. "We've seen Sam attack many ponies…in camps, convoys, even mines. We did everything we could to slow them down and stop him from succeeding in his attempts, but he's proven to be…slippery." He said.
I looked at him with a curious face. "Wait…you mean you've watching Sam? Like what he does and where he goes?" I asked, hoping this would lead to where I hope it led.
Thunderhooves returned his attention to me and nodded. "Yes, I wish I could say it was a pleasant watching. He's done so much despicable things. One time, we even saw him kick an armadillo because he was bored. I mean…who does that?!" he asked, looking a little enraged by the very thought of that.
Watching him breathe deep through his nose, I moved back a little in case he was going to explode in anger. "Ok…well…by any chance, have you seen where Sam's hideout might be? I mean, he's got to be taking these ponies somewhere." I said, wondering if they had a location.
Thunderhooves kept his angry look as he kept grunting, like he was too focused on his thoughts than what I was saying. But with one touch of Strongheart's hoof against his cheek, he snapped out of it. "We haven't watched him that much, but we know his hideout is somewhere near Rattlesnake Rock." Strongheart said, answering the question for Thunderhooves.
Upon hearing that, I remembered the name clearly. "Rattlesnake Rock? That's where Braeburn and the others were going." I said before a troubling thought came into mind. "If they're heading there, they may be walking right into their den, they'll get caught!" I said as I placed the bowl down on the ground.
Strongheart then took a step towards me. "Are you sure?" she asked with a slightly worried look.
I nodded. "Yeah, Sam escaped through a mine that led right to Rattlesnake Rock. Braeburn and Silver Star said they were going around the valley to get to the Rock." I said before I took a step closer. "But if what you said was right, Sam has his hideout set up there, Braeburn and the others will walk right up to their door." I said, beginning to worry about them.
Strongheart turned around to face Thunderhooves. "Chef, we can't just let them walk into the trap, we have to help them." she said, giving him a concerned look.
Thunderhooves saw this look and nodded. "Agreed." He said before he looked at me again. "Matthew, was it? I will allow Little Strongheart here to accompany you to Rattlesnake Rock to find your friends." He said before he looked out at the desert again. "But I'm afraid it'll have to wait until morning, its too dangerous out there right now." he said.
"But Braeburn and the others might get caught by then, we can't just wait." I said as I stood up onto my hooves.
Thunderhooves returned his attention to me. "I'm sorry, but there are worse things out there than rustlers, especially at night. If you're smart, you'll heed my warning." He said before he turned around and started walking away towards the largest of the tents, which was most likely his.
My ears dropped a little as I sat back down. Strongheart walked up beside me and placed her hoof on my shoulder. "Hey, like you said, Braeburn's tough, I'm sure he can handle himself for one night….but if it makes you feel any better, I'm worried about him too." She said with a gentle smile.
I looked at her a smirked a little. "Oh that's right, I nearly forgot…you probably have a thing for the guy." I said, knowing how she might react to that.
And I was right, Strongheart's face turned red and she gave me a shocked look. "What?!...I…I do not! Why would you say that? I mean, c'mon…haha…what he and I have is nothing before a good friendly bond." she said, laughing nervously while acting innocent.
My smirk grew larger before I chuckled. "Haha, yeah, I bet." I said before I looked back down at the bowl of slop. "By the way, what is that stuff?" I asked curiously, not sure if I wanted to know the answer or not.
Strongheart looked down at the bowl. "I would tell you, but you've already eaten some and you may not like the answer." She answered.
"Fair enough." I responded. I stood there for a moment in silence before I sighed hard. "Seriously, you're lucky I'm still starving." I said before I grabbed the bowl with my hooves and started eating the stuff again.
Strongheart gave me a pleased smile as she watched me eat, but she couldn't take her mind off Braeburn, she could only hope he would survive until morning.
The next day: Moneybaggs' mine
As soon as the sun rose up, Strongheart and I set out on our quest to find Braeburn and the rest of the posy. Before we left, Thunderhooves was kind enough to lend me a saddlebag with supplies inside, like food and water.
It took a while of rushing through the desert, but we finally made it to Moneybaggs' mine. I figured it was the best place to pick up the posy's trail. Because even though we knew where they were going, we didn't know which way they went to get there, Yodellin' Sam could've jumped them before they even reached Rattlesnake Rock for all we know.
Strongheart and I searched the camp and had trouble finding the tracks. In the daylight, we were able to see all the hoof and paw prints that were left here after the other night's events, at least the ones that were left visible, the strong wind last night covered most of them with more sand, including the tracks the posy left behind when they started heading to Rattlesnake Rock, it was almost impossible to pick up their trail.
I carefully examined the sand, trying to find any trace of the tracks. "*Groan* this is gonna take forever! How are we gonna find their trail in this mess?" I asked before I turned around to look over to Strongheart who was searching the ground like I was. "Can't you just, I dunno, do some kind of mystical tracking ritual or something? Isn't that what you guys tend to be good at?" I asked as I walked over to her.
Strongheart stood up as she turned her head to face me with a confused raised eye-brow. "What kind of buffalo do you think I am? We may live off the land, but we don't read it or stuff like that." She said as she walked past me and went over to the mine entrance.
My head turned slowly as I watched her. "It mustn't be easy…living off the land like you guys do. Every day must be a struggle for survival, then there's the creatures that come out after dark." I said before I started following her towards the mine.
Strongheart reached the mine entrance and placed her right front-hoof on one of the boulders that blocked the way in. "I know it seems difficult to a…how do I put this nicely…civil-living pony like you, but it's actually not that bad." She said before she turned her head around to look at me. "I've been living like this for as long as I can remember, same with the Chef and the other buffalo. We've all grown accustomed to it…I honestly can't think of any other way I could live." she said as she went back to feeling the boulder.
In a way, I could understand what she meant. She was born into that life, so she learned how to live in it. And based on what I've seen of her skills so far, both in the show and right now, she was impressively good at it. "Well you do make the whole 'Indian look' work." I said with a small smirk before I looked at what she was doing. "On to something?" I asked.
Strongheart looked closely at the boulder as she continued to feel it with her hoof. "Not sure…how did these boulders get here? Where they here when you guys came the other night?" she asked as she turned her head to face me.
I looked at her and shook my head. "No, Yodellin' Sam blew this entrance to make his escape. This is way Braeburn and the others had to go around. This mine would probably lead us right to Rattlesnake Rock, but there's no way to get these boulders out the way." I said before I turned around and looked down at what was left of the tracks. "Guess we'll just have to wing it and decide which was they might've gone, hopefully we'll chose right and-"
*CRASH!*
After hearing a loud crash, I spun around to see Strongheart bucking the boulders with her hind-legs, she gave them another strong buck before the boulders broke loose, crumbling away from the entrance until it was open again. Strongheart placed her hind-legs back on the ground and gave me a cheeky smirk.
I was left wide-eyed with my mouth hanging open. "Or…you know…you could just do that." I said before I took a step forward and looked down the mine. "Remind me never to get on your bad side." I said, looking down into the darkness.
"Noted." Strongheart said before she stepped over whatever was left of the boulders and entered the mine. "Come one, we don't have time to waste." She said as she started walking down the mine.
As I started stepping over the boulders to enter the mine, Strongheart grabbed a lantern hanging on the wall within the mine and turned to face me. "You got a light? The Chef might've given you some matches." She said while holding the lantern in one hoof.
Once I was inside the mine properly, I turned my head around to look down at my saddlebag and opened it with my hoof, I felt around inside it until I found a small box of matches. "Huh…wonder how the Chef got his hooves on these." I asked as I tried to finger out how to use them with hooves.
"Just because we live off the land doesn't mean we won't get things we really need from the Appleloosa General Store." Strongheart said as she watched me struggle to use the matches.
Eventually, I finally got the box open and grabbed one of the matches with my mouth, I held the box in my hoof as I struck the end of the match against the rough side, lighting it on fire. Strongheart opened the lantern and I lit it up. Once it was lit, I shook my head to put the match out before I spat it out.
"Ok, we're all set." Strongheart said before she grabbed the handle of the lantern in her mouth and turned away from me. "C'mon." she muffled as she started walking down the mine.
I started following her deeper and deeper into the mine, beginning our search for the back exit that would take us straight to Rattlesnake Rock. We just hoped we weren't too late.
Meanwhile: Appleloosa/Sheriff's office
Applejack paced back and forth in Silver Star's office, worried by how long we've all been gone. She was left in charge of this whole town and didn't have a clue what to do. Sure, she played the leader before, but to actually be a stand-in Sheriff of a whole town, she could only hold on to her nervousness for so long.
"Where the hay are they?" Applejack asked herself as she kept pacing around the office. "Someone should've gotten back by now…what if somethin' happened to them?" she asked herself as she began to panic.
"And I thought Twilight was the stressful one." A voice said. Applejack spun around and saw Discord, sitting on a rocking-chair with a straw-hat and playing a banjo. "It must run in the group." He said while chewing on the end of a piece of wheat.
Applejack walked over to him and gave him a firm look. "Well excuse me if I'm a little worried about my friends." She said before his swung her hoof up and knocked his hat off. "How 'bout ya make yourself useful and use your magic to find out where they all are?" she asked.
"Oh Applejack, dear, you know I would love to." Discord said as he released the banjo, letting it hover in the air and begin playing itself. "But I'm afraid I'm under strict instruction not to use any such magic in Matthew's absence. Princess's orders, after all." He said with a grin.
Applejack shook her head in response. "Ya say that as if ya don't care. I'm startin' to wonder if you're really on our side at all." She said before she resumed her pacing.
Discord gave her a displeased look before snapped his fingers, making all the things around him disappear. "Of course I care, otherwise I wouldn't be following these silly orders by the Princess." He said before he hovered over to her. "But if it makes you feel any better, I'm worried about them too." He said, giving her a humble face.
Applejack looked up at him with a raised eye-brow. "Are ya saying that because Matt's your friend…or because you'll get blamed if anythin' happens to 'im?" she asked.
Discord was silent for a moment before he raised his hands a little. "Can it not be a bit of both?" he asked with a sheepish smile.
Applejack tried to keep a straight face, but couldn't hold back a slightly amused smile. But this was cut short by the sound of knocking on the door. "Hello? Miss Applejack?" a familiar voice said on the other side of the front door.
Applejack walked over to the door and grabbed the knob with her hoof, she opened it to see Moneybaggs standing on the porch. "Sorry, was I interruptin' somethin'?" he asked, feeling as though he came at a bad time.
Applejack smiled gently. "No, not at all, Mr Moneybaggs. What brings ya here?" she asked curiously as she took a step towards him.
Moneybaggs then removed his hat and held it against his chest. "I would like to give you my humblest apologies. I should've taken better precaution before settin' out to dig that there mine. Maybe if I did, we would've seen them rustlers comin' and we would've chased them off. Then maybe no one would be out there tryin' to find 'em, including your boyfriend." he said.
Applejack was a little confused by this until she realised that he might've been talking about me. "W-What? Ya mean Matt?!" she said as he cheeks burned red. "O-Oh no! Matt's not my boyfriend! He's just a good friend of mine." She said, slightly embarrassed by this.
Moneybaggs gave Applejack a curious look. "Oh?...Ya just seemed real close to 'im as all. I couldn't help but figure that maybe…"
"Sorry." Applejack said with an embarrassed smile. "But Matt's spoken for. His wife, Twilight, is back in Ponyville. I'm just a friend who brought 'im along for the trip." She said defensively.
"Oh, I see." Moneybaggs said as he placed his hat back on his head. "Anyway, I just wanted to make sure you were ok." He said as he walked past Applejack and entered the office. "It must be quite the challenge, takin' care of this whole town by yourself." He said while looking around the room.
Applejack closed the door and walked up to Moneybaggs. "Well I'm not really by myself, I got Discord." She said as she turned her head to look over to Discord who was now sitting on the Sheriff's chair.
Moneybaggs looked over to him as well and got a simple wave from him, Moneybaggs smiled nervously and waved back. "Yeah, I see." He said before he returned his attention to Applejack. "Well if ya need anythin', just give me a holler and I'll come quicker than a chicken eatin' through a cornfield." He said.
Applejack tipped her hat with a grateful smile. "Thanks Moneybaggs, I appreciate the support." She said.
Suddenly, there was a scream outside. The three were surprised by this and quickly rushed over to the window. From there, they saw the citizens of Appleloosa running in terror from something. Applejack wasted no time in rushing to the front door and quickly going outside. Moneybaggs followed behind while Discord teleported out. Once outside, they all looked to where the ponies were running from.
That's when they saw the Hound Brothers attacking the town. Fleet was snapping his jaws at ponies, Skav was smashing through windows and chasing more ponies out of the buildings, and Griggs was knocking over stalls and laughing about it.
Applejack gasped at the chaos at this. "Coyotes? What are they doin' here?" she asked in shock.
"I dunno. But they're wrecking' the town, we have to stop 'em." Moneybaggs said, watching the coyotes make more and more damage.
Applejack glared as she gave the coyotes and firm look. "I'm on it." she said before she started galloping towards the brothers. "Hey! Get away from them, ya flee-bitten mutts!" she yelled as she prepared for a fight.
Fleet released a frightened pony from his jaws as he saw this, he grinned evilly and chuckled. "Haha, well, looky here. Looks like we got a fighter." He said before he looked over to Skav to see him standing next to the salon, carrying a bunch of bottles of cider in his arm while jugging down bottle after bottle. "Skav! The blonde pony! Take care of her!"
Skav turned his head to see Applejack galloping up towards them. He rolled his eyes and sighed as he dropped the bottles, letting them smash against the ground, before pouncing into action. He started rushing towards Applejack with a growling face as he got closer and closer to her. "By the time I'm done with ya, I'll be pickin' ya out of my tee-OH DANG!" He said as he watched Applejack spin around and buck her legs out as soon as he got too close to her.
With one strong bash, Applejack's powerful hooves struck against Skav's jaw, making him yelp like a dog as he was sent flying backwards.
Fleet watched as Skav flew over his head before he crashed into the ground behind him. Fleet spun back around to face Applejack with wide-eyes. After witnessing all of that, Griggs came over to Fleet with his eyes glued to Applejack. "Now that's a strong pony." He said, slightly impressed by her strength.
"And she doesn't look half-bad to boot." Fleet added while staring at Applejack like he was staring into space.
Griggs looked at Fleet with a confused look. "Huh?" he asked, not sure if he heard him right.
With that, Fleet shook his head to snap out of it before he looked at Griggs with a strong look. "N-Nothin'! Just get that pony!" he ordered harshly.
Griggs, too shook up by his sudden snap, didn't argue and quickly rushed away towards Applejack to carry out the order. After watching what she did to Skav, Griggs wasn't gonna fall for her trick. Once he was close enough, he punched towards Applejack with his teeth and claws bearing.
Applejack quickly leaped forward and rolled under Griggs as he pounced over her. Once she was across, she quickly got up onto her hooves and spun around to face Griggs. Griggs landed on the ground and skidded to a stop before he turned his head around to face Applejack, growling with anger.
Griggs spun around and tried to slash her with his claws, but she leaped backwards to dodge his quick strike. Griggs kept coming closer, swinging his claws around in an effort to strike Applejack, but she kept dodging and ducking until she grabbed on of Griggs arms. Surprised and caught off guard, Griggs was powerless to stop Applejack as she turned around and yanked him over her shoulder, slamming him into the ground in front of him.
Griggs weakly opened his eyes to look up at Applejack, but then grinned as he chuckled darkly.
Applejack was confused back this until she felt someone grab her from behind. It wrapped his arms around her and held her close tightly. Applejack managed to turn her head around to see Skav has returned for a second round. Doing this allowed Griggs the chance to get back up, which he took.
Griggs stood back up and prepared to try and slash her again. He raises his paw and his claws shot out, the tips glistened in the sunlight like knives. But as soon as he struck down towards Applejack, a wormhole appeared between them. Once Griggs' arm touched it, he was sucked in like a vacuum and the wormhole closed.
This left Applejack and Skav shocked and a little scared, but then another wormhole opened beside Skav. Griggs shot out of it and smacked into Skav, making him release Applejack as they both slammed into the ground hard, leaving them both in a small daze as the wormhole closed.
Applejack rubbed her chest as she took deep breaths, looking down at the two weak coyotes to check if they were gonna stay down. She then looked over to Discord to see the pleased smirk on his face, he formed his fingers in the shape of a gun as he blew smoke of the tip of his index-finger before he gave Applejack a friendly wink.
Applejack smiled warmly at him before she decided it was time to finish this, she turned around to face the last coyote, Fleet. "Ya see what happens when ya mess with the wrong town?" she asked as she walked over to him.
Fleet didn't show any sign of fright or intimidation, he just smirked as he took a few steps towards her. "Now, now, little lady. We're just simple business dogs here to collect somethin' for our boss, somethin' he's in desperate need of." He stated as they both started walking in a fighting circle.
"And what would that be?" Applejack asked, giving Fleet a daggering glare.
"Don't worry your pretty little head about that, darlin'. Just let us take what we want and we'll be right out of your mane." Fleet said, keeping his smart smirk.
"Not a chance! Nothin' here belongs to you! Now beat it before I beat you!" Applejack demanded as she stopped moving and stomped her hoof on the ground.
"That's no way for a pretty lady like you to talk." Fleet said before his smirk disappeared. "Anyway, if you're not gonna step aside, I guess we'll just have to take it by force." He said before he looked behind Applejack. "Guys! Do ya thing!" he called.
Applejack's eyes widened before she spun around to see Griggs and Skav had gotten back up and were standing behind her. Before she could react, Griggs grabbed a small brown bag that was hidden under his hat and threw it in Applejack's face. Upon impact, the bag exploded in a cloud of thick smoke, causing Applejack to gag and cough loudly.
While Applejack's senses were struck down, the two coyotes rushed over to Discord and Moneybaggs with growling faces. Discord stepped in front of Moneybaggs and a pair of boxing gloves appeared on his hands. "Don't worry, Moneybaggs, I've got this." He said as he punched the gloves together, ready to fight.
But then, Griggs stopped and Skav leaped onto his back. Within that second, Skav pounced up towards Discord and grabbed the same type of bag hidden under his hat. As expected, he threw it in Discord's face and it exploded in smoke.
Discord coughed and yelled as he held his eyes. "My eyes! I can't see!" He yelled as he opened his eyes and a pair of small windscreen-wipers appeared on his eyes, moving left and right in an attempt to clean his eyes while it made a squeaking noise.
While the two main threats we down, Griggs and Skav walked up to Moneybaggs and pounced on him. Moneybaggs tried to struggle free, but their strength and his largely round figure bad it difficult. Eventually he was left hopeless when the coyotes hog-tied him and placed over Skav's back. "Let me go, ya dang mutts!" Moneybaggs yelled as they rushed towards Fleet.
"Got 'im, let's get back to base." Griggs said as he and Skav approached Fleet.
Fleet nodded before he looked at Applejack who was still coughing and rubbing her eyes with her hoof. "Nice dance, pretty lady, but I'm gonna have to run. 'till next time." He said while tipping his hat before he spun around and ran away towards the desert with the other two following behind with Moneybaggs.
It didn't take long for the Hound Brothers to get far out into the desert and disappear into the horizon, the trio and Moneybaggs were now out of sight and out of reach.
Soon enough after that, Applejack and Discord managed to regain their senses and push away the effects of the smoke bomb. Once they were properly cured, Applejack looked over to Discord to see him on his knees. Concerned, she started walking over to him to check on him. "Discord…*cough*…are you ok?..." she asked as she placed her hoof on his arm.
Discord rubbed his eyes one last time before he weakly opened them to look at Applejack. "Y-Yes, I think so…but what happened?...Where did those coyotes go?" he asked, looking around for any sign of them.
"I think they left…but why? They could've taken anything they wanted right there and then, but they only took…" Applejack said before she went silent for a moment. "Urr…what did they take?" she asked.
Discord tried to think of the last thing he saw of the coyotes before he gasped loudly, he then looked around quickly before he looked back down at Applejack. "I think they took that Moneybaggs guy." He answered.
"What?!" Applejack said loudly before she looked around to confirm it. Sadly, it was true, there was no sign of Moneybaggs anywhere. "B-But that doesn't make sense, why would they take a guy like Moneybaggs?" she asked as she returned her attention to Discord.
Discord shrugged. "I'm not sure." He said as he slowly stood back up. "But if those were the rustlers, isn't taking ponies what they do?" he asked with a raised eye-brow.
"Yeah, but why take the one? I mean, they could've taken anyone of these ponies, even me. But they only took Moneybaggs. They must want 'im for somethin'." Applejack claimed as she turned around to look out into the desert.
"Well shouldn't we go after them and try to get him back?" Discord asked as he walked up beside her. "We can't just let him be taken by those…beasts." He said, saying the only who he thought was most fitting for them.
"No, we can't…" Applejack said before she sighed. "But…we can't abandon the town either…if those things come back, they might make off with someone else…we can't leave this town undefended." She said, lowering her head as her ears dropped.
Discord gave her a shocked look. "So we're just going to let them go? Moneybaggs will be as good as gone by night fall." He said, trying to protest.
Applejack shot her head up to look up at Discord with a firm look. "I know!...But there's still a chance he'll be saved…Matt and the others will find those rustlers and get everypony back, including Moneybaggs. We just have to make sure no-one else in this town gets caught until then." She said, picking the best yet hardest option.
Discord's ears lowered a little. "I suppose that makes sense…I mean, these ponies didn't really show their toughness today, Celestia knows they'll probably be lost without us." he said with a small frown.
Applejack didn't know what to say to that, so she just let it slide. Besides, it wasn't really as important as her next task, handling the still frightened ponies that slowly gathered around behind them. Applejack sighed before she looked back up at Discord. "C'mon, we best handle the crowd before they become a mob." She said before she turned around and started walking up to the crowd.
Discord was silent as she followed behind and helped her handle the crowd. All the while, they both felt failure and guilt overwhelm them, along with discouragement. They both felt like they could've taken those coyotes out easily, but they out matched them and got away with another pony. They could only hope for the best, for everyone's sake.
Meanwhile: Moneybaggs' mine
*Bash* "Ow." *Bash* "Ow." *Bash* "Ow." I said pain every time my head or hooves bumped into a hard object.
"Matt, can you be a little more careful? I'm trying to concentrate on where I'm going." Strongheart said as we continued to walk through the mine with our only sight being the dim-lit lantern held in her mouth.
"Well maybe if you waited up and let me walk in the light with you, I wouldn't keep hitting myself against a bunch of ro-" *Bash* "Ow!...ok…that one really hurt." I grunted as I sat down and gripped my left front-leg tightly with the right one, clenching it to put pressure on the pain.
Strongheart threw her eyes before she turned around and came back over to me. She held the light in front of me and saw all the dirt I was covered in, she looked down at my leg and took a good look at it. "You'll live." She said with a small smile before she turned around and resumed her walking.
I shook off the pain before I started following her, trying to keep up so I could stay in the light. "How far do you think this thing stretches on?" I asked curiously.
"Not sure, I'm just surprised those minors were able to dig this far in so quickly." Strongheart muffled with the lantern handle in her mouth. "But I know this land. Judging by how far we've walked, we should be getting close to Rattlesnake Rock, meaning we should be close to the exit." She added.
"Good, I'm sick of this mine. Its dirty and it smells." I said before I had a disturbing thought. "Oh lord, please tell me they went outside to go to the bathroom!" I said, looking down at the muddy ground with disgust.
"Ew!" Strongheart responded as she looked down at the ground as well. "Lets just get out of here before we find out." She said before she kept moving with me following behind. We kept walking through the dark mine, being careful not to hurt ourselves on any more rocks or mine-cart tracks.
It took a few more minutes, but we eventually saw a light at the end of this seemingly endless tunnel. "Oh thank god!" I said before I started galloping up to towards the light.
"Matt! Wait!" Strongheart called, trying to get me to stop. She groaned lowly when she saw it had failed. "For such a smart guy, he's really stupid." She said to herself before she galloped after me.
Upon reaching the exit, I ran out into the open to see the exit led out to a large rock platform with a giant gorge beneath us. But I didn't pay much attention to that, I was too busy basking in the sunlight. After everything, I thought I'd never feel so happy to be in the Western sun. I inhaled the fresh air, taking in its freshness and sandy scent. "Ahh…that's better." I said, glad to be outside again.
At that moment, Strongheart came up beside me and placed the lantern down on the ground. "You can't just run out like that. Remember, we're trying to catch bad guys here." she said, giving me a strong look.
I turned my head to face her. "Sorry, but I couldn't stand it in there anymore. It was small, dark and it smelled…really bad. I don't know about you, but I was ready to start digging through the walls just to get out." I said in my defence.
Strongheart rolled her eyes again before they came into contact with something else. They grew wide as her mouth hung open slightly. "Well…looks like we made it." she said.
I looked over in the direction she was looking in and went wide-eyed at the sight. It was a large dark-orange mountain with two pointed tips. One was reaching up higher than the other and had a curvy shape to it, making it look like a snake body. The other was shorter and had a stack of four boulders on it, the bottom being the biggest and the top being the smallest, so it resembled a rattlesnake tail.
"Good lord…I see where they got the name from." I said, marvelling at the mountain before I turned my head to face Strongheart again. "So how do we get over there?" I asked curiously.
Strongheart looked at me. "We have to make our way down to that gorge." She said as she pointed her hoof down to a gorge below in front of us. "From there, it'll lead us right to the mountain. It would probably be foolish to go through the front entrance, so we'll take the secret one." She said before she walked up to the edge of the rock platform we were standing on.
"Secret entrance?" I asked curiously as I started following her.
"Yeah, it used to be used by minors who found a lot of gold and jewels in the walls of the mountain. They made the secret entrance as an emergency exit, but when the mine was abandoned, it was used constantly by rustlers and outlaws." Strongheart said before she turned her head around to look back at me. "In fact, when you said these rustlers may be using it as a hideout, I almost couldn't believe it, mostly because it was way too obvious." She said before she returned her attention down to the gorge.
"Well I didn't say these guys were smart." I said as I walked up beside her and looked down at the gorge. It seemed pretty deep and the way down didn't look very safe. "Urr…how do we get down there?" I asked, trying to look for a path or something.
Strongheart looked at me with a large smirk. "Just follow my lead, buddy." she said before she leaped over the edge and landed on one of the rocks by the side of the wall of the gorge, she kept hopping from one to the other as she made her way down, it was rather impressive how she did this.
I kept watching her move like a powerful mountain-goat until she finally reached the bottom of the gorge. Once there, she turned around and looked back up to me. "Alright, you're turn…I have to tell you, its not as easy as I made it look." She said with a cheeky smile.
I smirked a little at this before I decided to really ruin her moment. I spread my wings and took off into the air with one powerful flap. I then dove down the gorge until I reached Strongheart, my wings catching the air to give me a nice soft landing. Once my hooves touched the ground, I looked at Strongheart with my smirk growing wider. "I'm sorry, who's following who's lead?" I joked before I started walking along the path down the gorge.
Strongheart huffed as she frowned a little. "Show off." She groaned to herself as she started following me down the gorge to start heading towards Rattlesnake Rock.
As we would through the deep gorge, I looked around to see it was pretty dead down here. The sand and rocks had a distasteful colour, the plants were dried and shrivelled and there were a lot of bones from small and pretty large animals. I imagine some of them get trapped down here with no way out, it didn't make me feel any more confident that going down here was a good idea. "So…there's a way back up, right?" I asked, looking down at the bones while trying to block out bad thoughts.
"The secret entrance to Rattlesnake Rock is somewhere down this gorge, but its closer to the mountain itself. We have a bit of a walk ahead of us." Strongheart said as she followed behind me.
"Do you think this is how Sam and those coyotes move around unseen? How far down this gorge stretch on for?" I asked curiously as I looked back at her.
"All around the valley." Strongheart answered. "Its possible they use it from time to time, it would defiantly be a good way to get back to their hideout unnoticed." She said.
"Well hopefully we can put a stop to that." I said before I turned my head back around to face the road ahead of us.
"You must really care about Braeburn if you're going up against rustlers to save him." Strongheart said with a small smirk.
I turned around to face her again and returned the smirk. "I could say the same to you." I said, getting a blush from here. "But actually, I've only known him for a few days. I just don't want anything to happen to him, it would break Applejack's heart if he disappears with these rustlers like the others." I said.
Strongheart's smirk grew. "Oh…so you're doing it to make a girl happy." She said before she humorously rolled her eyes. "Stallions." She said out-loud to herself.
I blushed deeply at this before my eyes grew open. "No! No! Its not that. Applejack's just a friend of mine. I'm actually married, my wife is back home in Ponyville." I said before I realised how much I missed Twilight and my ears lowered. "It feels like forever since I've seen her." I said as I looked down at the ground.
Strongheart's smirk then went away before she gave me a sympathetic smile. "Hey, its ok, you'll see her again once we've finished here." she said as she rushed up and started walking beside me.
I smiled back at her in response to this. "I know…I just miss her a bit." I said before I turned my head back forward. "Only been gone a few days and I'm already missing Twilight…can you spell clingy?" I said with a slightly amused smile.
"How many tries do I get?" Strongheart asked while returning the same smile.
I chuckled at this before I looked at Strongheart in the eyes. "I can see why Braeburn likes you, you're kinda cool." I said with a kind smile.
Strongheart returned it. "I know I am." she said with a small smirk before she rushed ahead in front of me. "Try to keep up without those wings of yours." She said while looking back at me.
I smirk back before I start galloping behind her. "You're on!" I said as we both decided to race through the gorge towards our location.
-A few minutes later-
After a while of racing, I was now galloping beside Strongheart as we both eagerly tried to overtake the other. I had to admit, this rush of excitement was enjoyable, it almost made it seem like we weren't here to fight rustlers. Strongheart and I looked at each other as we both panted to keep our breath as we kept running. "You think…you can out run me?...I run for a living, city boy." She said.
"I'm not from a city, country girl." I said before I started to run harder, starting to get ahead of her.
Strongheart saw this and started running harder as well, doing her best to keep up with me and hopefully get the lead. She then saw a dead cactus with a sickening brown colour up ahead. "There…that dead cactus is the finish line. Whoever gets there first wins." She said, ready to give it all she had to reach the cactus before me.
I looked at her again and gave her a cheeky smirk. "Haha…aww…little buffalo getting tired?..." I asked, trying to tease her.
"You wish!" Strongheart said before she started to sprint towards the cactus, getting ahead of me and leaving me a little surprised.
"Whow." I said under my breath as I watched her go. I soon snapped out of it and started to run harder, trying to catch up. It wasn't long before I caught up to her and we ran side-by-side, quickly approaching the cactus with great speed.
In a matter of seconds, we both pasted the cactus, but we couldn't tell who past it first. "Ha, told ya you couldn't out run a buffalo!" Strongheart said with pride as she breathed heavily.
"*Pants* What? *Pants* What are you talking about?...I passed it first." I said, pretty sure I was the one who won.
"Urr…no, you didn't. I won. I saw it with my own eyes. You we right beside me, but a little behind." Strongheart claimed, giving me a slightly firm look.
I smirked again. "You're just saying all this because you know you lost." I said before I chuckled a little.
"Like hay I am. I left you in the dust, be a stallion and take your defeat with dignity." Strongheart said as her firm look turned into an amused smile.
As I made an argumentative response, Strongheart noticed something behind me, making her go silent. She continued to stare at it as I kept talking, but I was stopped when she pressed her hoof against the side of my head, making my head turn around. That's when I saw a large boulder with a spiral carving on it. "We made it." Strongheart said.
I turned my body all the way around to face the boulder properly as I continued to stare at it. "What is it?" I asked, looking in awe at the size and the crafting of the carvings.
"It's the secret entrance to Rattlesnake Rock." Strongheart said as she walked past me and approach the boulder. "I don't exactly remember how to open it. Just give me a second and I'll get it." she said as she started to feel the boulder with her right front-hoof.
As I waited for her to find a way to open the entrance, I took this time to look around. I turned my head a little and saw something odd, it was a small streak of smoke coming from around the corner a little ways down the gorge. I looked back over to Strongheart to see she was still working on the entrance, so this gave me enough time to go over and check it out.
I steadily walked over to the corner that the smoke was coming from. As I got closer, the smoky smell got stronger, it smelt like burning wood and food. Once I reached the corner, I poked my head around it as saw a small campsite made near the wall of the gorge. I walked around the corner and walked over to the camp.
After reaching it, I looked down at the camp fire and saw the soot covered wood, along with a small metal pan being held above it by a grid. I slowly flicked the lid of the pan off and a small cloud of black smoke floated out, revealing whatever was inside had burned to a crisp. I backed away from it a little, too put off by the bad smell of it.
I then looked over to one of the tents and saw something on the ground near it. I couldn't quite make it out from where I was, so I went over to it. As I got closer, I could tell it was a hat, but when I reached it, my heart grew heavy when I finally recognised it. This wasn't just anyone's hat, it was Braeburn's. I gently grabbed it with my hoof before I sat down on the ground so I could brush off the dust with the other. Once it was clean, I held it in my hooves as I sighed. "Oh no…what happened here?" I asked myself.
At that moment, Strongheart came around the corner and looked over to me. "There you are!" she said before she came over to me. "How about you tell me the next time you wonder off, this isn't a place to be alone." She said as she stopped behind me.
I then turned my head around to face Strongheart with my ears low. "I don't think it matters if we're alone or not, being in the group didn't help these guys." I said before I showed her the hat.
Upon seeing it, Strongheart's ears lowered as she too recognised it. "Oh no…Braeburn…" she said with concern in her eyes before she looked around the camp. "You think Sam got them?" she asked.
I then placed Braeburn's hat on my head before I stood up. "Most likely." I said as I straightened the hat so it fit right. "Looks like they had the same idea. They camped here so they could get some rest before going in, but Sam and those others must've found them." I said, giving Strongheart my best theory of what might've happened.
Strongheart was silent for a moment, trying to put aside her worries before she gave me a strong look. "Well…we best go save his flank." She said before she spun around and started making her way back to the entrance. "I got the boulder open, lets go." She said before she went around and the corner.
I gave the camp one last look before I rushed around the corner to catch up with her. Once I reached her, I saw that she had indeed got the boulder out of the way, showing a large tunnel stretching through under the gorge and towards the mountain.
"Great, another tunnel." I said with a slight groan in my voice as I looked down into the darkness.
"Stallion up." Strongheart responded before she entered the tunnel and waited for me to follow.
I sighed a little before I stepped into the tunnel and walked up beside her. I then watched as Strongheart walked back up to the boulder and stood up on her hind-legs, she pressed her front-hooves on the boulder and started rolling it back over the entrance, it wasn't long before the way out was completely blocked and we were in the darkness.
"Nice, now we're blind. You love challenging yourself, don't you?" I said as I blinked in the darkness, not sure if I was talking to Strongheart or the wall.
"Relax, this tunnel has a trick to it." Strongheart said before I heard her walk up to me and pressed her hoof against my side. "Just give it a minute." She said.
"Give what a minute?" I asked curiously, but got no response.
I stood there waiting in the silent darkness until something started to glow, I looked over to it to see it was some sort of gem stuck in the wall. As it glowed brighter, I stared at it with awe, wondering what kind of gem it could've been. But soon enough, another gem started to glow beside it, then another on the other wall, then another and another until the entire tunnel was filled with glowing gems in the wall and ground.
"Whow…what are these things?" I asked as I watched the beauty of the unusual gems. Part of me was glad that Spike wasn't here, otherwise he might end up eating these gems, then we'd really be in trouble.
"Solar Gems." Strongheart answered. "They only glow in total darkness, they light the way for us until we reach the other side of the tunnel." She said before she gave me another smirk. "You should have for faith in me." she said as she turned away and started making her way down the tunnel.
"Yes ma'am." I said with a small grin as I started following her. But then, I felt something odder under one of my hooves. I looked down and saw one of the gems was loose. I started to dig it up with my front-hoof before I could finally pick it up. With the gem now in my hoof, I looked at its beauty closely. "Pretty…this'll give Twilight something to study when I get back." I said before I turned my head to look down at one of my saddlebags and slipped the gem inside it. "Makes a nice souvenir too." I added.
"Matt, are you coming or what?" Strongheart said a few feet ahead of me.
I snapped back into focus and looked over to her. "Sorry, got a bit caught up with something." I said before I rushed over to her and stopped beside her. "Hi." I said with a bright smile.
Strongheart smiled with slight amusement. "Hi yourself." She said before she continued to walk. "Try to stay close this time." She said.
"Sure thing." I said before I started following her down the tunnel. To where though, I didn't know.
-A half-hour later-
After following the glowing tunnel for a good half-hour, Strongheart and I finally reached the end of the tunnel, showing another large boulder blocking the exit. "This is all you, Strongheart." I said, staring up at the boulder.
Strongheart nodded before she walked over to the boulder and did what she did with the last one. She pressed her front-hooves against the boulder and started rolling it aside, allowing the exit to open and let us out. Once it was open enough, we both left the tunnel and entered the inside of Rattlesnake Rock. Strongheart turned to the boulder again and started closing it.
As she did, I looked around the area. This place made the mountain look completely hollow, it was a wonder it was still standing. There were mine-cart tracks, some mine-carts, old rope and pickaxes. This place really was a mine back in the day, there were even higher levels where the tracks went in and out of the walls. The miners were ready to really pick this place clean. "This place is massive." I said.
Strongheart closed the exit before she turned to face me. "Yeah, this was the valley's biggest mine back in the day, millions in gold and jewels were found here. But its dry now, not a scrap left, that's why it was abandoned." She said before she started looking around. "So where do you think the rustlers are?" she asked curiously.
I started to wonder that myself and I started looking around for any sign of activity. A light, a sound, anything. Eventually, I saw a dim light coming from one of the mine-cart tunnels up ahead. "There." I said, pointing my hoof at the tunnel. "There's something down there." I said.
Strongheart looked over to where I was pointing and saw the light. "Good eye." She commented before she rushed on ahead. "Come on." she said a she approached the tunnel.
"Wait, we shouldn't rush into th-…and she's gone." I said as I watched her rush into the tunnel, not listening to me at all. I sighed heavily before I quickly galloped over to the tunnel, wanting to catch up to her before she got into trouble.
After entering the tunnel, I followed it towards the light until I finally came out into a new room, but not in the way I thought. I quickly skidded to a stop as I noticed I was rushing out onto a mine-cart track that stretched across and over a larger room, this track was built high up in the middle of this room.
I stood completely still as I looked down below, seeing how high up this track was above the ground. I gulped hard as my legs shook a little. "Thank God I'm a Pegasus." I said to myself before I looked away and stared down the track, seeing Strongheart standing in the middle of the track while she looked down at something below.
I took a breath and held it as I carefully walked along the track and approached Strongheart. It wasn't long before I finally reached her and I could breathe again. "Strongheart…why have we stopped here?" I asked, I little concerned with trying to keep myself on this thing without falling.
Strongheart looked at me with a slightly concerned look. "Look down and see for yourself." She said as she pointed her hoof down at something.
My ears fell as I stayed still. "I'd rather not, to be honest." I said, not wanting to look down again.
Strongheart then gave me a firm look. "I'm serious, look!" she said with a strong tone.
I gulped again before I carefully looked down below again, but this time it was for a good reason. Down below, I saw an entirely decorated room with a large table full of papers, a sofa, bigger railroad tracks build near the wall leading out of the in and out, a long black steam-train on the said railroad tracks, and a hell of a lot of cells. I looked at the cells and saw that they were all full of ponies, they looked so dirty and weak, like they had been in there for ages.
My eyes then turned to the large pit dug deep into the ground, inside where more ponies. Some were trying to climb out, while others just sat there hopelessly.
This was it, Yodellin' Sam's hide out.
Speaking of which, I heard someone laughing and saw Sam walking up to the pit of ponies. "Aww…what's wrong, fellas? Not likin' your stay?" he said before a devilish grin grew on his face. "Don't worry, ya won't be hear long. The train should be here soon." He said before he took out a flask of water and drank it, leaving the ponies watching with dry throats.
"So…" Strongheart said with a sharp glare in her eyes. "That's Yodellin' Sam…doesn't look so tough." She said, not taking her eyes off him.
"It's not him we have to worry about." I said, thinking about his goons.
Meanwhile, Sam walked around the pit as he looked down at the ponies. "Ya see, this is what happens to trouble-makers in my hideout. Ya get the pit. But enjoy your relaxation while ya can, I assure ya, it won't last." He said with a glare.
"Neither will your crimes!" A voice said in the ponies. Right on cue, Braeburn stepped forward, filthy and hat-less. "Ya may have got us, but you won't get us all. Someday, someone's gonna take you down, Sam! I'll make sure of it!" he said with a strong tone.
Upon seeing him, Strongheart's ears perked up and it looked as though she was ready to leap down off this high track to reach him, but I made sure she didn't by sticking my arm out in front of her. She looked at me and understood it wasn't time yet, so she stayed low with me and continued to watch.
Sam laughed at this. "Haha…you're that punk pony from Appleloosa, aren't ya? Well from up here, ya don't look so tough." He said before he kicked a small amount of soil off the edge and it hit Braeburn in the face. "As for what ya said, I'll make sure ya don't stick around long enough to cause any more trouble than ya already have." he said.
Braeburn wiped the dirt off his face. "I'm terribly sorry about that…how about ya come down here and teach me a lesson like a real stallion would." He said with a smirk.
Sam glared down at him. "Don't tempt me, boy!" he said before he turned and walked away. "Just stay down there and shut up!" he said as he walked over to his table and sat down in front of it, looking through the papers on it.
Suddenly, Strongheart and I heard some strange noises coming from one of the tunnels that led into that room. Soon enough, the three coyotes emerged and ran into the room, it looked like they had someone with them.
"Who's that?" Strongheart asked as she tried to see the mysterious pony better.
I did the same until I eventually recognised him. "It's Moneybaggs. The guy who owned that mine we went through. Why did they bring him here?" I asked as I continued to watch what was happening.
The three coyotes walked over to Sam's desk as they panted hard. "Boss, we got Moneybaggs." Fleet said before he turned his head around to face Skav and nodded.
Skav returned the nod before he threw the back of his body up, making Moneybaggs spring off his back and hit the ground beside him.
Sam got off his seat before he walked around the table to reach Moneybaggs. "Be careful with him." he said before his horn glowed and the rope tied around Moneybaggs' legs started to untie itself.
"Sorry boss, but he's kinda heavy, I nearly threw my back out." Skav said as he sat down and started rubbing his back with his paw.
Once the rope was untied, Moneybaggs stood up and faced Sam. "So…this is where you've been hidin' out?" he said as he looked around the hide-out.
"Yeah, Mr Moneybaggs…ya like it?" Sam asked with a large grin.
Moneybaggs looked around the hide-out more as he responded. "Like it?" he said before he returned his attention to Sam and, shockingly, grinned back. "It's perfect!" he said.
Sam and Moneybaggs then laughed loudly before they hoof-bumped. "You were right, big brother! This scam is a hoot-and-a-hatch!" Sam said as he patted Moneybaggs' back.
"I told ya it would work. I stack 'em up, you knock 'em down." Moneybaggs said before he turned around to face the pit. "So, lets see our latest catch." He said before he and Sam made their way back over to the pit.
Strongheart and I watched this and I was in complete shock. Moneybaggs was working with Sam this whole time. "That fat back-stabber." I growled under my breath, thinking about how much this kind of thing has happened lately.
"Geez, you don't know who to trust these days." Strongheart said in response as we continued watching.
Moneybaggs and Sam walked over to the pit again and looked down at all the ponies trapped down in it. "Hoo-wee! That's alone of stock." Moneybaggs said as he looked at each pony until he saw Braeburn. "Well, well, if it isn't Braeburn, haven't seen you in a while." he said.
Braeburn looked up at Moneybaggs and was shocked to see he was with Sam. "Moneybaggs? You're with them?" he asked.
"Of course I am, Sam's my little brother." Moneybaggs said before he chuckled. "Sorry for the trickery, boy, but business is business." He said with Sam nodding in agreement.
"What business?" Braeburn asked. "What kind of money-making scam involves kidnappin' innocent ponies and holdin' them here?" he asked in a firm tone, demanding an answer.
"One that's important to our survival." Moneybaggs started. "Let me tell ya a story. Almost a year ago, Sam and I wondered into the Badlands of Equestria and stumbled into a nesting ground of dragons. They would've made meals out of the two of us, that is, if it wasn't for my cunning talent of bargainin'. I promised the dragons that if they spared us, we could bring them more ponies to eat, enslave or whatever they want with them. The alpha dragon was suspicious at first, but he accepted and let us go, but if we messed up, he'd come after us. It's a routine we do, I sent ponies out into the desert, Sam rounds 'em up and brings 'em here. That brings us to this part right here, ready to ship all of ya to the Badlands and offer ya up to the dragon pack." He explained with a large despicable smile.
"You're tellin' me you're doin' all this just to pay off a debt? To save your own flanks?" Braeburn asked, giving them an angered look.
"Of course not." Sam said, stepping forward. "If we take ya to the dragons, they'll give us all their gems they use for nests. We'll be richer than we ever have been!" he said, sounding a little excited by that part.
"Of course, there's always riches involved somehow." Braeburn said before he looked at Moneybaggs. "Ya won't get away with this! If I don't get outta here and stop you myself, someone else will! There's loads of people in Appleloosa who will notice the Sheriff has been gone too long and come lookin'." He said.
Moneybaggs let out a single laugh. "Ha! And how will they know where to look? Didn't think about that part, did ya?" he said with a smart smirk.
"Matthew went back to town, he knows where we were headin'. If Sheriff Silver Star doesn't return to town soon, he'll tell another posy where we went and they'll come here." Braeburn said, returning his smirk. "Forget about him, didn't ya?" he said, quoting what Moneybaggs said, but differently.
Upon hearing that, Moneybaggs' smirk went away. "Matthew? That Pegasus from the train?" he said before he turned his head to face Sam. "Did you see a Pegasus in the posy when you rounded these guys up?" he asked, sounding like he was starting to panic.
Sam though at this before he shook his head. "No, I only found those first three at the camp and then this guy with the Sheriff afterwards." He stated.
Moneybaggs then grabbed Sam by his neck fur and yanked him up to his face. "That Matthew guy was in the posy with the first three, includin' this guy! Why didn't your yodellin' draw 'em out?!" he asked loudly.
Moneybaggs grew a slightly frightened look due to his brother's sudden rage. "I dunno, maybe they didn't hear it or somethin'." He said in his defence.
Moneybaggs rolled his eyes before he pushed Sam away. "Should've known your technique would backfire eventually." He said before he straightened the bowtie on his suit and walked away from the camp. "If Matthew tells the other ponies where our hideout is, we'll have the law down our throats more than fresh cider!" he said.
"So what are we gonna do?" Sam asked as he bushed the fur on his chest.
Moneybaggs turned his head around to face Sam. "Just get these ponies on the train and get 'em to the Badlands. You'll have to bring the train back for the rest." He said before he walked over to Sam's desk and opened a draw in it, he pulled out a saddlebag and started filling it with supplies. "I'll head back to town and make sure that Matthew guy doesn't open his big mouth about us."
Sam walked over to the desk and watched Moneybaggs pack things in the saddlebag. "Sure, but are ya sure that's a good idea? What if some of the ponies there start catchin' on?" he asked curiously.
"Don't worry, I'll just stall 'em until ya get back. Then come into town and start doin' ya yodellin' thing, we'll take the entire town and no-one will know a thing." Moneybaggs explained before he finished packing and threw the saddlebags over his back. "Don't mess it up, Sam." He said, giving Sam a firm glare.
Sam gulped before he nodded. "S-Sure thing, Moneybaggs." He said as he watched Moneybaggs walked past him and make his way to the tunnel that led to the exit. Once Moneybaggs was gone, Sam turned to face the coyotes. "Well what are you three standin' around for?! Get as many ponies as ya can onto the train!" he said with a loud growl in his voice.
This made Fleet and the other two jump in fright. "Ah! Oh, yes boss." Fleet said before he and the others quickly went over to the first of the many cells and opened it, they started to heard the frightened ponies out of it and take them to the one of the train cars.
While they worked, Sam walked over to front of the train and entered it, he then closed the door behind him to make his way to the engine room. That's when we heard the whistle of the train go off.
"Right then." I said in a whisper before I turned my head to face Strongheart. "We have to stop them from taking those ponies away, otherwise they're as good as dead." I said, unable to imagine what kind of torment awaits them in the Badlands.
Strongheart looked at me and nodded. "Yeah, but how are we gonna do that? There's four of them and only two of us." she said, looking back down at the three coyotes that were herding ponies out of the cell.
"Yeah, but we've got better skills than them. We just need to get them out of the way and then deal with Sam." I said before I looked down at the gang of bandits. "Unless you're too scared to take them on?" I said, growing a sly smirk,
Strongheart looked at me with a silent raised eye-brow before she too smirked. "Scared? Get me down there and I'll really show you what I can do." she said.
I nodded before I spread my wings out and quietly flapped them. I lifted off the track before I flew over Strongheart's body, I lowered myself down onto her and wrapped all four of my legs around her body. I then lifted her up and started to gently hover down towards the hideout, being careful not to make any noise that would gain the attention of the Hound Brothers.
All the while, I couldn't help but feel weird about this. "…Is it weird that I'm holding you like this?" I asked silently as I continued to hover downwards.
Strongheart blushed a little as she continued to look down. "Just get us down there fast, ok?" she said, trying not to comment.
"On it." I said as kept moving downwards with Strongheart in my grasp, trying to ignore the awkwardness this was giving off.
Within a moment, we finally reached the ground before I released Strongheart and landed beside her. We both looked at each other and nodded before we started to make our way over to the coyotes, wanting to sneak up behind them and take them out as quietly as possible.
Fleet stood by the entrance of the cell while Gragg and Skav shoved some ponies out of the cell. "Come on, get movin'! We haven't got all day, ya know!" Gragg said as he pushed one of the ponies with his paw hard, making him fall to the ground.
A mare rushed up to the pony and helped him up, but they didn't have much time to recover as Skav snapped his jaws at them, aggressively telling them to keep going. The ponies gave him a frightened look before they weakly kept moving. Soon, the small group of ponies left the cell and we forced to make their way towards to the train.
Strongheart and I looked at each other again before we started to sneak up behind Fleet. Being as quiet as I could, I rose up behind me and quickly grabbed his head with my hooves. Before he could react, I slammed his head into the side of the still open cell door, knocking him out.
Unfortunately, with dogs having sharper hearing, Gragg and Skav heard Fleet's head hit the door and spun around to find us. "A pony got loose!" Gragg said in surprise.
"And he has a buffalo with 'im!" Skav said before he turned his head to face Gragg. "What are we gonna do?" he asked.
Gragg looked at him and took his hat off before whacking Skav on the head with it. "What do ya think? Get 'em! We can't let 'em ruin this! The boss will have our tails and make 'em into key-rings!" he said firmly.
With that, Gragg and Skav returned their attention to us and growled viciously as they approached us. Strongheart and I stayed close together as we watched the two coyotes separate and circle us. "Think you can handle one of them?" I asked Strongheart while we stood back to back.
"You kidding? I've dealt with worse than one dirty mutt." Strongheart said while keeping her eyes of Skav.
"I bet." I said before I looked at Strongheart through the corner of my eyes. "And it probably makes it easier that they're not that bright." I added with a slightly amused smile.
"We can hear you." Gragg said as he walked around in front of me to face me.
I looked at him again and smirked. "…I know." I said before I motioned my hoof to tell him to 'come and get me'.
With that, Gragg growled before he charged towards me and pounced with his jaw open wide, showing his sharp teeth ready to rip into my flesh. But I was quickly to respond, I threw up my two front-hooves and placed them against his belly and chest, I then threw him over my head and made him smack into Skav just as he pounced towards Strongheart.
The two coyotes fell to the ground before they quickly got up, growling with anger as they faced us again and charged towards us.
Strongheart looked at me with a strong look. "Matt, turned around and get ready to buck." She said. "And when I say so, buck them forward!"
I didn't know what she had planned, but I nodded and did as she said. I spun around and held my hide-legs back, ready to buck them out. Strongheart then leaped up and soon enough her hid-hooves made contact with mine. "Now!" she said loudly.
Once I heard that, I bucked my hind-legs forward and Strongheart was launched off them, sending her shooting towards the coyotes with her front-hooves sticking out.
Gragg was quick to duck out of her way, but Skav wasn't so quick as Strongheart shot into him and they both fell to the ground. Strongheart locked Skav in her grip as she quickly did a back-roll and then through Skav towards a wall once she was back on her hooves. Skav hit the wall hard before he fell to the ground, groaning in pain.
I was kind of impressed by her fighting skills, so much so that I was too distracted by it to see Gragg pounce on me and bite his teeth down into my shoulder. I yelled in pain as his jaw tightened on my skin. I lifted my front-hooves and grabbed his body as I tried to throw him off, but it only succeeded in making the pain on my shoulder greater.
I eventually stopped trying to push him off and find a new way to do it, that's when I noticed his ear was near my face. Going with my gut, I quickly shot my head towards it and bit down hard on his ear. Doing this made Gragg yelp in pain and release me. Once he was off, I quickly pushed him away with one hoof before I punched him across the face with the other.
Gragg stumbled away while holding his ear, he growled at me before he heard someone grunt behind him. Gragg spun around and saw Strongheart standing behind him, ready to fight back at any time. Gragg turned his head back around to see me ready to do the same. Knowing he was out-numbered, Gragg could only think of one thing to do. "BOSS!" He yelled before he shot off towards the train. "Boss! Get outta here! There are intruders in the hideout!" he yelled.
Strongheart gasped at this before she rushed after him to stop him from alerting Sam of our presents. Strongheart moved as fast as she could towards Gragg before she leaped over him and landed in front of him, spinning around to face him with a glare. "Going somewhere?" she asked.
Gragg skidded to a stop and back away a little. And upon, turning back around, he was shocked to receive a powerful punch in the face by me, making him stumble backwards towards Strongheart who threw her hoof down hard onto his head, knocking him out cold.
I breathed heavily as I walked over to them. "Good job, Strongheart." I said while looking down at the unconscious coyote.
"Don't mention it." Strongheart said before she raised her sights up to see me. "Are you ok?" she asked in concern as she walked around Gragg to come towards me.
I nodded. "Yeah, I've had worse." I said before I felt a sharp pain in my shoulder and clenched it with my hoof. "But the bite I probably could've done without." I said before I started to rub it to try and take some of the pain off.
Strongheart walked up to me and gently moved my hoof away to look at the bite wound. "Hmm…don't worry, it's nothing serious. I'll give you something to heal it when we're done here." she said with a small smile.
I returned it. "Thanks." I said before I turned my head to look over to the train. "There's only Sam left, then we'll deal with Moneybaggs when we get back to town." I said, giving the train a dedicated glare, knowing my goal lied inside it.
"Noted…but I think he would be easier to deal with if we had a little help." Strongheart said as she pointed her hoof over to the pit.
I looked over to it too and got where she was coming from. "Oh, gotcha." I said before I returned my attention to the train. "Best make it quick though. If Sam notices us, he'll take off in the train." I said.
"Then what are we waiting for?" Strongheart said before she started making her way over to the pit with me soon following behind, we made sure to be quiet so Sam wouldn't hear us and check what was going on.
We soon made it to the pit and we both looked down it to see all the weak dirty ponies trapped inside, including Braeburn who looked a little worse-for-wear. He hadn't noticed us yet, too busy looking down at the ground while trying to think of a way out, I couldn't help but smirk the sight of this. "Well, I'd say this could've gone better." I said down to him.
This gained Braeburn's attention and he looked up to see me. "Matt?!" He said in shock. "What are you doin' here? I thought ya went back to town." he said. At that moment, his sight shifted over to Strongheart standing beside me. "Little Strongheart? You're here too?" he asked, sounding even more surprised.
"Well I was on my way back to town." I began. "But I got into a bit of trouble and Strongheart helped me out of it. I filled her in on everything and we decided to come help you." I said before I looked round for a way to get him out of there. "So how do we get you back up here?"
"There should be a rope-ladder somewhere around there." Braeburn answered before he gave me a firm look. "But ya shouldn't have brought Strongheart here, its too dangerous." He said as he watched me walk around the edge of the pit as I searched for this rope-ladder.
"Hey! It was my idea to come! Besides, I can take care of myself, thank you!" Strongheart said strongly in her defence.
"What she said." I added before I finally found the rope-ladder lying on the ground near the other side of the pit. It looked like it was nailed into the ground, so finding something to keep it secure wouldn't be necessary. I walked over to it before I pushed it off the edge and into the pit, it unravelled as it fell down until it came to a stop at the very bottom. "Ok, come on up." I called while looking down at him.
Braeburn then walked up to the ladder before he carefully started to clime it. It didn't take long until he finally reached the top and saw me reaching my hoof out to him to help him up. At first, he hesitated, but then he slowly grabbed my hoof with his and I pulled him up out of the pit as Strongheart came around to join us.
"I told you I should've come along." I said. "I don't know why exactly, but Sam's singing doesn't affect me. I could've helped you and the Sheriff." I said, thinking how all of this could've possibly been avoided had they trusted me more.
"…I know." Braeburn said as his ears folded back a little.
"I know you have your personal opinion of me, but shouldn't come in the way of – What?!" I said in wide-eyed shock over what he just said.
"I know, Matt." Braeburn started while giving me a look of small sorrow. "You saved me from being captured back in that camp. After that, I should've trusted ya. But I just let my own suspicions get the better of me and that's why we sent ya away. Havin' ya along probably would've been a big help, what with your unusual resistances to Sam's magic…so I guess what I'm trying to say is…I was wrong and I'm…kinda sorry." He said as he looked down at the ground.
I gave him a small smirk-ish smile as I took a step closer. "Ah, don't worry man…if I was in your position, I probably wouldn't have trusted me either…not sure if I do anyway, if I'm being honest. But here's the deal, lets bag these rustlers, get back to town, and get some fresh cider, my treat." I said, giving him a hard pat on the back.
Braeburn chuckled as he gave me a slightly uneasy look. "Haha…ok…" he said.
Suddenly, Strongheart darted forward and hugged Braeburn closely, making me step away and watch as Braeburn was caught by surprise by this. "I'm just glad you're safe, I was scared something had happened to you." she said as her head nuzzled into the side of his neck.
Braeburn's eyes shifted to me. I stepped back a little and looked away as I used my wing to cover the side of my face so I wouldn't see what they were doing, I just thought they could use some privacy.
Braeburn's attention returned to Strongheart before he placed his hoof on her back, hugging her back. "Well I'm fine, Strongheart. It'll take more than a few rough rustlers to take me down." he said with a small amused smile.
Strongheart's head pulled away before they both looked at each other in the eyes deeply. But this moment was ruined when I cleared my throat. "*Clears throat* Ok, well…this is very touching and you kids probably want to some time alone. But how about catch the bad guys now, hugs of passionate romance later?" I asked as I walked back over to them.
Braeburn and Strongheart looked at each other with blushing faces before they broke apart, both laughing nervously as Braeburn rubbed his leg with one hoof and Strongheart dragged the tip of her hoof against the ground. "Haha…sure…" Braeburn said while still blushing.
I nodded before I remembered I was still wearing Braeburn's hat. "Oh, this is yours." I said before I reached up and grabbed his hat with my hoof and then placed it back on his head. "What's a cowboy without his hat, right?" I said with an amused smirk.
Braeburn adjusted it until it fit right on his head. "Thanks Matt." he said before he looked over to the train and gave it a strong glare. "Now, let's finish this." He said.
I looked at the train with the same glare. "Gladly." I said before I turned my head to face Strongheart. "Strongheart, I need you to stay behind. Braeburn and I will handle Sam." I said.
Strongheart gave me a shocked look. "What?!" she said loudly. "I've told you, I can handle myself. I'm not afraid of some guy with magic vocal-cords." She said in a firm tone.
"I know you can, but look around." I said before I looked around at all the cells with ponies trapped inside. "All these ponies need to be freed and taken somewhere safe, we need someone to help them back to town safely. And honestly, I can't think of anyone more qualified right now." I said before I looked at her deeply. "Please Strongheart, you need to help them."
Strongheart was silent as she thought about this. She knew I had a point, someone needed to help these ponies while someone took care of Sam. "Ok…just be careful, the both of you." she said.
"We will, as long as we looked out for each other." I said before I turned my head to face Braeburn. "Right?" I asked.
Braeburn looked at me and smiled confidently at me. "Right." He said.
With that, Strongheart turned and took off back towards the pit to start helping all the ponies out of it. All the while, Braeburn and I returned our attention to the train and started making our way over to it. Sam was aboard it and it was time for that basterd to pay.
Meanwhile, Sam waited impatiently in the train. He was still under the impression that Fleet and the others were still loading ponies into the train. Eventually, he couldn't hold in any longer and grunted in frustration. "What's takin' so long out there?!" he called before he walked over to the window of the engine cart. Once he reached it, he looked out of it expecting to see the three coyotes struggling with the ponies, but was shocked to see me and Braeburn coming towards him. "What the hay?!"
"Crap! He saw us!" I said loudly before I turned to face Braeburn. "Come on!" I said before I sprinted towards the train with Braeburn following behind with the same speed.
As we approached the train, Sam used his magic to grab the lever near the controls and pushed it forward, making steam escape from the wheels under the train. The gears started to grind as the wheels started to turn, the train was started to move along tracks to leave the mountain.
Seeing this, I started to galloped faster as the train started to pick up speed. Once I reached the train, I managed to hop aboard the back of one of the near-end cars before I turned around to watch Braeburn try to catch up with me. Braeburn panted hard as he struggled to keep up his pace, galloping as hard as he could.
I walked up as close to the edge of the platform as I could before I reached my hoof out to him. "Braeburn! Grab my hoof!" I said loudly as I felt the train pick up more speed.
Meanwhile, while we were trying to get on the train and Strongheart was freeing the ponies, Fleet woke up from his unconsciousness and shook his head. He weakly blinked his eyes opened before he tried to make sense of what happened. Soon enough, he saw Gragg and Skav unconscious on the ground and wondered what happened. Then, upon hearing the train whistle, his focus shot over to the train and saw me and Braeburn trying to stow away onto it. Once he knew what we were doing, he growled darkly with a sharp glare in his eyes.
Meanwhile, Braeburn started to run faster as he slowly got closer to my hoof. Part of me was scared that I would screw this up and Braeburn would never get aboard with me. But soon enough, Braeburn leaped towards me hoof and grabbed it with his mouth tightly. "OOOW!" I yelled in pain as his teeth pressed hard into my flesh. "I meant with your hoof!" I said as I tried to fight the pain.
Even with his jaws clamped onto my arm, Braeburn kept running to keep up with the train. But soon, he stopped running to try and climb onto the train. Doing this added more to his weight as it nearly pulled me off the train, but I used my other hoof to grab hold of a handle to keep myself restrained. I kept my grip tight on it as Braeburn pulled himself up on the train, I was glad when he finally got up and released my arm from his teeth. "*Pant* Thanks Matt." he said while trying to catch his breath.
"Don't mention it." I said while sitting down and holding my hoof, looking down at the teeth-marks on it while it pulsed in pain.
Braeburn panted a few more times before he stood up. "Ok…lets finish this." He said before he turned around and entered the next car. "We'll have to go through all these train cars to get to the engine room, no way I'm going on the roof at this speed." he said while looking back at me.
"Fine by me, I wasn't planning on doing that anyway." I said as I stood up and started following him into the next car. We both started to make our way through the car to reach the entrance to the next one.
-A few minutes later-
The train left the mountain and was moving through the hot desert at great speed. All the while, Braeburn and I had made our way through car after car to reach the engine room, this train was honestly longer than I thought, I was so focused on jumping onto the train before than I didn't take into notice how many cars had passed before I jumped onto it.
As we made our way through the train, we noticed something very unique about this train. It wasn't made for passengers, it was made for shipping not just supplies, but life-stock as well. Most of the cars had chains and cages in them big enough to imprison Celestia herself, I didn't want to think how they were planning to used them on all those ponies back in the hide-out.
Once we reached the end of the car we were currently in, Braeburn grabbed the handle of the door to the next car and pulled it open. "I think we're nearly there." he said as he entered the car.
"I hope so, all these cages and stuff are really freaking me out." I said as I entered the car with him. After that, I was a little surprised to see more cages stacked on top of each other in this car. "And of course, there's more of them….great." I groaned as we started to walk across the car.
"I thought you were supposed to be the Element of Bravery." Braeburn said while looking back at me as he continued to walk.
"I am, but that doesn't mean I can't get creeped out." I said as I looked over to one of the cages and saw the chains and shackles inside it, making a shiver go through my body. "Good god." I said to myself under my breath.
"Well lets just be glad we stopped 'em from loadin' any of the ponies onto this thing." Braeburn said before he turned his head back around to face the way ahead in front of him. "And lets be sure to stop 'em from tryin' it again." he added.
"Yeah." I said with a not. "But what I'm really glad about is that Sam and Moneybaggs only had those three coyotes as goons, otherwise this train could've been crawling with bandits….In fact, I honestly thought this would've led to some kind of big battle before finally reaching the main guy…but I guess that only happens in the movies, right?" I said with an amused smirk before I let out a small chuckle.
Braeburn returned my amused smirk before he finally reached the end of the car, he pulled the door open before he walked over to the entrance of the next one. As I followed him, I looked down to see the ground speeding past as the train kept moving, the bumps that made the train bounce a little made me a little nervous, like we were going to hit a big one strong enough to make me stumble and fall off, but I made sure to stay inside the car I was already in to keep that from happening.
But once Braeburn got the door to the next car open as he started to walk inside, something leaped down from the roof of the car and dropped in front of me with his back turned to me, he pounded forward and tackled Braeburn to the floor of the next car.
"Braeburn!" I yelled in shock before I quickly rushed into the next car and grabbed the creature by his tail, I swung him around and smacked him into the wall of the car, making one of the windows crack before he fell to the floor.
While the creature was down, I heard a groan and turned around to see Braeburn slowly pick himself up. I went up beside him and helped him up. "Braeburn, are you ok?" I asked in concern.
Braeburn stood up back onto his hooves before he turned his head to face me. "Yeah…" he said while rubbing his head with his hoof. "But what hit me?" he asked curiously before he looked back to see the creature.
I did the same and we both watched the creature get up, groaning in pain, before he turned around to reveal himself as Fleet. He growled angrily as he stepped away from the window. "What?...Think you were the only ones who could catch up to a movin' train?" he asked as he got into a fighting position.
"So much for this bein' easy." Braeburn said as he kept his eyes on Fleet.
"Welcome to my world." I commented while doing the same. "I'm getting pretty sick of these guys, what's say we take him out of the game once and for all." I said, thinking of how much trouble he and his brothers had caused us for the past few days.
"Couldn't agree more." Braeburn said before he turned to face me. "But we can't let Sam get away…can you handle this?" he asked with a raised eye-brow.
I looked at him and gave him a confident smile. "Like a pro…go get Sam, I'll keep this flee-bag busy." I said in a quiet voice so Fleet couldn't hear me.
Getting a nod from Braeburn, we both returned our attention to Fleet and we all just stared at each other in silence, waiting to see who would make the first move. After what seemed like a long moment, Braeburn turned and sprinted away down the car to get to the next one so he could reach Sam.
Knowing what he was planning, Fleet tried to rush after him, but I shot forward with the help of my wings and smacked into him, sending us both flying out of the current car and back into the previous one.
Once we hit the ground, I didn't have time to make my next move as Fleet threw his paw up and whacked me in the face with it, knocking me off him. While I was down, Fleet rolled over onto his feet before he tried to resume his chase after Braeburn, but I quickly got up and grabbed his hide-leg with my hoof. I yanked back on it and pulled Fleet back over to me.
Fleet looked back at me and growled in frustration as he kicked his other hide-leg back, I turned my head as his foot kept hitting my face hard. But despite this pain, I refused to release his leg. As he kept kicking me, I quickly grabbed his leg with my other hoof and pulled hard on both, making Fleet fall back down onto his belly.
I then pulled back on him until I was above him and roughly rolled him onto his back, I then proceeded to punch his face repeatedly with both front-hoof. "You!...Have been!...A bad!...Dog!" I said between each punch.
After a sixth hard punch, Fleet looked up at me and growled before he quickly grabbed my arm with his paw as I tried to threw another punch down at him. Caught off guard, I was able to react quick enough as he pulled my arm close to his face and he bit it hard with his sharp teeth. I yelled in pain again as I used my other arm to punch his face more, trying to get him off.
This didn't seem to work as Fleet threw one of his clenched paws up and it struck against my stomach, making me weaken a little. While I tried to recover from this, Fleet quickly got up and did a round-house kick into my face, making me fall hard against one of the cages. I gasped and coughed at the pain all this caused me and I weakly dropped to the floor, holding my stomach with both hooves tightly.
Fleet panted before he snickered. "Not as tough as I thought, boy." He said before he turned and started making his way back into the next car. "Now where did ya little friend go?" he asked as he left me in my painful state.
Hearing this, I breathed steadily as I used all my strength to pick myself back up. There was no way I was going to let my friend get hurt by this mutt. I started to walk after Fleet as I saw him enter the next car, then I started to rush towards him before I quickly tackled him.
I pinned him down to the floor before I grabbed his head with both front-hooves and started to slam his head down against the metal floor. As I kept doing this, Fleet's elbow quickly swung up and struck me against my face, making me fall off him. Fleet used this time to get up before he growled down at me.
I tried to get up quick, but Fleet's paw suddenly shot down and pressed against my throat, I gasped and struggled to breathe as Fleet's grip on my neck tightened and he slowly picked me up by my neck. Fleet pulled my face right up to his as he growled loudly. "Ya want me to deal with you first, huh? Fine by me." he said before he tossed me down the car, expecting me to hit the floor hard.
But before I could, I spread my wings out and caught the air, allowing me to flip over and land safely on my hooves and slide along the floor a little. I then gave Fleet a sharp glare before I charged towards him.
Fleet smirked before he charged as well, but as we were about to make contact, Fleet leaped aside and grabbed my wing with his jaw, he kept running to the end of the train car with me in his grip before he finally came to a stop and he threw me out onto the platform between the current car and the previous car.
Fleet quickly got over to me and grabbed me by my neck again before he pulled my head over the edge of the platform, he then used both paws to press down against my head to try and push me down against the desert ground speeding by. I tried to push him off, up he was firmly planted in place. I could soon feel the tips of the spikes in my mane brush against the sandy surface as my head got dangerously close to the ground.
But then, I threw both hooves up between his front-legs and spread them apart hard to push his paws off my head. Once that happened, I grabbed his head with both front-hooves and threw my head up against his, making my head and his bash against each other. True, it hurt me too, but it messed Fleet up more. I used this change to threw another punch up at him, hitting him right in the face and making him stumble backwards a little.
Fleet then felt his paws reach the other edge of the platform behind him, which he nearly fell off but managed to keep his balance. But while he was busy doing that, I got up and flapped my wings to jump up into the air. As Fleet returned his attention to me, he was surprised to receive my own round-house kick to his face, sending him flying back into the previous car.
After hitting the floor hard, Fleet shook his head and quickly got up. He spun around to see I was flying towards him, but before I could strike, Fleet slashed his sharp claws against my chest, leaving four painful scratches against my chest. This made me yelp in pain and I quickly moved backwards, I looked down at the cuts to see they were starting to bleed.
Fleet saw this and chuckled darkly. "Does it hurt?...Aww…don't worry…the pain will stop once you're dead!" he growled before her pounced at me again.
Still put off guard by Fleet's sudden claw attack, leaving me open for his pounce, I was then pinned to the floor by his powerful paws and Fleet gave me a crooked smile, showing his sharp teeth. His jaws opened as his head shot down to mine. Seeing this, I quickly moved my head aside as his jaws snapped beside my face. I used this time to place both my hind-hooves up against his belly and kick him away, allowing me to quickly stand back up.
Fleet fell to the floor again before he got back up, he gave me another glare as he snapped his jaws. I watched as he slowly started to walk over to me again, preparing for another attack.
I was starting to get tired of fighting this flee-bag, so I decided to end it. I started walking over to him until I felt one of my hooves kick against one of the cages. At first, I was frustrated, but it soon gave me an idea. I returned my attention to Fleet before I kept going towards him. I soon stopped beside one of the open cages, I waited and watched Fleet approach me until he stopped. Fleet snickered as we both started to circle each other.
We both stared into each other eyes as we walked around in a circle, waiting to see who was making the next move. Eventually, I stopped behind the open cage and got ready for the next stage of the plan, I could only hope Fleet would do what I wanted him to.
Within that instant, Fleet growled loudly before he suddenly pounced at me again, claws and teeth baring, ready to rip me to shreds. As soon as he did that, I quickly ducked and rolled under him as he jumped over me and landed straight into the cage, leaving him in a state of surprise as he hit against the back of the cage.
Fleet shook his head as he slowly got back up, but once he saw what he was in, he quickly spun around and tried to rush out of the cage. But I was quick to fly over to the cage and slam the cage door shut, smacking the door bars against his face in the process. Fleet was left in a dazed state until he finally collapsed.
I breathed heavily as I looked down at the unconscious coyote within the cage, relieved that the fight was finally over. "And this time…stay down!" I said before I started to make way out to the next car to catch up with Braeburn.
As I left the car and entered the next, I felt a strong wave of pain in my body. The bite and slash wounds were a little deep, I could see some of them bleed as I kept walking. But I knew Braeburn would need help, I couldn't let a few cuts stop me now. Besides, I had worse and still kept going, this was nothing compared to those other times. I kept going through car to car to make my way to the engine room, it wouldn't be long now.
-A few minutes later-
After walking through like 5 more cars, I finally reached the entrance to the engine car. Behind this door was the guy we had worked so hard to catch, finally this whole thing could end.
I weakly placed my hoof on the door and pushed it open. The door slowly swung open and I looked inside, but there wasn't anyone inside. There was the engine, the piles of coal, the controls, everything put Sam or Braeburn. I slowly entered the room car and looked around, it was a lot bigger than your average engine train car, this one was big enough to fit a dinner table.
As I walked further inside, I suddenly felt something hard hit the back of my head and I feel to the floor hard, hearing a loud ringing in my head. As I faced down at the floor, I slowly lifted my head up to see a hoof step in front of my site, I heard a dark chuckle as the coal shovel fell down in front of me. "That looked like it hurt, son." A voice said, I looked up to see it was Sam, giving me a twisted grin. "Though your stronger than your friend what I hit 'im with that thing." he said.
After hearing that, I slowly turned my head and saw Braeburn's unconscious body lying in a pile of coal. I then returned my attention to Sam and gave him a hateful look.
"Your friend gave me the exact same stare until I clobbered 'im, looks like I'm gonna have to teach ya some respect." Sam said before his horn glowed and the shovel lifted off the floor. He held it up and swung it down towards my head.
But before it could hit my, I quickly shot my hoof up and grabbed the shaft of the shovel, I grabbed it with my other hoof before I stood up and yanked it towards me, pulling Sam towards me as well. Once that happened, I threw one of my hide legs up and kicked Sam in the chest hard, making his release the shovel.
I tossed the shovel aside before I charged at him, I then tackled him and pinned him against the wall as I started to repeatedly punch his belly, making him grunt in pain with each punch.
Sam looked down at me with a glare before he forcefully pushed me away and punched me across the face, making me fall to the floor hard. While I was down, Sam took this chance to leap up and land flat right on top of me. Being as big and fat as he was, it was like having a bear jump on my back. I let out a wheezy gasp before one of Sam's front hooves slammed down on top of my head, making my head slam down against the floor hard.
I gritted my teeth as his hoof pressed harder down against my head, like he was trying to crush it, I could even feel the blood in my head start to pulse as it become harder for it to flow. In that moment, I threw up my hard and struck him with my elbow, making him stumble away and remove his hoof from my head. I quickly got up and spun around to face Sam.
But instead of seeing just an angered Unicorn, I was met with that and the shovel held in his magic as he quickly swung it at me. I quickly ducked as it swung across over my head, but he retracted it and attempted to swing it downwards at me. Seeing this, I dropped and rolled aside just before the shovel slammed down against the spot where I was just standing.
Sam growled in frustration as he lifted the shovel back up. "Hold still, ya little varmint!" he said before he took a step towards me and tried to hit me with the shovel again.
I kept dodging his attacks, whenever he swung the shovel at me or tried to slam it down on top of me, it never hit its target. Sam was too slow to hit me, I was starting to think this was too easy and I should just end this now. But this train of thought was proven wrong when he tried to swing it down at me again. Of course, I avoided it, but instead of lifting it back up, he quickly swung it sideways and it smacked into my body. While this threw me off guard, he quickly spun around on the spot and bucked me with his hide-legs, sending me flying and crashing against the wall of the car.
I groaned in pain as I slowly started to pick myself up. But before I could get up, Sam came over and struck me in the side with one of his front hooves, making me fall back down in pain. "Haha…not so quick now, huh?" Sam said before he slowly hovered the shovel above my head. "Don't worry…this won't hurt much…" he said before he paused. "Oh wait…yeah it will." He said before he quickly raised it up and prepared to throw it down at me.
But just as Sam was about to, Braeburn leaped on his back from behind and wrapped his arms around his neck. "Get away from 'im!" he yelled as his arms gripped his neck tighter. Sam tried to pry his arms off with his hoof, but Braeburn's grip was too strong around his neck, so he decided to try and throw him off. He started jumping and kicking around like a mad bull in an attempt to throw Braeburn off his back.
While Braeburn had Sam distracted, I weakly picked myself up off the floor and rubbed the part where Sam hit me to try and rub off the pain. I soon opened my eyes and looked over to where Sam was, that's when I saw that Braeburn had awakened and was holding him off, but this didn't last long as Sam raised the shovel to Braeburn's level and used it to smack him off his back, making him fall to the floor.
Sam rubbed his neck with his hoof as he turned around to face Braeburn. "I've had about enough of you, boy!" he said before he once again raised the shovel to try and strike him down with it. But I was quick to act by grabbing the shovel from behind Sam and pulled it out of his magic grip. Wondering what happened, Sam spun around in time to see me throw the shovel like a spear towards one of the large windows. Upon impact, the glass of the window smashed and the shovel fell through it off the train.
Sam was left with his mouth hanging open before he looked at me with a glare. "Hey! That was a new shovel!" he said loudly with anger.
"Well don't go trying to kill people with it next time!" I said loudly in response, giving him a firm glare.
Sam growled in anger before he charged towards me and tackled me towards the furnace, the fire inside burned brightly inside as Sam tried to push me towards it. Being so large, Sam had a lot of strength, so I was starting to move towards it slowly as he kept pushing. It wasn't long before I felt the heat from it against my flank. "You and your friends have been tailin' us for far too long! Its startin' to get on my nerves!" he said as his forcefully pressed his hoof against my face to try and move my head closer to the furnace.
I grunted as I felt the area behind me get hotter, it wouldn't be long until my body would press against the hot metal surrounding the roaring flames.
"Yeah…but like I tell everyone else who says that…I have that effect!" I grunted before I quickly grabbed him by the neck with both front hooves and bashed my head against his. While he was stunned, I got free of his grip before I moved aside and grabbed his suit with my hooves. I then threw him forwards towards the furnace and his head was shoved inside, but he quickly recovered and pushed himself out before he could be badly hurt.
Sam rubbed his head to shake off the daze before he noticed that his head was a little hot. His eyes shifted up and noticed his top-hat had caught fire while in the furnace. Panicking, he quickly knocked it off and started to stomp the small fire out. Once it was out, Sam used his magic to pick up his hat to see the large burned hole at the top. Sam gritted his teeth in pure anger before he looked at me with a hate-filled look. "Why you…" he growled before he strongly threw his hat back into the furnace so it could burn.
Meanwhile, Braeburn had recovered from his fight with Sam and walked up beside me. "Don't worry, Matt…this time, we'll take 'im together." He said while keeping his focus entirely on Sam.
I turned my head to face him and gave him a small smile. "Thanks…but who said I was worried?" I said before I returned my attention to Sam while getting a small smirk from Braeburn.
Sam's eyes shifted from me to Braeburn before he grinned darkly. "Haha...ya should be worried…because now I'm endin' this little game." He said before he cleared it throat. We both watched as his horn glowed as he took a breath and started to yodel loudly.
My eyes widened at this before I spun my head around to face Braeburn. "Braeburn, cover your…" I then stopped when I saw it was already too late as he once again fell under Sam's spell. "Great." I groaned as I closed my eyes half-way. Sam continued to yodel as Braeburn turned to face me and, surprisingly, threw a punch towards me. I quickly leaped backwards to avoid it. "Braeburn, what the hell are you…whow!" I yelled as I avoided another one of Braeburn's punches.
I wondered what was going on until I fingered it out. Not only did Sam have the ability to make ponies follow him with his singing, but he had the power to make them do whatever he wanted with it. In this case, make Braeburn fight against me. "Braeburn, stop! I don't want to hurt you!" I said, trying to get through to him as he kept trying to hit me.
Suddenly, Braeburn tackled me hard and pressed both his front-hooves on my throat. I gasped and choked as I tried to push his hooves off my neck, but he was very strong. I could feel the pressure in my throat start to rise from the lack of air. I looked up at his face, the look in his almost blank eyes told me there was no way to get to him by talking. I closed my eyes tightly as I knew only one way to stop him from strangling me to death. I quickly threw up my fist and punched Braeburn across the face, making him fall off me.
I took this time to get back up and face Braeburn again. While he was recovering from my attack, I tried to come up with a plan to stop this. I knew he was being controlled by Sam, so I had to take him out to stop Braeburn. I turned my attention to Sam and rushed towards him.
Sam saw this and starting yodelling a different tune. Once that happened, Braeburn got up faster and turned to face me. He ran up towards me as faster as possible and pounced at me. But I knew this was happening, I quickly spun around to face Braeburn before I threw both my front-hooves up towards him. As he landed on my hooves, I gripped his body hard and held him over my head.
I grunted as I turned back around to face Sam before I used all my strength to throw Braeburn at him. Sam stopped yodelling and yelped as Braeburn landed hard against him, making them both fall back hard against the controls of the engine. I heard a strange metal-y snap, like something broke, but I was sure it was nothing.
Without Sam's yodelling, the spell possessing Braeburn was broken and he snapped out of it. He blinked his eyes open as he groaned and lifted himself up as he rubbed his head with his hoof. "Ahh…what the hay happened?" he said before he looked beside him and saw Sam lying against the controls. "Sam!" he said in shock.
I walked over to them and looked at Sam, he seemed pretty out cold, but I wasn't sure. "Think he's down for now?" I asked curiously.
Braeburn carefully got up and stepped away from Sam as he stared down at him. "I dunno, I'll get some rope and hogtie 'im, just in case." He said before he walked away from me to find some rope.
As he did, I heard a groan and looked down to see Sam start to wake up. "Urr…that hurt…" he said as he rubbed his head with his hoof.
I shook my head before I noticed he was lying right now to the furnace, with the hatch-door attacked to it open next to him. I thought about it for a moment before I made a decision. I walked up to Sam and placed my hoof under his chin, I lifted his head up as my other hoof grabbed the furnace's hatch-door. "Not as much as this will." I said before I quickly moved my hoof away from his chin and pushed the hatch-door open hard, making it slam against his face and knock him out cold.
Sam's unconscious body flopped down in front of me as Braeburn came back with some rope in his mouth. "This otta hold 'im." He muffled before he spat out the rope and placed both front-hooves on Sam's body, he grunted as he rolled him over onto his back. I continued to watch as Braeburn picked the rope back up and began to hogtie Sam's legs, followed by wrapping some cloth around his mouth so it would gag him.
Once he was done, Braeburn stepped back beside me before he turned to face me. "Looks like we did it…now we just have to deal with Moneybaggs." He said with a small smirk.
I looked at him with a not-so confident look. "But how will we do that? The whole town's gonna be there and I don't think they'll like us just pointing hooves at someone. Don't we need proof of Moneybaggs' involvement?" I asked, wondering how this type of thing works here.
"We don't need proof. Around here, everyone knows I'm as honest as they come. If I say somethin', everyone knows I'll be tellin' the truth." Braeburn said before he smirked again. "Besides, Moneybaggs is an Earth-pony, how much trouble could he be?" he asked.
"I don't know, it takes more that brawns to win a fight. He might have something planned. We should be ready for anything, just in case." I said before I walked over to the controls and looked at them. I could see the needles on temperatures rising, the steam from the chimney start to shoot out of the smallest cracks faster and it was starting to get really hot. "Umm…I'm not sure if its supposed to be doing this, but it seems kinda…wrong." I said, beginning to get nervous about it.
Braeburn came over and saw the same stuff I did, he grew the same nervous look before he walked over to the window and poked his head out of it. He held his hat down against his head with his hoof as the speed passing air blew harshly against him. He looked down at the ground below and saw it was starting to pass by faster and faster with each moment.
Braeburn came back in and rushed over to the controls and tried to work them. "I think the train's goin' faster!" he said as he tried to find a way to slow it down.
I walked up beside him and started to examine the controls, wanting to see if I could find anything that could help. "Can't we just hit the breaks or something?" I asked as I kept looking through each of the controls.
After hearing that, Braeburn started looking from the breaks until he found it. Unfortunately, there was a problem. "Urr…good idea, but I don't think that's gonna work." He said while pointing his hoof down at something.
I looked to where his hoof was pointing and saw that the lever which worked as the break was broken off right behind Sam's body. That's when I remembered the metal-y snap from before, it must've been the break lever when Sam fell back against it. "…Oops." I said as my ears dropped in slight fright.
"Yeah, big oops…" Braeburn said before he took a step closer to the breaks and looked down at where it was set. "And look what else happened." He said before he step aside to reveal that the breaks broke off while setting to the train to maximum speed.
I gulped hard at this before I returned my attention to Braeburn. "Ok, so what do we do?...We can't just wait for this thing to run out of steam, it'll take too long." I said while hoping Braeburn would have some kind of plan. I tried to think of a way out of this too, but I fingered Braeburn would know a better way.
Braeburn took a moment to think, we paced back and forth for a minute or so before he stopped and looked at me. "Ok, this train is followin' the tracks, so maybe we'll just ride it out until it passes the train station in Appleloosa. Then we'll just jump or somethin'." He said, telling me his so-called plan.
I gave him a discomforted look before I spoke. "Jump of a speeding train? Are you serious? What'll happen to this train? What about Sam and that coyote, we can't leave them on this thing." I said, protesting against the plan.
"We'll put Sam in one of those cages back in those other cars and then we'll detach them from this one just as we approach town, then we'll jump off and collect 'em once we've dealt with Moneybaggs." Braeburn explained before he raised his eye-brow. "But if you have a better plan, please let me know." He said.
I opened my mouth to speak, but no words came out as my mind went blank. Instead I closed my mouth and sighed. "Fine, we'll go with your crazy train-jump stunt." I said as I waved my hoof.
"Good, now lets get this crook into a nice cage." He said before he walked over to Sam's body and started to try and lift him up.
"Sure…I'll probably break my back, but sure." I said before I walked over to Sam's unconscious body and tried to pick him up, but he was so heavy.
Braeburn and I struggled and felt like we were about to break something, but we managed to lift him. We both held him up on our backs as we started to carry him out of the car and into the next one. "Oh god…I think something inside me is collapsing…AH!...yeah, it's a lung." I said as I struggled to hold him up.
"Just keep goin'…lift with ya knees…" Braeburn said as we carried him across the next car.
It wasn't easy, but we finally made it back to the car where I locked up Fleet. We through Sam into one of the cages next to his and made our way back to the engine car. We had to straighten our backs back out, but we recovered by the time we got back to the engine car.
But upon returning to the engine room, we were shocked to see the engine was getting over-heated and going crazy. Braeburn rushed over to it and reached his hoof up and grabbed one of the switches, but quickly retracted it when there was a small sizzle sound. "Ahh…that's hot!" he said while shaking the pain off his hoof.
I rushed up beside him, but had to step back from all the heat the furnace was giving off. "What's going on?" I asked as I used my arm to shield my face from the heat.
"The engine is workin' too hard, its over heatin'. Its reachin' a point where it'll be at top speed, so fast it will jump the tracks if it has the chance." Braeburn said as he grabbed his hat with his hoof and used it to try and fan away some of the heat around him.
Braeburn and I kept moving backwards until we were a safe distance away from the furnace. "Think it'll blow up or something?" I asked, worried that the engine wouldn't be able to hold out any longer.
"I don't think so. But as long as we stay away from it, we should be fine until we reach Appleloosa." Braeburn said before he looked over to the window and walked over to it. "Who knows, maybe we're already there." he said before he poked his head out the window again, holding his hat down with his hoof like last time. But suddenly, he let out a gasp. "Oh hay-seeds!" he said as he began to panic.
"What's wrong?" I asked as I walked over to him and poked my head out the window again. The strong amount of window blowing in my face made it hard to see anything ahead of the train, but I managed to see we were approaching a cross-road in the tracks. One was leading towards the mountains and the other led down towards the direction to Appleloosa. "What's that?" I asked.
"It's a turnin' point in the tracks." Braeburn said before he looked down at the tracks at the cross-road and saw it was set to go the opposite direction. "Those rustlers must've set the tracks to go off towards the mountains. If we don't do something to change the track, we're gonna go off course." He said.
"Well how do we change the tracks? There's usually a lever or something, right?" I asked, trying to think of a way to fix this.
Braeburn nodded as he kept looking down the tracks. "There should be one right by the turnin' point, but the train usually stops so somepony can change the tracks. We can't stop, so we can't change the tracks." He said.
I then pulled my head back in before I looked around the car, that's when I saw the broken lever on the floor. I rushed over to it before I picked it up with one hoof. "What about this?" I asked as I turned back around to face Braeburn. "When the train passes the lever to change the tracks, I'll hit it with this and it'll change them to go the right way."
Braeburn looked at the lever before he shook his head. "That won't work. The lever is right next to the turnin' point. Even if ya did hit it, it wouldn't change 'em in time." He said.
With that idea flushed down the toilet, I threw down the lever before I tried to think of a new way to do it. It took a moment, but I finally thought of something. "Alright, I've got a plan." I said as I walked over to the Braeburn again.
Braeburn pulled his head back in before he stepped aside from the window. "What is it?" he asked curiously.
I stopped in front of Braeburn before I gave him a small smirk. "If I don't get back on, just get back to town in one piece. I'll meet you there." I said, knowing he probably wouldn't like it if I told him.
Braeburn gave me an uncomfortably curious look. "Urr…what do ya mean?" he asked.
I smirked again before I quickly rushed towards the window and dove out of it, leaving Braeburn shocked and confused. He rushed over to the window and looked out of it again to see me flying as fast as I could ahead of the train to try and reach the cross-roads before it. "That's one crazy guy…" Braeburn said under his breath before he grinned. "But it's a good crazy."
My wings flapped hard, as hard as I could move them to try and keep ahead of the train. I was starting to get tired out already, but I couldn't afford to stop now. I kept flying hard as I started to get closer to the cross-roads. Finally, I reached them and saw the lever build into the ground to change the tracks. I took some quick breaths as I looked back to see the train was approaching quickly.
I then rushed over to the lever and gripped it tightly with both front-hooves. I pulled hard, but it wouldn't budge, it was like it was rusted or something. I looked to see the train was getting closer, I began to panic as I pulled more and more on the lever. "Come on…you…little…git!" I grunted as I pulled as hard as I could.
But soon enough, I figured this wouldn't work, I had to try something else and soon, I was starting to run out of time. I quickly got on the other side of the lever and gave hit a hard buck with my hind-hooves, it moved a little, but it still needed more. I gave it a few more bucks as the train got closer, but after I gave it my hardest buck, the lever finally moved all the way and switched the tracks just in time as the train reached it.
The train screeched as it made a rough turn past me. The engine car had already past me, so I had to try and get on one of the other cars. They were all passing pretty fast, but I soon found one that I could jump onto easily. I waited until it was about to pass and then I pounced forward, leaping onto the platform between two cars until I was back aboard the train.
I sat down for a moment, trying to settle myself down from all the excitement. I took steady breaths and I kept my heart beat start to ease down. This had been one tiring day, so much traveling and fighting, it was enough to run a normal person down. Luckily for me, I wasn't exactly normal. After gathering back my strength, I got up and opened the door to the car in front of me and started making my way back to the engine car.
I would say it was smooth sailing from here, but I knew very well that it wasn't. There was still the fact that the train wouldn't stop and we still had to deal with Moneybaggs if we managed to get off this thing.
Meanwhile: Appleloosa
While the ponies continued their average daily activities in town, Moneybaggs poked his head out from behind one of the buildings as he snickered evilly. "Haha…Its almost too easy foolin' these chumps." He said before he scooped up some sandy dirt in his hoof and started rubbing it against his suit to make it look all dirty.
Moneybaggs kept doing this until he was in a mess that would make Rarity faint at the very sight of it. He raised one of his arms before he gripped a piece of his sleeve with his teeth and tarred it off, leaving a large hole in the sleeve. The next thing Moneybaggs did was raise his hoof before he hit himself across the face with it, leaving a large bruise on his cheek.
Once he looked the part, Moneybaggs started to fake-limp into the town. "Help…somepony…help me." he said while panting, like he was too weak to even stand. Eventually, these cries for help got the attention of some of the ponies and they rushed over to help.
While this was happening, Applejack and Discord came out of the saloon and saw something was going on. "What's goin' on?" Applejack asked as she watched ponies gather around something.
"I'll check it out." Discord said. With his feet still on the ground, Discord's body stretched up high in the sky. He then grabbed one of his eyes and stretched it out until it was as long as a telescope and looked down at the commotion. Upon seeing Moneybaggs in the centre of all the ponies, Discord gasped before he pushed his eye back in his head before his body lowered back down until he was at his usual height. "Its that Moneybaggs guy, he's back!" he said.
Applejack was surprised by this. "What? But we saw him get taken away by those coyotes! How could he be back?" she asked, wondering what could've happened.
"Well I didn't get a good look, but I'd say he got away from them." Discord said before he returned his attention to the crowd of ponies. "But if you want to ask him yourself, feel free to." he said.
Applejack then also looked over to the crowd before she decided to do just that. She and Discord made their way over to the crowd before they started to walk through it. "Excuse me…pardon…" Applejack said as she walked through the crowd.
Eventually they made it through the crowd and saw the state Moneybaggs was in. "It was horrible…those coyotes took me half way across the desert and tried to eat me." he said to a pony standing in front of him before he noticed Applejack. "Applejack! Thank goodness you're ok. I was worried those vicious mutts hurt ya." He said, sounding like he was truly concerned.
Applejack stared at him with a raised eye-brow. "Urr…yeah, I'm fine…but how did ya get away from those coyotes?" she asked curiously.
"An excellent question." Discord said before he snapped his fingers. In a flash of light, Moneybaggs was lying on a therapist bed-chair and Discord sat beside him with a pencil and a note-pad. "Now, tell me what happened out there, and remember…you're in a safe place." He said in a soft voice.
Moneybaggs rolled his eyes before he decided to play along. "Well…those coyotes took my out far into the desert before they stopped to make camp. They were talking about eatin' me, but I managed to get free of my ropes and get away." He explained, hoping they'd believe his tall tale.
"Uh-huh…very interesting." Discord said while writing something on the note-pad. Although, he wasn't really writing, he was playing Xs and Os…and losing. Discord snapped his fingers again before everything disappeared. "Your story checks out." He said with a simple smile.
Applejack stepped forward towards Moneybaggs. "They went through an awful lot of trouble just to get somethin' to eat, are ya sure that's what they wanted ya for?" she asked, feeling something was out of place.
Moneybaggs chuckled nervously as his eyes shifted left and right. "What do ya mean? What else would they want me for? This was just a random act of savagery, nothin' else." He said before he pretended to flinch in pain. "Now can ya be a dear and take me to the doctor? My hoof is in mighty pain." He said while lifting his presumably hurt hoof.
Applejack still felt like there was something wrong, but if Moneybaggs was really hurt, she couldn't just stand by and keep asking question. "*Sigh*…come on." she said while using her hoof to motion him to follow her.
With that, Applejack led Moneybaggs out of the crowd and down the street to take him to the doctor's office.
Meanwhile: Train
As the train continued to speed across the desert at a rapid speed, Braeburn did his best to try and cool down the engine, but it was a hopeless effort, especially since he was using his hat to try and fan it. "Aren't these trains supposed to have water or somethin'?" Braeburn asked as he kept fanning.
"I don't think that's doing much, buddy." I said as I paced back and forth around the car. "How long now until we reach Appleloosa?" I asked, beginning to get nervous about all this.
"It shouldn't be too far now." Braeburn said before he placed his hat back on his head and walked over to the window. "Hey! I think I can see the town comin' up!" Braeburn said as he looked out the window and saw the town coming up.
"Thank Celestia, I thought we were never getting off this damn thing." I said as I walked over to him to look at the window with him. Indeed, I could see the town getting closer. But soon something else caught my attention. We weren't going straight towards the town, the tracks leading to the town were going in a different direction than we were heading in. "Is there a turn or something?" I asked curiously.
"Oh yeah, there is. Don't worry, there's no different tracks we need to change, it's just one turn but it's kinda…." Braeburn stopped talking before his eyes widened in fear. "Sharp." He finished before he quickly poked his head out the window again and looked down at the tracks ahead.
I did the same and saw the turn up ahead, it was very sharp like he said, like it was a sudden turn that no one would expect while in the passenger seats. "This is bad, isn't it?" I asked.
"Yeah…it is." Braeburn said, not sugar-coating the answer. "Usually, any train can go along just fine. But at this speed, we'll never make it…the train's gonna jump the tracks!" he said before he went back into the car.
I pulled my head back in before I watched him start to panic. "Braeburn, we have to stay calm, we knew something like this could happen." I said as I walked over to him to try and calm him down.
"Stay calm? Stay calm?!" Braeburn yelled as he looked at me with wide eyes. "I can't stay calm, we're gonna just the tracks! We might get killed! Or worse! I can't die here, I need to…I need to…" he said as he began to panic more.
I listened to this for a moment before I slapped him across the face with my hoof. "Get a hold of yourself!" I yelled to him. "Now listen, you know how to deal with this kind of thing, now try to think of a way to get us out of this mess." I said, trying to get him in the right state of mind.
Braeburn rubbed the cheek I slapped with my hoof before he finally got his right mind back. Once he did, he looked at me with a firm face. "Ok…ok, first…we'll need to disconnect the rest of the cars from this one, we may not be able to stop this engine, but we can keep it from makin' a bigger mess. Then we can either jump or hold on and go along with the crash. Either way, we're not getting' out of it unscratched." He said.
I gave this some thought as well, either option seemed dangerous. If we jumped from the train, the landing could really hurt us. But if we went along with the crash, we could break something or get even more hurt. "I guess…jumping is the better option." I said.
With that, Braeburn nodded before he turned to face the window. "Ok, go detach the other cars from this one." He said as he pointed his hoof at the doors. "I'll stay here and try to get rid of some of the broken glass around this window." He said as he walked over to the window and used a piece of coal to knock off the broken fragments of glass around it.
I nodded and made my way out of the car until I was standing on the platform between this car and the next. I knew, underneath this platform, was two hooks that connected these cars together. I looked around for anything that would detach them until I saw a small lever on the side of the wall. "Well, here goes." I said before I grabbed the lever and pulled it.
There was a loud metal-y clank until I could see the car in front of me start to move away along with the rest of the cars behind it. As the engine car kept going, the other cars slowed down and were left behind.
Once that was done, I went back into the engine car and saw Braeburn had finished getting rid of all the glass. "Ok…I hope you're ready for this." Braeburn said as he turned his head around to look over to me.
I walked over to him and smirked. "I've had worse…can't say I ever jumped off a moving train before though." I said as I stood in front of the window and prepared to leap out of it.
"First time for everythin', right?" Braeburn said, returning my smirk before he looked up at the window. "Ok…on three, we jump…one…two…three!" he yelled before he leaped forward and dove out the window.
As soon as he made it clear out the window, I flapped my wings once to help me leap forward and jumped straight out the window. I felt the strange air blow me down and down towards the ground before I crashed hard into it, I tumbled against the sandy surface as I slowed down and came to a stop. I laid there for a moment before I slowly got up and rubbed my head with my hoof. I looked over to the train engine and watched as it reached the turn on the tracks.
The jumped the tracks roughly and skidded across the sand until it slowed down and then fell over onto its side. From there, it didn't look so bad…until it blew up on the inside. "Holy crap…" I said to myself as I saw a big cloud of smoke rise up from it.
"Looks like jumpin' was the best idea." A voice said behind me. I turned my head around and saw Braeburn walk over to me. He looked a bit dirty and bruised, his hat was a little torn, but he looked fine. "You ok?" he asked.
"Never better." I said before I slowly got up onto my hooves and stumbled a little. "So…ready to take on Moneybaggs?" I asked as I looked down the tracks towards Appleloosa.
"I've been ready since this whole thing started." Braeburn said while glaring at the town.
With that, we both started to make our short journey towards the town. We were pretty beaten and bruised, but we had come too far to not finish this.
A few minutes later: Appleloosa
Braeburn and I continued to weakly walk as we finally made it to the streets on Appleloosa, we both had the same goal in mind, to take down Moneybaggs and end this whole thing. As we walked through the streets, some ponies noticed us and wondered what happened. One of the ponies watched us for a second before they ran off towards the Sheriff's office.
Within the Sheriff's office, Applejack sat behind Silver Star's desk while Moneybaggs sat on the other side. "The doctor said I didn't have any damage, but I should take it easy from now on." he said while looking down at his hoof before turning his attention to Applejack. "But now, what are ya gonna do about these coyotes? By now, ya must see that somethin' needs to be done." He said.
"Moneybaggs, I know ya went through a lot out there, but I'm just a step-in until Silver Star gets back, I can't really make those kind of decisions." She stated.
"Oh." Moneybaggs said before looking back down at his desk. "I just figured ya for the…strong leader type…but I've been wrong before." He said, making Applejack feel a little unconfident with herself.
At that moment, the pony burst through the flapping doors and looked over to Applejack. "Applejack! Braeburn and that Matthew guy just got back! They look like they're in bad shape!" he said.
Upon hearing that, Applejack gasped and sprung out of her seat while Moneybaggs was left a little shifted by it. He knew that we knew his secret and threat we were most likely here to call him out.
Applejack and the pony left the office and looked down the street to see me and Braeburn limp through the streets. She gasped at the sight of the mess we were in and quickly came over to us. "Matt! Braeburn!" she said before she skidded to a stop in front of us and quickly wrapped both her arms around our necks to pull us into a tight hug.
However, due to the bruising we had suffered, her hug was a little more painful than pleasant. "Ow! Ow! Ow! Applejack!" I said as I tried to gently pull away.
Hearing me in pain, Applejack quickly released us and stepped away. "Sorry." She said before she gave us a concerned look. "What happened to ya both? Ya look terrible!" she said.
"We'll get to that later, right now we need to know where Moneybaggs is." I said. All this commotion was getting the attention of more ponies as they began to gather around and watch us.
Applejack was about to answer until Moneybaggs stepped forward. "I'm right here, son…something wrong?" he asked, playing innocent.
Upon seeing him, Braeburn and I glared hard. "Figured you'd be more surprised to see us, Moneybaggs…considering the mess and trouble you left us in." I said, not taking my eyes of his bandit.
Applejack was a little confused by this before she took a step closer. "Matt, what's goin' on?" she asked curiously.
Braeburn then turned his head to face Applejack and gave her a soft look. "Applejack, Moneybaggs has been in league with Yodellin' Sam and the coyotes from the start. He's behind this whole thing!" he said while pointing his hoof at Moneybaggs.
"Nonsense!" Moneybaggs yelled while stomping his hoof on the ground. "That's a dirty lie! I was just kidnapped by a bunch of coyotes! Why would they do that if I was in league with them?" he asked, acting offended.
I stepped forward. "Because you wanted to check up on all the ponies you captured in Rattlesnake Rock! Once you were done, you left to come back here! Probably with some crazy story about breaking free or something." I said, telling everyone around what I saw.
"Do ya have any proof that it was me there? Or do we just have to take your word for it?" Moneybaggs asked while giving us both a harsh glare.
"We don't need proof because it's the truth." Braeburn said before he turned to face the other ponies. "Everypony, ya know me, ya know I'd never lie to ya about stuff like this. You've always believed me, but know I need ya to believe me when I say this stallion is a bandit trying to play this town for a fool. He set up that whole attack on the mine to draw more ponies out into the desert so Sam and those coyotes could take us away. They were plannin' on takin' all the ponies they taken to a mountain full of dragons where they could sell them for gems!" he said strongly.
"I would never do such a thing! This is all words and no proof! Ya can't just come into town and start pointing hooves at whoever ya want!" Moneybaggs said angrily as he walked over to him.
Braeburn ignored him and kept speaking. "He told me this himself! And if Sheriff Silver Star was here, he'd tell ya the same!" he said in a loud tone.
"Well he's not here, so I guess you and your friend are alone in this little argument." Moneybaggs said, giving him a smart-ass smirk.
"But I am here!" a voice said behind the crowd, we all looked to where it came from and saw Silver Star, the deputies, the rest of the posy, Strongheart and all the other ponies from Rattlesnake Rock coming up the street. "And I can tell ya all right now that this guy is the crook we've been lookin' for! Sam was just the rustler, but this guy was the brain behind it all." Silver Star said while pointing his hoof at Moneybaggs. "And these guys are more than willing to testify." He said before looking behind him and nodding to some ponies.
With that, both Gragg and Skav were thrown forward, tied up tightly so they couldn't move. "Hey! I told ya what ya wanted to know. Moneybaggs made us do it! J-Just don't put us away, I've been in jail before, almost all my fur fell out last time." Skav said in fight at the thought of being locked up.
"Turns out all it took was a little threat of being locked up for a life-time to get this mutts tongue wagging." Strongheart said with a smirk.
The crowd began to chat among themselves as they all stared at Moneybaggs, wondering how he'd react. Knowing his cover was pretty much blow, Moneybaggs reacted by quickly grabbing Applejack and holding her in a held-lock. "Don't move! No-pony move! Or the girl gets it!" he said.
While the crowd gasped, Braeburn and I got ready to fight until his grip on Applejack's neck tightened. "I said don't move!" he warned aggressively.
Braeburn and I stopped where I was and watched as Moneybaggs started to back away with Moneybaggs in his grasp. "That's good…now I'm gettin' outta here and this little apple is comin' with me for insurance." He said.
Applejack grunted as she tried to break free. "Ya think I won't fight back, ya varmint?" she said before she tried to struggle free.
Moneybaggs continued to back away as he struggled to keep hold of her. "Lively one, ain't ya? Don't worry, I'll teach ya some manners when we get…" he then stopped as his back hit something hard, he slowly turned his head around to see Discord standing right behind him.
Discord glared sharply down at Moneybaggs with his arms crossed. "You're not going anywhere with my friend." He growled.
While Moneybaggs was intimidated by Discord's approach, Applejack took this chance to stomp one of her hooves down on Moneybaggs' and he yelped in pain as he was forced to release her. While he was focused on his injured hoof, Applejack quickly bucked him in the chest with her hind-hooves and he was smacked against Discord's body.
Discord also took this chance to snap his fingers and an anvil appeared above Moneybaggs' head, which then dropped down on top of his head and sent him in a daze. "Urr…tarnation…" Moneybaggs groaned in a daze before he fell down to the floor unconscious.
Once he was done, everyone relaxed and I walked over to Applejack and Discord. "Wow…that was one way to do it." I said before I looked up at Discord. "Good job, Discord." I said while giving him a small smile.
Discord waved his head. "Oh it was nothing, I've actually been wanting to do that to somepony for some time." He said before he looked down at Moneybaggs. "Besides…I felt there was something off about him." he said while giving Moneybaggs a hard glare.
"So did I…" Applejack started. "That story about escapin' from the coyotes didn't fit right…but I had no idea it meant he was involved in this whole thing." she said.
"Well…its over now." I said before I turned around to face Braeburn. "Looks like we did it buddy." I said, giving him a small smile.
"Yeah, I guess we did." Braeburn said while returning the smile.
Braeburn and I both took a step close to each other and shared a hoof-bump. Seeing this, Applejack smile warmly. "Hey, since when did you two become friends?" she asked curiously.
Braeburn and I looked at Applejack before I smiled at her. "Lets just say this whole thing has been full of weird stuff." I said before I looked at Braeburn. "Which mostly involved us helping each other and realizing its better to work together than apart." I said.
Braeburn returned the smile and it felt like a touching friendly moment, until Discord appeared between us. "So you two had a bonding adventure without me? Oh, I feel hurt…this is so unfair, why am I even here anyway?" he said in a huff while crossing his arms.
I rolled my eyes at this before I looked up at Discord. "Because you're bound to me, Discord…Princess Celestia wanted you to stay with me at all times, remember?" I said, trying to jog his memory.
Discord was silent for a moment before he spoke. "Well…still. I want to be on adventures too, but instead I was stuck here looking after the town, I've never been so board in my whole life." he said as he began to ramble.
We stood there listening to Discord's complaining for the last few minutes until we decided to start rounding up the rest of the bandits and finally put all this to rest. It was all finally over, no more ponies would suffer the fate Moneybaggs had planned for them. The pony rustler bandits where finally gone and the West could be at piece.
That night: Saloon
After defeating Moneybaggs, Braeburn and I told Silver Star where he could find the remains of the train where Fleet and Sam where locked up. It didn't take them long to find them, and with all the bandits rounded it, they were sent off in a prison carriage to a jail far from here.
Once that was done, the town rejoiced as the terror Moneybaggs and his bandits caused were finally over, even some of the ponies that were taken from other towns stayed to join the celebration. They partied, they sang, square-danced. But most of the partying happened in the saloon. Everyone was drinking Cider, including Silver Star. Attractive saloon-gals danced on the stage and everyone was having a good time.
Braeburn and I sat by the bar as we both had a cider in our hooves. All night, we had ponies come up and say thanks for dealing with Moneybaggs and the other, Applejack and Discord were getting some praise too. I lifted my cup up and taken a big sip before I dropped it down. "I have to tell ya, Matt, I don't think I'm used to bein' thought of as a hero." Braeburn said as he took a sip of his drink.
"Trust me, its not something your get used to…but it makes you feel like you've done something right and you've helped a lot of people by doing it, that's what matters." I said before taking another sip of my drink.
"Yeah." Braeburn said before he wiped the cider foam off his mouth.
At that moment, Strongheart came up beside Braeburn and placed her hoof on his shoulder, getting his attention. "Hey Braeburn, I was thinking maybe…later…we could dance or something…what do you think?" she asked with a small slightly embarrassed smile.
Braeburn blushed a little at this before he gulped and nodded. "Yeah…sure Strongheart, I'll be do that." He said.
"Cool, I'll be waiting." Strongheart said before she walked away backwards, which led to her awkwardly stumbling over a stool leg. "Oh…sorry…didn't see that there." she said as she turned around and fast-walked away.
Once she was gone, Braeburn turned to face me and saw the smirk on my face, receiving a blush from him. "Looks like you helped save the land and you got the girl, now you really are a hero." I said while taking a sip of my drink.
Braeburn rubbed the back of his head with his hoof. "Yeah…by the way, I never got to say thank you…ya know…for coming after me. Celestia knows where I'd be now if it weren't for you and Strongheart." He said with a kind smile.
I put the cup down and returned his smile. "Well…what are friends for?" I said. With that, we both raised our cups and carefully clonked them together before we both took a big sip to empty them.
In that moment, the music playing from the stage stopped. Braeburn and I turned around to see Silver Star on stage as he walked up to a microphone and spoke. "Howdy Appleloosa! I'm pleased to announce that the terror of the Pony Rustlers is finally over!" he said, getting a loud cheer from the crowd before he continued. "But we have a few folks to thank for this great day. First off, I would like to thank Applejack and Discord for personally takin' care of the town during my absence." He said.
Everyone looked over to Applejack and Discord as they gave them a good cheer. Applejack waved humbly as a spotlight shined down on Discord, he was holding a small golden stature of himself like an award while blowing kisses to the crowd. "You love me! You really love me!" he said while getting teary eyed.
Silver Star cleared his throat before he continued. "Then I have to thank Little Strongheart who save all the trapped ponies that the rustlers kidnapped in the past and brought then safely here." he said.
Everyone looked at Strongheart and cheered while she shyly rubbed her hoof against the floor.
"And lastly." Silver Star continued. "I would like to thank the two ponies who made off of this possible, the two who took out the bandits and identified Moneybaggs as the boss behind it. Matthew and our very own Braeburn." He said.
With that, everyone looked at us and cheer. Braeburn waved while I lifted my cup to the crowd.
"You two, come on up here so I could thank ya properly." Silver Star said.
Doing as he said, Braeburn and I got off our stools and went over to the stage. Once we reached it, Braeburn and I went up onto it and the crowd cheered again before the Silver Star looked at us and spoke. "Matt, Braeburn, no words can tell ya how grateful we are for all ya did to help us get rid of those rustlers. All the ponies who were taken are indebted to ya, ya saved them from a horrible fate and they owe ya their lives…" Silver Star said before taking off his hat and holding it against his chest. "As do I…so I'm rewardin' ya both with the Appleloosa medal of honour." He said before looking back at his deputies and nodding.
With that, the deputies came over with golden medals in their mouths before they placed them gently over our heads until they dangled around our necks. "Awesome." I said as I lifted the medal up and read the engraving on it. "Appleloosa hero of honour."
The crowd cheered again as the spotlights shined down on us. Braeburn and I waved as we smiled at everyone. "So this is what its like after you've beaten folks like those Alicorns?" Braeburn asked while keeping his eyes on the crowd.
"Pretty much." I said as I kept waving.
As the crowd began to calm down, there was a flash of light in front of each of us and two microphones on stands appeared in front of us. I looked over to Discord to see he was giving me a thumbs up before he disappeared in a flash of light. In another, he appeared behind us along with a few other ponies with country-based musical instruments. He gave me a large grim before he started playing the banjo.
As the tune started to kick up, Braeburn and I looked at each other and smiled before our bodies started to move to the tune. When the time was right, Braeburn started the song off.
Braeburn: "There's a moment in this journey that I gave up…my hooves just could walk another mile…
And that cloud above me had no silver linin'…I couldn't buy a break with my last dime…
Oh but when I saw you standin' in the corner…I'da never thought that you would have my back…
Then we rolled in like the thunder and the lightnin'…threw some punches then we had a laugh…
Just some rooooooghed up desperados…
Hangin' toooooough through thick and thin…
Kickin' up duuuuuust wherever we go…
I can see that you and me are gonna be friends."
Me: "Who'da thought we'd wind up here together…its crazy that we're standin' side by side…
Fightin' just like two birds of a feather…who's gonna tell us now that we can't fly?...
Just some rooooooghed up desperados…
Hangin' toooooough through thick and thin…
Kickin' up duuuuuust wherever we go…
I can see that you and me are gonna be friends
To the end, you and me are gonna be friends."
Discord then started playing his banjo like a guitar, which was odd. But knowing Discord, nothing made sense.
Braeburn: "Here we go!...Hey, hey, you and me, different as different can be."
Me: "You like to rock, I like to roll."
Braeburn: "You take the high, I'll take the low!"
Me: "Whow…whow-oh (whow-oh) Whooow, whooow-oooh."
Braeburn: "Just some rooooooghed up desperados…"
Me: "Hangin' toooooough through thick and thin…(With Braeburn) Kickin' up duuuuuust wherever we go…
I can see that you and me are gonna be friends…
To the end, you and me are gonna be friends…
I can see that you and me are gonna be friends…yeah…"
As the singing came to an end, the music behind us soon followed and the crowd cheered as the song came to an end. Braeburn and I smiled at them as we once again waved at the crowd.
Applejack smiled warmly as she watched us finally getting along. All the while, Discord looked confused. "But I don't understand, how can they suddenly become friends? Braeburn despised Matt just the other day." he said.
Applejack turned her head to face him and looked up at Discord. "It was just a little misunderstandin', Discord. Just because they have a little disagreement doesn't mean they have to be enemies. Like you and Celestia for example, you two didn't see eye-to-eye at some point, but now your friends…I know it's a bit complicated right now, but I don't think she's holding a grudge." She said.
Discord was silent as he crossed his arms. "This friendship thing is more complicated than I thought…and I thought it was me who didn't make sense." He said as he and Applejack continued to watch us on stage, taking in all the cheers from the crowd.
The next day: Ponyville train station
After spending another night in Appleloosa, we all agreed it was finally time to return home. We all wished Braeburn the best before we boarded the train and left to head home.
With all that's happened, I swore to myself to that I would stay off a train for at least a month. All the moving and bouncing on the tracks was really starting to make me sickly. I was relieved when we finally returned to Ponyville, I could finally go to my real home and see Twilight again.
As we left our seats and made our way down the car, Applejack walked up beside me. "Ya know, the folks of Appleloosa aren't the only ones who grateful to ya, Matt…I love Appleloosa like it was another home to me. Ya saved all those ponies and got rid of a great threat to it, I really owe ya one for that." She said with a kind smile.
I looked at her and smiled kindly. "No you don't, I don't do it for favours, I do it because I want to help. I mean, yeah, all the cuts and bruises I could've lived without…but I couldn't let all those ponies get made into dragon slaves." I said as we approached the exit to get off the train.
"I know, and…I'm glad I took ya there. I just wish that…ya didn't have to go through this sort of stuff all the time. Ya may be strong, but you're some kind of crash-test dummy. None of us want ya getting' hurt." Applejack said while giving me a concerned look.
I stepped off the train and onto the station platform as I turned around to face her. "I know Applejack, but I guess these things just happen from time to time…its just weird how I'm always there when it does." I said.
Applejack was silent as she stepped off the train and joined me on the station platform. Unlike the rest of us, Discord didn't follow the path to the exit. Instead, he walked through the wall of the train and onto the station floor. "Ahh, that's better." he said as he stretched his arms out.
As the train began to start up and move along the tracks to leave, I soon noticed a group of ponies rushing over to the station. Applejack and I watched them get closer until we could identify them as the rest of the Mane 6. I was overwhelmed to see Twilight again, but the concerned look on her face had be a little worried.
My smile went away and I started rushing over to her until I stopped in front of them. "Twi, is everything ok?" I asked, wondering what was wrong.
Twilight was about to speak until Pinkie sprung up in front of me with a panicking face. "Matt! It's horrible! I mean, it's not horrible, its actually really, really great, but we need to hurry and get over there like right now!" she said impatiently before she leaped in the air and shot away like a bullet.
After that, I shook off whatever that was and returned my attention to Twilight. "Twi, what's wrong?" I asked before I looked down at her belly. "Twi…is it time?..." I asked, feeling that this could finally be it.
Twilight shook her head. "No…at least, not for me." she said while placing her hoof on her belly.
I was confused by this before Rainbow hovered above me. "Its Mrs Cake, she's at the hospital going into labour! Mr Cake is already there, but he's not doing so good." she explained.
"We were on our way there, but then we saw the train and decided to come get you two so we could see them together." Fluttershy said with a small smile.
Applejack and I went wide-eyed at this. "For real? Mrs Cake is finally giving birth?! God, we have to get over there!" I said in a slightly loud tone.
"Well what are we waiting for then?" Rainbow said before she spun around and shot off in the air towards the hospital.
As we were about to set off, Discord appeared in front of me. "So I guess you wouldn't want me to come along, my face would probably give the little one nightmares, not really something it should go through on its first day." he said while tapping both his index fingers together with his ears down.
I thought about this for a moment before I sighed. "If you behave yourself and stay a good distance away from the baby, you can come." I said, giving his strict instructions.
Discord smiled brightly at this before he picked me up and hugged me. "Oh thank you Matthew, you won't regret this, I promise." He said before he released me and I dropped to the ground hard. "Hey, maybe this could be practise for me. I need to learn to become a good godfather after all." He said.
I got up and looked up at him firmly. "I don't think Mr and Mrs Cake would like that very much. Just stick to being a godfather to our kid, ok?" I said.
Discord's smile went away as he crossed his arms. "Fine…" he said before pouting his lip.
Suddenly, Pinkie zipped back between us all with a slightly annoyed look. "Urr…maybe I didn't make it clear. Mr and Mrs Cake, baby, hospital, RIGHT NOW!" She yelled before shooting off again.
With that, we all started to gallop our way to the Ponyville hospital, eager to see the Cakes and they're baby. Me and Fluttershy could've easily flown there, but Fluttershy wanted to stay while us while I wanted to stay close to Twilight.
This was defiantly a surprise to come back to, but I wondered why Twilight didn't ask about the trip or what happened to get me the medal around my neck, its like she didn't notice. But I suppose her mind was too set on this at the moment, which I could understand perfectly. Oh well, I guess it would have to be a story for later on.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
Well that's it for a bit, I'll be heading off to New York by the time you read this part and then heading to Baltimare…I mean, Baltimore from the BronyCon convention. I'll only be going on Saturday. I know I'll probably see at least one friend there, but I hope to see many others.
The she song I used in this chapter is called "Friends" from the "Angry Birds Movie". I don't own anything.
-Pony News-
Season 6 DVD has been announced and released onto Amazon, I'm planning on ordering my copy when I get back. I know, you're probably all like "You're going to BronyCon, just get it there, you stupid idiot!" Well even though it would be nice, I like to think ordering them off Amazon is traditional for me. I got the first 5 seasons of Amazon. Besides, I doubt it'll be there, it came out too soon.
Speaking of DVD news, I think those three EG specials are now available on DVD on Amazon as well. I'm planning on watching them online before I get them though, even though I'll probably get them whether I like them or not. That's what a true fan does, happy with what he's given if he likes it or not, be it a bad episode or a bad movie.
Also, the MLP movie DVD is expected to release in 2018 along with an EG YouTube series. I know, I was pretty shook up when I first heard it, but I'm good with it being a YouTube series.
As for Season 8, musical numbers have already been recorded for it and here's what to expect from it. More reformed Changelings and more Yaks.
-End of Pony News-
-Poll-
As I said, I'm not sure whether to reveal Shadow in this story or the next, but maybe you guys can help me make a decision. Should I reveal Shadow in this story or the sequel?
1: Reveal her now!
2: Save her!
Go to my profile to vote now.
Please remember to review and PM.
The next chapter will be up as soon as possible.
73. The new Sparkle
Hi everypony and welcome back again.
To start off, my trip to New York was awesome! I saw the sights, got some nice stuff, and best of all I went to BronyCon and met some of the actors there. So whenever I see characters like Spike, Starlight, Flash, Thorax or Applebloom, I'll think 'hey, I've met those guys!' lol
Speaking of which, I'd like to give a big shout out to my friend StormySky for meeting me there and helping me get around. I don't think we could've gotten so far without you, buddy.
Anyway, this is the chapter you've all been waiting for, the birth of a new character in our little tale. It also features that Discord version of the Gaston song I mentioned a while back. I don't own the main song itself, but I do own this version because I wrote it myself, I really hope you enjoy it.
Chapter 73: The new Sparkle
It's been three months since my trip to Appleloosa with Applejack and Discord. From what I heard in the papers and Braeburn's letters, things have started to settle down over there since we fixed its problem with the Pony Rustler bandits. It finally seems like the Western region Equestria is finally at peace for now.
As for what's happened at home since then is a different story. Sure, it was still as peaceful as ever, but it wasn't unexciting. For starters, Mrs Cake finally had her foals, twins to be exact, a boy and a girl they've called Pound and Pumpkin Cake. I was there in the hospital with the rest of the group when they were born, they we truly adorable. It wasn't long before we all took a shine to them, but not as much as Pinkie, who was totally like an aunt to them.
However, despite all this, I could tell they weren't easy to handle. I usually dropped into Sugar Cube Corner to see the Cakes were struggling to run their business while handling two needy foals at the same time. They once even came around to the Library to ask if we could babysit them while they were go away for a little bit, we had to decline, but from what I heard, Pinkie handled it and every babysitting job since.
I was happy for the Cakes, but it got me wondering. Would taking care of foal really be that hard to handle? I mean, I know they had two and we'd probably only have one, but still. Would it be even harder for us because of Twi's studying and my delivering? Not to mentioned our jobs as protectors of the whole town. Would we have time to take care of our kid? Would it make us stronger or just make things harder?
I didn't know what to expect, but I don't regret anything, I was glad to be having a foal with Twilight. I loved her more than anything, she's my everything, and I'd feel the same about our foal.
Ponyville Library
I was in the kitchen of the Library, looking through the fridge for something to drink before I had to set off for work. I looked through all the beverages we had until I came across a bottle of soda. I grabbed the top of the bottle with my mouth before I pulled it out of the fridge. Once I had it, I turned around and used one of my hind-legs to gently kick the fridge door shut.
I then made my way into the front room and sat down in front of the round desk with the wooden horse-head on it. I looked over to one of the other tables and saw Jeff and Peewee playing cards while Spike packed books on the shelves. I looked up at him on the top of the ladder and smiled. "How's the books coming along, Spike?" I asked.
Spike turned his head around to look down at me while holding a stack of books in his hands. "Its coming along fine, Matt. I just find it a little weird that Twilight didn't want to do this, she loves stacking these books." He said as he picked one of the books out of the stack in his hand and placed it on the shelf.
I wondered this as well. I looked over to the door to Twilight's study, it felt like she had been in there for a while, I hoped she was alright. I returned my attention to Spike. "Well she has been struggling to move lately…then again, she could just use her magic...I'll go check on her in a sec." I said, wanting to have the drink I've been craving for first before anything. I looked over to Jeff holding a fan of cards in his talons. "Hey Jeff, can you help me with this?" I asked while shaking the bottle in my hoof a little.
Jeff looked over to me and frowned. "Aww c'mon, Matt, I really hate doin' that thing. Can't you open it?" he asked, sounding like he really didn't want to do this.
"With what?" I asked strongly. "My teeth? Sorry, I don't feel like going to the dentist because I broke my teeth trying to open a bottle. C'mon man, you know the drill." I said as I took a few steps towards him.
"*Sighs hard* Fine." Jeff said as he threw his cards down on the table and flew over to me, he landed on my arm and walked up to the bottle in my hoof. Jeff sighed again before he lowered his head down to the bottle cap and snapped it off by using his beak as a bottle-opener. "Happy?" he groaned as he rubbed his beak with his wing.
"Very, thanks." I said with a small smirk. As Jeff flew back to the table to resume his game, I held the bottle up to my mouth and took a quick sip from it. Feeling the cold fizzy soda run down my throat felt so good and refreshing, it was definitely what I needed. But now that was out of the way, it was time to check on the wife.
While still holding the bottle in my hoof, I made my way over to the door to the study and used my head to gently push it open. Once it was open enough, I saw Twilight sitting in front of her desk at the end of the room while reading a book, I smiled at the sight of her and walked over to her. I stopped behind her and gently nuzzled my head beside her neck. "Hey babe, what you reading?" I asked.
Twilight looked at me and smiled. "Nothing much, just something about the life style of the average Cave Trolls. I'm kinda done anyway." She said before she used her magic to close the book and move it aside. "So how are you?" she asked with her sweet smile.
I returned it. "I'm fine…how are you feeling today?" I asked, glancing down at her large belly.
"It's a little stiff, but I'm coping." Twilight said before she looked down at her belly. "Although, it does seem a little more…active…today, I've felt it kick at least six time today." She said while rubbing the large lump with her hoof.
I smirked at this. "Well its only two months from now, maybe it knows it'll be getting out soon. Maybe its getting impatient." I joked before I let out a small chuckle.
Twilight returned my smirk before she spoke. "Its not even born yet, how is it smart enough to know how long it'll be until it gets out?" she asked.
I then wrapped my arm around the back of her neck. "If its anything like you, it'll be a genius." I said, getting a warm smile from Twilight before we shared a loving kiss. Once we separated, I continued. "And if its anything like me, it'll be tough as hell."
Twilight rolled her eyes. "You wish." She said before changing the subject. "Hey, have you seen my book? Its got a green cover and titled 'Legends of the Sea-ponies', I can't seem to find it anywhere." She said while titling her head.
I looked around before I saw a green book on the desk in front of Twilight, it was practically in front of her. I returned my attention to her and gave her a small smile. "Urr…Twilight, isn't that it right there?" I asked while pointing at the book.
Twilight turned her head and looked down at the book I was pointing at. It was indeed the book she was looking for, which made her blush from embarrassment. "Oh…its right there…sorry, I don't know why I didn't see it." she said before her horn glowed.
As I watched Twilight pick up the book and open it in front of her, I smiled and gently rubbed her back with my hoof. "Its ok, Twi, its just the effect of the pregnancy." I said before I reached my head down and nuzzled her head with mine. "It'll pass soon enough." I said.
Twilight smiled again as she looked at me. "I know…thanks Matt." she said before she leaned in and gave me a small kiss. "But don't worry about me, you should get ready for work." She said.
My smile turned sly as I slowly wrapped my arms around her and turned her to face me properly. "Well I could…or I could spend some time with you, I have plenty of it to spare." I said before I leaned in to kiss her deeply.
Twilight smirked before her horn glowed and the book hovered up between us, making me kiss it instead of her. "Slow down, Romeo, we're not starting any of that. I know how you work, once we start, you're not gonna stop." She said before she placed the book down on the desk.
I keep my smirk. "What can I say? I'm a passionate person. There's no such thing as loving you too much." I said before I lean in to try and kiss her again.
Twilight's horn glowed again before she disappeared and reappeared behind me. "Ah-ah-ah, I said no, mister. Now get to work, those deliveries aren't gonna make themselves." she said before she used her magic to make my saddlebags appear and placed them on my back.
I rolled my eyes before I smirk at her again. "Fine, but when I get back, we're finishing this." I said before I took another sip of my drink before I turned and made my way over to the exit.
Twilight kept watching as I made my way out the door and re-entered the front room. "Love you, Twi." I said as I kept walking away.
"Love you too, Matt." Twilight said before she returned her attention to her book, she opened it with her magic before she started reading it. As she did, she suddenly felt a painful kick in her belly, making her flinch before going back to reading.
Meanwhile, I walked over to Spike and saw he was nearly finished stacking the books on shelves. "Hey Spike, I'm taking off now, can you watch Twilight while I'm gone." I asked, hoping he would agree.
Spike looked down at me from the top of the ladder and nodded. "Sure, but you ask me to do that every time you leave to go somewhere and nothing happens, don't you think she's strong enough to take care of herself?" he asked as he placed the last book on the shelf.
"I do, but she's a little off right now, the foal is really messing with her brain. I just want a pair of eyes watching her until I get back." I said as I watched Spike climb down the ladder.
"Well maybe Discord can watch her, he can watch anyone from all the way across Equestria." Spike said as he walked past me to head for the kitchen.
I watched him go as I responded. "I would, but I don't where he's gone. He's been going somewhere a lot lately, which is kinda worrying." I said as I tried to think of where Discord could be. "He's supposed to tell me where he goes if he ever goes off by himself, otherwise he's breaking Celestia's orders." I said, thinking back to what Celestia said a while back.
Spike stopped where he was and turned his head around to look at me. "He told me he was heading for the Grey Horse-Shoe bar, you know, that place you went to when you thought Twilight was going to leave you. Apparently he's been going there with the Diamond Dogs for some guy-time." He said before he resumed his journey towards the kitchen. "Hey, do we have any of those gem sandwiches left?" he said, acting as if it was no big deal.
But I was a little confused by this. "Urr…he told you? Why didn't he tell me? Isn't that what he's supposed to do?" I said as I watched him enter the kitchen.
"Ask Jeff." Spike called as he went deeper into the kitchen, too busy looking for one of those sandwiches instead of talking.
I then did as he said and turned my attention to Jeff who was back to playing his card game with Peewee. Hearing the conversation we were having, Jeff looked over to me and noticed me staring at him for answered. He sighed hard again before he gave me them. "Look, Discord felt that you were holdin' him by a leash, he wanted to go somewhere without tellin' anyone…or at least without tellin' you. He said somethin' about feelin' trapped, not bein' allowed to go anywhere without ya…then he started sobbin' and flooded the place with a sea of tears…somehow a few fish got mixed in that…so we just told him to go." He explained, going through much detail about what happened.
"And you let him go?" I asked, but silenced once I realised how I sounded and my ears lowered. "Huh…I guess that's what he meant." I said out-loud in a quiet voice before I sighed. "Alright, I guess he can go places as long as he tells someone where he's going. But I'm gonna have to talk about it with him once he gets back." I said before I turned around and started making my way towards the exit. "Anyway, I need to head out to work, be sure to come find me if anything happens while I'm gone." I said as I stopped in front of the door.
"We will." Jeff and Peewee said at the same time as they continued to focus on their card game.
I smiled in amusement at this before I grabbed the doorknob with my hoof and opened the door. I then left the Library and walked out into the open. Once outside, I closed the door behind me and took a deep breath, trying to calm myself down and convince myself that everything would be alright while I'm gone. I then started to make my way into the streets of town to go to Sweet Apple Acres.
Meanwhile: Canterlot/Café
Enjoying the warm sun, Princess Celestia and Luna were sat by a small table at the café of Canterlot. Standing by them were one of each of their guards, Star Beam for Celestia and Night Thunder for Luna. The two sisters were enjoying a hot coffee as the citizens of Canterlot passed by, some stopped to admire the Princesses in the open while the others just kept going.
Luna used her magic to lift her cup to her mouth and take a sip. Seeing the blank look on her face, Celestia noticed that she was being unusually quiet today, she couldn't help but feel concerned for her. "Sister, you've barely touched your muffin, is there something on your mind?" Celestia asked in concern.
Luna snapped out of her train of through before she looked down at her muffin to see it only had one bite taken out of it. "Oh, right…sorry…" she said before she picked it up with her magic before taking a massive bite out of it. As she chewed it up, she placed what was left back on the table.
Celestia's concern didn't ease as she watched Luna use her magic to pick up the Canterlot newspaper and hold it up in front of her face, practically separating her from Celestia. Celestia sighed before she used her magic to pull the newspaper away from Luna and place it down on the table. "Luna, please talk to me, I don't like it when you act so…distant." She said, wanting Luna to open up for her.
Luna sighed heavily before she spoke. "Very well…I'm just still a little shaken by the fact that Matthew and Twilight Sparkle are soon to have a little foal of their own. I mean, I am very happy for them, over the moon in fact…but…" she said before he ears lowered a little. "After it comes…that'll be the end of it…" she said sadly.
"The end of what, Luna?" Celestia asked with a raised eye-brow. With one glance of Luna's gaze, Celestia already knew the answer. "Oh Luna…we've talked about this already, I thought you were over him." she said, feeling no progress had been made.
Luna nearly jumped out of her seat, but instead just straightened up quickly. "I am!...I mean, I'm not going after him anymore…it's easy to stay away from him, but to banish the feelings…it's not that easy." She said while rubbing her arm with her other hoof.
Celestia understood what she meant exactly. "I understand, Luna…as you know, I had feelings for someone once too. After…he…was banished, I knew he was a traitor, but my feelings for him remained until the end." She said with a little bit of sadness in her voice, but strengthened up. "But once I knew there was no future with him anymore, I let it go…you should do the same, Luna…for your sake and for theirs." She said with as much kindness as she could.
Luna was a little upset by this, but knew she was right. She had been able to keep it together this long, she was sure she could hold out even longer. "I know, sister…its just…I feel like I love him." she said before she slowly yet professionally took a sip of her coffee.
"Luna, if I may say so, I think maybe you should trying…you know…finding someone else?...I mean, if you want to be with someone, why not try going out sometime? Meet stallions and see if they make you feel the same way Matthew did." Celestia suggested, knowing she's be rather shocked about such a suggestion.
And she was right, Luna nearly did a spit-take with her coffee, but managed to hold it back with her hoof over her mouth. Luna then swallowed her coffee before she spoke. "You want me to…start dating?...I…I don't think I can do that, I mean, I have my business raising and lowering the moon every night, then there's my duties protecting everypony in their dreams, I don't think I have time for such a thing." she said while blushing from embarrassment.
Celestia closed her eye halfway and rested her chin on her hoof. "Yet, you had time for it when it involved Matthew?" she said as she raised her eye-brow.
Luna's eyes shifted left and right before she took another sip of her coffee before using her magic to pick up the newspaper again and hold it in front of her face. "Oh, what's going on in the world today?" she said, trying to ignore the subject. "Oh, the pony-napping in Appleloosa has stopped…wonder what finally brought that to an end." She said, hoping Celestia would drop the subject.
But she didn't, Celestia used her magic to pull the newspaper away and place it down on the table again, she even placed her coffee cup on top of it to weigh it down. "Luna, I'm serious! You say you want to be with someone, you want get over Matthew, there's no better way to do both than to find someone else that makes you feel just as happy." She said.
Luna gave it some thought, but she couldn't think of anyone that would achieve that. "I don't know, Celestia, I just don't think there's anyone else out there." she said, feeling there was no one out for her.
Celestia gave her a small smile. "Of course there is, Luna…there's somepony out there for everyone. I'll even help you find him, if you'd let me." she said in a sweet tone.
Luna was silent for a moment before she responded. "I'll have to think about it…thank you though." She said, giving Celestia a warm thankful smile.
Celestia returned it before she reached her head over and nuzzled it against hers. "Any time, dear sister." She said before she pulled away and looked down at the menu. "Hmm, I'm in the mood for some of think cream cake they have here." she said as she raised the menu up with her magic.
Luna rolled her eyes while smirking. "Surprise, surprise." She said sarcastically under her breath.
Celestia didn't hear her and lowered the menu before she turned her head to face Star Beam. "Star Beam, could you be a dear and get me some of that cake for me?" she asked nicely.
Star Beam smiled and bowed his head. "Of course, your highness." He said before he stepped back and made his way into the café to get Celestia her cake.
Luna looked down at the menu as well and saw some chocolate cake that she thought looked nice. Once her mind was made up, she turned her head to face Night Thunder. "Night Thunder?" she said.
Upon hearing his name being called, Night jumped in a startled way a little for smiling sheepishly at Luna. "Yes your highness?" he asked nervously.
"Can you bring me some of this chocolate cake? I'd really like to try some." Luna said with a small smile.
The smile Luna was giving him and the look in her glistening eyes was enough to melt Night's heart. His cheeks burned as he returned her smile. "Of course, Princess…I'll be right back." he said before he started making his way over to the entrance of the café, but not without stumbling over a chair leg which made the two Princess giggle in amusement.
Night then entered the café and wanted to kick himself for making such a fool out of himself. He walked over to the counter where all the cakes were being held behind glass and started to search through it to find the chocolate cake. "Yeah, tripping and nearly falling flat on your face really gets the girl's attention…if she wants something to laugh at! You idiot!" he grumbled to himself before he finally found the cake and checked how much it was for a slice.
"I wouldn't waste your time, buddy." a voice said beside him. Night turned his head to see Star Beam standing beside him also looking through the cakes. "A guard and a Princess never work out…best find someone of your own rank to go for." He said before he too found the cake he'd been searching for.
Night blushed a little before he spoke. "I…don't know what you're talking about…my relationship with Luna is professional, nothing more." He said strongly, trying to convince Star Beam that he had the wrong idea.
"Yeah, sure." Star Beam said in an unconvinced voice as he placed some coins on the counter. The pony behind the counter then started cutting a slice of the cake off before placing it on a plate and giving it to Star Beam. "Here's a little advise, if you really want to try and get with her, try spending some more time with her." he said before he grabbed the plate with his hoof and started making his way out of the café to re-join the Princesses.
This left Night in a struggled place. Would he let this slide, or try to make something out of this. He didn't believe Luna would waste her time with someone like him, but after what he heard, it seemed like Luna was looking for someone to spend time with. This could be his only chance.
"Hey buddy? You gonna stand there all day or are you going to buy something?" The pony behind the counter said roughly.
Night then snapped out of his train of thought before he looked at pony behind the counter. "Huh…oh, sorry." He said before he resumed to perchance the cake for Luna. It seemed this thought of he and Luna as an item would have to wait.
Later that day: Streets of Ponyville
After arriving at Sweet Apple Acres and getting my delivery cart hooked up to me, I started making my rounds around Ponyville to deliver the food the citizens ordered.
I had already stopped by the Schoolhouse, Derpy's place and the Town Hall. I was now arriving at Sugar Cube Corner, the Cakes ordered some pretty big things, it was probably the biggest order on my list today. Plus, it gave me a chance to see the twins.
I stopped in front of the door and unhooked the cart from my body. Once it was off, I walked up to the door and knocked on it with my hoof. It took a moment, but the door soon opened to reveal Mr Cake behind it. "Oh, hi Matthew, doing your usual rounds again?" he asked with a bright smile.
I nodded. "Yep, got your orders right here." I said before I turned and walked over to my cart, I then picked up a clipboard with my hoof and read his order. "Fifty-five fresh apples and six jars of apple-source?" I asked while reading the order under the name 'Cake'.
"Yep, that's ours." Mr Cake said before he walked over to the cart and watched me pick up the large sack of apples from it. "Hear, let me help you with that." He said before he grabbed the sack with his mouth and lifted it up. Unfortunately, he didn't take into account how heavy a sack of fifty-five apples was. Mr Cake grunted as he struggled to hold it up, he soon started to slowly make his way back towards the entrance of the store to take the sack inside.
I grabbed the sack with the six jars inside before I followed Mr Cake inside. Once inside Sugar Cube Corner, I placed the sack on the counter as Mr Cake used all his strength to gently place the sack down. By the looks of it, I'd say he was glad to finally drop that thing. "Ok…oh…that's heavier than it looks." Mr Cake said before he looked over to me. "Wait here, I'll go get your pay."
I nodded. "Ok, I'll just be here." I said as I crossed one of my front-legs in front of the other.
As Mr Cake went into the kitchen to get my payment, I looked down at the sack of apples and walked over to it. I grabbed the top with my hoof before I lifted it up easily. "…Oh Mr Cake…you're a nice guy, but you could work out a little more." I said to myself before I placed the sack back down.
While I continued to wait, I heard a rattling noise near me. I looked to where it came from and saw the twins playing with some toys. Pumpkin Cake had a squeaky chicken in her mouth while Pound Cake was shaking a rattle with his hoof. I smiled at this site before I made my way over to them. "Hey guys, what's going on?" I asked, knowing they couldn't answer.
Pound and Pumpkin looked at me with curiosity before they smiled, they made cute little giggly noises before they started crawling towards me. I smiled down at them before I sat down and gently scooped Pound up in my arms, but I felt that Pumpkin might be feeling left out, so I lowered one of my wings down to her and started tickling her with the feathers.
I could hear Pumpkin laugh as I cradled Pound in my arms. "You know…it probably won't be long before I'm doing this on a daily basis. I mean, I'll only be doing one of these because we'll only have one baby, but you know what I mean…" I said before I looked down at Pound in my arms and watched him slowly start to relax in comfort.
I smiled at how cute he looked before I felt something strange on my wing, it felt tight and slobbery. I slowly lifted my wing up to see Pumpkin was hanging onto my largest feather with her mouth, she gnawed at it as she dangled from my wing. I was a little grossed out, but I was ok with it, I slowly lowered Pumpkin back down before I swapped them, so now Pumpkin was in my arms and Pound was being tickled by my feathers…after wiping off the drool on them of course.
As I played with the twins, Pinkie Pie trotted down the stairs with Gummy hanging off the end of her tail by his mouth. She soon noticed me playing with the twins and came over to me. "Hi Matty." She said with a gleeful face. "Playing with the twins?" she asked.
I turned my head to face her and smiled. "Yeah…funny, I never thought I was good with babies, but look at me now…these two are like putty in my hooves." I said before I looked back down at Pumpkin in my arms as cradled her left and right. "Can't say I'm not putty in theirs to be honest." I said, giving her a sweet smile.
Pinkie walked up beside me and looked down at Pumpkin with me. "You do seem to know what you're doing." she said before her attention turned to me and she patted my back with her hoof. "Don't worry, Matty, I'm sure you'll make a great dad!...By the way, how is Twilight anyway? Is she feeling ok?" she asked curiously.
I returned my attention to her and answered. "She's fine, although she has still been feeling a little sick a bit, but she's getting better." I said before I started to pass Pumpkin over to Pinkie. "Here, can you take over?" I asked.
"Sure." Pinkie said before she sat down and took Pumpkin in her arms and started cradling her. "So have you been? After hearing what happened in Appleloosa, I was sure you were gonna take a long break from all this work. I mean, if I was fighting bad guys all the time like you did, I don't think I'd ever want to walk or do awesome back-flips ever again." she said, imagining how exhausted she would be.
I smirk at this. "Ok, one…know you guys, you basically do fight bad guys all the time. And two, I need the work to save up some money, I still need to buy things like a crib and diaper changing table." I said before I gently patted Pound on the head and then made my way over to the counter. "Man, Mr Cake is taking his time getting my cash." I said out-loud to myself as I rested my elbow on the counter.
Pinkie walked over to me while carrying Pumpkin with one arm. "And how's Discord been doing? Has he been behaving himself?" she said with a small smile. "I mean, I know he wants to make up for all those things he did in Canterlot, so I guess he wouldn't want to do bad…but still it's nice to be kept in the loop." She said before she sat down and pulled a baby milk bottle out of no-where, she then started feeding Pumpkin with it.
I turned around to look at her while my elbow was still on the counter. "He's been fine…I mean, he's been sneaking out to go to some kind of bar…but he tells Spike or someone else about it every time he leaves, so I guess its alright." I said before I sighed a little. "I can tell all this is a bit hard on him. Discord was meant to be a free spirit, allowed to do whatever he wanted with his magic…as long as it wasn't evil, of course…this feels like we're tying him down." I said, thinking how this could be bothering Discord's vibe.
"Well its better than him going around causing unspeakable chaos everywhere." Pinkie said before she went into some deep thought about it. "On second thought, I could really go for some chocolate rain right about now. It would really be a great boost for my next party." A large excited smile then grew on her face. "Think about it! It's a great party, there'll be music, yummy food, pony getting groovy to the beat. Then boom! Big finale, chocolate rain! How awesome would that be?" she asked, getting a little overexcited about the idea.
I gave her a gentle smile while staring into her bulging wide eyes. "Its pretty awesome, Pinkie…we'll probably have to wait until Celestia gives Discord the green light to use his magic again." I said.
As Pinkie backed up and calmed down, Mr Cake returned into the room with a small pouch in his mouth. He placed it down on the counter in front of me. "Here you go, Matt." he said.
I smiled at him. "Thanks." I said before I grabbed the pouch with my mouth and picked it up. "Say hi to Mrs Cake for me." I muffled before I turned around and made my way towards the exit.
"I will, bye." Mr Cake responded as he waved his hoof. "And drop by some time, we have some new products we'd like you and Twilight to try." He said as he watched me leave the store.
Upon hearing that, Pinkie zipped up beside Mr Cake. "We have new stuff to try? Oh, I can try them! Pick me! Pick me!" she said as she hopped on the stop in excitement, being careful not to endanger Pumpkin in her arm.
Mr Cake smiled nervously at her. "Urr…Pinkie, that's nice of you to offer, but you tend to enjoy anything you eat…its not really a real critical opinion." He said, being honest with her.
Pinkie stopped hopped before he smile went away. "Oh…ok…" she said as she frowned a little. That was until her smile sprung back on her face. "Can I try them anyway?" she asked, making Mr Cake sigh as he rolled his eyes.
Meanwhile, I approached my cart and started to reattach it to my body. Once it was on, I start to make my way to the next destination. All the while, I couldn't help but think about how I handled the twins back there. It seemed so easy, but that was just me spending a little time with someone else's kids, I knew being the actual parent would me a challenge. I could only hope I'd be ready.
Meanwhile: Library
Jeff and Peewee were still playing their card game while Spike worked and Twilight studied. Jeff soon ended it by throwing his cards down on the table with a large smile on his face. "Six queens! And the crowd goes wild! Ahhh!" he said in a whisper before he reached his wings over the small pile of bird seed in the centre of the table.
But before he could take them, Peewee placed his cards down. "Seven queens…looks like the crowd's cheering for me now." he said before he got up onto the table and started eating the seeds right then and there.
Jeff was left with his beak hanging open before he crossed his wings and huffed. "*Huff* Never liked this game anyway." He said as he jealously watched Peewee eat the seeds.
Spike then came in from the kitchen with a glass of water in his hand before he looked over to the two birds with a firm look. "Can you two keep it down? Twilight's not feeling good and she wants to study in peace." He said as he made his way towards the study room.
But as he was about to reach it, the door swung open to reveal a very ill-looking Twilight. Her mane was a bit of a mess, she looked tired and a bit annoyed. "Can you guys keep it down? I'm trying to study in peace!" she said before she groaned and rubbed her head with her hoof.
Spike looked at her as he approached her. "I was just saying the same thing to Jeff and-"
"Yeah, whatever Spike, just give me that." Twilight said roughly before she grabbed the glass of water with her magic and gulped it down like it was the last drink she'd ever have.
Spike and the two birds were a little shaken by Twilight's sudden aggressive mood. Once she was done drinking, Twilight started to calm down before she moved the glass away and looked down at Spike, seeing the slightly frightened look on his face. "…*sigh*…Sorry Spike, I don't know why I snapped…I just don't feel so good…" she said while rubbing her head again.
Spike gave her a concerned look before he took a step forward and placed his hand on her side. "What's wrong, Twilight? Are you having those sicknesses again?" he asked, wondering what could be wrong this time.
Twilight placed her hoof back down before she spoke. "I don't know…my head hurts a lot and my stomach feels like…it feels like…" she said as she placed her hoof on her belly.
"Feels like what?" Spike asked as he looked down at Twilight's large belly.
Twilight didn't get a chance to answer as a sudden pain struck across her body, making her lower down and grunt, shocking Spike. "Ahh…oh that hurt…ahh!" she said as she felt the pain again.
"Twilight!" Spike yelled before he tried to help her stand up. "Twilight, what's wrong with you? What's going on?!" he asked, beginning to panic for her safety.
"Don't move me, Spike!" Twilight said, refusing to stand as she breathed rapidly. "I…oh Celestia…I…I think it's time…." She said, realising that this could finally be it.
"Time?" Spike asked with a confused look. "Time for what?...Lunch?" he asked.
Twilight gave him a sharp glare in frustration. "No Spike!..." she said before her glare went away. "I think…I think the baby is coming." She said before feeling the pain again, making her grunt.
Spike, Jeff and Peewee all shot up where they were with wide eyes. "What?!" they all yelled out at once. "But that's impossible! Its only been nine months!" Spike said.
"I know that!" Twilight said loudly. "But clearly the baby doesn't! It wants out…ahh…" she said as she felt another shock of pain.
"Ok! Ok! Ok!" Spike said as he began to panic and skip on the spot. "What do I do? Should I get the doctors over here?" he asked before he grabbed her by her cheeks and shook her head back and forth. "Tell me what I should do, Twilight!" he said.
Twilight's eyes rolled around due to Spike shaking her head before she straightened then and gave him a firm look. "First, let go of my face." she said, resulting in Spike releasing her face and chuckling nervously at her. "Second, someone needs to go get Matt and Discord!" she said.
"Ok." Jeff said before he shot up off the table and hovered in the air. "I'll go get Matt, I'll be able to see him from high up in the sky." He said.
Twilight nodded before she looked at Spike. "Spike…ahh…are you ok to get Discord?" she asked, hoping he would.
Spike nodded at this. "Of course, he should be at the Grey Horse-Shoe bar, I'll go get him right away." He said before he turned and sprinted towards the front door. "Peewee, watch Twilight while we're gone!" he said as he ran past the table that Peewee was standing on.
Peewee saluted Spike as he watched him run up to the door and open it to leave. "Will do, boss." He said.
Twilight watched as Spike opened the front door and ran out of it with Jeff following behind in the air. "Be quick!" she called before she felt another pain shoot through her body.
Now left alone, Peewee flew over to Twilight who was now lying flat on the floor and breathing quickly as sweat ran down her face. "Ok…just take deep breaths, Twilight…in and out, in and out." He said, taking deep breaths himself to guide Twilight through it.
Twilight did as he said and took steady breaths to try and calm herself down. It worked a little, but it was hard when she kept feeling the pain in her body.
Meanwhile: Sweet Apple Acres
After finishing my rounds in town, I returned to Sweet Apple Acres to give back the cart and turn in the money I made to Applejack. I was in the barn while Big Mac helped disconnect the cart from my body. "Nice job out there, Matt." Applejack said as she watched me get free of the cart. "Here's your payment for the work." She said before she tossed me a small pouch.
Seeing it come at me, I leaped up and grabbed it in my mouth before landing back down on the floor. "Thanks Applejack." I muffled before I grabbed the pouch with my hoof and took it out of my mouth. "It won't be long now before I act afford everything we need to make the baby's room." I said before I slipped the pouch of coins into the saddle bag on my back.
"That reminds me, do ya think Discord will be ok with ya turnin' the guest room into the baby room? I mean, he's been stayin' there since he moved in with ya'all, are you sure he'll take it well?" Applejack asked, thinking Discord make take it the wrong way.
I knew what she meant. Twilight and I had talked about turning the guest room, currently being used by Discord, into the baby's room when it finally arrives. We figured it would be a good idea because the guest room is right next door to ours. Problem is we never actually talked about it with Discord. "I'm sure he'll be fine with it…he is going to be our foal's godfather after all, he'll want what's best for the foal as much as we will." I said, a little confident that Discord would think the same way.
"Well I hope you're right, we wouldn't want Discord to get the wrong idea and cause another ruckus." Applejack said before she walked over to the cart and looked inside to see there was still some stuff in there. "Another batch of undelivered goods?" she asked.
I nodded as I walked up beside her. "Yeah, they weren't home, I left the note through their mail though." I said before I walked past her and made my way out of the barn. "I'm gonna take off to go home, I'll see you later, ok?" I said as I left the barn.
"Ok, see ya, Matt. Give my love to Twilight for me." Applejack called as she watched me leave.
As soon as I left the barn, I suddenly heard a faint voice in the wind. "Matt!" it called. I looked around, but couldn't see anything or anyone nearby. I was about to brush it off as nothing until I noticed something coming towards me from the sky, it looked like a bird. I squinted my eyes to try and make out what it was, it wasn't long before I could see it was Jeff, flying down towards me with great speed and a panicky look on his face.
"Jeff?" I said in confusion as I watched him dive down towards me. "Jeff! Slow down!" I said as I backed away a little.
Jeff continued to fly very fast before he eventually reached me, but being unable to stop, he crashed into the ground hard. I looked down at Jeff as he slowly picked himself up out of the dirt. "*Groans*…maybe I should've slowed down a little." He said in a daze as he struggled to stand back up.
"Really, you think so?" I asked sarcastically before I placed my hoof against him to help him stay standing. "Jeff, what's wrong?" I asked, wondering why he was in such a hurry to find me.
Jeff shook his daze off before he looked up at me, with his eyes immediately shooting wide open. "Matt! You have to get home right now! It's Twilight!" he said as he grabbed my hoof with his wings tightly and tried to pull me along to follow him. But of course it didn't work.
I stared down at Jeff while he continued to tug on my hoof. "What's wrong with Twilight? Is she ok?" I said before I began to worry. "Is she hurt?" I asked in concern.
Jeff stopped tugging on my hoof and looked back up at me. "You can say that…Twilight was saying she was feeling sick, then she started getting these pains in her body. Matt, its your kid, I think it's comin'!" he said in a loud tone.
Upon hearing that, my eyes shot open and I lifted my hoof up while Jeff was still gripped onto it, pulling him up with it until he was hanging in front of my face. "What?! The baby's coming?!" I said, beginning to panic.
Jeff nodded. "Yeah! Twilight needs you to come home right now!" he said before he released my hoof and flapped his wings until he was hovering in mid-air.
I started to panic even more. My heart was beating against my chest hard and I found it difficult to breathe, I didn't even know if I could move. "Oh god! Oh god! What do I do?" I said, trotting on the stop, trying to make sense of what to do while a million things rushed through my mind. "Gotta get home!" I yelled before I flapped my wings and took off into the air. With one big flap, I shot off past Jeff and flew towards town, leaving Jeff in a large dust cloud.
Jeff coughed within the cloud until it finally cleared. He then looked to where I took off to and saw I was already entering the town. "Yeah, wait, I'll come with you." he groaned as he continued to hover in the air.
Hearing the commotion, Applejack walked out of the barn and made her way over to Jeff. "Jeff, is somethin' goin' on? Where'd Matt go in such a hurry?" she asked, curious as to what's going on.
Jeff continued to stay in the air as he turned around to face her. "He's goin' back to the Library, Twilight's goin' into labour because the baby's comin'." He explained in a simple tone.
"Oh right." Applejack said before she turned around and started making her way back into the barn. In that moment, she finally realised what he said and froze where she was. Applejack then spun around and shot back up in front of Jeff, looking him right in the eyes. "She's going into what and what's comin'?!" she said with wide eyes, leaving Jeff feeling small and a little shaken.
Meanwhile: Grey Horse-Shoe bar
While the rest of us were in Ponyville, Discord was spending his time in the Grey Horse-Shoe bar, where he felt he could let loose and use his magic as he saw fit. No rules, no consequences, just him and the Diamond Dogs having a good time and doing whatever they wanted.
After a number of visits, the usual pony customers stopped coming because all off the mischief Discord and the Diamond Dogs cause, especially when the rest of the Diamond Dogs pack started joining them. It wasn't long before it became all dogs and no ponies. The bar-tender pony didn't complain, as long as there was gold to go into his pocket, he didn't care if his customers were soul-eating wraiths.
Discord sat at one end of the bar one his chaos throne, overviewing the large group of Diamond Dogs wrecking the place. They chased each other around, played cards, sang loudly while swinging cup of cider around, got into fist fights, basically caused usual Diamond Dog chaos.
As for the bar-tender pony, he just kept rubbing a cloth against glasses as he watched the giant dog creatures crash the place. "Hey Discord, you know everything they break goes on their tab, right?" he said as he looked over to Discord who was drinking some chocolate milk.
Discord drunk up his chocolate milk before he tossed the glass away, making a small explosion. "Don't worry about it, I'll repair everything once we leave. But if you need some payment as insurance, by all means, it's yours." He said before he snapped his fingers.
In a small flash of light, a large bag of gold coins dropped down onto the counter in front of the bar-tender pony. "…Good enough for me." he said before he grabbed the sack of bits with his mouth and used all his strength to drag it off the counter.
With that taken care of, Discord sighed heavily as he rested his chin on his lion-paw hand. He looked troubled with a bit of depression. Sure, it was fun to watch his loyal servants wrack the joint, but it didn't feel the same as causing this kind of chaos himself.
It didn't take long before Spot noticed this and came over to him. "Lord Discord, is there something wrong? You don't seem like your glorious self." He said as he stood beside his throne.
Rover and Fido stood on the other side of Discord's throne as they looked at him with concern. "Yes, we are all causing as much destruction as we can, why do you look so down? Do you not like our chaos anymore?" Rover asked, wondering what was wrong.
"Do you want a foot massage, Lord Discord?" Fido asked before he walked around in front of Discord and dropped down hard in front of him. Fido then grabbed Discord's goat-hoof with his large paws and started to roughly rub them.
Discord looked down at Discord with disgust before he snapped his fingers, making Fido lose all gravity and he started hovering upward towards the ceiling, like he was full of helium. Discord then turned his head to face Rover. "Trust me, any day that features any type of chaos is a wondrous day…" he said before he sighed and rested his chin on his paw again. "*Sigh* I just feel a little thrown off because I can't cause it. Celestia still has a grudge against me after that whole ordeal in Canterlot." He explained before his horns deflated in boredom.
"The pony Princess is still upset about that?" Spot asked before he scoffed and rolled his eyes. "*Scoff* Ponies complain about the smallest things." he said out-loud.
"Tell me about it." Discord grumbled before he placed his thumb in his mouth and blew on it, blowing his horns back up straight. Once they were back up, Discord straightened up on his throne and watched the chaos around him. "Maybe they have a point…maybe I should ease back on the chaos, maybe I should try to cut back or something…it won't be easy, but if it means getting back everypony's trust, it'll be worth it…probably." He said, thinking of the outcome of that idea.
Rover and Spot gasped in shock at this, they were so stunned by Discord's words that they didn't even care when the gravity returned to Fido and he landed hard on the floor in front of Discord's throne. "Lord Discord, you cannot mean that, your chaos is what makes you special, it what makes you better than those ponies." Rover said.
"I know, I know." Discord said, giving Rover and firm look. "But if I want to be free and gain everyone's trust back, sacrifices must be made." He said as he crossed his legs.
"This is not fair! You shouldn't be treated like a caged birdy because of what you do." Spot said before he placed his hands on the arm of Discord's throne. "Lord Discord shouldn't be ashamed of his passion, ponies should be ashamed of making you hide away passion." He said.
Discord turned his head to look down at him and smirked. "That's nice of you to say, Spot…but you're not getting any more doggy treats today, so nice try." He said while patting Spot's head.
When Discord stopped patting his head, Spot rubbed the place where he patted while continuing to look at Discord. "I wasn't saying it for a treat, I was saying it because it's true." he said before he leaped up and sat on the arm of the throne, making Discord a little uneasy. "Lord Discord, you need pull yourself together and remember who you are." He said.
Discord's eyes shifted left and right before he groaned. "Oh, let me guess, that was a musical cue." He said before he groaned. "Fine, let's just get it over with."
Spot: "Gosh it disturbs me to see you, Discord, your behaviour is not of your own…
Every guy here'd love to be you, Discord, even when frozen in stone…
There's no one in town as admired as you, you're everyone's favourite lord…
You've filled all our lives with such wonders and more, that its not…possible…to be bored!
Nooo ooone's slick as Discord, no one's quick as Discord, no one plays quite a sinister trick like Discord
For there's no one in town as great as you. Perfect, a true overlord
You can ask any pony that knows you, and they'll tell you whose ship they'd be ready to board…
Spot then got off the throne and grabbed Rover, pulling him over, before grabbing Fido and pulling him up to his feet. He looked at them both before he motioned his hand to tell them to desperately tell them to join in.
Rover, Spot and Fido: "Nooo ooone's fun like Discord, pranks a ton like Discord, no one makes a fight easily won like Discord."
Discord: "It is true that my magic's intimidating."
Rover, Spot and Fido: "Yes! You're our king, our Discord!
His name we praise, his name we shout!"
Spot: "Hey all you mutts, won't you please help us out?!"
Spot and the others then turned around to look at the other Diamond Dogs in the bar. They stopped their rain of destruction and looked over to the tree leaders, wondering what they were waiting for. With a sharp intimidating glare from them, they all joined in nervously.
All Diamond Dogs: "Nooo ooone fights like Discord, shows his might like Discord!
No one's grip on this world is as tight as Discord's!
For there's no rule that ever restrains him!"
Discord: "Just my own, they're called Chaotic Laws!"
Rover: "They can try, but they'll never control him."
Discord: "That's right! I could transform your world with one snap of my claws!"
Diamond Dogs: "No one's cool like Discord, makes mares drool like Discord."
Fido: "When he walks through town, they simply swoon for Discord!"
Discord: "I'm especially known for my looks, can't blame them."
Diamond Dogs: "You're a charmer, Discord!"
Discord: "When I was a pup, I drank just chocolate-milk, to help all of my magic grow strong
And now that I'm grown, I bring so much more fun, tell me why do they think that's so wroooong!"
Diamond Dogs: "Nooo ooone zaps like Discord, pays our tabs like Discord."
Spot: "No one's fingers have that certain snap like Discord."
Discord: "I use antlers on all of my thrones, don't judge me."
Diamond Dogs: "Say it again! Who's that god among men?
Now just say it once more! Who's our hero and more?
Who's a super success? Don't you know? Can't you guess? 'Cause his story's a thousand years long!
There's just one guy in town who's got all of it doooown!"
Spot: "And his name's D-I-S…C?...D-I-S-K…O?...D-I-S-C-O…oh…"
Diamond Dogs: "DISCOOOOORD!"
Upon the ending of the song, Discord flopped down on his throne and shared a hardy laugh with his diamond-loving minions, followed by some of them jugging down their cider, spilling some of it on the floor.
Discord continued to laugh hard until he finally calmed down and looked at the three leaders. "You know something, I never thought I'd say this…but if I was to have any followers in this life-time, I'm glad it was you guys." He said, bringing a bright smile to their faces. "I just don't understand why no lovely female has swept you off your feet yet." He said.
"We've been told that we smell." Rover answered before breathing on his hand and sniffing it, resulting in him feeling a little self-conscious about his odour.
Discord stared at them with a raised eye-brow before he shook it off. With a snap of his fingers, a glass of chocolate milk appeared in his talon fingers while a megaphone appeared him his lion-paw. He held the back end of the megaphone up to his mouth. "Attention, my loyal diamond mutts! When I came in her today, I felt a little uncertain of myself, like I didn't know what I was meant for. But thanks to all of you, I remember who and what I am! I am the Lord of Chaos, meaning I am meant to spread chaos whether the ponies like it or not!...And one day, I will return to that life and my chaos will resume!" he said with pride, gaining cheers from the crowd of Diamond Dogs.
The megaphone then disappeared as Discord rested back on his throne and drank his chocolate milk. As he did, Spot walked up beside him. "Oh, I wonderful speech, my lord. But…what about the pony Princess? Won't she be mad if you try to cause chaos again?" he asked curiously.
Discord threw his glass away before he looked down at Spot. "Oh Spot, my simple minded little friend." He said while patting his head. "I said I would one day return to my chaotic ways. By then, I'll have the Princess's full permission to have my fun. There will be no harm, no foul, and I'll be completely free." He said as he rested the back of his head on his arms.
"A very good plan, my lord." Fido said as he joined them. "But I forget, why can't you be free right now? The pony Princess isn't anywhere near here." he said, wondering what was holding him back right now.
But before Discord could answer, the doors burst open and Spike stood in the entrance, panting from running so fast to get there. Spike quickly looked around until he saw Discord on his throne. "Discord! You have to get back to the Library right away!" he said as he rushed over to Discord.
Discord looked down at him with a confused look before he huffed. "Oh what now? Does Matthew need me to report in? Does Twilight need me to rub her back? Oh I know, does Jeff need me to groom his feathers? I may be temporarily bound to Matthew, but that doesn't make me anypony's slave!" he said as he crossed his arms.
"Huh? No! Its nothing like that! Twilight needs your help!" Spike said in a loud tone, panicking from what was happening back home.
Discord snapped his fingers before a bowl of paper appeared on his lap. "Oh what could be so bad that she needs me to come back so soon." He said before sticking a fork into one of the shredded pieces of paper and eating it.
"It's the foal, Discord! Its coming early!" Spike said. "We need you to come back and help us get Twilight to the hospital right now!" he said.
Upon hearing this, Discord did a spit-take, but not of the paper, but the words written on it. He then used the end of his tail to wipe his mouth before his head shot down towards Spike's face. "WHAT?! Why didn't you say so earlier?!" he asked. But before Spike could answer, Discord spoke again. "Never mind, just hold on." he said before he grabbed Spike in his arm and snapped his fingers.
In a flash of light, Discord and Spike disappeared out of the bar, leaving the Diamond Dogs alone. "Urr…what's happening?" Spot asked, confused about what was going on.
"I…don't know." Rover responded in confusion. "Something about a foal." He said.
"…What's a foal?" Fido asked in both curiosity and confusion, not sure if even Spot and Rover knew either.
Meanwhile: Library
I rushed up to the front door of the library and rammed my way through it. "Twilight!" I called, extremely worried about her condition. I looked around, but she wasn't in the front room. "Twilight, where are you?" I called, looking around for any sign of her.
"Matthew!" Twilight's voice called from the study room.
I immediately rushed over to the door before I burst through it. Once inside, I saw Twilight lying on one of the body pillows with Peewee standing in front of her. Twilight's mane was scruffy and her fur was sweaty, she breathed heavily and looked in pain. I quickly went over to her before I lied down in front of her. "Twilight, babe, its alright…I'm here now." I said as I gently rubbed her head with my hoof.
Twilight continued to breathe heavily as she weakly smiled. "I…knew…you would come in time." She said before she grunted in pain. "Ahh…it's a fighter…" she gasped as she clenched her hoof against her belly.
I scooted closer to her as I held her more. "Its alright, you'll pull through." I said before I looked over to the doorway. "We need to get you to the hospital." I said as I stood up and tried to carefully pull Twilight up onto her hooves.
Twilight grunted in pain again before she pulled herself down, refusing to stand. "No, I can't…it hurts too much….Spike's gone to get Discord. When he gets here, he'll help us get to the hospital." She said before she felt the pain again and started taking quick breaths.
I thought about this for a moment and decided it was a decent plan. "Ok Twi, just stay calm until he gets here." I said with a gentle voice as I kept stroking her head. I then turned my head to look down at Peewee. "How has she been?" I asked, wondering what I had missed.
"Nothing much, she's just been in some pain, like the foal is trying to force its way out." Peewee said as she took a step forward. "Not sure if her water broke yet." He said.
I stared down at Peewee with a bit of a disturbed look. "Remind me not to ask how you know about stuff like that." I said before I returned my attention to Twilight. "You'll be alright, Twi, you've gotten through worse than this." I said.
Twilight looked up at me weakly. "Matt…I'm…I'm scared." She said, looking like this was a challenge not even she could complete.
"Shhh, it's alright…I'm here." I said before I lowered my head down to her and nudged her head with my muzzle. I then pulled away and looked over to the doorway again. "God, all the power in the universe and Discord can't get here fast enough." I said, getting a little frustrated with how long it was taking Discord to get here. I expected him to be here before I did.
But suddenly, my feelings where cast away when Discord appeared in a flash of light in the room, holding Spike against him with one arm. "Alright, lets see what the damage is." He said, dropping Spike before a doctor's outfit appeared on his body. "So where do we start?" he said before putting on a pair of rubber gloves.
Twilight and I stared at him with wide eyes, scared of what he was thinking. "Urr…actually, we just need you to help Twilight get to the hospital." I said, trying to correct his thoughts.
Discord then frowned before his outfit and gloves disappeared. "Oh is that all? Spike made it sound like I was needed for something more urgent." He said.
Feeling as though he thought this wasn't urgent, Twilight growled in an irritated way before she tried to stand to strike Discord, put I placed my hoof on her to stop her before I returned my attention to Discord. "This is urgent, Discord. Twilight can't move. She needs you to help her get to the hospital." I said, trying to make him think otherwise.
Discord stroked his beard before he sighed. "I suppose when you put it like that, it does sound like a major crisis." He said before he snapped his fingers.
Then with another bright flash of light, the three of us disappeared out of the Library, leaving Peewee alone in confusion. "…Oh sure, don't bring me along, I'll just fly there." he said, a little irritated by the fact he was left behind.
As Peewee was about to take off out of the window, Jeff flew in and landed beside him. "Hey Peewee, did Matt get back here already. Can't believe he went off without me, it took me forever to get back here." Jeff said before he looked around for us. "Urr…where are they anyway?" he asked, receiving a nervous chuckle from Peewee.
Ponyville hospital
It seemed rather quiet in the hospital, the doctors and nurses travelled up and down hallways, sometimes with patients on wheelchairs, as they went about their daily jobs. But all the peace ended when another flash of light went off in the middle of the hallway.
When it faded, I was standing in the middle of the hallway with Twilight resting beside me on a stretch-bed, behind it stood Discord in another doctor outfit. "Make way! Pony with a foal on the way coming through!" he said as he roughly pushed the stretch-bed along through the hallway.
I was still a little shook up from the quick travel, but I soon shook it off and saw Discord run down the hall with Twilight. "Hey! Discord! Don't be so rough with her!" I called, but he couldn't hear me…or he was just ignoring me. "Aw dammit." I cursed in a grumble. "Wait for me, ya dick." I called, having said the last part low under my breath before I started chasing after them to keep up.
It wasn't long before Discord pulled to a stop with Twilight's stretch-bed stopping in front of our usual doctor. "Doctor! The baby! Its coming early!" Discord said in a panicking tone.
The doctor looked up at him in confusion. "But that's not right, it should be another two months before the due-date. Are you sure this isn't just a false alarm?" he asked, wondering if this was just a bad case of gas or something. But upon hearing Twilight yelled in pain and clench her belly, his doubts were sent away. "Then again, I guess its possible." He said before he looked back up at Discord. "Do you know where Mr Matthew is? I thought he would like to be here for this." He asked.
At that moment, I finally caught up with them, slightly out of breath. "I'm here, I'm here." I panted before I took some breaths to help myself feel better. "Ok, I'm good…you have to help Twilight, she's going into labour." I said before turning my attention towards Twilight, whom was still struggling to keep control of her pains.
"We'll do what we can." The doctor said before he looked over to the two nurses. "Nurses, help me get Miss Sparkle to the delivery room stat!" he said. With that, both nursed grabbed the stretch-bed with their magic and started rushing her down the hallway towards the delivery room.
I tried to follow them, but I was stopped by the doctor stretching his arm out in front of me. "Sorry Mr Matthew, you and any other guests will have to wait in the waiting room until we're ready for you." he said before placing his hoof on my shoulder. "We'll do everything we can to make sure she's fine." He said before he followed the nursed down the hall to go to the delivery room.
I stood in that hall, feeling so alone and helpless. I couldn't be with Twilight to help her when she'd give birth. I was so focused on this situation that the hall seemed quieter than it actually was, like all the sound was drained out, leaving me in complete silence and darkness. But suddenly, I felt a hand place again my shoulder, I looked behind me and saw Discord with his lion-paw on my shoulder. "Soda for the nerves?" he asked before a bottle of soda appeared in his talon-hand and he held it down to me.
I gave him a weak smile before I took the bottle with my hoof. "Thanks Discord." I said before I flicked the cap off with my other hoof and took a sip of it. It helped me calm down a little, but nothing could ever truly calm me down from this. I continued to stare down the hall, wondering how Twilight will cope without me there to comfort her.
An hour later
After spending a few minutes in the waiting room, everyone else started to arrive at the hospital. Applejack, Rarity, Pinkie, Fluttershy, Rainbow, Spike, even my own parents came after Spike sent a letter to them. As expected, they were as shocked as we were about the early arrival of the foal. Well, except for my parents, they thought it was normal…not sure if they knew about foals being born a few months later than humans.
It seemed like it was taking forever. Seconds became minutes, minutes became an hour, it seemed like this foal was desperate to come out earlier yet it refuses to do so now. Truly this was my kid, because it liked to piss around with people.
As we waited, everyone found ways to entertain themselves. Rainbow and Applejack played a card game, Pinkie was blowing up balloons for when she'd see the foal for the first time, Fluttershy was reading one of the waiting room's magazines, Rarity was sewing a small outfit which was most likely for the foal, Spike was playing bongos on his belly with a bored look on his face, my parents were talking among themselves, Discord was playing with a yoyo that went through a small portal in the floor and came out from another small portal on the ceiling, and Jeff and Peewee were hanging out by the water-dispenser, trying to figure out how to work it.
While I, being more stressed than any of them, continuously paced back and forth with a very worried look on my face. I honestly think I had ever felt so worried before, all that went through my mind was thoughts of how Twilight was holding up. Part of me wanted to rush through those doors and be with her through it all, but I knew that would be stupid, security would tackle me before I could even get there.
As I continued to pace, I couldn't help but notice how everyone else was staying perfectly calm while I was freaking out. I eventually had to stop so I could speak my mind. "How are you all handling this so well? Aren't you concerned about Twilight at all?" I asked, feeling too stressed to think properly.
Rarity looked over to me with a slightly shocked look. "Matthew! Of course we're worried about her. I mean, just look." She said before she used her magic to pick up the small baby PJs. "This thing is atrocious! This is what happens when I Stress Sew!" she said before she placed it back down on the chair beside her.
"Yeah." Pinkie said as she looked over to me. "I may not be showing it, but I'm totally freaking out! I mean, what if something bad happens to Twilight? What if she gets hurt? Or what if the baby gets hurt? It may be even worse than that! There's loads of reasons why we should be freaking out about this!" she said, giving the best examples she could think of.
Unfortunately, that wasn't exactly something I wanted to hear. If I wasn't nervous before, I definitely was now. With all those painful thoughts rushing through my head at once, I suddenly felt my head go light and my world blacken as I fainted. My body flopped unconscious onto the hard floor of the waiting room.
Without wasting a second, my mother jumped out of her chair and rushed to my side. "Matt! Matt! Are you alright?" she asked in a worried voice as she gently picked the upper-half of my body up in her hooves. When she saw that I wasn't waking up, she looked over to the others. "Someone needs to get one of the doctors! Now!" she said, beginning to panic.
But that was soon deemed unnecessary when I started to slowly wake up, groaning as I rubbed the back on my head with my hoof. "Ahh…what happened?...How long was I out?" I asked, looking around at everyone.
Before anyone else could answer, Rainbow Dash flew up beside me with a smirk on her face. "A few years, your kids already a grown pony…by the way, it's a girl." She said with her smirk growing more amused.
My eyes widened as I shot up onto my hooves. "What?! Oh god! Oh god!" I said as I held my head with my front-hooves, starting to feel light-headed again. My reaction got a light snicker from Rainbow Dash.
Applejack gave Rainbow a firm looked before she walked up behind her and grabbed her tail with her mouth, she then yanked her to the ground before spitting her tail out. "Knock it off, Rainbow." She said, getting an annoyed groan from her. Applejack then looked over to me before she came over. "She's just messin' with ya, sugar-cube. You were just out for a few seconds." She said while placing her hoof on my shoulder.
I looked at her with a bit of a shaken up feature before I exhaled in relief. "Thank God, I was scared for a minute there." I said before I sat back down to try and calm down. "All this stuff is really messing with my head, I'm not sure how much more I can take of this." I said as I brushed my hoof through my mane.
My mother gave me a gentle smile as she rubbed my back with her hoof. "You know your Dad went through the same thing when Jess was being born, but once it was done, he knew all the things he was worried about was just all in his head. And that's what's happening with you right now. I'm sure Twilight's going to be fine." She said with a kind voice.
Applejack took a step closer before she added. "Ya mom's right, Matt, you and I know Twilight's as tough nails. She can handle this. And ya know you can trust me because I'm always honest." She said before giving me a friendly wink.
I gave her a small smile before I slowly stood back up. "Thanks Applejack…I think I'm starting to get around it now…in fact, I'm not sure I remember what I was worried about." I said, feeling like I could push through this and be strong for Twilight.
But suddenly, we all heard a scream, a scream so loud that it was shooting down the hallway and through the double-doors in front of us. While everyone was a little shaken by it, I was utterly frozen in fear because I recognized it all too well. It was Twilight, she was screaming in pain. Thoughts and images shot through my mind all at once again and I was starting to black out again. I groaned before I fainted backwards again, but this time Applejack was quick to catch me. "Oh for peat's sake!" she said in frustration.
While they were busy trying to wake me back up, Discord continued to play with his yoyo before he sighed from boredom and released it, allowing it to continue to move up and down in mid-air. Discord leaned back on the chair and dragged his talon-hand down against his face. "Who would've guest pony child-birth would take so long? If I had things my way, it would be out by now."
"But you can't, can you?" a voice said. Discord turned his head to the chair beside him and saw another Discord, but this one wore a pair of smart glasses. "That would be against the rules given to us by Celestia." Norm-Discord said before turned his head to face Discord. "By the way, what do you plan on doing with the little one once it's born?" he asked.
Discord rubbed his hand against his chin as he thought. "Well I was going to take it under my wing and raise it to be a pony of chaos…but then I remembered, it wasn't mine to raise." He said before he smirked. "But still, there's no harm in showing the kid a good time, perhaps a night on the town when it reaches the right age." He said as he put on a jazzy-hat along with a pair of shades over his eyes.
Norm-Discord looked unimpressed by this. "Mh-hm, right, and what happens when it turns out this foal has no magic. Lets not forget, it's father is a Pegasus, it has just as much chance of being one too." He said he crossed his arms.
Discord huffed as he too crossed his arms. "Oh you had to ruin it, didn't you?" he asked before he pouted his lower-lip, but then he soon tried to turn it around. "Oh well, if it is a Pegasus, I'll just give it a horn instead, then we'll have some magic fun." He said as a smile returned it his face.
"No, no, no!" Norm-Discord said as a magazine appeared in his hands and he rolled it up. "You can't tamper with your own God-child, Matthew and Twilight would not appreciate it." he said before he gently swotted the magazine against Discord's head. "Plus, its not exactly Godfather material, wouldn't you agree?" he asked as he magazine disappeared in a flash of light.
Discord rolled his eyes before he sighed. "You're a real buzz-kill, you know that?" he said before as he rested his chin on his lion-paw hand. "Well, maybe Pegasi can cause some chaos too…I mean, look what they do to the weather…I could work with that." He said as s grin grew on his face.
"Now you're getting it!" Norm-Discord said with a cheery face before he disappeared in a flash of light, leaving Discord alone.
As Discord tried to piece together chaotic ideas that he could do with my foal no matter what race it was, my Dad stared up at him with a confused and disturbed look on his face, having watched that whole conversation and not know what to make of it. "…Ok, for the love of god, I don't know what's going on here…" he said as he turned his head to face Fluttershy.
Fluttershy's focused remained down at the magazine in her hooves as she responded. "Discord does that a lot, I find it best to just go with it." She said before she used her hoof to turn to the next page.
Meanwhile, Applejack and my mother sat beside me, trying to find ways to wake me up. Right now, Applejack was holding her hat with her hoof and fanning it against my face, trying to give me some air. It eventually started to work and I began to wake up. "Ahh…did I pass out again?..." I asked in a groan.
"Yep." Applejack said before she placed her hat back on her head. "Now just don't do it again, Twilight's gonna be waitin' for ya when it's all over." She said as she and my Mother helped me back up onto my hooves.
I rubbed my head before I looked up at Rainbow Dash to see she was snickering again. "…Don't even say anything." I groaned before I walked over to one of the chairs and sat down to try and relax more. "This is getting really tiring." I said as I leaned my head back against the wall.
Rarity then walked over to me and patted her hoof against me. "Don't worry, Matthew…I'm sure the doctor will be along any moment to call you in to see Twilight." she said with a warm smile.
Then, seek of the devil, one of the double-doors opened and the doctor walked in. He looked over to us before his entire focus was set on me. "Mr Matthew, your wife is waiting for you…and she has someone you wants to meet you." he said with a kind smile.
With that, I gulped hard before I stepped down off my chair and started making my way over to the doctor. But as I did, my Dad smiled at me. "Hey." He said, gaining my attention. "It'll be alright and I've very proud of you." he said.
I smiled at him for that. "Thanks Dad." I said before I took a deep breath and exhaled. I then walked over to the doctor and he stepped aside so I could go through the door. I looked down the deep hallway before I walked through door past the doctor. The doctor then looked over to the others. "Don't worry, I'll send one of the nurses in to inform you all of everything in just a moment." He said before he closed the door, leaving everyone in the waiting room to wait a little longer.
As I walked down the hallway, I felt the pressure in my heart start to spike. Room by room past by as I got closer to Twilight's, I turned my head around to see the doctor was right behind me with a small smile on his face, I then turned my head back around and continued to look ahead to where I was going. It wasn't long before I had finally reached the room and was standing right in front of the door. I just stood there, breathing as I just stared at the door, scared to open in.
The doctor stood beside me as he reached his hoof towards the doorknob, he gripped it and turned it until I heard a faint click, followed by him slightly pushing it open. "I'll leave you two alone." He said before he turned around and walked away.
With that, I turned my attention to the slightly open door and took another deep breath. "Well…this is it." I said to myself before I slowly placed my hoof on the door and gently pushed it open. As the door opened, I could soon see Twilight bed with the light of the mood shining through the window down onto her. She was leaning up against the headrest and holding a small bundle in her arms, she was smiling down at it with pure love in her eyes.
I entered the room and made my way over to her. "Hey babe…how are you holding up?" I asked in a gentle voice as I walked up beside the bed.
Twilight turned her head to face me, showing her ruffled up mane and tired eyes. She gave me a weak smile as she spoke. "Hi Matt…I'm fine…" she said before she held the bundle up against her higher. "Wanna see our new family member?" she asked.
I returned her weak smile before I walked around the bed until I was on the side facing the window. I placed both my front-hooves on the bed and looked down at the bundle, seeing it move a little. As Twilight's horn glowed, the blanket covering the foal slowly moved aside, allowing me to gaze upon the beauty it was covering.
It was a light-pink foal, with a pearl-white mane in the same style as Twilight's. There wasn't much more to describe about her until we could get a better look at her. "Twilight…it…it's beautiful." I said, my ears flattening against my head as I feel my heart warm.
"Yes…she is." Twilight said before she looked at me again. "It's a girl, Matt…a beautiful filly…and look." She said before she slowly moved her hoof towards the filly and moved its mane a little, revealing a small horn poking out of her head. "She's a Unicorn…like me." she said.
I smiled warmly at this before I lowered my head down a little more to get a closer look. "She's perfect." I said before I looked up to Twilight and moved my head towards her. After planting a gentle kiss on her head, I smiled lovingly at her. "I'm proud of you, Twilight…I love you so much." I said, feeling a small tear build in my eye.
"I love you too, Matt." Twilight said before she looked down at the filly. "Matt…look." She said in a whisper.
I returned my attention back down to the filly and saw it was moving a little, it made a little whimper noise before it slowly opened its eyes, revealing a pair of blue beady-eyes. "Hi…how are you?..." Twilight said as quietly as possible. "I'm your Mom." She said before she looked at me. "And this is your Dad." She said.
I looked down at the filly and smiled as I lowered my head down to her. "Hey…guess I'm your Dad…what do you think about that?" I asked, know I probably won't get much of an answer. But instead of words, the filly answered by weakly raising her hoof and placing it on my nose. This shocked me at first, but my heart melted as I smiled.
Twilight giggled. "I think she likes that idea." She said before she held the filly closer. "What do you think we should call her?" she asked as she looked down at her face.
I leaned up straight as I kept my eyes down on the filly. "I don't know…I thought you'd have something in mind." I said as I turned my attention to Twilight.
Twilight looked at me with a raised eye-brow. "Not really, we tend to name foals after their born because we don't know what type of pony it would be." She said before she looked back down at the filly. "But know that we know it's a Unicorn, we should probably give it a name suitable for one." She said.
I looked back down at the filly and tried to think of a name. "Umm…I honestly don't know…she has a pink coat, but we can't call her Pinkie, its taken. Most ponies are usually named after their talents, but she doesn't have one yet." I said as I try to think of ways we could give her a name.
"Maybe we could give her a stand-in name until she gets her talent. Some ponies tend to do that, I know Mrs Cake did." Twilight said with a small smile.
I looked at her with a curious look. "Mrs Cake had a different name? What did she use to be-…" I said before I decided to get back to the main subject. "I'll come back to that later." I said before I looked down at the filly. "Now what to name you, sweetness." I said as I gently placed my hoof over her, letting her place hers onto it. "Hmm…she kind of looks like an…Amy." I said, looking at her precious face.
"Amy?..." Twilight asked before she thought about it some more. "Amy…Amy…Sparkle…Amy Sparkle." She said before a smile grew on her face. "That has a good ring to it." she said.
I looked at Twilight and returned the smile. "Do you think so? I'm ok with it if you are." I said, thinking we may have just reached our goal.
Twilight nodded. "I am." she said before she looked back down at her. "Amy Sparkle it is." She said before she gently stroked her mane with her hoof. "Our little Amy." She said.
Twilight and I continued to stare down at…Amy, seeing her beauty brighten the whole room. So many things ran through our heads, like how we finally reached the point we had been waiting months for, how this would be a new chapter in our lives. But most importantly, we were thinking of how much Amy could accomplish in her life.
A while later: Hospital's baby room
After a while, we had to give Amy to the doctors to let them check on her, to make sure she's healthy and stuff like that. She was then placed in the baby room with the other new borns, the room were the new foals rested while visitors watched them from behind the glass wall.
The rest of the Mane 6, Spike, my parents, everyone that had come here for us looked through the glass to try and see our foal. "So which one do you think it is?" Fluttershy asked as she looked at each one.
"The doctor said it was a girl, so we should look any females in there." Rarity said as she looked around at all the girl foals.
"So where's Matthew anyway? You'd think he'd be here to watch his kid through all this." Rainbow Dash said as she too looked around to try and spot her.
"He'll probably be here." My Dad said. "If I know Matthew, if there's something close to him in his life, he'll be extremely protective of it." he said, thinking of how I've acted with other personal belongings in the past.
"Haha." Rainbow chuckled. "I'd love to see how that plays out when she reaches our age." She said before she continued looking. "Ok, seriously, which one is she?" she asked, getting a little frustrated.
Pinkie jumped up and pressed her face against the glass. "She's that one!...No, no, she's that one!...No! She's that one!" she said, pointed to each foal, not making up her mind.
At that moment, I entered the room behind the glass and saw everyone on the other side. "Hey guys." I said, giving them a small smile.
"Matt!" Applejack said as she placed on hoof against the glass. "How's Twilight holdin' up?" she asked in concern.
"She's fine." I answered as I walked up to the glass. "She's still recovering a little, but I think she's just glad the foal's ok. The doctor said she's perfectly healthy and we'll be able to take her home in a few hours." I informed them.
Applejack returned my smile. "Aw, that's great to hear, Matt. I think it's really special that you and Twilight finally have-"
"Yeah, yeah, we're all really happy for you. But can you please tell us which one of these foals is yours?! We've been trying to find it for the last few minutes!" Rainbow Dash said, interrupting Applejack.
I flinched a little before I turned around to face the foals. "She's this one over here." I said as I walked up to the crib that Amy was resting in. "Everyone, meet Amy Sparkle." I said, smiling down at her.
Everyone looked at her and they all said the same thing. "Awww!"
"I know, right?" I said with a smirk before I chuckled.
"Isn't she just the most precious thing in all of Ponyville?" Rarity asked, looking at Amy like she was a perfect gem sticking out most among others.
"Ponyville? She's the most precious thing in all of Equestria!" Applejack said, standing beside Rarity. "She reminds me of Applebloom when she was just a foal." She said.
Spike walked up to the glass and looked at Amy. "I just can't believe I'm an uncle. Uncle Spike…sounds kinda good, doesn't it?" he asked, flexing his chest out with a smirk. But his smirk soon went away when a troubling thought entered his mind. "I am gonna be its uncle, right Matt?" he asked as he looked over to me.
I smiled before I nodded. "Of course you are, Spike." I said before I looked over to my parents. "So what do you think of your grandchild?" I asked, knowing they would love her.
"She absolutely perfect, Matt." My mother said. "I just can't believe you're a dad. I remember a few years back where you said things like you were never going to get married and have kids, but look at you now." she said.
I shrugged as I continued to smirk. "Guess all it took was the right girl." I said before I looked back down at Amy, my smirk turned into a loving smile as I lowered my head down to her. "And you're gonna be a great as she is…I just know it." I said in a whisper as I gently stroked her head with my hoof, getting a small whimper from her as she slept.
Jeff then flew up on top of Applejack's hat and looked down at Amy, but he looked unmoved by her. "Huh…just looks like a normal foal to me." he said with an unimpressed tone.
Fluttershy turned her head to look up at Jeff. "Well maybe you just think that because you're not really a pony." She said gently before she looked at Amy again. "But for us, its something wonderful. A new face in the family…and a beautiful one at that." She said as she stared at Amy's face.
"Don't get me wrong, I'm happy for Matt and Twi." Jeff said before he returned his attention to Amy. "I just don't see what the big deal is…must be a bird thing, right Peewee?" he asked before he looked over to Peewee, whom was standing on top of Spike's head.
However, Peewee was having a different reaction than he was. "Aww, isn't she the most adorable thing ever." Peewee said, unable to keep his eyes off her.
Upon seeing this, Jeff rolled his eyes. "Must just be me then." He groaned before he crossed his wings and looked back over to Amy.
Suddenly, Pinkie shot up to the glass and pressed her face against it again. "So, seeing how it was born today, that means it's her birthday, right?" she said, getting excited before she picked up a cake with no candles out of no-where. "Its party time! And like with the Cake's twins on their birthday, it has no candles!" she said before she gave me a sheepish smile. "Umm…am I ok leaving it here? I'm not allowed to go in there after last time." She said.
"Sure Pinkie." I said before I looked up at Rainbow Dash. "You've been a little quiet, Rainbow, are you ok?" I asked curiously.
Rainbow Dash hovered in the air as she looked at me. "Yeah, I'm fine." She said before she looked over to Amy. "She definitely a sight." She said with a sweet smile before she whipped it off and put on a strong face. "But you're not gonna see me going all mushy over it, no way at all." She said with a smirk.
But at that moment, Amy woke up from her sleep and saw me, making her smile at little. But she soon noticed Rainbow Dash flying in mid-air, which really caught her attention. She let out a small laugh as she tried to reach up to her. Rainbow Dash noticed this and couldn't help but let a warm smile grow on her face. "Not gonna crack…not gonna crack…ok, I'll crack! She's the sweetest thing ever!" she said, moving downward a little to match her level.
Suddenly, Discord appeared in the room in a flash of light and looked down at Amy. "Hmm…she's a little too normal for my liking, but I've worked with worse…just ask the Diamond mutts." He said before he reached his talon-hand down to Amy and tickled his finger against her belly, getting a small giggle from her.
I watched this and gave Discord a concerned look. "Discord, I'm glad Amy's already taking a shine to you…but can you please be careful, you talon-finger might be sharp to her…" I said, worrying that he would cut her with his finger.
Discord retracted his finger before a cork appeared on it in a flash of light. "Better?" he asked.
"Can you just use your lion-paw finger please?" I asked with my eye-lids half closed.
Discord rolled his eyes before he cork disappeared and he started tickling Amy with his lion-paw finger. "I can tell this is going to be hard to get used to." he said as he continued to get laughs from Amy.
"So what's gonna happen now?" Rainbow Dash asked, gaining my attention again. "Are you, Twi and the little one gonna go home soon?" she asked.
"The doctor said we could leave in a few hours, there's still a few tests to run with Twilight and Amy. I'm sure everything will be fine, but I'm staying her until the results come back." I said before I looked at Spike. "Spike, if we have to stay here longer, are you ok to take care of everything back at the Library until we get back?" I asked, hoping he'd agree.
Spike gave me a strong smile before he saluted. "I won't let ya down. You can count on me! And don't worry, I'll be sure to keep…you-know-who…in check." He said in a whisper while pointing at Discord, which he didn't notice due to being too occupied with Amy.
"Thanks Spike." I said while giving him a thankful smile before a thought came into my mind. "Oh god, we haven't told Princess Celestia or Luna! We should send a letter up to them." I said, thinking how they might react to this news.
"I already did, they said they'd have to come see her some other time." Spike informed. "Something about a meeting with some visitors from Vanhoover…but they told Shining Armor as soon as they found out." He said.
"Oh, I wonder how he's handling it." I said, thinking how Shining Armor will feel knowing he was an uncle.
Suddenly, the doors burst open, gaining our attention. That's when we saw Shining Armor rushing in with a worried look on his face, not to mention he was soaking wet and wearing a towel around his waist. "Where is she? Where's Twily?!" he yelled as he rushed up to the glass and saw me. "Matt! Where's Twily?! Is she ok?! Where's the foal?!" he asked in a panicky way.
I stared at him with wide eyes and looked over to everyone else. "We'll…just leave you guys to it. See ya later, Matt." Applejack said as she and others started to make their way out of the room.
"Congrats on becoming a Dad, Matt, hope to see you guys out soon." Rainbow Dash said as she left the room with her, still hovering in the air.
Everyone else took one last look at Amy before they all left the room, including Discord, leaving me and Shining alone with Amy. I turned my attention to him with a calm look. "Twilight's fine, Shining…but before I say anymore, I need to ask…why are you all wet like that?" I asked, looking him up and down.
Shining looked down at himself before he looked back up at me. "What? I was taking a shower when a guard told me that my sister was giving birth." He said before he pressed his face against the glass. "Now tell me what I missed!" he said, not wanting to waste a second on hearing the tale.
I sighed before I began to tell him what happened during his absence, knowing I probably wasn't going to get any rest for some time.
Later that night
After Shining's finally left the hospital, I was left to look after Amy and be with Twilight. It took a while, but the doctor finally came back, he told me that Twi and Amy would have to spend the night to make absolutely sure that everything was ok with them.
Not wanting to leave either of them alone, I decided to stay the night with them, even if I had to sleep on a chair. I went back to Twilight's room and sat beside her bed as we talked for a while. Twilight laid down on the bed, looking relaxed as she placed her hoof on top of mine. "So where's our little Amy?" she asked.
"She's staying in the baby room with the other foals, she seemed very peaceful there…I just hope she doesn't notice we're gone and gets upset." I said, thinking how Amy must feel right now if she did notice.
"She only a few hours old, I doubt she even knows us that well." Twilight said before she leaned up a little. "How do you feel?" she asked with a sweet smile.
I chuckled before I responded with an amused one. "I'm the one who asks you that." I said before I leaned closer. "But I'm fine…I'm just a little shaken…I mean, I'm a dad now…you're a mum…do you think we'll manage?" I asked, wondering if we were really ready for such a task.
"Matt, if there's one thing I've learned since meeting you is this, we're ready to take on anything. Any challenge, any task, any threat against Equestria that might involve an insane Alicorn…we can do it. And with my knowledge, your protective skills and both our care, Amy will grow to be a very skilled pony, not to mention a very loved one." Twilight said as she wrapped her arm around me and held me closer.
I smiled lovingly at her. "Thanks Twi…I love you." I said before I moved closer and we shared and loving kiss.
Once we broke apart, Twilight returned then smile. "I love you too, Matt." she said before a smirk appeared on her face. "But is a kiss all you've got to show it? After what's happened today, I expected more." She said.
I grinned devious. "Is that so?" I said before I leaped up onto the bed with Twilight and held myself above Twilight. "Then let me show you more." I said before I lowered my head down to her and kissed her deeper.
Twilight kissed me back before her horned glowed. Within that instant, the door locked and the lights went off, rendering the room completely dark.
This was the beginning of a new chapter for me and Twilight, this was when our life with a new family member started. This was the birth of Amy Sparkle.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
So what did you think? The foal is finally born, let me know what you think of her name. I've been planning this chapter for a very long time.
The song I used in this chapter my self-made parody of the "Gaston" song from the Disney movie "Beauty and the Beast", I don't own anything. But I do own this version of it because I wrote this myself. Also, if any of you are interested in making an animated video of it or something, just let me know. I don't expect anyone one to do so, but I can hope.
Message to SamFraser: I did the life for a life moment like you wanted, please stop asking me to do more based of other FanFics, I don't rip off other people's stories. What happens with Spike and Rarity next will be whatever it will be. I'm sorry to be blunt, but you've been sending these reviews with the same messages too many times.
Pony News: So much to tell this time, let's see what I can remember.
The MLP movie will be released in October 6th, for anyone who's forgotten and hasn't realised how close it is
It seems some elements from the movie, such as Seaponies, will make their way into S8. This may mean we'll see some characters from it. Lets hope, right?
BTW, it seems I was wrong about the S6 DVD. It was released onto Amazon, but only for Pre-order, it will actually be released November 7th, sorry for the misleading.
Speaking of S8, the sneak peak was released at Hascon, showing the return of a very familiar character. Ask yourself, what do you get when you mix photos and hair sample of the ponies you took pictures of?...Seriously, tell me, 'cause I don't know.
A music video for the movie was released by SIA, its called 'Rainbow' and will make its way into the movie. Be warned, do not watch it unless you're ok with seeing spoilers.
And this just in! The plot for the S7 final has been revealed! Expect Starswirl the Bearded and the Pony of Shadows! It's gonna be awesome.
End of pony news.
Please remember to review or PM
The next chapter will be up as soon as possible.
74. Baby's first day
Hi everypony and welcome back to another chapter.
I'm glad to hear my last chapter went so well. I can already tell everyone has grown attached to Amy, I hope to keep that up.
However, not all is so good. My pet Bearded Dragon, Spike, had to be put down recently. I was very upset and I'll miss him.
The song I used in this chapter has a short number of lyrics changed to go with the story.
Please enjoy the chapter.
Chapter 74: Baby's first day
It took until the next morning before the doctors finally let us leave the hospital with our new foal, Amy Sparkle. Once we did leave, we were too tired to walk back, but the doctors knew this and managed to get a taxi cart to help take us home.
The sun shined bright over Ponyville as Twilight and I rode a taxi chart back to the Library. All the while, we couldn't stop looking down at Amy, held in Twilight's arms while wrapped in a warm blanket. She slept soundly as the gentle breeze blew against us.
Twilight and I were love-struck, she was so perfect that it was unreal. It was like Heaven shined down on us and gave us one of their angels to care for. Her beauty, her mane, her small horn sticking through it just slightly, Nothing else could compare to her. "Oh Matt…isn't she the most beautiful thing you've ever seen?" Twilight asked as she rocked Amy a little in her arms.
"Yeah." I said before I turned my attention to Twilight. "But you're just as beautiful as she is." I said, scooting closer and wrapping my arm around her.
Twilight looked at me with a sweet smile before she leaned in and kissed me deeply. But we soon broke apart when we heard a small whimper, Twilight and I looked down at Amy to see she was starting to wake up. She looked up at us with her blue beady eyes. "Hey baby-girl, how are you doing?" I asked in a whisper as I lowered my head down to her.
Amy remained silent as she looked around her surroundings, she continued to whimper as she become uneasy and didn't understand what was going on.
Twilight held her up higher to her face and gave her a sweet smile. "Don't worry, bug. We'll be home soon and we'll get you all cosy." She said before she lowered her head down and kissed Amy's head gently.
Amy giggled a little as she moved her hooves out from under the blanket and tried to reach up to us. I smiled and placed my hoof in front of her, letting her grab it with her hooves and place the tip in her mouth.
The taxi-puller soon looked back at us and smiled. "Cute kid, is it yours?" he asked curiously.
I turned my head to face him and nodded. "Yeah, just born, to be honest." I said before I looked down at Amy. "So far, she's been a total gem. I don't think there's a single bad-bone in her." I said, seeing Amy as Equestria's golden filly.
The taxi-puller's smile went away. "Urr…don't you think it's too early to think that way? I mean, its none of my business, but how do you think she'll be like in the future?" he said as he returned his attention to the road.
With that thought now in mind, Twilight looked at me with her smile now gone. "Wait…Matt, he's right! Amy may be good an angel now, but when she gets just as a few days older, she's probably gonna act out. Remember what Rarity said to Mr Cake when the twins were born? A baby Unicorn can have bizarre magic outbursts at this age." She said, looking back down at Amy.
I took this into consideration as well. Sure, things were fine now, but eventually Amy will act out, just like the twins did when Pinkie took care of them. "Well…we didn't say raising a kid would be easy." I said before I smiled at Twilight. "But like you said last night, we can handle it as long as we give her a lot of love and care." I said.
Twilight gave me another smile before she looked back down at Amy. "I guess so…but we should be careful, her magic may get out of control. If that happens, we need to help her calm down." she said.
"Don't worry, Twi, we will." I said as I held her closer in a hug. "But right now, lets just focus on getting home and getting her settled there." I said before I looked down at Amy and tickled her with the tip of my hoof. "And I know you'll love it at the Library. With any luck, you'll grow to love them just like your mother." I said, glancing at Twilight to see the excited smile on her face. But then I lowered my head down to her and whispered. "But if you don't, tell me know, I'll help get you out of those messes."
"Hey!" Twilight said, giving me a firm look. "I heard that."
I looked back up at Twilight and chuckled nervously. "Just kidding." I said sheepishly before I lowered my head back down to Amy. "Most of the messes anyway." I whispered, getting another firm glare from Twilight.
We continued to ride the taxi all the way back to town. It wasn't long before we finally reached town and we were travelling down the street. As we passed by, some ponies we knew noticed us and waved, seeing the bundle in Twi's arms and instantly knowing where we were and what happened. After a minute or so, we finally reached the Library and we all got off it.
I then paid the taxi-pony and he went off to do his job elsewhere, leaving us at our home. I turned around and made my way up beside Twilight and looked at her. "Ready to take her in?" I asked.
Twilight looked at me and nodded. "Yeah…besides, we best make sure Spike and the others didn't trash the place while we were gone." She said before she made her way up to the front-door and used her magic to open it.
I followed her inside and looked around to see the place was still in one piece, thank Celestia. I smiled at this sight and looked down at Amy. "Welcome home, Amy." I said, watching Twilight move her so Amy could look at the Library.
"I think she likes it." Twilight said before she made her way over to the round table with the wooden horse-head before she placed Amy down on it. "Matt, are you ok to go look for the guys, I'm gonna check on Amy to make sure she's feeling ok." She said, keeping her eyes on Amy as she used her magic to unwrap the blanket around her.
"Sure thing, Twilight." I said before I looked over to the door to the study room. I made my way over to it and gently pushed it open with my hoof. "Guys?" I asked, looking around for anyone, but the entire room was empty. I then stepped away and looked over to the stairs that led up to the higher level of the library.
As I walked past Twilight and Amy to get there, Amy made a small whimper noise as she reached her arms out to me. "Don't worry, daddy will be back in a second, he's looking for your uncles." Twilight said as she continued looking her over.
Once I reached the stairs, I went up them until I reached our room. I looked around for anyone, but it didn't look like anyone was here at all. I was a little confused by this, I turned around and looked down the stairs. "Twilight! There's no one up here!" I called down to her.
"Did you check the guest room?" Twilight's voice called up.
"Good idea, I'll try there." I said before I walked over to the next set of small stairs then went up to our bed-room. Once I reached the next floor, I walked past our bed to the door which led to the guest room. I pushed my ear against it, but couldn't hear anything, but I decided to try looking inside anyway. I placed my hoof against the door and started to slowly push it open.
But before I could push it any further, Discord's face, coloured brown to match the wood, appeared on the door. "NO!" H yelled with his eyes glowing red.
I yelped in fight and leaped backwards away from the door. Discord then stepped out of the door, his entire body still coloured brown. His tail then whipped at the doorknob and pulled the door shut before releasing it. "Its not ready yet." He said before he pulled a small pain-brush out from behind his back and pressed it against his body, which then sucked up all the brown colour on his body, returning him to his normal look before the brush disappeared.
I breathed heavily, holding my hoof against my chest and I stared up wide-eyed at him. "…You…*pants…could've put up a sign or something…*pants*." I said, trying to recover from the jump-scare I just got from him. "What's not ready in there anyway?" I said, giving him a firm look.
"Oh that would spoil the surprise." Discord said as she slivered up beside me. "Besides, don't you have a lovely little foal to introduce me to?" he asked before he grabbed one of my wings with his fingers and raised it up, he then looked under my wing with a curious look. "Where is she anyway?" he asked, like he was looking for her on my person.
I pulled my wing out of his grip and folded it away. "Amy is downstairs with Twilight. But where's Spike and the others, are they hiding as well?" I asked, wondering where they could be right now.
Discord stood back up and stroked his beard with his talon-hand. "Oh yes…they had to go to Rarity's to pick up some new things she made dear Amy." He said before a box with a ribbon appeared in his lion hand. "By the way, she left this for you." he said as he held it down to me.
I looked up at Discord before I looked back down at the present, I then sat down and took it with my front-hooves. I shook it a little to try and hear what was inside, but whatever was in there was too soft to make any sort of sound. I then looked up at Discord again. "Thanks…so what have you been up to since yesterday?" I asked curiously.
"Nothing much, just getting something ready for the new member of our little family." Discord said before he started hovering in mid-air with his heads behind his head. "I must say, I've really outdone myself with that room." he said with a satisfied smirk on his face.
Upon hearing this, I instantly became worried. To him, a spinning room with all the furniture rolling around everywhere was considered safe for a baby's room, I didn't want my kid being put into an environment like that. "What did you do to Amy's room?! I have to see!" I said before I rushed past him to try and look into the guest room.
In another flash of light, Discord reappeared in front of me with a construction-workers outfit on, he blew a whistle as he held a stop-sign in front of me. He then spat the whistle out before he spoke. "Can't go in there, a lot of work going on." he said.
Just then, I heard someone coming up the stairs, I turned my head around to see more construction-worker Discord's coming up. "Where do you want all this new stuff, boss?" one of them asked.
"In there." The Discord in front of me said as he pointed at the door behind him with his thumb.
I then watched as a few Discord's walked past us and into the room with some rather worrying objects. Stuff like a small active volcano, a fish-tank with a Piranha in it, and some kind of green slime blob with a large smile on his face. Each one made me more worried than the last. "Urr…Discord, what is all that stuff?" I asked, scared of the answer.
"Just some play things for Amy." Discord said before he looked down at me with a large grin. "As a godfather, I have to provide my god-daughter with whatever she'd need to have a good time." He said.
"Well that very considerate of you, Disc-WHAT THE HELL IS THAT?" I yelled as I turned around to see another Discord walked past with a mini Cerberus on a leash, it snarled and shot up to try and bite me as it past.
"What? Every kid needs a puppy." Discord said before he raised his hands. "I know, I know, she's too young to take on such a responsibility. But I think it would do her some good to have a new friend." He said before he lowered his head down to me with a bright smile on his face. "Can you say 'best godfather ever'?" he said before he chuckled with excitement.
I was too shook up with horrifying thoughts to answer properly. "Urr…let me get back to you on that." I said before I turned around and walked away while holding the present in one hoof.
Discord raised himself back up before he smirked and crossed his arms. "Huh…so overwhelmed with please that he couldn't speak, I am on a role!" he said with cheer before he disappeared in another flash of light.
Meanwhile, I had already made my way back down to the living room. I took a few deep breaths to calm myself down after all the things I saw go into Amy's future room. "Twilight's gonna flip when she sees what's going on in there." I said out-loud to myself.
"I'll flip when I what?" Twilight's voice asked.
I looked over to where it came from to see Twilight was still by the centre table with Amy. I froze for a second before I gave her a weak smile. "Nothing, we'll sort it out later…how's Amy?" I asked as I walked over to them.
Twilight looked back down at her and smiled. "She's fine. I've looked her over and she seems perfectly fine…but guess what I found." She said before she raised her hoof and tickled it against the bottom of one of Amy's hind-leg hooves, getting a small laugh out of her. "Someone has a ticklish spot." Twilight said as she kept doing it, getting more laughs out of Amy.
I smiled warmly at this. "That's adorable." I said as I watched Amy's laughing face. At that moment, I remembered that I had a present in my hoof for Amy. I lifted it up and held it towards Twilight. "Oh, Discord said Rarity left us this." I said.
Twilight turned her head to look at it and gave it a curious look. "Huh, I wonder what it is…like I even need to ask, knowing Rarity and all." She said with a small amused smile before she picked the present up out of my hoof with her magic. Twilight then placed the present down on the table and was about to unwrap it, until she noticed Amy taking an interest in it. She gave her a sweet smile before she nudged it towards her. "Here sweetie, do you wanna open it?" she asked.
Amy looked at the present with a confused face before she reached out and grabbed the paper, she then pulled back a little and tore some of the paper off it. Finding it entertaining, Amy giggled a little before she proceeded to rip off the rest of the paper until there was only the box left. "Good girl, Amy. Only a few hours old and you're already a smart cookie." She said, giving Amy a small wink.
Amy clapped her front-hooves together as she laughed at her comment. Twilight then looked at the box and used her magic to open it, revealing what was inside. It was a small dark-blue onesie, small enough to fit Amy perfectly. "Oh look Amy, Auntie Rarity made you some lovely pyjamas." She said as she used her magic to lift the onesie out and hold it above Amy. "Wanna try it on?" she asked.
Amy looked at the onesie and giggled as she reached her hooves up to it. We both smiled lovingly at this before Twilight used her magic to pick Amy up gently and move the onesie towards her. After a moment or so, she managed to get the onesie onto Amy, she looked so cute and comfy in it. "It fits perfectly on her." Twilight said.
"I know." I said, not able to take my eyes off Amy as Twilight lowered her back down onto the table and she kicked her legs a little. "How does it feel, Amy?" I asked, wondering what she must've thought of it.
Amy looked down at herself and whimpered a little as she rolled around in her new onesie, she looked a little unsettled and uncomfortable, she started to moan louder as she realized it wouldn't come off.
I noticed this and my smile went away. "What's wrong, sweetheart? Do you not like it?" I asked, wondering if it may not be the right size after all.
"I know what it is." Twilight said as she rushed her magic to pick Amy up again and place her in her arm, she held Amy up against her shoulder as she rubbed her back with her other hoof. "She doesn't know what it is. Besides from that diaper, she hasn't worn anything else, this is her first piece of clothing." She said before she planted a gentle kiss on the side of Amy's head. "She'll get used to it though."
My small smiled returned as I moved closer to Twilight and wrapped my wing around her, pulling her closer to me. As Twilight turned her head to look at me with her sweet smile, I couldn't help but feel my heart skip a beat as I saw her sitting there, holding our child against her. "Beautiful…" I said, looking at her in a love-stuck daze.
"What is?" Twilight asked curiously as she patted Amy's back a little.
"You are…and so is Amy." I said before I leaned my header closer to Twilight's and nuzzled my head against hers. "I love you both so much…I don't know where I'd be now without you, but I know it would've never been as good as this." I said before I moved my head away and looked into her eyes deeply.
Twilight did the same as she gave me a loving smile. "I feel the same way." she said before she leaned closer to me and we shared a loving kiss. It was funny, I remember perfectly how our first kiss felt, it was like fireworks shot in my mind and blew my world. And now, even after all this time together, it still felt the same. We then broke apart and continued to stare warmly at each other, that was until we heard a small whine.
Twilight and I looked down to see Amy with an slightly upset look as she reached her hooves up to us. Twilight and I looked at each other and smiled again until Twilight used her magic to hold up Amy between our heads, where we then planted a gentle kiss on each of her cheeks. Amy giggled at this as she enjoyed the love she was receiving.
"Urr…are we interrupting?" a voice asked behind us.
Twilight and I pulled away from Amy and looked over to where the voice came from, that's when we saw Spike, Jeff and Peewee standing by the front-door while staring at us. "Oh, hey Spike." Twilight said before she placed Amy back down on the table. "Where have you guys been?" she asked curiously.
"At Rarity's…for no reason, haha." Spike said, chuckling nervously as he rubbed the back of his head while blushing.
"Yeah, not like we were stalking one of our friends or something." Jeff said with his wings crossed while giving Spike a firm glare.
Twilight and I looked at each other awkwardly before he looked over to them again. "Well…that's good." I said, not entirely understanding what they meant. "Anyway, aren't you guys gonna say hello to Amy." I said before I turned around to see Amy was sitting up on the table with a confused look on her face.
Spike smiled warmly at the sight of her. "Oh yeah, I almost forgot about her." he said as he walked over to us and stopped in front of the table, he stood on his toes so he could get a better look at Amy. "This is gonna take some getting used to." he said before he reached his hand over to her and gently stoked her head with his hand, which Amy accepted.
Jeff and Peewee flew over to us and landed on the table, they stood near Amy as they stared at her. "She seems to feel right at home." Peewee said as he saw how at peace Amy was about everything.
Twilight nodded in agreement. "Yeah, she does." She said before she returned her attention to Amy, watching Spike continue to give her attention. "We're glad she's happy here, but I know it won't be long until she gets upset about something." she said.
Jeff took a step closer to her and shrugged. "Well she seems happy right now, I don't think there's anything that'll upset this little thing." he said, giving Amy a gentle pat on the back with her wing.
Feeling this, Amy turned her head and saw Jeff. Drawn in by his soft colourful feathers, Amy smiled widely before she grabbed Jeff and hugged him tightly, loving how soft her felt. Jeff was wide-eyed and struggled to breathe within Amy's tight embrace. Part of him wanted to pull away, but he knew it would probably upset Amy if he did so. "Urr…little help?" he asked with whatever breath he could speak with.
I smirked at this and chuckled. "Haha, no way man, this is too cute." I said as I watched Amy hug Jeff like a stuffed animal.
Jeff turned his head a little to watch Amy hug him, but soon had enough, so his raised his tail-feathers and brushed them against her nose. Amy's eyes widened before he face scrunched up and started whining. Then, as expected, Amy sneezed roughly, making her release Jeff and allowing him to fly up to a high spot in the room and land on a branch. Amy used her arm to wipe her mouth before she looked up to where Jeff was, she whimpered as she tried to reach up to him, but he was hopelessly out of reach.
Once she realised this, Amy's mouth bent into a frown and she started to whimper louder, tears began to build in her eyes before she started to cry out loudly.
Twilight and I saw this and immediately went to comfort her, Twilight used her magic to pick her up before she placed her in her arms. "Aww, its ok Amy, shhh, its ok." Twilight said as she gently rocked Amy in her arms.
I looked down at Amy with concern before I looked up at Jeff. "Thanks a lot, Jeff." I said with a small glare.
Jeff shrugged. "Hey, its not my fault, all I did was make her sneeze." He claimed as he stayed up in his high spot.
I returned my attention to Amy before I gently stroked her with my hoof. "Its alright Amy, don't cry." I said, hoping it would help Amy calm down.
But with no luck, Amy kept on crying loudly. Twilight frowned before she turned her head to look at me. "Do you wanna try?" she asked curiously.
I looked at her face before I looked back down at Amy. "O-Ok." I said before I sat down and held my arms out to receive Amy. Twilight used her magic to lift Amy back up before gently placing her down in my arms. I realised something, this was the first time I held Amy, she was a little heavier than she looked, I gently held her up to me and placed her against my shoulder. "Its ok Amy, shhh…its ok." I said as I gently rubbed her back with my hoof.
It took a moment or so, but Amy finally started to calm down before she stopped crying. I pulled her away from my shoulder and looked at her in my hooves, Amy sniffed as one last tear ran down her cheek. I smiled lovingly as I used my hoof to wipe it away before I placed a gentle kiss on her head. "Feeling better, sweetheart?" I asked, keeping the smile on my face.
Amy sniffed again before she nuzzled herself against my chest. Twilight and I smiled warmly at this before we looked at each other. "You're good at that." Twilight said.
"So are you, Twi." I said before I looked down at Amy. "Maybe she'd feel better if we took her out for a little while. Rarity and the others might like to see her again." I said, gently stroking Amy's head with my hoof.
"Yeah, maybe they would." Twilight said as she took a step close and stroked Amy's mane with her hoof. Just then, we heard a little grumble noise and looked around confusingly, not recognizing the sound. We soon heard it again and followed the sound down to Amy, whom was clenching her belly with her hooves. "I think she's hungry." she said.
"Ok." I said, nodding at how simple this could be solved. "Do you know where we keep the bottles for her?" I asked, looking up at Twilight curiously.
Twilight gave me a confused look. "Urr…I don't know…where did you put them?" she asked, thinking I'd know better.
"Twi, if I knew where they were, I wouldn't have asked you." I said before I used my free hoof to rub Amy's belly. "I didn't buy any bottles, I thought you did." I said, thinking we had this sorted ages ago.
With that new knowledge, Twilight gasped in shock. "Oh my gosh, we don't have any bottles for Amy, we don't have anything for her. No changing table, not crib, nothing. We're totally unprepared!" she said before she grew a sickly look. "That's never happened to me before…I'm not sure I like the feeling." She said, looking woozy all of a sudden.
Trying to fight back an amused smile from this, I tried to think of a solution for this problem. Twi and I had always talked about buying stuff for Amy early, but we never got around to it and decided to just wait until the due date was close, we never suspected Amy would come so early. "Ok…we can handle this…we still have plenty of time to get everything before it gets late." I said before I looked back down at Amy. "But what do we do with this little beauty?" I asked.
"We'll just take her with us." Twilight said before she looked around the room for something. "Do we even have baby-pouch to carry her in?" she asked before returning her attention to me.
I remained silent for a moment before I sighed heavily. "*Sigh*…I'll carry her until we get one." I said before I sat down and adjusted Amy on my arm so I could carry her properly.
With that decided, Twilight looked over to Spike. "Spike, I have a very important job for you." she said before she used her magic to hover a camera over into his claws. "We need you to take pictures of Amy whenever you think she's doing something for the first time. Like her first outing, her first ice-cream, things like that."
"Urr…ok, sure, I can handle that." Spike said as he held the camera up to his face to look through the lens. He then looked at Amy in my arm and realised that there was a change to take his first picture right there. "Oh, I got one." He said before he quickly took a picture of Amy. "Amy's first time in her PJs." He said, referring to her onesie.
The flash from the camera shot made Amy rub her eyes and she let out a small moan at how uncomfortable it felt.
"Good one, Spike." Twilight said before she returned her attention to me. "Does this mean we should put Discord in charge of the Library until we get back?" she asked curiously.
Suddenly, Discord appeared beside her with his arms crossed. "Well why ask? I mean, don't you all trust me enough to take care of everything while you're gone?" He said before he turned away, like he was sulking. "If I didn't know any better, I'd say you guys thought I was going to wreck the place in your absence." He said with a slightly offended look.
Twilight and I looked at each other as we remembered the last time we decided to leave Discord in charge of the Library.
-A week ago-
Twilight and I walked up to the front-door of the Library after spending a romantic night out. Dinner, dancing, you name it. Twilight used her magic to open the front-door and, upon doing so, a giant wave of water burst out of the doorway and washed over the pair of us. As the wave died down, Discord came floating out on a raft. He was wearing ragged clothing and had a large beard, like he had been lost at sea for a long time. Twilight and I were completely soaked, staring at Discord with strong glares. Upon seeing us, Discord gasped in shock. "Matthew? Twilight?...I've been gone for six months, how long was it here?" He asked with a curious yet desperate look in his eyes.
"Not long enough" Twilight stated in a groan as she brushed her dripping wet fringe aside with her hoof, with my only response being spitting a long amount of water out of my mouth like a fountain.
Something suddenly tugged on Discord's tail and he grabbed it with his talon-hand before pulling it upwards, showing Spike hanging from it by his mouth like a fish on a hook.
-present day-
Twilight and I then returned our attention up to Discord. "We have our reasons." I said before I took a step forward. "But anyways, we are going to leave you in charge, but I'm laying down the law...No Chaos Magic! No in-door undersea land, not floating furniture and no vortex to another dimension that could suck in this one and grind it up like fruit in a blender!" I said with firm instruction.
Discord felt like he had all his limbs tied up as he groaned in annoyance. "*Groan* Just rip my heart out and glue my hide-quarters to a bench why don't you?" He said before he crossed his arms and pouted. "Fine..." He groaned.
"Good." I said before I turned my head to face Twilight again. "Ready to go, babe?" I asked as I continued to hold Amy in one arm.
Twilight nodded. "Yep." She said before she turned and started making her way towards the front-door with me and Spike following behind. Once she used her magic to open the door, Twilight, Spike I went through it until we were outside in the open once again.
Amy felt the breeze against her and nuzzled closer to me for warmth. I looked down at her and smiled at this before the three of us started making our way towards Sugar Cube Corner.
As we walked away, Spike walked up to the doorway and waved at us. "See you guys later." He said as he watched us go deeper into town.
Once we were gone, Discord slammed the door and floated over to Jeff and Peewee. "Well now that it's just us guys, why don't we do something thrilling to pass the time? We could go to a night club, the movies, oh! We could go on a pranking spree, I know a certain farm-pony who love what I have in mind." He said with a mischievous grin.
Jeff and Peewee looked at each other with nervous looks, feeling that this was probably going to be another long day.
Later: Sugar Cube Corner
After arriving at Sugar Cube Corner, Pinkie wasted no time in picking Amy up in her hooves and giving her enough affection to make anyone feel loved. Pinkie held her in front of her face and smiled widely. "Aww, your just so cutesy-wutesy! Who's a cute little foal? You are, yes you are." She said before she stuck her tongue out at Amy.
Amy giggled at Pinkie's behaviour and stuck the very tip of her tongue out to mimic her.
Twilight and I smiled warmly at the sight of this while Spike held the camera to his face and took a picture of them. "Amy's first time with Aunt Pinkie." He said as he lowered the camera.
"Good job Spike." I said before I returned my attention to Pinkie. "I'm glad she's taking a shine to you, Pinkie. You're gonna be a great aunt for her." I said, walking up to them and stroking Amy's head with my hoof.
"Yeah, I can't wait until she's older, I'll teach her how to bake and then she can sleep over and then we'll eat stuff like candy all night until we burst!" Pinkie said, getting excited by the idea. "In fact, why wait, lets do that tomorrow night!" she said before she looked down at Amy. "What do you think, Amy?" she asked, getting a small laugh from Amy as she clapped her hooves together.
At that moment, Amy was engulfed by Twilight's magic and levitated Amy over to her before placing her on her back. "I…don't think that's such a good idea right now, she's just a day old and we don't want her eating things like candy too early." She said before giving Pinkie a nervous smile.
Pinkie gasped a little at this. "Too young to eat candy?...Never!" she said with a small glare, making us all feel a little uneasy. But soon enough, a smile sprung back up onto her face and zipped over to Twilight. "But she's your kid so I suppose its ok." She said as she tickled Amy under her chin with the tip of her hoof. Suddenly, another large gasp escaped her mouth. "Oh my gosh, I have an awesome idea!" she said before she grabbed Amy with her hooves and zipped across the room, making me and Twi a bit weary of what she might have planned.
Pinkie then stopped near the Cake Twins while still holding Amy in her hooves. "Amy should totally spend some times with Pound and Pumpkin, I bet they be great friends." She said before she placed Amy down near them and stepped back to wait for the results.
Amy looked back at Pinkie before she looked towards Pound and Pumpkin, whom soon took notice of her and stared at her for a moment. It seemed like nothing would happened, until Pound and Pumpkin grew small smiles and crawled over to Amy. Amy soon grew a smile before she decided to meet them half-way. Once they were comfortable around each other, they started to play with some of the toys around them.
Twilight and I continued to watch until our minds were at ease with this, we soon smiled at the fact that Amy was making friends so quickly. "Aww, that's adorable." Twilight said, watching our little Amy play with the Twins.
Spike walked up to Amy and the Twins before he held the camera in front of his face, he then took another picture and lowered the camera. "Amy's first friends, that'll be a good one." He said out-loud.
"Yeah." I said before I turned my head to face Pinkie. "Good idea, Pinkie…" I said before I remembered why we came here. "Oh yeah, I were wanting to ask if Mrs Cake had any spare baby-pouches so we could carry Amy around without holding her." I asked, hoping she would have at least one for us.
"We'd have one already, but with Amy arriving early, we didn't have time to prepare things for her." Twilight explained as she took a step closer.
Pinkie looked at Twilight with a slightly surprised look. "Unprepared? You?...Never thought I'd see something like this, you're the most prepare-iest pony I've ever met." She said, gaining a sheepish smile from Twilight. "But yeah, I think there's one around her somewhere, let me go look." Pinkie said before she bounced into the kitchen to search for a spare pouch.
While she was gone, Twilight and I returned our attention to Amy as she continued to play with the Twins. Pumpkin and Amy stared down at a stuffed bear on the floor. Pumpkin then closed her eyes as her horn glowed a little, and soon enough the bear was engulfed in the magic and was lifted off the floor.
Amy watched in awe as the bear floated around her. She smiled at the sight before she closed her eyes and groaned as she tried to do the same. After a few attempts, there was nothing, but then she tried harder and surprisingly a light blue aria started to flicker around her small horn, and it wasn't long before it completely took effect and Pound was engulfed in light blue magic. Pound stared confusingly at he was slowly lifted off the ground and into the air until he was hovering around with the bear.
Twilight and I stared at this with shock and awe, finding the fact that Amy had already started using magic was a lot to take in. "Amy…is doing magic?...She can do magic!" I said before looking down at Amy with a smile growing on my face.
Twilight looked at her as well before she gave her a proud smile. "Oh, that's my girl…she's learning fast, just like I did." She said before she wiped a single proud tear from her eye.
Spike stared up at what Amy was doing before he held the camera up, too busy staring at the floating colt to look through the lens. "Amy's first…spell?" he said before he took the picture.
The flash from the camera caught Amy's eyes again and she was forced to rub them with her hooves. Unfortunately, this made her lose concentration of her spell and made her drop Pound. Twilight and I gasped at the sight of Pound falling, but Twilight quickly caught him with her own magic before he could hit the floor, making us both exhale in relief.
Twilight then placed Pound gently back down onto the floor before she picked Amy up in her magic and brought her over to us, Twilight looked at Amy with concern before she placed her onto her back. "I think we should keep Amy with us for a little while." she said.
"I think you're right." I said, thinking how much of a close call that was. "But we can't really blame her. Like you said, she's only a day old." I said as I looked at Amy crawl along Twilight's back towards the back of her neck.
"I know, but I forgot how much damage a baby Unicorn can do, they have unpredictable magic which can even get unstable if not treated properly." Twilight said as Amy started playing with the back of her mane.
"Hmm…I suppose you're right." I said before I turned my attention to Amy, I placed my hoof on her back and gently rubbed it. "If she's this much trouble at this age, I can't wait to see what she's like when she becomes a teenager." I said, imagining a possible future full of boy-band posters and loud funky music.
Twilight shivered at the thought. "Urr, I don't." she said, probably imagining the same thing before she turned her head around to look back at Amy. "We'll just need to keep a closer eye on her until we can teach her to control her magic." She said.
"If that's what you think we should do, I'm with you." I said before I sat down on the floor and waited for Pinkie to return from her search.
After a few minutes of waiting and stopping Amy from lifting things up with her magic, Pinkie returned into the room with a baby-pouch fit for just one foal. "Here you go, guys. Mrs Cake had one left in case any of the others broke, but she said you guys could have it." she said as she brought it over to us with the pouch on her back. By the looks of it, the belt of the pouch was designed to attach around a pony's body while the pouch itself hung from the right-side of the said pony.
"Thanks Pinkie." Twilight said before she used her magic to lift the pouch off Pinkie's body. Using the same magic, she lifted Amy off her back and placed her down on the floor before she attached the pouch to her body, she then picked up Amy again and gently lowered her down into the pouch until she was perfectly settled inside it.
Twilight and I looked at her as she got snug in the pouch, she seemed to like it, and knowing Amy would now be in a secure state every time we'd take her out with us put us both at ease. Spike was quick to come up to use and take another picture of Amy. "Amy's first time in her pouch." He said as he lowered the camera.
Twilight turned her head back around to face Pinkie. "Its perfect, Pinkie. Thank you so much." She said before she took a step towards Pinkie and wrapped her arm around her to hug her, which Pinkie happily returned.
"Well if you guys ever need anything else from us, feel free to ask any time." Pinkie said before she and Twilight separated. "And if you ever need a foal-sitter, I'm always available…unless I'm caught up taking care of the Twins. You know what, why wait? Wanna pencil me in for a certain date?" she asked as she held up a notepad and the curl at the end of her fringe went into her mane and pulled out a pencil, ready to write down a date.
"We'll keep it in mind, Pinkie, but we're good for now." Twilight said. "We'll be sure to let you know if we ever need your help with things like that." She said with a small smile.
"Ok then." Pinkie said as the curl in her hair tucked the pencil back into her mane. "Well would you guys like some muffins or anything before you go? We seem to be over-stocked and I can only eat so much before I go into a snack-coma." She said with a bright smile. "I did suggest we start feeding some to the foals, but Mr Cake said they were still too young to eat so much stuff like cake and cupcakes. If you want my opinion, no-one's too young for cakes." She said before she picked up a cupcake and chomped it up in one big bite.
I took a step forward until I was standing beside Twilight. "We would take some, Pinkie, but we don't really need any right now." I said before I turned my head to face Twilight. "Besides, we really need to be going, we still need to get Amy a crib and stuff." I said.
"Ok, well I hope everything works out for you both." Pinkie said before she noticed two random ponies enter the store. "Hi, welcome to Sugar Cube Corner, can I help you?" she said as she hopped over towards them.
With Pinkie now focused on that, we all took our leave and left Sugar Cube Corner. Once we were outside, I turned to look at Amy in the pouch and saw that the breeze didn't bother her anymore, the pouch must be keeping her warmer than the onesie did. "Amy looks comfy." I said, giving her a warm smile.
Twilight turned her head around to look down at Amy, seeing her happy in the pouch made Twilight grow the same smile. "Yeah, she is." She said before she turned her attention to me. "Do you think we have time to get a crib for her?" she asked.
I nodded. "Yeah, I used to spend a little bit of time in that shop during my work hours, I saw a good one that might be perfect for her. The shop has different closing times for each day, sometimes it closes early, other times it closes later. I think it closes at a later time today." I said, rubbing my chin with my hoof as I trying to remember the exact closing time for the shop.
"Ok, well let's get over there and see this crib you're talking about." Twilight said before she started walking ahead towards a street.
As I started following her, Spike walked up beside me with the camera still in hand. "Are you sure the store is still open? I mean, I've lived here for a long time and the stores tend to close early on this day of the week." He said, giving me a slightly concerned look.
We kept walking as I turned my head to look down at him. "Well I hope so, otherwise we're in big trouble." I said before I returned to facing forward as we kept following Twilight down the street.
-A few minutes later-
"We're in big trouble." I said, looking stressfully at the closed sign hanging from behind the locked door of the crib store. Apparently I had it wrong, the stores did in fact close early today. "So is this the part where I feel like a complete idiot?" I asked as I turned my head to face Twilight, whom was giving the sign the same stressed look.
"No." Twilight answered as she shook her head, still staring at the sign.
"Yes." Spike also answered as he nodded his head, also staring at the sign while standing between us.
Twilight was quick to shoot a sharp glare down at him before she looked up at me with a calmer look. "Don't worry, Matt, you couldn't have known about this." She said, trying to help me feel better.
I turned my head to face her with self-ashamed look, still feeling like I messed up. "I know, but I should've. I've been coming here for weeks, I thought I had learned the open times properly. And now Amy doesn't have a crib and won't have one until tomorrow, I should've bought one ages ago." I said before my ears lowered, feeling like I really suck as a dad so far.
Twilight made her way over to me before she placed her hoof on my shoulder. "I feel the same way, Matt, but we can't give up. This can't be the only place in Ponyville that has cribs." She said before a thought suddenly came into mind. "What about Applejack? If we can't buy one, maybe she can help make us one. You know how good she is with tools." She said, a smile of hope growing on her face.
Her hope was leaking out onto me as the same smile grew onto my face as well. "Twilight, that's brilliant! You're a genius." I said as my wings fluttered a little.
Twilight gave me a cheeky smirk. "You're just realising this now?" she asked.
I returned her smirk before I turned away from the store. "Ok, lets head over to Sweet Apple Acres. But we have to be quick, it won't be long before it gets dark." I said.
With that, the four of us started making our way down the street to head to Sweet Apple Acres, hoping that Applejack would be able to help us get a crib for Amy before it was too late.
Meanwhile: Luna's castle
Night Thunder paced back and forth in the empty throne room, mumbling to himself with a nervous look on his face. Lately, he had been thinking a lot about what Star Beam said the last time they saw each other, how he said that if he wanted anything to happen between him, he'd have to spend more time with her. But the question was how? How do you entertain the Princess of the Night?
"Princess Luna, you look nice this evening…" Night said to himself before he sighed heavily. "No, that won't work, stupid." He whispered before he tried again. "Princess Luna, you look…lovely…this evening. What am I doing in here alone? Oh, nothing, just making sure it was safe for your arrival. You'd know I'd throw down my life for you." he rehearsed before he frowned. "Huh, not really something one would say so soon." He groaned, feeling as though he was screwing this up.
Suddenly, the doors opened and Luna walked in, she was wearing a light blue night-gown and noticed Night standing in the centre of the room. "Night Thunder, this is a pleasant surprise, I thought you would be in the training ground with the others."
Due to the sudden appearance of the Princess, Night spun around to face her with wide-eyes. "Princess Luna!...urr…you look nice, urr, lovely this evening and…urr…I'd give my life for you!" he blurted out before he managed to shut himself up.
Luna gave him a confused look as she walked over to him. "Urr…thank you, I am just wearing my night-gown because I thought it felt cold today." She said before she stopped in front of him. "As for the other statement…I…guess I appreciate that, though I hope it doesn't come to pass." She said, not sure to be flattered or concerned over that.
Night sighed heavily before he gave Luna a look of sorrow. "Apologies, your highness, I don't know why I freaked out like that." He said before he bowed his head. "Please forgive me."
Luna gave him a gentle smile. "No need for apologies." She said before she walked past him and went over to her throne. "But I do wonder, why are you in here all alone? Usually I see you with Brave Star or Dusk." she said before she walked to her throne and sat down upon it.
Night walked over to her and stopped in front of her throne. "Oh…well…I was just making sure it was safe, your highness. You know I'd never forgive myself if anything happened to you while on my watch." He said before he looked down at the floor. "Also…I guess I just wanted some time alone…to think about things."
Luna titled her head with curiosity. "Mind if I ask what you were thinking about?" she asked. "If it's a problem with such things as bad dreams, I could probably help." She said, offering her aid.
Night looked back up at her and shook his head. "No, no, nothing like that…" he said before his body-temperature rose and he blushed hard. "You see…t-there's…this girl I like…but I feel I may not be good enough for her. You see, she's…kind of an important pony, and I'm…just a rookie guard." He said, knowing a girl like Luna would never go for a guy like him.
Luna was silent for a moment before she answered. "Oh…well…I am not exactly an expert on such a thing. But I would suggest you find this girl's interests, things that make her happy, and use them to please her." she suggested, hoping it would be useful advice.
Night looked at her with wonder. "Do you…really think that would work?" he asked curiously.
"I know it would work for me." Luna said, thinking how she would feel if the future stallion of her dreams would did things to make her smile.
Hearing that, Night smiled widely. "Really?!..." he blurted out before he held his hoof to his mouth and cleared his throat. "I mean, thank you, your highness. You've been very helpful." He said, placing his hoof back down on the floor.
Luna smiled kindly. "You are very welcome, Night Thunder. Is there anything else you would like to talk to me about? Maybe you could tell me who this mare is. Do I know her?" she asked, her small smile turning into a nosey smirk.
Night chuckled. "Yeah, I'd say you do." he said before he gave Luna a warm smile.
Luna then stood up off her throne and walked down towards him. "Really?" she asked with a curious look. "Can you tell me who she is?" she asked while images of a few mares she knew ran through her mind.
Night was silent as he looked deep into Luna's eyes, the shimmering beauty and sparkle in them were enough to out-shine every one of her marvellous stars. And he would know, because he spends one hour every night staring up at her dazzling night sky to appreciate the wonder she worked so hard to make. "Lets just say…she's the most beautiful…amazing…and most interesting girl I've ever met…who deserves every bit of happiness she can get." He said, spilling his heart out to her, even though she didn't know he was referring to her.
Luna was speechless, the only time she had heard such kind words about another mare was when she was around me and Twilight. "Oh...she sounds like a nice girl. I hope everything works out for you both." She said.
Night chuckled with a small fake smile. "Yeah...me too." He said before his true face showed, a frowning one. "Yeah right, like it'll ever happen." He said in his mind before he put his fake smile back on. "Well anyway, my personal life isn't that important…is there anything you would like me to bring you, your highness? A coffee or something?" he asked curiously, wanting to end the subject.
Luna was silent for a moment before she decided to go along with it. "Yes…I would like a hot coffee please." She said with a small smile.
Night gave her a warm smile before he bowed his head. "As she wish." He said before he turned and made his way towards the throne room exit.
But as Night was about to leave the room. "Night!" Luna called, making him quickly turned his head around to look back at her. "Your personal life is important…if you ever want to talk some more, know that I am always here to listen." She said with a sweet smile.
Night returned it. "Thank you, Princess." He said before he turned his head back around and left the throne room to fetch Luna her coffee, feeling as though he had gained a new friend in the castle.
Meanwhile: Sweet Apple Acres
After arriving at Sweet Apple Acres, Applejack was quick to greet us, especially Amy. After just a few minutes, Amy grew an instant attachment to her.
Applejack sat on the floor in the barn as she held Amy in her arms, Amy giggled and kicked her legs as Applejack tickled her hoof against her belly. "Aww, ain't you just the cutest little thing?" Applejack said with a warm smile as she continued her tickling. Twilight and I smiled at the sight of this. She was barely a day old, yet Amy was getting a lot of love, and she loved it. Applejack looked up at us with the smile stuck to her face. "You guys have got somethin' real special here." she said before she got up and walked over to us with Amy cupped in her arm.
Twilight's horn glowed and Amy was lifted out of Applejack's arm and placed her back in her pouch. "Thanks Applejack." She said before she decided to bring up the reason why we were here. "But we have a little problem that we hoped you could help us out with." she said with a sheepish smile.
Applejack gave her a curious look. "Oh yeah? What's the problem?" she asked with wonder.
Twilight and I looked at each other before we returned our attention to Applejack and just came out with it. "Due to Amy's…sudden…arrival, we haven't had a chance to buy anything for her. We don't have a crib, a bottle, or even any diapers for her. The only thing we have is this pouch, and its not even ours, we borrowed it from Mrs Cake." I said as I looked down at Amy and rubbed her head gently with my hoof.
"Even though Matt and Twilight are always the over-prepared type." Spike said. "Funny, they're more than prepared for tests or things like that, but they're not prepared for taking care of their own daughter?" he said, getting firm glares from the two of us. "What?" he said while shrugging his shoulders.
Applejack raised an eye-brow as she also looked at Amy. "Well its sounds like you're both in a bigger pickle than a hogtied Jackalope." She said before she turned her attention to me. "If there's anything we here at Sweet Apple Acres can do to help ya, feel free to ask." She said with a kind smile.
Twilight and I looked at each other before we looked at her with large grins. "Actually…there is one thing you could do…do you think you can make us a crib for Amy?" Twilight said, the both of us hoping she'd agree to do it.
Applejack was a little surprised by this, but it wasn't much of a major request to her. With all the trees they have, Applejack and her family make things from wood all the time. Applejack gave us a small smile. "Is that all? Sure, I can make you guys a crib, what kind of god-mother would I be if I didn't?" she said.
With that, Twilight and I smiled widely at this. It looked like Amy would get her crib by tonight after all. "That's great! Thanks Applejack, this means so much to us." Twilight said before she took a step towards Applejack. "When should we come pick it up?" she asked curiously.
Applejack's eyes shifted downward as she tried to think of an answer. "Hmm…well if I'm makin' a wild guess, I'd say somewhere around Friday." She answered before she turned and walked over to her crafting table.
Our smiles instantly went away and we shifted our eyes to look at each other again, we then returned our attention to Applejack. "Friday?" I asked as I started walking over to her. "But its Saturday, you're talking about Friday next week…" I said, knowing what this meant.
"Yep." Applejack said before she grabbed a large piece of paper with her mouth and placed it down on the table, she then grabbed a pencil and started drawing designs for the crib.
"But…umm…that's the thing." I said as I rubbed the back of my neck with my hoof. "We kinda need it for…tonight." I finished, taking a few steps back to be courteous of her reaction.
Applejack then spun around and dropped the pencil onto the floor. "What?!" she said in slight shock.
My ears dropped at this reaction. "Sorry Applejack, its just we need a crib for tonight, otherwise Amy is gonna spend her first night with us in a box." I said, trying not to laugh at the image of Amy poking her head out of cardboard box.
"Well, I understand that, but I don't think I can make a crib that fast. The quickest I can do is Thursday at the least." Applejack stated, unconfident in her crafting abilities to make a crib so soon. She then looked around the room like she was looking for something. "But I'm pretty sure Applebloom's old crib is around her somewhere. Hold tight, I'm gonna look for it for ya." She said, wanting to be helpful in any way.
But before she had a chance to look, I raised my hoof up. "No, its ok. If Applebloom's crib is in here, its probably all dusty and covered in webs." I said, feeling disgusted by the thought. "Amy can't sleep in that, even if we clean it by hosing it down." I said, giving my honest thought.
Applejack didn't bother staring her search and gave me a look of sorrow. "Sorry…but I just don't think I can do it." she said before she gave us a hopeful smile. "But hey, you've gotten outta worse scrapes than this, I'm sure you'll figure somethin' out." She said with full confidence.
Twilight and I looked at each other again and realised that she was right. We have gotten out of worse than this. If there was a solution to this, we'd find it. I turned my head back around to face Applejack again. "I hope so, Applejack. I just hope no-one looks down at us because we couldn't provide for your foal." I said, feeling like I was making a bad first impression as a dad.
"No-one can blame either of ya for the foal comin' early." Applejack said before she patted my shoulder with her hoof. "But I know you and Twilight like the back of my hoof. If anyone is gonna be a good provider for Amy in the future, it's you two." she said with a warm smile.
Twilight came over to us and we both returned this smile. "Thanks Applejack, that means a lot." Twilight said before she looked at me. "You know, we do have a few spare pillows and blankets around the Library…maybe Amy could, you know, sleep with us just for tonight…then tomorrow, we can go buy her a crib." She said, trying to take Applejack's advice and come up with a new plan.
I looked at her and thought about it. In a way, Twilight had a good idea. I suppose it wouldn't hurt for Amy to sleep in our bed for just one night. "I guess we can work with that." I said, feeling about sketchy about the idea, but it was the best idea we could get right now.
"See, you guys are already handlin' it." Applejack said, watching us work this out. "But if ya still want me to make that crib, I'm still willin' to help. It's no hassle." She said.
I returned my attention to her before I thought about it. "Hmm…well let's just see how things go tomorrow and I'll get back to you on that." I said, thinking I should see what the store would provide before we'd trouble her with this task.
"Sure." Applejack said with a single nod. "Well if this whole thing is wrapped up, I gotta train for the Equestria Rodeo competition. I'll be representing Ponyville and hopefully I'll win the blue ribbon." She said before she walked past us to make her way out of the barn.
"Ok, well good luck with that." I said as I watched her leave us. Once she was gone, I looked down at Amy in Twilight's pouch and smirked. "You're gonna be hoof-full, aren't you?" I asked, getting only a giggle as she reached her hooves up to me.
Twilight giggled at this before she looked up at my face. "So do you wanna go home and work something out for her?" she asked before she walked past me and started making her way out of the farm. "I think she's had more than enough fresh air for one day." she said.
I chuckled before Spike and I started following her. "Lead the way." I said before my eyes trailed down to her flank. "I'm right behind you…" I said in a low tone as a smirk grew on my face.
Hearing the way I was talking, Twilight's horn glowed before I suddenly vanished in a flash of light and reappeared beside her. "We have a foal with us, try to keep that kind of thing tucked in until we're alone." She said with a small smirk as she kept walking.
I groaned in disappointment as my ears lowered. "Aww…spoil sport." I said with a pout as I continued to walk along side Twilight as we left Sweet Apple Acres and made our way back to town.
Later than evening: Library
As the sun started to set, Twilight Spike, and I returned to the Library with Amy still riding in the pouch. Along the way back, I had time to think about all this. Maybe we made too big a deal out of this, maybe we should've thought of the idea of Amy sleeping with just for tonight straight away. "So you're really ok with Amy sleeping with us tonight?" Twilight asked, looking at me as we approached the Library.
I turned my head to face her and nodded. "Yeah…as long as she doesn't puke on us in the night, I'll be fine. Haha." I laughed, getting a small laugh out of Twilight.
"*Giggle* Yeah, that would be quite the wake-up call." Twilight said. "But don't worry, it's just for tonight…besides, maybe it'll be good for us, it'll show Amy that we really care for her with all our hearts." She said while looking down at Amy, enjoying being carried in the pouch.
"I suppose so." I said before we finally reached the front-door to the Library. Twilight used her magic to open the door and we walked inside. "I still can't believe we made such a big deal out of this." I said, laughing at the thought of how we were acting.
"I know, we were crazy." Twilight said as she closed the door with her magic.
"Tell me about it." Spike said as he took the camera and placed it down on a table. "I mean, you even resorted to borrowing stuff from Mrs Cake, that's just pathetic." He said, laughing a little at the thought of it.
"Yeah." I said before I looked over to Twilight. "I guess we just wanted to make a good first impression as parents and wanted it all to be perfect. But as we get deeper into parenthood, we're gonna learn than not everything will be perfect, Amy's probably gonna make things hard for us at times and make us do crazy stuff like this." I said, walking over to Twilight and using one of my wings to pull her closer to me. "But we'll deal with them together because we'll do anything for Amy, right?" I asked with a small smile.
Twilight returned the smile and nodded. "Absolutely." She said before she stared into my eyes lovingly. "I love you, Matt." she said sweetly.
"I love you too, Twi." I said before we leaned towards each other and shared a loving kiss.
Spike, seeing this, gagged. "Ah, get a room, you two." he groaned, looking away before he started making his way towards the kitchen. "I'm gonna get a snack, I've barely eaten all day. Do we still have any of those rubies left?" he said as he disappeared into the kitchen.
But Twilight and I didn't hear him, we were too busy enjoying each other embrace and the magic our kiss gave us both. But it didn't last long due to a sudden surprise. "I agree with the little dragon, please get a room." a voice said, making us separate.
Twilight and I then looked up to where the voice came from and saw Discord lying up-side-down on the ceiling, there was a pillow planted right between his arms, meaning he must've been napping up there. "Discord, what are you doing up there?" I asked curiously, feeling a bit nauseous by staring at him in this position.
"And where are Jeff and Peewee?" Twilight asked, looking around for the two birds.
"To answer both questions…I was up here having a nice nap until I was woken up by your return, and the two feather friends are in the broom closet." Discord answered before he rested his head on his billow and closed his eyes. "Now if you'll excuse me, this face doesn't get this beautiful without beauty sleep." he said before an eye-mask appeared on his face and he tried to get more sleep.
Confused, I looked over to the broom closet and started making my way over to it. "You locked them in a broom closet? I don't think I want to know why you-" I said before I grabbed the doorknob of the closet and opened it, were I was immediately greeted with an explosion of confetti and bright colourful lights, forcing me to close my eyes.
Once I was able to open them, I looked to see the broom closet had been transformed into a larger room, with bright lights, raining confetti and a disco ball hanging from the ceiling. Jeff and Peewee were in the centre of the room, dancing to the music playing in the background with sombrero and maracas. "Yeah! This is the groove of a lifetime!" Jeff said with glee as he shook his pair of maracas.
I continued to stare at this with confusion before I realised what must've happened, Discord must've used his magic to do this. I spun around and looked back up at Discord with firm eyes. "Discord, I thought we told you not to do things like this while we were gone!" I said.
Discord used his talon-hand to peel off the eye-mask to look down at me. "Actually, you said you I couldn't use my magic in the library…last I checked, that was a closet, no major problem there." he said before her gently floated down from the ceiling and landed properly on his feet.
I continued to give him a firm look as I thought about it. I hated to admit it, but he had a point, we did only say he couldn't use his magic in the Library, we didn't say anything about a closet. "*Grumble*…Ah, you got around that one this time." I mumbled before I returned my attention to the closet party. "Guys!" I called.
With that, Jeff and Peewee stopped dancing and looked over to me. "Matt! You're back! You're just in time for the Piñata." Jeff said before a piñata in the shape of Thorn dropped from the ceiling and dangled between him and Peewee.
"As tempting as that sounds, the parties over, can you both please come out of the clos-" I stopped that sentence once I realised where that sentence was going. "I mean, come out of that room." I said, feeling like I dodged a bullet there.
"Aww." Jeff said before he and Peewee came out of the room, suckling like two kids that couldn't stay up for the night.
Once they were out, I was about to ask Discord to turn the room back to normal, but suddenly Pinkie Pie came out of the room with streamers on her back and a lamp-shade on her head. "Party pooper." She said to me before she walked past and joined the others.
I stared at her with confusion. "Pinkie, what are you doing here?" I asked curiously.
Pinkie used her hoof to raise the lamp-shade off her head and looked at me. "Are you kidding me? When there's a party, I'm straight there. Even if it's a party held in the closet of one of my closest friends." She said with a bright smile on her face before she turned and started making her way towards the exit. "Ok, well I'll see you guys later." She said before she stopped beside Twilight and looked down at Amy. "And I'll see you very soon, you little cutie." She said as she tussled Amy's mane, getting a giggle out of Amy before she continued to leave the Library.
After Pinkie left, I threw my eyes with an amused smile on my face before I looked over to Discord. "Discord, can you please turn the closet back to normal?" I asked calmly.
Discord sighed heavily. "Fine…way to crash the party, Matt." he said before he snapped his fingers. With one flash of light, the closet returned to normal, a small room with brooms, mops and a bucket inside.
And then right on cue, one of the brooms fell out of the closet and the handle hit me right on the head. "Ow!" I said as I rubbed my head with my hoof. I then looked down at the broom and grabbed it with my hoof before I put it back in the closet and closed the door.
But once I closed the door, I saw Discord's face carved into the wood of the door. "So, did you get everything you were looking for in town?" he asked with a small grin.
I took a few steps back before I sigh. "*Sigh* No, we couldn't get anything for Amy. All we could get was that pouch Twilight's carrying her in, and we had to borrow it from Mrs Cake." I explained as I looked back at Amy in the pouch, watching us with interest.
Discord's face then sunk into the door before it suddenly swung open again, allowing Discord to walk out from behind it. "Well that won't do at all." He said, walking past me as he stroked his beard, all the while the same broom fell out of the closet again and hit me on the head again. "No crib, no bottle, no stroller, no anything. If I was to say my mind, I'd say you're not really very good at this job." He said as he stopped between me and Twilight.
I placed the broom back in the closet before I closed the door again. Once that was done, I turned around to face him. "We did plan on buying things for her, but we didn't get a chance because of-"
Discord's head then lowered down, up-side-down, in front of me. "Because Amy arrived earlier than expected, how many times have you said that today?" He said, cutting me off. He then dropped down onto the floor in front of me until he looked like a curled up snake, he then rose up like a charmed snake until he was standing up straight. "Well if you ask me, its probably good that you couldn't get anything for her." he said.
"How is that a good thing?" Twilight asked with a raised eye-brow as she walked over to us. "Amy's gonna have to sleep in our bed until we can get her a crib tomorrow." She said, giving Discord a curious look.
Discord looked down at her and smirked. "Oh Twilight, as clueless as ever." He said as he reached his lion-hand down at her and flung her horn with his finger. "As godfather to this little flower." He tickled Amy under her chin with his finger. "I have to do my best to provide things she might need, so I decided to take the responsibility to set up her room." he said proudly as he rose back up straight.
Upon hearing that, I instantly remembered all the dangerous and kinda weird stuff I saw him put in Amy's room earlier and grew a panicked look. "Urr, yeah, about that…I don't think it's a good idea to-"
"Shall we go up and see my handy work? I'd say its my best work yet." Discord said, cutting me off again as he stepped in front of me, blocking me from Twi's view.
"Urr…sure, Discord." Twilight answered. "There's not anything…dangerous in there, is there?" She asked with a bit of a concerned look.
Discord gave her a look of slight surprise. "In dear Amy's room? Pfff! Of course not!" He said before he flapped his wings and started hovering in the air. "I guaranty you, this work is perfectly fine for all of Amy's needs." He said as he started hovering towards the stairs with Twilight following behind with Amy.
I watched them start to go up the stairs and became more worried. If Twilight saw all the things Discord put in there earlier, she's going to flip. I quickly ran towards the stairs and followed them up. Once I was up to the next floor, I looked up at where the guest room was and saw that they were already approaching the door to it. Within a few seconds, I flew up towards them and stood between them and the door. "Wait! You can't go in there!" I said loudly, trying to stop them.
Discord and Twilight gave me a confused look. "Why not?" Twilight asked with a raised eye brow.
"Because…urr…" I said, trying to think of an excuse. I knew I couldn't tell Twilight why she couldn't look, so I had to make something else up. "Urr…I think I can still hear some construction in there." I said before I pressed my ear against the door and pretended to listen. "Yep, definitely something going on in there…is than a drill I can hear?" I said, hoping she would fall for it.
But instead of getting a response, Discord's tail wrapped around my body and raised me up until I was at the same eye-level as him. "Oh don't be ridiculous, Matthew, construction in there stopped hours ago." He said before he carried me over to Twilight and dropped me beside her.
Once I was back on my hooves, I turned to look at the door with my worried look back on my face. Twilight looked at me with confusion before she returned her attention to Discord whom was approaching the door. "Alright my friends, prepare yourself for my first gift to little Amy." He said as he grabbed the doorknob with his talon hand.
As I saw Discord turn the knob and the door made a click sound, I closed my eyes tightly and prepared for Twilight's freak out. I became tenser as I heard the door creak open slowly. And upon a moment later, I heard Twilight give out a gasp. "Discord!...This….This…This is perfect!" she said with glee.
Upon hearing that, I opened my eyes and looked at Twilight to see the large smile on her face. I then turned my attention to the room and my jaw dropped at the sight that beheld in front of me.
The guest room had been completely redecorated from top the bottom. The walls had be painted light-blue and the floor had a soft white carpet. Twilight and I entered the room to have a better look at the inside.
There was a beautifully made wooden crib at the end of the room, a small play-pen in one of the corners with some plus toys inside, and there was a diaper changing table by the wall. I then looked over to the window by the crib, it had been completely changed. Instead of being a plain round window, it was now a round stained window with an image me and Twilight huddling up with Amy between us.
All and all, this room was truly amazing. It was the perfect room for Amy. With my jaw still hanging, I turned to look up at Discord. "Discord…you did all of this…for us?" I asked, almost speechless.
Discord looked down at me with a smirk on his face and his arms crossed. "Yes…but I did it for Amy as well." He said before a light-bulb appeared on his head. "Oh, I almost forgot!" he said before he snapped his fingers.
Then, against one of the walls, a white sink appeared. "I know what you're thinking? Why a sink? Well let me show you." Discord said before he walked over to it and turned the handle of one of the taps. Once he did, white liquid started rushing out of it. "It provides very clean and very safe drinking milk, both cold and warm." He said before he turned off the tap. "And to go with it." He said before he snapped his fingers again before a baby bottle appeared in the air beside him, it was see-through and had Amy's name printed in gold on it. He then placed it down on the counter on the sink.
Twilight and I were left with our jaws dropped and eyes wide. "Discord…this is amazing! I can't believe you did this." Twilight said as she looked around the room.
"Well I have to be a good provider from my god-daughter, don't I?" Discord said before he walked over to the crib. "Here's a little something I put together myself." he said before he pressed a small Button behind the head-rest of the crib.
With that, seven small objects appeared above the crib and slowly rotated within the air. The objects were coloured crystals in the shape of each of our Cutie Marks. A light purpled one for Twilight's, a green one for mine, a dark purpled one for Rarity's, an orange one for Applejack's, a light-blue one for Pinkie's, a pink one for Fluttershy's, and a red one for Rainbow's.
Twilight and I got the idea that it was a mobile for Amy to stare at while she tried to sleep, it was like the crystals danced in the air for her. "That's beautiful." Twilight said as she watched the crystals.
"You've seen nothing yet." Discord said before he clapped his hands and the light of the room went off. Once it was dark, the lamp on a small table shined before a small light flashed from it. Within that moment, the room was full of realistic stars that actually moved and shined, it was like we were in space itself.
Twilight and I watched as the stars shined and shooting stars shot by out of no-where. "Discord…this all perfect for Amy." I said before I turned to face him. "I can't thank you enough for all of this." I said.
Discord clapped his hands again before the light's came back on and all the stars and stuff were literally sucked back into the lamp. "Get me back on Celestia's good side, and we're even." He said with a small smile.
I flapped my wings and flew up to his level with a large thankful smile on my face. "Deal." I said before I held my hoof up to Discord, which he bumped with his lion-hand. But suddenly, a thought came into my mind. "Wait, I saw you bring stuff like a volcano and a piranha in here, what happened to all of that?" I asked.
"That stuff?" Discord asked with his arms once again crossed. "Oh, there was a mix up with the deliveries. All that stuff was supposed to go to my place…typical delivery service, always messing things up." he said, thinking back at how much of a struggle it was.
"But all those guys were you." I said in confusion, but got no response from Discord.
Meanwhile, Twilight looked down at Amy in the pouch and smiled. "How do you like your room, Amy?" Twilight asked as she used her magic to pick Amy up out of the pouch and placed her down on the floor.
I, dropped the Discord subject, lowered back down to the floor and watched Amy to see her reaction. Amy looked around with confusion before she felt the carpet with her hoof. Feeling the softness, Amy giggled as she started rolling around on it, making us both smile with please. "Looks like she loves it." I say as I walked over to Twilight.
"All of this is so perfect." Twilight said before she looked up at Discord. "Thank you so much for all of this." She said, walking over to him.
"Don't mention it." Discord said before he walked past us and made his way towards the door. "Now if you'll excuse me, I have been so hard at work doing all this that I missed lunch, I'm going to get a well-deserved meal." He said before he left the room, leaving me and Twilight alone with Amy.
As we then returned our attention to Amy, whom was still studying the room, Discord's head suddenly appeared between us again, startling us. "Maybe Amy should get the same." He said before he disappeared in a flash of light.
Once he was gone, Twilight and I looked at each other in confusion. "What did he mean by that?" I asked, wondering what he meant.
After a second, Twilight's eyes widened. "Oh my gosh, Amy hasn't eaten all day!" she said before she walked over to Amy and picked her up in her arms. "Matt, can you used that sink to fill up her bottle?" she asked as she cradled Amy in her arms.
"Coming right up!" I said before I went over to the sink and started to fill Amy's new bottle with milk. "Urr…warm or cold?" I asked, looking back at Twilight and getting a heavy sigh from her.
That night
After feeding Amy and spending the rest of the day tending to her, it was finally time to put her to bed for the first time and end the first day with her. Twilight and I managed to get her into her crib and made sure she fell asleep before we went to our own bed.
Spike slept in his basket, Jeff and Peewee slept on their bird-stand, and Discord slept down-stairs in a cloud hamper. Twilight and I laid in our bed and recapped the day. "Well…today was…interesting." Twilight said, staring up at the ceiling.
"Yeah…but so far, we suck at this." I said, not beating around the bush and getting straight to the true results.
"*Groan* I know!" Twilight groaned with her hooves covering her eyes. "We should've been prepared! We should've got everything Amy needed! How are we gonna be ready for the tough stuff if we're not prepared for the easy stuff?" She said, slamming her arms down on the bed.
I turned my head to face Twilight and gave her a small smile. "We might not be…but if today's taught us anything, its this…no matter what happens, whether we're prepared or not, we can handle it together and find a way to deal with it." I said, giving her a sweet smile.
Twilight turned her head to face me and returned my smile. "I know we will…its just…I think we're so used to not having a foal, that its gonna be hard getting used to it." she said.
"I know what you mean." I replied. "Amy's a foal, she's gonna be hard to deal with, especially since she's a Unicorn, but we'll always help each other out with her." I said with a gentle tone.
"I know we will." Twilight said before she moved closer to me. "And it'll all be worth it because in the end, whether she's a troublesome Unicorn or not, Amy's our daughter and we'll always show her the love and care any two parents can provide." She said.
"We'll never give any less than that." I said before I stared into Twilight's eyes and smiled lovingly. "I love you, Twilight." I said with passion in my voice.
"I love you too, Matt." Twilight responded before we both leaned towards each other and prepared to kiss, but before we could.
*Cries*
Twilight and I stopped inches away from each other and opened our eyes. "Oh…that class gag." I said with a slightly amused smiled before I leaned up on the bed. "I've got her." I said before I sluggishly climbed out of bed and made my way towards Amy's room.
Once I reached it, I opened the door and once again saw all the stars surrounding the inside of the room. I looked over to the crib and saw Amy kicking her hooves around while crying.
I clapped my hooves together before the light suddenly came on, making the stars retreat back into the lamp. I walked over to the crib and lowered one of the crib walls down and looked down at Amy. "Hey sweetheart, what's the problem?" I said as I reached my hooves down to her and picked her up.
Amy continued to cry as I rested her on my shoulder and rubbed her back. "It's ok, shhh…I'm here, daddy's here." I said gently as I continued to cuddle Amy.
Amy's crying died down a little, but she still whimpered as I moved her away from my shoulder and cradled her in my arms. "See, its not so bad." I said before I got up and walked over to the milk sink while holding Amy in one arm.
Once there, I filled Amy's bottle with warm milk before I started to feed her with it. I sat her, watching Amy drink the milk slowly, I smiled down and how beautiful she was, even when she was sucking on this bottle. After she was finished, I carried her back over to the crib and placed her down in it. "Feel better now?" I asked.
Amy didn't respond, the only thing she did was grab her tail with her hooves and start gnawing on the end of it, like Spike did after he hatched. I smiled warmly at this before I reached down at gently stroked her head. "Yeah, you're good now." I said before I raised the crib wall back up and stepped away from the crib before I started making my way towards the door.
But before I could reach it, I heard whimpering again, I turned my head around and looked to see Amy staring at me through the crib pillars with a sad look. Upon seeing this, I sighed a little and went back over to the crib. "Do you want me to stay with you until you go back to sleep?" I asked, getting a small smile from her.
"Ok." I said before I once again lowered the crib wall and sat down beside the crib. My hoof gently stroked against Amy's head as I kept staring at her, wondering how I was gonna get her to sleep. It was then I thought if I couldn't get her to sleep by herself, maybe a lullaby would help, so I started to sing to her in a gentle voice.
Me: "Come, stop you're crying…it'll be alright…
Just take my hoof, hold it tight…
I will protect you from all around you…
I will be here, don't you cry…
For one so small, you seem so strong
My arms will hold you, keep you safe and warm
This bond between us, can't be broken
I will be here, don't you cry…
'Cause you'll be in my heart…yes, you'll be in my heart…
From this day on…now and forever more…
You'll be in my heart, no matter what the say…
You'll be in my heart…always…always…"
As I finished my short lullaby, I looked to see Amy had already fallen asleep to is, despite being so short. I smiled warmly at it before I leaned in and gently kissed her head. "Goodnight, my little star." I whispered before I raised the wall of the crib back up and slowly back away towards the door, being careful not to walk Amy.
Eventually, I got to the door and clapped my hooves, making the lights go out and the stars returned. I slowly closed the door until I was in the clear. Now that was taken care off, I started making my way back to bed to join Twilight.
She was right, this was going to get some getting used to, but having a foal like Amy with an amazing girl like Twilight…it was all totally it.
Hope you enjoyed the chapter.
The song I used in this chapter is called "You'll be in my heart" from the Disney movie "Tarzan", I don't own anything.
So during my absence, I've watched the rest of S7 and the MLP movie and they were AWESOME! The season final was great and the movie blew my mind! It was some of MLP's finest work.
Pony News:
The Season 6 DVD has been released, so anyone who wants to own the magic of that season should go onto Amazon and order your copy.
The MLP movie DVD is said to be released the 19th this month online, and somewhere in January for store release. I'll be waiting to see if any movie guests are going to next year's BronyCon before I order my copy.
Recently, Nick Confalone, Josh Harber and Mike Vogel have confirmed that the Equestria Girls series is canon to the show. This adds three names of MLP staff who say this, which include Meghan McCarthy and Daniel Ingram. Though after Flash and the Dazzlings appearance in the show, this was pretty obvious.
In S8 news, Tirek is said to return in the season finale of S8. I wonder how this is gonna play out, will he once again escape? Or will he be realised to help stop a bigger threat? We'll see what happens.
It also seems that stuff from the movie will make its way into the show. From what I've seen, it looks like we'll be going back into Seaquestria and we'll see a new character named Silver Stream. Does this mean we might see Skystar again?
End of Pony News:
Please remember to review and PM.
Next chapter will be up as soon as possible. It'll be another episode chapter, so it might be done quicker.